Skip to main content

Full text of "A biographical dictionary of eminent Scotsmen. With a supplemental volume, continuing the biographies to the present time"

See other formats


A*'^'-' 


\r^ 


Digitized  by  the  Internet  Arciiive 

in  2007  witii  funding  from 

IVIicrosoft  Corporation 


littp://vyww.arcliive.org/details/biograRliicaldict04cliamiaia 

r 


^ 


Kola  AnJiCT  iUmfRJ^. 


KoJ^tr^  ly   T.VT.  Enijjlii 


R(1AJ)§[IS  (EEWEML  SOKTMOftOAS  m^M)  [SMTKXi= 


GOVERNOR   OF    MADRA.S. 


BLAOaF.  <c  SON.  GLASGOW,  EDINBTmOH  trlOHDOtl 


SM5HEHT  SOOTShlEt-l 


■A-  '  T  ^^ 


KUMEROU?:   AUTHEKTl'".   PORTRAITS , 


VOLUME  IV. 


k^ 


U)\ilViLh;:il  y    AIML    KINJS    COLLEGE, 
>  L  D     A  E  E  R  D  E  E  W  . 

0 


(7, !    £j  r^  r,'_    I  ,<■/     c  i  . ;  r;  n  1  (  D  ,-7,  u     fj  n  n     i 


A 

BIOGRAPHICAL  DICTIONARY 

OF 

EMINENT  SCOTSMEN. 

IN"  FOUR  VOLUMES. 

ORIGINALLY  EDITED  BT 

ROBERT    CHAMBERS. 

NEW    EDITION,    REVISED    UNDER    THE    CARE    OF    THE    PUBLISHERS. 

WITH  A  SUPPLEMENTAL  VOLUME, 

CONTINUING  THE  BIOGRAPHIES  TO   THE  PRESENT  TIME. 

By  the  Eev.  THOS.  THOMSON, 

IVTHOR   OF   "the  ItUTOnY   OP   SCOTrj^ND  FOa   THB   USH  OF  SCHOOI^,**    ETC,   KTC. 

WITH    NUMEROUS   PORTRAITS. 


VOL.    IV. 
MELVILLE— YOUNG. 


BLACKIE    AND    SON: 

GLASGOW,    EDI  K  BURG  II,     AND    LONDON. 

MDCCCLV. 


§v3 


OLASOOWi 

W.  O.  BLACKIS  AND  CO.,  FRINTEXS, 

VILLAriELS. 


BIOGRAPHICAL    DICTIONARY 

OF 

EMINENT    SCOTSMEN. 


M. 

MELVILLE,  Andrew,  one  of  the  most  illustrious  of  the  Scottish  reformers, 
whose  name  stands  next  to  that  of  Knox  in  the  history  of  the  Reformation,  and 
is  second  to  none  in  the  erudition  of  the  time,  was  born  on  the  1st  of  August, 
1545,  at  Baldovy  or  Baldowy,  an  estate  on  the  banks  of  the  South  Esk,  near 
Montrose,  of  which  his  father  was  proprietor.  The  form  in  which  the  family 
name  was  generally  known  at  that  time  in  Scotland  and  in  foreign  countries, 
was  Melvyne  or  Melvin.  Throughout  the  interesting  correspondence,  written  in 
Latin,  between  the  subject  of  this  memoir  and  his  amiable  and  accomplished 
nephew,  whoso  life  is  recorded  in  the  next  article,  the  name  is  uniformly  written 
Melvinus.  In  Fifeshire,  at  the  present  day,  the  name  is  commonly  pronounced 
Melvin,  and  at  an  earlier  period  it  was  frequently  both  pronounced  and  written 
Melin,  Mellin,  and  Melling.  The  Melvilles  of  Baldowy  were  a  family  of  some 
note  in  the  middle  of  the  sixteenth  century,  and  near  cadets  of  Melville  of  Raith, 
who  was  considered  to  be  the  chief  of  an  influential  name  in  the  county  of  Fife. 
Melville  of  Dysart,  however,  was  acknowledged  by  Andrew  Melville  to  have 
been  the  chief  of  the  Baldowy  branch  of  the  family.  Andrew  was  the  youngest 
of  nine  sons,  and  had  the  misfortune  to  lose  his  father,  who  fell  in  the  battle  of 
Pinkie,  while  be  was  yet  only  two  years  of  age.  The  death  of  his  mother,  also, 
soon  afterwards  took  place,  and  he  was  thus  left  an  orphan.  The  loss  of  his 
parents,  however,  was  in  a  gi-eat  measure  compensated  by  the  kindness  and 
tenderness  of  his  eldest  brother,  and  the  wife  of  that  individual,  both  of  whom 
watched  over  his  infant  years  with  the  most  anxious  affection  and  assiduity.  The 
long-tried  and  unwearied  kindness  of  the  latter,  in  particular,  made  a  strong 
impression  upon  Melville,  which  lasted  during  the  whole  of  his  life. 

His  brother,  perceiving  his  eai'ly  propensity  to  learning,  resolved  to  encourage 
it,  and  with  this  view  gave  him  the  best  education  which  the  country  afforded. 
He  was  besides  of  a  weakly  habit  of  body,  a  consideration  which  had  its  weight 
in  determining  the  line  of  life  he  should  pursue.  Young  Melville  was  accord- 
ingly put  to  the  grammar-school  of  Montrose,  where  he  acquired  the  elements 
of  the  Latin  language,  and,  among  other  accomplishments,  a  knowledge  of 
Greek,  which  was  then  a  rare  study  in  Scotland.  When  removed,  in  his 
fourteenth  year,  to  the  university  of  St  Andrews,  he  surprised  his  teachers  by 
his  knowledge  of  Greek,  with  which  they  were  wholly  unacquainted.     He  was  in- 


ANDREW   MELVILLE. 


debted  for  this  fortunate  peculiarity  in  his  education,  to  a  Frenchman  of  the 
name  of  Marsilliers,  uho  had  been  established  as  a  teacher  of  Greek  in  the 
school  of  Montrose,  by  John  Erskine  of  Dun. 

The  great  progress  which  young  Melville  had  made  in  learning,  excited  the 
astonishment  and  attracted  the  attention  of  the  various  teachers  in  the  univer- 
sity ;  particularly  Mr  John  Douglas,  the  rector,  who  on  one  occasion  having 
tiken  the  young  and  weakly  boy  between  his  knees,  was  so  delighted  with  his 
replies,  when  questioned  on  the  subject  of  his  studies,  that  he  exclaimed,  "  My 
silly  fatherless  and  motlierless  boy,  it's  ill  to  witt  [to  guess]  what  God  may 
make  of  thee  yeL" 

The  reputation  which  Melville  acquired  soon  after  entering  the  college,  in- 
CT«ased  with  his  stay  there  ;  and  he  left  it,  on  finishing  the  usual  coui-se  of 
study,  with  the  character  of  being  "  the  best  philosopher,  poet,  and  Grecian,  of 
any  young  master  in  the  land."  Having  acquired  all  the  learning  which  his 
native  country  afforded,  he  resolved  to  proceed  to  the  continent  to  complete 
his  education  ;  and,  accordingly,  with  the  consent  of  his  brothei-s,  set  out  for 
France  in  the  autumn  of  1564,  being  still  only  in  the  nineteenth  year  of  his 
age.  At  the  university  of  Paris,  whither  he  repaired,  he  acquired  r.  similar 
reputation  for  general  talent,  and  particularly  for  his  knowledge  of  Greek, 
with  that  which  he  had  secured  at  St  Andrews.  Here  he  remained  for  two 
years,  when  he  removed  to  Poictiers.  On  his  an-ival  at  the  latter  place,  such 
was  the  celebrity  already  attached  to  his  name,  he  was  made  regent  in  tlie  col- 
lego  of  St  Man-eon,  although  yet  only  twenty-one  years  of  age.  From  Poic- 
tiers, he  went  some  time  afterwards  to  Geneva,  where  he  was  presented  with 
the  htimanily  chair  in  the  academy,  which  happened  fortunately  to  be  then  va- 
cant In  1571,  he  returned  to  his  native  country,  after  an  absence  altogether 
of  ten  years.  On  his  arrival  at  Edinburgh,  he  was  invited  by  the  regent  Mor- 
ton to  enter  liis  family  as  a  domestic  instructor,  with  a  promise  of  advancement 
when  opportunity  should  offer.  This  invitation  he  declined,  alleging  that  he 
preferred  an  academical  life,  and  that  the  object  of  his  highest  ambition  was  to 
obtain  an  appointment  in  one  of  the  universities.  He  now  retired  to  Baldovy, 
where  he  spent  the  following  three  months,  enjoying  the  society  of  his  elder 
brother,  and  amusing  himself  by  superintending  the  studies  of  his  nephew, 
James  Melville. 

At  the  end  of  this  period,  he  was  appointed  principal  of  the  college  of  Glas- 
gow by  the  General  Assembly,  and  immediately  proceeded  thither  to  assume 
the  duties  of  his  office.  Here  the  learning  and  talents  of  Melville  were 
eminently  serviceable,  not  only  to  the  university  over  which  he  presided,  but  to 
the  whole  kingdom.  He  introduced  improvements  in  teaching  and  in  disci- 
pline, which  at  once  procured  a  high  degree  of  popularity  to  the  college,  and 
greatly  promoted  the  cause  of  general  education  throughout  Scotland.  Melville 
possessed  n  considerable  share  of  that  intrepidity  for  which  his  great  prede- 
cessor, Knox,  was  so  remarkable.  At  an  interview,  on  one  occasion,  with  the  re- 
gent  Morton,  who  was  highly  displeased  with  some  proceedings  of  the  General 
Assembly,  of  which  Melville  was  a  member,  tlie  former,  irritated  by  what  he 
conceived  to  be  obstinacy  in  thelalter,exclaimed,  "  There  will  never  be  quietness 
in  this  country,  till  half-a-dozen  of  you  be  hanged  or  banished." — "  Hark,  sir," 
said  Melville,  "  threaten  your  courtiers  after  that  manner.  It  is  the  same  to 
me,  whether  I  rot  in  the  air  or  in  the  ground.  The  earth  is  the  Lord's. 
Patria  eat  ubicunque  est  bene.  I  have  been  ready  to  give  my  life  where  it 
would  not  have  been  half  so  well  wared  [expended],  at  the  pleasure  of  my  God. 
I  have  lived  out  of  your  country  ten  years,  as  well  as  in  it.  Let  God  be  glori- 
fied :  it  will  not  be  in  your  power  to  hang  or  exile  his  trutli."     It  is  not  said 


ANDREW  MELVILLE. 


that  the  vegent  resented  this  bold  lansftiage  ;  but  probably  his  forbearance  was 
as  much  owing  to  the  circtunstance  of  his  resigning  the  regency,  which  he  did 
soon  after,  as  to  any  other  cause. 

In  1580,  3Ielviile  was  translated  to  St  Andrews,  to  fill  a  similar  situation 
with  that  which  he  occupied  at  Glasgow.  Here  he  distinguished  himself  by  the 
same  ability  which  had  acquired  him  so  much  reputation  in  the  western  uni- 
versity. Besides  giving  lectures  on  theology,  he  taught  the  Hebrew,  Chaldee, 
Syriac,  and  Kabbini«:al  languages,  and  discovered  such  an  extent  of  knowledge 
and  superiority  of  acquirement,  that  his  classes  were  attended,  not  only  by 
young  students  in  unusual  numbers,  but  by  several  of  the  masters  of  the  other 
colleges.  In  1582,  Melville  opened,  with  sermon,  an  extraordinary  meeting  of 
the  General  Assembly,  which  had  been  convoked  to  take  into  consideration  the 
dangerous  state  of  the  protestant  church,  from  the  influence  which  the  earl  of 
Arran,  and  the  lords  D'Aubigne  and  Lennox,  exercised  over  the  young  king. 
In  this  sermon  he  boldly  inveighed  against  the  absolute  authority  which  the 
court  was  assuming  a  right  to  exercise  in  ecclesiastical  affairs,  and  alluded  to  a 
design  on  the  part  of  France,  of  which  D'Aubigne  was  the  instrument,  to  re- 
establish the  catholic  religion  in  the  country.  The  assembly,  impressed  with 
similar  sentiments,  and  entertaining  similar  apprehensions,  drew  up  a  spirited 
remonstrance  to  tiie  king,  and  appointed  Melville  to  present  it.  He  accord- 
ingly repaired  to  Perth,  where  the  king  then  was,  and,  despite  of  some  alarm- 
ing reports  which  reached  him,  of  the  personal  danger  to  which  he  would  ex- 
pose himself  from  the  resentment  of  the  king's  favourites,  demanded  and  ob- 
tained access  to  his  majesty.  When  the  remonstrance  was  read,  Arran  looked 
round  the  apartment,  and  exclaimed,  in  a  tone  of  defiance  and  menace,  "  Who 
dares  subscribe  these  treasonable  articles?" — "  We  dare,"  replied  Melville;  and, 
taking  a  pen  from  the  clerk,  he  affixed  his  signature  to  the  document:  an  ex- 
ample which  Avas  immediately  followed  by  the  other  commissioners  who  were 
with  him.  The  cool  and  dignified  intrepidity  of  Melville,  completely  silenced 
the  blustering  of  Arran,  who,  finding  himself  at  fault  by  this  unexpected  oppo- 
sition, made  no  further  remark;  and  Lennox,  with  better  policy,  having  spoken 
to  the  commissioners  in  a  conciliatory  tone,  they  were  peaceably  dismissed.  It 
seems  probable,  however,  from  what  afterwards  ensued,  that  Arran  did  not  for- 
get the  humiliation  to  which  3Ielville^s  boldness  had  on  this  occasion  subjected 
him.  In  less  than  two  years  afterwards,  Melville  was  summoned  before  the 
privy  council,  on  a  charge  of  high  treason,  founded  upon  some  expressions 
which,  it  was  alleged,  he  had  made  use  of  in  the  pulpit.  Whether  Arran  was 
the  original  instigator  of  the  prosecution,  does  not  very  distinctly  appear;  but 
it  is  certain  that  he  took  an  active  part  in  its  progress,  and  expressed  an  eager 
anxiety  for  the  conviction  of  the  accused.  Failing  in  establishing  any  thing  to 
the  prejudice  of  Melville,  the  council  had  recourse  to  an  expedient  to  effect 
that  which  they  could  not  accomplish  through  his  indictment  They  could  not 
punish  him  for  offences  which  they  could  not  prove  ;  but  they  found  him  guilty 
of  declining  the  judgment  of  the  council, and  of  behaving  irreverently  before  them, 
and  condemned  him  to  be  imprisoned  in  the  castle  of  Edinburgh,  and  to  be  fur- 
ther punished  in  person  and  goods  at  his  majesty's  pleasure.  The  terms  of  the 
sentence,  in  so  far  as  regarded  the  piacte  of  imprisonment,  were  afterwards  altered 
by  Arran,  who  substituted  "  Blackness,"  where  he  had  a  creature  of  his  own  as 
keeper,  for  Edinburgh.  Several  hours  being  allowed  to  Melville  before  he  was 
put  in  ward,  he  availed  himself  of  the  opportunity,  and  made  his  escape  to  Eng- 
land. To  this  step,  being  himself  in  doubt  whetlier  he  ought  not  rather  to 
submit  to  the  sentence  of  the  council,  he  was  urged  by  some  of  his  friends,  who, 
to  his  request  for  advice  in  the  matter,  replied,  with  the  proverb  of  the  house  of 


ANDREW  MELVILLE. 


An<ni8,  "  Loose  and  living;"  which  pretty  plainly  intimates  what  they  conceived 
would  be  the  result,  if  he  permitted  himself  to  be  made  "  fast."  On  leav- 
ing Edinburgh,  3Ielville  first  proceeded  to  Berwick,  and  thence  to  London, 
»»hero  he  remained  till  the  November  of  15S5.  The  indignation  of  the  king- 
dom having  then  driven  Arran  from  the  court,  he  returned  to  Scotland,  after  an 
absence  of  twenty  months.  The  plague,  which  had  raged  in  the  country  while 
he  was  in  England,  having  dispersed  his  pupils  at  St  Andrews,  and  the  college 
being,  from  this  and  other  causes,  in  a  state  of  complete  disorganization,  he  did 
not  immediately  resume  his  duties  there,  but  proceeded  to  Glasgow,  where  he  re- 
mained for  some  time.  In  the  month  of  March  following,  induced  by  an  appearance 
of  more  settled  times,  he  returned  to  St  Andrews,  and  reconurienced  his  lectures 
and  former  course  of  instruction.  These,  however,  were  soon  again  inteiTupted. 
In  consequence  of  the  active  part  which  he  took  in  the  excommunication  of 
archbishop  Adamson,  who  was  accused  of  overthrowing  the  scriptural  govern- 
ment and  discipline  of  the  church  of  Scotland,  he  was  commanded  by  the  king 
to  leave  St  Andrews,  and  to  confine  himself  beyond  the  water  of  Tay.  From 
this  banishment  he  was  soon  afterwards  recalled ;  and,  having  been  restored  to 
his  majesty's  favour,  through  the  intercession  of  the  dean  of  faculty  and  masters 
of  the  university,  he  resumed  his  academical  labours  at  St  Andrews. 

In  the  year  following  (1587,)  he  was  chosen  moderator  of  the  General  As- 
sembly, and  appointed  one  of  their  commissioners  to  the  ensuing  meeting  of 
parliament  A  similar  honour  with  the  first  was  conferred  upon  him  in  1589, 
and  again  in  1  594.  In  the  year  following,  he  was  invited  to  take  a  part  in 
the  ceremonies  at  the  coronation  of  the  queen,  which  took  place  in  the  chapel 
of  Holyrood,  on  the  17th  of  May.  On  this  occasion,  although  he  did  not 
know,  until  only  two  days  before,  that  he  was  expected  to  take  a  part  in  the 
approaching  ceremony,  he  composed  and  delivered,  before  a  gi'eat  concourse  of 
noblemen  and  gentlemen,  assembled  to  witness  the  coronation,  a  Latin  poem, 
which,  having  been  printed  next  day  at  the  earnest  solicitation  of  his  majesty, 
who  was  much  pleased  with  it,  under  the  title  of-  "  Stephaniskion,"  and  circu- 
lated throughout  Europe,  added  greatly  to  the  reputation  which  iu  author  had 
already  acquired.  An  instance  of  the  generosity  of  Melville's  disposition,  which 
occurred  about  this  time,  cannot  be  passed  over,  however  brief  the  sketch  of 
his  life  may  be,  without  doing  an  injustice  to  his  memory.  Archbishop  Adam- 
son,  one  of  his  most  irreconcilable  enemies,  having  lost  the  favour  of  the  king, 
was  reduced,  by  the  sequestration  of  his  annuity,  which  immediately  followed, 
to  great  pecuniary  distress.  He  applied  to  Melville  for  relief,  and  he  did  not 
apply  in  vain.  Melville  immediately  visited  him,  and  undertook  to  support 
himself  and  his  family  at  his  own  expense,  until  some  more  effective  and  per- 
manent assistance  could  be  procured  for  him ;  and  this  he  did  for  several  months, 
finally  obtaining  a  contribution  for  him  from  his  friends  in  St  Andrews.  Such 
instances  of  benevolence  are  best  left  to  the  reader's  own  reflections,  and  are 
only  injured  by  comment. 

In  1590,  he  was  chosen  rector  of  the  university;  an  office  which  he  conti- 
nued to  hold  by  re-election  for  many  years,  and  in  which  he  displayed  a  firm- 
ness and  decision  of  character  on  several  trying  occasions,  that  gives  him  a 
claim  to  something  more  than  a  mere  literary  reputation.  Though  a  loyal  sub- 
ject  in  the  best  tense  and  most  genuine  acceptation  of  that  term,  he  frequently 
addressed  king  James  in  language  nmch  more  remarkable  for  its  plainness  than 
its  courtesy.  He  had  no  sympathy  whatever  for  the  absurdities  of  that  prince, 
and  would  neither  condescend  to  humour  his  foibles  nor  flatter  his  vanity.  A 
remarkable  instance  of  this  plain  dealing  with  his  majesty,  occurred  in  1596. 
In  that  year,  Melville  formed  one  of  a  deputation  from  the  commissioners  of  the 


ANDREW   MELVILLE. 


General  Aesembly,  who  met  at  Cupar  in  Fife,  being  appointed  to  wait  upon  tho 
king  at  Falkland,  for  (he  pui-pnse  of  exhorting  him  to  prevent  the  consequences 
of  certain  measures  inimical  to  religion,  uhich  his  council  were  pursuing.  James 
Melville,  nephew  of  the  subject  of  this  memoir,  was  chosen  spokesman  of  the 
party,  on  account  of  the  mildness  of  his  manner  and  the  courteousness  of  his 
address.  On  entering  the  presence,  he  accordingly  began  to  state  the  object 
Bud  views  of  the  deputation.  He  had  scarcely  commenced,  however,  when  the 
king  interrupted  him,  and  in  passionate  language,  denounced  the  meeting  at 
Cupar  as  illegal  and  seditious.  James  Melville  was  about  to  reply  with  his  usual 
mildness,  when  his  uncle,  stepping  forward,  seized  the  sleeve  of  the  king's 
gown,  and  calling  his  sacred  majesty  "God's  silly  vassal,"  proceeded  to  lecture 
him  on  the  impropriety  of  his  conduct,  and  to  point  out  to  him  the  course 
which  he  ought  to  pursue,  particularly  in  matter  of  ecclesiastical  polity.  "  Sir," 
he  said,  "  we  will  always  humbly  reverence  your  majesty  in  public;  but  since 
we  have  this  occasion  to  be  with  your  majesty  in  private,  and  since  you  are 
brought  in  extreme  danger  both  of  your  life  and  crown,  and,  along  with  you, 
the  country  and  the  church  of  God  are  like  to  go  to  wreck,  for  not  telling  you 
the  tinith,  and  giving  you  faithful  counsel,  we  must  discharge  our  duty  or  else 
be  traitors  both  to  Christ  and  you.  Therefore,  Sir,  as  divers  times  before  I 
have  told  you,  so  now  again  I  must  tell  you,  there  are  two  kings  and  two  king- 
doms in  Scotland :  there  is  king  James,  the  head  of  this  commonwealth,  and 
there  is  Christ  Jesus  the  king  of  the  church,  whose  subject  James  the  Sixth  is, 
and  of  whose  kingdom  he  is  not  a  king,  nor  a  lord,  nor  a  head,  but  a  member." 
Melville  went  on  in  a  similar  sti'ain  with  this  for  a  great  length  of  time,  not- 
withstanding repeated  attempts,  on  the  part  of  the  king,  to  stop  him.  James 
expressed  the  strongest  repugnance  at  the  outset  to  listen  to  him,  and  endeav- 
oured to  frighten  him  from  his  purpose  by  a  display  of  the  terrors  of  offended 
royalty,  but  in  vain.  He  was  finally  compelled  to  listen  quietly  and  patiently 
to  all  that  Melville  chose  to  say.  At  the  conclusion  of  the  speech,  the  king, 
whose  anger,  and  whose  courage  also  probably,  had  subsided  during  its  delivery, 
made  every  concession  which  was  required ;  and  the  deputation  returned  with- 
out any  loss,  apparently,  of  royal  favour.  It  was  not,  however,  to  be  ex- 
pected, that  Melville  should  have  gained  any  ground  in  the  king's  affec- 
tions by  this  display  of  sincerity  and  zeal ;  nor  were  the  future  interviews 
which  took  place  between  them  better  calculated  for  this  end.  'The  very  next 
which  occurred  is  thus  alluded  to  in  his  nephew's  diai-y :  "  And  ther  they  (the 
king  and  Melville)  heeled  on,  till  all  the  hous  and  clos  bathe  hard  mikle,  of  a 
large  houre.      In  end,  the  king  takes  upe  and  disraissis  him  favourablie." 

However  favourably  James  may  have  dismissed  him,  he  does  not  seem  to  have 
been  unwilling  to  avail  himself  of  the  first  opportunity  which  should  offer  of  get- 
ting rid  of  him.  At  a  royal  visitation  of  the  university  of  St  Andrews,  which  soon 
afterwards  took  place,  matter  of  censure  against  Melville  was  eagerly  sought  after, 
and  all  who  felt  disposed  to  bring  any  complaint  against  him,  were  encouraged 
to  come  forward  with  their  accusations.  The  result  was,  that  a  large  roll,  filled 
with  charges  against  him,  was  put  into  the  king's  hands.  He  wm  accused  of 
neglecting  the  pecuniary  affairs  of  the  college,  and  the  duties  of  his  office  as  a 
teacher,  of  agitating  questions  of  policy  in  place  of  lecturing  on  divinity,  and 
of  inculcating  doctrines  subversive  of  the  king's  authority  and  of  the  peace  of 
the  realm.  At  several  strict  examinations,  he  gave  such  satisfactory  explana- 
tions of  his  conduct,  and  defended  himself  so  effectually  against  the  slanders  of 
those  who  sought  his  ruin,  that  the  visitors  were  left  without  any  gi'ound  or  pre- 
text on  which  to  proceed  against  him.  They,  however,  deprived  him  of  the 
rectorship,  on  the  plea  that  it  was  improper  that  that  office  should  be  united 


6  ANDREW  JfELVILLK 


'  witli  the  professorship  of  theology,  the  appointment  which  Melville  held  in  the 
unirersity. 

The  accession  of  James  to  the  English  throne,  did  not  abate  his  desire  to 
assume  an  absolute  control  orer  the  affairs  of  the  cliurch  of  Scotland,  and  long 
after  his  removal  to  England,  he  continued  to  entertain  designs  hostile  to  its 
liberties.  The  attempts  whicli  he  had  made  to  obtain  this  supremacy,  while  he 
was  yet  in  Scotland,  had  been  thwarted  in  a  great  measure  by  the  exertions  of 
Melrille.  His  intrepidity  kept  James  at  bay,  and  his  zeal,  activity,  and  talents, 
deprived  him  of  all  chance  of  succeeding,  by  chicanery  or  cunning.  Melville 
still  presented  himself  as  a  stumbling-block  in  his  uay,  should  he  attempt  to 
approach  the  Scottish  church  with  inimrcal  designs,  and  James,  therefore,  now 
resolved  that  he  should  be  entirely  removed  from  the  kingdom.  To  accomplish 
this,  he  had  recourse  to  one  of  those  infamous  and  unprincipled  stratagems 
which  he  considered  the  very  essence  of  "  king  craft."  In  May  1606,  Mel- 
ville received  a  letter  from  his  majesty,  commanding  him  to  repair  to  London 
before  the  15th  of  September  next,  that  his  majesty  might  consult  with  him, 
and  others  of  his  learned  brethren,  regarding  ecclesiastical  matters,  with  tiie 
view  of  healing  all  differences,  and  securing  a  good  understanding  between  his 
majesty  and  the  church.  Letters  of  a  similar  tenor  were  received  by  seven 
other  clergymen,  amongst  whom  was  Melville's  nephew. 

Though  not  without  some  doubts  regarding  the  result  of  this  rather  extraor- 
dinary invitation,  Melville  and  his  brethren  set  out  for  London,  where  they  ar- 
rived on  the  25th  of  August.  The  first  interview  of  the  Scottish  clergymen 
with  the  king  was  sufficiently  gracious.  He  inquired  for  news  from  Scotland, 
and  condescended  even  to  be  jocular.  This,  however,  did  not  last  long  ;  at 
the  subsequent  conferences  Melville  found  himself  called  upon,  by  the  sentiments 
which  tlie  king  expressed  regarding  church  matters,  to  hold  the  same  bold  and 
plain  language  to  him  which  he  had  so  often  done  in  Scotland,  and  this  too  in 
the  presence  of  great  numbers  of  his  English  courtiers,  who  could  not  refrain 
from  expressing  their  admiration  of  Melville's  boldness,  and  of  the  eloquence 
with  which  he  delivered  his  sentiments.  In  the  mean  tinie,  however,  the  Scot- 
tish ministers  were  interdicted  from  returning  to  Scotland  without  the  special 
permission  of  the  king.  On  the  28th  September  they  were  required  by  his 
majesty  to  give  attendance  in  the  royal  chapel  on  the  following  day  to  witness 
the  celebration  of  the  festival  of  St  Michael.  The  ceremonies  and  fooleries  of 
the  exhibition  which  took  place  on  this  occasion,  were  so  absurd,  and  so  nearly 
approached  those  of  the  Romish  church,  tliat  they  excited  in  Melville  a  feeling 
of  the  utmost  indignation  and  contempt  This  feeling  he  expressed  in  a  Latin 
epigram,  which  he  composed  on  returning  to  his  lodgings.  A  copy  of  the 
lines  found  its  way  to  his  majesty,  who  was  greatly  incensed  by  them,  and 
determined  to  proceed  against  their  author  on  the  ground  that  they  were  trea- 
sonable. He  was  accordingly  summoned  before  the  privy  council,  found  guilty 
of  scandalum  magnatum,  and  after  a  confinement  of  nearly  twelve  monlhs,  first  in 
the  house  of  Uie  dean  of  St  Paul's,  and  afterwards  in  that  of  the  bishop  of  Win- 
Chester,  was  committed  to  the  Tower,  where  he  remained  a  prisoner  for  four 
years.  The  other  clergymen  who  had  accompanied  Melville  to  London  were 
allowed  to  return  to  Scotland ;  but  they  were  confined  to  particular  part, 
of  Uie  country,  and  forbidden  to  attend  any  cliurch  courts.  Melville's  nephew 
was  commanded  to  leave  London  within  six  days,  and  to  repair  to  Newrastle 
apou  1  yne,  and  not  to  go  ten  miles  beyond  that  town  on  the  pain  of  rebellion 

In  th«  month  of  February,  1611,  Melville  was  released  from  the  Tower  on 
the  application  of  the  duke  of  Bouillon,  who  had  solicited  his  liberty  from  the 
king,  in  order  to  procure  his  services  as  a  professor  in  bis  univenity  at  Sedan 


ANDREW  MELVILLE. 


in  France.  Melville,  Avho  was  now  in  the  G6th  year  of  his  age,  was  exceed- 
ingly reluctant  to  go  abroad  ;  but,  as  this  was  a  condition  of  his  liberty,  and  as 
there  was  no  hope  of  the  king's  being  prevailed  upon  to  allow  him  to  return  to 
Scotland,  he  submitted  to  the  expatriation,  and  sailed  for  France  on  the  19th 
of  April. 

On  his  arrival  at  Paris  he  was  fortunate  enough  to  fall  in  with  one  of  his 
scholars  then  prosecuting  his  studies  there,  by  whom  he  was  kindly  and  affec- 
tionately received.  After  spending  a  few  days  in  the  French  capital  he  repaired 
to  Sedan,  and  was  admitted  to  the  place  destined  for  him  in  the  university. 

In  the  year  following  he  removed  to  Grenoble,  to  superintend  the  education 
of  three  sons  of  the  treasurer  of  the  parliament  of  Dauphiny,  with  a  salary  of 
five  hundred  crowns  per  annum ;  but,  not  finding  the  situation  an  agreeable  one, 
he  returned  within  a  short  time  to  Sedan,  and  resumed  his  former  duties. 
Melville  continued  to  maintain  a  close  correspondence  with  his  numerous  friends 
in  Scotland,  and  particularly  with  his  nephew,  James  Melville,  to  whom  he  was 
warmly  attached.  Of  him,  his  best,  most  constant,  and  dearest  friend,  however, 
he  was  soon  to  be  deprived.  That  amiable  man,  who  had  adhered  to  him 
through  good  and  bad  fortune,  through  storm  and  sunshine,  for  a  long  series  of 
years,  died  in  the  beginning  of  the  year  1614.  The  grief  of  Melville  on  re- 
ceiving the  intelligence  of  his  death  was  deep  and  poignant.  He  gave  way  to 
no  boisterous  expression  of  feeling ;  but  he  felt  the  deprivation  Mith  all  the 
keenness  which  such  a  calamity  is  calculated  to  inflict  on  an  affectionate  heart. 
With  his  fondest  wishes  still  directed  towards  his  native  land,  he  requested  his 
friends  in  London  to  embrace  any  favourable  opportunity  which  might  ofter  of 
procuring  his  restoration  ;  and  in  1616,  a  promise  was  obtained  from  his 
majesty,  that  he  Mould  be  relieved  from  banishment.  This,  promise,  however, 
like  many  others  of  James's,  was  never  realized.  Melville,  after  all  that  he  had 
done  for  his  country,  was  doomed  to  breathe  his  last  an  exile  in  a  foreign  land. 
To  compensate  in  some  measure  for  the  misfortunes  which  clouded  his  latter 
days,  he  was  blessed  with  a  more  than  ordinary  share  of  bodily  health,  and  that 
to  a  later  period  of  life  than  is  often  to  be  met  with.  "  Am  I  not,"  he  says,  in 
a  letter  to  a  friend  Avritten  in  the  year  1612,  "  three  score  and  eight  yeara  old, 
unto  the  Avhich  age  none  of  ray  fourteen  brethren  came ;  and,  yet  I  thank  God, 
I  eat,  I  drink,  I  sleep  as  well  as  I  did  these  thirty  years  bygone,  and  better 
than  when  I  was  younger — in  ipso  flore  adolescentice, — only  the  gravel  now  and 
then  seasons  my  mirth  with  some  little  pain,  which  I  have  felt  only  since  the 
beginning  of  March  the  last  year,  a  month  before  my  deliverance  from  prison. 
I  feel,  tiiank  God,  no  abatement  of  the  alacrity  and  ardour  of  my  mind  for  the 
propagation  of  the  truth.  Neither  use  I  spectacles  now  more  than  ever,  yea  I 
use  none  at  all  nor  ever  did,  and  see  now  to  read  Hebrew  without  points,  and 
in  the  smallest  characters."  With  this  good  bodily  health,  he  also  enjoyed  to 
the  close  of  his  life  that  cheerfulness  of  disposition  and  vivacity  of  imagination 
for  which  he  was  distinguished  in  earlier  ye.irs,  and  in  the  seventy-fourth  year 
of  his  age  he  is  found  vying  with  the  most  sprightly  and  juvenile  of  his  col- 
leagues in  the  composition  of  an  epithalamium  on  the  occasion  of  the  marriage 
of  the  eldest  daughter  of  his  patron  the  duke  of  Bouillon. 

Years,  however,  at  length  undermined  a  constitution  which  disease  had  left 
untouched  until  the  very  close  of  life.  In  1620,  his  health  which  had  preri- 
ously  been  slightly  impaired,  grew  worse,  and  in  the  course  of  the  year  1622, 
he  died  at  Sedan,  in  the  seventy-seventh  year  of  his  age. 

The  benefits  which  Melville  conferred  on  his  country  in  the  department  of 
its  literature  are  thus  spoken  of  by  Dr  M'Crie  :  "  His  arrival  imparted  a  new 
impulse  to  the  public  mind,  and  his  high  reputation  for  learning,  joined  to  the 


8  JATilES  MELVILLE. 


enthmiasra  with  wliich  he  pleaded  its  cause,  enabled  him  to  introduce  an  im- 
uroTod  plan  of  study  into  all  the  universities.  By  his  instructions  and  example, 
he  continued  and  increased  the  impulse  which  he  had  first  given  to  the  minds  of 
iiis  countrymen.  In  languages,  in  theology,  and  in  that  species  of  poetical 
composition  which  was  then  most  practised  among  the  learned,  his  influence  was 
direct  and  acknowledged."  The  services  which  he  rendered  the  civil  and  re- 
ligious liberties  of  his  country  are  recorded  by  the  same  able  author  in  still 
stronger  terms.  "  If  the  love  of  pure  religion,"  he  says,  "  rational  liberty, 
and  polite  letters,  forms  the  basis  of  national  virtue  and  happiness,  I  know  no 
individual,  after  her  reformer,  from  whom  Scotland  has  received  greater  bene- 
fits, and  to  whom  she  owes  a  deeper  debt  of  gratitude  and  respect,  than  Andrew 
Melville." 

MELVILLE,  Jambs,  with  whose  history  are  connected  many  most  interesting 
facts  in  the  ecclesiastical  and  literary  history  of  Scotland,  was  born  at  Baldovy, 
near  Montrose,  on  the  25th  of  July,  1556.^  His  father  was  Richard  Melville 
ol  Baldovy,  the  friend  of  Wishart  the  Martyr,  and  of  John  Erskine  of  Dun,  and 
the  elder  brother  of  Andrew  Melville.  Soon  after  the  Refdi-mation,  this  gentle- 
man became  minister  of  Mary-Kirk,  in  the  immediate  neighbourhood  of  his  pro- 
perty, and  continued  so  till  the  close  of  his  life.  He  married  Isobel  Scrimgeour, 
sister  of  the  laird  of  Glasswell,  a  woman  of  great  "  godlines,  honestie,  vertew, 
and  afiection.'*  James  Melville  was,  therefore,  to  use  his  own  expression, 
descended  "  of-godlie,  faithfuU,  and  honest  parents,  bathe  lightned  with  the 
light  of  the  gospell,  at  the  first  dawning  of  the  day  tharof  within  Scotland." 

The  mother  of  James  Melville  having  died  about  a  year  ai'ter  his  birth,  he 
vias  placed  under  the  care  of  a  nurse,  '*  an  evill  inclynit  woman  ;"  and  after 
being  weaned,  was  lodged  in  the  house  of  a  cottar,  from  whence,  when  ho  was 
about  four  or  five  years  old,  he  was  brought  home  to  Baldovy.  He  and  his 
elder  brother  David  were  soon  afterwards  sent  to  a  school,  kept  by  Mr  William 
Gray,  minister  of  Logie-3Iontrose,  "  a  guid,  lerned,  kynd  man."  This  school 
was  broken  up,  partly  by  the  removal  of  some  of  the  boys  perhaps  to  attend  the 
universities,  but  more  immediately  by  the  ravages  of  the  plague  at  3Ionlrose,  from 
which  Logie  was  only  two  miles  distant.  James  and  his  brother,  therefore,  re- 
turned home,  after  having  attended  it  for  about  five  years.  During  the  following 
winter,  they  remained  at  home,  receiving  from  their  father  such  occasional  instruc- 
tion as  his  numerous  duties  permitted  him  to  give  them.  At  this  period,  Richard 
Melville  seems  to  have  ^intended  that  both  his  sons  should  be  trained  to  agricul- 
tural pursuits,  there  being  no  learned  profession  in  which  a  livelihood,  even  of  a 
very  moderate  kind,  could  be  obtained.  In  the  spring,  it  was  resolved  that,  as 
the  elder  brother  was  sufficiently  old  to  assist  in  superintending  his  father's 
rural  affairs,  he  should  remain  at  home,  and  that  James  should  be  sent  again  to 
school.  He  accordingly  attended  a  school  at  Montrose,  of  which  Andrew 
Milne,  afterwai-ds  minister  of  Fetteresso,  was  master.  Here  he  continued  about 
two  years. 

Of  tlie  whole  of  this  period  of  his  life,  James  3Ielville  has  left  a  most  interest- 
ing account ;  and  we  only  regret  that,  from  the  length  to  which  this  memoir 
must  otherwise  extend,  we  are  unable  to  give  any  thing  more  than  a  very  rapid 
sketch  of  this  and  the  subsequent  part  of  his  education.  He  entered  on  his 
philosophical  course  at  St  Leonard's  college  in  the  university  of  St  Andrews,  in 
November,  1571,  under  the  lare  of  William  Collace,  one  of  the  regents.  At 
first  he  found  himself  unable  to  understand  the  Latin  prelections,  and  was  so 
nuch  chagrined  that  he  was  frequently  found  in  tears ;  but  the  regent  took 

'  In  a  note  on  this  date  in  his  Diary,  he  says,  "  My  vncle,  Mr  Andro,  haulds  that  I  was 
born  in  An,  1567.-  ji  j  >         j  , 


JAMES   MELVILLE. 


him  to  lodge  at  his  apartments,  and  was  so  much  pleased  with  the  sweetness 
of  his  disposition,  and  his  anxiety  to  learn,  that  he  made  him  the  constant 
object  of  his  care,  and  had  the  satisfaction  of  seeing  him  leave  the  university, 
after  having  attained  its  highest  honours.  During  the  prescribed  period  of 
four  years,  3Ielville  was  tauglit  logic,  (including  the  Aristotelian  philosopliy,) 
mathematics,  ethics,  natural  philosophy,  and  law.  At  the  end  of  the  third  year, 
he,  according  to  the  usual  custom,  took  tlie  degree  of  Bachelor,  and,  on  finish- 
ing the  fourth,  that  of  Master  of  Arts.  One  of  the  most  interesting  events  re- 
corded by  James  Melville  to  have  occurred  during  his  residence  at  St  Andrews, 
was  the  arrival  of  John  Knox  there  in  1571  ;  and  he  alludes  with  much  feeling 
to  the  powerful  effects  produced  on  his  mind  by  the  sermons  of  the  reformer. 

After  finishing  his  philosophical  education,  James  Melville  returned  to  his 
father's  house,  where  he  prosecuted  his  studies  during  the  summer  months. 
Having  finished  that  part  of  his  education  which  was  necessary  for  general  pur- 
poses, it  was  now  requisite  that  he  should  determine  what  profession  he  should 
adopt.  His  father  had  destined  him  for  that  of  a  lawyer  ;  but  although  James 
had  studied  some  parts  of  that  profession,  and  had  attended  the  consistorial 
court  .It  St  Andrews,  his  heart  **  was  nocht  sett  that  way."  Deference  to  his 
father's  wishes  had  hitherto  prevented  him  ofiering  any  decided  opposition  to 
his  intentions,  but  he  had  at  this  period  taken  means  to  show  the  bent  of  his 
mind.  Choosing  a  passage  in  St  John's  Gospel  for  his  text,  he  composed  a  ser- 
mon, which  he  put  in  a  book  used  by  his  father  in  preparing  his  weekly  ser- 
mons. The  MS.  was  accordingly  found,  and  pleased  his  father  exceedingly. 
But  James  was  now  luckily  saved  the  pain  of  either  opposing  the  wishes  of  a 
kind,  but  somewhat  austere  parent,  or  of  applying  himself  to  a  profession  for 
the  study  of  which  he  had  no  affection,  by  an  unlooked  for  accident — the  arrival 
of  his  uncle,  Andrew  Melville,  from  the  continent.  To  him  his  father  com- 
mitted James,  "to  bo  a  pledge  of  his  love,"  and  they  were  destined  to  be  for 
many  years  companions  in  labour  and  in  adversity. 

James  Melville  had  left  the  university  with  the  character  of  a  diligent  and 
accomplished  student.  He  had  flattered  himself  that  he  had  exhausted  those 
subjects  which  had  come  under  his  attention,  but  he  was  now  to  be  subjected  to 
a  severe  mortification.  When  his  uncle  examined  him,  he  found  that  he  was 
yet  but  a  mere  child  in  knowledge,  and  that  many  years  of  study  were  still 
necessary,  before  he  could  arrive  at  the  goal  which  he  had  supposed  himself  to 
have  already  reached.  James's  mortification  did  not,  however,  lead  liim  to  sit 
down  in  despair.  He  renewed  his  studies  with  the  determination  to  succeed, 
and  revised,  under  his  uncle's  directions,  both  his  classical  and  philosophical 
education.  "  That  quarter  of  yeir,"  says  he,  "  I  thought  I  gat  graitter  light 
in  letters  nor  all  my  tyme  befor And  all  this  as  it  wer  by  crack- 
ing and  playing,  sa  that  I  lernit  raikle  mair  by  heiring  of  him  [Andrew  Mel- 
ville] in  daylie  conversation,  bathe  that  quarter  and  therefter,  nor  euer  I  lernit 
of  anie  buik,  whowbeit  he  set  me  euer  to  the  best  authors." 

Endowed  with  such  talents  and  acquirements,  it  will  readily  be  believed  that 
Andrew  3Ielville  was  not  allowed  to  remain  long  idle.  He  was  soon  after  his 
return  invited  to  become  principal  of  the  university  of  Glasgow;  an  appointment 
which,  after  a  short  trial,  lie  agreed  to  accept  In  October,  1 574,  lie  left  Bal- 
dovy  to  undertake  the  duties  of  his  office,  taking  with  him  his  nephew,  who 
was,  in  the  following  year,  appointed  one  of  the  regents.  The  labours  of  An- 
drew 3Ielville  at  Glasgow,  have  been  already  noticed  in  Iiis  life,  and  we  shall, 
therefore,  only  extend  our  inquiries  here  to  the  course  adopted  by  the  subject 
of  this  memoir.  For  the  first  year,  James  Melville  taught  his  class  "  the  Greek 
grammar,  Isocratis  Farsenesis  ad  Demonicuin,  the  first  buk  of  Homers  Hinds, 


10  JAMES   MELVILLK 


Phocylides,  Hesiods  Efyst  k»i  'Hu-^ut,  the  Dialectic  of  Ram-is,  the  Rhetoric  of 
Taleus,  with  the  practise  in  Ciceros  Catiliiiars  and  Paradoxes."  "  The  second 
year  of  my  regenting,"  says  James  Melville,  **  I  teachit  tiie  elements  of  nrith> 
metic  and  geometrie,  out  [of]  PseUiis,  for  shortnes  ;  the  Offices  of  Cicero  ; 
Aristotles  Logic  in  Greek,  and  Ethic,  (and  was  the  first  regent  that  ever  did 
that  in  Scotland  ;)  also,  Platocs  Phaedon  and  Axiochus  ;  and  tliat  profession  of 
the  inathematiks,  logic,  and  morall  philosophic,  I  keipit  (as  everie  ane  of  the  re- 
gents keipit  their  awin,  the  schollars  ay  ascending  and  passing  throw)  sa  lang 
as  I  regented  ther,  even  till  I  was,  with  Mr  Andro,  transported  to  St  Andros." 
His  private  hours  were  devoted  to  the  study  of  the  Hebrew  language,  and  of 
theolog)'.  He  had  already,  upon  one  occasion,  given  proof  of  his  talents  for 
public  teaching,  and  he  had  now  an  opportunity  of  continuing  his  labours.  It 
was  a  custom  that  each  regent  should,  for  a  week  in  turn,  conduct  the  students 
to  a  church  near  the  college,  where  tiie  citizens  also  attended,  to  hear  prayei-s, 
and  one  or  two  chapters  of  the  Scriptures  read.  The  regents  had  liitherto  con- 
fined themselves  exclusively  to  these  limits,  probably  from  a  feeling  of  their  in- 
ability to  offer  any  commentary  ;  but  James  3Ielville,  taking  a  general  view  of 
the  passages  read,  gave  them  a  summary  of  the  do<;trines  enforced,  and  accom- 
panied it  with  an  application  to  the  situations  of  his  hearers.  ''  This  pleasit 
and  comfortit  guid  peiple  verie  mikle." 

The  routine  of  academical  instruction  affords  but  few  materials  for  biogra- 
phy. James  Melville  has  therefore  recorded  little  relative  to  himself  at  this 
period  of  his  life,  except  au  attack  made  upon  him  by  one  of  the  students, 
and  the  occurrences  consequent  upon  iL  But  although  this  affair  originated  willi 
him,  it  belongs  more  properly  to  tlie  life  of  Andrew  Melville,  who  as  principal 
of  the  college,  acted  the  most  prominent  part  in  all  the  subsequent  pro- 
ceedings. 

Andrew  Melville  had  now  accomplished  nearly  all  that  zeal  or  talent  could 

effect    for    the    university    of    Glasgow.       Its    revenues    were    improved, its 

character  as  a  seat  of  learning  raised  much  above  that  of  any  of  the  other  Scot- 
tish universities, — the  number  of  students  was  greatly  increased,  and  its  disci- 
pline maintained  with  a  degree  of  firmness,  of  the  necessity  of  whicli,  however 
sceptical  modem  readers  may  be,  the  attack  to  which  we  have  just  alluded  is  a 
most  decided  proof.  The  Assembly  which  met  at  Edinburgh  therefore  or- 
dained that  Melville  should  remove  to  the  new  college  of  St  Andrews,  "  to  be^in 
the  wark  of  theologie  ther  with  sic  as  ho  thought  meit  to  Uik  with  him  for  that 
effect,  conform  to  the  leat  reformation  of  that  universitie,  and  the  new  coHewe 
therof,  giffen  be  the  kirk  and  past  in  parliament"  Availing  himself  of  the 
privilege  thus  granted  of  nominating  his  assistants,  he  requested  his  nephew  to 
accompany  him.  James  had  for  some  time  resolved  upon  going  to  France,  but 
he  had  too  much  respect  for  his  uncle  to  refuse  his  request.  They  therefore  re- 
moved together  from  Glasgow  in  the  month  of  November,  1580,  leaving  Thomas 
Smeton,  "  a  man  of  singular  gifts  of  learning  and  godlines,"  and  Patrick  Mel- 
ville, a  young  genUeman  who  had  lately  finished  his  philosophical  studies,  as 
their  successors. 

In  December  they  entered  upon  the  duUes  of  their  respective  professions. 
After  his  preface,  or  inaugural  discourse,  James  Melville  commenced  teach- 
ing his  studenU  the  Hebrew  grammar.  There  were,  probably,  few  young  men 
in  the  country  who,  either  from  their  opportunities  of  acquiring  knowledge,  or 
their  desire  to  improve  under  tiiera,  were  better  qualified  to  discharge  this  of- 
fice well ;  but  his  natural  diffidence  caused  him  a  degree  of  anxiety,  which 
many  less  accomplished  masters  have  not  experienced.  "  The  grait  fear  and 
cear,»»  says  he  in  his  Diary,  "  quhilk  was  in  my  heart  of  my  inhabilitie  to  vn- 


JAMES  JIELVILLE.  11 

dertnk  and  benr  out  sa  grait  a  charge  as  to  profess  theologie  and  hoHe  tounges 
ainangis  ministers  and  inaisters,  namelie  [especially]  in  that  inaist  frequent  vui- 
nersitie  of  St  Andres,  amangs  diuers  alterit  and  displacit,  and  therfor  malcontents 
and  mislykers,  occupied  me  sa,  that  I  behovit  to  forget  all,  and  rin  to  my  God 
and  my  buik." 

During  the  earlier  period  of  their  residence  at  St  Andrews,  Andrew  Melville 
and  his  nephew  had  many  difficulties  to  encounter.  The  former  principal  and 
professors  annoyed  their  successors  by  "  pursuit  of  the  compts  of  the  college." 
The  regents  of  St  Leonards,  enraged  that  the  philosophy  of  their  almost  deified 
Aristotle  should  be  impugned,  raised  a  commotion  ;  and,  to  quote  the  appro- 
priate allusion  of  James  Melville,  cried  out  with  one  voice,  Great  is  Diana  of 
the  l'"phesians.  The  provost  and  bailiies,  Avith  the  prior  and  his  gentlemen  pen- 
sioners, were  suspected  of  corrupt  proceedings,  especially  in  the  provision  of  a 
minister  for  the  town,  and  the  opposition  and  exposures  of  Andrew  Melville 
thus  raised  up  for  him  and  his  fellow  labourers  another  host  of  enemies.  These 
were  all  open  and  avowed  opponents,  but  they  had  one  to  deal  with,  who,  as 
yet  wearing  tlie  mask  of  friendship,  was  secretly  plotting  their  own  and  the 
church's  ruin, — this  pei-son  was  archbishop  Adamson.  Add  to  all  this,  that  im- 
mediately after  their  settlement  at  St  Andrews,  the  carelessness  of  one  of  the 
students  had  nearly  been  tlie  cause  of  setting  the  establishment  on  fire,  and  we 
shall  be  abundantly  persuaded  that  it  required  no  small  energy  of  mind,  such 
as  Andrew  Melville  indeed  possessed,  not  only  to  bear  up  in  such  a  situatioii, 
but  successively  to  baffle  all  the  opposition  tliat  was  offered  to  him. 

But  amidst  many  discouragements  which  the  more  sensitive  mind  of  James 
Melville  must  have  keenly  felt,  he  had  also  many  cheering  employments.  He 
was  engaged  in  duties  which  we  have  seen  had  been,  from  an  early  period,  the 
objects  of  his  greatest  desire, — he  was  the  teacher  of  some  promising  young 
men,  who  afterwards  became  shining  lights  in  the  church,  and  he  had  the  grati- 
fication of  being  requested  to  occupy  the  pulpit  on  many  occasions,  when  there 
was  no  minister  in  tiie  town,  or  when  the  archbishop  happened  to  be  absent. 

At  the  Assembly  which  met  at  Edinburgh  in  December  1582,  James  Mel- 
ville was  earnestly  requested  to  become  minister  of  Stii-ling.  For  himself  he 
felt  much  inclined  to  accede  to  tlie  wishes  of  the  inhabitants,  and  the  more  so 
as  he  was  now  on  the  eve  of  his  marriage ;  but  his  uncle,  considering  the  af- 
fairs of  the  college  still  in  too  precarious  a  state  to  admit  of  his  leaving  it,  re- 
fused his  consent,  and  James  Melville  did  not  consider  it  respectful  to  urge  his 
own  wislies.  It  was  indeed  fortunate  that  he  was  not  permitted  at  this  period 
to  leave  the  college,  for  in  the  very  next  year  his  uncle  was  required  to  appear 
before  tlie  king  and  privy  council,  for  certain  treasonable  speeches  alleged  to 
have  been  uttered  in  his  sermons.  When  the  summons  (which  ordered  him  to 
appear  in  tliree  days)  was  served,  James  Melville  was  in  the  shire  of  Angus, 
and  could  not  upon  so  sudden  a  requisition  return  to  St  Andrews  in  time  to  ac- 
company hiui  to  Erlinbui'gh.  He  arrived,  however,  on  the  second  day  of  his 
trial,  if  indeed  the  proceedings  deserved  that  name.  Passing  over  the  minute 
circumstances  of  this  transaction,  our  narrati\e  only  requires  that  we  should  state 
that  Andrew  Melville  found  it  necessary  to  insure  his  safety  by  a  flight  into 
England. 

In  these  discouraging  circumstances,  James  Melville  was  obliged  to  return  to 
St  Andrews  to  undertake  the  management  of  the  affairs  of  the  college, — with  what 
feelings  it  may  readily  be  judged.  When  he  considered  the  magnitude  of  his 
charge,  and  the  situation  of  the  church,  he  was  completely  overpowered  ;  but  the 
duration  of  his  grief  was  short  in  proportion  to  its  violeiice,  and  he  soon  found 
the  truest  remedy  in  applying  his  whole  energies  to  the  performance  of  his  in- 


12  JAMES  MELVILLE. 


creased  duties.  He  taught  divinity  from  his  uncle's  chair,  besides  continuing 
Ills  laboui-s  in  tlie  department  which  properly  belonged  to  liiin.  Nor  was  this 
all :  the  Economus  of  the  college,  finding  himself  in  tiie  service  of  a  party  from 
uhora  little  advantage  or  promotion  could  be  expected,  gave  up  his  office,  and 
thus  did  the  provision  of  the  daily  wants  of  the  institution  fall  to  Melville's  lot. 
In  the  performance  of  these  duties,  so  arduous  and  so  varied,  he  was  greatly 
supported  by  the  masters  of  tlie  university  who  attended  his  lectures,  and  gave 
him  nuiny  encouragements.  But  his  greatest  comfort  was  derived  from  the 
society  of  the  afterwards  celebrated  Robert  Bruce  of  Kinnaird,  who,  abandoning 
his  attendance  on  the  courts  of  law,  had,  with  his  father's  permission,  begun  the 
study  of  theology  at  St  Andrews. 

Harmless,  however,  as  a  person  whose  attention  was  thus  so  completely  occu- 
pied by  his  own  duties  must  certainly  have  been,  the  government  did  not  long 
permit  James  Melville  to  retain  his  station.  The  acts  of  the  parliament  1  584, 
by  which  the  presbyterian  form  of  church  government  was  overthrown,  Avere 
proclaimed  at  the  market  cross  of  Edinburgh,  and  protested  against  by  Robert 
I'ont  and  others,  in  behalf  of  the  church.  We  have  already  alluded  to  the 
malpractices  of  archbishop  Adamson.  About  the  beginning  of  May,  1584, 
31elville  had  gone  to  one  of  the  northern  counties  to  collect  the  revenues  of  the 
college.  It  had,  perhaps,  been  conjectured  by  the  episcopal  party,  to  their  no 
small  gratification,  that,  finding  himself  unable  to  comply  conscientiously  Avith 
the  late  enactments,  he  bad  retired,  with  some  of  the  other  ministers,  into  Eng- 
land. If  so,  they  must  liave  been  grievously  disappointed  by  his  return.  It  was 
certainly  not  long  till  the  archbishop  abundantly  manifested  his  real  disposi- 
tions; for,  on  the  Sunday  immediately  following,  Melville  was  informed  that  a 
warrant  for  his  apprehension  was  already  in  that  prelate's  possession,  and  that 
he  was  to  proceed  immediately  to  its  execution.  At  the  earnest  desire  of  his 
friends,  he  was  prevailed  on  to  remove  to  Dundee,  where  he  had  no  sooner 
arrived,  than  he  learned  that  a  search  had  been  made  for  him  in  every  part  of 
the  college,  and  that  an  indictment  had  been  prepared  against  him,  for  hoIdin«»- 
communication  witli  his  uncle,  the  king's  rebel.  But  his  removal  to  Dundee 
could  serve  only  a  very  temporary  purpose,  for  it  must  very  soon  have  become 
known,  and  would  then  have  ceased  to  be  any  security  for  his  liberty.  After 
the  most  anxious  consideration,  he  resolved  to  accept  an  offer  made  him  by  one 
of  his  cousins,  to  take  him  by  sea  to  Berwick.  This  gentleman,  hiring  a  small 
boat  under  the  pretext  of  conveying  some  of  his  wines  to  one  of  the  coast  towns 
in  the  neighbourhood,  took  in  Melville  in  the  disguise  of  a  shipwrecked  sea- 
man ;  and,  after  a  voyage,  not  less  dangerous  from  the  risk  of  detection,  than 
from  a  violent  storm  which  overtook  them,  landed  him  safely  at  Berwick,  where 
he  met  his  uncle  and  the  other  ministers  who  had  been  obliged  to  flee. 

The  suddenness  with  which  James  Blelville  had  been  obliged  to  leave  St  An- 
drews, prevented  him  taking  his  wife  along  with  him  ;  to  have  done  so,  would, 
in  fact,  have  endangered  the  whole  party.  But,  after  arriving  at  Berwick,  he  im- 
mediately sent  back  Iiis  cousin,  Alexander  Scrymgeour,  with  a  letter,  requesting 
this  lady  (a  daughter  of  John  Dury,  minister  of  Edinburgh)  to  join  him.  This 
she  had  very  soon  an  opportunity  of  doing,  by  placing  herself  under  the  care 
of  a  servant  of  the  English  ambassador,  and  she  accordingly  remained  with  her 
husband  during  the  short  period  of  his  exile.  At  Berwick  they  resided  for 
about  a  month  ;  and  there,  as  in  every  other  place,  James  31elville's  amiable 
and  affectionate  dispositions  procured  him  many  friends.  Among  these  was  the 
lady  of  Sir  Harry  Wjdrington,  governor  of  the  town,  under  lord  Hunsdon.  In 
the  mean  time,  he  was  invited  by  the  earls  of  Angus  and  Mar,  then  at  Newcastle, 
to  become  their  pastor.      Being  totally  ignorant  of  the   characters  of  these 


JAMES  MELVILLE.  13 


noblemen,  and  of  the  cause  of  their  exile,  he  felt  unwilling  to  connect  himself 
with  their  party,  and  therefore  replied  to  tlieir  invitation,  that  he  could  not 
comply  with  it,  as  he  had  never  qualified  himself  for  performing  the  ministerial 
functions ;  but  that,  as  he  had  determined  upon  removing  to  the  south,  he 
thould  visit  them  on  his  way  thither.  When  he  arrived  at  Newcastle,  he  deter- 
mined upon  iannediately  securing  a  passage  by  sea  to  London  ;  but  John  David- 
son, one  of  his  former  masters  at  St  Andrews,  and  now  minister  of  Prestonpans, 
informed  him  tliat  it  was  not  only  his  own  earnest  desire,  but  that  of  all  their 
brethren,  tliat  he  should  remain  at  Newcastle  with  the  exiled  lords,  whose  cha- 
racters and  cause  he  vindicated.      To  their  wishes,  Melville  therefore  acceded. 

Soon  after  his  settlement  at  Newcastle,  Davidson,  who  had  only  waited  his 
arrival,  departed,  and  left  him  to  discharge  the  duties  alone.  Thinking  it 
proper  that,  before  entering  on  his  labours,  the  order  of  their  religious  obser- 
vances and  tlieir  discipline  should  be  determined,  he  drew  up  "  the  order  and 
raaner  of  exercise  of  the  word  for  instruction,  and  discipline  for  correction  of 
raaners,  used  in  the  companie  of  those  godlie  and  noble  men  of  Scotland  in 
tyme  of  thair  aboad  in  Englande,  for  the  guid  cause  of  God's  kirk,  thair  king 
and  countrey,"  and  prefixed  to  it  an  exhortative  letter  to  the  noblemen  and  their 
followers.  This  prefatory  epistle  commences  by  an  acknowledgment  that  their 
present  calamities  were  the  just  chastisements  of  the  Almighty,  for  their  luke- 
warmness  in  the  work  of  reformation, — for  permitting  the  character  of  their 
sovereign  to  be  formed  by  the  society  of  worthless  and  interested  courtiers, — for 
their  pursuit  of  their  own  aggrandizement,  rather  than  the  good  of  their  country, 
— and  for  the  violation  of  justice,  and  connivance  at  many  odious  and  unnatural 
crimes.  But  while  they  had  thus  rendered  themselves  the  subjects  of  the  Divina 
vengeance,  how  great  had  been  the  crimes  of  the  court!  It  had  followed  the 
examples  of  Ahaz  and  Uzzah,  in  removing  the  altar  of  the  Lord, — it  had  de- 
prived the  masters  of  their  livings,  and  desolated  the  schools  and  universities, — 
it  had  said  to  the  preachers,  "  Prophecy  no  longer  to  us  in  the  name  of  the 
Lord,  but  speak  unto  us  pleasant  things  according  to  our  liking," — it  had  taken 
from  others  the  key  of  knowledge, — it  entered  not  in,  and  those  tliat  would  en- 
ter in,  it  surtered  not :  finally,  it  had  threatened  the  ministers,  God's  special 
messengers,  with  imprisonment  and  death,  and,  following  out  its  wicked  designs, 
had  compelled  them  to  flee  to  a  foreign  land.  "  Can  the  Lord  suffer  these 
things  long,"  Melville  continues  with  great  energy,  "  and  be  just  in  executing 
of  his  judgments,  and  pouring  out  of  his  plagues  upon  his  cursed  enemies  ? 
Can  the  Lord  suffer  his  sanctuary  to  be  defiled,  and  his  own  to  smart,  and  be 
the  Father  of  mercies,  God  of  consolation,  and  most  faithful  keeper  of  his  pro- 
mises ?  Can  the  Lord  suffer  his  glory  to  be  given  to  another  ?  Can  he  who 
hath  promised  to  make  the  enemies  of  Christ  Jesus  his  footstool,  suffer  them  to 
tread  on  his  head?  Nay,  nay,  right  honourable  and  dear  brethren,  he  has 
anointed  him  King  on  his  holy  mountain  ;  he  has  given  him  all  nations  for  an 
inheritance  ;  he  has  put  into  Iiis  hand  a  sceptre  of  iron,  to  bruise  in  powder  these 
earthen  vessels.  When  his  wrath  shall  once  begin  to  kindle  but  a  little,  he 
shall  make  it  notoriously  known  to  all  the  world,  that  they  only  are  happy  who 
in  humility  kiss  the  Lord  Jesus,  and  trust  in  him."  He  then  concludes  by  a 
solemn  admonition,  that  witli  true  repentance, — with  unfeigned  humiliation, — 
with  diligent  perusal  of  God's  word, — and  with  fervent  prayer,  meditation,  and 
zeal,  they  should  prosecute  the  work  of  God,  under  the  assurance  that  their  la- 
bours should  not  be  in  vain.  He  warns  them  of  the  diligence  of  the  enemies 
of  God's  church, — exhorts  them  to  equal  diligence  in  a  good  rause, — and  re- 
minds them  that  tlie  ministers  of  Christ  shall  be  witnesses  against  them,  if  tliey 
should  be  found  slumbering  at  their  posts.      At  the  request  of  Archibald,  earl  of 


14  JAMES   MELVILLE. 


Angus,  Melville  also  drew  up  a  **  list  of  certain  great  abuses ;"  but  as  it  is  in 
many  points  a  recapitulation  of  the  letter  just  quoted  from,  no  further  allusion 
to  it  is  iiere  necessary. 

About  a  month  after  the  commencement  of  his  ministrations,  Melville  was 
joined  by  31r  Patricia  Galloway,  who  divided  the  labours  with  him.  His  family 
was  now  on  the  increase,  and  it  was  considered  necessary  to  remove  to  Berwick, 
where  he  remained  as  minister  of  that  congregation  till  the  birth  of  his  first 
child, — a  son,  whom  he  named  Ephraira,  in  allusion  to  his  fruitfulness  in  a 
strange  land.  Notwithstanding  the  stratagems  of  captain  James  Stewart,  by 
which  lord  Hunsdon  was  induced  to  forbid  them  to  assemble  in  the  church,  tlie 
congregation  obtained  leave,  through  the  kind  ofHces  of  lady  Widrington,  to 
meet  in  a  private  house ;  and  Melville  mentions  that  he  was  never  more  dili- 
gently or  more  profiLibly  employed,  than  during  that  winter.  But  the  pleasure 
which  he  derived  from  the  success  of  his  ministrations,  was  more  than  counter- 
balanced by  the  conduct  of  some  of  his  brethren  at  home. 

It  was  about  this  period  tliat  many  of  the  Scottish  clergy,  led  on  by  the  ex- 
ample of  John  Craig,  one  of  the  ministers  of  Edinburgh,  signed  a  deed,  binding 
themselves  to  obey  the  late  acts  of  parliament,  as  far  as  "  according,  to  the  word 
of  God."  3Ielville  saw  the  confusions  which  the  introduction  of  such  an  equi- 
vocal clause  must  produce.  He  accordingly  addressed  a  most  aflectionate  but 
faithful  letter,  to  the  subscribing  ministers,  in  which  he  exhibited,  at  great 
length,  the  sinfulness  of  their  compliance,  and  the  handle  which  such  n  compro- 
mise must  give  to  the  enemies  of  religion.  This  letter,  as  it  encouraged  the 
firm,  and  confirmed  the  wavering,  ^vas  proportionally  the  object  of  hatred  to  the 
court  Two  of  the  students  at  St  Andrews,  being  detected  copying  it  for  dis- 
tribution, were  compelled  to  flee ;  and  no  means  seem  to  have  been  omitted  to 
ciieck  its  circulation,  or  to  weaken  the  force  of  its  statements. 

About  the  middle  of  February,  1 5S4-5,  the  noblemen,  finding  their  present 
residence  too  near  the  borders,  determined  upon  removing  farther  to  the  south. 
James  Melville,  therefore,  prepared  to  follow.  In  the  beginning  of  March, 
he  and  a  few  friends  embarked  for  London,  where  they  arrived,  after  a  voyage 
rendered  tedious  by  contrary  winds;  and,  being  joined  by  their  companions  in 
exile,  were  not  a  little  comforted.  Soon  after  his  arrival,  Melville  resumed  his 
ministerial  labours. 

Many  circumstances,  which  it  is. not  necessary  to  detail  here,  conspired  to 
render  their  exile  much  shorter  than  their  fondest  wishes  could  have  anticipated. 
As  soon  as  the  noblemen  of  their  party  had  accommodated  their  disputes  with 
the  king,  the  brethren  received  a  letter  (dated  at  Stirling,  Gth  November,  1585) 
from  their  fellow  ministen,  urging  them  to  return  with  all  possible  expedition. 
James  Melville,  and  Robert  Dury,  one  of  his  most  intimate  friends,  therefore, 
left  London,  and,  after  encountering  many  dangers  during  the  darkness  of  tlie 
nights,  arrived  at  Linlithgow.  There  he  found  his  brethren  under  great  depres- 
sion of  mind:  tliey  had  vainly  expected  from  the  parliament,  then  sitting,  the 
abrogation  of  the  obnoxious  acts  of  1 584 ;  and  they  had  a  further  cause  ol 
grief  in  the  conduct  of  Craig,  the  leader  of  the  subscribing  ministers.  After 
much  expectation,  and  many  fruitless  attempts  to  persuade  the  king  of  the  nn- 
propriety  of  the  acts,  they  were  obliged  to  dismiss,  having  previously  presented 
a  supplication,  earnestly  craving  that  no  ultimate  decision  respecting  the  church 
miglit  be  adopted,  without  the  admission  of  free  discussion. 

During  the  following  winter,  James  Melville  was  occupied  partly  in  the  ar- 
rangement of  his  family  aflairs,  but  principally  in  re-establishing  order  in  the 
university.  The  plague,  which  liad  for  some  time  raged  with  great  violence, 
nas  now  abated,  and  the  people,  regaining  their  former  confidence,  had  begun 


JAMES   MELVILLE.  15 


to  return  to  their  ordinary  affairs.  Taking  advantage  of  this  change,  the  two 
Melvilles  resolved  on  resuming  their  labours,  and  accordingly  entered  on  their 
respective  duties  about  the  middle  of  March.  In  the  beginning  of  April  the 
Synod  of  Fife  convened,  and  it  was  the  duty  of  James  Melville,  as  moderator 
at  tlie  last  meeting,  to  open  their  proceedings  with  a  sermon.  He  chose  for  his 
text  that  part  of  the  twelfth  chapter  of  St  Paul's  Epistle  to  the  Romans,  in 
which  the  Christian  church  is  compared  to  the  human  body, — composed,  like  it, 
of  many  members,  the  harmonious  operation  of  which  is  essential  to  the  health 
of  the  whole.  After  showing  by  reference  to  Scripture  what  was  the  constitu- 
tion of  the  true  church, — refuting  the  doctrine  of  "  the  human  and  devilish 
bishopric," — adverting  to  the  purity  of  the  reformed  constitution  of  their 
church,  and  proving  that  the  inordinate  ambition  of  a  few  had  been  in  all 
ages  the  destruction  of  that  purity — he  turned  towards  the  archbishop, 
who  was  sitting  with  great  pomp  in  the  assembly,  charged  him  with  the 
overthrow  of  the  goodly  fabric,  and  exhorted  the  brethren  to  cut  ofT  so  unwor- 
thy a  member  from  among  them.  Notwithstanding  the  remonstrances  and  pro- 
tests of  the  prelate,  the  Synod  immediately  took  up  the  case, — went  on,  with 
an  inattention  to  all  the  forms  of  decency  and  some  of  those  of  justice  which 
their  warmest  advocates  do  not  pretend  to  vindicate,  anil  ordered  him  to  be  ex- 
communicated by  Andrew  Hunter,  minister  of  Carnbee.  Thus,  by  the  fervour 
of  their  zeal,  and  perhaps  goaded  on  by  personal  wrongs,  did  an  Assembly, 
composed,  in  the  main,  of  worthy  men,  subject  themselves  to  censure  in  the  case 
of  a  man  of  a  character  disgraceful  to  his  profession  ;  and  whom,  had  they 
been  content  to  act  with  more  moderation,  nothing  but  the  strong  hand  of 
civil  power  could  have  screened  from  their  highest  censures,  while  even  it 
could  not  have  defended  him  from  deserved  infamy. 

But  the  informality  of  the  Synod's  proceedings  gave  their  enemies  an  unfor- 
tunate hold  over  them,  and  was  the  means  of  baffling  their  own  ends.  By  the 
influence  of  the  king,  the  General  Assembly,  which  met  soon  afterwards,  an- 
nulled their  sentence,  and  the  3Ielvilles,  being  summoned  before  the  king,  were 
commanded  to  confine  themselves, — Andrew  to  his  native  place,  and  James  to 
his  college.  Thus  did  matters  continue  during  that  summer.  James  Melville 
lectured  to  a  numerous  audience  on  the  sacred  history,  illustrating  it  by 
reference  to  geography  and  chronology.  On  each  alternate  day  he  read  lectures 
on  St  Paul's  Epistle  to  Timothy,  in  the  course  of  which  he  took  many  oppor- 
tunities of  attacking  the  hated  order  of  bishops. 

Melville  was  now  to  obtain  what  had  all  along  been  the  object  of  his  highest 
wishes — a  settlement  as  minister  of  a  parish.  In  1583,  the  charge  of  the  con- 
junct parishes  of  Abercrombie,  Pittenweem,  Anstruther,  and  Kilrenny,  became 
vacant  by  the  decease  of  the  incumbent,  and  thus  they  continued  for  several 
years.  When  the  Presbytery  of  St  Andrews  resumed  their  meetings  on  the  re- 
turn of  the  banished  ministers,  commissioners  were  appointed  to  visit  these 
parishes,  and  to  bring  them,  if  possible,  to  the  unanimous  choice  of  a 
minister.  James  Melville,  who  had  been  nominated  one  of  these  commissioners, 
soon  gained  the  affections  of  the  people  insomuch  that  they  unanimously  requested 
the  Presbytery  to  send  him  among  them.  That  court  no  less  warmly  urged 
his  acceptance,  and  he  accordingly  removed  to  his  charge  in  July,  1586. 

It  may  be  readily  conceived,  that  to  perform  the  duties  of  four  parishes  was  a 
task  far  beyond  the. moral  and  physical  capabilities  of  any  single  individual, 
more  especially  after  they  had  so  long  wanted  the  benefit  of  a  regular  ministry. 
Their  conjunction  was  the  result  of  the  mercenary  plans  of  Morton  and 
his  friends,  but  no  man  wis  less  actuated  by  such  motives  than  Melville. 
No  sooner  did  he  become  acquainted  with  the  state  of  these  parishes  than  he 


IG  JAMES  M£LVILLE. 


determined  on  their  disjunction,  at  whatever  pecuniary  loss.  When  this  was  ef- 
fected, he  willingly  resigned  the  proportions  of  stipend  in  favour  of  the  minis- 
ters provided  for  three  of  the  parishes,  while  he  himself  undertook  the  charge 
of  the  fourth  (Kilrenny), — he  obtained  an  augmentation  of  stipend,  built  a 
inanse,  purchased  the  right  to  the  vicarage  and  teind  fish  for  the  support 
of  himself  and  his  successors,  paid  the  salary  of  a  schooliunstcr,  and 
maintained  an  assistant  to  perform  the  duties  of  the  parish,  as  he  Mas  fre- 
quently engaged  in  the  public  affairs  of  the  church.  Such  ii:stanccs  of  disin- 
terested zeal  are  indeed  rare ;  but  even  this  was  not  all.  Many  years 
afterwards  he  printed  for  the  use  of  his  people  a  catechism  which  cost 
five  hundred  merks,  of  which,  in  writing  his  Diary,  he  mentions  that  he  could 
never  regain  more  than  one  fifth  part.  While  he  was  thus  anxiously  promoting 
tlie  moral  and  religious  improvement  of  the  parishioners,  he  was  also  dis- 
tinguished by  the  exemplification  of  his  principles  in  the  ordinary  af^hii-s  of 
life.  An  instance  of  his  generosity  occurred  soon  after  his  settlement  in  hif: 
new  charge.  In  the  beginning  of  1588,  rumours  were  spread  through  the 
country  of  the  projected  invasion  by  the  Spaniards.  Some  time  before  the  de- 
struction of  tlie  Armada  was  known,  Melville  was  waited  on,  early  in  the 
morning,  by  one  of  the  baillies  of  the  town,  who  stated  that  a  ship  filled  with 
Spaniards  had  entered  their  harbour  in  distress,  and  requested  his  advice  as  to 
the  line  of  conduct  to  be  observed.  When  the  day  was  further  advanced,  the 
ofKcers  (the  principal  of  whom  is  styled  general  of  twenty  hulks)  ^vere  per- 
mitted to  land,  and  appear  before  the  minister  and  principal  men  of  the  town. 
They  stated  that  their  division  of  the  squadron  had  been  wrecked  on  the  Fair 
Isle,  where  they  had  been  detained  many  weeks  under  all  the  miseries  of 
fatigue  and  hunger ;  that  they  had  at  length  procured  the  ship  which  lay  in  the 
harbour ;  and  now  came  before  them  to  crave  their  forbearance  towards  them. 
3Ielville  replied  that,  although  they  were  the  supporters  of  Christ's  greatest 
enemy  the  pope,  and  althougli  their  expedition  had  been  undertaken  with  the 
design  of  desolating  the  protestant  kingdoms  of  England  and  Scotland,  they 
should  know  by  their  conduct  that  the  people  of  Scotland  were  professors  of  a 
purer  religion.  Without  entering  into  all  the  minute  facts  of  the  case,  it  may 
be  enough  to  say,  that  the  officers  and  men  were  all  at  length  received  on 
shore,  and  treated  with  the  greatest  humanity.  "  Bot  we  thanked  (Jod  with 
our  heartes  that  we  had  sein  tham  amangs  ws  in  that  forme,"  is  the  quaint  con- 
clusion of  James  Melville,  alluding  to  the  difTerence  between  the  objects  of  the 
expedition  and  the  success  which  had  attended  it. 

But,  however  disinterested  James  Melville's  conduct  might  be,  it  was  not  des- 
tined to  escape  the  most  unjust  suspicions.  When  subscriptions  were  raised  to 
assist  the  French  protestants  and  the  inhabitants  of  Geneva,  (cir.  1588),  he  had 
been  appointed  collector  for  Fife,  and  this  appointment  was  now  seized  upon  by 
his  enemies  at  court,  who  surmised  that  he  had  given  the  money  thus  raised  to 
the  earl  of  Bothwell  to  enable  him  to  raise  forces.  The  supposition  is  so  ab- 
surd that  it  seems  incredible  that  any  one,  arguing  merely  on  probabilities, 
should  believe  that  money  intended  for  Geneva, — the  very  stronghold  of  his  be- 
loved presbytery, — should  be  given  to  an  outlaw  and  a  catholic.  Luckily  Mel- 
ville was  not  left  to  prove  his  innocence  even  by  the  doctrine  of  probabilities. 
He  had  in  his  hands  a  discharge  for  the  money  granted  by  those  to  whom  he 
had  paid  it  over,  and  it  was,  besides,  matter  of  notoriety  that  he  had  been  the 
most  active  agent  in  the  suppression  of  Bothwell's  rebellion.  Still,  however,  his 
enemies  hinted  darkly  where  they  durst  not  make  a  manly  charge,  and  it  was 
not  till  1594,  when  sent  as  a  commissioner  to  the  king  by  the  Assembly  on 
another  mission,  that  he  had  an  opportunity  of  vindicating  himself.      He  then 


JAMES   MELVILLE.  17 


demanded  that  any  one  who  could  make  a  charge  against  him  should  stand 
forward  and  give  him  an  opportunity  of  vindicating  himself  before  his  sovereign. 
No  one  appeared.  Melville  was  admitted  to  a  long  interview  in  the  king'g 
cabinet ;  and  "  thus,"  says  he,  "  I  that  came  to  Stirling  the  traitor,  returned 
to  Edinburgh  a  great  courtier,  yea  a  cabinet  councillor." 

At  the  opening  of  the  General  Assembly  in  1590,  James  Melville  preached. 
After  the  usual  exordium,  he  insisted  on  the  necessity  of  maintaining  the  strict- 
est discipline, — he  recalled  to  the  memory  of  his  audience  the  history  of  their 
country  since  the  Reformation,  the  original  purity  of  the  church,  and  admonished 
Ihem  of  its  begun  decline, — the  brethren  were  warned  of  the  practices  of  "  the 
belly-god  bishops  of  England  ;"  and  the  people  were  exhorted  to  a  more  zealous 
support  of  the  ecclesiastical  establishment,  and  to  a  more  liberal  communication 
of  temporal  things  to  their  ministers ; — lastly,  he  recommended  a  supplication 
to  the  king,  for  a  free  and  full  assembly,  to  be  held  in  the  royal  presence,  for 
the  suppression  of  papists  and  sacrilegious  persons.  The  activity  of  Melville, 
and  indeed  of  the  ministers  generally,  against  the  catholics,  must  be  considered 
as  one  of  the  least  defensible  parts  of  their  conduct.  We  are  aware  that  those 
who  believe  religion  to  be  supported  by  works  of  man's  device,  will  find  strong 
palliations  for  their  actions  in  their  peculiar  circumstances ;  and  we  do  not  mean 
to  deny,  that  when  the  popish  lords  trafficked  with  foreign  powers  for  the  sub- 
version of  the  civil  and  religious  institutions  of  the  country,  the  government 
did  right  in  bringing  them  to  account.  They  then  became  clearly  guilty  of 
a  civil  offence,  and  were  justly  amenable  for  it  to  the  secular  courts.  But 
when  the  catholics  were  hunted  down  for  the  mere  profession  of  their  reli- 
gion,— when  their  attachment  to  their  opinions  was  considered  the  mere  ef- 
fect of  obstinacy,  and  thus  wortliy  to  be  visited  with  the  highest  pains, — the 
protestants  reduced  themselves  to  the  same  inconsistency  with  which  they  so 
justly  charged  their  adversaries.  If  it  be  urged  in  defence,  that  their  religion 
was  in  danger,  we  reply,  that  the  conduct  of  the  catholics,  previous  tp  the 
Ileformation,  was  equally  defensible  on  the  very  same  grounds.  In  both  cases 
was  the  church  of  the  parties  in  imminent  hazard  ;  and,  if  we  defend  the  at- 
tempt of  one  party  to  support  theirs  by  the  civil  power,  with  what  justice  can 
we  condemn  the  other  ?  A  remarkable  passage  occurs  in  the  account  which 
friar  Ogilvie  (a  Jesuit,  who  Avas  executed  at  Glasgow  in  1615)  has  left  of  his 
trial.  His  examinators  accused  the  kings  of  France  and  Spain  of  extermi- 
nating the  protestants.  Ogilvie  immediately  replied :  Neither  has  Francis  ban- 
ished, nor  Philip  burned  protestants  on  account  of  religion,  but  on  account  of 
heresy,  which  is  not  religion  but  rebellion,^  Here,  then,  is  the  rock  upon 
which  both  parties  split, — that  of  considering  it  a  crime  to  hold  certain  religious 
opinions.  Both  parties  were  in  turn  equally  zealous  in  propagating  their  ideas, — 
both  were  justifiable  in  doing  so, — and  both  equally  unjustifiable  in  their  absurd 
attempts  to  control  the  workings  of  the  human  mind.  Truth,  which  all  parties 
seem  convinced  is  on  their  side,  must  and  shall  prevail,  and  the  intolerant  zeal 
of  man  can  only  prove  its  own  folly  and  its  wickedness.  We  return  to  the  nar- 
rative. 

When  the  king,  in  October,  1594,  determined  on  opposing  the  popish  lords 
in  person,  he  Avas  accompanied  at  his  own  request  by  the  two  Melvilles  and  two 
other  ministers.  Following  the  Highland  system  of  warfare,  these  noblemen 
retired  into  their  fastnesses ;  and  the  royal  forces,  after  doing  little  more 
than  displaying  themselves,  were  ready  to  disperse,  for  want  of  pay.     In  this 

"  Relatio  Incarcerationis  et  Martyrii  P.  Joannis  Ogilbei,  &c.,  Duaci,  1615,  p.  24.  This  is, 
of  course,  the  Roman  Catholic  account.  Ogilvie's  trial,  and  a  reprint  of  tlie  Protestant  ac- 
count of  it  set  forth  at  the  time,  will  be  found  in  Pilciiirn's  Criminal  Trials. 

IV.  c 


18  JAMES   MELVILLE. 


emergency,  Jamee  Melville  was  despatched  to  Edinburgh  and  the  other  princi- 
pal towns,  with  letters  from  the  king  and  the  ministers,  urging  a  liberal  con. 
tribution  for  their  assistance.  His  services  on  this  occasion,  and  the  spirit  in- 
fused  by  Andrew  Melville  into  the  royal  councils,  materially  contributed  to  the 
success  of  the  expedition. 

We  have  mentioned,  that  at  the  intenriew  at  Stirling,  James  Melville  had 
regained  the  favour  of  the  king ;  but  it  is  probable  that  that  and  subsequent 
exhibitions  of  the  royal  confidence  were  merely  intended  to  gain  him,  in  an- 
ticipation of  the  future  designs  of  the  court  relative  to  the  church.  In  the  af- 
fair of  David  Black,  Melville  had  used  his  influence  with  the  earl  of  Mar,  to 
procure  a  favourable  result ;  and,  although  the  king  did  not  express  disappro- 
bation of  his  conduct,  but,  on  the  contrary,  commanded  him  to  declare  from  the 
pulpit  at  St  Andrews,  the  amicable  termination  of  their  quarrel,  he  observed 
that  from  that  period  his  favour  uniformly  declined.  Finding,  after  two  years' 
trial,  that  his  conduct  towards  James  Melville  had  not  induced  him  to  compro- 
mise his  principles,  the  king  probably  considered  all  further  attempts  to  gain 
him  quite  unnecessary. 

In  May,  159G,  the  Covenant  was  renewed  by  the  synod  of  Fife,  and  in  the 
following  July  by  the  presbytery  of  St  Andrews ;  on  both  which  occasions,  Mel- 
ville was  appointed  "  the  common  mouth."  After  the  last  meeting,  the  barons 
and  gentlemen  resolved  that  he  and  the  laird  of  Keiras  [Rires?]  should  be  sent 
to  the  king,  to  inform  him  of  the  report  of  another  Spanish  invasion,  and  of  the 
return  of  the  popish  lords ;  but  Melville's  interest  at  court  was  now  on  the  de- 
cline, and  his  mission  met  with  little  encouragement  Returning  home,  he  ap- 
plied himself  assiduously  to  the  duties  of  his  parish.  He  drew  up  a  "  Sum  of  the 
Doctrine  of  the  Covenant  renewed  in  the  Kirk  of  Scotland,"  in  the  form  of 
question  and  answer.  Upon  this  the  people  wei-e  catechised  during  the  month 
of  August :  and  on  the  first  Sunday  of  September,  the  Covenant  was  renewed, 
and  the  sacrament  administered  in  the  parish  of  Kilrenny. 

During  the  next  ten  years,  the  life  of  Melville  was  spent  in  a  course  of  op- 
position, as  decided  as  it  was  fruitless,  to  the  designs  of  the  court  for  the  re- 
establishment  of  episcopacy.  While  some  of  his  most  intimate  friends  yielded, 
he  remained  firm.  There  was  but  one  point  which  he  could  be  induced  to  give 
up.  He  was  urged  by  the  king  (1597)  to  preach  at  the  admission  of  Gladstancs, 
the  future  archbishop,  to  the  church  of  St  Andrews,  from  which  David  Black  had 
been  ejected ;  and  he  did  so,  in  the  hope  of  benefiting  some  of  his  distressed 
friends  by  the  concession  ;  but  it  afterwards  cost  him  much  uncomfortable  re- 
flection. In  the  month  of  October  he  visited,  along  with  others  appointed  for 
that  purpose,  the  churches  in  the  counties  of  Aberdeen,  Moray,  and  Ross.  He 
had  entered  upon  this  duty  under  considerable  mental  depression  and  bodily 
suffering ;  and  it  may  be  supposed  to  have  been  but  little  diminished,  when  he 
detected,  during  the  journey,  the  plans  of  the  court  for  the  re-establishment  of 
the  episcopal  order.  Finding  that  his  labours  on  behalf  of  the  church  had  been 
attended  with  so  little  success,  he  would  willingly  have  retired  from  public  life, 
and  shut  out  all  reflection  on  so  unsatisfactory  a  retrospect  in  the  performance 
of  his  numerous  parochial  duties :  but  a  sense  of  what  he  owed  to  the  church 
and  to  his  friends  in  adversity  induced  him  to  continue  his  discouraging  labour  ; 
and,  accordingly,  till  he  was  ensnared  into  England,  whence  he  was  not  al- 
lowed to  return,  he  made  the  most  unwearied  exertions  in  behalf  of  presby- 
tery.  Except  the  gratification  the  mind  receives  from  marking  the  continued 
struggles  of  a  good  man  against  adversity,  the  reader  could  feel  little  interest 
in  a  minute  detail  of  circumstances,  which,  with  a  few  changes  of  place  and 
date,  were  often  repeated.     Vexation  of  mind  and  fatigue  of  body   at  length 


JAMES  MELVILLE.  19 


brought  on  an  illness  in  April,  1601,  which  lasted  about  a  year;  but  this  did 
not  damp  his  zeal.  When  he  could  not  appear  among  his  brethren,  and  subse- 
quent illness  not  unfrequently  compelled  him  to  be  absent,  he  encouraged  or 
warned  them  by  his  letters.  Every  attempt  was  made  to  overcome  or  to  gain 
him.  He  was  offered  emoluments  and  honours,  and  when  these  could  not  shake 
his  resolution,  he  was  threatened  with  prosecution ;  but  the  latter  affected  him  as 
little.  When  he  was  told  that  the  king  hated  him  more  than  any  man  in  Scot- 
land, "  because  he  crossed  all  his  turns,  and  was  a  ringleader,"  he  replied,  in 
the  words  of  the  poet, 

Nee  speratis  aliquid,  nee  extimescens, 
Exarmaveris  impotentis  iram. 

His  conduct  on  the  first  anniversary  of  the  Gowrie  conspiracy,  did  not  tend 
to  mitigate  his  majesty's  wrath.  An  act  of  parliament  had  been  passed,  ordain- 
ing it  to  be  observed  as  a  day  of  thanksgiving;  but  as  this  act  had  never  re- 
ceived the  sanction  of  the  church,  Melville  and  others  refused  to  comply  with 
it.  They  were,  therefore,  summoned  by  proclamation  to  appear  before  the 
council,  and  the  king  vowed  that  the  ofl'ence  should  be  considered  capital. 
They  accordingly  appeared  :  but  his  majesty,  finding  their  determination  to 
vindicate  their  conduct,  moderated  his  wrath,  and  dismissed  them,  after  a  few 
words  of  admonition.  The  conduct  of  Melville,  in  relation  to  the  ministers 
imprisoned  for  holding  the  assembly  at  Aberdeen,  was  not  less  decided.  A 
short  time  before  their  trial,  the  earl  of  Dunbar  requested  a  conference,  in  which 
he  regretted  to  him  the  state  cf  affairs,  and  promised  that,  if  the  warded  ministers 
would  appease  the  king  by  a  few  concessions,  the  ambitious  courses  of  the 
bishops  should  be  checked,  and  the  king  and  church  reconciled.  With  these 
proposals,  Melville  proceeded  to  Blackness,  the  place  of  their  confinement ;  but 
negotiation  was  too  late,  for  the  very  next  morning  they  were  awakened  by  a 
summons  to  stand  their  trial  at  Linlithgow.  When  they  were  found  guilty  of 
treason,  it  was  considered  a  good  opportunity  to  try  the  resolution  of  their 
brethren.  To  prevent  all  communication  with  each  other,  the  synods  were  sum- 
moned to  meet  on  one  day,  when  five  articles,  relative  to  the  powers  of  the 
General  Assembly  and  the  bishops,  were  proposed  by  the  king's  commissioners 
for  their  assent.  On  this  occasion,  Melville  was  confined  by  illness;  but  he 
wrote  an  animated  letter  to  the  synod  of  Fife,  and  had  the  satisfaction  of  hearing 
that  they  and  many  others  refused  to  comply.  This  letter  was  sent  by  lord 
Scone,  the  commissioner,  to  the  king;  but  the  threat  to  make  it  the  subject  of 
a  prosecution  does  not  appear  to  have  been  carried  into  eflect. 

The  court,  backed  by  the  bishops,  was  now  pursuing  its  intentions  with  less 
caution  than  had  formerly  been  found  necessary.  An  act  was  passed  by  the 
parliament  of  1606,  recognizing  the  king  as  absolute  prince,  judge,  and  gover- 
nor over  all  persons,  estates,  and  causes,  both  spiritual  and  temporal, — restoring 
the  bishops  to  all  their  ancient  honours,  privileges,  and  emoluments,  and  reviving 
the  different  chapters.  Andrew  Melville  had  been  appointed  by  his  brethren 
to  be  present,  and  protest  against  this  and  another  act  in  prejudice  of  the  church, 
passed  at  the  same  time ;  but  measures  were  taken  to  frustrate  his  purpose.  No 
sooner  did  he  stand  up,  than  an  order  was  given  to  remove  him,  which  was  not 
efiected,  however,  until  he  had  made  his  errand  known.  The  protest  was  drawn 
up  by  Patrick  Simson,  minister  of  Stirling,  and  the  reasons  for  it  by  James  Mel- 
ville. The  latter  document,  with  which  alone  we  are  concerned,  is  written  in 
a  firm  and  manly  style,  and  shows  in  the  clearest  manner,  that,  in  appointing 
bishops,  the  parliament  had  in  reality  committed  the  whole  government  of  the 
church  to  the  king,  the   prelates  being  necessarily  dependent  upon  him. 


20  JAMES   MELVILLE. 


Some  months  previous  to  the  meeting  of  this  parliament,  letters  were  directed 
to  the  two  Melvilles,  and  six  other  ministers,  peremptorily  desiring  them  to  pro- 
ceed to  London  before  the  15th  of  September,  to  confer  with  the  king  on  such 
measures  as  might  promote  the  peace  of  the  church.  Although  this  was  the  al- 
leged cause  for  demanding  their  presence  at  the  English  court,  there  can  be  little 
doubt  that  the  real  object  of  the  king  was  to  withdraw  them  from  a  scene  where 
they  were  a  constant  check  upon  his  designs.  Their  interviews  with  the  king 
and  his  prelates  have  been  already  noticed  in  the  life  of  Andrew  Melville,  and 
it  is  only  necessary  to  state  here,  that,  after  many  attempts,  as  paltry  as  they 
were  unsuccessful,  to  win  them  over,  to  disunite  them,  and,  when  both  these 
failed,  to  lead  them  into  expressions  which  might  afterwards  be  made  the  ground- 
work of  a  prosecution,  Andrew  Melville  was  committed  to  the  Tower  of  London. 
At  the  same  time,  James  was  ordered  to  leave  London  within  six  days  for  New- 
castle-upon-Tyne, beyond  which  he  was  not  to  be  permitted  to  go  above  ten  miles, 
on  pain  of  rebellion.  After  an  unsuccessful  attempt  to  obtain  some  relaxation  of 
the  rigour  of  his  uncle's  confinement,  he  sailed  from  London  on  the  2d  of  July, 
1607.^  The  confinement  of  James  Melville  at  Newcastle,  was  attended  by  cir- 
cumstances of  a  peculiarly  painful  nature.  His  wife  was  at  this  time  in  her  last 
illness,  but  notwithstanding  the  urgency  of  the  case,  he  could  not  be  allowed  the 
shortest  period  of  absence  ;  he  was,  therefore  compelled  to  remain  in  England, 
with  the  most  perfect  knowledge  that  he  must  see  his  nearest  earthly  relation  uu 
more,  and  without  an  opportunity  of  performing  the  last  duties.  It  was  con^- 
sidered  a  matter  of  special  favour,  that  he  was  allowed  to  go  to  Anstrutlier  for 
the  arrangement  of  his  family  aflairs  after  her  death  ;  and  even  this  permission 
was  accompanied  by  peremptory  orders,  that  he  should  not  preach  nor  attend 
any  meetings,  and  that  he  should  return  to  England  at  the  end  of  a  month. 

The  opposition  of  Melville  to  episcopacy  continued  as  steady  during  his 
exile  as  it  had  been  during  the  time  of  his  ministry.  When  public  disputations 
were  proposed,  in  the  following  year,  between  the  ministers  who  had  yielded  to 
the  government  and  those  who  remained  opposed,  he  disapproved  of  the  plan, 
and  stated  his  objections  at  full  length  in  a  letter  to  Mr  John  Dykes.  He  con- 
sidered such  meetings  by  no  means  calculated  for  edification,  and  he  well  knew 
that,  were  their  opponents  to  be  persuaded  by  argument,  abundant  opportunities 
had  already  been  afforded  them.  When  the  conferences  were  appointed  to  be 
held  at  Falkland  and  other  places,  he  opposed  them  on  the  same  grounds ;  but, 
as  the  measure  had  been  already  determined  on,  he  advised  his  brethren  by  let- 
ter to  take  every  precaution  for  the  regularity  of  tlieir  proceedings  and  the 
safety  of  their  persons.  As  Melville  had  anticipated,  no  good  eflect  was  pro- 
duced ;  the  prelates  were  now  quite  independent  of  the  goodness  of  their  argu- 
ments for  the  support  of  their  cause,  and  felt  little  inclination  to  humble  them- 
selves so  far  as  to  contend  with  untitled  presbyterians. 

Notwithstanding  the  decided  conduct  of  Melville,  several  attempts  were  again 
made,  during  his  residence  at  Newcastle,  to  enlist  him  in  the  service  of  the 
king.  In  the  month  of  October,  immediately  following  his  sentence  of  banish- 
ment. Sir  William  Anstruther  *  waited  on  him.  He  was  authorized  by  the  king 
to  say  that,  if  Melville  would  waive  his  opinions,  his  majesty  would  not  only  re- 
ceive him  into  favour,  but  "  advance  him  beyond  any  minister  in  Scotland." 
Melville  replied,  that  no  man  was  more  willing  to  serve  the  king  in  his  calling 

•  M'Crle's  MelTille,  second  edition,  vol.  ii.  p.  187.  The  date  attached  by  Wodrow  to 
Melville's  embarkatiou,  is  the  2nd  of  June,  and  to  his  arrival  at  Newcastle,  the  10th  of  that 
month. — Wodrow^s  life  of  James  Melville,  p.  132. 

♦  Wodrow's  Life  of  James  Melville,  p.  133.  Thisgentleman  is  named  Sir  John  Anstruther 
by  Dr  M'Crie ;  Life  uf  Melville,  2nd  ediU  vol.  ii.  p.  234. 


JA]ME3   MELVILLE.  21 


than  he,  and  that  his  majesty  knew  very  well  his  affection — what  service  he  had 
done,  and  was  willing  to  do  in  so  far  as  conscience  would  suffer  him  ;  adding 
that  the  king  found  no  fault  nor  ill  with  him  that  he  knew  of,  but  that  he  would 
not  be  a  bishop.  "  If  in  my  judgment  and  my  conscience,"  he  concluded,  after 
some  further  remarks,  "  I  thought  it  would  not  undo  his  majesty's  monarchy  and 
the  church  of  Christ  within  the  same,  and  so  bring  on  a  fearful  judgment,  I 
could  as  gladly  take  a  bishopric  and  serve  the  king  therein  as  I  could  keep  my 
breath  within  me,  so  far  am  I  from  delighting  to  contradict  and  oppone  to  his 
majesty,  as  is  laid  to  my  charge  ;  for  in  all  things,  saving  my  conscience,  his 
majesty  hath  found,  and  shall  find  me  most  prompt  to  his  pleasure  and  service.'* 
With  this  reply  the  conversation  ended. 

During  his  exile  various  attempts  were  made  Oy  his  parishioners  to  obtain 
leave  for  his  return.  In  February,  1608,  the  elders  of  the  church  of  An- 
struther  prepared  a  petition  with  that  view,  to  be  presented  to  the  commissioners 
of  the  General  Assembly,  and  Avhen  through  stratagem  they  were  prevented 
from  presenting  it,  another  was  given  in  to  the  Assembly  Avhich  met  at  Linlith< 
gow  in  July,  1609.  An  application  to  the  king  on  his  behalf  was  promised  ; 
but  a  reply  which  he  made  to  a  most  unprovoked  attack  on  the  presbyterians  in 
a  sermon  by  the  vicar  of  Newcastle,  affbrded  the  bishops  and  their  friends  n 
ready  excuse  for  the  non-fulfilment  of  this  promise.  To  preserve  appearances, 
the  prelates  did  indeed  transmit  to  court  a  representation  in  favour  of  the 
banished  ministei-s ;  but  this  is  now  ascertained  to  have  been  nothing  more  tlian 
a  piece  of  the  vilest  hypocrisy.  A  private  letter  was  transmitted  at  the  same 
time,  discouraging  those  very  representations  which  in  public  they  advocated, 
and  urging  the  continuation  of  their  banishment  in  unabated  rigour.  Equally 
unfavourable  in  their  results,  although  M'e  have  less  evidence  of  insincerity, 
were  the  fair  promises  of  the  eai'l  of  Dunbar  and  of  archbishop  Spottiswood.* 

We  have  already  noticed  the  anxious,  though  unsuccessful,  effbrts  of  Melville 
in  behalf  of  his  uncle.  During  the  whole  period  of  the  imprisonment  of 
Andrew  Melville,  his  nephew's  attentions  were  continued.  He  supplied  his 
uncle  with  money  and  such  other  necessaries  as  could  be  sent  him,  and  received 
in  return  the  productions  of  his  muse.  About  this  period  their  correspondence, 
which  they  maintained  with  surprising  regularity,  took  a  turn  somewhat  out  of 
its  usual  course.  James  Melville  had  now  been  for  two  years  a  widower ;  he 
had  become  attached  to  a  lady,  the  daughter  of  the  vicar  of  Berwick-upon- 
Tweed,  and  he  earnestly  begged  his  uncle's  advice.  The  match  was  con- 
sidered unequal  in  point  of  years,  and  a  long  correspondence  ensued,  from 
which  it  became  evident,  that,  while  James's  respect  for  his  uncle  had  led  him 
to  request  his  advice,  his  feelings  had  previously  become  too  strongly  intei-ested 
to  admit  of  any  doubt  as  to  the  decision  of  the  question.  Finding  his  nephew's 
happiness  so  deeply  concerned  in  the  result,  Andrew  Melville  yielded,  and  the 
marriage  accordingly  took  place.  Whatever  may  have  been  his  fears,  it  is  but 
justice  to  state,  that  this  connexion  led  to  no  compromise  of  principle,  and  that 
it  was  attended  with  the  happiest  results. 

It  would  seem  that  the  bishops,  not  content  with  separating  James  Jlelville 
from  his  brethren,  still  thought  themselves  insecure  if  he  was  allowed  to  remain 

•  Another  representation  in  behalf  of  Melville  appears  to  have  been  presented  to  the 
Sj-nod  of  Fife  by  his  parishioners  in  1610.  Archbishop  Gladstanes,  the  only  authority  for 
this  statement,  writes  thus  on  the  subject  to  the  king :  "  As  for  me,  I  wU  not  advise  jour 
majesty  any  thing  in  this  matter,  because  I  know  not  what  is  the  man's  humour  as  yet,  but 
rather  wish  that,  ere  any  such  man  get  liberty,  our  turns  tooksetling  a  while."  Lifeof  Glad- 
stanes in  Wodrow's  Biographical  Collections,  (printed  for  the  ]\raitland  Club,)  vol.  i., 
pp.  274,  275.  So  little  confidence,  does  it  appear,  had  the  bishops  in  the  stability  of  their 
establishment. 


22  JAMES   MELVILLE. 


at  Newcastle.  They  accordingly  obtained  an  ordei'  for  his  removal  to  Carlisle, 
which  was  afterwards  changed  by  the  interest  of  his  friends  to  Berwick. 
About  this  period  he  was  again  urged  by  the  earl  of  Dunbar  to  accede  to  the 
wishes  of  the  king,  but  with  as  little  success  as  formerly.  That  nobleman 
therefore  took  him  with  him  to  Berwick,  where  he  continued  almost  to  the 
date  of  his  death.  This  period  of  his  life  seems  to  have  been  devoted  to  a  work 
on  the  proper  execution  of  which  his  mind  was  most  anxiously  bent — his 
Apology  for  the  Church  of  Scotland.  This  work,  which  however  he  did  not  live 
to  see  published,  bears  the  title  of  "  Jacobi  Melvini  libellus  Supplex  Ecclesise 
Scoticanse  Apologeticus."     It  was  printed  at  London  and  appeared  in  1645. 

About  the  year  16 12,  Melville  appears  to  have  petitioned  the  king  for 
liberty  to  return  to  his  native  country.  He  received  for  answer  that  he  need 
indulge  no  hopes  but  by  submitting  absolutely  to  the  acts  of  the  General  As- 
sembly of  1610.  Such  conditions  he  would  not«of  course  accept,  and  he  con- 
sidered his  return  altogether  hopeless.  But  the  very  measures  which  the  king 
and  the  bishops  had  been  pursuing  were  the  means  of  carrying  his  wishes  into 
effect.  The  prelates  had  lately  assumed  a  degree  of  hauteur  which  the  nobility 
could  ill  have  brooked,  even  had  they  felt  no  jealousy  of  a  class  of  men,  who, 
raised  from  comparative  obscurity ,  now  formed  a  powerful  opposition  to  the  ancient 
councillors  of  the  throne.  They  therefore  determined  to  exert  their  influence 
for  the  return  of  the  ministers,  and  to  second  the  representations  of  their  congre- 
gations and  friends.  In  this  even  the  bishops  felt  themselves  obliged  to  join, 
and  they  at  the  same  time  determined  upon  a  last  attempt  to  obtain  from  the 
ministei's  a  partial  recognition  of  their  authority,  but  in  this  they  were  unsuccess- 
ful.  James  Melville  therefore  obtained  leave  to  return  to  Scotland,  but  it  was  now 
too  late.  His  mind  had  for  some  time  brooded  with  unceasing  melancholy  over 
the  unhappy  state  of  the  church,  and  his  health  declined  at  the  same  time. 
He  had  proceeded  but  a  short  way  in  his  return  home,  when  he  was  suddenly 
taken  ill,  and  was  with  difficulty  brought  back  to  Berwick.  Notwithstanding 
the  prompt  administration  of  medicine,  his  complaint  soon  exhibited  fatal  symp- 
toms ;  and,  after  lingering  a  few  days,  during  which  he  retained  the  most  perfect 
tranquillity,  and  expressed  the  firmest  convictions  of  the  justice  of  the  cause  in 
which  he  suffered,  he  gently  expired  in  the  fifty-ninth  year  of  his  age,  and 
eighth  of  his  banishment 

The  character  of  Melville  is  so  fully  developed  in  the  transactions  of  his  life, 
that  if  the  present  sketch  is  in  any  degree  complete,  all  attempt  at  its  further  de- 
lineation must  be  unnecessary.  A  list  of  his  works  will  be  found  in  the  Notes 
to  Dr  M'Crie'g  Life  of  Andrew  Melville.  Of  these,  one  is  his  Diary,  which 
has  been  printed  as  a  contribution  to  the  Bannatyne  Club,  and  which  has  sup- 
plied the  materials  for  the  present  sketck  up  to  1601,  where  it  concludes. 
This  Diary,  combining,  as  it  certainly  does,  perfect  simplicity  of  style  with  a 
thorough  knowledge  of  its  principles, — containing  the  most  interesting  notices 
of  himself  and  other  public  men,  while  it  is  perfectly  free  from  egotism, — and, 
above  all,  indicating  throughout,  the  best  feelings  both  of  a  Christian  and  a 
gentleman,  is  one  of  the  most  captivating  articles  in  the  whole  range  of  auto- 
biographical history.  It  is  no  less  remarkable  than,  in  our  estimation,  it  is  un- 
questionable, that  the  most  interesting  additions  to  Scottish  history,  brought  to 
light  in  our  times,  are  written  by  persons  of  the  same  name.  We  allude  to  the 
Diary  of  James  Melville,  and  the  Memoirs  of  Sir  James  Melville,  with  which  it 
must  not  be  confounded.  There  is  one  point,  however,  in  Melville's  Diary, 
which  must  forcibly  strike  every  one  who  is  acquainted  with  its  author's  history, 
— we  mean  the  allusion  in  many  parts  of  his  narrative  to  whatever  evils  befell 
the  enemies  of  the  church,  as  special  instances  of  the  Divine  vengeance  for  their 


SIR  JAMES  MELVILLE.  23 


opposition  to  its  measures.  Its  enemies  were  undoubtedly  highly  criminal ;  but 
this  method  of  pronouncing  judgment  upon  them  cannot  bo  defended  upon  any 
ground  of  Scripture  or  charity. 

But  while  we  condemn  this  theory,  in  connexion  with  James  Melville's  name, 
justice  requires  the  admission,  that  it  was  by  no  means  a  peculiar  tenet  of  his, 
— it  was  the  doctrine  of  an  age,  rather  than  of  an  individual.  It  is,  moreover, 
let  it  ever  be  remembered,  to  such  men  as  Andrew  and  James  Melville,  that  we 
owe  much  of  our  present  liberty ;  and,  but  for  their  firmness  in  the  maintenance 
of  those  very  principles  which  we  are  so  apt  to  condemn,  we  might,  still  have  been 
acting  those  bloody  scenes  which  have  passed  away  Avith  the  reigns  of  Charles 
and  of  James.  They  struggled  for  their  children, — for  blessings,  in  the  enjoy- 
ment of  which  they  could  never  hope  to  participate.  And  let  not  us,  who  have 
entered  into  their  labours,  in  our  zeal  to  exhibit  our  superior  enlightenment, 
forget  or  underrate  our  obligations.  The  days  may  come  when  our  privileges 
may  be  taken  away  ;  and  how  many  of  those  who  condemn  the  zeal  and  the 
principles  of  their  forefathers,  will  be  found  prepared  to  hazard  so  much  for 
conscience'  sake,  or  to  exhibit  even  a  small  portion  of  their  courage  and  self- 
denied  patriotism,  in  the  attempt  to  regain  them  ? 

MELVILLE,  (Sir)  James,  a  courtier  of  eminence,  and  author  of  the  well 
known  memoirs  of  his  own  life  and  times  which  bear  his  name.  In  that  work 
he  has  made  effectual  provision  to  keep  posterity  mindful  of  the  events  of  his 
life,  and  the  following  memoir  will  chiefly  consist  of  an  abridgment  of  the 
facts  he  has  himself  detailed.^  He  appears  to  have  been  born  in  the  year 
1535.  His  father  was  Sir  John  Melville  of  Kaith,  one  of  the  early  props  of 
the  reformed  faith,  who,  after  suffering  from  the  hate  of  Beaton,  fell  a  victim  to 
his  successor,  archbishop  Hamilton,  in  1549.'"*  Nor  were  his  children,  or  his 
widow,  who  Avas  a  daughter  of  Sir  Alexander  Napier  of  Merchiston,  spared 
from  persecution.  James,  who  was  the  third  son,  was,  by  the  queen  dowager's 
influence  and  direction,  sent  at  the  age  of  fourteen,  under  the  protection  of  the 
French  ambassador  returning  to  France,  to  be  a  page  of  honour  to  the  young 
queen  of  Scotland.  The  French  ambassador  Monluc,  bishop  of  Valence,  be^ 
sides  his  embassy  to  Scotland,  had,  before  his  return,  to  accomplish  a  secret  mis- 
sion to  the  malcontents  of  Ireland,  who  had  begun  to  breathe  a  wish  to  cast  off 
the  yoke  of  England,  and  might  have  proved  a  very  valuable  acquisition  to 
France.  To  Ireland  Melville  accompanied  him.  Immediately  on  his  arrival  Sir 
James  encountered  a  love  adventure,  which  he  tells  with  much  satisfaction.  The 
ship  had  been  overtaken  by  a  storm,  and  with  difliculty  was  enabled  to  land  at 
Lochfeul.  They  were  entertained  by  O'Docherty,  one  of  the  bishop's  friends, 
who  lived  in  "  a  dark  tour,"  and  fed  his  friends  with  such  "  cauld  fair"  as 
"  herring  and  biscuits,"  it  being  Lent.  The  bishop  was  observed  to  bend  his 
eyes  so  attentively  on  O'Docherty's  daughter,  that  the  prudent  father  thought  it 
right  to  provide  him  with  the  company  of  another  female,  in  whose  conduct  he 
had  less  interest  or  responsibility.  I'his  lady  was  so  far  accomplished  as  to  be 
able  to  speak  English,  but  she  produced  an  awkward  scene  by  her  ignorance 
of  etiquette,  in  mistaking  a  phial  "  of  the  only  maist  precious  balm  that  grew 
in  Egypt,  which  Soliman  the  great  Turc  had  given  in  a  present  to  the  said 
bishop "  for  something  eatable,  "  because  it  had  ane  odoriphant  smell." 
**  Therefore  she  licked  it  clean  out."  The  consequence  of  the  bishop's  rage 
was  the  discovery  of  his  unpriestly  conduct.  3Ieanwhile  O'Docherty's  young 
daughter,  who  had  fled  from  the  bishop,  was  seized  with  a  sudden  attachment 
for  Melville,      "  She  came  and  sought  me  wherever  I  was,  and  brought  a  priest 

'  From  the  beautiful  edition  of  his  memoirs  printed  by  the  Bannatyne  Club,  1827, 
»  "Wood's  Peerage,  ii.  112. 


24  SIR  JAMES  MELVILLE. 


with  her  that  could  speak  English,  and  offered,  if  I  would  marry  her,  to  go 
with  me  to  any  part  which  I  pleased."  But  James  was  prudent  at  fourteen.  He 
tlianked  her,  said  that  he  was  yet  young,  that  he  had  no  rents,  and  uas  bound  for 
France.  With  the  assistance  of  Wauchope,  archbishop  of  Armagh  (a  Scotsman) 
Monluc  proceeded  with  his  mission.  From  O'Docherty's  house  they  went  to 
the  dwelling  of  the  bisliop  of  Roy.  Here  they  were  detained  until  the  arrival 
of  a  Highland  boat,  which  wns  to  convey  them  to  Scotland,  and  after  more 
storms  and  dangers,  losing  their  rudder,  they  at  length  landed  at  Bute. 
In  the  person  to  whom  the  boat  belonged,  Melville  found  a  friend,  James 
M'Conell  of  Kiltyre,  who  had  experienced  acts  of  kindness  from  his  father. 
Soon  after  their  return  to  Scotland,  Melville  sailed  with  the  ambassador  to 
France,  and  landed  on  the  coast  of  Brittany.  The  bishop  proceeding  by  post 
to  Paris,  left  his  young  protege  to  the  attendance  of  "  twa  young  Scottis  gen- 
tlemen," who  were  instructed  to  be  careful  of  him  on  the  way,  and  to  provide 
him  with  the  necessary  expenses,  which  should  be  afterwards  refunded  to  them. 
The  three  young  men  bought  a  nag  each,  and  afterwards  fell  into  company 
with  three  additional  companions,  a  Frenchman,  a  Spaniard,  and  a  Briton,  all 
travelling  in  the  same  direction.  At  the  end  of  their  fii-st  day's  journey  from 
Brest,  they  all  took  up  their  night's  rest  in  a  chamber  containing  three  beds. 
The  two  Frenchmen  and  the  two  Scotsmen  slept  together.  Melville  was  ac- 
companied by  the  Spaniard.  In  this  situation  he  discovered  himself  to  be  the 
subject  of  plot  and  counterplot.  He  first  heard  the  Scotsmen — with  much  sim- 
plicity certainly,  when  it  is  remembered  that  a  countryman  was  within  hearing — 
observe,  that  as  the  bishop  had  directed  them  to  purvey  for  their  companion, 
"  therefore  we  will  pay  for  his  ordinair  all  the  way,  and  sail  compt  up  twice  as 
meikle  to  his  master  when  we  come  to  Paris,  and  so  sail  won  our  own  ex' 
penses."^  This  was  a  good  solid  discreet  speculation,  but  it  need  not  have  been 
so  plainly  expressed.  While  it  was  hatching,  the  Frenchmen  in  the  next 
bed  were  contemplating  a  similar  plot,  on  the  security  of  the  ignorance  of 
Frencli  on  the  part  of  their  companions,  and  their  inexperience  of  French 
travelling,  proposing  simply  to  pay  the  tavern  bills  themselves,  and  charge  a 
handsome  premium  "  sufficient  to  pay  their  expenses"  for  their  trouble.  Mel- 
ville says  he  could  not  refrain  "  laughing  in  his  mind."  The  Frenchmen  he 
easily  managed,  but  the  Scotsmen  were  obdurate,  insisting  on  their  privilege  of 
paying  his  charges,  and  he  found  his  only  recourse  to  be  a  separate  enumeration 
of  the  charges,  and  the  "  louns  "  never  obtained  payment  of  their  overcharge. 
But  the  Frenchmen  were  resolved  by  force  to  be  revenged  on  the  detecter  of 
their  cunning.  In  the  middle  of  a  wood  they  procured  two  bullies  to  interrupt 
and  attack  the  travellers,  and  when  Melville  and  his  friends  drew,  they  joined 
their  hired  champions.  But  Melville,  by  his  own  account,  was  never  discomfited, 
and  when  they  saw  their  "  countenance  and  that  they  made  for  defence,"  they 
pretended  it  was  mere  sport.  Melville  informs  us,  how,  after  his  arrival  at 
Paris,  his  friend  the  bishop  was  called  to  Rome,  and  himself  left  behind  to 
learn  to  play  upon  the  lute  and  to  write  French.  In  the  month  of  May,  1553, 
Melville  appears  to  have  disconnected  himself  from  the  bishop,  of  whom  he 
gives  some  curious  notices  toucl:ing  his  proficiency  in  the  art  magique  and 
mathematique,  and  came  into  the  service  of  the  constable  of  France,  an  office  in 
the  acquisition  of  which  he  was  much  annoyed  by  the  interference  of  a  captain 
Ringan  Cocburn,  "  a  busy  medlar."  At  this  point  in  his  progress  the  narrator 
stops  to  offer  up  thanks  for  his  good  fortune.  As  a  pensioner  of  France,  he 
became  attached  to  the  cause  of  iJiat  country  in  the  war  with  Charles  V.,  and 
was  present  at  the  siege  of  St  Quentin,  where  his  patron  the  constable  was 
*  Memoirs,  p.  13.  partially  modernized  in  ortiiograph}'. 


SIR  JAMES  MELVILLE.  25 


wounded  and  taken  prisoner,  and  himself  "  being  evil  hurt  with  a  stroke  of 
ft  mass  upon  the  head,  was  mounted  again  by  his  servant  upon  a  Scots  gelding, 
that  carried  him  home  through  the  enemies  who  were  all  between  him  and 
home  ;  and  two  of  them  struck  at  his  head  with  swords,  because  his  head  piece 
was  tane  off  after  the  first  rencounter  that  the  mass  had  enforced,  and  the  two 
were  standing  between  him  and  home,  to  keep  prisoners  in  a  narrow  strait;" 
but  Melville's  horse  ran  between  them  **  against  his  will,"  as  he  candidly  tells, 
and  saved  his  master  by  clearing  a  wall,  after  which  he  met  his  friend  Harry 
Killigrew,  who  held  the  steed,  while  its  master  entered  a  barber's  shop  to  have 
his  wounds  dressed.  Melville  appears  to  have  attended  the  constable  in  his 
captivity,  and  along  with  him  was  present  at  the  conference  of  Chateau  Cam- 
bresis,  the  consequence  of  which  he  states  to  be  "  that  Spayne  obtained  all  their 
desires  ;  the  Constable  obtained  liberty :  the  Cardinal  of  Lorraine  could  not 
mend  himself,  no  n)ore  than  the  commissioners  of  England."  After  the  peace, 
the  king,  at  the  instigation  of  the  constable,  formed  the  design  of  sending  Mel- 
ville to  Scotland  to  negotiate  its  terms  with  reference  to  this  country,  and  to 
check  the  proceedings  of  Murray,  then  prior  of  St  Andrews,  and  the  rising  in- 
fluence of  the  Lor^s  of  the  Congregation.  The  cardinal  of  Lorraine,  however, 
had  influence  sufficient  to  procure  this  office  for  Monsieur  De  Buttoncourt,  a 
person  whose  haughty  manner,  backed  with  the  designs  of  the  "  Holy  alliance" 
he  represented,  served  to  stir  up  the  flame  he  was  sent  to  allay,  and  the  more 
prudent  3Ielville,  whose  birth  and  education  certainly  did  not  qualify  him  to 
conduct  such  a  mission  with  vigour,  or  even  integrity  to  his  employers, 
was  sent  over  with  instructions  moderate  to  the  ear,  but  strong  in  their 
import  A  war  for  mere  religion  was  however  deprecated ;  the  constable  shrewd. 
]y  observing,  that  they  had  enough  to  do  in  ruling  the  consciences  of  their  own 
countrymen,  and  must  leave  Scotsmen's  souls  to  God.  Melville  was  instructed 
"  to  seem  only  to  be  there  for  to  visit  his  friends."  He  found  the  queen  regent 
in  the  old  tower  of  Falkland,  in  bitterness  of  spirit  from  the  frustration  of  her 
ambitious  designs.  Quietly  and  stealthily  the  emissary  acquired  his  secret  infor- 
mation. The  ostensible  answer  he  brought  with  him  to  France  was,  that  the  prior 
of  St  Andrews  did  not  aspire  to  the  crown  ;  a  matter  on  which  the  bearings  were 
probably  sufficiently  known  at  the  court  of  France  without  a  mission.  Such, 
however,  is  the  sum  of  what  he  narrates  as  his  answer  to  the  constable,  who  ex- 
hibited great  grief  that  the  accidental  death  of  Henry,  which  had  intervened, 
and.  his  own  dismission,  prevented  a  king  and  prime  minister  of  France  from 
reaping  the  fruit  of  Melville's  cheering  intelligence.  Scotsmen  becoming  at 
that  time  unpopular  in  France,  Melville  obtained  the  royal  permission  to  travel 
through  other  parts  of  the  continent.  With  recommendations  from  his  friend 
the  constable,  he  visited  the  court  of  the  elector  Palatine,  where  he  was  advised 
to  remain  and  learn  the  Dutch  tongue,  and  was  courteously  received.  At  the 
death  of  Francis  II.,  he  returned  to  France  as  a  messenger  of  condolence 
for  the  departed,  and  congratulation  to  the  successor,  from  the  court  of  the 
Palatine.  He  returned  to  the  Palatine,  with  "  a  fair  reward,  worth  a  thousand 
crowns ;"  whether  to  the  Palatine  or  himself,  is  not  clear.  When  Melville  per- 
ceived queen  Mary  about  to  follow  the  advice  of  those  who  recommended  her 
return  to  Scotland,  he  called  on  her  with  the  offer  of  his  "  most  humble  and 
dutiful  service;"  and  the  queen  gave  him  thanks  for  the  opinions  she  heard  of 
his  affection  towards  her  service,  and  desired  him,  when  he  should  think  fit  to 
leave  Germany,  to  join  her  service  in  Scotland.  The  cardinal  of  Lorraine, 
among  his  other  projects,  having  discovered  the  propriety  of  a  marriage  betwixt 
Mary  and  the  archduke  Charles  of  Austria,  brother  to  Maximilian,  Melville 
was  deputed  by  secretary  Maitland  to  discover  what  manner  of  man  this  Charles 


26  SIR  JAMES  MELVILLE. 


might  happen  to  be  ;  to  inquire  as  to  his  religion,  his  rents,  his  qualities,  his 
age,  and  stature.     Melville  had  a  very  discreet  and  confidential  meeting  with 
Maximilian,  who  made  diligent  inquiry  as  to  the  intentions  of  the  queen  of 
Scots  and  her  subjecU,  regarding  the  alleged  right  to  the  English  throne ;  while 
it  struck  the  wily  Scot,  that  he  was  not  particularly  anxious  to  advance  his 
brother  to  a  throne,  presently  that  of  Scotland,  but  not  unlikely  to  be  that  of 
the  island  of  Britain.      To  obtain  such  information  as  might  prove  a  sure  foot- 
ing for  his  future  steps,  he  procured  his  companion,  Mons.  Zuleger,  to  drink 
with  the  secretaries  of  Maximilian,  and  ascertained  his  suspicions  to  be  well 
founded.     Notwithstanding  a  cordial  invitation  to  join  the  court  of  Maximilian, 
(no  other  man  ever  had  so  many  sources  of  liveliliood  continually  springing  up 
in  his  path,)  Melville  returned  to  the  Palatine.     On  his  way  he  enjoyed  a  tour 
of  pleasure,  passing  to  Venice  and  Rome,  and  returning  through  Switzerland 
to  Heidelberg,  where   the  elector    held    his    court.      He    afterwards  revisited 
Paris  on  a  matrimonial  scheme,   concocted  by  the  queen-mother,  betwixt  her 
son  and  Maximilian's  eldest  daughter,  acting  in  the  high  capacity  of  the  bearer 
of  a  miniature  of  the  lady.     The  welcomes  of  his  friend  the  constable,  not  on 
the  best  of  terms  with  the  queen-mother,  seem  now  to  have  f^len  with  far  less 
cordiality  on  the  heart  of  Melville,  and  he  seems  to  have  looked  with  some 
misliking  at  that  dignitary's  taking  the  opportunity  of  presenting  the  picture, 
to  appear  at  court,  where  "  he  sat  down  upon  a  stool,  and  held  his  bonnet  upon 
his  head,  taking  upon  him  the  full  authority  of  his  great  office,  to  the  queen- 
mother's  great  misliking."     While  at  Paris,  he  received  despatches  from  3Iur- 
ray  and  secretary  Maitland,  requesting  his  immediate  return  to  his  native  coun- 
try, to  be  employed  in  the  service  of  the  queen,  a  mandate  which  he  obeyed. 
3Ieanwhile    the  Palatine  and  his  son,  duke  Casimer,  showed  an  ambition  fur  a 
union  of  the  latter  with  Elizabeth  of  England  ;  a  measure  which  31elville  found 
curious  grounds  for  dissuading,  in  fulfilment  of  his  principle  of  using  sudi  influ- 
ence as  he  might  command,  to  interfere  witli  the  appearance  of  an  heir  to  the 
crown  of  England.     But  Melville  could  not  refuse  the  almost  professional  duty 
of  conveying  the  young  duke's  picture  to  England.      He  obtained  an  interview 
with  Elizabeth,  who  was  more  attentive  to  the  subject  of  the  marriage  of  queen 
Mary,  than  to  her  own  ;   expressing  disapprobation  of  a  union  with  the  arch- 
duke   Charles,   and  recommending   her   favourite   Dudley.      He   proceeded   to 
Scotland,  and  was  received  by  Mary  at  Perth,  on  the  5th  May,  15G4.      He 
was  informed  that  it  had  been  the  queen's  intention  to  have  employed  him  in 
Germany,  but  she  had  now  chosen  for  him  a  mission  to  England.      He  is  most 
amiable  in  his  motives  for  following  the  young  queen.      He  was  loth  to  lose 
"  the  occasions  and  oilers  of  preferment  that  was  made  to  him  in  France  and 
other  parts :  but  the  queen  was  so  instant  and  so  well  inclined,  and  showed  her- 
self endowed  with  so  many  princely  virtues,  that  he  thought  it  would  be  against 
good  conscience  to  leave  her,  requiring  so  earnestly  his  help  and  service  ;"  so 
that,  in  short,  he  "  thought  her  more  worthy  to  be  served  for  little  profit,  than 
any  other  prince  in  Europe  for  great  commodity."     He  proceeded  to  England 
with  ample  instructions,  the  amicable  purport  of  which,  either  as  they  were  really 
delivered,  or  as  31elville  has  chosen  to  record  them,  is  well  known  to  the  read- 
ers of  history.      Melville  made  sundry  inquiries  at  "  very  dear  friends"  attend- 
ing the  court  of  Elizabeth,  as  to  his  best  method  of  proceeding  with  the  haughty 
queen  ;   and  having,  on  due  consideration,  established  in  his  mind   a  set    of 
canons  for  the  occasion,  stoutly  adhered  to  them,  and  found  the  advantage  of 
doing  so.      He  was  peculiarly  cautious  on  the  subject  of  the  marriage  ;   he  re- 
mained  to  witness  the  installation  of  Dudley  as  earl  of  Leicester  and  baron  of 
Denbigh,  cautiously  avoiding  any  admission  of  the  propriety  of  countenancing 


SIR  JAMES  MELVILLE.  27 


a  union  betwixt  him  and  the  queen,  while  he  bestowed  on  him  as  much  praise 
as  Elizabeth  chose  to  exact,  and  consented  to  join  in  invectives  against  the  per- 
sonal a])pearance  of  Darnley — his  being  "  lang,  histy,  beardless,  and  lady- 
faced,"  djc. — "  albeit,"  continues  the  narrator,  "  I  had  a  secret  charge  to  pur- 
chase leave  for  him  to  pass  in  Scotland,  where  his  father  was  already."  Mel- 
rille  spent  nine  days  at  the  court  of  ICngland,  and  made  excellent  use  of  his 
time.  His  memorial  of  the  period  contains  many  most  ingenious  devices,  by 
which  he  contrived  to  support  the  honour  of  the  queen  of  Scotland,  while 
he  flattered  the  queen  of  England  on  her  superiority.  He  delighted  her 
nmch,  by  telling  her  the  Italian  dress  became  her  more  than  any  other  one,  be- 
cause ho  saw  she  preferred  it  herself, — this  was  no  disparagement  to  his  own 
queen.  He  said  they  were  both  the  fairest  women  in  their  country  ;  and,  be- 
ing driven  to  extremities,  told  Elizabeth  he  thought  her  the  whiter,  but  that  his 
own  queen  was  very  "  luesome  ;"  leaving  the  inference,  when  Elizabeth  chose 
to  make  it,  that  she  was  as  much  more  "  luesome"  as  she  was  whiter,  though  by 
no  means  making  so  discreditable  an  admission.  It  happened  fortunately  that  the 
queen  of  Scotland,  being  taller  than  the  queen  of  England,  the  latter  decided 
the  former  to  be  too  tall.  Melville,  who  had  no  foresight  of  the  more  enlarged 
opinions  of  posterity,  reviews  all  his  petty  tricks  and  successful  flatteries,  with 
the  air  of  one  claiming  praise  for  acts  which  increase  the  happiness  of  the  hu- 
man race.  The  following  paragraph  is  exemplary  to  all  courtiers.  He  had 
been  giving  moderate  praise  to  the  musical  abilities  of  Mary.  "  That  same  day 
afier  dinner,  my  lord  of  Hunsden  drew  me  up  to  a  quiet  gallery,  that  I  might 
hear  some  music ;  but  he  said  he  durst  not  avow  it,  Avhere  I  might  hear  the 
queen  play  upon  the  virginals.  |^ut  after  I  had  hearkened  a  while,  I  took  by 
the  tapestry  that  hung  before  the  door  of  the  chamber,  and  seeing  her  back  was 
towai'ds  the  door,  I  entered  within  the  chamber,  and  stood  still  at  the  door 
cheek,  and  heard  her  play  excellently  well ;  but  she  left  off"  so  soon  as  she 
turned  about  and  saw  me,  and  came  forward,  seeming  to  strike  me  with  her 
left  hand,  and  to  think  shame  ;  alleging  that  she  used  not  to  play  before  men, 
but  when  she  was  solitary  her  alane,  to  eschew  melancholy  ;  and  asked  how  I 
came  there.  I  said,  as  I  was  walking  with  my  L.  of  Hunsden,  as  I  passed  by 
the  chamber  door,  I  heard  such  melody  that  ravished  and  drew  me  within  the 
chamber  I  wist  not  how  ;  excusing  my  fault  of  homelyness,  as  being  brought  up 
in  the  court  of  France,  and  was  willing  to  sufl^er  Avhat  kind  of  punishment  would 
please  her  lay  upon  me  for  my  ofi'ence."  The  result  was,  that  he  acknow- 
ledged Elizabeth  a  better  musician  than  Mary,  and  she  said  his  French  was  good. 
After  so  much  politeness,  the  opinion  of  Elizabeth,  which  he  retailed  to  Mary, 
was,  "  there  was  neither  plain  dealing,  nor  upright  meaning,  but  great  dissi- 
mulation,— emulation  that  her  (3Iary's)  princely  qualities  should  over  soon  chase 
her  out  and  displace  her  from  the  kingdom." 

The  next  public  duty  in  which  3Ielville  was  engaged,  was  as  bearer  of  the 
intelligence  of  the  birth  of  the  prince,  afterwards  James  VL,  to  the  court  of 
England,  for  which  purpose  he  left  Edinburgh  on  the  19th  June,  1566.  He 
found  Elizabeth  dancing  after  supper,  in  a  state  of  jovialty  and  merriment, 
which  was  momentarily  quashed  on  the  reception  of  what  she  termed  the  wel- 
come intelligence.  But  next  morning  the  queen  had  prepared  herself  to  receive 
her  complimentary  friend,  who  had  excused  his  homeliness  on  the  ground  of 
his  having  been  brought  up  in  France,  and  the  spirit  of  their  previous  confer- 
ence was  renewed  ;  the  courtier  turning  his  complimentary  allusions  into  a  veiy 
hideous  picture  of  the  evils  of  marriage,  as  experienced  by  his  own  queen,  that 
no  little  bit  of  endeavour  on  his  part,  (according  to  his  avowal,)  might  be  lost, 
conducive  to  settling  in  the  mind  of  the  English  queen,  a  solid  detestation  of 


28  SIR  JAMES  MELVILLE. 


matrimony.  He  takes  credit  to  himself  for  having  given  sage  and  excellent  ad- 
vice to  the  Scottish  queen,  on  the  occurrence  of  her  various  unfortunate  predi- 
lections, particularly  on  her  conduct  towards  Bothwell  during  the  life  of  Darn- 
ley,  and  happened  to  be  among  those  attendants  of  the  queen  who  were  so  very 
easily  taken  prisoners  by  the  aspirant  to  the  crown.  After  this  event,  he  con- 
sidered it  prudent  to  obtain  leave  to  return  home,  and  enjoy  his  "  rents ;"  but 
80  long  as  he  was  able  to  transact  messages  and  carry  pictures,  tlie  atmosphere  of 
a  court  seems  to  have  been  to  him  the  breath  of  life  ;  he  appears  to  have  waited 
in  quiet  expectation  for  whatever  little  transactions  might  fall  to  his  lot,  and, 
among  other  occasions,  was  present  at  the  marriage  of  the  queen  to  Bothwell, 
after  that  nobleman's  **  fury"  against  him,  before  which  he  had  been  obliged  to 
flee  on  account  of  his  advice  to  the  queen,  "  more  honest  than  wise,"  had  been 
propitiated.  On  the  formation  of  the  party  for  crowning  the  young  prince,  he 
was,  as  far  as  his  book  is  concerned,  still  a  zealous  servant  of  his  fallen  mistress. 
He  was  chosen  commissioner  or  emissary  to  the  opposite  party, — a  post  he  de- 
clined to  accept,  until  advised  to  become  the  instrument  of  peace,  by  Maitland, 
Kirkaldy,  and  "  other  secret  favourers  of  the  queen."  On  tlie  same  principle 
of  attention  to  the  interests  of  Mary,  he  acted  as  emissary  to  meet  Murray  at 
Berwick,  on  his  approaching  Scotland  to  assume  the  regency.  He  was  equally 
accommodating  in  furthering  the  introduction  of  Lennox,  and  was  engaged  in 
his  usual  employments  under  Mar  and  Morton.  It  would  be  tedious  to  follow 
him  in  his  list  of  negotiations,  any  thing  which  is  important  in  them  being  more 
nearly  concerned  with  the  history  of  the  times,  than  with  the  subject  of  our 
memoir.  The  character  in  which  he  acted  is  sufficiently  exemplified  by  the  de- 
tails already  unfolded  ;  and  it  would  require  more  labour  and  discernment  than 
most  men  command,  to  determine  for  what  party  he  really  acted,  or  on  what 
principles  of  national  policy  he  combated.  It  may  be  mentioned,  that  he  al- 
leges llie  busy  temper  of  finding  fault  with  the  proceedings  of  the  great,  witli 
which  he  so  complacently  charges  himself  on  divers  occasions,  to  have  lost  him 
the  countenance  of  Morton,  while  with  superlative  generosity  he  recommended 
the  laird  of  Carmichael  to  avoid  a  similar  course;  and  the  laird,  profiting  by  the 
advi(^,  forgot  that  injured  man,  the  giver  of  it.  When  James  wished  to  free 
himself  from  the  unceremonious  authoi's  of  the  Raid  of  Ruthven,  he  requested 
the  counsel  and  assistance  of  Melville,  who,  although  he  had  taken  leave  of  the 
court,  and  resolved  to  live  "  a  quiet  contemplative  life  all  the  rest  of  his  days," 
graciously  assented  to  the  royal  petition.  He  read  his  majesty  a  lecture  on  the 
conduct  of  young  princes,  and  assisted  in  enabling  him  to  attend  the  convention 
at  St  Andrews  ;  or,  according  to  his  own  account,  was  the  sole  procurer  of  his 
liberty.  He  was  appointed  a  gentleman  of  the  bedchamber,  and  a  member  of 
the  privy  council  ;  but  Arran,  whom  he  opposed,  managed  to  supplant  him, 
notwithstanding  an  unmercifully  long  letter,  reminding  James  of  his  services, 
and  the  royal  promises,  and  bestowing  nuich  advice,  useful  for  governors.  He 
was  deprived  of  his  offices,  and  had  no  more  opportunity  "  to  do  good."  But 
he  was  not  entirely  excluded  from  the  sun  of  royalty  ;  he  was  directed  to  pre- 
pare instructions  for  himself  as  an  ambassador  to  tlie  court  of  England,  and  held 
a  long  conference  with  the  king  about  the  state  of  the  nation,  full  of  much  sago 
advice.  He  was  appointed  to  "  entertain  "  the  three  Danish  ambassadors,  whose 
mission  concerning  the  restoration  of  the  islands  of  Orkney,  terminated  in  the 
king's  marriage  with  a  Danish  princess:  and  when  these  gentlemen  were  plunged 
into  a  state  of  considerable  rage  at  their  reception,  he  was  found  a  most  use- 
ful and  pacific  mediator.  He  was  appointed  the  confidential  head  of  that 
embassy  proposed  to  Allry,  and  afterwards  accepted  by  tlie  earl  Marischal,  for 
bringing  oyer  the  royal  bride ;   but  he  had  arrived  at  that  period  of  life,  when 


WILLIAM  MESTON.  29 


he  found  it  necessary  or  agreeable  to  resign  lucrative  missions.  The  portion  of 
bis  memoirs  referring  to  this  period,  introduces  a  vivid  description  of  the  machi- 
nations of  the  uitches  to  impede  the  wishes  of  king  James,  by  which  a  relation 
of  his  own  was  drowned  in  crossing  the  frith  of  Fortii.  On  the  arrival  of  the 
queen,  Melville  was  presented  to  her  as  her  counsellor,  and  gentleman  of  her 
bedchamber.  His  last  public  duty  appears  to  have  been  that  of  receiving  the 
presents  of  the  ambassadors  at  the  christening  of  Prince  Henry.  He  declined 
following  James  to  his  new  dominions,  but  afterwards  paid  him  a  visit,  and  was 
kindly  received  at  the  English  court.  His  latter  days  appear  to  have  been  spent 
in  preparing  his  memoirs,  so  often  quoted  as  a  model  of  wisdom  for  the  guidance 
of  his  descendants.  Two  mutilated  editions  of  this  curious  work  were  published 
in  English,  besides  a  Fren(;h  translation,  before  the  discovery  of  the  original  manu- 
scripts, which  liad  passed  through  the  hands  of  the  IMarchraont  family,  produced 
the  late  genuine  edition.  Sir  James  died  on  the  Ist  November,  1607,*  in  the 
eighty-second  year  of  his  age.  In  his  character  there  seems  little  either  to  re- 
spect or  admire  ;  but  it  is  to  be  remembered  that  he  lived  in  an  age,  when  those 
who  were  not  murderers  or  national  traitors,  were  of  a  comparatively  high  stan- 
dard of  morality. 

iMES TON,  William,  an  ingenious  and  learned  poet  of  the  eighteenth  centurj', 
was  born  in  the  parish  of  Mid-Mar,  Aberdeenshire,  about  the  year  1688.  His 
parents  were  in  humble  circumstances,  but,  by  submitting  to  privations  them- 
selves, they  contrived  to  give  their  son  a  liberal  education.  Having  acquired 
the  earlier  rudiments  of  learning  at  a  country  school,  he  was  sent  to  the  IMaris- 
chal  college,  Aberdeen,  where  he  made  such  proficiency,  that,  on  the  completion 
of  his  studies,  he  was  elected  one  of  the  doctors  of  the  high  school  of  New 
Aberdeen.  In  this  situation  he  continued  for  some  time,  discharging  its  duties 
with  an  assiduity  and  talent  which  procured  him  much  respect  and  considerable 
popularity  as  a  teacher.  While  thus  employed,  his  reputation  and  qualifications 
attracted  the  notice  of  the  noble  family  of  Marischal,  and  he  was  chosen 
to  be  preceptor  and  governor  to  the  young  earl,  and  his  brother,  the  celebrated 
Marshal  Keith.  Of  this  trust  he  acquitted  himself  so  well,  that,  on  the  occur- 
rence of  a  vacancy  in  1714,  in  the  office  of  professor  of  philosophy  in  Marischal 
college,  he  was  appointed  to  it  through  the  influence  of  the  countess  Marischal. 
This  office  he  also  filled  with  great  ability,  and  with  universal  approbation  ; 
but  he  was  permitted  to  retain  it  only  for  a  very  short  time.  In  the  following 
year,  1715,  the  civil  war  broke  out,  and  3Ieston,  adhering  to  the  political 
principles  of  his  patrons,  lost  his  professorship.  To  compensate  this  depriva- 
tion, he  was  made  governor  of  Dunotter  castle,  by  the  earl  Marischal ;  a  singu- 
lar enough  change  of  profession,  but  sufficiently  characteristic  of  tiie  times. 

After  the  battle  of  Sheriff  muir,  Meston,  with  several  others  of  his  party,  fled 
to  the  hills,  where  they  skulked  till  the  act  of  indemnity  was  passed,  when  they 
returned  to  their  homes. 

During  the  time  of  his  concealment,  Meston  composed,  for  the  amusement  of 
his  companions,  several  of  those  humorous  poetical  effusions  which  he  has  en- 
titled Jlolher  Grim's  Tales,  and  which  were  published  in  Idinburgh  in 
1767.  Steady  to  his  political  principles,  he  refused  after  his  return,  to  yield 
obedience  to  the  new  dynasty,  and  thus  cut  himself  off  from  every  ciiance 
of  being  restored  to  his  former  appointment ;  an  event  which  might  otherwise 
have  taken  place.  In  these  circumstances,  destitute  of  employment,  and  equally 
destitute   of  the   means   of   subsistence,   he   accepted  an    invitation   from   the 

*  Wood's  Peerage,  ii.  112.  The  introduction  to  the  last  edition  of  his  works,  sajs  aged  72. 
This  is  inconsistent  with  liis  having  been  14  yiars  of  age  in  1549,  wheu  lie  accompanied 
Moiduc  to  France. 


30  WILLIAM  MESTON. 


countess  Marischal  to  reside  in  her  family,  and  availed  himself  of  lier  hospitality 
till  her  death ;  contributing  largely  to  the  entertainment  of  all  her  guests  by 
his  wit,  and  by  the  exercise  of  a  singularly  happy  vein  of  pleasantry  which  he 


On  the  death  of  the  countess,  Meston  was  again  left  destitute,  and  for  some 
years  continued  in  very  straitened  circumstances.  At  the  end  of  this  period  he 
opened  an  academy  at  Elgin,  in  conjunction  with  his  brother,  Mr  Samuel  Mes- 
tan,  who  was  eminently  skilled  in  the  Greek  language.  For  some  years  the 
academy  throve  well,  and  yielded  its  teachers  a  comfortable  living.  Meston 
gave  instructions  in  all  the  branches  of  learning  taught  at  universities,  became 
popular  as  a  teacher,  and  by  his  assiduity  acquired  the  unlimited  confidence  of 
his  employers.  His  success,  however,  in  place  of  operating  as  an  incitement  to 
further  exertion,  seems  to  have  thrown  him  off  his  guard.  Always  of  a  social 
disposition,  he  now  became  a  thorough-paced  boon  companion  ;  and  betook 
himself  with  a  devotion  and  Cordiality  to  his  book,  his  bottle,  and  his  friend, 
which  was  wholly  incompatible  with  his  success  as  a  teacher.  The  consequence 
was,  that  in  a  few  years  the  academy  fell  so  much  away  that  he  gave  it  up,  and 
removed  to  Tureff,  a  village  on  the  northwest  limits  of  Aberdeenshire,  to  which 
he  had  been  invited  by  the  countess  of  Errol,  who  knew  and  appreciated 
his  talents.  From  this  lady  Meston  received,  after  his  removal,  much  kind- 
ness. She  allowed  him  the  use  of  the  family  lodging  in  the  village  rent-free, 
and  sent  him  many  presents  from  time  to  time  to  better  his  housekeeping.  The 
academy  also  succeeded  well,  and  continued  to  improve  during  several  years, 
until  an  unfortunate  occurrence  suddenly  terminated  its  existence. 

Two  of  Meston's  young  gentlemen  having  quarrelled  while  playing  at  shut- 
tle-cock, one  of  them  drew  a  knife  and  stabbed  the  other  in  the  breast.  The 
wound  was  not  fatal,  but  the  parents  of  the  other  children  became  alarmed  for 
their  safety ;  and  though  no  blame  whatever  could  attach  to  the  master  in  what 
had  happened,  they  were  all  removed,  and  poor  Meston  was  left  without  a 
pupil. 

Driven  from  Tureff,  Meston  went  next  to  Montrose,  where  he  attempted  to 
open  another  academy,  but  without  success.  From  Montrose  he  removed  to 
Perth,  and  here  found  some  employment  in  his  profession  of  teaching,  but  was 
in  a  short  time  afterwards  taken  into  the  family  of  Mr  Oliphaiit  of  Gask  as  a 
private  preceptor.  In  this  situation  he  remained  for  several  years,  when,  falling 
into  a  bad  state  of  health,  he  resigned  it,  and  removed  to  Peterhead  for  the 
benefit  of  its  mineral  waters.  The  unfortunate  poet  was  now  once  more  re- 
duced to  utter  destitution,  with  the  aggravation  of  a  debilitated  frame  and  failing 
constitution.  For  this  luckless  hour  he  had  made  no  provision.  With  the 
true  spirit  of  a  poet,  he  had  always  entertained  a  most  sublime  contempt  for 
money,  and  for  all  habits  of  economy  ;  spending  to-day  what  he  had  acquired 
to-day,  and  boldly  leaving  to-morrow  to  provide  for  itself.  The  comforts,  how- 
ever, which  he  was  unable  to  procure  for  himself  in  his  sickness,  were  liberally 
supplied  to  him  by  a  generous  friend.  His  old  patroness,  the  countess  of  Errol, 
furnished  him  with  every  necessary  and  comfort  which  his  infirmities  and  for- 
lorn condition  required,  even  to  the  fitting  out  of  his  apartment.  Finding  no 
benefit  to  his  health  from  his  residence  at  Peterhead,  he  removed  to  Aberdeen, 
where  he  died  in  the  spring  of  1745,  and  was  buried  in  the  Spittal  churchyard 
of  Old  Aberdeen. 

Meston  was  esteemed  one  of  the  best  classical  scholars  of  his  time.  He  was 
also  an  excellent  mathematician.  As  a  poet  his  fame  is  now  reduced  to  very 
□arrow  limits.  His  poetry  is,  we  believe,  scarcely  known  to  the  present 
generation  ;  and  yet  it  would  teem  to  merit  a  better  fate,  were  it  not  perhaps 


WILLIAM  JULIUS  MICKLB.  31 

for  its  gi-ossness  and  indelicacy.  He  was  a  slavish  imitator  of  Butler  in  style 
and  manner  ;  and  it  is  not  improbably  owing  to  this  circumstance,  which  neces- 
sarily excluded  originality,  that  his  otherwise  clever  poems  have  so  soon  sunk 
into  oblivion.  But  though  a  copyist  of  style  and  manner,  Meston  had  a  geniu? 
of  his  own,  and  that  of  a  pretty  high  order.  In  many  instances  his  poetry  ex- 
hibits scintillations  of  wit  and  humour  not  inferior  to  the  brightest  in  the  pages 
of  Hudibras.  A  volume  of  his  poems,  containing  The  Knight,  Mother  Grim's 
Tales,  and  several  other  miscellaneous  pieces,  was  published,  as  already  noticed, 
in  Edinburgh  in  1767,  and  this  is,  we  believe,  all  that  remains  of  3Ieston,  a 
man  of  very  considerable  genius,  and  "  a  fellow  of  infinite  jest." 

MICKLE,  William  Julius,  (originally  Meikle,)  the  translator  pf  Camoens' 
Lusiad,  and  an  original  poet  of  considerable  merit,  was  one  of  the  sons  of  the 
Rev,  Alexander  Meikle,  who  in  early  life  was  a  dissenting  clergyman  in  London, 
and  assistant  to  Dr  Watt,  but  finally  settled  as  minister  of  the  parish  of  Lang- 
holm, in  Dumfries-shire,  where  the  subject  of  this  memoir  was  born,  in  1734. 
The  mother  of  the  poet  was  Julia  Henderson,  of  a  good  family  in  Mid  Lothian. 
The  Rev.  Mr  Meikle,  whose  learning  is  testified  by  his  having  been  employed 
in  the  translation  of  Bayle's  Dictionary,  was  his  son's  first  teacher.  The  young 
poet  was  afterwards,  on  the  death  of  his  father,  sent  to  reside  in  Edinburgh, 
with  his  aunt,  the  wife  of  Mr  Myrtle,  an  eminent  brewer ;  there  he  attended  the 
High  School  for  some  years.  It  is  said,  however,  that,  though  his  passion  for 
poetry  was  early  displayed,  he  was  by  no  means  attached  to  literature  in  gen- 
eral, till  tlie  age  of  thirteen,  when,  Spenser's  P^airy  Queen  falling  in  his  way, 
he  became  passionately  fond  of  that  author,  and  immediately  began  to  imitate 
his  manner.  At  sixteen,  Mickle  was  called  from  school  to  keep  the  accounts  of 
his  aunt,  who,  having  lost  her  husband,  carried  on  the  business  on  her  own  ac- 
count Not  long  after,  he  was  admitted  to  a  share  in  the  business,  and  his  pros- 
pects were,  at  the  outset  of  life,  extremely  agreeable.  For  reasons,  however, 
which  have  not  been  explained,  he  was  unfortunate  in  trade  ;  and  about  the 
year  1763,  became  bankrupt  Without  staying  to  obtain  a  settlement  with  his 
creditoi-s,  he  proceeded  to  London,  tried  to  procure  a  commission  in  the  marine 
service,  but,  the  war  being  just  then  concluded,  failed  in  his  design.  Before 
leaving  the  Scottish  capital,  he  had  devoted  himself,  only  too  much,  perhaps,  to 
poetry.  At  eighteen,  he  had  composed  two  tragedies  and  half  an  epic  poem, 
besides  some  minor  and  occasional  pieces.  Being  now  prompted  to  try  what 
poetry  could  do  for  him,  he  introduced  himself  and  several  of  his  pieces  to  the 
notice  of  lord  Lytielton,  who,  it  is  understood,  conceived  a  respectful  opinion  of 
his  abilities,  and  recommended  him  to  persevere  in  versification,  but  yielded  him 
no  more  substantial  proof  of  favour. 

Mickle  appears  to  have  been  rescued  from  these  painful  circumstances,  by  be- 
ing appointed  corrector  to  the  Clarendon  press,  at  Oxford.  This  was  a  situa- 
tion by  no  means  worthy  of  his  abilities;  but,  while  not  altogether  uncongenial 
to  his  taste,  it  had  the  advantage  of  leaving  him  a  little  leisure  for  literary  pur- 
suits, and  thus  seemed  to  secure  to  him  what  has  always  been  found  of  the 
greatest  consequence  to  friendless  men  of  genius, — a  fixed  routine  of  duties,  and 
a  steady  means  of  livelihood,  while  a  portion  of  the  mental  energies  are  left 
salient  for  higher  objects.  Accordingly,  from  the  year  1765,  Mickle  published 
a  succession  of  short  poems,  some  of  which  attracted  considerable  notice,  and 
made  him  known  respectfully  to  the  world  of  letters.  He  also  ventured  into  the 
walk  of  religious  controversy,  and  wrote  pamphlets  against  Voltaire  and  Mr 
Harewood,  besides  contributing  frequently  to  the  newspaper  called  the  White- 
hall Evening  Post. 

In  his  early  youth,  he  had  perused  Castara's  translation  of  the  Lusiad  of  Camoens, 


32  -WILLIAM  JULIUS  MICKLE. 

and  ever  since  had  entertained  the  design  of  executing  an  English  version.  He 
now,  for  the  Hrst  time,  found  leisure  and  encouragement  to  attempt  so  laborious 
a  task.  The  first  canto  was  published  as  a  specimen  in  1771,  and  met  with  so 
mucli  approbation,  as  to  induce  him  to  abandon  his  duties  at  Oxford,  and  de- 
vote himself  entirely  to  this  more  pleasing  occupation.  Having  retired  to  a 
farm  house  at  Forest-hill,  he  applied  himself  unremittingly  lo  the  labour,  sub- 
sisting upon  the  money  which  he  drew  from  time  to  time  as  subscriptions  for  his 
work.  In  1775,  the  version  was  completed  ;  and,  that  no  means  might  be  want- 
ing for  obtaining  it  a  favourable  reception,  he  published  it,  with  a  dedication  to 
a  nobleman  of  high  influence,  with  whom  his  family  had  been  connected.  The 
work  obtain^  a  large  measure  of  public  approbation,  which  it  has  ever  since  re- 
tained ;  biit  Its  reception  with  the  patron  was  not  what  the  translator  had  been 
led  to  expect.  A  copy  was  bound  in  a  most  expensive  manner,  and  sent  to  that 
high  personage  ;  but,  months  passing  on  without  any  notice  even  of  its  receipt, 
a  friend  of  the  poet,  in  high  official  situation,  called  upon  his  lordship,  to  learn, 
if  possible,  the  cause  of  his  silence.  He  found  that  some  frivolous  literary  ad- 
versary of  Mickle  had  prejudiced  the  noble  lord  against  the  work,  and  that  the 
presentation  copy  was,  till  that  moment,  unopened.  We  have  here,  perhaps, 
one  of  the  latest  instances  of  that  prostration  of  genius  before  tlie  shrine  of 
rank,  which  was  formerly  supposed  to  be  so  indispensable  to  literary  success, 
but  was,  in  reality,  even  in  the  most  favourable  instances,  only  productive  of 
paltry  and  proximate  advantages.  The  whole  system  of  dedication  was  an  ab- 
surdity. Books  were  in  reality  written  for  the  public,  and  to  the  public  did 
their  authors  look  for  that  honour  which  forms  the  best  motive  for  literary  exer- 
tion. To  profess  to  devote  their  works  more  particularly  to  some  single  member 
of  the  community,  was  an  impertinence  to  all  the  rest,  that  ought  never  to  have 
been  practised ;  and  we  might  the  more  readily  denounce  the  above  instance  of 
*'  patrician  meanness,"  as  31ickle's  first  biographer  terms  it,  if  we  could  see  any 
rationality  in  the  author  expecting  so  much  more  from  one  individual,  for  his 
labours,  than  from  another. 

During  the  progress  of  his  translation,  Mickle  composed  a  tragedy,  under  the 
title  of  the  Siege  of  Marseilles,  Avhich  was  shown  to  Garrick,  and  rejected 
on  account  of  its  want  of  stage  effect  It  was  then  revised  and  altered  by  3]r 
Home,  author  of  the  tragedy  of  Douglas  ;  and  a  proposal  was  made  to  the  au- 
thor to  bring  it  forward  in  the  Edinburgh  theatre.  This  idea  was  afterwards 
abandoned,  and  the  tragedy  remained  in  abeyance  till  the  conclusion  of  the 
Lusiad,  when  the  author  made  another  effort  to  bring  it  out  on  the  London 
stage.  It  was  shown  to  Mr  Harris  of  Covent  Garden,  and  again  rejected.  Af- 
ter this  repulse,  Mickle  relinquished  all  expectations  of  advantage  from  the 
theatre,  though  he  permitted  the  unfortunate  play  to  be  shown  to  Sheridan, 
from  whom  he  never  again  received  it. 

The  Lusiad  was  so  well  received,  that  a  second  edition  was  found  necessary 
in  1779.  In  the  same  year,  Mickle  published  a  pamphlet  on  the  India  ques- 
tion, uhich  was  at  one  time  expected  to  obtain  for  him  some  marks  even  of  royal 
favour.  In  May,  the  most  fortunate  incident  in  his  life  took  place.  His  friend, 
Mr  Johnston,  formerly  governor  of  South  Carolina,  was  then  appointed  to  the 
command  of  the  Roniney  man-of-war,  and  Mickle,  being  chosen  by  him  as  his 
secretary,  went  out  to  sea  in  his  company,  in  order  to  partake  of  whatever  good 
fortune  he  might  encounter,  during  a  cruise  against  the  Spaniards.  In  Novem- 
ber, he  arrived  at  Lisbon,  where  he  was  received  with  very  flattering  marks  of  at- 
tention, and  stayed  six  months,  during  which  time  he  collected  many  traits  of  the 
Portuguese  character  and  customs,  with  the  intention,  never  fulfilled,  of  com- 
bining them  iifa  book.      During  his  residence  in  Portugal,  he  wrote  his  best 


JOHN  MILLAR.  33 


poem,  Altnada  Hill,  which  was  published  in  1781.  The  crujse  had  been  highly 
successful,  and  Mickle,  being  appointed  joint  agent  for  the  prizes,  was  sent 
home  to  superintend  the  legal  proceedings  connected  with  their  condemnation. 
His  own  share  of  the  results  was  very  considerable,  and,  together  with  the  for- 
tune he  acquired  by  his  wife,  whom  he  married  in  June,  1782,  at  once  established 
liis  independence.  The  remainder  of  his  life  was  spent  in  literary  leisure,  at 
Wheatley,  in  Oxfordshire,  where  he  died,  October  25,  1788,  after  a  short  ill- 
ness, leaving  one  son.  Mickle's  poems  are  not  voluminous,  and  have  been 
eclipsed,  like  so  much  of  the  other  verse  of  the  last  century,  by  the  infinitely 
superior  productions  of  the  present  or  immediately  by-past  age.  Many  of 
them,  however,  show  considerable  energy  of  thought ;  others,  great  sweetness 
of  versification  ;  and  his  translation  has  obtained  the  rank  of  a  classic.  It  is  not 
to  be  overlooked,  moreover,  that  the  authorship  of  one  exquisite  song  in  his 
native  dialect,  Colins'  Welcome,  is  ascribed  to  him,  though  not  upon  definite 
grounds. 

After  Mickle's  death,  his  Scottish  creditors  revived  their  claims  upon  his  ex- 
ecutors. An  Edinburgh  agent,  named  Henderson,  having  got  the  debts  vested 
in  his  own  person,  raised  an  action  in  England  for  their  recovery.  Not  having 
furnished  himself  with  the  necessary  vouchers,  he  lost  his  action,  with  costs, 
which  the  executors  employed  another  Scottish  agent  to  recover.  This  latter 
individual — to  whom  we  are  indebted  for  some  of  the  information  in  the  pre- 
sent memoir — being  aware  that  the  debts  might  have  still  been  available  in  a 
Scottish  court,  succeeded  in  getting  the  business  managed  extra-judicially  ;  so 
that  the  poet's  representatives  were  no  more  troubled  with  his  Scottish  creditors. 

MILLAR,  John,  professor  of  law  in  the  university  of  Glasgow,  and  author 
of  the  Historical  "View  of  the  English  Government,  was  born  on  the  22nd 
of  June,  1735,  in  the  parish  of  Shotts,  of  which  his  father,  the  Rev.  Mr  James 
Millar,  was  minister.  Two  years  after  his  birth,  his  father  was  translated  to 
Hamilton,  and  he  was  hiniself  placed  under  the  charge  of  his  uncle,  Mr  John 
Millar  of  Milhaugh,  in  the  neighbouring  parish  of  Blantyre,  where  he  spent 
almost  all  his  early  years.  Having  been  taught  to  read  by  his  uncle,  he  was 
placed  in  1742,  at  the  school  of  Hamilton,  in  order  to  be  instructed  in  Latin 
and  Greek.  In  1746,  being  designed  for  the  church,  he  went  to  Glasgow 
college,  where  he  distinguished  himself  as  an  attentive  and  intelligent  student. 
He  had  the  advantage  of  the  society  of  Dr  Cullen,  (then  professor  of  chemistry 
at  Glasgow,)  to  whose  wife  he  was  related,  and  of  the  acquaintance  of  other  per- 
sons distinguished  by  their  intelligence.  He  was  particularly  fortunate  in  ob- 
taining the  friendship  of  Dr  Adam  Smith,  whose  lectures  and  conversation  first 
directed  his  attention  to  the  particular  line  of  research  in  which  he  afterwards 
became  so  eminent.  As  his  mind  expanded,  he  found  that  the  clerical  pro- 
fession was  not  agreeable  to  his  tastes  or  faculties,  and  he  accordingly  adopted 
the  resolution  of  studying  for  the  Scottish  bar.  About  the  time  when  his  col- 
lege studies  were  finished,  he  became  preceptor  to  the  eldest  son  of  lord  Kanies, 
in  whose  society  he  spent  two  years,  during  which  he  formed  an  intimacy  with 
David  Hume  and  other  eminent  persons.  "  It  seldom  happens,"  says  the 
Edinburgh  Review,  "  that  we  can  trace  the  genealogy  of  a  literary  progeny  so 
correctly  as  the  two  circumstances  which  have  now  been  mentioned,  enable  us 
to  do  that  of  Mr  Millar's  future  studies.  It  is  perfectly  evident  to  all  who  are 
acquainted  with  their  writings,  that  his  speculations  are  all  formed  upon  the 
model  of  those  of  lord  Kames  and  Dr  Smith  ;  and  that  his  merit  consists  almost 
entirely  in  the  accuracy  with  which  he  surveyed,  and  the  sagacity  with  which 
he  pursued,  the  path  which  they  had  the  merit  of  discovering.  It  was  one 
great  object  of  those  original  authors  to  trace  back  the  history  of  society  to  its 


31  JOHN  MILLAR. 


most  simple  and  universal  element  ;  to  resolve  almost  all  that  has  been  ascribed 
to  positive  institution,  to  the  spontaneous  iind  irresistible  development  of  cer^ 
tain  obvious  principles, — and  to  show  Avith  how  little  contrivance  or  polititsil 
wisdom  the  most  complicated  and  apparently  artificial  schemes  of  policy  might 
have  been  erected.  This  is  very  nearly  the  precise  definition  of  what  Mr  Mil- 
lar aimed  at  accomplishing  in  his  lectures  and  his  publications  ;  and  when  we 
find  that  he  attended  the  lectures  of  Dr  Smith,  and  lived  in  the  family  of  lord 
Karnes,  we  cannot  hesitate  to  ascribe  the  bent  of  his  genius,  and  the  peculiar 
tenor  of  his  speculations,  to  the  impressions  he  must  have  received  from  those 
early  occurrences." 

Mr  Millar  was  called  to  the  bar  in  1760,  and  was  soon  looked  upon  as  one  of 
the  individuals  likely  to  rise  to  eminence  in  his  profession  ;  but  having  married 
at  this  early  stage  of  his  career,  and  finding  it  improbable  tliat  his  labours  at 
the  bar  would  for  some  years  be  adequate  to  his  support,  he  was  tempted  by  an 
opportune  vacancy  in  the  chair  of  civil  law  in  Glasgow  college,  to  apply  for 
that  comparatively  obscure  situation.  Having  been  successful  in  his  object, 
(1761,)  he  applied  himself  with  all  the  ardour  of  an  uncommonly  active  and 
sanguine  temperament,  to  the  improvement  of  the  class.  Heretofore  the  pro- 
fessorship of  civil  law  at  Glasgow  had  been  in  a  gi'eat  measure  useless  to  the 
community.  The  students  were  seldom  more  than  four  in  number,  and  some- 
times even  less.  The  late  professor,  however,  had  broken  through  the  estab- 
lished usage  of  lecturing  in  Latin,  and  Mr  Millar  not  only  persevered  in  the 
same  popular  course,  but  adopted  other  means  calculated  to  attract  a  larger  au- 
dience. Instead  of  writing  his  lectures — a  practice  which  generally  induces  the 
professor  to  adhere  to  one  train  of  ideas,  and  resist  the  introduction  of  all  pro- 
gressive improvements,  he  delivered  them  extempore,  and  thus  not  only  took  a 
prompt  advantage  of  every  new  view  that  arose  in  the  progress  of  his  science, 
but  enabled  himself  to  introduce  familiar  and  lively  illustrations,  which  were 
calculated  to  excite  and  keep  alive  the  attention  of  his  students  to  an  uncommon 
degree.  Discarding  the  old  academical  pomp,  he  reduced  himself  to  a  level 
with  his  hearers  ;  he  talked  to  them,  and  carefully  observed  that  they  under- 
stood all  that  he  said,  and  acceded  to  all  his  propositions.  "  His  manner," 
says  the  Edinburgh  Review,'  "  was  familiar  and  animated,  approaching  more 
nearly  to  gayety  than  enthusiasm  ;  and  the  facts  which  he  had  to  state,  or  the 
elementary  positions  he  had  to  lay  down,  were  given  in  the  simple,  clear,  and 
unembarrassed  diction  in  which  a  well-bred  man  would  tell  a  story  or  deliver 
an  opinion  in  society.  All  objections  that  occurred,  were  stated  in  a  forcible, 
clear,  and  lively  manner  ;  and  the  answers,  which  were  often  thrown  into  a 
kind  of  dramatic  form,  were  delivered  with  all  the  simplicity,  vivacity,  and  easy 
phraseology  of  good  conversation.  His  illustrations  were  always  familiar,  and 
often  amusing ;  and  while  nothing  could  be  more  forcible  or  conclusive  than 
the  reasonings  which  he  employed,  the  tone  and  style  in  which  they  were  de- 
livered gave  them  an  easy  and  attractive  air,  and  imparted,  to  a  profound  and 
learned  discussion,  the  charms  of  an  animated  and  interesting  conversation. 
No  individual,  indeed,  ever  did  more  to  break  down  the  old  and  unfortunate 
distinction  between  the  wisdom  of  the  academician  and  the  wisdom  of  the  n>an 
of  the  world  :  and  as  most  of  the  topics  which  fell  under  his  discussion  were  of 
a  kind  that  did  not  lose  their  interest  beyond  the  walls  of  a  college,  so  the 
views  which  he  took  of  them,  and  the  language  in  which  they  were  conveyed, 
were  completely  adapted  to  the  actual  condition  of  society  ;  and  prepared  those 
to  whom  they  had  been  made  familiar,  to  maintain  and  express  them  with  pre- 

•  The  aitide  we  are  now  quoting  «a5  probably  the  composition  of  Mr  Jeffrey,  who,  if  we 
are  not  misUiken,  vras  a  pupil  of  Mr  Millitr. 


pupi 


JOHN  MILLAR.  35 


cision,  without  running  the   least  risk  of  an  imputation   of  pedantry  or  ig- 
norance. 

"  It  will  be  admitted  to  have  required  no  ordinary  share  of  intrepidity  and 
confidence  in  the  subsUintial  merits  of  his  instructions,  to  have  enabled  a  profes- 
sor thus  to  lay  aside  the  shield  of  academical  stateliness,  and  not  only  expose 
his  thoughts  in  the  undress  of  extemporaneous  expression,  but  to  exhibit  them, 
nithout  any  of  the  advantages  of  imposing  or  authoritative  pretences,  on  the  fair 
level  of  equal  discussion,  and  with  no  other  recommendatioiis  but  those  of 
superior  expediency  or  reason."  He  carried  his  system,  however,  even  to  a 
more  hazardous  extreme  :  at  the  conclusion  of  every  lecture,  he  invited  his 
students  to  gather  around  him,  and  in  easy  conversation  to  discuss  the  principles 
he  had  been  expounding.  It  has  been  justly  remarked,  that  no  teacher  who 
did  not  possess  an  unusually  minute  and  extensive  knowledge  of  his  subject 
could  have  ventured  upon  such  a  practice  ;  which,  however,  in  his  case,  was  at- 
tended with  the  best  effects  upon  his  pupils.  Such,  altogether,  was  the  success 
which  attended  his  prelections,  that  the  class  was  speedily  increased  to  about 
forty,  and  the  pi'ofessor  in  the  Edinburgh  college,  after  seeing  his  students  pro- 
portionally diminished,  was  obliged  to  abandon  the  practice  of  lecturing  in 
Latin,  in  which  he  had  persevered  till  Mr  Millar's  reputation  as  an  effective 
lecturer  was  completely  established. 

During  the  whole  time  of  his  connexion  with  Glasgow  college,  Mr  Millar 
was  a  zealous  and  active  member  of  the  Literary  Society,  a  club  chiefly  formed 
of  the  professors,  and  whose  practice  it  was  to  meet  weekly,  and,  after  hearing 
an  essay  read  by  some  member  in  rotation,  to  discuss  the  views  which  it  ad- 
vanced. The  tenor  of  Mr  Millar's  life  was  little  marked  by  events.  He  spent 
his  time  between  the  college  and  a  small  farm  called  Whitemoss  (near  Kilbride,) 
which  he  took  great  pleasure  in  improving.  Excepting,  indeed,  two  visits  to 
the  metropolis  in  1774  and  1792,  and  the  publication  of  his  two  books,  there 
is  hardly  any  incident  to  which  we  find  our  notice  particularly  called. 

Amongst  his  lectures  on  jurisprudence,  those  which  referred  to  the  subject  of 
government  were  remarked  to  possess  an  unusual  interest.  In  these  he  de- 
livered a  theoretical  history  of  the  progress  of  society,  through  the  various  stages 
of  savage,  pastoral,  agricultural,  and  commercial  life  ;  with  a  view  of  the  insti- 
tutions and  changes  which  would  naturally  be  suggested  in  their  political  and 
domestic  habits  by  their  successive  transformation  ;  illustrating  his  remarks  by 
an  historical  review  of  all  the  ancient  governments,  and  more  particularly  by  that 
of  Great  Britain.  The  interest  which  he  found  they  excited,  induced  him,  in 
1771,  to  publish  a  short  treatise  on  the  subject,  which  was  favourably  received. 
Even  to  cursory  readers,  it  was  calculated  to  afford  amusement,  by  the  various 
views  of  human  nature  which  it  exhibited,  and  by  the  singularity  of  many  of 
the  traits  of  manners,  as  well  as  of  national  characters  and  institutions,  which  it 
traced  to  their  sources.  Some  years  afterwards,  Mr  Millar  was  induced,  by  the 
prevalence  of  what  he  conceived  to  be  erroneous  ideas  respecting  the  origin  of 
the  English  government,  to  expand  his  views  on  that  subject,  with  a  view  to 
publication.  After  a  careful  preparation,  he  published,  in  1787,  his  Histori- 
cal View  of  the  English  Government,  from  the  Settlement  of  the  Saxons  in 
Britain,  to  the  Accession  of  the  House  of  Stewart.  By  subsequent  labour  Mr 
Millar  intended  to  bring  down  the  history  to  his  own  time,  but  he  only 
completed  it  to  the  Revolution,  and  a  new  and  posthumous  edition  in  1803,  in 
four  volumes  8vo,  comprised  that  period.  As  a  writer,  Mr  31illar  retained  lit- 
tle of  that  vivacity  and  fertility  of  illustration,  which  gave  such  a  charm  to  his 
extemporaneous  lectures.  The  style  of  his  compositions  is  nevertheless  forcible 
and  distinct.     His  Historical  View,  containing  much  inquiry  into  the  remote 


86  JOSEPH  MITCHELTj. 


periods  of  our  government,  and  many  distinctions  which  it  requires  some  efTort 
of  attention  fully  to  underetand,  could  not  be  of  a  very  popular  nature ;  but  it 
has  been  justly  appreciated  by  those  who  Mere  fitted  by  their  habits  and 
previous  studies  to  take  an  interest  in  such  researches;  and,  considering  the 
nature  of  the  subjects  of  which  it  treats,  its  having  gone  through  three  editions 
is  no  slight  proof  of  public  approbation. 

"  The  distinguishing  feature  of  Mr  Millar's  intellect,"  says  the  Edinburgh 
Review,  "  was,  the  great  clearness  and  accuracy  of  his  apprehension,  and  the 
singular  sagacity  with  which  he  seized  upon  the  true  statement  of  a  question, 
and  disentangled  the  point  in  dispute  from  the  mass  of  sophisticated  argument 
in  which  it  was  frequently  involved.  His  great  delight  was  to  simplify  an  intri- 
cate question,  and  to  reduce  a  perplexed  and  elaborate  system  of  argument  to  a 
few  plain  problems  of  common  sense.  *  *  To  form  a  sound  judgment 
upon  all  points  of  substantial  importance,  appeared  to  him  to  require  little 
more  than  the  free  and  independent  use  of  that  vulgar  sense  on  which 
no  man  is  entitled  to  value  himself;  and  he  was  apt  to  look  with  suf- 
ficient contempt  upon  the  elaborate  and  ingenious  errors  into  which  philo- 
sophers are  so  apt  to  reason  themselves.  To  bring  down  the  dignity  of 
such  false  science,  and  to  expose  the  emptiness  of  ostentatious  and  pedantic 
reasoners,  was  therefore  one  of  his  favourite  employments.  He  had,  indeed, 
no  prejudices  of  veneration  in  his  nature  ;  his  respect  was  reserved  for  those 
who  had  either  made  discoveries  of  practical  ability,  or  combined  into  a  system 
the  scattered  truths  of  speculation."  For  the  remainder  of  a  very  elaborate  esti- 
mate of  the  genius  of  professor  31illar,  we  must  refer  those  who  take  an  unusual 
interest  in  the  subject,  to  the  Review  itself.*  We  may  only  mention,  what 
every  one  will  have  anticipated  from  the  preceding  extract,  that  3Ir  Millar  was 
of  whig  politics,  bordering  on  republicanism,  and  that  his  sentiments  had  con- 
siderable influence  with  his  pupils,  some  of  whom,  as  lord  Jeffrey,  lord  chief 
commissioner  Adam,  of  the  Jury  court,  and  the  earl  of  Lauderdale,  were  dis- 
tinguished on  that  side  of  the  great  political  question  which  so  long  divided 
public  opinion  in  this  country. 

In  his  private  character,  Mr  Millar  was  extremely  amiable.  His  conversation 
was  cheerful,  unatfected,  and  uncommonly  agreeable.  His  countenance  was 
very  animated  and  expressive ;  his  stature  about  the  middle  size  ;  his  person 
strong,  active,  and  athletic,  rather  than  elegant.  Though  devoted  chiefly  to 
metaphysical  inquiries,  he  was  extensively  acqiiainted  with  the  natural  sciences, 
with  history,  with  the  belles  leltres,  and,  indeed,  almost  all  branches  of  human 
learning.  He  retained  good  health  till  the  end  of  the  year  1790,  when  he 
was  seized  with  a  very  dangerous  inflamir.atory  complaint,  from  which  he  re- 
covered to  a  certain  extent ;  but  a  year  and  a  half  after,  having  exposed  him- 
self to  cold,  he  was  seized  with  pleurisy,  by  which  he  was  carried  off.  May  30, 
1 801.  Professor  Millar  left  four  sons  and  six  daughters.  A  full  memoir  of  his 
life  was  ^vritten  by  his  nephew,  Mr  John  Craig,  and  prefixed  to  a  fourth 
edition  of  his  Origin  of  the  Distinction  of  Ranks,  published  in  1 808. 

MITCHELL,  Joseph,  a  dramatist  of  the  eighteenth  century,  was  bom  about 
the  year  1684.  His  father,  who  is  described  as  a  stone-cutter,  appeai-s  to  have 
been  in  decent  circumstances,  as  he  gave  his  son  a  liberal  education,  includ- 
ing a  course  at  one  of  the  Scottish  universities,  but  which  of  them  is  not  now 
known.  On  completing  his  education,  Mitchell  repaired  to  London,  with  the 
view  of  pushing  his  fortune  in  that  metropolis,  and  was  lucky  enough  to  get  into 
favour  with  the  earl  of  Stair  and  Sir  Robert  Walpole.  How  he  effected  this, 
whether  by  the  force  of  his  talents,  or  by  what  other  means,  is  not  known ;  but 

»  Vol.  iii.  p.  158. 


DR.  MONRO,  PRIMUS.  37 


his  hold  on  the  patronage  of  the  latter  especially,  seems  to  have  been  singularly 
strong,  as  Sir  Robert  almost  entirely  supported  him  during  his  after  life. 
The  zeal  and  gratitude  of  Mitchell,  in  return  for  this  benevolence,  and  which 
took  the  shape  of  literary  elusion,  sometimes  in  behalf  of,  and  sometimes  compii- 
mentary  to  his  patron,  became  so  marked,  as  to  procure  for  him  the  title  of  Sir 
Robert  Walpole's  poet.  The  recltless  and  extravagant  habits  of  Mitchell,  how- 
ever, kept  him  constantly  in  a  state  of  great  pecuniary  distress,  notwithstanding 
the  liberal  patronage  of  Walpole  ;  and  so  inveterate  were  these  habits,  that  a 
legacy  of  several  thousand  pounds,  which  was  left  him  by  an  uncle  of  his  wife, 
scarcely  afforded  him  even  a  temporary  relief. 

Although  Mitchell's  abilities  were  of  but  a  very  moderate  order,  he  yet  ranked 
amongst  iiis  friends  many  of  the  most  eminent  men  of  his  times,  particularly 
Mr  Aaron  Hill.  To  this  gentleman  he  on  one  occasion  communicated  his  dis- 
tressed condition,  and  sought  assistance  from  him.  Mr  Hill  was  unable  to  af- 
ford him  any  pecuniary  relief,  but  he  generously  presented  him  with  both 
the  profits  and  reputation  of  a  little  dramatic  piece,  entitled  Fatal  ICxtrava- 
gance ;  a  piece  which  he  seems  ingeniously  to  have  adapted  at  once  to  relieve 
and  reprove  the  object  of  his  benevolence.  This  play  was  acted  and  printed  in 
Mr  Mitchell's  name,  and  the  profits  accruing  from  it  were  considerable  ;  but 
though  he  accepted  the  latter,  he  was  candid  enough  to  disclaim  the  merit  of 
being  its  author,  and  took  every  opportunity  of  undeceiving  the  world  on  this 
point,  and  of  acknowledging  his  obligations  to  Mr  Hill. 

Of  Mitchell,  there  is  little  more  known.  His  talents  were  not  of  a  suf- 
ficiently high  order  to  attract  much  notice  while  he  lived,  or  to  prompt  any 
inquiry  after  his  death.  He  died  on  the  6th  July,  1738.  The  following  dra- 
matic productions  appear  under  his  name,  but  the  last  only  is  really  his,  and  it 
is  not  Avithout  considerable  merit : — Fatal  Extravagance,  a  tragedy,  8vo,  1720  ; 
Fatal  Extravagance,  a  tragedy,  enlarged,  12mo,  1726  ;  and  The  Highland  Fair, 
an  opera,  Bvo,  1731.  In  1729,  he  published,  besides,  two  octavo  volumes  of 
miscellaneous  poetry. 

MONRO,  Alexander,  M.  D.,  usually  called  Secundus,  to  distinguish  him  from 
his  father,  an  eminent  medical  writer  and  teacher.  Before  entering  upon  the 
memoirs  of  this  individual,  it  is  necessary  to  give  some  account  of  his  father, 
Dr  Monro,  Primus,  the  founder  of  the  medical  school  of  Edinburgh,  who,  hav- 
ing been  born  in  London,  is  not  precisely  entitled  to  appear  in  this  work  under 
a  separate  head. 

Dr  Monro,  Primus,  was  born  in  London,  September  19,  1697.  He  was  the 
son  of  Mr  John  Monro,  a  surgeon  in  the  army  of  king  William,  descended  from 
the  family  of  Monro  of  Milton,  in  the  north  of  Scotland.  His  mother  was  of 
the  family  of  Forbes  of  CuUoden.  Having  retired  from  the  army,  Mr  Monro 
settled  in  Edinburgh  about  the  beginning  of  the  eighteenth  century,  and  enter- 
ing the  college  of  surgeons,  soon  acquired  considerable  practice.  His  favourite 
employment,  however,  was  to  superintend  the  education  of  his  son,  whose  talents 
he  perceived  at  an  early  period.  Though  medical  and  anatomical  chairs  at  that 
time  existed  in  the  university  of  Edinburgh,  they  were  quite  inefhcient,  and 
hence  it  was  found  necessary  to  send  young  Monro  elsewhere  for  the  completion 
of  his  education.  He  went  successively  to  London,  Paris,  and  Leyden,  and  be- 
came the  attentive  pupil  of  the  great  men  who  then  taught  at  those  universities, 
among  whom  were  Cheselden,  Hawksby,  Chowel,  Bouquet,  Thibaut,  and  Boe^r- 
haave.  Not  content  with  listening  to  the  instructions  of  these  teachers,  he 
studied  assiduously  by  himself,  especially  in  the  department  of  anatomy.  While 
attending  Cheselden  in  London,  lie  made  numerous  anatomical  preparations, 
which  he  sent  home  ;  and,  while  here,  even  laid  the  foundation  of  his  important 


38  DR.  MONRO,  PRIMUS. 


work  on  the  bones,  a  sketch  of  which  he  read  before  a  society  of  young  surgeons 
and  physicians,  of  which  he  had  been  elected  a  member.  Before  his  return,  his 
father  had  presented  several  of  his  preparations  to  the  college,  so  that  his  skill 
was  already  well  known.  Tlje  titular  professor  of  anatomy  to  the  college  of 
surgeons  had  even  formed  tiie  resolution  of  relinquishing  his  appointment  in 
favour  of  this  promising  young  anatomist,  who,  he  thought,  would  be  able  to 
convert  it  into  an  useful  profession.  Accordingly,  on  his  arrival  in  Edinburgh, 
in  1719,  when  only  twenty-two  years  of  age,  he  was  nominated  to  this  dignity. 
Early  in  the  ensuing  year,  he  coumienced  the  first  regular  course  of  anatomical 
and  chirurgic^l  lectures  and  demonstrations,  which  were  ever  delivered  in  that 
city.  From  his  abilities  and  zeal,  and  the  preparations  with  which  he  illustrated 
his  discourses,  success  could  hardly  fail  to  attend  his  labours.  It  could  not,  how- 
ever, be  expected  that  an  anatomical  and  surgical  course  alone,  however  valu- 
able, or  a  single  professor,  however  great  his  abilities,  could  be  sufficient  to 
raise  the  fame  of  a  medical  school,  which  had  to  combat  many  rival  seminaries 
of  deserved  eminence.  It  became,  therefore,  a  matter  of  the  utmost  consequence 
to  obtain  such  associates  as  could  second  and  support  his  labours.  His  father, 
to  whose  zeal  fur  the  establishment  of  a  medical  school  in  Edinburgh,  much  of 
his  son's  success  is  to  be  attributed,  prevailed  on  Dr  Alston,  then  king's  botanist 
for  Scotland,  to  begin  a  coui-se  of  lectures  on  the  materia  medica.  Me  also  took 
an  expedient  for  improving  his  son's  mode  of  lecturing.  Without  the  young 
teacher's  knowledge,  he  invited  the  president  and  fellows  of  the  college  of  phy- 
sicians, and  the  whole  company  of  surgeons,  to  honour  the  first  day's  lecture 
with  their  presence.  This  unexpected  company  threw  the  doctor  into  sucii 
confusion,  that  he  forgot  the  words  of  the  discourse,  which  he  had  written  and 
committed  to  memory.  Having  left  his  papers  at  home,  he  was  at  a  loss  for  a 
little  time  what  to  do  ;  but,  with  much  presence  of  mind,  he  immediately  began 
to  show  some  of  the  anatomical  preparations,  in  order  to  gain  time  for  recollec- 
tion ;  and  very  soon  resolved  not  to  attempt  to  repeat  the  discourse  which  ho 
had  prepared,  but  to  express  himself  in  such  language  as  should  occur  to  hiui 
from  the  subject,  which  he  was  confident  that  he  understood.  The  experiment 
succeeded  ;  he  delivered  himself  well,  and  gained  great  applause  as  a  good  and 
"ready  speaker.  Thus  discovering  his  own  strength,  he  resolved  henceforth 
never  to  recite  any  written  discourse  in  teaching,  and  acquired  a  free  and  ele- 
gant style  of  delivering  lectures. 

The  want  of  lectures  on  other  branches,  which  still  remained  as  an  obstacle 
to  the  creation  of  a  medical  school,  was  soon  altogether  overcome  by  the  zeal  of 
the  elder  Monro,  through  whose  induence  his  son  and  Dr  Alston  were  put  upon 
the  college  establishment,  together  with  co-operative  lectureships,  undertaken  by 
Drs  Sinclair,  Rutherford,  and  Plumer.  Such  was  the  origin  of  the  medical 
school  of  Edinburgh,  which  for  a  century  has  been  one  of  the  most  eminent 
and  most  frequented  in  Europe.  The  system  was  completed  in  the  course  of  a 
few  years,  by  the  establishment  of  tiie  Royal  Infirmary  at  Edinburgh,  w'hich  was 
chieHy  urged  forward  by  Ur  Monro,  with  a  view  to  the  advantage  of  his  pupils, 
and  by  Ueorge  Drummond,  the  lord  provost  of  the  city.  In  this  institution,  Dr 
Monro  commenced  clinical  lectures  on  the  surgical,  and  Rutherford  a  similar 
course  on  the  medical  cases.  The  former,  in  his  various  capacities  of  physician, 
lecturer,  and  manager,  took  an  active  part  in  the  whole  business  of  the  Infir- 
mary. He  personally  attended  the  opening  of  every  body  ;  and  he  not  only 
dictated  to  the  students  an  accurate  report  of  the  dissection,  but,  with  nice  dis- 
crimination, contrasted  the  diseased  and  sound  state  of  every  organ.  Thus,  in 
his  own  person,  he  afforded  to  the  students  a  conspicuous  example  of  tiie  ad- 
vantages of  early  anatomical  pursuits,  iis  the  happiest  foundation  fur  a  medical 


DR.  MONRO,  PRIMUS.  39 


superstructure.  His  being  at  once  engaged  in  two  departments,  the  anatomical 
theatre  and  the  clinical  chair,  furnished  him  uith  opportunities  for  experiment 
both  on  the  dead  and  living  body,  and  placed  liim  in  the  most  favourable  situa< 
tion  for  the  improvement  of  medicine ;  and  from  these  opportunities  he  derived 
every  possible  advantage  which  they  could  afford. 

None  of  the  professors  connected  with  medicine  in  the  Edinburgh  university, 
contributed  so  much  to  the  formation  of  the  school,  as  Dr  Monro,  who  was  inde- 
fatigable in  the  labours  of  his  office,  and  in  the  cultivation  of  his  art,  and  soon 
made  himself  known  to  the  professional  world  by  a  variety  of  ingenious  and 
valuable  publications.  During  a  period  of  nearly  forty  years,  he  continued, 
without  any  interruption,  to  deliver  a  course  of  lectures,  extending  from  the  end 
of  October  to  the  beginning  of  May  ;  and  so  great  was  the  reputation  which  he 
acquired,  that  students  flocked  to  him  from  the  most  distant  parts  of  the  king- 
dom. His  fii-st  and  principal  publication  was  his  Osteology,  or  Treatise  on  the 
Anatomy  of  the  Bones,  which  appeared  in  1726,  when  he  was  as  yet  under 
thirty  years  of  age.  This  treatise,  though  intended  originally  for  the  use  of  his 
pupils,  speedily  became  popular  among  the  faculty  in  general,  and  was  trans- 
lated into  most  of  the  languages  of  Europe.  The  French  edition,  in  folio, 
published  by  M.  Sue,  demonstrator  of  sculpture  to  the  Royal  Academy  of  Paris, 
was  adorned  with  masterly  engravings.  In  the  later  editions,  Dr  Monro  added 
a  concise  Neurology^  or  description  of  the  nerves,  and  a  very  accurate  account 
of  the  lacteal  system  and  thoracic  duct. 

In  every  society  at  Edinburgh,  for  the  improvement  of  arts,  or  of  letters,  Dr 
Monro  was  one  of  the  most  distinguished  ornaments.  He  was  a  member  of  the 
Colleges  of  Physicians  and  Surgeons  ;  of  the  Medical  Society  ;  of  the  Philoso- 
phical Society  ;  of  the  Select  Society  for  questions  in  morality  and  politics  ; 
and  of  the  Society  for  promoting  arts,  sciences,  and  manufactures  in  Scotland. 
He  was  also  a  member  of  several  foreign  societies,  to  which  he  had  been  recom- 
mended by  his  great  reputation.  It  was  to  his  zeal  and  activity  that  the  world 
was  chiefly  indebted  for  the  six  volumes  of  Medical  Essays  and  Observations,  by 
a  society  at  Edinburgh,  the  first  of  which  appeared  in  1732.  Dr  Monro  acted 
as  editor  of  this  work,  and  contributed  to  it  many  valuable  papers  on  anatomi- 
cal, physiological,  and  practical  subjects ;  the  most  elaborate  of  which  was  an 
Essay  on  the  Nutrition  of  the  Foetus,  in  three  dissei'tations.  On  this  society  be- 
ing afterwards  revived  under  a  different  title,  Dr  3Ionro  again  took  an  active 
part  in  its  proceedings  as  one  of  the  vice-presidents,  and  was  a  liberal  contribu- 
tor to  its  publications,  of  which  three  volumes  appeared,  under  the  title  of  Es- 
says, Physical  and  Literary.  His  last  publication  was  an  Account  of  the  Suc- 
cess of  Inoculation  in  Scotland,  written  originally  as  an  answer  to  some  inquiries 
addressed  to  him  from  the  committee  of  the  faculty  of  physicians  at  Paris,  ap- 
pointed to  investigate  the  merits  of  tiie  practice.  It  was  afterwards  published 
at  the  request  of  several  of  his  friends,  and  contributed  to  extend  the  practice 
in  Scotland.  Besides  the  works  which  he  published,  he  left  several  manuscripts, 
written  at  different  times,  of  which  the  following  are  the  principal  :  A  History 
of  Anatomical  Writers, — an  Encheiresis  Anatomica, — Heads  of  many  of  his 
Lectures, — a  Treatise  on  Wounds  and  Tumours, — a  Treatise  on  Comparative 
Anatomy, — and  an  oration  De  Cuticula.  The  last  two  were  printed  in  an  edi- 
tion  of  his  whole  works,  in  one  volume,  4to,  published  by  his  son,  Dr  Alexander 
3Ionro,  1781. 

The  advance  of  age  and  infirmity,  induced  Dr  Monro  to  resign  his  chair,  in 
1759,  in  favour  of  his  son  ;  but  he  continued  almost  to  the  close  of  his  life  to 
perform  his  duties  in  the  Koyal  Infirmary,  Several  of  his  latter  years  were 
jmbittered  by  a  severe  disease,  a  fungous  ulcer  in  the  bladder  and  rectum  ; 


40  DR.  MONRO,  SECUNDUS. 


but  he  bore  his  distresses  with  great  patience  and  resignation,  and  at  last  died 
in  perfect  cahnness,  July  10,  I7(i7,  in  the  seventieth  year  of  his  age. 

Dr  3Ionro  had  in  early  life  married  Miss  Isabella  3Iacdonald,  daughter  of 
Sir  Donald  3Iacdonald  of  Sleat,  by  whom  he  liad  eight  children,  four  of  whom, 
three  sons  and  a  daugliter,  reached  maturity.  Two  of  his  sons  became  distin- 
guished  physicians — namely,  Dr  Donald  3Ionro,  who  attained  an  eminent  prac- 
tice in  London,  and  became  the  author  of  several  valuable  treatises, — an  Essay 
on  Dropsy,  1765 — on  the  Diseases  of  3Iilitary  Hospitals,  1764 — on  Mineral 
Waters,  1771 — on  preserving  the  Health  of  Soldiers,  &a, — and  died  in  1802; 
and  Dr  Alexander  3Ionro  secundus,  of  whose  life  we  shall  proceed  to  give  an 
extended  notice. 

Dr  Monro  secundus,  was  the  youngest  son  of  Dr  Alexander  Monro  primus, 
whose  life  has  just  been  commemorated,  and  was  born  at  Edinburgh,  on  the 
20th  of  March,  1733.  He  learned  the  first  rudiments  of  classical  education, 
under  the  tuition  of  Mr  Mundell,  then  an  eminent  teacher  of  languages,  at 
Edinburgh.  At  the  university  of  his  native  city,  Dr  Monro  went  through  the 
ordinary  course  of  philosophy,  preparatory  to  his  medical  studies.  During  that 
course,  he  was  a  pupil  of  the  celebrated  Maclaurin,  for  Mathematics, — of  Sir 
John  Pringle,  for  ethics^ — and  of  Dr  Matthew  Stewart,  for  experimental  philo- 
sophy. About  the  1 8th  year  of  his  age,  he  entered  on  his  medical  studies  un> 
der  his  illustrious  father,  who,  from  his  lectures  and  writings,  had,  by  that  time, 
justly  obtained  very  great  celebrity.  Young  3Ionro  soon  became  a  very  useful 
assistant  to  his  father  in  the  dissecting-room,  and  was  highly  respected  for  his 
early  acquirements,  among  the  companions  of  his  studies  ;  several  of  whom,  Dr 
Hugh  Smith  of  London,  Dr  3Iatthew  Dobson  of  Liverpool,  Dr  William  Farr  of 
Plymouth,  and  some  others,  were  afterwards  justly  celebrated  in  the  annals  of 
medicine,  by  their  writings. 

Dr  Monro,  after  completing  the  academical  course  of  medical  study  at  Edin- 
burgh, under  Drs  Rutherford,  Plumer,  Sinclair,  Alston,  and  other  eminent  men, 
obtained  the  degree  of  Doctor  of  Medicine,  on  the  I7th  of  October,  1755.  On  that 
occasion,  he  published  and  defended  an  inaugural  dissertation,  De  Testibus  et  Se- 
mine  in  variis  Animalibus.  That  dissertation,  which  manifests  his  accurate 
knowledge  of  minute  anatomy,  was  illustrated  by  five  capital  engravings,  each  plate 
containing  several  different  figures ;  and  it  laid  the  foundation  of  the  important 
discoveries  which  he  afterwards  made  with  regard  to  the  lymphatic  system.  The 
public  testimony  which  Dr  Monro  thus  gave  of  his  anatomical  knowledge,  and 
the  reputation  which  he  had  acquired  both  as  a  demonstrator  and  lecturer,  when 
occasionally  assisting  his  father,  naturally  attracted  the  attention  of  the  patrons 
of  the  university  of  Edinburgh ;  and  to  secure  to  the  seminary  under  their  care, 
a  young  man  of  such  distinguished  abilities,  he  was,  on  the  12th  of  July,  1755, 
when  he  liad  but  just  entered  on  the  twenty-third  year  of  his  age,  admitted 
into  the  university  as  professor  of  anatomy  and  surgery,  in  conjunction  with  his 
father  ;  but  that  father,  still  in  the  vigour  of  life,  and  fully  able  to  execute  every 
part  of  the  duties  of  his  office,  did  not  require  the  immediate  assistance  of  his 
son.  Accordingly,  young  Monro,  after  finishing  his  academical  studies  at  home, 
resolved  to  prosecute  them  abroad.  With  this  intention,  he  visited  both  London 
and  Paris,  where  he  had  an  opportunity  of  being  a  pupil  of  the  most  eminent 
professors  in  these  cities.  But  his  foreign  studies  were  principally  prosecuted  at 
the  university  of  Berlin.  There  he  had  every  opportunity  of  improving  himself 
under  the  celebrated  professor  Meckell,  who  was  at  that  time  justly  esteemed 
one  of  the  first  anatomical  teachers  in  Europe.  During  his  residence  in  Berlin, 
he  was  not  only  a  pupil  at  the  prelections  of  Meckell,  but  lived  in  his  house,  and 
thus  enjoyed  the  benefit  of  his  instructions  both  in  public  and  private.     That 


DR.  MONRO,  SECUNDUS.  41 

from  these  sources,  his  natural  and  acquired  abilities  were  much  improved,  may 
readily  be  supposed  ;  and  he  himself  was  so  fully  sensible  of  what  he  owed  to  so 
eminent  a  preceptor  as  Meckell,  tliat  during  the  long  period  for  which  he  taught 
anatomy  at  Edinburgh,  he  allowed  not  a  single  year  to  pass  without  repeatedly 
expressing  his  gratitude,  for  the  instruction  he  had  received  under  the  roof  of 
this  .justly  celebrated  professor. 

From  Berlin,  Dr  Monro  returned  to  Edinburgh  in  summer  1758.  Immedi- 
ately upon  his  return,  he  was  admitted  a  licentiate  of  the  Koyal  College  of  Phy- 
sicians, and  entered  upon  actual  practice.  As  soon  as  the  regulations  of  the 
college  would  permit,  he  was  raised  to  the  rank  of  Fellowship,  and  took  his  seat 
as  a  member  of  that  respectable  body  on  the  1st  of  May,  1759.  After  that  date, 
for  more  than  half  a  century,  he  continued  to  exert  himself  with  unwearied  ac- 
tivity, not  only  as  a  professor  and  practitioner,  but  as  an  improver  of  the  heal- 
ing art,  and  of  our  knowledge  of  the  philosophy  and  structure  of  the  animal 
frame.  This  will  abundantly  appear  from  a  short  review  of  the  different  publi- 
cations with  which  he  has  enriched  the  treasury  of  medical  philosophy,  convey- 
ing important  instruction  both  to  his  contemporaries,  and  to  the  latest  posterity. 

Very  soon  after  he  settled  in  Edinburgh,  he  not  only  became  a  colleague  of 
his  father  in  the  college,  but  he  succeeded  him  also  as  secretary  to  the  Philoso- 
phical Society  of  Edinburgh.  In  the  volumes  published  by  the  society,  Dr 
Monro  first  appeared  as  an  author.  His  first  publication  was  printed  in  the  first 
volume  of  a  well  known  and  justly  celebrated  work,  entitled.  Essays  and  Obser- 
vations, Physical  and  Literary,  read  before  a  Society  in  Edinburgh,  and  pub- 
lished by  them.  This  first  volume  of  their  memoirs  appeared  in  1754,  and 
contains  two  anatomical  essays  by  Alexander  Monro,  student  of  medicine  in  the 
university  of  Edinburgh  ;  from  both  of  which  he  obtained  very  great  credit  as  an 
intelligent  and  industrious  young  anatomist.  In  their  second  volume,  published  in 
1756,  are  contained  also  two  articles  from  his  pen  ;  the  dissection  of  a  monster, 
and  the  history  of  a  genuine  volvulus  of  the  intestines  ;  both  of  which  served  ma- 
terially to  improve  the  philosophy  of  medicine,  and  to  do  credit  to  the  author. 
His  next  three  publications  were  more  of  a  controversial  nature,  than  calculated 
to  extend  our  knowledge  of  the  structure  or  philosophy  of  the  human  body. 
From  a  very  early  period,  as  appears  from  his  inaugural  dissertation,  he  had 
adopted  the  idea,  that  the  valvular  lymphatics  over  the  whole  of  the  animal 
body,  were  one  general  system  of  absorbents  :  and,  with  the  view  of  promulgat- 
ing this  doctrine,  he  published  at  Bei'lin,  in  1758,  a  short  treatise,  Ue  Venis 
Lymphaticis  Valvulosis.  The  grand  idea,  however,  which  this  short  treatise 
contained,  was  afterwards  claimed  by  Dr  William  Hunter  of  London  ;  and  this 
claim  drew  from  the  pen  of  Dr  Monro  two  other  publications, — Observations, 
Anatomical  and  Physiological,  wherein  Dr  Hunter's  claim  to  some  Discoveries, 
is  examined, — and,  Answer  to  the  Notes  on  the  Postscript  to  Observations  Ana- 
tomical and  Physiological.  Here,  the  only  difference  between  these  two 
eminent  men,  was,  not  with  regard  to  the  extent  or  use  of  the  valvular  lympha- 
tics, but  with  regard  to  the  merit  of  being  the  discoverer  of  their  use.  A  judg- 
ment on  that  controversy  is  now  of  very  little  importance  ;  and  perhaps  neither 
of  them  is  justly  entitled  to  the  merit  of  the  discovery.  For,  prior  to  either, 
that  the  lymphatics  were  a  general  system,  had  been  explicitly  stated  by  the  il- 
lustrious Hoffman.  But  that  the  anatomical  labours,  both  of  Monro  and  Hunter, 
independently  of  any  information  wliich  the  one  derived  from  the  other,  tended 
very  much  to  extend  our  knowledge  of  the  lymphatic  system,  will  not  be  denied 
by  any  intelligent  reader. 

In  the  ye.ar  1771,  the  Philosophical  Society  of  Edinburgh,  which  Dr  Monro 
tended  not  a  little  to  support,  by  fulfilling  all  the  duties  of  an  intelligent  and 


42  DR.  MONRO,  SECUNDUS. 


active  secretary,  published  the  third  and  last  volume  of  their  Essays  and  Obser- 
vations, Physical  and  Literary.  This  volume,  among  many  other  valuable  es- 
says, is  enriched  by  a  production  of  Dr  Monro,  entitled.  An  Attempt  to  Deter- 
mine by  Experiments,  how  far  some  of  the  most  powerful  Medicines,  Opium, 
Ardent  Spiriu,  and  Essential  Oils,  affect  Animals,  by  acting  on  those  Nerves  to 
which  they  are  primarily  applied,  and  thereby  bringing  the  rest  of  the  Nervous 
System  irito  sufferance,  by  what  is  called  Sympathy  of  Nerves  ;  and  how  far  these 
Medicines  affect  Animals  after  being  taken  in  by  their  Absorbent  Veins,  and 
mixed  and  conveyed  with  their  Blood  in  the  course  of  circulation ;  with  Physio- 
logical and  Practical  Remarks.  This  elaborate  dissertation,  highly  interesting 
in  the  practice  of  Medicine,  afforded  ample  proofs  of  the  genius,  the  judgment, 
and  the  industry  of  the  author. 

In  1783,  Dr  Monro  published  a  large  folio  volume,  entitled,  Observations  on 
the  Structure  and  Functions  of  the  Nervous  System.  This  volume,  which  was 
illustrated  by  numerous  engravings,  was  soon  afterwards  translated  into  German 
and  into  other  modern  European  languages  ;  and,  high  as  his  reputation  was 
before,  it  tended  both  to  support  and  to  increase  his  fame. 

The  same  consequences  also  resulted  from  another  folio  volume  which  he 
published  in  the  year  1785,  entitled,  The  Structure  and  Physiology  of  Fishes, 
explained  and  compared  with  those  of  Man  and  other  Animals,  illustrated  with 
Figures.  In  1788,  he  published  a  third  folio  volume,  entitled,  A  Descrip- 
tion of  all  the  Bursae  Mucosae  of  the  Human  Body  ;  their  Structure  explained, 
and  compared  with  that  of  the  Capsular  Ligaments  of  the  Joints  ;  and  of  those 
Sacs  which  line  the  cavities  of  the  thorax  and  abdomen,  with  Remarks  on  the 
Accidents  and  Diseases  which  affect  these  several  Sacs,  and  on  the  operations  ne- 
cessary fur  their  cure. 

For  these  three  works,  the  folio  form  was  necessary,  on  account  of  the  size 
of  the  plates  with  which  they  were  illustrated,  and  which  had  been  engraved 
at  a  very  great  expense.  Although  all  these  three  folios  were  presented  to  the 
learned  world  within  the  short  space  of  five  years,  yet  they  may  be  considered 
as  the  scientific  fruits  of  the  best  part  of  Dr  Monro's  life.  For,  although  a  large 
portion  of  his  time  was  necessarily  occupied  in  teaching  anatomy  to  numerous 
classes,  and  in  extensive  practice  as  a  physician,  yet,  amidst  all  his  important 
avocations,  he  prosecuted  with  unwearied  assiduity  the  extension  of  discovery, 
and  neglected  no  opportunity  of  increasing  our  knowledge  of  the  philosophy  of 
the  human  body.  Of  his  success  in  these  interesting  pursuits,  the  three  works 
now>mentioned,  will  transmit  incontrovertible  evidence  to  the  latest  posterity. 

Dr  Monro  primus,  as  already  noticed,  had  officiated  for  more  than  thirty 
years  as  secretary  to  a  Medical  Society  in  Edinburgh,  which  was  formed  of  the 
most  eminent  physicians  of  the  city  at  that  time.  During  this  period,  he 
had  published  in  their  name,  six  volumes  of  Medical  Essays,  which  had  ob- 
tained the  approbation  of  the  most  eminent  physicians  in  every  country  of  Eu- 
rope,  insomuch,  that  the  illustrious  Haller  had  represented  it  as  a  book  qttem 
nemo  carere  potest.  But  about  the  year  1750,  a  proposal  was  made  to 
unite  the  physicians  and  philosopiiers  of  Edinburgh  into  one  Society.  This 
poposal  was  strenuously  supported  by  Henry  Home,  afterwards  lord  Karnes, 
and  Mr  David  Hume.  The  union  was  accordingly  accomplished ;  and  in 
place  of  the  Medical,  they  assumed  the  name  of  the  Philosophical  So- 
ciety of  Edinburgh.  Dr  Monro  primus  still  continued  to  be  one  of  their 
secretaries,  and  had  conjoined  with  him  Mr  David  Hume,  the  historian,  for 
the  philosophical  department  This  society  published  three  volumes  of  Essays 
and  Observations,  Physical  and  Literary.  The  first  volume,  as  hris  already 
been  observed,  contains  some  papers  written  by  Alexander  Monro  secundus. 


DR.  MONRO,  SECUNDUS.  43 

when  a  student  of  medicine.  But  after  his  return  from  his  studies  on  the 
continent,  and  after  his  conjunction  with  his  father  in  the  professorship  of 
anatomy,  he  was  also  conjoined  with  him  as  secretary  to  the  Philosophical 
Society  of  Edinburgh ;  and  although  Mr  Hume  still  retained  the  name  of  the 
philosophical  secretary,  yet  Dr  Monro  secundus  may  justly  be  considered  as  the 
editor  of  the  two  last  volumes.  With  the  venerable  lord  Karnes  as  their  presi- 
dent, and  Dr  Monro  secundum  as  their  acting  secretary,  (for  Mr  Hume,  not 
long  after  his  appointment,  left  Edinburgh,  to  act  in  a  diplomatic  cliaracter  in 
France,)  the  Philosophical  Society  of  Edinburgh  had  regular  meetings.  The 
physicians  and  philosophers,  who  were  then  the  greatest  ornaments  of  Edin- 
burgh,— lord  Kames,  Sir  George  Clerk,  Mr  John  Clerk,  Drs  Cullen,  Home, 
Hope,  Black,  Young,  Monro,  and  many  others, — constituted  the  strength  of 
the  association ;  and  the  Essays  and  Observations,  Physical  and  Literary, 
which  they  published  to  the  world,  will  ever  hold  a  distinguished  place  in  mark- 
ing the  progress  of  science.  The  third  and  last  volume  published  by  the 
Philosophical  Society  of  Edinburgh  in  1771,  contains  several  papers  from  the 
pen  of  Dr  Monro  secundus.  Besides  the  interesting  experiments  on  opium, 
ardent  spirits,  and  essential  oils,  of  which  mention  has  already  been  made,  it 
contains  important  observations,  communicated  by  him,  on  Polypus  in  the 
Pharynx  and  (Esophagus,  and  on  the  use  of  mercury  in  convulsive  diseases. 
Soon  after  the  publication  of  this  third  volume,  a  plan  was  projected  for  putting 
the  Pliilosophical  Society  of  Edinburgh  upon  a  still  more  respectable  footing 
and  extensive  scale,  and  of  comprehending  not  only  medical  and  physical 
science,  but  every  species  of  literary  and  philological  discussions.  This  exten- 
sion was  particularly  enforced  by  Dr  Robertson,  then  principal,  and  Mr  Dal- 
zell,  then  professor  of  Greek,  in  the  university  of  Edinburgh.  The  negotiation 
terminated  in  the  Philosophical  Society  as  a  body,  with  the  addition  of  many 
other  eminent  scholars,  being  incorporated  by  royal  charter  in  the  year  1782, 
under  the  title  of  the  Royal  Society  of  Edinburgh, 

On  tiie  establishment  of  the  Royal  Society,  Dr  Monro,  whose  time  was  much 
occupied  with  extensive  practice  in  medicine,  declined  any  longer  officiating  as 
secretary  ;  but  he  continued  not  only  to  be  one  of  their  councillors,  but  to  be 
an  active  and  useful  fellow  of  the  Royal  Society  of  Edinburgh ;  and  he  en- 
riched their  transactions  with  several  valuable  communications,  parti«:ularly  with 
the  description  of  a  human  male  monster,  with  an  elaborate  series  of  experi- 
ments on  animal  electricity  or  galvanism,  which,  from  the  discoveries  of  Galvani, 
professor  of  anatomy  of  Bologna,  has  engaged  the  attention  of  almost  every 
philosopher  in  Europe,  and  with  observations  on  the  Muscles,  particularly  on 
the  effects  of  their  oblique  fibres. 

The  last  publication  with  which  Dr  Monro  enriched  medical  science,  Avas  a 
quarto  volume,  consisting  of  three  treatises,  on  the  Brain,  the  Eye,  and  the 
Ear,  published  at  Edinburgh  in  the  year  1797.  And  although  these  organs 
had  before  been  examined  with  the  utmost  attention  by  anatomists  of  the  first 
eminence,  yet,  from  careful  examination,  he  made  no  inconsiderable  addition 
to  our  knowledge,  both  of  the  structure  and  functions  of  these  important 
organs. 

Dr  Monro's  talents  extended  his  fame  over  all  Europe,  and  he  had  the 
honour  of  being  admitted  a  member  of  the  most  celebrated  medical  institutions, 
particularly  of  the  royal  academies  of  Paris,  Madrid,  Berlin,  Moscow,  and 
other  learned  societies.  His  eminence  as  an  author  was  nut  superior  to  his 
fame  as  a  teacher  of  medicine.  For  a  long  series  of  years  his  class  room  was 
attended  by  crowded  audiences  ;  and  no  hearer  of  real  discernment  could  lis- 
ten to  him  without  being  both  pleased  and  instructed  by  his  prelections.      He 


44  GEORGE   CUNNINGHAM   MONTEATH. 

began  to  teach  medicine  immediately  upon  his  return  from  the  continent,  at 
the  beginning  of  the  winter  session  1758-59.  During  that  winter,  his  father, 
Dr  3Ionro  primus,  gave  the  introductory  lectures,  and  a  very  few  others.  But 
by  much  the  greater  part  of  liie  course  was  given  by  the  young  professor;  and 
for  forty  succeeding  yeara  he  perfonned  the  arduous  duties  of  the  anatomical 
chair  without  any  assistant.  No  teacher  could  attend  to  the  business  of  his 
chair  with  more  assiduity.  Indeed,  during  the  whole  of  that  period,  he  made 
it  an  invariable  rule  to  postpone  to  his  academical  duties  every  other  business 
that  could  possibly  admit  of  delay. 

AVhile  we  thus  state  Dr  3Ionro's  character  as  an  author  and  a  teacher,  his 
worth  as  a  man  and  a  citizen  must  not  be  forgotten.  With  his  brethren  of  the 
profession,  and  his  colleagues  in  the  university,  he  lived  on  the  most  amicable 
terms.  He  seems  to  have  had  constantly  in  his  mind  the  admirable  observation 
of  Seneca  :  "  Beneficiis  humana  vita  consistit  et  concordia  ;  nee  terrore,  sed 
mutuo  amore,  in  fuedus  auxiliumque  commune  constringitur."  No  man  could  en- 
joy to  a  higher  degree,  or  more  successfully  lead  others  to  enjoy,  innocent 
mirth  at  the  social  board.  He  was  one  of  the  earliest  members,  and  most  regular 
attendants  of,  the  Harveian  Society, — a  society  which  was  formed  with  the  in- 
tention of  encouraging  experimental  inquiry  among  the  rising  generation,  and 
in  promoting  convivial  mirth  among  its  living  members.  In  every  respect  Dr 
Monro  was  an  honest  and  an  honourable  man.  He  was  no  flatterer  ;  but  he  did 
not  withhold  applause  where  he  thought  it  was  merited.  Both  the  applause 
and  the  censure  of  Dr  Monro  upon  all  occasions,  demonstrated  the  candid,  the 
open,  and  the  honest  man.  As  a  citizen,  a  friend,  and  a  parent,  his  conduct 
was  amiable  and  affectionate  in  the  higliest  degree  ;  and  as  a  medical  writer 
and  teacher,  he  had  few  equals  among  his  contemporaries.  His  various  pub- 
lished works  may  be  recapitulated  as  follows  :  Treatise  on  the  Lymphatics, 
1770  ;  On  the  Anatomy  of  Fishes,  1785  ;  On  the  Nerves,  1783  ;  On'tlie  Bursa 
Mucosas,  1788;  and  three  Treatises  on  the  Brain,  the  Eye,  and  the  Ear, 
1797. 

Dr  Monro's  chief  amusements  lay  in  the  witnessing  of  dramatic  performances, 
and  in  the  cultivation  of  his  garden.  Not  many  years  after  his  establisluuent 
in  Edinburgh  he  purchased  the  beautiful  estate  of  Craiglockhart,  on  the  banks 
of  the  Water  of  Leith,  within  a  few  miles  of  the  city.  He  planted  and  beauti- 
fied some  charmingly  romantic  hills,  which  afforded  him  such  delightful  pros- 
pects  of  wood  and  water,  hill  and  dale,  city  and  cottage,  as  have  seldom  been 
equalled  ;  and  here  he  spent  many  hours  stolen  from  the  labours  of  his  profes- 
sion. In  1800,  finding  his  health  declining,  he  began  to  receive  the  assistance 
of  his  son,  Dr  Alexander  Monro,  Urtius,  who  succeeded  him  as  professor  of 
anatomy ;  but  he  continued  to  deliver  the  most  important  part  of  the  lectures 
till  1808  9,  when  he  closed  his  academical  labours,  to  the  regret  of  his  numerous 
students.  At  the  same  time  he  gave  up  his  medical  practice,  but  survived  till 
the  2<1  of  October,  1817,  when  he  died  in  the  85lh  year  of  his  age. 

MONTEATH,  George  Cunningham,  author  of  a  Manual  of  the  Diseases  of  the 
Human  Eye,  was  born,  December  4,  1788,  in  the  manse  of  Neilston,  Benfrew- 
shire,  of  wliich  parish  his  father,  the  Rev.  Dr  John  Monteath,  (latterly  of  Hous- 
ton and  Killallan,)  was  then  minister.  After  passing  through  the  medical  and 
surgical  classes  in  the  university  of  Glasgow,  the  subject  of  this  notice  attended 
the  hospitals  in  London,  where  he  attracted  the  notice  of  Sir  Astley  Cooper, 
and  other  eminent  anatomists,  and  received  a  diploma  fnmi  the  Royal  College 
of  Surgeons.  In  1809,  by  the  recommendation  of  Dr  M.  Baillie,  he  w.n8  ap- 
pointed surgeon  to  lord  Lovaine's  Northumberland  regiment  of  militia,  in  which 
situation  he  remained  four  yeai-s,  honoured  with  the  aflection  and  esteem  of  all 


GEORGE   CUNNINGHAM   MONTEATH.  45 

his  brother  officers.  He  then  resigned  his  commission,  and  commenced  practice 
in  Glasgow,  as  a  physician  and  oculist.  In  1813,  he  commenced,  with  a  friend, 
a  series  of  lectures  on  practical  anatomy,  but  was  soon  obliged,  by  the  rapid  in- 
crease of  his  practice,  to  relinquish  this  duty.  Being  the  first  practitioner  in 
Glasgow  who  devoted  particular  attention  to  the  diseases  of  the  eye,  he  soon  be- 
came celebrated,  not  only  in  the  city,  but  over  all  the  west  of  Scotland,  for  his 
skilful  treatment  of  that  class  of  complaints,  and  had  many  important  and  diffi- 
cult cases  intrusted  to  him.  In  1821,  he  published  his  Manual  of  the  Diseases 
of  the  Human  Eye,  which  became  a  popular  work  on  the  subject.  Though 
possessed  originally  of  a  good  constitution,  Dr  Monteath  gradually  sank  under 
the  pressure  of  his  multifarious  duties ;  and,  having  been  seized  with  inflammation, 
in  consequence  of  a  night  journey,  he  was  cut  oif,  January  25,  1828,  in  the 
fortieth  year  of  his  age. 

Dr  Monteath  was  characterized,  by  one  who  knew  him  well,  and  who  under- 
took the  task  of  commemorating  his  death  in  the  public  prints,  as  "  at  once  an 
accomplished  physician  and  an  eminent  surgeon."  His  mind,  distinguished  as  it 
was  by  clearness  of  method,  minuteness  of  observation,  and  soundness  of  judg- 
ment, was  particularly  fitted  for  the  investigations  of  the  former  profession. 
His  power  of  distinguishing,  (perhaps  the  power  upon  which  success  in  the  prac- 
tice of  medicine  depends  more  than  any  other,)  added  to  his  thorough  know- 
ledge of  what  others  had  discovered,  and  his  readiness  in  applying  what  either 
his  erudition  or  his  experience  supplied,  made  some  regret  that  he  did  not  de- 
vote himself  to  the  business  of  a  physician  alone. 

"  As  a  surgeon,  however,  his  success  was  perhaps  still  more  remarkable.  It 
was  not  the  success  of  chance, — it  was  the  result  of  patient  application,  at  an 
early  period  of  life,  to  that  science,  without  which  all  attempts  at  eminence  in 
this  department,  must  necessarily  fail, — we  mean  the  science  of  anatomy.  It 
was  the  result  of  close  and  emulous  attention  to  the  practice  of  the  ablest  sur- 
geons in  the  metropolis.  It  was  attributable  in  no  small  degree  to  an  accuracy 
in  planning  his  operations,  and  a  collectedness  of  mind  at  the  time  of  operation, 
such  that  no  accident  could  occur  which  had  not  been  preconsidered,  or  which 
could  in  the  slightest  measure  discompose  him.  Every  surgical  operation  which 
he  undertook,  had  evidently  been  the  subject  of  mucii  previous  thought, — every 
ordinary  circumstance  had  been  carefully  investigated, — many  circumstances 
which  a  common  mind  would  probably  have  overlooked,  had  been  weighed 
with  deep  attention, — and  neither  the  honour  of  his  art,  nor  the  safety  of  his 
patient,  was  at  any  time  left  to  what  might  occur  at  the  moment. 

"  Dr  Monteath  was  particularly  distinguished  as  an  oculist,  and  was  unques- 
tionably the  first  individual  in  this  city  who  materially  improved  the  treatment 
of  the  diseases  of  the  eye.  It  was  here  that  the  qualities  of  mind,  to  which  we 
have  already  alluded,  were  of  the  greatest  service  to  him, — namely,  his  power 
of  minute  observation,  and  the  art,  in  which  he  so  highly  excelled,  of  distin- 
guishing cases,  which,  though  they  might  seem  alike  when  viewed  superficially, 
were,  in  fact,  very  different,  and  might  require  even  opposite  means  of  cure. 

"  Dr  Monteath's  attention  to  his  patients  was  particularly  deserving  of  approba- 
tion,— it  extended  to  the  poorest  as  well  as  the  richest,  and  allowed  no  cir- 
cumstance to  escape  notice,  which  could  tend,  even  in  a  remote  degree,  to 
alleviate  suffering,  or  secure  recovery.  Those  who  had  no  other  means  of  judg- 
ing of  his  superiority  as  a  medical  practitioner,  must  have  been  struck  with  this 
trait  of  his  character,  and  acknowledged  it  as  an  excellence  of  no  mean  value. 
His  manner  was  soothing,  and  his  politeness  fascinating.  None  who  had  ever 
employed  him  as  a  medical  attendant,  could  see  him  approach,  without  feeling 
their  distress  already  in  part  subdued,  their  fears  allayed,  and  their  hopes  in- 


46  ALEXANDER  MONTGOMERY; 

vigorated,  by  the  presence  of  one,  in  whose  nuiple  skill  and  unwearied  pning 
they  could  so  implicitly  confide." 

MON  TGOMEHY,  Alexander,  an  early  poet  of  considerable  fame,  appears 
to  have  been  a  younger  son  of  Montgomery  of  Hazelhead  Castde,  in  Ayrshire, 
a  branch  of  the  noble  family  of  Eglintoune.  He  flourished  in  the  reign  of  James 
VI.,  but  probably  wrote  verses  at  an  antecedent  period,  as  some  of  his  composi- 
tions are  transcribed  in  the  Bannatyne  Manuscript,  which  was  written  in  1568. 
The  date  of  his  birth — further  than  that  it  was  upon  an  Easter-day — the  place 
and  nature  of  his  education,  and  the  pursuits  of  his  early  years,  are  all  involved 
in  obscurity.  He  is  said  to  have  been  brought  up  in  the  county  of  Argyle  ;  a 
fact  which  seems  to  gather  some  confirmation  from  a  passage  in  Dempster — 
"  eques  Montanus  vulgo  vocatus," — as  if  he  had  acquired  some  common  nick- 
name, such  as  "  the  Highland  trooper ;"  for  Montgomery  never  was  knighted. 
There  is  some  reason  to  suppose  that  he  was  at  one  time  a  domestic  or  com- 
mander in  the  guard  of  the  regent  Morton.  His  most  familiar  title,  "  Captain 
Alexander  Montgomery,"  renders  it  probable  that  the  latter  was  the  nature  of 
his  office,  for  the  word  Captain  seems  to  have  been  first  used  in  Scotland,  in 
reference  to  officers  in  the  immediate  service  of  the  sovereign.  Melville,  in  his 
Diary,  mentions  that  when  Patrick  Adamson  was  promoted  to  the  archbishopric 
of  St  Andrews,  (an  event  which  occurred  in  the  year  1577,)  there  was  then  at 
court  "  captain  Montgomery,  a  good  honest  man,  and  the  regent's  domestic,'' 
who,  recollecting  a  phrase  which  the  new  primate  had  been  accustonied  to  use 
in  his  sermons,  remarked  to  some  of  his  companions,  "  for  as  often  as  it  was 
reported  by  Mr  Patrick,  the  prophet  would  mean  this,  I  never  understood 
what  the  prophet  meant  till  now." 

Montgomery  appears  afterwards  to  have  been  in  the  service  of  king  James, 
who,  in  his  ilewles  and  Cautelis,  published  in  1582,  quotes  some  of  the 
poems  of  tile  subject  of  this  memoir.  His  services  were  acknowledged  by 
a  pension  of  five  hundred  merks,  chargeable  upon  certain  rents  of  the  arch- 
bishopric of  Glasgow,  which  was  confirmed  in  1583,  and  again  in  1589.  Vari- 
ous places  throughout  Scotland  are  pointed  out  by  tradition,  as  having  been  the 
residence  of  Montgomery,  particularly  the  ruins  of  Compston  Castle,  near 
Kirkcudbright,  now  involved  in  the  pleasure  grounds  connected  with  the  modern 
mansion-house  of  Dundrennan.  In  1586,  the  poet  commenced  a  tour  of  the 
Continent.  After  his  return,  he  was  involved  in  a  tedious  and  vexatious  lawsuit 
respecting  his  pension,  which  drew  from  him  some  severe  remarks  upon  the 
lawyers  and  judges  of  that  time.  Of  his  principal  poem,  "  Tlie  Cherry  and  the 
Slae,"  the  first  known  edition  was  printed  by  Robert  Waldegrave,  in  1607.  The 
poet  appears,  from  a  passage  in  a  memoir  of  Mure  of  Rowallan,'  his  nephew,  to 
have  died  between  this  date  and  1611. 

"  The  poems  of  Montgomery,"  says  Dr  Irving,  **  display  an  elegant  and 
lively  fancy ;  and  his  versification  is  often  distinguished  by  a  degree  of  har- 
mony, which  most  of  his  contemporaries  were  incapable  of  attaining.  He  has 
attempted  a  great  variety  of  subjecU,  as  well  as  of  measures,  but  his  chief  beau- 
ties seem  to  be  of  the  lyric  kind.  It  is  highly  probable  that  his  taste  was 
formed  by  the  study  of  the  Italian  poets  :  he  has  left  many  sonneU  constructed 
on  the  regular  model,  and  his  quaint  conceits  seem  not  unfrequently  to  betray 
their  lulian  origin.  The  subject  of  love,  which  has  attbrded  so  fertile  a  theme 
to  the  poets  of  every  ago  and  nation,  has  furnished  Montgomery  with  the  most 

common  and  favourite  topic  for  the  exercise  of  his  talents His 

most  serious  effort  is,  '  The  Cherry  and  the  Slae,'  a  poem  of  considerable  length, 

and  certainly  of  very  considerable  ingenuity The  images  are 

>  Lyie's  Ballads,  Loudon,  1827. 


JAMES  MOOB,  LL.D.  47 


scattered  even  with  profusion  ;  and  almost  every  stanza  displays  the  vivacity  of 
the  author's  mind.  In  this,  as  well  as  in  his  other  productions,  Montgomery's 
illustrations  are  very  frequently  and  very  happily  drawn  from  the  most  familiar 
objects  ;   and  he  often  applies  proverbial  expressions,  in  a  very  pointed  and 

pleasing  manner. The  genuine  explanation  of  the  allegory  may 

perhaps  be,  that  virtue,  though  of  very  hard  attainment,  ought  to  be  preferred 
to  vice  :  virtue  is  represented  by  the  cherry,  a  refreshing  fruit,  growing  upon  a 
tali  tree,  and  that  tree  rising  from  a  formidable  precipice  ;  vice  is  represented 
by  the  sloe,  a  fruit  which  may  easily  be  plucked,  but  is  bitter  to  the  taste." 

"  The  Cherry  and  the  Slae"  has  longer  retained  popularity  than  any  other 
poetical  composition  of  the  reign  of  James  VI.  It  continued  to  be  occasionally 
printed,  for  popular  use,  till  a  recent  period  ;  and  in  1822,  this,  as  well  as  the 
other  poetical  works  of  Montgomery,  appeared  in  a  very  handsome  edition, 
under  the  superintendence  of  3Ir  David  Laing.  Dr  Irving  contributed  to  the 
publication  a  biographical  preface,  from  which  we  have  chiefly  derived  the  pre- 
sent memoir. 

MOOR,  James,  LL.D.,  an  eminent  Greek  scholar,  was  the  son  of  3Ir  Ro- 
bert Muir,  schoolmaster  in  Glasgow  ;  a  person  of  considerable  learning,  and  of 
such  unwearied  industry,  that,  being  too  poor  to  purchase  Newton^s  Principia, 
he  copied  the  whole  book  with  his  own  hand.  The  subject  of  this  notice  en- 
tered the  university  of  Glasgow  in  1725,  and  distinguished  himself  by  great 
industry  and  capacity  as  a  student.  After  finishing  his  academical  course,  and 
taking  the  degree  of  M.  A.,  with  considerable  applause,  he  taught  a  school  for 
some  time  in  Glasgow.  This  situation  he  seems  to  have  abandoned,  in  order  to 
become  tutor  to  the  earls  of  Selkirk  and  Errol,  in  which  capacity  he  travelled 
abroad.  He  was  afterwards  in  the  family  of  the  earl  of  Kilmarnock  ;  and  on 
the  burning  of  Dean  Caslle,  which  took  place  in  his  absence,  lost  a  considerable 
stock  of  books,  which  he  had  employed  himself  in  collecting  for  his  own  use. 
Without  the  knowledge  of  the  earl.  Moor  instructed  lord  Boyd  in  Greek,  so 
that  the  young  nobleman  was  able  to  surprise  his  father  one  day  by  reading,  at 
his  tutor's  desire,  one  of  the  odes  of  Anacreon.  In  1742,  he  was  appointed 
librarian  to  the  university  of  Glasgow  ;  and  in  July,  1746,  became  professor  of 
Greek  in  the  same  nstitution,  the  earl  of  Selkirk  advancing  him  ^600,  in 
order  to  purchase  the  resignation  of  the  preceding  incumbent.  On  the  con- 
demnation of  his  patron,  the  earl  of  Kilmarnock,  for  his  concern  in  the  insur- 
rection of  1745,  Moor,  who  was  of  opposite  politics,  made  a  jouniey  to  London, 
for  the  purpose  of  making  interest  with  the  ministers  for  his  lordship's  pardon ; 
an  enterprise  honourable  to  his  feelings,  however  unsuccessful. 

Moor  was  a  useful  professor,  and,  besides  his  academical  duties,  conferred 
some  benefits  on  the  literary  world  by  his  publications.  In  company  with  pro- 
fessor Muirhead,  he  superintended,  at  the  request  of  the  university,  a  very 
splendid  edition  of  Homer,  published  by  the  Foulises  of  Glasgow.  He  also 
edited  their  Herodotus,  and  was  of  service  in  several  of  their  other  publications. 
Some  essays,  read  by  him  before  the  Literary  Society  [of  Glasgow],  of  which  he 
was  a  constituent  member,  were  collected  and  published,  in  8vo,  in  1759.  In 
1766,  he  published  "  A  Vindication  of  Virgil  from  the  charge  of  Puerility,  im- 
puted to  him  by  Dr  Pearce,"  12mo.  His  principal  work,  however,  was  his 
Grammar  of  the  Greek  Language,  which  has  ever  since  been  very  extensively 
used  in  schools.  He  collected  a  large  and  valuable  library,  and  selected  a 
cabinet  of  medals,  which  the  university  afterwards  purchased.  In  1761,  he  was 
appointed  vice-rector  of  the  college,  by  the  earl  of  Errol,  the  lord  rector,  who, 
under  the  designation  of  lord  Boyd,  had  formerly  been  his  pupil.  In  1763, 
he  applied  to  the  university  for  the  degree  of  Doctor  of  Laws,  which  was  granted 


4S  DR.  JOHN   MOORE. 


to  him,  in  consideration  of  his  talents  and  services.  Dr  Moor  was  addicted  to  the 
cultivation  of  light  literature,  and  used  to  amuse  himself  and  iiis  friends,  by 
writing  verses  in  the  lludibrastic  vein.  He  resigned  his  chair  in  1774,  on  ac- 
count of  bad  health,  and  died  on  the  17th  of  September,  1779. 

MOORE,  (Dr)  John,  a  miscellaneous  writer  of  the  last  century,  was  born  in 
Stirling,  in  the  year  1730.  His  father,  the  reverend  Charles  Moore,  was  a 
clergyman  of  the  Scottish  episcopal  church,  settled  at  Stirling.  His  mother  was 
the  daui,'hter  of  John  Anderson,  Esq.,  Dowhill,  Glasgow. 

On  the  death  of  his  father,  which  took  place  in  1735,  his  mother  removed 
with  her  family  to  Glasgow,  where  a  small  property  had  been  left  her  by  her 
father.  Having  here  gone  through  the  usual  course  of  grammar-sdiool  educa- 
tion, young  J>Ioore  was  matriculated  at  the  university,  and  attended  the 
various  classes  necessary  to  qualify  him  for  the  profession  of  medicine,  for  which 
he  was  early  intended.  At  a  more  advanced  stage  of  his  studies  he  was  placed 
under  the  care  of  Dr  Gordon,  an  eminent  practitioner  of  tliat  day;  and  while 
under  his  tuition  attended  the  lectures  of  Dr  Hamilton,  then  anatomical  demon- 
strator, and  those  of  the  celebrated  Dr  CuUen,  at  that  time  professor  of  medicine 
at  Glasgow. 

In  1747,  Mr  Moore,  desirous  of  adding  to  the  professional  knowledge  which 
he  had  already  acquired,  by  visiting  a  new  and  wider  field  of  experience,  pro- 
ceeded to  the  continent,  under  the  protection  of  the  duke  of  Argyle,  to  whom 
he  had  procured  an  introduction.  The  duke,  then  a  commoner,  was  lieutenant- 
colonel  of  a  regiment  of  foot,  and  was  about  to  embark  for  Flanders  to  serve 
under  the  duke  of  Cumberland,  who  was  there  in  command  of  tiie  allied 
army.  'On  arriving  at  Maestricht,  he  attended  the  military  hospitals  there,  in 
the  i^ipacity  of  mate,  and  found  abundance  of  practice,  as  these  receptacles  were 
filled  with  soldiers,  wounded  at  the  battle  of  LafTeldt,  which  had  just  been 
fought.  In  consequence  of  a  recommendation  which  he  soon  after  obtained 
from  3Ir  Middleton,  director-general  of  the  military  hospitals,  to  the  earl  of 
Albemarle,  Mr  Moore  removed  to  Flushing,  where  he  again  attended  the  mili- 
tary hospitals.  From  this  duty,  however,  he  was  almost  inmiediately  called  to 
the  assistance  of  the  surgeon  of  the  Coldstream  foot  guards,  of  which  regiment 
his  new  patron,  the  earl  of  Albemarle,  was  colonel.  With  this  corps,  Mr 
Moore,  after  passing  tlie  autumn  of  1747  in  Flushing,  removed  to  Breda, 
where  he  spent  the  winter  in  garrison.  In  the  summer  of  the  following  year, 
a  peace  having  been  in  the  mean  time  concluded,  he  returned  to  England  with 
general  Braddock. 

Although  thus  fairly  on  the  world,  and  in  possession  of  very  considerable  ex- 
perience in  his  profession,  Mr  Moore  was  yet  only  in  the  seventeenth  year  of 
his  age.  After  remaining  some  time  in  London,  during  which  he  attended 
the  anatomical  lectures  of  his  celebrated  countryman,  Dr  Hunter,  he  went  to 
Paris,  to  acquire  what  knowledge  might  be  afforded  by  an  attendance  on  the 
hospital  and  medical  lectures  of  that  city,  then  reckoned  the  best  school  in 
Europe.  Fortunately  for  Mr  Moore,  his  early  patron,  the  earl  of  Albemarle, 
was  at  this  time  residing  in  Paris,  as  ambassador  from  the  court  of  Great 
Britain.  Mr  Moore  lost  no  time  in  waiting  upon  his  excellency,  who,  having 
always  entertained  the  highest  opinion  of  his  merits,  immediately  appointed 
him  surgeon  to  his  household.  He  had  thus  an  opportunity  afforded  him  of 
enjoying  the  first  society  in  Paris,  being  at  all  times  a  welcome  guest  at  the 
table  of  the  ambassador. 

After  residing  nearly  two  years  in  the  French  capital,  Mr  Moore  was 
invited  by  his  first  master,  Dr  Gordon,  to  return  to  Glasgow,  and  to  enter  into 
partnership  with  him  in  his  business.      With  this  invitation  he  thought  it  ad- 


■?iti"sn-e  of  TtaTU-f' 


J 


SBOii  THE  ORierHAL  IH  THE  POSSESSIO:!!  OE 

CHAHLES  ■MACXNTOSH.EBQIIEKE.F.A.S.nilN'CHATTjtN. 


BI.ACraB  &  sou,  GEIiASQOW,  KDINBURaH  fcLaHDON. 


DR.  JOHN   MOOEE.  49 


visable  to  comply,  and  soon  after  left  Paris.  He  returned,  however,  by  the  way 
of  London,  where  lie  remained  a  few  months  for  the  purpose  of  attending 
another  course  of  Dr  Hunter's  lectures,  together  with  those  of  Dr  Sniellie  on 
midwifery.  From  London  he  proceeded  to  Glasgow,  when  the  proposed  con- 
nexion with  Dr  Gordon  immediately  took  place.  This  connexion  continued  for 
two  years.  At  the  end  of  that  period,  his  partner  having  received  a  diploma, 
confined  himself  solely  to  the  practice  of  physic,  while  Mr  Moore  continued  the 
business  of  a  surgeon,  assuming  now  as  his  partner,  Mr  Hamilton,  professor  of 
anatomy,  instead  of  Dr  Gordon,  who  had  necessarily,  from  tiie  change  in  his 
practice,  withdrawn  from  the  concern. 

In  17G9,  a  circumstance  occurred  which  totally  altered  Dr  Moore's  prospects 
in  life,  and  opened  up  others  more  congenial,  there  is  every  reason  to  believe, 
than  those  to  which  his  profession  confined  him.  In  the  year  just  named,  he 
was  called  upon  to  attend  James  George,  duke  of  Hamilton,  who,  then  but  in 
the  fourteenth  year  of  his  age,  was  affected  with  a  consumptive  disorder,  of 
which,  after  a  lingering  illness,  he  died.  Dr  Moore's  assiduity  in  this  case,  al- 
though unavailing  as  to  the  issue,  led  to  a  close  conne«ion  with  the  noble 
family  of  his  late  patient  In  tiie  following  year,  having  previously  obtained 
a  diploma  as  doctor  of  medicine  from  the  university  of  Glasgow,  he  was  en- 
gaged by  the  duchess  of  Argyle  to  attend  her  son,  tlie  duke  of  Hamilton,  as 
a  companion  during  his  travels.  The  duke,  who  was  at  this  time  about 
fourteen  or  fifteen  years  of  age,  was,  like  his  brother,  also  of  a  sickly  con- 
stitution, and  in  Dr  Moore  was  found  exactly  such  a  person  as  was  fittest  to  at- 
tend him  ;  one  who  combined  a  knowledge  of  medicine  with  some  experience 
of  continental  travel,  and  an  enlightened  mind.  The  young  duke  and  his  com- 
panion remained  abroad  for  five  years,  during  which  they  visited  France,  Italy, 
Switzerland,  and  Germany. 

On  his  return  from  the  continent,  which  was  in  the  year  1778,  Dr  Moore 
removed  with  his  family  from  Glasgow  to  London,  and  in  the  year  following, 
1779,  published  his  celebrated  work,  entitled,  "A  View  of  Society  and  Plan- 
ners in  France,  Switzerland,  and  Germany."  This  work  was  so  well  received, 
that  it  attained  a  seventh  edition  in  less  than  ten  years,  besides  the  Irish 
editions,  and  French,  German,  and  Italian  translations.  Two  years  afterwards, 
he  published  a  continuation  of  the  same  work,  entitled,  "  A  View  of  Society 
and  3Ianners  in  Italy."  During  this  period,  however,  his  medical  practice  was 
by  no  means  extensive  ;  a  circumstance  which  has  been  attributed,  not  to  any 
disinclination  on  the  part  of  the  public,  with  whom  he  was  so  popular  as  an  au- 
thor, to  patronize  him,  but  to  his  own  reluctance  to  engage  in  the  drudgery  en- 
tailed on  a  general  practice.  The  rambling  and  unfettered  life  which  he  had 
led  upon  the  continent  had,  in  a  great  degree,  unfitted  him  for  the  laborious 
routine  of  professional  duty,  and  his  reluctance  again  to  involve  himself  in  it 
appears  to  have  adhered  to  him  throughout  the  whole  of  his  after  life,  and 
greatly  marred  his  prosperity  in  the  world. 

In  1785,  he  published  his  "  3Iedical  Sketches;"  a  work  which  sufficiently 
showed  that  his  limited  practice  did  not  proceed  from  any  deficiency  of  know- 
ledge in  his  profession.  It  was  received  with  much  favour  by  the  public,  al- 
though it  is  said  to  have  given  offence  to  some  of  the  medical  gentlemen  of  the 
time,  who  thought  their  interest  likely  to  suffer  by  the  disclosures  which  it 
made  of  what  had  hitherto  been  considered  amongst  the  secrets  of  the  pro- 
fession. 

Dr  Moore's  next  publication  was  his  celebrated  novel,  "  Zeluco,"  a  work  un- 
questionably of  the  very  highest  order  of  merit,  and  which  has  long  since 
become  one  of  the  fixed  and  component  parts  of  every  British  library. 


50  SIR  JOHN  MOORE. 


In  the  August  of  1792,  he  went  to  Paris,  to  witness  with  his  own  eyes  the 
meniornble  proceedings  which  were  then  in  progress  in  the  French  capital, 
and  which  others  were  content  to  learn  from  report.  Dr  Mooro,  on  this  oc- 
casion, frequently  attended  the  National  Assembly.  He  was  present  also 
at  the  attack  on  tiie  Tuilleries,  and  witnessed  many  other  sanguinary  doings 
of  that  frightful  period.  On  his  return  to  England,  he  began  to  arrange  the 
materials  with  which  his  journey  had  supplied  him,  and  in  1795,  published  "  A 
View  of  the  Causes  and  Progress  of  the  French  Revolution,"  in  two  volumes 
8to.,  dedicated  to  the  duke  of  Devonshire.  This  work  was  followed,  in  1796, 
by  "  Edward  :  Various  Views  of  Human  Nature,  taken  from  Life  and  Mau- 
i  ners,  chiefly  in  England;"  and  this  again,  in  1800,  by  "  Mordaunl,  being 
Sketches  of  Life,  Characters,  and  Manners  in  various  countries;  including  the 
Memoirs  of  a  French  Lady  of  Quality,"  in  two  volumes  8vo.  These  works 
scarcely  supported  the  reputation  which  their  author  had  previously  acquired  : 
in  the  latter  he  is  supposed,  in  detailing  some  gallant  feats  of  a  young  British 
officer,  to  allude  to  his  heroic  son,  the  late  general  Moore,  who  was  then  a 
field-  officer.  ^ 

Dr  Moore  has  the  merit  of  having  been  one  of  the  first  men  of  note  who  ap- 
preciated and  noticed  the  talents  of  Burns,  who  drew  up,  and  forwarded  to  him, 
at  his  request,  a  sketch  of  his  life.  This  was  followed  by  a  correspondence  in 
1787,  which  is  to  be  found  in  those  editions  of  the  poet's  works,  which  include 
his  Letters. 

At  the  time  of  the  publication  of  his  last  work,  "  Mordaunt,"  Dr  Moore  had 
attained  the  70th  year  of  his  age.  He  did  not  again  appear  before  the  public, 
but  spent  the  short  remaining  period  of  his  life  in  the  quiet  seclusion  of  his 
residence  at  Richmond,  in  Surrey.  After  an  illness  of  considerable  duration, 
he  died  at  his  house  in  Clifford  Street,  London,  February  29,  1802. 

"  As  an  author,"  says  a  distinguished  modern  writer,'  "  Dr  Moore  was  more 
distinguished  by  the  range  of  his  information,  than  by  its  accuracy,  or  extent 
upon  any  particular  subject ;  and  his  writings  did  not  owe  their  celebrity  to  any 
great  depth  or  even  originality  of  thought  As  a  novelist,  he  showed  no  ex- 
traordinary felicity  in  the  department  of  invention  ;  no  great  powers  of  diversi- 
fying his  characters,  or  ease  in  conducting  his  narrative.  The  main  quality  of 
his  works  is  that  particular  species  of  sardonic  wit,  with  which  they  are  indeed 
perhaps  profusely  tinctured,  but  which  fi'equently  confers  a  grace  and  poignancy 
on  the  general  strain  of  good  sense  and  judicious  observation,  that  pervades  the 
whole  of  them," 

Dr  Moore  left  five  sons,  and  one  daughter,  by  his  wife,  previously  Miss  Sim- 
son,  daughter  of  the  reverend  Mr  Simson,  professor  of  divinity  in  the  univer- 
sity of  Glasgow.  The  eldest  of  the  former,  John,  became  the  celebrated  military 
general  already  alluded  to  ;  the  second  adopted  his  father's  profession  ;  the 
third  entered  the  navy  ;  the  fourth  was  admitted  into  the  department  of  the 
secretary  of  state  ;   and  the  fifth  was  bred  to  the  bar. 

MOORE,  (Sir)  John,  a  distinguished  military  commander,  was  born  at  Glasgow, 
on  the  13th  of  November,  1761.  He  was  the  eldest  son  of  Dr  John  Moore,  the 
subject  of  the  preceding  article,  by  a  daughter  of  John  Simson,  professor  of 
divinity  in  the  university  of  Glasgow.  His  education  commenced  at  a  public 
school  in  Glasgow,  and,  afterwards  advanced  at  the  university  of  that  city,  was 
completed  under  the  eye  of  his  father,  then  acting  as  travelling  tutor  to  the 
duke  of  Hamilton.  The  subject  of  this  memoir  accompanied  Dr  Moore  during 
five  years  of  continental  travel,  by  which  means  he  acquired  a  knowledge  of 

1  Mr  Thomas  Campbell,  in  his  memoir  of  Dr  Moore,  oontributed  to  Brewster's  Edinburgh 
Encyclopedia. 


Sir  T. Lawrence. 


LllEPJTENAKlT  v^EKIilA.!  SOIR  JQIHIKI  i^OOlEpKolB. 


Bi  MT:V'.  Se  r.rrN.  r,LA;\(¥1W  RDUTBtlKGaS-  LONDON 


SIR  JOHN   MOORE.  51 


most  European  languages,  and  a  degree  of  polish  and  intelligence  very  uncom- 
mon in  young  men  of  his  rank,  either  in  that  or  the  present  age.  Having 
chosen  the  army  as  a  profession,  he  obtained,  through  the  Hamilton  interest,  a 
commission  as  ensign  in  the  51st  regiment,  which  he  joined  at  Minorca  in 
1776,  being  then  only  fifteen  years  of  age.  A  lieutenancy  in  the  82nd  regi- 
ment was  his  first  step  of  promotion ;  and  he  seems  to  have  held  that  station,  with- 
out much  distinction  or  any  censure,  during  the  several  campaigns  of  the  Ameri- 
can war,  at  the  end  of  which,  in  1783,  his  regiment  was  reduced.  In  1788, 
he  was  appointed  major  in  the  60th;  but  this  he  soon  exchanged  for  a  similar 
post  in  his  original  regiment,  the  5 1st:  in  1790,  he  purchased  a  lieutenant- 
colonelcy  in  the  same  regiment 

Such  was  the  rank  of  Sir  John  3Ioore  at  the  commencement  of  the  French 
revolutionary  war.  From  Gibraltar,  where  he  was  then  stationed,  he  was  ordered, 
in  1794,  to  accompany  the  expedition  for  the  reduction  of  Corsica.  The  bravery 
and  skill  which  he  displayed  on  this  occasion,  especially  in  storming  the  JIo- 
zello  fort,  where  he  received  his  first  wound,  introduced  him  to  the  favourable 
notice  of  general  Chai'les  Stuart,  whom  he  succeeded  soon  after  in  the  capacity 
of  adjutant-general.  Returning  to  England  in  1795,  he  was  raised  to  the  rank 
of  brigadier-general,  and  appointed  to  serve  with  Sir  Ralph  Abercromby,  in  the 
expedition  against  the  West  Indies.  There  he  assisted  in  the  reduction  of 
Demerara,  Essequebo,  and  Berbice,  and  afterwards  in  that  of  St  Lucie;  in  which 
last  enterprise,  he  had  an  important  post  assigned  to  him,  the  duties  of  which  he 
executed  in  such  a  manner,  that  he  was  characterized  by  general  Abercromby 
as  "  the  admiration  of  the  whole  army,"  and  aflferwards  intrusted  with  the 
government  of  the  island.  This  charge,  undertaken  with  reluctance,  and  ren- 
dered full  of  danger  and  labour  from  the  hfistility  of  the  natives,  and  the  number 
of  Maroon  negroes  who  constantly  infested  the  country,  was  managed  with  a 
decision  and  activity  that  overcame  every  obstacle. 

Two  sucfiessive  attacks  of  the  yellow  fever,  soon  compelled  general  Moore  to 
leave  the  West  Indies ;  but,  in  company  with  Sir  Ralph  Abercromby,  he  wag 
destined  to  reach  yet  higher  distinction.  The  first  scene  in  which  they  again 
acted  together,  was  the  Irish  rebellion  of  1798.  The  victory  gained  over  the 
rebels  at  Wexford,  mainly  owing  to  the  talents  of  general  flloore,  was  the  pre- 
lude to  the  suppression  of  that  luckless  movement  of  an  irritated  people.  This 
field  of  exertion  was  not  that  in  which  a  soldier  of  good  feelings  can  be  anxious 
to  gain  distinction ;  nor  was  there  much  scope  for  military  talent  in  the  enter- 
prise. It  is,  therefore,  highly  creditable  to  general  Moore,  that  he  acquitted 
himself  of  all  the  duties  intrusted  to  him  on  the  occasion,  with  universal  appro- 
bation. 

In  1799,  the  subject  of  our  memoir,  promoted  to  the  rank  of  major-gene- 
ral, served  under  Sir  Ralph  Abercromby  in  the  unfortunate  expedition  to  the 
Helder,  where  he  displayed  his  wonted  bravery,  and  was  slightly  wounded.  In 
the  subsequent  campaign  in  Egypt,  under  the  same  commander,  he  found  a  wider 
and  more  favourable  theatre  for  the  display  of  his  military  talents.  In  the  land- 
ing at  Aboukir,  he  led  the  way,  and  cairied  by  assault  the  batteries  with  which 
the  French  endeavoured  to  prevent  that  movement  In  the  subsequent  battle  of 
Aboukir,  March  21,  1801,  he  conducted  himself  with  signal  gallantry,  and  was 
severely  wounded. 

At  the  end  of  the  campaign,  he  returned  to  England,  and  received  the  honour 
of  knighthood,  with  the  order  of  the  Bath.  For  some  time  after  this,  he  held 
an  important  command  in  Kent,  and  afterwards  succeeded  general  Fox  in  the 
command  of  the  army  in  Sicily,  whence  he  was  recalled  in  the  end  of  the  year 
1807.      In  the  month  of  May,  1808,  he  was  sent  to  the  Baltic,  with  an  arniar 


52  SIR  JOHN  MOORE. 


ment  of  ten  thousand  men,  on  behalf  of  the  king  of  Sweden,  who  was  at  this 
time  threatened  with  sinmltaneous  attacks  from  France,  Russia,  and  Denmark. 
With  this  force.  Sir  John  reached  Gottenburg  on  the  17th,  but  was  not  per- 
mitted to  land  the  troops  ;  he  himself,  however,  repaired  to  Stockholm,  to  con- 
sult with  the  Swedish  cabineL  Here,  to  his  astonishment,  he  learned  that  the 
Swedish  monarch,  despising  the  tame  idea  of  defensive  operations,  was  wholly 
engrossed  witii  dreams  of  conquesL  He  proposed  that  some  Swedish  regiments 
should  be  collected  at  (iottenburg,  with  which  the  British  troops  should  be 
joined,  and  that  tills  united  force  should  take  possession  of  Zealand.  The  British 
general  represented  this  to  be  impossible,  on  account  of  the  number  of  French 
and  Spanisii  troops  which  occupied  the  island  of  Funen,  and  which  could  not, 
in  present  circumstances,  be  prevented  from  p<issing  over  to  Zealand.  It  was 
next  proposed  to  land  the  British  alone  in  Finland,  where  they  would  have 
liad  the  principal  part  of  the  whole  effective  force  of  the  Russian  empire  to  con- 
tend with.  Sir  John  having,  in  reply  to  this  proposal,  modestly  hinted  that  ten 
thousand  British  troops  might  not  be  found  equal  to  such  an  undertaking,  the 
impatient  Gustavu%  ordered  him  to  be  instantly  arrested.  He  had  the  good 
fortune,  however,  to  make  his  escape,  and  with  the  troops  returned  immediately 
to  England.  Without  being  permitted  to  land,  general  Moore  was  ordered  to 
proceed,  under  the  command  of  Sir  Harry  Burrard,  to  Portugal,  in  order  to 
give  the  aid  of  his  talents  to  the  expedition  already  formed  in  that  country,  for 
tile  assistance  of  the  Spanish  patriots,  in  expelling  the  French  from  their  terri< 
tory. 

Sir  John  did  not  arrive  in  Portugal  till  after  the  signing  of  the  convention 
of  Cintra,  and  thus  escaped  all  participation  in  the  odium  which  was  attached  to 
that  transaction.  Disgusted  with  the  manner  in  which  the  affairs  of  Portugal 
were  conducted,  Sir  Arthur  W^ellesley,  now  duke  of  W'ellington,  applied  for 
leave  of  absence,  which  was  granted.  Sir  Hew  Dalrymple  was  recalled,  and  Sir 
Harry  Burrard  having  resigned.  Sir  John  Moore  was  left  commander-in-chief  of 
the  army.  In  this  command  he  was  formally  confirmed  by  a  letter  from  lord 
Castlereagh,  dated  September  25,  1808,  which  informed  him,  that  an  army 
under  his  orders,  of  not  less  than  thirty-five  thousand  men,  five  thousand  of  them 
cavalry,  was  to  be  employed  in  the  north  of  Spain,  for  assisting  the  Span- 
ish government.  Fifteen  thousand  troops,  it  was  stated,  were  to  be  sent  to 
join  him  by  the  way  of  Corunna;  and  he  Wfis  to  make  immediate  preparations 
for  carrying  the  plan  into  efiect,  it  being  left  to  his  own  judgment  to  inarch  for 
■ome  point  in  Galicia,  or  on  the  borders  of  Leon,  by  land  ;  or  to  transport  his 
troops  by  sea,  from  Lisbon  to  Corunna,  whither  the  re-inforcements  for  his 
army  were  to  be  sent.  Sir  John  3Ioore  lost  no  time  in  entering  upon  the  duties 
of  his  important  charge,  though  he  seems  to  have  done  so  under  a  melancholy 
foreboding,  sufficiently  warranted  by  the  miserable  condition  of  his  army,  of 
what  would  be  the  result.  "  At  this  instant,"  he  says,  writing  to  lord  Castle* 
reagh  on  the  receipt  of  his  commission,  "the  army  is  without  equipments  of  any 
kind,  either  for  the  carriage  of  the  light  baggage  of  regiments,  military  stores, 
commissariat  stores,  or  other  appendages  of  an  army,  and  not  a  magazine  is 
formed  in  any  of  the  routes  (for  he  had  determined  on  the  expedition  by  land) 
by  which  we  are  to  march."  By  a  subsequent  letter,  written  ten  days  after  the 
above,  we  find  that  the  army  was  also  in  a  great  measure  destitute  of  money, 
and,  amongst  other  necessaries,  particularly  in  want  of  shoes.  On  the  27th 
of  October,  he  left  Lisbon,  the  greater  part  of  the  army  being  already  on  the 
route  for  Burgos,  which  had  been  assigned  by  the  Spanish  government  as  the 
point  where  the  British  forces  were  to  be  concentrated  ;  Madrid  and  Valladolid 
were  the  places  appointed  for  magazines :  and  Sir  John  Moore  was  ofHcialiy  in- 


SIR  JOHN  MOORE.  53 


foriued,  that  he  would  find  sixty  or  seventy  thousand  men,  assembled  under 
Blake  and  Romana,  in  the  Asturias  and  Galicia,  ready  to  act  along  with  him. 
These  were  stated  to  be  independent  of  the  armies  in  the  front  and  on  the  left 
iiank  of  the  Frencli  position  ;  the  latter  of  which,  under  the  command  of  the 
marquis  De  Castanos,  was  supposed  to  be  numerous,  and  well  appointed.  The 
enthusiasm  of  the  Spaniards  in  defence  of  their  national  independence,  was  also 
stated  to  be  sucli,  that  it  would  be  utterly  impossible  for  a  French  army  to  enter 
the  defiles  of  the  Asturias,  without  being  cut  ofi^by  the  armed  peasants  alone. 

AH  these  flattering  representations  the  British  general  soon  found  to  be  ut- 
terly destitute  of  foundation.  In  marching  through  Portugal,  he  was  hardly 
treated  with  civility,  and  everything  furnished  to  him  by  the  authorities  was 
charged  at  a  high  price.  Specie,  in  Britain,  was  at  the  time  not  to  be  ob- 
tained, and  not  only  government  bills,  but  even  promissory  notes,  were  refused, 
which  subjected  the  army  to  great  inconvenience,  and  much  extra  expense. 
The  ignorance,  too,  of  the  Portuguese,  was  so  extreme,  that  the  state  of  the 
roads  could  not  be  ascertained,  but  by  sending  British  officers,  stage  by  stage, 
a-head  of  the  advancing  columns.  With  all  these  disadvantages,  however,  the 
general  and  a  part  of  the  army  rea(;hed  Almeida  on  tiie  8th  of  November. 
The  weatlier  was  exceedingly  rainy,  but  the  troops  moved  on,  and  hitherto  had 
conducted  themselves  with  a  propriety  and  moderation  which  surprised  the  in- 
habitants. Here,  however,  it  was  found  that  some  soldiers  had  committed  sev- 
eral serious  crimes,  and  it  being  judged  necessary  that  a  signal  example  should 
be  made  to  prevent  their  recurrence,  one  of  the  most  notorious  offenders  w3a 
put  to  death.  The  general  orders  on  this  occasion,  we  lay  before  the  reader, 
as  illustrative  of  the  highly  dignified  and  amiable  character  of  Sir  John  Moore. 

"  Nothing  could  be  more  pleasing  to  the  commander  of  the  forces,  than  to 
show  mercy  to  a  soldier  of  good  character,  who  had  been  led  inadvertently  to 
commit  a  crime  ;  but  he  should  consider  himself  neglectful  of  his  duty,  if,  from 
ill-judged  lenity,  he  pardoned  deliberate  villany. 

**  The  crime  committed  by  the  prisoner  now  under  sentence,  is  of  this  nature; 
and  there  is  nothing  in  his  private  character  or  conduct,  which  could  give  the 
least  hope  of  his  amendment,  were  he  pardoned.  He  must,  therefore,  suffer 
the  awful  punishment  to  which  he  has  been  condemned.  The  commander  of 
the  forces  trusts  that  the  troops  he  commands,  will  seldom  oblige  him  to  resort 
to  punishments  of  this  kind  ;  and  such  is  his  opinion  of  British  soldiers,  that  he 
is  convinced  they  will  not,  if  the  officers  do  their  duty,  and  pay  them  proper 
attention.  He,  however,  takes  this  opportunity  to  declare  to  the  army,  that  he 
is  determined  to  show  no  mercy  to  plunderers  and  marauders,  or,  in  other  words, 
to  thieves  and  villains.  The  army  is  sent  by  England  to  aid  and  support  the 
Spanish  nation,  not  to  plunder  and  rob  its  inhabitants ;  and  soldiers,  who  so 
far  forget  wiiat  is  due  to  their  own  honour,  and  the  honour  of  their  country,  as 
to  commit  such  acts,  shall  be  delivered  over  to  justice.  Ihe  military  law  must 
take  its  course,  and  the  punishment  it  awards  shall  be  inflicted." 

On  the  1 1  th  of  November,  the  advanced  guard  crossed  a  rivulet,  which  divides 
Portugal  from  Spain,  and  marched  to  Giudad  Bodrigo,  the  governor  of  which 
met  the  Britisii  general  two  miles  from  the  city.  A  salute  was  fired  from  the 
ramparts,  and  the  general  was  afterwards  hospitably  entertained  in  the  principal 
house  in  the  town.  The  state  of' the  country,  and  the  manners  of  the  people, 
they  found  here  to  be  remarkably  changed,  and  the  change  highly  to  the  ad- 
vantage of  Spain.  At  Ciudad  Kodrigo  they  were  received  by  the  people  with 
shouts  of  "  Viva  los  Ingleses."  On  the  1 3th,  Sir  John  3Ioore  arrived  at  Sala- 
manca, where  he  halted  to  concentrate  his  fon;es  ;  Burgos,  the  place  appointed 
for  that  purpose,  being  already  occupied  by  the  French.      On   his  arrival  at 


64  SIR  JOHN  MOORE. 


Salamanca,  Sir  John  Moore  addressed  a  long  letter  to  lord  William  Bentinck,  a 
few  extracts  from  which  will  put  tlie  reader  in  possession  of  tiie  knowledge  of 
Sir  John's  feelings  and  views,  and  of  the  state  of  the  country  at  this  period.  "  I 
am  sorry  to  say,"  he  writes,  "  from  Sir  David  Haird  I  hear  nothing  but  com- 
plaints of  the  Junta  of  Corunna,  who  offered  hins  no  assistance.  Tiiey  promise 
every  thing,  but  give  nothing;  and,  after  waiting  day  after  day  for  carts  whidi 
they  had  promised  to  procure  for  the  carriage  of  stores,  his  conunissary  was  at 
last  obliged  to  contract  for  them  at  an  exorbitant  price,  and  tiien  got  them. 
Tiiis  is  really  a  sort  of  conduct  quite  intolerable  to  troops  that  the  Spanish 
govenwiient  have  asked  for,  and  for  wliose  advance  they  are  daily  pressing. — 
On  my  arrival  here,  and  telling  colonel  0*Lowlar  that  I  wished  to  have  supplies 
immediately  provided  on  tlie  road  from  Astorga  to  this  place,  for  the  march  of 
the  troops  from  Corunna,  he  begun  by  telling  me,  that  a  power  whidi  he  should 
have  got,  and  which  it  was  promised  should  be  sent  after  him  from  Madrid,  had 
not  been  sent ;  that  he  had  thus  no  authority,  and  had  hitherto  been  acting 
upon  his  own  credit,  &c.  I  run  over  all  this  to  you,  though  perhaps  it  should 
properly  be  addressed  to  Mr  Frere,  but  to  you  I  can  state  it  Avith  more  ease  ; 
and  I  shall  thank  you  to  speak  to  Frere  upon  it,  when  I  hope  he  will  have  some 
serious  counnunication  with  the  Spanish  ministers,  and  plainly  tell  them,  if  tiiey 
expect  the  advance  of  the  British  army,  they  nmst  pay  somewhat  more  attention 
to  its  wants.  Proper  officers  must  be  sent  to  me,  vested  witli  full  powere  to  call 
forth  the  resources  of  the  country  when  they  are  wanted,  and  without  delay,  the 
same  as  is  done,  I  presume,  for  the  Spanish  armies.  We  shall  pay,  but  they  are 
not  to  allow  us  to  be  imposed  upon,  but  to  tell  us  what  is  paid  by  the  Spanish 
government  in  such  cases.  We  find  no  difficulty  with  the  people  ;  they  receive 
us  everywhere  well,  but  the  authorities  are  backward,  and  not  liite  those  of 
a  country  who  wish  our  assistance.  With  respect  to  magazines,  it  is  impossi- 
ble for  me  to  say  where  they  ought  to  be  made.  Witli  respect  to  those  at 
Madrid,  it  is  very  likely  to  be  a  proper  place  for  Spain  to  collect  a  considerable 
depot  of  various  kinds.  It  is  their  capital,  and  they  know  best;  but  it  does  not 
seem  to  me  to  be  a  place  where  the  British  could  be  called  upon  to  make  any 
collection.  We  shall  establish  small  magazines,  for  consumption,  in  the  neigh- 
bourhood where  we  are  acting.  Those  great  resources  whicli  a  country  makes  for 
general  supply,  should  be  made  by  Spain,  that  when  we  approach  them,  we  may 
draw  from  them,  and  pay  for  what  we  get :  but  Spain  should  make  them,  and  be  at 
the  expense  and  trouble  of  their  conservation.  As  I  believe  we  are  giving  money 
to  Spain,  part  of  it  may  be  applied  by  them  in  this  manner ;  but  it  is  they  that 
should  do  it,  not  we.  I  have  no  objection  to  you  or  Mr  Frere  representing  the 
necessity  of  as  many  more  British  troops,  as  you  tliink  proper.  It  is  ceiiain 
that  the  agents  which  our  government  have  hitherto  employed,  have  deceived 
them  ;  for  aff^airs  here  are  by  no  means  in  the  flourishing  state  they  are  re- 
presented and  believed  to  be  in  England,  and  the  sooner  the  truth  is  known 
there,  the  better.  But  you  must  observe,  my  lord,  that  whatever  is  critical, 
must  now  be  decided  by  the  troops  which  are  here.  The  French,  I  suspect,  are 
ready,  and  will  not  wait  I  differ  with  you  in  one  point, — when  you  say  the 
chief  and  great  obstacle  and  resistance  to  the  French,  will  be  afforded  by  the 
English  army  :  if  that  be  so,  Spain  is  lost.  The  English  army,  I  hope,  will  do 
all  whidi  can  be  expected  from  their  numbers;  but  the  safety  of  Spain  depends 
upon  the  union  of  its  inhabitants,  their  enthusiasm  in  their  rause,  and  their  firm 
determination  to  die  rather  than  submit  to  tlie  French.  Nothing  short  of  this, 
will  enable  them  to  resist  the  formidable  attack  about  to  be  made  upon  them. 
If  they  will  adhere,  our  aid  r^n  be  of  the  greatest  use  to  them  ;  but  if  not,  we 
shall  soon  be  out-numbered,  were  our  force  quadrupled.      I  am,  therefore,  much 


SIR  JOHN   MOORE.  65 


more  anxious  to  see  exertion  and  energy  in  the  government,  and  enthusiasm  in 
their  armies,  than  to  have  my  force  augmented.  The  moment  is  a  critical  one, 
—my  own  situation  is  peculiarly  so, — I  have  never  seen  it  otherwise ;  but  I  have 
pushed  into  Spain  at  all  hazards.  This  was  the  order  of  my  government,  and  it 
was  the  will  of  tlie  people  of  England.  I  shall  endeavour  to  do  my  best,  hoping 
that  all  the  bad  that  may  happen,  will  not  happen,  but  that  with  a  share  of  bad, 
we  shall  also  have  a  portion  of  good  fortune." 

The  despondency  here  expressed  by  the  general  was  not  lessened  by  the  in- 
forniation  he  received  in  two  days  afterwards,  that  the  French  were  not  only  in 
possession  of  Burgos,  but  also  of  Valladolid,  within  twenty  leagues  of  Salaman* 
ca,  where  he  now  lay  with  only  three  brigades  of  infantry,  and  without  a  single 
gun  ;  and,  though  the  remainder  of  his  army  was  coming  up  as  fast  as  possible, 
he  was  aware  that  the  whole  could  not  arrive  in  less  than  ten  days.  Instead  of 
the  Spanish  army  of  seventy  thousand  men  that  was  to  have  joined  him  here, 
there  was  not  so  much  as  a  single  Spanish  piquet  to  cover  his  front,  or  to  act 
as  guides  in  the  country,  of  every  portion  of  which  the  British  army,  both  of- 
ficers and  men,  were  perfectly  ignorant.  Sir  John  Moore  immediately  commun- 
icated the  intelligence  to  the  Junta  of  Salamanca  ;  telling  them  that  he  must 
have  the  use  of  all  the  carts  and  mules  in  the  country  to  transport  his 
magazines  to  Ciudad  Rodrigo  should  it  become  requisite,  and  that  the  troops 
with  three  days'  provisions  should  be  kept  in  readiness ;  but  he  added,  that  as 
he  had  not  yet  stopped  the  advance  of  the  rest  of  the  army  from  Portugal,  he 
was  desirous  of  assembling  it  there,  and  would  not  retire  without  an  absolute 
necessity.  All  this  was  listened  to  with  calm  acquiescence.  The  general  in  the 
mean  time  found,  that  though  a  patrol  of  horse  had  neared  Valladolid,  none  of 
the  French  infantry  had  yet  passed  Burgos,  and  he  gave  orders  to  generals 
Baird  and  Hope,  to  advance  upon  Salamanca  with  all  speed,  but  to  be  upon 
their  guard  on  the  march.  The  junta  of  Ciudad  Rodrigo  about  this  time  or- 
dered twenty  thousand  dollars  to  be  placed  at  his  disposal,  and  a  letter  from 
lord  Castlereagh  brought  him  intelligence  that  two  millions  of  dollars  had  been 
despatched  for  him  on  the  2nd  of  the  month,  and  were  already  on  the  way  to 
Corunna.  His  lordship  at  the  same  time  told  him,  that  the  scarcity  of  money 
in  England  was  such,  that  he  must  not  look  for  any  further  supply  for  some 
months,  and  recommended  it  to  hira  to  procure  as  much  money  on  the  spot  as 
possible.  Encouraged  so  far  by  these  advices.  Sir  John  Moore  continued  to 
concentrat«  his  forces  at  Salamanca,  though  upon  what  principle  does  not  ap- 
pear; for  he  seems  to  have  been  filled  with  the  most  dismal  anticipations. 
"  Every  effort,"  he  says,  writing  to  lord  Castlereagh  on  the  24th  of  November, 
"  shall  be  exerted  on  my  part,  and  that  of  the  officers  with  me,  to  unite  the 
army;  but  your  lordship  must  be  prepared  to  hear  that  we  have  failed;  for, 
situated  as  we  are,  success  cannot  be  commanded  by  any  efforts  we  can  make,  if 
the  enemy  are  prepared  to  oppose  us."  To  add  to  all  his  other  grounds  of  de- 
spondency, he  considered  Portugal  as  utterly  indefensible  by  any  force  England 
could  send  thither.  "  If  the  French  succeed  in  Spain,  it  will  be  in  vain,"  he 
says,  in  another  letter  to  lord  Castlereagh,  "  to  attempt  to  resist  them  in  Portugal. 
The  Portuguese  are  without  a  military  force,  and  from  the  experience  of  their 
conduct  under  Sir  Arthur  Wellesley,  no  dependence  is  to  be  placed  on  any  aid  they 
can  give.  .The  British  must  in  that  event,  I  conceive,  immediately  take  steps 
to  evacuate  the  country.  Lisbon  is  the  only  port,  and  therefore  the  only  place 
whence  the  army  with  its  stores  can  embark.  Elvas  and  Almeida  are  the  only 
fortresses  on  the  frontiers.  The  first  is,  I  am  told,  a  respectable  work.  Al- 
meida is  defective,  and  could  not  hold  out  beyond  ten  days  against  a  regular 
attack.      I  have  ordered  a  depot  of  provisions  for  a  short  consumption  to  be 


5Q  SIR  JOHN  MOORE. 


formed  there,  in  case  tliis  army  should  be  obliged  to  fall  back ;  perhaps  the 
same  should  be  done  at  Elvas.  In  this  case,  we  might  check  the  progress  of 
the  enemy  whilst  the  stores  were  embarking,  and  arrangements  were  made  for 
taking  off  the  army.  Beyond  this,  the  defence  of  Lisbon,  or  of  Portugal,  should 
not  be  thought  of." 

The  news  of  Castanos  being  defeated  having  reached  him  on  the  2Sth  ot 
November,  he  determined  to  fall  back  upon  Portugal,  and  sent  ordere  for 
general  Hope  to  join  him  by  forced  marches,  and  for  Sir  David  Baird  to  re- 
treat upon  Corunna ;  desiring  the  latter,  however,  to  send  back  his  stores,  and 
keep  his  design,  and  the  fact  of  his  retreat,  as  much  out  of  view  as  possible.  He 
wrote  to  lord  Castlereagh  on  the  29th,  that  he  had  so  done,  and  requesting  that 
transports  might  be  sent  to  the  Tagus  to  receive  the  troops,  as  he  was  still  of 
opinion  that  Portugal  was  not  defensible  by  a  British  army.  On  the  5tli  of 
December,  he  wrote  again  to  his  lordship,  that  the  junction  of  general  Hope 
had  been  secured,  and  that  Bonaparte  had  directed  his  whole  force  upon 
Madrid,  in  consequence  of  which  he  hoped  to  reach  Portugal  unmolested.  The 
idea  of  a  retreat,  however,  was  exceedingly  disagreeable  to  the  army,  and  in 
this  letter  Sir  John  3Ioore  gives  his  reasons  for  adopting  such  a  measure  at  con- 
siderable  length,  and  seems  extremely  anxious  to  justify  it.  He  did  not  pro- 
pose, however,  wholly  to  desert  the  Spaniards  ;  but  he  thought  they  might  be 
aided  upon  some  other  point,  and  for  this  cause  had  otdered  Sir  David  Baird  to 
sail  with  his  troops  to  meet  the  remainder  of  the  army  at  the  mouth  of  the 
Tagus,  if  he  did  not  receive  other  orders  from  England.  He  had  also  written  a 
long  letter  of  the  same  kind,  on  the  1st  of  December,  to  Sir  Charles  Stuart  at 
Madrid,  in  which  he  also  requests  that  some  money  might  be  sent  him  from  that 
place.  "  Such,"  says  he  "  is  our  want  of  it,  tliat  if  it  can  be  got  at  a  hundred 
per  cent.,  we  must  have  it;  do,  therefore,  if  possible,  send  me  some  at 
any  rate."  To  this  letter  Sir  John  Moore  received  an  answer,  soften- 
ing down  the  defeat  of  Castanos,  which  was  followed  by  a  requisition 
on  the  part  of  the  Junta,  military  and  civil,  of  all  the  united  authorities 
of  the  kingdom,  that  he  would  move  forward  to  the  defence  of  Madrid, 
which  was  threatened  by  the  enemy,  and  was  preparing  to  make  the  most 
determined  defence.  This  was  seconded  by  Mr  Frere,  the  British  resident, 
and  by  another  person  who  had  been  an  eye-witness  of  the  extraordinary  effer- 
vescence at  Madrid.  Sir  John  Moore,  in  consequence  of  this,  on  the  5th 
of  December,  the  same  day  that  he  had  written  to  lord  Castlereagh,  ordered  Sir 
David  Baird  to  suspend  his  march,  and  determined  to  wait  in  the  position  he 
occupied  till  he  should  see  further  into  the  matter,  and  afterwards  to  be  guided 
by  circumstances.  Sir  David  luckily  had  proceeded  but  a  little  way  back,  so 
that  little  time  was  lost.  General  Hope  had  brought  up  his  division  close  to 
Salamanca,  which  made  the  little  army  complete,  having  both  cavalry  and  ar- 
tillery ;  and  by  a  single  movement  to  the  left,  Sir  John  Moore  could  make  his 
junction  with  Sir  David  Baird  a  matter  of  certainty.  Madrid,  however,  had 
capitulated  on  the  third  of  the  month,  and  was  in  the  hands  of  the  enemy  two 
days  before  Sir  John  Moore  had  resolved  to  countermand  the  retreat.  The  in- 
telligence upon  which  he  had  acted,  was  in  fact  void  of  any  real  foundation 
and  the  prince  of  Castelfranco,  and  his  excellency,  Don  Thomas  Morla,  had  al- 
ready connnenced  a  treaty  for  delivering  up  Madrid  to  the  French,  when  they 
signed  the  pressing  requisition  of  the  Junta  to  him  to  hasten  to  its  relief.  Mr 
Frere,  too,  the  dupe  of  his  own  warm  fancy,  or  of  the  interested  representations 
of  the  feeble  but  sanguine  spirits  who  at  this  time  held  the  government  of 
Spain,  was  weak  enough  to  assist  this  imposture,  and  to  take  the  most  unwar- 
rantable liberties.      He  sent  to  Sir  John  Moore  a  flippant  Frenchman,  named 


SIR  JOHN   MOORE.  57 


t/harniilly,  with  a  demand,  that  before  he  commenced  his  proposed  retreat,  the 
said  Frencliman  should  be  examined  before  a  council  of  wnr.  To  mark  the 
opinion  he  entertained  of  Charniilly,  Sir  John  Moore  ordered  the  adjutant 
of  the  army  to  give  him  a  written  order  to  retire,  and  he  requested  Mr  Frere, 
when  he  had  such  messages  to  deliver,  to  employ  some  other  person,  as  he  en- 
tertained a  strong  prejudice  against  all  such  characters  ;  otherwise  he  treated 
Mr  Frere  with  the  usual  deference.  Anxious  to  be  useful  to  the  cause  of  Spain, 
the  British  general  wrote  to  the  marquis  de  la  Romana,  to  suggest  measures  for 
their  acting  in  concert,  that  they  might,  if  possible,  support  31adrid.  On  the 
7th,  Sir  John  IMoore  was  favoured  with  a  most  patriotic  address  from  the  Junta 
of  Toledo,  which  declared  that  the  members  of  the  Junta  were  determined  to 
die  in  defence  of  their  country.  Pleased  with  this  manifestation  of  public 
spirit,  though  it  was  only  on  paper,  Sir  John  sent  one  of  his  officers  to  form 
with  them  a  plan  of  defence  for  the  city  ;  but,  as  the  French  approached,  the 
Junta  prudently  retired,  and  the  duke  of  Belluno  took  peaceable  possession  of 
the  place.  Nothing  could  be  more  hopeless  than  the  condition  of  the  Spaniards 
at  this  time.  Bessieres  was  driving  the  wretched  remains  of  the  centre  army, 
as  it  was  called,  on  the  road  to  Valencia  ;  Toledo  was  occupied  by  Belluno  ;  the 
duke  of  Dantzic,  with  a  strong  division  was  on  the  road  for Badajos,  with  the 
design  of  seizing  upon  Lisbon  or  Cadiz.  The  duke  of  Treviso  was  proceeding 
against  Saragossa.  The  duke  of  Dalmatia  was  preparing  to  enter  Leon,  and 
Bonaparte  at  Madrid  was  ready  to  second  all  their  movements,  together  or 
separately,  as  events  should  require.  It  was  in  circumstances  of  which  he  was 
totally  unaware,  that  Sir  John  3Ioore  found  himself  called  upon  to  commence 
active  operations.  He  was  necessarily  prevented  from  advancing  upon  Madrid 
by  the  knowledge  that  the  passes  of  Somosierra  and  Guadarama  were  in  the 
hands  of  the  French  ;  but,  having  ordered  Sir  David  Baird  to  advance,  he  him- 
self moved  forward  to  Toro,  intending  to  unite  with  Sir  David  Baird  at  Valla- 
dolid.  Ihe  object  of  this  movement  was  to  favour  Madrid  and  Saragossa,  by 
threatening  to  intercept  the  communication  with  France.  On  the  12th,  lord 
Paget,  with  the  principal  part  of  the  cavalry,  marched  from  Toro  to  fordesil- 
las ;  while  brigadier-general  Stuart,  commanding  the  18th  and  king's  German 
dragoons,  was  moving  from  Arevolo.  In  his  march,  general  Stuart,  with  a 
party  of  the  18th  dragoons,  surprised  a  party  of  French  cavalry  and  infantry 
in  the  village  of  Eeveda,  and  killed  or  made  prisoners  the  whole  detachment. 
This  was  the  first  encounter  of  the  French  and  British  in  Spain,  an  earnest  of 
what  was  yet  to  be  there  achieved  by  British  skill  and  British  valour.  On  the 
14th,  the  head  quarters  of  the  army  were  at  Aloejos,  when,  by  an  intercepted 
despatch.  Sir  John  Moore  was  put  in  possession  of  the  real  state  of  affairs,  with 
the  objects  which  Bonaparte  had  in  view,  by  despatching  after  him  the  duke  of 
Dalmatia,  with  whom  he  was  already  almost  in  contact  Ihis  intelligence  de- 
termined the  general,  instead  of  going  on  to  Valladolid,  as  was  intended,  to 
face  about,  and  hasten  to  unite  himself  with  the  part  of  his  army  which  was  un- 
der Sir  David  Baird,  and,  if  possible,  to  surprise  the  duke  of  Dalmatia  at  Sal- 
danha  before  he  should  be  further  reinforced.  Writing  of  his  intended  junction 
with  Sir  David  Baird,  to  lord  Castlereagh  on  the  16th,  he  adds,  "  If  then  mar- 
shal Soult  is  so  good  as  to  approach  us,  we  shall  be  much  obliged  to  him  ;  but 
if  not  we  shall  march  towards  him.  It  will  be  very  agreeable  to  give  a  wipe  to 
such  a  corps,  although,  with  respect  to  the  cause  generally,  it  will  probably 
have  no  effect,  Spain  being  in  the  state  described  in  Berthier's  letter.  She  has 
made  no  eflbrts  for  herself;  ours  came  too  late,  and  cannot,  at  any  rate,  be  suf- 
ficient." 

The  armies  were  now  near  one  another.     The  patrols  of  the  cavalry  reached 


58  SIR  JOHN  MOORE. 


as  far  as  "Valladolid,  and  had  frequent  and  successful  skirmishes  with  the  enemy. 
On  the  20th,  Sir  John  Moore  formed  a  junction  with  Sir  David  Baird  ;  the 
head-quarters  of  the  army  being  at  31ajorga,  but  the  cavalry  and  horse  artillery 
were  at  Monastero  Milgar  Abaxo,  three  leagues  from  Sahagun,  where  a  division 
of  the  enemy's  cavalry  were  posted.  The  weather  was  extremely  cold,  and  the 
ground  covered  with  snow,  yet  lord  Paget  set  out  at  two  o'clock  of  the  morning 
to  surprise  the  French  position.  General  Slade,  with  the  10th  hussars,  ap- 
proached the  town  along  the  Cea,  while  his  lordship,  with  the  1 5lh  dragoons 
and  some  horse  artillery,  approached  from  another  direction.  Reaching  the 
town  by  the  dawn,  they  surprised  a  piquet;  but  one  or  two  escaping,  gave  the 
alarm,  and  enabled  the  enemy  to  form  outside  the  town.  The  ground"  was  at 
first  unfavourable  to  the  British,  but  the  superior  skill  of  lord  Paget  overcame 
the  difficulty.  The  French  having  wheeled  into  line,  to  receive  the  shock  of 
the  British  charge,  were  overthrown  in  a  moment,  and  dispersed  in  all  direc- 
tions. The  1 5th  hussars,  only  four  hundred  strong,  encountered  seven  hundred 
French,  and  completely  routed  them.  Many  of  the  French  were  killed,  and 
one  hundred  and  fifty-seven,  including  two  lieutenant-colonels,  were  taken 
prisoners.  Sir  John  Moore  reached  Sahagun  on  the  21st,  where  the  troops 
were  halted  for  a  day,  to  recover  the  fatigue  of  the  forced  marches  tliey  had 
made.  On  the  23d,  every  arrangement  was  completed  for  attacking  the  duke  of 
Ualmatia,  who,  after  the  defeat  of  his  cavalry  at  Sahagun,  had  concentrated  his 
troops,  to  the  amount  of  eighteen  thousand,  behind  the  river  Carrion  ;  seven 
thousand  being  posted  at  Saldanha,  and  five  thousand  in  the  town  of  Carrion. 
Detachments  were  also  placed  to  guard  the  fords  and  the  bridges.  The  corps 
of  Junot,  Sir  John  Moore  was  aware,  had  also  its  advanced  posts  between  Vit- 
toria  and  Burgos.  The  spirit  and  the  feeling  under  which  he  was  now  acting, 
were  not  at  all  enviable.  "  The  movement  I  am  making,"  he  writes,  "  is  of 
the  most  dangerous  kind.  I  not  only  risk  to  be  surrounded  every  moment  by 
superior  forces,  but  to  have  my  communication  intercepted  with  the  Galicias.  I 
wish  it  to  be  apparent  to  the  whole  world,  as  it  is  to  every  individual  of  the 
army,  that  we  have  done  everything  in  our  power  in  support  of  the  Spanisli 
cause,  and  that  we  do  not  abandon  it  until  long  after  the  Spaniards  had  aban- 
doned us."  As  already  said,  however,  the  preparations,  for  attacking  the  duke 
of  Dalmatia,  were  completed.  The  generals  received  their  instructions,  and  the 
army,  burning  with  impatience,  was  to  march  to  the  attack  at  eight  o'clock 
in  the  evening.  Unfavourable  reports  through  the  day,  and  a  letter  from 
the  marquis  de  la  Romana,  confirming  these  reports,  led  to  an  opposite 
line  of  conducL  The  march  to  the  Carrion  waff  countermanded,  and  immediate 
steps  taken  for  retreating  upon  Astorga.  The  duke  of  Dalmatia  had  been  dai- 
ly receiving  strong  reinforcements  for  some  time,  and  his  army  was  already 
greatly  superior  to  the  British.  The  duke  of  Abrantes  had  advanced  from 
Burgos  to  Valencia,  and  threatened  the  right  flank  of  the  British.  Bonaparte 
himself  had  left  Madrid  on  the  18th,  with  jhirty-two  thousand  infantry,  and 
eiglit  thousand  cavalry,  part  of  which  had  reached  Tordesillas  on  the  24th,  and 
before  tlie  British  had  begun  to  retreat  from  Sahagun,  they  were  moving  with 
all  haste  upon  the  same  point  with  the  latter  on  Benevente.  The  duke  of 
Danuic,  too,  was  recalled  from  his  march  towards  Badajos,  and  ordered  for 
Salamanca ;  and  even  the  duke  of  Treviso,  sent  to  take  vengeance  on  Saragossa, 
was  ordered  to  join  in  the  pursuit  of  the  British.  Every  preparation  having 
been  made,  general  Frazer,  followed  by  general  Hope,  marched  with  their  divi- 
sions on  the  24th  of  December  to  Valdinas  and  Majorga,  and  Sir  David  Baird 
to  Valencia.  This  movement  was  concealed  by  lord  Paget,  who  pushed  strong 
patrols  of  cavalry  up  to  the  advanced  posts  of  the  enemy.     The  reserve  followed 


SIR  JOHN   MOORE.  69 


from  Sahagun  on  the  morning  of  the  25th  ;  and  lord  Paget,  in  company  with 
Sir  John  Moore,  with  the  cavah-y,  followed  in  the  evening.  On  the  24th  of 
December,  the  advanced  guard  of  Bonaparte  marched  from  Tordesillas,  which  is 
a  hundred  and  twenty  miles  from  Madrid,  and  fifty  from  Benevente.  Strong 
detachments  of  artillery  had  been  pushed  forward  on  the  road  to  Villalpaiido 
and  Majorga,  one  of  which  lord  Paget  encountered  at  the  latter  place,  on  the 
26th.  Colonel  Leigh,  with  two  squadrons  of  the  10th  hussars,  was  ordered  to 
charge  this  corps,  which  he  did,  and  completely  routed  it,  taking  more  than  one 
hundred  prisoners.  Nothing  could  exceed  the  coolness  and  gallantry  displayed 
by  the  British  cavalry  on  this  occasion.  The  10th  dragoons  had  already  sig- 
nalized their  valour,  and  been  victors  in  six  several  attacks.  At  Valencia,  cap- 
tain Jones,  with  only  twenty  men,  charged  a  hundred  French  dragoons,  killed 
fourteen  of  them,  and  made  six  prisoners.  Generals  Hope  and  Frazer  reached 
Benevente  on  the  night  of  the  26th.  On  the  27th,  the  rear-guard  crossed  the 
Eslar,  blew  up  the  bridge,  and  followed  the  same  route.  After  resting  a  short 
time  at  Benevente,  and  publishing  general  orders  to  the  troops,  whose  conduct, 
since  the  commencement  of  the  retreat,  had  assumed  a  disgraceful  character,  the 
army  moved  for  Astorga  on  the  28th.  Lord  Paget,  being  left  with  the  cavalry 
to  bring  up  the  rear,  observed  some  of  the  enemy's  horse  attempting  a  ford  be- 
low the  bridge  which  had  been  blown  up,  and  between  five  and  six  hundred  of 
Bonaparte's  imperial  guards  dashed  into  the  river,  and  passed  over.  The 
piquets,  who  had  been  divided  to  watch  the  ford,  amounting  only  to  two  hun- 
dred and  twenty  men,  retired  slowly  before  such  superior  numbers,  disputing 
every  inch  of  ground,  till  lord  Paget,  with  the  10th  hussars,  coming  up,  they 
wheeled  round,  and  plunged  into  the  Mater,  leaving  behind  them  fifty-five  men 
killed  and  wounded,  and  seventy  prisoners,  among  whom  was  general  Le  Febvre 
the  commander  of  the  imperial  guard.  Some  doubt,  it  would  appear,  hung 
upon  the  general's  mind,  whether  Vigo  or  Corunna  was  the  most  eligible  place 
for  the  embarkation  of  the  troops  ;  and  wishing  to  have  either  of  them  still 
in  his  choice,  he  sent  general  Crawford,  with  three  thousand  men,  lightly 
equipped,  on  the  road  to  Orenge,  so  far  on  the  way  to  Vigo.  With  the  rest 
of  the  troops  he  proceeded  to  Astorga.  The  marquis  de  la  Romana  had  been  left 
to  destroy  the  bridge  of  Mansilla  ;  and  after  having  perfonned  that  duty,  had 
been  desired  to  turn  to  Asturias,  in  the  fortresses  of  which  he  might  find  safety, 
and  at  the  same  time  make  some  small  diversion  in  favour  of  the  British  army : 
but  he  had  left  the  bridge  in  charge  of  a  small  guard,  which  delivered  it  up  to 
the  cavalry  of  Soult;  and  he  possessed  himself  here  of  a  great  part  of  the  accom- 
modations which  were  intended  for  the  British  troops.  His  half  naked  troops 
carried  away  a  part  of  the  stores  which  had  been  collected  at  this  place,  a  great 
part  of  which  had  to  be  destroyed  for  want  of  means  to  remove  the;n.  At  Astorga, 
another  general  order  was  issued,  respecting  the  moral  conduct  of  the  troops, 
which  had  not  improved  since  they  left  Benevente.  The  advanced  guard,  and 
the  main  body  of  the  British  army,  marched  on  the  30th  for  Villa  Franca ;  Sir 
John  Moore,  with  general  Paget,  and  the  reserve,  followed  on  the  31sL  The 
cavalry  reached  Camberas  at  midnight,  when  the  reserve  proceeded,  and  arrived 
next  morning,  January  1 ,  remaining  at  Bembilene,  as  the  preceding  divisions  were 
marching  off  to  Villa  Franca.  Here  an  unparalleled  scene  of  debauchery  pre- 
sented itself.  The  stragglers  from  the  preceding  divisions  so  crowded  the  houses, 
that  there  was  not  accommodation  for  the  reserve,  while  groups  of  the  half  naked 
wretches  belonging  to  the  marquis  of  Romana,  completed  the  confusion.  The 
French  were  following  so  close,  that  their  patrols  during  the  night  fell  in  with 
the  cavalry  piquets.  When  Sir  John  Moore,  with  the  reserve  and  the  cavalry, 
marched  for  Villa  Franca,  on  the  2d  of  January,  he  left  colonel  Ross,  with  the 


60  SIR  JOHN  MOORE. 


20th  regiment,  and  a  detachment  of  cavalry,  to  cover  the  town  ;  wliile  parties 
were  sent  to  warn  the  stragglers,  amounting  to  one  thousand  men,  of  their 
danger,  and  to  drive  them,  if  possible,  out  of  the  houses.  Some  few  were  per- 
suaded to  move  on,  but  the  far  greater  number,  in  despite  of  threats,  and  re- 
gardless of  the  approaching  enemy,  persisted  in  remaining,  and  were  therefore 
left  to  their  fate.  The  cavalry,  however,  only  quitted  the  town  on  the  approach 
of  the  enemy,  and  then,  from  the  sense  of  immediate  danger,  was  the  road  filled 
with  stragglers,  armed  and  unarmed,  mules,  carts,  women  and  children,  in  the 
utmost  confusion.  The  patrol  of  hussars  wliich  had  remained  to  protect  them, 
was  now  closely  pursued  for  several  miles  by  five  squadrons  of  French  cavalry, 
who,  as  they  galloped  through  the  long  line  of  stragglers,  slashed  them  with  their 
swords,  right  and  left,  without  mercy,  while,  overcome  with  liquor,  they  could 
neither  make  resistance,  nor  get  out  of  the  way.  At  Villa  Franca,  the  general 
heard,  with  deep  regret,  of  the  irregularities  which  had  been  committed  by  the 
preceding  divisions.  Magazines  had  been  plundered,  stores  of  wine  broken 
open,  and  large  quantities  of  forage  and  provisions  destroyed.  One  man  who 
had  been  detected  in  these  atrocities,  was  immediately  shot;  and  a»number  of  the 
stragglers,  who  liad  been  miserably  wounded  by  the  French  cavalry,  were  car- 
ried through  the  ranks,  to  show  the  melancholy  consequences  of  inebriety,  and 
the  imprudence  of  quitting  their  companions.  Failing  of  his  aim  of  intercept- 
ing the  British  at  Astorga,  Bonaparte  did  not  proceed  farther,  but  he  ordered 
Souk,  with  an  overwhelming  force,  to  pursue,  and  drive  them  into  the  sea  ;  and 
on  the  3d  of  January,  they  pressed  so  hard  upon  the  rear  of  the  retreating 
army,  that  Sir  John  Moore  resolved  upon  a  night  march  from  Villa  Franca  to 
Herrerias.  From  the  latter  place  he  proceeded  to  Lugo,  where  he  determined 
to  offer  the  enemy  battle  ;  and  for  this  purpose  he  sent  forward  despatches  to  Sir 
David  Baird,  who  was  in  front,  to  halt.  He  also  enclosed  the  same  orders  for 
generals  Hope  and  Frazer,  who  commanded  the  advanced  divisions.  These  he 
forwarded  to  Sir  David  Baird,  by  his  aid-de-camp,  captain  Nnpier,  accompanied 
by  an  orderly  dragoon.  Sir  David  again  forwarded  them  to  the  respective  officers ; 
but  the  orderly  dragoon,  having  got  intoxicated,  lost  them  :  in  consequence  of 
which  general  Frazer  marched  on  a  day's  journey  on  the  road  to  Vigo,  which  he 
had  to  countermarch  next  day,  in  dreadful  weather,  by  which  he  lost  a  number 
of  his  men.  It  was  now  determined  to  march  upon  Corunna,  as  being  nearer 
than  Vigo;  and  an  express  was  sent  off  to  Sir  Samuel  Hood,  to  order  the  trans- 
ports round  to  that  place.  On  the  road  to  Nagles,  the  reserve  fell  in  with  forty 
waggons  with  stores,  sent  from  England  for  the  marquis  of  Romana's  army.  As 
there  were  no  means  of  carrying  them  back,  shoes,  and  such  things  as  could  be 
made  use  of,  were  distributed  to  the  troops  as  they  passed,  and  the  rest  destroy- 
ed. On  the  Cth,  the  rifle  corps,  which  covered  the  reserve,  was  engaged  with 
the  enemy  nearly  the  whole  day,  while  everything  that  retarded  the  march 
was  destroyed.  Two  carts  of  dollars,  amounting  to  twenty-five  thousand  pounds, 
were  rolled  down  a  precipice  on  the  side  of  the  road,  which  the  advanced  guard 
of  the  French  passed  in  less  than  five  minutes  thereafter.  It  was  afterwards 
ascertained  that  this  money  fell  into  the  hands  of  the  Spanish  peasants.  At 
Lugo,  another  severe  general  order  was  issued,  and  a  position  taken  up  for 
battle.  Tlie  French  made  an  attack  on  part  of  this  position  on  the  7th,  but 
were  repulsed  with  ejise.  On  the  8th,  everything  was  disposed  for  a  general 
engagement ;  Soult,  however,  did  not  think  fit  to  make  the  attack,  and  the 
British  army  not  being  now  in  a  state  to  undergo  a  protracted  warfare,  it  was 
resolved  to  continue  the  retreat  The  different  brigades  accordingly  quitted  the 
ground  about  ten  o'clo<;k  at  nigl)^  leaving  their  fires  burning  to  deceive  the  enemy. 
Great  disorders  still  reigned  among  the  troops,  who  were  suffering  dreadfully 


SIR  JOHN  MOORE.  61 


from  the  severity  of  the  weather,  and  from  long  marches  on  bad  roads ;  yet,  at 
Bitanzos,  it  was  judged  preferable  to  keep  the  troops  exposed  to  the  cold  and 
rain,  rather  than  to  the  irresistible  temptations  of  the  wine  houses  in  the  town. 
Here  a  new  order  was  issued,  and  particular  duties  demanded  to  be  performed 
by  the  officers.  The  last  day's  march,  on  the  11th,  Mas  conducted  with  more 
propriety  than  any  that  had  preceded  it ;  yet  eight  or  nine  stragglers  were  de- 
tected, who  had  preceded  their  column,  and  taken  possession  of  a  wine  house, 
and  all  that  was  in  it.  They  were  seized,  and  brought  before  the  general,  who 
halted  the  army,  and  sent  for  the  officers  of  the  regiments  to  which  they  be- 
longed. The  culprits'  haversacks  were  then  searched,  Avhen  the  general  de- 
clared tiiat,  had  he  found  any  plunder  in  them,  their  owners  would  have  been 
hanged  ;  but  that  he  would  liave  considered  their  guilt  in  a  great  measure  attri- 
butable to  the  negligence  of  their  officers.  On  finishing  this  inquiry.  Sir  John 
Moore  rode  on  to  Corunna,  and  examined  every  position  in  its  neighbourhood. 
The  troops  were  quartered,  partly  in  the  town,  and  partly  in  the  suburbs ; 
General  Paget,  with  the  reserve,  at  El-Burgo,  near  the  bridge  of  the  Moro,  and 
in  the  villages  on  the  St  Jago  road.  Adverse  winds  had  detained  the  transports, 
otherwise  the  whole  army  would  have  been  embarked  before  the  enemy  could 
have  come  up.  Only  a  few  ships  lay  in  the  harbour,  in  which  some  sick  men, 
and  some  stragglers  who  had  preceded  the  army,  and  represented  themselves 
sick,  had  embarked.  The  army,  though  much  fatigued,  arrived  at  its  destined 
position  unbroken,  and  in  good  spirits.  Bonaparte,  with  seventy  thousand  men, 
had  in  vain  attempted  to  impede  its  progress;  and  its  rear-guard,  though  often 
engaged,  had  never  been  thrown  into  confusion.  But  the  greatest  danger  was  still 
to  be  incurred.  The  situation  of  Corunna  was  found  to  be  unfavourable;  the  trans- 
ports had  not  arrived ;  the  enemy  was  already  appearing  on  the  heights,  and  might 
soon  be  expected  in  overwhelming  force.  Several  of  his  officers,  recollect- 
ing, perhaps,  the  convention  of  Cintra,  gave  it  as  their  advice,  that  Sir  John 
Moore  should  apply  to  the  Duke  of  Dalmatia  for  permission  to  embark  his  troops 
unmolested.  Ihis,  however,  he  positively  rejected.  The  officers,  in  the  first 
place,  were  busied  in  attempting  to  restore  some  degree  of  discipline  among  the 
troops,  and  in  providing  such  refreshments  for  them  as  the  place  would  afford. 
The  ground,  in  the  mean  time,  was  carefully  examined,  and  the  best  dispositions 
that  could  be  thought  of  made  for  defence.  On  the  13th,  Sir  John  Moore  was 
on  horseback  by  the  break  of  day,  making  arrangements  for  battle.  He 
returned  about  eleven,  worn  out  with  fatigue;  sent  for  brigadier-general  Stuart, 
and  desired  him  to  proceed  to  England,  to  explain  to  ministers  the  situation  of 
the  army.  He  was,  he  said,  so  tired,  that  he  was  incapable  of  writing  ;  but 
that  he  (general  Stuart)  being  a  competent  judge,  did  not  require  any  letter. 
After  taking  some  refreshment,  however,  and  resting  two  hours,  the  ship  not 
being  quite  ready,  nor  general  Stuart  gone,  he  called  for  paper,  and  wrote  his 
last  despatch.  On  the  14th,  the  French  connnenced  a  cannonade  on  the  left, 
Avhich  the  British  returned  with  such  effect,  as  to  niake  the  enemy  draw  off.  On 
a  hill  outside  the  British  posts,  were  found  this  day  five  thousand  barrels  of  gun- 
powder, which  had  been  sent  from  England,  and  lay  here  neglected,  though  the 
Spanish  armies  were  in  a  great  measure  ineffective  for  want  of  ammunition.  As 
many  barrels  as  conveyance  could  be  found  for,  which  was  but  very  few,  were 
carried  back  to  Corunna  ;  the  remainder  were  blown  up.  The  explosion  shook 
the  town  of  Corunna  like  an  earthquake.  This  evening  the  transports  from 
Vigo  hove  in  sight.  On  the  15th,  the  enemy  advanced  to  the  height  where  the 
magazine  had  been  blown  up  :  and  colonel  Mackenzie,  of  the  5th  regiment,  in  at- 
tempting to  seize  upon  two  of  the  enemy's  guns,  was  killed.  The  artillery  was 
this  day  embarked,  with  the  exception  of  seven  six-pounders  and  one  howit/er, 


62  SIR  JOHN  MOORE. 


which  were  employed  in  the  lines  of  defence,  and  four  Spanish  guns,  kept  as  a 
reserve.  On  this  and  the  preceding  day,  the  sick,  the  dismounted  cavalry, 
horses,  and  artillery,  Avere  carried  on  board  the  ships,  and  every  arrangement  was 
made  for  embarking  the  whole  army  on  the  following  evening.  Next  morning 
the  enemy  remained  quiet,  and  the  preparations  being  completed,  it  was  finally 
resolved  that  the  embarkation  should  take  place  that  evening,  and  all  the  neces- 
sary orders  were  accordingly  issued.  About  noon.  Sir  John  Moore  sent  fin- 
colonel  Anderson,  to  whom  the  care  of  the  embarkation  was  confided,  and  or- 
dered him  to  have  all  the  boats  disengaged  by  four  o'clock,  as,  if  the  enemy  did 
not  move,  he  would  embark  the  reserve  at  that  hour,  and  would  go  out  himself 
.IS  soon  as  it  was  dark,  and  send  in  the  troops  in  the  order  he  wished  them  to 
be  embarked.  At  one  o'clock,  his  horse  was  brought,  when  he  took  leave  of 
Anderson,  saying,  "  Remember  I  depend  upon  your  paying  particular  attention 
to  everything  that  concerns  the  embarkation,  and  let  there  be  as  little  confu- 
sion as  possible.'  Mounting  his  horse,  he  set  out  to  visit  the  outposts,  and  to 
explain  his  designs  to  his  officers.  On  his  way,  he  was  met  by  a  report  from 
general  Hope,  that  the  enemy's  line  was  getting  under  arms,  at  Avhich  he  ex- 
pressed the  liighest  satisfaction  ;  but  regretted  that  there  would  not  be  daylight 
enough  to  reap  all  the  advantages  he  anticipated.  Galloping  into  the  field,  he 
found  the  piquets  already  beginning  to  fire  on  the  enemy's  light  troops,  which 
were  pouring  down  the  hill.  Having  carefully  examined  the  position,  and  the 
movements  of  the  armies,  he  sent  ofi"  almost  all  his  stafl^  officers  with  orders  to 
the  different  generals,  and  hastened  himself  to  the  right  wing,  the  position  of 
which  was  bad,  and  which,  if  forced,  would  have  ruined  his  whole  army.  This 
dangerous  post  was  held  by  the  4th,  42nd,  and  50lh  regiments.  As  the  general 
anticipated,  a  furious  attack  was  made  on  this  part  of  his  line,  which  he  saw 
nobly  repelled  by  the  50th  and  42nd,  whom  he  cheered  on  in  person,  calling 
out  to  them  to  remember  Egypt.  Having  ordered  up  a  battalion  of  the  guards, 
captain  Hardinge  was  pointing  out  to  him  their  position,  when  he  was  beat  to 
the  ground  by  a  cannon  ball,  which  struck  him  on  the  left  shoulder,  carrying 
it  entirely  away,  with  part  of  the  collar  bone.  Notwithstanding  the  severity  or 
the  wound,  he  sat  up,  with  an  unaltered  countenance,  looking  intently  at  the 
Highlanders,  who  were  warmly  engaged ;  and  his  countenance  brightened, 
when  he  was  told  that  they  were  advancing.  With  the  assistance  of  a  soldier  of 
the  42nd,  he  was  removed  a  few  yards  behind  the  shelter  of  a  wall ;  colonel 
Graham  of  Balgowan  and  captain  Woodford,  coming  up  at  the  instant,  rode 
off  for  a  surgeon.  Captain  Hardinge,  in  the  mean  time,  attempted  to  stop  the 
blood,  which  was  flowing  in  a  torrent,  with  his  sash ;  but  this,  from  the  size  of 
the  wound,  was  in  vain.  Having  consented  to  be  carried  to  the  rear,  he  was 
raised  up  to  be  laid  in  a  blanket  for  that  purpose.  His  sword  hanging  on  the 
wounded  side  seemed  to  annoy  him,  and  captain  Hardinge  was  unbuckling  it 
from  his  waist,  when  he  said  with  a  distinct  voice,  "  It  is  as  well  as  it  is,  I  had 
rather  it  should  go  out  of  the  field  with  me."  He  was  borne  out  of  the 
field  by  six  soldiers  of  the  42nd.  Captain  Hardinge  remarking,  that  he 
trusted  he  would  yet  recover,  he  looked  steadfastly  at  the  wound,  and  said, 
"  No,  Hardinge,  I  feel  that  to  be  impossible."  When  this  officer  expressed  a 
wish  to  accompany  him,  he  said,  "  You  need  not  go  with  nie.  Report  to 
general  Hope  that  I  am  wounded,  and  carried  to  the  rear."  A  sergeant  of  the 
42nd,  and  two  spare  files  escorted  the  general  to  Corunna,  while  cap- 
tain Hardinge  hastened  to  ciirry  his  orders  to  general  Hope.  The  following  is 
liis  friend  colonel  Anderson's  arxount  of  his  last  moments.  "  I  met  the  general 
in  the  evening  of  the  IGth,  bringing  in,  in  a  blanket  and  sashes  ;  he  knew  me 
immediately,  though  it  was  almost  dark  ;   squeezed  my  hand,  and  said,  *  Ander- 


EGBERT  MORISON.  63 


son,  don't  leave  nie.'  He  spoke  to  the  surgeons  while  they  were  examining 
his  wound,  but  was  in  such  pain,  he  could  say  little.  After  some  time  he  seemed 
very  anxious  to  speak  to  me,  and  at  intervals  expressed  himself  as  follows  : 
'  Anderson,  you  know  that  I  have  always  wished  to  die  this  way.'  He  then 
asked,  *  Are  the  French  beaten  ?'  a  question  which  he  repeated  to  every  one 
he  knew  as  they  came  in.  '  I  hope  the  people  of  England  will  be  satisfied. 
I  hope  my  counti-y  will  do  me  justice.  Anderson,  you  will  see  my  friends  as 
soon  as  you  can.  Tell  them  everything.  My  mother' — Here  his  voice  quite 
failed,  and  he  was  excessively  agitated.  '  Hope — Hope — I  have  much  to  say 
to  him — but — cannot  get  it  out.  Are  colonel  (Jraham,  and  all  my  aids-de-canip 
well.  [A  private  sign  was  made  by  colonel  Anderson  not  to  inform  him  that 
captain  Burrard,  one  of  his  aids-de-camp,  was  wounded.]  I  have  made  my  will, 
and  remembered  my  servants.  Colborne  has  my  will,  and  all  my  papers." 
Major  Colborne  then  came  into  the  room.  He  spoke  most  kindly  to  him, 
and  then  said  to  me,  *  Andei-son,  remember  you  go  to  *  *  *  *  and  tell 
him  it  is  my  request,  and  that  I  expect  he  will  give  major  Colborne  a  lieutenant- 
colonelcy.  He  has  been  long  with  me,  and  I  know  him  most  %vorthy  of  it.' 
He  then  asked  major  Colborne  if  the  French  were  beaten  ;  and  on  being  told 
that  they  were,  on  every  point,  he  said,  *  It  is  a  great  satisfaction  for  me  to 
know  we  have  beaten  the  French.  Is  Paget  in  the  room  ?'  On  my  telling  him 
that  he  was  not,  he  said,  *  Remember  nie  to  him  ;  it's  general  Paget  I  mean.  He 
is  a  fine  fellow.  I  feel  myself  so.strong,  I  fear  I  shall  be  long  dying.  It  is 
great  uneasiness — it  is  great  pain.  Every  thing  Francois  says  is  right.  I  have 
the  greatest  confidence  in  him.'  He  thanked  the  surgeons  for  their  trouble. 
Captains  Percy  and  Stanley,  two  of  his  aids-de-camp,  then  came  into  the  room. 
He  spoke  kindly  to  both,  and  asked  if  all  his  aids-de-camp  were  well.  After 
some  interval,  he  said,  '  Stanhope,  remember  me  to  your  sister.'  He  pressed 
my  hand  close  to  his  body,  and  in  a  few  minutes  died  without  a  struggle." 

Thus  died  Sir  John  Moore  in  the  forty-seventh  year  of  his  age,  after  having 
conducted  one  of  the  most  difficult  retreats  on  i^cord,  and  secured  the  safety  of 
the  army  intrusted  to  him.  Few  deaths  have  excited  a  greater  sensation  at  the 
time  they  took  place.  The  house  of  commons  passed  a  vote  of  thanks  to  his 
army,  and  ordered  a  monument  to  be  erected  for  him  in  St  Paul's  Cathedral. 
Glasgow,  his  native  city,  erected  a  bronze  statue  to  his  memory,  at  a  cost  of 
upwards  of  three  thousand  pounds.  The  extent  of  his  merits  has  not  failed  to 
be  a  subject  of  controversy  ;  but  it  seems  to  be  now  generally  allowed  by  all, 
except  those  who  are  blinded  by  party  zeal,  that,  in  proportion  to  the  means 
intrusted  to  him,  they  were  very  great. 

"  Succeeding  achievements  of  a  more  extensive  and  important  nature,"  says 
the  author  of  the  Pleasures  of  Hope  lEdin.  Encj/c.  art.  Sir  John  Moore], 
"  have  eclipsed  the  reputation  of  this  commander,  but  the  intrepidity  and  man- 
ly uprightness  of  his  character,  manifested  at  a  time  when  the  British  army  was 
far  from  being  distinguished  in  these  respects,  are  qualities  far  more  endearing 
than  military  fame.  They  extorted  admiration  even  from  his  enemies ;  and 
the  monument  erected  by  the  French  officers  over  his  grave  at  Corunna,  attests 
the  worth  of  both  parties." 

3I0RIS0N,  RoBEKT,  an  eminent  botanist  of  the  seventeenth  century,  was  born 
at  Aberdeen  in  the  year  1620.  He  completed  his  education  in  the  university  of 
that  city,  and  in  1638  took  the  degree  of  Doctor  in  Philosophy.  He  was  original- 
ly designed  by  his  parents  for  the  church,  but  his  own  taste  led  him  to  the  study 
of  botany  and  physic;  and  his  attachment  to  those  sciences  finally  prevailing 
over  every  other  consideration,  he  began  to  follow  them  as  a  profession.  His 
attachment  to  the  royal  cause,  induced  him  to  take  an  active  part  in  the  political 


64  EGBERT  MORISON. 


disturbances  of  his  times.  He  was  present  at  the  battle  of  the  Bridge  of  Dee, 
near  Aberdeen,  and  was  severely  wounded  in  that  engagemenU  On  his  re- 
covery, he  went  to  Paris,  where  he  obtained  employment  as  a  tutor  to  the 
son  of  counsellor  Brizet ;  but  at  the  same  time  he  zealously  devoted  himself  to 
the  study  of  botany,  anatomy,  and  zoology. 

In  1G48,  he  took  a  doctor's  degree  iu  physic  at  Angers;  and  now  became 
so  distinguished  by  his  skill  in  botany,  that,  on  the  recommendation  of  Mr 
Robins,  king's  botanist,  he  was  taken  into  the  patronage  of  the  duke  of  Or- 
leans, uncle  to  Louis  XIV.,  and  appointed,  in  1650,  intendant  of  the  ducal 
gardens  at  Blois,  with  a  handsome  salary.  In  this  situation  he  remained  till 
the  duke's  death,  which  took  place  in  1G60.  While  employed  in  the  capacity 
of  intendant,  Morison  discovered  to  his  patron,  the  duke  of  Orleans,  the  method 
of  botany,  which  afterwards  acquired  him  so  much  celebrity.  The  latter, 
much  pleased  with  its  ingenuity,  and  the  talent  which  it  displayed,  afforded  its 
discoverer  every  encouragement  to  prosecute  it  to  completion  ;  and  sent  him,  at 
his  own  expense,  through  various  provinces  of  France,  to  search  for  new  plants, 
and  to  acquire  what  other  information  such  an  excursion  might  aflbrd.  On  this 
occasion,  Morison  travelled  into  Burgundy,  Lyonnois,  Languedoc,  and  Brittany, 
carefully  investigated  their  coasts  and  isles,  and  returned  with  many  rare,  and 
some  new  plants,  with  which  he  enriched  the  garden  of  his  patron. 

On  the  death  of  the  duke  of  Orleans,  he  was  invited  to  England  by  Charles 
II.,  who  had  known  him  while  he  was  in  the  service  of  Orleans.  His  reputation, 
however,  as  a  botanist,  now  stood  so  high,  that  he  was  considered  as  a  national 
acquisition,  and  was  earnestly  solicited  by  Fouquet  to  remain  in  France,  who, 
to  induce  him  to  comply,  made  him  an  offer  of  a  handsome  settlement.  But  love 
of  country  prevailed,  and  he  returned  to  England.  On  his  arrival,  Charles  be- 
stowed on  him  the  title  of  king's  physician,  and  appointed  him  royal  professoi 
of  botany,  with  a  salary  of  £200  per  annum,  and  a  free  house  as  superintendent 
of  botany.  He  was  shortly  afterwards  elected  Fellow  of  the  Koyal  College  of 
Physicians,  and  daily  became  more  and  more  celebrated  for  his  knowledge  of 
botany.  In  the  situations  to  which  he  was  appointed  by  the  king,  ho  remained 
till  1669,  when  he  was  elected,  through  the  interest  of  the  leading  men  of  the 
university  of  Oxford,  botanic  professor  of  that  institution,  on  the  16th  December 
of  the  year  above  named  ;  and  on  the  day  following,  was  incorporated  doctor  of 
physic.  Here  he  read  his  first  lecture  in  the  physic  school,  in  September,  1670, 
and  then  removed  to  the  physic  garden,  where  he  lectured  three  times  a-week 
to  considerable  audiences. 

This  appointment  he  held,  occasionally  employing  himself  besides  on  his 
great  work,  Historia  Plantarum  Oxoniensis,  till  his  death,  which  took  place  on 
the  9th  November,  1683,  in  consequence  of  an  injury  wliich  he  received  from 
the  pole  of  a  carriage,  as  he  was  crossing  a  street.  He  died  on  the  day  follow- 
ing the  accident,  at  his  house  in  Green  street,  Leicester-fields,  and  was  buried 
in  the  church  of  St  Martin's-in-the-fields,  Westminster. 

Morison's  first  publication  was  a  work,  entitled,  "  Hortus  Regius  Blesensis  auc- 
tus ;  accessit  Index  Plantarum  in  Horto  contentarum,  nomine  Scriptorum  et  Ob- 
servationes  generaliores,  seu  Praeludiorum  pars  prior,  London,  1669,"  12mo. 
This  work  added  greatly  to  his  reputation,  and  was  the  means  of  recommending 
him  to  the  professorship  at  Oxford.  His  next  publication  was,  "  Plantarum  Um- 
belliferarutu  Distributio  Nova,  per  tabulas  cognationis  et  aftinitatis,  ex  libro  Na- 
turae observata  et  delecta,  Oxon,  1672,"  fol.  This  was  given  as  a  specimen  of 
his  great  work,  "  Historia  Plantarum  Universalis  Oxoniensis."  It  attracted  the 
notice  of  the  learned  throughout  all  Europe,  and  added  greatly  to  his  reputa- 
tion.     Encouraged  by  its  reception,  he  proceeded  vigorously  with  the  work 


MAJOR-GENERAL  SIR  THOMAS  MUNRO,  BAR*,  K.C.B. 


65 


which  it  was  intended  to  typify,  and  produced  the  first  volume,  under  tlie  title 
already  quoted,  in  1680.  His  death,  however,  prevented  its  completion,  and 
left  him  time  to  finisli  nine  only  of  the  fifteen  classes  of  his  own  system. 

MUNRO,  (Major-Gkneral,  Sir)  Thomas,  Bart,  and  K.  C.  B.,  a  celebrated 
civil  and  military  ofiicer  in  the  service  of  the  East  India  Company,  was  the  son 
of  Mr  Alexander  31unro,  an  eminent  merchant  in  Glasgow,  where  the  subject 
of  this  memoir  was  born  on  the  27th  3Iay,  176 1.  His  mother,  whose  name  was 
Stark,  was  descended  of  the  Starks  of  Killermont,  and  was  sister  to  Dr  William 
Stark,  the  distinguished  anatomist.  After  going  through  the  usual  routine  of 
juvenile  education,  including  the  established  term  of  attendance  at  the  grammar 
school,  young  3Iunro  was  entered  a  student  in  the  university  of  his  native  city, 
in  the  thirteenth  year  of  his  age.  Here  he  studied  mathematics  under  professor 
Williamson,  and  chemistry  with  the  celebrated  Dr  Irvine ;  and  in  both  sciences 
made  a  progress  which  excited  the  admiration  of  his  teachers. 

While  at  scliool,  he  was  distinguished  for  a  singular  openness  of  temper,  a 
mild  and  generous  disposition,  with  great  personal  courage  and  presence  of 
mind.  Being  naturally  of  a  robust  frame  of  body,  he  excelled  all  his  school- 
fellows in  athletic  exercises,  and  was  particularly  eminent  as  a  boxer;  but,  with 
all  that  nobleness  of  nature  which  was  peculiar  to  him,  and  which  so  much  dis- 
tinguished him  in  after-life,  he  never  made  an  improper  or  unfair  use  of  his 
superior  dexterity  in  the  pugilistic  art.  He  studiously  avoided  quarrels,  and 
never  struck  a  blow,  except  under  circumstances  of  great  provocation.  Neither 
did  he  ever  presume  so  far  on  the  formidable  talent  which  he  possessed,  as  to 
conduct  himself  with  the  slightest  degree  of  insolence  towards  his  companions, 
although  none  of  them  could  stand  an  instant  before  him  in  single  combat 
These  qualities  secured  him  at  once  the  respect  and  esteem  of  his  youthful 
contemporaries,  and  on  all  expeditions  and  occasions  of  warfare,  procured  him 
the  honour  of  being  their  leader  and  military  adviser. 

Having  remained  three  years  at  college,  he  was,  at  the  expiry  of  that  period, 
placed  by  his  father  in  the  counting-house  of  Messrs  Somerville  and  (jordon, 
being  designed  for  the  mercantile  profession.  He  was  about  this  time  also  of- 
fered a  lieutenancy  in  a  military  corps,  then  raising  by  the  city  of  Glasgow  for 
the  public  service  ;  but,  though  himself  strongly  disposed  to  accept  this  ofi«r, 
his  father  objected  to  it,  and,  in  compliance  with  the  wish  of  his  parent,  he  de- 
clined it.  Soon  after  this,  his  father's  afl^aira  became  embarrassed,  when,  finding  it 
impossible  to  establish  his  son  in  business  as  he  had  originally  proposed,  he  began 
to  think  of  putting  him  in  a  way  of  pushing  his  fortune  in  India ;  and  with  this 
view,  procured  him  the  appointment  of  midshipman  on  board  the  East  India 
Company's  ship,  Walpole,  captain  Abercrombie.  With  this  vessel,  young  Munro 
sailed  from  London  on  the  20th  February,  1779.  Previously  to  sailing,  his 
father,  who  happened  to  be  accidentally  in  London  at  the  time,  procured  him  a 
cadetship,  through  the  influence  of  31r  Laurence  Sullivan,  one  of  the  directors 
of  the  Company. 

Mr  3Iunro  arrived  at  Madras,  the  place  of  his  destination,  on  the  I  5th  Janu- 
ai'y,  1780.  Here  he  was  kindly  received  by  the  numerous  persons  to  whom  he 
brought  letters  of  introduction ;  but  kindness  of  manner,  and  the  hospitality 
of  the  table,  seem  to  have  been  the  extent  of  their  patronage.  He  was  left  to 
push  his  own  May,  and  this,  on  his  first  landing,  with  but  very  indifferent  pros- 
pects for  the  future,  and  but  little  present  encouragement.  Nor  were  these  dis- 
heartening circumstances  at  all  ameliorated  by  the  reception  he  met  with  from 
his  namesake,  Sir  Hector  Munro,  the  commander-in-chief.  That  high  funo- 
tionary  told  him,  "  that  he  would  be  happy  to  serve  him,  but  was  sorry  it  was 
not  in  his  power  to  do  any  thing  for  him." 


G6  MAJOR.T}ENERAL  SIR  THOMAS  MUNRO,  BART.,  K.C.B. 


He  VIM  soon  after  his  arrival,  however,  called  into  active  service  against  the 
forces  of  Hyder  Ally,  and  continued  thus  employed,  with  scarcely  any  inter- 
mission, for  the  next  four  years,  when  a  definitive  treaty  of  peace  was  entered 
into  with  Tippoo  Sultan.  During  this  period  of  warfare,  he  was  present  at  four 
battles,  and  at  more  than  double  that  number  of  sieges,  assaults,  and  stormings ; 
in  all  of  which  he  evinced  an  intrepidity,  presence  of  mind,  and  military  genius, 
which  early  attracted  the  notice  of  his  superiors,  by  whom  he  began  to  be  looked 
upon  as  an  officer  of  singular  promise. 

In  February,  1786,  he  was  promoted  to  a  lieutenancy;  bat  no  further  change 
took  place  in  his  fortunes,  till  August,  1788,  when  he  was  appointed  assistant 
in  the  intelligence  department,  under  captain  Alexander  Read,  and  attached  to 
the  head-quarters  of  the  fore*  destined  to  take  possession  of  the  province  of 
Guntow. 

During  the  interval  between  the  first  and  last  periods  just  named,  Mr  Munro 
assiduously  employed  himself  in  acquiring  the  Hindostanee  and  Pei-sian  lan- 
guages, in  which  he  ultimately  made  a  proficiency  which  has  been  attained  by 
but  few  Europeans.  In  this  interval,  too,  occurred  a  correspondence  with 
his  parents,  in  which  are  certain  passages,  strikingly  illustrative  of  the  gene- 
rosity of  his  nature,  and  which  it  would  be  dc^ng  an  injustice,  both  to  his 
memory,  and  to  the  filial  piety  of  his  brother,  to  pass  without  notice.  In 
one  of  these  letters,  dated  Tanjore,  10th  November,  1785,  addressed  to  his 
mother,  he  says,  "  Alexander  and  I  have  agreed  to  remit  my  father  £lOO 
a-year  between  us.  If  the  arrears  which  lord  Macartney  detained  are  paid, 
I  will  send  £200  in  the  course  of  the  year  178G."  When  it  is  recollected 
that  Mr  Munro  was  yet  but  a  lieutenant,  this  proof  of  his  benevolence  will  be 
fully  appreciated.  It  must  also  be  added,  that  these  remittances  were  made  at 
a  time,  too,  when  he  had  himself  scarcely  a  chair  to  sit  upon.  "  I  was  three 
years  in  India,"  he  writes  to*  his  sister,  "  oefore  I  was  master  of  any  other 
pillow  than  a  book  or  a  cartridge-pouch  ;  my  bed  was  a  piece  of  canvass, 
stretched  on  four  cross  sticks,  whose  only  ornament  was  tiie  great  coat  that  I 
brought  from  England,  which,  by  a  lucky  invention,  I  turned  into  a  blanket  in 
the  cold  weather,  by  thrusting  my  legs  into  the  sleeves,  and  drawing  the  skirts 
over  my  head." 

In  the  situation  of  assistant  intelligencer,  he  remained  till  October,  1790, 
when,  Tippoo  having  resumed  hostilities  with  the  English,  he  returned  to  his 
military  duties,  by  joining  the  21st  battalion  of  native  infantry,  which  formed 
part  of  the  army  under  the  command  of  colonel  Maxwell.  Mr  Munro  remained 
with  the  army,  sharing  in  all  its  dangers  and  fatigues,  and  performing  the  vari- 
o>is  duties  assigned  to  him  with  his  usual  diligence  and  activity,  till  the  month  of 
April,  1792,  when  he  was  appointed  to  jusist  Captain  Read  in  the  management 
of  the  district  of  Barmhaul.  In  this  employment  he  continued  till  March,  1799, 
having,  in  the  mean  time,  June  1796,  attained  the  rank  of  captain  ;  when,  on  a 
war  with  Tippoo  again  occurring,  he  joined  the  army  under  lieutenant-general 
Harris,  and  served  in  it  with  his  accustomed  ability  and  zeal,  until  after  the  siege 
of  Seringapatam  and  death  of  Tippoo,  when  he  was  appointed  to  the  charge  of 
the  civil  administration  of  Canara.  This  charge  was  an  exceedingly  laborious 
one,  and,  in  almost  every  respect,  an  exceedingly  unpleasant  one  ;  but  the  cir- 
cumstance of  his  appointment  to  it,  was,  nevertheless,  a  very  marked  proof  of 
the  high  estimation  in  which  his  talents  were  held  by  the  government,  for  it 
was  also  a  charge  of  g^at  importance  ;  and  the  authorities  did  justice  to  his 
merits,  by  believing  that  there  was  no  individual  in  India  so  well  qualified  to 
fill  the  situation  as  captain  Munro.  The  principal  duties  of  his  new  appoint- 
ment were,  to  introduce  and  establish  the  authority  of  the  goremment ;  to 


MAJOR-GENERAL  SIR  THOMAS  MDNRO,  BART..  K.C.B.  67 


settle  disputes  amongst  the  natives  ;  to  punish  the  refractory  ;  and  to  Svatch 
over  the  revenues  of  the  district:  and  from  twelve  to  sixteen  hours  were  daily 
devoted  to  this  oppressive  and  harassing  routine  of  business. 

Having  accomplished  all  the  purposes  for  which  he  was  sent  to  Canara  and 
having  established  order  and  tranquillity,  where  he  had  found  turbulence  and  vio- 
lence, Major  Munro  (for  to  this  rank  he  was  promoted,  May  7,  1800)  solicited 
the  government  to  be  intrusted  with  the  superintendence  of  what  were  called  the 
Ceded  Dislricts  ;  a  certain  extent  of  territory,  yielded  up  in  perpetuity  to  the 
Company  by  Nizam,  in  lieu  of  a  monthly  subsidy  which  had  been  previously  ex- 
acted from  him. 

The  request  of  major  Munro  was  not  complied  with,  without  much  reluctance 
and  hesitation,  proceeding  from  the  high  value  placed  upon  his  services  where 
he  was  ;  but  it  appearing  that  these  would  be  equally  desirable  in  the  situation 
which  he  sought,  he  was  removed  thither  in  October,  1  800.  Here  he  performed 
similar  important  services,  both  to  the  counti-y  itself  and  to  the  Company,  as  he 
had  done  at  Canara.  Within  a  few  months  after  his  arrival,  he  cleared  the 
province  of  numerous  bands  of  marauders,  which  had  previously  kept  it  in  a  state 
of  constant  terror  and  alarm,  and  filled  it  with  robbery  and  murder.  He  every- 
where established  order  and  regularity,  and  finally  succeeded  in  converting  one 
of  the  most  disorderly  provinces  in  India,  into  one  of  the  most  secure  and  tran- 
quil districts  in  the  possession  of  the  Company.  This,  however,  was  not  accom- 
plished without  much  labour,  and  many  personal  privations.  He  repeatedly 
traversed  the  whole  extent  of  territory  under  his  jurisdiction,  and  for  the  fii"st 
four  years  of  his  residence  in  it,  never  dwelt  in  a  house,  being  continually  in 
motion  from  place  to  place,  and  on  these  occasions  making  his  tent  his  house. 

During  the  time  of  his  services  in  the  Ceded  Districts,  Mr  Munro  was  pro- 
moted, 24th  April,  1804,  to  the  rank  of  lieutenant-colonel. 

With  that  filial  affection  which  forms  so  remarkable  and  pleasing  a  feature  in 
the  character  of  the  subject  of  this  memoir,  he  had  regularly  increased  the  al- 
lowance to  his  parents,  with  the  advance  of  his  own  fortunes.  Indeed,  this 
seems  to  have  been  his  first  care  on  every  occasion  of  an  accession  of  income. 
In  a  letter  to  his  father,  dated  Kalwapilli,  3rd  May,  1801,  there  occurs  this 
passage  :  "  I  have  at  last  heard  from  Messrs  Harington,  Burnaby  and  Cock- 
burn,  on  the  subject  of  the  remittance  of  a  bill  for  £1000  sterling,  to  clear 
your  house  in  the  Stockwell.  In  August,  I  shall  remit  the  remaining  sum 
due  upon  the  house  ;  and  also  £200  sterling,  in  order  to  augment  my  annual 
remittance  to  £400  sterling.  As  my  mother  is  so  fond  of  the  country,  and  as  a 
garden  would  probably  contribute  to  her  health,  she  ought  certainly  to  be  under 
no  concex'n  about  the  trifling  expense  a  country  house  may  o<x;asion,in  addition 
to  one  in  town.  I  therefore  hope  that  you  will  draw  on  Colt  for  whatever  it 
may  cost,  and  let  me  know  the  amount,  that  I  may  add  it  to  tlie  £400,  which  I 
mean  should  go  entirely  to  your  town  expenses ;  and  that  you  will  likewise  in- 
form me  what  other  debts  you  may  have  besides  the  mortgage  on  the  house, 
that  I  may  discharge  them,  and  relieve  you  at  once  from  the  vexation  and 
anxiety  to  which  you  have  so  long  been  exposed."  In  a  very  few  years  after- 
wards, we  find  him  making  another  munificent  contribution  to  the  comfort  and 
happiness  of  his  parents,  by  remitting  them  £2000  for  the  purchase  of  a  coun- 
try house. 

Colonel  3Iunro  retained  his  appointment  in  the  Ceded  Districts  till  the  year 
1807,  when  he  came  to  the  resolution  of  paying  a  visit  to  his  native  country. 
With  this  view,  he  applied  for  and  obtained  permission  to  resign  his  situation  ; 
and  after  a  few  days  spent  in   preparation,  embarked,  in  October  in  tiie  year 


68 


MAJOR-GENERAL  SIR  THOMAS  MTJNRO,  BART.,  K.C.B. 


above  named,  at  Madras  for  England,  leaving  behind  him,  after  a  seryice  of 
seven  and  twenty  years,  a  reputation  for  talent,  diligence,  and  exemplary  con- 
duct, both  as  a  civil  and  military  officer,  wliich  few  in  the  same  service  had  at- 
tained, and  none  surpassed.  In  the  former  capacity,  he  had  undertaken  and 
accomplished  more  than  any  British  functionary  had  ever  done  before  him  ;  and 
in  the  latter,  he  had  displayed  a  talent  for  military  affairs,  which  all  acknow- 
ledged to  be  of  the  very  highest  order. 

After  an  agreeable  passage  of  nearly  six  montlis,  colonel  Munro  arrived  at 
Deal  on  the  5th  April,  1808.  From  Deal  he  proceeded  to  London,  where  he 
was  detained  by  some  pressing  business,  until  the  summer  was  far  advanced.  He 
then  set  out  for  Scotland,  but  not  Mithout  some  melancholy  forebodings  of  the 
changes  which  he  knew  so  great  a  lapse  of  time  as  seven  and  twenty  years  must 
!iave  effected  on  the  persons  and  things  associated  with  his  earliest  and  teiiderest 
recollections.  These  anticipations  he  found,  on  his  arrival,  realized.  That 
mother  to  whom  he  was  so  tenderly  attached,  and  whose  couifort  and  welfare 
iiad  been  a  constant  object  of  his  solicitude,  was  no  more.  She  had  died  about 
a  year  previous  to  his  arrival.  Two  of  his  brothers  were  dead  also,  and  many 
besides  of  the  friends  of  his  youth.  The  imbecility  of  age  had  moreover  come 
upon  his  only  surviving  parent,  and  had  effected  such  a  change,  as  to  mar  that 
reciprocity  of  feeling,  which  their  meeting,  after  so  long  a  separation,  would 
otherwise  have  excited. 

On  his  return  to  Glasgow,  colonel  Munro  revisited  all  the  haunts  of  bis  youth, 
and,  particularly,  North  Woodside,  then  a  romantic  spot  in  the  vicinity  of  the  city, 
where,  in  his  early  days,  bis  father  bad  a  country  residence,  to  which  the  family 
resorted  every  summer.  Here,  with  all  that  simple  and  amiable  feeling, 
peculiar  to  generous  natures,  he  endeavoured  to  annihilate  the  space  of  time 
which  had  elapsed  since  he  had  been  there  a  boy,  and  to  recall,  with  increased 
force,  the  sensations  of  his  youth,  by  bathing  in  the  dam  in  which  he  had  sported 
when  a  boy,  and  by  wandering  through  the  woods  where  he  had  spent  so  many 
of  the  careless  hours  of  that  happy  season.  1  his  feeling  he  even  carried  so  far, 
as  to  climb  once  more  a  favourite  aged  tree,  which  had  enjoyed  an  especial 
share  of  his  youthful  patronage  and  afl^ection.  Every  branch  was  familiar  to 
him  ;  for  he  had  a  thousand  times  nestled  amongst  them,  to  enjoy  in  solitude 
and  quietness  the  pages  of  some  favourite  author. 

Colonel  Munro  now  spent  a  good  deal  of  his  time  in  Edinburgh,  where  he 
resumed  his  favourite  study,  chemistry,  by  attending  the  lectures  of  Dr  Hope, 
and  by  perusing  such  works  on  the  subject  as  had  appeared  since  he  had  left 
Europe.  During  his  residence  in  Britain,  he  took  a  lively  interest  in  the  Pen- 
insular war,  and  was  known  to  be  in  constant  communication  with  the  duke  of 
Wellington,  who  had  become  acquainted  with  him  in  the  East,  and  who  had 
there  learned  to  appreciate  his  eminent  abilities.  About  this  time,  also,  he  ac- 
companied Sir  John  Hope  to  the  Scheldt  as  a  volunteer,  and  was  present  at 
the  siege  of  Flushing. 

The  East  India  Company's  charter  now  drawing  to  a  close,  and  the 
question  of  the  propriety  of  its  renewal  having  attracted  an  extraordinary  share 
of  public  attention  ;  a  parliamentary  committee  was  appointed  to  inquire  into, 
and  hear  evidence  on  the  subject,  to  enable  the  house  to  come  to  a  decision  re- 
garding it.  3Iany  persons  connected  with  India  were  in  consequence  examined 
on  the  affairs  of  that  country,  and  amongst  the  rest  the  subject  of  this  memoir ; 
and  such  was  the  clearness  of  his  evidence,  the  importance  of  the  information 
which  he  gave,  the  comprehensiveness  of  his  views,  and  the  general  talent  and 
judgment  which  characterized  all  his  statements,  that  the  court  of  directoi-s  im- 


MAJOR-GENERAL  SIR  THOMAS  MTJNRO,  BART.,  K.C.B.  69 

mediately  placed  him  at  the  head  of  a  commission  of  inquiry  which  they 
decided  on  sending  out  to  India,  to  remedy  those  defects  and  abuses  which  the 
evidence  now  placed  before  them  had  brought  to  ligliL 

Previous  to  his  returning  to  India,   colonel  Munro  married,   30th  March, 

1814,  Jane  Campbell,  daughter  of Campbell,  Esq.  of  Craigie  House, 

Ayrshire,  a  lady  remarkable  for  her  beauty  and  accomplishments.  This  con- 
nexion added  greatly  to  colonel  Munro's  happiness,  and  eventually  opened  up 
to  him  a  source  of  domestic  felicity  which  his  disposition  and  temper  eminently 
fitted  him  to  enjoy. 

His  commission  having  now  been  duly  made  out,  and  all  other  preparations 
for  his  voyage  completed,  he  enibaiked,  accompanied  by  his  wife  and  sister-in- 
law,  in  the  month  of  3Iay,  1814,  at  Portsmouth,  and  after  a  pleasant  passage 
of  eighteen  weeks,  arrived  at  Madras  on  the  16th  September. 

On  his  arrival,  colonel  Munro  immediately  began  to  discharge  the  arduous 
duties  of  his  new  appointment  These  embraced  a  total  revision  of  the 
internal  administration  of  the  Madras  territories,  and  comprehended  an  amount 
of  labour,  in  going  over  reports  and  decisions,  in  investigating  accounts,  in 
drawing  up  regulations,  and  in  a  thousand  other  details  as  numerous  as  they 
were  complicated,  which  would  have  appalled  any  man  of  less  nerve  than  him 
on  whose  shoulders  it  had  fallen.  In  tiiis  laborious  employment  he  continued 
till  the  month  of  July,  1817,  when,  a  war  with  the  3Iahratta8  having  broken 
out,  he  solicited  employment  in  tl>e  line  of  his  profession,  and  was  appointed  to 
the  command  of  the  reserve  of  the  army  under  lieutenant-general  Sir  Thomas 
Hiblop,  having  been  himself  previously,  15th  June,  1815,  promoted  to  the  rank 
of  colonel. 

In  the  campaign  which  followed  the  resumption  of  his  military  duties, 
colonel  Munro  performed  a  brilliant  part.  His  militai-y  reputation,  formerly 
amongst  the  highest,  was  now  universally  acknowledged  to  be  unsurpassed. 
Lord  Hastings  complimented  him  in  strains  of  the  warmest  panegyric,  as  well  in 
his  official  comnmnications  as  in  his  private  con-espondence.  Mr  Canning 
passed  an  eloquent  eulogium  on  his  merits  in  the  house  of  commons.  Sir  John 
Malcolm  contributed  his  unqualified  commendations  of  his  masterly  operations, 
and  the  public  records  of  Calcutta  were  filled  with  his  praise.  His  name  was 
now,  in  short,  become  famous  throughout  Europe,  and  he  was  everywhere 
looked  upon  not  only  as  one  of  the  first  soldiers  of  the  day,  but  as  a  man  who 
possessed  talents  and  abilities  which  fitted  him  for  attaining  eminence  equally 
in  a  civil  as  in  a  military  life. 

In  the  campaign  which  lasted  till  the  beginning  of  August,  1818,  general 
Munro,  (he  Mas  promoted  to  this  rank,  December  1817,)  reduced  all  the  Peish- 
wah's  territories  between  the  Toombuddra  and  Kistna,  and  from  the  Eistna 
northward  to  Akloos  on  the  Neemah,  and  eastward  to  the  Nizam's  frontier. 
On  the  conclusion  of  the  campaign,  finding  his  health  greatly  impaired  by 
the  excessive  fatigue  Avhich  he  had  undergone,  he  resolved  to  resign  all  his 
commissions,  both  civil  and  military,  and  to  retire  into  private  life.  In  pur- 
suance of  this  resolution,  he  tendered  his  resignations  to  the  marquis  of  Hast- 
ings, who  received  them  with  much  reluctance  ;  and  returned  by  way  of  Benga- 
lore,  where  he  met  his  family,  to  31adras.  Shortly  after  this,  October  1618, 
he  was  made  a  Companion  of  the  Bath,  as  a  testimony  of  the  opinion  which  was 
entertained  at  home  of  his  merits. 

General  Munro  now  again  turned  his  thoughts  homewards,  and,  after 
devoting  two  months  to  the  arrangement  of  his  affairs,  embarked  on  board  the 
Warren  Hastings,  with  hijs  family,  for  En^^land,  on  the  24th  January,  1819. 
During  the  pnssage,  Mrs  Munro  was  delivered,  30th  31ay,  of  a  boy,  whr,  being 


70  MAJOR-GENERAL  SIR  THOMAS  MUNRO,  BART.,  K.C.B. 

born  when  the  ship  was  in  the  latitude  of  the  Azores,  was  baptized  by  that 
name.  The  Warren  Hastings  having  arrived  in  the  Downs,  general  and  Mrs 
Munro  landed  at  Deal,  and  proceeded  to  London,  where  they  remained  for  a 
short  time,  and  tliereafter  set  out  for  Scotland.  The  former,  however,  was  only 
a  few  weeks  at  hoyie  when  he  received  n  formal  communication  from  the 
government,  appointing  him  to  the  governorship  of  Madras,  and  he  was  soon  af- 
ter, October  1819,  promoted  to  the  rank  of  major-general,  and  invested,  Novem- 
ber, 1819,  with  the  insignia  of  K.  C.  B. 

Although  extremely  reluctant  again  to  leJive  his  native  country,  Sir  Thomas 
did  not  think  it  advisable  to  decline  the  acceptance  of  the  high  and  honour- 
able appointment  now  proffered  him.  Having  committed  their  boy  to  the 
charge  of  lady  Slunro's  father.  Sir  Thomas  and  his  lady  proceeded  to  Deal, 
where  they  once  more  embarked  for  India  in  December,  1819,  and  arrived 
safely  at  Bombay  in  the  beginning  of  May  in  the  following  year.  Here  they 
remained  for  about  a  fortnight,  when  they  again  took  shipping,  and  on  the  8th 
June  reached  Madras. 

Sir  Thomas,  immediately  on  his  arrival,  entered  on  the  discharge  of  the  im- 
portant duties  of  his  new  appointment  with  all  the  zeal  and  diligence  which 
marked  every  part  of  his  preceding  career.  These  duties  were  extremely 
laborious.  From  sunrise  till  eight  in  the  evening,  with  the  exception  of  an 
hour  or  two  at  dinner,  comprising  a  little  out-door  recreation  after  that  repast, 
he  was  unremittingly  employed  in  attending  to,  and  despatching  the  public 
business  of  his  department.  With  this  routine  the  morning  meal  was  not  at  all 
allowed  to  interfere.  The  breakfast  table  was  daily  spread  for  thirty  persons, 
lliat  all  who  came  on  business  at  that  hour  should  partake  of  it,  and  that  the 
various  matters  which  occasioned  their  visits  might  he  discussed  during  its  pro- 
gress without  encroaching  on  the  day. 

By  this  rigid  economy  of  time.  Sir  Thomas  was  enabled  to  get  through  an 
amount  of  business  which  would  appear  wholly  incredible  to  one  who  placed 
less  value  on  it  than  he  did.  He  wrote  almost  every  paper  of  any  importance 
connected  with  his  government  with  his  own  hand.  He  read  all  communica- 
tions and  documents,  and  examined  all  plans  and  statements,  with  his  own  eyes, 
and  heard  every  complaint  and  representation  which  was  made  verbally,  with 
his  own  ears. 

Although  Sir  Thomas  had  not  thought  it  advisable  to  decline  the  governorship 
of  Madras,  he  yet  came  out  with  every  intention  of  returning  again  to  hia 
native  land  as  soon  as  circumstances  would  permit,  and  in  1823,  he  addressed 
a  memorial  to  the  court  of  directors,  earnestly  requesting  to  be  relieved 
from  his  charge.  From  a  difficulty,  however,  in  finding  a  successor  to  Sir 
Thomas,  and  from  the  extraordinary  efficiency  of  his  services,  the  court  was  ex- 
tremely unwilling  to  entertain  his  request,  and  allowed  many  months  to  elapse 
without  making  any  reply  to  it.  In  the  mean  time  the  Burmese  war  took 
place,  and  Sir  Tliomas  found  that  he  could  not,  with  honour  or  propriety,  press 
his  suit  on  the  directors.  He  therefore  came  to  the  reflielution  of  remaining 
at  his  post  to  abide  the  issue  of  the  struggle.  In  this  war  he  distinguished  him- 
self,  as  he  had  so  often  done  before,  by  singular  bravery,  talent,  and  intelli- 
gence,  and  performed  such  important  services  as  pi'ocured  his  elevation,  June 
1625,  to  the  dignity  of  a  baronet  of  Great  Britain. 

At  the  conclusion  of  the  Burmese  war.  Sir  Thomas  again  applied  for  liberty 
to  resign  his  appointment,  and  after  much  delay  the  Right  Honourable  S. 
Lushington  was  nominated  his  successor,  on  the  4th  April,  1827. 

Sir  Thomas  now  prepared  to  leave  India  for  the  last  time,  full  of  fond  an- 
ticipations of  the  happiness  which  auaited  the  closing  years  of  his  life  in  his 


SIR  WILLIAM  MURE.  71 


native  land  ;  but  It  was  otherwise  ordained.  His  lady,  with  a  favourite  son, 
had  returned  to  England  a  year  before,  in  consequence  of  an  illness  of  the  lat- 
ter, which,  it  was  thought,  required  this  change  of  climate  ;  and  thus  while  the 
inducements  to  remain  in  India  were  greatly  lessened,  those  to  return  to  his 
native  land  were  increased.  While  awaiting  the  arrival  of  his  successor.  Sir 
Thomas  unfortunately  came  to  the  resolution  of  paying  a  farewell  visit  to  his 
old  friends  in  the  Ceded  Districts,  where  the  cholera  was  at  that  time  raging 
with  great  violence.  Alarmed  for  his  safety,  his  friends  endeavoured  to  dis- 
suade him  from  his  intended  excursion,  but  to  no  purpose.  Towards  the  end 
of  May,  he  set  out  from  Madras,  attended  by  a  small  escort,  and  on  the  6th  of 
July  following,  reached  Putteecondah,  where  he  was  seized  with  the  fatal  dis- 
temper about  nine  o'clock  in  the  morning,  and  expired  on  the  evening  of  tlie 
same  day  at  half  past  nine,  in  the  6Gth  year  of  his  age.  In  an  hour  and  a  half 
after  his  death,  his  body  was  removed  to  Gooty,  where  it  was  interred  with  such 
military  honours  as  the  remoteness  of  the  situation,  and  the  despatch  which  it  is 
necessary  to  observe  on  such  occasions  in  India,  could  afford. 

Few  events  ever  occurred  in  India  which  excited  so  general  a  sensation,  or 
created  so  universal  a  feeling  of  regret,  as  the  death  of  Sir  Thomas  Munro. 
Natives  as  well  as  Europeans  mourned  his  loss  with  unfeigned  sorrow.  His  jus- 
tice, humanity,  benevolence,  and  eminent  talents,  had  secured  him  the  esteem 
and  respect  of  all  who  knew  him,  and  he  was  known  nearly  throughout  the 
whole  extent  of  the  eastern  world.  No  man  perhaps,  in  short,  ever  descended 
to  the  grave  more  beloved  or  more  lamented,  and  none  was  ever  more  entitled 
to  these  tributes  of  affection  from  his  fellow  men,  or  ever  took  such  pains  to 
deserve  them  as  Sir  Thomas  Munro. 

With  regard  to  his  talents,  had  there  been  no  other  proof  of  their  existence 
than  that  which  his  letters  aflbrd,  these  alone  would  have  pointed  him  out  as  a 
remarkable  man  ;  and  as  one  who,  had  he  chosen  it,  might  have  become  as  emi- 
nent in  literature  as  he  was  in  the  profession  of  arms.  Three  volumes  of  these 
compositions,  strung  upon  a  memoir  of  the  writer,  have  been  published  under  the 
superintendence  of  the  Rev.  Mr  Gleig,  author  of  "  The  Subaltern." 

MURE,  (Sir)  William,  of  Rowallan,  a  poet,  was  born  about  the  year  1594. 
He  Avas  the  eldest  son  of  Sir  William  Mure  of  Rowallan,  by  a  sister  of  Mont- 
gomery, the  author  of  the  "  The  Cherry  and  the  Slae."  The  family  was  one  of 
the  most  ancient  of  the  order  of  gentry  in  that  part  of  the  country,  and  through 
Elizabeth  Mure,  the  first  wife  of  Robert  II.,  had  mingled  its  blood  with  the 
royal  line :  it  recently  terminated  in  the  mother  of  the  late  countess  of 
Loudoun  and  marchioness  of  Hastings.  Of  the  poet's  education  no  memorial 
has  been  preserved,  but  it  was  undoubtedly  the  best  that  his  country  could  af- 
ford in  that  age,  as,  with  a  scholar-like  enthusiasm,  he  had  attempted  a  version  of 
the  story  of  Dido  and  JEneas  before  his  twentieth  year.  There  is  also  a 
specimen  of  Sir  William's  verses  in  pure  English,  dated  so  early  as  1611,  when 
he  could  not  be  more  than  seventeen.  In  1615,  while  still  under  age,  and  be- 
fore he  had  succeeded  to  his  paternal  estate,  he  married  Anna,  daughter  of 
Dundas  of  Newliston,  by  whom  he  had  five  sons  and  six  daughters.  The  eldest 
son  William,  succeeded  his  father ;  Alexander  was  killed  in  the  Irish  Rebellion, 
1641  ;  Robert,  a  major  in  the  army,  married  the  lady  Newhall  in  Fife  ;  John 
was  designed  of  Fenwickhill ;  and  Patrick,  probably  the  youngest,  was  created 
a  baronet  of  Nova  Scotia  in  1662.  One  of  the  daughters,  Elizabeth,  was  mar- 
ried to  Uchter  Knox  of  Ranfurly.  Sir  William  Mure  married,  secondly,  dame 
Jane  Hamilton,  lady  Duntreath ;  -and  of  this  marriage  there  were  two  sons  and 
two  daughters  ;  James,  Hugh,  Jane,  and  Blarion. 

The    earliest   of  Sir   William's    compositions    to    be    found   in   print  is    an 


72  ALEXANDER  MUERAY,  D.D. 

address  to  the  king  at  Hamilton,  on  his  progress  through  tiie  country  in 
1617,  which  is  embodied  in  the  collection  entitled,  "  The  Muse's  Welcome." 
Such  productions  of  his  earlier  years  as  have  been  preserved  are  chiefly  amatory 
poems  in  English,  very  much  in  the  manner  of  the  contemporary  poets  of  the 
neighbouring  kingdom,  and  rivalling  them  in  force  and  delicacy  of  sentiment. 
Sir  William  seems  to  have  afterwards  addicted  himself  to  serious  poetry.  In 
1628,  he  published  a  translation,  in  English  Sapphics,  of  Boyd  of  Trochrig's 
beautiful  Latin  poem,  "  Hecatombe  Christiana  ;"  and  in  the  succeeding  year 
produced  his  "  Ti-ve  Crucifixe  for  Trve  Catholickes,"  Edinburgh,  1  2mo.  ;  in- 
tended as  an  exposure  of  the  prime  object  of  Romish  idolatry.  By  far  the 
larger  portion  of  his  writings  remain  in  manuscript 

Like  his  contemporary,  Drummond  of  Hawthornden,  Mure  seems  to  have  de- 
lighted in  a  quiet  country  life.  A  taste  for  building  and  rural  embellishment 
is  discoverable  in  the  family  of*  Rowallan  at  a  period  when  decorations  of  this 
nature  were  but  little  regarded  in  Scotland  :  and  in  these  refinements  Sir  Wil- 
liam fell  nothing  behind^  if  he  did  not  greatly  surpass  the  slowly  advancing 
spirit  of  his  time ;  besides  planting  and  other  ameliorations,  he  made  various 
additions  to  the  family  mansion,  and  "  reformed  the  whole  house  exceed- 
ingly." 

At  the  commencement  of  the  religious  troubles.  Sir  William  Mure,  though  in 
several  of  Jiis  poems  he  appears  as  paying  his  court  to  royalty,  took  an  interest 
in  the  popular  cause  ;  and,  in  the  first  army  raised  against  the  king,  commanded 
a  company  in  the  Ayrshire  regiment.  He  was  a  member  of  the  parliament,  or 
rather  convention  of  1643,  by  which  the  Solemn  League  and  Covenant  was 
ratified  with  England  ;  and,  in  the  beginning  of  the  ensuing  year,  accompanied 
the  troops  which,  in  terms  of  that  famous  treaty,  were  despatched  to  the  aid  of 
the  parliamentary  cause.  After  a  variety  of  services  during  the  spring  of 
1644,  he  was  present,  and  wounded,  in  the  decisive  battle  of  Long  Marston- 
moor,  July  2nd.  In  the  succeeding  month,  he  was  engaged  at  the  storming  of 
Newcastle,  where,  for  some  time,  in  consequence  of  the  superior  officer's  being 
disabled,  he  had  the  command  of  the  regiment.  Whether  this  was  the  last 
campaign  of  the  poet,  or  whether  he  remained  Avith  the  army  till  its  return,  af- 
ter the  rendition  of  the  king,  in  1647,  is  not  known.  No  farther  material 
notice  of  him  occurs,  except  that,  on  the  revision  of  Roos's  Psalms  by  the 
General  Assembly  in  1650,  a  version  by  Mure  of  Rowallan  is  spoken  of  as  em- 
ployed by  the  committee  for  the  improvement  of  the  other.  Sir  William  died 
in  1657.  Various  specimens  of  his  compositions  may  be  found  in  a  small 
volume  entitled,  "  Ancient  Ballads  and  Songs,  chiefly  from  tradition,  manu- 
scripts, and  scarce  works,  with  biographical  and  illustrative  notices,  including 
original  poetry,  by  Thomas  Lyle  :  London,"  1827  ;  to  which  we  have  been  in- 
debted for  the  materials  of  this  article. 

MURRAY,  Alexander,  D.  D.,  an  eminent  philologist,  was  born,  October  22, 
1775,  at  Dunkitterick,  on  the  water  of  Palneur,  in  the  Stewartry  of  Kirkcud- 
bright He  was  the  son  of  a  shepherd,  or  pastoral  farm-servant  named  Robert 
Murray,  who  was  in  the  seventieth  year  of  his  age  at  the  time  of  the  birth  of 
this  distinguished  member  of  his  family.  Young  Murray  was  born  in  too  hum- 
ble circumstances,  and  reared  in  too  secluded  u  district,  to  have  the  advantage  of 
early  instruction  at  school.  When  he  had  attained  his  sixth  year,  his  father  pur- 
chased for  him  a  copy  of  the  Shorter  Catechism  ;  a  work  prefaced,  in  Scottish 
editions,  by  the  alphabet  in  its  various  forms,  and  a  few  exercises  in  monosyl- 
lables. Tho  good  shepherd,  however,  thought  this  little  volume  (the  cost  of 
which  it  only  one  penny)  too  valuable  for  common  use  :  it  was  accordingly 
locked  carefully  aside,  and  the  father  taught  his  child  the  letters,  by  scribbling 


ALEXANDER  MURRAY,  D.D.  73 

them  on  the  back  of  an  old  wool-card  with  tlie  end  of  a  burnt  heather-stem. 
When  the  elements  of  language  had  been  thus  mastered,  the  catechism  was 
brought  forth,  and  given  to  the  young  student  as  a  book  of  exercises  in  read- 
ing. He  then  got  a  psalm  book,  which  he  liked  much  better  than  the  cate- 
chism ;  and  at  length  a  New  Testament,  which  he  liked  better  still ;  and  after- 
wards he  discovered  an  old  loose  bible,  which  he  carried  away  piece-meal  from 
the  place  where  it  was  deposited,  and  read  with  all  the  wonderment  natural  to  a 
capacious  mind,  on  being  first  introduced  to  a  kind  of  knowledge  beyond  the 
limited  scene  in  which  it  had  originally  been  placed.  He  liked  the  mournful 
narratives  best,  and  greatly  admired  Jeremiah,  Ezekiel,  and  the  Lamentations. 
In  his  eighth  year,  he  had  acquired  so  much  local  fame  on  account  of  his  acquire- 
ments in  reading,  tiiat  a  wish  was  generally  entertained  among  his  friends  to  see 
him  sent  to  some  regular  school.  This  would  have  been  impossible — for  his 
father  was  a  very  poor  man — if  a  brother  of  liis  mother,  by  name  William 
Cochrane,  had  not  possessed  both  the  means  and  the  inclination  to  provide  the 
requisite  funds.  He  was  placed,  in  1784,  at  the  school  of  New  Galloway, 
where,  though  he  made  a  very  awkward  appearance  at  first,  he  soon  distanced 
the  most  of  "  the  Bible  class."  He  had  been  but  six  months  at  school,  when  he 
was  seized  by  an  illness,  which  called  him  home  ;  nor  did  he  again  attend 
school  for  the  four  ensuing  years.  During  the  most  of  this  space  of  time,  he  ap- 
pears to  have  been  employed  as  a  shepherd ;  devoting  all  his  leisure,  however, 
to  the  study  of  such  books  as  fell  in  his  way.  In  the  winter  of  1787-8,  he  was 
so  far  advanced  as  to  be  able  to  teach  the  children  of  two  neighbouring  farmers. 
Soon  after,  he  began  to  give  irregular  attendance  at  the  school  of  Minnigaff, 
chiefly  for  the  purpose  of  improving  his  arithmetic,  as  he  had  now  formed  a 
wish  to  become  a  merchant's  clerk.  In  1790,  he  made  his  first  adventure  into 
the  region  of  languages,  by  studying  French  and  Latin  ;  and  such  was  his  appli- 
cation, that  in  the  course  of  three  or  four  months,  he  had  learned  as  much  as  the 
most  of  youths  acquire  in  as  many  years.  By  extraordinary  good  fortune,  he 
obtained  an  old  copy  of  the  larger  dictionary  of  Ainsworlh,  at  the  low  price  of 
eighteen  pence,  and  soon  read  the  volume  quite  through.  Every  part  of  this 
large  book  he  studied  with  minute  attention,  observing  the  Greek  derivations  oi 
the  words,  and  occasionally  adverting  to  the  Hebrew  also ;  and  thus,  about  a 
year  after  his  first  acquaintance  with  the  rudiments,  he  was  able  to  read  Ovid, 
CjBsar,  and  Livy,  and  to  commence  lessons  in  the  Iliad.  AH  the  books  which 
his  school-fellows  possessed,  both  in  English  and  classical  literature,  were  bor- 
rowed by  IMurray,  and  devoured  with  immense  rapidity  and  eagerness.  He 
had  at  this  time  no  taste  in  reading  :  the  boundless  field  of  knowledge  was  open 
to  him,  and  he  cared  not  which  part  he  first  surveyed,  for  he  was  determined 
apparently  to  survey  it  all.  He  only  felt  a  kind  of  wild  pleasure  in  whatever 
Mas  grand,  or  romantic,  or  mournful.  In  perusing  the  Iliad,  he  was  greatly  af- 
fected by  the  fate  of  Hector  and  Sarpedon.  "  And  no  sensation,"  says  he,  in 
his  autobiography,  "was  ever  more  lively,  than  what  I  felt  on  first  reading  the 
passage,  which  declares  that  Jupiter  rained  drops  of  blood  upon  the  ground,  in 
honour  of  his  son  Sarpedon,  who  was  to  fall  far  from  his  country.  My  prac- 
tice," he  continues,  "  was  to  lay  down  a  new  and  difiicult  task,  after  it  had 
wearied  me, — to  take  up  another, — then  a  third, — and  to  resume  this  rotation 
frequently  and  laboriously."  Dr  Murray  used  to  consider  himself  fortunate  in 
his  teacher,  Simpson,  in  as  far  as  the  man  was  of  a  careless,  easy  character, 
and  had  no  scruple  in  permitting  him  to  advance  as  fast  as  lie  liked,  and  to 
step  into  any  class  for  which  he  appeared  qualified.  "  Desultory  study," 
says  he,  **  is  a  bad  thing  ;  but  a  lad  whose  ambition  never  ceases,  but  stimulates 
him  incessantly,  enlarges  his  mind  and  range  of  thought,  by  excursions  beyond 


74:  ALEXANDER  MURRAY,  D.D 

the  limits  of  regular  forms."     We  shall  let  Dr  Murray  narrate  his  further  pro- 
gress in  his  own  words  : — 

"  In  1792,  I  read  portions  of  Homer,  Liry,  Sallust,  and  any  other  author 
used  in  the  school.  In  the  winter,  1792-3,  I  engaged  myself' with  Thomas 
Birkmyre,  miller,  of  Minnigat!' mill,  and  taught  his  children  during  that  season 
till  March,  1793.  My  wages  were  only  thirty  shillings,  hut  my  object  was  to 
get  a  residence  near  Newton  Stewart,  and  to  have  liberty  of  going,  in  the  winter 
forenights,  to  a  school  taught  by  Mr  Nathaniel  Martin,  in  Brigend  of  Cree. 
3Iartin  had  been  at  Edinburgh,  and  possessed  many  new  books,  such  as  the  Bee, 
Duncan's  Cicero,  some  of  the  best  English  collections,  and  so  forth.  From  a 
companion,  named  John  Mackilwraith,  I  got  the  loan  of  Bailie^s  English  Dic- 
tionary, which  I  studied,  and  learnt  from  it  a  vast  variety  of  useful  matters.  I 
gained  from  it  the  Anglo-Saxon  alphabet,  the  Anglo-Saxon  paternoster,  and 
many  words  in  that  venerable  dialect  1  his  enabled  me  to  read  Hicke's  Saxon 
Grammar,  without  difficulty,  after  I  went  to  Edinburgh,  and  led  the  way  to  the 
Visi-Gothic  and  German.  About  the  end  of  autumn,  1792,  I  had  procured, 
from  one  Jack  Roberts,  a  small  Welsh  History  of  Christ  and  the  Apostles.  I 
had  seen  a  translation,  or  rather  the  original  English,  of  this  book  in  former 
years,  but  I  could  not  get  access  to  it  after  I  had  the  Welsh  in  my  possession. 
I  mused,  however,  a  good  deal  on  the  quotations  from  Scripture  that  abound  in 
it,  and  got  acquainted  with  many  Welsh  words  and  sentences.  If  I  had  a  copy 
of  the  Bible  in  any  language  of  which  I  knew  the  alphabet,  I  could  make  con- 
siderable progress  in  learning  it  without  granmiar  or  dictionary.  This  is  done 
by  minute  observation  and  comparison  of  words,  terminations,  and  phrases.  It 
is  the  method  dictated  by  necessity,  in  the  absence  of  all  assistance. 

"  In  1791,  I  had  the  loan  of  a  stray  volume  of  the  Ancient  Universal  History 
from  my  neighbour  school-fellows,  the  Maclurgs,  who  lived  in  Glenhoash,  below 
Risque.  It  contained  the  history  of  the  ancient  Gauls,  Germans,  Abyssinians, 
and  others.  It  included  a  very  incorrect  copy  of  the  Abyssinian  alphabet,  which, 
however,  I  transcribed,  and  kept  by  me  for  future  occasions.  I  was  completely 
master  of  the  Arabic  .alphabet,  by  help  of  Robertson's  Hebrew  Grammar,  in  the 
end  of  which  (first  edition)  it  is  given  in  the  most  accurate  manner. 

"  In  the  autumn  of  1792,  about  the  time  I  went  to  the  mill,  I  had,  in  the 
hour  of  ignorance  and  ambition,  believed  myself  capable  of  writing  an  epic 
pnem.  For  two  years  before,  or  rather  from  the  time  that  I  had  met  with 
Paradise  Lost,  sublime  poetry  was  my  favourite  reading.  Homer  had  encourag- 
ed this  taste,  and  my  school-fellow,  George  Mure,  had  lent  me,  in  1791,  an  edi- 
tion of  Ossian's  Fingal,  which  is,  in  many  passages,  a  sublime  and  pathetic  per. 
formance.  I  copied  Fingal,  as  the  book  was  lent  only  for  four  days,  and  car« 
ried  the  MS.  about  with  me.  I  chose  Arthur,  general  of  the  Britons,  for  my 
hero,  and  during  the  winter  1792-3,  wrote  several  thousands  of  blank  verses  about 
his  achievements.  This  was  my  first  attempt  in  blank  verse.  In  1790,  I  had 
purcliased  '  The  Grave,'  a  poem  by  Blair,  and  committed  it  almost  entirely  to 
memory. 

"  I  passed  the  summer  of  1793  at  home,  and  in  long  visits  to  my  friends  in 
Newton  Stewart,  and  other  parts.  During  that  time  I  destroyed  Arthur  and 
his  Britons,  and  began  to  translate,  from  Buchanan's  poetical  works,  his  Fratres 
Franciscan!,  I  made  an  attempt  to  obtain  Mochrum  school ;  but  Mr  Steven, 
minister  of  that  parish,  who  received  me  very  kindly,  told  me  that  it  was  pro- 
mised, and,  that  my  youth  would  be  objected  to  by  tlie  heritors  and  parish. 

"  Some  time  in  tlie  same  summer,  I  formed  an  acquaintance  with  William 
Hume,  a  young  lad  who  intended  to  become  an  Antiburgher  clergyman,  and 
who  kept  a  private  school  in  Newton  Stewart.     This  friendship  procured  me 


ALEXANDER  MURRAY.  D.D.  75 


the  loan  of  several  new  books.  I  paid  a  visit  to  the  Rev.  Mr  Donnan,  in  Wig- 
ton,  an  excellent  man  and  scholar.  He  examined  me  on  Homer,  which  I  read 
ad  apertnram  libri,  in  a  very  tolerable,  though  not  very  correct  manner.  He 
gave  me  Cicero  de  Natura  Deorum,  which  I  studied  with  great  ardour,  though  a 
speculative  treatise.  I  was  enthusiastically  fond  of  Cicero,  as  my  dictionary 
gave  me  a  most  affecting  account  of  the  merits  and  fate  of  that  great  man.  In 
1701, 1  bought  for  a  trifle  a  MS.  volume  of  the  lectures  of  Arnold  Drackenburg, 
a  Geiraan  professor,  on  the  lives  and  writings  of  the  Roman  authors,  from 
Livius  Andronicus  to  Quintilian.  This  was  a  learned  work,  and  I  resolved  to 
translate  and  publish  it.  I  remained  at  home  during  the  winter  of  1793-4,  and 
employed  myself  in  that  task.  My  translation  was  neither  elegant  nor  correct. 
My  taste  was  improving  ;  but  a  knowledge  of  elegant  phraseology  and  correct 
diction  cannot  be  acquired  without  some  acquaintance  with  the  world,  and  with 
the  human  character  in  its  polished  state.  The  most  obscure  and  uninteresting 
parts  of  the  Spectator,  World,  Guardian,  and  Pope's  Works,  were  those  that 
described  life  and  manners.  The  parts  of  those  works  which  I  then  read  with 
rapture,  were  accounts  of  tragic  occurrences,  of  great  but  unfortunate  men,  and 
poetry  that  addressed  the  passions.  In  spring  1794,  I  got  a  reading  of  Blair's 
Lectures.  The  book  was  lent  by  Mr  Strang,  a  Relief  clergyman,  to  William 
Hume,  and  sublent  to  me.  In  1793,  I  had  seen  a  volume  of  an  encyclopedia, 
but  found  very  considerable  difficulties  in  making  out  the  sense  of  obscure  scien- 
tific terms,  with  which  those  books  abound. 

"  Early  in  1794,  I  resolved  to  go  to  Dumfries,  and  present  my  translation  to 
the  booksellers  there.  As  I  had  doubts  respecting  the  success  of  a  '  History  of 
the  Latin  Writers,'  I  likewise  composed  a  number  of  poems,  chiefly  in  the 
Scottish  dialect,  and  most  of  them  very  indifTerent.  I  went  to  Dumfries  in 
June,  1794,  and  found  that  neither  of  the  two  booksellers  there  would  under- 
take to  publish  my  translation  ;  but  I  got  a  number  of  subscription  papers 
printed,  in  order  to  promote  the  publication  of  the  poems.  I  collected  by  my- 
self and  friends  four  or  five  hundred  subscriptions.  At  (iatehouse,  a  merchant 
there,  an  old  friend,  gave  me  a  very  curious  and  large  printed  copy  of  the  Pen- 
tateuch, which  had  belonged  to  the  celebrated  Andrew  Melville,  and  the  Hebrew 
Dictionary  of  Pagninus,  a  huge  folio.  During  the  visit  to  Dumfries,  I  was  in- 
troduced to  Robert  Burns,  who  treated  me  with  great  kindness  ;  told  me,  that 
if  I  could  get  out  to  college  without  publishing  my  poems,  it  would  be  better,  as 
my  taste  was  young  and  not  formed,  and  I  would  be  ashamed  of  my  productions 
when  I  could  write  and  judge  better.  I  understood  this,  and  resolved  to  make 
publication  my  last  resource.  In  Dumfries  I  bought  six  or  seven  plays  of 
Shaljspeare,  and  never  read  any  thing  except  Milton,  with  more  rapture  and 
enthusiasm." 

The  singular  acquirements  of  this  Galloway  shepherd,  had  now  made  sonrie 
impression  in  a  circle  beyond  his  own  limited  and  remote  sphere  ;  and,  in 
November,  1794,  he  was  invited  to  Edinburgh,  in  order  to  make  an  exhibition 
of  his  learning  before  several  individuals,  who  were  net  only  qualified  to  judge 
of  it,  but  were  inclined  to  take  an  interest  in  the  fate  of  iU  possessor.  He  un- 
derwent an  examination  before  Drs  Baird,  Finlayson,  and  Moodie,  clergymen  of 
the  city;  and  so  efTectually  convinced  these  gentlemen  of  his  qualifications,  that 
they  took  the  means  to  procure  for  him  a  gratuitous  education  in  the  university. 
Dr  Baird  proved,  in  particular,  a  zealous  and  steady  friend,  not  only  in  the 
exertion  of  his  influence,  but  by  contributions  to  the  means  of  his  subsistence 
during  the  earlier  part  of  his  academic  career.  At  the  end  of  two  years,  he 
obtained  a  bursary,  or  exhibition,  from  the  city,  and  soon  after  was  able  to  %\iy- 
port  himself,  by  private  teaching.     He  now  commenced  the  necessary  studies  lor 


70 


ALEXANDER  MURRAY,  D.D. 


the  church,  at  the  same  time  that  he  devoted  every  liour  he  could  spare  to  the 
acquisition  of  general  knowledge.  In  a  very  short  space  of  time,  he  found  him- 
self master  of  the  whole  of  the  European  languages,  and  began  to  make  re< 
searciies  in  the  more  recondite  dialects  of  the  east.  His  philological  studies 
were  conducted  with  a  careful  regard  to  etymology,  and  the  philosophy  of  gram- 
mar ;  and  it  would  appear  that  the  design  of  tracing  up  all  existing  languages 
to  one  root,  and  thus  penetrating  back  into  the  early  and  unchronicled  history 
of  the  human  race,  gradually  expanded  upon  him. 

While  thus  devoting  his  leisure  to  one  grand  pursuit,  he  did  not  neglect 
the  graces  of  the  belles  lettres.  After  having  for  some  years  contributed  mis- 
cellaneous pieces  to  the  Scots  Magazine,  he  was  induced,  about  the  beginning 
of  the  present  century,  to  become  the  editor  of  that  respectable  work,  then  the 
property  of  Mr  Archibald  Constable.  He  also  contributed  several  able  articles 
to  tlie  Edinburgh  Review.  Having  made  himself  master  of  the  Abyssinian 
language,  and  also  of  the  Geez  and  Amharic  tongues,  upon  which  tlie  former  is 
founded,  he  appeared  to  Mr  Constable  as  a  fit  person  to  superintend  a  now 
edition  of  Bruce's  Travels  to  discover  the  source  of  the  Nile.  For  nearly  three 
years  subsequent  to  September  1802,  he  was  engaged  with  little  intermission 
upon  this  task,  chiefly  residing  at  Kinnaird  House,  where  he  had  access  to  the 
papers  left  by  the  illustrious  traveller.  To  the  work,  which  appeared  in  seven 
large  octavo  volumes,  he  contributed  a  life  of  the  author,  and  a  mass  of  notes, 
containing  the  most  curious  and  learned  discussions  on  philology,  antiquities, 
and  a  manifold  variety  of  subjects  illustrative  of  Bruce's  narrative.  The 
"  Life"  he  afterwards  enlarged  and  published  in  a  separate  volume. 

In  1806,  Dr  Murray  for  the  first  time  obtained  what  might  be  considered  a 
permanent  station  by  being  appointed  assistant  cind  successor  to  the  Rev.  Mr 
Muirhead,  minister  of  Urr,  in  the  stewartry  of  Kirkcudbright ;  at  whose  death, 
in  1808,  he  became  the  full  stipendiary  of  the  parish.  In  this  situation,  he 
displayed,  amidst  his  clerical  duties,  his  usual  application  to  philological  pur- 
suits. His  fame  as  a  linguist  was  now  spread  abroad  by  his  edition  of  Bruce, 
and  in  1811,  at  the  suggestion  of  Mr  Salt,  envoy  to  Abyssinia,  he  was  applied 
to,  to  use  Mr  Salt's  own  words,  as  *'  the  only  person  in  the  British  dominions  " 
adequate  to  the  task,  to  translate  a  letter  written  in  Geez,  from  tlie  governor  of 
Tigris  to  his  Britannic  majesty.  Notwithstanding  the  obscurity  of  several  pas- 
sages in  this  rare  document,  he  was  able  to  acquit  himself  of  his  task  in  the  most 
satisfactory  manner. 

In  1812,  on  a  vacancy  occurring  in  the  chair  of  Oriental  languages  in  the 
university  of  Edinburgh,  Dr  Murray  stood  a  contest  with  two  other  candidates, 
and  gained  the  situation  by  a  majority  of  two  voices  in  the  city  council.  He 
was  now  for  the  first  time  in  life  placed  in  a  situation  suitable  to  his  extraordi- 
nary faculties  ;  and  yet  it  was  destined  that,  after  all  his  preliminary  labours, 
his  career  was  now  on  the  point  of  being  for  ever  closed.  His  constitution, 
which  had  never  been  strong,  broke  down  under  the  labours  of  the  first  session. 
Before  opening  his  class,  he  had  published  his  "  Outlines  of  Oriental  Philology," 
a  remarkably  clear  and  intelligible  epitome  of  the  grammatical  principles  of  the 
Hebrew  and  its  cognate  dialects.  During  the  winter,  the  fatigi:e  he  encoun- 
tered in  preparing  his  lectures  was  very  great ;  and  in  February,  1813,  a  pul- 
monary ailment,  which  had  previously  given  him  great  distress,  became  so  violent 
as  to  prevent  his  attendance  in  the  class-room.  To  quote  the  afi'ccting  account 
of  his  latter  days,  given  by  Mr  Murray,'  *'  he  himself  entertained  hopes  of  his 
recovery,  and  was  flattering  himself  with  the  prospect  of  being  able  to  remove 
to  the  country  ;  but  his  complaints  daily  assumed  a  more  alarming  aspect.  On 
>  Literary  history  of  Galloway,  second  edition,  p.  256. 


PATRICK   MURRAY.  7? 


the  day  before  his  death,  he  was  out  of  bed  for  twelve  hours.  He  arranged 
several  of  his  papers,  spoke  freely,  and  appeared  in  good  spirits.  He  alluded 
to  his  approaching  dissolution,  which  he  now  himself  began  to  apprehend  ;  but 
Mrs  Murray  was  too  agitated  to  admit  of  the  subject  being  minutely  adverted 
to.  He  retired  to  bed  at  eleven  o'clock  ;  he  dozed  a  little  ;  and  every  moment 
he  was  awake  he  spent  in  prayer.  In  the  true  spirit  of  genius,  he  said  that  he 
had  once  expected  to  attain  to  old  age,  and  that  he  woifld  be  enabled  to  per- 
form something  of  a  more  eminent  nature,  and  of  greater  consequence  to^ 
society,  than  he  had  yet  accomplished ;  but  rwt  a  murmur  escaped  his  lipo ;  he 
was,  at  all  times,  perfectly  resigned  to  the  will  of  the  Eternal.  The  following 
vei-se  of  the  hundred  and  eighteenth  psalm  he  repeated  a  few  hours  before  his 
death : — 

O  set  ye  open  unto  me 

The  gates  of  righteousness; 

Then  I  will  enter  into  them, 
And  I  the  Lord  will  bless. 

At  the  end  of  these  lines  he  made  a  pause,  and  Mrs  Murray  having  proceeded 
with  the  subsequent  verse, — 

This  is  the  gate  of  God  ;  by  it 

The  just  shall  enter  in  ; 
Thee  will  I  praise,  for  thou  me  heard'st, 

And  hast  my  safety  been, — 

he  looked  wistfully  and  tenderly  in  her  countenance, — he  put  his  hand  on  his 
breast, — and  said  it  gave  him  relief  and  consolation.  He  now  became  sudden, 
ly  worse  ;  his  speecli  failed  him;  and  having  lingered  in  this  state  for  a  short 
time,  he  breathed  his  last  in  the  arms  of  his  wife.  This  melancholy  event  took 
place  at  six  o'clock  in  the  morning  of-  the  1 5th  of  April,  1813,  in  the  thirty- 
seventh  year  of  his  age.  The  last  words  he  was  heard  to  utter  were,  *  Take 
clear  burial-ground,'  meaning  no  doubt,  to  intimate  his  desire  that  his  remains 
might  be  placed  in  a  grave  which  had  not  been  previously  occupied.  He  was 
interred  in  the  Greyfriars'  church-yard,  at  the  northwest  corner  of  the 
church." 

So  died  this  amiable  and  most  accomplished  scholar,  after  a  life  which  might 
rather  be  described  as  the  preparation  for  something  great,  than  as  having  ac- 
tually produced  any  great  fruits.  He  had  written  a  philological  work  of  pro- 
found and  varied  learning,  which  appeared  in  1813,  under  the  auspices  of  Dr 
Scot  of  Corstorphine,  entitled  "  History  of  European  languages  ;  or  Researches 
into  the  Affinities  of  the  Teutonic,  Greek,  Celtic,  Sclavonic,  and  Indian  Na- 
tions." He  left,  by  his  wife,  whom  he  married  while  engaged  in  his  pastoral 
riuties  at  Urr,  a  son  and  a  daughter,  the  latter  of  whom  died  of  consumption 
in  1821. 

MURRAY,  Patrick,  fifth  lord  Elibank,  a  nobleman  distinguished  by  erudi 
tion  and  literary  taste,  was  the  eldest  son  of  Alexander,  the  preceding  lord,  by 
Elizabeth,  daughter  of  George  Stirling,  surgeon  in  Edinburgh.  He  was  borr 
in  February,  1703.  For  reasons  with  which  we  are  unacquainted,  he  studied 
for  the  Scottish  bar,  at  which  he  entered  in  1723,  but  in  the  same  year  adopted 
the  military  profession,  and  soon  rose  to  a  considerable  rank  in  the  army.  He 
was,  in  1740,  a  lieutenant-colonel  under  lord  Cathcart,  in  the  expedition  to 
Carthagena,  of  which  he  wrote  an  account,  that  ren»ains  in  manuscript  in  the 
library  of  the  Board  of  Trade.  He  had  now  succeeded  to  the  family  title,  and 
was  distinguished  for  his  wit  and  general  ability.  His  miscellaneous  reading 
was  extensive,  and  we  have  the  authority  of  Dr  Johnson,  that  it  was  improved 


78  PATRICK  MURRAY. 


by  his  own  observations  of  the  world.  He  lived  for  many  yeara  at  a  curious 
old  house,  belonging  to  the  family  of  North,  at  Catnge  in  Cambridgeshire  ;  and 
it  has  been  recently  ascertained  that  he  kept  up  a  correspondence  with  the 
exiled  house  of  Stuart  In  the  latter  part  of  liis  life,  he  appears  to  have  chiefly 
resided  in  Edinburgh,  mingling  witii  the  distinguislicd  literati  of  the  city,  who 
were  his  contemporaries,  and  fully  qualified  by  his  talents  and  knowledge,  to 
adorn  even  that  society. 

In  1758,  he  published  at  Edinburgh,  **  Thoughts  on  Money,  Circulation, 
and  Paper  Currency  ;"  and  an  "  Inquiry  into  the  Origin  and  Consequence  of 
the  Public  Debts"  appeared  afterwards.  In  17G5,  he  issued  "  Queries  relating 
to  the  proposed  Plan  for  altering  Entails  in  Scotland,"  and,  in  1773,  a  "  Let- 
ter to  lord  Hailes  on  his  Eemarks  on  the  History  of  Scotland."  His  lordship's 
political  life  was  entirely  that  of  an  opposition  lord,  and,  among  other  subjects 
which  attracted  his  indignant  attention,  was  the  servile  condition  of  his  native 
peerage.  In  the  year  1774,  he  published  a  work  under  the  title  of  "  Consider- 
ations on  the  Present  State  of  the  Peerage  of  Scotland,"  which  attracted  a  con- 
siderable degree  of  attention.  "  Never,"  says  he  "  was  there  so  humbling  a 
degradation  as  what  the  Scots  peers  of  the  first  rank  and  pretensions  suffer,  by 
the  present  mode  of  their  admittance  to  the  house  of  lords.  For  the  truth  of 
this,  one  needs  but  to  appeal  to  their  own  feelings,  or  to  the  common  estima- 
tion of  mankind.  A  Scots  peer  of  the  first  rank  is  considered  as  an  instrument 
singled  out,  and  posted  in  the  house  of  lords  by  the  appointment  of  the  minister 
at  the  time,  for  the  end  of  supporting  his  measures,  whatever  they  are  or  may 
be  ;  and  who,  in  case  of  failure,  nuist  expect  to  be  turned  out  at  the  expiration 
of  his  term  of  seven  years.  He  is  supposed  to  be  composed  of  such  pliant 
materials,  that  in  the  event  of  a  change  of  administration,  the  next  minister 
makes  no  doubt  of  finding  him  equally  obsequious,  and  ready  to  renounce  his 
former  connexions."  When  Dr  Johnson  visited  Scotland  in  1773,  lord  ElU 
bank  addressed  to  him  a  courteous  letter,  which  is  to  be  found  in  Boswell's 
Tour  to  the  Hebrides,  where  are  also  the  records  of  various  conversations  in 
which  both  men  flourished.  The  English  philosopher  declared  that  he  never 
met  his  lordship,  without  going  away  a  "  wiser  man."  Lord  Elibank  in  early 
life  married  the  dowager  lady  North  and  Grey,  who  was  by  birth  a  Dutch- 
woman, and  of  illustrious  extraction.  He  died,  without  issue,  August  3, 
177  8,  in  the  seventy-sixth  year  of  his  age. 

Two  younger  brothers  of  this  nobleman  attracted  considerable  notice  in  their 
lifetime.  The  elder,  Mr  Alexander  Murray,  was  so  enthusiastic  a  Jacobite,  as 
to  propose  leading  an  insurrection  even  after  the  close  of  all  the  just  hopes  of 
the  house  of  Stuart  in  174().  He  was  confined  for  more  than  a  year  subsequent  * 
to  May  1750,  by  order  of  the  house  of  commons,  for  violent  interference  with 
a  W  cstminster  election ;  and,  as  he  refused  to  express  contrition  on  his  knees, 
according  to  the  order  of  the  house,  he  might  have  been  confined  for  a  much 
longer  period,  if  the  prorogation  of  parliament  had  not  brought  about  his  en- 
largement James  Murray,  the  fourth  and  youngest  brother  of  lord  Elibank, 
distinguished  himself  as  an  officer  in  high  command  during  the  Canadian 
war.  Being  in  the  next  war  constituted  governor  of  Minorca,  he  defended  that 
important  station  in  1781 ,  against  a  greatly  disproportioned  force  of  the  French  ; 
and,  «hat  was  more  to  his  credit,  withstood  the  secret  offer  of  a  million 
for  its  surrender.  After  a  protracted  siege,  during  which  general  Murray 
lost  three-fourths  of  his  men,  he  was  obliged  by  the  scurvy  to  give  up  Fort  St 
Philip,  to  which  he  had  retired,  but  raiher  in  the  condition  of  an  hospital  than 
a  fortress.  His  conduct  was  warmly  applauded  by  the  British  government  and 
nation. 


SIR   ROBERT  MURRAY.  79 


3HJRRAY,  (Sir)  Robert,  a  statesman  and  natural  philosopher,  appears  to 
have  been  born  about  the  couimenceinent  of  the  seventeenth  century.  He  was 
a  son  of  Sir  Robert  3Iurray  of  Craigie,  by  a  daughter  of  George  Halket  of 
Pitferran.  According  to  his  intimate  friend,  Burnet,  he  served  in  the  Frencli 
army,  and  having  found  great  favour  with  the  all-potent  Richelieu,  was  early 
promoted  to  a  colonelcy/  When  the  difficulties  of  Charles  I.  assumed  their 
most  alarming  aspect,  he  returned  to  Scotland,  and  raised  recruits  for  the  royal 
army.  When  the  king  was  with  the  Scots  army  at  Newcastle,  he  seems  to  have 
attempted  an  escape,  designed  by  Sir  Robert.  *'  The  design,"  says  Burnet, 
**  was  thus  laid :  Mr  Murray  had  provided  a  vessel  by  Teignmouth,  and  Sir 
Robert  Murray  was  to  have  conveyed  the  king  thither  in  disguise  ;  and  it  pro- 
ceeded so  far,  that  the  king  put  himself  in  the  disguise,  and  went  down  the 
back  staire  with  Sir  Robert  Murray.  But  his  majesty,  apprehending  .it  was 
scarce  possible  to  pass  through  all  the  guards  without  being  discovered,  and 
judging  it  hugely  indecent  to  be  catched  in  such  a  condition,  changed  Iiis  reso- 
lution, and  went  back,  as  Sir  Robert  informed  the  writer."*  About  this  period, 
it  is  probable  that  he  had  not  received  his  title,  and  that  he  may  be  identified 
with  "Jlr  Robert  3Iun'ay,  quarter-master  general,"  who,  on  the  occasion  of  the 
town  of  Berwick  (which  was  ordered  to  be  dismantled  at  the  tieaty  of  the  two 
kingdoms)  petitioning  to  be  permitted  to  keep  three  pieces  of  ordnance,  and  the 
two  gates  of  the  bridge,  was  "  sent  to  Berwick  with  his  majesty's  recommenda- 
tion, to  take  notice  what  may  be  the  importance  of  that  petition,  and  report  the 
same  to  the  house."^  After  tiie  fall  of  the  royal  cause,  he  appears  to  have  been 
recommended  by  the  parliament  of  Scotland  to  the  French  government,  and  to 
hare  obtained  from  Mazarine  a  continuation  of  the  favours  extended  to  him  by 
Richelieu.  On  th  22nd  May,  1650,  two  letters  from  France  were  read  to  the 
parliament  of  Scotland,  one  from  the  young  king,jhe  other  from  the  queen 
regent,  in  answer  to  the  letter  of  the  parliament  in  favour  of  Sir  Robert  31ur- 
ray  ;  in  which  "  both  did  promise,  from  their  respect  and  love  to  the  Scots 
nation,  they  would  see  their  desire  performed,  so  far  as  possibly  the  convenience 
of  their  afl'airs  would  permit,  and  that  he  should  be  paid  od'  his  arrears.'^  We 
afterwards  find  the  parliament  exhibiting  their  favour,  by  sending  him  a  few 
cargoes  of  prisoners,  to  serve  in  his  ranks.  Of  two  hundred  and  eighty-one 
soldiers,  taken  at  Kerbester,  where  the  marquis  of  IMontrose  ^»as  finally  defeated, 
after  some  disposals  to  coal  mines,  &c,,  the  remainder  **  are  given  to  lord  Angus 
and  Sir  Robert  3Iurray  to  recruit  their  French  troops  with."^  It  is  probable  that 
he  was  an  officer  in  the  Scots  guards.  He  continued  in  the  confidence  of  Charles 
II.,  and  was  connected  with  the  obscure  negotiations  of  Montreville  with  the  in- 
dependents and  presbyterians,  for  the  purpose  of  procuring  their  assistance  at  as 
cheap  a  rate  as  possible  to  the  conscience  of  the  king,  or  under  the  form  of  pro- 
mise which  might  admit  the  easiest  and  safest  infraction  on  liis  part.  The  mo- 
deration of  Sir  Robert  in  matters  connected  with  the  church,  evinced  in  this  trans- 
action, may  have  been  the  reason  why  Clarendon  termed  him  "  a  cunning  and  a 
dexterous  man;"  and  accused  him  of  attempting,  under  the  pretext  of  bringing 
the  king  to  peace  with  the  Scots,  a  coalition  betwixt  the  Roman  catholics  and 
presbyterians,  to  the  destruction  of  the  church  of  England. 

On  tile  21st  May,  1651,  while  Charles  was  in  command  of  the  army  in 
Scotland,  Sir  Robert  was  appointed  justice-clerk  ;  and,  on  the  Gth  of  June,  he 
was  chosen  a  lord  of  session,  and  nominated  a  privy  councillor.^  But  the  sub- 
version of  the  courts  by  Cromwell  prevented  him  from  sitting  in  judgment. 
Burnet  mentions  that  he  was  in  great  credit  with  tlie  remains  of  the  king's 

•  Burnet's  O^vn  Times,  i.  59.    »  Mem.  of  D.  of  HamiUon,  307.    ^  Balf.  An.,  iii.  337. 
♦  Balf.  All.,  iv.  17.         *  lb.  18.  35,  Act.  Far.,  vii.  516.        «  lb. 


80 


SIR  ROBERT  MURRAY. 


army  surviving  in  Scotland,  when  "  lord  Glencairn  took  a  strange  course  to 
break  it,  and  to  ruin  him."  A  letter  written  by  him  to  William  Murray,  a  low 
minion,  who  had  risen  in  the  court  of  Charles  I.,  by  the  performance  of  the 
most  despicable  offices,  was  pretended  to  have  been  found  at  Antwerp.  "  This 
ill-forged  letter  gave  an  account  of  a  bargain  Sir  Robert  had  made  with  3Ionk 
for  killing  the  king,  which  was  to  be  executed  by  Mr  Murray :  so  he 
prayed  him  in  his  letter  to  make  haste  and  despatch  it.  This  was  brought  to 
the  earl  of  Glencairn  :  so  Sir  Robert  was  severely  questioned  upon  it,  and  put 
ill  arrest :  and  it  was  spread  about  through  a  rude  army  that  he  intended  to 
kill  the  king,  hoping,  it  seems,  that  some  of  these  wild  people,  believing  it, 
would  have  fallen  upon  him,  without  using  any  forms.  Upon  this  occasion.  Sir 
Robert  practised,  in  a  very  eminent  manner,  his  true  Christian  philosophy, 
without  showing  so  much  as  a  cloud  in  his  whole  behaviour."'' 

At  the  discussion  at  Whitehall,  on  the  question  of  the  future  established  reli- 
gion in  Scotland,  Sir  Robert  Murray,  along  with  Hamilton  and  Lauderdale, 
proposed  to  delay  the  establishment  of  episcopacy,  until  the  temper  of  the  people 
should  be  ascertained.^  In  the  attempt,  by  means  of  ballot,  to  disqualify  those 
who  had  been  favourable  to  the  government  of  Cromwell  from  serving  under 
Charles,  Sir  Robert  Mas  one  of  those  whose  downfall,  along  with  that  of  Lauder* 
dale,  was  particularly  aimed  at^  This  association  with  Lauderdale  seems  not 
to  have  been  called  for  by  the  previous  conduct,  the  party  opinions,  or  the 
moral  character  of  Sir  Robert.  Afterwards  Lauderdale's  aversion  to  so  moderate 
and  honest  a  man,  disturbed  his  councils,  and  was  partly  productive  of  his  down- 
fall. He  joined  the  rising  administration  of  Tweeddale  ;  and,  having  at  the  Re- 
storation been  re-appointed  a  lord  of  session,  was  promoted  to  be  justice-clerk. 
"  The  people  were  pleased  and  gratified,"  says  Laing,  "  when  a  judicial  office, 
so  important  and  dangerous,  was  conferred  on  the  most  upright  and  accom- 
plished character  which  the  nation  produced."*"  But  Sir  Robert  was  made  jus- 
tice-clerk, not  to  be  a  judge,  but  that  the  salary  might  induce  him  to  be  a  par- 
tizao.  He  never  sat  on  the  bo«ich,  and  was  probably  quite  ignorant  of  law. 
Meanwhile,  in  1662,  took  place  the  most  important  event  in  his  life,  and  one 
of  the  most  interesting  transactions  of  the  period.  He  was  one  of  the  leaders  of 
that  body  of  naturalists  and  philosophers,  who,  with  the  assistance  of  lord 
Brounker  and  Robert  Boyle,  procured  for  the  Royal  Society  the  sanction  of  a 
charter.  The  society  had  existed  as  a  small  debating  club  previous  to  the  re- 
public, at  the  establishment  of  which,  the  members  separated.  At  the  Restora- 
tion,  they  re-established  themselves,  and  conducted  their  meetings  and  opera- 
tions on  a  rather  more  extensive  scale.  On  the  28th  November,  1660,  we  find 
Sir  Robert  present  at,  probably,  the  first  meeting,  where  it  was  proposed  "  that 
some  course  might  be  thought  of  to  improve  this  meeting  to  a  more  regular  way 
of  debating  things  ;  and  that,  according  to  the  manner  in  other  countries, 
where  there  were  voluntary  associations  of  men  into  academies  for  the  advance- 
ment of  various  parts  of  learning,  they  might  do  something  answerable  here  for 
the  promoting  of  experimental  philosophy.""  Sir  Robert  undertook  to  com- 
municate the  views  of  the  society  to  the  court,  and  at  next  meeting  returned  an 
answer,  indicative  of  encouragement  from  that  quarter.'^  After  rules  for  hold- 
ing meetings,  and  for  the  appointment  of  office-bearers,  were  established.  Sir 
Robert  was  successively  chosen  president  during  the  first  and  second  month  of 
the  existence  of  the  society.'^  He  was  a  member  of  almost  all  committees  and 
councils,  delivered  several   papers,  prepared   and  exhibited  experiments,  and 

»  Own  Times,  i.  103.  8  lb.  132  9  ib.  ISQ  lo  Hist.  ii.  47. 

"  Kirch-  HisU  R.  Soc.,  i.  3.  «  lb,  4.  "  lb.  21. 


WILLIAM   MURRAY. 


81 


gave  information  in  natural  history,  chiefly  relating  to  the  geology  of  Scotland. 
The  charter  was  obtained  on  15th  July,  1662. 

This  useful  and  high-minded  man  died  suddenly  in  June,  1673.  Burnett 
says  of  this  event :  "He  was  the  wisest  and  worthiest  man  of  the  age,  and  was 
as  another  father  to  me.  I  was  sensible  how  much  I  lost  on  so  critical  a  con- 
juncture, being  bereft  of  the  truest  and  faithfullest  friend  I  had  ever  known  :  and 
so  I  saAv  I  was  in  danger  of  committing  great  errors  for  want  of  so  kind  a  moni. 
tor."  But  the  same  partial  hand,  on  all  occasions  graphic  and  rich  in  de- 
scription, has  elsewhere  excelled  its  usual  power,  in  drawing  the  character  of  Sir 
Robert  Murray.  "  He  was  the  most  universally  beloved  and  esteemed  by  men 
of  all  sides  and  sorts  of  any  man  1  have  ever  known  in  my  whole  life.  He  was 
a  pious  man,  and,  in  the  midst  of  armies  and  courts,  he  spent  many  hours  a- 
day  in  devotion,  which  was  in  a  most  elevating  strain.  He  had  gone  through 
the  easy  parts  of  mathematics,  and  knew  the  history  of  nature  beyond  any  man 
I  ever  yet  knew.  He  had  a  genius  much  like  Peiriski,  as  he  is  described  by 
Gassandi.  He  was  afterwards  the  first  former  of  the  Royal  Society,  and  its  first 
president ;  and  while  he  lived,  he  was  the  life  and  soul  of  that  body.  He  had 
an  equality  of  temper  in  him,  which  nothing  could  alter  :  and  was  in  practice 
the  only  stoic  I  ever  knew.  He  had  a  great  tincture  of  one  of  their  principles: 
for  he  was  much  for  absolute  decrees.  He  had  a  most  diffused  love  to  all  man- 
kind, and  delighted  in  every  occasion  of  doing  good,  which  he  managed  with 
great  discretion  and  zeal.  He  had  a  superiority  of  genius  and  comprehension 
to  most  men  ;  and  had  the  plainest,  but,  withal,  the  softest  way  of  reproving, 
chiefly  young  people,  for  their  faults,  that  I  ever  knew  of.'"* 

MURRAY,  William,  earl  of  Mansfield,  and  lord  chief  justice  of  the  King's 
Bench,  the  fourth  son  of  Andrew,  viscount  Stormont,  was  born  at  Perth  on  the 
2nd  March,  1704.'  In  1719,  he  was  admitted  a  king's  scholar  at  Westmin- 
ster. On  the  18th  June,  1723,  he  entered  Christ  church,  Oxford,  having  been 
first  in  the  list  of  those  promoted  to  the  university.  In  1730,  he  visited  the 
continent,  after  having  graduated  as  master  of  arts ;  and,  on  his  return,  was 
called  to  the  bar  at  Michaelmas  term  1731.  As  a  schoolboy  and  student,  he 
gained  prizes,  and  is  said  to  have  shown  promise  of  literary  distinction  ;  while, 
even  after  having  joined  his  profession,  he  did  not  appear  to  direct  his  powers 
to  the  acquisition  of  legal  knowledge.  The  ofiice  of  a  special  pleader  frequent- 
ly damps  the  energy  of  talents  formed  to  cast  honour  on  the  bar  or  the  bench ; 
and  Murray,  along  with  many  who  have,  and  many  who  have  not,  been  able  to 
overcome  the  rigid  barrier  to  the  pursuit  in  which  their  talents  made  them 
capable  of  shining,  was  generally  esteemed  more  fitted  for  a  scholar  than  a  law- 
yer. It  is  probable  that  the  success  of  his  first  attempts  showed  him  how  suc- 
cessfully he  might  employ  his  energies  in  this  direction.  He  was  early  engaged 
in  a  few  important  appeals,  his  appearance  in  which  brought  so  speedy  an  ac- 
cumulation of  business,  that  it  is  said  to  have  been  remarked  by  himself,  that 
he  never  knew  the  difference  between  absolute  want  of  employment,  and  a  pro- 
fessional income  of  £3000  a-year.  He  soon  threw  the  whole  powers  of  his 
mind  into  the  most  minute  acquirements  necessary  to  procure  eminence  as  a 
speaker,  and  is  knoAvn  to  have  been  caught  practising  gesture  before  a  mirror, 
with  his  friend  Pope  at  his  side  acting  as  teacher  of  elocution.  The  intimacy 
with  the  illustrious  poet  probably  commenced  in  similarity  of  pursuits  (for  Mur- 
ray wrote  poetry  in  his  youth,  which  has  fallen  into  probably  merited  oblivion), 
and  was  fostered  by  the  absence  of  rivalry  in  after  life.  Pope  condescended 
to  turn  his  verses  into  compliments  on  his  forensic  friend,  and  the  latter  roust 
"  OwTi  Times,  i  356.  "  IWd  69. 

'  Hollidaj's  Life  of  Mansfield,  p.  1.     Koscoe's  Lives  of  Biitisb  Lawyers,  171. 


82  -WILLIAM  MURRAY. 


have  felt  what  the  Roman  has  so  well  described,  "  pulchrum  est  Inudari  a 
laudato."  It  would  be  difficult  to  conceive  a  greater  incentive  to  tlie  rising  am- 
bition of  an  aspiring  mind  than  these  concluding  lines  : 

•'  Graced  as  thou  art  with  all  the  power  of  words, 
So  known,  so  honoured,  in  the  house  of  lords — 
Conspicuous  scene  1  another  yet  is  nigh, 
More  silent  far,  where  kings  and  poets  lie; 
Where  Murray  (long  enough  his  country's  pride) 
Shall  be  no  more  than  Tully  or  than  Hyde !" 

Like  lord  Eldon,  he  made  the  first  exhibition  of  his  full  power  in  commanding 
a  jury,  from  the  accidental  illness  of  his  senior  counsel ;  a  circumstance  wiiich 
happened  in  the  action  for  criminal  conversation  brought  by  Theophilus  Gibber 
against  Mr  Sloper.  He  requested  a  postponement  for  an  hour,  and  never  being 
void  of  self-possession  except  when  personally  attacked,  he  omitted  nothing 
which  his  opportunities  enabled  him  to  accomplish,  and  made  an  impressive 
charge,  which  produced  a  decided  effect  in  favour  of  his  client.  He  was  soon 
after  employed  in  a  professional  service  which  n)ay  be  said  to  have  been  in  de- 
fence of  his  native  country.  When,  after  the  murder  of  Porteous,  the  lords  pas- 
sed and  sent  down  to  the  commons  a  bill  for  disqualifying  and  imprisoning  the 
provost  of  Edinburgh,  abolishing  the  city  guard,  and  taking  away  the  gates  of 
the  Netherbow  port,  he,  assisted  by  Barnard,  Shippen,  Ogellhorpe,  and  most 
of  the  Scots  members,  pertinaciously  resisted  the  insulting  measure  through  a 
stormy  conference,  and  was  partly  the  means  of  lopping  away  the  portion  most 
offensive  to  the  public;  and  the  bill  as  returned  and  passed  by  the  lords,  merely 
disqualified  the  provost,  and  imposed  a  fine  of  £2000  on  the  city,  for  the  bene- 
fit of  the  widow  of  Porteous.  Murray's  services  on  this  occasion  were  re- 
warded by  the  freedom  of  the  city  of  Edinburgh,  which  was  presented  to  him  in 
a  gold  box.* 

In  1743,  the  attention  of  a  ministry,  not  supported  by  extensive  political 
talent,  and  obliged  to  combat  with  strong  adversaries,  was  directed  towards  the 
commanding  powers  of  Mr  Murray.  He  was  chosen  solicitor-general,  and 
being  thus  initiated  as  a  responsible  legislator,  was  one  of  the  few  lawyers 
whose  genius  proved  as  great  in  the  senate  as  it  had  been  at  the  bar.  In  1742, 
he  took  his  seat  in  the  house  as  member  for  Boroughbridge.  In  1746,  he  was 
ex  officio  one  of  the  counsel  against  the  rebel  lords.  It  is  said  tliat  he  per- 
formed an  unwelcome  duty.  He  certainly  exhibited  a  disposition  to  act  as  a 
high-minded  public  prosecutor  ought  always  to  do,  by  showing  that  he  was 
ratlier  the  instrument  through  which  the  law  acted  in  doing  justice,  than  a  per- 
son employed  to  procure  the  punishment  of  a  fellow  citizen.  "  Every  gentle- 
man," he  observed,  choosing  the  collective  term  as  the  least  invidious  mode  of 
expressing  his  own  feelings,  "  who  has  spoken  in  this  trial,  has  made  it  a  rule  to 
himself  to  urge  nothing  against  the  prisoner  but  plain  facts  and  positive  evidence 
without  aggravation."  Whether  he  acted  from  principle,  or  a  secret  leaning 
towards  the  cause  he  ostensibly  opposed,  is  not  likely  to  be  ever  known  ;  but 
those  who  brought  the  accusation  against  him  should  have  founded  it  on  differ- 
ent evidence  from  the  circumstance,  that,  as  crown  counsel,  he  was  unwilling  to 
stretch  the  law  against  the  accused.  The  humbled  lord  Lovat,  the  person  on 
whose  trial  he  made  the  above  remark,  in  a  fit  of  liberality  or  national  feeling, 
made  the  following  observations  on  the  solicitor  in  his  defence.  "  I  am  very 
sorry  I  gave  your  lordships  so  much  trouble  on  my  trial,  and  I  give  you  a  niil- 

»  Coxe's  Walpole,  J.  495. 


WILLIAM  MURRAY.  83 


lion  of  tlinnks  for  bemg  so  good  in  your  patience  and  attention  wiiile  it  lasted, 
I  thought  myself  very  much  loaded  by  one  Mr  Murray,  who,  your  lordships 
know,  was  the  bitterest  enemy  there  was  against  me.  I  have  since  suffered  by 
another  Mr  MuiTay,  who,  I  must  say  with  pleasure,  is  an  honour  to  his  country, 
and  whose  eloquence  and  learning  are  much  beyond  what  is  to  be  expressed  by 
an  ignorant  man  like  me.  I  heard  him  with  pleasure,  though  it  was  against 
me.  I  have  the  honour  to  be  his  relation,  though  perhaps  he  neither  knows  it 
nor  values  it.  I  wish  that  his  being  born  in  the  north  may  not  hinder  him 
from  the  preferment  that  his  merit  and  learning  deserve.  Till  that  gentle- 
man spoke,  your  lordehips  were  inclined  to  grant  my  earnest  request,  and  to 
allow  me  farther  lime  to  bring  up  my  witnesses  to  prove  my  innocence ;  but  it 
seems  that  has  been  overruled."^  But  one  who  was  present,  and  who  has 
dipped  his  pen  in  gall,  has  given  a  less  pleasing  account  than  that  generally 
believed,  of  his  conduct  at  these  trials.  Horace  Walpole  says,  in  a  letter  to 
Horace  Man,  "  While  the  lords  were  withdrawn,  the  solicitor-general  Mur- 
ray, (brother  of  the  Pretender's  minister)  officiously  and  insolently  went  up  to 
lord  Balmerino,  and  asked  him,  how  he  could  give  the  lords  so  much  trouble, 
when  his  solicitor  had  informed  him  that  his  plea  would  be  of  no  use  to  him  ? 
Balmerino  asked  the  bystanders  who  this  person  ^^•as?  and  being  told,  he  said, 
'Oh  Mr  Murray!  I  am  extremely  glad  to  see  you:  I  have  been  with  several 
of  your  relations  :  the  good  lady,  your  mother,  was  of  great  use  to  us  at 
Perth  ;'  are  not  you  charmed  with  this  speech  :  how  just  it  was!"  But  Mur- 
ray did  not  escape  charges  of  disaffection  more  apparently  serious.  A  dinner 
had  been  given  by  the  dean  of  Durham  on  occasion  of  the  king's  birthday, 
when  a  conversation  was  commenced  by  an  individual  of  the  name  of  P\iwcett, 
an  old  class-fellow  of  Murray,  as  to  the  probable  preferment  of  Johnson,  a  mutual 
friend,  then  bishop  of  Gloucester.  On  this  occasion  Fawcett  observed,  that  "  he 
was  glad  Johnson  was  so  well  off,  for  he  remembered  him  a  Jacobite  several 
years  ago,  and  that  he  used  to  be  with  a  relation  of  his  who  was  very  disaffected, 
one  Vernon  Mercer,  where  the  Pretender's  health  was  frequently  drunk.  On 
a  ministerial  inquiry,  the  charge  of  drinking  the  Pretender's  health  was  trans- 
ferred to  Murray,  and  the  matter  became  the  subject  of  an  accusation  before  the 
cabinet  council.  Murray  was  the  intimate  friend  and  companion  of  Vernon's 
eldest  son,  and  had  so  established  himself  as  a  virtual  brother  to  the  young  man, 
that  the  father,  on  his  son's  death,  left  to  Murray  a  considerable  fortune.*  This 
man  was  a  Jacobite.  The  university  of  Oxford  was  at  tiiat  period  a  nest  of 
traitors;  and,  taking  into  view  Murray's  family  connexions,  his  youth,  his  ar- 
dour, and  the  circumstance  that  he  must  have  been  aware  that  almost  every 
noble  family  in  Britain  then  conducted  a  correspondence  with  the  exiled 
Stuarts,  no  man  was  more  likely  to  have  drunk  the  Pretender's  health  in  a 
moment  of  conviviality.  However,  he  denied  the  charge,  stating  his  loyalty  to- 
wards the  existing  government,  which,  by  the  time  he  was  made  solicitor-general, 
was  probably  sincere.  Inquiry  was  stifled,  and  nothing  was  proved  to  the  pub- 
lic on  either  side.  But  the  accusation  was  never  entirely  dropped  by  his  op- 
ponents ;  every  one  knows  the  use  made  of  it  by  Junius.  Pitt  would  use  it  to 
poison  the  sharpest  darts  of  his  eloquence,  and  on  such  occasions  Murray  is  said 
to  have  felt,  but  never  to  have  dared  to  answer.  Pitt  had  been  detailing  some 
symptoms  of  Jacobitism  which  he  had  seen  at  Oxford.  Horace  Walpole  says  on  this 
occasion,*  "  colours,  much  less  words,  could  not  paint  the  confusion  and  agitation 
that  worked  in  Murray's  face  during  this  almost  apostrophe.  His  countenance 
spoke  everything  that  Fawcett  had  been  terrified  to  prevaricate  away."     On 

'  Stiite  Tri.il,  xvi.  877.  *  Holliday,  51. 

*  Memoir  of  the  last  ten  years  of  George  II.,  i.  358. 


84  WILLIAM  MURRAY. 


another  occasion,  the  scene  is  thus  told  :  **  After  Murray  liad  suffered  for  some 
time,  Pitt  slopped,  threw  his  eyes  around,  then  fixing  tlieir  whole  power  on 
Murray,  said,  '  1  must  now  address  a  few  words  to  Mr  Solicitor  :  they  shall  be 
few,  but  they  shall  be  daggers.'  Murray  was  agitated :  the  look  was  con- 
tinued ;  the  agitation  increased.  *  Judge  Festus  trembles,'  exclaimed  Pitt, 
'  he  shall  hear  me  some  other  day.'  He  sat  down,  Murray  made  no  reply, 
and  a  languid  debate  is  said  to  have  shown  the  paralysis  of  the  house."  *  It 
may  be  well  here  to  give  the  picture  which  Walpole  has  furnished  us  of  Mur- 
ray and  his  two  great  rivals  in  oratory,  Pitt  and  Fox.  The  picture  is  beautiful, 
and  though  too  glaringly  coloured,  must  be  to  a  certain  extent  founded  on 
truth.  "  Blurray,  who  at  the  beginning  of  the  session  was  awed  by  Pitt,  find- 
ing himself  supported  by  Fox,  surmounted  his  fears,  and  convinced  the  house, 
and  Pitt  too,  of  his  superior  abilities.  He  grew  most  uneasy  to  the  latter,  Pitt 
could  only  attack,  Murray  only  defend.  Fox,  the  boldest  and  ablest  champion, 
was  still  more  formed  to  worry,  but  the  keenness  of  his  sabie  was  blunted  by  the 
difiiculty  with  which  lie  drew  it  from  the  scabbard  :  I  mean  the  liesitation  and 
ungracefulness  of  his  delivery  took  off  from  the  force  of  his  arguments.  Mur- 
ray, the  brightest  genius  of  the  three,  had  too  much,  and  too  little  of  tlie  law- 
yer ;  he  refined  too  much,  and  could  wrangle  too  little,  for  a  popular  assembly. 
Pitt's  figure  was  commanding ;  Murray's  engaging  from  a  decent  openness ; 
Fox's  dark  and  troubled  ;  yet  the  latter  was  the  only  agreeable  man.  Pitt  could 
not  unbend;  Murray  in  private  was  inelegant :  Fox  was  cheerful,  social,  com- 
municative. In  conversation,  none  of  them  had  wit:  Murray  never  had:  F^ox 
had  in  his  speeches,  from  clearness  of  head  and  asperity  of  argument.  Pitt's 
wit  was  genuine,  not  tortured  into  the  service,  like  the  quaintnesses  of  my  lord 
Chesterfield."'  On  the  accession  of  the  duke  of  Newcastle's  ministry  in  1754, 
Mr  Murray  was  advanced  to  the  office  of  attorney-general,  in  place  of  Sir 
Dudly  Ryder,  made  chief  justice  of  the  court  of  King's  Bench.  It  was  at  that 
period  whispered,  that  the  highest  honours  to  which  a  British  statesman  can  be 
presumed  to  aspire,  were  almost  within  the  grasp  of  Murray,  but  that  he 
declined  a  contest  for  any  distinction  which  was  not  professional.  His 
character  presents  a  strange  mixture  of  eager,  unremitting  ambition,  with  an  un- 
willingness to  grasp  the  highest  objects  within  his  reach,  probably  from  a  mental 
misgiving  as  to  his  ability  to  perform  the  part  of  leader.  In  pursuance  of  tliis 
feeling,  on  the  death  of  Sir  Dudly  Ryder,  in  1756,  he  followed  him  as  chief 
justice  of  the  King's  Bench,  the  post  to  which  he  always  looked  as  the  most 
desirable,  and  which  he  preferred  to  the  labours  and  responsibilities  of  the 
chancellorship  or  premiership.  He  probably  had  no  wish  to  remain  longer  a 
member  of  such  a  government  as  Newcastle's  ;  but  that  weak  head  of  a  cabinet 
had  sufficient  wisdom  to  calculate  the  loss  of  such  a  man  as  Murray,  and 
extravagant  offere  are  said  to  have  been  made  to  indue*  him  to  remain  for  some 
time  a  working  partizan  of  the  ministry.  In  his  promotion,  however,  he  does 
not  seem  to  liave  wished  to  relinquish  the  honours  of  administration,  while  he 
eschewed  the  responsibility.  Contrary  to  custom,  but  not  to  precedent,  he  re- 
mained a  member  of  the  cabinet,  and  changed  his  sphere  of  action  for  the 
house  of  lords,  with  the  title  of  baron  Mansfield  of  Mansfield,  in  the  county  of 
Nottingham.  On  his  taking  leave  of  the  society  of  Lincoln's  Inn,  he  received 
the  usual  congratulatory  address,  which  was  presented  by  the  honourable  C. 
York,  son  to  Icrd  Hardwicke. 

Let  us  now  cast  a  glance  at  lord  Mansfield's  character,  and  services  to  the 
public,  as  a  judge.     It  is  in  this  capacity  that  we  will  find  the  only  practical 

•  Butler's  Remains.     Roscoe,  181.  1  Walpole's  Memoirs,  i.  490- 


"WILLIAM   MURRAY.  85 


memorial  which  he  lias  left  for  posterity  ;  but  it  is  such  a  memorial  as  few,  if 
any  other  judges,  have  left      The  declaration  of  what  the  law  is,  is  generally 

thought  sufficient  duty  for  a  judge,  and  he  is  praised  if  he  does  it  well, the 

eviis  which  his  train  of  decisions  may  have  produced  to  posterity,  when  their 
principle  was  applied  to  other  cases,  are  not  to  be  attributed  to  him;  he  was  not 
prophetic,  and  could  not  foresee  such  events.  But  lord  Mansfield,  in  more  than 
one  branch  of  law,  framed  his  decisions  for  the  advantage  of  posterity ;  and  of  the 
law  of  marine  insurance,  which  is  now  a  vast  system  both  in  England  and  Scot- 
land, he  may  be  said  to  have  been  the  framer.  On  this  subject,  the  opinion  of 
one  of  the  most  ample  writers  on  the  English  law  of  marine  insurance,  will  best 
explain  what  lord  Mansfield  accomplished.  "  Before  the  time  of  this  venerable 
judge,  the  legal  proceedings,  even  on  contracts  of  insurance,  were  subject  to 
great  vexations  and  oppressions.  If  the  underwriters  refused  payment,  it  was 
usual  for  the  insured  to  bring  a  separate  action  against  each  of  the  underwriters 
on  the  policy,  and  to  proceed  to  trial  on  all.  The  multiplicity  of  trials  was 
oppressive  both  to  the  insurers  and  insured ;  and  the  insurers,  if  they  had  any 
real  point  to  try,  were  put  to  an  enormous  expense  before  they  could  obtain  any 
decision  of  the  question  which  they  wished  to  agitate.  Some  underwriters,  who 
thought  they  had  a  sound  defence,  and  who  were  desirous  of  avoiding  unneces- 
sary cost  or  delay  to  themselves  or  the  insured,  applied  to  the  court  of  King's 
Bench,  to  stay  the  proceedings  in  all  the  actions  but  one,  undertaking  to  pay 
the  amount  of  their  subscriptions  with  costs,  if  the  plaintiff  should  succeed  in  the 
cause  which  was  tried ;  and  offering  to  admit,  on  their  part,  everything  which 
might  bring  the  true  merits  of  the  case  before  the  court  and  jury.  Reason- 
able as  this  offer  was,  the  plaintiff,  either  from  perverseness  of  disposition,  or 
the  illiberality  or  cunning  of  his  advisers,  refused  his  consent  to  the  application. 
The  court  did  not  think  tiiemselves  warranted  to  make  such  a  rule  without  his 
consent;  but  Mr  Justice  Denison  intimated,  that  if  the  plaintiff  persisted,  against 
his  own  interest,  on  his  right  to  try  all  the  causes,  the  court  had  the  power  of 
granting  imparlances  in  all  but  one,  till  there  was  an  opportunity  of  granting 
that  one  action.  Lord  Mansfield  then  stated  the  great  advantages  resulting  to 
each  party,  by  consenting  to  the  application  which  was  made  ;  and  added,  that, 
if  the  plaintiff  consented  to  such  a  rule,  the  defendant  should  undertake  not  to 
file  any  bill  in  equity  for  delay,  nor  to  bring  a  writ  of  error,  and  should  produce 
all  books  and  papers  that  were  material  to  the  point  in  issue.  This  rule  was 
afterwards  consented  to  by  the  plaintiff,  and  was  found  so  beneficial  to  all  par- 
ties, that  it  is  now  grown  into  general  use,  and  is  called  the  consolidiation  rule. 
Thus,  on  the  one  hand,  defendants  may  have  questions  of  real  importance  tried 
at  a  small  expense  ;  and  plaintifft  are  not  delayed  in  their  suits  by  those  arts 
which  have  too  frequently  been  resorted  to,  in  order  to  evade  the  payment  of  a 
just  demand,^  Such  is  one  out  of  the  several  judicial  measures  by  which  lord 
Mansfield  erected  this  great  system.  But  it  is  said  that  he  made  the  changes  in 
the  law,  by  changing  himself  from  the  administrator  of  the  law  into  the  legisla- 
tor ;  that  he  did  not  adhere  to  the  letter  of  the  law,  but  gave  it  an  equitable 
interpretation,  virtually  altering  it  himself,  in  place  of  leaving  to  the  legislature 
the  correction  of  bad  laws,  a  system  which,  whatever  good  use  he  might  himself 
have  made  of  it,  was  not  to  be  intrusted  to  a  chief  justice,  and  never  was  so  by 
the  law  of  England.  The  charge  is  not  without  foundation.  Junius  says  to 
him,  in  his  celebrated  letter  of  14th  November,  1770,  "  No  learned  man  ever 
among  your  own  tribe,  thinks  you  qualified  to  preside  in  a  court  of  common 
law.  Yet  it  is  confessed  that,  under  Justinian,  you  might  have  made  an  incoin- 
parable  pretor,"  The  Roman  law  was,  in  all  its  branches,  the  excess  of  equity, 
8  Park  on  Insurance.     Introduction,  12. 


86  WILLIAM  MURRAY. 


even  wlien  compared  to  the  equity  court  of  England ;  but  the  pretorian 
brancli  was  the  equity  of  the  Roman  law.  It  is  prol>able  that  the  institute  was 
at  ail  times  a  more  pleasing  study  to  the  elegant  mind  of  lord  31ansfield,  thi^n 
the  rigid  common  and  statute  law  of  England.  He  frequently  made  reference 
to  it,  and  naay  have  been  induced  to  study  it,  in  capacitating  himself  for  plead- 
ing Scotch  appeals;  yet  he  is  understood  to  have  been  the  author  of  the  chapter 
in  Blackstone's  Commentary,  which  answers  the  arguments  of  lord  Kanies  in 
favour  of  the  extension  of  equity  in  England.  His  opinions  on  the  rights  ol 
jury  trials  in  cases  of  libel,  have  met  with  still  more  extensive  censure.  He 
maintained  "  that  the  printing  and  sense  of  the  paper  were  alone  what  the  jury 
had  to  consider  of."  The  intent  with  which  this  was  done,  (as  it  is  singularly 
termed  the  law,)  he  retained  for  the  consideration  of  the  court  In  the  cases  of 
Almon  and  of  Woodfall,  he  so  instructed  the  jury.  In  the  latter  case,  the  verdict 
was  "  guilty  of  printing  and  publishing  only."  There  was  no  charge,  except 
for  printing  and  publishing,  in  the  information,  the  intent  being  for  the  con- 
sideration of  the  court.  On  the  motion  for  arrest  of  judgment,  it  is  clear  from 
lord  Mansfield's  opinion,  that,  had  the  verdict  been  "  guilty  of  printing  and 
publishing,"  he  would  have  given  judgment  on  the  opinion  of  the  court  as  to 
intent;  but  the  word  **  only"  was  a  subject  of  doubt,  and  a  new  trial  was  ruled.^ 
The  verdict,  in  this  case,  was  '*  not  guilty."  Lord  3Iansfield  could  not  prevent 
such  a  verdict,  without  unconstitutional  coercion  ;  but  he  accommodated  it  to  his 
principles,  by  presuming  that  the  meaning  of  such  a  verdict  was  a  denial  as  to 
the  fact  of  printing  and  publishing,  and  that  the  juror  who  gave  it,  in  considera- 
tion of  the  intent,  perjured  himself.  Yet  Junius  accomplished  a  signal  triumph 
over  him,  in  making  him  virtually  contradict  his  favourite  principle,  in  a  theory 
too  nice  for  practice,  when  he  said,  that  "  if,  after  all,  they  would  take  upon  them- 
selves to  determine  the  law,  t/iej/  mig/U  do  it  ;  but  they  must  be  very  sure  that 
they  determined  according  to  law :  for  they  touched  their  consciences,  and  they 
acted  at  their  periL"  A  declaratory  act,  introduced  by  Fox,  has  since  put  a 
stop  to  the  powers  of  a  judge,  to  infringe  in  a  similar  manner  the  riglits  of 
juries.'"  In  only  two  instances  has  lord  Mansfield  been  accused  of  wilfully 
perverting  his  judicial  authority.  In  the  Douglas  cause,  it  must  be  admitted 
that  his  address  to  the  house  was  more  like  the  speech  of  an  advocate,  than  of  a 
judge.  It  is  believed  to  have  swayed  the  house,  although  the  decision  was  not, 
as  in  the  general  case,  unanimous  in  favour  of  the  side  taken  by  the  law  ofiicer 
who  gives  his  opinion.  Mr  Stuart,  the  agent  for  the  losing  party,  wrote  letters 
to  lord  Alansfield,  solemnly  charging  him  with  improper  conduct  as  a  judge. 
Of  these  very  beautiful  specimens  of  composition,  it  is  scai'cely  possible  to  judge 
of  tile  merit,  without  a  knowledge  of  the  elaborate  cause  witli  which  they  are 
connected  ;  but  the  reasoning  is  clear  and  accurate,  and  the  <;alm  solemnity  of 
the  charges,  with  the  want  of  that  personal  asperity,  or  dependence  on  satirical 
or  declamatory  powers,  which  appear  in  Junius,  nmst  have  made  these  letters 
keenly  felt,  even  by  a  judge  conscious  of  rectitude.  The  other  charge  was 
brought  against  him  by  Junius,  for  admitting  to  bail  a  thief  caught  in  the  man- 
ner, or  with  the  stolen  property,  contrary  to  law.  The  thief  was  a  man  of 
large  property,  his  theft  tritling,  and,  probably,  the  consequence  of  a  species 
of  mental  disease  of  not  unfrequent  occurrence.  The  reason  of  granting  bail 
was,  we  believe,  to  enable  him  to  dispose  of  his  property  to  his  family;  and  the 
act  probably  one  of  those  in  which  the  lord  chief  justice  stretched  the  law,  to 
what  lie  conceived  a  useful  purpose. 

A  brief  narrative  of  his  political  proceedings,  while  on  the  bench,  will  suffice, 
as  their  meriu  are  matter  of  history.     He  attended  the  meetings  of  the  council 
»  State  Trials.  x%.  919—21.  »  82  Geo.  III„  c.  60. 


ROBERT  MYLNB.  87 


from  1760  to  1763,  when  he  declined  attending,  from  not  agreeing  with  the 
measures  of  the  duke  of  Bedford.  In  1765,  he  returned,  but  again  retired 
within  the  same  year,  on  the  formation  of  the  Rockingham  administration.  On 
the  dismissal  of  Mr  Pitt,  the  seals  of  the  chancellorship  of  the  exchequer,  from 
which  Mr  Legge  had  retired,  were  pro  tempore  placed  in  his  hands.  When 
lord  Waldegrave  was  directed  to  form  a  new  administration,  he  was  employed  to 
negotiate  with  the  duke  of  Newcastle,  and  his  opponent,  Pitt;  but  the  conclusion 
of  the  treaty  was  intrusted  to  the  earl  of  Hardwicke.  On  the  resignation  of  lord 
Hardwicke,  several  attempts  were  made  to  prevail  on  Mansfield  to  succeed  him 
as  chancellor  ;  but  the  timidity  before  explained,  or  some  principle  not  easily 
defined,  induced  him  to  decline  the  preferment.  He  strongly  resisted  an  at- 
tempt to  amend  the  application  of  Habeas  Corpus,  to  cases  not  criminal, 
suggested  from  the  circumstance  of  a  gentleman  having  remained  for  a  consider- 
able  period  in  prison,  on  a  commitment  for  contempt  of  court.  On  this  occa- 
sion, "  he  spoke,"  says  Horace  Walpole,  "  for  two  hours  and  a  half:  his  voice 
and  manner,  composed  of  harmonious  solemnity,  were  the  least  graces  of  his 
speech.  I  am  not  averse  to  own  that  I  never  heard  so  much  sense  and  so  much 
oratory  united."  This  was  an  occasion  of  which  Junius  made  ample  use.  The 
amendment  was  rejected,  and  a  similar  legislative  measure  was  not  passed  until 
1816.  Lord  Mansfield  was  not  less  eloquent  in  supporting  the  right  of  Britain 
to  tax  America,  without  representation  ;  he  maintained  the  plea,  that  there 
was  virtual,  though  not  nominal,  representation,  and  urged  decisive  measures. 
"  You  may  abdicate,"  he  said,  "  your  right  over  the  colonies.  Take  care,  my 
lords,  how  you  do  so  ;  for  such  an  act  will  be  irrevocable.  Proceed  then,  my 
lords,  with  spirit  and  firmness  ;  and  when  you  have  established  your  authority, 
it  will  then  be  time  to  show  your  lenity."  But  if  his  views  in  civil  politics 
were  narrow  and  bigoted,  he  was  liberal  in  religious  matters  ;  and  both  as  a 
judge  and  a  legislator,  aflbrded  toleration  to  all  classes  of  dissenters,  from 
Homan  catholics  to  methodists.  He  was  indeed  a  greater  enemy  to  liberal  in- 
stitutions, than  to  liberal  acts.  He  could  bear  to  see  the  people  enjoying  privileges, 
provided  they  flowed  from  himself;  but  he  did  not  wish  them  to  be  the  cus- 
todiers of  their  own  freedom.  In  spiritual  matters,  the  authority  did  not  spring 
from  the  chief  justice.  When  he  left  Pitt  behind  him  in  the  commons,  he  found 
one  to  act  his  part  in  the  house  of  lords.  Lord  Camden  Avas  his  unceasing 
opponent ;  and  Mansfield  was  often  obliged  to  meet  his  attacks  with  silence. 
He  suffered  severely  in  the  riots  of  1780;  his  house,  with  considerable  other 
property,  being  destroyed  ;  while  he  sufl^ered  the  far  more  lamentable  loss  of  all 
his  books  and  manuscripts.  In  pui-suance  of  a  vote  of  the  house  of  commons, 
the  treasury  made  an  application  for  the  particulars  and  amount  of  his  loss,  for 
the  purpose  of  arranging  a  compensation  ;  but  he  declined  making  any  claim. 
In  1788,  he  retired  from  his  judicial  office,  when  the  usual  address  from  the 
bar  was  presented  to  him  by  his  countryman,  Mr  Erskine,  and  in  July,  1792, 
he  was  raised  to  the  dignity  of  earl  of  Mansfield,  with  remainder  to  his 
nephew,  David  viscount  Stormont,  whose  grandson  now  enjoys  the  title.  He  died 
on  the  20th  March,  1793,  in  the  eighty-ninth  year  of  his  age. 

MYLNE,  Robert,  a  distinguished  architect,  was  born  in  Edinburgh,  January 
4,  1734.  He  was  the  son  of  Thomas  Mylne,  a  magistrate  of  the  city,  and  an 
architect,  whose  predecessors  for  several  generations  had  been  master-masons  to 
the  king,  and  one  of  whom  built  the  additions  to  Holyrood  house  in  the  reign 
of  Charles  II.,  and  is  interred  in  the  neighbourhood  of  that  palace,  with  a  high- 
ly panegyri(;al  epitaph.  After  receiving  a  general  education  in  Edinburgh,  the 
subject  of  this  article  travelled  on  the  continent  for  improvement  in  his  here- 
ditary science.     At  Rome,  where  he  resided  five  years,  he  gained  in  1758,  the 


88  JOHN  NAPIER. 


first  prize  of  the  academy  of  St  Luke  in  tlie  first  class  of  architecture,  and  was 
unanimously  elected  a  member  of  that  body.  In  the  course  of  his  travels,  he 
was  able,  by  the  minuteness  of  his  research,  to  discover  many  points  in  ancient 
architecture  which  no  one  ever  before  or  ever  after  remarked,  and  to  illustrate 
by  this  means  some  obscure  passages  in  Vitruvius.  On  returning  to  London,  a 
friendless  adventurer,  the  superiority  of  a  plan  which  he  presented,  among  those 
of  twenty  other  candidates,  for  the  contemplated  Blackfriars'  bridge,  gained  him 
the  employment  of  superintending  that  great  public  work,  which  was  commenced 
in  176 1.  This  plan  and  the  duty  of  superintendence  were  rewarded,  according 
to  agreement,  by  a  salary  of  £300  a-year,  and  five  per  cent,  upon  all  the 
money  expended.  So  well  had  he  calculated  the  cost,  that  the  bridge  was  com- 
pleted (1765)  for  the  exact  sum  specified  in  the  estimate,  £153,000.  As  a 
specimen  of  bridge  architecture,  on  a  large  scale,  it  was  long  held  in  the  very 
highest  rank  ;  and  a  learned  writer  has  even  pronounced  it  the  most  perfect  in 
existence.  The  mode  of  centering  employed  by  Mr  31ylne,  has,  in  particular, 
been  the  theme  of  much  praise. 

This  eminent  architect  was  afterwards  appointed  surveyor  of  St  Paul's 
cathedral ;  and  he  it  was  who  suggested  the  inscription  in  that  building  to  the 
memory  of  Wren—"  Si  monumentum  quseris,  circumspice,"  an  idea  so  felicitous, 
that  it  may  safely  be  described  as  more  generally  known,  and  committed  to 
more  memories,  than  almost  any  similar  thing  in  existence.  Among  the  buildings 
erected  or  altered  by  him,  may  be  mentioned — Rochester  cathedral,  Greenwicli 
hospital,  (of  which  he  was  clerk  of  the  works  for  fifteen  years,)  King's  Weston, 
Ardincaple  bouse,  and  Inverary  Castle.  He  was  a  man  of  extensive  knowledge 
in  his  profession,  both  in  regard  to  its  theory  and  practice.  After  a  long  career 
of  distinguished  employment,  he  died.  May  5,  1811,  in  his  seventy-eighth  year, 
at  the  New  River  Head,  London,  where  he  had  long  resided  as  engineer  to  that 
company,  and  was  interred  in  Westminster  Abbey,  near  the  tomb  of  Sir  Chris- 
topher Wren.  By  his  wife.  Miss  Mary  Home,  whom  he  married  in  1770,  he  had 
nine  children,  five  of  wbom  survived  him. 


NAPIER,  John,  of  Merchiston,  near  Edinburgh,  the  celebrated  inventor  of 
the  logarithms,  was  born  in  the  year  1550.  He  was  descended  from  an  ancient 
race  of  land  proprietors  in  Stirlingshire  and  Dumbartonshire.  His  father,  Sir 
Alexander  Napier  of  Edinbellie,  in  the  former  county,  and  Merchiston,  in  the 
county  of  Edinburgh,  was  master  of  the  mint  to  James  VI.,  and  was  only  sixteen 
years  of  age  when  the  subject  of  this  memoir  was  born.  The  mother  of  the 
inventor  of  the  logarithms  was  Janet,  only  daughter  of  Sir  Francis  Bothwell,  a 
lord  of  session,  and  sister  of  Adam,  bishop  of  Orkney.  There  is  a  prevalent 
notion  that  the  inventor  of  the  logarithms  was  a  nobleman:  tliis  has  arisen  from 
his  styhng  himself,  in  one  of  his  title  pages,  Baro  Merchistonii ;  in  reality, 
this  implied  baron  in  the  sense  of  a  superior  of  a  barony,  or  what  in  Enc^land 
would  be  called  lord  of  a  manor.  Napier  was  simply  laird  of  M^chiston— 
a  class  who  m  Scotland  sat  in  parliament  under  the  denominaUon  of  the  Usser 
barons. 

Napier  was  educated  at  St  Salvator's  college,  in  the  university  of  St  Andrews 
which  he  entered  in  1562.  He  afterwards  travelled  on  the  continent,  proba- 
bly to  improve  himself  by  intcrcour«e  with  learned  and  scientific  men.     Nothing 


Engrmcdljy  S.BpeamKa. 


•    OP  KEE.CHJSTON. 
rN-V13]<rT  OR  OP  THE  LOGARITHMS. 

FHO-M  THR  QRJOrNAL  PAtNTmS  3N 'ITdT;  OTIVERfllTy  01'  EDINBURGH. 


:  ScBQN.  CJASCm.  2DINBT1RG1I  S-J.ONHOii. 


JOHN  NAPIER.  89 


farther  is  ascertained  respecting  him,  till  after  he  had  reached  the  fortieth  year 
of  his  age.  He  is  then  found  settled  at  the  family  seats  of  Merchiston  near 
Edinburgh,  and  Gartness,  in  Stirlingshire,  where  he  seems  to  have  practised  the 
life  of  a  recluse  student,  without  the  least  desire  to  mingle  actively  in  political 
affairs.  That  his  mind  was  alire,  however,  to  the  civil  and  religious  interests  of 
his  country,  is  proved  by  his  publishing,  in  1593,  an  exposition  of  the  Revela- 
tions, in  tlie  dedication  of  which  to  the  king,  he  urged  his  majesty,  in  very 
plain  language,  to  attend  better  than  he  did  to  the  enforcement  of  the  laws, 
and  the  protection  of  religion,  beginning  reformation  in  his  own  "  house, 
family,  and  court."  From  this  it  appears  that  Napier  belonged  to  the  strict 
order  of  presbyterians  in  Scotland ;  for  such  are  exactly  the  sentiments  chiefly 
found  prevalent  among  that  class  of  men  at  this  period  of  our  history. 

In  the  scantiness  of  authenticated  materials  for  the  biography  of  Napier,  some 
traditionary  traits  become  interesting.  It  is  said  that,  in  his  more  secluded 
residence  at  Gartness,  he  had  both  a  waterfall  and  a  mill  in  his  immediate 
neighbourhood,  which  considerably  interrupted  his  studies.  He  was,  however, 
a  great  deal  more  tolerant  of  the  waterfall  than  of  the  mill ;  for  while  the  one 
produced  an  incessant  and  equable  sound,  the  other  was  attended  with  an  irre- 
gular clack-clack ,  which  marred  the  processes  of  his  mind,  and  sometimes  even 
rendered  it  necessary  for  him,  when  engaged  in  an  unusually  abstruse  calcula- 
tion, to  desire  the  miller  to  stop  work.  He  often  walked  abroad  in  the  even- 
ing, in  a  long  mantle,  and  attended  by  a  large  dog ;  and  these  circumstances, 
working  upon  minds  totally  unable  to  appreciate  the  real  nature  of  his 
researches,  raised  a  popular  rumour  of  his  being  addicted  to  the  black  art.  It 
is  certain  that,  no  more  than  other  great  men  of  his  age,  was  he  exempt  from 
a  belief  in  several  sciences  now  fully  proved  to  have  been  full  of  imposture. 
The  practice  of  foraiing  theories  only  from  facts,  however  reasonable  and  un- 
avoidable it  may  appear,  was  enforced  only  for  the  first  time  by  a  contempo- 
rary of  Napier — the  celebrated  Bacon ;  and,  as  yet,  the  bounds  between  true 
and  false  knowledge  were  hardly  known.  Napier,  therefore,  practised  an  art 
which  seems  nearly  akin  to  divination,  as  is  proved  by  a  contract  entered  into, 
in  1594,  between  him  and  Logan  of  Fastcastle — afterwards  so  celebrated  for 
his  supposed  concern  in  the  Gowry  conspiracy.  This  document  states  it  to  have 
been  agreed  upon,  that,  as  there  were  old  reports  and  appearances  that  a  sum  of 
money  was  hid  within  Logan's  house  of  Fastcastle,  John  Napier  should  do  his 
utmost  diligence  to  search  and  seek  out,  and  by  all  craft  and  ingine  [a  phrase 
for  mental  power]  to  find  out  the  same,  or  make  it  sure  that  no  such  thing  has 
been  there.  For  his  rewai'd  he  was  to  have  the  exact  third  of  all  that  was 
found,  and  to  be  safely  guarded  by  Logan  back  to  Edinburgh  ;  and  in  case  he 
should  find  nothing,  after  all  trial  and  diligence  taken,  he  was  content  to  refer 
the  satisfaction  of  his  travels  and  pains  to  the  discretion  of  Logan.  What  was 
the  result  of  the  attempt,  or  if  the  attempt  itself  was  ever  made,  has  not  been 
ascertained. 

Besides  dabbling  in  sciences  which  had  no  foundation  in  nature,  Napier  ad- 
dicted himself  to  certain  speculations  which  have  always  been  considered  as 
just  hovering  ^tween  the  possible  and  the  impossible,  a  number  of  which  he 
disclosed,  in  1596,  to  Anthony  Bacon,  the  brother  of  the  more  celebrated 
philosopher  of  that  name.  One  of  these  schemes  was  for  a  burning  mirror, 
similar  to  that  of  Archimedes,  for  setting  fire  to  ships  ;  another  was  for  a  mir- 
ror to  produce  the  same  effects  by  a  material  fire  ;  a  third  for  an  engine  which 
should  send  forth  such  quantities  of  shot  in  all  directions  as  to  clear  everjthing 
in  its  neighbourhood ;  and  so  forth.  In  fact,  Napier's  seems  to  have  been  one 
of  those  active  and  excursive  minds,  which  are  sometimes   found  to  spend  a 

IV,  M 


90  JOHN  NAPIER, 


whole  life  in  projects  and  speculations  without  producing  a  single  article  of  real 
utility,  and  in  other  instances  hit  upon  one  or  two  things,  perhaps,  of  the  high- 
est order  of  usefulness.  As  he  advanced  in  years,  he  seems  to  have  gradually 
forsaken  wild  and  hopeless  projects,  and  applied  himself  more  and  more  to  the 
useful  sciences.  In  1596,  he  is  found  suggesting  the  use  of  salt  in  improving 
land ;  an  idea  probably  passed  over  in  his  own  time  as  chimerical,  but  revived 
in  the  present  age  with  good  effect.  No  more  is  heard  of  him  till,  in  1614,  he 
astonished  the  world  by  the  publication  of  his  book  of  logarithms.  He  is  un- 
derstood to  have  devoted  the  intermediate  time  to  the  study  of  astronomy,  a 
science  then  reviving  to  a  new  life,  under  the  auspices  of  Kepler  and  Galileo, 
the  former  of  whom  dedicated  his  Epheraerides  to  Napier,  considering  him  as 
the  greatest  man  of  his  age  in  the  particular  department  to  which  he  applied  his 
abilities. 

.  "  The  demonstrations,  problems,  and  calculations  of  astronomy,  most  com- 
monly involve  some  one  or  more  of  the  cases  of  trigonometry,  or  that  branch 
of  mathematics,  which,  from  certain  parts,  whether  sides  or  angles,  of  a  tri- 
angle being  given,  teaches  how  to  find  the  others  which  are  unknown.  On 
this  account,  trigonometry,  both  plane  and  spherical,  engaged  much  of  Napier's 
thoughts ;  and  he  spent  a  gpreat  deal  of  his  time  in  endeavouring  to  contrive 
some  methods  by  which  the  operations  in  both  might  be  facilitated.  Now,  these 
operations,  the  reader,  who  may  be  ignorant  of  mathematics,  will  observe,  al- 
waj-s  proceed  by  geometrical  ratios,  or  proportions.  Thus,  if  certain  lines  be 
described  in  or  about  a  triangle,  one  of  these  lines  will  bear  the  same  geometri- 
cal proportion  to  another,  as  a  certain  side  of  the  triangle  does  to  a  certain 
other  side.  Of  the  four  particulars  thus  arranged,  three  must  be  known,  and 
then  the  fourth  will  be  found  by  multiplying  together  certain  two  of  those 
known,  and  dividing  the  product  by  the  other.  This  rule  is  derived  from  the 
very  nature  of  geometrical  proportion,  but  it  is  not  necessary  that  we  should 
stop  to  demonstrate  here  how  it  is  deduced.  It  will  be  perceived,  however,  that 
it  must  give  occasion,  in  solving  the  problems  of  trigonometry,  to  a  great  deal 
of  multiplying  and  dividing — operations  which,  as  everybody  knon-s,  become 
Tcry  tedious  whenever  the  numbers  concerned  are  large;  and  they  are  generally 
so  in  astronomical  calculations.  Hence  such  calculations  used  to  exact  immense 
lime  and  labour,  and  it  became  most  important  to  discover,  if  possible,  a  way  of 
shortening  them.  Napier,  as  we  have  said,  applied  himself  assiduously  to  this 
object;  and  he  was,  probably,  not  the  only  person  of  that  age  whose  attention 
it  occupied.  He  was,  however,  undoubtedly  the  fii*st  who  succeeded  in  it,  which 
he  did  most  completely  by  the  admirable  contrivance  Avhich  we  are  now  about 
to  explain. 

"  When  we  say  that  I  bears  a  certain  proportion,  ratio,  ov  relation  to  2,  we 
may  mean  any  one  of  two  things  ;  either  that  1  is  the  half  of  2,  or  that  it  is 
less  tlian  2  by  I.  If  the  former  be  what  we  mean,  we  may  say  that  the  relation 
in  question  is  the  same  as  that  of  2  to  4,  or  of  4  to  8  ;  if  the  latter,  we  may  say 
that  it  is  the  same  as  that  of  2  to  3,  or  of  3  to  4.  Now,  in  the  former  case,  we 
should  be  exemplifying  what  is  called  a  geometrical^  in  the  latter,  what  is  called 
an  arithmetical  proportion  :  the  former  being  that  which  regarSs  the  number  of 
times,  or  parts  of  times,  the  one  quantity  is  contained  in  the  other ;  the  latter 
regarding  only  the  difference  between  the  two  quantities.  We  have  already 
stated  that  the  property  of  four  quantities  arranged  in  geometrical  proportion, 
is,  that  the  product  of  the  second  and  third,  divided  by  the  first,  gives  the 
fourth.  But  when  four  quantities  are  in  arithmetical  proportion,  the  swn  of  the 
second  and  third,  diminished  by  the  subtraction  of  the  first,  gives  the  fourtlu 
Thus,  in  the  geometrical  proportion,  1  is  to  2  as  2  is  to  4  ;  if  2  be  umltiplied 


JOHN  NAPIEB,  91 


by  3  it  gives  4 ;  wliich  divided  by  1  still  remains  4 ;  while,  in  the  arithmetical 
proportion,  1  is  to  2  as  2  is  to  3  ;  if  2  be  added  to  2  it  gives  4 ;  from  which  if 
1  be  subtracted,  there  remains  the  fourth  term  3.  It  is  plain,  therefore,  that, 
especially  where  large  numbers  are  concerned,  operations  fay  arithmetical  must 
be  much  more  easily  performed  than  operations  by  geometrical  proportion  ;  for, 
in  the  one  case  you  have  only  to  add  and  subtract,  while  in  the  other  you  have 
to  go  through  the  greatly  more  laborious  processes  of  multiplication  and  division. 
"  Now,  it  occurred  to  Napier,  reflecting  upon  this  important  distinction,  that 
a  method  of  abbreviating  the  calculation  of  a  geometrical  proportion  might  per- 
haps be  found,  by  substituting,  upon  certain  fixed  principles,  for  its  known 
terms,  others  in  arithmetical  proportion,  and  then  finding,  in  the  quantity 
which  should  result  from  the  addition  and  subtraction  of  these  last,  an  indication 
of  that  which  should  have  resulted  from  the  multiplication  and  division  of  the 
original  figures.  It  had  been  remarked  before  this,  by  more  than  one  \mter, 
that  if  the  series  of  numbers  1,  2,  4,  8,  &a,  that  proceed  in  geometrical  pro- 
gression, that  is,  by  a  continuation  of  geometrical  i-atios,  were  placed  under  or 
along  side  of  the  series  0,  1,2,  3,  &c.,  which  are  in  arithmetical  progression, 
the  addition  of  any  two  terms  of  the  latter  series  would  give  n  sum,  which  would 
stand  opposite  to  a  number  in  the  former  series  indicating  the  product  of  the 
two  terms  in  that  series,  which  coiTesponded  in  place  to  the  two  in  the  arith- 
metical series  first  taken.     Thus,  in  the  two  lines, 

I,     2,     4,      8,      16,     32,     64,      128,     256, 
0,     1,     2,     3,      4,        5,       6,        7,  8, 

the  first  of  whicli  consists  of  numbers  in  geometrical,  and  the  second  of  numbers 
in  arithmetical  progression,  if  any  two  terms,  such  as  2  and  4,  be  taken  from 
the  latter,  their  sum  6,  in  the  same  line,  will  stand  opposite  to  64  in  the  other, 
which  is  the  product  of  4  multiplied  by  16,  the  two  terms  of  the  geometrical 
series  which  stand  opposite  to  the  2  and  4  of  the  arithmetical.  It  is  also  true, 
and  follows  directly  from  this,  that  if  any  three  terms,  as,  for  instance,  2,  4,  6, 
be  taken  in  the  arithmetical  series,  the  sum  of  the  second  and  third,  diminished 
by  the  subtraction  of  the  first,  which  makes  8,  Avill  stand  opposite  to  a  number 
(256)  in  the  geometrical  series  which  is  equal  to  the  product  of  16  and  64  (the 
opposites  of  4  and  6),  divided  by  4  (the  opposite  of  2). 

**  Here,  then,  is,  to  a  certain  extent,  exactly  such  an  arrangement  or  table  as 
Napier  wanted.  Having  any  geometrical  proportion  to  calculate,  the  known 
terras  of  which  were  to  be  found  in  the  first  line  or  its  continuation,  he  could 
substitute  for  them  at  once,  by  reference  to  such  a  table,  the  terms  of  an  arith- 
metical proportion,  which,  wrought  in  the  usual  simple  manner,  would  give  him 
a  result  that  would  point  out  or  indicate  the  unknown  term  of  the  geometrical 
proportion.  But,  unfortunately,  there  were  many  numbers  which  did  not  occur 
in  the  upper  line  at  all,  as  it  here  appears.  Thus,  there  were  not  to  be  found 
in  it  either  3,  or  5,  or  6,  or  7,  or  9,  or  10,  or  any  other  numbei-s,  indeed,  ex- 
cept the  few  that  happen  to  result  from  the  multiplication  of  any  of  its  terms  by 
two.  Between  128  and  256,  for  example,  there  were  127  numbers  wanting, 
and  between  235  and  the  next  terra  (512)  there  would  be  255  not  to  be 
found. 

"  We  cannot  here  attempt  to  explain  the  methods  by  which  Napier's  ingenuity 
succeeded  in  filling  up  these  chasms,  but  must  refer  the  reader,  for  full  informa- 
tion upon  this  subject,  to  the  professedly  scientific  works  which  treat  of  the  his- 
tory and  construction  of  logarithms.  Suffice  it  to  say,  that  he  devised  a  mode 
by  which  he  could  calculate  the  proper  number  to  be  placed  in  the  table  over 
against  any  number  whatever,  whetl-.er  integral  or  fractional.  The  new  numeri- 
cal expressions  thus  found,  he  called  Logaritftms,  a  term  of  Greek  etymology, 


92  EEV.  ALEXANDER  NICOLL,  D.C.L, 


which  signifies  the  ratios  or  proportions  of  numbers.  He  afterwards  fixed  upon 
the  pro^-ession,  1,  10,  100,  1000,  &c,,  or  that  which  resulu  from  continued 
multiplication  by  10,  and  which  is  the  same  according  to  which  the  present 
tables  are  constructed.  This  iuiproveraent,  whicli  possesses  many  advantages, 
had  suggested  itself  about 'the  same  time  to  the  learned  Henry  Briggs,  then 
professor  of  geometry  in  Gresham  college,  one  of  the  persons  who  had  the 
merit  of  first  appreciating  the  value  of  Napier's  invention,  and  who  certainly  did 
more  than  any  other  to  spread  the  knowledge  of  it,  and  also  to  contribute  to  its 
perfection."^ 

The  invention  was  very  soon  known  over  all  Europe,  and  was  everywhere 
hailed  with  admiration  by  men  of  science.  Napier  followed  it  up,  in  1617,  by 
publishing  a  small  treatise,  giving  an  account  of  a  method  of  performing  the 
operations  of  multiplication  and  division,  by  means  of  a  number  of  small  rods. 
These  materials  for  calculation  have  maintained  their  place  in  science,  and  are 
known  by  the  appellation  of  Napier's  Bones. 

In  1608,  Napier  succeeded  his  father,  when  he  had  a  contest  with  his  brothers 
and  sisters,  on  account  of  some  settlements  made  to  his  prejudice  by  his  father, 
in  breach  of  a  promise  made  in  1586,  in  presence  of  some  friends  of  the  family, 
not  to  sell,  wadset,  or  dispose,  from  his  son  John,  the  lands  of  Over  Merchiston, 
or  any  part  thereof.  The  family  disputes  were  probably  accommodated  before 
June  9,  1613,  on  which  day  John  Napier  was  served  and  returned  heir  of  liis 
father  in  the  lands  of  Over  Merchiston. 

This  illustrious  man  did  not  long  enjoy  the  inheritance  which  had  fallen  to 
him  80  unusually  late  in  life.  He  died,  April  3,  1C17,  at  Merchiston  castle, 
and  was  buried  in  the  church  of  St  Giles,  on  the  eastern  side  of  its  southern 
entrance,  where  is  still  to  be  seen  a  stone  tablet,  exposed  to  the  street,  and 
bearing  the  following  inscription  :— "  Sep.  farailiaa  Naperoru.  iuterius  hie  situm 
est." 

Napier  was  twice  married;  first,  in  1571,  to  Elizabeth,  daughter  of  Sir 
James  Stirling  of  Keir,  by  whom  he  had  a  son  and  a  daughter  ;  secondly,  to 
Agnes,  daughter  of  James  Chisholm  of  Cromlix,  by  whom  he  had  ten  children. 
His  eldest  son,  Archibald,  who  succeeded  him,  was  raised  to  the  rank  of  a  baron 
by  Charles  I.,  in  1627,  under  the  title  of  lord  Napier,  which  is  still  borne  by  hia 
dcgceudants.  A  very  elaborate  life  of  him  was  published  in  1835,  (Blackwood, 
Edinburgh). 

NICOLL,  (The  Rev.)  Alexander,  D.  C.  L.,  canon  of  Christchurch,  and  regias 
professor  of  Hebrew  in  the  university  of  Oxford,  was  the  youngest  son  of  John 
Nicoll,  at  Monymusk,  in  Aberdeenshire,  where  he  was  born,  April  3,  1793. 
The  subject  of  this  memoir  was  carefully  reared  by  his  parent  in  the  principles 
of  the  Scottish  episcopal  church  ;  and,  while  little  more  than  four  years  of  age, 
was  placed  at  a  private  school,  conducted  by  a  Mr  Sivewright,  where  he  re- 
ceived the  first  rudiments  of  learning.  Two  yeai-s  afterwards,  he  was  put  to  the 
parish  school,  then  and  still  taught  by  Mr  DufT,  who  grounded  him  in  classical 
literature.  His  behaviour  at  school  was  that  of  a  modest,  assiduous  student,  and 
nothing  but  a  reprimand  ever  disturbed  the  composure  Avhich  was  natural  to 
him.  At  this  school,  his  attainments  were  such  as  to  attract  the  notice  of  the 
clergymen  of  the  presbytery,  in  the  course  of  their  professional  visitations.  In 
1805,  he  removed  to  the  grammar  school  of  Aberdeen,  at  which  city,  his  elder 
brother,  Mr  Lewis  Nicoll,  advocate,  was  able  to  take  charge  of  his  pereonal 
conduct.  At  the  commencement  of  the  winter  session  of  the  same  year,  he 
became  a  candidate  for  a  bursary  at  the  Marischal  college,  and  obtained  one  of 

'  The  above  account  of  logarilhms,  \«'h!ch  has  the  advantage  of  being  very  simple  and  in- 
telligible, is  exlractwi  from  the  Library  of  Entertaining  Knowledge. 


EEV.  ALEXANDER  NICOLL,  D.C.L.  93 

the  smallest  in  the  gift  of  that  institution.  He,  therefore,  attended  the  classes 
of  Latin  and  Greek  during  the  session  1805-6,  at  the  close  of  which  he  gained 
the  prize  of  the  Silver  Pen,  always  bestowed  on  the  best  scholar.  This  honour, 
being,  as  usual,  announced  in  the  provincial  newspapers,  caused  him  to  be 
noticed  by  various  eminent  individuals,  as  a  young  man  of  peculiar  promise. 
Before  the  next  session,  he  had  studied  mathematics  at  home,  and  pursued  a 
course  of  miscellaneous  reading.  Besides  attending  the  classes  formerly  men* 
tioned,  he  entered,  in  1803,  that  of  mathematics,  then  taught  by  Dr  Hamilton, 
the  well-known  expositor  of  the  national  debt ;  and  also  attended  the  prelec- 
tions of  3Ir  Beattie,  in  natural  and  civil  history.  During  the  ensuing  vacation, 
he  directed  his  attention  to  drawing,  and  produced  several  maps,  sketched  in  a 
very  neat  manner. 

Soon  after  the  commencement  of  his  third  year,  in  1807,  Bishop  Skinner, 
of  Aberdeen,  informed  him,  that  there  was  a  vacancy  at  Baliol  college,  in  one 
of  the  exhibitions  upon  Snell's  foundation,  which  he  thought  might  be  obtained. 
By  the  advice  of  his  elder  brother,  he  proceeded  to  Oxford,  with  a  letter  of  re- 
commendation from  Bishop  Skinner  to  Dr  Parsons,  the  master  of  the  college, 
and  was  at  once  elected  to  the  vacant  exhibition.  Having  been  put  under  the 
charge  of  a  tutor,  (the  ReT. Mr  Jenkyns,)  he  commenced  his  studies  with  great 
eagerness,  particularly  in  the  department  of  Greek,  where  his  chief  deficiency 
lay,  and  where  he  founcj  himself,  with  only  seven  months'  study  of  that  language 
in  a  Scotch  university,  pitted  against  youths  who  had  studied  at  the  much 
superior  schools  of  Oxford  for  three  years.  His  native  capacity  and  unwearied 
application  soon  placed  him  on  a  level  with  his  companions,  and  a  college  life 
then  began  to  have  great  charms  for  him.  At  Baliol,  he  had  the  society  of  a  little 
knot  of  Scottish  students,  partners  with  himself  in  the  enjoyment  of  Snell's 
foundation,  and  among  whom  were  several  individuals  now  distinguished  in 
public  life.  For  several  years  he  prosecuted  his  studies  with  much  diligence 
and  success  ;  and,  in  1811,  after  the  usual  examination,  obtained  the  degree  of 
bachelor  of  arts.  It  was  not  till  1813,  that  he  directed  his  attention  to  the 
Oriental  languages,  in  which  he  was  destined  to  become  so  noted  a  proficient  In 
a  letter  to  his  brother,  dated  in  December  that  year,  he  says  :  "  For  the  last  year, 
I  have  been  chiefly  engaged  in  the  study  of  the  Oriental  languages,  the  Hebrew, 
Arabic,  and  Persic,  and  occasionally  the  modern  languages.  I  have  latterly 
obtained  some  knowledge  of  French,  Italian,  Spanish,  Portuguese,  and  Ger- 
man. Tliere  is  no  place  where  there  are  finer  opportunities  for  studying  the 
Oriental  languages,  than  in  Oxford.  The  Bodleian  library,  to  which  1  have 
had  access  for  the  last  two  years,  is  said  to  be  richer  in  that  department  than 
any  other.  I  have  lately  been  introduced  to  Dr  .Winstanley,  principal  of  Alban 
Hall,  one  of  the  best  linguists  in  Oxford.  I  also  know  Dr  3Iacbride,  who  has 
lately  been  appointed  principal  of  Magdalen  Hall,  and  lecturer  in  Arabic, 
who  has  already  shown  me  gi-eat  kindness."  Soon  after,  on  account  of  his 
laiowledge  of  languages,  particularly  those  of  the  East,  he  was  appointed,  with- 
out  solicitation,  one  of  the  sub -librarians  of  the  Bodleian ;  a  situation  which 
greatly  favoured  the  progress  of  his  studies. 

In  1817,  Mr  Nicoll  received  deacon's  orders,  and  was  appointed  the  curate 
of  one  of  the  churches  in  Oxford,  where  he  had  part  of  the  duty  to  perform. 
This,  however,  did  not  in  the  least  retard  his  studies,  or  his  exertions  in  the 
Bodleian.  On  considering  various  circumstances  in  the  history  of  this  institu- 
tion, he  had  marked  out  for  himself  a  line  of  duty,  by  which  he  greatly  bene- 
fited  its  interests,  and  elevated  his  own  reputation.  He  perceived  tliat  the 
enormous  treasure  of  Oriental  manuscripU,  about  thirty  thousand  inliumber, 
was  in  a  great  measure  useless,  from  being  imperfectly  catalogued ;  and   to  re- 


91  REV,  ALEXANDER   NICOLL,  D.CJi. 

medy  this  defect  he  forthwith  applied  himself.  He  first  drew  up  a  catalogue 
of  the  manuscripts  brought  from  the  East  by  Dr  E.  D.  Clarke,  and,  by  publish- 
ing it,  at  once  established  his  fame  as  an  Orientalist  of  the  first  class.  He  then 
entered  on  the  gigantic  task  of  completing  the  general  catalogue  of  the  eastern 
manuscripts,  which  had  been  begun  about  a  hundred  years  before  by  Uri,  tlie 
celebrated  Hungarian.  The  first  fasciculus  which  he  put  forth  of  this  Avork, 
embracing  manuscripts  in  nearly  a  dozen  diHerent  tongues,  analyzing  their  con- 
tents, and  estimating  their  merits  in  clear,  forcible,  and  elegant  Latin,  diffused 
NicoU's  reputation  tliroughout  Europe,  and  brought  him  into  acquaintance  and 
coiTespondence  with  all  the  eminent  Orientalists  at  home  and  abroad.  Every 
summer  thereafter  he  visited  the  continent,  in  order  to  examine  various  cele- 
brated collections ;  and,  ere  he  died,  there  was  not  one  of  any  note  whicli  he 
had  not  seen.  His  epistolary  correspondence  with  the  eminent  foreign  literati, 
was  conducted  chiefly  in  Latin,  which  he  wrote  with  perfect  facility  ;  but  his 
knowledge  of  the  modern  European  languages,  was  hardly  less  extraordinary 
than  Ills  orientalism.  He  spoke  and  wrote,  with  ease  and  accuracy,  French, 
Italian,  German,  Danish,  Swedish,  and  Romaic.  In  short,  it  was  the  common 
saying  of  the  Oxonian  common-rooms,  that  NicoU  could  walk  to  the  Avall  of 
China  without  need  of  an  interpreter.  In  the  midst  of  all  the  honours  that 
were  paid  to  him,  and  though  his  intercourse  with  so  many  distinguished  men 
had  given  ease  and  elegance  to  his  manners,  he  never  lost  the  original  modesty 
and  reserve  of  his  nature.  It  was  forcibly  said  of  him  by  an  eminent  scholar, 
after  conversing  with  him,  **  Sir,  he  is  not  modest, — he  is  modesty  itself." 

The  time  at  length  arrived  when  he  was  to  receive  a  reward  due  to  his  great 
merits  and  exertions.  In  June,  1S23,  on  the  promotion  of  Dr  Richard  Lau- 
rence to  the  archbishopric  of  Cashel,  NicoU  Avas,  without  solicitation,  appointed 
to  the  vacant  chair  of  regius  professor  of  Oriental  languages  ;  tlie  following 
being  the  letter  in  which  lord  Liverpool  announced  the  appointment : — 

'•  Fife  House,  \dtJi  June,  1822. 
"  Sib, — In  consequence  of  the  promotion  of  Dr  Laurence  to  the  archbishopric 
of  Cashel,  the  regius  professorship  of  HebreAV  in  the  university  of  Oxford,  to- 
gether with  the  canonry  of  Christ  Clmrcli  attached  to  it,  becomes  vacanL  The 
high  reputation  which  you  have  acquired  as  an  Oriental  scholar,  and  the  value 
attached  to  your  labours,  have  induced  his  majesty  to  approve  of  you  as  Dr 
Laurence's  successor;  and  I  can  entertain  no  doubt  that  this  mark  of  royal 
favour,  conferred  upon  you  without  solicitation,  will  be  a  strong  inducement  to 
you  to  persevere  in  those  studies  by  which  you  have  acquired  so  much  credit, 
and  to  use  your  utmost  endeavours  to  promote  the  study  of  Oriental  literature 
in  the  university  of  Oxford. — I  have  the  honour  to  be,  Sii-,  your  very  obedient 
hamble  servant, 

(Signed)  "  Liverpooi..** 

NicoU  was  thus  elevated  from  a  salary  of  about  £200  a-year,  and  the  compara- 
tively humble  situation  of  a  sub-librarian  in  the  Bodleian,  to  the  enjoyment  of 
£2000,  and  two  of  Uie  highest  dignities  in  the  university.  He  soon  after  took 
the  degree  of  D.  C  L. 

For  some  years,  Dr  NicoU  performed  the  duties  of  his  high  station  with  tlw 
greatest  zeal  and  success,  producing  a  considerable  increase  in  the  attendance  of 
his  class,  and  not  neglecting,  at  the  same  time,  the  important  task  which  he 
had  undertaken  at  the  Bodleian.  He  had  nearly  completed  the  catalogue, 
when,  on  the  24th  of  September,  1  828,  having  previously  Aveakcned  his  con- 
sitution  by  intense  study,  he  Avas  cut  of}"  by  an  inflammation  in  tlie  Avindpipe,* 
in  the  thirty-sixth  year  of  his  age. 


JOHN  OGILVIE,  D.D.JOHN  OGILVY,  95 


Di  Nicoll  was  twice  married;  first,  to  a  Danish  lady,  Avho  died  in  1825; 
secondly,  to  Sophia,  daughter  of  the  reverend  J.  Parsons,  the  learned  editor  of 
the  Oxford  Septuagint,  and  by  whom  a  memoir  of  Dr  Nicoll  was  prefixed  to  a 
posthumous  volume  of  his  sermons.  By  his  second  wife,  Dr  Nicoll  had  three 
daughters,  who  survived  him.  "  This  great  scholar,"  said  one  of  the  journals, 
in  alluding  to  his  death,  "  has  left  behind  him  a  reputation  which  his  family 
may  well  consider  as  their  dearest  treasure.  While  his  attainments  were  of  the 
first  order,  his  personal  character  was  without  spot  or  blemish.  He  was  virtu- 
ous in  every  relation  of  life  ;  cheerful  in  poverty  ;  humble  in  prosperity  :  sin- 
cere, kind,  generous,  and  eminently  pious." 


OGILVIE,  John,  D.  D.,a  poet  and  miscelbneous  writer,  was  bom  in  the  year 
1733.  His  father  was  one  of  the  ministers  of  Aberdeen,  and  he  received  his 
education  in  the  Marischal  college  in  that  city.  Having  qualified  himself  as  a 
preacher,  he  was  settled,  in  the  year  1759,  as  minister  of  the  parish  of  Mid- 
mar,  in  Aberdeenshire,  where  he  continued  to  exercise  his  useful  duties  till  the 
close  of  his  life,  in  1814.  With  the  exception  of  the  publication  of  a  book, 
and  an  occasional  visit  to  London,  the  life  of  Dr  Ogilvie  was  marked  by  hardly 
any  incident.  The  list  of  his  works  is  as  follows :  "  The  Day  of  Judgment,"  a 
poem,  1758  ;  a  second  edition  of  the  same,  Avith  additional  poems,  1759 
'  Poems  on  several  Subjects,"  1762  ;  "  Providence,  an  Allegorical  Poem," 
1763  ;  "  Solitude,  or  the  Elysium  of  the  Poets,  a  Vision,"  1765  ;  *'  Paradise," 
a  poem,  and  two  volumes  of  poems  on  several  subjects,  1760  ;  "  Philosophi- 
cal and  Critical  Observations  on  the  Nature,  Character,  and  various  Species  of 
Composition,"  1774  ;  "  Rome,"  a  poem,  1775  ;  "  An  Inquiry  into  the  Causes 
of  Infidelity  and  Scepticism  in  all  Times,"  1783;  "The  Theology  of  Plato 
compared  with  the  Principles  of  the  Oriental  and  Grecian  Philosophy,"  1793  ; 
"  Britannia,"  an  epic  poem,  in  twenty  books,  1801  ;  and  "  An  Examination  of 
the  Evidence  from  Prophecy,  in  behalf  of  the  Christian  Religion,"  1802. 

The  name  of  Ogilvie  is  certainly  not  unknown  to  fame;  yet  it  cannot  be  said 
that  any  of  his  numerous  Avorks  has  maintained  a  place  in  the  public  eye.  To 
account  for  this,  one  of  his  biographers  malces  the  following  remarks  :  "  Ogilvie, 
Avith  poAvers  far  above  the  common  order,  did  not  know  hoAv  to  use  them  Avith 
effect.  He  Avas  an  able  man  lost.  His  intellectual  Avealth  and  industry  Avere 
Avasted  in  huge  and  unhappy  speculations.  Of  all  his  books,  there  is  not  one 
Avhich,  as  a  Avhole,  can  be  expected  to  please  the  general  reader.  Noble  senti- 
ments, brilliant  conceptions,  and  poetic  graces,  may  be  culled  in  profusion  from 
the  mass  ;  but  there  is  no  one  production  in  Avhich  they  so  predominate,  (if  Ave 
except  some  of  his  minor  pieces,)  as  to  induce  it  to  be  selected  for  a  happier 
fate  than  the  rest.  Had  the  same  talent  Avhich  Ogilvie  threAV  away  on  a  number 
of  objects,  been  concentrated  on  one,  and  that  one  chosen  Avith  judgment  and 
taste,  he  might  have  rivalled  in  popularity  the  most  renoAvned  of  his  con- 
temporaries."^ 

OGILVY,  Jonx,  a  poet  and  geographer,  was  born  in  the  year  1600,  at  or 
near  Edinburgh.  While  he  was  very  young,  his  parents  removed  Avith  him  to 
London,  Avhere  his  father,  some  time  after,  fell  into  debt,  and  was  confined  in 
the  King's  Bench  prison.     Notwithstanding  family  misfortunes,  the  subject  of 

»  Lives  of  Eminent  Scotsmen,  ii.  137. 


9(j  JOHN  OGILVY. 


this  memoir  was  able  to  pick  up  a  slender  knowledge  of  Latin  grammar.  What 
is  still  more  to  his  praise,  he  put  himself  apprentice  to  a  teacher  of  dancing, 
and  with  the  first,  money  he  procured  from  his  master,  freed  his  father  from 
confinement.  A  sprain  which  he  got  in  dancing  at  a  masque  put  a  temporary 
stop  to  his  career  in  this  profession,  and  made  him  slightly  lame  ever  after, 
yet  he  is  found  to  have  been  retained  by  the  celebrated  carl  of  Strafford 
as  teacher  of  dancing  in  his  lordship's  family,  at  the  same  time  that  he  accom- 
panied the  earl  to  Ireland,  as  one  of  his  troop  of  guards.  At  this  time 
he  wrote  a  humorous  piece,  entitled  "  The  Character  of  a  Trooper."  Under 
favour  of  the  earl  of  Strafford,  he  became  in  time  Master  of  Revels,  and  built  a 
theatre  in  Dublin.  The  civil  war,  however,  which  had  made  shipwreck  of  the 
fortunes  of  his  patron,  seems  to  have  also  blasted  the  prospects  of  Ogilvy,  who, 
about  the  time  of  its  conclusion,  arrived  in  a  necessitous  condition  in  London, 
and  soon  after  applied  himself  at  Cambridge  to  remedy  the  defects  of  his 
original  education.  In  the  latter  object  he  succeeded  so  far  as  to  be  able  to 
publish,  in  1649,  his  translation  of  Virgil  into  English  verse;  which  was  fol- 
lowed in  1660  by  a  similar  version  of  Homer.  In  1651  he  produced  "  The  Fables 
of  .^op,  paraphrased  in  verse,"  in  a  quarto  volume,  with  recommendatory  verses 
prefixed  by  Sir  William  Davenant,  and  James  Shirley,  the  dramatic  poet.  Four 
years  afterwards  he  published  another  volume  of  translations  from  JEsop,  with 
some  fables  of  his  own.  Ogilvy  was  a  fertile  writer  of  original  verses.  We  are 
fortunately  saved  the  trouble  of  making  an  estimate  of  his  literary  character,  by 
Winstanly,  whose  panegyric,  utterly  preclusive  of  all  rivalry,  is  as  follows  : — 
"John  Ogilvy  was  one  who,  from  a  late  initiation  into  literature,  made  such 
progress  as  might  well  style  him  the  prodigy  of  his  time ;  sending  into  the  world 
so  many  large  volumes ;  his  translations  of  Homer  and  Virgil,  done  to  the  life, 
and  with  such  excellent  sculptures;  and,  what  added  great  grace  to  his  works, 
he  printed  them  all  on  special  good  paper,  and  of  a  very  good  letter.'"  Miserable 
as  his  translation  of  Homer  is  allowed  to  have  been,  it  was  a  favourite  of  Popo 
in  his  younger  days,  and  it  is  impossible  to  say  to  what  extent  w-e  may  be  indebted 
for  the  beautiful  versions  of  the  latter  writer  to  the  early  bias  thus  given  to  his 
taste.  It  is  also  to  be  mentioned,  to  the  honour  of  Ogilvy,  that  the  elegance  of 
the  typography  of  his  translations  was  in  a  great  measure  owing  to  his  own 
exertions  for  the  improvement  of  that  art.  The  engravings,  moreover,  which  he 
caused  to  be  executed  for  his  Virgil  were  of  such  superior  merit  for  their  time, 
as  to  be  afterwards  employed  in  illustrating  an  edition  of  the  original  poet,  and 
subsequently  for  the  decoration  of  Dryden's  translation.  At  the  Restoration, 
our  author  was  replaced  in  his  situation  of  Master  of  the  Revels  in  Ireland,  and 
once  more  erected  his  theatre  in  the  capital  of  that  kingdom.  His  chief  atten- 
tion, however,  seems  to  have  been  now  devoted  to  the  composition  of  an  epic 
poem,  entitled  the  "  Carolics,"  in  honour  of  Charles  I.,  the  manuscript  of  which 
was  lost  in  the  great  fire  of  London,  when  his  house  was  burnt  down.  He  im- 
mediately commenced  I'cprinting  all  his  former  publications,  and  sold  them,  as 
he  had  previously  done,  by  means  of  a  lottery,  whereby  he  now  raised  £4210, 
which  enabled  him  to  set  up  a  printing  office,  for  the  purpose  of  producing 
geographical  works,  he  having  received  the  appointment  of  cosmographer  and 
geographic  printer  to  the  king.  In  this  capacity  he  projected  a  general  Atlas 
of  the  world,  of  which  he  only  lived  to  complete  tlie  parts  descriptive  of  Cliina, 
Japan,  Africa,  Persia,  Britain,  &c.  lie  also  produced  several  topographical 
works,  one  of  which,  entitled,  "The  Traveller's  Guide,"  describing  the  roads 
of  England  from  his  own  actual  survey,  was  long  a  well-known  and  serviceable 
book.    Mr  Ogilvy  concluded  an  active,  and,  rpon  the  whole,  useful  life,  in  1676. 


DAVID   PANTHER.— MUNGO  PARK.  97 


PANTHER,  David,  (whose  name  is  diversely  spelled  Panter  and  Paniter,)  a 
learned  diplomatic  character  of  the  sixteenth  century,  was  descended  from  an 
ancient  family  near  Montrose.  He  successively  held  the  ecclesiastical  offices  of 
vicar  of  Carstairs,  prior  of  St  Mary's  Isle,  commendator  of  Cambuskenneth,  and 
bishop  of  Ross,  and  in  the  latter  part  of  the  reign  of  James  V.,  and  for  some 
years  later,  was  principal  secretary  of  state.  In  this  latter  character,  he  wrote 
many  official  letters  to  foreign  courts,  which  have  been  highly  praised  for  the 
extraordinary  elegance  of  their  Latinity.  In  1722,  Ruddiman  published  two 
well-known  volumes,  entitled  "  Epistolas  Jacobi  Quarti,  Quinti,  et  IMariae  Regi- 
nas  Scotorum,  eorumque  Tutorum  et  Regni  Gubernatorum,  ad  Imperatores, 
Reges,  Pontifices,  Civitates  et  Alios,  ab  Anno  1505  ad  Annum  1  545 ;"  of  which 
the  whole  of  the  second  is  the  composition  of  David  Panther,  while  the  first 
contains  letten  written  in  a  similar  official  character,  by  Patrick  Panther,  his 
near  relation. 

Panther  subsequently  acted  for  seven  years  as  ambassador  of  Scotland  at  the 
French  court.  After  a  life  distinguished  by  high  services,  but,  it  appears,  by 
no  great  purity  of  morals,  he  died  at  Stirling,  October  1,  1558. 

PARK,  MuNGO,  a  distinguished,  but  unfortunate  traveller,  was  bom  at  Fowl- 
shiels,  in  Selkirkshire,  September  10,  1771.  His  father,  who  rented  the  farm 
of  Fowlshiels  from  the  duke  of  Buccleuch,  had  thirteen  children,  of  whom 
Mungo  was  the  seventh.  Notwithstanding  his  limited  resources,  he  kept  a  pri- 
vate tutor  in  his  house,  for  the  education  of  his  family  ;  and  of  the  advantage 
of  this  arrangement,  the  subject  of  the  present  memoir  largely  partook.  He 
was  afterwards  sent  to  the  grammar  school  of  Selkirk,  where  he  made  astonish- 
ing progress,  not  so  much  by  his  ready  talents,  as  by  his  remarkable  perse- 
verance and  application  ;  and,  despite  of  many  disadvantages,  uniformly  kept 
the  place  of  dtix,  or  head  of  his  class.  This  early  devotion  to  study  and  apti- 
tude of  acquirement,  together  with  his  thoughtful  and  reserved  disposition, 
seemed  to  his  father  to  point  out  the  church  as  his  future  profession,  but  upon 
his  son's  expressing  a  decided  preference  for  that  of  medicine,  he  at  once 
agreed,  and  bound  him  apprentice  for  three  years  to  Mr  Thomas  Anderson, 
surgeon  in  Selkirk.  At  the  close  of  his  indenture  in  1789,  being  then  eigh- 
teen years  of  age,  he  went  to  Edinburgh,  and  attended  the  classes  for  three 
successive  sessions,  continuing  to  exhibit  the  same  thirst  of  knowledge,  and  un- 
wearied application  to  all  the  studies  connected  with  his  profession,  particularly 
botany.  In  the  latter,  he  is  said  to  have  been  greatly  assisted  and  encouraged 
by  a  brother-in-law,  Mr  James  Dickson,  who,  from  an  origin  even  more  humble 
and  obscure  than  that  of  Park  himself,  subsequently  raised  himself  to  fame  and 
fortune,  and  became  celebrated  as  one  of  the  first  botanists  in  the  kingdom. 
He  had  gone  to  London  in  search  of  employment  as  a  journeyman  gardener, 
and  procured  an  engagement,  in  that  humble  capacity,  with  a  nurseryman  at 
Hammersmith,  where  he  had  the  good  fortune  to  attract  the  notice  of  Sir  Jo- 
seph Banks,  to  Avhose  kind  friendship  and  patronage  he  was  mainly  indebted 
for  his  future  success  and  celebrity. 

After  qualifying  himself  in  his  profession  at  Edinburgh,  young  Park  went  to 
London  in  search  of  employment,  and  was  very  speedily  appointed  assistant- 
surgeon  on  board  the  Worcester,  Rist  Indiaman,  through  the  interest  of  Sir 
Joseph  Banks,  to  whom  air  Dicksdn  had  introduced  him.     Mr  Park  showed 


98  MUNGO  PARK. 


himself  everyway  worthy  of  this  appointment,  and  made  an  adequate  return  to 
his  distinguished  patron,  by  the  valuable  observations  and  discoveries  he  made 
in  botany,  and  other  branches  of  natural  history,  in  a  voyage  to  Bencoolen,  in 
the  island  of  Sumatra.  On  his  return  in  1794,  being  then  only  twenty-three 
years  old,  lie  had  the  honour  of  reading  a  paper  before  the  Linnasan  Society  in 
London,  giving  a  description  of  eight  new  species  of  fishes  he  had  observed  in 
Sumatra,  which  was  afterwards  published  in  the  Transactions  of  the  Society. 

After  leaving  the  Worcester,  Mr  Park  appears  to  have  had  no  certain  or  fixed 
views  as  to  his  future  career,  but  his  talents  and  genius  had  already  distinguished 
him  too  much  to  allow  him  to  remain  long  unemployed.  The  wealthy  and 
scientific  Association  for  the  Promotion  of  Discovery  through  the  Interior  of 
Africa,  were  at  that  time  preparing  to  send  out  an  expedition,  with  the  view  of 
endeavouring  to  trace  the  course  of  the  Niger,  and  procuring  every  information 
relative  to  the  great  central  city  of  Timbuctoo,  of  which  little  more  than  the 
namti  was  then  known.  Sir  Joseph  Banks,  one  of  the  leading  men  of  the  As- 
sociation, immediately  pointed  out  Park  as  one  peculiarly  eligible  for  taking 
the  management  of  the  expedition,  and  the  offer  being  accordingly  made  to 
him,  was  eagerly  accepted.  He  immediately  prepared  himself,  therefore,  for 
the  task,  being  liberally  supplied,  according  to  his  own  statement,  with  the 
means  of  furnishing  himself  with  everything  he  reckoned  necessary,  and  sailed 
from  Portsmouth  on  the  22nd  of  May,  1795,  in  the  brig  Endeavour.  His  in- 
structions were,  to  proceed  to  the  Niger  by  the  nearest  and  most  convenient 
route,  and  endeavour  to  trace  its  course,  from  its  rise  to  its  termination ;  as 
also  to  visit,  if  possible,  all  the  principal  towns  and  cities  on  its  banks,  parti- 
cularly Timbuctoo  and  Houssa,  and  afterwards  return  to  Europe  by  the  river 
Gambia,  or  any  other  way  he  thought  advisable.  He  aiTived  at  Jillifica,  in  the 
kingdom  of  Barra,  and  lying  on  the  northern  bank  of  the  Gambia,  on  the 
Slst  of  June  ;  and  after  proceeding  up  the  river  as  far  as  Jonkakonda,  he 
quitted  the  Endeavour,  and  proceeded  by  land  to  a  small  British  factory,  which 
had  been  established  at  Pisania,  in  the  king  of  Yam's  territories,  where  he  took 
up  his  residence  for  a  short  time  with  Dr  Laidley.  He  immediately  applied 
himself  to  the  study  of  the  Mandingo  tongue,  and  to  collect  all  the  information 
possible,  relative  to  the  various  people  and  countries  in  the  interior,  preparatory 
to  his  journey.  In  consequence,  however,  of  exposure  to  the  night  dew,  while 
observing  an  eclipse  of  the  moon,  in  the  month  of  July,  he  was  seized  with 
fever,  attended  with  delirium,  which  brought  him  almost  to  the  grave ;  nor  was 
he  sufficiently  recovered  to  commence  his  journey  till  December.  On  the  2nd 
of  that  month  lie  set  out,  having  for  his  escort  a  negro  servant,  named  Johnson, 
who  had  resided  many  years  in  Great  Britain,  and  understood  both  the  English 
and  Mandingo  languages,  as  a  guide  and  interpreter  ;  a  negro  boy  belonging 
to  Dr  Laidley,  and  whom  that  gentleman  promised  to  set  free  on  his  return,  in 
the  event  of  his  good  conduct ;  with  four  others,  not  immediately  under  his 
control,  but  who  were  made  to  understand  that  their  own  safety  depended  upon 
their  fidelity  to  him.  It  may  be  interesting  also  to  notice  the  nature  and  value 
of  his  equipments  for  a  journey  of  such  length,  peril,  and  importance.  These 
consisted  of  a  horse  for  himself,  two  asses  for  his  servants,  provisions  for  two 
days,  a  small  assortment  of  beads,  amber,  and  tobacco,  a  few  changes  of  linen 
and  other  apparel,  an  umbrella,  a  pocket  sextant,  a  magnetic  compass,  a  ther- 
mometer, two  fowling-pieces,  two  pairs  of  pistols,  and  a  few  other  trifling  ar- 
ticles. Such  were  all  the  means  of  sustenance,  comfort,  and  safety,  with  which 
this  intrepid  man  was  provided  for  an  expedition,  the  duration  of  which  it  was 
out  of  his  power  to  calculate,  but  whose  route,  he  well  knew,  lay,  in  some 
places,  through  pathless  deserts,  where  neither  tree  grew,  nor  water  ran,  and 


MTJNGO  PARK.  99 


beset  with  beasts  of  prey  ;   in  others,  through  the  territories  of  barbarous  tribes, 
from  whose  inhospitality  or  savage  dispositions  he  had  scarcely  less  to  fear. 

At  the  very  outset,  an  event  occurred  which  seemed  to  bode  ill  for  the  result 
of  his  journey.  Dr  Laidley,  and  a  few  other  of  the  Europeans  at  Pisania,  hav- 
ing escorted  him  during  the  first  two  days,  bade  him  adieu,  convinced  that  they 
would  never  see  him  more  ;  and  scarcely  were  they  out  of  sight,  when  he  was 
suxTounded  by  a  horde  of  native  banditti,  from  whom  he  only  got  free  by  sur- 
rendering the  greater  part  of  his  small  store  of  tobacco.  Park,  however,  was 
not  a  man  to  be  depressed  by  evil  auguries,  and  he  accordingly  pushed  on  to 
Medina,  the  capital  of  Woolli,  where  the  king,  a  benevolent  old  man,  received 
him  with  much  kindness,  and  furnished  him  with  a  trusty  guide  to  the  frontiers  of 
his  dominions.  Our  traveller  then  engaged  three  elephant  hunters,  as  guides  and 
water-bearers,  through  the  sandy  desert  which  lay  before  him,  where  water  was 
frequently  not  to  be  found  for  several  days  together.  He  performed  the  jour- 
ney in  safety,  but  after  much  fatigue,  and  reached  Fatteconda,  the  residence  of 
the  king  of  Bondon,  situated  upon  the  very  frontiers  of  his  dominions,  adjoining 
the  kingdom  of  Kajaaga.  It  was  at  Fatteconda,  and  at  the  hands  of  the  same 
chief,  that  Park's  predecessor  in  enterprise,  Major  Houghton,  had  received  such 
ill  usage,  and  was  plundered  of  almost  everything  he  possessed  ;  but  the  only 
article  he  exacted  from  Park,  and  that  not  by  force,  but  by  such  warm  and  ani- 
mated expi-essions  of  admiration  as  left  our  traveller  no  alternative  to  choose, 
was  his  new  blue  coat,  with  gilt  buttons,  in  return  for  which  he  presented  him 
with  five  drachms  of  gold.  From  Fatteconda  he  proceeded  to  Joag,  the  fron- 
tier town  of  Kajaaga,  travelling  in  the  night-time  for  fear  of  robbers,  and 
through  thickets  abounding  with  wolves  and  hyenas,  which  glided  across  their 
silent  path  in  the  clear  moonshine,  and  hung  round  the  small  party  with  yells 
and  bowlings,  as  if  watching  an  opportunity  to  spring  upon  them.  At  Joag, 
and  whilst  preparing  to  proceed  on  his  journey,  he  was  honoured  by  a  visit 
from  the  king's  son,  who  plundered  him  of  the  half  of  his  little  stores,  on  pre- 
tence of  his  having  forfeited  all  his  property  by  entering  the  kingdom  without 
leave.  As  a  sort  of  consolation  for  this  disaster,  and  Avhilst  appeasing  his 
hunger  with  a  few  ground  nuls  which  a  poor  negro  slave  had  given  him  in 
charity,  he  was  waited  upon  by  the  nephew  of  the  king  of  Kasson,  who  had 
been  at  Kajaaga  on  an  embassy,  and  who,  taking  pity  on  him,  offered  to  escort 
him  to  his  uncle's  capital,  to  which  he  was  now  returning,  and  which  lay  in  the 
line  of  our  traveller's  route.  After  crossing  the  river  Senegal,  however,  which 
was  the  boundary  of  Kasson,  his  royal  guide  left  him,  having  firet  taken  from 
him  the  half  of  the  little  property  he  had  left.  A  few  days  after  this.  Park, 
for  the  first  time,  had  an  opportunity  of  observing  the  manners  of  the  barbarous 
and  untutored  natives  of  Africa  in  all  their  primitive  simplicity  and  unchecked 
ardour.  They  came  to  a  village  which  was  the  birth-place  of  one  of  his  faith- 
ful escort,  a  blacksmith  that  had  accompanied  him  from  Pisania,  and  who  was 
now  about  to  leave  him,  having  amassed  a  considerable  deal  of  money  in  his 
profession  on  the  coast,  and  resolving  to  spend  the  rest  of  his  days  in  ease  and 
independence  amongst  his  family  and  friends.  The  meeting  which  ensued  was 
characterized  by  the  most  extravagant  demonstrations  of  joy  and  triumph,  and 
Park  was  convinced,  that  "  whatever  dift'ei'ence  there  is  between  the  negro  and 
European,  in  the  conformation  of  tlie  nose,  and  the  colour  of  the  skin,  there  is 
none  in  the  genuine  sympathies  and  characteristic  feelings  of  our  common  na- 
ture." With  these  warm-hearted  villagers,  our  traveller  rested  for  a  day  or 
two,  and  then  proceeded  to  Kooniakary,  where  the  king,  a  worthy  old  man,  who 
was  greatly  beloved  by  his  subjects,  received  him  with  much  kindness.  Prom 
this  point  new  perils  beset  Mr  Park's  further  progress,  in  consequence  of  war 


100  MUNGO  PARK. 


;  I  breaking  out  between  the  people  of  Bambarra,  to  which  kingdom  his  course 
I  was  directed,  and  other  tribes,  through  Avhosc  temtories  he  had  to  pau  on  his 
{  way  thither.  He  nerertheless  perserered,  although  even  his  faithful  negro 
i      Johnson,  who  was  aware  of  the  dangers  he  was  running  into,  refused  to  accom- 

'•  I       pany  him  farther.      They  parted  accordingly  at  Jarra,  in  the  kingdom  of  Ludi- 

I  j       mar  (the  people  of  which,  as  well  as  of  the  neighbouring  nations,  were  found  to  be 
j        Mahoniedans),  and  3Ir  Park,  having  intrusted  Johnson  with  a  copy  of  his  jour- 
nal to  carry  back  with  him  to  Pisania,  set  out  for  the  camp  of  Ali  at  Benowm, 

\      accompanied  only  by  Dr  Laidley's  slave  boy,  and  a  messenger  who  had  arrived 

' !      from  Ali  to  conduct  him  thither.     On  the  way  he  suf)*ercd  great  privations,  and 

\\      was  repeatedly  beaten  and  robbed  by  the  fanatical  Moors,  to  whom  he  was  an 

object  of  peculiar  detestation  as  a  Christian.      All  the  sufferings  and  insults 

j      which  he  had  yet  undergone,  however,  were  nothing  to  what  he  was  doomed  to 

II  endure  while  in  the  power  of  the  tyrant  Ali.  His  appearance  at  Benowm 
I '      excited  the  greatest  astonishment  and  consternation  amongst  the  inhabitants, 

I  i  scarcely  one  of  whom  had  ever  seen  a  white  man  before.  When  taken  before 
jl  Ali,  the  latter  was  engaged  in  the  dignified  occupation  of  clipping  his  benrd 
'  I  with  a  pair  of  scissors,  and  paid  little  regard  to  him;  but  the  ladies  of  the  court 
i!      fully  maintained  the  character  of  their  sex  for   inquisitiveness,  searched  his 

pockets,  opened  his  >raistcoat  to  examine  his  white  skin,  and  even  counted  his 

toes  and  fingers  to  make  sure  of  his  being  human.      It  would  occupy  far  more 

j ;      space  than  the  limits  of  this  memoir  will  allow,  to  detail  the  innumerable  and 

I I  unremitting  sufTerings  of  our  unfortunate  countryman  during  his  detention  at 
this  place.  The  unfeeling  tyrant  would  neither  permit  liim  to  depart,  nor 
g^nt  him  any  protection  from  the  persecution  of  the  fanatical  itibble.  He  was 
beat,  reviled,  compelled  to  perform  the  meanest  ofUces,  frequently  on  the  point 
of  starvation,  and  was  often  necessitated  to  sleep  in  the  open  air.  All  his  bag- 
gage was  taken  from  him  to  deter  him  from  running  away,  with  the  exception 
of  a  pocket  compass,  which  was  supposed  to  be  the  work  of  magic,  from  the 
needle  always  pointing  in  the  same  direction,  and  was  therefore  returned  to 
him.  At  last  it  began  to  be  debated  how  he  was  to  be  disposed  of — some  ad- 
rising  that  he  should  be  put  to  death,  others,  that  Iiis  riglit  hand  should  be  cut 
off,  and  another  party,  that  his  eyes  should  be  put  out.  Park's  health  at  length 
gave  way  under  the  accumulated  horrors  of  his  situation,  and  he  was  seized  with 
a  fever  and  delirium,  which  brought  him  to  the  brink  of  the  grave.  Yet  even 
in  this  extremity,  his  persecutors  never  desisted  from  their  cruelties,  and  tor- 
mented him  like  some  obnoxious  animal,  for  their  amusement.  Peshaps  the 
strongest  proof  that  can  be  given  of  the  extent  of  his  sufferings  at  this  time, 
and  of  the  deep  and  lasting  impression  they  made  on  his  mind,  is  the  fact,  that 
years  afterwards,  subsequent  to  his  return  to  Scotland,  and  while  residing  with 
his  family  on  the  peaceful  banks  of  the  Tweed,  he  frequently  started  up  in  hor- 
ror from  his  sleep,  imagining  himself  still  in  the  camp  of  Ali  at  Benowm.  But 
perhaps  nothing  gave  our  traveller  so  much  permanent  grief  as  the  fate  of  his 
faithful  slave  boy  Demba,  whom  Ali  impressed  into  his  service  as  a  soldier,  and 
who  had  conceived  a  great  affection  for  Mr  Park,  who  describes  their  parting 
as  very  aflecting.  After  a  month's  residence  at  Benowm,  Ali  removed  to  Jarra, 
back  to  which  place,  of  course,  i>Ir  Park  was  obliged  to  accompany  him.  Here 
all  was  alarm  and  terror,  from  the  approach  and  apprehended  attack  of  the  king 
of  Kaarta  ;  and  amid  the  bustle  and  confusion  of  the  inhabitants  flying  from 
their  homes,  the  preparations  for  war,  &c.,  3Ir  Park  at  last,  after  great  difli- 
culty,  and  amid  many  perils,  found  an  opportunity  of  escaping,  and  struck  into 
the  woods  back  towards  Bambarra.  Being  under  the  necessity  of  avoiding  all 
intercourse  with  the  natives,  in  order  to  avoid  being  recaptui-ed  by  the  emissa- 


J\rUNGO  PARK.  101 


ries  of  Ali,  who  were  in  pursuit  of  him,  he  was  at  one  time  nearly  famished  in 
the  wilderness,  and  we  will  take  his  own  account  of  his  sensations  at  this  awful 
crisis.  Thirst,  intense  and  burning  thirst,  Avas  the  first  and  direst  of  his  suffer- 
ings ;  his  mouth  and  throat  became  parched  and  inflamed,  and  a  sudden  dim- 
ness frequently  came  over  his  eyes,  accompanied  with  symptoms  of  fainting. 
The  leaves  of  the  few  shrubs  that  grew  around  were  all  too  bitter  for  chewing. 
After  climbing  up  a  tree  in  the  hopes  of  discovering  some  signs  of  a  human  ha- 
bitation, but  without  success,  he  again  descended  in  despair.  "  As  I  was  now," 
gays  he,  "  too  faint  to  attempt  walking,  and  my  horse  too  fatigued  to  carry  me, 
I  thought  it  but  an  act  of  humanity,  and  perhaps  the  last  I  should  ever  have  it 
in  my  power  to  perform,  to  take  off  his  bridle,  and  let  him  shift  for  him- 
self; in  doing  which,  I  Mas  affected  with  sickness  and  giddiness,  and,  fal- 
ling upon  the  sand,  felt  as  if  the  hour  of  death  was  fast  approaching.  Here, 
then,  thought  I,  after  a  short  but  ineffectual  struggle,  terminate  all  my  hopes 
of  being  useful  in  my  day  and  generation  ;  here  must  the  short  span  of  my 
life  come  to  an  end.  I  cast,  as  I  believed,  a  last  look  on  the  surrounding 
scene ;  and  whilst  I  reflected  on  the  awful  change  that  was  about  to  take 
place,  this  world  and  its  enjoyments  seemed  to  vanish  from  my  recollection. 
Nature,  however,  at  length  resumed  her  functions ;  and,  on  recovering  my 
senses,  I  found  myself  stretched  upon  the  sand,  with  the  bridle  still  in  my 
hand,  and  the  sun  just  sinking  behind  the  trees.  I  now  summoned  all  my 
resolution,  and  determined  to  make  another  effort  to  prolong  my  existence  : 
and  as  the  evening  was  somewhat  cool,  I  resolved  to  travel  as  far  as  my  limbs 
would  carry  me,  in  hopes  of  reaching  (my  only  resource)  a  watering  place. 
With  this  view,  I  put  the  bridle  upon  my  horse,  and  driving  him  before  me, 
went  slowly  along  for  about  an  hour,  when  I  perceived  some  lightning  from 
the  northeast ;  a  most  delightful  sight,  for  it  promised  rain.  The  darkness 
and  lightning  increased  very  rapidly,  and,  in  less  than  an  hour,  I  heard  the 
wind  roaring  behind  the  bushes.  I  had  already  opened  my  mouth  to  receivd 
the  refreshing  drops  which  I  expected,  but  I  was  instantly  covered  witli 
a  cloud  of  sand,  driven  with  such  force  by  the  wind,  as  to  give  a  very  disa- 
greeable sensation  to  my  face  and  arms ;  and  I  was  obliged  to  mount  my  horse, 
and  stop  under  a  bush,  to  avoid  being  suffocated.  The  sand  continued  to 
fly  for  nearly  an  hour  in  amazing  quantities,  after  which  I  again  set  forwards, 
and  travelled  with  difficulty  until  ten  o'clock.  At  this  time,  I  was  agreeably 
surprised  by  some  very  vivid  flashes  of  lightning,  followed  by  a  few  heavy 
drops  of  rain.  I  alighted,  and  spread  out  all  my  clean  clothes  to  collect  the 
rain,  which  at  length  I  saw  would  certainly  fall.  For  more  than  an  hour  it 
rained  plentifully,  and  I  quenched  my  thirst  by  wringing  and  sucking  my 
clothes,"  Park  at  length  entered  the  kingdom  of  Bamban-a,  where  he  found 
the  people  hospitable,  and  was  astonished  at  the  opulence  and  extent  of  culti- 
vation he  everywhere  found.  The  country,  he  says,  was  beautiful,  intei-sected 
on  all  sides  by  rivulets,  which,  after  a  rain-storm,  were  swelled  into  rapid 
streams.  He  was,  however,  such  an  object  of  amusement  and  ridicule  to  the 
inhabitants,  from  his  own  tattered  condition,  together  with  the  appearance  of 
his  horse,  which  was  a  perfect  skeleton,  and  which  he  drove  before  him,  that 
the  very  slaves,  he  says,  were  ashamed  to  be  seen  in  his  company.  Notwith- 
standing all  this,  however,  he  held  on  his  way,  and  at  last,  on  the  21st  of 
July  (1796),  had  the  inexpressible  gratification  of  coming  in  sight  of  Sego, 
the  capital  of  Bambarra,  situated  on  the  Niger,  which  the  natives  denominated 
Joliba,  or  the  "  Great  Water."  "  As  we  approached  the  town,"  says  Pai'k, 
**  I  was  fortunate  enough  to  overtake  the  fugitive  Kaartans,  and  we  rode  to- 
gether through  some  marshy  ground,  where,  as  I  anxiously  looked  around  for 


102  MUNGO  PARK. 


the  river,  one  of  them  called  out  Geo  affilli  (see  the  water).  Looking  foiv 
wards,  I  saw,  with  infinite  pleasure,  the  great  object  of  my  mission — the  long 
sought  for  majestic  Niger,  glittering  to  the  morning  sun,  as  broad  as  the 
Thames  at  Westminster,  and  flowing  slowly  to  the  eastward.  I  hastened  to 
the  brink,  and  baring  drunk  of  tlie  water,  lifted  up  my  fervent  thanks  in 
prayer  to  the  Great  Kuler  of  all  things,  for  having  thus  far  crowned  my  en- 
deavours Avith  success.*'  Sego  consisted  of  four  distinct  towns,  two  on  the  nor- 
thern, and  two  on  the  southern  bank  of  the  Niger ;  "  and  the  view  of  this 
extensive  capital,"  says  our  traveller,  "  the  numerous  canoes  on  the  river,  the 
crowded  population,  and  the  cultivated  state  of  the  surrounding  country,  formed 
altogether  a  prospect  of  civilization  and  magnificence  which  I  little  expected  to 
find  in  the  bosom  of  Africa."  The  king,  Mansong,  however,  refused  to  see  3Ir 
Park,  for  fear  of  exciting  the  envy  and  jealousy  of  the  Moorish  inhabitants, 
and  ordered  him  to  remove  to  a  village  in  the  vicinity.  He  liad  no  alterna* 
tive  but  to  comply  ;  and  it  was  here  that  one  of  those  fine  traits  of  female 
compassion,  and  of  the  kind  interposition  of  Providence  in  his  favour  when  at 
the  last  extremity,  which  he  has  frequently  borne  testimony  to  witli  thankful- 
ness and  gratitude,  occurred ;  and  this  truly  affecting  incident  we  cannot 
avoid  giving  in  his  own  simple  language.  On  arriving  at  the  village,  he  was 
inhospitably  driven  from  every  door,  with  marks  of  fear  and  astonishment.  He 
passed  the  day  without  victuals,  and  was  preparing  to  spend  the  night  under 
a  tree,  exposed  to  the  rain  and  the  fury  of  the  wild  beasts,  which  there  great- 
ly abounded,  "  when  a  woman,  returning  from  the  labours  of  the  field, 
stopped  to  observe  me,  and  perceiving  me  weary  and  dejected,  inquired  into 
my  situation,  which  I  briefly  explained  to  her;  whereupon,  with  looks  of 
great  compassion,  she  took  up  my  saddle  and  bridle,  and  told  me  to  follow 
her.  Having  conducted  me  into  her  hut,  she  lighted  up  a  lamp,  spread  a  mat 
upon  the  floor,  and  told  me  I  might  remain  there  for  tiie  night.  Finding  that 
I  was  very  hungry,  she  said  she  would  procure  me  something  to  eat ;  she  ac- 
cordingly went  out,  and  returned  in  a  short  time  with  a  very  fine  fish,  which 
having  caused  to  be  broiled  upon  some  embers,  she  gave  me  fur  supper.  The 
rites  of  hospitality  being  thus  performed  towards  a  stranger  in  distress,  my 
worthy  benefactress  (pointing  to  the  mat,  and  telling  me  I  might  sleep  there 
without  apprehension),  called  to  the  female  part  of  her  family,  who  had  stood 
gazing  on  me  all  the  while  in  fixed  astonishment,  to  resume  their  task  of 
spinning  cotton,  in  which  they  continued  to  employ  themselves  great  part  of 
the  night.  They  lightened  tlieir  labour  with  songs,  one  of  which  was  composed 
extempore,  for  I  was  myself  tlie  subject  of  it;  it  was  sung  by  one  of  tlie  young 
women  ;  the  rest  joining  in  a  chorus.  The  air  was  sweet  and  plaintive,  and 
the  words,  literally  translated,  were  these :  *  The  winds  roared,  and  the  rains 

fell.     The  poor  white  man,  faint  and  weary,  came  and  sat  under  our  tree 

he  has  no  mother  to  bring  him  milk,  no  wife  to  grind  his  corn.'      Chorus 

'  Let  us  pity  the  white  man  ;  no  motlier  has  he !'  &c.,  &&  Trifling  as  this  re- 
cital may  appear  to  the  reader,  to  a  person  in  my  situation  the  circumstance 
was  affecting  in  the  highest  degree.  1  was  so  oppressed  by  such  unexpected 
kindness,  that  sleep  fled  before  ray  eyes.  In  the  morning  I  presented  ray 
compassionate  landlady  witli  two  of  the  four  brass  buttons  that  reiuained  on  my 
waistcoat,  the  only  recompense  I  could  make  her."  IMansong,  the  king, 
liaving  ordered  Park  to  leave  the  neighbourhood,  (sending  him,  however, 
a  guide,  and  a  present  of  5000  cowries,  as  some  recompense  for  his  involun- 
tary inhospitality,)  our  traveller  proceeded  down  the  Niger,  along  the  northern 
bank.  On  one  occasion,  while  passing  through  the  woods,  he  narrowly  es- 
caped being  devoured  by  a  large  red  lion,   whicli    he  suddenly  came  upon. 


MUNGO   PARK. 


103 


crouching  in  a  bush,  but  which  did  not  attack  him.  He  proceeded  first  to 
Sansanding,  thence  to  Moodiboo,  Moorzan,  and  finally  to  Silla.  Here  worn 
out  by  fatigue  and  suffering  of  mind  and  body,  destitute  of  all  means,  either  oi 
subsistence  or  of  prosecuting  his  journey — for  even  his  horse  had  dropped  down 
by  the  way — his  resolution  and  energy,  of  which  no  man  ever  possessed  a 
greater  share,  began  to  fail  him.  The  rainy  season  had  set  in,  and  he  could 
only  travel  in  a  canoe,  which  he  had  no  money  to  hire  ;  and  he  was  advancing 
farther  and  farther  into  the  territories  of  the  fanatical  Moors,  who  looked  upon 
him  with  loathing  and  detestation,  and  whose  compassion  he  had  no  gifts  to 
propitiate.  It  was  with  great  anguish  of  mind  that  he  was  at  last  brought  to 
the  conviction  of  the  necessity  of  returning ;  but  no  one  who  has  read  his  own 
simple  and  manly  statement  of  his  actual  situation,  and  of  the  prospect  before 
him,  together  with  his  poignant  sensations  at  his  disappointment,  can  for  a 
moment  blame  him  for  turning  back.  Preparatory  to  doing  so,  he  collected  all 
the  information  in  his  power  respecting  the  future  course  of  the  Niger,  and  tlie 
various  kingdoms  througli  which  it  flowed ;  but  subsequent  discoveries  have 
since  proved  how  little  credit  could  be  attached  to  the  accounts  of  the  natives, 
either  from  their  positive  ignorance  or  their  suspicious  jealousy  of  strangers. 
Later  and  more  fortunate  travellers,  have  solved  the  great  problem,  the  honour 
of  explaining  whicli  was  denied  to  Park ;  and  we  now  know  that  this  great 
river,  after  flowing  to  a  considerable  distance  eastward  of  Timbuctoo,  makes  a 
bend  or  elbow,  like  the  Burampooter,  and,  after  pursuing  a  south-westerly 
course,  falls  into  the  Atlantic  Ocean  on  the  coast  of  Benin.  The  narrative 
of  IVIr  Park's  return  from  the  interior  of  Africa  would  be  little  else  than  a 
repetition  of  the  various  sufferings,  adventures,  and  dangers  he  experienced  on 
his  way  there,  but  only  in  a  more  aggravated  form,  in  consequence  both  of  his 
utterly  destitute  condition,  and  from  the  inundation  of  the  level  country,  which 
compelled  him  to  seek  his  way  over  chasms  and  precipices,  without  a  guide,  or 
any  other  means  of  shaping  his  course.  He  frequently  waded  for  miles  breast- 
deep  in  water.  Once  he  was  beset  by  banditti,  who  stripped  him  of  everything 
but  two  shirts,  his  hat,  and  a  pair  of  trousers ;  and  on  arriving  at  Sibidooloo, 
he  was  attacked  by  fever,  which  stretched  him  on  his  back  for  many  weeks. 
Here,  however,  he  was  fortunate  enough  to  meet  with  a  slave  merchant,  named 
Karfa  Taura,  who  treated  him  with  great  kindness  and  humanity — took  him 
into  his  own  house — nursed  him  until  he  was  well — kept  him  as  his  guest  for 
seven  months,  without  asking  the  smallest  recompense — and  finally  conducted 
him  in  safety  to  Pisania,  with  a  cargo  of  his  living  merchandise.  Our  traveller 
immediately  took  his  passage  in  an  American  vessel,  bound  for  the  West  Indies, 
whence  he  had  no  difiiculty  in  getting  to  Britain,  and  landed  at  Falmouth 
on  the  2 2d  of  December,  1797,  after  an  absence  of  two  years  and  seven 
months. 

Mr  Park  was  received  with  distinguished  honour  by  the  African  Association, 
and  almost  all  the  other  scientific  bodies  and  eminent  literary  characters  of  the 
metropolis,  and  was  for  some  time,  what  is  familiarly  termed,  the  lion  of  the 
town.  Having  made  arrangements  in  London  for  the  publication  of  his  travels, 
he  proceeded  to  Scotland  in  June  1798,  and  spent  the  succeeding  summer 
and  autumn  at  his  native  place,  Fowlshiels,  among  his  relations  and  friends, 
his  mother  being  the  only  parent  then  alive.  His  time,  however,  was  far  from 
being  passed  in  idleness,  or  merely  in  social  meetings  with  old  friends  and  ac- 
quaintance, much  as  his  company,  as  may  readily  be  imagined,  was  sought 
after.  He  applied  himself  indefatigably  to  the  compilation  and  composition  ot 
his  travels,  which  he  finished  and  carried  back  with  him  to  London  in  the  end 
of  the  year.     In  the  following  spring  they  were  published,  and  it  is  needless  to 


104  MUNGO  PARK. 


say  how  universally,  or  with  what  aridity,  not  to  mention  incredulity  by 
many,  they  were  read.  For  the  latter  contingency,  Mr  Park  himself  was  pre- 
pared, and  with  a  judicious  caution,  which  few  of  his  rivals  in  discovery,  either 
before  or  since,  have  had  the  prudence  or  self-denial,  as  it  may  aptly  be  termed, 
to  adopt,  omitted  the  relation  of  many  real  incidents  and  adventures,  which  he 
feared  might  shake  the  probability  of  his  narrative  in  the  public  estimation. 
This  fact  has  been  proved  beyond  doubt,  by  the  testimony  of  many  of  his  inti- 
mate friends  and  relatives,  to  whom,  although  by  no  means  of  a  communicative 
disposition,  he  freely  mentioned  many  singular  anecdotes  and  particulars,  which 
he  scrupled  to  submit  to  the  jealous  eye  of  the  critical  public.  Amongst  those 
friends  to  whom  Mr  Park  frequently  communicated  in  a  colloquial  way  many 
most  interesting  and  remarkable  circumstances  which  did  not  appear  in  his 
printed  travels,  was  Sir  AValter  Scott,  between  whom  and  Mr  Park  a  strong 
intimacy  was  contracted  subsequent  to  the  return  of  the  latter  from  Africa, 
and  ^ho  tells  us>  that  having  once  noticed  to  his  friend  the  omissions  in 
question  (which  appeared  to  one  of  his  romantic  temperament  and  ardent 
imagination  to  be  unaccountable),  and  asked  an  explanation,  Mr  Park  re- 
plied, "  that  in  all  cases  where  he  had  information  to  communicate,  which  he 
thought  of  importance  to  the  public,  he  had  stated  the  facts  boldly,  leaving  it 
to  his  readers  to  give  such  credit  to  his  statements  as  they  might  appear  justly 
to  deserve  ;  but  that  he  would  not  shock  their  credulity,  or  render  his  travels 
more  marvellous,  by  introducing  circumstances,  which,  however  true,  were  of 
little  or  no  moment,  as  they  related  solely  to  his  own  personal  adventures  and 
esca|)e8."  If  this  scrupulousness  on  the  part  of  the  traveller  is  to  be  regretted  in 
one  sense,  as  consigning  to  oblivion  many  curious  and  interesting  facts,  it  cer- 
tainly raises  him  as  a  man  and  an  author  incalculably  in  our  estimation,  and  be- 
speaks the  most  implicit  belief  and  confidence  in  ^rliat  he  lias  promulgated  to 
the  world. 

After  the  publication  of  his  travels,  he  returned  to  Scotland,  and  in  August 
the  same  year  married  Miss  Anderson,  the  eldest  daughter  of  his  old  master  at 
Selkirk.  For  some  time  after  his  marriage,  and  before  he  set  out  on  his  second 
expedition,  Mr  Park  appears  to  have  been  quite  undecided  as  to  his  pros- 
pects in  life  ;  and  perhaps  the  comparative  independence  of  his  circumstances, 
from  the  profits  of  his  publication,  and  the  remuneration  he  obtained  from  the 
African  Association,  rendered  him  somewhat  indifferent  to  any  immediate  per- 
manent situation.  But  it  was  likewise  strongly  suspected  by  his  intimate 
friends,  that  he  entertained  hopes  of  being  soon  called  upon  to  undertake 
another  mission  to  the  Niger,  although  he  kept  perfectly  silent  on  the  subject. 

As  time  continued  to  elapse,  without  any  such  proposition  from  the  expected 
quarter  being  made,  Mr  Park  perceived  the  impi-udence  of  remaining  in  idle- 
ness, and  in  1801,  removed  to  Peebles,  where  he  commenced  practice  as  a  sur- 
geon. But  it  would  appear  he  was  not  very  successful  in  this  speculation  ;  and 
this  fact,  together  with  the  natural  restlessness  of  his  disposition,  seems  to  have 
rendered  his  situation  peculiarly  irksome  to  him.  In  answer  to  a  friend,  who 
suspected  his  design  of  again  proceeding  abroad,  and  earnestly  remonstrated 
with  him  against  it,  he  MTites,  "  that  a  few  inglorious  winters  of  practice  at 
Peebles  was  a  risk  as  great,  and  would  tend  as  effectually  to  shorten  life,  as  tlie 
ioumey  he  was  about  to  undertake."  In  the  mean  time,  his  ennui,  or  im- 
patience, was  much  relieved  by  the  enjoyment  of  the  best  society  in  the  neigh- 
bourhood, and  by  being  honoured  with  the  friendship  of  many  of  the  most  dis- 
tinguished characters  in  Scotland  at  that  time.  Amongst  these  were  the 
renei-able  Dr  Adam  Ferguson,  then  resident  at  Hallyards,  rear  Peebles; 
colonel  Murray  of  Cringletie  ;  and  professor  Dugald  Stewart.     As  before  men- 


MUNGO  PARK.  105 


tioned,  too,  a  strong  intimacy  sprung  up  between  our  traveller  and  Sir 
Walter  Scott,  then  but  little  known  in  the  literary  \vorld,  and  who  resided 
with  his  family  at  Ashiestiel,  on  the  banks  of  the  Tweed.  This  friendship 
commenced  in  1804,  after  Mr  Park  had  removed  from  Peebles  to  Fowl- 
shiels,  and  was  preparing  for  his  second  expedition  to  Africa,  of  which 
he  had  then  got  intimation.  It  is  pleasing  to  know  the  cordiality  and 
affectionate  familiarity  which  subsisted  between  ^these  celebrated  men,  and 
also  that  it  arose  from  a  marked  congeniality  in  their  tastes  and  habits.* 
Park  was  an  enthusiastic  lover  of  poetry,  especially  the  minstrelsy  with  which 
his  native  district  was  rife  ;  and  although  he  made  no  pretensions  to  tlie 
laurel  crown  himself,  he  occasionally  gave  expression  to  his  feelings  and 
thoughts  in  verse,  even  from  his  earliest  years.  It  was  little  wonder,  then, 
that  he  should  own  a  particular  predilection  for  the  society  of  one  whose  heart 
and  memory  were  so  richly  stored  with  the  ancient  ballad  lore  of  his  country, 
although  his  reserve  towards  strangers  in  general,  which  was  carried  even  to  a 
repulsive  degree,  was  notorious.  In  particular.  Sir  Walter  Scott  has  noticed 
the  strong  aversion  of  his  friend  to  being  questioned  in  a  promiscuous  company 
on  the  subject  of  his  adventures,  of  which  grievance,  as  may  be  imagined,  he 
had  frequent  cause  to  complain. 

The  new  mission  to  Africa,  which  Avas  now  sanctioned  and  pi'omoted  by 
government,  Jiad  been  projected  so  far  back  as  1801 ;  but  owing  to  changes 
in  the  ministry,  and  other  causes  of  delay,  the  preparations  for  it  were 
not  completed  till  1805.  Mr  Park  parted  from  his  family,  and  proceeded 
to  London  Avith  his  brother-in-law,  Olr  James  Andei-son,  who,  as  well  as  Mr 
Scott,  an  artist,  had  resolved  to  accompany  him  in  his  expedition.  On  this 
occasion,  Mr  Park  received  the  brevet  commission  of  captain  in  Africa,  and 
a  similar  commission  of  lieutenant  to  his  relative  Mr  Anderson,  Mr  Scott 
also  was  employed  by  government  to  accompany  the  expedition  as  draughts- 
man. Mr  Park  was,  at  the  same  time,  empowered  to  enlist  soldiera  from  the 
garrison  of  the  island  of  Goree,  to  the  number  of  forty-five,  to  accompany  him 
in  his  journey  ;  and  the  sum  of  ^5000  was  placed  at  his  disposal,  together  with 
directions  as  to  his  route,  &c.  The  expedition  sailed  from  Portsmouth  on  the 
30th  January,  1806,  and  arrived  at  Pisania  on  the  28th  of  April,  where  pre- 
parations were  immediately  made  for  the  inland  journey.  The  party  consisted 
of  forty  men,  two  lieutenants,  a  draughtsman  (3Ir  Scott),  and  Park  himself; 
they  had  liorses  for  themselves,  and  asses  for  carrying  the  provisions  and  mer- 
chandise. Mr  Park  wrote  to  several  friends  at  home,  previously  to  setting  out, 
in  the  highest  spirits,  and  seemingly  perfectly  confident  of  success.  In  his  letter 
to  Mr  Dickson,  he  says,  "  this  day  six  weeks,  I  expect  to  drink  all  your  healths 
in  the  Niger  ;"  and  again,  "  I  have  little  doubt  but  that  I  shall  be  able,  with 
presents  and  fair  words,  to  pass  through  the  country  to  the  Niger ;  and  if  once 
we  are  fairly  afloat,  the  day  is  won.''''  Alas !  how  sadly  these  sanguine  expres- 
sions contrast  with  the  melancholy  issue  of  the  expedition.  Pai-k's  chance  of 
reaching  the  Niger  in  safety  depended  mainly  upon  his  doing  so  previously  to  the 
commencement  of  the  rainy  season,  which  is  always  most  fatal  to  Europeans ; 
but  scarcely  had  they  got  half  way  when  the  rain  set  in,  and  the  effect  on  the 
health  of  the  men  was  as  speedy  as  disastrous.  They  were  seized  with  vomit- 
ing, sickness,  dysentery,  and  delirium  ;  some  died  on  the  road,  others  were 
drowned  in  the  rivers,  and  several  Avere  left  in  the  precarious  charge  of  the 
natives  in  the  villages.  Some,  still  more  unfortunate,  were  lost  in  the  woods, 
where  they  would  inevitably  be  devoured  by  wild  beasts  ;  while  the  native  ban- 
ditti, who  imagined  the  caravan  to  contain  immense  wealth,  hung  upon  their 
1  It  chanced  that  Ihey  were  born  within  a  month  of  each  other. 


lOG  MUXGO  PARK. 


march,  and  plundered  them  at  every  opportunity.  In  crossing  the  Wondu,  tliey 
nearly  lost  their  guide  Isaaco,  by  a  krge  crocodile,  which  pulled  liiiu  below  the 
water  several  times,  but  from  which  he  at  last  got  free,  much  lacerated.  At  an- 
other time  they  were  encountered  by  three  large  lions,  but  which  took  to  flight 
at  the  sound  of  Mr  Park's  musket.  At  last  the  miserable  remnant  of  the  party 
— only  nine  out  of  forty-four,  and  these  nine  all  siclt,  and  some  in  a  state  of 
mental  derangement — reached  Bambakoo,  on  the  Niger.  Here  Mr  Scott  was 
left  behind  on  account  of  sickness,  of  which  he  shortly  died ;  while  the  rest  pro- 
ceeded to  Sego,  the  capital  of  Banibarra,  whicli  they  reached  on  the  19th  of 
September.  Mansong  was  still  king,  and  was  so  highly  gratified  with  the  pre- 
sents brought  to  him,  that  he  gave  them  permission  to  build  a  boat,  and  prc« 
mised  to  protect  them  as  far  as  lay  in  his  power.  Mr  Park  fortinvith  opened  a 
shop  for  the  sale  of  his  European  goods,  which  immediately  obtained  such  de> 
mand,  tliat  his  shop  was  crowded  with  customers  from  morning  till  night,  and 
one  day  he  turned  over  no  less  than  25,75G  cowries.  Here,  however,  he  lost 
his  brother-in-law  Mr  Anderaon,  a  circumstance  which  afflicted  him  greatly,  and 
made  him  feel,  as  he  himself  expressed  it,  "  as  if  left  a  second  time  lonely  and 
friendless  amidst  the  wilds  of  Africa."  But  not  all  the  sufferings  he  had  under- 
gone,  the  loss  of  his  companions,  or  the  dismal  condition  of  the  remainder,  and 
the  perilousness  of  his  situation — nothing  could  damp  the  native  ardour  of  his 
mind.  Having  got  a  sort  of  schooner  constructed  and  rigged  out,  ho  prepared 
for  setting  out  on  his  formidable  journey,  previously  to  which,  however,  he  took 
care  to  bring  his  journal  up  to  the  latest  hour,  and  wrote  several  lettei-s  to  his 
friends  and  relatives  in  Britain.  These  Avere  intrusted  to  his  faithful  guide 
Isaaco,  to  carry  back  to  the  Gambia,  whence  they  were  transmitted  to  England. 
His  letter  to  Mrs  Park,  excepting  that  part  of  it  which  mentions  the  death  of 
her  brother  and  Mr  Scott,  was  written  in  a  cheering  and  hopeful  strain  ;  speaks 
with  confidence  of  his  reaching  the  ocean  in  safety,  and  of  the  probability  of  his 
being  in  England  before  the  letter  itself!  His  companions  Mere  now  reduced 
to  four,  viz.,  lieutenant  Martyn  and  three  soldiers,  one  of  whom  was  deranged 
in  his  mind  ;  and  with  this  miserable  remnant,  and  a  guide  named  Amadi  Fa- 
touma,  he  set  sail,  as  near  as  could  be  ascertained,  on  the  I9th  of  November, 
180(3.  The  progress  of  the  unfortunate  travellers  after  this  period,  and  their 
ultimate  fate,  so  long  a  mystery,  are  now  familiarly  known,  although  there  are 
many  circumstances  attending  the  unhappy  closing  scene  which  are  yet  shrouded 
in  doubt  and  uncertainty. 

Vague  rumoure  of  the  death  of  Park  and  his  companions  were  brought  by 
some  of  the  natives  to  the  British  settlements  on  the  coast,  even  so  early  as  the 
end  of  1806  ;  but  no  information  could  be  got  for  several  years  of  a  nature  to 
be  at  all  relied  on,  during  which  time  the  suspense  of  his  friends  and  of  the 
public  at  lai^e,  but  more  particularly  of  his  afflicted  family,  was  of  the  most 
painful  nature.  At  length,  in  1810,  colonel  Maxwell,  governor  of  Senegal, 
despatched  Isaaco,  Park's  fomier'guide,  into  the  interior,  in  order  to  ascertain 
the  truth  or  falsehood  of  the  reports  which  prevailed.  After  an  absence  of  a 
year  and  eight  months,  this  individual  returned,  and  the  many  facts  of  the  nar- 
rative, which  he  gave  as  the  result  of  his  labours,  are  not  only  but  too  probable 
in  themselves,  but  seem  to  have  been  thoroughly  confirmed  by  the  investigations 
of  subsequent  travellers.  Isaaco  stated,  that  he  had  fallen  in  Avith  3Ir  Park's 
guide,  Amadi  Fatouma,  at  Medina,  near  Sansanding,  who,  on  seeing  Isaaco,  and 
hearing  the  name  of  Park,  began  to  Aveep,  saying,  "  they  are  all  dead  j"  and 
Avas  AAith  great  difficulty  induced  to  detail  the  melancholy  circumstances  of  the 
catastrophe.  The  account  Avhich  he  gave  is  too  long  to  be  introduced  entire  here, 
but  the  substance  of  it  Avas  as  folloAvs: — After  leaving  Sansanding,  IMr  Park  navi- 


MUNGO  PASK.  107 


gated  his  way  down  the  Niger,  as  far  as  Boossa,  in  the  kingdom  of  Yaour,  which 
was  more  than  two-thirds  of  the  distance  between  the  ocean,  or  Gulf  of  Guinea 
and  where  the  river  is  termed  by  the  natives  Quorra.  They  had  frequent  skir- 
mishes witli  the  natives,  particularly  in  passing  Timbuctoo,  where  several  of  the 
natives  were  killed.  On  reaching  Yaour,  Mr  Park  sent  Araadi  Fatouma  ashore 
with  various  presents,  some  of  ^vhich  were  to  the  chief  or  governor  of  the  place, 
but  the  most  valuable  portion  for  the  king,  to  whom  the  chief  Mas  requested  to 
send  them.  A  short  while  after,  the  latter  sent  to  inquire  if  Mr  Park  intended 
to  come  back  ;  and  on  being  answered  that  he  could  return  no  more,  tha 
treacherous  chief  appropriated  the  presents  intended  for  the  king  to  his  own 
use.  This  piece  of  knavery  proved  fatal  to  the  unfortunate  travellers.  The 
king,  indignant  at  the  supposed  slight  cast  on  him,  assembled  a  large  army  at 
the  above  mentioned  village  of  Boussa,  where  a  large  high  rock  stretches  across 
the  whole  breadth  of  the  river,  the  only  passage  for  the  river  being  through  an 
opening  in  the  rock  in  the  form  of  a  door.  The  army  posted  themselves  on  the 
top  of  the  rock,  and  on  Mr  Park's  attempting  to  pass,  assailed  him  with  lances, 
pikes,  arrows,  stones,  and  missiles  of  every  description.  The  beleaguered  tra- 
vellers defended  themselves  for  a  long  time,  till  all  wci-e  either  killed  or  severe- 
ly wounded;  when,  seeing  the  uselessness  of  further  resistance,  Mr  Park,  lieu- 
tenant Mart)  n,  and  one  or  two  more,  jumped  out  of  the  boat,  and  were  drowned 
in  attempting  to  get  ashore.  Only  one  slave  was  left  alive.  Such  Mas  the  nar- 
rative of  Amadi  Fatouma,  who  had  left  IMr  Park  at  Yaour,  where  his  engage* 
ment  with  him  terminated,  and  where  he  was  for  many  months  afterwards  con- 
fined in  irons  on  suspicion  of  having  purloined  the  presents  intended  for  the 
king,  Avhich  had  been  made  away  with  by  the  treacherous  chief.  Amadi  had 
obtained  the  accounts  of  the  fatal  scene  from  those  who  had  taken  a  part  in  it. 
The  natives  afterwards  endeavoured  to  account  for  the  disappearance  of  Park, 
to  the  inquiries  of  subsequent  travellers,  by  saying  that  his  vessel  had  foundered 
against  the  I'ock,  and  that  he  and  his  companions  were  drowned  by  accident. 
But  there  is  now  not  the  shadow  of  a  doubt  that  the  above  narrative  of  Amadi 
is  substantially  true. 

So  perished  3Iungo  Park,  in  the  thirty-fifth  year  of  his  age — a  man  whose 
natural  enthusiasm,  scientific  acquirements,  undaunted  intrepidity,  patience  of 
suffering,  and  inflexible  perseverance,  in  short,  every  quality  requisite  for  a 
traveller  in  the  path  he  adopted,  have  never  been  surpassed,  and  who,  had  he 
survived,  would  no  doubt  have  reaped  those  laurels  which  more  fortunate  suc- 
cessors in  the  same  career  have  won.  To  these  qualities  in  his  public  character, 
it  is  pleasing  to  be  able  to  add  those  of  amiable  simplicity  of  manners,  constancy 
of  affection,  and  sterling  integrity  in  private  life. 

Mr  Park's  papers  were,  ivilh  the  exception  of  a  few  scraps,'^  unfortunately  all 
lost  with  him,  and  this  is  much  to  be  regretted,  as,  notwithstanding  the  important 
discoveries  of  the  Landers,  who  subsequently  traced  the  course  of  the  Quorra  or 
Niger  from  Boussa,  where  Park  fell,  down  to  the  Gulf  of  Guinea,  they  were  un- 

2  These  were,  nn  old  nautical  publication  (of  which  the  title-page  was  amissing,  and  its 
contents  chietly  tables  of  logarithms),  with  a  few  loose  memoranda  of  no  importance  between 
the  leaves.  One  of  these  papers,  however,  was  curious  enough,  from  the  situation  and  cir- 
cumstances in  which  it  was  found.  It  was  a  card  of  invitation  to  dinner,  and  was  in  the  fol- 
lowing terms: — 

"  Mr  and  Mrs  Watson  would  be  happy  to  have  the  pleasure  of  Mr  Park's  company  at 
dinner  on  Tuesday  next,  at  hiilf-past  five  o'clock.     An  answer  is  requested. 

"  Strand,  9th  Nov.,  1804." 

These  were  the  only  written  documents  belonging  to  Park  which  the  Messrs  Landers, 
after  the  most  anxious  inquiries  and  investigations,  were  able  to  discover.  They  succeeded, 
liowfcver,  in  rtcoveriiig  his  double-barrelled  gun,  and  the  tobe,  or  short  cloak,  which  he  woro 
when  he  was  drowned. 


108  WILLIAM  PATERSON. 


able  to  explore  a  great  part  of  that  immense  portion  of  it  which  flou3  between 
Boussa  and  Tiinbuctoo,  and  which  Park  must  of  necessity  have  navigated.  Their 
united  labours  have,  however,  solved  the  grand  problem  which  has  engaged  the 
attention  of  all  civilized  nations  from  the  earliest  ages  to  whicli  history  leads  us 
back ;  and  there  seems  little  cause  for  doubt,  tliat,  in  a  short  time,  tlie  still 
broken  links  in  the  great  chain  of  communication  with  the  centre  of  Africa  will 
be  united. 

PATERSON,  William,  the  original  projector  of  the  banks  of  England  and 
of  Scotland,  and  of  the  celebrated  settlement  of  Darien,  was  born,  it  is  supposed, 
in  the  year  1660  at  Skipmyre,  in  the  parish  of  Tinwald,  Dumfries-shire.  It 
is  deeply  to  be  regretted  that  no  satisfactory  memorials  have  been  preserved  of 
this  remarkable  man.  Of  his  education  nothing  is  known,  but  it  is  stated  in 
one  memoir  that  he  was  bred  to  the  church.  He  is  also  said  to  have  repre- 
sented the  burgh  of  Dumfries  more  than  once  in  the  Scottish  parliament ;  to 
have  gone  out  to  the  West  Indies,  in  the  character  of  a  Christian  missionary, 
for  the  purpose  of  converting  the  negroes;  and  to  have,  while  in  tliat  quarter, 
joined  the  buccaneers,  a  gang  of  desperadoes  who  infested  the  shores  of 
America  and  the  West  Indian  islands,  making  prizes  indiscriminately  of  the 
ships  of  all  nations ;  and  it  is  in  this  character  he  is  snid  to  have  acquired  that 
intimate  knowledge  of  the  seas  and  coasts  of  America  which  led  him  to  form  the 
splendid  idea  of  a  settlement  at  Darien,  by  which  he  meant  to  connect  the  seas 
on  the  opposite  sides  of  the  globe,  and  to  form  a  grand  emporium  of  the  produc- 
tions of  all  the  quarters  of  the  earth.  That  Mr  Paterson,  however,  was  either 
a  churchman  or  a  buccaneer  at  any  period  of  his  life  appears  a  gratuitous  as- 
sumption, unsupported  by  any  direct  evidence,  and  at  variance  with  the  known 
course  of  his  after  life.  It  is  certain,  however,  that  he  was  in  the  West  Indies, 
but  it  is  much  more  likely  that  his  pursuits  there  were  commercial  than  either 
clerical  or  piratical.  In  whatever  capacity  he  may  have  acquired  his  commercial 
and  geographical  knowledge,  he  returned  to  Europe  with  a  scheme  of  trade  wholly 
different  from  the  methods  and  principles  of  any  of  the  then  trading  companies 
of  England,  and  which  he  was  desirous  of  establishing  under  the  protection  and 
patronage  of  some  European  power,  which  might  give  greater  privileges  and 
immunities  than  were  consistent  with  the  laws  of  England  then  in  force.  This 
scheme  he  seems  to  have  laid  first  before  the  merchants  of  Hamburg,  afterwards 
before  the  Dutch,  and  then  before  the  elector  of  Brandenburg,  Avho  all,  how- 
ever, received  his  proposals  coldly.  Paterson  next  applied  to  the  merchants  of 
London,  and  with  them  concerted  the  plan  of  the  bank  of  England,  of  Avhich 
there  seenu  no  reason  to  doubt  that  he  gave  the  first  hint.  As  it  has  very 
frequently  happened,  however,  in  similar  cases,  though  he  was  admitted  one 
of  the  original  directors,  his  richer  associates  no  sooner  became  fully  possessed 
of  his  ideas,  than  they  found  out  pretexts  for  quarrelling  with  him,  and  finally 
expelled  him  from  all  share  in  conducting  that  business  of  which  he  had  been 
the  author.  Under  these  circumstances,  he  became  acquainted  in  London 
with  some  of  his  countrymen,  particularly  with  Fletcher  of  Salton,  who  had 
penetration  enough  to  see  and  to  appreciate  the  simple  splendour  of  his  project 
with  regard  to  Darien,  and  patriotism  enough  to  desire  to  secure  the  benefits  of 
it  to  his  own  country.  Paterson  had  all  the  patriotism  of  Fletcher,  without  any 
of  that  national  partiality  which,  in  the  former,  somewhat  dimmed  its  lustre  and 
lessened  its  effect ;  but  he  was  yet,  from  the  manner  in  which  lie  had  already 
been  treated  by  all  to  whom  he  had  communicated  his  plans,  easily  persuaded 
to  give  the  benefit  of  his  conceptions  to  the  country  to  wliich  he  owed  his  birtli, 
and  where  he  had  as  yet  suflered  none  of  that  painful  mortification,  of  which  ha 
had  experienced  less  or  more  in  all  the  places  he  had  yet  visited.     He  accord- 


V.ILLIAM   PATERSON.  109 


ingly  came  to  Scotland  along  with  Fletcher,  who  introduced  him  to  the  Scottish 
administration,  at  the  time  greatly  embarrassed  by  the  affair  of  (ilencoe,  and  who 
easily  persuaded  king  William,  that  a  little  more  freedom,  and  some  new  facili* 
ties  of  trade  would  have  a  happy  effect  in  diverting  the  public  attention  from 
the  investigation  of  that  unfortunate  affair,  in  which  his  majesty's  ere  lit  was  al- 
most as  deeply  implicated  as  their  own.  The  earl  of  Stair,  in  particular,  gave 
the  project  of  3Ir  Paterson  the  support  of  his  powerful  eloquence. 

Tlie  result  of  all  this  was,  that  an  act  was  passed  by  the  Scottish  parlia- 
ment on  the  26lh  of  June,  1G95,  "  constituting  John,  lord  Bellmven,  Adam 
Cockburn  of  Ormiston,  lord  justice-clerk,  Francis  Montgomery  of  Giffen,  Sir 
John  Maxwell  of  Pollock,  Sir  Robert  Chiesly,  present  provost  of  Edinburgh, 
John  Swinton  of  that  ilk,  George  Clark,  late  baillie  of  Edinburgh,  Robert 
Blackwood,  and  James  Balfour,  merchants  in  Edinburgh,  John  Corse,  merchant 
in  Glasgow ;  William  Paterson,  Esq.,  James  Fowlis,  David  Nairn,  Esqrs.,  I'homas 
Deans,  Esq.,  James  Chiesly,  John  Smith,  Thomas  Coutes,  Hugh  Frazer,  Joseph 
Cohaine,  Daves  Ovedo,  and  Walter  Stuart,  merchants  in  London,  with  such 
othera  as  shall  join  with  them  within  the  space  of  twelve  months  after  the  first 
day  of  August  next,  and  all  others  whom  the  foresaid  persons,  and  those  joined, 
or^ major  part  of  them,  being  assembled,  shall  admit,  and  join  into  their  joint- 
stock  and  trade,  who  shall  all  be  repute  as  if  herein  originally  insert,  to  be  one 
body  incorporate,  and  a  free  incorporation,  with  perpetual  succession,  by  the 
name  of  the  Company  of  Scotland  trading  to  Africa  and  the  Indies.  Providing 
always,  like  as  it  is  hereby  in  the  first  place  provided,  that  of  the  fund  or  capital 
stock  that  shall  be  agreed  to  be  advanced,  and  employed  by  the  said  under- 
takers, and  their  copartners,  the  half  at  least  shall  be  appointed  and  allotted  for 
Scottishmen  within  this  kingdom,  who  shall  enter  and  subscribe  to  the  said  com- 
pany before  the  first  day  of  August,  1696.  And  if  it  shall  happen,  that  Scots- 
men living  within  the  kingdom,  shall  not,  betwixt  and  the  foresaid  term,  sub- 
scri!je  for,  and  make  up  the  equal  half  of  the  said  fund  or  capital  stock,  then, 
and  in  that  case  allenarly,  it  shall  be,  and  is  hereby  allowed  to  Scotsmen  resid- 
ing abroad,  or  to  foreigners,  to  come  in,  subscribe,  and  be  assumed  for  the 
superplus  of  the  said  half,  and  no  otherwise."  By  the  same  act  the  lowest 
subscription  was  fixed  at  one  hundred  pounds  sterling,  and  the  highest  at  three 
thousand.  The  shares  of  Scotsmen,  too,  it  was  provided  could  be  sold,  and 
alienated  only  to  Scotsmen.  The  company  was  also  vested  with  full  powers  to 
hold  parliaments,  make  laws,  and  administer  justice,  &c.,  in  any  colonies  they 
might  plant ;  enter  into  treaties  of  peace  and  commerce  with  sovereigns, 
princes,  estates,  rulers,  governors,  or  proprietore  of  lands  in  Asia,  Africa,  and 
America ;  all  their  ships  being  bound,  under  penalty  of  confiscation,  to  return 
with  their  cargoes  in  the  first  instance  to  this  country,  without  breaking  bulk  by 
the  way.  They  had  also  the  exclusive  privilege  of  trading  to  Asia,  Africa,  and 
America,  for  the  period  of  thirty-one  years ;  together  with  the  free  and  absolute 
right  of  property  to  all  lands,  islands,  colonies,  cities,  towns,  ports,  and  plantations 
they  might  come  to  establish  or  possess  ;  paying  yearly  to  his  majesty,  and  his  suc- 
cessors in  sovereignty,  one  hogshead  of  tobacoo  in  name  of  blench  duty,  if  required. 
They  had  also  the  power  of  purchasing,  fer  the  enlargement  of  their  trade  and 
navigation,  from  foreign  potentates,  such  exceptions,  liberties,  privileges,  &a,  as 
they  might  find  convenient.  Their  ships  were  also  exempted  from  all  customs, 
cesses,  and  supplies,  and  their  stock  in  trade  from  all  taxes  for  the  space  of 
twenty-one  years.  All  persons  concerned  in  the  company  were  declared  deni- 
zens of  the  kingdom,  and  all  persons  settling  in  any  of  their  colonies,  cities, 
&a,  were  to  be  reputed  natives  of  the  kingdom,  and  enjoy  privileges  accordingly. 
This  act,  of  which  the  above  are  some  of  the  outlines,  was  drawn  up  under  the 


110  -WILLIAai  PATERSON. 


eye  of  Mr  Paterson,  and  was  certainly  liighly  favourable  for  his  purposes.  The 
isthmus  of  Darien,  where  there  was  a  larj^e  tract  of  land  bordering  on  both  seas 
the  Indian  and  tlie  Atlantic,  which  had  never  been  in  possession  of  any  Euro- 
pean nation,  was  the  spot  he  had  fixed  upon  for  the  scene  of  his  operations,  and 
the  advantages  of  which  he  thus  graphically  pointed  out:  "The  time  and  ex- 
pense of  navigation  to  China,  Japan,  the  Spice  Islands,  and  the  far  greater  part 
of  the  East  Indies,  will  be  lessened  more  than  half,  and  the  consumption  of 
European  commodities  and  manufactures,  will  soon  be  more  than  doubled. 
Trade  will  increase  trade,  and  money  will  beget  money,  and  the  trading  world 
shall  need  no  more  want  work  for  their  hands,  but  will  rather  want  hands  for 
their  work.  Thus,  this  door  of  the  seas,  and  key  of  the  universe,  with  any 
thing  of  a  reasonable  management,  will,  of  course,  enable  its  proprietors  to  give 
laws  to  both  oceans,  without  being  liable  to  the  fatigues,  expenses,  and  dangers, 
or  contracting  the  guilt  and  blood,  of  Alexander  and  CiBsnr.  In  all  our  empires 
that  have  been  any  thing  universal,  the  conquerors  have  been  obliged  to  seek 
out  and  court  their  conquests  from  afar,  but  the  univeraal  force  and  influence  of 
this  attractive  magnet  is  such  as  can  much  more  effectually  bring  empire  home  to 
the  proprietors'  doors.  But  from  what  hath  been  said,  you  may  easily  perceive, 
that  the  nature  of  these  discoveries  are  such  as  not  to  be  engrossed  by  any  one 
nation  or  people  with  exclusion  to  othei-s;  nor  can  it  be  tlius  attempted  ^vith- 
out  evident  hazard  and  ruin,  as  we  may  see  in  the  case  of  Spain  and  Poi'tugal, 
who,  by  their  prohibiting  any  other  people  to  trade,  or  so  much  as  to  go  to  or 
dwell  in  the  Indies,  have  not  only  lost  that  trade  they  were  not  able  to  maintain, 
but  have  depopulated  and  ruined  their  countries  therewith,  so  that  the  Indies 
have  rather  conquered  Spain  and  Portugal  than  they  have  conquered  the 
Indies ;  for  by  their  permitting  all  to  go  out,  and  none  to  come  in,  they  have 
not  only  lost  the  people  which  are  gone  to  the  remote  and  luxuriant  regions,  but 
such  as  remain  are  become  wholly  unprofitable,  and  good  for  nothing.  Thus, 
not  unlike  the  case  of  the  dog  in  the  fable,  they  have  lost  their  own  countries, 
and  not  gotten  the  Indies.  People,  and  their  industry,  are  the  true  riches  of  a 
prince  or  nation,  and  in  respect  to  them  all  other  things  are  but  imaginary.  This 
was  well  understood  by  the  people  of  Rome,  who,  contrary  to  the  maxims  of 
Sparta  and  Spain,  by  general  naturalizations,  liberty  of  conscience,  and  immuni- 
ties of  government,  far  more  effectually  and  advantageously  conquered  and  kept 
the  world  than  ever  they  did  or  possibly  could  have  done  by  the  sword."  Seeing 
clearly  his  way,  Mr  Paterson  seems  not  to  have  had  the  smallest  suspicion  but  that 
others  would  see  it  also,  and  *'  he  makes  no  doubt,  but  that  the  affection  we  owe 
to  our  sister  nation  will  incline  the  company  to  be  zealous  in  using  all  becoming 
endeavoui-s  for  bringing  our  fellow  subjects  to  be  jointly  concerned  in  this  great, 
extensive,  and  advantageous  undertaking.  That  a  proposal  of  this  kind  from 
the  company  will  be  other  than  acceptable  ought  not  to  be  supposed,  since  by 
this  means  the  consumption  and  demand  of  English  manufactures,  and  conse- 
quently the  employment  of  their  people,  will  soon  be  more  than  doubled. 
England  will  be  hereby  enabled  to  become  the  long  desired  sea  port,  and  yet 
its  public  revenues,  instead  of  being  diminished,  will  thereby  be  greatly  increased. 
By  this  their  nation  will  at  once  be  eased  of  its  laws  of  restraint  and  prohibi. 
tions,  which,  instead  of  being  encouragements,  always  have,  and  still  continue  to 
be,  the  greatest  lets  to  its  trade  and  happiness."  These  liberal  views  seem  to  have 
made  a  greater  impression  on  the  public  mind  than  at  that  time  could  liave  been 
anticipated.  In  the  month  of  (Mober,  1695,  lord  Belhaven,  Mr  Robert 
Blackwood,  and  3Ir  James  Balfour,  went  on  a  deputation  to  London,  accompanied 
by  Mr  Paterson,  where  the  subscription  books  were  firet  opened,  and  in  the 
course  of  nine  days  three  hundred  thousand  pounds  were  subscribed  ;  one-fourth 


WILLIAM  PATERSON.  Ill 


of  all  subscriptions  being  paid  in  cash.  This  promising  state  of  thing:s,  how- 
ever, was  by  the  jealousy  of  the  English  monopolists  suddenly  reversed.  The 
East  India  company  were  the  first  to  take  the  alarm,  and  they  communicated 
their  terrors  to  the  house  of  lords.  The  latter  requested  a  conference  with  the 
commons  on  the  alarming  oircumstance,  and  a  committee  was  appointed  to  in- 
quire by  what  methods  such  an  act  had  been  obtained,  who  were  the  promoters, 
and  who  had  become  subscribers  to  the  company.  This  was  followed  by  an 
address  to  the  king  from  both  houses  of  parliament,  stating,  "  That  by  reason 
of  the  superior  advantages  granted  to  the  Scottish  East  India  company,  and  the 
duties  imposed  upon  the  Indian  trade  in  England,  a  great  part  of  the  stock  and 
shipping  of  this  nation  would  be  carried  thither,  by  which  means  Scotland 
would  be  rendered  a  free  port,  and  Europe  from  thence  supplied  with  the  pro- 
ducts of  the  East  much  cheaper  than  through  them,  and  thus  a  great  article  in 
the  balance  of  foreign  commerce  would  be  lost  to  England,  to  the  prejudice  of 
the  national  navigation  and  the  royal  revenue."  The  address  went  on  to  state, 
"  that  when  the  Scots  should  have  established  themselves  in  plantations  in 
America,  the  western  branch  of  traffic  would  also  be  lost.  The  privileges 
granted  their  company  would  render  their  country  the  general  storehouse  for 
tobacco,  sugar,  cotton,  hides,  and  timber  ;  the  low  rates  at  which  they  would  be 
enabled  to  carry  on  their  manufactures,  Avould  render  it  impossible  for  the  Eng- 
lish to  compete  with  them,  while,  in  a:!dition,  his  majesty  stood  engaged  to 
protect,  by  the  naval  strength  of  England,  a  company  whose  success  was  incom- 
patible with  its  existence."  This  address  his  majesty  received  graciously,  ob- 
serving, "  that  he  had  been  ill-«erved  in  Scotland,  but  he  hoped  some  remedy 
might  yet  be  found  to  prevent  the  inconvenience  that  might  arise  from  the  act.'' 
To  satisfy  his  English  parliament  that  he  was  in  earnest,  William  dismissed  his 
Scottish  ministers,  and  among  the  rest  the  earl  of  Stair. 

The  English  parliament,  with  a  spirit  worthy  of  the  darkest  ages,  and  the 
most  barbarous  nations,  proceeded  to  declare  lord  Belhaven,  William  Pater- 
son,  and  the  other  members  of  the  deputation  guilty  of  a  high  crime  and  mis- 
demeanour, for  administering  in  that  kingdom  the  oath  de  fideli  to  a  foreign  as- 
sociation. Those  of  their  own  people  who  had  become  partners  in  the  company 
were  threatened  with  an  impeachment,  and  were  by  this  means  compelled  to 
withdraw  their  subscriptions.  Upwards  of  two  hundred  thousand  pounds 
sterling  had  been  subscribed  to  the  scheme  by  the  merchants  of  Holland  and 
Hamburg,  and  the  English  resident  at  the  latter  city,  Sir  Paul  Rycault,  was 
instructed  to  present  a  remonstrance  on  tlie  part  of  tV.e  king,  to  the  magistrates, 
complaining  of  the  countenance  they  had  given  to  the  commissioners  of  the 
Darien  company,  who  had  formed,  and  were  prosecuting  a  plan  fraught  with 
many  evils ;  a  plan  which  his  majesty  did  not  intend  to  support,  and  from 
which,  if  the  Hamburgers  did  not  withdraw  their  aid,  they  might  be  prepared 
for  an  interruption  of  that  kindly  feeling,  and  those  good  offices,  that  it  was 
the  wish  of  his  majesty  to  cultivate  and  to  exercise  towards  them.  The  answer 
of  the  city  was  worthy  of  itself  in  its  best  days,  "  They  considered  it  strange, 
that  the  king  of  England  should  dictate  to  them,  a  free  people,  how,  or  with 
whom  they  were  to  engage  in  the  arrangements  of  commerce,  and  still  more  so, 
that  they  should  be  blamed  for  offering  to  connect  themselves  in  this  way  with 
a  body  of  his  own  subjects  incorporated  under  a  special  act  of  parliament." 
From  this  interference,  however,  the  Haniburgei-s,  aware  that  the  company  was 
to  be  thwarted  in  all  its  proceedings  by  tlie  superior  power  of  England,  lost 
confidence  in  the  scheme,  and  finally  withdrew  their  subscriptions.  The  Dutch, 
too,  equally  jealous  of  commercial  rivalry  with  the  English,  and  influenced  per- 
haps  by  the  same  motives  with  the  Hamburgera,  withdrc\v  their  subscriptions 


112  "WILLIAM  PATERSON. 


also,  and  the  company  was  left  to  the  unassisted  resources  of  their  ovm  poor  and 
depressed  country.  The  e.ngerness  with  which  the  scheme  had  been  patronized 
abroad  by  wealthy  individuals,  and  the  bitterness  of  tlie  opposition  directed 
against  it  by  the  government  of  England  equally  tended  to  give  it  importance  in 
the  eyes  of  Scotsmen,  and  they  determined  to  go  on  with  such  means  as  they 
could  command,  secure  of  abundant  support  when  the  practicability  of  the  plan 
should  be  demonstrated.  The  books  for  subscription  were  not  opened  in  Glas- 
gow and  Edinburgh  till  the  month  of  Februsiry,  J 6 96,  and  they  were  not  filled 
up  till  the  month  of  August,  when,  owing  to  the  interference  of  the  English,  and 
the  consequent  withdrawal  of  the  foreign  partners,  anotlier  hundred  thousand 
pounds  sterling  was  shared  in  Scotland  fourteen  months  after  the  passing  of  the 
act.  Nothing  could  exceed  the  eagerness  with  which  all  classes  of  the  Scottish 
people  hastened  to  enroll  themselves  in  the  magnificent  copartnery  now  form- 
ing. Every  burgh,  every  city,  and  almost  every  family  of  any  consequence  be- 
came shareholders.  Four  hundred  thousand  pounds  were  subscribed ;  an  aston- 
ishing  sum  when  it  is  known,  that  at  that  time  the  circulating  capital  of  the 
kingdom  did  not  exceed  eight  hundi-ed  thousand  pounds  sterling.  To  this 
enthusiasm  a  variety  of  causes  contributed.  The  scheme  of  Patereon  was  politi- 
cally good.  It  was  drawn  up  with  great  ability,  and  promised  important  results 
in  a  moral  and  religious,  as  well  as  in  a  commercial  point  of  view.  Many  of  the 
subscribers,  indeed,  were  influenced  solely  by  religious  motives,  as  tliey  con- 
sidered the  setting  up  of  a  church,  regularly  constituted,  on  that  continent,  tlio 
most  likely  means  for  spreading  the  gospel  among  the  natives,  and  as  aflx)rding 
facilities  for  that  purpose  which  could  not  in  any  other  way  be  obtained.  But 
it  must  also  be  admitted,  that  the  scheme,  having  become  a  national  mania,  mhs 
not  left  to  work  its  way  by  its  own  intrinsic  merits.  The  scene  of  the  intended 
operations  became  the  subject  of  numberless  pamphlets,  wherein  fancy  was  much 
more  largely  employed  than  fact.  The  soil  was  represented  as  rich,  and  teem- 
ing with  the  most  luxuriant  fertility ;  the  rivers,  as  full  of  fish,  and  their  sands 
sparkling  with  gold ;  the  woods  smiling  in  perpetual  verdure,  at  all  times 
ringing  with  the  melody  of  spring,  and  loading  every  breeze  that  swept  over 
them  with  the  most  delightful  odours. 

Having  completed  their  preparations,  and  the  public  authorities  having  as- 
sured them  of  protection  and  encouragement,  the  colony,  in  presence  of  the 
whole  city  of  Edinburgh,  which  poured  out  its  inhabitants  to  witness  the  scene, 
embarked ;  Mr  Faterson  going  first  on  board  at  Leith,  from  the  roads  of 
Avhich  they  sailed  on  the  26th  of  July,  1698.  The  fleet  consisted  of  five 
ships  purchased  at  Hamburg  or  Holland — for  they  were  refused  even  the 
trifling  accommodation  of  a  sliip  of  war  which  Avas  laid  up  at  Bruntisland — and 
were  named  the  Caledonia,  St  Andrew,  Unicorn,  Dolphin,  and  Endeavour;  the 
two  last  being  yachts  laden  with  provisions  and  military  stores.  The  colony 
consisted  of  twelve  hundred  men  ;  three  hundred  of  them  being  young  men  of 
the  best  Scottish  families.  Among  them  were  also  sixty  oflicers  who  had  been 
thrown  out  cf  employment  by  the  peace  which  had  just  been  concluded,  and  who 
can-ied  along  with  them  the  troops  they  had  commanded  ;  all  of  whom  were 
men  who  had  been  raised  on  their  own  estates,  or  on  those  of  their  relations. 
Many  soldiers  and  sailors,  whose  services  had  been  refused — for  many  more 
than  could  be  employed  had  offered  themselves — were  found  hid  in  the  ships,  and 
when  ordered  ashore,  clung  to  the  ropes  imploring  to  be  allowed  to  go  with 
their  countrymen  Avithout  fee  or  reward.  The  whole  sailed  amidst  the  praises, 
the  prayers,  and  the  tears  of  relations,  friends,  and  countrymen  ;  "  and  neigh- 
bouring nations,"  says  Dalrymple,  '*  saw  with  a  mixture  of  surprise  ar.d  respect 
the  poorest  nation  of  Europe  sending  forth  the  most  gallant  colony  which  had  ever 


\nLLIAM  PATERSON.  113 


gone  from  the  old  to  the  new  world."  The  parliament  of  Scotland  met  in  the 
same  week  that  the  expedition  for  Darien  sailed,  and  on  the  5th  of  August 
they  presented  a  unanimous  address  to  the  king,  requesting  that  he  would  be 
pleased  to  support  the  company.  The  lord  president,  Sir  Hugh  Dalrymple, 
and  Sir  James  Stuart,  lord  advocate,  also  drew  out  memorials  to  the  king  in 
behalf  of  the  company,  in  which  they  proved  their  rights  to  be  irrefragable  on 
the  principles  both  of  constitutional  and  public  law.  AH  this,  however,  did  not 
prevent  orders  being  sent  out  by  the  English  ministry  to  all  the  English  gover- 
nors in  America  and  the  West  Indies,  to  withhold  all  supplies -from  the  Scottish 
colony  at  Darien,  and  to  have  no  manner  of  communication  with  it  either  in  one 
shape  or  another.  Meanwhile,  the  colony  proceeded  on  its  voyage  without  any 
thing  remarkable  occurring,  and  on  the  3d  of  November  landed  between 
Portobella  and  Carthagena  at  a  place  called  Acta,  Avhere  there  was  an  excellent 
harbour,  about  four  miles  fi'om  Golden  island.  Having  obtained  the  sanction  of 
the  natives  to  settle  among  them,  they  proceeded  to  cut  through  a  peninsula,  by 
which  they  obtained  what  they  conceived  to  be  a  favourable  site  for  a  city,  and 
they  accordingly  began  to  build  one  under  the  name  of  New  Edinburgh.  They 
also  constructed  a  fort  in  a  commanding  situation  for  the  protection  of  the  town 
and  the  harbour,  which  they  named  St  Andrew ;  and  on  the  country  itself  they 
imposed  the  name  of  Caledonia.  The  first  care  of  the  council,  which  had  been 
appointed  by^the  company,  and  of  which  Mr  Paterson  was  one  of  the  chief,  was 
to  establish  a  friendly  correspondence  with  the  native  chiefs,  which  they  found 
no  difficulty  in  doing.  To  the  Spanish  authorities  at  Carthagena  and  Panama, 
they  also  sent  friendly  deputations,  stating  their  desire  to  live  with  them  upon 
terms  of  amity  and  reciprocal  intercourse.  On  the  2Sth  of  December, 
1698,  the  council  issued  a  proclamation  dated  at  New  Edinburgh,  to  the  follow- 
ing effect: — "  We  do  hereby'publish  and  declare.  That  all  manner  of  persons,  of 
what  nation  or  people  soever,  are  and  shall  from  hence  forward  be  equally  free, 
and  alike  capable  of  the  said  properties,  privileges,  protections,  immunities,  and 
rights  of  government,  granted  unto  us ;  and  the  merchants  and  merchant  ships 
of  all  nations  may  freely  come  to  and  trade  with  us  without  being  liable  in  their 
persons  or  goods  to  any  manner  of  capture,  confiscation,  seizure,  forfeiture,  at- 
tachment, arrest,  restraint,  or  prohibition  for,  or  by  reason  of  any  embargo,  breach 
of  the  peace,  letters  of  marque,  or  reprisals,  declaration  of  war  with  any  foreign 
prince,  potentate,  or  state,  or  upon  any  other  account  or  pretence  whatsoever. 
And  Ave  do  hereby  not  only  grant,  concede,  and  declare,  a  generjri  and  equal 
freedom  of  government  and  trade  to  those  of  all  nations  who  shall  hereafter  be 
of  or  concerned  with  us ;  but  also,  a  full  and  free  liberty  of  conscience  in  mat- 
ters of  religion,  so  as  the  same  be  not  understood  to  allow,  connive  at,  or  in- 
dulge,  the  blaspheming  of  God's  holy  name,  or  any  of  his  divine  attributes,  cr  of 
the  unhallowing  or  profaning  the  Sabbath  day ;  and,  finally,  as  the  best  and 
surest  means  to  render  any  government  successful,  durable,  and  happy,  it  shall, 
by  the  help  of  Almighty  God,  be  ever  our  constant  and  chiefest  care,  that  all 
our  further  constitutions,  laws,  and  ordinances  be  consonant  and  agreeable  to 
the  holy  Scriptures,  right  reason,  and  the  examples  of  the  wisest  and  justest  na- 
tions ;  that  from  the  righteousness  thereof  we  may  reasonably  hope  for  and  ex- 
pect the  blessings  of  prosperity  and  increase."  So  far  all  was  well,  but  the  want 
of  a  leading  spirit,  of  one  who  could  overawe  the  refractory,  and  of  sunmiary 
laws  for  their  punishment,  soon  began  to  be  felt ;  3Ii:  Paterson  was  too  modest 
a  man  himself  to  assume  such  a  position,  and  the  event  showed  that  he  had 
trusted  too  much  to  the  constancy  and  good  sense  of  others.  After  all  his  ex- 
pense of  time  and  trouble  of  contrivance,  he  seems  to  have  reserved  nothing  for 
himself  above  the  meanest  councillor  upon  the  list.      In  the  original  articles  of 


114  ^VILLIAM  PATERSON. 


Uie  company  it  hod  been  agreed,  tliat  he  sliould  be  allowed  two  per  cent,  on  the 
stock,  and  three  per  cent  on  the  profits,  but  he  had  giren  up  both  these  claims 
long  before  leaving  Scotland.  "  It  was  not,"  he  said,  *'  suspicion  of  the  justice 
or  gratitude  of  the  company,  nor  a  consciousness  that  Iiis  services  could  ever  be- 
come useless  to  tliem,  but  the  ingratitude  of  some  individuals  experienced  in 
life,  which  made  it  a  matter  of  common  prudence  in  him  to  ask  a  retribution  for 
six  years  of  his  time,  and  ten  thousand  pounds  spent  in  promoting  the  establish- 
ment of  the  company.  But  now,"  he  continues,  "that  I  see  it  standing  upon 
the  authority  of  parliament,  and  supported  by  so  many  great  and  good  men,  I 
release  all  claim  to  that  retribution  ;  happy  in  the  noble  concession  made  to  me, 
but  happier  in  the  return  which  I  now  make  for  it."  With  the  same  simplicity 
and  generosity  of  character  which  led  him  to  relinquish  the  pecuniary  advan- 
tages he  had  secured  for  himself,  he  relinquished  all  claim  to  any  superiority  in 
the  direction  of  the  colony,  which  was  intrusted  to  men  evidently  but  of  ordinary 
capacity,  and  under  regulations  which  supposed  the  persons  composing  it  to  be 
men  of  better  tempers,  and  greater  self-command,  than  they  really  were.  The 
whole  management  was  vested  in  a  council  of  seven,  under  regulations,  the  fifth 
of  which  ran  thus — "^  That  after  their  landing  and  settlement  as  aforesaid,  they, 
the  council,  shall  class  and  divide  the  whole  freemen  inhabitants  of  the  said 
colony  into  districts,  each  district  to  contain  at  least  fifty,  and  not  exceeding 
sixty  freemen  inhabitants,  who  shall  elect  yearly  any  one  freeman  inhabitant 
ivhoni  they  shall  think  fit  to  represent  them  in  a  parliament  or  council  general 
of  the  said  colony,  which  parliament  shall  be  called  or  adjourned  by  the  said 
council  as  they  see  cause :  and  being  so  constitute,  may,  with  consent  of  the 
said  council,  make  and  enact  such  rules,  ordinances,  and  constitutions,  and  im- 
pose such  taxes  as  they  think  fit  and  needful  for  the  good  of  the  establishment,  im- 
provement and  support  of  the  said  colony ;  providing  alway,  that  they  lay  no  fur- 
ther duties  or  impositions  of  trade  than  what  is  after  stated."  This  parliament  was 
accordingly  called,  and  held  at  least  two  sessions.  During  the  first  session,  in 
the  month  of  April,  1699,  it  enacted  thirty-four  statutes  for  the  regulation  of 
civil  and  criminal  justice  in  the  colony.  This  is  a  curious  document,  and  in 
several  items  bears  strong  marks  of  the  liberal  spirit  and  philosophic  mind  of 
I'aterson.  It  discovers  a  marked  regard  to  personal  liberty,  and  great  jealousy 
of  its  infraction.  Violation  of  women  is  declared  a  crime  to  be  punislied  with 
death,  though  the  women  should  belong  to  an  enemy  ;  and  to  plunder  Indians 
is  rated  as  cbmmon  theft.  No  man  was  to  be  confined  more  than  three  months 
before  being  brought  to  trial,  and  in  all  criminal  cases  no  judgment  was  to  pass 
without  the  consent  and  concurrence  of  a  jury  of  fifteen  persons.  No  freeman 
could  be  subjected  to  any  restraint  for  debt  unless  there  should  be  fraud,  or  the 
design  thereof,  or  wilful  or  apparent  breach  of  trust,  misapplication,  or  con- 
cealment first  proved  upon  him.  One  of  the  councillors,  writing  at  this  time  to 
the  directors  at  home,  says,  "  we  found  the  inconvenience  of  calling  a  parlia- 
ment, and  of  telling  the  inhabitants  that  they  were  freemen  so  soon.  They  had 
not  the  true  notion  of  liberty.  The  tlioughts  of  it  made  them  insolent,  and 
ruined  command.  You  know  that  it's  expressly  in  the  '  Encouragements,'  that 
they  are  to  serve  for  three  years,  and  at  the  three  years'  end  to  have  a  division 
of  land."  It  was  the  opinion  of  this  director,  that  no  parliament  should  have 
been  called  till  at  least  the  three  years  of  servitude  had  expired.  Even  then, 
from  the  character  of  the  settlers,  who  had  not  been  selected  with  that  care 
which  an  experiment  of  such  vast  consequence  demanded,  there  might  have  ex- 
isted causes  for  delaying  the  escape.  Among  the  better  class,  there  were  too 
many  young  men  of  birth.  These  wei'e  inexperienced  and  wholly  unfit  for  ex- 
ercising authority,  and  equally  ill  adapted  for  submitting  to  it.     Among  the 


S3i4rj. 


TVILLIAM  PATERSON.  115 


lower  class  were  many  who  had  been  opposed  to  the  Reyolution,  and  who  had 
resorted  to  the  colony  purely  from  dissatisfaction  with  the  government  at  home. 
These,  instead  of  submitting  with  patience  to  the  privations  and  labour  necessary 
in  that  state  of  society  in  which  they  were  now  placed,  would  gladly  have  laid 
aside  the  mattock  and  the  axe,  and  have  employed  themselves  in  plunderino'  in- 
cursions upon  the  Indians  or  the  Spaniards.  The  subscribers  to  the  scheme 
were  so  numerous,  that  the  idle,  the  unprincipled,  and  profligate  had  found  but 
too  little  difficulty  in  attaching  themselves  to  the  infant  colony.  Those 
who  were  nominated  to  the  council,  too,  had  been  selected  without  judg- 
ment ;  and  it  was  not  till  after  a  violent  struggle,  that  Paterson  could  pre- 
vail on  his  colleagues  to  exercise  their  authority.  "  There  was  not,"  he  writes 
in  a  letter  to  3Ir  Shields,  "  one  of  the  old  council  fitted  for  government,  and 
things  were  gone  too  far  before  the  new  took  place." 

3Ir  Paterson,  when  he  first  established  his  colony,  had  taken  the  precaution 
to  land  his  people  at  the  beginning  of  winter,  the  best  season  for  Europeans 
first  encountering  the  climate  of  Uarien  ;  and  the  first  letter  from  the  council 
to  the  directors  thus  expresses  the  satisfaction  of  the  colonists  with  their  new 
destination  : — "  As  to  the  country,  we  find  it  very  healthful ;  for,  though  we 
arrived  here  in  the  rainy  season,  from  which  we  had  little  or  no  shelter  for 
several  weeks  together,  and  many  sick  among  us,  yet  we  are  so  far  recovered, 
and  in  so  good  a  state  of  health,  as  could  hardly  anywhere  be  expected  among 
such  a  number  of  men  together.  In  fruitfulness,  this  country  seems  not  to  give 
place  to  any  in  the  world  ;  for  we  have  seen  several  of  the  fruits,  as  cocoa  nuts, 
barillas,  sugar  cines,  maize,  oranges,  &c,  &c.,  all  of  them,  in  their  kinds,  the 
best  anywhere  to  be  found.  Nay,  there  is  hardly  a  foot  of  ground  but  may  be 
cultivated ;  for  even  upon  the  very  tops  and  sides  of  the  hills,  there  is  commonly 
three  or  four  feet  deep  of  rich  earth,  without  so  much  as  a  stone  to  be  found 
tiierein.  Here  is  good  hunting,  and  fowling,  and  excellent  fishing  in  the  bays 
and  creeks  of  the  coast ;  so  that,  could  -we  improve  the  season  of  the  year  just 
now  begun,  we  should  soon  be  able  to  subsist  of  ourselves ;  but  building  and 
fortifying  will  lose  us  a  whole  year's  planting."  This  was,  however,  no  more 
than  all  of  them  must  have  foreseen  ;  and  they  never  doubted  of  obtaining  more 
provisions  than  they  could  want,  from  the  West  India  islands,  or  from  the 
American  colonies.  Orders,  however,  as  has  already  been  noticed,  were  sent 
out  after  them  to  all  the  English  governors,  prohibiting  all  communication  with 
them.  Tliese  proclamations  were  rigidly  adhered  to,  and  the  unfortunate  Scot- 
tish colonists  were  denied  those  supplies  which  had  seldom  been  withheld  from 
lawless  smugglers,  buccaneers,  and  pirates.  In  addition  to  this,  which  was  the 
principal  source  of  all  their  misfortunes,  those  who  superintended  the  equipment 
of  the  expedition,  had,  through  carelessness  or  design,  furnished  them  with  pro- 
visions, part  of  which  were  uneatable  ;  the  consequence  of  which  was,  that  the 
colony  had  to  be  put  on  short  allowance,  when  the  sickly  season  was  thinning 
their  numbers,  and  bringing  additional  duty  on  those  who  were  in  health.  In 
this  emergency,  their  Indian  friends  exerted  themselves  on  their  behalf,  putting 
to  shame  their  Christian  brethren,  who,  from  a  mean  jealousy,  were  attempting 
to  starve  tiiem  ;  and  they  might  still  have  done  better,  had  not  insubordination 
broken  out  among  themselves,  and  a  conspiracy  been  formed,  in  which  some  of 
the  council  were  implicated,  to  seize  one  of  the  vessels,  and  to  make  their 
escape  from  the  colony.  After  matters  had  come  this  length,  Paterson  succeeded 
in  assuming  new  councillors  ;  a  measure  wliich  had  the  effect  of  checking  the 
turbulence  of  the  discontented.  The  new  council  also  despatched  one  of  their  own 
number  to  Britain,  with  an  address  to  the  king,  and  a  pressing  request  to  send 
them  out  supplies  of  provisions,  ammunition,  and  men.     On  receiving  this  des- 


.J 


IIG 


WILLIAM  PATERSON. 


patch  the  directors  lost  no  time  in  sending  out  the  requisite  supplies.  They  had 
already  sent  despatches  and  provisions  by  a  brig,  uhich  sailed  fron.  the  Clyde  in 

On  rA  f '"«^'  ^.''';  ^"'  ^^'"'^  ""'"PP^'y  "«^«^  '-^^^'^^d  her  destination. 
On  the  arrival  in  Britain  of  another  of  their  number,  Mr  Hamilton,  who  nas  ao- 
countant-genera  to  the  colony,  and  whose  absence  was  highly  detrimental  to  i^ 
jntereste,  the  Olive  Branch,  captain  Jamieson,  and  another'vessel,  S  three 

fll  ■?    •T'"'''/"'^  'T  "^P-^^^i^O"'.  «rms  and  ammunition,  were  despatched 

from  Le.th  roads  on  the  12th  of  May,  1699.     Matters  in  the  colony  were  in 

he  mean  time  getting  worse  ;  and  on  the  22nd  of  June,  they  came  to  the  reso- 

lution  ot  abandoning  the  place  within  eight  months  of  the  time  they  had  taken 

t^  uTn  h-t.  '^;'^«r/r""'^'  P^^^J^^^"-  '™^«'^  "-  ''  *he  time  on  board 
the  Union,  whither  he  had  been  conveyed  some  days  before  in  a  fever,  brought 
on  by  anxiety  and  grief  for  the  weakness  of  his  colleagues,  and  the  fius- 
had  found       ''  'T'  "v'^'i  ^'  ^'^  ''  ^"'="'"^^y  cherislied   and  which  he 

fJlh  "•",^7^^''^^  ^«ft  h'"^;  a"d  while  he  was  at  Boston  in  tlie  month  of  Sep! 
ember  following,  one  of  his  friends  writes  concerning  him  :_"  Grief  has 
broke  Mr  Paterson's  heart  and  turned  his  brain,  and  now  he's  a  child;  the^ 

h  s  mmd  at  New  York,  whence  he  returned  to  Scotland,  to  make  his  report  to 
the  company,  and  give  them  his  best  advice  regarding  the  further  prosecution 
of  their  undertaking  Two  of  their  captains,  Samuel  Veitch  and  Thomas  Diim" 
mond,  remained  at  New  York,  to  be  ready  to  join  the  colony,  should  it  be 
again  revived  The  Olive  Branch,  the  vessel  alluded  to  as  having  gone  out  ^ 
h«  ^    "^  T     '^""»^«^"^  provisions,  was  followed  by  a  fleet  of  four  ships 

thirtf."'".^  a"'.  "'P''  ^"^'  ""™"^""'  ""^  ««P«  of  Borrowstonness,  wfth 
thirteen  hundred  men.  These  ships  all  sailed  from  the  Isle  of  Bute,  ;n  the 
21  h  of  beptember,  1699,  and  reached  Caledonia  Bay  on  the  30th  of  November 
follo^ving.  With  this  fleet  went  out  William  Veitch,  son  of  the  reverend  w5! 
liam  Ve.tch  of  Dumfries,  and  brother  to  Samuel  already  mentioned.  This  ner 
son  went  out  in  the  double  capacity  of  a  captain  and  a  councillor.  Individuals 
were  also  sent  out  by  various  conveyances,  with  bills  of  credit  for  the  use  of  the 
colony.  Everything  now,  however,  went  against  them.  The  Olive  Branch 
and  her  consort  having  arrived  in  the  harbour  of  New  Edinburgh,  the  recruits 
determined  to  land,  and  repossess  themselves  of  the  place,  the  huts  of  wMch 
they  found  burnt  down,  and  totally  deserted.  One  of  their  ships,  however  tok 
fire,  and  was  burnt  in  the  harbour,  on  which  the  others  set  sail  for  Jamais 
TV  hen  the  fleet  which  followed  arrived  in  November,  and,  instead  of  a  coW 

It-ouL    ?T^  'aT'  ^T^  '^'  ^"'^  ^"^"^  '^«""'  "'«  ^'''  dismantled,  and  the 
pound  which  had  been  cleared,  overgrown  with  shrubs  and  weeds,  wi  h  all  the 
tools  and  implements  of  husbandry  taken  away,  they  were  at  a  loss  what  to  do    A 
general  cry  was  raised  in  the  ships  to  be  conducted  home,  whicl,  was  encouraged 
by  Mr  James  Byres,  one  of  the  new  councillors,  who  seems  to  have  been  himself 
deeply  impressed  with  that  dejection  of  spirit  which,  as  a  councillor,  it  was  his 
duty  to  suppress.     Veitch,  however,  assisted  by  captain  Thomas  Drummond 
vho  had  come  out  in  the  Olive  Branch,  and  had  taken  up  his  residence  a^nong 
he  natives  till  the  fleet  which  he  expected  should  arrive,  succeeded  in  persuad^nf 
he  men  to  land.     As  the  Spaniards  had  already  shown  their  hostility,  and 
having  been  defeated  by  a  detachment  of  the  colonists  in  the  precedL  Fe 
bruary,  were  preparing  for  another  attack  ;  encouraged,  no  doubt,  by  the  treat- 
ment which  the  colony  had  met  with  from  the  English  govern.uent ;  Drummond 
proposed  an  immediate  attack  on  Portobella,  which  they  could  easily  have  re- 
duced, and  where  they  might  have  been  supplied  with  such  things  as  they  were 


WILLIAM  PATERSON.  117 


most  in  want  of.  In  this  he  was  cordially  seconded  by  Veitch,  but  waa  pre- 
vented by  the  timidity  of  his  colleagues,  and  the  intrigues  of  Byres,  who  at 
length  succeeded  in  ejecting  him  from  the  council.  Two  ministers,  Messrs 
James  and  Scott,  went  out  with  the  first  expedition,  but  the  one  died  on  the 
passage,  and  the  other  shortly  after  landing  in  New  Caledonia.  The  council 
having  written  home  to  the  directore,  regretting  the  death  of  their  ministers, 
and  begging  that  others  might  be  sent  to  supply  their  place,  the  commission  of 
the  General  Assembly  of  the  church  of  Scotland,  at  the  particular  desire  of  the 
board  of  directors,  sent  out  the  reverend  Messrs  Alexander  Shields,  (the  well- 
known  author  of  the  "  Hind  let  Loose,"  "Life  of  Ren  wick,"  &a,)  Borland,  Stobo, 
and  Dalgliesh.  These  persons  sailed  in  the  last  fleet.  They  were  instructed, 
on  their  ai-rival,  Avith  the  advice  and  concurrence  of  the  government,  to  set 
apai't  a  day  for  solemn  thanksgiving,  to  form  themselves  into  a  presbytery, 
to  ordain  elders  and  deacons,  and  to  divide  the  colony  into  parishes,  that  thus 
each  minister  might  have  a  particular  charge.  After  which  it  was  recommended 
to  them,  "  so  soon  as  they  should  find  the  colony  in  case  for  it,  to  assemble  the 
whole  Christian  inhabitants,  and  keep  a  day  together  for  solemn  prayer  and 
fasting,  and  with  the  greatest  solemnity  and  seriousness  to  avouch  the  Lord  to 
be  their  God,  and  dedicate  themselves  and  the  land  to  the  Lord."  The  church 
of  Scotland  took  so  deep  an  interest  in  the  colony  of  Darien,  that  the  commis- 
sion sent  a  particular  admonition  by  the  ministers,  of  which  the  following  may 
be  taken  as  a  specimen  : — "  We  shall,  in  the  next  place,  particularly  address 
ourselves  to  you  that  are  in  military  charge  and  have  command  over  the  sol- 
diery, whether  by  land  or  sea.  It  is  on  you,  honoured  and  worthy  gentlemen, 
that  a  great  share  of  the  burden  of  the  public  safety  lies.  You  are,  in  some  re- 
spects, both  the  hands  and  the  eyes  of  this  infant  colony.  Many  of  you  have 
lately  been  engaged  in  a  just  and  glorious  war,  for  retrieving  and  defending  the 
protestant  religion,  the  liberties  and  rights  of  your  country,  under  the  conduct 
of  a  matchless  prince.  And,  now,  when,  through  the  blessing  of  the  Lord  of 
hosts,  his  and  your  arms  have  procured  an  honourable  peace  at  home  ;  you,  and 
others  with  you,  have,  with  much  bravery,  embarked  yourselves  in  a  great,  gene- 
rous, and  just  undertaking,  in  the  remote  parts  of  the  earth,  for  advancing  the 
honour  and  interest  of  your  native  country.  If  in  this  you  acquit  yourselves  like 
men  and  Christians,  your  fame  will  be  renowned  both  abroad  and  at  home."  The 
ministers  found  the  colony  in  circumstances  very  different  from  what  the  address 
of  the  commission  naturally  supposed  ;  and  it  was  but  few  of  their  instructions 
they  were  able  to  carry  into  effect.  Two  of  them,  however,  preached  on  land, 
and  one  on  board  the  Rising  Sun,  every  Sabbath-day.  But,  in  addition  to  the 
unfavourable  aspect  of  their  affairs,  the  irreligion  and  licentiousness  of  the 
colonists,  oppressed  their  spirits  and  paralyzed  their  efforts.  With  the  view  of 
forming  an  acquaintance  with  the  natives,  they  undei'took  a  journey  into  the 
interior,  accompanied  by  a  lieutenant  Turnbull,  who  had  some  slight  knowledge 
of  the  Indian  language.  They  spent  several  nights  in  the  cabins  of  the  natives, 
by  whom  they  were  received  with  great  kindness ;  and  on  their  return,  brought 
back  to  the  colonists  the  first  notice  of  the  approach  of  the  Spaniards.  When 
apprized  of  all  the  circumstances,  the  directors  felt  highly  indignant  at  the 
conduct  of  those  who,  upon  such  slight  gi-ounds,  had  left  the  settlement  deso- 
late ;  and  whose  glory,  they  said,  it  ought  to  have  been  to  have  perished  there, 
rather  than  to  have  abandoned  it  so  shamefully.  In  their  letters  to  their  new 
councillors  and  officers,  they  implored  them  to  keep  the  example  of  their  pre- 
decessors before  their  eyes  as  a  beacon,  and  to  avoid  those  ruinous  dissensions 
and  shameful  vices,  on  which  they  had  wrecked  so  hopeful  an  enterprise.  "  It 
is  a  lasting  disgrace,"  they  add,  "  to  the  memories  of  those  officers  who  went 


118  WILLIAM  PATERSON. 


in  the  first  expedition,  that  even  the  meanest  planters  were  scandalized  at  the 
licentiousness  of  their  lives,  many  of  them  living  very  intemperately  and  vicionsly 
for  many  months  at  the  public  charge,  whilst  the  sober  and  industrious  among 
them  were  vigilant  in  doing  their  duty.  Nor  can  Ave,  upon  serious  reflection, 
wonder  if  an  enterprise  of  this  nature  has  misgiven  in  the  hands  of  such  as,  wo 
have  too  much  reason  to  believe,  neither  feared  God  nor  regarded  man." 
They  also  blamed  the  old  council  heavily  for  deserting  the  place,  without 
ever  calling  a  parliament,  or  general  meeting  of  the  colony,  or  in  any  Avay  con- 
sulting their  inclinations,  but  commanding  them  to  a  blind  and  implicit  obedi- 
ence, which  is  more  than  they  ever  can  be  answerable  for.  "  Wherefore," 
they  continue,  "  we  desire  you  would  constitute  a  parliament,  whose  advice  you 
are  to  take  in  all  important  matters.  And  in  the  mean  time  you  are  to  acquaint 
the  officers  and  planters  with  the  constitutions,  and  the  few  additional  ones  sent 
with  Mr  3Tackay,  that  all  and  every  person  in  the  colony  may  know  their  duty, 
advantages,  and  privileges."  Alarmed  by  the  accounts  which  they  soon  after  re- 
ceived from  Darien,  the  council-general  of  the  company  despatched  a  proclama- 
tion, declaring  "  that  it  shall  be  lawful  to  any  person  of  whatever  degree  inhabit- 
ing the  colony,  not  only  to  protest  against,  but  to  disobey,  and  oppose  any  re- 
solution to  desert  the  colony  ;"  and,  "  that  it  shall  be  death,  either  publicly  or 
privately,  to  move,  deliberate,  or  reason  upon  any  such  desertion  or  surrender, 
without  special  order  from  the  council- general  for  that  effect.  And  they  order 
and  require  the  council  of  Caledonia  to  proclaim  this  solemnly,  as  they  shall  be 
answerable.'*  Before  this  act  was  passed  in  Edinburgh,  however,  New  Cale- 
donia was  once  more  evacuated.  The  men  had  set  busily  to  the  rebuilding  the 
huts,  and  repairing  the  fort ;  but  strenuous  efforts  were  still  made  in  the  council 
to  discourage  them,  by  those  who  wished  to  evacuate  the  settlement  Veitch 
was  with  difficulty  allowed  to  protest  against  some  of  their  resolutions ;  and  for 
opposing  them  Avith  warmth,  captain  Drummond  was  laid  under  arrest.  Speak- 
ing  of  Drummond,  Mr  Shields  says,  "  Under  God,  it  is  owing  to  him,  and  the 
prudence  of  captain  Veitch,  that  we  have  staid  here  so  long,  which  was  no  small 
difficulty  to  accomplish."  And  again,  "  If  we  had  not  met  with  Drummond  at 
our  arrival,  we  had  never  settled  in  this  place,  Byres  and  Lindsay  being  averse  from 
it,  and  designing  to  discourage  it  from  the  very  first ;  Gibson  being  indifferent, 
if  he  got  his  pipe  and  dram ;  only  Veitch  remained  resolved  to  promote  it,  who 
Avas  all  along  Drummond's  friend,  and  concurred  with  his  proposal  to  send  men 
against  the  Spaniards  at  first,  and  took  the  patronizing  as  long  as  he  could 
conveniently,  but  with  such  caution  and  prudence,  as  to  avoid  and  prevent  ani- 
mosity and  faction,  which  he  saw  were  unavoidable,  threatening  the  speedier  dis- 
solution of  this  interest,  if  he  should  insist  on  the  prosecution  of  that  plea,  and 
in  opposition  to  that  spate  that  was  running  against  Drummond.  But  now 
Finab  coming,  who  was  Drummond's  comrade  and  fellow  officer  in  Lorne*8 
regiment  in  Flanders,  he  is  set  at  liberty."  This  was  colonel  Campbell  of 
Finab,  who,  with  three  hundred  of  his  own  men,  had  come  out  and  joined  this 
last  party  about  two  months  after  their  arrival.  The  Spanish  troops  meantiuie 
from  Panama  and  Santa  Maria,  conducted  through  the  woods  by  negroes,  were 
approaching  them.  They  bad  advanced,  to  the  number  of  sixteen  hundred 
men,  as  far  as  Tubucantee,  in  the  immediate  neighbourhood  of  the  colony,  when 
Finab  marched  against  tliem  with  two  hundred  men,  and  defeated  them  in  a 
slight  skirmish,  in  which  he  was  wounded.  The  victory,  which  at  one  time 
would  have  been  of  signal  service  to  the  colony,  was  now  unavailing ;  a  fleet  of 
eleven  ships,  under  the  command  of  the  governor  of  Cr.rthagena,  Don  Juan 
Pimienta,  having  blocked  up  the  harbour,  and  landed  a  number  of  troops,  who, 
advancing  along  with  the  party  Avhich  had  found  their  way  through  the  woods. 


^'A,Mi.>. 


WILLIAM  PATERSON.  119 


in  rested  the  fort.  Cut  off  from  water,  reduced  by  sickness,  and  otherwise  dis- 
pirited, the  garrison  was  loud  in  its  demands  for  a  capitulation,  and  the  council 
had  no  other  alternatire  but  to  comply  with  it.  Finab  being  laid  up  at  the 
time  with  a  fever,  Veitch  conducted  the  treaty,  and  was  allowed  honourable 
terms.  The  inhabitants  of  the  colony  having  gone  on  shipboard,  with  all  that 
belonged  to  them,  they  weighed  anchor  on  the  11th  of  April,  1700,  and 
sailed  for  Jamaica,  after  having  occupied  New  Caledonia  somewhat  more  than 
four  months.  The  Hope,  on  board  of  which  was  captain  Veitch,  and  the 
greater  part  of  the  property,  was  wrecked  on  the  rocks  of  Colorades,  on  the 
western  coast  of  Cuba.  Veitch,  however,  was  dead  before  this  accident  hap- 
pened. The  Rising  Sun  was  wi'ecked  on  the  bar  of  Carolina,  and  the  captain 
and  crew,  with  the  exception  of  sixteen  persons  who  had  previously  landed, 
were  lost.  Of  the  few  survivors,  some  remained  in  the  English  settlements, 
some  died  in  Spanish  pi-isons ;  and  of  the  three  thousand  men  that  at  different 
periods  Avent  out  to  the  settlement,  perhaps  not  above  twenty  ever  regained  their 
native  land. 

In  this  melancholy  manner  terminated  the  only  attempt  at  colonization  ever 
made  by  Scotland.  That  it  was  an  attempt  far  beyond  the  means  of  the  nation, 
must  be  admitted.  The  conception,  however,  was  splendid,  the  promise  great, 
and  erei*y  way  worthy  of  the  experiment ;  and  but  for  the  jealousy  of  the  Eng- 
lish and  the  Dutch,  more  particularly  the  former,  might  possibly  have  succeeded. 
The  settlers,  indeed,  were  not  well  selected  ;  tl>e  principles  attempted  to  be  act- 
ed on,  were  theoretic,  and  too  refined  for  the  elements  upon  which  they  were 
to  operate  ;  and,  above  all,  the  council  were  men  of  feeble  minds,  utterly  un- 
qualified to  act  in  a  situation  of  such  difficulty  as  that  in  which  they  came  to  be 
placed.  Had  the  wants  of  the  Scottish  settlers  been  supplied  by  the  English 
colonies,  which  they  could  very  well  have  been,  even  with  advantage  to  the 
colonies,  the  first  and  most  fatal  disunion,  and  abandonment  of  their  station, 
could  not  have  happened;  and  had  they  been  acknowledged  by  their  sovereign, 
the  attack  made  upon  them  by  the  Spaniards,  which  put  an  end  to  the  colony, 
would  never  have  been  made.  Time  would  have  smoothed  down  the  asperities 
among  the  settlers  themselves ;  experience  would  have  corrected  their  errors  in 
legislation  ;  and  New  Caledonia,  which  remains  to  this  day  a  Avildemess,  might 
have  become  the  emporium  of  half  the  commei'ce  of  the  world. 

Mr  Paterson,  not  disheartened  by  the  failure  of  his  Darien  project,  instead  of 
repining,  revived  the  scheme  in  a  form  that  he  supposed  might  be  less  startling-, 
and  which  might  induce  England,  Avhose  hostility  had  hitherto  thwarted  all 
his  measures,  to  become  the  principals  in  the  undertaking,  reserving  only  one- 
fifth  part  for  Scotland.  The  controversy  between  the  nations,  however,  was 
now  running  too  high,  and  the  ill  blood  of  both  was  too  hot  to  admit  of  any 
thing  of  the  kind  being  listened  to. 

Mr  Paterson,  though  he  was  pitied,  and  must  have  been  respected,  M-as  almost 
entirely  neglected,  and  died  at  an  advanced  age  in  poor  circumstances.  After 
the  Union,  he  claimed  upon  the  Equivalent  Money  for  the  losses  he  had  sustained 
at  Darien,  and  none  of  the  proprietors  certainly  had  a  fairer  claim.  But  he 
never  received  one  farthing.  Had*Paterson's  scheme  succeeded,  and  it  was 
no  fault  of  his  that  it  did  not,  his  name  had  unquestionably  been  enrolled 
among  the  most  illustrious  benefactors  of  his  species ;  and  if  we  examine  his 
character  in  the  light  of  true  philosophy,  we  shall  find  it  greatly  heightened 
by  his  failure.  Though  defrauded  of  the  honour  due  to  him  in  the  forma- 
tion of  the  Bank  of  England,  by  persons,  as  has  been  well  said,  "  as  inferior 
to  him  in  genius,  as  they  were  in  generosity,"  we  never  hear  from  him  a 
single  murmur.      When  disappointed  or  defeated,  he  did  not  give  way  to  de- 


120  SAINT  PATRICE:. 


spair,  but  set  himself  coolly  and  calmly  to  another  and  still  greater  under- 
taking', for  which  he  had  no  guarantee  for  the  gratitude  of  mankind,  more  than 
for  the  former.  When  this,  too,  failed,  through  the  injustice  of  those  who  ought 
to  have  been  his  protectors,  and  the  imbecility  of  those  whom  he  ought  to  have 
commanded,  he  never  seems  for  a  moment  to  have  thought  of  abating  his  morti- 
fications, or  of  vindicating  his  fame  by  recrimination,  though  he  might,  with 
the  utmost  truth  and  justice,  have  recriminated  upon  every  one  with  whom  lie 
had  been  connected.  So  far  from  this,  however,  he  only  sought  to  improve  his 
plan,  and  enable  them  to  correct  their  errors ;  and  even  when  this,  the  last 
and  bitterest  insult  that  can  be  offered  to  an  ingenuous  mind,  was  neglected,  he 
modestly  retired  to  the  vale  of  private  life,  and  seems  to  have  closed  his  days 
almost,  if  not  altogether,  without  a  murmur  at  the  ingratitude  of  mankind. 
There  is  one  part  of  his  character  which,  in  a  man  of  so  much  genius,  ought 
not  to  pass  unnoticed  :  "  He  was  void  of  passion  ;  and  he  was  one  of  the  very 
few  of  his  countrymen  who  never  drank  wine." 

PATRICK,  Saint,  the  celebrated  Apostle  of  Ireland,  was  bom  near  the  town 
of  Dumbarton,  in  the  west  of  Scotland,  about  the  year  372  of  the  Christian  ei-a. 
His  father,  Avhose  name  was  Calpurnius,  was  in  a  respectable  station  in  life,  be- 
ing municipal  magistrate  in  the  town  in  which  he  lived.  What  town  this  was, 
however,  is  not  certainly  known,"  whether  Kilpatrick,  a  small  village  on  the 
Clyde,  five  miles  east  4)f  Dumbarton,  Duntochar,  another  small  village  about  a 
mile  north  of  Kilpatrick,  or  Dumbarton  itself.  One  of  the  three,  however,  it  is 
presumed,  it  must  have  been,  as  it  is  described  as  being  situated  in  the  north- 
west part  of  the  Roman  province ;  but  though  various  biographers  of  the  saint 
have  assigned  each  of  these  towns  by  turns  as  his  birthplace,  conjecture  has  de- 
cided in  favour  of  Kilpatrick.  His  father  is  supposed,  (for  nearly  all  that  is  re- 
corded of  the  holy  man  is  conjectural,  or  at  best  but  inferential,)  to  have  come 
to  Scotland  in  a  civil  capacity  with  the  Roman  troops,  under  Theodosius.  His 
mother,  whose  name  was  Cenevessa,  was  sister  or  niece  of  St  Martin,  bishop  of 
Tours ;  and  from  this  circumstance,  it  is  presumed  that  his  family  were  Chris- 
tians. 

The  original  name  of  St  Patrick  was  Succat  or  Succach,  supposed  to  have 
some  relation  to  Succoth,  the  name  at  this  day  of  an  estate  not  far  distant  from 
his  birthplace,  the  property  of  the  late  Sir  Hay  Campbell.  The  name  of 
Patricius,  or  Patrick,  was  not  assumed  by  the  saint  until  he  became  invested 
with  the  clerical  character. 

In  his  sixteenth  year,  up  to  which  time  he  had  remained  with  his  father,  he 
was  taken  prisoner,  along  with  his  two  sisters,  on  the  occasion  of  an  incursion 
of  the  Irish,  and  carried  over  a  captive  to  Ireland.  Here  he  was  reduced  to  a 
state  of  slavery,  in  which  he  remained  for  six  or  seven  years  with  Milcho,  a 
petty  king  in  the  northern  part  of  that  country.  The  particular  locality  is  said 
to  be  Skerry,  in  the  county  of  Antrim.  At  the  end  of  this  period,  he  effected 
his  escape  ;  on  which  occasion,  it  is  recorded,  he  had  warning  that  a  ship  was 
ready  for  him,  although  she  lay  at  a  distance  of  200  miles,  and  in  a  part  of  the 
country  where  he  never  liad  been,  and  where  he  was  unacquainted  with  any 
one.  On  making  his  escape,  he  proceeded  with  the  vessel  to  France,  and  re- 
paired to  his  uncle  at  Toure,  who  made  him  a  canon  regular  of  his  church.  St 
Patrick  had  alreafly  entertained  the  idea  of  converting  the  Irish,  a  design  which 
first  occun-ed  to  him  during  his  slavery,  and  he  now  seriously  and  assiduously 
prepared  himself  for  this  important  duty.  But  so  impressed  was  he  with  the 
difficulty  and  importance  of  the  undertaking,  and  the  extent  of  the  qualifications 
necessary  to  fit  him  for  its  accomplishment,  that  he  did  not  adventure  on  it,  until 
he  had  attained  his  sixtieth  year,  employing  the  whole  of  this  long  interval  in 


ALEXANDER  PENNECUIK,  M.D.  121 

travelling  from  place  to  place,  in  quest  of  religious  instruction  and  information. 
During  this  period  he  studied,  also,  for  some  time,  under  St  Germanus,  bishop 
of  Gaul.  By  this  ecclesiastic  he  was  sent  to  Rome  with  recommendations  to 
pope  Celestine,  who  conferred  upon  him  ordination  as  a  bishop,  and  furnished 
him  with  instructions  and  authority  to  proceed  to  Ireland  to  convert  its  natives. 
On  this  mission  he  set  out  in  the  year  432,  about  the  time  that  a  similar  attempt 
by  Palladius  had  been  made,  and  abandoned  as  hopeless.  St  Patrick  was,  on 
this  occasion,  accompanied  by  a  train  of  upwards  of  twenty  persons,  among 
Avhom  was  Germanus.  He  sailed  for  Ireland  from  Wales,  having  come  first  to 
Britain  from  France,  and  attempted  to  land  at  Wicklow,  but  being  here  opposed 
by  the  natives,  he  proceeded  along  the  coast,  till  he  came  to  Ulster,  where,  meet- 
ing with  a  more  favourable  reception,  he  and  his  followers  disembarked.  He 
soon  afterwards  obtained  a  gift  of  some  land,  and  founded  a  monastery  and  a 
church  at  Downc,  or  Downpatrick.  From  this  establishment,  he  gradually  ex- 
tended his  ministry  to  other  parts  of  Ireland,  devoting  an  equal  portion  of  time 
to  its  three  provinces,  Ulster,  Munster,  and  Connaught,  in  each  of  which  he  is 
said  to  have  resided  seven  years,  making  altogether  a  period  of  one  and  twenty. 
During  this  time,  he  paid  frequent  visits  to  the  Western  Isles,  with  the  view  of 
disseminating  there  the  doctrines  which  he  taught.  Being  now  far  advanced  in 
years,  he  resigned  his  ecclesiastical  duties  in  Ireland,  and  returned  to  his  native 
country,  where  he  died.  The  place,  hoAvever,  at  which  this  event  occurred, 
tlie  year  in  wliich  it  occurred,  the  age  which  he  attained,  and  the  original  place 
of  his  interment,  have  all  been  disputed,  and  ditlerently  stated  by  diffex'ent 
authors.  The  most  probable  account  is,  that  he  died  and  was  buried  at  Kil- 
patrick — this,  indeed,  appears  all  but  certain  from  many  circumstances,  not  the 
least  remarkably  coiToborative  of  which  is,  the  name  of  the  place  itself,  which 
signifies,  the  word  being  a  Gaelic  compound,  the  burial  place  of  Patrick — that 
lie  died  about  the  year  458  ;  and  that  he  was  about  eighty-six  years  of  age  when 
this  event  took  place. 

PENNEGUIK,  Alexander,  M.D.,  author  of  a  "Description  of  the  County  of 
Tweeddalc,"  and  of  vai'ious  poems,  was  born  in  1652,  being  the  eldest  son  of 
Alexander  Pennecuik  of  Newhall,  county  of  Edinburgh  ;  who  had  served  as  a 
surgeon,  first  to  general  Bannier  in  the  Thirty  Years'  war,  and  afterwards  in  the 
army  sent  by  the  Scots  into  England,  in  1G44,  in  terms  of  the  Solemn  League 
and  Covenant.  The  latter  individual  sold,  in  1647,  the  original  property  of 
his  family,  to  the  ancestor  of  the  Clerks,  baronets,  who  have  since  possessed  it, 
and  purchased,  instead,  the  smaller  adjacent  estate  of  Newhall,  to  which  he 
afterwards  added  by  marriage,  that  of  Romanno  in  Peeblesshire.  The  subject 
of  the  present  memoir,  after  being  educated  to  the  medical  profession  and 
travelling,  as  would  appear,  on  the  continent,  settled  at  no  advanced  period  of 
life  on  these  patrimonial  estates,  where  for  some  years  he  devoted  himself  with 
warm  filial  affection  to  the  care  of  his  aged  parent.  The  elder  gentleman  died 
at  an  advanced  age,  after  having  seen  five  kings  of  Scotland,  and  been  contem- 
poraneous with  four  revolutions  in  the  state  religion ;  which  would  seem  to 
indicate  that  he  survived  the  year  1692,  the  date  of  the  last  establishment  of 
presbytery.  The  subject  of  this  memoir  then  acceded  to  the  possession  of  New- 
hall and  Romanno,  continuing,  however,  to  practise  as  a  physician,  in  whicli 
profession  he  seems  to  have  enjoyed  a  high  reputation.  Dr  Pennecuik  was 
one  of  a  small  knot  of  Scottish  gentlemen  who  cultivated  letters  and  science  at  a 
time  of  comparative  darkness  in  this  country,  the  latter  end  of  the  seventeenth 
and  beginning  of  the  eighteenth  centuries.  His  literary  eftbrts  were  chiefly 
confined  to  facetious  poetry,  for  which  he  seems  to  have  found  models  in  Butler 


122  WILLIAM   PERRY. 


and  Dryden,  and  in  the  homely  strains  of  the  native  muse.  His  poems  refer 
mostly  to  local  characters  and  affairs,  and  are  now  only  to  be  valued  for  the 
vestiges  of  contemporary  manners  which  are  to  be  traced  in  them,  but  which  are 
not  always  remarkable  for  their  good  taste  and  purity.  The  presbytery  meet- 
ings of  a  moderate  district,  with  their  convivial  accompaniments,  occasionally 
provoked  the  satire  of  his  pen.  The  following  are  almost  the  only  verses  de- 
serving to  be  remembered:-— 

INSCniPTION  FOE  MY   CLOSET. 

Are  not  the  ravens  fed,  great  God,  by  thee? 
And  wilt  thou  clothe  the  lilies,  and  not  me? 
I'll  ne'er  distrust  my  God  for  clothes  nor  breid. 
Whilst  lilies  fljurish,  and  the  rave.i's  fed. 

Dr  Pennecuik  has  less  credit  for  his  poetry  than  for  his  devotion  to  botanical 
pursuits,  as  science  was  then  even  more  rare  than  literature.  For  this  study  ho 
enjoyed  some  advantages  in  the  periiiatetic  nature  of  his  life  as  a  country  physi- 
cian, and  in  a  correspondence  which  he  carried  on  with  Mr  James  Sutherland, 
the  superintendent  of  the  first  botanic  garden  in  Edinburgh.  In  1715,  he  was 
induced  to  give  the  result  of  his  literary  and  scientific  labours  to  the  world,  in 
a  small  quarto  volume,  containing  a  description  of  Tweeddale,  and  his  miscellaneous 
poems;  the  botany  of  the  county  being  a  prominent  department  of  the  volume. 
About  a  century  afterwai'ds  this  production  was  reprinted  by  the  late  Mr  Con- 
stable. Dr  Pennecuik  is  not  only  meritorious  as  himself  a  cultivator  of  letters, 
but  as  an  encourager  of  the  same  pursuits  in  others.  He  was  one  of  the  literary 
gentlemen  to  whom  Ramsay  so  frequently  expresses  his  obligations,  and  not  im- 
probably communicated  the  incidents  upon  which  that  poet  founded  his  "  Gentle 
Shepherd,"  the  scene  of  which  pastoral  is,  almost  beyond  question,  the  estate  of 
Newhall,  which,  however,  through  the  extravagance  of  a  son-in-law  of  Dr  Penne- 
cuik, had  then  passed  into  a  different  family.  The  subject  of  this  memoir  died 
in  1722. 

Another  writer  of  Scottish  verses,  named  Alexander  Pennecuik,  flourished  in 
the  earlier  part  of  the  eighteenth  century.  He  was  a  burgess  of  Edinburgh ;  the 
author  of  "  Streams  from  Helicon,"  published  in  1720,  and  "Flowers  from  Par- 
nassus," in  1726.  He  wrote  also  an  historical  account  of  "  The  Blue  Blanket, 
or  Craftsman's  Banner ;"  and  shortly  before  his  death,  commenced  a  periodical, 
under  the  title  of  "Entertainment  for  the  Curious."  la  his  verses  he  imitated 
Allan  Ramsay.  Several  of  his  poems  display  considerable  talent  for  humour. 
His  life  was  dissipated,  and  his  death  miserable. 

PERRY,  William,  an  eminent  journalist,  was  born  in  Aberdeen,  on  the  30th 
of  October,  1756.  He  received  the  rudiments  of  his  education  at  the  school 
of  .Garioch,  and  was  afterwards  removed  to  the  high  school  of  Aberdeen. 
Having  gone  through  the  usual  course  of  learning  at  this  seminary,  with  much 
credit  to  himself  and  satisfaction  to  his  tcachei-s,  he  entered  Marischal  college 
in  1771,  and  was  afterwards,  on  completing  his  curriculum  at  the  university, 
placed  under  Dr  Arthur  Dingwall  Fordyce,  to  qualify  him  for  the  profession  of 
the  law,  a  profession  to  which  ho  originally  intended  to  devote  himself.  The 
misfortunes  of  his  father,  however,  who  was  an  eminent  house-builder  in  Aber- 
deen, and  who  had  about  this  period  entered  into  some  ruinous  speculations, 
compelled  him  suddenly  to  abandon  his  legal  studies,  and  to  resign  all  idea  of 
adopting  the  law  as  a  profession.  In  these  unfortunate  circumstances,  young 
Perry  went  to  Edinburgh,  in  1774,  with  the  humble  hope  of  procuring  em- 


WILLIAM  PERRY.  123 


ployment  as  a  clerk  in  some  writer's  chambers.  Even  this,  hoHOTer,  he  could 
not  obtain ;  and,  after  hanging  about  the  city  for  many  Aveeks,  making  daily, 
but  ineffectual  efforts  to  get  into  a  way  of  earning  a  subsistence,  he  came  to 
the  resolution  of  trying  his  fortune  in  England.  With  this  view,  he  proceeded 
to  Manchester,  where  he  succeeded  in  obtaining  a  situation  in  the  counting- 
house  of  a  3Ir  Dinwiddle,  a  respectable  manufacturer,  in  which  he  remained 
for  two  years.  During  his  stay  in  3Ianchester,  JMr  Perry,  who  was  yet  only 
in  the  nineteenth  year  of  his  age,  attracted  the  notice,  and  procured  the  friend- 
ship  and  patronage,  of  several  of  the  principal  gentlemen  in  the  town,  by  the 
singular  talents  he  displayed  in  a  debating  society,  which  they  had  eslablished 
for  the  discussion  of  moral  and  philosophical  subjects.  This  favourable  opinion 
of  the  youthful  orator's  abilities  was  still  further  increased,  by  his  producing 
several  literary  essays  of  gi-eat  merit.  ♦ 

Encouraged  by  this  success,  Mr  Perry  determined  to  seek  a  wider  field  for 
the  exercise  of  his  talents ;  and  with  this  view  set  out  for  London,  in  the  be- 
ginning of  the  year  1777,  carrying  with  him  a  number  of  letters  of  introduc- 
tion and  recommendations  from  his  friends  in  3Ianchester  to  influential  in- 
dividuals in  the  metropolis.  For  some  time,  however,  these  were  unavail- 
ing. He  could  find  no  employment ;  and  he  seemed  as  hopelessly  situated  now 
in  the  English,  as  he  had  been  in  the  Scottish  capital  two  years  before.  But 
the  occurrence  of  a  circumstance,  not  uninteresting  in  the  memoirs  of  a  literary 
man,  who  fought  his  way  to  fame  and  fortune  by  the  mere  force  of  his  talents, 
at  length  procured  him  at  once  the  employment  which  he  sought,  and  placed 
him  on  the  path  to  that  eminence  which  he  afterwards  attained. 

While  waiting  in  London  for  some  situation  presenting  itself,  Mr  Perry 
amused  himself  by  writing  fugitive  verses  and  short  essays  for  a  journal,  called 
the  "  General  Advertiser."  These  he  dropped  into  the  letter-box  of  that  paper, 
as  the  casual  contributions  of  an  anonymous  correspondent,  and  they  were  of  such 
merit  as  to  procure  immediate  insertion.  It  happened  that  one  of  the  parties 
to  whom  he  had  a  letter  of  recommendation,  namely,  Messrs  Richardson  and 
Urquhart,  were  part  proprietors  of  the  Advertiser,  and  on  these  gentlemen  Mv 
Perry  was  in  the  habit  of  calling  daily,  to  inquire  Avhether  any  situation  had  yet 
offered  for  him.  On  entering  their  shop  one  day  to  make  the  usual  inquiry, 
Mr  Perry  found  Mr  Urquhart  earnestly  engaged  in  reading  an  article  in 
the  Advertiser,  and  evidently  with  great  satisfaction.  When  he  had  finished, 
the  former  put  the  now  almost  hopeless  question.  Whether  any  situation  had 
yet  presented  itself?  and  it  was  answered  in  the  usual  negative  ;  "  but,'* 
added  Mr  L'rquhart,  "  if  you  could  write  such  articles  as  this,"  pointing  to  that 
which  he  had  just  been  reading,  "  you  would  find  immediate  employment."  Mr 
Perry  glanced  at  the  article  which  had  so  strongly  attracted  the  attention  of  his 
friend,  and  discovered  that  it  Avas  one  of  his  own.  He  instantly  communicated 
the  information  to  Mr  Urquhart ;  and  at  the  same  time  pulled  from  his  pocket 
another  article  in  manuscript,  which  he  had  intended  to  put  into  the  box, 
IS  usual,  before  returning  home.  Pleased  with  the  discovei*y,  Mr  Urquhart 
immediately  said  tl]at  he  would  propose  him  as  a  stipendiary  writer  for  the 
paper,  at  a  meeting  of  the  proprietors,  which  was  to  take  place  that  very  even- 
ing. The  result  was,  that  on  the  next  day  he  was  employed  at  the  rate  of  a 
guinea  a-week,  with  an  additional  half  guinea  for  assistance  to  the  "  London 
£vening  Post,"  printed  by  the  same  person. 

On  receiving  these  appointments,  Mr  Perry  devoted  himself  writh  great  assi- 
duity to  the  discharge  of  their  duties,  and  made  efforts  before  unknown  in  the 
newspaper  establisluiients  of  London.  On  the  memorable  trials  of  admirals 
Keppel  and  Palliser,  he,  by  his  own  individual  exertions,  transmitted   daily 


124:  JOHN  PINKERTON. 


from  Portsmouth  eight  cohimns  of  a  report  of  proceedings  taken  in  court,  an 
achievement  which  had  the  effect  of  adding  several  thousands  to  the  daily  im- 
pression of  the  paper.  Even  while  thus  laboriously  engaged,  Mr  Perry  wrote 
and  published  several  political  pamphlets  and  poems  on  the  leading  topics  of 
the  day,  all  possessed  of  much  merit,  though  of  only  transient  interest. 

In  1782,  Mr  Perry  commenced  a  periodical  publication,  entitled  "The 
European  Magazine."  This  work,  which  was  on  a  plan  then  new,  comprising 
a  miscellany  on  popular  subjects  and  reviews  of  new  books,  appeared  monthly, 
and  from  the  ability  with  which  it  was  conducted,  added  greatly  to  the  reputa- 
tion and  popularity  of  its  editor.  Having  conducted  this  journal  for  twelve 
months,  Mr  Perry  was,  at  the  end  of  that  period,  chosen  by  the  proprietors  of 
the  Gazetteer  to  be  editor  of  that  paper,  in  which  shares  were  held  by  some  of 
the  principal  booksellers  in  London,  at  a  salary  of  four  guineas  per  week  ;  but 
under  an  express  condition,  made  by  himself,  that  he  should  be  in  no  way 
constrained  in  his  political  opinions  and  sentiments,  which  were  those  of  Mr  Fox, 
of  whom  he  was  a  devoted  admirer.  While  acting  as  editor  of  the  Gazetteer, 
Mr  Perry  effected  a  great  improvement  in  the  reporting  department,  by  em- 
ploying a  series  of  reporters  who  should  relieve  each  other  by  turns,  and  thus 
supply  a  constant  and  uninterrupted  succession  of  matter.  By  this  means  ho 
was  enabled  to  give  in  the  morning  all  the  debates  which  had  taken  place  on 
the  preceding  night,  a  point  on  which  his  predecessor  in  the  editorship  of  the 
Gazetteer  had  frequently  been  in  arrears  for  months,  and  in  every  case  for 
several  weeks. 

One  of  Mr  Perry's  favourite  recreations  was  that  of  attending  and  taking 
part  in  the  discussions  of  debating  societies.  In  these  humble,  but  not 
inefficient  schools  of  oratory,  he  always  took  a  warm  and  active  interest,  and 
himself  acquired  a  habit  of  speaking  with  singular  fluency  and  force  ;  a  talent 
which  procured  him  the  notice  of  Pitt,  who,  then  a  very  young  man,  was  in  the 
practice  of  frequenting  a  society  in  which  Mr  Perry  was  a  very  frequent  speaker, 
and  who  is  said  to  have  been  so, impressed  with  his  abilities  as  an  orator,  as  to 
have  had  an  offer  of  a  seat  in  parliament  conveyed  to  him,  after  he  had  himself 
attained  the  dignity  of  chancellor  of  the  exchequer.  A  similar  offer  was  after- 
wards made  to  Mr  Perry  by  lord  Shelburne;  but  his  political  principles,  from 
which  no  temptation  could  divert  him,  prevented  his  accepting  either  of  these 
flattering  propositions. 

3Ir  Perry  edited  for  several  years  Debrett's  Parliamentary  Debates,  and  af- 
terwards, in  conjunction  with  a  Mr  Gray,  bought  the  Morning  Chronicle  from 
Mr  Woodfall,  a  paper  which  he  continued  to  conduct  with  great  ability  and  in- 
dependence of  spirit  and  principle  till  his  death,  which  took  place  at  Brighton, 
after  a  painful  and  protracted  illness,  on  the  Gth  December,  1821,  in  the  sixty- 
fifth  year  of  his  age. 

PINKERTON,  John-,  a  voluminous  historian  and  critic,  was  born  at  Edinburgh 
on  the  17th  February,  1758.'  He  was  the  youngest  of  three  sons  of  James 
Pinkerton,  who  had,  in  Somersetshire,  acquired  an  independence  as  a  dealer  in 
hair,  and  returned  to  his  native  country,  Scotland,  where  he  married  a  widow 
whose  maiden  name  was  Heron.  The  opening  of  young  Pinkerton's  intellect, 
fell  to  the  charge  of  an  old  woman  acting  as  schoolmistress  of  a  village 
near  Edinburgh,  and  he  was  afterwards  removed  to  the  grammar  school  of 
Lanark.  At  school  he  is  said  to  have  shown,  in  apathy  and  abstinence  from  the 
usual  boyish  gratifications,  the  acidity  of  disposition  for  which  he  was  afterwards 
more  particularly  distinguished.  Hypochondria,  inherited  from  his  father,  is 
believed  to  have  been  the  primary  cause  of  the  characteristic.  He  is  said  to 
'  Nichols'  Lit.  Illustrations,  v.  666. 


JOHN  PINKERTON.  125 


have  publicly  distinguished  himself  at  school  by  his  early  classical  acquii-einents, 
having,  as  an  exercise,  translated  a  portion  of  Livy,  which  his  preceptor,  on  a 
comparison,  decided  to  be  superior  to  the  same  passage  as  translated  in  Hooker's 
Roman  History.  After  having  remained  at  school  for  six  years,  he  returned  to 
Edinburgh.  The  dislike  of  his  father  to  a  university  education  seems  to  have 
for  some  time  after  this  period  subjected  him  to  a  sort  of  half  literary  imprison- 
ment, in  which,  by  alternate  fits,  he  devoted  his  whole  time  to  French,  the  clas- 
sics, and  mathematics.  Intended  for  the  legal  profession,  he  was  ajiprenticed  to 
3Ir  Aytoun,  an  eminent  writer  to  the  signet,  under  whose  direction  he  remained 
for  the  usual  period  of  five  years.  Apparently  during  his  apprenticeship,  in 
1776,  he  published  an  "  Ode  to  Craigmillar  Castle,"  dedicated  to  Dr  Beattie. 
The  professor  seems  to  have  given  the  young  poet  as  little  encouragement  as  a 
dedicatee  could  in  politeness  restrict  himself  to.  "  There  are  many  good  lines," 
he  says,  "  in  your  poem ;  but  when  you  have  kept  it  by  ycu  a  week  or  two,  I 
fancy  you  will  not  think  it  correct  enough  as  yet  to  appear  in  public."^  But 
Pinkerton  had  a  mind  too  roughly  cast  for  poetry,  and  it  was  only  when  his 
imitations  were  mistaken  for  the  rudeness  of  antiquity  that  his  verses  were  at  all 
admired.  After  1780,  when  his  father  died,  he  visited  London,  and  having 
previously  contracted  a  slight  bibliomania,  the  extent  and  variety  of  the  book- 
sellers' catalogues  are  said  to  have  proved  a  motive  for  his  taking  up  his  residence 
in  the  metropolis  as  a  literary  man,  and  eschewing  Scotch  law.  In  1781,  he 
published  in  octavo  some  trifles,  which  it  pleased  him  in  his  independence  of  or- 
thography to  term  "  Rimes."  This  work  contained  a  second  part  to  Hardy- 
knute,  which  he  represented  as  "  now  first  published  complete."  If  Pinker- 
ton  thought  that  his  imposition  was  to  get  currency  by  being  added  to  a  ballad 
really  ancient,  the  circumstance  would  show  the  extreme  ignorance  of  the  period 
as  to  the  literatui-e  of  our  ancestors  ;  for  it  is  now  needless  to  remark  how  un- 
like this  composition  is  to  the  genuine  productions  of  the  elder  muse.  The 
imposition  in  this  case  was  not  entirely  successful.  "  I  read  over  again," 
says  3Ir  Porden  the  architect,  "  the  second  part  of  Hardyknute ;  and  I 
must  inform  you  that  I  have  made  up  my  mind  with  respect  to  the  author  of  it 
I  know  not  whether  you  will  value  a  compliment  paid  to  your  genius  at  the 
expense  of  your  imitative  art,  but  certainly  that  genius  sheds  a  splendour  on  some 
passages  which  betrays  you."^  In  1782  appeared  a  second  edition  of  the 
"  Rimes,"  and  at  the  same  time  he  published  two  separate  volumes  of  poetry 
which  have  dropped  into  oblivion.  In  the  ensuing  year  he  published  in  two 
volumes  his  "  Select  Scottish  Ballads,"  a  work  rather  more  esteemed.  At  this 
period  he  turned  the  current  of  his  laborious  intellect  to  numismatics.  Early 
in  life  a  latent  passion  for  the  collection  of  antiquities  had  been  accidentally  (as 
is  generally  the  case  with  antiquaries,)  called  into  action.  He  drew  up  a  manual 
and  table  of  coins  for  his  own  use,  which  afterwards  expanded  itself  into  the 
celebrated  "  Essay  on  Bledals,"  published  in  two  volumes,  8vo,  in  1784;  and 
published  a  third  time  in  180S.  These  volumes  form  a  manual  which  is  con- 
tinually in  the  hands  of  numismatists.  In  1785,  he  published,  under  the  as- 
sumed name  of  Robert  Heron,  a  work  termed  "  Letters  of  Literature  ;"  the  sin- 
gularity of  this  woi'k  suggests  that  its  author  was  guilty  of  affecting  strangeness, 
for  the  purpose  of  attracting  notice.  Among  the  most  prominent  subjects,  was 
a  ne»v  system  of  orthography,  or,  more  properly,  of  grammar,  which,  by  various 
transmutations,  such  as  classical  terminations,  (e.  g.  the  use  of  a  instead  of  «  in 
forming  plurals,)  was  to  reduce  the  hax'shness  of  the  Englisli  language.  The  at- 
tempt on  the  public  sense  was  not  in  all  respects  efiective,  but  the  odium 
occasioned  very  natui-ally  fell  on  poor  Robert  Heron,  who  was  just  then  strug- 
spinkerton's  Correspondence,  i.  2.  3  Pinkerton's  Corre=icndence  i.  25. 


126  JOHN  PINKERTON. 


gling  into  being  as  a  literary  man.  The  work,  however,  procured  to  Pinkerton  aa 
introduction  to  Horace  Walpole,  who  made  him  acquainted  with  Gibbon.  TI19 
proud  spirit  of  that  great  historian  seems  to  have  found  something  congenial  in 
the  restless  and  acrid  Pinkerton.  He  recommended  him  to  the  booksellers 
as  a  person  fit  to  translate  tha  "  English  Monkish  Historians."  In  an  address 
which  Gibbon  had  intended  to  prefix  to  the  work,  his  protege  was  almost  extra- 
vagantly lauded :  but  the  plan  as  then  designed  was  never  put  in  practice.  Tlie 
friendsliip  of  Walpole  continued  till  his  death  ;  and,  light  and  versatile  in  his 
own  acquirements,  he  seems  to  have  looked  on  the  dogged  perseverance,  and 
continually  accumulating  knowledge  of  Pinkerton  with  some  respect.  After 
Walpole 's  death,  Pinkerton  sold  a  collection  of  his  "  Ana"  to  the  proprietors 
of  the  Monthly  Magazine,  and  they  were  afterwards  published  under  the  title 
"  Walpoliana."  In  1786,  Pinkerton  published  "  Ancient  Scottish  Poems, 
never  before  in  print,  but  now  published  from  the  manuscript  collections  of  Sir 
Richard  Maitland  of  Lethington,  Knight,  Lord  Privy  Seal  of  Scotland ;  com- 
prising pieces  written  from  about  1420  till  1586  :  with  large  Notes  and  a  Glos- 
sary." Pinkerton  maintained  that  he  had  found  the  manuscript  in  the  Pepysian 
library  at  Cambridge,  and  in  his  correspondence  he  sometimes  alludes  to  the 
circumstances  with  very  admirable  coolness.  The  forgery  was  one  of  the  most 
audacious  recorded  in  the  annals  of  transcribing.  Time,  place,  and  circum- 
stances were  all  minutely  stated — there  was  no  mystery.  Among  Pinkerton's 
opinions  as  to  character,  that  of  literary  impostor  was  of  the  most  degraded  or- 
der. The  whole  force  of  his  nature  and  power  over  the  language  were  era- 
ployed  to  describe  his  loathing  and  contempt.  On  Macpherson,  who  execute:! 
the  task  with  more  genius,  but  certainly  much  less  historical  knowledge  than 
himself,  he  poured  the  choice  of  his  denunciations.  In  1787,  he  published 
**  The  Treasury  of  Wit ;  being  a  Methodical  Selection  of  about  Twelve  Hundred 
of  the  best  Apothegms  and  Jests,  from  books  in  several  languages."  This  work 
is  not  one  of  those  which  may  be  presumed  to  have  been  consonant  with  Pink- 
erton's pursuits,  and  it  probably  owed  its  existence  to  a  favourable  engagement 
with  a  bookseller;  but  even  in  a  book  of  anecdotes  this  author  could  not  with- 
stand the  desire  of  being  distinct  from  other  men,  and  took  the  opportunity  of 
making  four  divisions  of  wit  and  humour,  viz.,  "  serious  wit,  comic  wit ;  serious 
humour,  and  comic  humour."  During  the  same  year,  he  produced  "  A  Disserta- 
tion on  the  Origin  and  Progress  of  the  Scythians  or  Goths,  being  an  Introduc- 
tion to  the  Ancient  and  Modern  History  of  Europe."  In  the  compilation  of  this 
small  treatise,  he  boasts  of  having  employed  himself  eight  hours  per  day  for  one 
year  in  the  examination  of  classical  authors  :  the  period  occupied  in  consulting 
those  of  the  Gothic  period,  which  he  found  to  bo  "  a  mass  of  superfluity  and 
error,"  he  does  not  venture  to  limit  This  production  was  suggested  by  his 
reading  for  his  celebrated  account  of  the  early  "  History  of  Scotland,"  and  was 
devised  for  the  laudable  purpose  of  proving  that  the  Celtic  race  was  more  de- 
graded than  the  Gothic,  as  a  preparatory  position  to  the  ai'guments  maintained 
in  that  work.  He  accordingly  shows  the  Greeks  to  have  been  a  Gothic  race,  in 
as  far  as  they  were  descended  from  the  Pelasgi,  who  were  Scythians  or  Goths 
— a  theory  which,  by  the  way,  in  the  secondary  application,  lias  received  the 
sanction  of  late  etymologists  and  ethnologists  of  eminence — and,  by  a  similar 
progress,  he  showed  the  Gothic  origin  of  the  Romans.  Distinct  from  the  general 
account  of  the  progress  of  the  Goths,  which  is  certainly  full  of  information  and 
acutencss,  he  had  a  particular  object  to  gain,  in  fixing  on  an  island  formed  by 
the  influx  of  the  Danube  in  the  Euxine  sea,  fortunately  termed  by  the  ancient 
geo<n^phers  "  Peuke,"  and  inhabited  by  Peukini.  From  this  little  island,  of 
the  importance  of  which  he  produces  many  highly  respectable  certificates,  he 


JOHN  PINKEETON.  12/ 


brings  the  Peukiiii  along  the  Danube,  whence,  passing  to  the  Baltic,  they  after- 
wards appear  in  Scotland  ns  the  Plots  or  Pechts.  At  this  period  Pinkerton 
appears  to  have  been  an  unsuccessful  candidate  for  a  situation  in  the  British 
museum.  Horace  Walpole  says  to  hiui  in  a  letter  of  the  iTth  February,  1788, 
"  I  wrote  a  letter  to  Sir  Joseph  Banks,  soliciting  his  interest  for  you,  should 
there  be  a  vacancy  at  the  museum.  He  answers,  (and  I  will  show  you  his  an- 
swer when  I  see  you,)  that  he  is  positively  engaged  to  3Ir  Thorkelin,  should 
Mr  Planta  resign ;  but  that,  the  chancellor  having  refused  to  sign  the  permission 
for  the  latter,  who  will  not  go  abroad  without  that  indulgence,  no  vacancy  is 
likely  to  happen  from  that  event"'  In  1789,  he  edited  from  early  Morks, 
printed  and  manuscript,  "  Vitae  AntiquaB  Sanctorum  Scotorura."  This  work, 
of  which  only  one  hundred  copies  were  printed,  is  now  scarce  and  expensive ; 
but  at  its  appearance  it  seems  to  have  met  little  encouragement  from  the  author's 
countrymen.  "  Mr  Cardonnel,''  he  says  in  a  letter  to  the  earl  of  Buchan, 
"  some  months  since  informed  me  that,  upon  calling  at  Creech's  shop,  he  learned 
there  were  about  a  dozen  subscribers  to  the  *  Fita  Sanctorum  Scotics.^  Upon 
desiring  my  factor,  Mv  Buchan,  since  to  call  on  Mr  Creech,  and  learn  the  names, 
Creech  informed  him  *  there  were  about  two  or  three;  and  the  subscription 
paper  was  lost,  so  he  could  not  tell  the  names.'"  During  the  same  year, 
Pinkerton  published  his  edition  of  "  Barbour's  Bruce."  Although  the  most 
correct  edition  up  to  the  pei'iod  of  Dr  Jamieson's  publication,  it  was  far  from 
accurate,  and  gave  the  editor  ample  opportunity  of  vituperating  those  friends 
who  incautiously  undertook  to  point  out  its  mistakes.  In  1790,  appeared 
"  The  Medallic  History  of  England  to  the  Revolution,"  in  4to,  with  forty  plates ; 
and,  at  the  same  time,  the  "  Inquiry  into  the  History  of  Scotland,  preceding  the 
reign  of  Malcolm  III,,  or  1056  :  including  the  authentic  history  of  that  period." 
This  work  contained  a  sort  of  concentration  of  all  his  peculiarities.  It  may  be 
said  to  have  been  the  first  work  which  thoroughly  sifted  the  great  "  Pictish  ques- 
tion ;"  the  question  Avhether  the  Picts  Avere  Goths  or  Celts.  In  pui-suance  of  his 
line  of  argument  in  the  progress  of  the  Goths,  he  takes  up  the  latter  position ; 
and  in  the  minds  of  those  who  have  no  opinions  of  their  own,  and  have  con- 
sulted no  other  authorities,  by  means  of  his  confidence  and  his  hard  terms,  he  may 
be  said  to  have  taken  the  point  by  storm.  But  he  went  farther  in  his  proofs. 
It  was  an  undoubted  fact  that  the  Scots  were  Celts,  and  all  old  authorities  bore 
that  the  Scots  had  subdued  the  Picts.  This  was  something  which  Pinkerton  could 
not  patiently  contemplate  ;  but  he  found  no  readier  means  of  overcoming  it  than 
by  proving  that  the  Picts  conquered  the  Scots  ;  a  doctrine  founded  chiefly  on 
the  natural  falsehood  of  the  Celtic  race,  which  pi-ompted  a  man  of  sense,  when- 
ever he  heard  anything  asserted  by  a  Celt,  to  believe  that  the  converse  was  the 
truth.  He  amused  himself  with  picking  out  terms  of  vituperation  for  the  IMac- 
phersons  ;  "  of  the  doctor,"  he  said,  "  his  etymological  nonsense  he  assists  with 
gross  falsehoods,  and  pretends  to  skill  in  the  Celtic  without  quoting  a  single 
BIS. ;  in  short  he  deals  wholly  in  assertion  and  opinion  ;  and  it  is  clear  that  he 
had  not  even  an  idea  what  learning  and  science  are  :""'  of  the  translator  he  not 
less  politely  observes,  "  He  seems  resolved  to  set  every  law  of  common  science 
and  common  understanding  at  defiance."® 

His  numberless  observations  on  the  Celts,  are  thus  pithily  brought  to  a  focus : 
"  Being  mere  savages,  but  one  degree  above  brutes,  they  remain  still  in  much 
the  same  state  of  society  as  in  the  days  of  Julius  Caesar  ;  and  he  who  travels 
among  the  Scottish  Highlanders,  the  old  Welch,  or  wild  Irish,  may  see  at  once 
the  ancient  and  modern  state  of  women  among  the  Celts,  when  he  beholds  these 
savages  stretched  in  their  huts,  and  their  poor  women  toiling  like  beasts  of  bur- 
*  Correspondence,  i.  180.     lb.,  177.  »  Inquiry,  Introd,  63.  c  ib.,  64. 


128  DR.  ARCHIBALD  PITCAIRNE. 

den  for  their  unmanly  husbands."^  And  he  thus  draws  up  a  comparison  betwixt 
these  unfortunates  and  his  favourite  Goths.  **  The  Lowlanders  are  acute,  in- 
dustrious, sensible,  erect,  free  :  the  Highlanders,  indolent,  slavish,  strangers  to 
industry.  The  former,  in  short,  have  every  attribute  of  a  civilized  people  :  the 
latter  are  absolute  savages ;  and,  like  Indians  and  negroes,  avIU  ever  continue 
to  *  *  *  *  All  we  can  do  is  to  plant  colonies  among  them,  and,  by 
this  and  encouraging  their  emigration,  try  to  get  rid  of  the  breed. "^  Pinker- 
ton  proved,  indeed,  a  sore  visitation  to  the  Celts.  Moderate  men  had  no  ob- 
jections to  a  conflict  which  might,  at  least,  bring  amusement,  and  might  serve 
to  humble  the  pride,  by  displaying  the  ignorance  of  a  people,  who  seemed  to 
tike  an  unfortunate  pride  in  the  continuance  of  barbarism.  Few  took  their 
side  ;  and  Pinkerton  had  many  triumphs  over  their  native  champions,  in  the 
recurrence  of  that  ignorance  of  their  own  history,  which  he  maintained  to  be 
their  characteristic.  His  knowledge  of  history  effectually  foiled  any  claim  pui 
in  for  Celtic  merit  He  would  call  on  the  company  to  name  a  Celt  of  eminence. 
"  If  one  mentioned  Burke,"  observes  a  late  writer  :  "  What,"  said  he,  "  a  de- 
scendant of  De  Bourg?  Class  that  high  Norraan  chivalry  with  the  rif-raf  of  O's 
and  Blac's?  Show  me  a  gi-eat  0',  and  I  am  done."  He  delighted  to  prove 
that  the  Scottish  Highlanders  had  never  had  but  a  few  great  captains,  such  as 
Montrose,  Dundee,  the  first  duke  of  Argyle, — and  these  were  all  Goths, — the 
two  first  Lowlanders ;  the  last  a  Norman,  a   De  Campo  BelloJ'^^ 

In  1792,  Pinkerton  edited  "Scottish  Poems,  reprinted  from  scarce  edi- 
tions," in  three  volumes  octavo.  In  1796,  appeared  his  "History  of  Scot- 
land, during  the  Reign  of  the  Stuarts,"  in  two  volumes  quarto,  one  of  the 
most  unexceptionable  of  his  historical  works,  and  still  the  most  laboured  and 
accurate  complete  history  of  the  period.  In  1798,  he  married  Miss  Burgess  of 
Odihara,  Hants,  sister  to  Thomas,  bishop  of  Salisbury,  The  union  was  un- 
happy, and  the  parties  separated.  In  1795  and  1797,  he  bestowed  some  pains 
in  preparing  lives  of  Scotsmen,  for  the  *'  Iconographia  Scotica,"  two  volumes 
octavo ;  but  the  information  in  the  work  is  very  meagre,  and  the  plates 
are  wretchedly  engraved.  In  1 802,  he  published,  in  two  volumes  quarto, 
"  Modern  Geography,  digested  on  a  new  Plan  ;"  a  work  somewhat  hastily  got 
up,  and  deficient  in  some  of  its  parts,  but  still  one  of  the  most  compendious  and 
useful  geographical  works  of  the  period.  A  second  edition  was  published  in 
1806,  in  three  volumes,  and  an  abridgment,  in  one  octavo,  is  well  known.  At 
the  commencement  of  the  century,  he  visited  Paris;  and,  in  1806,  published 
"Recollections  of  Paris  in  the  Years  1802-3-4  and  6,"  two  volumes  octavo. 
For  some  years  after  this  period,  he  found  employment  in  editing  "  A  General 
Collection  of  Voyages  and  Travels,"  extending  to  nineteen  volumes  quarto,  and 
a  **  New  Modern  Atlas,"  in  parts.  For  a  short  period,  he  also  edited  the 
"  Critical  Review."  His  last  work  was  on  a  subject  foreign  to  his  previous 
studies,  but  which  appears  from  his  correspondence  to  have  occupied  much  of 
his  attention  during  his  old  age  :  it  was  entitled,  "  Petralogy,  or  a  Treatise  on 
Rocks,"  two  volumes  octavo,  1811.  In  his  latter  yeai-s,  he  resided  in  Paris, 
wliere  he  died,  in  indigent  circumstances,  on  the  10th  March,  1825,  at  the  age 
of  sixty-seven.  He  is  described  to  have  been  "  a  very  little  and  very  thin 
old  man,  with  a  very  small,  shai-p,  yellow  face,  thickly  pitted  by  the  smallpox, 
and  decked  with  a  pair  of  green  spectacles."'" 

PITCAIRNE,  (Db)  Archib.ild,  an  eminent  physician  of  the  seventeenth  century, 

was  born   at  Edinburgh  on   the  25th  December,   1652.      His  father,  who  was 

descended  of  an  ancient  family  in  Fife,  was  an  eminent  merchant,  and  one  of 

the  magistrates  of  the  city.      His  mother,  whose  name  was  Sydserf,  was  a  niem- 

»  lb.  i.  268.  8  lb,  i.  340,  »  Nichols'  lUustralions,  v.  669.  "  lb,  671. 


DR.  ARCHIBALD   PITCAIRNE.  129 

ber  of  a  highly  respectable  family  ia  East  Lothian.  Dr  Piteairne  received  the 
earlier  part  of  his  education  at  Dalkeith.  He  was  afterwards  removed  to  the 
university  of  Edinburgh,  where  he  made  great  progress  in  classical  learning, 
and  completed  a  regulai?  course  of  philosophy.  His  subsequent  education  ranged 
over  the  extensive  field  of  the  three  professions  pre-eminently  styled  learned. 
At  the  request  of  his  friends,  who  were  desirous  that  he  should  devote  himself 
to  the  church,  he  first  entered  on  the  study  of  theology,  but  finding  neither  this 
study,  nor  the  profession  to  which  it  led,  at  all  suitable  to  his  temper,  disposition, 
or  habits,  he  abandoned  it,  and  turned  his  attention  to  law. 

lo  this  pursuit,  which  he  found  more  congenial  than  the  other,  and  in  which 
he  became  fired  with  an  ambition  to  excel,  he  devoted  himself  Avith  an  ardour 
and  intensity  of  application,  that  induced  symptoms  of  approaching  consump- 
tion. To  arrest  the  progress  of  this  malady,  he  was  advised  by  his  physicians 
to  repair  to  the  south  of  France  for  the  benefit  of  the  milder  climate  of  that 
country.  By  the  time,  however,  that  Mr  Piteairne  reached  Paris  he  found  him- 
self so  much  better,  that  he  determined  on  remaining  in  that  city,  and  resum- 
ing his  legal  studies  there  ;  but  having  formed  an  acquaintance,  while  in  the 
French  capital,  with  some  agreeable  young  men  from  Scotland,  who  were  en- 
gaged in  the  study  of  medicine,  he  Avas  prevailed  upon  by  them  to  abandon  the 
law,  and  to  join  in  their  pursuits.  To  these  he  applied  accordingly  for  several 
months,  when  he  was  recalled  to  Edinburgh  by  his  father.  This  was  now  the 
third  profession  which  he  had  begun,  and  the  indecision  of  his  conduct  with 
regard  to  a  permanent  choice,  naturally  gave  much  uneasiness  to  his  friends, 
but  this  was  allayed  by  his  finally  declaring  for  physic,  and  applying  himself 
with  extraordinary  diligence  to  the  study  of  botany,  pharmacy,  and  materia 
medica.  He  afterwards  went  a  second  time  to  Paris  to  complete  his  studies, 
and  on  that  occasion  acquired  an  entire  and  profound  knowledge  of  medicine. 
Thus  prepared  he  returned  to  his  native  city,  where  he  practised  with  singular 
success  till  the  year  1692,  when  his  great  reputation,  which  was  now  diffused 
throughout  Europe,  and  which  had  been  not  a  little  increased  by  his  able 
treatise  regarding  Hervey's  discovery  of  the  circulation  of  the  blood,  entitled, 
"  Solutio  problemati  de  inventoribus,"  procured  him  an  invitation  from  Leyden 
to  accept  of  the  professorship  of  physic  in  the  celebrated  university  of  that  city, 
and  so  sensible  were  those  who  had  the  nomination  of  this  appointment,  of  the 
merits  of  Dr  Piteairne,  and  of  the  value  of  his  services,  that  the  invitation  was 
accompanied  by  the  offer  of  a  much  larger  salary  than  had  been  usually  at- 
tached to  the  office.  Dr  Piteairne  accepted  the  invitation,  but  remained  in 
Leyden  only  twelvemonths.  At  the  end  of  that  period  he  came  over  to  Edin. 
burgh  to  maiTy  a  daughter  of  Sir  Archibald  Stevenson,  an  eminent  physician 
in  the  latter  city,  to  Avhom  he  had  been  betrothed  before  leaving  Scotland,  and 
whom  it  was  his  intention  to  carry  along  with  him  to  Leyden ;  but  the  lady's 
friends  objected  to  her  going  abroad,  and  Dr  Piteairne  so  far  yielded  to  these 
objections,  as  to  resign  his  professorship,  and  reconcile  himself  to  the  resump- 
tion of  his  practice  as  a  physician  in  his  native  city.  Nor  had  he  any  reason 
to  regret  the  change  thus  in  a  manner  forced  upon  him,  for  he  soon  found  him- 
self in  possession  of  a  most  extensive  and  lucrative  business.  During  the  short 
time  he  was  at  Leyden,  Dr  Piteairne  chose  the  texts  of  his  medical  lectures  from 
the  writings  of  Bellini,  who,  in  return  for  this  flattering  compliment,  dedicated 
to  the  doctor  his  "  Opuscula." 

Dr  Pitcairne's  reputation  for  skill  in  his  profession  now  daily  ina-eased.  He 
was  consulted  by  patients  in  distant  parts  of  Scotland,  and  frequently  from 
England  and  Wales,  and  was  altogether  looked  upon  as  the  most  eminent  phy- 
Birian  of  his  time.     Nor  was  his  fame  as  a  scholar  behind  that  which  he  enjoy- 


i30  JOHN  PIAYFAIR. 

^ 


ed  as  a  medical  practitioner.  His  **  Solutio  problemati,"  &c.,  published  soon 
after  he  had  first  commenced  business  in  Edinburgh,  had  gained  him  mucli 
reputation  as  a  learned  man,  as  well  as  a  skilful  physician,  and  he  still  more 
strongly  established  his  claims  to  the  former  character  by  a  4to  work,  entitled, 
"  Archibald!  Pitcarnii  Dissertationes  Medicae,"  which  was  published  at  Rotter- 
dam in  1701,  and  dedicated  to  his  friend  Bellini.  Dr  Pitcairne  also  wrote  Latin 
poetry  with  very  considerable  elegance  and  taste,  although  Wodrow,  in  his 
Analecta,  speaks  of  him  in  this  capacity,  as  only  "  a  sort  of  a  poet."  But  he 
was  something  more  than  this,  and  had  not  the  subjects  of  his  muse  unfortu- 
nately been  all  of  but  transitory  interest,  and  therefore  now  nearly  wholly  un- 
intelligible, his  fame  as  a  Latin  poet  would  have  been  very  far  from  contempt- 
ible. Some  of  these  poems  were  published  in  1727,  by  Ruddiman,  in  order  to 
meet  a  charge  which  had  been  made  upon  Scotland,  that  it  was  deficient  in  this 
department  of  literature. 

Dr  Pitcaime's  chief  work  was  published  in  1718,  under  the  title  of  "Elementa 
Medicinse  Pbysico-Mathematica,"  consisting  of  his  lectures  at  Leyden.  He  was 
considered  to  be  the  first  physician  of  his  time.  His  library  is  said  to  have  been 
one  of  the  best  private  collections  of  that  time ;  it  was  purchased,  after  his 
death,  by  the  Czar  of  Russia.  In  addition  to  his  Latin  verses,  he  was  the  author 
of  a  comedy  called  "  The  Assembly,"  which  is  a  sarcastic  and  profane  produc- 
tion; also,  "Babell,  or  the  Assembly,  a  poem,  1692,"  both  being  intended  to 
turn  the  proceedings  of  the  General  Assembly  into  ridicule.  Dr  Pitcairne 
was  a  Jacobite,  and  an  Episcopalian ;  and  his  talent  for  satire  was  often  directed 
against  the  Presbyterians,  who  accused  him  of  being  an  atheist,  and  a  scoffer 
and  reviler  of  religion.  Wodrow  even  goes  the  length  of  retaliating  upon  him 
by  a  serious  charge  as  to  his  temperance.  An  atheistical  pamphlet  published 
in  1688,  entitled,  "  Epistola  Archimedis  ad  regem  Gelonera  Alba9  Grajcse, 
reperta  anno  verx  Christianje,"  was  ascribed  to  Pitcairne ;  and  when  the  Rev. 
Thomas  Haly burton  entered  upon  the  office  of  professor  of  divinity  in  the  uni- 
versity of  St  Andrews,  in  1710,  his  inaugural  discoui'se  was  a  refutation  of  the 
arguments  of  this  performance,  and  was  published  in  1714,  under  the  title  of 
"Natural  Religion  Insufficient,  and  Revealed  Necessary  to  Man's  Happiness." 
His  verses  wi-itten  on  Christmas  Day  have  been  referred  to  as  a  proof  of  Dr 
Pitcaime's  orthodoxy,  on  which  he  had  himself  thrown  a  doubt,  by  his  profane 
jesting  and  his  habitual  scoffing  at  religious  men ;  and  it  is  added,  on  the  autho- 
rity of  Dr  Drnmmond,  that,  during  his  last  illness,  he  evinced  just  apprehensions 
of  God  and  religion,  and  experienced  the  tranquillity  of  mind  which  can  arise 
from  no  other  source.  As  a  man  of  science,  he  was  far  in  advance  of  the  age 
in  w^hich  he  lived ;  and  the  zeal  with  which  he  propagated  Hervey's  beautiful 
discovery  of  the  circulation  of  the  blood,  is  a  proof  of  liberality  of  feeling  which 
was  by  no  means  common  at  that  period  among  medical  men,  by  whom  the 
doctrine  of  the  circulation  was  long  treated  as  a  heresy  in  science,  and  its  dis- 
coverer nearly  persecuted  out  of  the  profession.  That  his  disposition  was  gene- 
rous and  friendly  in  a  remarkable  degree,  is  beyond  doubt,  and  the  reader  may 
finda  striking  instance  of  it  in  the  life  of  Ruddiman. 

Dr  Pitcairne  died  in  Edinburgh  on  the  20th  of  October,  1713,  in  the  6l8t 
year  of  his  age,  and  was  interred  in  the  Greyfriars'  church-yard. 

PLAYFAIR,  JoiiN,  an  eminent  natural  philosopher  and  mathematician,  was 
the  eldest  son  of  James  Playfair,  minister  of  Benvie,  in  Forfarshire,  where  he 
was  born  on  the  10th  of  March,  1748.  lie  was  educated  at  home  until  he 
reached  the  age  of  fourteen,  when  he  was  sent  to  the  university  of  St  Andrews, 
where  it  was  intended  that  he  should  study  for  the  Scottish  church.  The  pre- 
cocity of  talent  exhibited  by  great  men,  generally  so  ill  authenticated,  has  been 


JOHN   PLAYFAIR.  131 


strikingly  rouched  by  two  remarkable  circumstances  in  the  early  history  of 
Playfair.  While  a  student  at  St  Andrews,  professor  Wilkie,  the  author  of  the 
"  Epigoniad,"  when  in  bad  health,  selected  him  to  deliver  lectures  on  natural 
philosophy  to  the  class;  and  in  the  year  176G,when  only  eighteen  years,  of 
age,  he  felt  himself  qualified  to  compete  as  a  candidate  for  the  chair  of  mathe- 
matics in  the  3Iarisclial  college  of  Aberdeen.  In  this,  his  confidence  in  his 
powers  was  justified  by  the  event.  Of  six  candidates,  two  only  excelled  him, 
— Dr  Trail,  who  was  appointed  to  tlie  chair,  and  Dr  Hamilton^  who  afterwards 
succeeded  to  it.^ 

In  1769,  having  finished  his  courses  at  the  university,  Mr  Playfair  lived  for 
some  time  in  Edinburgh,  in  the  enjoyment  of  the  very  select  literai-y  society  of 
the  period-  "  It  would  appear,"  says  his  biographer,^  "  from  letters  published 
in  the  'Life  of  the  late  Principal  Hill,'  that,  during  this  time,  Mr  Playfair  had 
twice  hopes  of  obtaining  a  permanent  situation.  The  nature  of  the  first,  which 
ofiered  itself  in  1769,  is  not  there  specified,  and  is  not  known  to  any  of  his  own 
family;  the  second,  was  the  professorship  of  natural  philosophy  in  the  univereity 
of  St  Andrews,  vacant  by  the  death  of  liis  friend  Dr  Wilkie,  which  took  place 
in  1772.  In  this,  which  he  earnestly  desired,  and  for  which  he  was  eminently 
qualified,  he  was  disappointed."  During  the  same  year,  his  father  died,  and  the 
care  of  his  mother,  and  of  the  education  of  his  father's  young  family,  rendered 
the  acquisition  of  some  permanent  means  of  livelihood  more  anxiously  desirable. 
He  was  immediately  nominated  by  lord  Gray  to  his  father's  livings  of  Liff  and 
Benvie  ;  but  the  right  of  presentation  being  disputed,  he  \vas  unable  to  enter 
on  possession,  until  August,  1773.  From  that  period,  his  time  was  occupied  in 
attending  to  the  duties  of  his  charge,  superintending  the  education  of  his 
brothers,  and  prosecuting  his  philosophical  studies.  In  1774,  he  made  an  ex- 
cursion to  Perthshire,  to  witness  the  experiments  of  Dr  Maskelyne,  the  astrono- 
mer royal,  to  illustrate  the  principles  of  gravitation,  from  the  efiect  of  moun- 
tains in  disturbing  the  plumb  line.  A  peiTnanent  friendship  was  at  that  time 
formed  between  the  two  philosophers.  "  I  met,"  says  Playfair,  in  his  Journal 
of  a  visit  to  London  in  1782,  "  with  a  very  cordial  reception  from  him  (Ur 
IMaskelyne),  and  found  that  an  acquaintance  contracted  among  wilds  and 
mountains  is  much  more  likely  to  be  durable  than  one  made  up  in  the  bustle  of 
a  great  city  :  nor  would  I,  by  living  in  London  for  many  years,  have  become  so 
well  acquainted  with  this  astronomer,  as  I  did  by  partaking  of  his  hardships 
and  labours  on  Schehallien  for  a  few  days." 

In  1779,  Playfair's  first  scientific  effort  was  given  to  the  public,  in  "An 
Essay  on  the  Arithmetic  of  Impossible  Quantities,"  published  in  the  sixty-eighth 
volume  of  the  Philosophical  Ti-ansactions.  In  1782,  an  advantageous  offer 
prompted  him  to  give  up  his  living,  and  become  tutor  to  Mr  Ferguson  of  Eaith 
and  his  brother  Sir  Ronald  Ferguson.  It  was  at  this  period  that  he  paid  the 
visit  to  London  in  which  he  met  Dr  Maskelyne.  By  that  gentleman  he  was 
introduced  to  some  literary  men,  and  to  institutions  of  literary  or  philosophical 
interest  Some  of  these  roused  the  calm  enthusiasm  for  philosophical  greatness 
which  was  one  of  the  principal  features  of  his  character.  "  This,"  he 
says,  "  was  the  first  time  that  I  had  seen  the  Observatory  of  Greenwich,  and  I 
entered  with  profound  reverence  into  that  temple  of  science,  where  Flarastead, 
and  Halley,  and  Bradley,  devoted  their  days  and  their  nights  to  the  contem- 
plation of  the  Heavens.     The  shades  of  these   ancient  sages  seemed  still  to 

1  Vide  Life  of  Robert  Hamilton  in  this  collection. 

8  His  nephew,  by  whom  a  Life  of  Mr  Plajfair  was  prtfixed  to  an  edition  of  his  works, 
published  in  182^ 


132  JOHN  PLAYFAIR, 


hover  round  their  former  tnansions,  inspiring  their  worthy  successor  with  the 
love  of  wisdom,  and  pointing  out  the  road  to  immortality." 

From  his  thirst  after  knowledge  being  untainted  by  political  or  local  preju- 
dices, Playfair  had  early  turned  himself  to  tho  important  discoveries  of  the 
continental  algebraists,  and  was  the  first  man  of  eminence  to  introduce  them  to 
British  notice.  He  perceived  the  prejudices  entertained  on  the  subject  in  Eng- 
land, and  probably  the  discovery  sharpened  his  appetite  for  a  subject  which  he 
found  was  almost  untouched.  Speaking  of  Dr  Maskelyne,  he  says,  "  Ke  is 
much  attached  to  the  study  of  geometry,  and  I  am  not  sure  that  he  is  very  deep- 
ly versed  in  the  late  discoveries  of  the  foreign  algebraists.  Indeed,  this  seems 
to  be  somewhat  the  case  with  all  the  English  mathematicians  :  they  despise  their 
brethren  on  the  continent,  and  think  that  everything  great  in  science  must  be 
for  ever  confined  to  the  country  that  produced  Sir  Isaac  Newton."  In  the  works 
of  an  eminent  natural  philosopher  one  may  search  long  before  he  will  find  any- 
thing which  shows  in  explicit  terms  the  exact  discipline  of  mind  or  system  of 
reasoning,  by  which  he  has  made  it  to  happen  that  all  he  has  said,  has  so  much 
the  appearance  of  being  truth  ;  but  a  petty  remark,  disconnected  with  the  ordi- 
nary pursuits  of  the  philosopher,  may  often  strikingly  illustrate  the  operation  of 
his  mind,  and  the  means  by  which  he  has  disciplined  himself  to  approach  as 
near  as  possible  to  truth  ;  and,  such  a  passage  occurring  in  this  short  diary,  we 
beg  to  insert  it.  "  An  anecdote  of  some  Indians  was  told,  that  struck  me  very 
much,  as  holding  up  but  too  exact  a  picture  of  many  of  our  theories  and  rea- 
sonings from  analogy.  Some  American  savages  having  experienced  the  eftecls 
of  gunpowder,  and  having  also  accidentally  become  masters  of  a  small  quantity 
of  it,  set  themselves  to  examine  it,  with  a  design  of  finding  out  what  was  its 
nature,  and  how  it  was  to  be  procured.  The  oldest  and  wisest  of  the  tribe, 
after  considering  it  attentively,  pronounced  it  to  be  a  seed.  A  piece  of  ground 
was  accordingly  prepared  for  it,  and  it  was  sown  in  the  fullest  confidence  that 
a  great  crop  of  it  w.ns  to  be  produced.  We  smile  at  the  mistake  of  tlicse  In- 
dians, and  we  do  not  consider,  that,  for  the  extent  of  their  experience,  they 
reasoned  well,  and  drew  as  logical  a  conclusion  as  many  of  the  philosophers  of 
Europe.  Whenever  we  reason  only  from  analogy  and  resemblance,  and  when- 
over  we  attempt  to  measure  the  nature  of  things  by  our  conceptions,  we  are 
precisely  in  the  situation  of  these  poor  Americans."  In  this  Playfair  exempli- 
fied the  propensity  to  reason  from  certiin  qualities  perceived  to  be  identical, 
when  it  is  not  known  but  that  other  qualities  not  perceived,  may  be  at  variance. 
The  wise  American  saw  colour  and  form  like  those  of  a  seed,  and  from  these  he 
drew  his  conclusion.  Had  he  been  a  botanist,  he  would  have  discovered  that 
the  grain  consisted  of  saltpetre  and  charcoal,  instead  of  kernel ;  and,  whatever 
else  he  could  have  made  of  it,  he  would  have  quickly  perceived  that  it  was  not 
a  seed.  In  connexion  with  this  it  is  to  be  held  in  mind,  that  Playfair  was  es- 
sentially a  reasoner,  and  that  lie  was  more  celebrated  for  separating  the  true 
from  the  false  in  the  writings  of  others,  or  for  establishing  and  applying  truths 
accidentally  stumbled  upon  by  others,  than  for  extensive  discoveries  of  his 
own. 

In  1785,  Dr  Adam  Ferguson  exchanged  the  moral  chair  in  the  university  for 
that  of  mathematics,  taught  by  professor  Dugald  Stewart,  and,  being  in  bad 
health,  chose  Playfair  as  his  assistant.  He  continued,  however,  to  attend  his 
two  pupils  until  1787,  when  he  took  up  his  residence  with  his  mother,  who  had 
for  some  time  lived  in  Edinburgh.  He  now  commenced  a  series  of  papers 
which  appeared  in  the  Transactions  of  the  Royal  Society  of  Edinburgh.  The 
first  of  these  was  the  life  of  Dr  IMatthew  Stewart,  the  late  professor  of  mathe- 


JOHN  PLAYFAIR.  133 


matics  in  the  university  of  Edinburgh  ;  a  paper  -written  in  his  usual  flowing,  sim- 
ple, and  expressive  style.      A  second  uas  a  paper  on  the  causes  which  aftect  the 
accuracy  of  Barometrical  3Ieasurement3.      A  third  was  Remarks  on  the  Astro- 
nomy of  the  Brahmins.      The  early  eastern  astronomy  was  %  subject  to  which  he 
was  very  partial,  and  to  which  some  conceive  he  has  paid  more  attention  than 
its  importance  warranted.      He  fought  to  a  certain  extent  at  disadvantage,  from 
ignox'ance  of  the  language,  and  consequently  of  external  evidence  as  to  the  au- 
thenticity of  the  remarkable  records  containing  the  wisdom  of  the  Brahmins;  but 
he  calculated  their  authenticity  from  the  circumstance,  that  none  but  a  Euro- 
pean acquainted  with  the  refinements  of  modern  science  could  have  made  the 
calculations  on  which  they  might  iiave  been  forged.     The  death  of  his  brother 
James,  in  1793,  interrupted  his  philosophical  pui-suits,  by  forcing  on  his  man- 
agement some  complicated  business,  along  with  the  education  of  his  brother's 
son.     In  1795,  he  published  an  edition  of  Euclid's  elements  for  the  use  of  his 
class.     In  this  work  he  adopted  the  plan  of  using  algebraic  signs  instead  of 
words,  to  render  the  proportions  more  compact  and  apparent      The  plan  has 
been  repeatedly  practised  since  that  period,  and  "  Playfair's  Euclid"  is  a  book 
well  known  to  the  boys  in  most  mathematical  schools,  by  whom,  however,  it  is 
not  always  so  much  admired  as  it  is  known.      In  1797  he  suffered  a  severe  attack 
of  rheumatism,  during  which  he  sketched  an  essay  on  the  accidental  discoveries 
which  have  been  made  by  men  of  science  whilst  in  pursuit  of  something  else,  or 
when  they  had  no  determinate  object  in  view ;  and  wrote  the  observations  on 
the    trigonometrical   tables   of    the   Brahmins,  and  the   theorems  relating    to 
the  figure  of  the  earth,  which  were  afterwards  published  in  the  Transactions  of 
the  Royal  Society  of  Edinburgh.     About  the  same  time,  his  friend  Dr  Hutton 
died,  and  Playfair,  who  affectionately  intended  to  have  written  his  memoir, 
found  in  the  study  of  his  works  a  vast  field  in  which  he  afterwards  distinguished 
himself,  by  the  preparation  of  the  "  Illustrations  of  the  Huttonian  Theory  of  the 
Earth."     Few  observers  of  nature  have  possessed  the  power  of  describing  what 
they  have  seen,  so  as  to  make  their  facts  and  deductions  perceivable  to  ordinary 
thinkers.     Playfair  possessed  the  quality,  however,  to  a  rare  extent ;  and  it  was 
probably  its  deficiency  in  the  works  of  his  friend  Hutton,  which  prompted  him 
to  prepare  the  elegant  and  logical  "  Analysis  of  the  Volcanic  Theory  of  the 
Earth,"  which  has  been  so  much  admired  for  its  OAvn  literary  merits,  and  has 
been  the  means  of  rendering  popular  an  important  theory  which  otherwise  might 
have  remained  in  obscurity.     It  has  been  said,  that  the  illustration  of  a  theory 
of  the  earth  was  but  a  profitless  employment  for  so  accurately  thinking  a  philo- 
sopher, and  that  the  task  might  have  been  left  to  more  imaginative  minds,  whose 
speculations  would  have  afforded  equal  pleasure  to  those  who  delight  in  forming 
fabrics  of  theory  on  insufficient  foundations.      It  is  true,  that  even  the  lucid  com- 
mentary of  Playfair  does  not  establish  the  Huttonian  as  a  general  and  undeviat- 
ing  theory,  in  an  undoubted  and  indisputable  situation  ;   he  seems  not  to  have 
aimed  so  high  ;  and  from  the  present  state  of  science,  no  one  can  predicate 
that  the  elementary  formation  of  the  earth,  or  even  of  its  crust,  will  ever  be 
shown  with  chemical  exactness.      All  that  can  be  said  is,  that  in  as  far  as  the  re- 
spective experiments  and  deductions   of  the  theorists  have  proceeded,  the  Hut- 
tonian Theory  is  not  directly  met  by  any  fact  produced  on  the  part  of  the  Nep- 
tunians,  and  the  phenomena  produced  in  its  favour  strongly  show — indeed  show 
to  absolute  certainty  in  some  cases — the  present  formation  of  a  great  part  of  the 
crust  of  the  earth  to  have  been  the  eilect  of  fire,  how  operating  in  respect  to 
the  whole  substance  of  the  globe  it  is  impossible  to  determine.      The  defence 
of  a  theory  of  the  earth  had  for  some  time  been  unpopular  among  many  philo- 
sophers, from  the  production  of  such  majestic  fabrics  of  theory  as  those  of  Whis- 


134  JOHN  PLAYFAIR. 


ton  and  Burnet,  which,  without  a  sufficient  number  of  ascertained  facts  for  the 
analysis  of  the  component  parts  of  any  portion  of  the  earth's  surfaces,  showed 
in  detail  the  method  of  its  abstraction  from  the  rest  of  the  universe,  and  the 
minutiae  of  its  formation.  But  Playfair  never  went  beyond  rational  deduction 
on  the  facts  which  were  known  to  him,  limiting  the  extent  of  his  theories  to 
reasonings  on  what  he  knew  ;  and  it  shows  the  accuracy  of  his  logic,  that,  while 
the  experiments  of  Sir  James  Hall  and  others  (which  Avere  in  progress  but  not 
complete  while  he  wrote,)  have  tended  to  support  his  explication,  especially  in 
justifying  his  opinion  that  the  reason  of  calcination  in  bodies  subjected  to  heat 
was  the  necessity  of  the  escape  of  the  gases  contained  in  them,  we  are  aware  of 
none  which  have  contradicted  him. 

The  period  between  1797  and  1803  was  occupied  by  Mr  Playfair  in  prepar- 
ing his  Illustrations,  and  in  1803  his  biographical  sketch  of  Hutton  was  pub- 
lished in  the  Society  Transactions.  In  1805  he  quitted  the  mathematical  chair, 
and  succeeded  professor  John  Robison  in  that  of  natural  philosophy ;  during 
the  same  year  his  mother  died  at  the  age  of  eighty-five,  and  he  retired  along 
with  a  younger  brother,  his  youngest  sister,  and  two  nephews,  to  Burntisland, 
that  he  might  devote  the  summer  to  uninterrupted  preparation  for  the  duties  of 
his  new  class.  In  the  controversy  with  the  clergymen  of  Edinburgh,  regarding 
his  successor  to  the  chair  of  mathematics,  he  took  an  active  part.  A  letter 
which  he  addressed  to  the  provost  of  Edinburgh,  in  favour  of  the  election  of  a 
scientific  man,  as  opposed  to  a  clergyman,  was  answered  by  Dr  Inglis,  and  from 
the  nature  of  the  remarks  directed  against  himself,  he  considered  it  necessary 
to  reply.  The  pamphlet  produced  under  these  circumstances,  showed  that  his 
calm  temper  nn'ght  be  made  dangerous  by  interference  :  it  is  written  in  con- 
siderable asperity  of  spirit,  but  without  vulgar  raillery  or  much  personality, 
and  the  serious  reproof,  mixed  with  occasional  sarcasm  which  it  contains,  shows 
great  power  to  wield  the  weapons  of  literary  warfare.  He  next  occupied  him- 
self in  preparing  papers  on  the  solids  of  gi'eatest  attraction,  and  on  the  pro- 
gress of  heat  in  spherical  bodies,  which  appeared  in  the  Transactions  of  the 
Royal  Society  of  Edinburgh.  He  also  presented  to  the  London  Royal  Society, 
of  which  he  was  admitted  a  member  in  1807,  an  Account  of  the  Survey  of 
Schehallien.  In  1814,  he  published  for  the  use  of  his  students  his  well  known 
Outlines  of  Natural  Philosophy,  in  two  volumes  octavo.  The  first  volume  of 
this  work  treats  of  Dynamics,  Mechanics,  Hydrostatics,  Hydraulics,  Aerostatics, 
and  Pneumatics.  The  second  is  devoted  to  Astronomy.  A  third  volume  was 
intended  to  have  embraced  Optics,  Electricity,  and  Magnetism  ;  but  the  work 
was  never  completed.  In  the  following  year  he  presented  to  the  Royal  Society 
of  Edinburgh  a  life  of  his  predecessor,  professor  Robison.  His  labours  for  this 
institution  will  be  perceived  to  have  been  very  extensive,  and  they  show  him 
not  to  have  been  a  mercenary  man.  He  was  long  its  chief  support,  arranging 
and  publishing  the  Transactions,  and  gratuitously  acting  as  secretary.  In 
1816,  he  published,  in  the  Supplement  to  the  Encyclopaedia  Britannica,  a  "  Dis- 
sertation on  the  Progress  of  Mathematical  and  Physical  Science  since  the  Re- 
vival of  Letters  in  Europe,"  a  work  of  great  erudition  and  research.  This  work 
interrupted  a  new  and  much  altered  edition  of  his  Illustrations  of  the  Huttonian 
Theory,  which  he  had  previously  designed,  but  which  unfortunately  he  was 
never  enabled  to  complete.  "  It  was  intended,"  says  his  biographer,  "  to  com- 
mence with  a  description  of  all  the  well  authenticated  facts  in  geology  collected 
during  his  extensive  reading  and  personal  observation,  without  any  mixture  ot 
hypothesis  whatever.  To  this  followed  the  general  inferences  which  may  be 
deduced  from  the  facts,  an  examination  of  the  various  geological  systems 
hitherto  offered  to  the  world,  and  the  exclusion  of  those  which  involved  any 


JOHN   PLAYPAIR.  135 


contradiction  of  the  principles  previously  ascertained ;  wliile  the  conclusion 
would  have  presented  the  development  of  the  system  adopted  by  the  author, 
and  the  application  of  it  to  explain  the  phenomena  of  geology."  Previously 
to  1815,  Mr  Playfair  had  confined  his  geological  observations  to  Britain  and 
Ireland ;  nor  was  he  able,  from  causes  public  or  private,  previously  to  that  period, 
to  extend  them  to  the  continent.  His  nephew  accompanied  him  on  a  tour 
which  he  designed  to  extend  as  far  as  he  could  through  Italy,  Switzerland,  and 
Franco.  He  spent  a  short  time  in  the  philosophical  circle  of  Paris,  to  which 
his  name  could  not  fail  to  be  an  introduction.  He  then  passed  to  Switzerland, 
and  commenced  the  most  important  of  his  geological  notices  at  Mount  Jura, 
where  he  found  blocks  of  granite,  gneiss,  and  mica  slate,  lying  loosely  on  the 
surface  of  mountains  whose  solid  substance  was  entirely  calcareous.  At  Lucerne 
and  Chamouni,  he  was  prevented  by  adverse  weather,  from  making  his  intend- 
ed searches  among  the  interior  valleys.  Towards  winter  he  was  about  to 
return,  when  he  received  a  letter  from  the  provost  of  Edinburgh,  intimating 
that  the  patrons  of  tlie  univei'sity  permitted  his  absence  during  the  ensuing  ses< 
sion — a  circumstance  which  enabled  him  to  prolong  his  tour  a  whole  year. 
After  remaining  for  a  month  at  Geneva,  he  entered  Italy  by  the  Simplon.  In 
the  Academia  del  Cimento  at  Florence,  his  enthusiasm  for  philosophical  history 
was  gratified  by  an  inspection  of  the  instruments  made  by  Galileo,  among  which 
was  the  original  telescope,  made  of  two  pieces  of  wood,  coarsely  hollowed  out, 
and  tied  together  with  thread.  On  the  1 2th  of  November  he  set  out  for  Rome, 
which  he  reached  on  the  18th.  There  he  remained  during  the  winter,  occu- 
pying himself  with  researches  in  the  Vatican  library,  such  geological  observa- 
tions as  the  neighbourhood  afforded,  and  the  select  English  society  always  to 
be  found  in  the  imperial  city,  among  whom  he  found  many  of  the  friends  he 
had  met  in  England.  After  the  termination  of  the  winter  he  went  to  Naples, 
where  a  wider  field  for  geological  observation  lay  before  him.  The  observa- 
tions which  he  made  on  this  part  of  his  route,  not  so  much  connected  with  the 
action  of  the  volcano  as  with  the  state  of  the  surrounding  country,  are  imbodied 
in  some  interesting  notes,  an  abstract  of  which  may  be  found  in  the  memoir 
above  referred  to  ;  but  it  is  to  be  regretted  that  the  amount  of  so  much  accurate 
observation  was  not  brought  to  bear  on  his  Analysis  of  the  Theory  of  tiie 
Earth.  Mr  Playfair  returned  to  Rome,  whence,  after  a  second  visit  to  Florence, 
he  proceeded,  by  such  gradations  as  enabled  him  accurately  to  observe  the 
mineralogy  of  the  country,  to  Geneva.  While  travelling  through  Switzerland, 
he  visited,  and  prepared  a  short  but  curious  account  of  the  Slide  of  Alpuach, 
by  which  trees  are  conveyed  from  the  sides  of  Pilatus  into  the  lake  of  Lucerne, 
whence  they  proceed  through  the  Aur  to  the  Rhine.  On  his  return,  he  passed 
through  Venice,  Lyons,  and  Paris.  In  the  ensuing  summer  he  retired  to 
Burntisland,  where  he  prepared  a  memoir  on  Naval  Tactics,  in  illustration  of 
the  discoveries  of  Clerk  of  Eldin,  which  was  published  after  his  death.  He 
had  intended  to  publish  in  detached  papers  his  observations  on  the  remarkable 
objects  of  his  tour,  and  to  have  prepared  his  Illustrations  of  the  Huttonian 
Theory  of  the  Earth,  but  he  lived  scarcely  long  enough  to  commence  these  la- 
bours. For  some  years  he  had  been  afflicted  with  a  strangury,  which  alarm- 
ingly increased  in  the  month  of  June,  1819,  and  he  died  on  the  ensuing  19th 
of  July.  He  was  buried  on  the  26th,  when  the  members  of  the  Royal  Medical 
Society,  and  a  numerous  body  of  public  and  private  friends,  followed  him  to 
the  grave. 

The  literary  and  domestic  character  of  this  great  and  excellent  man,  have 
been  drawn  by  Francis  Jeffrey,  with  whom,  as  the  writer  of  many  papers  in  tho 
Edinburgh  Review,  Mr  Playfair  must  have  been  on  an  intimate  footiDg.     The 


136  -WILLIAM  PLAYFAIR. 


former  part  of  the  subject  is  open  for  the  appi-eciation  of  the  world,  but  as 
the  latter  cau  only  be  told  by  one  acquainted  with  it,  we  beg  to  extract  a 
portion.  "  The  same  admirable  taste  which  is  conspicuous  in  his  writings,  or 
rather  the  higher  principles  from  which  that  taste  was  but  an  emanation,  spread 
a  similar  charm  over  his  whole  life  and  conversation,  and  gave  to  the  most 
learned  philosopher  of  his  day  the  manners  and  deportment  of  the  most  perfect 
gentleman.  Nor  was  this  in  him  the  result  merely  of  good  sense  and  good  tem- 
per, assisted  by  an  early  familiarity  with  good  company,  and  a  consequent 
knowledge  of  his  own  place  and  that  of  all  around  him.  His  good-breeding 
was  of  a  higher  descent ;  and  his  powers  of  pleasing  rested  on  something  better 
than  mere  companionable  qualities.  With  the  gi*eatest  kindness  and  generosity 
of  nature,  he  united  the  most  manly  firmness,  and  the  highest  principles  of 
honour ;  and  the  most  cheerful  and  social  dispositions,  with  the  gentlest  and 
steadiest  affections.  Towards  women,  he  had  always  the  most  chivalrous  feel- 
ings of  regard  and  attention,  and  Mas,  beyond  almost  all  men,  acceptable  and 
agreeable  in  their  society,  though  without  the  least  levity  or  pretension  unbe- 
coming his  age  or  condition.  And  such,  indeed,  was  the  fascination  of  the 
perfect  simplicity  and  mildness  of  his  manners,  that  the  same  tone  and  deport- 
ment seemed  equally  appropriate  in  all  societies,  and  enabled  him  to  delight 
the  young  and  the  gay  with  the  same  sort  of  conversation  which  instructed  the 
learned  and  the  grave.  There  never,  indeed,  was  a  man  of  learning  and 
talent  who  appeared  in  society  so  perfectly  free  from  all  sorts  of  pretension, 
or  notion  of  his  own  importance,  or  so  little  solicitous  to  distinguish  himself,  or 
so  sincerely  willing  to  give  place  to  CA'ery  one  else.  Even  upon  subjects  which 
he  had  thoroughly  studied,  he  was  never  in  the  least  impatient  to  speak,  and 
spoke  at  all  times  without  any  tone  of  authority  ;  while  so  far  from  wishing  to 
set  off  what  he  had  to  say  by  any  brilliancy  or  emphasis  of  expression,  it 
seemed  generally  as  if  he  had  studied  to  disguise  the  weight  and  originality  of 
his  thoughts  under  the  plainest  form  of  speech,  and  the  most  quiet  and  indif- 
ferent manner ;  so  that  the  profoundest  remarks  and  subtlest  observations  were 
often  dropped,  not  only  without  any  solicitude  that  their  value  should  be  ob- 
served, but  without  any  apparent  consciousness  that  they  possessed  any," 

PLAYFAIR,  William,  an  ingenious  mechanic  and  miscellaneous  writer, 
brother  to  the  preceding,  was  born  in  the  year  1759.  The  personal  history 
of  this  man  when  compared  with  that  of  his  brother,  shons  in  striking  colours 
the  necessity,  not  only  of  industry,  but  of  steadiness  and  consistency  of  plan, 
as  adjuncts  of  genius  in  raising  its  possessor  to  eminence.  Being  very  young 
when  his  father  died,  his  education  was  superintended  by  his  brother.  His 
early  taste  for  mechanics  prompted  his  friends  to  place  him  as  apprentice  to  a 
mill-wright  of  the  name  of  Miekle.  He  afterwards  went  to  England,  and  in 
1780,  was  engaged  as  draughtsman  in  the  service  of  Mr  James  Watt.  How 
long  he  remained  in  this  situation  we  do  not  know,  but  the  vast  mass  of 
pamphlets  which  he  was  unceasingly  producing  must  have  speedily  interfered 
with  his  professional  regularity,  and  he  seems  to  have  spent  the  remainder  of  his 
days  in  alternately  making  mechanical  discoveries  of  importance,  and  penning 
literary  or  political  pamphlets.  Among  the  most  useful  of  his  mechanical  ef- 
forts, was  the  unrequited  discovery  of  the  French  telegraph,  gathered  from  a 
few  partial  hints,  and  afterwards  adapted  by  an  alphabet  of  his  own  invention 
to  British  use.  At  the  period  when  he  was  most  busy  as  a  writer,  he  received 
no  less  than  five  patents  for  new  inventions  ;  one  of  these  was  for  the  manufac- 
ture of  sashes,  constructed  of  a  mixture  of  copper,  zinc,  and  iron.  These  he 
termed  Eldorado  sashes.  Another  was  for  a  machine  for  completing  the  orna- 
mental part  of  fretwork  on  small  implements  of  silver  and  other  metal ;  such  as 


WILLTA^I  PLAYTATR.  137 


sugar  tongs,  buckles,  &c.,  which  had  previously  been  executed  by  the  hand. 
For  some  time  he  occupied  a  silversmith's  shop  in  London,  but,  tiring  of  the 
business,  or  finding  it  unprofitable,  he  proceeded  to  Paris,  where,  among  other 
mechanical  speculations,  he  procured  an  exclusive  privilege  for  the  manufacture 
of  a  rolling  mill  on  a  new  plan.  While  living  in  Paris,  he  was  the  means  of 
forming  the  colony  of  Scioto  in  America.  Having  formed  an  acquaintance  with 
Mr  Joel  Barlow,  who  had  been  sent  to  Paris  to  negotiate  the  disposal  by  lots 
of  three  millions  of  acres  which  had  been  purchased  by  a  company  at  New 
York,  on  the  banks  of  the  Scioto,  he  undertook  to  procure  for  him  the  necessary 
introductions,  and  to  conduct  the  disposal.  The  breaking  out  of  the  French 
revolution  favoured  the  scheme.  It  was  proposed  that  the  lands  should  be  dis- 
posed of  at  5s.  per  acre,  one  half  to  be  paid  at  signing  the  act  of  sale,  the 
other  to  remain  on  mortgage  to  the  United  States,  to  be  paid  within  two  yeara 
after  taking  possession.  In  less  than  two  months  50,000  acres  were  sold, 
and  two  vessels  sailed  from  Havre  de  Grace,  with  the  nucleus  of  the  colony. 
Soon  after  accomplishing  this  project,  he  made  a  narrow  escape  from  being  ar- 
rested by  the  revolutionary  government,  a  fate  which  his  strongly  expressed 
objections  to  the  French  revolution  rendered  a  very  likely  event.  On  his  re- 
turn to  London  he  pi'ojected  a  bank  termed  the  Security  Bank ;  its  object  was 
the  division  of  large  securities  so  as  to  facilitate  small  loans  ; — this  bank  unfor- 
tunately belied  its  name,  and  became  insolvent,  too  little  attention  having  been 
paid  to  the  securities  taken.  On  the  restoration  of  the  Bourbons,  he  returned 
to  France,  and  became  editor  of  Galignani's  3Iessenger,  but  he  was  driven  back 
to  England  by  a  libel  prosecution,  and  continued  to  gain  his  subsistence  by 
essay-writing  and  translating.  His  works  being  in  general  connected  with  the 
passing  politics  of  the  day,  need  not  be  all  named  and  characterized.  In 
books  and  pamphlets,  his  distinct  works  are  said  to  amount  to  about  a  hundred. 
Several  were  politico-economical  in  their  subject,  discussing  the  sinking  fund, 
the  resources  of  France,  the  Asiatic  establishments  of  Britain,  the  prospects  of 
the  manufacturing  interest,  &c.  His  political  remarks  were  generally  for  the 
purpose  of  supporting  and  vindicating  the  conduct  of  Britain  towards  France, 
and  received  the  designation  "  patriotic."  Among  his  principal  publications 
Avere  a  "  History  of  Jacobinism,"  published  in  1795  ;  an  edition  of  Smith's  AVealth 
of  Nations,  with  Notes,  in  1806  ;  and  "  British  Family  Antiquities,"  in  9  vols.  4to, 
published  in  1809-11.  This  last  work  forms  a  Peerage  and  Baronetage  of 
Britain  and  Ireland.  It  contains  a  great  mass  of  matter,  and  is  splen- 
didly illustrated,  but  it  is  not  looked  on  by  genealogists  as  a  work  of  much  au- 
thority. He  spent  the  last  days  of  his  laborious  but  irregular  life  without  the 
competence  which  well-directed  talent  generally  acquires,  and  his  death  was 
hurried  on  by  anxiety  of  mind.  He  died  in  Covent  Garden  on  the  11th 
February,  1823,  in  the  sixty-fourth  year  of  his  age.  "  In  private  life,"  says  a 
biographer,  "  Mr  Playfair  was  inoffensive  and  amiable  ;  not  prepossessing  in  his 
appearance  and  address,  but  with  a  strong  and  decided  physiognomy,  like  that 
of  his  late  brother.  With  a  thoughtlessness  which  is  too  frequently  allied  to 
genius,  he  neglected  to  secure  that  provision  for  his  family,  which  from  his 
talents  they  were  justified  to  expect ;  and  although  he  laboured  ardently  and 
abundantly  for  his  country,  yet  he  found  it  ungrateful,  and  was  left  in  age  and 
infirmity  to  regret  that  he  had  neglected  his  own  interests  to  promote  those  of 
the  public"  * 


Annual  Obituary,  1S24,  460. 


138  ROBERT  POLLOK, 


POLLOK,  EoBKRT,  author  of  tlie  '*  Course  of  Time,*'  a  poem,  Avaa  born  in 
1799,  of  reBpeclabie  parents,  at  Muirhouse,  in  the  parish  of  Eaglesliaui,  Ren« 
freushire.  After  acquiring  the  rudiments  of  a  literaiy  education  in  the  country, 
be  passed  through  a  regular  course  of  literary  and  philosophical  study  at  the 
university  of  Glasgow.  Having  sustained  the  ordinary  previous  prcsbyterial 
examinations,  he  was  admitted  to  the  divinity  hall,  under  the  superintendence 
of  the  late  reverend  Or  Dick  of  Glasgow,  who  at  that  time  was  sole  professor  of 
theology  in  the  united  secession  church.  On  finishing  his  course  of  (ive  years' 
study  under  tliis  accomplished  tutor,  he  was,  by  the  united  associate  presbytery 
of  Edinburgh,  licensed  to  preach  the  gospel,  in  the  spring  of  1827.  The  only 
time  he  ever  preached  was  in  the  former  chapel  of  Dr  John  Brown,  in  Rose 
Street,  Edinburgh. 

A  sliort  time  before  receiving  license  to  preach,  he  had  prepared  his  poem, 
the  "  Course  of  Time,"  which  extends  to  ten  books,  in  blank  Terse,  and 
describes  the  mortal  and  immortal  destiny  of  man,  in  language  the  nearest, 
perhaps  to  that  of  Milton,  which  has  ever  been  employed  by  a  later  bard.  It 
has  rarely  happened  that  one  so  young  has  completed  any  work  so  extensive 
as  this,  much  less  one  so  successful;  and  we  may  be  allowed  to  surmise,  that 
the  man  who  could  form  and  execute  such  a  design,  at  such  a  period  of 
life,  must  have  possessed  not  only  an  intellect  of  the  first  order  of  power,  but 
a  character  of  the  first  order  of  strength.  On  the  recommendation  of  the 
late  celebrated  John  Wilson,  professor  of  moral  philosophy  in  the  university  of 
Edinburgh,  the  "  Course  of  Time"  was  published  by  Mr  Blackwood,  early  in 
1S27.  Of  the  earlier  attempts  of  Mr  Follok  in  prose  and  verse,  little  is  known. 
He  wrote  Uiree  tales  relative  to  the  sufferings  of  the  persecuted  presbyterians  of 
the  reign  of  Charles  11.,  which  were  published  anonymously  in  his  lifetime,  and 
have  since  been  reprinted  with  his  name.  They  are  manifestly  juvenile  and 
hasty  productions  ;  but  they  are  the  juvenile  and  hasty  productions  of  a  man  of 
genius.  The  labour  of  preparing  his  poem  for  publication,  and  carrying  it 
through  the  press,  appears  to  have  fatally  impaired  a  constitution  originally 
vigorous.  Soon  after  his  license,  symptoms  of  pulmonary  disease  having  be- 
come distinctly  apparent,  he  spent  the  greater  part  of  the  summer  of  that  year 
with  the  reverend  Dr  Belfrage  of  Slateford,  under  whose  hospiLible  roof  he  en- 
joyed every  advantage  which  medical  skill,  called  forth  into  active  exertion  by 
cordial  friendship,  could  funiish. 

As  the  disease  seemed  obviously  gaining  ground,  it  was  suggested  by  Dr 
Abercromby,  and  other  eminent  physicians,  that  a  removal  to  a  more  genial 
climate,  during  tlie  approaching  winter,  was  the  only  probable  means  of  pro- 
tracting a  life  so  full  of  promise.  It  was  therefore  resolved  on,  that  he  should, 
with  as  little  delay  as  possible,  set  out  for  Italy ;  and  the  means  for  prosecuting 
such  a  journey  were  readily  supplied  by  the  admirers  of  his  genius. 

In  the  commencement  of  autumn  he  left  Edinburgh,  accompanied  by  a  sister, 
and  travelled  by  a  steam  vessel  to  London.  During  the  short  time  he  remained 
in  that  city,  he  resided  at  CambcrweD,  with  the  late  John  Pirio,  Esq.,  afterwards 
Lord  Mayor  of  London,  to  whom  he  had  been  introduced  by  a  common  friend, 
and  who,  with  characteristic  generosity,  made  every  exertion  to  contribute  to 
his  comfort ;  and  ceased  not  to  take  a  deep  interest  in  his  happines?,  till  he 
was  called  on  to  commit  his  remains  to  the  grave. 

After  arrangements  had  been  made  for  his  voyage  to  Italy,  his  medical  ad- 
visers in  London,  fearing  that  he  would  never  reach  that  country,  recommended 
his  immediate  removal  to  the  south-west  of  England,  and  the  neiglibourhood  of 
Southampton  was  fixed  on  as  a  suitable  situation.     Having  arrived  there,  he 


ROBERT  POLLOK.  139 


took  up  his  residence  on  Shirley-Common.  His  disease  continued  to  make 
progress,  and  in  the  course  of  a  few  weeks  he  fell  a  victim  to  its  power,  on  the 
15th  of  September,  1827.  '*  He  died,"  says  his  biographer,  "in  the  faith  of  the 
gospel,  and  in  the  hope  of  eternal  life." 

He  is  buried  in  the  church-yard  of  Millbrook,  the  parish  in  which  Shirley- 
Common  lies.  Those  admirers  of  his  genius  who  would  fain  have  prolonged 
his  life,  have  perpetuated  their  regard  for  him,  by  erecting  an  obelisk  of  Peter- 
head granite  over  his  grave,  bearing,  with  the  dates  of  his  birth  and  death,  the 
following  simple  inscription  : — 

THE    GRAVE 

OF 

ROBERT  POLLOK,  A.M. 

AUTHOR  OF  "  THE  COUBSE  OF  TIME." 
HIS  rMMORTAL  FOEM  IS  HIS 

MONUMENT. 

Such  is  a  "  faithful  chronicle  "  of  the  principal  external  events  in  the  short 
life  of  Robert  Pollok.  Of  the  most  important  inward  revolution  of  which 
man's  little  world  is  susceptible,  that  change,  without  which  a  man  "  cannot  enter 
the  kingdom  of  God,"  he  has  given  the  following  most  impressive  account  in 
the  "  Course  of  Time."  It  is  one  of  the  most  interesting  fragments  of  auto- 
biography we  have  ever  met  with,  and  compensates,  in  some  measure,  for  the 
meagreness  of  the  present  sketch ;  which,  imperfect  as  it  is,  seems  all  that  cir- 
cumstances  will  permit  to  be  gathered  together  respecting  Pollok.  The  ex- 
tract, though  perhaps  rather  too  long  for  such  a  purpose,  will  also  serve  as  a 
specimen  of  the  poetry  produced  by  the  subject  of  our  memoir.  It  will  re- 
mind many  readers  of  some  passages  c^  a  similar  kind,  of  exquisite  beauty,  in 
Cowper. 

One  of  tliis  mood  I  do  remember  weli 

We  name  him  not,  what  now  are  earthly  names? 

In  humble  dwelling  bom,  retired,  remote  ; 

In  rural  quietude,  'mong  hills,  and  streams, 

And  melancholy  deserts,  where  the  sun 

Saw,  as  he  passed,  a  shepherd  only,  here 

And  there,  watching  his  little  flock,  or  heard 

The  ploughman  talking  to  his  steers  ;  his  hopes, 

His  moming  hopes,  awoke  before  him,  smiling. 

Among  the  dews  and  holy  mountain  airs; 

And  fanc)-  coloured  them  with  every  hue 

Of  heavenly  loveliness.     But  soon  his  dreams 

Of  childhood  fled  away,  those  rainbow  dreams 

So  innocent  and  fair,  that  withered  Age, 

Even  at  the  grave,  cleared  up  his  dusty  eye. 

And  passing  all  between,  looked  fondly  back 

To  see  them  once  again,  ere  he  departed : 

These  fled  away,  and  anxious  thought,  that  wished 

To  go,  yet  whither  !  new  not  well  to  go, 

Possessed  his  soul,  and  held  it  still  awhile. 

He  listened,  and  heard  from  far  the  voice  of  time. 

Heard  and  was  cliarmed :  and  deep  an  1  sudden  vow 


140  ROBERT  POLLOK. 


Of  resolution  made  to  be  reno^vned ; 

And  deeper  vowed  agciin  to  keep  his  vow. 

His  parents  saw,  his  parents  whom  God  made 

Of  kindest  heart,  saw,  and  indulged  his  liope. 

The  ancient  page  he  turned,  read  much,  tliought  much, 

And  witli  old  bards  of  honourable  name 

Measured  his  soul  severely ;  and  looked  up 

To  fame,  ambitious  of  no  second  place. 

Hope  grew  from  inward  faith,  and  promised  fair. 

And  out  before  him  opened  many  a  path 

Ascending,  where  the  laurel  highest  waved 

Her  branch  of  endless  green.     He  stood  admiring; 

But  stood,  admired,  not  long.     The  harp  he  seized. 

The  harp  he  loved,  loved  better  than  his  life, 

The  harp  which  uttered  deepest  notes,  and  held 

The  ear  of  thought  a  captive  to  its  song. 

He  searched  and  meditated  much,  and  whiles, 

With  rapturous  hand,  in  secret,  touched  the  lyre, 

Aiming  at  glorious  stniins ;  and  searched  again 

For  theme  deserving  of  immortiil  verse ; 

Chose  now,  and  now  refused,  unsatisfied ; 

Pleased,  tlien  displeased,  and  hesitiiting  still. 

Thus  stood  his  mind,  when  round  him  came  a  cloud. 
Slowly  and  heavily  it  came,  a  cloud 
Of  ills  we  mention  not :  enough  to  say 
'T«-as  cold,  and  dead,  impenetrable  gloom. 
He  saw  its  dark  approach,  and  saw  his  hopes. 
One  after  one,  put  out,  as  nearer  still 
It  drew  his  soul ;  but  fainted  not  at  first, 
Fainted  not  soon.     He  knew  the  lot  of  man 
Was  trouble,  and  prepared  to  bear  the  worst; 
Endure  whate'er  should  come,  without  a  sigh; 
Endure,  and  drink,  even  to  the  very  dregs. 
The  bitterest  cup  that  time  could  measure  out: 
And,  having  done,  look  up,  and  ask  for  more. 

He  called  philosophy,  and  with  his  heart 
Reasoned.     He  called  religion  too,  but  called 
Reluctantly,  and  therefore  was  not  heard. 
Ashamed  to  be  o'crmatched  by  earthly  woes. 
He  sought,  and  sought  with  eye  that  dimmed  apace. 
To  find  some  avenue  to  light,  some  place 
On  which  to  rest  a  hope  ;  but  sought  in  vain. 
Darker  and  darker  still  the  darkness  grew. 
At  length  he  sunk,  and  Disiippointment  stood 
His  only  comforter,  and  mournfully 
Told  all  was  past.     His  interest  in  life. 
In  being,  ceased :  and  now  he  seemed  to  feel, 
And  shuddered  as  he  felt,  his  powers  of  mind 
Decaying  in  the  spring-lime  of  his  day. 
The  vigorous,  weak  became;  the  clear,  obscure; 
Memor)  gave  up  her  charge ;  Decision  reeled  ; 
And  from  her  flight.  Fancy  returned ;  returned 
Because  she  found  no  nourishment  abroiid. 
The  blue  heavens  withered ;  and  the  moon,  and  sun, 


KOBERT  PONT.  141 


And  all  the  stars,  and  the  green  earth,  and  mom 
And  evening,  withered ;  and  the  eyes,  and  smiles, 
And  faces  of  all  men  and  women,  withered, 
Withered  to  him;  and  all  the  universe. 
Like  something  which  had  been,  appeared,  but  now 
Was  dead  and  mouldering  fast  away.     He  tried 
*  No  more  to  hope ;  wished  to  forget  his  vow. 

Wished  to  forget  his  harp ;  then  ceased  to  wish. 
That  ^vas  his  last;  enjo}  nient  now  was  done. 
He  had  no  hope  ;  no  wish,  and  scarce  a  fear 
Of  being  sensible,  and  sensible 
Of  loss,  he  as  some  atom  seemed,  which  God 
Had  made  superfluouslj*,  and  needed  not 
To  build  creation  wth ;  but  back  again 
To  nothing  tlirew,  and  left  it  in  the  void. 
With  everlasting  sense  that  once  it  was. 

Oh  1  who  can  tell  what  da)  s,  what  nights  he  spent. 
Of  tideless,  waveless,  sailless,  shoreless  woe  ? 
And  who  can  tell  how  man}-,  glorious  once. 
To  others  and  themselves  of  promise  full. 
Conducted  to  this  pass  of  human  thought, 
This  wilderness  of  intellectual  death, 
Wasted  and  pined,  and  vanished  from  the  earth, 
Leaving  no  vestige  of  memorial  there. 

It  was  not  so  with  him.     When  thus  he  lay. 
Forlorn  of  heart ;  withered  and  desolate. 
As  leaf  of  Autumn,  which  the  wolfish  winds. 
Selecting  from  its  falling  sisters,  chase. 
Far  from  its  native  grove,  to  lifeless  wastes. 
And  leave  it  there  alone,  to  be  forgotten 
Eternally,  God  passed  in  merc)  by — 
His  praise  be  ever  new! — and  on  him  breathed. 
And  bade  him  live,  and  put  into  his  hands 
A  holy  harp,  into  his  lips  a  song. 
That  rolled  its  numbers  dowTi  the  tide  of  Time, 
Ambitiou"?  now  but  little  to  be  praised, 
Of  men  alone;  ambitious  most  to  be 
Approved  of  God,  the  Judge  of  all ;  and  have 
His  name  recorded  in  the  book  of  life. 

The  "  Course  of  Time"  was  only  beginning  to  attract  attention  at  the  time 
when  its  author's  ear  was  about  to  be  closed,  alike  to  the  voice  of  censure  and 
praise.  Almost  immediately  after  his  death,  it  became  extensively  read 
throughout  the  British  empire,  especially  among  the  numerous  and  respectable 
classes  of  dissenters.  It  has,  accordingly,  passed  through  a  considerable  num- 
ber of  editions,  and  now  appears  likely  to  keep  its  place  among  the  standard 
poems  in  our  language.  A  portrait  of  the  author  was  obtained  by  the  reverend 
Dr  John  Brown,  of  Edinburgh,  before  his  departure  for  London,  and  has  been 
engraved.  It  conveys  the  impression  of  deep  and  grave  intelligence,  such  as 
might  have  been  expected  from  the  author  of  the  "  Course  of  Time."^ 

PONT,  Robert,  a  churchman,  judge  of  the  court  of  session,  and  political 
and  scientific  writer  of  some  eminence,  was  bom  at  Culross,  cir.  1524—30, 

ic  mT^'^^^!:'*^^®  '^  copied,  (by  permission,)  with  a  fe«v  slight  additions,  from  the  preface  to 
lilies  of  the  Covenanters,  by  Robert  Pollok,  A.  M."     Edinburgh,  W.  Olipliant,  1833. 


142  EGBERT  PONT. 


of  honourable,  if  not  noble'  parentage.  After  receiving  his  elementary  edu- 
cation at  the  school  of  his  native  place,  he  «a«,  in  1543,  incorporated  a  student 
of  St  Leonard's  college  in  St  Andrews,  where  he  prosecuted  the  study  of  phi- 
losophy and  divinity  with  great  success.  From  the  period  of  his  leaving  the 
university,  no  notice  of  him  has  been  discovered,  till  1559,  when  he  is  men- 
tioned as  an  elder  in  the  k'rk  session  record  of  St  Andrews.  His  intimate  know- 
ledge of  law,  renders  the  supposition  probable,  that  the  interval  was  employed 
in  that  branch  of  study  at  some  of  the  continental  universities.  He  seems  to 
have  early  embraced  the  protestant  party.  He  was  an  elder  of  St  Andrews 
from  a  very  early  period,  and  attended,  as  one  of  the  commissioners  from  that 
place,  the  first  General  Assembly,  by  which  he  was  declared  qualified  for  minister- 
in"  and  teaching.  In  the  year  1563,  he  competed  for  the  office  of  superintendent 
of  the  diocese  of  Galloway.  He  appears  to  have  failed  in  the  attempt,  but  was 
shortly  after  appointed  commissioner  of  the  diocese  of  Moray.  In  1566,  he 
published,  with  the  sanction  and  command  of  the  General  Assembly,  a  "  Transla- 
tion and  Interpretation  of  the  Helretian  Confession."  In  January,  1571,  he  was, 
through  the  same  influence,  appointed  to  the  provostry  of  Trinity  college,  Edin- 
burgh, and  afterwards  to  the  vicarage  of  St  Cuthbert's  church.  At  the  same  period 
he  followed  the  directions  of  his  party  by  excommunicating  the  bishop  of  Orkney, 
who  had  performed  the  marriage  ceremony  to  3Iary  and  Both  well.  Policy  at 
this  time  dictated  that  the  judicial  dignities  which  had  been  conferred  on  the 
Roman  catholic  churchmen  should  be  extended  to  the  new  church,  of  which  the 
members,  while  their  general  principles  were  rather  averse  to  the  system,  pos- 
sessed some  share  of  personal  ambition,  and  in  1571,  the  regent  proposed  that 
Pont  should  be  appointed  a  senator  of  the  College  of  Justice.  The  zealous 
churchman  declined  acceptance  without  the  sanction  of  the  assembly,  and  on  the 
12th  January,  1572,  that  body  gave  license  "  to  the  said  Mr  Robert  to  accept 
and  use  the  said  place  of  a  senator  in  the  said  College  of  Justice,  what  tyme  he 
shall  be  required  thereto,  providing  all  wayes,  that  he  leave  not  the  office  of  the 
niinistrie,  but  that  he  exercise  the  same  as  he  sould  be  appoynted  be  the  kirke,  and 
this  their  license  to  the  said  Mr  Robert  to  be  no  preparative  to  no  uther  minis- 
ter to  procure  sic  promotione,  unless  the  kirke's  advyse  be  had  of  before,  and 
license  obtained  thereunti."  The  natural  consequence  of  such  an  appointment 
seems  to  have  taken  place,  and  in  the  following  year,  he  was  charged  with 
neglect  of  duty  in  non-residence,  and  not  sufficiently  visiting  the  churches  in 
Moray,  an  accusation  to  which  he  very  naturally  ple.tded  want  of  leisure  from 
the  pressure  of  his  new  duties.  In  1574,  3Ir  Pont  was  appointed  colleague  to 
William  Harlaw,  minister  of  St  Cuthbert's  church,  lulinburgli.  He  was  now- 
employed  in  all  the  more  important  business  of  the  church  :  he  was  appointed, 
in  1574,  to  revise  all  books  that  were  printed  and  published;  about  the  same 
period  he  drew  up  the  calendar,  and  rules  for  understanding  it,  for  Arbuthnot 
end  Bassandyne's  edition  of  the  Bible  ;  and  he  was  engaged  in  the  preparation 
of  the  Second  Book  of  Discipline.  In  15S2,  he  was  invited  to  become  minister 
of  St  Andrews,  and  seems  to  have  accepted  the  appointment,  but  he  was  soon 
obliged  to  abandon  it;  for  at  the  General  Assembly,  held  in  April,  1533,  he 
declared  that,  *'  with  losse  of  his  heritage  and  warldlie  comniodilie,  he  had  pro- 
ponit  to  sit  down  in  St  Andrews,  and  had  served  athisawin  charges ane  haill  ^eir, 

>  Mr  Crichton  (Life  of  Mr  J.  Blackader,  p.  15,  note)  saj-s,  that  his  father,  John  du  Pon% 
or  da  Ponte,  was  a  noble  Venetian  ;  that  he  was  tKiiii^hed  his  country  for  profussing  the  re- 
formed religion,  and  came  over  to  Scotland  in  the  tr.iin  of  Mary  of  Guise,  queen  of  James 
V.  This  statement  seems  irreconcilable  with  his  son  having  been  born  at  Culross  at  the 
time  above  mentioned.  (Bucbaiian  de  lllust.  ScoU  Script  or.  MS.  Adv.  Lib.)  It  must 
also  be  remarked,  that  the  name  was  common  in  ScotLmd  long  before  this  time. 


TDIOTHY   PONT.  143 


and  culd  not  haif  any  equall  condition  of  leving-,  na  not  tlie  least  provision." 
He  accordingly  returced  to  his  charge  at  the  West  church.  In  1584,  when 
James  struck  a  blow  at  the  church,  by  rendering  it  criminal  to  decline  the  juris- 
diction of  the  privy  council,  and  to  hold  assemblies  without  the  royal  permission, 
Pont  added  his  name  to  the  list  of  the  gallant  defenders  of  the  church,  by  solemn- 
ly protesting  against  the  acts  as  they  were  published  at  the  cross  of  Edinburgh, 
on  the  grotaid  that  they  liad  been  passed  without  the  knowledge  or  consent  of 
the  church  Two  days  before,  (23rd  May,  1534,)  he  had  been  deprived 
of  his  seat  in  the  College  cf  Justice,  by  an  act  prohibiting  ecclesiastics  to 
hold  civil  appointments,  and  he  now,  with  many  of  the  clergy,  who  were 
alarmed  at  so  bold  an  inroad,  fled  to  England.  He  returned  to  Scotland 
with  the  earl  of  Angus  and  his  party,  a  few  montlis  afterwards,  and  re- 
sumed his  ministerial  duties.  In  15S7,  he  was  nominated  to  the  bishopric 
of  Caithness ;  but  the  assembly  refused  to  ratify  the  appointment.  In 
1591,  the  assembly  appointed  him  to  write  against  sacrilege;  his  Three 
Sermons  on  that  subject  were  approved  of,  and  ordered  to  be  printed  by  the 
Presbytery  of  Edinburgh,  November  12,  1594  (See  Records),  but  from  some  un- 
known cause,  were  not  published  till  1599.  In  1594,  he  published  "  A  New 
Treatise  on  the  right  reckoning  of  Yeares  and  Ages  of  the  World,"  for  the 
purpose  of  showing  that  the  year  1600  was  not,  as  his  countrymen  supposed, 
the  proper  year  of  the  jubilee.  In  1601,  he  was  appointed  by  the  General 
Assembly  to  revise  the  Psalms.  In  1596  and  1602,  he  was  chosen  com- 
missioner of  Orkney,  and  his  name  was  first  in  the  list  of  those  who  were 
intended  for  the  qualified  prelacies.  In  1604,  he  published  a  tract  on 
tiie  union  of  the  kingdoms,  "  De  Unione  Britanniae,  seu  de  Regnorum  Anglice 
et  Scotiae  omniumque  adjacentiuui  insularum  in  unam  Monarchiam  consolidatione, 
deque  multiplici  ejus  Unionis  utilitate  Dialogus."  Mr  Eraser  Tytler,  who  ap- 
pears to  Iiave  perused  it,  says,'^  "  This  politii^al  treatise,  which  is  written  in  La- 
tin, in  the  form  of  a  dialogue  between  three  fictitious  speakers,  Irenaeus,  Poly- 
histor,  and  Hospes,  is  chiefly  valuable  from  its  furnishing  us  with  some  curious 
pictures  of  the  political  state  of  the  country,  and  the  rude  mannera  of  the  times. 
*  *  *  The  picture  he  presents  of  the  intolerable  tyranny  of  the  nobles  in 
their  strong  and  remote  fortresses,  of  the  impotency  of  the  arm  of  the  law,  and 
the  personal  terrore  of  Uie  judges,  who  trembled  before  these  petty  princes,  very 
completely  proves  that  there  was  no  poetical  exaggeration  in  the  verses  of  Sir 
Richard  IMaitland."  Pont  died  on  the  8th  May,  1606,  and  was  interred,  it  is 
said,  in  the  church  of  St  Cuthbert's,  where  a  monument  was  erected  to  his  memory, 
with  an  epitaph,  partly  in  English,  partly  in  very  questionable  Latin.  He  had 
prepared  a  more  ample  edition  of  his  work  on  the  Jubilee  Year,  which  was  pub- 
lished in  quarto,  in  1619.^  Besides  these  works  Pont  wTote  Chronologia  de 
Sabbatis,  published  at  London  in  1626.  His  Aureum  Seculum,  his  Transla- 
tion of  Pindar's  Olympic  Odes,  his  Dissertation  on  the  Greek  Lyric  Metres,  his 
Lexicon  of  Three  Languages,  and  Collection  of  Homilies,  all  of  which  David 
Buchanan  says  he  saw  in  MS.  are  now  nowhere  to  be  found. 

PONT,  Timothy,  the  celebrated  geographer  who  prepared  the  *'  Theatrum 
ScotiaB,"  in  "  Bleau's  Atlas,"  was  the  eldest  son  of  the  preceding,  apparently 
by   his   first   wife,   Catharine  Masterton,  daughter  of  Masterton    of  Grange. 

2  Life  of  Sir  Thomas  Craig,  213. 

3  Sibbaldi  Bibliotheca  Scoiica  (MS.  Adv.  Lib.)  224,  225.  In  the  second  part  oft  his  work, 
there  is  put  down  to  the  name  of  Kobertus  Pontanus,  "  Parvus  Catechismus  quo  examinari 
possunt  qui  ad  sacram  coenam  admittitntur."  Ancirean.  1573.  For  a  more  full  account  of 
Pont,  see  Historj-  of  the  Church  and  Parish  of  St  Cuthbeits,  Edinburgh,  1629,  pp.  20 — 41, 
and  Wodrow's  Biog.  Coll.  vol.  i. 


Hi  SIR  JOHN  PRTKGLF. 


Scarcely  anything  of  his  personal  history  appears  to  be  known.  He  seems  to 
hare  become  a  minister  of  the  Scottish  church,  and  is  mentioned  in  the  Book  of 
Assignations,  1601-8,  as  "minister  of  DHnet."";  Sir  Robert  Sibbald  (De  Histor. 
Scot.  MS.  Ad.  Lib.  p.  2.)  mentions  a  pedestrian  expedition  undertaken  by  him, 
in  1608,  to  explore  the  more  barbarous  parts  of  the  country.  "  He  was," 
says  bishop  Nicholson,"  by  nature  and  education  a  complete  mathematician,  and 
the  first  projector  of  a  Scotch  Atlas.  To  that  great  purpose,  he  personally  survey- 
ed all  the  several  counties  and  isles  of  the  kingdom  ;  took  draughts  of  'em  upon 
the  spot,  and  added  such  cursory  observations  on  the  monuments  of  antiquity,  and 
other  curiosities  as  were  proper  for  the  furnishing  out  of  future  descriptions.  He 
was  unhappily  surprised  by  death,  to  the  inestimable  loss  of  his  countrey,  when 
he  had  well  nigh  finished  his  papei-s,  most  of  which  were  fortunately  retrieved 
by  Sir  John  Scott,  and  disposed  of  in  such  a  manner  as  has  been  already  re- 
ported. There  are  some  other  remains  of  this  learned  and  good  man,  on  the 
•  History  of  Agricola's  Vallum,  or  Graham's  Dilce,'  as  are  well  worth  the  pro- 
serving."'  The  originals  of  the  maps  so  drawn  up  are  preserved  in  good  or- 
der in  the  Advocates'  library.  They  are  minutely  and  elegantly  penned,  and 
have  the  air  of  such  laborious  correctness,  as  the  science  of  the  period  ena- 
bled the  geographer  to  attain.  Font  appears  to  have  penetrated  to  those  wild 
and  remote  portions  of  the  island,  the  surfaces  of  which  have  scarcely  yet 
been  accurately  delineated.  Sir  Robert  Sibbald  mentions  (De  Histor.  Scot,  ut 
supra),  that  after  Font's  death,  his  maps  were  so  carelessly  kept  by  his  heirs, 
that  they  were  in  great  danger  of  destruction  from  moths  and  vermin.  King 
James  ordered  that  they  should  be  purchased  and  given  to  the  world ;  but 
amidst  the  cares  of  government  they  were  jigain  consigned  for  a  season  to  oblivion. 
At  length  Sir  John  Scott  of  Scotstarvet,  to  whose  enlightened  patronage  we  owe 
much  of  what  is  preserved  of  the  literature  of  his  times,  prevailed  with  Sir  Robert 
Gordon  of  Straloch  to  revise  and  correct  them  for  the  press.  The  task  was 
continued  by  Sir  Robert's  son,  Mr  James  Gordon,  parson  of  Rothemay,  and  with 
his  amendments  they  appeared  in  Bleau's  celebrated  Atlas. 

PRINGLE,  (Sir)  John,  a  distinguished  physician  and  cultivator  of  science, 
was  born  at  Stitchel  house,  in  Roxburghshire,  April  10,  1707.  He  was  the 
youngest  son  of  Sir  John  Fringle  of  Stitchel,  BarL,  by  3Iagdalen  Elliot,  sister 
of  Sir  Gilbert  Elliot  of  Stobs.  His  education  was  commenced  at  home  under  a 
private  tutor,  and  advanced  at  the  university  of  St  Andrews,  where  he  had  the 
advantage  of  living  with  liis  relation,  Mr  Francis  Fringle,  professor  of  Greek. 
Having  determined  on  physic  as  a  profession,  he  spent  the  winter  of  1727-8  at 
the  medical  classes  in  Edinburgh,  and  afterwards  proceeded  to  Leyden,  where, 
in  1730,  he  received  his  diploma,  which  was  signed  by  the  distinguished  names 
of  Boerhaave,  Albinus,  and  Gravesande,  under  whom  he  had  studied.  He  then 
settled  as  a  physician  in  Edinburgh,  and  in  a  few  years  had  so  much  distin- 
guished himself  as  to  be,  in  1734,  appointed  assistant  and  successor  to  the  pro- 
fessor of  pneumatics  and  moral  philosophy  in  the  university.  He  continued  in 
this  situation  till  1742,  when,  chiefly  by  the  influence  of  Dr  Stevenson,  (an 
eminent  whig  physician,  and  the  patron  of  Dr  Blacklock,)  he  was  appointed 
physician  to  the  earl  of  Stair,  then  in  command  of  the  British  army  in  Flanders. 
By  the  interest  of  this  nobleman,  he  was,  in  the  same  year,  constituted  physi- 
cian to  the  military  hospital  in  Flanders.  An  extensive  field  of  observation 
was  thus  opened  to  Dr  Fringle  ;  and  that  he  cultivated  it  with  advantage,  is  suf- 
ficiently shown  by  his  "  Treatise  on  the  Diseases  of  the  Army,"  subsequently 
published.  At  the  battle  of  Dettingen,  he  was  in  a  coach  with  the  minister, 
»  M'Crie's  Melville,  2nd  edition,  ii.  428.  «  Scottish  Historical  Library,  24 


SIR  JOHN  PRINGLE.  145 


lox'd  Carteret,  and,  at  one  particular  crisis  of  the  action,  was  involved  in  coa- 
siderable  danger.  On  the  resignation  of  the  earl  of  Stair,  he  also  proposed  re- 
signing, but  was  prevented  by  his  lordship,  whom  he  accompanied,  however, 
forty  miles  on  his  way  to  England,  as  a  mark  of  his  respect.  Having  gained 
equal  favour  with  the  duke  of  Cumberland,  Dr  Pringle  was,  in  March,  1745, 
appointed  physician-general  to  the  forces  in  the  Low  Countries,  and  physician 
to  the  royal  hospitals  in  the  same  countries.  He  now  resigned  his  Edinburgh 
professorship,  the  duties  of  which  had  been  performed  by  deputy  in  his  absence. 
In  tlie  latter  part  of  the  year  1745,  he  returned  to  Britain,  in  attendance  upon 
the  forces  which  were  brought  over  to  suppress  the  rebellion.  In  passing 
through  London  in  October,  he  was  chosen  a  Fellow  of  the  Royal  Society. 
Early  in  t!ie  ensuing  year,  he  accompanied  the  duke  of  Cumberland  to  Scot- 
land, and  remained  with  the  army,  after  the  battle  of  CuUoden,  till  its  return 
to  England,  in  the  middle  of  August.  In  1747  and  1748,  he  again  attended 
the  array  abroad. 

After  the  peace  of  Aix-la-Chapelle,  in  the  latter  year,  he  settled  as  a  physi- 
cian in  London,  under  the  patronage  of  the  duke  of  Cumbex'land,  who,  in 
April,  1749,  appointed  him  his  physician  in  ordinary,  In  1750,  Dv  Pringle 
published  his  fust  work,  a  pamphlet  on  the  Jail  and  Hospital  Fever,  hastily 
prepared,  to  meet  the  exigency  of  the  breaking  out  of  that  distemper  in  Lon- 
don. It  was  afterwards  revised,  and  included  in  the  work  on  the  diseases  of 
the  army. 

About  this  time,  Dr  Pringle  commenced  his  scientific  career,  by  reading  a 
series  of  papers  to  the  Iloyal  Society,  on  septic  and  antiseptic  substances,  and 
Iheir  use  in  the  theory  of  medicine;  whicli  procured  for  their  author  the  honour 
of  Sir  Godfrey  Copley's  gold  medal,  and  not  only  gave  him  reputation  as  an 
experimental  philosopher,  but  helped  to  stimulate  the  spirit  of  physical  inquiry, 
then  rising  into  force  in  Britain.  A  great  variety  of  other  papers  by  Dr  Pringle 
are  found  in  the  Transactions  of  the  Society,  during  the  four  ensuing  years. 
In  1752,  he  married  Charlotte,  the  second  daughter  of  Dr  Oliver,  an  emineiit 
physician  in  Bath  ;  who  died  a  few  years  after,  leaving  him  no  children.  In 
the  same  year,  he  published  his  great  work  on  the  diseases  of  the  army,  which 
instantly  placed  the  author  in  the  first  rank  of  medical  writers.  In  1761,  he 
was  appointed  physician  to  the  household  of  the  young  queen  Charlotte ;  an 
honour  which  was  followed,  in  rapid  succession,  by  the  appointments  of  physi- 
cian extraordinary,  and  physician  in  ordinary,  to  her  majesty.  He  now  be- 
came an  intimate  and  confidential  person  in  the  family  of  the  king,  who,  in 
1766,  raised  him  to  the  dignity  of  a  baronet  of  Great  Britain.  In  1768,  he 
was  appointed  physician  in  ordinary  to  the  king's  mother,  the  princess  of 
Wales,  with  a  salary  of  one  hundred  pounds  a-year. 

After  having  for  many  years  acted  as  a  member  of  the  council  in  the  Royal 
Society,  he  was,  in  November,  1772,  elected  president  of  that  distinguished 
body  ;  by  far  the  highest  mark  of  honour  he  ever  received.  It  has  always,  on 
the  other  hand,  been  acknowledged,  that  the  zeal  and  assiduity  displayed  by  Sir 
John  in  this  situation,  communicated  an  impulse  to  the  exertions  of  the  society, 
of  which  the  most  sensible  proofs  are  to  be  found  in  its  Transactions,  published 
during  the  years  of  his  presidency.  The  last  medical  honour  conferred  on  Sir 
John  Pringle  was  his  appointment,  in  1774,  as  physician  extraordinary  to  tlie 
king. 

It  would  be  wearisome  to  repeat  the  list  of  honours  showered  upon  him  by 
foreign  learned  bodies  ;  we  shall  only  allude  to  his  succeeding  Linnaeus,  in 
1778,  as  one  of  the  eight  foreign  members  of  the  French  Academy. 

Long  ere  this  period.  Sir  John  had  acquired  a  considerable  fortune  by  his 


146  SIR   HENRY   RAEBURN. 


practice  and  from  other  sources,  and  lived  in  a  style  of  dignified  hospitality^ 
suitable  to  his  high  character.  He  was  in  the  habit  of  holding  conversations 
on  the  Sunday  evenings,  whicli  were  attended  by  men  of  literature  and  science 
from  all  countries.  After  passing  his  seventieth  year,  feeling  liis  health  de- 
clining, he  resigned  the  presidency  of  the  Hoyal  Society,  in  «hich  he  was 
succeeded  (1778)  by  3Ir  (afterwards  Sir)  Joseph  Banks,  and  formed  tlie 
resolution  of  retiring  to  spend  the  remainder  of  his  days  in  his  native 
country.  Having  passed  the  summer  of  1780  very  pleasantly  in  Scotland, 
he  purchased  a  house  in  Edinburgh,  sold  off"  that  in  which  he  had  long  re- 
sided in  London,  and  in  the  spring  of  1781  made  a  decided  remove  to  the 
Scottish  capital.  It  seems  to  have  been  the  hope  of  the  declining  veteran, 
that  lie  might  more  agreeably  sink  to  rest  amidst  tlie  friends  and  the  scenes 
of  his  youth,  than  amongst  strangers ;  and  he  also  contemplated  much  plea- 
sure in  the  regular  evening  convereations,  for  which  he  intended  to  throw 
open  his  liouse.  It  is  painful  to  relate,  that  he  was  disappointed  in  his  view^. 
Tlie  friends  of  his  youth  had  almost  all  passed  away ;  the  scenes  were  changed 
to  such  a  degree,  that  they  failed  to  suggest  the  associations  he  expected.  The 
society  of  Edinburgh  he  found  to  be  of  too  limited  a  nature,  to  keep  up  a  sys- 
tem of  weekly  conversations  with  the  necessary  degree  of  novelty  and  spirit. 
He  also  suffered  considerably  from  the  keen  winds,  to  which  Edinburgh  is  so 
remarkably  exposed.  These  evils  were  exaggerated  by  his  increasing  infirmi- 
ties, and  perhaps  by  that  restlessness  of  mind,  which,  in  the  midst  of  bodily 
complaints,  is  still  hoping  to  derive  some  benefit  from  a  change  of  place.  He 
<'etermined,  therefore,  to  return  to  London,  wiiere  he  arrived  in  the  beginning 
of  September. 

Sir  John  Pringle  did  not  long  survive  this  change  of  residence.  On  the 
evening  of  the  14th  of  January,  1782,  while  attending  a  stated  meeting  of 
scientific  friends  in  the  house  of  a  Mr  Watson,  a  grocer  in  the  Strand,  he  was 
seized  with  a  fit,  from  which  he  never  i-ecovered.  He  expired  on  the  18th,  in 
the  seventy-fifth  year  of  his  age,  and  was  interred  in  St  James's  church.  Sir 
John  left  the  bulk  of  his  fortune  to  his  nephew,  Sir  James  Pringle  of  Stitchel, 
who  also  inherited  from  him  the  British  baronetcy,  in  addition  to  that  of  Nova 
Scotia,  ^»hich  the  family  had  previously  possessed.  As  a  physician  and  a  philo- 
sophical inquirer,  his  character  was  of  the  first  order  ;  nor  were  his  private 
virtues  less  eminent  He  never  grudged  his  professional  assistance  to  those  who 
could  not  afford  to  remunerate  him  ;  and  he  was  a  sincere,  though  liberal  and 
rational,  professor  of  the  truths  of  religion.  His  conduct,  in  every  relation  of 
life,  was  upright  and  honourable.  He  informed  Mr  Boswell — and  few  gentle- 
men of  that  period  could  make  such  a  boast — that  he  had  never  in  his  life  been 
intoxicated  with  liquor.  There  is  a  monument  to  Sir  Joiin,  by  Nollekins,  in 
Westminster  Abbey. 


R 

RAEBURN,  (Sir)  Hexhy,  a  celebrated  portrait-painter,  was  the  younger 
son  of  Mr  William  Raeburn,  a  respectable  manufacturer  at  Stockbridge,  near 
Edinburgh,  where  he  was  born,  4th  3Iarch,  1756.  While  very  young  he  had 
ihe  misfortune  to  lose  both  his  parents  ;  but  this  want  was  supplied  to  Iiim,  as 
much  as  it  could  be  by  his  elder  brother  William,  who  succeeded  to  the  busi- 
ness, and  acted  always  to  him  the  part  of  a  father.  It  has  been  represented 
by  some  of  Sir  Henry's  biographers  (perhaps  with  a  view  of  making  the  after 


Sr  ELiUjaVtnn, 


m  IHJEI^IKY   [KAEiyif^. 


..i-GOir,  r-;:f,r-'.:fn;   -t.-,i-,:;i7I'V(-:7T*T,:TK!)cm. 


SIR   HENRY  RAEBURN,  147 


acquirements  of  the  subject  of  the  biography  more  remarkable),  that  he  received 
his  education  at  Heriot's  Hospital,  a  well  known  and  benevolent  institution  in 
Edinburgh  ;  but  this  is  not  the  fact,  his  brother  William  having  with  heart- 
felt satisfaction  given  him  the  scanty,  but  usual  education  of  that  period.  In 
the  usual  routine  of  education  he  was  not  remarked  to  display  any  superiority  to 
his  class  fellows,  but  when  they  were  drawing  figures  on  their  slates  or  copy 
books,  those  of  Raeburn  surpassed  all  the  rest ;  but  this  did  not  lead  any  fur- 
ther. In  other  respects  he  was  distinguished  by  the  affection  of  his  compan- 
ions, and  formed  at  that  early  period  intimacies  with  some  of  those  distinguished 
friends  whose  regard  accompanied  him  through  life.  The  circumstances  of 
young  liaeburn  rendering  it  necessary  that  he  should,  cs  early  as  possible, 
be  enabled  to  provide  for  his  own  support,  he  was  at  the  age  of  fifteen 
apprenticed  to  a  goldsmith,  who  kept  his  shop  in  a  dark  alley,  leading  be» 
tween  the  Parliament  Square  and  the  front  of  the  Old  Tolbooth.  Here,  with- 
out receiving  any  lessons,  he  began  to  amuse  himself  by  sketching  figures,  and 
ultimately  by  painting  miniatures.^  His  master,at  first  incensed  by  his  apparentin- 
attention  to  business,  was  afterwards  astonished  by  the  merit  of  his  performances, 
and,  with  a  liberality  hardly  to  have  been  expected,  conducted  him  to  a  place 
where  he  might  gather  the  means  of  improvement  in  his  self-assumed  art,  namely, 
the  studio  of  Mr  David  Martin,  the  principal  portrait-painter  in  Edinburgh.  He 
was  delighted  with  the  works  there  presented  to  his  eye  ;  and  Martin,  on  the 
other  hand,  spoke  encouragingly  to  the  young  artist.  His  miniatures  soon  be- 
came so  famous,  that  commissions  came  rapidly  in,  and  he  generally  painted 
two  in  the  week.  As  this  employment,  of  course,  withdrew  his  time  almost  en- 
tirely from  trade,  he  made  an  arrangement  with  his  master,  by  which  the  latter 
was  compensated  for  the  loss  he  incurred  on  that  account.  While  still  an  ap- 
prentice, he  began  to  paint  in  oil,  and  on  a  large  scale.  To  aid  him  in  this 
task,  he  obtained  from  Martin  the  loan  of  several  pictures  to  copy  ;  but  that 
painter  did  not  contribute  advice  or  assistance  in  any  other  shape  ;  and  having 
once  unjustly  accused  the  young  student  of  selling  one  of  the  copies,  Baeburn 
indignantly  refused  any  farther  accommodation  of  this  nature.  Having  begun, 
however,  to  paint  large  oil  pictures,  he  soon  adopted  them  in  preference  to 
miniatures,  a  style  which  he  gradually  gave  up  ;  nor  did  his  manner  in  later 
life  retain  any  trace  of  that  mode  of  painting  :  all  was  broad,  massy,  and 
vigorous. 

He  had  thus  become  a  painter  almost  by  intuition ;   for  there  is  no  ascertain' 
ing  that  he  ever  received  any  direct  instructions  in  the  mysteries,  or  even  in  • 
the  manual  operations,  of  his  art.     It  was  in  his  twenty-second  year,  and  when 

1  "  It  was  in  this  situation,"  says  the  late  Dr  A.  Duncan,  senior,  "  that  my  first  acquaintance 
with  him  commenced,  and  that,  too,  on  a  melancholy  occasion.  Mr  Charles  Darwin,  son  of 
the  justly  celebrated  Dr  Erasmus  Darwin,  author  of  that  much  esteemed  poem,  '  The  Bo- 
tanic Garden,'  and  of  other  works  demonstrating  great  genius,  died  during  the  course  of  his 
medicd  studies  at  Edinburgh.  At  that  time  I  had  the  honour,  though  a  very  young  medi- 
cal Itdurer,  of  ranking  Danvin  among  the  number  of  my  pupils.  And  I  need  hardly  add, 
that  he  was  a  favourite  pupil :  for,  duiing  his  studies,  he  exhibited  sucli  uncommon  proofs  of 
genius  and  industrj',  as  could  not  fail  to  gain  the  esteem  and  aiiection  of  every  disceniing 
teacher. 

"  On  the  death  of  }oung  Darwin,  I  was  anxious  to  retain  some  slight  token  in  remem- 
brance of  my  highly  esteemed  \oung  friend;  and,  for  that  purpose,  I  obtained  a  small  portion 
of  his  hair.  I  applied  to  Mr  Gilliland,  at  that  time  an  eminent  jeweller  in  Edinburgh,  to 
have  it  preserved  in  a  mourning  ring.  He  told  me,  that  one  of  his  present  apprenticts  was  a 
young  man  of  great  genius,  and  could  prepare  for  me  in  hair,  a  memorial  that  would  demon- 
strate both  taste  and  art.  -Young  Raeburn  was  immediately  called,  ana  proposed  to  execute, 
on  a  small  trinket,  which  might  be  hung  at  a  watch,  a  muse  weeping  over  an  urn,  marked 
with  the  inilitJs  of  Charles  Darwin.  I'his  trinket  was  finished  by  Raeburn  in  a  manner 
wliich,  to  me,  aflbrdcd  manifest  proof  of  very  superior  genius,  and  I  still  preserve  it,  as  a  me- 
morial of  the  singular  and  early  merit,  both  of  D.irwin  and  of  Raeburn.' 


148  SIR  HENRY  RAEBURN. 

practising  regularly  as  a  rival  of  his  old  friend  Martin,  that  he  became  ac- 
quainted, under  extraordinary  circumstances,  with  tlie  lady  who  became  his 
wife.  "  One  day,"  says  his  most  animated  biographer,'  "  a  young  lady  pre- 
sented herself  at  his  studio,  and  desired  to  sit  for  her  portrait.  He  instantly 
remembered  having  seen  her  in  some  of  his  excursions,  when,  with  liis  sketclw 
book  in  his  hand,  he  was  noting  down  some  fine  snatches  of  scenery  ;  and,  ns  the 
appearance  of  any  thing  living  and  lovely  gives  an  additional  charm  to  a  land- 
scape, the  painter,  like  Gainsborough,  in  similar  circumstances,  had  readily 
admitted  her  into  his  drawing.  This  circumstance,  he  said,  had  liad  its  influ- 
ence. On  further  acquainUince,  he  found  that,  besides  personal  cliarnis,  slie 
had  sensibility  and  wit.  His  respect  for  her  did  not  affect  his  skill  of  hand, 
but  rather  inspired  it,  and  he  succeeded  in  making  a  fine  portrait.  The  lady, 
Ann  Edgar,  the  daughter  of  Peter  Edgar,  esquire,  of  Bridgelands,  was  mucli 
pleased  witli  the  skill,  and  likewise  with  the  manners  of  the  artist ;  and  about  a 
month  or  so  after  tlie  adventure  of  the  studio,  she  gave  him  her  hand  in  mar- 
riage ;  bestowing  at  once  an  afl^ectionate  wife,  and  a  handsome  fortune." 

Having  now  the  means  of  improving  in  his  art,  he  set  out  for  London,  and 
was  introduced  to  Sir  Joshua  Reynolds,  who  treated  him  with  distinguished 
liberality  and  kindness,  even  to  the  extent  of  offering  him  money  to  prosecute 
his  studies  in  Home,  which  he  was  not  aware  that  Raeburn  did  not  need.  Fur- 
nished with  introductions  by  this  eminent  person,  he  set  out  for  the  capital  of 
the  arts,  accompanied  by  his  wife.  At  Rome,  he  w.-»s  considerably  indebted 
for  advice  to  3Ir  Gavin  Hamilton,  and  likewise  to  IMr  Byers,  who  gave  him  the 
excellent  counsel  never  to  copy  any  object  from  memory,  but,  from  the  principal 
figure  to  the  minutest  accessory,  to  have  it  placed  before  him.  To  the  observ- 
ance of  this  rule,  Raeburn  imputed  in  a  great  measure,  the  improvement 
which  was  observed  in  his  subsequent  pictures. 

His  powers  now  fully  matured,  he  returned  in  1787  to  his  native  city,  and 
set  up  his  easel  in  a  fashionable  house  in  George  Street.  The  works  of  Mar- 
tin— though  certainly  better  than  the  biographers  of  Raeburn  delight  to  repre- 
sent them — were  so  much  eclipsed  by  the  junior  artist,  that  the  whole  tide  of 
employment  left  the  one  painter  for  the  other.  In  vain  did  the  veteran  pro- 
phesy that  this  fever  of  approbation  could  not  last,  and  tliat  "  the  lad  in  George 
Street "  painted  better  before  he  went  to  Rome.  The  nation  persisted  in  be- 
ing of  another  opinion,  and  Blartin  was  at  last  obliged  to  retire  from  the  field 
in  despair.  Raeburn  at  once  assumed  that  pre-eminent  rank  in  his  profession, 
which,  notwithstanding  the  multitude  of  rivals  who  afterwards  rose  around  him, 
he  bore  to  the  day  of  his  death. 

The  subsequent  history  of  this  artist,  is  chiefly  that  of  his  pictures.  For 
thirty-six  years  he  was  constantly  employed  in  his  professional  duties,  and 
painted  the  most  of  the  eminent  persons  who  lived  in  Scotland  during  that 
lime.  Unfortunately  no  record  has  been  preserved  of  his  various  works  ;  but 
they  are  to  be  found  in  almost  every  distinguished  mansion  in  the  country.^ 

2  Mr  Allan  Cunningham,  in  his  Lives  of  Bdtish  Pnintcrs. 

3  The  following  pictures  by  Sir  Henry  Katbum,  besides  others,  have  been  engraved : — 
[Full  lenglh.\  First  viscount  Melville,  in  peer's  robes.  General  Sir  David  Haird,  with 
horse.  Sir  Walter  Scott,  Bart.  Macdonnell  of  Glengarrj'.  Lord  chief  commissioner  Adam. 
Henry  Mackcniie.  General  the  earl  of  Hopetoun,  with  horse. — [Three  quarters  length.} 
Captain  G.  Duff,  of  the  Mars,  who  fell  at  Trafalgar.  Neil  Gow,  with  his  ficicile.  Dr  Alex- 
antlcr  Adam.  James  Pillaiis,  professor  of  humanity,  Edinburgh.  John  Gleik,  of  Eldin. 
Charles  Hope,  president  of  the  court  of  session.  Uobert  Macqucen  of  Biaxfield,  in  justiciary 
robes.  Hon.  Htrry  Erekine.  Dugald  Stewart,  professor  of  "moral  philosophy.  James 
Gregory,  M.  D.  Robert  Ulair,  president  of  the  court  of  session.  Gioige  the  Fourth. 
RobertDiindas,  president  of  the  court  of  si-ssion.  John  Elder,  provost  of  Etlinburgh,  in  his 
robes.     VViiram  Creech,  bookseller.     Professor  Thomas  Hope.     Dr  Hugh  Blair.     James 


SIR   HENRY   RAEBURN. 


149 


Having  stored  his  mind  ^¥ith  ideas  drawn  from  the  purest  school  of  tnodern  art, 
he  was  indebted  for  his  subsequent  improvement  solely  to  his  own  reflections, 
and  the  study  of  nature.  He  was  never  in  the  habit  of  repairing  to  London  ; 
and,  indeed,  he  did  not  visit  that  metropolis  above  three  times,  nor  did  he  re- 
side in  it  altogether  more  than  four  months.  He  v.as  thus  neither  in  the  habit 
of  seeing  the  works  of  his  contemporaries,  nor  the  English  collections  of  old 
pictures.  Whatever  disadvantage  might  attend  this,  it  never  stopped  the  career 
of  his  improvement.  Probably,  indeed,  it  had  the  effect  of  preserving  that  ori- 
ginality which  formed  always  the  decided  chai-acter  of  his  productions,  and  kept 
him  free  from  being  trammelled  by  the  style  of  any  class  of  artists.  Perhaps, 
also,  the  elevation  and  dignity  of  style  which  he  always  maintained  might  be 
greatly  owing  to  his  exclusive  acquaintance  with  the  works  of  the  Italian  mas- 
ters. In  English  collections,  the  Dutch  specimens  are  necessarily  so  pi-ominent, 
both  as  to  number  and  choice,  that  a  familiar  acquaintance  with  them  must  be 
apt  to  beget  a  tiste  for  that  homely  truth,  and  minute  finishing,  in  which  their 
merit  consists. 

The  first  excellence  of  a  portrait,  and  for  the  absence  of  which  nothing  can 
atone,  must  evidently  be  its  resemblance.  In  this  respect,  Sir  Henry's  eminence 
was  universally  acknowledged.  In  the  hands  of  the  best  artists,  there  must,  in 
this  part  of  their  task,  be  something  precarious ;  but,  in  a  vast  majority  of  in- 
stances, his  resemblances  were  most  striking.  They  were  also  happily  distin- 
guished, by  being  always  the  most  favourable  that  could  be  taken  of  the  indi- 
vidual, and  were  usually  expressive,  as  well  of  the  character  as  of  the  features. 
This  desirable  object  was  effected,  not  by  the  introduction  of  any  ideal  touches, 
or  any  departure  from  the  strictest  truth,  but  by  selecting  and  drawing  out 
those  aspects  under  which  the  features  appeared  most  dignified  and  pleasing. 
He  made  it  his  peculiar  study  to  bring  out  the  mind  of  his  subjects.  His  pene- 
tration quickly  empowered  him  to  discover  their  favourite  pursuits  and  topics  of 
conversation.  Sir  Henry's  varied  knowledge  and  agreeable  manners  then  easily 
enabled  him,  in  the  course  of  the  sitting,  to  lead  them  into  an  animated  discus- 
sion on  those  ascertained  subjects.  As  they  spoke,  he  caught  their  features, 
enlivened  by  the  strongest  expression  of  which  they  were  susceptible.  While 
he  thus  made  the  portrait  much  more  correct  and  animated,  his  sitters  had  a  much 
more  agi-eeable  task  than  those  who  were  pinned  up  for  hours  in  a  constrained 
and  inanimate  posture,  and  in  a  state  of  mental  vacuity.  So  agreeable,  indeed, 
did  many  of  the  most  distinguished  and  intelligent  among  them  find  his  society, 
that  they  courted  it  ever  after,  and  studiously  converted  the  artist  into  a  friend 
and  acquaintance. 

Besides  his  excellence  in  this  essential  quality  of  portrait.  Sir  Henry  possess- 
ed also,  in  an  eminent  degree,  those  secondary  merits,  which  are  requisite  to 
constitute  a  fine  painting.  His  drawing  was  correct,  his  colouring  rich  and 
deep,  and  his  lights  well  disposed.     There  was  something  bold,  free,  and  open 

Balfour  Esq.,  golfer. — [Half  lenglh.'\  Rev.  Dr  Andrew  Hunter,  professor  of  divinity. 
George  Jarduie,  professor  of  logic,  Glasgow.  Justice  clerk  IMacqueen.  Lord  chief  baron 
Dundas.  Hay,  lord  Newton.  Rev.  Dr  David  Johnston,  minister  of  North  Leith.  Rev. 
Dr  John  Erskine.  Dr  James  Hamilton.  John  Graj-,  Esq.,  golfer.  Professor  Playfair. 
Sir  Walter  Scott,  when  young;  Ditto,  when  older.'  Sir  John  Sinclair  of  Ulbsier,  Bart. 
Tytler  of  Woodhouselee.  Harry  David  Inglis  advocate.  Sir  Henry  Raebum.  Dr  George 
Hill,  principal  of  St  Andrews.  Uev.  Archibfdd  Alison.  Mr  Francis  Jeffrey.  Henry 
Cockburn.  liord  Meadowbaiik. — The  following  are  portniits  which,  with  many  others,  have 
not  been  engraved  :  Sir  Henry  Stewart  of  Allanton.  Mr  Benjamin  Bell,  surgeon.  I\Ir 
Leonard  Homer.  Mr  Henry  Raebum,  the  painter's  son.  'I'he  duke  of  Hamilton.  Lord 
Frederick  Campbell.  The  laird  of  Macnab,  in  highland  costume.  Earl  of  Breadalbane. 
Sir  John  Douglas.  Marquis  of  Huntl}'.  Sir  John  Hay.  Archibald  Constable.  Rev.  F. 
Thomson.  Sir  John  and  Lady  Clerk.  Mr  Hennie,  engineer.  Dr  Lindsay,  Finkieburn. 
Dr  Alexander  Duncan. 


150  SIR  HENRY  RAEBURN. 


in  the  whole  style  of  his  execution.  ITie  accessories,  whether  of  drapery,  fur- 
niture, or  landscapes,  were  treated  with  elegance  and  spirit ;  yet  without  that 
elaborate  and  brilliant  finishing,  which  makes  them  become  principals.  These 
parts  were  always  kept  in  due  subordination  to  the  human  figure ;  while  of  it, 
the  head  came  always  out  as  the  prominent  part.  Animals,  particularly  that 
noble  species  the  horso,  were  introduced  with  peculiar  felicity ;  and  Sir 
Henry's  equestrian  portraits  are  perhaps  his  very  best  performances.  The 
able  manner  in  which  the  animal  itself  was  drawn,  and  in  which  it  was  com- 
bined with  the  human  figure,  were  equally  conspicuous. 

In  private  life,  Kaeburn  was  remarkable  for  his  courteous  and  amiable  man- 
ners, and  his  great  domestic  worth.  While  his  painting-rooms  were  in  George 
Street,  and  latterly  in  York  Place,  he  resided  in  a  sequestered  villa  called  St 
Bernard's,  near  the  village  where  he  drew  his  first  breath,  then  distant  from, 
but  now  engrossed  in,  the  extending  city, — where  he  amused  his  leisure  hours 
by  the  society  of  his  children  and  grand-children,  the  cultivation  of  his  garden, 
and  the  study  of  ship-building,  and  some  other  mechanical  pursuits,  fur  which 
he  had  a  liking.  The  hours  between  nine  and  four  he  almost  invariably  spent 
in  his  studio.  He  latterly  found  another  kind  of  employment  for  his  leisure, 
in  planning  out  the  environs  of  his  little  villa,  which  consisted  of  about  ten  acres, 
in  lots  for  building,  and  in  designing  the  architectural  elevations  of  a  little 
group  of  streets  with  which  the  ground  was  to  be  occupied.  It  may 
readily  be  supposed  that  in  this  task  he  manifested  a  superiority  of  taste, 
corresponding  in  seme  measure  with  his  supremacy  in  another  branch  cf 
art  The  suburb  which  has  arisen  upon  his  property,  and  which  was  only  com- 
menced in  his  own  lifetime,  is  accordingly  conspicuous  for  the  elegance  dis- 
played both  in  its  general  arrangement  and  in  its  details ;  and  has  become  a 
favourite  residence  with  such  individuals  as  do  not  find  it  necessary  for  profes- 
sional reasons  to  live  nearer  the  centre  of  the  city. 

In  I8li,  Kaeburn  was  made  an  associate  of  the  Royal  Academy,  and  in  the 
subsequent  year  he  became  an  Academician.  He  afterwards  obtained,  from 
foreign  countries,  many  honours  of  the  same  kind.  In  1822,  when  George  IV. 
visited  Scotland,  the  long-established  fame  of  llaeburn,  together  with  his  for- 
tune and  gentlemanly  manners,  pointed  him  out  as  an  individual  in  whom  the 
king  might  signify  his  respect  for  Scottish  art,  and  he  was  accordingly  knighted 
at  Hopetoun  House,  on  the  last  day  of  his  majesty's  residence  in  the  country. 
Some  weeks  afterwards,  his  brethren  in  art,  noAV  increased  to  a  large  and  re- 
spectable body,  gave  him  a  dinner,  as  a  token  of  their  admiration  of  his  talents 
and  character.  In  his  speech  on  this  occasion,  he  said  modestly  that  he  was 
glad  of  their  approbation,  and  had  tried  to  merit  it ;  for  he  had  never  indulged 
in  a  mean  or  selfish  spirit  towards  any  brother  artists,  nor  had  at  any  time 
withheld  the  praise  which  was  due  to  them,  when  their  works  happened  to  be 
mentioned. 

Sir  Henry  received  afterwards  the  appointment  of  portrait-painter  to  his 
majesty  for  Scotland;  a  nomination,  however,  which  was  not  announced  to 
him  till  the  very  day  when  he  was  seized  with  his  last  illness.  The  king,  when 
conferring  the  dignity  of  knighthood,  had  expressed  a  wish  to  have  a  portrait 
of  himself  painted  by  this  great  artist ;  but  Sir  Henry's  numerous  engagements 
prevented  him  from  visiting  the  metropolis  for  that  purpose.  It  reflects  great 
honour  on  tlie  subject  of  this  memoir,  that  he  never  gave  way  to  those  secure 
and  indolent  habits,  which  advanced  age  and  established  reputation  are  so  apt 
to  engender.  He  continued,  with  all  the  enthusiasm  of  a  student,  to  seek  and 
to  attain  farther  improvement.  The  pictures  of  his  two  or  three  last  years  are 
unquestionably  the  best  that  he  ever  painted.     But  perhaps  the  most  interesting 


"^Si^An  /fy-m-r 


"'.fti-iajn  Hnwiscn 


A.[L[LAiP3    [IAM]S/^V= 


BI^AnKIE  *:  SOK,  GIiASGOff,  ZHHiBORG-l  *  JiOSDON  . 


ALLAN   RAMSAY.  151 


part  of  his  recent  works  consists  in  a  series  of  lialf-length  portraits  of  eininer.t 
Scotsmen,  wliich,  during  this  period,  he  executed  for  his  private  gratification. 

Tliis  amiable  and  excellent  man  was  suddenly  affected  with  a  general  decay 
and  debility,  not  accompanied  by  any  visible  complaint.  This  state  of  illness, 
after  continuing  for  about  a  week  to  baffle  all  the  e/lbrls  of  medical  skill,  ter- 
minated fatally  on  the  Sth  July,  IS23,  when  he  had  reached  the  age  of  67, 

Few  men  were  better  calculated  to  command  respect  in  society,  than  Sir 
Henry  Raeburn.  His  varied  knowledge,  his  gentlemanly  and  agreeable  man- 
ners, an  extensive  command  of  anecdote,  always  well  told  and  happily  intro- 
duced, the  general  correctness  and  propriety  of  his  whole  deportment,  made  him  be 
highly  valued  by  many  of  the  most  distinguished  individuals  in  Edinburgh, 
both  as  a  companion  and  as  a  friend.  His  conversation  might  be  said  in  some 
degree  to  resemble  his  style  of  painting, — there  was  the  same  ease  and  simpli- 
city, the  same  total  absence  of  affectation  of  every  kind,  and  the  same  manly 
turn  of  sense  and  genius.  But  we  are  not  aware,  that  the  humorous  gayety  and 
sense  of  the  ludicrous,  which  often  enlivened  his  conversation,  ever  guided  his 
pencil. 

Sir  Henry  Raeburn,  like  Raphael,  Michael  Angelo,  and  some  other  masters 
of  the  art,  possessed  the  advantages  of  a  tall  and  commanding  person,  and  a 
noble  and  expressive  countenance.  He  excelled  in  archery,  golf,  and  other 
Scottish  exercises;  and  it  may  be  added,  that,  while  engaged  in  painting,  his 
step  and  attitudes  were  at  once  stately  and  graceful. 

By  his  lady,  who  survived  him  ten  years.  Sir  Henry  had  two  sons  ;  Peter, 
a  youth  of  great  promise,  who  died  at  nineteen;  and  Henry,  who,  with  his 
wife  and  family,  lived  under  the  same  roof  with  his  father  during  the  whole  of 
their  joint  lives,  and  was  his  most  familiar  friend  and  companion.  To  the 
children  of  this  gentleman,  the  illustrious  painter  left  the  bulk  of  his  fortune, 
chiefly  consisting  of  Iiouses  and  ground- rents  in  the  suburb  of  St  Bernard's. 

RAMSAY,  Allan,  the  celebrated  poet,  was  born  at  the  village  of  Leadhills, 
in  Lanarkshire,  October  15,  1686.  His  parentage  was  highly  respectable,  and 
his  ancestry  even  dignified.  His  father,  Robert  Ramsay,  was  manager  of  the  lead 
mines  in  Crawfordmuir,  belonging  to  the  earl  of  Hopetoun  ;  and  his  mother, 
Alice  Bower,  was  tlie  daughter  of  a  gentleman  who  had  been  brought  from 
Derbyshire,  to  introduce  and  oversee  some  improvements  in  the  management  of 
the  mines.  His  grandfather,  Robert  Ramsay,  writer  or  notary  in  Edinburgh, 
was  the  son  of  captain  .Tohn  Ramsay,  a  son  of  Ramsay  of  Cockpen,  whose 
family  was  a  branch  of  the  Ramsays  of  Dalhousie,  afterwards  ennobled.*  A 
grandmother  of  the  poet,  moreover,  was  Janet  Douglas,  daughter  of  Douglas  of 
Muthil.  Though  thus  well  descended,  he  was  reared  in  the  midst  of  poverty. 
He  had  the  misfortune  to  lose  his  father  while  he  was  yet  an  infant ;  and  his 
mother  seems  almost  immediately  to  have  married  a  Mr  Crighton,  a  small 
landholder  in  tlie  neighbourhood.  Whether  this  last  circumstance  was  an  addi- 
tional misfortune,  as  has  been  generally  assumed  by  his  biographers,  we  think 
may  reasonably  be  questioned.  It  is  not  at  all  probable  that  his  father,  dying 
at  tlie  age  of  twenty-five,  could  have  inuch  property  ;  and  the  use  and  wont  of 
even  a  small  landholder's  house,  is  not  likely  to  have  been  beneath  that  of  a 
poor  widow's.  His  mother  had  a  number  of  children  to  Mr  Crighton  ;  but  the 
subject  of  this  memoir  seems  to  have  been  cared  for  in  the  same  way  as  those 
were,  and  to  have  enjoyed  all  the  advantages  appi-opriate  to  the  same  station 

*  The  laird  of  Cockpen  here  mentioned,  is  usually  represented  as  a  brother  of  Ramsay  of 
Dalhousie;  but  the  branch  seems  to  hava  left  the  main  stock  at  a  much  earlier  period  than 
thai  would  imply.  The  first  Ramsay  of  Cockpen  was  a  son  of  Sir  Alexander  Ramsay,  who 
was  knighted  at 'the  coronation  of  James  I.,  in  li24. 


152  ALLAN  RAMSAY. 


in  life.  He  had  the  benefit  of  the  parish  school  till  he  was  in  his  nfteenth 
year ;  an  extent  of  education  not  yet  common  in  Scotland,  except  Mhen  at- 
tendance on  the  university  is  included.  Of  the  progi-ess  he  had  made  in  his 
studies,  we  have  unfortunately  no  particular  account ;  it  certainly  made  him  ac- 
quainted with  Horace,  as  is  abundantly  evident  in  his  poems. 

In  the  year  1700,  Ramsay  lost  his  mother;  and  in  the  following  year  his 
step-father  carried  him  into  Edinburgh,  and  apprenticed  him  to  a  periwig-maker, 
which  appears  to  have  been  at  that  time  a  flourishing  profession.  Kainsay  him- 
self, it  is  said,  wished  to  have  been  a  painter ;  and  his  stepfather  has  been  re- 
flected on  as  acting  with  niggardly  sharp-sightedness,  in  refusing  to  comply  with 
his  wishes.  There  is  not,  however,  in  the  numerous  writings  of  Ramsay,  one 
single  hint  that  any  violence  was,  on  this  occasion,  done  to  his  feelings  ;  and 
we  think  the  reflection  might  well  have  been  spared.  Those  who  have  borne 
the  burden  of  rearing  a  family  upon  limited  means,  know  the  impossibility  of 
indulging  either  their  own  wishes,  or  those  of  their  children  in  this  respect, 
being  often  obliged  to  rest  satisfied,  not  with  what  they  would  have  wished,  but 
with  what  they  have  been  able  to  attain.  There  can  be  no  doubt  that 
Allan  Kainsay  served  out  his  apprenticeship  honourably,  and  afteruards  for  a 
number  of  years  practised  his  trade  as  a  master  successfully  ;  circumstances  that, 
in  cur  opinion,  justify  the  discretion  and  good  sense  of  his  step-father,  more 
powerfully  than  any  reasoning  could  do.  It  is  to  be  regTetted  that  of  this 
period  of  his  life,  no  accounts  have  been  handed  down  to  us ;  and  the  more  so, 
that  we  liave  no  doubt  they  would  show  his  general  good  sense,  and  the  steady 
character  of  his  genius,  more  powerfully  than  even  the  latter  and  more  flourish- 
ing periods  of  his  history.  Unlike  the  greater  number  of  men  of  poetical 
talent,  Ramsay  had  the  most  perfect  command  over  himself;  and  the  blind 
gropings  of  the  cyclops  of  ambition  within,  led  hira  to  no  premature  attempts  to 
attain  distinction.  Tliough  he  must  have  entertained  day-dreams  of  immortality, 
he  enjoyed  them  with  moderation ;  and,  without  indulging  either  despondency 
or  dejection,  he  waited  with  patience  for  their  realization.  Prosecuting  his 
bujiness  with  diligence,  he  possessed  independence  ;  and,  while,  in  the  com- 
pany of  respectable  fellow  citizens,  he  indulged  and  improved  his  social  quali- 
ties, he,  by  faking  to  wife  an  excellent  woman,  Christian  Ross,  the  daughter  of 
a  writer  in  Edinburgh,  laid  the  foundation  of  a  lifetime  of  domestic  felicity. 

It  was  in  the  year  1712,  and  in  the  twenty-sixth  year  of  his  age,  tliat  ho 
entered  into  the  state  of  matrimony;  and  the  earliest  of  his  productions  that 
can  now  be  traced,  is  an  epistle  to  the  most  happy  members  of  the  Easy  Club, 
dated  the  same  year.  This  club  originated,  as  he  himself,  who  was  one  of  its 
members,  informs  us,  "  in  the  antipathy  we  all  seemed  to  have  at  the  ill  humour 
and  contradiction  which  arise  from  trifles,  especially  those  that  constitute  Whig 
and  Tory,  without  having  the  grand  reason  for  it.''^  This  club  was  in  fact 
formed  of  Jacobites,  and  the  restoration  of  the  Pretender  was  the  "grand 
reason"  here  alluded  to.  In  the  club  every  member  assumed  a  fictitious  name, 
generally  that  of  some  celebrated  writer.  Ramsay,  probably  from  the  Tatler, 
which  must  hare  been  a  book  much  to  his  taste,  pitched  upon  that  of  Isaac 
Bickerstaf}',  bat  afterwards  exchanged  it  for  that  of  Gawin  Douglas.  In  the 
presence  of  this  club,  Ramsay  was  in  the  liabit  of  reading  his  first  productions, 
which,  it  would  ai)pear,  were  published  by  or  under  the  patronage  of  the 
fraternity,  probably  in  notices  of  its  sittings,  which  would  tend  to  give  it  cele- 
brity and  add  to  its  influence.  The  elegy  on  Maggy  Johnston  seems  to  have 
been  one  of  the  earliest  of  liis  productions,  and  is  highly  characteristic  of  his 
genius.  An  Elegy  on  the  death  of  Dr  Pitcairne  in  1715,  was  likewise  read  be- 
fore, and  publislied  by,  the  club ;   but  being  at  once  political  and  personal,  it 


ALLAN  RAMSAY.  153 


was  rejected  by  the  author,  when  he  republished  his  pueius.  Allan  had  thkj 
year  been  elected  Poet  Laureate  of  the  club.  But  the  rising  of  Mar  put  an 
end  to  its  meetings :  and  Ramsay,  though  still  a  keen  Jacobite,  felt  it  to  be  for 
his  interest  to  be  so  in  secret.  It  was  now,  however,  that  lie  commenced  in 
earnest  his  poetical  career,  ar.d  speedily  rose  to  a  degree  of  popularity,  which 
had  been  attained  by  no  poet  in  Scotland  since  the  days  of  Sir  David  Lindsay. 
For  more  than  a  century,  indeed,  Scottish  poetry  had  been  under  an  eclipse, 
Avhile  such  poetical  genius  as  the  age  afforded  chose  Latin  as  the  medium  of 
communication.  Semple,  however,  and  Hamilton  of  Gilbertfield  had  of  late 
years  revived  the  notes  of  the  Doric  reed ;  and  it  seems  to  have  been  some  of 
their  compositions,  as  published  in  Watson's  Collection  in  1706,  that  first  in- 
ipired  Ramsay.  Maggy  Johnston's  Elegy  was  speedily  followed  by  that  on  John 
Cowper,  quite  in  the  same  strain  of  broad  humour.  The  publication  of 
king  James's  "  Christ's  Kirk  on  the  Green,"  from  an  old  manuscript,  speed- 
ily followed,  with  an  additional  canto  by  the  editor,  which,  possessing  the  same 
broad  humour,  in  a  dialect  perfectly  level  to  the  comprehension  of  the  vulgar, 
while  its  precursor  could  not  be  read  even  by  them  without  the  aid  of  explanatory 
notes,  met  with  a  most  coi'dial  reception.  Commentators  have  since  that  period 
puzzled  themselves  not  a  little  to  explain  the  language  of  the  supposed  royal 
bard.  Eamsay,  however,  saved  himself  the  trouble,  leaving  every  one  to  find 
it  out  the  best  way  he  might,  for  he  gave  no  explanations  ;  and  at  the  same 
time,  to  impress  his  readei-s  with  admiration  of  his  great  learning,  he  printed 
his  motto,  taken  from  Gavvin  Douglas,  in  Greek  characters.  A  second  edition 
of  this  work  Avas  published  in  the  year  1718,  with  the  addition  of  a  third  canto, 
Avhich  increased  its  popularity  so  much,  that,  in  the  course  of  the  four  following 
years,  it  ran  through  five  editions.  It  was  previously  to  the  publication  of  this 
work  in  its  extended  form,  that  Allan  Ramsay  had  commenced  the  bookselling 
business,  for  it  was  "  printed  for  the  author,  at  the  Mercury,  opposite  to  Nid- 
dry's  Wynd  ;"  but  the  exact  time  when  or  the  manner  how  he  changed  his 
profession  has  not  been  recorded.  At  the  Mercury,  opposite  to  the  head 
of  Niddry's  Wynd,  Ramsay  seems  to  have  prosecuted  his  business  as  an  original 
author,  editor,  and  bookseller,  with  great  diligence  for  a  considerable  number 
of  years.  His  own  poems  he  continued  to  print  as  they  were  written,  in  single 
sheets  or  half  sheets,  in  which  shape  they  are  reported  to  have  found  a  ready 
sale,  the  citizens  being  in  the  habit  of  sending  their  children  with  a  penny  for 
"  Allan  Ramsay's  last  piece."  In  this  form  were  first  published,  besides  those 
we  have  already  mentioned,  '*  The  City  of  Edinburgh's  address  to  the  Country," 
"  The  City  of  Edinburgh's  Salutation  to  the  marquis  of  Caernarvon,"  *'  Elegy  on 
Lucky  Wood,"  "Familiar  Epistles,"  &c.  &c.,  which  had  been  so  well  received 
by  the  public  that  in  the  year  1720,  he  issued  proposals  for  republishing  them, 
with  additional  poems,  in  one  volume  quarto.  The  estimation  in  which  the 
poet  was  now  held  was  clearly  demonstrated  by  the  rapid  filling  up  of  a  list  of 
subscribers,  containing  the  names  of  all  that  Avere  eminent  for  talents,  learning, 
or  dignity  in  Scotland.  The  volume,  handsomely  printed  by  Ruddiman,  and 
ornamented  by  a  portrait  of  the  author,  from  the  pencil  of  his  friend  Smibert, 
was  published  in  the  succeeding  year,  and  the  fortunate  poet  realized  four  hun- 
dred guineas  by  the  speculation.  This  volume  was,  according  to  the  fashion  of 
the  times,  prefaced  with  several  copies  of  recommendatory  verses  ;  and  it  contained 
the  first  scene  of  the  Gentle  Shepherd,  under  the  title  of  "  Patie  and  Roger," 
and  apparently  intended  as  a  mere  pastoral  dialogue.  Incited  by  his  brilliant 
success,  Ramsay  redoubled  his  diligence,  and  in  the  year  1722,  produced  a 
volume  of  Fables  and  Tales  ;  in  1723,  the  Fair  Assembly  ;  and,  in  1724,  Health, 
a  poem,  inscribed  to  the  earl  of  Stair.     In  the  year  1719,  he  had  published  a 


154  ALLAN  KAMSAT. 


rolume  of  Scottish  Son»i,  which  had  a'ready  run  through  two  edition*,  by  which 
he  was  encouraged  to  publish  in  January  1724,  the  first  volume  of  **  The  Tea 
Table  Miicellany,'»  a  collection  of  Songs,  Scottish  and  English.  Ihis  w^s  soon 
followed  by  a  second;  in  1727,  by  a  third;  and  some  years  afterwards  by  a 
fourth.  The  demand  for  this  work  was  so  great  that,  in  the  course  of  a  few 
years,  it  ran  through  twelve  editions.  In  later  times  Rarasay  has  been  con- 
demned for  what  he  seems  to  have  looked  upon  as  a  meritorious  piece  of 
labour.  He  had  refitted  about  sixty  of  the  old  airs  with  new  verses,  partly  by 
himself,  and  partly  by  others ;  which  was  perhans  absolutely  necessary  on  ac- 
count of  the  rudeness  and  indecency  of  the  elder  ditties.  Modern  antiquaries, 
however,  finding  that  he  has  thus  been  the  means  of  banishing  the  latter  order 
of  songs  oat  of  existence,  declaim  against  him  for  a  result  which  he  perhaps  never 
contemplated,  and  which,  to  say  the  least  of  it,  could  never  have  occurred,  if 
the  lost  poems  had  possessed  the  least  merit  That  Ramsay,  in  publishing  a 
work  for  the  immediate  use  of  his  contemporaries,  did  not  consult  the  taste  o; 
wishes  of  an  age  a  century  later,  was  certainly  very  natural ;  and  though  we 
may  regret  that  the  songs  are  lost,  we  cannot  well  see  liow  the  blame  lies  with 
him.  Ramsay,  let  us  also  recollect,  was  at  this  very  time  evincing  his  desire  to 
bring  forward  the  really  valuable  productions  of  the  elder  rouse.  In  the  year 
1724,  he  published  the  "Ever-Green,  being  a  Collection  of  Scots  Poems, 
wrote  by  the  Ingenious  before  1600."  Ramsay,  however,  was  neit)ier  a  faith- 
ful, nor  a  well  informed  editor.  He  introduced  into  this  collection,  as  ancient 
compositions,  two  pieces  of  his  own,  entitled,  **  The  Vision,"  and  "  The  Eagle 
and  Robin  Redbreast,**  the  former  being  a  political  allegory  with  a  reference 
to  the  Pretender. 

Ramsay  had  already  written  and  published,  in  his  first  volume  of  original 
poetry,  "  Patie  and  Roger,"  which  he  had  followed  up  the  following  year  with 
"  Jenny  and  Maggy,"  a  pastoral,  being  a  sequel  to  "  Patie  and  Roger." 
These  sketches  were  so  happily  executed,  as  to  excite  in  every  reader  a  desire 
to  see  them  extended.  He  therefore  proceeded  with  additional  colloquies  in 
connexion  with  the  former,  so  as  to  form  in  the  end  a  dramatic  pastoral  in  five 
acts.  In  the  following  letter,  published  here  for  the  first  time,  it  will  be  seen 
that  he  was  engaged  on  this  task  in  spring  1724,  at  a  time  when  the  duties  of 
life  were  confining  him  to  the  centre  of  a  busy  city,  and  when,  by  his  own 
confession,  he  had  almost  forgot  the  appearance  of  those  natural  scenes  which 
he  has  nevertheless  so  admirably  described : — 

ALLAN  RAMSAT  TO  WILLIAM  RAMSAY.  OF  TEMPLEHALL,  Esq. 

"  Edinburgh,  April  8th,  1 724. 

*'  Sir, — ^These  come  to  bear  yoa  my  very  heartyest  and  grateful  wishes.  May 
you  long  enjoy  your  Marlefield,  see  many  a  returning  spring  pregnant  with 
new  beautys ;  may  every  thing  that^s  excellent  in  its  kind  continue  to  fill 
your  extended  soul  with  pleasure.  Hejoyce  in  the  beneficence  of  heaven,  and 
let  all  about  ye  rejoyce — whilst  we,  alake,  the  laborious  insects  of  a  snioaky  city, 
hurry  about  from  ]>1ace  to  place  in  one  eternal  maze  of  fatiguing  cares,  to  se- 
cure this  day  our  daylie  bread — and  something  till't.  For  me,  I  have  almost 
forgot  how  springs  gush  from  the  earth.  Once,  I  had  a  notion  how  fragrant 
the  fields  were  after  a  soft  shower;  and  often,  time  out  of  mind!  the  glowing 
blushes  of  the  rooming  have  fired  my  breast  with  raptures.  Then  it  was  that 
the  mixture  of  rural  music  echoM  agreeable  from  the  sorrounding  bills,  and  all 
nature  appeared  in  gnyety. 

"However,  what  is  wanting  to  me  of  rural  sweets  I  endeavour  to  make  up  b; 


ALLAN   RAMSAY.  155 


being  continually  at  tlie  acting  of  some  new  farce,  for  I'm  grown,  I  know  not 
how,  so  very  wise,  or  at  least  think  so  (which  is  much  about  one),  that  the  mob 
of  mankind  aflurd  me  a  continual  diversion  ;  and  this  place,  tho'  little,  is 
crowded  with  raerry-andrews,  fools,  and  fops,  of  all  sizes,  [who]  intermix'd  with 
a  few  that  can  think,  compose  the  comical  medley  of  actors. 

"  Receive  a  sang  made  on  the  marriage  of  my  young  chief — I  am,  this  vaca- 
tion, going  through  with  a  Dramatick  Pastoral,  which  I  design  to  carry  the 
length  of  five  acts,  in  vei-se  a'  the  gate,  and  if  I  succeed  according  to  my  plan, 
I  hope  to  tope  with  the  authors  of  JPastor  Fido  and  Arainta. 

"  God  take  care  of  you  and  yours,  is  the  constant  prayer  of,  sir,  your  faith- 
ful humble  servant, 

*'  Allan  Eamsat." 

The  poem  was  published  in  1725,  under  the  title  of  the  Gentle  Shepherd, 
and  met  with  instant  and  triumphant  success.  A  second  edition  was  printed  by 
Ruddiman  for  the  author,  who  still  resided  at  his  shop  opposite  Niddry's  \yynd  ; 
but  the  same  year  he  removed  from  this  his  original  dwelling  to  a  house  in  the 
east  end  of  the  Luckenbooths,  which  had  formerly  been  ti:e  London  Coffee 
house.  Here,  in  place  of  Mercury,  he  adopted  the  heads  of  Ben  Jonson  and 
Drummond  of  Hawthornden,  and  in  addition  to  his  business  as  a  booksel- 
ler, he  commenced  that  of  a  circulating  library.  Ramsay  was  the  fii'st  to  es- 
tablish such  a  business  in  Scotland,  and  it  appears  that  he  did  so,  not  without 
some  opposition  from  the  more  serious  part  cf  the  community,  who  found  fault 
with  him  for  lending  the  loose  plays  of  that  age  to  persons  whose  morals  were 
liable  to  be  tainted  by  them.  In  this  siiop  the  wits  of  Edinburgh  continued 
daily  to  meet  for  information  and  amusement  during  the  days  of  Ramsay  and 
his  successors  in  trade.  In  the  year  1728,  he  published  by  subscription 
the  second  volume  of  his  poems  in  quarto,  (including  the  Gentle  Shepherd,) 
which  Avas  equally  successful  with  the  first  Of  this  volume  a  second  edition 
was  printed  in  octavo  in  the  succeeding  year.  In  1730,  Ramsay  published 
a  collection  of  thirty  fables,  after  which,  tbough  he  wrote  several  copies 
of  verses  for  the  amusement  of  his  friends,  he  gave  nothing  more  to  the  public. 
His  fame  was  now  at  the  full,  and  though  he  had  continued  to  issue  a  number 
of  volumes  every  year,  all  equally  good  as  those  that  preceded  them,  it 
could  have  received  no  real  addition.  Over  all  the  three  kingdoms,  and  over 
all  their  dependencies,  the  works  of  Ramsay  were  widely  diffused,  and  warmly 
admired.  The  whole  were  republished  by  the  London  booksellers  in  the  year 
1731,  and  by  the  Dublin  booksellers  in  1733,  all  sterling  proofs  of  extended 
popularity,  to  Avhich  the  poet  himself  failed  not  on  proper  occasions  to  allude. 

Ramsay  had  now  risen  to  wealth  and  to  high  respectability,  numbering 
among  his  familiar  friends  the  best  and  the  wisest  men  in  the  nation.  By  the 
greater  part  of  the  Scottish  nobility  he  wns  caressed,  and  at  the  houses  of  some 
of  the  most  distinguished  of  them,  Hamilton  palace,  Loudoun  castle,  &a,  was  a 
frequent  visitor.  With  Duncan  Forbes,  lord  advocate,  afterwards  loi-d  president, 
and  the  first  of  Scottish  patriots,  Sir  John  Clerk,  Sir  William  Bennet,  and  Sir 
Alexander  Dick,  he  lived  in  the  habit  of  daily  and  familiar,  and  friendly  inter- 
course. With  contemporary  poets  his  intercourse  was  extensive  and  of  the  most 
friendly  kind.  The  two  Hamiltons,  of  Bangour  and  Gilbertfield,  were  his  most 
intimate  friends.  He  addressed  verses  to  Pope,  to  Gay,  and  to  Somerville, 
the  last  of  whom  returned  his  poetical  salutations  in  kind.  Mitchell  and 
Mallet  shared  also  in  his  friendly  greetings.  ^leston  addressed  to  him  verses 
highly  complimentary,  and  William  Scott  of  Thirlstane  wrote  Latin  hexametera 
to  his  praise.     Lender  so  much  good  fortune  he  could  not  escape  the  malignant 


156  ALLAN  KAMSAY. 


glances  of  enrious  and  disappointed  poetasters,  and  of  morose  and  stern 
moralists.  By  tlie  first  he  was  annoyed  with  a  "  Block  for  Allan  Ramsay's  wig, 
or  the  Poet  fallen  in  a  trance;"  by  the  latter,  "  Allan  Ramsay  metamorphosed 
to  a  Heather-bloter  poet,  in  a  pastoral  between  Algon  and  i\Ielibcea,"\vith  "  The 
flight  of  religious  piety  from  Scotland  upon  the  account  of  Ramsay's  lewd  books 
and  the  hell-bred  playhouse  comedians,  who  debauch  all  the  faculties  of  the 
souls  of  the  rising  generation,"  '*  A  Looking-glass  for  Allan  Rams.ny,"  "  The 
Dying  Words  of  Allan  Ramsay,"  &c.  The  three  last  of  these  pieces  were 
occasioned  by  a  speculation  which  he  entered  into  for  the  encourage- 
ment  of  the  drama,  to  which  he  appears  to  have  been  strongly  attached. 
For  this  purpose,  about  the  year  1736,  he  built  a  playhouse  in  Carrubber's  close 
at  vast  expense,  which,  if  it  was  ever  opened,  was  immediately  shut  up  by  the 
act  for  licensing  the  stage,  which  was  passed  in  the  year  1737.  Ramsay  on 
this  occasion  addressed  a  rhyming  complaint  to  the  court  of  session,  which 
was  first  printed  in  the  Gentleman's  Magazine,  and  since  in  all  the  editions 
tiiat  have  been  given  of  his  works.  It  does  not,  however,  appear  that  he  ob- 
tiined  any  redress,  and  the  pecuniary  loss  which  he  must  have  suft'ered  proba- 
bly aflected  him  more  than  the  lampoons  to  which  we  have  alluded.  He  had 
previously  to  this  publislied  his  "  Reasons  for  not  answering  the  Hackney 
Scribblers,"  which  are  sufliciently  biting,  and  with  which  he  seems  to  have  re- 
mained satisfied  through  life.  He  has  described  himself  in  one  of  his  epis- 
tles as  a 

"  Little  man  that  lo'ed  his  ease, 

And  never  lliol'd  these  passions  laiig 

That  rudely  meant  to  do  him  wrang  ;" 

which  we  think  the  following  letter  to  his  old  friend  Smibert,  the  painter,  wlio 
had  by  this  time  emigrated  to  the  western  world,  will  abundantly  confirm : — "  My 
dear  old  friend,  your  health  and  happiness  are  ever  ane  addition  to  my  satis- 
faction. God  make  your  life  easy  and  pleasant.  Half  a  century  of  years  have 
now  rowed  o'er  my  pow,  that  begins  to  be  lyart ;  yet  thanks  to  my  author  I 
eat,  drink,  and  sleep  as  sound  as  I  did  twenty  years  syne,  yea  I  laugh, 
heartily  too,  and  find  as  many  subjects  to  employ  that  faculty  upon  as  ever  ;  fools, 
fops,  and  knaves  grow  as  rank  as  formerly,  yet  here  and  there  are  to  be  found 
good  and  worthy  men  who  are  ane  honour  to  human  life.  We  have  small  hopes 
of  seeing  you  again  in  our  old  world ;  then  let  us  be  virtuous  and  hope  to  meet  in 
heaven.  My  good  auld  wife  is  still  my  bedfellow.  My  son  Allan  has  been 
pursuing  your  science  since  he  was  a  dozen  years  auld ;  was  with  Mr  Hyfiidg 
at  London  for  some  time  about  two  years  ago  ;  has  been  since  at  home,  paint- 
ing here  like  a  Raphael  ;  sets  out  for  the  seat  of  the  beast  beyond 
the  Alps  within  a  month  hence,  to  be  away  about  two  years.  I'm  sweer  to  part 
with  him,  but  canna  stem  the  current  which  flows  from  the  advice  of  his  patrons 
and  his  own  inclination.  I  have  three  daughters,  one  of  seventeen,  one  of 
sixteen,  and  one  of  twelve  years  old,  and  no  ae  wally  dragle  among  them — all 
fine  girls.  These  six  or  seven  years  past  I  have  not  written  a  line  of  poetry  ;  I 
can  give  over  in  good  time,  before  the  coolness  of  fancy  that  attends  ad- 
vanced years  should  make  me  risk  the  reputation  I  had  acquired. 

*•  Free  twenty-five  to  five  and  fortj', 
My  muse  was  neither  s^veer  nor  dorty, 
My  Pegasus  would  break  liis  tether, 
E'en  at  the  shaking  of  a  feather; 
And  through  ideas  scour  like  drift, 
Streking  his  wings  up  to  the  lift ; 


ALLAN   RAMSAY.  157 


Then,  then  my  soul  was  in  a  low, 
That  gart  my  numbers  safely  row; 
But  eUd  and  judgment  gin  to  say, 
Let  be  }our  sangs,  and  learn  to  pray." 

It  is  scarcely  possible  to  conceive  a  more  pleasing  picture  of  ease  and  satisfac- 
tion than  is  exhibited  in  the  above  sketch  ;  and,  the  aft'air  of  the  theatre  in 
Carrubber's  close  excepted,  Ramsay  seems  to  have  filled  it  up  to  the  last.  He 
lost  his  wife.  Christian  Ross,  in  the  year  1743  ;  but  his  three  daughters,  grown 
up  to  womanhood,  in  some  measure  supplied  the  want  of  her  society,  and  much 
of  his  time  in  his  latter  years  seems  to  have  been  spent  with  his  friends  in  the 
country.  It  appears  to  have  been  about  this  period,  and  with  the  view  of  relin- 
quishing his  shop,  the  business  of  which  still  went  on  prosperously,  that  he  erected 
a  house  on  the  north  side  of  the  Castle  Hill,  where  he  might  spend  the  remain- 
der of  his  days  in  dignified  retirement.  The  site  of  this  house  was  selected 
with  the  taste  of  a  poet  and  the  judgment  of  a  painter.  It  commanded  a  reach 
of  scenery  probably  not  surpassed  in  Europe,  extending  from  the  mouth  of  the 
Forth  on  the  east  to  the  Grampians  on  the  west,  and  stretching  far  across  the 
green  hills  of  Fife  to  the  north  ;  embracing  in  the  including  space  every  variety 
of  beauty,  of  elegance,  and  of  grandeur.  The  design  for  tlie  building,  how- 
ever, which  the  poet  adopted,  was  paltry  in  the  extreme,  and  by  the  wags  of 
the  city  was  compared  to  a  goose  pye,  of  which  complaining  one  day  to  lord 
Elibank,  his  lordship  gayly  remarked,  that  now  seeing  him  in  it  he  thought  it 
an  exceedingly  apt  comparison.  Fantastic  though  the  house  was,  Ramsay  spent 
the  last  twelve  years  of  his  life  in  it,  except  when  he  was  abroad  with  his 
friends,  in  a  state  of  philosophic  ease,  which  few  literaiy  men  are  able  to 
attain.  In  the  year  1755,  he  is  supposed  to  have  relinquished  business.  An 
Epistle  which  he  wrote  this  year  to  James  Clerk,  Esq.  of  Pennycuick,  "  full  of 
wise  saws  and  modern  instances,"  gives  his  determination  on  the  subject,  and  a 
picture  of  himself  more  graphic  than  could  be  drawn  by  any  other  person  *. 

•'  Tho'born  to  no  ae  inch  of  ground, 
I  keep  my  conscience  white  and  sound  ; 
And  though  I  ne'er  was  a  rich  keeper. 
To  make  tliat  up  I  live  the  cheaper; 
By  this  ae  knack  I've  made  a  shift 
To  drive  ambitious  care  adrift ; 
And  now  in  years  and  sense  grown  auld, 
In  ease  I  like  my  limbs  to  fauld. 
Debts  I  abhor,  and  plan  to  be 
From  shackling  trade  and  dangers  free  •, 
That  I  may,  loosed  frae  care  and  strife. 
With  calmness  view  the  edge  of  life; 
And  when  a  full  ripe  age  shall  crave 
Slide  easily  into  my  grave ; 
Now  seventy  years  are  o'er  my  head, 
And  thirty  more  may  lay  me  dead." 

While  he  was  thus  planning  schemes  of  ease  and  security,  Ramsay  seems  to 
have  forgotten  the  bitter  irony  of  a  line  in  one  of  his  elegies, 

•'  The  wily  carl,  he  gathered  gear. 
But  ah!  he's  dead." 

At  the  very  time  he  was  thus  writing,  he  was  deeply  afflicted  with  the  scurvy 
in  his  gums,  by  which  he  eventually  lost  all  his  teeth,  and  even  a  portion  of 


158  ALLAN   RAMSAY. 


one  of  his  jaw  bones.  Ho  died  at  Edinburgh  on  the  7th  of  January,  1757,  in 
tiie  73rd  year  of  his  age.  He  was  buried  on  the  9th  of  the  month,  without 
any  particular  honours,  and  with  him  for  a  time  was  buried  Scottish  poetry, 
there  not  being  so  much  as  one  poet  found  in  Scotland  to  sing  a  requiem  over 
his  grave.  His  wife,  Christian  Ross,  seems  to  have  brought  him  seven  children, 
three  sons  and  four  daughters ;  of  these  Allan,  the  eldest,  and  two  daughters 
survived  him.  Of  the  character  of  Ramsay,  the  outlines  we  presume  may  be 
drawn  from  the  comprehensive  sketch  which  we  have  exhibited  of  the  events  of 
his  life.  Prudent  self-control  seems  to  have  been  his  leading  characteristic, 
and  the  acquisition  of  a  competency  the  great  object  of  his  life.  He  was  one 
of  the  few  poets  to  whom,  in  a  pecuniary  point  of  view,  poetry  has  been  really 
a  blessing,  and  who  could  combine  poetic  pursuits  with  those  of  ordinary 
business. 

RAMSAY,  Allan,  an  eminent  portrait-painter,  was  the  eldest  son  of  the 
subject  of  the  preceding  article,  and  was  born  in  Edinburgh  in  the  year  1713. 
He  received  a  liberal  education,  and  displayed  in  boyhood  a  taste  for  the  art 
whicfi  he  afterwards  successfully  cultivated.  His  father,  writing  to  his  friend 
Smibert  in  1736,  says:  "  My  son  Allan  has  been  pursuing  your  science  since  he 
was  a  dozen  years  auld  ;  was  with  Mr  Hyffidg  in  London  for  some  time,  about 
two  years  ago;  has  since  been  painting  here  like  a  Raphael :  sets  out  for  the 
seat  of  the  beast  beyond  the  Alps  within  a  month  hence,  to  be  away  two  years. 
I'm  sweer  [loath]  to  part  with  him,  but  canna  stem  the  current  which  flows  from 
the  advice  of  his  patrons  and  his  own  inclination.'^  It  is  to  be  supposed  that 
the  father  would  be  the  less  inclined  to  control  his  son  in  this  matter,  as  he 
was  himself,  in  early  life,  anxious  to  be  brought  up  as  a  painter.  In  Italy 
young  Ramsay  studied  three  years  under  Solimano  and  Imperiali,  two  artists  of 
celebrity.  He  then  returned  to  his  native  country,  and  commenced  business, 
painting,  amongst  others,  his  father's  friend,  president  Forbes,  and  his  own  sis* 
ter,  Janet  Ramsay,  whose  portraits  are  preserved  in  Newhall  house,  and 
an  excellent  full-length  of  Archibald  duke  of  Argyle,  in  his  robes  as  an 
extraordinary  lord  of  session,  now  in  the  Town  Hall,  Glasgow.  The 
name  of  Allan  Ramsay  junior,  is  found  in  the  list  of  the  members  of  the 
Academy  of  St  Luke,  an  association  of  painters  and  lovers  ot  painting,  insti- 
tuted at  Edinburgh  in  1729,  but  which  does  not  appear  to  have  done  anything 
worthy  of  record.'  It  would  also  appear  that  he  employed  part  of  his  time  in 
giving  private  instructions  in  drawing,  for  it  was  while  thus  engaged  in  the 
family  of  Sir  Alexander  Lindsay  of  Evelick,  that  he  gained  the  heart  and  hand 

of  the  baronet's  eldest  daughter,  Margaret — a  niece  of  the  illustrious  Mansfield 

by  whom  he  had  three  children.  In  1754,  he  became  the  founder  of  the  Select 
Society,  which  comprised  all  the  eminent  learned  characters  then  living  in  the 
Scottish  capital,  and  which  he  was  well  qualified  to  adorn,  as  he  was  an  excel- 
lent classical  scholar,  knew  French  and  Italian  perfectly,  and  had  all  the  polish 
and  liberal  feeling  of  a  highly  instructed  man. 

Previously  to  this  period  he  had  made  London  his  habitual  residence,  though 
he  occasionally  visited  both  Rome  and  Edinburgh.  In  Bouquet's  pamphlet  on 
"the  Present  State  of  the  Fine  ArU  in  England,"  published  in  1755,  he  is 
spoken  of  as  "  an  able  painter,  who,  acknowledging  no  other  guide  than  nature, 
brought  a  rational  taste  of  resemblance  with  him  from  Italy.  Even  in  his  por- 
traits," says  this  writer,  "  he  shows  that  just  steady  spirit,  which  he  so  agree- 
ably displays  in  his  conversation."     He  found  in  the  earl  of  Bridgewater,  one  of 

>  The  rules  of  this  obscure  institution,  with  the  signatures,  were  published  by  ISIr  Patrick 
Gibson,  in  his  "  View  of  the  Arts  of  Design  in  BriUin,"  in  the  Edinburgh  Annual  Hecis- 
ter  for  1810.  *      ' 


ALLAN   RAMSAY.  159 


his  earliest  English  patrons.  He  was  also  introduced  by  the  earl  of  Bute  to  the 
prince  of  Wales,  afterwards  George  III.,  of  whom  he  painted  portraits,  both  in 
full  length  and  in  profile,  which  were  engraved,  the  one  by  Ryland,  the  other 
by  Woollett,  He  practised  portrait-painting  for  several  years  with  distinguished 
success,  being  deficient,  according  to  VValpole,  rather  in  subjects  than  in  genius. 
His  portraits  are  distinguished  by  a  calm  unaffected  representation  of  nature  ; 
and  he  is  universally  allowed  to  have  contributed,  with  Reynolds,  to  raise  this 
branch  of  art  in  Britain.  He  had  not  long  been  in  practice  before  he  acquired 
considerable  wealth,  which,  it  appears,  he  used  in  a  liberal  spirit.  When  his 
father  died  in  1757,  in  somewhat  embarrassed  circumstances,  he  paid  his  debts, 
settling,  at  the  same  time,  a  pension  on  his  unmarried  sister,  Janet  Ramsay,  who 
survived  till  ISOi. 

In  1767,  Ramsay  was  appointed  portrait-painter  to  the  king  and  queen, 
which  brought  him  an  immense  increase  of  employment,  as  portraits  of  their 
majesties  were  perpetually  in  demand  for  foreign  courts,  ambassadors,  and  public 
bodies  at  home.  He  was,  therefore,  obliged  to  engage  no  fewer  than  five 
assistants  to  forward  his  pictures,  among  whom  was  David  Martin,  the  predeces- 
sor of  Raeburn.  In  consequence  of  his  enlightened  and  amusing  conversation, 
he  became  a  great  favourite  with  their  majesties,  the  queen  being  particularly 
pleased  with  him  on  account  of  his  ability  to  converse  in  German,  in  which  he 
had  not  a  rival  at  court,  save  amongst  her  own  domestics.  The  state  nobles,  and 
other  public  leaders  of  that  time,  were  also  fond  of  the  conversation  of  Ramsay, 
who  is  said  to  have  taken  more  pleasure  in  politics  and  literature  than  in  hi* 
art,  and  wrote  many  pieces  on  controverted  subjects,  with  the  signature,  "  In- 
vestigator," which  were  ultimately  collected  into  a  volume.  He  corresponded, 
too,  with  Voltaire  and  Rousseau,  both  of  whom  he  visited  when  abroad;  and  his 
letters  are  said  to  have  been  elegant  and  witty,  "  Ramsay,  in  short,"  says  Mr 
A.  Cunningham,  "  led  the  life  of  an  elegant  accomplished  man  of  the  world, 
and  public  favourite."  He  was  frequently  of  Dr  Johnson's  parties,  who  said  of 
him,  "  You  will  not  find  a  man  in  whose  conversation  there  is  more  instruction, 
more  information,  and  elegance,  than  in  Ramsay's."  He  was  noted  in  his 
own  country  for  having,  after  the  battle  of  Prestonpans,  written  an  imitation  of 
the  song  of  Deborah  in  scripture,  which  he  put  into  the  mouth  of  a  Jacobite 
young  lady  of  family,  and  which  displayed  considerable  powers  of  satire  ;  and 
in  the  Edinburgh  Annual  Register  foi^l813,  will  be  found  a  burlesque  on  Ho- 
race's "  Integer  Vitae,"  which  shows  such  a  dexterous  union  of  the  Latin  rhythm 
with  the  English  rhyme,  as  none  but  a  man  of  a  singular  kind  of  genius  could 
have  effected.^ 

In  consequence  of  an  accident  Avhich  injured  his  arm,  Ramsay  retired  from 
business  about  the  year  1775.  He  then  lived  several  years  in  Italy,  amusing 
himself  chiefly  with  literary  pursuits.  His  health  gradually  sinking,  he  formed 
the  wish  to  return  to  his  native  land ;  but  the  motion  of  the  carriage  brought  on 
a  slow  fever  by  tlie  way,  and  he  died  at  Dover,  August  10,  17  8  i,  in  the  seven- 
ty-first year  of  his  age. 

John  Ramsay,  the  son  of  the  painter,  entered  the  array,  and  r(Ke  to  the  rank 
of  raajor-generaL  His  two  daughters,  Amelia  and  Charlotte,  were  respectively 
married  to  Sir  Archibald  Campbell  of  Inverness,  and  colonel  Malcolm  o.' 
Ford  farm,  Surrey. 

>  The  following  portraits,  by  Mr  Kamsay,  Lave,  amongst  others,  been  engraved : — King 
George  III.  Queen  Charlotte.  Frederick,  prince  of  Wales.  Lord  chancellor  Hardwicke. 
The  earl  of  Bute.  John,  duke  of  Argyk.  The  earl  of  Bath.  Sir  Charles  Pratt  (lord 
Cambden).  Thomas  Burnet,  judge  of  common  pleas.  Hugh  Dalrymple  (lord  Drummore). 
Dr  Alexander  ]\Ionro,  primus.  David  Hume.  Archibald,  duke  of  Argyle.  PresidenJ 
Forbes.     Provost  Coutts.     Lady  George  Lennox.     Lady  Ei-skine.     Alan  Kamsay,  the  poet. 


160  ANDREW  MICHAEL  RAMSAY. 

RAMSAY,  Andre^t  Michael,  better  known  by  the  name  of  the  Chevalier  de 
Ramsay,  was  born  in  Ayr,  9th  June,  1G86.  He  was  the  son  of  a  baker,  who 
had  acquired  some  property,  and  was  able  to  give  him  a  good  education.  From 
the  scljool  of  his  native  burgh,  he  was  removed  to  the  university  of  Edinburgh, 
where  he  became  distinguished  for  his  abilities  and  diligence.  In  consequence 
of  the  high  reputation  he  had  acquired  he  was  intrusted  with  the  tuition  of  James, 
afterwards  fourth  earl  of  Wemyss,  and  his  brother  David,  lord  Elcho,  the  for- 
mer of  whom  he  attended  at  the  university  of  St  Andrews.  Of  these  youths  the 
chevalier  has  left  a  pleasing  notice,  dated  Isleworth,  February  25,  1709  :  "  I 
have  nothing  to  interrupt  nie  but  an  hour  or  two's  attendance  at  night  upon  two 
of  the  most  innocent,  sweet,  sprightly  little  boys  I  ever  knew."  Besides 
this  notice  of  his  pupils,  we  have  in  the  same  d^jcument  a  remarkable 
revelation  respecting  himself.  That  he  was  a  young  man  full  of  literary  en- 
thusiasm, and  haunted  with  day-dreams  of  immortality,  the  history  of  his  after 
life  abundantly  testifies;  yet  he  professes  here  that  all  his  **  ambition  was  to  be 
forgotten."  Such  a  profession  may  reasonably  be  suspected  in  any  man,  for 
no  one,  in  ordinary  circumstances,  can  have  the  least  reason  to  fear  that  ho  will 
be  forgotten.  In  young  men  it  may  always  be  interpreted  as  meaning  the  very 
reverse  of  the  expression,  being  neither  more  nor  less  than  the  extorted 
bitterness  of  a  proud  or  a  vain  spirit,  sickening  and  sinking  under  the 
prospect  of  accumulating  difficulties  or  ultimate  disappointment  Before  this 
time,  Ramsay  had  become  unsettled  in  his  religious  principles.  He  now 
visited  Holland,  and  took  up  his  residence  at  Leyden,  the  university  of  which 
was  at  that  time  the  common  resort  of  the  literary  youth  of  Scotland.  Here 
he  fell  into  the  company  of  Poiret,  one  of  the  most  distinguished  advocates  of 
the  mystic  theology,  then  so  prevalent  on  the  continent,  from  whom  he  learned 
the  leading  dogmas  of  that  system.  Having  heard  of  the  fame  of  Fenelon, 
archbishop  of  Cambray,  and  that  he  had  long  advocated  mysticism,  Ramsay 
determined  to  pay  him  a  visit,  and  take  his  advice  on  the  subject.  He  accord- 
ingly, in  1710,  repaired  to  Cambray,  where  he  met  with  the  most  cordial  recep- 
tion. He  was  at  this  time  in  his  twenty-fourth  year,  polite  and  engaging  in 
his  manners,  and  of  a  gentle  and  easy  temper,  every  way  calculated  to  win  upon 
the  affections  of  a  man  like  Fenelon.  Having  received  him  into  his  house  as 
an  inmate  of  the  family,  the  good  archbishop  listened  to  the  disjointed  history 
of  his  religious  opinions  with  patience,  discussed  with  him  at  large  his  objec- 
tions, his  doubts,  and  his  difficulties,  and  in  less  than  six  months  had  the  satis- 
faction to  find  that  he  had  succeeded  in  making  his  guest  a  true  catholic,  at 
least  as  far  as  he  could  believe  himself  such,  for  Ramsay  had  most  cordially  im- 
bibed all  his  opinions,  philosophical,  moral,  and  religious.  This  strange  ad- 
venture gave  colour  and  consistence  to  the  whole  subsequent  life  of  the  cheva- 
lier. Having  been  preceptor  to  the  duke  of  Burgundy,  heir-apparent  to  the 
throne  of  France,  Fenelon  had  considerable  influence  at  the  French 
court,  and  he  procured  for  his  disciple  and  protege  the  preceptorship  to  tlie 
duke  de  Chateau-Thiery  and  the  prince  de  Turenne.  In  this  situation  Ram- 
say  acquitted  himself  so  well  that  he  was  made  a  knight  of  the  order  of  St 
Lazarus,  and  from  the  commendations  he  received  was  selected  by  the  person 
called  the  Pretender,  to  superintend  the  education  of  his  two  sons,  prince 
Charles  Edward,  and  Henry,  afterwards  cardinal  de  York.  For  this  purpose  he 
left  France,  and  repaired  to  Rome  in  the  year  1 724.  The  retirement  that  he  had 
previously  courted  and  enjoyed,  was  now  interrupted.  His  literary  status  hin- 
dered him  from  keeping  altogether  aloof  from  the  kindred  spirits  around  him. 
Moreover,  he  perceived  that  the  political  and  religious  intrigues  that  were  cai'- 
ried  on  at  the  apostolic  court,  but  ill  suited  the  prosecution  of  those  literary 


ANDREW   MICHAEL  RAMSAY.  161 

labours  in  which  he  had  embarked.  He  therefore,  after  a  short  residence  in 
Italy,  requested  of  his  employer  permission  to  return  to  France,  uhich 
was  readily  granted.  Literary  leisure  was  what  he  now  desired.  In  the  capi- 
tal of  France,  however,  it  was  unlikely  he  could  obtain  this,  as  the  same  intol- 
erant spirit  prevailed  that  had  hastened  his  departure  from  Rome.  He  there- 
fore resolved  on  visiting  his  native  country.  On  reaching  Britain,  he  was  re- 
ceived into  the  family  of  the  duke  of  Argyle.  That  repose  so  congenial  to  one 
of  his  studious  habits  was  now  aflbrded  him,  and  he  immediately  set  about  the 
preparation  of  those  works  which  he  had  long  meditated,  and  through  which 
he  has  become  known  to  posterity.  His  largest  work,  **  On  the  Principles  of 
Natural  and  Revealed  Religion,"  contains  a  luminous  and  detailed  statement  of 
the  various  steps  which  the  Divine  Being,  in  the  one  of  these  grand  divisions, 
has  made  demonstrable  by  human  reason,  and  an  ingenious  exhibition  of  the 
other,  as  made  known  to  man  by  revelation.  The  forcible  process  of  deduc- 
tion, which,  throughout  the  work,  is  brought  to  bear  upon  the  mind  of  the  reader, 
can  hardly  fail  in  accomplishing  what  the  author  intended — an  elevation  of  the 
heart  of  the  creature  to  the  Creatoi-.  The  work  has  passed  severail  times  through 
the  press.  Ramsay  next  published  "  The  Travels  of  Cyrus."  The  best  criterion 
of  judging  of  this  publication  is  to  be  found  in  the  great  number  of  editions 
that  have  from  time  to  time  been  laid  before  the  public.  Although  the  fame  of 
the  chevalier,  as  a  writer,  rests  chiefly  upon  the  *'  Travels  of  Cyrus,"  yet  on  its 
first  appearance  it  met  with  severe  criticism.  That  a  desire  to  be  hypercritical 
might  sway  some  of  his  literary  judges  is  possible  ;  at  any  rate,  it  has  outlived 
their  censorship.  It  secured  for  its  author  an  honourable  niche  among  the 
standard  authoi-s  of  Britain.  It  displays  an  intimate  acquaintance  with  the 
customs,  laws,  learning,  and  antiquities  of  the  period  of  which  it  treats, 
and  exhibits  a  beautiful  delineation  of  human  character,  together  with 
the  soundest  principles  of  true  philosophical  discrimination.  Soon  after  these 
works  appeared,  he  was  honoured  by  the  university  of  Oxford  with  the  degree 
of  doctor  of  laws,  which  was  conferred  on  him  by  Dr  King,  principal  of  St  Mary's 
Hall.  It  ought  to  have  been  previously  stated,  that,  before  receiving  this 
honourable  distinction,  he  had  been  admitted  to  St  Mary's  Hall  in  1730.  He 
afterwards  returned  to  France,  and  resided  several  years  at  Pontoise,  a  seat  of 
the  prince  de  Turenne,  duke  de  Bouillion.  While  here,  he  published  the  life 
of  his  benefactor,  the  archbishop  of  Cambray  ;  a  biographical  sketch,  chiefly  re- 
markable as  containing  a  detailed  account  of  the  persecution  to  which  the  wor- 
thy prelate  was  subjected  by  his  brother  divines,  for  his  suspected  connivance 
at  the  doctrines  of  mysticism,  and  the  arguments  adduced  on  both  sides  on  his 
own  conversion  to  the  catholic  faith.  It  was  reprinted  in  this  country  in  a 
small  duodecimo  volume.  Soon  afterwards,  he  published,  in  two  volumes, 
"  The  History  of  Viscount  Turenne,  marshal  of  France,"  which  was  also  trans- 
lated and  published  in  England.  He  resided  in  the  prince's  family  in  the 
situation  of  intendant  till  the  period  of  his  death,  which  happened  at  St  Germain 
en  Laye,  on  the  6th  of  3Iay,  1743,  having  nearly  completed  his  fifty-seventh 
year.  His  remains  were  interred  at  the  place  where  he  died,  but  some  time  af- 
terwai-ds  his  heart  was  removed  to  the  nunnery  of  St  Sacrament  at  Paris. 

It  is  supposed  that  when  in  England  he  did  not  visit  the  place  of  his  birth. 
Perhaps  his  renunciation  of  the  faith  of  his  forefathers,  and  blighting  the  hopes 
of  a  doting  parent,  prevented  his  doing  so.  That  he  did  not,  however,  neglect 
his  relations  is  evident  from  the  fact  of  his  wishing  to  settle  upon  them  an  an- 
nuity, which  they  refused  to  accept.  From  France  he  remitted  a  considerable 
sum  of  money  to  his  father;  but  on  its  being  presented,  the  staunch  presby- 
terian  indignantly  replied,  "  It  cam'  by  the   beast,   and  let   it  gang  to  the 


162  DR.  THOMAS  REID. 


l>east;"  and  it  is  not  supposed  that  he  ever  profited  in  miy  mannei'  by  his  son's 
iibilities. 

llie  principal  works  of  the  chevalier  Ramsay  not  yet  allmled  to^  are  •  A  Dla- 
Ctjurse  on  the  Epic  Poem,"  in  French,  generally  prefixed  to  the  later  editions 
of  Telemachus,  "An  Essay  on  Civil  Government;"  "Remarks  on  lord  Sliaftes- 
bur^'s  Characteristics  "  (French) ;  a  few  English  poems  of  no  value  ;  and  two 
letters  in  French  to  Racine  the  younger,  upon  the  true  sentiments  of  I'ope  in 
the  Essny  on  Man. 

REID,  (Dr)  Thomas,  an  eminent  metaphysician  and  moral  philosopher,  and  pro- 
fessor of  the  latter  science  in  the  universities  of  Aberdeen  and  Glasgow  successive- 
ly, was  born  at  Strachan,  in  Kincardineshii-e,  in  the  neighbourhood  of  Aberdeen,  on 
the  26th  of  April,  1710,  as  shown  by  the  minute  researches  of  professor  Dugald 
Stewart,  who  afibclionately  wrote  the  life  of  his  eminent  friend.  The  family  of 
Reid  had  been  ornamented  by  producing  difl^erent  authors  of  considerable  en)i- 
nence  in  their  age.*  One  of  his  ancestors,  James  Reid,  was  the  first  minister 
of  Banchory-Ternan  (a  parish  in  the  neighbourhood  of  Strachan)  after  the  Re- 
formation. His  son  Thomas  has  been  commemorated  by  Dempster,  (whose 
praises  of  a  protestant  clergyman's  son  mny  be  deemed  worthy  of  credit,)  as  a 
man  of  great  eminence.  He  collected  in  a  volume  the  Theses  lie  had  defended 
at  foreign  univei-sities ;  and  some  of  his  Latin  poems  were  inserted  in  the 
Delitice  Poetarum  Scotorum.  He  wns  Greek  and  Latin  secretary  to  James  L, 
and  bequeathed  to  Marischal  college  a  sum  for  the  support  of  a  librarian,  which 
lias  since  disappeared,  or  been  directed  to  other  purposes.  Alexander,  a 
brother  of  Thomas,  was  physician  to  king  Charles  L,  and  published  some  for- 
gotten works  on  medicine  and  surgery.-  Another  brother  translated  Buchanan's 
History  of  Scotland  into  English.  The  father  of  the  subject  of  our  memoir 
Mus  the  reverend  Lewis  Reid,  for  fifty  years  minister  of  the  parish  of  Strachan  ; 
and  his  mother  was  daughter  to  David  (Gregory  of  Kinnairdie,  elder  brother  of 
James  Gregory,  the  inventor  of  the  reflecting  telescope. 

After  spending  two  years  at  the  parish  school  of  Kincardine  O'Neil,  Thomas 
Keid  was  sent,  for  the  farther  prosecution  of  his  studies,  to  Aberdeen,  where,  at 
the  age  of  twelve  or  thirteen,  he  was  entered  as  a  student  of  3Iarischal  college. 
Little  is  known  of  his  early  studies  or  qualifications,  with  the  exception  of  the 
not  very  flattering  remark  of  his  master,  **  That  he  would  turn  out  to  be  a  man 
of  good  and  well-wearing  parts."  In  a  letter  to  a  friend,  written  late  in  life, 
lie  has  stated  some  circumstances  connected  with  his  habits  of  body  in  youth, 
Mhich  he  appears  to  have  recollected  merely  as  the  data  of  some  of  his  philo-^ 
Eophical  speculations.  They  are  perhaps  not  the  least  interesting,  as  showing 
that  the  physical  state  of  the  body  produces  eff*ects  in  the  procedure  of  the 
mind,  different  fi*om  what  might  be  presumed  as  tlie  mental  characteristics  of 
the  individual,  as  derivable  from  his  opinions.  "  About  the  age  of  fourteen," 
he  says,  "  I  was  almost  every  night  unhappy  in  my  sleep  from  frightful  dreams; 
sometimes  hanging  over  a  dreadful  precipice,  and  just  ready  to  drop  down  ; 
sometimes  pursued  for  my  life,  and  stopped  by  a  wall,  or  by  a  sudden  loss  of 
all  strength  ;  sometimes  ready  to  be  devoured  by  a  wild  beasL  How  long  I 
was  plagued  with  such  dreams,  I  do  not  recollect.  1  believe  it  wns  for  a  year 
or  two  at  least;  and  I  think  they  had  quite  left  me  before  I  was  sixteen.  In 
those  days,  I  was  much  given  to  what  Mr  Addison,  in  one  of  his  Spectators, 
calls  castle-building:  and  in  my  evening  solitary  walk,  which  was  generally  all 
the  exercise  I  took,  my  thoughts  would  huiTy  me  into  some  active  scene,  where 
I  generally  acquitted  myself  much  to  my  own  satisfaction  ;  and  in  these  scenes 
of  imagination,  1  performed  many  a  gallant  exploit.  At  the  same  time,  in  my 
J  SU-warl's  Biographiail  IMemoirs,  p.  400. 


DK.  THOMAS   REID.  163 


dreams  I  found  nvyself  the  most  arrant  coward  thitt  ever  was.  Not  only  my 
courage,  but  my  strength  failed  nie  in  every  danger ;  and  I  often  rose  from  my 
bed  in  the  morning  in  such  a  panic,  that  it  took  some  time  to  get  the  better  rf 
it  I  wished  very  much  to  get  free  of  these  uneasy  drennis,  whidi  not  only 
nuide  me  unhappy  in  sleep,  but  often  left  a  disagreeable  impression  in  my 
mind  for  some  part  of  the  following  day.  I  thought  it  was  worth  trying 
whether  it  nns  possible  to  recollect  that  it  w&a  all  a  dream,  and  that  I  was  in 
no  real  danger,  and  that  every  fright  I  had  was  a  dream.  After  many  fruitless 
attempts  to  recollect  this  A\hen  the  danger  appeared,  I  effected  it  at  last,  and 
have  often,  when  I  was  sliding  over  a  precipice  into  the  abyss,  recollected  thr.t 
it  was  all  a  dream,  and  boldly  jumped  down.  The  effect  of  this  commonly  was, 
that  I  immediately  awoke.  But  I  awoke  calm  and  intrepid,  which  I  thought  a 
great  acquisition.  After  this,  my  dreams  were  never  very  uneasy  ;  and,  in  a 
short  time,  I  dreamed  not  at  all."  Ihat  a  mind  such  as  Reid's  should  have 
been  subject  to  "  castle-building,"'  and  to  singular  dreams,  must  be  accounted 
for  from  the  state  of  his  .bcdy  ;  while  the  strong  active  powers  of  his  mind  are 
shown  in  the  mastership  which  he  at  length  acquired  over  the  propensity. 

While  he  remained  at  Marischal  college,  Reid  was  appointed  to  the  librarian- 
ship,  which  his  ancestor  had  founded.  During  this  period,  he  formed  an  inti- 
macy with  John  Stewart,  al'terwards  professor  of  mathematics  in  Marischal  col- 
lege. In  173t3,  lie  accompanied  this  gentleman  to  England,  and  they  together 
visited  London,  Oxford,  and  Cambridge,  enjoying  an  intercourse  with  Dr 
David  Gregory,  Martin,  Folkes,  and  Dr  Bentley.  In  1737,  the  King's  college, 
as  patrons,  presented  Dr  Reid  with  tlie  living  of  New  Machar,  in  Aberdeenshire. 
An  avei'sion  to  the  law  of  patronage,  which  then  strongly  characterized  many 
districts  of  Scotland,  excited  hostile  feelings  against  a  man,  who,  if  the  parish- 
ioners could  have  shown  their  will  as  well  in  making  a  choice  as  in  vituperating 
the  person  chosen,  would  have  been  the  very  roan  after  their  heart.  In  enter- 
ing on  his  cure,  he  Avas  even  exposed  to  personal  danger.  "  His  unwearied 
attention,  however,"  «ays  professor  Stewart,  "  to  the  duties  of  his  office  ;  the 
mildness  tind  forbearance  of  his  temper,  and  the  active  spirit  of  his  humanity, 
soon  overcame  all  these  prejudices  :  and,  not  many  years  afterwards,  when  he 
was  called  to  a  different  situation,  the  same  persons  who  had  suffered  themselves 
to  be  so  far  misled,  as  to  take  a  share  in  tiie  outrages  against  him,  followed  him, 
on  his  departure,  with  their  blessings  and  teais."  On  his  departure,  some  old- 
men  are  said  to  have  observed,  "  We  fought  against  Dr  Reid  when  he  came, 
and  would  have  fought  for  him  when  he  went  away."  It  is  said  that,  for  at 
least  a  considerable  portion  of  the  time  which  he  spent  at  New  Machar,  he  was 
accustomed  to  preach  the  sermons  of  Dr  Tillotson  and  Dr  Evans,  instead  of  hh 
own  ;  a  circumstance  which  his  biographer  attributes  to  modesty  and  self-diffi- 
dence. In  1740,  he  married  Elizabeth,  the  daughter  of  his  uncle,  Dr  George 
Reid,  physician  in  London.  About  this  period,  he  is  said  to  have  spent  his 
time  in  intensely  studying  moral  philosophy,  and  in  making  these  observations 
on  the  oi'gans  of  sense,  and  their  operation  on  the  external  world,  which 
formed  the  broad  basis  of  his  philosophy.  Reid  was  not  a  precocious  genius; 
and  wliatever  he  wrote  in  early  life,  is  said  to  have  been  defective  in  style  :  but 
he  busied  himself  in  planting  good  seed,  which,  in  the  autumn  of  his  days,  pro- 
duced to  himself  and  to  the  world  a  rich  and  abundant  harvest.  His  first 
public  literary  attempt  was  an  **  Esscy  on  Quantity,  occasioned  by  reading  a 
Treatise,  in  which  Simple  and  Compound  Ratios  are  applied  to  Virtue  and 
Merit,"  published  in  the  Transactions  of  the  Royal  Society,  in  17'Ji8.  This 
paper  is  levelled  at  the  "  Inquiry  into  the  Origin  of  our  ideas  of  Beauty  and  Vir- 
tue," by  Dr  Hutcheson,  who  had  committed  the  venial  philosophical  sin,  of 


164  DR.  THOMAS  KEID. 


making  use  of  a  science,  wliich  can  only  be  brought  to  bear  on  moral  science  ns 
a  means  of  illustrating  it,  and  abbreviating  the  method  of  reasoning,  as  affording 
grounds  for  reasoning  by  analogy.  Perhaps,  on  a  fair  consideration,  Hutcheson 
may  not  have  intended  to  carry  his  system  to  the  extent  presumed  in  this  valu- 
able little  treatise,  most  of  the  arguments  of  which  are  made  to  meet  the  appli- 
cation of  the  mathematics,  not  only  as  forming  a  regular  series  of  analogies  fit 
to  be  used  in  moral  science,  but  likewise  as  so  accurately  corresponding,  that,  as 
it  is  all  mensurable  itself,  it  serves  the  purpose  of  a  measurer  in  moral  science. 
The  following  sentence  contains  the  essence  of  his  argument  on  this  last  point, 
and  it  is  conclusive.  "  It  is  not  easy  to  say  how  many  kinds  of  improper  quan- 
tity may,  in  time,  be  introduced  into  the  mathematics,  or  to  what  new  subjects 
measures  may  be  applied  :  but  this,  I  think,  we  may  conclude,  that  there  is  no 
foundation  in  nature  for,  nor  can  any  valuable  end  be  served  by,  applying 
measure  to  any  thing  but  what  has  these  two  properties  :  First,  it  must  admit 
of  degrees  of  greater  and  less  ;  secondly,  it  must  be  associated  with  or  related 
to  something  that  has  proper  quantity,  so  as  that  when  one  is  increased,  the 
other  is  increased  ;  when  one  is  diminished,  the  other  is  diminished  also  ;  and 
every  degree  of  the  one  must  have  a  determinate  magnitude  or  quantity  of  the 
other  corresponding  to  iu"'  Reid  seems  not  to  have  been  very  certain  whether 
the  person  whom  he  opposes,  (styled  by  him  Dr  M.,)  did  actually  maintain 
mathematics  as  being  a  proper  measure  in  the  moral  sciences,  or  that  it  merely 
afforded  useful  analogies ;  and  perhaps  some  who  are  disposed  to  agree  with  Reid 
as  to  the  former  alternative,  may  not  be  prepared  to  join  him  in  attacking  the 
latter.  He  continues :  "  Though  attempts  have  been  made  to  apply  mathema- 
tical reasoning  to  some  of  these  things,  and  the  quantity  of  virtue  and  merit  in 
actions  has  been  measured  by  simple  and  compound  ratios ;  yet  Dr  31.  does  not 
think  that  any  real  knowledge  has  been  struck  out  this  way  :  it  may,  perhaps, 
if  discreetly  used,  be  a  help  to  discourse  on  these  subjects,  by  pleasing  the 
imagination,  and  illustrating  what  is  already  known ;  but  till  our  affections  and 
appetites  shall  themselves  be  reduced  to  quantity,  and  exact  measures  of  their 
various  degrees  be  assigned,  in  vain  shall  we  essay  to  measure  virtue  and  merit 
by  them.  This  is  only  to  ring  changes  on  words,  and  to  make  a  show  of  ma- 
thematical reasoning,  without  advancing  one  step  in  real  knowledge."^ 

In  1752,  the  professors  of  King's  college  in  Aberdeen,  elected  Dr  Reid  pro- 
fessor of  moral  philosophy,  "  in  testimony  of  the  high  opinion  they  had  formed 
of  his  learning  and  abilities."  After  having  taken  up  his  residence  in  Aber- 
deen, he  became  one  of  the  projectors  of  that  select  society  of  philosophers, 
which  then  dignified  the  northern  city.  It  is  perhaps  partly  to  the  influence 
of  this  association,  that,  among  many  other  works,  we  owe  the  "  Inquiry  into 
the  Human  Mind  upon  the  Principles  of  Common  Sense,"  which  Dr  Reid  pub- 
lished in  1764.  As  this  work  developed  an  argument  against  the  sceptical 
philosophy  of  Mr  Hume,  the  author,  with  more  magnanimity  than  some  mem- 
bers of  his  profession  displayed  at  the  time,  procured,  by  the  interposition  of 
Dr  Blair,  a  perusal  of  the  manuscript  by  Hume,  in  order  that  any  of  those  dis- 
putes, from  mere  misunderstanding  of  words,  so  pernicious  to  philosophical 
discussion,  might  be  avoided.  Hume  at  first  displayed  some  disinclination, 
founded  on  previous  experience  of  others,  to  encourage  this  new  assailant. 
'*  I  wish,"  he  said,  "  that  the  parsons  would  confine  themselves  to  their  old 
occupation  of  worrying  one  another,  and  leave  philosophers  to  argue  with  tera- 

2  Reid's  Essays,  (1820,)  vi. 

3  Essays,  viii.  Stewart,  who  praises  the  principles  of  this  Essay,  (Life  ut  sup.  510,)  was 
more  than  niosl  philosophers  of  his  eminence,  addicted  to  the  vice  detected  in  one  of  its 
forms,  viz.,  comparison  between  menbil  and  physical  nature,  not  merely  to  the  extent  of 
illustration,  but  oi  analogy/. 


DR.  THOMAS   REID.  165 


per,  moderation,  and  good  manners."  But  his  liberal  mind  did  rot  permit 
him,  on  seeing  the  manuscript,  and  knowing  the  worth  of  its  author,  to  yield  to 
his  iuisty  anticipations.  Writing  personally  to  Eeid,  he  said,  "  By  Dr  Blair's 
means  I  have  been  favoured  with  the  perusal  of  your  performance,  which  I  have 
read  with  great  pleasure  and  attention.  It  is  certainly  very  rare,  that  a  piece 
so  deeply  philosophical,  is  wrote  with  so  much  spirit,  and  affords  so  much  en- 
tertainment to  the  reader,  though  I  must  still  regret  the  disadvantages  under 
which  I  read  it,  as  I  never  had  the  whole  performance  at  once  before  me,  and 
could  not  be  able  fully  to  compare  one  part  with  another.  To  this  reason 
chiefly  I  attribute  some  obscurities,  which,  in  spite  of  your  short  analysis  or  ab- 
stract, still  seem  to  hang  over  your  system.  For  I  must  do  you  the  justice  to 
own,  that,  when  I  enter  into  your  ideas,  no  man  appeal's  to  express  himself  with 
greater  perspicuity  than  you  do ;  a  talent  Avliich,  above  all  others,  is  requisite 
in  that  species  of  literature  which  you  have  cultivated.  There  are  some  objec« 
tions,  which  I  would  willingly  propose,  to  the  chapter  Of  Sight,  did  I  not  sus- 
pect that  they  proceed  from  my  rot  sufficiently  understanding  it ;  and  I  am  the 
more  confirmed  in  this  suspicion,  as  Dr  Black  tells  me  that  the  former  objec- 
tions I  had  made,  had  been  derived  chiefly  from  that  cause.  I  shall,  therefore, 
forbear  till  the  whole  can  be  before  me,  and  shall  not  at  present  propose  any 
farther  difficulties  to  your  reasonings.  I  shall  only  say,  that  if  you  have  been 
able  to  clear  up  these  abstruse  and  important  subjects,  instead  of  being  morti- 
fied, I  shall  be  so  vain  as  to  pretend  to  a  share  of  the  praise  ;  and  shall  think 
that  my  errors,  by  having  at  least  some  coherence,  had  led  you  to  make  a  more 
strict  review  of  my  principles,  which  were  the  common  ones,  and  to  perceive 
their  futility." 

It  may  be  as  well  here  to  pass  over  the  intervening  events  of  Dr  Reid's  life, 
and  give  a  brief  sketch  of  the  principles  of  his  philosophy,  as  developed  in  his 
other  works,  to  which,  as  Mr  Stewart  has  properly  remarked,  the  Inquirj'  into 
the  Human  Mind  forms  an  introduction.  In  1785,  he  published  his  "  Essays 
on  the  Intellectual  Powers  of  Man,"  and  in  1788,  those  on  the  "  Active 
Powers."  These  two  have  been  generally  republished  together,  under  the 
well  known  title,  "  Essays  on  the  Powers  of  the  Human  Mind  ;"  a  work  which 
has  gradually  gained  ground  in  the  estimation  of  intelligent  thinkers,  and  is 
now  used  as  a  text  book  by  many  eminent  teachers  of  philosophy.  When  it  is 
said  that  Dr  Reid's  pliilosophy  is  entirely,  or  intended  to  be  entirely  syntheti- 
cal, and  that  it  adopts  no  theory,  except  as  an  induction  from  experiment,  it 
will  readily  be  understood,  that  a  view  of  its  general  principles  and  tendency 
cannot  be  given  ;  but  it  is  not  on  this  account  very  difficult  to  describe  the 
method  by  which  he  reasoned,  and  came  to  the  different  conclusions  he  has 
adopted.  Eeid  has  generally  received,  and  probably  with  justice,  the  praise  of 
having  been  the  firet  to  extend,  by  a  general  system,  the  process  of  reasoning 
from  experiment,  so  strongly  recommended  by  Bacon  in  natural  science,  to  the 
operations  of  the  mind.  In  this  he  Avas,  to  a  certain  extent,  anticipated  by 
Hume,  who,  especially  in  his  arguments  on  cause  and  effect,  and  his  essay  on 
miracles,  proceeded  on  analyses  of  our  experience :  but  the  two  philosophers 
followed  a  difl^erent  method  ;  the  sceptic  using  his  experience  to  show  the  futi- 
lity of  any  systems  of  philosophy  which  had  been  raised;  wliile  Reid  made  use 
of  them  to  redeem,  as  it  were,  mental  science,  by  eschewing  these  systems,  and 
founding  one  of  his  own  on  that  experience  which  he  saw  had  enabled  the  scep- 
tic to  demolish  the  systems,  destitute  of  such  a  support.  But  to  accomplish  his 
purpose — and  this  is  what  distinguishes  his  philosophy  from  all  other  systems — 
Reid  found  it  necessary  to  set  bounds  to  his  inquiries,  which  other  philosophers 
had  passed.      He  abstained  from  that  speculation  concerning  the  nature  and 


166  DR.  TIIOMAS  REID. 


essetice  of  tiie  mind  itself,  whicli,  as  followed  by  others,  had  funned  the  most 
convenient  object  of  demolition  to  the  sceptic,  and  limited  himself  to  observa- 
tions on  the  operations  of  the  mind,  ns  he  saw  them  performed  before  him.  In- 
stead, therefore,  of  appealing  to  any  theories  of  his  own  (wiiich  he  knew  would 
require  to  be  founded  on  vague  speculation,  and  independently  of  observation,)  on 
the  essence  of  the  mind,  when  lie  tried  the  trutii  of  his  observations,  he  appealed 
to  what  he  called  "  common  sense,"  or  that  sense,  however  acquired,  which 
prompts  us  to  believe  one  thing,  and  dit>believe  another.  Her.ce  it  might  be 
said,  in  common  language,  tliat,  instead  of  making  his  inquiries  by  means  of 
subtly  and  metaphysical  reasonings,  he  stated  his  views,  trusting  that  his  readers 
would  believe  him  ii'om  their  common  sense,  and,  if  they  did  not  choose  to  do 
so,  knowing  that  tlie  greater  part  of  the  world  was  on  liis  side,  despite  of  any 
fine-spun  objections  which  might  be  produced  by  tlie  sophist  The  following, 
perhaps,  more  than  most  other  passages  in  his  worlu,  bears  a  marked  stamp  of  his 
method  of  reasoning :  "  Perhaps  Des  Cartes  meant  not  to  assume  his  own  exist- 
ence in  this  enthymeme,  but  the  existence  of  thought,  and  to  infer  from  that  the 
existence  of  a  mind,  or  subject  of  thought.  But  why  did  he  not  prove  the  exist- 
ence of  his  thought?  Consciousness,  it  may  be  said,  vouches  that.  But  who 
is  voucher  of  the  consciousness  ?  Can  any  man  prove  that  his  consciousne» 
may  not  deceive  liim  P  No  man  can :  nor  can  we  give  a  belter  reason  for  trust- 
ing to  it,  than  that  every  man,  while  his  mind  is  sound,  is  determined,  by  the 
constitution  of  his  nature,  to  give  implicit  belief  to  it,  and  to  laugh  at,  or  to 
pity,  tlie  man  who  doubts  its  testimony.  And  is  not  every  man  in  his  wits  as 
determined  to  take  his  existence  upon  trust,  as  his  consciousness  ?"^  It  is  easier 
to  find  objections  to,  than  to  erect  a  system  of  metaphysical  philosoijhy  ;  and 
that  of  Keid  affords  ample  room  for  controversy.  Admitting  that  the  only 
ground  on  which  we  can  ever  place  metaphysical  truths  is,  the  general  belief 
of  men  of  sound  mind,  it  must  still,  in  every  instance,  be  a  very  questionabls 
matter,  whetther  these  men  of  sound  mind  have  come  to  the  ri(//tt  conclusion, 
and  whether  it  may  not  be  possible,  by  a  little  more  investigation  and  argu- 
ment, even  though  conducted  by  a  sceptical  philosopher,  to  show  reasons  for 
coming  to  a  difierent  conclusion,  and  to  establish  it  upon  the  very  same 
grounds,  viz.,  tlie  general  belief  of  men  of  sound  mind.  When  Galileo  dis- 
covered that  nature  abhorred  a  vacuum,  and  was  afterwards  obliged  to  admit 
that  this  abhorrence  did  jiot  extend  above  thirty-three  feet,  many  men  of  sound 
mind  probably  felt  themselves  **  determined,  by  the  constitution  of  their  nature, 
to  give  implicit  belief"  to  both  positions,  until  one  discovered  the  effect  of  at- 
mospheric pressure,  and  got  men  of  common  sense  to  admit  that  nature  had  no 
greater  horn  r  at  a  vacuum  than  at  a  plenum.  It  became  a  necessary  conse- 
quence of  this  method  of  reasoning,  that  Reid's  first,  or  instinctive  principles, 
vere  less  simple  and  more  numerous  than  tliose  of  other  philosophers  ;  and  his 
opponents  accused  him  of  having  by  that  means  perplexed  and  complicated  the 
science  of  mind.  In  simplifying  this  science,  there  are  two  evils  to  be  avoided  ; 
a  propensity  to  refine  every  thing  into  first  principles,  unsupported  by  reason  ; 
and  the  lesser  vice  of  producing  confusion,  by  not  extending  speculation  so  far 
towards  the  establishment  of  first  principles,  as  there  may  be  good  reason  for 
proceeding.  It  was  probably  in  his  anxiety  to  avoid  the  former,  that  Reid  in- 
curred not  unjust  censure  for  sometimes  embracing  the  latter  alternative.  The 
"  Principle  of  Credulity,"  and  the  "  Principle  of  Veracity,"  are  certainly  ob- 
jectionable. Reid  has  had  many  warm  followers,  and  many  who  have  looked 
on  his  philosophy  with  great  contempt.  Those  who  conceive  that  all  systems 
of  n:enlal  philosophy  are  merely  useful  for  the  exercise  they  give  the  mirdj 
*  Inquir).,  (1810,)  28. 


DR.  THOMAS  KEID.  167 


and  tlie  undoubted  truths  wliich  they  occasionally  lay  open,  will  perhaps  make 
the  fairest  appreciation  of  liis  merit,  and  by  such  it  may  perhaps  be  allowed, 
that  the  broad  method  he  followed,  has  enabled  him  to  Iny  before  the  world  a 
gieater  number  of  interesting  circumstances  connected  with  moial  8<:ience,  than 
most  ether  philosophers  have  been  enabled  t()  display.  Before  leaving  the  sub- 
ject of  his  \iorlis,  it  may  be  mentioned,  that  he  composed,  as  a  portion  of  loi"d 
Karnes'  Sketches  of  the  Histoi'y  of  Man,  *'  A  brief  Account  of  Aristotle's 
Logic ;"  the  chief  defect  of  tiiis  production  is,  its  professed  brevity'.  It  is  very 
clear  and  distinct,  and  leads  one  to  regret,  that  so  accurately  thinking  and  un- 
prejudiced a  writer,  had  not  enriched  the  world  with  a  more  extensive- view  of 
the  Aristotelian  and  other  systems. 

In  1763,  while  he  was,  it  may  be  presumed,  preparing  his  Inquiry  for  tlie 
press,  a  knowledge  of  what  was  expected  to  come  from  his  pen,  and  his  general 
fame,  prompted  the  university  of  Glasgow  to  invite  him  to  fill  the  chair  of  na- 
tural philosophy  there.  In  this  office,  professor  Stewart  remarks,  that  "  his 
researches  concerning  the  human  mind,  and  the  principles  of  morals,  which  had 
occupied  but  an  inconsiderable  space  in  the  wide  circle  of  science,  allotted  to 
liim  by  his  former  office,  were  extended  and  methodized  in  a  course,  which  em- 
ployed five  hours  every  week,  during  six  months  of  the  year.  Tlie  example  of 
his  illustrious  predecessor,  and  the  prevailing  topics  of  conversation  around  him, 
occasionally  turned  his  thoughts  to  conmiercial  politics,  and  pi-oduced  some  in- 
genious essays  on  different  questions  connected  with  trade,  which  were  com- 
municated to  a  private  society  of  his  academical  friends.  His  early  passion  for 
the  mathematical  sciences  was  revived  by  the  conversation  of  Simson,  Moor,  and 
the  Wilsons  ;  and  at  the  age  of  fifty-five,  he  attended  the  lectures  of  Black 
with  a  juvenile  curiosity  and  enthusiasm."  Dr  Keid's  constant  desire  for  tlie 
acquisition  of  facts  on  which  to  raise  his  deductions,  kept  him  continually  awake 
to  all  new  discoveries  ;  and  he  spent  many,  even  of  the  latter  days  of  his  long 
life,  in  observing  the  truths  Avhich  were  developed  by  this  illustrious  chemist. 
The  biographer,  after  observing  that  the  greater  part  of  the  course  of  lectures 
delivered  by  Dr  Reid  at  Glasgow,  is  to  be  found  in  his  published  works,  pro- 
ceeds :  "  Beside  his  speculations  on  the  intellectual  and  active  powers  of  man, 
and  a  system  of  practical  ethic«,  his  course  comprehended  some  general  views 
with  respect  to  natural  jurisprudence,  and  the  fundamental  principles  of  poli- 
tics. A  few  lectures  on  rhetoric,  which  were  read  at  a  separate  hour,  to  a 
more  advanced  class  of  students,  formed  a  voluntary  addition  to  the  appropriate 
functions  of  his  office,  to  which,  it  is  probable,  he  was  prompted  rather  by  a 
wish  to  supply  what  was  then  a  deficiency  in  the  established  couree  of  educa- 
tion, than  by  any  predilection  for  a  branch  of  study  so  foreign  to  hisr  ordinary 
j)Ursuits."  It  may  be  right  to  quote,  from  the  same  authority,  those  observa- 
tions as  to  his  method  of  teaching,  which  none  but  an  ear-witness  can  make. 
"  In  his  elocution  and  mode  of  instruction,  there  was  nothing  peculiarly  attrac- 
tive. He  seldom,  if  ever,  indulged  himself  in  the  warmth  of  extempore  dis- 
course ;  nor  was  his  manner  of  reading  calculated  to  increase  the  effect  of  wliat 
he  had  committed  to  memory.  Such,  however,  Avas  the  simplicity  and  perspi- 
cuity of  his  style ;  such  the  gravity  and  authority  of  his  character;  and  such  the 
general  interest  of  his  young  hearere  in  the  doctrines  which  he  taught,  that  by  the 
numerous  audiences  to  which  his  instructions  were  addressed,  he  was  heard  uni- 
formly with  the  most  silent  and  respectful  attention.  On  this  subject,  I  speak 
from  personal  knowledge,  having  had  the  good  fortune,  during  a  considerable 
part  of  winter  1772,  to  be  one  of  Iiis  pupils."  In  1781,  Dr  Reid  retired  from 
liie  duties  of  his  professorship;  and  while  his  labour  and  assiduity  had  earned  for 
him  a  full  right  to  enjoy  his  old  age  in  literary  retirement,  his  mental  faculties 


1G8  JOHN  RENNIE. 


remained  unimpaired.  After  this  period,  he  communicated  some  essays  to 
the  Philosophical  So<:iety.  Tlie  most  important  were:  "An  Examination  of 
Priestley's  Opinions  concerning  Matter  and  JMind  ;"  "  Observations  on  tho 
Utopia  of  Sir  Thomas  More  ;'*  and  **  Physiological  Reflections  on  Muscular 
Motion."  By  this  time  Reid  had  suffered  considerable  domestic  affliction ;  four 
of  his  children  had  died  after  reaching  the  age  of  maturity,  leaving  one  daugh- 
ter married  to  Patrick  Carmichael,  M.  D.  After  his  retirement,  his  wife  died. 
In  a  letter  to  professor  Stewart,  he  thus  affectingly  describes  his  situation  after 
that  event:  "  13y  the  loss  of  my  bosom  friend,  with  whom  I  lived  fifty-two 
years,  I  am  brought  into  a  kind  of  new  world,  at  a  time  of  life  when  old  liabits 
are  not  easily  forgot,  or  new  ones  acquired.  But  every  world  is  God's  world, 
and  I  am  thankful  for  the  comforts  he  has  left  me.  Mrs  Carmichael  has  now 
the  care  of  two  old  deaf  men,  and  does  everything  in  her  power  to  please 
them ;  and  both  are  very  sensible  of  her  goodness.  I  have  more  health  than 
at  my  time  of  life  I  had  any  reason  to  expect.  I  walk  about ;  entertain  myself 
with  reading  what  I  soon  forget ;  can  converse  with  one  person,  if  he  arti- 
culates distinctly,  and  is  within  ten  inches  of  my  left  ear;  and  go  to  church, 
without  hearing  one  word  of  what  is  said.  You  know  I  never  had  any  preten- 
sions to  vivacity,  but  I  am  still  free  from  languor  and  ennui."  In  the  summer  of 
1796,  he  spent  a  few  Aveeks  in  Edinburgh,  and  his  biographer,  who  was  then 
his  almost  constant  companion,  mentions,  that,  with  the  exception  of  his  memory, 
his  mental  faculties  appeared  almost  unimpaired,  while  his  physical  powers  were 
progressively  sinking.  On  his  return  to  Glasgow,  apparently  in  his  usual 
health  and  spirits,  a  violent  disorder  attacked  him  about  the  end  of  September ; 
and,  after  repeated  strokes  of  palsy,  he  died  on  the  7th  October  following. 
The  affectionate  biographer,  in  drawing  a  character  of  this  eminent  and  excel- 
lent man,  may  be  said  to  sum  up  the  particulars  of  it  in  the  words  with  which 
he  commences.  "  Its  most  prominent  features  were — intrepid  and  inflexible 
rectitude  ; — a  pure  and  devoted  attachment  to  truth  ; — and  an  entire  command 
(acquired  by  the  unwearied  exertions  of  a  long  life)  over  all  his  passions." 

RENNIE,  John,  a  celebrated  civil  engineer,  was  the  youngest  son  of  a  re- 
spectable farmer  at  Fhantassie,  in  East  Lothian,  Avhere  he  was  born,  June  7, 
1761.  Before  he  had  attained  his  sixth  year,  he  had  the  misfortune  to  lose 
his  father;  his  education,  nevertheless,  was  carried  on  at  the  parish  school 
(Prestonkirk)  by  his  surviving  relatives.  The  peculiar  talents  of  young  Kennie 
seem  to  have  been  called  forth  and  fostered  by  his  proximity  to  the  workshop 
of  the  celebrated  mechanic,  Andrew  Meikle,  the  inventor  or  improver  of  the 
thrashing-machine.  He  frequently  visited  that  scene  of  mechanism,  to  admire 
the  complicated  processes  which  he  saw  going  forward,  and  amuse  himself  wilh 
the  tools  of  the  workmen.  In  time,  he  began  to  imitate  at  home  the  models  of 
machinery  which  he  saw  there ;  and  at  the  early  age  of  ten  he  had  made  the 
model  of  a  wind-mill,  a  steam-engine,  and  a  pile-engine,  the  last  of  which  is  said 
to  have  exhibited  much  practical  dexterity. 

At  twelve,  Rennie  left  school,  and  entered  into  the  employment  of  Andrew 
Meikle,  with  whom  he  continued  two  years.  He  then  spent  two  years  at  Dun- 
bar, for  the  purpose  of  improving  his  general  education.  So  early  as  1777, 
when  only  sixteen  years  of  age,  his  Dunbar  master  considered  him  fit  to  super- 
intend the  school  in  his  absence,  and,  on  being  removed  to  the  academy  at 
Perth,  recommended  Rennie  as  his  successor.  This,  however,  was  not  the  oc- 
cupation which  the  young  mechanician  desired,  and  he  renewed  his  former  la- 
bours in  the  workshop  of  Andrew  3Ieikle,  employing  his  leisure  hours  in  model- 
ling and  drawing  machinery.  Before  reaching  the  age  of  eighteen,  he  had 
erected  two  or  three  corn-mills  in  his  native  parish  ;  but  the  first  work  which 


JOHN  RENNIE.  169 


he  undertook  on  his  own  account  was  the  rebuilding  of  the  flour-mills  at  InTcr- 
gOAvrie,  near  Dundee. 

Views  of  an  ambitious  kind  gradually  opened  to  him,  and,  by  zealously 
prosecuting  liis  professional  labours  in  summer,  he  was  enabled  to  spend  the 
winter  ih  iidinburgh,  where  he  attended  the  lectures  of  professor  Robison  on 
natural  philosophy,  and  those  of  Dr  Black  on  chemistry.  Having  thus  fitted 
himself  in  some  measure  for  the  profession  of  an  engineer,  he  proceeded  to 
Soho,  with  a  recommendation  from  Robison  to  Messrs  Bolton  and  AVatt.  On 
the  way,  he  examined  the  aqueduct  bridge  at  Lancaster,  the  docks  at  Liver- 
pool, and  the  interesting  works  on  the  Bridgewater  canal.  At  Soho,  he  was 
immediately  taken  into  employment,  and  it  was  not  long  ere  Mr  Watt  discov- 
ered the  extraordinary  talents  of  his  young  assistant.  In  the  erection  of  the 
Albion  mills  in  London,  which  was  completed  in  1789,  3Ir  Rennie  was  in- 
trusted by  his  employers  with  the  construction  of  the  mill-work  and  machinery, 
which  were  admitted  to  be  of  superior  excellence.  These  mills  consisted  of 
two  engines,  eacli  of  fifty  horse  power,  and  twenty  pairs  of  millstones,  of  which 
twelve  or  more  pairs,  with  the  requisite  machinery,  were  constantly  kept  at 
work.  In  place  of  wooden  wheels,  so  subject  to  frequent  dei'angement,  wheels 
of  cast-iron,  with  the  teeth  truly  formed  and  finished,  and  properly  proportioned  to 
the  Avork,  were  here  employed ;  the  other  machinery,  which  used  to  be  made  of 
wood,  was  made  of  cast-iron  in  improved  forms.  This  splendid  establishment, 
which  Mr  Watt  acknowledges  to  have  formed  the  commencement  of  the  modern 
improved  system  of  mill-work,  was  destroyed  in  1791,  by  wilful  fire,  being  ob- 
noxious to  popular  prejudices,  under  the  mistaken  supposition  of  its  being  a 
monopoly.  The  mechanism,  however,  established  Mr  Rennie's  fame,  and  he 
soon  after  began  to  obtain  extensive  employment  on  his  own  account. 

The  earlier  years  of  his  professional  life  were  chiefly  spent  in  mill-work ; 
and  his  merks  in  this  line  may  be  briefly  stated.  One  striking  improvement 
was  in  the  bridge-tree.  It  was  formerly  customary  to  place  the  vertical  axis  of 
the  running  mill-stone  in  the  middle  of  the  bridge-tree,  which  was  supported 
only  at  its  two  extremities.  The  effect  of  this  was  that  the  bridge-tree  yielded 
to  the  variations  of  pressure  arising  from  the  greater  or  less  quantity  of  grain 
admitted  between  the  mill-stones,  which  was  conceived  to  be  an  useful  effect. 
Mr  Rennie,  however,  made  the  bridge-tree  perfectly  immovable,  and  thus 
freed  the  machinery  from  that  irregular  play  which  sooner  or  later  proves  fatal 
to  every  kind  of  mechanism.  Another  improvement  by  Mr  Rennie  has  been 
adverted  to  in  the  above  account  of  the  Albion  mills;  but  the  principal  one 
was  in  the  comparative  advantage  which  he  took  of  the  water  power.  He  so 
economized  the  power  of  water  as  to  give  an  increase  of  energy,  by  its  specific 
gravity,  to  the  natural  fall  of  streams,  and  to  make  his  mills  equal  to  fourfold 
the  produce  of  those,  which,  before  his  time,  depended  solely  on  the  impetus  ot 
the  current. 

Mr  Rennie  was  gi-adually  attracted  from  the  profession  of  a  mechanician  to 
that  of  an  engineer.  In  the  course  of  a  few  years  after  his  first  coming  into 
public  notice,  he  was  employed  in  a  considerable  number  of  bridges  and  other 
public  works,  all  of  which  he  executed  in  a  manner  which  proved  his  extraor- 
dinary genius.  His  principal  bridges  are  those  of  Kelso,  Leeds,  Musselburgh, 
Newton-Stewart,  Boston,  and  New  Galloway.  The  first,  which  was  erected  be- 
tween 1799  and  1803,  has  been  greatly  admired  for  its  elegance,  and  its  hap- 
py adaptation  to  the  beautiful  scenery  in  its  neighbourhood.  It  consists  of  a 
level  road-way,  resting  on  five  elliptical  arches,  each  of  which  has  a  span  of 
seventy-three  feet,  and  a  rise  of  twenty-one.  The  bridge  of  Musselburgh  is  on 
a  smaller  scale,  but  equally  perfect  in  its  construction.     A  remarkable  testi- 


170  JOHN  RENNIE. 


mony  to  its  merits  was  paid  in  Mr  Rennie's  presence,  by  an  untutored  son  of 
nature.  He  was  taking  the  work  oft'  tlie  contractor's  hands,  when  a  magistrate 
of  the  town,  who  was  present,  asked  n  countryman  who  was  passing  at  the  time 
with  his  cart,  how  lie  liked  the  new  bridge.  *'  Brig,"'  answered  tlie  man,  "  it's 
nae  brig  ara;  ye  neither  ken  whan  ye're  on't,  nor  whan  ye're  art"!."  It  must 
be  remarked  that  this  bridge  superseded  an  old  one  in  its  immediate  neigli- 
bourhoood,  wliich  had  a  very  precipitous  road-way,  and  was  in  every  respect 
Uie  opposite  of  the  new  one. 

Mr  Hennie  was  destined,  however,  to  leave  more  splendid  monuments  of  his 
tilents  in  this  particular  department  of  his  profession.  The  W  aterloo  bridge 
across  the  Thames  at  London,  of  which  he  was  the  architect,  would  have  been 
sufficient  in  itself  to  stamp  him  as  an  engineer  of  the  first  order.  This  magni- 
ficent public  work  was  commenced  in  1811,  and  finished  in  1317,  at  the  ex- 
pense of  rather  more  than  a  million  of  money.  It  may  safely  be  described  as 
one  of  the  noblest  structures  of  the  kind  in  the  world,  whether  we  regard  the 
simple  and  chaste  grandeur  of  its  architecture,  the  impression  of  indestructibili- 
ty which  it  forces  on  the  mind  of  the  beholder,  or  its  adaptation  to  the  useful 
purpose  for  which  it  was  intended.  It  consists  of  nine  equal  arches,  of  127 
feet  span  ;  the  breadth  between  the  parapets  is  42  feet ;  and  the  road-way  is 
perfectly  flat.  IMr  Rennie  also  planned  the  Southwark  bridge,  which  is  of  cast- 
iron,  and  has  proved  very  stable,  notwithstanding  many  prophecies  to  the  con- 
trary. The  plan  of  the  new  London  bridge  was  likewise  furnished  by  him ; 
but  of  this  public  work  he  did  not  live  to  see  even  the  commencement. 

Among  the  public  works  of  dift'erent  kinds  executed  by  iVIr  Rennie  may  be 
mentioned  ; — of  canals,  the  Aberdeen,  the  Great  Western,  the  Kennet  and  Avon, 
the  Portsmouth,  the  Birmingham,  and  the  Worcester  ; — of  docks,  those  at  Hull, 
Leith,  Greenock,  Liverpool,  and  Dublin,  besides  the  West  India  docks  in  the 
city  of  London  ; — and  of  lurbours,  those  at  Berwick,  Dunleary,  Howlh,  New- 
haven,  and  Queensferry.  In  addition  to  these  naval  works,  he  planned  various 
important  improvements  on  the  national  dock-yards  at  Plymouth,  Portsmouth, 
Chatham,  and  Sheerness ;  and  the  new  naval  arsenal  at  Pembroke  was  con- 
structed from  his  designs.  But  by  far  the  greatest  of  all  his  naval  works  was 
the  celebrated  breakwater  at  Plymouth.  It  is  calculated  that  he  planned 
Morks  to  the  amount  of  fifty  millions  in  all,  of  which  nearly  ttventy  millions 
were  expended  under  his  own  superintendence. 

Mr  Rennie  died,  October  16,  1S21,  of  inliamniation  iu  the  liver,  which  h<id 
afHicted  him  for  some  years.  By  his  wife,  whom  he  married  in  1789,  he  left 
six  children,  of  whom  the  eldest,  Mr  George  Rennie,  followed  the  same  pro- 
fession as  his  father.  This  eminent  man  was  buried  with  great  funeral  honours, 
in  Si  Paul's  cathedral,  near  the  grave  of  Sir  Christopher  Wren. 

The  grand  merit  of  Mr  Rennie  as  an  engineer  is  allowed  to  have  been  h'u 
almost  intuitive  perception  of  what  was  necessary  for  certain  assigned  purposes. 
With  little  theoretical  knowledge,  he  had  so  closely  studied  the  actual  forms  of 
the  works  of  his  predecessors,  that  he  could  at  length  trust  in  a  great  measure 
to  a  kind  of  tact  which  he  possessed  iu  his  own  mind,  and  which  could  hardly 
have  been  communicated.  He  had  the  art  of  applying  to  every  situation  where 
he  was  called  to  act  professionally,  the  precise  form  of  remedy  that  was  want* 
ing  to  the  existing  evil, — whetiier  it  was  to  stop  the  violence  of  the  most  bois- 
terous sea— to  make  new  harboui-s,  or  to  render  those  safe  which  were  before 
dangerous  or  inaccessible — to  redeem  districts  of  fruitful  land  from  en- 
croachment by  the  ocean,  or  to  deliver  them  from  the  pestilence  of  stagnant 
marsh — to  level  hills  or  to  tie  them  together  by  aqueducts  or  arches,  or,  by 
embankment,  to  raise   the   valley  between   them — to  make  bridges   that  for 


JAilES   EENWICK.  171 


beauty,  surpass  all  others,  and  for  strength  seem  destined  to  last  to  the  latest 
posterity — Kennie  had  no  rival.  Though  he  carried  the  desire  of  durability 
almost  to  a  fault,  and  thus  occasioned  more  expense,  perhaps,  on  some  occa- 
sions, than  other  engineers  would  have  considered  strictly  necessary,  he  was 
equally  admired  for  his  conscientiousness  in  the  fulfilment  of  his  labours,  as  for 
his  genius  in  their  contrivance.  He  would  sutler  no  subterfuge  for  real  strenn-th 
to  be  resorted  to  by  the  contractors  who  undertook  to  execute  his  plans. 
Elevated  by  his  genius  above  mean  and  immediate  considerations,  he  felt  in  all 
his  proceedings,  as  if  he  were  in  tiie  court  of  posterity  :  he  sought  not  only  to 
satisfy  his  employers,  but  all  future  generations. 

Although  Kennie  did  not  devote  himself  to  the  acquisition  of  theoretical 
knowledge,  excepting  to  that  general  extent  which  is  required  by  every  well- 
informed  engineer,  he  Mas  fond  of  those  investigations  of  a  mixed  character, 
where  the  results  of  experiment  are  combined  by  mathematical  rules,  and  a 
train  of  inquiry  directed  and  modified  by  the  lights  of  theory.  In  his  instru- 
ment for  ascertaining  the  strength  of  flowing  water,  he  has  made  a  contribu- 
tion to  science  of  no  small  importance. 

In  person,  Mr  Rennie  was  greatly  above  the  usual  size.  His  figure  was 
commanding,  and  his  features  massive  and  strong,  but  with  a  mild  expression. 
He  was  endeared  to  all  who  knew  him  by  the  gentleness  of  his  temper  ;  and 
the  cheerfulness  with  whicli  he  communicated  the  riches  of  his  mind,  and  for- 
warded the  views  of  those  who  made  useful  improvements  or  discoveries  in 
machinery,  procured  him  universal  respect. 

RENWICK,  Jamrs,  a  celebrated  non-conforming  clergyman,  was  born  in  tha 
parish  of  Glencairn,  Dumfries-shire,  on  the  15th  of  February,  1(562.  His  pa- 
rents, who  were  in  humble  circumstances,  and  of  whom  he  was  the  only  surviv- 
ing child,  seem  to  have  looked  upon  him  with  peculiar  fondness — especially  his 
mother,  who  regarded  him  as  a  special  gift,  an  answer  to  her  prayers,  and  one 
who  was  intended  to  be  more  than  ordinarily  useful  in  the  world.  His  child- 
hood was  watched  over  with  peculiar  solicitude  ;  and  their  hopes  were  still  fur- 
ther excited,  and  their  confidence  strengthened,  by  the  sweetness  and  docility 
of  his  disposition.  Piety  marked  his  earliest  years,  and  his  attention  to  his 
books  was  unwearied ;  circumstances  which  induced  his  parents,  amidst  many 
difficulties,  to  keep  him  at  school,  till  he  found  the  means  of  putting  himself  in 
the  way  of  attaining  greater  proficiency  in  the  city  of  Edinburgh,  where,  by  at- 
tending upon,  and  assisting  in  their  studies,  the  children  of  persons  more 
wealthy  than  himself,  he  was  enabled  to  prosecute  his  own.  After  having  at- 
tended the  university  there,  however,  he  was  denied  laureation,  in  consequence 
of  refusing  to  take  the  oath  of  allegiance,  and  was  under  the  necessity  of  prose- 
cuting his  studies  more  privately,  and  in  the  best  manner  he  could.  In  the 
mean  time,  he  was  a  diligent  attendant  on  the  secret  meetings  of  the  persecuted 
presbyterians,  and  took  a  deep  interest  in  the  questions  which  at  that  time  were 
so  keenly  agitated  among,  and  at  length  so  widely  divided,  that  unforlnmate 
party.  Of  the  unfaithfulness  of  the  indulged  ministers  in  general,  he  had 
long  had  strong  impressions,  and  these  seem  to  have  been  confirmed,  by  hear- 
ing the  testimony,  and  witnessing  the  martyrdom,  of  Mr  Donald  Cargill,  on 
the  27th  of  July,  IGSl  ;  an  event  which  determined  him  to  attach  himself  to 
the  small  remnant  which  adhered  to  the  principles  of  that  sincere  and  excellent 
Christian. 

It  was  on  the  death  of  3Ir  Cargill,  when,  being  deprived  of  public  ordi- 
nances, this  portion  of  the  sufferers  formed  themselves  into  particular  societies, 
united  in  one  general  correspondence,  in  which  Blr  Renwick  was  particularly 
active.     In  the  month  of  October,  he  held  a  conference  with  a  number  of  the 


172  JAifES  RENWICK. 


more  influential  of  the  party,  concerning  the  testimonies  of  some  of  the  martyrs 
lately  executed  ;  when,  it  is  said,  he  refreshed  them  much,  by  showing  them  how 
much  he  was  grieved  to  hear  these  martyrs  disdainfully  spoken  of;  how  much  he 
was  oflended  with  some  that  attended  the  curates,  pled  for  tlie  paying  of  cess,  and 
for  owning  and  defending  the  autliority  of  the  tyrant,  and  how  much  he  longed  to 
see  a  formal  testimony  lifted  up  against  all  those,  with  their  attendant  defec- 
tions. On  the  15th  of  December,  in  the  same  year  in  which  3Ir  Cargill  suflered. 
Ills  adherents  held  their  first  general  meeting,  at  which  was  drawn  up  the  paper, 
known  by  the  name  of  The  Lanark  Declaration,  from  the  place  where  it  was 
proclaimed,  on  the  r2th  day  of  January,  1632.  Mr  Renwick  was  not  the 
writer  of  this  document,  some  parts  of  which  he  always  allowed  to  be  "  incon- 
siderately worded ;"  but  he  was  one  of  the  party  who  proclaimed  it,  and  at  tlie 
eame  time  burnt  tlie  test,  and  the  act  of  succession  of  the  duke  of  York  to  the 
crown. 

The  boldness  of  this  declaration,  which  embraced  both  the  Rutherglen  and 
Sanquhar  declarations,  emitted  in  the  years  1679  and  1680,  and  declared  the 
whole  actS'Of  the  government  of  Cliarles  Stuart,  from  his  restoration  in  1660, 
down  to  that  day,  to  be  utterly  illegal,  as  emanating  from  a  pure  usurpation 
upon  the  fundamental  laws  of  the  kingdom,  and  many  of  them,  in  their  own  na- 
ture, tyrannical,  and  cruel  in  the  highest  degree,  astonished  their  enemies,  and 
astounded  not  a  few  of  their  best  friends,  who,  to  correct  the  unfavourable  re- 
ports concerning  them,  which,  through  the  malice  of  their  enemies,  were 
circulated  among  the  churches  of  the  low  countries,  found  it  necessary  to 
commission  Gordon  of  Earlston  to  the  United  Provinces,  to  state  their  case  as 
it  actually  stood,  and  to  solicit  that  compassion  and  sympathy  which  was  denied 
them  by  their  own  countrymen.  Earlston  met  with  a  very  favourable  recep- 
tion ;  and  it  was  proposed,  seeing  the  universities  in  Scotland  were  closed 
against  all  such  as  were  desirous  of  maintaining  a  clear  conscience,  to  have 
students  educated  under  the  eye  of  these  churches  at  their  universities,  who 
might  be  ordained  to  the  work  of  the  ministry,  and  that  there  should  thus  be 
a  succession  of  faithful  labourers  kept  up  for  the  benefit  of  the  present  and  of 
future  generations.  This  proposal  was  at  once  embraced  by  the  societies, 
as  the  only  probable  method  of  being  supplied  with  a  dispensation  of  gos- 
pel ordinances;  and  Mr  Renwick,  along  with  some  othei-s,  was  accord- 
ingly sent  over,  and  admitted  into  the  university  of  Groningen.  After  he 
had  attended  six  months,  the  progress  he  had  made  was  such,  together  with 
the  urgency  of  the  case,  (for  the  societies  had  not  so  much  as  one  preacher  all 
this  time,)  that  it  was  thought  proper  he  should  be  ordained,  and  sent  back 
to  his  native  land.  He  was,  accordingly,  after  no  little  trouble,  through  the 
interest  of  Mr  Robert  Hamilton,  who  was  well  known  there,  ordained  by 
the  classes  of  Groningen  ;  when,  longing  to  employ  any  little  talent  he 
possessed  for  the  advancement  of  the  cause  of  Christ,  and  the  benefit  of  his  suf- 
fering people,  he  proceeded  to  Rotterdam,  intending  to  avail  himself  of  the 
first  opportunity  of  a  ship  going  for  Scotland.  Finding  a  ship  ready  to  sail,  3Ir 
Renwick  embarked  at  the  Brill  for  his  native  country  ;  but,  after  being  some 
time  on  board,  he  was  so  much  annoyed  by  some  profane  passengers,  that  he 
left  the  vessel,  and  entered  another  that  was  going  to  Ireland.  In  consequence 
of  a  violent  storm,  the  vessel  put  into  the  harbour  of  Rye,  in  England,  where  he 
was  in  no  small  danger  from  the  noise  and  disturbance  created  at  the  time  by 
the  Rye-house  plot  He,  however,  got  safely  oft",  and,  after  a  tedious  and  stormy 
passage,  was  landed  at  Dublin.  In  a  short  time  he  embarked  for  Scotland,  and 
with  no  little  difficulty  and  danger,  succeeded  in  lauding  on  the  west  coast  of 
that  kingdom,  where  he  commenced  those  weary  wanderings  which  were  to 


JAMES   RENWICK.  173 


close  only  with  his  capture  and  death.  His  first  public  sermon  was  delivered 
in  the  moss  of  Darniead,  in  the  month  of  September,  1683,  where  he  was  cor- 
dially and  kindly  received  by  a  poor  and  persecuted  people,  wlio  had  lost,  for 
the  gospel's  sake,  whatever  they  possessed  of  temporal  enjoyments,  and  wero 
ready  for  that  consideration  to  peril  their  lives.  On  this  occasion,  for  his  own 
vindication,  and  for  the  satisfaction  of  his  hearers,  he  gave  an  account  of  his 
call  to  the  ministry,  and  declared  his  adherence  to  the  doctrine,  worship,  dis- 
cipline, and  government  of  the  church  of  Scotland.  He,  at  the  same  time,  gave 
them  Ills  opinion  upon  the  particular  questions  which  were  agitating  the  minds 
of  men  at  tiie  time  ;  stating  particularly  what  class  of  ministers  and  professors 
he  was  willing  to  hold  fellowship  with,  and  also  that  with  which  he  could  not. 
In  this  statement,  as  he  studied  to  be  plain  and  particular,  he  mentioned  several 
names,  which  gave  great  offence  to  some,  and  was  employed  with  much  assiduity 
to  excite  prejudices,  and  create  slanders,  against  both  his  peraon  and  ministry ; 
and,  with  all  the  other  hardships  of  his  lot,  he  was  pursued  everywhere  by 
misrepresentation  and  calumny. 

Amidst  so  much  clamour  of  friends  and  of  enemies,  he  soon  attracted  the  no- 
tice of  the  council,  to  whom  nothing  was  so  terrible  ais  field-preaching.  He 
was  speedily  denounced  as  a  traitor,  and  all  who  followed  him  were  pursued  as 
abettors  of  rebellion.  No  house  that  he  entered,  if  it  was  known,  escaped  pil- 
lage ;  and  no  one  who  heard  him,  if  he  could  be  found,  escaped  punishment. 
Nothing  can  be  conceived  more  desperate  than  his  situation  ;  not  daring  to  ven- 
ture abroad,  yet  finding  no  place  of  rest,  except  in  the  most  remote  and  inac- 
cessible retreats.  Called  upon  nightly  to  confer,  to  preach,  to  pray,  to  baptize, 
and  to  catechise,  with  no  better  accommodation  than  the  cavern  of  the  roclt,  an 
excavation  in  the  moss,  or,  at  the  best,  a  ruined  and  deserted  shepiierd's  shiel, 
where  a  fire  of  sticks  or  heath,  and  a  scanty  morsel  brought  from  afar  by  the 
hands  of  children,  were  his  greatest  luxuries  ;  yet  he  prosecuted  his  labours 
with  remarkable  success,  greatly  increasing  the  number  of  his  followers  in  the 
course  of  a  few  months. 

In  the  succeeding  year,  16 84, his  difliculties  and  discouragements  were  consider- 
ably increased.  The  revilings  of  those  who  should  have  been  his  helpers,  becaiue 
more  bitter,  and  the  vigilance  of  his  persecutors  more  unremitting.  Often  was 
he  pursued  for  days  and  nights  together,  and  to  all  appearance  left  without 
the  possibility  of  escape  ;  yet  he  still  escaped  as  if  by  miracle.  Enraged  be- 
yond measure  at  the  increase  of  his  followers,  and  their  want  of  success  in  so 
many  attempts  to  apprehend  him,  the  council,  in  the  month  of  September  in 
this  year,  issued  out  letters  of  intercommuning  against  him  ;  which,  reducing 
the  whole  body  of  the  sufferers  to  the  most  incredible  hardships,  drove  them, 
between  madness  and  despair,  to  publish,  in  the  month  of  October  following, 
their  apologetical  declaration  ;  wherein,  after  stating  their  abhorrence  of  the 
idea  of  taking  the  lives  of  such  as  differ  from  them  in  opinion,  they  declared 
their  firm  persuasion  of  their  right,  from  the  word  of  God,  and  fundamental 
laws  of  the  kingdom,  to  defend  themselves  in  the  exercise  of  their  religion  : 
and,  after  naming  the  persons  Avhom  they  supposed  to  be  their  chief  persecutors, 
and  whom  they  threatened  with  immediate  and  full  retaliation,  they  add,  "Now, 
let  not  any  think,  our  God  assisting  us,  we  will  be  so  slack-handed  in  time 
coming,  to  put  matters  in  execution  as  heretofore  we  have  been,  seeing  we  are 
bound  faithfully  and  valiantly  to  maintain  our  covenants  and  the  cause  of 
Christ  Therefore,  let  all  these  foresaid  persons  be  admonished  of  their  hazard. 
And  particularly  all  ye  intelligencers,  who,  by  your  voluntary  informations,  en- 
deavour to  render  us  up  to  the  enemies'  hands,  that  our  blood  may  be  shed — 
for  by  such  courses  ye  both  endanger  your  immortal  souls,  if  repentance  prevent 


174  JAMES  REN  WICK. 


not,  seeing  God  will  make  inquisition  for  shedding  tlie  precious  blood  of  his 
saints,  wliatever  be  the  thoughts  of  men ;  and  also  your  bodieii,  seeing  ye  render 
yourselves  actually  and  maliciously  guilty  of  our  blood,  uhose  innooency  the 
Lord  knowelh.  However,  we  are  sorry  at  our  very  hearts,  that  any  of  you 
should  choose  such  courses,  either  with  bloody  L)oeg,  to  shed  our  blood,  or  with 
the  flattering  Ziphites,  to  inform  persecutors  where  we  are  to  be  found.  So  wo 
say  again,  we  desire  you  to  take  warning  of  the  hazard  that  ye  incur  by  follow- 
ing such  courses;  for  the  sinless  necessity  of  self-preservation,  accompanied  «ilh 
holy  zeal  for  Christ's  reigning  in  our  land,  and  suppressing  of  profanity,  will 
move  us  not  to  let  you  pass  unpunished.  Call  to  your  remembrance,  all  that  is 
in  peril,  is  not  lost;  and  all  that  is  delayed,  is  not  forgiven.  Therefore,  ex- 
pect to  be  dealt  with,  as  ye  deal  with  us,  so  far  as  our  power  can  reach ;  not 
because  we  are  incited  by  a  sinful  spirit  of  revenge  for  private  and  personal  in- 
juries; but,  mainly,  because  by  our  fall,  reformation  suffers  damage,  yea,  the 
power  of  godliness,  through  ensnaring  flatteries,  and  terrible  threatening  will 
thereby  be  brouglit  to  a  very  low  ebb,  the  consciences  of  many  more  dreadfully 
surrendered,  and  profanity  more  established  and  propagated.  And  as  upon  the 
one  hand,  we  have  here  declared  our  purposes  anent  malicious  injurere  of  us; 
so,  upon  the  other  hand,  we  do  hereby  beseech  and  obtest  all  you  who  wish 
well  to  Zion,  to  show  your  good-will  towards  us,  by  acting  with  us,  and  in  your 
places  and  stations,  according  to  your  abilities,  counselling,  encouraging,  and 
»trengthening  our  hands,  for  this  great  work  of  holding  up  the  standard  of  our 
Lord  Jesus  Christ.  Think  not  that  in  anywise  you  are  called  to  lie  by  neutral 
and  inditferent,  especially  in  such  a  day  ;  for  we  are  a  people,  by  holy  covenants 
dedicated  unto  the  Lord,  in  our  persons,  lives,  liberties,  and  fortunes,  for  de- 
fending and  promoting  this  glorious  work  of  reformation,  notwithstanding  all 
opposition  that  is  or  may  be  made  thereunto,  yea  and  sworn  against  all  neutrality 
and  indifferency  in  the  Lord's  matters.  And,  moreover,  we  are  fully  persuaded 
that  the  Lord,  who  now  hideth  his  face  from  the  house  of  Jacob,  will  suddenly 
appear,  and  bring  light  out  of  darkness,  and  perfect  strength  out  of  weakness, 
and  cause  judgment  return  again  unto  righteousness.^' 

When  this  declaration  was  first  proposed,  Mr  Renwick  was  averse  to  it,  fear- 
ing that  it  might  be  followed  by  bad  eiTects  :  nor  were  his  fears  disappointed. 
A  reward  of  five  hundred  merks  was  offered  for  every  person  who  owned  the 
declaration,  or  rather  who  would  not  disown  it  upon  oath.  No  person  was  al- 
lowed to  travel  without  a  pass,  who  was  above  the  age  of  sixteen  ;  many  were 
shot  instantly  in  the  fields,  if  they  refused  to  take,  even  at  the  hands  of  a 
common  trooper,  the  oatli  of  abjtu-ation  ;  others,  refusing  the  oath,  were 
brought  in,  sentenced,  and  executed.  On  all  which  accounts,  Mv  Benwick 
was  often  heard  to  say,  he  wished  from  his  heart  that  that  declaration  had 
never  been  published.  The  year  1665  did  not  at  all  better  his  situation  ;  he 
was  still  persecuted  with  the  utmost  fury,  yet  he  ventured,  in  the  month  of  May 
that  year,  to  Uie  market  cross  of  Sanquhar,  accompanied  by  two  hundred  men, 
where  he  published  a  declaration  against  the  succession  of  James,  duke  of  York, 
called  from  that  circunutance,  the  Sanquliar  Declaration.  Refusing  to  con- 
cur with  Argyle,  who  this  year  made  an  unsuccessful  attempt  from  Hol- 
land, a  division  arose  among  his  followei's,  several  of  whom  withdrew  from  the 
societies,  and  became,  both  by  word  and  pen,  his  bitter  traducers  ;  and  in  ad- 
dition to  all  his  other  afflictions,  when  he  had  put  his  life  in  his  hand,  as  it 
were,  to  dis}>ense  the  ordinances  of  tl)e  gospel  to  the  bereaved  people,  he  was 
met  even  by  tliose  who  Irad  been  his  friends,  with  protestations  against  him, 
taken  in  tlie  name  of  large  districts  of  the  countrj-.  Even  Mr  Peden  was,  by 
the  multiplied  slanders  of  his  enemies,  spirited  up  against  him,  and  was  not  re- 


JAMES   REjrWICK. 


175 


coiiciled,  till  after  a  conversation  with  him,  when  he  was  upon  his  deatli-bc<], 
and  unable  to  repair  the  injury.  In  the  midst  of  these  multiplied  discourage- 
ments, he  was  cheered  by  tlie  assistance  and  fellowship  of  Mr  David  Hunston, 
a  minister  from  Ireland,  and  Mr  Alexander  Shields,  a  prea<;her  who  had  made 
his  escape  from  London,  both  of  whom  espoused  the  same  testimony,  and  periled 
their  lives  along  with  him.  It  was  but  a  short  time,  however,  that  ho  en- 
joyed the  aid  of  these  intrepid  men ;  Mr  Hunston  being  necessitated  to  go 
to  Ireland,  and  3Ir  Shields  going  over  to  Holland,  to  superintend  the  printing 
of  the  informatory  vindication.  It  was  in  this  year  tliat  James  VII,,  for  the 
encouragement  of  the  catholics,  set  aside  the  penal  statutes,  and  gave  out 
his  indulgences,  allowing  all  to  worship  in  their  own  way,  except  in  barns  or 
in  fields;  which,  to  the  disgrace  of  the  Scottish  church,  was  embraced  with  abun- 
dance of  gratulatory  addresses  by  her  whole  body,  ministers,  and  members, 
3Ir  Renwick  and  his  followers  excepted.  This  was  a  new  addition  to  his 
troubles,  and  opened  the  mouths  of  complying  professors  still  more  against 
him.  About  this  time,  too,  he  became  intirm  in  body,  could  neither  walk 
afoot  nor  ride,  and  was  carried  to  his  preaching  places  in  the  fields  with  great 
ditliculty ;  though,  in  the  time  of  preaching,  he  felt  nothing  of  his  weakness.  The 
pursuit  after  him  was  now  doubly  hot,  and  an  hundred  pounds  sterling  was  offered 
for  him,  either  dead  or  alive.  Coming  to  Edinburgh  in  the  beginning  of  the 
year  163S,  to  give  in  a  testimony  to  the  synod  of  tolerated  ministers,  against  the 
toleration  which  they  had  accepted,  and  having  delivered  it  into  the  hands  of  Mr 
Kennedy,  their  moderator,  he  passed  over  to  Fife,  where  he  continued  preach- 
ing at  dilFerent  places,  till  the  end  of  January,  when  he  returned  to  Edinburgh, 
and  took  up  his  lodgings  in  the  house  of  a  friend  on  the  Castle  hill,  a  dealer  in 
uncustomed  goods.  A  party  coming  to  search  for  these,  discoveied  Mr 
Renwick,  and  apprehended  him.  He  did  not,  however,  surrender  himself 
into  the  hands  of  his  enemies  without  resistance.  He  drew  out  and  fired 
a  pocket  pistol,  and  having  thus  made  an  opening  among  his  assailants, 
escaped  into  the  Castle  wynd,  and  ran  towards  the  head  of  the  Cowgate  ;  but, 
one  of  the  party  having  hit  him  a  violent  stroke  on  the  breast  with  a  long 
staff  as  he  passed  out,  he  was  staggered,  and  fell  several  times,  and  having  lost 
his  hat,  was  laid  hold  of  by  a  person  in  the  street,  who  probably  knew  nothing 
of  the  man,  or  the  crimes  laid  against  him.  Being  taken  to  the  guard-house, 
he  was  there  kept  for  a  considerable  time,  and  suffered  much  from  the  inso- 
lence of  some  that  came  to  see  him.  The  captain  of  the  guard  seeing  him  of 
little  stature,  and  of  a  comely  countenance,  exclaimed,  *'  Is  this  the  boy  which 
the  whole  nation  has  been  troubled  about  ?"  After  undergoing  examination 
before  the  council,  he  was  committed  close  prisoner,  and  put  in  irons. 
Before  he  received  his  indictment  he  was  carried  before  the  lord  chancellor, 
Tarbet,  and  examined  upon  his  owning  the  authority  of  James  VH.,  the  paying 
of  cess,  carrying  arms  at  field  meetings,  &c.  ;  upon  all  of  which  he  delivered  his 
mind  with  such  faithfulness,  freedom,  and  composure  of  mind  as  astonished  all 
that  were  present.  He  was  examined  upon  the  paying  of  cess,  in  consequence 
of  the  notes  of  two  sermons  on  the  subject  being  found  upon  him  when  he  was 
taken.  Among  these  notes  were  also  some  memorandums  of  names,  some  in 
full,  and  some  with  merely  the  initials  ;  all  these,  to  avoid  threatened  torture, 
he  explained  with  the  utmost  freedom,  knowing  that  the  persons  were  already 
as  obnoxious  as  anything  he  could  say  would  make  them.  This  ingenuousness  on 
his  part  had  a  wonderful  effect  in  calming  their  rage  against  him,  and  Tarbet 
mildly  asked  him,  what  persuasion  he  was  of;  to  which  he  replied,  of  the  pro- 
testant  presbyterian.  He  was  then  asked  how  he  differed  from  other  presby- 
terians  who  had  accepted  his  majesty's  toleration,  owned  his  authority,  &c.,  &a  ? 


170  WILLIAM  mCHARDSON. 

to  which  he  answered,  that  he  adhered  to  the  old  presbyterian  principles 
Cwhich  all  were  obliged  by  the  covenants  to  maintain)  as  generally  professed  by 
the  church  and  nation,  from  the  year  J  640  to  1660,  fuom  which  some  had 
apostatized  for  a  little  liberty  (they  knew  not  how  short)  as  they  themselves  Iiad 
done  for  a  little  honour.  Tarbet  admitted  that  these  were  tlie  presbyterian 
principles,  and  that  all  presbyterians  would  own  them  as  well  as  he,  if  they  had 
but  the  courage.  Mr  Kenwick  was  tried,  February  8,  before  the  high  court 
of  justiciary,  upon  an  indictment  which  charged  him  with  denying  the  king's 
authority,  owning  the  covenants,  refusing  to  pay  cess,  and  maintaining  the 
lawfulness  of  defensive  arms  ;  and,  upon  his  confession,  was  condemned  to  die. 
The  day  fixed  for  his  execution  was  the  1 1th,  but  it  was  postponed  to  the  17th, 
in  the  hope  that  he  would  gratify  the  court  by  petitioning  for  a  pardon,  which, 
it  has  never  been  doubted,  would  have  been  gladly  extended  to  him.  With 
the  constancy  which  had  marked  his  whole  life,  he  refused  to  do  so,  and  was 
accordingly  executed,  being  the  last  person  who  suffered  a  judicial  death  for 
religion's  sake  in  Scotland. 

RICHARDSON,  William,  an  elegant  miscellaneous  writer,  and  professor  of 
humanity  in  the  university  of  Glasgow,  was  born,  October  1,  1743,  at  Aber- 
foyle,  of  which  parish  his  father,  James  Richardson,  was  minister.  After  a 
course  of  Latin  and  Greek  under  the  parish  schoolmaster,  he  was  placed  in  his 
fourteenth  year  at  the  university  of  Glasgow,  where  he  pursued  his  studies  un- 
der professors  Muirhead  and  Moor,  and  distinguished  himself  by  his  extraordi- 
nary diligence  and  capacity.  Even  at  this  early  period  of  his  life,  he  was  noted 
for  the  composition  of  verses,  which,  if  not  of  any  high  positive  merit,  were 
at  least  thought  to  display  an  uncommon  degree  of  taste  for  so  boyish  a  writer. 
He  thus  recommended  himself  to  the  friendship  of  the  professors,  and  at  the 
same  time  formed  an  intimacy  with  Messrs  Foulis,  the  eminent  printers,  whoso 
notice  he  is  said  to  have  first  attracted  by  the  eagerness  with  which  he  bade,  at 
one  of  their  sales,  for  a  copy  of  Marcus  Antoninus.  When  he  had  finished  the 
usual  course  of  languages  and  philosophy,  and  had  taken  the  degree  of  master 
of  arts,  he  began  the  study  of  theology,  with  the  intention  of  becoming  a 
clergyman.  He  had  attended  nearly  three  sessions,  when  the  design  was  laiil 
aside,  in  consequence  of  his  being  appointed  tutor  to  the  late  Lord  Cathcart 
and  his  brother,  then  about  to  go  to  Eton.  At  the  latter  place  ho  spent  two 
years,  after  which  ho  accompanied  his  pupils,  with  their  father  Lord  Cathcart, 
to  St  Petersburg,  whither  his  lordship  was  sent  as  ambassador  extraordinary 
and  plenipotentiary.  He  remained  in  the  Russian  capital  from  17G8  till  1772, 
during  which  time  he  acted  also  as  secretary  to  Lord  Cathcart.  In  the  latter 
3'ear,  he  returned  with  his  only  surviving  pupil  to  the  university  of  Glasgow, 
and  before  the  commencement  of  the  ensuing  session,  by  the  interest  of  Lord 
Cathcart,  who  was  Lord  Rector  of  the  college,  was  chosen  to  succeed  professor 
Muirhead  in  the  chair  of  humanity,  the  duties  of  which  he  performed  without 
any  intermission  till  his  death  in  1814. 

The  remaining  history  of  Mr  Richardson  is  the  history  of  his  works.  His 
first  publication  was  a  small  volume,  entitled,  "  Poems,  chiefly  rural,"  which 
appeared  in  1774;  the  next  was  his  "Philosophical  Analysis  and  Illustra- 
tion of  some  of  Shakspearo's  Remarkable  Characters,"  which  appeared  early 
in  the  succeeding  year.  The  latter  volume,  containing  analyses  of  the  cha- 
racters of  Macbeth,  Hamlet,  Jacques,  and  Imogen,  was  followed  up,  in  1784, 
by  a  sequel,  containing  Essays  on  the  characters  of  Richard  HI,,  King  Lear, 
and  Tiraon  of  Athens ;  and  some  time  after  by  a  third  volume,  adverting  to 
Sir  John  Falstaff,  and  containing  various  other  critical  speculations  upon  the 
writings  of  Shakspcare.     Tho  whole  were  united  ia  one  volume  in  1797,  and 


ALEXANDER  ROBERTSON.  177 


have  been  frequently  reprinted.  The  chief  other  works  of  professor  Richard- 
son are — "  Anecdotes  of  the  Russian  Empire  ;"  "  The  Indians,  a  Tragedy  ;" 
"  The  Maid  of  Loclilin,  a  lyrical  Drama,  with  other  Poems;"  "  The  Philan- 
thrope," a  periodical  essayist,  which  appeared  in  London  in  1797.  He  also 
contributed  to  Gilbert  Stuart's  Edinburgh  Magazine  and  Review,  and  to  the 
Mirror  and  Lounger.  He  wrote  the  life  of  professor  Arthur,  prefixed  to  that 
gentleman's  works,  and  "  An  Essay  on  Celtic  Superstitions,"  appended  to  the 
Rev.  Dr  Graham's  inquiry  into  the  authenticity  of  the  poems  of  Ossian.  An 
Essay  on  Figurative  Language,  and  other  works,  were  left  at  his  death  in 
manuscript. 

The  genius  of  professor  Richardson  was  more  elegant  than  strong :  he  was 
rather  fitted  to  produce  a  tasteful  dissertation  or  an  ingenious  inquiry,  than  a 
work  of  nervous  and  original  character.  Hence  his  works  are  now  put  aside 
in  a  great  measure  by  those  of  succeeding  writers.  In  his  professional  charac- 
ter he  enjoyed  a  high  degree  of  reputation,  and,  in  private  life,  his  character 
was  singularly  amiable.  He  shone  in  conversation,  at  a  time  when  conversa- 
tion was  more  an  art  than  it  now  is.  From  his  earliest  years  to  the  period  of 
his  death,  he  chei-ished  the  best  principles  of  religion  and  morality. 

After  a  short  but  severe  illness,  he  died  on  the  3rd  of  November,  1814,  in 
the  seventy-second  year  of  his  age. 

ROBERTSON,  Alexander,  of  Strowan,  a  distinguished  Highland  chief  and 
poet,  was  the  second  son  of  the  preceding  laird  of  Strowan,  who  bore  the  same 
name,  by  Marion,  daughter  of  general  Baillie  of  Letham,  and  was  born  about 
the  year  1670.  He  was  educated,  with  the  design  of  his  becoming  a  clergy- 
man, under  John  Menzies,  regent  in  the  university  of  St  Andrews,  who  aided 
the  influence  of  hereditary  associations  in  inspiring  him  with  a  zealous  attach- 
ment to  the  persons  and  principles  of  the  Stuarts.  His  father  died  in  1688, 
after  having  enjoined  upon  him,  with  his  latest  breath,  that  he  should  never 
forget  the  loyal  example  of  his  ancestors ;  and  as  his  elder  brother  only  sur- 
vived his  father  a  few  months,  he  fell  into  the  family  inheritance  at  a  very  early 
age,  immediately  before  the  Revolution.  When  Dundee  raised  the  clans  in  the 
ensuing  year,  on  behalf  of  the  exiled  king  James,  young  Strowan  joined  him 
with  his  men,  but  does  not  appear  to  have  been  present  at  the  battle  of  Eilli- 
cranky.  He  was  taken  prisoner  in  September,  and  put  under  honourable  con- 
finement at  Perth  ;  but  was  soon  after  liberated,  in  exchange  for  the  laird  of 
Pollock. 

Being  now  attainted  and  deprived  of  his  estate,  he  joined  the  court  of  the 
expatriated  monarch  at  St  Germain's,  where  he  lived  for  several  years,  chiefly 
supported  by  remittances  from  his  friends  in  Scotland.  He  also  served  one  or 
two  campaigns  in  the  French  army.  In  1703,  queen  Anne  having  pi-omised 
him  a  remission  of  his  attainder  and  forfeiture,  he  returned  to  Scotland ;  and 
though,  from  some  unexplained  cause,  the  remission  never  passed  the  seals,  he 
does  not  appear  to  have  found  any  ditRculty  in  obtaining  possession  of  his 
estates,  or  any  danger  to  his  person  in  a  residence  within  the  seas  of  Britain. 
Unwarned  by  the  misfortunes  which  had  flowed  from  his  first  military  enter- 
prise, he  joined  the  earl  of  Mar  in  1715,  with  between  four  and  five  hundred 
men,  and  took  a  very  active  part  in  the  whole  enterprise.  He  seized  the  castle 
of  Weem,  belonging  to  a  whig  gentleman,  Menzies  of  Weem  ;  was  pi-esent  at 
the  battle  of  Sherift'muir,  where  he  was  taken  prisoner,  but  rescued  ;  and  with 
great  reluctance  yielded  to  the  order  for  the  dispersion  of  his  clan,  which  was 
issued  to  him,  in  common  with  the  other  chiefs,  at  the  departure  of  the  unfor- 
tunate chevalier  and  his  generalissimo  from  the  country.  Strowan  was  soon 
after  taken  prisoner  in  the  Highlands,  but  making  his  escape  from  a  party  of 


178  WILLIAM  ROBERTSON. 


sol«iiers  who  ^vere  escorting  him  to  Edinburgh  ensile,  again  proceeded  to 
France,  to  spend  another  period  of  poverty  and  exile.  Long  ere  this  time, 
he  had  gained  the  esteem  of  his  p.irty  both  at  home  and  abroad,  by  his  poeti(vil 
elusions,  which  were  chieHy  of  the  class  of  political  pascjuils,  and  also  by  his 
pleasing  and  facetious  manners.  Having  received  an  excellent  eduration,  and 
seen  much  of  tlie  world,  he  exhibits  in  his  writings  no  trace  of  tiie  rudeness 
which  prevailed  in  his  native  land.  He  shows  notliing  of  even  that  kind  of 
homeliness  which  then  existed  in  Lowland  Scotland.  His  language  is  pure 
English  ;  and  his  ideas,  tliough  abundantly  licentious  in  some  instances,  bear 
a  general  resemblance  to  those  of  the  Dryilens,  the  lioscommons,  and  the 
Priors,  of  the  southern  part  of  the  island.  Ker  of  Kersland,  who  saw  him  at 
Rotterdam  in  1716,  speaks  of  him  "  as  a  considerable  man  among  the  High- 
landers,  a  man  of  excellent  sense,  and  every  way  a  complete  gentleman."  He 
seems  to  have  also  been  held  in  great  esteem  by  both  James  11.  and  his  unfor« 
tunate  son,  whom  he  had  served  in  succession.  By  the  intercessions  of  his  sis- 
ter with  tlie  reigning  sovereign,  he  was  permitted  to  return  home  in  1726,  and 
in  1731,  had  his  attainder  reversed.  The  estates  had  in  the  mean  time  been 
restored  to  the  sister  in  life-rent,  and  to  his  own  heirs  male  in  fee,  but  passing 
over  himself.  He,  nevertheless,  entered  upon  possession  ;  and  hence,  in  1745, 
WMS  able,  a  third  time,  to  lend  his  territorial  and  hereditary  influence  to  the 
aid  of  a  Stuart.  He  met  prince  (Carles  on  his  way  through  Pertlishire;  and, 
on  being  presented,  said,  "  Sir,  I  devoted  my  youth  to  the  service  of  yotnr 
gramlfather,  and  my  manhood  to  that  of  your  father ;  and  now  I  am  come  to 
devote  my  old  age  to  your  royal  highness."  Charles,  well  acquainted  with  his 
liistory,  folded  the  old  man  in  his  arms,  and  wept.  The  ancient  chief  was  un- 
able, on  this  occasion,  to  take  a  personal  concern  in  the  enterprise,  and,  as  his 
clan  was  led  by  other  gentlemen,  he  escaped  the  vengeance  of  the  government 
He  died  in  peace,  at  his  house  of  Carle,  in  Kannoch,  April  18,  1749,  in  the 
eighty-first  year  of  his  age. 

A  volume  of  poe»ns,  by  Strowan,  was  subsequently  published  surreptitiously, 
by  means  of  a  menial  servant,  who  had  possessed  himself  of  his  papers.  It  con- 
tains many  pieces,  characterized  by  the  licentious  levity  which  then  prevailed  in 
the  discourse  of  gentlemen,  and  only  designed  by  their  author  as  another 
kind  of  conversation  with  his  friends.  While  he  is  chargeable,  then,  in  com- 
mon with  his  contemporaries,  witli  having  given  expression  to  impure  ideas,  he 
stands  clear  of  the  fault  of  having  disseminated  them  by  means  of  the  press. 

ROBEiiTSON,  WiLt-iAM,  the  historian  of  Scotland  and  Charles  V.,  was 
born  in  the  manse  of  tlie  parish  of  Eortliwick,  Mid  Lothian,  in  the  year 
1721.  His  father,  also  named  William,  was  at  first  minister  of  that  parish,  and 
finally  of  the  Old  Gray  Eriars'  church,  Edinburgh  ;  his  mother  was  Eleanor 
Titcairne,  daughter  of  David  Pitcairne,  Esq.  of  Ureghorn.  By  his  father,  he 
was  descended  from  the  Robertsons  of  Gladney,  in  the  county  of  Fife,  a  branch 
of  the  ancient  house  of  Strowan.  Dr  Robertson  received  the  first  rudiments  of 
his  education  at  the  school  of  Dalkeith,  under  the  tuition  of  Mr  Leslie,  then  a 
celebrated  teacher.  In  1733,  he  removed  with  his  father's  family  to  Edin- 
burgh, and,  towards  the  end  of  that  year,  commencetl  his  course  of  academical 
study.  From  this  period  till  1759,  when  he  published  his  Scottish  History, 
there  occurred  nothing  beyond  the  natural  progress  of  events  in  the  life  of  a 
young  man  devoted  to  tlie  Scottish  church  as  a  profession.  During  this  lono- 
•pace  of  time,  he  was  silently  pursuing  his  studies,  and  labouring  in  retirement 
and  obscurity  on  that  work,  wliicii  was  afterwards  to  bring  both  fame  and  for- 
tune to  his  humble  door.  Yet,  thougli  he  thus  permitted  so  large  a  portion  of 
his  life  to  pass  without  making  any  effort  to  distinguish  himself,  it  was  not  bo- 


"\riLLIAM  ROBERTSON.  179 


cause  he  was  not  desirous  of  an  honourable  distinction  amongst  men  ;  but  be- 
cause he  had  wisely  determined  to  do  something-  worthy  of  a  lasting  reputation, 
and  to  do  it  deliberately,  to  secure,  in  short,  a  firm  footing,  before  he  stretched 
out  his  hand  to  seize  the  golden  fruit  of  popular  applause.  That  he  was  early 
imbued  with  literary  ambition,  and  that  of  the  most  ardent  kind,  is,  notwith- 
standing the  long  obscurity  to  which  he  was  content  to  submit,  sufficiently  evi- 
dent from  the  motto  which  he  was  in  the  habit  of  prefixing  to  his  common- 
place  books,  while  only  in  the  fourteenth  or  fifteenth  year  of  his  age.  The 
motto  was,  Vita  sine  Uteris  mors  est;  a  sentiment  which  adhered  to  liim 
through  life. 

Having  completed  his  studies  at  the  university,  he  was  licensed  to  preach  by 
the  presbytery  of  Dalkeith  in  1741,  and  in  1743  he  was  presented  to  the  liv- 
ing of  Giadsmuir,  in  East  Lothian,  by  the  earl  of  Hopetoun.  This  ap- 
pointment, came  opportunely ;  for  soon  after  he  obtained  it,  his  father 
and  mother  died  witliin  a  few  houi-s  of  each  other,  leaving  a  family  of  six 
daugliters  and  a  younger  brother,  almost  wholly  dependent  upon  him  for  sup- 
port. With  that  generosity  of  disposition  and  warmth  of  affection,  which  are  not  de- 
terred by  personal  considerations  from  discharging  an  imperative  duty,  he  instant- 
ly invited  his  father's  family  to  his  humble  residence  at  Giadsmuir,  where,  we 
are  credibly  informed,  his  professional  income  hardly  exceeded  £Q(i  a-year.  Nor 
did  his  benevolence  stop  here.  He  undertook  the  education  of  his  sisters, 
and  on  their  account  delayed  a  matrimonial  union  which  he  had  long  desired, 
but  which  he  did  not  carry  into  effect  until  he  saw  them  all  i-espectably  settled 
in  the  world.  This  accomplished,  he,  in  1751,  married  his  cousin,  Miss  Mary 
Nisbet,  daughter  of  the  reverend  3Ir  Nisbet,  one  of  the  ministers  of  Edinburgh. 
Previously  to  this,  a  remarkable  instance  of  the  enthusiasm  of  his  disposition, 
and  of  the  warmth  of  his  patriotic  feelings,  occurred.  When  the  capital  of  Scot' 
land  was  threatened  by  the  Highland  army  in  1745,  Dr  Robertson  hastened 
into  the  city,  and  joined  the  ranks  of  the  volunteers,  who  had  been  called  up 
for  its  defence;  and,  when  it  was  resolved  to  surrender  the  town  without  re- 
sistance, he  was  one  of  a  small  band  who  proceeded  to  Haddington,  where 
general  Cope  tlien  lay,  and  made  offer  of  their  services  to  that  commander. 
The  general,  fortunately  for  Ur  Robertson  and  his  party,  declined  to  admit 
them  into  his  disciplined  ranks,  alleging  that  their  want  of  tliat  essential  quali- 
fication might  throw  his  men  into  disorder;  and  they  thus  escaped  the  dangers 
and  disgrace  which  afterwards  befell  his  army  at  Prestonpans,  This  rebuff^  tei*- 
uiinated  the  historian's  experience  of  military  life.  He  returned  to  the  discharge 
of  the  sacred  duties  of  his  calling,  and  to  the  peaceful  enjoyment  of  his  literary 
pursuits.  In  his  parish  he  was  exceedingly  beloved.  The  amenity  of  his  man- 
ners, the  purity  and  uprightness  of  his  conduct,  had  secured  him  the  esteem 
and  veneration  of  all;  while  the  eloquence  and  elegant  taste  which  he  displayed 
in  his  sermons,  procured  him  a  high  degree  of  respect  from  the  neighbouring 
clergy.  These  qualifications  as  a  preacher,  he  had  been  at  much  pains  to  ac- 
quire, and  he  had  early  aimed  at  introducing  a  more  refined  taste,  and  a  more 
persuasive  eloquence,  into  pulpit  oratory,  than  were  then  generally  to  be  found. 
With  this  view  he  had,  during  the  last  two  or  three  years  of  his  attendance  at 
college,  maintained  a  connexion  with  a  society,  whose  objects  were  to  cultivate 
the  arts  of  elocution,  and  to  acquire  the  habit  of  extemporary  debate,  Dr 
Robertson  himself  had  the  principal  share  in  forming  this  society,  and  he  was 
fortunate  in  the  selection  of  its  members,  the  greater  part  of  them  having  after- 
wards arrived  at  distinction  in  the  different  walks  of  life  which  they  pursued. 

The  first  of  Dr  Robertson's  publications  was  a  sennon  wliich  he  preached  in 
the  year  1755,  before  the  Society  for  the  Propagation  of  Christian  Knowledge. 


Ji 


180  WILLIAM   ROBERTSON. 


This  sci'mon  possesses  a  singular  degree  of  merit,  and  exhibits  all  the  felicities 
of  composition  and  strength  of  reasoning,  for  which  his  after  productions  are  so 
remarkable.  That  he  himself  had  a  favourable  opinion  of  this  sermon,  appears 
from  a  letter  written  by  him  to  his  son-iu-law,  Mr  John  Russell,  on  June  16, 1788, 
along  with  which  ho  had  sent  him,  "as  a  monument  of  his  friendship  and  attach- 
ment," a  very  handsomely  bound  copy  of  his  works,  as  "  I  wish  you  to  possess 
them  in  their  most  perfect  form,  as  I  purpose  they  should  be  transmitted  to 
posterity ;"  and  he  adds,  "my  solitary  sermon,  naked  as  it  came  into  the  world, 
accompanies  its  well-drest  brothers,  but  though  the  least  of  my  works,  I  Avould 
not  have  you  esteem  it  the  last  in  merit." 

A  few  years  afterwards,  he  made  his  appeai'ance  in  the  debates  of  the  General 
Assembly,  where  his  eloquence  acquired  for  him  the  ascendancy  which  he  long 
maintained  as  a  leader  in  the  church  courts.  It  is  remarkable  that  one  of  the 
first  uses  he  made  of  his  influence  in  the  General  Assembly,  was  to  defend  his 
co-presbyter  Homo  from  the  censures  of  the  church,  for  his  having  written  the 
tragedy  of  Douglas.  Dr  Robertson  could,  indeed,  scarcely  have  done  less,  after 
having  himself  taken  part  in  the  rehearsal  of  the  piece,  in  common  with  Blair 
and  Carlyle,  as  has  already  been  narrated  in  our  memoir  of  Home.  He  exerted 
l.imself  warmly  in  behalf  of  his  peccant  brother;  and  it  is  allowed  that  his 
arguments  and  eloquence  had  a  great  eflfect  in  softening  the  vengeance  of  the 
General  Assembly.  As  the  play-going  portion  of  the  public  sympathized  but 
little  in  the  feelings  of  the  clergy  on  this  subject,  and  felt  besides  a  strong  pre- 
judice in  favour  of  Mr  Home,  these  efforts  of  Dr  Robertson  were  exceedingly 
grateful  to  that  party,  amongst  whom  Lis  defence  had  the  effect  of  acquiring 
for  him  an  extensive  popularity. 

In  the  mean  time,  his  "  History  of  Scotland,  during  the  Reigns  of  3Iary  and 
James  VI.,"  which,  in  the  midst  of  all  his  other  avocations,  he  had  been  noise- 
lessly, but  assiduously  bringing  forward,  approached  to  a  close,  and  he  was 
about  to  commit  to  the  caprice  of  popular  taste  and  opinion,  the  laboui's  and  the 
liope  of  years.  On  the  final  completion  of  that  work,  he  proceeded  to  London, 
to  make  arrangements  regarding  its  publication;  and  in  February,  1759,  it  ap- 
peared. The  effect  which  it  produced,  was  instantaneous  and  extraordinary. 
Letters  of  congratulation,  of  admiration,  and  of  pi-aise,  poured  in  upon  its 
author  from  all  quarters,  and  many  of  them  from  the  most  eminent  men  of  the 
time,  all  outvying  each  other  in  the  language  of  panegyric  and  compliment. 
Nor  was  it  praise  alone  that  attended  his  literary  success ;  tlie  work  cleared  to 
its  author  no  less  a  sum  than  £600  ;  preferment  also  immediately  followed, 
and  changed  at  once  the  whole  complexion  of  his  fortunes.  While  his  work 
was  going  through  the  press,  he  had  received  a  presentation  to  one  of  the 
churches  of  Edinburgh,  to  which  he  removed  with  his  family  ;  and  in  the  same 
year  in  which  the  work  was  published,  lie  was  appointed  chaplain  of  Stirling 
castle ;  in  two  years  afterwards,  he  was  nominated  one  of  his  majesty's  chaplains 
in  ordinary  for  Scotland  ;  in  the  following  year,  he  was  elected  principal  of 
the  university  of  Edinburgh  ;  and  in  two  years  more,  appointed  by  the  king, 
as  liistoriographer  for  Scotland,  with  a  salary  of  two  hundred  pounds  a-year. 
From  being  an  obscure  country  clergyman,  he  was  now  become  one  of  the  most 
conspicuous  men  in  the  kingdom.  His  sociiety  and  correspondence  were  courted 
by  the  noble  and  the  wealthy,  and  his  self  love  was  flattered  by  encomiums  and 
oulogiums  from  the  dignified  and  learned.^ 

»  His  friend,  Dr  Carlyle,  thus  sarcastically  remarks  the  rush  of  honours  with  which  his 
merits  were  rewarded,  in  a  letter  to  the  reverend  Thomiis  Hepburn,  (author  of  a  curious  and 
clever  Jeu  d'  esprit,  entitled  "  Mago-Pico,")  diited  Musselburgh,  Sep.  5, 1763  :_"  Robertson 
has  managed  with  great  address.  He  is  principal,  chaplain,  miuister,  historiographer,  and  his- 


WILLIAM  ROBERTSON  181 


Some  of  his  advisers,  iu  the  warmth  of  their  zeal,  thinking  that  the  Scottish 
clmrch  was  too  limited  a  field  for  a  man  of  his  talents,  pi-oposed  to  him  to  seek 
in  the  English  church  for  rewards  befitting  his  high  merits.  Into  this  proposal, 
however,  Dr  Robertson  did  not  enter,  but  continued  to  abide  by  both  the 
country  and  the  religion  of  his  fathei-s  ;  a  line  of  conduct  consistent  with  the 
purity  and  dignity  of  his  character. 

The  success  of  his  "  History  of  Scotland,"  now  urged  him  on  to  further  ef- 
forts, and  he  lost  no  time  in  looking  out  for  another  subject  to  work  upon. 
After  some  deliberation,  and  carefully  weighing  the  merits  of  several,  he  at 
length  fixed  upon  a  "  History  of  the  Reign  of  Charles  V."  This  work,  which 
appeared  in  1769,  in  three  volumes  quarto,  still  further  increased  the  reputa- 
tion of  its  author,''  and  was  received  with  equally  flattering  marks  of  approbation 
as  his  Scottish  history.  Hume,  his  contemporary  and  intimate  friend,  and  who, 
superior  to  the  low  jealousy  which  would  have  seized  upon  a  mean  mind,  on 
witnessing  the  success  of  a  rival  historian,  Iiad  always  been  amongst  the  first  to 
come  forward  and  acknowledge  his  merits,  thus  speaks  of  the  work,  as  it  passed 
through  his  hands  in  sheets  direct  from  the  printing  office  :  "They  even  excel, 
and  I  think  in  a  sensible  degree,  your  History  of  Scotland.  I  propose  to  my- 
self great  pleasure,  in  being  the  only  man  in  England,  during  some  months,  who 
will  be  in  the  situation  of  doing  you  justice ;  after  which,  you  may  certainly 
expect  that  my  voice  will  be  drowned  in  that  of  the  public"  Mr  Hume  was  not 
mistaken  in  this  anticipation.  Congratulatory  and  complimentary  letters  ag^in 
flowed  in  upon  the  historian  from  all  quarters,  and  his  fame  not  only  spread 
rapidly  wherever  the  language  in  which  he  wrote  Avas  understood,  but  by  a 
lelicitous  translation  of  his  Charles  V,,  by  M.  Suard,  he  became  equally  well 
known  throughout  all  France. 

Previously  to  his  undertaking  the  Life  of  Charles  V.,  Dr  Robertson  had  been 
urgently  entreated  by  his  friends,  and  had  even  the  wishes  of  the  monarch  con- 
veyed to  him  on  the  subject,  to  undertake  a  history  of  England.  This,  though 
promised  the  support  of  government  while  he  should  be  engaged  in  the  work, 
he  declined,  from  motives  of  delicacy  towards  his  friend  Mr  Hume,  who  was  al- 
ready employed  on  a  history  of  that  kingdom.  He  was  afterwards,  however, 
prevailed  upon  to  entertain  the  idea,  from  the  consideration  that  his  work  would 
not  appear  for  many  years  after  Blr  Hume's,  and  that  it  would  necessarily  be 
so  diHerent  as  to  have  an  entirely  separate  and  distinct  claim  on  public  favour, 
without  any  encroachment  on  the  portion  due  to  the  merits  of  Mr  Hume.  T  h3 
work,  however,  was  never  undertaken,  nor  is  it  now  knoAvn  \\hat  were  the 
causes  which  prevented  it.  His  biographer,  Mr  Dugald  Stewart,  conjectures 
that  the  resignation  of  lord  Bute,  who  had  always  been  a  warm  and  steady 

torian  ;  that  is  to  say,  he  has  £50  a-year,  and  a  house  certain,  besides  wliat  he  can  make  by 
his  books.  It  was  taken  for  granted  that  he  vras  to  resign  his  cliarge,  on  being  appointed 
historiographer  with  £200  salary ;  but  that  he  will  do  at  his  leisure.  It  is  also  supposed  by 
his  patrons,  that  he  is  to  wiite  the  history  of  Britain  in  ten  volumes  quarto.  This  also,  I 
presume  (dreadful  task!)  he  will  execute  at  his  leisure. 

"  Honest  David  Home  [Hume],  wth  the  heart  of  all  others  that  rejoices  most  at  the  pros- 
perity of  his  friends,  was  certainly  a  little  hurt  with  this  last  honour  conferred  on  Robertson. 
A  lucky  accident  has  given  him  relie£  The  earl  of  Hertford  is  appointed  ambassador  to 
France;  not  very  capable  himself,  they  have  loaded  him  with  an  insignificant  secretary,  one 
Charles  Bunbury,  who,  for  the  sake  of  pleasure,  more  than  the  tiiousand  a-year,  solicited  for 
the  office.  Hertford  knew  David,  and  some  good  genius  prompted  to  ask  him  to  go  along 
and  manage  the  business.  It  is  an  honourable  character — he  will  see  his  fi lends  in  France; 
if  he  tires  fie  can  return  when  he  pleases.  Bunbury  will  probably  tire  first,  and  Uien  David 
will  become  secretary  !" — Thorjie's  Catalogue  of  Autographs,  1833. 

2  In  consequence  of  the  great  success  of  his  History  of  Scotland,  Dr  Robertson  received  for 
Charles  V.  from  the  booksellers,  no  less  than  £4j50b,  then  supposed  to  be  the  largest  sum 
ever  paid  for  the  copyright  of  a  single  book. 


183  WILLIAM  EOBERTSON. 


friend  of  Dr  Robertson,  might  have  contributed  to  alter  hia  views  witli  regard 
to  the  writing  a  history  of  England  ;  but  he  acknowledges  his  inability  to  dis- 
corer  any  certain  or  positive  reason  for  the  interruption  of  its  execution. 

Eight  years  after  the  publication  of  Charles  V.,  (1777,)  Dr  Robertson  pro- 
duced the  History  of  America,  a  work  which  fully  maintained  the  author's  high 
reputation,  and  procured  him  a  repetition  of  all  those  gratifying  marks  of  both 
public  and  private  approbation  which  had  attended  his  former  works.  One  of 
these  was  his  election  as  an  honorary  member  by  the  Royal  Academy  of  His- 
tory in  Madrid.  This  learned  body  at  the  same  time  appointed  one  of  its 
members  to  translate  the  work  into  Spanish,  and  a  considerable  progress  was 
m.ade  in  the  translation,  when  the  jealousy  of  the  Spanish  government  inter- 
fered to  prevent  it  from  proceeding  any  further. 

The  reputation  of  Dr  Robertson,  however,  did  not  rest  alone  upon  liis 
nritings.  His  {>owerfal  and  penuasive  eloquence  had  gained  him  an  influence 
in  the  General  Assembly,  which  intimately  and  conspicuously  associated  his 
name  with  the  ecclesiastical  affairs  of  the  kingdom.  He  introduced  and  es- 
tablished a  system  of  subordination  throughout  the  various  gradations  of  ec- 
clesiastii^il  judicatories,  which  liad  not  been  before  exerted,  and  the  neglect  of 
which  had  giveu  rise  to  many  unbecoming  scenes  in  the  settling  of  ministers  ; 
scenes  deemed  at  once  highly  derogatory  to  the  dignity  of  the  supreme  court, 
and  subversive  of  all  order  in  the  church  government  of  the  kingdom. 

Of  his  eloquence,  a  part  of  his  fame,  as  his  biographer  remarks,  which  must 
soon  rest  on  tradition  only,  the  latter  thus  spealts :  "  I  shall  not  be  accused  of 
exaggeration,  when  I  say,  that,  in  some  of  the  most  essential  qualifications  of  a 
speaker,  he  was  entitled  to  rank  with  the  first  names  which  have  in  our  times 
adorned  the  British  senate."  This  is  high  praise  ;  but  when  it  is  recollected 
who  he  is  that  bestows  it,  there  is  little  reason  to  doubt  its  justice. 

In  his  preface  to  his  History  of  America,  Dr  Robei'tson  had  mentioned  his 
int««tion  of  resuming  the  subject ;  and  it  is  known  that,  but  for  the  colonial 
war,  which  was  now  raging,  he  would  have  commenced  a  history  of  the 
British  empire  in  that  continent.  Having  abandoned  this  design,  he  looked 
out  for  some  other  subject  worthy  of  his  pen.  Mr  Gibbon  recommended  to 
him  a  history  of  the  Protestants  in  France,  a  subject  which  has  since  been  il- 
lustrated by  Dr  M'Crie,  and  several  other  persons  suggested  the  History  of 
Great  Britain,  from  the  Revolution  to  the  Accession  of  the  House  of  Hanover. 
It  appears  from  a  letter  to  Dr  Waddilour,  dean  of  Rippon,  dated  July,  1778, 
that  lie  had  n!ade  up  his  mind  to  encounter  the  responsibilities  of  such  a  task : 
but  he  very  early  abandoned  it,  in  consequence  of  a  correspondence  with  his 
friend,  Mr  James  Macpherson,  who,  three  years  before,  had  published  a  history 
of  the  same  reigns,  and  whose  feelings,  he  found,  must  be  severely  injured  by 
his  attempting  a  rival  work.  As  he  was  now  approaching  his  sixtieth  year,  it 
is  probable  that  he  was  by  no  means  eager  to  commence  a  new  subject  of 
study.  His  circumstances,  too,  were  independent;  he  had  acquired  fame  suf- 
ficient to  gratify  his  most  ambitious  hopes  :  and  thus  Avere  removed  two  of  the 
greatest  incentives  to  literary  exertion.  His  constitution,  besides,  was  consid- 
erably impaired  by  a  long,  sedentary,  and  studious  life ;  and  he  probably  con- 
ceived that,  after  liaving  devoted  so  large  a  portion  of  his  existence  to  the 
instruction  and  entertainment  of  others,  he  had  a  right  to  appropriate  wliat  re- 
mained  to  himself. 

In  the  year  1780,  he  retired  from  the  business  of  the  ecclesiastical  court, 
of  which  he  Itad  been  so  long  an  ornament,  but  still  continued  to  dis- 
charge the  duties  of  his  pastoral  office,  and  that  with  a  diligence,  always  exem- 
plary,  which   increased  rather  than   diminisiied  with    his  growing  infnmities. 


^VILLIA.M   EOBERTSON.  183 


As  long  as  Lis  health  permitted,  he  preached  every  Sunday,  and  continued  to  do 
60  occasioually  till  within  a  few  months  of  his  death.  In  regard  to  his  style  of 
preaching,  his  nephew,  Lord  Brougham,  in  his  Life  of  the  Principal,  contained 
in  his  "Lives  of  Men  of  Letters  and  Science  who  flourished  in  the  time  of 
George  IIL,"  gives  a  very  iateresting  account  of  it  from  his  own  personal  know- 
ledge; and  in  particular  of  a  sermon  whicli  he  heard  Dr  Robertson  preach  on 
November  5,  1788,  the  celebration  of  the  centenary  of  the  Revolution. 

Notwithstanding  his  resolution  to  write  no  more  for  the  public,  the  Principal 
was  accidentally  led  to  the  composition  of  another  work.  In  perusing  mnjor  Ren- 
nel's  "Memoirs  of  a  Map  of  Hindoslan,"  he  began  to  inquire  into  the  know- 
ledge which  the  ancients  had  of  that  country,  solely  for  bis  own  amusement 
and  information.  His  ideas,  as  he  himself  remarks,  gradually  extended,  and 
became  more  interesting,  till  he  at  length  imagioed  that  the  result  of  his  re- 
searches might  prove  amusing  and  instructive  to  others.  In  this  way  he  was 
led  to  publish  his  "  Historical  Disquisition  concerning  the  Knowledge  which 
the  Ancients  had  of  India,  and  the  progress  of  Trade  with  that  Country,  prior 
to  the  Discovery  of  the  Cape  of  Good  Hope,"  which  appeared  in  1791  in 
quarto.  He  had  in  the  meanwhile  enjoyed  several  years  of  good  health  and 
honoured  leisure,  dividing  the  time  which  he  could  spare  from  Ids  clerical 
duties  between  the  amusement  of  reading  and  the  enjoyment  of  the  society  of 
his  friends.  Immediately,  however,  on  the  termination  of  the  above  self-im- 
posed labour,  his  health  became  materially  aliected.  Strong  symptoms  of  jaaa- 
dice  showed  themselves,  and  laid  the  foundation  of  a  lingering  and  fatal  illness. 
At  an  early  stage  of  this  disease,  he  was  impressed  with  the  belief  that  his  death 
Avaa  not  far  distant ;  but,  like  his  great  contemporary  Hume,  he  contemplated  its 
approach,  not  only  without  terror,  but  with  cheerfulness  and  complacency.  In 
the  latter  part  of  his  illness  he  was  removed  to  Grange  House,  in  the  neighbour- 
hood of  Edinburgh,  in  the  vain  hope  that  he  might  be  benefited  by  the  free 
air  of  the  country.  He  was  still,  however,  able  to  enjoy  the  beauties  of  the 
rural  scenery  around  him,  and  that  with  all  the  relish  of  his  better  days.  Early 
in  June,  1793,  Ids  increasing  weakness  confined  1dm  to  his  couch;  his  articu- 
lation began  to  fail,  and  on  the  11th  he  died,  in  the  seventy-first  year  of  his 
age. 

Dr  Robertson's  talents  were  not  precocious.  The  early  part  of  his  career  was 
wholly  undistinguished  by  any  remarkable  pre-eminence  over  his  contemporaries; 
but  his  mind,  though  silently  and  unobtrusively,  was  yet  gradually  advancing 
towards  tliat  high  intellectual  station  in  which  it  first  attracted  the  attention  of  the 
world.  He  did  not,  with  that  ill-judged  precipitancy  by  which  authors  have  often 
seriously  suffered  in  then*  reputation  and  fortunes,  come  uiifl.edgcd  before  the  world. 
As  already  remarked,  he  wisely  refrained  from  stepping  into  the  arena  of  literary 
competition  until  he  was  completely  accoutred  for  the  contest,  and  the  success 
he  met  with  was  one  result  of  this  prudence  and  forethought. 

The  friendship  which  subsisted  between  Dr  Robertson  and  Mr  Hume  is,  per- 
haps, next  to  the  genius  of  these  great  men,  the  circumstance  connected  witii 
them  most  deserving  of  our  admiration.  Though  both  struggling  forward  in 
the  same  path  of  historical  composition,  there  were  not  only  no  mean  jealousies 
in  the  race,  but  each  might  be  seen  in  turn  helping  forward  the  other,  and  a 
more  interesting  sight  than  this  cannot  readily  be  conceived.  The  letters  of 
Mr  Hume  to  Dr  Robertson  are  full  of  amiable  feeling,  and  of  that  light, 
cheerful  raillery,  in  which  the  historian  of  England  so  much  delighted  to  in- 
dulge, and  which  contrasted  so  pleasingly  with  the  gravity  and  digniTy  of  his 
writings.  "Next  week,"  he  says,  in  one  of  these  letters,  "I  am  published, 
and  then  I  expect  a  constant  con-parison  will  be  made  between  Dr  Robertson 


184  DR.  JOHN  ROBISON. 


and  Mr  Hume.  I  shall  tell  you  in  a  few  weeks  which  of  these  heroes  is  likely 
to  prevail.  Meanwhile,  I  can  inform  both  of  them  for  their  comforts,  that  their 
combat  is  not  likely  to  make  half  so  much  noise  as  that  between  Broughton  and 
the  one-eyed  coachman." 

Dr  Robertson  in  person  was  rather  above  the  middle  size,  with  an  apparently 
ordinary  degree  of  physical  strength.  His  eye  was  intelligent,  and  his  features 
regular  and  manly.  "  He  appeared,"  says  his  biogi-apher,  "  to  greatest  ad- 
vantage in  his  complete  clerical  dress,  and  was  more  remarkable  for  gravity  and 
dignity  in  discharging  the  functions  of  his  public  stations,  than  for  ease  or 
grace  in  private  society."  His  moral  character  was  unimpeachable.  His  manners 
were  mild  and  conciliating,  and  all  his  dispositions  amiable.  "  He  was,"  says 
Dr  Erskiue,  "  temperate,  without  austerity ;  condescending  and  affable,  without 
meanness ;  and  in  expense,  neither  sordid  nor  prodigal.  He  could  feel  an  injury, 
yet  bridle  his  passion;  was  grave,  not  sullen;  steady,  not  obstinate;  friendly,  not 
officious ;  prudent  and  cautious,  not  timid." 

He  left  behind  him  three  sons  and  two  daughters.  The  eldest  son  adopted 
the  profession  of  the  law,  and  passed  through  its  highest  honours.  His  two 
younger  sous  entered  the  army.  His  elder  daughter  was  married  to  Mr  Brydone, 
author  of  the  Tour  in  Sicily  and  Malta ;  the  youngest,  to  John  Russell,  Esq., 
clerk  to  the  signet.  His  two  younger  sons  rose  to  high  rank  in  the  army,  and 
the  elder  of  the  two  especially  distinguished  himself  in  India  under  Lord  Corn- 
wallis,' 

In  the  year  1781,  Dr  Robertson  was  elected  one  of  the  foreign  members  of 
the  Academy  of  Sciences  at  Padua,  and,  in  1783,  one  of  the  foreign  members 
of  the  Imperial  Academy  of  Sciences  at  St  Petersburg.  The  empress  Catherine 
was  so  much  delighted  with  his  works,  that  she  presented  him,  through  Dr 
Rogerson,  with  a  handsome  gold  enamelled  snuff-box,  richly  set  with  diamonds. 
He  was  the  founder  of  the  Royal  Society  of  Edinburgh,  and  exerted  himself 
with  his  iisual  zeal,  not  only  in  forming  the  plan  of  that  institution,  but  in  car- 
rying it  on  after  it  was  established. 

ROBISON,  (Dr)  John,  an  eminent  mechanical  philosopher,  and  professor  of 
natural  philosophy  in  the  university  of  Edinburgh,  was  the  son  of  John  Robison, 
a  merchant  in  Glasgow,  and  was  born  there  in  the  year  1739.*  The  first  part 
of  his  education  he  received  at  the  grammar  school  of  Glasgow,  whence  he  en- 
tered as  a  student  of  the  university  of  Glasgow  so  early  as  the  year  1750,  and 
took  the  degree  of  master  of  arts  in  1756.  "What  progress  he  made  in  his 
early  studies  is  not  known,  and  in  after  life  he  used  to  speak  lightly  of  his 
early  proficiency,  and  accuse  himself  of  want  of  application.  In  the  year  fol- 
lowing his  graduation,  he  made  a  proposal  to  be  appointed  assistant  to  Mr  Dick, 
professor  of  natural  philosophy,  in  place  of  the  son  of  that  gentleman,  who  had 
just  died  ;  but  was  considered  too  young  for  the  important  duty.  At  that  time 
hia  friends  had  wished  him  to  study  for  the  church ;  but,  preferring  some  duty 
in  which  his  mechanical  pursuits  might  be  indulged,  he  turned  his  eyes  towards 
London.  Professor  Dick  and  Dr  Simson  sent  along  with  him  recommendations 
to  Dr  Blair,  Prebendary  of  Westminster,  who  might  have  had  influence  to 
procure  for  him  the  situation  of  tutor  in  mathematics  and  navigation  to  the 

•  It  may  farther  be  mentioned,  that  his  niece,  Miss  Eleanor  Syme,  the  daughter  of  or.e 
of  his  sisters,  was  the  mother  of  one  of  the  greatest  men  of  the  passing  age,  Lord  L>rougham, 
who  wrote  the  life  of  his  uncle  above  aUuded  to;  and  that  I\lr  Brydone's  eldest  daughter 
having  married  the  present  Earl  of  Minto,  their  second  daughter  became  the  wife  of  L<  rd 
John  Russell,  the  eminent  constitutional  statesman,  whose  name  stands  honouraLly 
associated  with  all  the  great  political  reforms  of  the  present  day. 

'  3Iem:  u-  by  Professor  Flayfair :  Trans.  Boyal  Society,  Edinburgh,  vii.  493. 


DR.  JOHN  ROBISON.  185 

duke  of  York,  younger  son  of  Frederick,  prince  of  Wales,  whom  there  was  then 
some  intention  of  educating  for  the  navy.  The  plan  was  given  up,  and  Robison 
received  a  severe  disappointment,  but  the  event  served  as  his  introduction  to  an 
excellent  friend,  admiral  Kiiowles,  a  gentleman  whose  son  was  to  have  at- 
tended the  duke  on  his  voyage.  Young  Mr  Knowles'  nautical  education  was 
not  to  be  given  up  with  that  of  the  duke,  and  his  father  perceiving  Robison's 
knowledge  of  mechanical  philosophy,  employed  him  to  take  charge  of  the  in. 
struction  of  his  son  while  at  sea.  Mr  Robison  sailed  from  Spithead  in  1759, 
with  the  fleet,  which  assisted  the  land  forces  in  the  taking  of  Quebec.  His 
pupil  was  a  midshipman  in  the  admiral's  ship,  in  which  he  was  himself  rated  of 
the  same  rank.  Two  years  of  such  active  service  as  followed  this  expedition 
enabled  Robison  to  make  many  observations,  and  collect  a  fund  of  practical 
knowledge,  while  he  was  sometimes  usefully  employed  in  making  surveys.  On 
his  return  on  the  third  of  August,  he  was  a  sufferer  from  the  sea  scurvy,  which 
had  disabled  the  greater  part  of  the  crew.  At  this  time  Mr  Robison  seems  to 
have  had  a  surfeit  of  a  sailor's  life,  one  which,  however  pleasing  for  a  limited 
time,  as  serving  to  exemplify  his  favourite  studies,  possessed  perhaps  few  charms 
as  a  profession,  to  a  man  of  studious  habits.  He  intended  to  resume  the  dis- 
carded study  of  theology ;  but  an  invitation  from  admiral  Knowles  to  live  with 
him  in  the  country,  and  assist  in  his  experiments,  prevailed,  "  What  these  ex- 
periments were,"  says  3Ir  Robison's  biographer,  "  is  not  mentioned ;  but  they 
probably  related  to  ship-building,  a  subject  which  the  admiral  had  studied  with 
great  attention."  He  had  not  been  thus  situated  many  months,  when  his  young 
friend  and  pupil  lieutenant  Knowles,  was  appointed  to  the  command  of  the 
Peregrine  sloop  of  war  of  20  guns,  and  probably  from  a  passion  for  the  sea 
recurring  after  recovery  from  his  disorder,  and  a  residence  in  the  country, 
Robison  accompanied  him.  At  this  period  his  ambition  seems  to  have  been 
limited  to  the  situation  of  purser  to  his  friend's  vessel.  On  his  return  from  a 
voyage,  during  which  he  visited  Lisbon  before  the  traces  of  the  great  earth- 
quake had  been  effaced,  he  again  took  up  his  residence  with  admiral  Knowles. 
By  his  patron  he  was  soon  afterwards  recommended  to  lord  Anson,  then  first 
lord  of  the  admiralty,  who  conceived  him  a  fit  person  to  take  charge  of  the 
chronometer  constructed,  after  many  years  of  patient  labour,  by'^Mr  Harrison, 
on  a  trial  voyage  to  the  West  Indies,  in  which  its  accuracy  was  to  be  tried,  at 
the  suggestion  of  the  Board  of  Longitude.  On  the  return,  which  was  hastened 
by  the  dread  of  a  Spanish  invasion  of  St  Domingo,  Mr  Robison  suffered  all  the 
hardships  of  the  most  adventurous  voyage,  from  the  rudder  being  broken  in  a 
gale  of  wind  to  the  ship's  catching  fire,  and  being  with  difficulty  extinguished^ 
The  result  of  the  observation  was  satisfactory,  the  whole  error  from  first  setting 
sail,  on  a  comparison  with  observations  at  Portsmouth,  being  only  1'  53^",  a 
difference  which  would  produce  very  little  effect  in  calculations  of  longitude  for 
ordinary  practical  purposes.  For  the  reward  of  his  services  Mr  Robison  had 
made  no  stipulation,  trusting  to  the  consideration  of  government ;  but  he  was 
disappointed.  Lord  Anson  was  in  his  last  illness,  admiral  Knowles  was  disgusted 
with  the  admiralty  and  the  ministry,  and  the  personal  applications  unaided  by 
interest  which  he  Avas  obliged  to  make,'  were  met  with  a  cold  silence  which  ir- 
ritated his  mind.  It  appears  that  at  this  period  the  reward  he  sought  was  the 
comparatively  humble  appointment  of  purser  to  a  ship.  In  I7G3,  such  a  situa- 
tion was  offered  to  him  by  lord  Sandwich,  then  first  lord  of  the  admiralty,  in  a 
vessel  of  40  guns,  which  it  is  probable  that  a  dawning  of  brighter  prospects 
prompted  him,  certainly  not  to  the  regret  of  his  admirers,  to  decline.  Not- 
withstanding his  having  been  connected  with  a  branch  of  society  not  generally 
esteemed  propitious  to  clerical  pursuits,  he  is  said  to  have  still  felt  a  lingering 


186  DE.  JOHN  ROBISON. 


regard  for  the  church,  and  to  Iiare  adhered  to  his  friends  in  the  navy,  solely 
from  the  better  chance  of  advancement,  because,  as  his  biographer  with  unques- 
tionable truth  observes,  "  it  lay  more  in  the  way  of  the  Board  of  Longitude  to 
help  one  to  promotion  in  the  nuvy  than  in  the  clmrch."  He  returned  to  Glas- 
gow, and  renewing  an  acquaintance  long  since  commenced  with  Dr  Black, 
entered  with  ardour  on  the  new  views  in  chemistry  connected  with  the  exist- 
ence of  latent  heat,  which  his  eminent  friend  was  beginning  to  divulge  to  the 
world.  He  at  the  same  time  commenced  an  intimacy  with  Blr  IVatt,  and  was 
so  far  acquainted  with  his  proceeding-s,  as  to  be  able  to  certify  the  justice  of  his 
claim  to  those  vast  improvements  in  tlie  steam  engine,  which  a  singular  accident 
had  been  tlie  means  of  suggesting  to  his  genius.  At.  the  recommendation  of 
Dr  Blank,  Robison  was  appointed  his  successor  in  the  chemical  chair  of  Glasgow, 
which,  in  1766,  he  had  relinquished  for  that  of  Edinburgh.  After  continuing 
four  years  in  this  situation,  one  of  a  novel  and  uncommon  character  presented 
Itself  for  his  acceptance.  The  empress  of  Bussia  had  mtide  a  request  to 
the  government  of  Britain,  for  the  service  of  some  able  and  experienced  naval 
officers  to  superintend  the  reformation  of  her  marine.  With  more  liberality 
than  generally  characterizes  the  intercourse  of  nations,  the  request  was  agreed 
to,  and  Mr  Robison's  tried  friend,  admiral  Knowles,  was  appointed  president  of 
thfr  Russian  Board  of  Admiralty.  It  had  been  his  intention  to  recommend 
Robison.  for  the  situation  of  official  secretary  to  the  Board,  but  finding  such  an 
office  incompatible  with  the  constitution  of  the  Russian  Board,  he  contrived  to 
engage  his  sei  vices  to  the  public,  in  the  capacity  of  his  private  secretaiy,  and 
in  the  end  of  December,  1770,  both  proceeded  over  land  to  St  Petersburgh. 
For  a  year  after  his  arrival,  he  assisted  the  admiral  in  forcing  on  the  attention 
of  the  Russians  such  improvements  in  ship-building,  rigging,  and  navigation, 
aa  their  prejudices  would  allow  them  to  be  taught  by  foreigners,  backed  by  the 
influence  of  government.  Meanwhile  he  had  sedulously  studied  the  Russian 
language,  and  in  the  summer  of  1772,  the  reputation  of  his  accomplishments 
induced  the  oHer  of  the  vacant  mathematical  chair  attached  to  the  Sea  cadet 
corps  of  nobles  at  Cronstadt  On  his  acceptance  of  the  appointment,  his  pre- 
decessor's salary  was  doubled,  and  he  was  raised  to  the  rank  of  colonel,  an  ele- 
vation to  which  he  could  not  step  with  pi-oper  Russian  grace,  w ithout  producing 
such  documents  as  bore  the  appeai-anre  of  evidence  to  the  nobility  of  his  birth. 
Besides  his  duties  as  mathematical  professor,  he  acted  in  the  room  of  general 
PoL'tika,  who  had  retired,  as  inspector-general  of  the  corps  ;  a  duty  in  which 
he  had  to  inspect  the  conduct  and  labours  of  about  forty  teachers.  He  did  not 
long  remain  in  this  situation. 

In  1773,  from  the  death  of  Dr  Rusael,  a  vacancy  occurred  in  the  natural 
philosephy  chair  of  Edinburgh,  which  the  patrons,  at  the  instigation  of  principal 
Robertson,  invited  Mr  Robison  to  fill.  On  hearing  of  this  invitation,  prospects 
of  a  still  more  brilliant  nature  were  held  out  to  him  by  the  empress  :  he  hesi- 
tated for  some  time,  but,,  being  apart  from  such  society  as  even  the  more  enlight' 
ened  parU  of  Russia  afforded,  he  finally  preferred  the  less  brilliant,  but  more 
pleasing  o/Ter  from  his  native  country,  and  in  June,  1777,  he  set  sail  from  Cron- 
stadt to  Leith.  The  empress,  on  his  departure,  requested  that  he  would  under- 
take the  care  of  two  or  three  of  tlie  cadets,  who  were  to  be  elected  in  succession, 
and  promised  him  a  pension  of  400  rubles  or  £80  a-year.  The  pension  was  paid 
for  three  years,  and  is  supposed  to  have  been  discontinued  because  Robison  had 
not  communicated  to  the  Russian  government  the  progressive  improvements  in 
British  marine  education.  In  the  winter  of  1774,  he  commenced  his  lectures 
in  Edinburgh.  "  The  sciences  of  mechanics,  "  says  his  biographer,  "  hydro- 
dynamics, astronomy,  and  optics,  together  with  electricity  and  magnetism,  ware 


BE.  JOHN  ROBISON.  137 


the  subjects  ^vhich  liis  lectures  embraced.  These  were  given  with  great  fluency 
and  precision  of  language,  and  with  the  introduction  of  a  good  deal  of  mathe- 
matical demonstration.  His  manner  was  gi-ave  and  dignified.  His  views,  al- 
ways ingenious  and  comprehensive,  were  full  of  information,  and  never  more 
interesting  and  instructive  than  when  they  touched  upon  the  history  of  science. 
His  lectures,  however,  were  often  complained  of  as  difficult  and  hard  to  be  fol- 
lowed ;  and  this  did  not,  in  my  opinion,  arise  from  the  depth  of  the  mathemati- 
cal demonstrations,  as  was  sometimes  said,  but  rather  from  the  rapidity  of  his 
discourse,  wliich  was  geneially  beyond  the  rate  at  which  accurate  reasoning 
can  be  easily  followed.  The  singular  facility  of  his  own  appi'ehension,  made 
him  judge  too  favourably  of  the  same  power  in  others.  To  understand  his 
Jectures  completely,  was,  on  account  of  the  rapidity  and  the  unifonn  flow  of 
his  discourse,  not  a  very  easy  task,  even  for  men  tolerably  familiar  with  the 
subject.  On  this  account,  his  lectures  were  less  popular  than  might  have  been 
«xpected  from  such  a  combination  of  rare  talents  as  the  author  of  them  possess- 
ed." Mr  Kobison  had  exerted  himself  with  zeal  in  the  revival  of  that  associa- 
tion of  philosophers,  Avhich  merged  itself  into  the  Royal  Society  of  Edinburgh  ; 
and  on  its  being  incorporated  by  royal  charter  in  1783,  he  was  appointed  secre- 
tary ;  an  office  in  which  he  signalized  himself,  by  attention  to  the  interests  of 
the  society.  In  March,  1786,  he  read  to  the  society  a  paper,  entitled  "  Deter- 
mination of  the  Orbit  and  Motion  of  the  Georgium  Sidus,  directly  from  Obser- 
vations." In  this  paper,  he  is  generally  understood  by  scientific  men  to  have 
with  some  haste  drawn  conclusions  for  which  ttie  limited  time  during  which 
Herschel's  newly  discovered  planet  had  been  observed  by  philosophers,  did  not 
atTord  data.  His  next  paper  to  the  society,  •"  On  the  Motion  of  Light,  as  af- 
fected by  Hefracting  and  lleflecting  Substances,  which  are  themselves  in  Mo- 
tion," was  of  more  utility  to  science.  In  December,  1765,  he  began  to  be  at. 
tacked  by  a  chronic  disease,  which  gradually  undermined  his  health,  but  did 
not  for  some  time  interrupt  his  ordinary  labours.  Twelve  volumes  of  the  third 
and  much  enlarged  edition  of  the  Encyclopredia  Britannica  had  been  published, 
when  tlie  editor  turned  his  eyes  on  Mr  Robison,  as  a  person  likely  to  give  it  lustre 
from  Jiis  scientific  knowledge.  He  commenced  his  contributions  with  the  article 
"  Optics,"  in  1793,  and  contributed  a  variety  of  useful  treatises,  till  the  com- 
pletion of  the  work  in  1801.  His  biographer  remarks,  that  ^*  he  was  the  first 
contributor  wlio  was  professedly  a  man  of  science  ;  and  from  that  time  the  En- 
cyclopedia Britannica  ceased  to  be  a  mere  compilation."  The  observation  must 
be  received  with  limitations  in  both  its  branches.  To  the  Supplement,  he  con- 
tributed the  ai'ticles  **  Electricity  "  and  *'  Magnetism."  At  the  period  while  he 
was  acquiring  faiiie  by  his  physical  researches,  he  chose  to  stretch  his  studies 
into  a  branch  of  kno^vledge,  which  he  handled  with  scarcely  so  much  effect. 
Along  with  many  people,  among  whom  a  philosopher  is  always  to  be  found 
with  regret,  a  panic  that  the  whole  "  system,"  as  it  was  termed,  of  society,  was 
in  progress  of  demolition  by  the  French  revolution,  seized  on  his  mind.  He 
strayed  from  more  accordant  subjects,  to  look  for  the  causes  of  all  the  confusion, 
and  had  tlie  merit  of  attracting  some  of  the  maddened  attention  of  the  period, 
by  finding  an  untrodden  path,  which  led  him  farther  from  the  highway  than 
any  other  speculator  had  ventui'ed.  In  1797,  he  published  "  Proofs  of  a  Con- 
spiracy against  all  the  Religions  and  Governments  of  Europe."  This  work  is 
now  forgotten  ;  and  it  will  serve  for  little  more  than  amusement  to  know,  tliat  the 
crimes,  so  evidently  prompted  by  forcibly  carrying  the  usages  and  exclusions 
of  a  dark  age,  when  the  people  respected  them,  into  an  age  when  they  were 
not  respected,  were  traced  to  the  machinations  of  the  illuminati  and  free  masons. 
Professor  Robison  had  the  merit  of  quoting  authorities  not  much  read,  and  in  the 


188  DR.  JOHN  ROBISON. 


inlluuied  feelings  of  the  period,  the  secrecy  of  the  sources,  instead  of  proTing  a 
prima  facie  objection  to  the  probability  that  a  tissue  of  open  national  outrages^ 
prompted  by  passion,  and  unguided  by  pre-arranged  motive,  could  be  the  con- 
sequence of  what  was  so  carefully  concealed,  or  rather  overlooked,  served  to  in- . 
flame  the  spirit  of  mystery,  which  other  branches  of  literature  were  then  foster- 
ing ;  and  the  book  was  rapidly  sold  to  the  extent  of  four  editions,  and  was 
greedily  read.  In  an  age  which  has  acquired  the  power  of  influencing  masses 
of  men  by  public  opinions,  secret  tenets  or  intentions  do  not  acquire  numerous 
followers.  That  there  were  some  grounds  in  opinion,  and  even  in  intention 
for  many  of  the  statements  of  3Ir  Hobison,  may  be  granted  ;  but  a  few  German 
enthusiasts,  pleased  with  mysticism,  were  the  only  conspirators,  and  the  appall- 
ing statements  in  the  works  which  he  used  as  authorities,  were  from  men 
still  more  given  to  credulity,  than  the  persons  of  whom  they  spoke  were  to 
mystery. 

In  1799,  professor  Robison  was  employed  in  the  difficult  task  of  preparing 
fur  the  press  the  manuscript  lectures  and  notes  of  Dr  Black,  who  had  just  died. 
**  Dr  Black,"  says  Kobison's  biographer,  "  had  used  to  read  his  lectures  from 
notes,  and  these  often  but  very  imperfect,  and  ranged  in  order  by  marks  and 
signs  only  known  to  himself.  The  task  of  editing  them  was,  therefore,  diffi- 
cult, and  required  a  great  deal  both  of  time  and  labour ;  but  was  at  last  accom- 
plished in  a  manner  to  give  great  satisfaction."  IMeanwhile,  however,  the  dis- 
coveries of  Dr  Black  had  produced  many  alterations  in  chemistry,  and  the 
science  had  assumed  a  new  aspect.  Among  other  things,  tlie  new  nomenclature 
of  Lavoisier,  had  been  almost  universally  received,  and  rendered  any  work 
which  did  not  adopt  it,  antiquated,  and  comparatively  useless.  It  was  supposed 
that  Robison,  with  some  labour,  but  without  any  injustice  to  the  labours  of  his 
friend,  might  have  adopted  it;  but  he  preferred  the  system  in  the  original  :  a 
choice  attributed  by  some  to  respect  for  the  memory  of  his  friend,  and  by 
others  to  prejudice.  He  sent  a  copy  of  his  publication  to  the  emperor  of 
Russia,  and  received  in  return  a  box  set  in  diamonds,  and  a  letter  of  thanks. 

Professor  Robison  had  long  intended  to  digest  his  researches  into  a  work,  to 
be  entitled  "  Elements  of  Mechanical  Philosophy,  being  the  Substance  of  a 
Course  of  Lectures  on  that  science."  The  first  volume  of  this  work,  containing 
Dynamics  and  Astronomy,  he  published  in  1804  ;  but  he  did  not  live  to  com- 
plete it.  In  the  end  of  January,  1805,  he  yielded  to  the  lingering  disorder, 
which  had  long  oppressed  his  body,  before  it  enervated  his  mind.  His  bio- 
grapher gives  the  following  account  of  his  character.  "  He  possessed  many 
accomplishments  rarely  to  be  met  with  in  a  scholar,  or  a  man  of  science.  He 
had  great  skill  and  taste  in  music,  and  was  a  performer  on  several  instruments. 
Ue  was  an  excellent  draughtsman,  and  could  make  his  pencil  a  valuable  instru- 
ment, either  of  record  or  invention.  When  a  young  man,  he  was  gay,  con- 
vivial, and  facetious,  and  his  vers  de  societe  flowed,  I  iiave  been  told,  easily 
and  with  great  effect.  His  appearance  and  manner  were  in  a  high  degree 
favourable  and  imposing :  his  figure  handsome,  and  his  face  expi-essive  of  ta- 
lent, thought,  gentleness,  and  good  temper.  When  1  had  first  the  pleasure  to 
become  acquainted  with  him,  the  youthful  turn  of  his  countenance  and  manners 
was  beginning  to  give  place  to  the  grave  and  serious  cast,  which  he  early  as- 
sumed ;  and  certainly  I  have  never  met  with  any  one  whose  appearance  and 
conversation  were  more  impressive  than  his  were  at  that  period.  Indeed,  his 
powers  of  conversation  were  very  extraordinary,  and,  Avhen  exerted,  never  failed 
of  producing  a  great  efl«ct.  An  extensive  and  accurate  information  of  parti- 
cular facts,  and  a  facility  of  combining  them  into  general  and  original  views, 
were  united  in  a  degree,  of  which  I  am  persuaded  there  have  been  few  exam- 


ROBERT  ROLLOCK.  189 


pies.  Accordingly,  he  would  go  over  the  most  difficult  subjects,  and  bring  out 
the  most  profound  remarks,  with  an  ease  and  readiness  which  was  quite  singu- 
lar. The  depth  of  his  observations  seemed  to  cost  him  nothing  :  and  when  he 
said  any  thing  particularly  striking,  you  never  could  discover  any  appearance 
of  the  self-satisfaction  so  common  on  such  occasions.  He  was  disposed  to  pass 
quite  readily  from  one  subject  to  another  :  the  transition  was  a  matter  of 
course,  and  he  had  perfectly,  and  apparently  without  seeking  after  it,  that 
light  and  easy  turn  of  conversation,  even  on  scientific  and  profound  subjects,  in 
which  we  of  this  island  are  charged  by  our  neighbours  with  being  so  extremely 
deficient.  The  same  facility,  and  the  same  general  tone,  Avere  to  be  seen  in  his 
lectures  and  his  writings.  He  composed  with  singular  facility  and  correctness, 
but  Avas  sometimes,  when  he  had  leisure  to  be  so,  very  fastidious  about  his  owa 
compositions.  In  the  intercourse  of  his  life,  he  was  benevolent,  disinterested, 
and  friendly,  and  of  sincere  and  unaflected  piety.  In  his  interpretation  of  the 
conduct  of  others,  he  was  fair  and  liberal,  while  his  mind  retained  its  natural 
tone,  and  had  not  yielded  to  the  alarms  of  the  French  Revolution,  and  to  the 
bias  which  it  produced." 

Mr  Robison's  various  Avorks,  printed  and  unprinted,  were,  after  his  death, 
put  into  the  hands  of  professor  Playfair ;  but  that  gentleman  finding  that  he 
could  not  devote  his  time  sufficiently  to  them,  they  were  afterwards  published, 
with  notes,  by  Dr  Brewster,  in  four  volumes  octavo,  1822.  This  work  consists 
of  some  manuscript  papei'S  on  Projectiles  and  Corpuscular  Action,  and  the 
papers  which  the  author  prepared  for  the  Encyclopccdia  Britannica,  abridged  of 
some  of  their  digressions. 

ROLLOCK,  Robert,  an  early  and  zealous  promoter  of  Scottish  literature, 
was  born  in  the  year  1535.  He  was  nearly  related  through  his  mother  to  the 
noble  family  of  Livingston.  Discovering  an  early  aptitude  for  letters,  he  was 
sent  by  his  father,  Mr  David  RoUock,  to  the  grammar  school  of  Stirling,  at  that 
time  taught  by  Mr  Thomas  Buchanan,  nephew  to  the  author  of  the  History  of 
Scotland.  Under  the  care  of  this  teacher  he  continued  till  he  was  fit  for  en- 
tering the  university,  when  he  Avas  sent  to  the  college  of  St  Salvador,  St 
AndreAvs.  By  his  docility,  modesty,  and  SAveetness  of  disposition,  young  Rol- 
lock  had  already  engaged  the  affections  of  his  preceptor,  and  laid  the  founda- 
tion of  a  friendship  Avhich  continued  till  his  death.  The  possession  of  these 
virtues  also  procured  him,  in  a  short  time,  the  particular  and  favourable  notice 
of  the  Avhole  university.  Having  gone  through  the  regular  course  of  four  years' 
study,  Avhich  Avas  at  that  time  the  prescribed  period  in  all  the  Scottish  colleges, 
and  taken  out  his  degree,  he  Avas  immediately  elected  professor  of  philosophy, 
being  then  only  in  the  twenty-third  year  of  his  age.  Here  he  continued  for 
four  years,  discharging  the  duties  of  his  office  Avith  singular  diligence,  and  Avith 
a  success  almost  Avithout  example  in  Scottish  colleges.  It  Avas  at  this  time,  and 
long  after  this,  the  practice  in  the  Scottish  universities,  for  the  same  professor  to 
conduct  the  studies  of  the  same  set  of  students  through  the  Avhole  course  ;  and 
the  remarkable  progress  of  his  pupils,  Avith  the  public  applause  he  received  at 
their  laureation,  induced  the  magistrates  of  Edinburgh  to  fix  upon  Mr  Rollock 
as  a  fit  person  to  open  their  univei-sity,  for  Avhich  they  had  obtained  a  charter 
from  king  James  the  previous  year.  This  invitation  Mr  Rollock  Avas  persuaded 
to  accept,  and  in  the  beginning  of  Avinter  1583,  he  entered,  Avith  all  his  accus- 
tomed zeal  upon  his  laborious  office,  being  the  sole  teacher,  and  in  his  own 
person  comprising  the  character  of  principal  and  professors  to  the  infant  estab- 
lishment. The  fame,  however,  of  so  celebrated  a  teacher  as  3Ir  Rollock 
opening  a  class  for  philosophy  in  the  ncAvly  erected  seminary,  operated  as  a 
charm,  and  multitudes  from  all  corners  of  the  kingdom  hastened  to  the  capital  to 


190  ROBERT  ROLLOCK. 


lake  the  benefit  of  his  prelections.  Having  bo  assistant,  Mr  Rollock  joined 
all  his  students  at  first  into  one  class,  which,  from  the  want  of  preparation  on 
the  part  of  the  students,  rendered  his  labours  at  :first  of  little  utility.  All  the 
books  used,  all  the  lectures  delivered,  and  tbe  whole  business  of  the  class  was 
transacted  in  Latin,  -without  some  competent  knowledge  of  which,  the  student 
could  not  possibly  make  any  progress.  From  a  defective  knowledge  in  this  re- 
spect among  the  students,  Mr  Rollock  was  soon  under  the  necessity  of  dividing 
his  class  into  two,  with  one  of  which  he  found  it  the  most  profitable  mode  of 
proceeding  to  begin  them  anew  in  the  rudimental  parts  of  humanity.  At  the 
recommendation  of  Mr  Rollock,  however,  the  patrons  of  the  college  elected  a 
young  man  of  the  name  of  Duncan  Nairn,  a  second  master  of  the  college,  who 
undertook  the  charge  of  this  first  class  in  the  month  of  November,  1583.  Mr 
Nairn,  who  was  the  second  professor  in  the  college  of  Edinburgh,  taught  his 
class  Latin  the  first  year,  Greek  the  second,  there  being  properly  no  humanity 
professor  in  the  university  till  a  number  of  years  after  this.  The  emoluments 
of  office  in  the  new  university  must  have  been  very  moderate,  for  the  students 
paid  no  fees,  and  any  funds  which  had  yet  been  provided  were  altogether 
trifling.  The  town  council,  however,  seem  to  have  been  careful  of  the  comfort 
of  the  new  professors,  as  they  allowed  Mr  Rollock  on  the  17  th  of  Sep- 
tember, 1583,  twenty  pounds  Scots  for  his  expenses  in  coming  from  S^  An- 
drews to  Edinburgh  at  the  commencement  of  his  regency,  and  on  the  25th 
of  the  succeeding  month  of  October,  thirty  pounds  Scots  for  his  services. 
They  also,  in  the  month  of  November,  ordered  Robert  Rollock,  first  regent, 
and  Duncan  Nairn  second,  twenty  pounds  Scots  each  for  boarding  till  Candle- 
mas, and  in  the  succeeding  year  a  committee  was  appointed  to  confer  with  the 
former  "  anent  taking  up  house."  It  no  doubt  required  all  the  patronage  the^ 
city  of  Edinburgh  could  bestow,  and  all  the  exertions  of  Rollock  and  his  as- 
sociate to  carry  on  the  seminary  successfully  with  so  little  means,  and  in  an  age 
of  so  much  ignorance  and  poverty.  Circumstances,  too,  were  greatly  against  it. 
In  the  year  1585,  the  plague  made  its  appearance  in  Edinburgh  on  the  fourth 
day  of  May,  and  raged  till  the  succeeding  month  of  January,  during  which 
time  the  city  was  deserted  by  all  who  had  the  means  of  leaving  it.  The  univer- 
sity  was  thus  wholly  deserted  at  a  time  when  the  students  were  in  the  very 
middle  of  their  course,  a  circumstance  which,  considering  that  it  was  but  the 
third  year  of  the  establishment,  must  have  been  highly  prejudicial  to  its  interests. 
The  professors,  however,  returned  about  the  middle  of  January,  and  the 
students,  by  an  order  of  council,  were  ordered  to  be  in  their  places  upon  the 
3d  of  February.  In  this  same  year  the  national  covenant,  or  confession  of 
faith,  was  introduced  into  the  college,  and  tendered  to  every  student.  Mr  Rol- 
lock was  also  created  principal,  though  he  still  continued  to  teach  his  class. 
His  associate,  Duncan  Nairn,  died  the  succeeding  year,  and  the  council  having 
resolved  to  have  three  classes  taught,  Messrs  Adam  Colt  and  Alexander  Scrim- 
ger  were  elected  in  his  place. 

Mr  Rollock  continued  to  teach  his  private  class  till  the  first  laureation,  which 
was  public,  and  attended  by  all  the  nobility  in  town.~  The  number  graduated," 
and  who  of  course  signed  the  covenant,  was  forty-  eight.  As  soon  as  this  cere- 
mony was  concluded.  Mi-  Rollock  resigned  his  regency,  retaining  the  princi- 
palship,  to  which  was  now  annexed  the  professorship  of  theology,  for  which, 
and  preaching  regularly  on  the  Sabbath,  he  was  allowed  four  hundred  merks 
yearly.  It  was  the  practice  of  Mr  Rollock  to  pray  in  public  with  the  students 
every  morning,  and  on  one  day  of  the  week  to  explain  to  them  some  passage 
of  Scripture,  which  he  never  failed  to  conclude  with  most  pertinent  and  practi- 
cal exhortations.     With  the  more  advanced  students  he  was  particularly  careful 


ROBERT  ROLLOCK.  191 


that  they  might  enter  upon  the  work  of  the  ministry,  not  only  in  some  measure 
prepared  for,  but  with  a  deep  feeling  of  its  important  duties.  With  all  this  dili- 
gence among  his  pupils,  he  was  a  faithful  and  acceptable  minister  of  the  gospeL 
With  literary  ardour,  however,  almost  boundless,  and  the  warmest  piety,  Mr  bol- 
lock's simplicity  of  character  degenei'ated  into,  or  rather  originally  possessed  a  na- 
tural imbecility, .not  at  all  uncommon  in  minds  of  this  description,  which  disquali- 
fied him  from  acting  a  consistent,  or  a  profitable  part  in  the  conduct  of  the  public 
afiairs  of  the  church,  which  at  this  period  were  of  paramount  importance  ;  in- 
volving at  once  the  civil,  and  the  religious  rights  of  the  community.  Tliia 
facile  disposition  was  at  once  seen,  and  appreciated  by  Iting  James,  who,  having 
now  matured  his  plans  for  reducing  the  church  to  an  entire  dependence  upon 
himself,  was  sedulously  employed  ia  carrying  them  into  effect.  For  ad- 
vancing this  purpose  he  had  procured  a  meeting  of  the  clergy  at  Perth  in  the 
month  of  February,  1597,  which  by  threatenings,  flatteries,  and  bribes,  and  by 
preventing  some  individuals  from  giving  their  opinion  in  the  matter,  he 
managed  to  have  set  down  for  a  general  assembly,  whose  conclusions  were  to  be 
considered  as  binding  upon  the  whole  church.  Naturally  endowed,  however, 
with  a  more  than  ordinary  share  of  cunning-,  lie  proceeded  with  the  utmost 
caution.  Disclaiming  all  intention  of  introducing  anything  like  change  in  any 
part  of  either  the  worship,  government,  or  discipline  of  the  church,  and  profess- 
ing the  utmost  reverence  for  religion,  and  respect  for  its  ministers,  he  submit- 
ted to  this  assembly  only  thirteen  articles  to  be  reasoned  upon  ;  all  of  them 
Avorded  in  a  manner  so  gentle,  and  so  ambiguous,  as  to  conceal  from  all  but 
acute  and  narrow  observers  their  real  spirit  and  true  meaning  ;  which  was,  in  the 
first  place,  to  lay  open  the  present  established  order  of  the  church  to  be  called 
in  question,  though  it  was  supposed  to  have  been  set  at  rest  by  the  solemn 
oaths  of  his  majesty,  his  council,  his  household,  and  by  all  who  had  any  concern 
in  the  matter  ;  secondly,  to  circumscribe  the  liberty  of  the  pulpit,  so  that  no 
warning  might,  through  that  medium,  be  given  to  the  people  of  the  designs  of 
the  king  and  his  courtiers,  when  they  should  come  to  be  discovered ;  and 
thirdly,  that  a  commission  of  a  few  of  the  most  prudent  and  orderly  of  the 
ministers  should  be  appointed  to  confer  with  his  majesty  and  council,  upon  all 
these  or  other  questions,  as  opportunity  or  necessity  might  call  for,  subject  to 
the  after  consideration  of  a  general  assembly,  to  be  indicted  only  by  his 
majesty,  which  was  in  the  above  articles  not  unequivocally  claimed  as  one  of 
the  prerogatives  of  his  crown.  With  all  the  diligence  he  exerted,  however,  he 
carried  his  purpose  no  very  great  length  ;  some  of  his  articles  being  answered 
doubtfully,  some  of  them  disallowed,  and  some  of  them  not  answered  at  all. 
Still  greater  diligence  was  therefore  necessary  to  prepare  matters  for  the  assem- 
bly that  was  to  meet  at  Dundee  in  the  month  of  iMay  the  same  year,  where 
there  was  not  only  danger  of  gaining  nothing  further  in  his  advances  towards 
episcopacy,  but  of  all  that  had  been  gained  in  the  last  assembly  being  lost. 
Care  \ma  taken  to  prevent  the  regular  meeting  of  the  assembly  which  should 
have  been  held  at  St  AndreiA-s  in  the  month  of  April.  Only  a  very  few  of  the 
commissioners  ventured  to  appear,  who,  along  with  the  moderator,  made  humble 
confession  of  their  sins,  formed,  or  constituted  the  assembly,  and  took  protes- 
tations for  the  liberty  of  the  kirk,  continuing  all  summonses,  references,  and 
appellations  to  the  assembly  follomng.  In  the  following  month,  the  assembly 
met  at  Dundee,  but  it  was  in  the  new  fashion  ;  the  difference  between  which 
and  those  that  had  been  held  previously  to  that  at  Perth,  of  which  we  have 
spoken  above,  is  thus  stated  by  a  writer  of  that  period  of  the  highest  respecta- 
bility. "  Ist.  Christ  by  his  spiritual  office  having  convocatcd  and  appointed 
times  andf  places  before ;   now  timss  and  places  are  appointed  by  the  king. 


192  •  EGBERT  ROLLOCK. 


claiming  this  as  his  only  due.  2nd.  The  moderator  and  brethren  were 
directed  by  the  word  of  God,  and  his  Spirit ;  now  and  hereafter  they  are  to  be 
directed  by  the  king,  his  laws,  and  state  policy.  3rd.  Blatters  were  before 
proposed  simply,  and  the  brethren  sent  to  seek  light  out  of  the  word  by  reason- 
ing, conference,  meditation,  and  prayer ;  now  means  are  devised  before  in 
the  king's  cabinet,  to  bring  his  purposes  to  pass,  and  heed  is  taken  in  public 
and  private  what  may  hinder  his  course.  He  tliat  goeth  his  way  is  an  honest 
man,  a  good  peaceable  minister  ;  those  that  mean,  or  reason  in  the  contrary, 
are  seditious,  troublesome,  cofied,  factious!  4th.  In  reasoning,  the  word  was 
alleged,  the  reason  weighed,  and  if  of  weight  yielded  unto  willingly  ;  now 
the  word  is  passed  by,  or  posted  over  and  sliifted,  and  if  the  reason  be  insisted 
upon,  the  reasoner  is  borne  down  and  put  to  silence.  5th.  The  fear  of  God, 
the  care  of  the  kirk,  learning,  the  power  of  preaching,  motion,  and  force  of 
prayer,  and  other  gifts  shining  in  those  who  were  present,  procured  before  esti- 
mation, reverence,  and  good  order ;  now  the  person,  presence,  and  regard  to 
tlie  prince's  favour  and  purpose  swayeth  all.  If  any  had  a  gift,  or  measure  of 
learning,  utterance,  zeal,  or  power  in  exhortation  beyond  others,  it  was  era- 
ployed  at  these  assemblies ;  now  plots  are  laid  how  none  shall  have  place,  but 
such  as  serve  for  their  purpose.  6th.  The  assemblies  of  old  aimed  at  the 
standing  of  Christ's  kingdom  in  holiness  and  freedom  ;  now  the  aim  is  how  the 
kirk  and  religion  may  be  framed  conform  to  the  political  state  of  a  monarch, 
and  to  advance  his  supreme  and  absolute  authority  in  all  causes.  In  a  word, 
where  Christ  ruled  before,  the  court  now  beginneth  to  govern.  The  king's  man 
may  stand  at  the  king's  chair,  use  what  countenance,  gesture,  or  language  he 
pleaseth,  but  good  men  must  be  taunted,  checked,"  &c.  Such,  according  to 
Calderwood,  was  the  assembly  held  at  Dundee,  1597.  According  to  the  same 
authority,  "  After  exhortation  made  by  the  last  moderator,  the  assembly  was 
delayed,  and  the  commissioners  wearied  till  the  coming  of  3Ir  Robert  Rollock, 
whom  the  king,  and  such  as  were  to  further  his  course,  intended  to  have 
moderator.  He  was  a  godly  man,  but  simple  in  the  matters  of  the  church 
government,  credulous,  easily  led  by  counsel,  and  tutored  in  a  manner  by  his 
old  master,  Thomas  Buchanan,  who  was  now  gained  to  the  king's  course.  Many 
means  were  used  to  have  him  chosen,  and  the  king  and  his  followers  prepared 
him  for  the  purpose.  Sir  Patrick  Blurray  (brother  to  the  laird  of  Balvaird,  the 
same  who  had  been  his  majesty's  agent  for  corrupting  the  assembly  at  Perth,) 
and  such  ministers  as  were  already  won,  travailled  with  others  of  chief  note, 
and  brought  them  to  be  acquaint  with  the  king,  which  was  their  exercise  morn- 
ing and  evening."  Mr  Bollock  having  been  appointed  moderator,  tlie  assembly 
proceeded  to  pass  several  acts  strongly  tending  to  support  the  whole  superstruc- 
ture of  episcopacy.  This  was  ejected  chiefly  by  a  representation  of  his 
majesty  "  anent  a  solid  order  to  be  taken  anent  a  constant,  and  perpetual  pro- 
vision for  the  sustentation  of  the  whole  ministry  within  this  realme,  to  the  end 
that  they  be  not,  as  in  time  bygone,  forced  to  depend,  and  await  upon  the 
commissioners  appointed  for  modifying  of  their  stipends,  and  so  to  absent  them- 
selves the  most  part  of  the  year  from  their  flocks,  to  the  great  disgrace  of  their 
calling,  dishaunting  of  the  congregation,  discontentment  of  his  majesty,  whose 
care  ever  hath  been,  and  earnest  desire  continueth  as  yet,  that  every  congrega- 
tion have  a  special  pastor,  honestly  sustained  for  the  better  awaiting  upon 
his  cure,  and  discharging  his  dutiful  office  in  the  same.  Therefore,  his 
majesty  desired  the  brethren  to  consider,  whether  it  were  expedient,  that  a 
general  commission  should  be  granted  to  a  certain  number  of  the  most  wise, 
and  discreet  of  the  brethren  to  convene  Avith  his  majesty  for  effectuating  of  the 
premises.     This,  his  majesty's  advice,  the  assembly  judged  to  be  necessary  and 


ROBERT  ROLLOCK.  193 


expedient,  and  therefore  gave,  and  granted  their  full  power  and  commission 
to  the  brethren,"  &c.,  &c.  These  brethren,  fourteen  in  number,  seven  of  whom 
with  his  majesty  were  to  be  a  quorum,  were  unhappily,  with  the  exception  of 
one  or  two  that  were  named  to  save  appearances,  already  captivated  with 
the  hopes,  some  of  them  with  the  express  promise,  of  preferment,  and  the 
assembly  was  scarcely  risen  Avhen  they  began  to  display  all  the  arrogancy  of  a 
bench  of  bishops  or  a  high  commission  court.  In  the  month  of  June  they  con- 
vened at  Falkland,  called  before  them  the  presbytery  of  St  Andrews,  upon  a 
complaint  by  Mr  John  Rutherford,  who  had  been  deposed  from  the  ministry  of 
Kinnocher  by  that  presbytery,  and  reduced  the  sentence.  The  culprit  had 
purchased  the  favour  of  the  court  by  forging  calumnies  upon  Mr  David  Black, 
"  who  was  a  great  eye-sore,"  says  Calderwood,  "  to  negligent,  loose,  and  unfaith- 
ful ministers,  of  which  number  this  Mr  John  Rutherford  was  one,  but  he  lived 
in  disgrace  ever  after,  and  was  condemned  by  the  bishops  themselves,  because 
he  could  serve  them  to  no  further  use."  Proceeding  to  St  Andrews,  they  cast 
out  Mr  Wallace  and  Mr  Black,  who  had  but  lately  been  restored  ;  banishing 
the  latter  to  Angus,  whence  they  brought  Mr  George  Gladstanes,  soon  after 
created  a  bishop,  to  fill  his  place. 

While  they  thus  broke  down  the  hedge  of  the  church,  by  thrusting  out  two  of 
her  most  faithful  ministers,  and  bringing  in  Mr  Gladstanes  without  the  con- 
sent of  either  presbytery  or  people,  they  also  interfered  with  the  laws  of  the 
university  ;  obliging  Andrew  Melville  to  demit  his  rectorship,  and  forbidding 
all  professors  within  the  university,  especially  professors  of  divinity,  to  sit  in 
the  presbytery  upon  any  matter  of  discipline.  Robert  Rollock,  moderator  of 
the  last  assembly,  and  consequently  of  the  meetings  of  the  commissioners  with 
the  king,  betrayed,  according  to  Calderwood,  "  great  weakness,  which  many  that 
loved  him  before  construed  to  be  simplicity."  By  the  aid  of  Mr  Rollock, 
and  his  friends  the  commissioners,  however,  his  majesty  was  enabled  to  restore 
the  popish  earls  of  Huntly,  Angus,  and  Errol,  with  whose  assistance  he  carried 
in  parliament  an  act  for  ministers  of  the  gospel  to  have  a  place  and  a  vote  in 
that  assembly.  This  act  declared,  **  that  such  pastors  and  ministers,  within  the 
same,  as  at  any  time  his  majesty  shall  please  to  provide  to  the  office,  place, 
title,  and  dignity  of  a  bishop,  abbot,  or  other  prelate,  shall  at  any  time  here- 
after have  vote  in  parliament,  siclike  and  as  freely  as  any  other  ecclesiastical 
prelate  had  at  any  time  bygone.  It  also  declared,  that  all  or  whatsoever 
bishoprics  presently  vaiking  in  his  majesty's  hands,  which  are  yet  undisponed 
to  any  person,  or  which  shall  happen  at  any  time  hereafter  to  vaik,  shall  be 
only   disposed  by  his  majesty  to  actual  preachers  and  ministers  in  the  kirk,"  &c. 

Soon  after  this,  Mr  Rollock  was  seized  with  an  illness,  which  confined  him 
to  his  house,  and  finally  terminated  his  existence.  While  on  his  death-bed,  he 
requested  two  friends,  who  called  upon  him,  to  go  from  him,  as  a  dying  man, 
to  the  king,  and  exhort  him  to  cherish  religion  and  the  church,  and  to  protect 
and  comfort  its  pastors,  and  to  proceed  with  these  good  works  with  an  unfalter- 
ing step  till  the  last  hour  of  life ;  and  not  allow  himself  to  be  drawn  from  it, 
either  by  the  hope  of  enlarging  his  authority,  or  by  the  evil  advices  of  wicked 
men.  To  the  same  persons  he  added,  "  You  will  remember  that  I  was  chosen 
by  the  assembly  at  Dundee,  to  watch  for  the  interest  of  this  church.  In  this  1 
had  the  glory  of  God,  and  the  safety  of  the  church,  miserably  tossed  with  tem- 
pests and  shaking,  before  mine  eyes;  and  I  can  now  declare,  that  my  conscience 
does  not  smite  me  with  any  wicked  departure  from  duty,  in  doubling  the  number 
of  the  ministers  of  Edinburgh  ;  and  particulai'ly,  in  my  activity  to  bring  in  two 
(Messrs  Robertson  and  Stewart)  who  studied  under  me,  when  I  thought  I  saw  in 
them  gifts  suitable  to  such  a  trust,  and  hoped  God  would  bless  their  labours.     I 


194  GEORGE  ROSE. 


am  so  far  from  repentinor  any  share  I  had  in  this,  that  to  this  hour  it  is  satisfy- 
ing to  ine.  I  am  persuaded  Uie  wise  Maker  of  the  world  has  tied  the  church 
and  state  together  witli  a  brotherly  and  adamantine  chain  ;  and  it  hath  been  my 
great  cax-e  to  advance  the  good  of  both  :  and  yet  the  love  of  peace  hath  not  so 
lar  bewitched  lue,  that  I  coiUd  not  distinguish  between  genuine  and  adulterous 
peace  ;  neither  bath  ray  allection  to  my  sovereign  carried  me  tliat  length,  that 
to  please  him  I  sliould  submit  to  the  least  stain  on  ray  conscience.  I  hope  the 
integrity  and  candour  of  my  conduct  shall  appear  when  I  am  dead.  In  a  word, 
brethren,  join  together  with  the  most  intimate  love  and  concord  in  the  work  of 
the  Lord.  Let  me  put  you  in  mind  to  pay  every  obedience  to  the  king.  You 
lire  in  happy  times,  and  enjoy  a  singular  felicity.  You  are  blessed  with  a 
prince  who  drank  in  religion  with  his  milk;  who  hath  guarded  your  doctrine 
witli  a  right  discipline,  and  covers  both  the  doctrine  and  discipline  of  religion 
with  his  protection  ;  who  hath  taken  the  church  so  much  into  his  care,  as  by 
open  and  plain  unanswerable  documents,  to  make  it  evident,  that  he  will  never 
desert  her  while  he  breathes.  Therefore,  what  you  may  easily  and  pleasantly 
eijoyi  it  will  be  folly  to  seek  after  by  harsh  methods.  You  will,  then,  take 
particular  care,  that  the  church  be  not  ruined  by  a  fall  from  such  high  happi- 
ness." Mr  RoUock  died  on  the  8th  of  January,  1598,  in  the  forty-third  year 
of  his  age.  His  remains  were  attended  to  the  place  of  interment  by  nearly  the 
whole  population  of  Edinburgh,  who  considered  him  as  their  spiritual  father, 
and  regarded  his  death  as  a  public  calamity.  The  town  council  had  paid  his 
house  rent  for  many  years,  and  they  allowed  his  widow  the  one  half  of  his 
salary  for  five  years,  and  to  his  posthumous  daughter  they  gave,  from  the  city 
funds,  one  thousand  merks,  by  way  of  dowry.  Pie  published  several  works, 
chiefly  conunentaries  on  parts  of  Scripture,  several  of  which  were  printed  at 
Genera,  and  obtained  the  warm  approbation  of  the  learned  and  judicious 
Beza.  These  works  are  still  to  be  met  with,  and,  though  tinged  with  the  scholas- 
tic theology  of  the  times,  discover  great  natural  acuteness,  a  full  acquaintance 
with  his  subject,  and  very  extensive  learning.  His  whole  life  seems,  indeed,  to 
bare  been  devoted  to  literature. 

-  ROSE,  Georok,  an  eminent  modern  political  character,  was  bora  at  Brechin, 
June  11,  1744.  He  was  the  son  of  a  poor  non-jurant  clergyman  of  the  Scot- 
tish episcopal  communion,  who,  through  the  persecution  which  his  order  en- 
dured from  the  government  after  the  insurrection  of  1745,  seems  to  have  lost 
the  means  of  supporting  his  fiimily.  Under  these  uiifortunate  circumstances, 
George  Rose  was  received  by  an  uncle  who  kept  an  academy  neai-  Hanipstead, 
by  whom  he  was,  at  a  vei'y  early  period  of  life,  placed  in  a  surgeon's  shop. 
Not  liking  this  employment,  he  had  the  good  fortune  to  attract  the  attention  of 
the  earl  of  Marchmont,  who,  from  sympathy  for  the  cause  of  his  father's  dis- 
tresses, and  other  considerations,  procured  him  a  situation  on  board  a  ship  of 
war.  Here  the  ofRca  of  purser,  to  which  George  soon  attained,  enabled  him  to 
display  his  qualities  of  activity,  industry,  and  punctuality  in  so  extraordinary  a 
manner,  as  to  attract  the  notice  of  the  earl  of  Sandwich,  then  at  the  head  of 
the  admiralty.  After  occupying  several  subordinate  situations  in  the  public  of- 
fices, he  was  appointed  keeper  of  the  records,  for  which  his  qualifications  were 
entirely  suited.  The  confused  mass  of  papers  wliich  filled  this  office,  were  by 
him  arranged  and  classed  in  such  a  manner,  that  any  one  could  be  found  im- 
mediately when  wanted.  This  achievement  was  attended  with  such  extreme 
convenience  to  the  ministi-y,  that  it  attracted  the  particular  attention  of  lord 
North,  and  established  Mr  Rose  as  the  man  whose  services  were  to  be  resorted 
to  for  aU  such  systematic  and  laboriotis  worlt. 

In  1767,  he  was  appointed  to  complete  the  Journals  of  the  House  of  Lords  in 


GEORGE   ROSS.  195 


thirty-one  folio  volumes ;  a  laborious  and  creditable  duty,  for  which  he 
received  a  very  handsome  sum.  IMr  Rose  from  this  time  found  regular  employ- 
ment in  the  public  offices ;  but  it  was  not  till  the  Pitt  and  Dundns  administra- 
tion, that  he  was  raised  to  any  eminent  station  in  the  public  service.  He  was 
then  appointed  joint-secretary  to  tlie  treasury,  and  introduced  into  that  depart- 
ment his  habits  of  order,  of  regularity,  and  of  careful  attention  to  details. 
Mr  Rose's  qualifications  Avere  not  of  that  order  which  make  a  great  display; 
but  which,  nevertheless,  are  so  necessary,  that  the  want  of  them  soon  becomes 
conspicuous.  In  the  business  of  every  administration,  there  is  a  great  deal  of 
laborious  second-rate  work,  which  cannot  be  conveniently  executed  by  the 
highest  class  of  statesmen.  The  bold  and  comprehensive  plans  which  they  are 
called  iij>on  to  form,  requirg  talents  and  habits  which  are  very  seldom  found 
united  with  the  power  of  minute  calculation  and  patient  inquiry.  A  laborious 
raan,  therefore,  whose  diligence  and  accuracy  can  be  depended  on,  is  an  im- 
portant acquisition  to  every  administration.  Such  a  one,  who  does  not  venture 
into  the  high  and  uncertain  ground  of  political  contention,  may  survive  many 
ministerial  shocks,  and  may  recommend  himself  without  discredit  to  cabinets 
differing  considerably  in  tlieir  political  aspect  Such  an  assistant  was  found  by 
Sir  Pitt  in  tiie  subject  of  the  present  memoir,  who,  with  the  exception  of  two 
short  intervals,  continued,  during  half  a  century,  a  sort  of  ministerial  fixture, 
carrying  on  the  routine  of  public  offices,  with  many  useful  plans  and  objects  of 
a  subordinate  nature.  While  superintending  the  business  of  the  treasury,  his 
vigilance  was  unremitted  in  inspecting  and  keeping  on  the  alert  every  depart- 
ment of  the  widely  ramified  system.  Trade  also  occupied  a  considerable  share 
of  his  attention  ;  and  no  man  was  more  intimately  acquainted  with  its  facts  and 
details  ;  though  he  does  not  seem  to  have  reached  those  sound  and  comprehen- 
Bive  views  which  were  familiar  to  IMr  Pitt.  Amid  a  variety  of  delicate  employ- 
ments, no  charge  was  ever  made  against  his  integrity,  except  one,  which  turned 
out  quite  groundless. 

On  the  accession  of  the  Addington  administration  in  1301,  and  afterwards 
on  the  formation  of  that  of  the  Talents  in  1806,  Mr  Rose  retired  along  with 
Mr  Pitt,  but  resumed  the  public  service  in  both  cases  on  the  restoration  of  the 
Tories.  On  Mr  Pitt's  return  to  power,  he  was  made^^vice-president,  and  soon 
after,  president  of  the  Board  of  Trade,  with  a  salary  of  £4000  a-year;  in 
which  situation,  excepting  during  the  Talents  administration,  he  continued  till 
his  death.  As  a  matter  of  course,  Mr  Rose  was  in  parliament  during  the  greater 
part  of  his  public  career.  His  speeches  in  that  assembly  were  generally  on 
subjects  connected  with  trade,  and  were  confined  chiefly  to  details  of  facts, 
which  he  stated  in  a  manner  that  aimed  at  nothing  like  ornament.  He  de- 
serves particular  praise  for  the  zeal  with  which  he  engaged  in  plans  no  way 
connected  with  ministerial  influence,  and  having  for  their  sole  object  to  im- 
prove the  condition  of  the  indigent  classes  of  society.  He  gave  his  full  support 
to  friendly  societies  and  savings'  banks  ;  and  introduced  laws  to  encourage,  and 
secure  the  property  of  those  establishments.  In  questions  relating  to  the  corn 
laws,  he  usually  took  part  with  the  people  against  the  landed  interest  The 
plans  for  taking  a  census  of  the  population  were  conducted  under  his  auspices. 

Early  in  life,  Mr  Rose  married  a  lady  connected  with  the  island  of  Dominica 
by  whom  he  had  a  large  family.  He  purchased  the  estate  of  Cuftnells,  in  the 
New  Forest,  which  he  spent  a  large  sum  in  ornamenting.  His  regular  and 
temperate  life  was  prolonged  to  a  greater  extent,  than  might  have  been  ex- 
pected from  the  laborious  way  in  which  he  had  spent  it.  He  died  at  Cuftnells, 
•January  13,  1818,  in  the  75th  year  of  his  age.  It  was  the  singular  fortune  of 
Mr  Rose,  that  he  could  declare  in  his  last  moments,  in  reference  to  his  family. 


196  ALEXANDER  ROSS. 


tliat  "  they  had  been  a  ble5»tng  to  him  during  a  long  series  of  years,  and  had 
never  caused  him  one  hour's  pain.^ 

Mr  Hose  was  the  author  of  a  considerable  number  of  fugitive  political 
tvritings,  and  of  a  respectable  historical  treatise,  which  he  published  with  his 
name,  und^  tlie  title  of  "  Observations  on  the  Historical  Work  of  i\Ir  Fox." 
These  "Observations"  were  prompted  partly  by  a  dissent  from  some  of  the 
political  views  in  the  History  of  James  II.,  and  partly  by  a  wish  to  clear  some 
diarges  brought  against  Sir  Patrick  Hume,  the  ancestor  of  his  patron  and 
friend,  the  earl  of  3Iarchmont,  whose  executor  he  was.  The  political  opinions 
in^the  work,  though  opposed  in  some  points  to  those  of  Mr  Fox,  are  considered 
liberal,  considering  the  general  strain  of  the  author's  political  life.  3Ir  Bose 
also  superintended,  under  the  direction  of  the  House  of  Lords,  the  publication  of 
a  superb  engraved  edition  of  Doomsday  Book. 

ROSS,  Alexander,  a  very  voluminous  writer,  but  remembered  less  for  his 
numerous  works,  than  for  a  celebrated  couplet  in  Hudibras : — 

"  There  was  an  ancient  sage  philosopher, 
Who  had  read  Alexander  Ross  over." 

He  was  born  in  Aberdeen  in  the  year  1590  ;  but  his  parentage  has  not  been 
ascertained,  nor  have  the  circumstances  of  his  early  life  been  recorded.  He 
has  been  generally  confounded  with  a  contemporary  of  the  same  name,  of  whom 
some  account  will  be  found  in  the  next  memoir.  At  what  time  he  quitted  Scot- 
land is  unknown  ;  but  it  is  supposed  that  not  long  after  his  arrival  in  England, 
he  was  appointed  master  of  the  grammar  school  of  Southampton,  and  chaplain  to 
Charles  I.  These  appointments  were  probably  procured  through  the  influence 
of  Laud,  archbishop  of  Canterbury,  to  Avhora  he  expresses  his  obligations  in  the 
dedication  of  his  "  Commentum  de  Terrae  Motu  Circulari  Hefutatum."  This 
work  appeared  at  London  in  1634  ;  and  tiiough  professedly  written  against 
Lansbergius  and  Carpentarius,  two  advocates  of  the  Copernican  theory,  con- 
tains, in  fact,  an  epitome  of  all  the  arguments  that  have  been  adduced  against 
that  system.  The  Latinity  is  respectable,  and  the  argument  is  managed  with 
considerable  skill.  During  the  struggles  of  the  great  civil  war,  Iloss  espoused 
the  royal  cause,  and  his  writings  are  filled  with  praises  of  the  king,  and  de- 
nunciations of  the  parliament.  It  has  been  remarked  by  Echard,  however,  that 
he  "  so  managed  his  aflairs,  that,  in  the  midst  of  these  storms,  he  died  very 
rich,  as  appears  from  th«  several  benefactions  he  made."  His  death  took  place 
early  in  1G54.  We  learn  from  the  3IS3.  of  Sir  Robert  Sibbald,  that,  by  his 
mil,  dated  2l8t  February,  1653,  and  probated  19th  April,  1654,  among 
numerous  other  benefactions,  he  left  £200  to  the  town  council  of  Aberdeen,  lor 
the  foundation  of  two  bursaries  ;  £50  to  the  poor  of  Southampton  ;  £50  to  the 
poor  of  the  parish  of  All-Saints  ;  and  ^50  to  the  Bodleian  library.  There  is 
scarcely  a  subject  in  the  wide  range  of  literature,  on  which  Ross  hns  not  left  a 
work.  His  first  publication  appears  to  have  been  poetical :  "  Rerum  Judai- 
carum  Libri  Duo",  London,  1617.  To  these  he  added  a  third  book  in  1619, 
and  a  fourth  in  1632.  The  rarest  of  his  poetical  effusions  bears  no  date,  but 
is  entitled  "  Three  Decads  of  Divine  IMeditations,  whereof  each  one  containeth 
three  parts.  1.  History.  2.  An  Allegory.  3.  A  Prayer.  With  a  Commen- 
dation of  a  Private  Country  Life."  This  work  has  been  priced  so  high  as 
£8  8s.  "  Four  Books  of  Epigrams  in  Latin  Elegiacs,"  also  appeared  without 
a  date;  and  in  1642  he  published,  "  3Iel  Heliconium,  or  Poetical  Honey 
gathered  out  of  the  Weeds  of  Parnassus.  The  first  book  is  divided  into  vii 
chapters,  according  to  the  first  vii  lettei-s  of  the  alphabet,  containing  48  fictions, 
out  of  which  are  extracted  many  hisloricall,  naturall,  morall,  political!,  and 


ALEXANDER  ROSS.  197 


theologicall  observations,  both  delightful  and  useful ;  with  48  Meditations  in 
Verse."  But  his  most  celebrated  work  in  the  department  of  poetry,  is  hia 
**  Virgilii  Evangelisantis  Christiados  Libri  xiii.,"  which  was  published  at  Lon- 
don in  1634,  and  again  in  1638  and  1659.  This  is  a  cento  from  Virgil,  giv- 
ing a  view  of  the  leading  features  of  sacred  liistory,  from  the  murder  of  Abel  to 
the  ascension  of  Christ.  It  excited  considerable  notice  in  its  day,  and  was 
more  lately  brought  before  the  public  attention  by  Lauder,  who  accused  Milton 
of  having  plagiarized  it.  Lauder  says,  that  by  many  Ross's  Christiad  is  esteemed 
equal  with  the  Mneid,     The  opening  lines  may  serve  as  a  specimen : — 

"  Acta,  Deumque  cano,  cceh'  qui  primus  ab  oris 
Virginis  in  Itetse  gremium  descendit  et  orbem 
Terrarum  invisit  profugus,  Chananteaque  vcnit 
Littora,  multum  lUe  et  terra  jactatus  et  alto 
In  superum,  saevi  memorem  Plutonis  ob  iram." 

His  chief  works  in  the  department  of  history,  are,  "  Animadversions  and  Ob- 
servations upon  Sir  Walter  Raleigh's  History  of  the  World,  wherein  his  Mis- 
taltes  are  noted,  and  some  doubtful  Passages  noted,"  London,  1653  ;  and  "  The 
History  of  the  World,  the  Second  Part,  in  six  books,  being  a  Continuation  of 
Sir  Walter  Raleigh's,"  London,  1652.  "  This,"  says  Granger,  (3d  edit.  vol. 
iii.  p.  32,)  is  like  a  piece  of  bad  Gotliic  taclied  to  a  magnificent  pile  of  Roman 
architectui'e,  which  serves  to  heighten  the  effect  of  it,  while  it  exposes  its  own 
deficiency  in  strength  and  beauty."  In  1652,  was  published,  with  a  portrait  of 
the  author,  "  Pansebia,  or  View  of  all  the  Religions  in  the  AVorld,  with  the 
Lives  of  certain  notorious  Hereticks."  Afterwards  reprinted  in  1672,  1675, 
1683,  &c.  Ross  entered  into  controversy  with  Hobbes,  Sir  Tliomas  Browne, 
Hervey,  and  Sir  Kenehn  Digby ;  and  has  left,  among  otliers,  the  following  con- 
troversial writings  :  "  Observations  upon  Hobbes's  Leviathan,"  1653  ;  "  Arcana 
Microcosmi,  or  the  Hid  Secrets  of  Man's  Body  discovered,  in  Anatomical  Duel 
between  Aristotle  and  Galen  ;  with  a  Refutation  of  Thomas  Browne's  Vulgar 
Errors,  from  Bacon's  Natural  History,  and  Hervey's  book  De  Generatione," 
1651  ;  the  "  Philosophical  Touchstone,  or  Observations  on  Sir  Kenelm  Digby's 
Discourse  on  the  Nature  of  Bodies  and  of  the  Reasonable  Soul,  and  Spinosa's 
Opinion  of  the  Mortality  of  the  Soul,  briefly  confuted,"  1645.  This  does  not 
exhaust  the  catalogue  of  Ross's  writings.  Besides  many  ascribed  to  him  on 
doubtful  authority,  there  remain  to  be  mentioned:  "The  New  Planet,  no 
Planet,  or  the  Earth  no  W'andering  Star,  against  Galilseus  and  Copernicus," 
1640;  **  Mystagogus  Poeticus,  or  the  Muses'  Interpreter,"  1647,  Mhich 
went  througli  six  editions  ;***  Enchiridium  Oratoriura  et  Poeticum,"  1650; 
**  Medicus  Medicatus,  or  the  Physician's  Religion  cured,"  1645;  **  Meliso- 
machia  ;"  "  Colloquia  Plautina  ;"  "  Chronology,  in  English  ;"  "  Chymera  Py» 
thagorica,"  no  date;  "  Tonsor  ad  cutem  Rasus,"  1629;  "  Questions  and  An- 
swers on  the  First  Six  Chapters  of  Genesis,"  1620;  "The  Picture  of  tho 
Conscience,"  1646  ;  ''■  God's  House,  or  the  House  of  Prayer,  vindicated  from 
Profaneness,"  1642  ;  "  God's  House  made  a  Den  of  Thieyes,"  1642.  These 
two  last  pieces  are  sermons. 

ROSS,  Alexander,  frequently  confounded  with  the  former,  was  the  son  of 
James  Ross,  minister  at  Strachan,  in  Kincardineshire,  and  afterwards  at  Aber- 
deen. The  date  of  his  birth  has  not  been  ascertained,  but  it  was  probably  be- 
tween 1570  and  1580.  He  Avas  for  some  time  minister  of  the  parish  of  Insch, 
in  1631  he  was  appointed  minister  of  Footdee,  a  catechetical  charge  in  the 
close  vicinity  of  Aberdeen  ;  and  in  1636,  was  chosen  one  of  the  ministers  of  St 
Nicholas'  church  in  that  city.    Ross,  like  his  colleagues,  supported  the  episcopal 


19S  ALEXANDER  ROSS. 


form  of  guvernmeiit,  nnd  subscribed  the  **  Generall  Demands  "  propounded  to 
the  coinniissioners,  npi>ointed  by  the  tables,  to  enforce  tlie  subscription  of  the 
coreiiant  in  Aberdeen.  The  day  before  their  arrival,  he  thundered  from  the 
pulpit  against  their  proceedings,  and  exhorted  his  hearers  to  resist  their  threats. 
He  appears  also  to  lia^e  been  in  correspondence  with  Laud.  In  3Iarch,  1639, 
the  covenanting  forces  approached  Aberdeen,  and  the  chiefs  of  the  episcopal 
party  fled.  Ross  was  unable  to  cjuit  the  town  from  a  sickness,  from  which  he 
seems  never  to  have  recovered  :  lie  died  on  11th  August,  1639.  His  only 
publication  appears  to  be  the  following,  which  is  extant  in  Bishop  Foi'bes's 
Funerals  (p.  149  to  176) :  "A  Consolatorie  Sermon,  preached  upon  the  Death 
of  the  R.  R.  Father  in  God,  Pati-ick  Forbes,  late  Bisliop  of  Aberdene.  By 
Alexander  Rosse,  Doctour  of  Divinitie,  and  Minister  of  the  Evangell  in  Aber- 
dene, in  Saynct  Nicholas  Churche  there,  anno  1635,  the  xv  of  Aprill." 

ROSS,  AxKXANDER,  a  poet  of  some  eminence,  was  born  in  the  parish  of  Kin- 
cardine G'lN'eil,  Aberdeenshire,  on  the  13th  April,  1699.  His  father  was  An- 
drew Ross,  a  farmer,  in  easy  circumstances.  Ross  received  the  first  elements 
of  his  education  at  the  parochial  school,  under  a  teacher  of  considerable  local 
celebrity ;  and  after  four  years'  study  of  the  Latin  language,  succeeded  in 
gaining  a  bursary  at  the  competition  in  Marischal  college,  in  November  1714. 
Having  gone  through  the  usual  curriculum  of  the  university,  he  received  the 
degree  of  master  of  arts  in  1718;  and  shortly  after  was  engaged  as  a  tutor  to 
the  family  of  Sir  William  Forbes  of  Craigievar  and  Fintray ;  a  gentleman  who 
appears  to  have  possessed  considerable  taste  and  learning.  How  long  the  poet 
i-emained  in  this  situation  has  not  been  ascertained ;  but  he  seems  to  have 
earned  the  good  opinion  of  his  patron,  who  recommended  him  to  study  divinity, 
with  the  assurance  that  his  interest  should  not  be  wanting  to  procure  a  comfort- 
able settlement  in  the  church.  Favourable  as  this  offer  was,  from  a  gentleman 
who  had  no  fewer  than  fourteen  patronages  in  his  gift,  Ross  declined  it,  on  a 
ground  which  evinces  extraordinary  modesty, — "  that  he  could  never  entertain 
such  an  opinion  of  his  own  goodness  or  capacity  as  to  think  himself  worthy  of 
the  office  of  a  clergyman."  On  leaving  the  family  of  Sir  William  Forbes, 
Ross  for  some  time  taught,  apparently  as  an  assistant,  the  parochial  school  of 
Aboyne  in  his  native  county,  and  afterwards  that  of  Laurencekirk,  in  Kincar- 
dineshire. While  in  this  last  situation  he  became  acquainted  with  the  father  of 
Dr  Beattie ;  a  man  who,  in  our  poet's  opinion,  "  only  wanted  education  to  have 
made  him,  perhaps,  as  much  distinguished  in  the  literary  world  as  his  son.  He 
knew  something  of  natural  philosophy,  and  particularly  of  astronomy,  and  used 
to  amuse  himself  in  calculating  eclipses.  He  was  likewise  a  poetical  genius, 
and  showed  our  author  some  rhymes  of  considerable  merit.*  ^  In  1726,  Ross 
married  Jane  Cattanach,  the  daughter  of  a  farmer  in  Aberdeenshire,  and  de- 
scended by  the  mother  from  the  ancient  family  of  Duguid  of  Auchinhove.  In 
1732,  by  the  influence  of  his  friend,  Mr  Garden  of  Tr-oup,  he  was  appointed 
schoolmaster  of  Lochlee,  in  Angus  ;  nnd  the  rest  of  his  life  was  spent  in  the 
discharge  of  the  duties  of  this  humble  office.  There  are,  perliaps,  few  pieces 
of  scenery  in  Scotland  of  a  more  wild  and  poetical  character  than  that  iu 
^vhich  Ross's  lot  was  cast.  Lochlee  is  a  thinly  peopled  parish,  lying  in  the 
very  centre  of  the  Grampians,  at  the  head  of  the  valley  of  the  North  Esk. 
The  population  is  almost  entirely  confined  to  one  solitary  glen,  the  green 
fields  and  smoking  cottages  of  which  are  singularly  refreshing  to  the  eye 
of  the  traveller,  after  the  weary  extent  of  bleak  moor  and  mountain  which 
hem  in  the  spot  on  nil  sides.     On  a  mound  in  the  centre,  stands  the  ruin  of  an 

*  Ufa  of  Ro98^  by  his  grandson,  the  Rev.  Alexander  Thomson  of  Lentrathcn.— prefixed 
loan  edition  of  the  "  Fortunate  Shepherded,"  printed  at  Dundtc,  18  J  2. 


ALEXANDER  ROSS.  199 


Ancient  fortalice,  built  by  the  powerful  family  of  the  Lindsays  of  Edzel,  as  a 
pJace  of  retreat,  where  they  could  defy  those  dangers  which  they  could  not  cope 
with  in  their  Lowland  domains,  in  the  How  of  the  Mearns.  The  loch,  which 
gives  its  name  to  the  parish,  is  a  very  beautiful  sheet  of  water,  imbedded  deep 
among  steep  and  craggy  mountains.  The  Lee,  the  stream  which  feeds  it,  flows 
through  a  very  wild  glen,  and  over  a  rocky  channel,  in  several  picturesque 
waterfalls.  On  one  of  the  tall  precipices  that  form  its  sides,  an  eagle  has 
built  its  nest,  secure  from  molestation,  in  the  inaccessible  nature  of  the 
cliff.  The  remains  of  Ross's  house  still  exist,  situated  near  the  eastern  ex- 
tremity of  the  loch,  and  only  a  few  feet  from  the  water's  edge.  Near  al 
hand,  surrounded  by  a  few  aged  trees,  is  the  little  burying  ground  of  the 
{tarish,  the  tombstones  of  which  bear  some  epitaphs  from  Ross's  pen,  ard 
there  his  own  ashes  are  deposited."  The  poet's  house  is  now  occupied  as 
a  sheepfold ;  and  the  garden,  on  which  it  is  said  he  bestowed  much  of  his 
time,  can  still  be  traced  by  the  rank  luxuriance  of  the  weeds  and  grass,  and  the 
fragments  of  a  rude  wall.  It  is  impossible  to  look  on  tho  ruins  of  this  humble 
hut,  without  interest:  its  dimensions  are  thirty  feet  in  length,  and  twelve  in 
breadth  ;  and  this  narrow  space  ^vas  all  that  was  allotted  to  the  schooUroom  and 
the  residence  of  its  master.  The  walls  seem  to  have  contained  but  two  apartments, 
eacli  about  twelve  square  feet  in  size,  and  the  eastern  was  that  occupied  by  Ross, 
from  whom  one  of  the  windows,  now  built  up,  is  still  named  the  Poet's  win- 
dow. He  had  trained  to  cluster  around  it  honeysuckle  and  sweet-briar ;  and 
bex'e,  looking  forth  on  the  waters  of  the  loch,  is  said  to  have  been  his  favourite 
seat  when  engaged  in  composition.  So  deep  and  confined  is  the  glen  at  this 
spot,  that,  for  thirty  days  of  the  winter,  the  sun  never  shines  on  the  poet's 
dwelling.  The  emoluments  of  Ross's  office  were  small,  but  perhaps  more  lu- 
crative than  the  majority  of  parochial  schools  in  the  same  quarter,  from  his  be- 
ing entitled  to  a  sort  of  glebe,  and  some  other  small  perquisites.  One  of  his 
biographers  has  quoted  some  lines  of  the  introduction  to  Helenore,  as  a  proof  of 
Ross's  poverty  and  want : — 

"  Pity  anes  mair,  for  I'm  out-throw  as  dung— 
'Twas  tkit  glim  gossip,  chandler-chafted  vmat, 
"Wr  thread-bare  claething,  and  aii  ambry  scant,"  8x. 

It  Is  consoling  to  be  satisfied  that  these  lines  are  not  to  be  understood  in  a 
literal  sense.  We  are  assured  by  his  grandson,  that  "  no  person  in  liis  staffon, 
or  perhaps  in  any  station,  enjoyed  a  greater  share  of  personal  and  domestic 
happin^s.  His  living  was,  indeed,  but  small,  not  exceeding  twenty  potmds  a- 
year,  exclusive  of  the  profits  of  his  glebe  ;  but  he  had  no  desire  beyond  what 
was  necessary  to  support  himself  and  family,  in  a  Avay  suitable  to  his  station  ; 
and,  considering  the  strict  economy  observed  in  his  house,  and  the  simple, 
though  neat  mode  of  living,  to  which  he  was  accustomed,  the  emolunjents  of  his 
office,  as  well  as  the  profits  arising  from  his  publications,  rendered  him  in  some 
degree  comfortable  and  independent"  It  was  not  until  he  had  resided  here 
for  thirty-six  years,  that,  in  the  year  1763,  Avhen  he  was  nearly  seventy,  Ross 
appeared  before  the  public  as  an  author.  So  early  as  his  sixteenth  year,  he 
had  commenced  writing-  verse  ;  a  translation  from  the  Latin  of  Buchanan, 
composed  at  that  age,  having  been  published  by  his  grandson  in  the  memoir  we 
have  just  quoted.  From  that  time,  he  seems  to  have  cultivated  his  poetical 
talents    with    ceaseless  assiduity:    Dr  Beattie,  who  appears    to  have  advised 

2  The  only  fact  which  a  search  of  the  kirk  session  register  of  Lochlee  furnished  with  regaid 
to  Ross,  is  one  of  no  very  poetical  nature,  viz. ,  that  for  some  years  he  rented  the  grass  of 
this  (juiet  cemetery,  at  the  jeariy  rent  of  £i  sterling. 


200  ALEXANDER  ROSS. 


him  iu  the  selection  of  his  works  for  publication,  writes,  in  a  letter  te  Dx 
Blacklock,  "  He  put  into  my  hands  a  great  number  of  manuscripts  in  verse, 
chiefly  on  religious  subjects  :  I  believe  Sir  Richard  Blackmore  is  not  a  more 
voluminous  autlior.  He  told  me  that  he  iiad  never  written  a  single  line  with  a 
view  to  publication :  but  only  to  amuse  a  solitary  hour."^  The  poems  which 
by  Dr  Beattie's  advice  were  chosen  for  publication  consisted  of  "  Helenore,  or 
tlie  Fortunate  Shepherdess,"  and  some  songs,  among  which  were,  '*  The  Rock  and 
the  Wee  Pickle  Tow,"  "  To  the  Begging  we  will  go,"  and  "  Woo'd  and  mar- 
tied  and  a'."  They  appeared  at  Aberdeen  in  1768,*  in  one  volume  8vo,  and 
a  considerable  number  of  subscribers  having  been  procured,  the  profits  of  the 
publication  amounted  to  about  twenty  pounds  ;  "  a  sum,"  says  Beattie,  "  far 
exceeding  Ills  most  sanguine  expectations,  for  I  believe  he  would  thankfully 
have  sold  his  whole  works  for  five."  To  promote  the  sale,  Beattie  (whose  in- 
terest in  Ross  was  excited  by  the  latter*s  acquaintance  with  tiie  doctor's  father) 
addressed  a  letter  to  the  editor  of  the  Aberdeen  Journal,  together  with  some 
verses  inscribed  to  Ross,  which  are  remarkable  from  being  their  author's  only 
composition  in  the  Scottish  dialect ;  they  have  been  prefixed  to  all  the  subse- 
quent editions  of  Helenore,  and  possess  much  merit.  The  success  of  the  volume 
does  not  seem  to  have  been  very  rapid,  for  ten  years  elapsed  before  the  publi- 
cation of  the  second  edition.  While  this  was  going  through  the  press,  Dr  Beattie 
wrote  to  Ross  from  Gordon  castle,  with  an  invitation  from  the  noble  owners  to 
pay  them  a  visit.  Though  now  eighty  years  of  age,  the  poet  at  once  accepted 
the  invitation,  and  took  that  opportunity  of  presenting  a  copy  of  the  second  edition 
of  his  work,  dedicated  to  the  duchess  of  Gordon.  He  remained  at  the  castle  for 
some  days,  says  his  grandson,  and  "  was  honoured  with  much  attention 
and  kindness  both  by  the  duke  and  duchees,  and  was  presented  by  the 
latter  with  an  elegant  pocket-book,  containing  a  handsome  present,  when  he 
returned  to  Lochlee  in  good  health,  and  with  great  satisfaction."  The  next 
year  he  experienced  the  loss  of  his  wife,  who  died  at  the  advanced  age 
of  eighty-two,  and  to  whose  memory  he  erected  a  tombstone  with  a  poeti- 
cal epitaph.  He  himself  did  not  long  survive  :  on  the  20th  of  3Iay ,  1 7  84,  "  worn 
out  with  age  and  infirmity,  being  in  his  eighty-sixth  year,  he  breathed  his  last, 
viith  the  composure,  resignation,  and  hope  becoming  a  Christian."  Of  Ross'h 
uumerous  family,  two  sons  and  a  daughter  died  in  early  youth,  and  four  daughters 
survived  him.  Such  are  the  few  facts  that  constitute  the  biogi-aphy  of  Alexander 
Rose.  His  character  appears  to  have  been  marked  by  much  cheerfulness  and 
simplicity ;  lowly  as  was  his  lot,  he  found  tranquillity  and  content  in  it,  and 
the  picture  of  his  household  piety  which  has  come  down  to  us,  is  singularly  nf« 
fecting.  Regrets  have  been  expressed  that  a  man  of  his  merits  should  hare 
been  allowed  to  toil  on  in  the  humble  situation  of  a  parish  schoolmaster  ;  but  it 
should  be  remembered  that  he  was  nearly  seventy  years  old  before  he  gave  the 
public  proof  of  his  talents,  and  it  may  be  very  doubtful  if  at  that  advanced  age 
he  would  have  found  in  a  higher  sphere  the  same  peace  and  happiness  which 
he  had  so  long  enjoyed  in  his  Highland  glen.  It  is  also  gratifying  to  think 
that  the  profits  of :  his  publications,  trifling  as  they  would  now  be  viewed,  were 
still  sufficient  to  afibrd  him  many  additional  luxuries ;  and  that  the  fame  \>hich 
his  poems  received  from  the  world  reached  his  retired  home,  and  secured  to  him 
honour  from  his  neighbours,  and  marks  of  attention  from  the  few  strangers  of 

'  Forb€S'  Life  of  Beattie,  i.  119.  We  may  add  Dr  Beattie's  description  of  Ross  at  this 
date :  •«  He  is  a  good  humoured,  social,  happy  old  man:  modest  without  cloAvrishiieas,  and 
lively  without  petulance." 

*  "  The  Fortunate  Shepherdess,  a  pastoral  tale  in  the  Scottish  dialect,  by  Alexander  Ross, 
Schoolmaster  at  Loci\lee,  to  which  are  added  a  few  songs  by  the  author.  Aberdeen,  printed 
by  and  for  P'raiicis  Douglas — 1768.".— pp.  160. 


ALEXANDER  R0S3.  201 


rank  that  found  their  way  to  Lochlee.  Neither  should  it  be  forgotten  that 
his  songs  became,  even  in  his  own  day,  as  they  still  continue,  the  favourite 
ditties  of  his  neighbourhood,  and  that  the  poet's  ears  were  gratified  by  hearing 
his  own  verses  chanted  on  the  hill-sides  in  summer,  and  by  the  cottage  inglo 
in  winter.  This  is  the  incense  to  his  genius  prized  by  the  poet  beyond  other 
earthly  rewards,  and  which  cheers  him  even  when  stricken  by  the  poverty  which 
is  "the  badge  of  all  his  tribe."  Ross  left  eight  volumes  of  unpublished  works, 
of  which  an  account  has  been  preserved  in  Campbell's  Introduction  to  the 
History  of  Poetry  in  Scotland,  (p.  272  to  284.)  The  chief  of  these  is  a  tnlo 
in  the  same  measure  with  the  Fortunate  Shepherdess,  entitled,  "  The  Fortunr.lo 
Shepherd,  or  the  Orphan."  The  specimens  which  are  given  are  too  unsatis- 
factory to  permit  us  to  judge  if  we  ought  to  regret  its  suppression,  which  we 
are  informed  was  owing  to  the  advice  of  Dr  Beattie.  "  A  Dream,  in  imitation 
of  the  Cherry  and  Slae,"  and  composed  in  1753,  seems  to  possess  some  stanzas 
of  considerable  merit.  "  Religious  Dialogues,"  written  in  1754,  are  charac- 
terized by  Beattie  as  unfit  for  publication;  and  Blr  Campbell,  certainly  a 
favourable  critic,  can  find  no  word  of  commendation  for  the  six  pieces  which 
bear  the  following  titles  :  "  A  Paraphrase  on  the  Song  of  Solomon  ;"  "  A  View 
of  king  David's  Afflictions  ;"  "  The  Shunamite,  from  2  Kings  iv. ;"  "  Moses 
exposed  in  the  Ark  of  Bulrushes  ;"  "  An  incitement  to  Temperance,  from 
a  thought  of  the  nice  construction  of  the  Human  Body  ;"  and  "  Moses' 
story  continued."  This  long  catalogue  seems  to  have  been  the  origin  of 
Beattie's  comparison  of  Boss  with  Sir  Richard  Blackmore.  In  addition  to  these 
there  are  in  the  same  strain,  "  The  Book  of  Job  I'endered  into  English  verse," 
1751,  and  "  A  Description  of  the  Flood  of  Noah."  A  translation  of  Andrew 
Ramsay's  beautiful  poem  on  the  creation  seems  to  possess  more  merit ;  and 
from  the  specimens  given  is  at  least  fully  equal  to  that  of  the  notorious  Lauder, 
whose  attack  on  Milton  had  the  effect  of  attracting  attention  to  Ramsay's  works. 
The  list  of  Ross's  unpublished  Avorks  is  closed  by  a  dramatic  piece,  called 
"  The  Shaver,''  founded  on  an  incident  which  occurred  in  Montrose,  and 
by  a  prose  composition,  "  A  Dialogue  of  the  Right  of  Government  among 
the  Scots,  the  persons  George  Buchanan  and  Thomas  Maitland."  "There  are 
ninety  sections  in  this  tract,"  says  Campbell,  "  and  from  the  slight  look 
I  have  taken  through  it  I  am  of  opinion  it  might  be  rendered  a  very  valuable 
performance."  The  specimen  given  does  not  indicate  the  direction  of  Ross's 
political  sentiments,  nor  does  Campbell  supply  that  information  ;  his  grandson 
tells  us  that  "  he  was  best  pleased  with  such  religious  discourses  as  were  strictly 
Calvinistic." 

From  the  information  thus  preserved  regarding  Ross's  unpublished  writings, 
there  seems  little  reason  to  regret  their  loss.  His  reputation  must  be  founded 
on  his  Fortunate  Shepherdess,  and  the  songs  which  were  published  along  with 
it.  With  all  its  faults,  this  poem  is  possessed  of  a  high  degree  of  merit; 
and,  in  addition  to  its  local  fame,  will  continue  to  be  esteemed  by  the  student 
of  Scottish  poetry.  Burns  has  written  of  him,  "  Our  true  brother,  Ross  of  Loch- 
lee, was  a  wild  warlock  ;"  and  "  the  celebrated  Dr  Blacklock,"  says  Dr  Irving, 
"  as  I  have  learnt  from  one  of  his  pupils,  regarded  it  as  equal  to  the  pastoral 
of  Ramsay."  This  last  opinion,  it  is  to  be  feared,  will  be  shared  by  few;  nor 
is  it  any  strong  evidence  of  its  soundness,  to  say  that  it  was  adopted  by  John 
Pinkerton,  who  writes: — "  Some  of  the  descriptions  are  exquisitely  natural  and 
fine  ;  the  language  and  thoughts  are  more  truly  pastoral,  than  any  I  have  yet 
found  in  any  poet,  save  Theocritus."  Ross,  indeed,  is  far  inferior  to  Ramsay 
in  delicacy  of  feeling,  in  taste,  and  in  the  management  of  his  story.  In  read- 
ing the  Fortunate  Shepherdess    Ave  constantly  meet  with  expressions  and  allu- 


i^02  ALEXANDER  ROSS. 


sions  of  the  most  unworthy  nature.  Dr  Irving  has  quoted  two  lines  of  this 
description, — 

*-  Aud  now  the  priest  to  join  the  pair  is  come, 
But  first  is  welcom'd  toith  a  glass  o'  rum." 

And  it  were  easy  to  fill  a  page  with  similar  instances  : — 

"  Xow,  Mary  was  as  modest  as  ajieuk. 
And  at  their  jeering  wist  na  how  to  loolu" 

Nor  can  the  reader  easily  overlook  Ross's  absurd  nomenclature.  Thus  the 
hero  is  honoured  with  the  female  name  of  Rosalind,  and  Scottish  glens  are 
clothed  with  the  classic  appellations  of  Flaviana  and  Soivitia  ;  which  last  name, 
intended  by  the  author  to  be  expressive  of  fierceness,  was,  by  a  typographical 
error  in  the  first  edition,  converted  into  Scevilia.  But  the  most  forcible  objec- 
tion undoubtedly  lies  in  the  plot,  than  which  it  were  difficult  to  conceive  any 
thing  more  unpoetical.  The  early  part  of  the  poem  is  devoted  to  the  descrip- 
tion of  the  love  of  the  hero  and  heroine,  which  is  beautifully  painted  in  its 
various  stages,  growing  up  from  their  infancy  to  their  youth,  and  strengthened 
by  all  the  love-inspiring  incidents  and  situations  of  a  pastoral  life.  And  at  the 
very  moment  when  the  poet  has  succeeded  in  completing  this  beautiful  picture 
of  simple  affection  and  guileless  innocence,  he  sets  himself  to  undo  the  charm, 
weds  the  heroine  to  a  richer  lover,  and  sacrifices  the  hero  to  a  marriage,  which 
his  heart  cannot  approve,  and  of  which  the  chief  object  is  the  recovery  of  certain 
sheep  and  horned  cattle.  Ross  seems  to  have  been  aAvare  of  tiie  objections 
which  are  chargeable  against  this  denouement,  and  endeavours  to  obviate  them 
in  the  preface  prefixed  to  the  first  edition,  by  pleading  that  it  is  productive  of 
a  salutary  moral  : — **  This  important  lesson  is  inculcated,  that  when  two  young 
jieople  have  come  under  engagements  to  one  another,  no  consideration  what- 
ever should  induce  them  to  break  faith,  or  to  promise  things  incompatible  with 
keeping  it  entire."  It  is  certainly  difiicult  to  see  the  force  of  this  apology ; 
and  Ross's  error  on  this  head  is  the  more  note-worthy  from  his  taking  objection 
in  his  invocation  to  the  plot  of  his  model,  the  Gentle  Shepherd : — 

"Allan  bears 


The  gree  hlmsell,  an'  the  green  laurels  wears; 
We'el  mat  he  brook  them,ybr  tho'  ye  had  spair'd 
The  tadi  to  me,  Pate  might  na  been  a  laird." 

It  is  singular  how  Ross  could  have  overlooked  the  circumsiance,  that  Ramsay, 
iu  elevating  bis  hero,  sacrifices  no  long-cherished  feeling,  or  former  afiection  ,* 
while  not  only  is  the  Fortunate  Shepherdess  raised  to  a  similar  rank,  but  this 
upon  the  very  ruins  of  an  affection,  which  had  twined  itself  round  her  heart- 
Bti'ings  from  her  earliest  years.  We  have,  perhaps,  dwelt  too  long  upon  the 
ungracious  task  of  fault-finding.  Ross's  chief  talent  lies,  as  was  remarked  by 
Beattie,  in  his  descriptions  of  scenery,  and  of  the  habits  of  a  rude  and  pastoral 
life.  Mnay  of  these  will  cope  with  the  best  passages  in  the  Gentle  Shepherd, 
or  in  any  of  our  Scottish  poets.  We  may  refer  to  the  description  of  a  valley  at 
noon  (at  page  28  of  the  second  edition) ;  to  the  picture  of  Flaviana,  which  has 
been  quoted  by  Sir  Walter  Scott  in  the  Heart  of  Mid  Lothian  ;  and  to  the 
numerous  descriptions  of  morning,  evening,  and  night,  scattered  through  the 
poem.  It  must  not  be  concealed,  however,  that  few  of  the  delineations  possesd 
that  consistency  in  their  parts,  completeness,  and  nice  finish,  which  are  to  be 
found  in  the  Gentle  Shepherd,     Ross's  songs,  thougli  certainly  of  a  very  high 


JOHN  EOW.  203 


order  of  merit,  have  unfortunately  been  omitted  in  the  more  popular  editions  of 
his  works.  This  is  to  be  regretted,  as  they  are  disfigured  by  none  of  the  faults 
of  his  larger  work,  and,  notwithstanding  their  length,  would  be  valuable 
additions  to  the  Scottish  song  book.  It  has  been  already  mentioned,  that 
two  editions  of  his  work  appeared  in  the  author's  lifetime ;  a  third  was 
printed  at  Aberdeen  in  1787;  a  fourtli  at  Edinburgh  in  1804,  in  the  same 
volume  with  Macneill's  AVill  and  Jean,  and  some  other  poems:  and  a  fifth  ap- 
peared at  Dundee  in  1812.  This  last  has  a  life  prefixed  by  his  grandson ;  and 
it  is  to  be  regretted  that  the  liberties  taken  with  the  text,  the  omission  of  the 
preface,  songs,  and  glossary,  should  have  rendered  it  so  defective.*  Besides 
these,  tliere  have  appeared  numerous  editions,  on  coarse  paper,  and  at  a 
low  price,  to  be  hawked  through  the  north  of  Scotland,  where  they  ever  find  a 
ready  sale.  Of  the  number  of  these  reprints,  it  is  not  easy  to  obtain  an  ac- 
count; we  believe  the  last  is  that  published  at  Aberdeen  in  1826.  In  Aberdeen- 
shire and  in  Angus,  the  Mearns  and  Moray,  there  is  no  work  more  popular 
than  "  The  Fortunate  Shepherdess."  It  disputes  popularity  with  Burns  and 
the  Pilgi-im's  Progress ;  is  read,  in  his  idle  hours,  by  the  shepherd  in  the  glens, 
and  wiles  away  the  weariness  of  tlie  long  winter  night,  at  the  crofter's  fireside. 
On  its  first  appearance,  Beattie  predicted — 

"  And  ilka  Mearns  and  Angus  baim, 
Thy  tales  and  sangs  by  heart  shall  learn." 

The  prediction  has  been  amply  verified,  and  a  hope  which  Ross  expressed  in 
one  of  his  unpublished  poems,  has  been  realized  : — 

**  Hence  lang,  perhaps,  lang  hence  may  quoted  be, 
My  hamely  proverbs  lined  wi'  blythesome  glee  ; 
Some  reader  then  may  saj-,  '  Fair  fa'  ye,  Ross,' 
When,  aiblins,  I'll  be  lang,  lang  dead  and  gane. 
An'  few  remember  there  was  sick  a  ane.'* 

EOW,  John,  a  celebrated  divine,  was  descended  of  a  family  of  some  note  for 
the  part  they  had  borne  in  the  ecclesiastical  history  of  their  country.  His 
grandfather,  John  Row,  had  gone  abroad  in  early  youth,  and  the  fame  of  his 
talents  and  learning  having  reached  the  Vatican,  he  was  in  1559,  selected  by 
the  Pope  as  an  emissary  to  watch  over  the  dawning  reformation  in  Scotland. 
But,  in  a  short  time  after  his  return  to  his  native  country,  he  embraced  tha 
principles  of  tho  reformed  religion,  and  advocated  them  with  much  zeal  and 
ability.  He  was  in  1550,  appointed  minister  of  Perth,  and  from  that  time  en- 
joyed considerable  influence  in  the  councils  of  the  reformed  clergy,  sharing 
the  friendship  of  Knox,  and  other  distinguished  men  of  that  age.  His  eldest 
son  was  for  fifty-two  years  minister  of  Carnock  in  Fife,  and  died  at  the  advanced 
age  of  seventy-eight.  He  was  partly  author  of  "  The  Historie  of  the  Kirk  of 
Scotland  from  the  year  1553,  to  August  in  Anno  1637,  written  by  Mr  John 
Row,  late  minister  at  Carnock,  in  the  province  of  Fife  and  presbyterie  of  Dun- 
fermline." This  is  preserved  in  IMS.  in  the  Advocates'  library,  and  has  been 
pronounced  by  one  well  fitted  to  judge,  "  a  very  valuable  but  rather  prolix 
work."  The  date  of  the  birth  of  John  Row,  his  second  son,  the  subject  of  the 
present  memoir   has  not  been  preserved,  but  it  may  be  referred  to  the  latter 

*  The  liberties  t;iken  with  the  text,  which  we  complain  of,  consist  in  attempts  to  translate 
the  more  obsolete  words  into  English,  and  infrequent  omissions  of  couplets,  without  any  dis- 
cernible cause.  '  We  have  'shepherd,'  for  'herding;'  'honest,  '  for  'sackless;'  'Jiv'd,'  for 
•  wonu'd  -,'  «a  burning  coal,'  for  *  a  clear  brunt  coal,'  &c. 


204  JOHN  now. 


years  of  the  sixteenth,  or  more  probably  to  the  beginning  of  the  seventeenth  cen- 
tury.' At  a  very  early  period  of  life  he  was  appointed  rector  of  llie  grammar 
school  at  Perth,  and  for  many  years  discharged  that  office  with  much  reputa- 
tion. He  was  tlie  first  Hebrew  scholar  of  that  day,  an  accomplishment  which 
seems  to  have  been  hereditary  in  the  family  ;  his  father,  it  is  reported,  having 
*'  discovered  some  genius  for  Hebrew  when  he  was  only  a  child  of  four  or  five 
years  old,''  and  his  grandfather  having  been,  it  is  said,  the  first  who  publicly 
taught  Hebrew  in  Scotland.  While  rector  of  the  Perth  school.  Row  composed 
his  "  Hebreae  Linguos  Institutiones  Compendiosissim^  et  facilliuiae  in  Discipu- 
lorum  gratiam  priraum  concinnatae,"  which  was  published  at  Glasgow  in  1644. 
This  work  was  dedicated  to  lord  chancellor  Hay  of  Kinnoul,  to  whom  he  ex- 
presses himself  obliged  for  benefits  conferred  on  his  father,  and  for  having  pro- 
cured himself  the  situation  he  held.  After  the  fashion  of  the  day,  the  book  wbs 
prefaced  by  several  commendatory  verses ;  and  of  these  some  are  from  the  pen 
of  the  celebrated  Alexander  Henderson,  Samuel  Rutherford,  and  John  Adamson. 
The  work  also  bore  the  record  of  the  unanimous  approbation  of  the  faculty  of  the 
college  of  St  Leonard  in  the  university  of  St  Andi-ews.  Three  years  previous 
to  the  publication  of  the  **  Hebreae  Linguas  Institutiones,"  Row  was  by  the 
infiiuence  of  the  famous  Andrew  Cant  appointed  one  of  the  ministers  of 
Abei'deen.  In  1643,  he  published  a  Vocabulary  of  the  Hebrew  language, 
which  he  dedicated  to  his  new  patrons,  the  town  council  of  Aberdeen.  This 
mark  of  respect  was  rewarded  by  the  following  ordinance  of  that  body  :  "  20th 
September,  1G43,  the  counsel!  considering  the  panes  taken  be  Mr  John  Row 
in  teaching  the  Hebrew  tongue,  and  for  setting  forth  ane  Hebrew  dictionar, 
and  dedicating  the  same  to  the  counsell,  ordanes  the  thosaurar  to  delivar  to  the 
said  Mr  John  Row  for  his  paines  four  hundreth  merk  Scotts  money.""  In  his 
office  of  minister  of  Aberdeen,  Row  supported  the  principles  of  his  coadjutor 
Andrew  Cant,  and  was  with  him  highly  obnoxious  to  the  more  moderate  party 
of  the  presbyterians,  and  to  those  who  still  favoured  episcopacy.  The  amusing 
annalist  Spalding,  who  attended  his  prelections,  loses  no  opportunity  of  hold- 
ing him  up  to  ridicule  or  detestation  ;  and  language  seems  sometimes  to  fail 
him  for  the  expression  of  his  horror  at  Row's  innovations.  "  One  of  the 
town's  officers,"  he  relates,  "  caused  bring  a  bairn  to  the  lecture  lesson, 
ivhere  Mr  John  Row  had  taught,  to  be  baptized  ;  but  because  this  bairn  was  not 
brought  to  him  when  he  was  baptizing  some  other  bairns,  he  would  not  give 
baptism;  whereupon  the  simple  man  was  forced  to  bring  back  this  child  un- 
baptized.  The  wife  lying  in  child-bed,  hearing  the  child  was  not  baptized,  was 
so  angry,  that  she  turned  her  face  to  the  wall,  and  deceased  immediately  through 
plain  displeasure,  and  the  bairn  also  ere  tlie  morn  ;  and  the  mother,  and  het 
bairn  in  her  oxter,  were  both  buried  together.  lamentable  to  see,"  writes  the 
indignant  chronicler,  "  how  the  people  are  thus  abused  !"  In  1644,  Row  was 
chosen  moderator  of  the  provincial  assembly  at  Aberdeen  ;  and  the  next  year, 
on  the  approach  of  Montrose  at  the  head  of  the  royalist  forces,  he,  with  Cant 
and  other  "  prime  covenanters,"  sought  refuge  with  the  earl  Marisclial  in  the 
castle  of  Dunottar.  In  1G49,  the  Scottish  parliament  appointed  a  committee  to 
remonstrate  against  the  contemplated  murder  of  Charles  I.,  and  Row  was  one 
of  six  clergymen  nominated  to  act  with  the  committee.  In  1651,  a  commis- 
sion, consisting  of  five  colonels  from  the  army  of  Monk,  visited  the  king's  col- 
lege of  Aberdeen,  and,  among  other  acts,  deposed  the  principal,  Dr  Guild ; 

'    »  The  learned  editor  of  "  Memorials  of  the  Family  of  Row,"  (a  work  to  which  we  are  in- 
debted for  much  of  the  information  given  in  the  following  memoir)  erroneously  calls  John 
Kow  the  eldest  son  of  his  father. 
*  (Jouiicil  Register  of  Aberdeen,  vol.  lii.  p.  771. 


WILLIAM   ROXBURGH.  205 


and  the  next  year,  Row  was  chosen  his  successor.  He  seems  to  have  filled  the 
princip.il's  chair  with  much  credit;  he  maintained  strict  discipline,  and  added  to 
the  buildings  of  the  college,  while  his  own  learning  extended  the  reputation  of  the 
university.  On  the  Sth  October,  1656,  being  a  day  appointed  for  a  public  thanks- 
giving, he  preached  in  Westminster  abbey  before  the  parliament,  and  his  ser- 
mon was  afterwards  printed  by  their  orders,  under  the  title  of  *'  Man's  Duty  in 
magnifying  God's  Work."  On  the  Restoration,  principal  Row  lost  no  time  in 
paying  his  court  to  the  new  authorities.  In  1660,  he  published  at  Aberdeen, 
"  'Evxa^iariot.  BxaiT^ix.-/!,  ad  Carolum  II.  Carmen  :"  a  Avork  which  was  laudatory 
of  the  king,  and  abusive  of  Cromwell,  who  is  styled  "  Trux  vilis  vermes,''  being 
the  anagram  of  "  O  vile  cmel  worm"  (Oliver  Cromwell)  latinized.  This  pane- 
gyric, however,  availed  him  little.  Some  of  his  works,  which  contained  reflec- 
tions on  the  royal  family,  were  taken  from  the  college,  and  burned  at  the  cross 
of  Aberdeen  by  the  hands  of  the  hangman  :  and  in  1661,  Row  resigned  his  of- 
fice of  principal.  He  soon  after  established  a  school  at  Aberdeen,  and  lived  for 
some  years  on  the  scanty  emoluments  derived  from  this  source,  eked  out  by 
charitable  donations.  Thereafter  he  retired  to  the  family  of  a  son-in-law  and 
daughter  in  the  parish  of  Kinellar,  about  eight  miles  from  Aberdeen,  where  he 
spent  the  remainder  of  his  days.  He  was  interred  in  the  churchyard  of  the 
parish,  but  no  monument  marks  his  grave.  Besides  the  works  we  have  men- 
tioned, and  some  others  which  seem  to  be  lost,  principal  Row  wrote  a  continua- 
tion of  his  father's  History  of  the  Church,  which  is  extant  in  the  Advocates' 
library,  under  the  title  of  "  Supplement  to  the  Historie  of  the  Kirk  of  Scot 
land,  from  August,  anno  1637,  and  thenceforward  to  July,  1639;  or  ane  Hand- 
ful of  Goates  Haire  for  the  furthering  of  the  Building  of  the  Tabernacle  :  a 
Short  Table  of  Principnll  Things  for  the  promoving  of  the  most  excellent  His- 
torie of  this  late  blessed  Work  of  Reformation,  in  the  hands  of  such  as  are  em- 
ployed therein  by  the  General  Assemblie  ;  written  by  Mr  John  Row,  Ministei 
at  Aberdene."  BIr  James  Row,  minister  of  Monivaird  and  Strowan,  a  younger 
brother  of  principal  Row,  is  well  known  to  the  curious  in  Scottish  literature,  as 
the  author  of  the  celebrated  "  Pockmanty  Sermon,"  preached  in  Saint  Giles's,  in 
1638,  and  which  has  been  lately  reprinted  under  the  titles  of  "The  Red- 
Shanke's  Sermon;"  and  "  A  Cupp  of  Bon- Accord." 

ROXBURGH,  William,  a  physician  and  eminent  botanist,  was  born  at  Un- 
derwood in  the  parish  of  Craigie,  en  the  29th  June,  1759.  His  family  was 
not  in  affluent  circumstances,  but  they  nevertheless  contrived  to  give  him  a 
liberal  education.  On  acquiring  all  the  learning  which  the  place  of  his  nativity 
afforded,  he  was  sent  to  Edinburgh  to  complete  his  studies,  which  were  exclu- 
sively directed  to  the  medical  profession.  After  attending  for  some  time  the 
various  classes  at  the  university  necessary  to  qualify  hiin  for  this  pursuit,  he  re- 
eived,  while  yet  but  seventeen  years  of  age,  the  appointment  of  surgeon's  mate 
jn  board  of  an  East  Indiaman,  and  completed  two  voyages  to  the  East  in  that 
capacity  before  he  had  attained  his  twenty-first  year.  An  offer  having  been 
now  made  to  him  of  an  advantageous  settlement  at  Madras,  he  accepted  of  it, 
and  accordingly  established  himself  there.  Shortly  after  taking  up  his  resi- 
dence at  Madras,  Mr  Roxburgh  turned  his  attention  to  botany,  and  particular- 
ly to  the  study  of  the  indigenous  plants,  and  other  vegetable  productions  of  the 
East,  and  in  this  he  made  such  progress,  and  acquired  so  much  reputation  that 
he  was  in  a  short  time  invited  by  the  government  of  Bengal,  to  take  charge  of 
the  Botanical  gardens  established  there.  In  this  situation  he  rapidly  extended 
his  fame  as  a  botanist,  and  introduced  to  notice,  and  directed  to  useful  purposes 
many  previously  unknown  and  neglected  vegetable  productions  of  the  country.  I\Ir 
Roxburgh  now  also  became  a  member  of  the  Asiatic  Society,  to  whose  Transactions 


20u  MAJOR-GENERAL  WILLIAM  ROY. 


he  contributed,  from  timo  to  time,  many  valuable  papers,  and  amongst  these 
one  of  singular  interest  on  tlie  lacca  insect,  from  which  a  colour  called  lac 
lake,  is  made,  uliich  is  largely  used  as  a  substitute  for  cochineal.  This  paper, 
which  was  written  in  178i),  excited  much  attention  at  the  time,  at  once  from 
tlie  ability  it  displayed,  and  from  the  circumstance  of  its  containing  some 
hints  whicli  led  to  a  groat  improvement  on  the  coloui*  yielded  by  the  lacca 
insecL 

In  1797,  Mr  Roxburgh  paid  a  risit  to  his  native  country,  and  returned 
(having  been  in  the  mean  time  married,)  to  Bengal,  in  1799,  when  he 
resumed  his  botanical  studies  with  increased  ardour  and  increasing  success.  In 
1805,  he  received  the  gold  medal  of  the  Society  for  the  Promotion  of  Arts,  for 
a  series  of  highly  interesting  and  valuable  communications  on  the  subject  of  tiio 
productions  of  the  East,  lie  had  again,  in  this  year,  returned  to  England, 
and  was  now  residing  at  Chelsea,  but  in  very  indirt'erent  health  ;  he,  howevcs', 
once  more  proceeded  to  Bengal,  and  continued  in  his  curatonhip  of  the  Botani« 
cal  Gardens  tliere  till  1803,  when,  broken  down  in  constitution,  he  finally  re- 
turned to  his  native  country.  In  this  year  he  received  a  second  gold  medal 
for  a  communication  on  the  growth  of  trees  in  India,  and  on  tlie  .Slst  of  May, 
1814,  was  presented  with  a  third,  in  the  presenco  of  a  largo  assembly  >Yhich  he 
personally  attended,  by  the  duke  of  Norfolk,  who  was  then  president  of  the 
Society  of  Arts. 

Soon  after  receiving  this  last  honourable  testimony  of  the  high  respect  in 
which  his  talents  were  held,  Mr  Roxburgh  repaired  to  Edinburgh,  where  he 
died,  on  the  10th  of  April  in  the  following  year,  in  the  57th  year  of  his  age, 
leaving  behind  him  a  reputation  of  no  ordinary  character  for  ability,  and  for  a 
laudable  ambition  to  confer  benefits  on  mankind,  by  adding  to  their  comforts 
and  conveniences ;  which  objects  he  effected  to  no  inconsiderable  extent  by 
many  oiiginal  and  ingenious  suggestions. 

ROT  (Major-General),  "William,  a  distinguished  practical  matLenxaticiaa 
and  antiquary,  was  born  in  Carluke  parish.  May  4, 1706.  John,  the  father,  who 
was  born  April  15,  1697,  at  Milton-head,  must  have  been  an  active  and  intelli- 
gent man,  if  we  may  judge  from  the  many  references  made  to  him  by  the 
heritors  of  the  parish.  He  is  variously  designated  as  gardener,  factor,  &c.,  to 
Sir  William  Gordon,  and  to  Charles  Hamilton  Gordon,  of  Hallcraig.  John,  the 
grandfather,  seems  to  have  been  succeeded  in  office  by  his  son  John.  The 
earliest  notice  of  the  elder  John  Roy  is  in  the  "  Roll  of  polleable  persons  in 
Carluke  parish,  1695,"  and  the  entry  there  is  in  these  terms: — "Jo  roy,  servitor 
to  my  Lord  hallcraig,  00. 19  .  04."  The  general,  and  his  brother  James,  after- 
wards minister  of  Prestonpan.i,  were  educated  partly  at  the  school  of  their 
native  parish,  and  partly  at  the  grammar-school  of  Lanark,  the  latter  having 
been  a  bursar  in  Glasgow  college  on  tho  foundation  of  the  countess  of  Forfar, 
from  1737  till  1751.  A  characteristic  anecdote  of  Roy  is  still  current.  An  old 
woman,  a  native  of  Carluke,  who  had  all  her  life  been  a  servant  at  Lee,  used  to 
rekte  with  pride  that,  in  her  young  days,  Roy  came  to  Lee  as  attendant  on  great 
men ;  shortly  afterwards  he  came  agam,  but  in  a  higher  office ;  after  the  lapse 
of  years,  he  came  a  third  time,  and  now  he  sat  at  the  right  hand  of  the  laird ! 

The  birthplace  of  general  Roy  is  accidentally  marked  in  a  singular  manner. 
The  bnildrngs  of  Milton-head  have  long  been  cleared  away.  An  old  willow 
that  grew  near  the  end  of  the  steading,  no  longer  able  to  bear  the  weight  of 
its  own  arms,  bent  under  the  burden,  and  now  represents  an  arch  of  fair  pro- 
portions. The  tree  in  this  position  continues  to  grow,  and  is  itself  an  object  of 
interest;  but,  mr.rking  as  it  does  the  birthplace  of  an  eminent  man,  it  is  doubly 
worth/  of  notice  and  preservation. 


THOMAS   RUDDIMAN.  207 


No  record  has  been  discovered  of  the  early  career  of  general  Roy.  lie  was 
first  brought  into  notice  in  1746,  when  he  was  employed  by  government  to 
make  an  actual  survey  of  Scotland.  This  arduous  and  difficult  duty  he  per- 
formed in  a  meritorious  manner,  and  gave  the  world  the  result  in  what  goes 
under  the  name  of  the  "  Duke  of  Cumberland's  IVIap."  Upon  this  map,  which 
is  a  very  large  sheet,  the  sites  of  all  ascertainable  Koman  camps  or  stations 
were  accurately  and  distinctly  laid  down.  It  was  afterwards  reduced  by 
the  general  to  a  smaller  size,  under  the  title  of  "  Mappa  Britannise  Septentri- 
oaalis,"  &c. 

The  first  geodestic  survey  executed  in  England  was  undertaken  with  the  imme- 
diate object  of  establishing  a  trigonometrical  connection  between  the  observations 
of  Paris  and  Greenwich,  in  order  to  determine  the  difference  of  longitude. 
This  was  executed  by  "general  Koy,  who  began  his  operations  by  measuring  a 
base  of  27,404  feet  on  Hounslow  Heath,  in  the  summer  of  1784.  Amongst  the 
numerous  and  valuable  papers  contributed  to  the  Transactions  of  the  Royal 
Society  by  general  Roy,  was  an  account  of  these  operations,  which  obtained 
for  him  the  Copley  medal.  To  this  paper  was  appended  an  account  of  the  mode 
proposed  to  be  followed  in  determining  the  relative  situations  of  the  Greenwich 
and  Paris  observatories,  which  led  to  the  author's  being  employed  by  royal 
command  to  ascertain  this  point  by  the  method  thus  suggested,  from  actual 
experiment.  In  obedience  to  his  majesty's  mandate,  the  general  completed  an 
exceedingly  curious,  accurate,  and  elaborate  set  of  trigonometrical  experiments 
and  observations,  to  determine  the  true  and  exact  latitude  and  longitude  of  the 
two  observatories,  illustrated  by  tables  computed  from  actual  measurement ;  to 
enable  him  to  accomplish  which,  he  was  furnished  by  the  king  with  several 
costly  trigonometrical  instruments.  General  Roy  presented  an  account  of  these 
interesting  proceedings  to  the  Royal  Society,  and  was  employed  in  superin- 
tending its  publication  in  the  Society's  Transactions,  when  he  was  seized  with 
an  illness  which  carried  him  off  in  two  hours.  He  died  at  his  house,  Argyle 
Street,  London,  July  1,  1790.  General  Roy's  investigations  laid  the  ground- 
work of  the  trigonometrical  survey  of  the  three  kingdoms,  which  is  still  in 
progress.  In  the  History  of  the  Royal  Society  by  Weld  (1848),  it  is  expressly 
stated  that  this  survey  was  commenced  by  general  Roy  in  1784-  It  was  sub- 
sequently conducted,  under  the  direction  of  the  master-general  of  the  ordnance, 
by  colonel  Williams,  and  captain,  afterwai'ds  general  Mudge,  of  the  Royal 
Engineers,  and  Mr  Dalby,  who  had  previously  assisted  general  Roy.  Three 
years  after  his  death,  general  Roy's  elaborate  antiquarian  work  was  published 
at  the  expense  of  the  Antiquarian  Society  of  Londoa,  under  the  title  of  "  Mili- 
tary Antiquities  of  the  Romans  in  Britain."  General  Roy  was  deputy  quarter- 
master-general of  his  majesty's  forces;  siu'veyor  of  the  coasts  and  batteries; 
colonel  of  the  30Lh  Regiment  of  Foot;  F.R.S.,  &c. 

RUDDIMAN,  Thomas,  a  celebrated  philologist  and  Latin  grammarian,  was 
born  in  the  month  of  October,  1674,  in  the  parish  of  Boyndie,  county  of 
Banff.  His  father,  James  Ruddiman,  was  a  respectable  farmer,  and  was  at  the 
period  of  bis  son's  birth  tenant  of  the  farm  of  Raggel,  in  Banffshire.  He  was 
esteemed  by  his  neighbours  as  a  man  profoundly  skilled  in  agricultural  matters, 
and  was  besides  greatly  respected  for  the  benevolence  of  his  dbposition.  He 
was  strongly  attached  to  monarchy,  an  attachment  which  he  evinced  in  a  re- 
narkable  manner  by  bursting  into  tears  on  first  hearing  of  the  death  of  Charles 
II.  This  ebullition  of  loyal  feeling  made  a  strong  impression  on  liis  son, 
who  witnessed  it,  and  although  he  was  then  only  in  the  tenth  year  of  his  age,  it 
is  thought  to  have  influenced  the  opinions  of  his  after  life  on  similar  subjects. 
Young  Ruddiman  commenced  his  initiatory  course  of  learning  at  the  parish 


208  THOMAS  RUDDIMAJf. 


graminnr  school  of  Boyndie,  which  was  then  taught  by  a  3Ir  George  ^lorrison, 
of  whose  attention  and  skill  in  his  profession  his  pupil  ever  after  retained  a 
grateful  and  respectful  recollection.  In  this  seminary  the  subject  of  this  me- 
moir rapidly  outstripped  his  fellows  in  classical  learning.  The  Metamorphoses 
of  Ovid  early  struck  his  fancy,  and  had  the  effect  of  inducing  such  a  degree  cf 
application  to  the  acquisition  of  the  language  in  which  they  are  written,  as 
carried  him  far  in  advance  of  all  the  other  scholars  in  the  school.  His  master, 
perceiving  his  ardour,  allowed  him  to  press  on,  abandoning  all  idea  of  restrain- 
ing so  forward  a  spirit  to  the  slow  march  of  those  associated  with  him  in  the 
study  of  classical  learning. 

'1  he  consequence  of  this  assiduity  and  enthusiastic  devotion  to  Roman  litera- 
ture, was  an  early  and  singular  proficiency  in  its  language.  Of  this  young 
Ruddiman  himself  felt  so  conscious,  that  when  only  sixteen  years  of  age  he  left 
his  father's  house  without  giving  any  previous  intimation  of  his  departure,  or 
of  its  object,  to  any  of  the  family  excepting  one  sister,  and  proceeded  to  Aber- 
deen to  compete  for  the  annual  prize  given  at  King's  college  of  that  city  for 
proficiency  in  classical  learning.  Previously  to  his  setting  out,  his  sister,  to 
whom  he  had  confided  his  secret,  slipped  a  guinea  into  his  pocket ;  but  of 
tliis,  and  of  nearly  all  his  apparel  he  was  robbed  by  the  way;  having  been 
met,  and  assailed  at  a  place  called  Starbrigs,  by  a  band  of  gypsies  who  first 
plundered  and  then  stripped  him.  Tiiis  mishap,  however,  did  not  deter  the 
young  enthusiast  from  proceeding  on  his  mission.  He  reached  Aberdeen, 
though  in  a  miserable  plight,  competed  for  the  prize,  and  carried  it  off. 
Having  obtained  a  bursary  in  the  college  by  this  success,  he  now  took  up  his 
residence  in  Aberdeen,  and  commenced  his  academical  studies  in  November 
1690,  under  profesior  William  Black.  His  father,  in  the  mean  time,  having 
heard  whither  his  son  had  gone,  and  for  what  purpose,  hastened  tifter  him,  and 
had  the  satisfaction,  on  meeting  with  him,  to  find  him  surrounded  with  friends, 
whom  his  youth  and  singular  acquirements  had  already  procured  for  him. 

At  the  college  of  Aberdeen  Mr  Ruddiman  pursued  his  studies  with  an  ardour 
and  devotion  which  daily  increased,  and  which  at  the  end  of  four  years  pro- 
cured him  the  degree  of  master  of  arts.  This  honour,  of  which  the  young 
scholar  was  extremely  proud,  was  conferred  on  him  on  the  2ist  June,  1694. 
Amongst  Mr  Ruddiman's  fellow  students  at  this  period  was  the  well-known 
lord  Lovat,  whose  earthly  career  was  terminated  on  Tower  Jlill  by  the  axe  of 
the  executioner,  at  the  distance  of  more  than  half  a  century  afterwards.  Of 
this  nobleman,  the  biographer  of  Ruddiman  rem<irks,  that,  when  at  college, 
"  he  was  at  the  head  of  every  mischief." 

On  completing  his  academical  course,  Mr  Ruddiman  was  engaged  by  Mr 
Robert  Young  of  Auldbar,  in  the  county  of  Forfar,  to  assist  the  studies  of  his 
son.  He  was  still  under  twenty  years  of  age,  but  his  acquirements  in  classical 
literature  were  far  in  advance  of  this  period  of  life,  as  compared  with  the  ordi- 
nary progress  of  proficiency  in  others.  While  advancing  the  knowledge  of  his 
pupil,  3Ir  Ruddiman  did  not  pei-mit  his  own  to  remain  stationary.  He  con- 
tinued to  study  assiduously,  and  every  day  added  to  his  acquirements  in  classic 
lore. 

During  his  residence  at  Auldbar,  Mr  Ruddiman  heard  of  the  death  of  the 
incumbent  schoolmaster  of  Lawrencekirk,  in  Kincardineshire,  and  thinking 
this  a  favourable  opportunity  for  advancing  his  fortunes,  applied  for,  and  ob- 
tained the  situation,  partly  through  the  interest  of  Mr  Young,  and  part- 
ly through  the  influence  of  his  own  reputation  for  extraordinary  learning.  In 
this  situation,  a  sufficiently  obscure  one,  he  remained,  still  applying  himself 
with  unabated  zeal  to  the  study  «.f  the  classics,  till  the  year   1699,  when  a 


THOMAS   KUDDIMAK.  209 


rather  singular  occurrence  opened  up  a  wider  field  to  his  ambition  and  hia 
merits. 

The  celebrated  Dr  Pitcairne  of  Edinburgh,  happening  to  be  detained  for  a 
day  in  the  village  of  Laurencekirk,  by  the  inclemency  of  the  weather,  asked 
the  hostess  of  the  inn  where  he  put  up,  whether  she  could  not  find  him  some 
intelligent  person  who  would  partake  of  his  dinner,  and  help,  by  his  conversa- 
tion, to  divert  the  tedium  of  the  evening.  His  landlady  immediately  suggested 
the  schoolmaster,  Mr  Ruddiroan.  He  was  accordingly  sent  for,  and  in  the 
course  of  the  conversation  which  followed  made  so  favourable  an  impression  on 
the  Doctor,  by  the  extent  of  his  acquirements,  and  t'.ie  judiciousness  of  his  re- 
marks, that  the  latter,  before  tliey  parted,  invited  him  to  come  to  Edinburgh, 
and  promised  him  his  patronage. 

Mr  Ruddiman  gratefully  closed  with  the  proposal,  and  repaired  to  the 
metropolis  in  the  beginning  of  the  year  1700.  On  his  arrival,  his  patron  pro- 
cured him  employment  in  the  Advocates'  Iibrai*y  as  a  sort  of  assistant  librarian, 
though  for  upwards  of  a  year  he  had  no  regular  or  formal  engagement  in  that 
capacity.  During  this  interval  he  employed  himself  in  arranging  books,  copy- 
ing papers,  and  making  extracts  from  interesting  works.  In  1701,  Mr  Rud- 
diman married  Barbara  ScoUay,  the  daughter  of  a  gentleman  of  small  estate  in 
Orkney,  and  in  the  year  following,  he  was  formally  admitted,  on  the  2nd  of 
May,  assistant  librarian,  with  a  salary  of  £8,  6s,  8d.  sterling  per  annum.  His 
diligence,  learning,  and  steadiness  of  character,  had  already  attracted  the 
notice,  and  called  forth  the  approbation  of  his  employers,  who,  as  a  token  of 
their  sense  of  these  merits,  presented  him  Avith  an  extra  allowance  of  fifty 
pounds  Scots,  at  the  end  of  the  year  succeeding  that  of  his  appointment. 
Mr  Ruddiman  now  set  himself  seriously  and  earnestly  to  the  task  of  improving 
his  circumstances  by  literary  industry  and  diligence,  and  the  situation  he  was 
in  eminently  favoured  such  a  design.  He  copied  chronicles  and  chartularies  for 
the  Glasgow  university,  which  gave  him  constant  and  regular  employment  in 
this  way.  He  formed  connexions  with  booksellers,  and  revised,  corrected,  and 
added  to  the  works  which  they  were  publishing,  particularly  those  of  a  learned 
character,  and  to  all  this  he  added  the  expedient  of  keeping  boarders,  whom 
he  also  instructed  in  classical  learning.  The  first  work  to  which  he  is  known 
to  have  lent  his  assistance  was  Sir  Robert  Sibbald's  "  Introductio  ad  Historiam 
rerum  a  Romanis  gestarum  in  ea  Boreali  Britannias  parte  quae  ultra  Murum 
Picticum  est."  He  was  next  employed  to  revise  "  The  Practiques  of  the  Laws 
of  Scotland,"  by  Sir  Robert  Spottiswood,  for  which  he  received  £5  sterling. 
Mr  Ruddiman's  active  mind,  and  laudable  desire  of  independence,  suggested  to 
him  still  another  means  of  increasing  his  emoluments.  This  was  to  commence 
book  auctioneer,  a  calling  for  which  his  habits  and  pursuits  peculiarly  qualified 
him,  and  he  accordingly  added  it,  in  the  year  1707,  to  his  other  avocations, 
but  confined  himself,  in  the  exercise  of  it,  principally  to  learned  works  and 
school  books. 

In  the  same  year  in  which  he  commenced  auctioneer,  he  published  an  edition 
of  Wilson's  "  Animi  Tranquillitate  Dialogus."  To  this  Avork  he  added  a  new 
preface,  and  subjoined  a  sketch  of  the  life  of  Wilson,  besides  correcting 
the  numerous  typographical  errors  of  Gryphius  of  Leyden,  by  whom  it  was  fij-st 
published  in  1543.  His  extraordinary  and  unwearying  diligence  enabled  3Ir 
Ruddiman  to  present  the  world  in  1709,  with  a  new  edition,  with  notes,  of 
another  learned  work.  This  was  "  Johnston!  Cantici  Solomonis  Paraphrasis 
Poetica,"  which  he  dedicated,  in  a  copy  of  verses,  to  his  patron  Dr  Pitcairne,  a 
compliment  which  the  latter  acknowledged  by  presenting  the  learned  editor 
with  a  silver  cup,  inscribed  with  the  following  couplet  from  Horace : 


210  THOMAS  RUDDIMAN. 


Narratur  et  prisci  Catonis, 
Ssppe  mero  incaluisse  virtus. 

Mr  Ruddim.in,  however,  was  not  permitted  long  to  rejoice  in  the  possession 
of  this  elegant  testimony  of  his  patron's  esteem  for  him.  His  house  was  short- 
ly after  broken  into  by  robbers,  and  the  silver  cup,  with  many  other  articles 
carried  ofT, 

The  reputation  which  the  learned  and  acute  grammarian  had  acquired  by  the 
new  editions  of  the  works  just  named,  was  still  farther  increased  by  that  in  which 
he  next  engaged.  This  was  an  edition  of  Virgil's  ^neid,  as  translated  into 
Scottish  verse  by  the  celebrated  Gawin  Douglas.  To  this  work,  which  was  pub- 
lished  by  Freebairn  of  Edinburgh,  besides  superintending  and  correcting  the 
press,  he  contributed  a  Glossary,  explaining  dilHcult  and  obsolete  words  ;  a 
performance  which  bespeaks  great  depth  of  research,  soundness  of  judgment, 
and  singular  acuteness  of  perception.  Mr  Ruddiman's  modesty,  (for  he  was  as 
modest  as  learned,)  prevented  him  from  associating  with  the  Glossary  any  kind  of 
notice  which  should  point  out  to  the  public  that  he  was  the  author  of  it ;  but  af- 
ter some  time  this  fact  transpired,  and  compliments  poured  in  upon  him  from 
the  most  eminent  and  learned  men  of  the  day. 

A  vacancy  happening  to  occur  about  this  period  in  the  grammar  school  of 
Dundee,  Mr  Ruddiman,  whose  fame  as  a  scholar  was  now  rapidly  spreading 
abroad,  was  invited  to  become  rector  of  that  seminary  ;  but  an  advance  of  salary 
having  been  tendered  him  by  the  faculty  of  advocates  to  induce  him  to  remain, 
he  accepted  it,  and  declined  the  offer  of  the  magistrates  of  Dundee,  although  he 
thereby  sacrificed  In's  pecuniary  interests  to  a  considerable  amount,  for  the  ad- 
ditional salary  which  was  conferred  upon  him  was  still  short  of  the  amount  of 
emolument  wliich  the  rectoi-ship  of  the  Dundee  grammar  school  would  have  pro- 
duced to  him. 

Still  pursuing  his  literary  labours  with  unremitting  industry,  he,  in  1711, 
assisted  in  preparing  a  new  edition  of  the  works  of  Drumraond  of  Hawthornden, 
printed  by  Watson  of  Edinburgh,  and  immediately  after  lent  his  aid  to  Aber- 
cromby,  to  publish  his  '*  Martial  Achievements  of  the  Scots  Nation."  Mr  Rud- 
diman next  devoted  himself  to  philological  pursuits  ;  and  in  1713,  published  a 
new  edition  of  the  Latin  Vocabulary  of  John  Forrest,  with  improvements.  In 
the  year  following,  he  published  that  work  which  filled  up  the  measure  of  hij 
fame.  This  was  his  "  Rudiments  of  the  Latin  Tongue;"  a  work  which  he  lived 
to  see  go  through  no  less  than  fifteen  editions.  It  is  almost  unnecessary  to  add, 
that  it  immediately  supplanted  all  those  of  a  similar  kind  which  had  been  pre- 
viously in  use,  every  one  of  which  was  sin^nlarly  defective;  and  that  it  has 
remained  in  extensive  use  throughout  the  grammar  schools  of  Scotland  ever 
since. 

Shortly  after  this,  Mr  Ruddiman  was  employed  by  Freebairn  to  edit  *'  Bucha- 
nani  Opera  Omnia,"  now  collected  for  the  first  time.  To  this  work,  which  was 
published  in  1715,  in  two  vols,  folio,  he  contributed  large  annotations,  in  which 
he  treated  freely  both  the  character  and  political  principles  of  the  author;  a  pro- 
cedure which  raised  him  a  host  of  enemies,  and  involved  him  in  a  litigated  and 
annoying  controversy.  This  hostility  assumed  in  one  instance  the  formidable 
shape  of  a  "  Society  of  the  Scholars  of  Edinburgh,  to  vindicate  that  incom- 
parably learned  and  pious  Author  (Buchanan)  from  the  Calunmie  of  Mr  Thomas 
Ruddiman."  This  association,  however,  though  it  included  no  less  than  four 
professors  of  the  university,  never  made  any  progress  in  their  proposed  **  Vin- 
dication," and  finally  dissolved,  without  accomplishing  any  thing,  although  they 
frequently  and  confidently  promised  the  world  a  new  edition  of  Buchanan,  with 
a  confutation  of  Ruddiman. 


TJiOMAS  EUDDIMAN.  iJll 


In  1715,  3Ir  Ruddiman  added  to  his  other  avocations  that  of  printer,  ad- 
mitting a  younger  brother  of  his  own,  who  had  been  bred  to  the  business,  as  a 
partner  of  tlie  concern.  Tlie  first  pi-oduction  of  his  press,  was  the  second  volume 
of  Abercroniby's  Martial  Achievements.  Amongst  the  learned  works  of  note, 
Avhich  he  printed  subsequently,  were,  the  first  volume  of  "  Epistola  HegumSco- 
torum,"  1722,  for  whidi  he  wrote  a  preface  ;  "  Ovidii  Excerpta  ex  Metamor- 
phoseon  Libris,"  containing  English  Notes,  by  Willymot  and  himself,  1723  ; 
Herodian,  1724  ;  Pars  Pi-ima  of  his  own  Grammaticas  Latinae  Institutiones, 
1725,  which  brought  him  a  great  accession  of  fame  and  profit;  and  Pars  Se- 
cunda  of  the  same  worlv.  He  also  printed,  in  1733,  "  A  Dissertation  upon  tlie 
Way  of  Teaching  the  Latin  Tongue." 

In  1718,  Mr  liuddiman  took  an  active  part  in  forming  a  literary  society — the 
first,  it  is  believed,  which  was  established  in  Edinburgh.  It  was  originally  com- 
posed of  the  masters  of  the  high  school,  but  was  soon  joined  by  many  of  the  most 
eminent  persons  in  the  city;  amongst  these  was  Mr  Henry  Home,  afterwards 
lord  Ilames.  Of  the  proceedings  of  this  society,  however,  nothing  is  known, 
as  its  records,  if  there  ever  were  any,  have  all  disa2)peared. 

It  had  long  been  an  object  of  Mr  lluddiman's  ambition,  after  he  became  a 
printer,  to  obtain  the  appointment  of  printer  to  the  university,  and  he  was  at 
length  gratified  with  the  office.  In  1728,  he  was  nominated,  conjunctly  witli 
James  Davidson,  printer  to  the  college,  during  the  lives  of  both,  (so  their  patent 
ran,)  and  during  the  life  of  the  longest  liver.  Previously  to  this,  viz.,  in  1724, 
Mr  liuddiman  began  to  print  tlie  continuation  of  the  Caledonian  Mercury  for 
Holland,  who  was  then  its  proprietor;  but  in  1729,  he  acquired  the  whole  in- 
terest in  that  paper,  which  was  transferred  to  him  in  March  of  the  year  just 
named,  and  continued  in  his  family  till  1772,  when  it  was  sold  by  the  trustees 
of  his  grandchildren. 

Notwithstanding  the  variety  and  importance  of  his  numerous  avocations, 
Mr  Ruddiman  still  retained  the  appointment  of  asshtant-librarian  in  the  Advo- 
cates' library,  and  never  allowed  any  of  these  avocations  to  interfere,  in  the 
smallest  degree,  with  the  faithful  and  diligent  discharge  of  the  duties  of  that 
office.  He  was  still,  however,  up  to  the  year  1730,  but  assistant-librarian,  the 
situation  of  principal  keeper  being  in  the  possession  of  Mr  John  Spottiswood ; 
but  in  the  year  named,  his  long  and  faithful  sendees  in  the  library  were  re- 
warded by  the  chief  appointment,  on  the  death  of  Mr  Spottiswood.  In  Mr 
Ruddiman's  case,  however,  this  promotion  was  entirely  honorary,  for  it  was  un- 
accompanied by  any  additional  salary. 

Mr  Ruddiman's  reputation  as  a  Latinist  now  stood  so  high,  that  he  was  era- 
ployed  to  translate  public  papers.  Amongst  these,  he  translated  the  charter  of 
the  Royal  Bank  from  English  into  Latin,  before  the  seals  were  affixed  to  it ; 
and  also  the  city  of  Edinburgh's  "  Charter  of  Admiralty."  His  wealth,  in  the 
mean  time,  was  improving  apace.  All  his  undertakings  succeeded  with  him, 
and  his  diligence  and  economy  turned  them  to  the  best  account.  He  was  in 
the  habit  of  making  periodical  estimates  of  his  riclies,  which  he  entered  in  his 
memorandum  books.  These  show  a  gradual  increase  in  his  wealth,  and  discover 
that  it  had  amounted  in  1736  to  £1985   Gs.  3d. 

Amongst  the  last  of  his  literary  labours,  was  an  elaborate  preface,  or  rather 
introduction,  to  Anderson's  "  Selectus  Diplomatum  et  Numismatum  Scotias  Thes- 
aurus ;"  an  able  and  learned  disquisition  on  various  subjects  of  antiquity.  Be- 
ing now  in  the  sixty-fifth  year  of  his  age,  he  ceased,  for  a  time,  after  the  comple- 
tion of  the  work  just  spoken  of,  from  every  kind  of  literary  employment ;  and, 
nearly  at  the  same  period,  resigned  his  half  of  the  printing  concern  to  his  son,  al- 
lowing, however,  his  name  to  remain  in  the  firm,  in  order  to  continue  its  credit. 


212  ALEXANDER  RUNCIMAN. 


During  the  summer  of  1745,  Mr  Ruddimnn,  to  avoid  the  dangers  of  the  re- 
bellion, retired  to  the  country,  where  he  resided  for  several  months,  amusing 
himself  by  literary  pursuits.  He  afterwards  prepared  a  Pars  Tertia  to  his 
GrammaticcB  Latinas,  &a,  but  did  not  adventure  on  its  publication,  as  he  feared 
the  sale  would  not  pay  the  expense.  He  subsequently,  however,  published  an 
abstract  of  this  work,  subjoined  to  what  is  called  his  Shorter  Grammar,  of  which 
he  received,  in  1756,  the  royal  privilege  of  being  exclusive  printer.  In  1751, 
the  venerable  grammarian's  sight  began  to  fail  him,  and,  under  this  affliction, 
finding  that  he  could  no  longer  conscientiously  retain  the  appointment  of  keeper 
of  the  Advocates'  library,  he  resigned  it  early  in  the  year  1752,  after  a  faith- 
ful discharge  of  the  duties  of  librarian  in  that  institution  of  nearly  half  a  cen- 
tury. The  latter  years  of  Mr  lludd'man^s  life  were  imbittered  by  a  political 
controversy,  into  which  he  was  dragged  by  the  vanity  and  pertinacity  of  Mr 
George  Logan,  who  persecuted  him  with  unrelenting  virulence  in  no  less  than 
six  different  treatises,  which  he  wrote  against  the  political  principles  avowed  in 
Mr  Ruddiman's  Annotations  on  Buchanan,  particularly  that  which  asserted  the 
hereditary  rights  of  the  Scottish  kings.  Mr  Ruddiman  died  at  Edinburgh  on  the 
19th  of  January,  1757,  in  the  eighty-third  year  of  his  age  ;  and  his  remains 
were  interred  in  the  Greyfriars'  church-yard  of  that  city.  A  handsome  tablet 
to  the  memory  of  Ruddiman,  was  erected  in  1806,  in  the  New  Greyfriars' 
church,  at  the  expense  of  his  relative,  Dv  William  Ruddiman,  late  of  India. 
It  exhibits  the  following  inscription  :— 

SACKED  TO  THE  MEMORY 

OF  THAT  CELEBRATED  SCHOLAR  AND  WORTHY  MAN, 

THOMAS  RUDDIMAN,  A.  M., 

KEEPER   OF   THE   AUVOCATES*    LIBRARY    CfEAR    FIFTY   TEARS. 

Bom,  October,  1674,  within  three  miles  of  the  town  of  Banff  j 

Died  at  Edinburgh,  19ih  January,  1767, 

In  his  eighty-third  year. 

Post  obitum,  benefacta  manent,  tetemaciae  virtus, 
Non  metuit  Stygiis  ne  rapiatur  aquls. 

RUNCIMAN,  Alex&nokr,  a  painter  of  considerable  note,  was  the  son  of  a 
builder  in  Edinburgh,  where  he  was  born  in  the  year  1736.  Having  shown  in 
his  earliest  years  a  decided  inclination  for  drawing,  his  father  furnished  him 
with  the  proper  materials ;  and  while  a  mere  boy,  he  roved  through  the  fields, 
taking  sketches  of  every  interesting  piece  of  landscape  which  fell  in  his  way. 
At  fourteen,  he  was  placed  under  the  care  of  Messrs  John  and  Robert  Norrie, 
house-painters ;  the  former  of  whom  used  to  adorn  the  mantle-pieces  of  the 
houses  which  he  was  employed  to  paint,  with  landscapes  of  his  own,  which  were 
then  deemed  respectable  productions,  and  of  which  many  a  specimen  is  still  pre- 
served in  the  houses  of  the  old  town  of  Edinburgh.  The  youth  devoted  himself 
entirely  to  his  art  "  Other  artists,"  said  one  who  had  been  his  companion, 
"  talked  meat  and  drink  ;  but  Runciman  txilked  landsixipe."  About  this  time, 
the  academy  for  rearing  young  artists  was  commenced  at  Glasgow  by  the 
brothers  Foulis,  and  Runciman  became  one  of  its  pupils.  He  soon  acquired 
considerable  local  fame  for  his  landscapes,  but  failed  entirely  to  make  a  liv- 
ing by  them.  Despairing  of  success  in  this  branch  of  art,  he  commenced 
history-painting;  and  in  1766,  visited  Italy,  where  he  met  Fuseli,  whose  wild 
and  distempered  character  matched  aptly  with  his  own.  He  spent  five  years  in 
Rome,  assiduously  studying  and  copying  the  Italian  masters ;  and  in  1771,  re- 


AT-EXANDER  KUKCIMAJI.  213 

turned  to  his  native  country,  with  powers  considerably  increased,  while  his 
taste,  formerly  over-luxuriant  and  wild,  had  experienced  a  corresponding  im- 
provement. Just  at  that  time  a  vacancy  had  occurred  in  the  mastership  of  a 
public  institution,  called  the  Trustees'  academy ;  and  the  place,  to  which  was 
attached  a  salary  of  j£l20,  was  ofiered  to  and  accepted  by  Runciman.  Being 
thus  secured  in  the  means  of  bare  subsistence,  he  applied  his  vacant  time  to  his- 
torical painting,  and  produced  a  considerable  number  of  specimens,  which, 
though  not  destitute  of  faults,  were  regarded  with  much  favour,  not  only  in  hi? 
native  country,  where  native  talent  of  this  kind  was  a  novelty,  but  also  in  Eng- 
land, where  several  of  them  were  exhibited.  Among  the  productions  of  Runci- 
man may  be  mentioned,  Macbeth  and  Banquo,  in  a  landscape  ;  a  Friar,  in  a 
landscape;  Job  in  Distress;  Samson  strangling  the  Lion;- Figure  of  Hope; 
St  Margaret  landing  in  Scotland,  and  her  Marriage  to  Malcolm  Canmore  in 
Dunfermline  abbey  ;  Christ  talking  to  the  Woman  of  Samaria ;  Agrippina 
landing  with  the  Ashes  of  Germanicus ;  the  Princess  Nausica  surprised  by 
Ulysses  ;  Andromeda ;  Sigismunda  weeping  over  the  Heart  of  Tancred ;  the 
Ascension  (in  the  Cowgate  episcopal  chapel,  Edinburgh) ;  the  Prodigal  Son 
(for  which  Ferguson  the  poet  was  the  study) ;  and  the  paintings  in  Ossian's 
Hall  at  Pennycuik.  The  work  last  mentioned  was  the  chef  d'oeuvre  of  Run- 
ciman, and  is  allowed  to  be  one  of  no  small  merit,  though  not  exempt  from  his 
usual  faults.  The  design  was  his  own,  but  was  only  carried  into  effect  through 
the  liberality  of  Sir  John  Clerk  of  Pennycuik,  the  representative  of  a  family 
which  has  been  i-emai-kable  throughout  a  century  for  talent,  enlightened  views, 
and  patronage  of  men  of  genius.  The  principal  paintings  are  twelve  in  num- 
ber, referring  to  the  most  striking  passages  in  the  work  called  Ossian's  Poems. 
The  task  was  one  of  no  small  magnitude,  but  the  painter  dreamt  of  rivalling 
the  famed  Sistine  Chapel,  and  laboured  at  his  work  with  only  too  much  enthu- 
siasm. In  consequence  of  having  to  paint  so  much  in  a  recumbent  posture,  and 
perhaps  denying  himself  that  exercise  which  the  physical  powers  demand,  he 
contracted  a  malady  which  carried  him  slowly  to  the  grave.  He  died,  October 
21,  1785,  dropping  down  suddenly  on  the  street,  when  about  to  enter  his 
lodgings. 

Runciman  was  remarkable  for  candour  and  simplicity  of  manners,  and  pos- 
sessed a  happy  talent  for  conversation,  which  caused  his  company  to  be  courted 
by  some  of  the  most  eminent  literary  men  of  his  time.  Hume,  Roberlaon, 
Kames,  and  Monboddo,  were  among  the  number  of  his  frequent  visitors.  But 
his  real  worth  and  goodness  of  heart  were  best  known  to  his  most  intimate 
friends,  who  had  access  to  him  at  all  times.  Nor  was  he  less  remarkable  for 
his  readiness  in  communicating  information  and  advice  to  young  artists,  in  or- 
der to  further  their  improvement  in  the  arts.  His  pupil,  John  Brown,  has 
passed  the  following  judgment  upon  his  merits  as  a  painter  : — "  His  fancy  was 
fertile,  his  discernment  of  character  keen,  his  taste  truly  elegant,  and  his  con- 
ceptions always  great.  Though  his  genius  seems  to  be  best  suited  to  the  grand 
and  serious,  yet  many  of  his  works  amply  prove  that  he  could  move  with  equal 
success  in  the  less  elevated  line  of  the  gay  and  the  pleasing.  His  chief  excel- 
lence was  composition,  the  noblest  part  of  the  art,  in  which  it  is  doubtful 
whether  he  had  any  living  superior.  With  regard  to  the  truth,  the  harmony, 
the  richness,  and  the  gravity  of  colouring, — in  that  style,  in  short,  which  is  the 
peculiar  characteristic  of  the  ancient  Venetian,  and  the  direct  contrast  of  the 
modern  English  school,  he  was  unrivalled.  His  worlis,  it  must  be  granted, 
like  all  those  of  the  pi-esent  times,  were  far  from  being  perfect ;  but  it  was 
Runciman's  peculiar  misfortune^  that  his  defects  were  of  such  a  nature  as  to 
be  obvious  to  the  most  unskilful  eye ;   whilst  his  beauties  were  of  a  kind,  which 


2U  ALEXANDER  BUSSELL— WILLIAM  RUSSELL. 

few  have  sufficiest  taste  or  knowledge  of  the  art  to  discern,  far  less  to  u.p 
preciate. 

John  Runclnian,  a  brother  of  the  above,  was  also  a  painter  of  some  note,  and 
produced,  among  other  pieces,  Judith  with  the  Head  of  Holofernes ;  Christ 
with  his  Disciples  going  to  Euunaus ;  King  Lear  and  Attendants  in  the  Storm ; 
and  the  Pulling  down  of  the  Netherbow  Port,  usually  attributed  to  Alexander, 
and  which  has  the  honour  to  be  placed  in  the  gallery  of  tlie  duke  of  Suther- 
land. Of  most  of  the  pictures  of  botli  artists,  engravings  and  etdiings  liave 
been  executed,  some  of  the  latter  by  tlieuiselvea. 

RUSSELL,  Albxander,  author  of  the  History  of  Aleppo,  was  born  in  Edin. 
burgh,  and  reared  for  the  niidical  profession.  After  finishing  his  studies  in 
the  university  of  tlyit  city,  about  the  year  1734,  he  proceeded  to  London,  and 
Boon  after  \rent  to  Aleppo,  where  he  settled  as  physician  to  the  English  factory 
in  1740.  The  influence  of  a  noble  and  sagacious  character  was  here  soon  felt, 
and  Mr  Russell  became  in  time  the  most  influential  character  in  the  place : 
even  the  pasha  hardly  entered  upon  any  proceeding  of  importance  witlicut  con- 
sulting him.  Afcer  residing  there  for  a  considerable  time,  during  which 
he  wrote  his  History  of  Aleppo,  he  returned  to  his  native  country,  and,  settling 
in  London,  soon  acquired  an  extensive  and  lucrative  practice.  His  work  was 
published  there  in  1755.  He  also  contributed  several  valuable  papers  to  the 
Royal  and  Medical  societies.  This  excellent  individual  died  in  London, 
November  25,  17G8. 

Dr  Russell  was  one  of  a  family  of  seven  sons,  all  of  whom  acquired  the 
respect  of  the  woi'ld.  His  younger  brotlier,  Patrick,  succeeded  him  as  physi- 
cian to  the  factory  at  Aleppo,  and  was  the  author  of  a  Treatise  on  the  Plague, 
published  in  1791,  and  Descriptions  of  Two  Hundred  Fishes  collected  on  the 
coast  of  Coromandel,  which  appeared  in  1803,  in  two  volumes  folio.  Dr 
Patrick  Russell  died  July  2,  1805,  in  his  79th  year. 

RUiSELL,  William,  a  historical  and  miscellaneous  writer,  was  the  elder  ion 
of  Alexander  Russell  and  Christian  Ballantyne,  residing  at  Windydoors,  in  the 
county  of  Selkirk,  where  he  was  born  in  the  year  1741.  At  the  neighbouring 
school  of  Innerleithen,  he  acquired  a  slender  knowledge  of  Latin  and  Greek, 
and,  having  removed  in  1755,  to  Edinburgh,  he  there  studied  writing  and 
arithmetic  for  about  ten  months.  This  completed  the  amount  of  bis  sciiool 
education.  He  now  commenced  an  apprenticeship  of  five  years,  under  Messrs 
Martin  and  Wotherspoon,  booksellers  and  printers,  during  which  period  he 
added  considerably  to  his  stock  of  knowledge  by  private  study.  At  the  end  of 
his  apprenticeship,  he  published  a  selection  of  modern  poetry,  which  was 
thought  judicious,  and  helped  to  extend  the  reputation  of  Gray  and  Shenstone 
in  bis  native  country.  In  1763,  while  working  as  a  journeyman  printer,  be 
became  a  member  of  a  literary  association  styled  the  Miscellaneous  Society,  of 
•which  Mr  Andrew  Dalzell,  afterwards  professor  of  Greek  in  the  EJinburgU 
university,  and  Mr  Robert  Liston,  afterwards  Sir  Robert,  and  ambassador  at 
Constantinople,  were  also  members.  To  these  two  gentlemen  he  submitted  a 
translation  of  Crebillon's  "  Rhadamisthe  ct  Zenobie,"  which,  after  their  revisal, 
was  presented  to  Garrick,  but  rejected.  Not  long  after  ho  seems  to  hare 
formed  an  intimacy  with  Patriek  lord  Elibank,  who  invited  him  to  spend  some 
time  at  his  seat  in  East  Lothian,  and  encouraged  him  in  the  prosecution  of 
a  literary  career.  He  therefore  relinquished  his  labours  as  a  printer;  and  after 
spending  a  considerable  time  in  study  at  his  father's  house  in  the  country, 
Bet  out,  in  May  1767,  for  London.  Here  he  was  disappointed  in  his  best 
hopes,  and  found  it  necessary  to  seek  subsistence  as  corrector  of  the  press  to 
Mr  Strachao,  the  celebrated  printer.      While  prosecuting   this  employment. 


WILLIAM  RUSSELL.  215 

he  published  several  essays  in  prose  and  verse,  but  without  fixing  the  attention 
of  the  world  in  any  eminent  degree.  His  "  Sentimental  Tales  '  appeared  in 
1770;  his  "Fables,  Sentimental  and  Moral,"  and  translation  of  Thomas's 
"  Essay  on  the  Character  of  Women,''  in  1772  ;  and  his  "  Julia,"  a  poetical 
Romance,  in  1774.  Other  pieces  were  scattered  throughout  the  periodical 
works.  His  success  \ras  nevertheless  such  as  to  enable  him  to  give  up  his  office 
at  the  press,  ,ind  depend  upon  his  pen  for  subsistence.  After  an  unsuccessful 
History  of  America,  he  produced,  in  1779,  the  first  two  volumes  of  tlie  work 
by  which  alone  his  name  has  been  rescued  from  oblivion — **  The  History  of 
Modern  Europe  :"  the  three  remaining  volumes  appeared  in  1784. 

This  has  ever  since  been  reckoned  a  useful  and  most  convenient  work  on 
the  subject  which  it  treats.  "  It  possesses,"  says  Dr  Irving,  with  A\hose  opinion 
we  entirely  concur,  "  great  merit,  as  a  popular  view  of  a  very  extensive  period 
of  history.  The  author  displays  no  inconsiderable  judgment  in  the  selection  of 
liis  leading  incidents,  and  in  the  general  arrangement  of  his  materials ;  and  he 
seems  to  have  studied  the  philosophy  of  history  with  assiduity  and  success.  His 
narrative  is  always  free  from  languor  ;  and  his  liberal  reflections  are  conveyed 
in  a  lively  and  elegant  style."  Ur  Irving  states  that,  in  the  composition  of  each 
volume  of  this  book,  the  author  spent  twelve  months.  He  closed  the  history 
with  the  peace  of  Paris  in  1763  ;  and  it  has  been  continued  to  the  close  of  the 
reign  of  George  IV.,  by  Dr  Coote  and  other  writers. 

Mr  Russell's  studies  were  interrupted  for  a  while  in  1780,  by  a  voyage  to 
Jamaica,  which  he  undertook  for  the  purpose  of  recovering  some  money  left 
there  by  a  deceased  brother.  In  1787,  he  married  Miss  Scott,  and  retired  to 
a  farm  called  Knottyholm,  near  Langholm,  where  he  spent  the  remainder  of 
his  days  in  an  elegant  cottage  on  the  banks  of  the  Esk.  In  1792,  he  received 
the  degree  of  doctor  of  laws  from  St  Andrews,  and  in  the  ensuing  year 
published  the  first  two  volumes  of  a  "History  of  Ancient  Europe,"  which 
is  characterized  by  nearly  the  same  qualities  as  the  former  work.  He  did 
not  live,  however,  to  complete  this  undertaking,  being  cut  off  by  a  sudden 
stroke  of  palsy,  December  25,  1793.  He  was  buried  in  the  church -yard 
of  the  parish  of  Westerkirk.  This  accomplished  writer  left  a  widow  and  a 
daughter. 

Dr  Russell  was  a  man  of  indefatigable  industry.  Before  he  had  perfected 
one  scheme,  another  always  presented  itself  to  his  mind.  Besides  two  complete 
tragedies,  entitled  "  Pyrrhus,"  and  "  Zenobia,"  he  left  behind  him  an  analysis 
of  Bryant's  Mythology,  and  the  following  unfinished  productions  :  1.  The  earl 
of  Strafford,  a  tragedy.  2.  Modern  Life,  a  comedy.  3.  The  Love  Marriage, 
an  opera.  4.  Human  Happiness,  a  poem  intended  to  have  been  composed  in 
four  books.  5.  A  Historical  and  Philosophical  View  of  the  Progress  of  man- 
kind in  the  knowledge  of  the  Terraqueous  Globe.  6.  The  History  of  Modern 
Europe,  Part  III.  from  the  Peace  of  Paris  in  1763,  to  the  general  pacification 
in  1783.  7.  The  History  of  England  from  the  beginning  of  the  reign  of 
George  III.  to  the  conclusion  of  the  American  war.  In  the  composition  of  the 
last  of  these  works  he  was  engaged  at  the  time  of  his  death.  It  was  to  be  com- 
prised in  three  volumes  8vo,  for  the  copyright  of  which  Mr  Cadell  had  stipu- 
lated to  pay  seven  hundred  and  fifty  pounds. 

"  Dr  Russell,"  says  one  who  knew  hini,^  "  without  exhibiting  the  graces  of 
polished  life,  was  an  agreeable  companion,  and  possessed  a  considerable  fund  of 
general  knowledge,  and  a  zeal  for  literature  and  genius  which  approached  to 

'  Mr  Alexander  Chalmers,  in  his  General  Biographical  Dictionarj- — Art.  William 
Russell. 


216  JOHN  RUTHERFORD.— SAMUEL  RTJTHERrORD. 


enthusiasm.  In  all  iiis  undertakings  he  was  strictly  honourable,  and  deserved 
the  confidence  reposed  in  him  by  his  employers." 

RUTHERFORD,  Johx,  a  learned  physician  of  the  eighteenth  century,  was 
the  son  of  the  reverend  3Ir  Rutherford,  minister  of  the  parish  of  Yarrow,  in 
Selkirkshire,  and  was  born,  August  1,  1695.  After  going  through  a  classical 
course  at  the  school  of  Selkirk,  and  studying  mathematics  and  natural  philoso- 
phy at  the  Edinburgh  university,  he  engaged  himself  as  apprentice  to  a  surgeon 
in  that  city,  with  whom  he  remained  till  1716,  when  he  went  to  London.  He 
there  attended  the  hospitals,  and  the  lectures  of  Dr  Douglas  on  anatomy,  Audre 
on  surgery,  and  Strother  on  materia  medica.  He  afterwards  studied  at  Leyden, 
under  Boerhaare,  and  at  Paris  and  Rheims ;  re<'eiving  from  the  university  of 
the  latter  city  his  degree  of  M.  D.  in  July,  1719. 

Having,  in  1721,  settled  as  a  physician  in  E  linburgh,  Dr  Rutherford  was 
one  of  that  fraternity  of  able  and  distinguished  men, — consisting,  besides,  of 
Monro,  Sinclair,  Pluramer,  and  Innes, — who  established  the  medical  school, 
which  still  flourishes  in  the  Scottish  capital.  3Ionro  ha  3  been  lecturing  on 
anatomy  for  a  few  years,  when,  in  1725,  the  other  gentlemen  above  mentioned 
began  to  give  lectures  on  the  other  departments  of  medical  science.  When  the 
professorships  were  finally  adjusted  on  the  death  of  Dr  Innes,  the  chair  of  the 
practice  of  medicine  fell  to  the  share  of  Dr  Rutherford.  He  continued  in  that 
honourable  station  till  the  year  1765,  delivering  his  lectures  always  in  Latin, 
of  which  language  it  is  said  he  had  a  greater  command  than  of  his  own.  About 
the  year  1748,  he  began  the  system  of  clinical  lectures  ;  a  most  important  im- 
provement in  the  medical  course  of  the  university.  After  retiring,  in  1765, 
from  his  professional  duties,  Dr  Rutherford  lived,  highly  respected  by  all  the 
eminent  physicians  who  had  been  his  pupils,  till  1779,  when  he  died  in  the 
eighty-fourth  year  of  his  age.  This  venerable  person,  by  his  daughter  Anne 
Rutherford,  was  the  grandfather  of  that  eminent  ornament  of  modern  litera- 
ture. Sir  Walter  ScotL 

RUTHERFORD,  Samdel,  a  celebrated  divine,  was  born  about  the  year 
1600,  in  the  parish  of  Nisbet,  (now  annexed  to  Crailing,)  in  Roxburghshire, 
where  his  parents  seem  to  have  been  engaged  in  agi'icultural  pursuits.  The 
locality  and  circumstances  of  his  early  education  are  unknown.  He  entered,  in 
1617,  <is  a  student  at  the  university  of  Edinburgh,  where  he  took  his  degree  of 
master  of  arts  in  1621.  Nothing  has  been  recorded  of  the  rank  he  held,  or  the 
appearances  he  made  as  a  student,  but  they  must  have  been  at  least  respectable  ; 
for  at  the  end  of  two  years,  we  find  him  elected  one  of  the  regents  of  the  col- 
lege. Ou  this  occasion,  he  had  three  competitors ;  one  of  them  of  the  same 
standing  with  himself,  and  two  of  them  older.  Of  these,  3Ir  Will,  a  master 
of  the  high  school,  according  to  Crawford,  in  his  history  of  the  university, 
•'  pleased  the  judges  best,  for  his  experience  and  actual  knowledge :  yet  the  whole 
regents,  out  of  their  particular  knowledge  of  Mr  Samuel  Rutherford,  demon- 
strated to  them  his  eminent  abilities  of  mind  and  virtuous  dispositions,  where- 
with the  judges  being  satisfied,  declared  him  successor  in  the  profession  of 
humanity."  How  he  acted  in  this  situation,  we  have  not  been  told ;  nor 
did  he  continue  long  enough  to  make  his  qualifications  generally  apparent,  be- 
ing forced  to  demit  his  cliarge,  as  asserted  by  Crawford,  on  account  of  some 
scandal  in  his  marriage,  towards  the  end  of  the  year  1G25,  only  two  years  after 
he  had  entered  upon  it.  What  that  scandal  in  his  marriage  was,  has  never 
been  explained ;  but  it  is  presumed  to  have  been  trifling,  as  it  weighed  so  little 
in  the  estimation  of  the  town  council  of  Edinburgh,  the  patrons  of  the  univer- 
sity, that  they  granted  him  "  ane  honest  gratification  at  his  demission ;"  and  at 
a  subsequent  period,  in  conjunction  with  the  presbytery,  warmly  solicited  him 


SAMUEL   RUTHEREOKD.  217 


to  become  one  of  the  niinistei-s  of  the  city,  particularly  with  a  view  to  his  being 
appointed  to  the  divinity  chair  in  the  university,  so  soon  as  a  vacancy  should  take 
place  ;  and  they  were  disappointed  in  their  views  with  regard  to  hiui,  only  by 
the  voice  of  the  general  assembly  of  tiie  church,  which  appointed  him  to  St  An- 
drews. Kelieved  from  the  duty  of  teaching  others,  Mr  Rutherford  seems  now 
to  have  devoted  himself  to  the  study  of  divinity  under  Mr  Andrew  Ramsay, 
whose  prelections,  it  is  not  improbable,  he  frequented  during  the  time  he  acted 
as  a  regent  in  teaching  Iiumanity.  Theology,  indeed,  in  those  days,  was  con- 
joined with  every  part  of  education.  This  was  particularly  the  case  in  the  col- 
lege of  Edinburgh,  where  tlie  principal,  every  Wednesday,  at  three  o'clock,  de- 
livered a  lecture  upon  a  theological  subject,  to  the  whole  of  the  students,  assem- 
bled in  the  common  hall.  The  students  were  also  regularly  assembled  every 
Sunday  morning  in  their  several  class-rooms,  along  with  their  regents,  where 
they  were  employed  in  reading  the  Scriptures  ;  after  which  they  attended  with 
their  regents  the  public  services  of  religion  ;  returned  again  to  the  college,  and 
gave  an  analysis  of  the  sermons  they  had  heard,  and  of  the  portion  of  Scripture 
they  had  read  in  the  morning.  By  these  means,  their  biblical  knowledge  kept 
pace  with  their  other  acquirements,  and  they  were  insensibly  trained  to  habits 
of  seriousness  and  devotion.  In  this  manner  were  all  our  early  reformers  educat- 
ed ,•  and  though  they  spent  less  time  in  the  theological  class,  properly  so  called, 
than  is  generally  done  in  modern  times,  judging  by  the  effects  that  followed  their 
administrations,  as  well  as  by  the  specimens  of  their  works  Uiat  yet  remain, 
they  were  not  less  qualified  for  their  work,  than  any  of  those  who  have  suc- 
ceeded them.  When,  or  by  Avhom  Mr  Rutherford  was  licensed  to  preach  the 
gospel,  has  not  been  recorded  ;  but  in  the  year  1627,  he  was  settled  pastor  of 
the  parish  of  Anwolh,  in  the  stewartry  of  Kirkcudbright.  Anwolh,  before 
the  Reformation,  had  been  a  dependency  on  the  monastery  of  St  Mary's  Isle  ; 
but  was  united  quoad  sacra  to  Kirkdale  and  Kirkmabreck,  and  the  three 
parishes  were  under  the  ministry  of  one  clergyman.  In  consequence  of  "  this 
most  inconvenient  union,"  the  people  of  Anwoth  had  sermon  only  every  alter- 
nate Sabbath.  It  was  now,  however,  disjoined  from  the  other  parishes,  and 
a  place  of  worship  had  been  newly  built  for  their  accommodation  ;  which, 
though  the  parish  has  erected  a  modem  and  more  elegant  church,  is  still 
preserved,  and  regarded,  for  the  sake  of  the  first  occupant,  the  subject  of 
tliis  memoir,  with  a  kind  of  religious  veneration.  The  disjunction  of  the 
parishes  had  been  principally  effected  by  the  exertions  of  John  Gordon  of  Ken- 
nmre,  afterwards  created  viscount  Kenmure,  who  had  selected  the  celebrated  Mr 
John  Livingstone  to  occupy  it.  Circumstances,  however,  prevented  that  ar- 
rangement from  taking  effect;  and  "  the  Lord,"  says  Livingstone  in  his  me- 
moirs, "  provided  a  great  deal  better  for  them,  for  they  got  that  worthy  servant 
of  Christ,  Mr  Samuel  Rutherford."  Of  the  manner  of  his  settlement,  we  know 
no  particulars;  only  that,  by  some  means  or  other,  he  succeeded  in  being  settled 
Avithout  acknowledging  the  bishops,  which  was  no  easy  matter  at  that  time. 
Perhaps  no  man  ever  undertook  a  pastoral  charge  with  a  more  thorough  con- 
viction of  its  importance  than  Rutherford  ;  and  the  way  had  been  so  well  pre- 
pared before  him,  that  he  entered  upon  it  with  great  advantages,  and  his  endea- 
vours were  followed  by  very  singular  effects.  The  powerful  preaching  of  Mr 
John  Welsh,  aided  by  his  other  labours  of  love,  had  diffused  a  spirit  of  religion 
through  air  that  district,  which  was  still  vigorous,  though  he  had  left  Kirkcud- 
bright seventeen  years  before. 

Rutherford  was  accustomed  to  rise  every  morning  at  three  o'clock.  The 
early  part  of  ihe  day  he  spent  in  prayer  and  meditation ;  the  remainder  he  de- 
voted to  the  more  public  duties  of  his  calling,  visiting  the  sick,  catechising  his 


218  SAMUEL  RUTHERFORD. 


flock,  and  instructing  them,  in  a  progress  from  house  to  house.  "  They  were 
the  cause  and  objects,"  he  informs  us,  "  of  his  tears,  care,  fear,  and  daily 
prayers.  He  laboured  among  them  early  and  late ;  and  my  witness,"  he  de- 
clares to  them,  "  is  above,  that  your  heaven  would  be  two  heavens  to  me,  and 
the  salvation  of  you  all,  as  tno  salvations  to  me."  Nor  were  his  labours  con- 
fined to  Anwotb.  *'  He  was,"  says  Livingstone,  "  a  great  strengthener  of  all 
the  Christians  in  that  country,  who  had  been  the  fruits  of  the  ministry  of  Mr 
John  Welsh,  the  time  he  had  been  at  Kirkcudbright;"  and  the  whole  country, 
we  are  told  by  Mr  31'Ward,  accounted  themselves  his  particular  flock. 

In  the  month  of  June,  1630,  Mr  Rutherford  was  bereaved  of  his  wife,  after 
an  illness  of  upwards  of  thirteen  months,  when  they  had  been  yet  scarcely 
five  years  married.  Her  disease  seems  to  have  been  attended  with  severe  pain, 
and  he  appears  to  have  been  much  affected  by  her  sufferings.  "  My  wife,"  he 
observes  in  one  of  his  letters,  "  is  still  in  exceeding  great  torment,  night  and 
day.  Pray  for  us,  for  my  life  was  never  so  wearisome  to  me.  God  hath  filled 
me  with  gall  and  wormwood ;  but  I  believe  (which  holds  up  my  head  above  the 
water)  it  is  good  for  a  man  that  he  bear  the  yoke  in  his  youth."  Her  death 
seems  to  have  greatly  distressed  him,  and,  though  he  nowhere  in  his  corres- 
pondence ventures  to  introduce  the  subject  directly,  he  frequently  alludes  to  it  in 
terras  of  the  deepest  tenderness.  He  was  himself  afflicted,  at  the  time  of  his  wife's 
death,  with  a  fever  which  lasted  for  thirteen  weeks,  and  which  left  him  at  last  in 
a  state  of  such  debility,  that  it  was  long  before  he  could  perform  the  duties  of 
his  calling.  At  this  period  his  widowed  mother  lived  with  him,  and  for  a  time 
probably  managed  his  family  aff^airs.  She  too,  however,  died  before  he  left 
Anwoth  in  1C36.  In  the  month  of  September,  1634,  Mr  Rutherford  lost  his 
great  patron,  John  Gordon,  who  had  been  created  in  the  previous  year  viscount 
of  Kenmure,  and  a  storm  was  now  brooding  over  him  which  was  soon  to  drive 
him  from  his  station  at  Anwoth.  He  even  went  the  length  of  allowing  them 
their  own  choice  of  any  man,  if  they  would  avoid  Rutherford,  who  intreated 
them  to  try  the  Lord  if  they  had  warrant  of  him  to  seek  no  man  in  the  world 
but  one  only  when  there  are  choice  of  good  men  to  be  had.  The  see  of  Gal- 
loway in  the  mean  time  became  vacant  by  the  death  of  Lamb,  who  was  succeed- 
ed by  Sydserft",  bishop  of  Brechin,  anArminian,  and  a  man  of  the  most  intoler- 
ant disposition.  This  appointment  gave  a  new  turn  to  affairs  in  that  quar- 
ter. A  person  of  sentiments  altogether  opposite  to  those  of  the  people  of 
Kirkcudbright,  was  forced  upon  them,  while  their  old  and  valuable  pastor  was 
forbidden  the  exercise  of  any  part  of  his  ofiice.  Nor  did  Rutherford  escape. 
He  had  been  summoned  before  the  high  commissioners  in  the  year  1630,  at  the 
instance  of  a  profligate  person  in  his  parish.  Sydserff",  bishop  of  Galloway, 
had  erected  a  high  commission  court  within  his  own  diocese,  before  which 
Rutherford  was  called,  and  deprived  of  his  office  in  1636.  This  sentence  was 
immediately  confirmed  by  the  high  commission  at  Edinburgh,  and  he  was  sen- 
tenced before  the  20th  of  August  to  confine  himself  within  the  town  of  Aber- 
deen till  it  should  be  the  king's  pleasure  to  relieve  him.  The  crimes  charged 
against  him  were,  preaching  against  the  Articles  of  Perth,  and  writing  against  the 
Arminians.  The  time  allowed  him  did  not  permit  of  his  visiting  his  friends  or 
his  flock  at  Anwoth ;  but  he  paid  a  visit  to  David  Dickson  at  Irvine,  whence 
he  wrote,  "  being  on  his  journey  to  Christ's  palace  at  Aberdeen."  He  arrived 
at  his  place  of  confinement  within  the  time  specified  ;  being  accompanied  by  a 
deputation  from  his  parish  of  Anwoth.  His  reception  in  this  great  stronghold 
of  Scottish  episcopacy  was  not  very  gratifying.  The  learned  doctors,  as  the 
clergy  of  Aberdeen  were  called  par  excellence,  hastened  to  let  him  feel  their 
superiority,  and  to  display  the  loyally  of  their  faith  by  confuting  the  principles 


SAMUEL   RL'TIIERFORD.  219 

lield  by  tho  pex-secuted  stranger.  The  pulpits  were  everywhere  made  to  ring 
against  liini,  and  Dr  Barron,  their  principal  leader,  did  not  scruple  to  attack 
him  personally  for  his  antipathy  to  the  doctrines  of  Anninius  and  the  cere- 
monies ;  "  but  three  yokings,"  Rutherford  afterwards  wrote,  "  laid  him  by,  and 
I  have  not  been  since  troubled  with  him,"  Notwithstanding  the  coolness  of 
his  first  reception,  he  soon  became  popular  in  Aberdeen,  and  his  sentiments  be- 
ginning to  gain  ground,  the  doctors  were  induced  to  petition  the  court  that 
he  might  be  removed  still  farther  north,  or  banished  from  the  kingdom.  This 
last  seems  to  have  been  determined  on,  and  a  warrant  by  the  king  forwarded 
to  Scotland  to  that  elTect ;  the  execution  of  which  was  only  prevented  by  the 
establishment  of  tiie  Tables  at  Edinburgh,  and  the  consequent  downfall  of  epis- 
copacy. In  consequence  of  these  movements,  Rutherford  ventured  to  leave 
Aberdeen,  and  to  return  to  his  beloved  people  at  Anwoth,  in  the  month  of 
February,  1638,  having  been  absent  from  them  rather  more  than  a  year  and  a 
half.  His  flock  had,  in  the  mean  time,  successfully  resisted  all  the  efibrts  of 
Sydserif  to  impose  upon  them  a  minister  of  his  own  cho(»ing.  It  is  not  proba- 
ble, however,  that  after  this  period,  they  enjoyed  much  of  the  ministrations 
of  Rutherford,  as  we  soon  after  find  him  actively  employed  in  the  metropolis 
in  forwarding,  by  his  powerful  and  impressive  eloquence,  the  great  work  of  re- 
formation which  was  then  going  so  successfully  forward.  On  the  renewal  of 
the  Covenant,  he  was  deputed,  along  with  Mr  Andrew  Cant,  to  prepare  the 
people  of  Glasgow  for  a  concurrence  in  that  celebrated  instrument.  He  was  also 
a  delegate  from  the  presbytery  of  Kirkcudbright  to  the  general  assembly,  which 
met  in  that  city  in  November,  1638,  and  was  by  tliat  court  honourably  assoilzied 
from  the  charges  preferred  against  him  by  the  bishops  and  the  high  commission. 
To  the  commission  of  this  assembly  applications  were  made  by  the  corporation 
of  Edinburgh  to  have  Mr  Rutherford  transported  from  Anwoth,  to  be  one  of 
the  ministers  of  that  city,  and  by  the  university  of  St  Andrews  to  have  him 
nominated  professor  of  divinity  to  the  new  college  there.  To  the  latter  situa- 
tion he  was  appointed  by  the  commission,  greatly  against  his  own  mind,  and  to 
the  no  small  grief  of  the  people  of  Anwotli,  who  omitted  no  efibrt  to  retain 
him.  The  petitions  of  the  parish  of  Anwoth,  and  of  the  county  of  Galloway 
on  this  occasion  are  both  preserved,  and  never  were  more  honourable  testimonies 
borne  to  the  worth  of  an  individual,  or  stronger  evidence  afforded  of  the  high 
estimation  in  which  his  services  were  held.  The  public  necessities  of  the 
church,  however,  were  supposed  to  be  such  as  to  set  aside  all  private  considera- 
tions, and  Rutherford  proceeded  to  the  scene  of  his  new  duties  la  October, 
1639.  On  the  19th  of  that  month,  having  previously  entered  upon  his  labours 
in  the  college,  he  was  inducted  by  the  presbytery  as  colleague  to  Mr  Robert 
Blair  in  the  church  of  St  Andrews,  which  seems  at  this  time  to  have  been  no  very 
pleasing  situation.  In  the  days  of  Melville  and  Buclianan  the  university  was 
the  most  flourishing  in  the  kingdom  ;  now  it  was  become,  under  tiie  care  of  the 
bishops,  the  very  nursery  of  superstition  in  worship,  and  error  in  doctrine  : 
"  but  God,"  says  one  of  Ruthertbrd's  pupils,  "did  so  singularly  second  his  in- 
defatigable pains,  both  in  teaching  and  preaching,  tliat  the  university  forthwith 
became  a  Lebanon,  out  of  which  were  taken  cedars  for  building  the  house  of 
God  throughout  the  land."  In  the  Assembly  of  1640,  Rutherford  was  in- 
volved  in  a  dispute  respecliiig  private  society  meetings,  which  he  defended 
along  with  3Iessrs  Robert  Blair  and  David  Dickson,  against  the  greater  part  of 
his  brethren,  who,  under  the  terrors  of  independency,  which  in  a  short  time 
overspread  the  land,  condemned  them.  It  was  probably  owing  to  this  dispute, 
that  two  years  afterwards  he  published  his  "  Teaceable  Plea  for  Paul's  Presby- 
tery," an  excellent  and  temperate  treatise ;   equally  remote   from  anarchy  on 


220  SAMUEL  RUTHEEFORB. 


the  one  hand,  and  that  unbending  tymnny  Mhich  presbytery  has  too  often  as- 
sumed on  tlie  other.  In  1642,  he  received  a  call  to  the  parish  of  West 
Calder,  which  he  was  not  perniiited  to  accept,  though  he  seems  to  have  been 
desirous  of  doing  so.  He  was  one  of  the  commissioners  from  the  general  as- 
sembly of  the  church  of  Scotland  to  the  Westminster  assembly,  where  his  ser- 
vices were  acknowledged  by  all  parties  to  have  been  of  great  importance.  The 
other  commissioners  from  the  general  assembly  of  the  church  of  Scotland,  were 
permiUed  to  visit  their  native  country  by  turns,  and  to  report  the  progress 
which  was  made  in  the  great  work ;  but  Rutherford  never  quitted  liis  post  till 
his  mission  was  accomplished.  His  wife  (for  he  married  the  second  time  after 
entering  upon  his  charge  at  St  Andrews,)  and  all  his  family,  seem  to  have  ac- 
companied him.  Two  of  his  children,  apparently  all  that  he  then  had,  died 
while  he  was  in  London.  He  had  also  along  with  him  as  his  amanuensis,  Mr 
Robert  M'Ward,  afterwards  minister  of  the  Tron  church,  Glasgow,  and  who  was 
banished  for  nonconformity  at  the  Restoration.  Mr  Rutherford  exerted  himself 
to  promote  the  common  cause,  not  only  in  the  assembly,  but  by  means  of  the 
press,  in  a  variety  of  publications,  bearing  the  impress  of  great  learning  and 
research,  combined  with  clear  and  comprehensive  views  of  the  subjects  of  which 
they  treated.  The  first  of  these  was  the  "  Due  right  of  Presbytery,  or  a 
Peaceable  Plea  for  the  Government  of  the  Church  of  Scotland,"  a  work  of  great 
erudition,  and  which  called  forth  a  reply  from  Mr  Mather  of  New  England ; 
one  of  the  best  books  that  has  yet  been  produced  on  that  side  of  the  question. 
The  same  year  he  published  "  Lex  Rex,"  a  most  rational  reply  to  a  piece  of 
insane  loyalty  emitted  by  John  3Iaxwell,  the  exconmiunicated  bishop  of  Ross. 
Next  year,  1G45,  he  published  "  The  Trial  and  Triumph  of  Faith,"  an  admir- 
able treatise  of  practical  divinity  ;  and,  in  1646,  "  The  Divine  Right  of  Church 
Government,  in  opposition  to  the  Erastians."  In  1647,  he  published  another 
excellent  piece  of  practical  theology,  "  Christ  dying  and  drawing  Sinners," 
which  was  followed  next  year,  though  he  had  then  returned  to  Scotland,  by  a 
"  Survey  of  the  Spiritual  Antichrist,"  written  against  Saltmarsh,  Dee,  Town, 
Crisp,  Eaton,  and  the  other  Antinomians  of  that  day.  In  1649,  he  published 
at  London  a  "  Free  Disputation  against  pretended  Liberty  of  Conscience,"  par- 
ticularly directed  against  the  Independents.  All  of  these  productions  are  high- 
ly Iionourable  to  the  talents  of  the  author,  and  place  his  industry  and  fertility 
of  mind  in  a  singularly  favourable  point  of  view.  Rutherford,  in  returning  to 
the  former  scene  of  his  professorial  and  pastoral  labours,  must  have  felt  agree- 
ably relieved  from  the  business  and  the  bustle  of  a  popular  assembly,  and  hoped, 
probably,  that  now  he  might  rest  in  his  lot.  Far  otherwise,  liowever,  was  the 
case.  He  was,  in  January,  1649,  at  the  recommendation  of  the  commission  of 
the  general  assembly,  appointed  principal  of  the  New  college,  of  which  he  was 
already  professor  of  divinity  ;  and  not  long  after,  he  was  elevated  to  the  rec- 
torship of  the  university.  An  attempt  had  also  been  made,  in  the  general  as- 
sembly of  1649,  to  have  him  removed  to  the  university  of  Edinburgh,  which, 
Baillie  says,  **  was  thought  to  be  absurd,  and  so  was  laid  aside."  He  had  an 
invitation  at  the  same  time  to  the  chair  of  divinity  and  Hebrew  in  the  university 
of  Hardewyrk  in  Holland,  which  he  declined  ;  and  on  the  20th  of  May,  1661, 
he  was  elected  to  fill  the  divinity  chair  in  the  university  of  Utrecht.  This  ap- 
pointment was  immediately  transmitted  to  him  by  his  brother,  Mr  James 
Rutherford,  then  an  officer  in  the  Dutch  service,  who,  by  the  way  fell  into  the 
power  of  an  English  cruiser,  and  was  stripped  of  everything,  and  confined 
a  prisoner  in  Leith,  till  he  was,  through  the  intervention  of  the  States,  set  at 
liberty.  As  he  had,  in  consequence  of  this  disaster,  nothing  but  a  verbal  invi- 
tation to  offer,  Rutherford  refused  to  accept  it.     James  Rutherford  returned 


SAMUEL   RUTHERrORD.  221 

directly  to  Holland,  and  the  magistrates  of  Utrecht,  still  hoping  to  succeed, 
sent  him  back  with  a  formal  invitation  in  the  end  of  the  same  year.  Rutherford 
seems  now  to  have  been  in  some  degree  of  hesitation,  and  requested  six  months 
to  advise  upon  the  subject.  At  the  end  of  this  period,  he  wrote  to  the  patrons 
of  the  college,  thanking  them  for  the  liigh  honour  they  had  done  him,  but 
informing  them,  that  lie  could  not  tliink  of  abandoning  his  own  church  in  the 
perilous  circumstances  in  which  it  then  stood. 

The  whole  of  the  subsequent  life  of  Samuel  Rutherford  was  one  con- 
tinued struggle  with  tlie  open  and  concealed  enemies  of  the  church  of  Scot- 
land. After  the  Restoration,  when,  though  infirm  in  body,  his  spirit  was 
still  alive  to  the  cause  of  religion,  he  recommended  that  some  of  the  Pro- 
testers should  be  sent  to  the  king,  to  give  a  true  representation  of  the 
state  of  matters  in  the  church,  which  he  well  knew  would  never  be  done  by 
Sharpe,  whom  the  Resolution  party  had  employed,  and  in  whom  they  had  the 
most  perfect  confidence.  When  the  Protesters  applied  to  the  Resolution  party 
to  join  them  in  su<;h  a  necessary  duty,  they  refused  to  have  any  thing  to  do 
with  their  more  zealous  brethren  ;  and  when  these  met  at  Edinburgh  to  consult 
on  the  matter,  they  were  dispersed  by  authority,  their  papers  seized,  and  the 
principal  persons  among  them  imprisoned.  This  was  the  first  act  of  the 
committee  of  estates  after  the  Restoration  ;  and  it  was  composed  of  the  same 
persons  Avho  had  sworn  to  the  covenant  along  with  Charles  ten  years  be- 
fore. The  next  act  of  the  committee,  was  an  order  for  burning  "  Lex  Rex,'' 
and  punishing  all  who  should  afterwards  be  found  in  possession  of  a  copy.  The 
book  was  accordingly  burnt,  with  every  mark  of  indignity,  at  the  cross  of 
Edinburgh  ;  a  ceremony  which  Sharpe  repeated  in  front  of  the  new  college,  be- 
neath Mr  Rutherford's  windows,  in  St  Andrews.  Rutherford  was  at  the  same 
time  deprived  of  his  situation  in  the  college,  his  stipend  confiscated,  himself  con- 
fined to  his  own  house,  and  cited  to  appear  before  the  ensuing  parliament,  on  a 
charge  of  high  treason.  Before  the  meeting  of  parliament,  however,  he  was 
beyond  the  reach  of  all  his  enemie;.  He  had  long  been  in  bad  health,  and 
now  the  utter  ruin  that  he  saw  coming  on  the  church  entirely  broke  his  spirit. 
Sensible  that  he  was  dying,  he  published,  on  the  26th  of  February,  1661,  a 
testimony  to  the  Reformation  in  Great  Britain  and  Ireland.  This  testimony  oc- 
cupies ten  octavo  pages,  and  is  remarkably  clear  and  particular.  Of  his  Inst 
moments  we  can  afford  space  only  for  a  very  brief  account.  He  seemed  to  en- 
joy a  singular  rapture  and  elevation  of  spirit.  "  I  shall  shine,"  he  said  ;  **  I 
shall  see  him  as  he  is  :  I  shall  see  him  reign,  and  all  his  fair  company  with 
him,  and  I  shall  have  my  share.  Mine  eyes  shall  see  my  Redeemer  ;  these 
very  eyes  of  mine,  and  none  for  rae.  I  disclaim,"  he  remarked  at  the  same 
time,  "  all  that  ever  God  made  me  will  or  do,  and  I  look  upon  it  as  defiled  or 
imperfect,  as  coming  from  me.  But  Christ  is  to  me  wisdom,  righteousness, 
sanclification,  and  redemption.  Of  the  schisms  that  had  rent  the  church,"  he  re- 
marked, "  those  whom  ye  call  Protesters  are  the  witnesses  of  Jesus  Christ.  I 
hope  never  to  depart  from  that  cause,  nor  side  with  those  of  the  opposite  party, 
who  have  broken  their  covenant  oftener  than  once  or  twice.  But  I  helieve  the 
Lord  will  build  Zion,  and  repair  the  waste  places  of  Jacob.  Oh  to  obtain 
mercy  to  wrestle  with  God,  for  their  salvation  !"  To  his  only  surviving  child  (a 
daughter)  he  said,  "  I  have  left  you  upon  the  Lord;  it  may  be  you  will  tell 
this  to  others,  that  the  lines  are  fallen  to  nie  in  pleasant  places.  I  have  got  a 
goodly  heritage.  I  bless  the  Lord  that  he  gave  me  counsel."  His  last  words 
were,  "  Glory,  glory  dwelleth  in  luimanuel's  land  ;"  and  he  expired  on  the 
morning  of  the  20th  of  March,  1G61,  in  the  sixty-first  year  of  his  age. 

Mr  Rutherford  was  unquestionably  one .  of  the  most  able,  learned,  and  con- 


222  THOMAS  RYMER. 


sisteot  presbyterians  of  his  age  ;  while  in  his  Familiar  Letters,  published  posthtu 
niously,  he  evinces  a  fervour  of  feeling  and  fancy,  that,  in  other  circumstances, 
and  otherwise  exerted,  would  have  ranked  him  among  the  most  successful  culti* 
vators  of  literature.  Wodrow  has  observed,  that  those  who  knew  him  best, 
were  at  a  loss  which  to  admire,  his  sublime  genius  in  the  school,  or  his 
familiar  condescensions  in  the  pulpit,  where  he  was  one  of  the  most  moving  and 
afiectionate  preachera  in  his  time,  or  perhaps  in  any  age  of  the  church. 

RYMER,  Thosias,  of  Ercildon,  commonly  called  Thomas  the  Rhymer,  and 
otherwise  styled  Thomas  Learmont,  was  a  distinguished  person  of  the  thirteenth 
century.  So  little  is  known  respecting  him,  that  even  his  name  has  become  a 
matter  of  controversy.  How  the  name  of  Learmont  came  to  be  given  him,  is  not 
known ;  but  in  none  of  the  early  authorities  do  we  find  it ;  and  although  it  has 
long  been  received  as  the  bard's  patronymic,  it  is  now,  by  inquiring  antiqna- 
ries,  considered  a  misnomer.  In  a  charter  granted  by  his  son  and  heir  to  the 
convent  of  Soltra,  he  is  called  Thomas  Rymer  de  Erceldun.  Robert  de 
Brunne,  Fordun,  Barbour,  and  Winton,  call  him  simply  Thomas  of  Erceldoun, 
while  Henry  the  minstrel  calls  him  Thomas  Rymer. 

Erceldoune,  cr,  according  to  the  modern  corruption,  Earlstown,  is  a  small 
village  on  the  right  bank  of  the  Leader  water,  in  Berwickshire.  At  the 
western  extremity  of  this  village,  stand,  after  a  lapse  of  seven  centuries,  the 
ruins  of  the  liouse  which  Thomas  inhabited,  called  Rhymer's  Tower  ;  and  in 
the  front  wall  of  the  village  church,  there  is  a  stone  with  this  inscription  on 
it: — 

Auld  Rymer's  race 
Lies  in  this  place. 

The  poet  must  have  lived  during  nearly  the  whole  of  the  thirteenth  century. 
His  romance  of  **  Sir  Tristram"  is  quoted  by  Gottfried  of  Strasburg,  who 
flourished  about  1230;  and  it  is  known  he  was  alive,  and  in  the  zenith  of 
his  prophetic  reputation,  in  1286,  at  the  death  of  Alexander  III.  He  must 
have  been  dead,  however,  before  1299,  as  that  is  tlie  date  of  the  charter,  in 
which  his  son  calls  himself  Filius  et  hmres  Thomas  Rymour  de  Erceldon. 
Henry  the  minstrel  makes  him  take  a  part  in  the  adventures  of  Wallace,  in 
1296  ;  so,  if  this  authority  is  to  be  credited,  he  must  have  died  between  that 
year  and  1299. 

To  this  day,  the  name  of  Thomas  the  Rhymer  is  popularly  known  in  Scotland 
as  a  prophet ;  and  it  is  only  by  a  late  discovery  of  the  MS.  of  a  metrical  romance 
called  "  Sir  Tristram,"  that  he  has  acquired  a  less  exceptionable  claim  to  re- 
membrance. "  The  Prophecies  of  Thomas  the  Rhymer,"  were  published,  in 
Latin  and  English,  at  Edinburgh,  in  1615,  and  have  been  repeatedly  reprinted, 
copies  of  them  being  still  to  be  found  among  the  country  people  of  Scotland. 
He  is  mentioned  in  his  prophetic  capacity  by  many  of  our  early  writers.  Among 
the  most  noted  of  his   predictions,  is  the  following,  regarding  the  death  of 

Alexander  III.,  which  is  thus  narrated  by  Boece,  as  translated  by  Ballenden  : 

"  It  is  said,  the  day  afore  the  kingis  dethe,  the  erle  of  3Lirche  demandit  ane 
prophet  namit  Thomas  Rhymour,  otherwayis  namit  Ersiltoun,  quliat  wcdder 
suld  be  on  the  morow.  To  quhonie  answerit  this  Thomas,  that  on  the  morow 
afore  none,  sail  blow  the  gretist  wynd  that  ever  was  hard  afore  in  Scotland. 
On  the  morow,  quhen  it  was  neir  noon  the  lift  appering  loane,  but  ony  din  or 
tempest,  the  erle  send  for  this  propheit,  and  reprevit  hym  that  he  prognosticat 
sic  wynd  to  be,  and  nae  apperance  thairof.  This  Thomas  maid  litel  answer, 
bot  said,  noun  is  not  yet  gane.  And  incontinent  ane  man  came  to  the  yet, 
schawing  the  king  was  slain.     Than  said  the  prophet,  yone  is  the  wynd  tlut 


THOMAS   RYMER.  223 


sail  blaw  to  the  gret  calamity  and  truble  of  all  Scotland.  Thomas  wes  ane 
man  of  gret  admiration  to  the  peple,  and  schaw  sundry  thingis  as  thay  fell" 
The  common  sense  translation  of  this  story  is,  that  Tliomas  presaged  to  the  earl 
of  March  that  the  next  day  would  be  windy  ;  the  weather  proved  calm ;  but 
news  arrived  of  the  death  of  Alexander  III.,  which  gave  an  allegorical  turn  to 
the  prediction,  and  saved  the  credit  of  the  prophet. 

Barbour,  Winton,  Henry  the  Minstrel,  and  others,  all  refer  to  the  prophetic 
character  of  Thomas.  In  Barbour's  Bruce,  written  about  1370,  the  bishop  of 
St  Andrews  is  introduced  as  saying,  after  Bruce  had  slain  the  Red  Cumin : — 


I  hop  Thomas'  prophecy 

Off  Hersildo^vne,  werefyd  be 

In  him ;  for  swa  our  Lord  halp  me, 

I  haiff  gret  hop  he  schall  be  king, 

And  haifT  this  land  all  in  leding. 


Bruce,  ii.  86. 


Wintouii's  words  are  these  : — 


Of  this  sycht  quhilum  spak  Thomas 

Of  Erceldoune,  that  sajd  hi  deme, 

Thare  suld  meet  stalvrarty,  stark,  and  stenie. 

He  sayd  it  in  his  propliecie, 

But  how  he  wist,  it  was  ferly. 

Henry  the  Minstrel  represents  him  as  saying,  on  being  falsely  told  that  Wallace 
was  dead : — 

"  Forsuth,  or  he  decess, 
Mony  thousand  on  feild  sail  mak  Ihar  end. 
And  Scotland  thriss  he  sail  bring  to  the  pess ; 
So  gud  of  hand  agajne  sail  nevir  be  kend." 

Wallace,  B.  ii.  eh.  3. 

How  far  Rymer  himself  made  pretensions  to  the  character  of  a  prophet,  and 
how  far  the  reputation  has  been  conferred  upon  him  by  the  people  in  his  own 
time  and  since,  it  is  impossible  to  determine.  It  is  cei'tain,  however,  that  in 
almost  every  subseq'ient  age,  metrical  productions  came  under  public  notice, 
and  were  attributed  to  him,  though,  it  might  be  supposed,  they  were  in  general 
the  mere  coin  of  contemporary  wits,  applied  to  passing-  events.  There  are, 
nevertheless,  a  considerable  number  of  rhymes  and  proverbial  expressions,  of  an 
antique  and  primitive  character,  attributed  to  Thomas  the  Rhymer,  and  appli- 
cable  to  general  circumstances :  of  some  of  these  we  deem  it  by  no  meang  un- 
likely that  they  sprung  from  the  source  to  which  they  are  ascribed,  being  in 
some  instances  only  such  exertions  of  foresight,  as  a  man  of  cultivated  under- 
standing might  naturally  rtake  ;  and  in  others,  dreamy  vaticinations  of  evil. 
Avhich  never  have  been,  and  perhaps  never  will,  be  realized.  Many  of  these 
may  be  found  in  the  Border  Minstrelsy,  and  in  "  Popular  Rhymes  of  Scotland," 
and  the  "  Picture  of  Scotland,"  compilations  by  the  editor  of  the  present  dic- 
tionary. It  may  also  be  mentioned,  as  illustrative  of  the  forceful  character  of 
this  early  and  obscure  genius,  that  he  and  his  predictions  are  as  well  known  in 
the  Highlands  and  Hebrides  as  in  our  southern  counties.  The  Cambrian  and 
Caledonian  Magazine,  1833,  gives  the  two  following  Gaelic  predictions,  as 
imputed  to  him  by  the  Highlanders  : — 


224  THOMAS   RYMER. 


•*  Cuiridh  fiacail  nan  caoraich  an  crann  air  an  sparr," 
I'he  teeih  of  the  sheep  will  lay  the  plough  on  the  shelf, 

"  Bithidh  muileann  air  gach  alt,agus  nth  air  gach  cnoc;  tombac  aig  na  buachaillean,  a.'i 
grungaichean  gun  iiaire. "  i.  e.  There  shHll  be  a  mill  on  every  brook,  a  kiln  on  every  height; 
herds  shall  use  tobacco,  and  young  women  shall  be  wiihout  shame. 

In  the  introduction  to  Robert  de  Brunne's  Annals,  written  about  1238, 
Thomas  of  Erceldoune  is  coniinemorated  as  the  author  of  tha  incomparable 
romance  of  Sir  Tristrem.  Gottfried  of  Strasburg,  also,  a  German  minstrel  of 
the  13th  century,  already  alluded  to,  says,  that  many  of  his  piofession  told  the 
tale  of  Sir  Tristrem  imperfectly  and  incorrectly  ;  but  that  he  derived  his  au- 
thority from  "  Thomas  of  Britannia,  [evidently  our  Thomas,]  master  of  the 
art  of  romance,  who  had  read  the  history  in  British  books,  and  knew  the  lives 
of  all  the  lords  of  tiie  land,  and  made  them  known  to  us."  This  work, 
of  our  poet  was  considered  to  be  lost,  till  a  copy  of  it  was  discovered 
among  the  Auchinleck  MSS.  belonging  to  the  library  of  the  faculty  of  advocates, 
Edinburgh,  and  published,  with  introduction  and  notes,  by  Sir  Walter  Scott. 

From  the  opening  lines  of  this  copy,  viz. 

I  was  at  Erceldoune  ; 

With  Tomas  spak  y  thare ; 
Ther  herd  y  rede  in  roune, 

Who  Tristrem  gat  and  bare,  &c 

a  doubt  has  arisen  whether  it  be  the  identical  romance  composed  by  Thomas  of 
Erceldoune,  which  was  preferred  by  his  contemporaries  to  every  minstrel  tale 
of  the  time.  But  the  celebrated  editcr  very  satisfactorily  demonstrated,  from 
the  specific  marks  by  which  Robert  de  Brunne,  a  contemporary  of  Thomas,  de- 
scribes the  work,  that  this  must  be  the  genuine  Sir  Tristrem,  taken,  probably, 
from  the  recitation  of  a  minstrel  who  had  heard  and  retained  in  his  memory 
the  words  of  Thomas.  The  date  of  the  MS.  does  not  seem  to  be  much  later 
tlian  1330,  which  makes  an  interval  of  about  forty  years  between  it  and  the 
author's  time,  a  period  in  which  some  corruptions  may  have  been  introduced, 
but  no  material  change  in  the  formation  of  tiie  language.  Accordingly,  the 
structure  of  the  poem  bears  a  peculiar  character.  The  words  are  chiefly  those 
of  the  fourteenth  century  ;  but  the  turn  of  phrase  is,  either  from  antiquity  or 
the  aB'ectation  of  the  time  when  it  was  written,  close,  nervous,  and  concise,  even 
to  obscurity.  The  stanza  is  very  complicated,  consisting  of  eleven  lines,  of 
which  the  1st,  3d,  5tli,  and  7th  rhyme  together,  as  do  the  2d,  4th,  6th,  8th, 
and  lOth.  A  single  stanza  will  serve  to  show  its  intricate  and  difficult  struc- 
ture.    This  one  speaks  of  the  education  of  Tristrem  by  Roland  : 

Fiflene  yere  he  gan  him  fede, 

Sir  Rohant  the  trewe ; 
He  taught  him  ich  alede. 

Of  ich  maner  of  glewe; 
And  everich  plajing  thede. 

Old  lawes  and  newe ; 
On  hunting  oft  he  yede, 

To  swiche  alawe  he  drewe, 
Al  thus; 

More  he  coiithe  of  venerf, 
Than  couthe  Manerious. 


EIGHT  REVEREND  JOHN  SAGE.  225 

It  may  be  remarked  that  a  complicated  verse  has  been  a  favourite  among  the 
Scottish  poets  do^vn  to  the  present  time.  Burns,  for  instance,  has  injured  some 
of  his  best  pieces  by  adopting  the  jingling  stanza  of  the  "  Cherry  and  the 
Slae." 

By  the  recovery  of  this  work,  Scotland  can  lay  claim  to  a  poem  more 
ancient  than  England ;  and,  indeed,  it  uould  appear  from  what  is  said 
by  Robert  de  Brunne,  and  other  circumstances,  tliat  the  gests  of  the  northern 
minstrels  uere  uritten  in  an  ambitious  and  ornate  style  which  the  southern 
harpers  marred  in  repeating,  and  which  plebeian  audiences  were  unable  to  com- 
prehend ;  in  other  words,  that  the  English  language  received  its  first  rudiments 
of  improvement  in  this  corner  of  the  island,  where  it  is  now  supposed  to  be  most 
corrupted. 


SAGE,  (the  Right  Reverend)  John,  was  born  in  1G52,  in  the  parish  of 
Creich,  in  the  north-east  part  of  the  county  of  Fife,  where  his  ancestors  had 
lived  with  much  respect,  but  little  property,  for  sev^n  generations ;  his  father 
was  a  captain  in  lord  DufTus's  regiment,  whirh  was  engaged  in  the  defence  of 
Dundee,  when  it  was  stormed  and  taken  by  the  parliamentary  general,  3Ionk, 
on  the  30th  August,  1G51.  Captain  Sage's  property  was  diminished  in  pro- 
portion to  his  loyalty,  and  all  the  fortune  he  had  to  bestow  on  his  son  was  a 
liberal  education  and  his  own  principles  of  loyalty  and  virtue.  Young  Sage 
received  the  rudiments  of  his  education  at  the  school  of  his  native  parish,  and 
at  a  proper  age  was  removed  to  the  university  of  St  Andrews,  «here  he  remained 
during  the  usual  course,  performing  the  exercises  required  by  the  statutes  of 
the  Scottish  universities,  and  where  he  took  the  degree  of  master  of  arts  in  the 
year  1672.  He  made  letters  his  profession;  but,  his  means  being  narrow,  he 
was  compelled  to  accept  the  office  of  parochial  schoolmaster  of  Bingry  in  Fife, 
from  which  parish  he  was  soon  afterwards  removed  to  the  same  office  in  Tipper- 
muir,  near  Perth.  Though,  in  these  humble  stations,  he  wanted  many  of  the 
necessaries,  and  all  the  comforts  of  life,  he  prosecuted  his  studies  with  unwear- 
ied diligence ;  unfortunately,  however,  in  increasing  his  stock  of  learning,  he 
imbibed  the  seeds  of  several  diseases,  which  afflicted  him  through  the  whole  of 
his  life,  and,  notwithstanding  the  native  vigour  of  his  constitution,  tended  ulti- 
mately to  sliorten  his  days.  To  the  cultivated  mind  of  such  a  man  as  Sage, 
the  drudgery  of  a  parish  school  must  have  been  an  almost  intolerable  slavery ; 
he  therefore  readily  accepted  the  offer  from  Mr  Drummond  of  Cultmalundie, 
of  a  situation  in  his  family,  to  superintend  the  education  of  his  sons.  He  ac- 
companied these  young  persons  to  the  grammar  school  of  Perth,  and  afterwards 
attended  them  in  the  same  capacity  of  tutor  to  the  university  of  St  Andrews. 
At  Perth,  he  acquired  the  esteem  of  Dr  Rose,  who  was  afterwards  bishop  of 
Edinburgh,  and  one  of  the  most  distinguished  men  of  his  age  ;  and  at  St  An- 
drews, he  obtained  the  friendship  and  countenance  of  all  the  great  literary 
characters  of  the  period. 

In  1684,  the  education  of  his  pupils  was  completed,  and  he  was  again 
thrown  on  the  world  without  employment,  without  prospects,  and  without  any 
means  of  subsistence.  His  friend,  Dr  Rose,  however,  having  been  promoted 
from  the  station  of  parish  minister  at  Perth  to  the  chair  of  divinity  at  St 
Andrews,  did  not  forget  young  Sage  at  this  moment  of  indecision  and  helpless- 


226  RIGHT  REVEREND   JOHN   SAGE. 

ness,  but  recommended  him  so  effectually  to  bis  uncle,  Dr  Hose,  then  archbishop 
of  Glasgow,  that  he  was  by  that  prelate  admitted  into  priest's  orders,  and  pre- 
sented to  one  of  the  city  churches.  At  the  period  of  his  advancement  in  the 
church  he  was  about  thirty-four  years  of  age  :  his  knowledge  of  the  Scriptures 
was  very  great ;  and  he  had  studied  ecclesiastical  history,  with  the  writings  of 
all  the  early  fathers  of  the  church :  he  was  thorough  master  of  school  divinity, 
and  had  entered  deeply  into  the  modern  controversies,  especially  those  between 
the  Romish  and  the  Protestant  churches,  and  also  into  the  disputes  among  the 
rival  churches  of  the  Reformation.  He  was  in  consequence  vei-y  highly  esteemed 
by  his  brethren,  and  was  soon  after  appointed  clerk  of  the  diocesan  synod  of 
Glasgow,  an  office  of  great  responsibility. 

During  the  establishment  of  episcopacy  in  Scotland,  from  the  Restoration  of 
Charles  II.  till  the  year  1690,  the  authority  of  the  bishops  in  the  government 
of  the  church  was  exceedingly  limited;  they  possessed  indeed  the  sole  power 
of  ordination,  but  their  government  was  shared  by  presbyteries  and  diocesan 
synods,  in  which  they  presided  as  perpetual  niodeiators,  having  only  the  insig- 
nificant prerogative  of  a  negative  voice  over  the  deliberation  of  th^se  assemblies. 
The  bishop  delivered  also  a  charge  to  the  presbyters  at  the  opening  of  these 
meetings,  which,  with  the  acta  of  the  synodal  or  presbyterial  meetings, 
was  registered  by  the  clerk,  who  was  always  one  of  the  most  eminent  of  the 
diocesan  clergy.  In  all  this  period  there  were  neither  liturgy,  nor  forms,  nor 
ceremonies,  nor  surplices,  nor  black  gowns,  nor  any  mark  whatever  by  which 
a  stranger,  on  entering  a  parish  church,  could  discover  that  any  difference  in 
worship  or  external  appearance  existed  between  the  established  episcopal 
church  and  the  tolerated  presbyterian  chapel ;  and  we  believe  it  is  an  established 
fact,  that  so  much  were  the  minds  of  the  moderate  presbyterians  reconciled  to 
episcopacy,  tliat  almost  all  the  indulged  ministers,  with  their  congregations, 
took  the  communion  at  the  parish  churches  with  the  episcopal  clergy,  towards 
the  latter  end  of  the  reign  of  Charles  II. 

Mr  Sage  continued  to  officiate  as  clerk  of  the  diocese,  and  as  a  parish 
minister  in  Glasgow,  till  the  Revolution  in  1688.  In  executing  the  duties  of  his 
pastoral  office,  he  gained  the  esteem  and  affection  not  only  of  his  own  parishion- 
ers, but  even  of  the  presbyterians ;  so  much  so,  that  when  the  common  people 
took  the  reformation  of  the  church  into  their  own  hands,  and,  with  no  gentle 
means,  turned  the  episcopal  clergy  of  the  western  shires  out  of  their  churches 
and  livings,  he  was  treated  in  a  manner  which  was  considered  as  comparatively 
lenient  and  humane,  being  warned  privately  "  to  shake  off  the  dust  from  his 
feet  and  withdraw  from  Glasgow,  and  never  venture  to  appear  there  again." 
Many  of  his  brethren  were  trimmers  both  in  ecclesiastical  as  well  as  political 
aHairs ;  they  had  been  presbyterians  and  republicans  in  the  days  of  the  Cove- 
nant, and  when,  from  the  signs  of  the  times  in  the  short  reign  of  the  infatuated 
and  ill-advised  James,  a  change  in  the  establishment  seemed  to  be  approaching, 
these  over-zealous  converts  to  episcopacy  suddenly  became  all  gentleness  and 
condescension  to  the  presbyterians,  whom  they  now  courted  and  caressed. 
Sage's  conduct  was  the  reverse  of  this ;  he  was  heartily  and  from  conviction  an 
episcopalian  and  a  royalist ;  and  in  all  his  discourses  in  public  and  private  he 
laboured  to  instil  those  principles  into  tho  minds  of  others.  To  the  persecu- 
tion of  others  for  difference  of  opinion  he  was  always  steadily  opposed,  not  from 
any  indifference  to  all  opinions,  but  from  a  spirit  of  perfect  charity,  for  he 
never  tamely  betrayed  through  fear  what  he  knew  it  was  his  duty  to  maintain, 
notwithstanding  his  indulgence  to  the  prejudices  of  others. 

Thus  expelled  from  Glasgow,  he  sought  shelter  in  Edinburgh,  carrying  with 
him  the  synodical  books,  which,  it  would  appear,  he  liad  delivered  to  bislu^) 


EIGHT  REVEREND   JOHN  SAGE.  227 


Rose,  for,  after  the  death  of  tliat  venerable  ecclesiaslic,  they  were  found  in  his 
possession,  and  delivered  by  his  nephew  to  the  presbytery  of  Glasgow.  These 
books  had  been  repeatedly  demanded  by  the  new  presbytery,  but  had  always 
been  refused  from  a  hope  still  lingering  in  Sage's  mind  that  a  second 
restoration  should  take  place  ;  but  as  the  captivity  of  the  Jews  alwa>8  increased 
in  duration,  in  proportion  to  their  number,  so  has  that  of  the  episcopal  church 
of  Scotland.  Partly  to  contribute  towards  that  restoration  for  which  he  ardent- 
ly longed,  and  partly  to  support  himself  under  that  destitution  to  which  he  was 
now  reduced,  he  commenced  as  polemical  writer,  to  the  infinite  annoyance  of 
his  adversaries  :  the  following  is  a  list  of  his  Avcrks,  which  are  now  scarce,  and 
chiefly  to  be  found  in  the  libraries  of  those  who  are    curious  in  such  things  : 

1.  The  second  and  third  letters  concerning  the  persecution  of  the  episcopal 
clergy  in  Scotland,  printed  in  London  in  1G89.  The  first  letter  was  written- 
by  the  Rev.  Thomas  Morer,  and  the  fourth  by  professor  Monro. 

2.  An  Account  of  the  late  establishment  of  presbyterian  government  by  the 
parliament  of  Scotland  in  1690.     London,  1693. 

3.  The  Fundamental  Charter  of  Presbytery.     London,  1695. 

4.  The  Principles  of  the  Cyprianic  age,  with  regard  to  episcopal  power 
and  jurisdiction.      London,  1695. 

5.  A  Vindication  of  the  Principles  of  the  Cyprianic  Age.     London,  1701. 

6.  Some  Remarks  on  a  letter  from  a  gentleman  in  the  city  to  a  minister  in 
the  country,  on  Mr  David  Williamson's  sermon  before  the  General  Assembly. 
Edinburgh,  1703. 

7.  A  brief  examination  of  some  things  in  Mr  Meldrum's  sermon  preached 
on  the  6th  3Iay,  1703,  against  a  toleration  to  those  of  the  episcopal  per- 
suasion.     Edinburgh,  1703. 

8.  The  reasonableness  of  a  toleration  of  those  of  the  episcopal  perguasicn,  in. 
quired  into  purely  on  church  principles,  170i. 

9.  The  Life  of  Gawin  Douglas,  1710. 

10.  An  introduction  to  Drumraond's  History  of  the  Five  Jameses,  Edinburgh, 
1711. 

He  left,  besides,  several  manuscripts  on  various  subjects  that  are  men- 
tioned in  his  life  by  bishop  Gillan,  and  which  were  published  at  London  in 
1714. 

On  his  retirement  to  the  metropolis,  he  began  to  officiate  to  a  small  body  who 
still  adhered  to  the  displaced  church  ;  but,  peremptorily  refusing  to  take  the 
oaths  to  the  revolution  government,  such  was  then  the  rigour  of  the  officers  of  state, 
and  the  violence  of  the  populace,  that  he  was  ere  long  compelled  at  once  to 
demit  his  charge,  and  to  leave  the  city,  his  person  being  no  longer  deemed  safe. 
In  this  extremity,  he  was  received  into  the  family,  and  enjoyed  the  protec- 
tion and  friendship  of  Sir  William  Bruce,  then  sheriff  of  Kinross,  who  approved 
of  his  principles,  and  admired  his  virtues.  Here  he  remained  till  1696.  On 
the  imprisonment  of  his  patron.  Sir  William,  who  was  suspected  of  disaffection 
to  the  government,  he  ventured  in  a  clandestine  manner  to  visit  him  in  Edinburgh 
castle  ;  but  his  persecutors  would  give  him  no  respite  ;  he  was  obliged  again  to 
flee  for  his  life  to  the  Grampian  hills,  where  he  lived  destitute  and  penny- 
less  under  the  assumed  name  of  Jackson. 

After  he  had  wandered  in  a  destitute  state  for  some  time  among  the  Braes  of 
Angus,  the  countess  of  Callander  oflered  him  an  asylum,  and  the  appointment  of 
domestic  chaplain  for  her  family,  and  tutor  for  her  sons.  Here  he  continued 
for  some  time,  and  when  the  young  gentlemen  intrusted  to  his  charge  were  no 
longer  in  want  of  his  instructions,  he  accepted  an  invitation  from  Sir  John 
Stewart  of  GrantuUy,  who  desired  the  assistance  of  a  chaplain,  and  the  conver- 


228  MICHAEL  SCOTT. 


sation  of  a  man  of  letters.  In  this  situation  he  remained  till  the  necessities  of 
the  church  required  the  episcopal  order  to  be  preserved  by  new  consecrations. 
The  mildness  of  his  manners,  the  extent  of  his  learning,  and  his  experience  re- 
commended him  as  a  lit  person  on  uhom  to  bestow  the  episcopal  character. 
He  was  accordingly  consecrated  a  bishop,  on  the  25th  January,  1705,  uhen  no 
temporal  motives  could  have  induced  him  to  accept  an  oftice  at  all  times  of 
great  responsibility,  but  at  that  time  of  peculiar  personal  danger.  His  conse- 
crators  were  John  Paterson,  the  deprived  archbishop  of  Glasgow,  Dr  Alexander 
Rose,  deprived  bishop  of  Edinburgh,  and  liobert  Douglas^  deprived  bishop  of 
Dumblane. 

Soon  after  his  promotion,  this  illustrious  man  was  seized  with  that  illness,  tlie 
seeds  of  which  had  been  sown  in  the  difficulties  and  privations  of  his  youth. 
After  patiently  lingering  a  considerable  time  in  Scotland  without  improvement, 
the  persecutions  to  which  he  was  subjected  increasing  his  malady,  iie  was  in- 
duced to  try  the  efficacy  of  the  waters  at  Bath,  in  1709.  But  this  also  failed 
him:  the  seat  of  his  disease  lay  deeper  than  medical  skill  could  reach.  He  re- 
mained a  year  at  Bath  and  London,  where  the  great  recognized,  and  the 
learned  caressed  and  courted  him,  and  where  it  was  the  wish  of  many  distin- 
guished persons  that  he  should  spend  the  remainder  of  his  life.  The  love  of 
his  country  and  of  his  native  church,  overcame  all  entreaties,  and  he  returned 
to  Scotland  in  1710,  with  a  debilitated  body,  but  a  mind  as  vigorous  as  ever. 
Immediately  on  his  arrival,  he  engaged  with  undiminished  ardour  in  the  pub- 
lication of  Urummond's  Works,  to  which  Ruddiman,  whose  friendship  he  had 
for  many  years  enjoyed,  lent  his  assistance.  Worn  out  with  disease  and  men- 
til  anguish,  bishop  Sage  died  at  Edinburgh,  on  7th  June,  1711,  lamented  by 
his  friends,  and  feared  by  his  adversaries.  His  friend  Ruddiman  always  spoke 
of  him  as  a  companion  whom  he  esteemed  for  his  worth,  and  as  a  scholar  whom 
he  admired  for  his  learning.  Sage  was  unquestionably  a  man  of  great  ability,  and 
even  genius.  It  is  to  be  lamented,  however,  that  his  life  and  intellect  were  alto- 
gether expended  in  a  wrong  position,  and  on  a  thankless  subject  All  the  sophisti- 
cal ingenuity  that  ever  was  exerted,  would  have  been  unable  to  convince  the  great 
majority  of  the  Scottish  people,  that  the  order  of  bishops  was  of  scriptural  institu- 
tion, or  that  the  government  of  the  two  last  niale  Stuarts,  in  which  a  specimen 
of  that  order  had  so  notable  a  share,  Avas  a  humane  or  just  government.  He  was 
a  man  labouring  against  the  great  tide  of  circumstances  and  public  feeling  ;  and, 
accordingly,  those  talents,  which  otherwise  might  have  been  exerted  for  the  im- 
provement of  his  fellow  creatures,  and  the  fulfilment  of  the  grand  designs  of 
providence,  were  thrown  away,  without  producing  either  immediate  or  remote 
good.  How  long  have  men  contended  about  trifles — what  ages  have  been  per- 
mitted to  elapse  uselessly — how  many  bright  minds  have  been  lighted  up,  and 
quenched — before  even  a  fair  portion  of  reason  has  been  introduced  into  the 
habits  of  thinking,  and  the  domestic  practice  of  the  race. 

SCOTT,  Michael,  a  learned  pei-son  of  the  thirteenth  century,  known  to  tho 
better  informed  as  a  philosopher,  and  to  the  illiterate,  especially  of  Scotland,  as 
a  wizard,  or  magician,  was  born  about  the  year  1214.  The  precise  locality  of 
his  birthplace  is  unknown,  although  that  lionour  has  been  awarded  to  Bal- 
wearie,  in  F'ife,  but  on  insufficient  authority.  Neither  is  there  any  thing 
known  of  his  parents,  nor  of  their  rank  in  life  ;  but,  judging  of  the  education 
he  received,  one  of  the  most  liberal  and  expensive  of  the  times,  it  may  be  pre- 
sumed that  they  were  of  some  note. 

Scott  early  betook  himself  to  the  study  of  the  sciences  ;  but,  soon  exhausting 
all  the  information  which  his  native  country  afforded  in  those  imlettered  times, 
he  repaired  to  the  uniAersity  of  Oxford,  then  enjoying  a  very  high  reputation. 


MICHAEL  SCOTT.  229 


and  devoted  himself,  with  great  eagerness  and  assiduity,  to  philosophical  pur- 
suits, particularly  astronomy  and  chemistry;  in  both  of  which,  and  in  the  acqui- 
sition of  the  Latin  and  Arabic  languages,  he  attained  a  singular  proficiency. 
At  this  period,  astronomy,  if  it  did  not  assume  entirely  the  shape  of  judicial 
astrology,  was  yet  largely  and  intimately  blended  witli  that  fantastic  but  not 
unimpressive  science  ;  and  chemistry  was  similarly  affected  by  the  not  less  ab- 
surd and  illusive  mysteries  of  alchymy  :  and  hence  arose  the  imaginary  skill 
and  real  reputation  of  Scott  as  a  wizard,  or  foreteller  of  events  ;  as,  in  propor- 
tion to  his  knowledge  of  the  true  sciences,  was  his  imputed  acquaintance  with 
the  false. 

On  completing  his  studies  at  Oxford,  he  repaired,  agreeably  to  the  practice 
of  the  times,  to  the  university  of  Paris.  Here  he  applied  himself  with  such 
diligence  and  success  to  the  study  of  mathematics,  that  he  acquired  the  academic 
surname  of  Michael  the  3Iathematician  ;  but  neither  his  attention  nor  reputa- 
tion were  confined  to  this  science  alone.  He  made  equal  progress,  and  attained 
equal  distinction  in  sacred  letters  and  divinity ;  his  acquirements  in  the  latter 
studies  being  acknowledged,  by  his  having  the  degree  of  doctor  in  theology 
conferred  upon  him. 

While  in  Paris,  he  resumed,  in  the  midst  of  his  other  academical  avocations, 
the  study  of  that  science  on  which  his  popular  fame  now  rests,  namely,  judicial 
astrology,  and  devoted  also  a  farther  portion  of  his  time  to  chemistry  and  me- 
dicine. Having  possessed  himself  of  all  that  he  could  acquire  in  his  particu- 
lar pursuits  in  the  French  capital,  he  determined  to  continue  his  travels,  with 
the  view  at  once  of  instructing  and  of  being  instructed.  In  the  execution  of 
this  project,  he  visited  several  foreign  countries  and  learned  universities ;  and 
amongst  the  latter,  that  of  the  celebrated  college  at  Padua,  where  he  eminently 
distinguished  himself  by  his  essays  on  judicial  astrology.  From  this  period,  his 
fame  gradually  spread  abroad,  and  the  reverence  with  which  his  name  now  began 
to  be  associated,  was  not  a  little  increased  by  his  predictions,  which  he,  for  the 
first  time,  now  began  to  publish,  and  which  were  as  firmly  believed  in,  and  con- 
templated with  as  much  awe  in  Italy,  where  they  were  first  promulgated,  as 
they  were  ever  at  any  after  period  in  Scotland. 

From  Italy  he  proceeded  to  Spain,  taking  up  his  residence  in  Toledo,  whose 
university  was  celebrated  for  its  cultivation  of  the  occult  sciences.  Here,  be- 
sides taking  an  active  part,  and  making  a  conspicuous  figure  in  the  discussions 
on  these  sciences,  he  began  and  concluded  a  translation,  from  the  Arabic  into 
Latin,  of  Aristotle's  nineteen  books  on  the  History  of  Animals.  This  work 
procured  him  the  notice,  and  subsequently  the  patronage  of  Frederick  II.,  who 
invited  him  to  his  court,  and  bestowed  on  him  the  office  of  royal  astrologer. 
While  filling  this  situation,  he  translated,  at  the  emperor's  desire,  the  greater 
part  of  the  works  of  Aristotle.  He  A\rote,  also,  at  the  royal  request,  an  original 
work,  entitled  **  Liber  Introductorius  sive  Indicia  Quaestionum,"  for  the  use  of 
young  students  ;  and  a  treatise  on  physiognomy,  entitled  "  Physiognomia  et  de 
Hominis  Procreatione  ;"  besides  several  other  works,  of  >vhich  one  was  on  the 
/*  Opinions  of  Astrologers." 

After  a  residence  of  some  years  at  the  court  of  Frederick,  Michael  resigned  his 
situation,  and  betook  himself  to  the  study  of  medicine  as  a  profession,  and  soon 
acquired  great  reputation  in  this  art.  Before  parting  with  the  emperor,  with 
whom  he  seems  to  have  lived  on  a  more  intimate  and  familiar  footing,  than 
the  haughty  and  warlike  disposition  of  that  prince  might  have  been  expect- 
ed to  permit,  he  predicted  to  him  the  time,  place,  and  manner  of  his  death ; 
and  the  prophecy  is  said  to  have  been  exactly  fulfilled  in  every  parti- 
cular.      After  a  residence  of  some  years  in  Germany,  he  came  over  to  Eng- 


230 


SIR  T\-ALTER  SCOTT,  BART. 


land,  with  the  view  of  returning  to  his  native  country.  On  Ills  arrival  in 
tlie  latter  kingdom,  he  was  kindly  received  and  patronized  by  Edward  I.; 
and,  after  being  retained  for  some  time  at  his  court,  was  permitted  to  pass 
to  Scotland,  where  he  arrived  shortly  after  the  death  of  Alexander  IIL 
That  event  rendering  it  necessary  to  send  ambassadors  to  Norway,  to  bring 
over  the  young  queen,  3Iargaret,  or,  as  she  is  more  poetically  called,  the 
Maid  of  Norway,  grand-daugiiter  of  the  deceased  monarch,  Michael  Scott,  now 
styled  Sir  Michael,  although  we  have  no  account  either  of  the  time  or  oc- 
casion of  his  being  elevated  to  this  dignity,  was  appointed,  with  Sir  David 
Weems,  to  proceed  on  this  important  mission,  a  proof  that  his  reputation  as  .1 
wizard  had  not  artected  his  moral  respectability.  With  this  last  circumstance, 
the  veritable  history  of  Sir  Michael  terminates  ;  for  his  name  does  not  again 
appear  in  connexion  with  any  public  event,  nor  is  there  any  thing  known  of 
his  subsequent  life.  He  died  in  the  year  1292,  at  an  advanced  age,  and  was 
buried,  according  to  some  authorities,  at  Holme  Coltrame,  in  Cumberland*,  and, 
according  to  others,  in  Melrose  abbey. 

Although,  however,  all  the  principal  authenticated  incidents  in  the  life  of  Sir 
Michael  which  are  known,  are  compi-ehended  in  this  brief  sketch,  it  would  take 
volumes  to  contain  all  that  is  told,  and  to  this  hour  believed,  by  the  peasantry 
of  Scotland,  of  the  terrible  necromancer,  auld  Michael.  For  some  curious  spe- 
cimens of  the  traditional  character  of  the  great  magician  of  other  days,  the 
reader  may  be  referred  to  the  notes  appended  to  the  "  Lay  of  the  Last  31  in- 
strel,"  by  the  still  greater  magician  of  modern  times.  He  will  there  learn, 
how  Sir  Michael,  on  one  occasion,  rode  through  the  air  to  France  on  a  huge 
black  horse  ;  how  the  devil  made  an  unsuccessful  attempt  to  entrap  him  by  the 
way  ;   how,  on  another  occasion,  wlien 

Maister  Michael  Scoti's  man, 
Sought  meat,  and  gut  nune, 

from  a  niggardly  farmer,  he  threw  down  a  bonnet  which  his  master  had  previ- 
ously enchanted,  and  which,  becoming  suddenly  inflated,  began  to  spin  round 
the  house  with  supernatural  speed,  and  drew,  by  its  magical  influence,  the  whole 
household  after  it,  man,  maid,  and  mistress,  who  all  continued  the  goblin  chase, 
until  they  were  worn  out  with  fatigue.  It  may  not,  perhaps,  be  unnecessary  to 
add,  that  all  these  cantrips,  and  a  thousand  more,  were  performed  by  the  agency 
of  a  "mighty  book"  of  necromancy,  which  no  man,  but  on  peril  of  soul  and 
body,  might  open,  or  peruse,  and  which  Avas  at  last  buried  in  the  same  grave 
with  its  tremendous  owner. 

SCOTT,  (Sir)  Walter,  baronet,  a  distinguished  poet  and  novelist,  was  bora 
in  Edinburgh,  August  15,  1771.  He  was  a  younger  son  of  Mr  Walter  Scott, 
writer  to  the  signet,  by  Anne,  daughter  of  Dr  John  Rutherford,  professor  of  the 
practice  of  medicine  in  the  university  of  Edinburgh.  Sir  Walter's  father  was 
grandson  to  a  younger  son  of  Scott  of  Raeburn,  a  branch  of  the  ancient  baronial 
house  of  Harden  ;  and  his  mother  was  grand-daughter  to  Sir  John  Swinton,  ol' 
Swinton,  in  Berwickshire.  Being  an  ailing  child,  he  was  sent  at  a  very  early 
period  of  life  to  Sandyknow,  a  farm  near  the  bottom  of  Leader  water,  in  Rox- 
burghshire, occupied  by  his  paternal  grandfather,  where  he  had  ample  opportuni- 
ties of  storing  his  mind  with  border  tradition.  The  first  school  he  attended  is  said 
to  have  been  one  in  Kelso,  taught  by  a  Mr  Whale,  where  he  had  for  school- 
fellows  James  and  John  Ballantyne,  who  subsequently  became  intimately  con- 
nected with  him  in  public  life.  He  entered  the  high  school  of  Edinburgh  in 
1779,  when  the  class  with  which  he  was  ranked  (that  of  Mr  Luke  Fraser)  was 
commencing  its  third  season.      Under  this  master  he  continued  during  two 


Sir  J.^6t»<m  Gor^orL. 


ii-  Sobcifics . 


SUM  Wi6\LTEE  SCOTT. 


IBCatTffE  OBIGBNALIHKCSISSiniraFTEEPDBEISHSHS. 


mMnsm  fcsoN,  aijvaew,  xuiKBmipr  stiOBDOir. 


SIR   WALTER  SCOTT,  BART.  2'6i 

years,  after  which  he  entered  the  rector's  class,  then  taught  by  Mr  Alexander 
Adam.  In  October,  17  S3,  having  completed  the  usual  classical  course,  he  was 
matriculated  at  the  university  of  Edinburgh,  studying  huvmnity,  or  Latin,  un- 
der professor  Hill,  and  Greek  under  professor  Dalzell.  Another  year  under 
Dalzell,  and  a  third  in  the  logic  class,  taught  by  professor  Bruce,  appear  to 
have  formed  the  sum  of  his  unprofessional  studies  at  college.  He  was  much  de- 
roled  at  this  period  to  reading  ;  and  an  illness,  which  interrupted  his  studies  in 
his  sixteenth  year,  afforded  him  an  unusually  ample*  opportunity  of  gratifying 
this  taste.  He  read,  by  his  own  confession,  all  the  old  romances,  old  plays, 
and  epic  poems,  contained  in  tlie  extensive  circulating  library  of  Blr  Sibbald 
(founded  by  Allan  Ramsay) ;  and  soon  after  extended  his  studies  to  histories, 
memoirs,  voyages,  and  travels.  On  the  restoration  of  his  health,  he  commenced, 
in  his  father's  office,  an  apprenticeship  to  legal  business,  which  was  completed 
in  July,  1792,  by  his  entering  at  the  Scottish  bar. 

The  literary  character  of  Scott  is  to  be  traced  to  the  traditionary  lore  which 
he  imbibed  in  the  country,  and  the  vast  amount  of  miscellaneous  reading  above 
referred  to,  in  conjunction  with  the  study  of  the  modern  German  poets  and  ro- 
mancers, which  he  entered  upon  at  a  subsequent  period.  The  earlier  years  of 
his  life,  as  an  advocate,  were  devoted  rather  to  the  last  mentioned  study,  than 
to  business  ;  and  the  result  was,  a  translation  of  "  Burger's  Lenore,"  and  "  Der 
Wilde  Jager,"  which  he  published  in  a  small  quarto  volume  in  1796.  The 
success  of  this  attempt  was  by  no  means  encouraging;  yet  he  persevered  in  his 
German  studies,  and,  in  1799,  gave  to  the  world  a  translation  of  Gothe's 
"  Goetz  of  Berlichengen."  Previously  to  the  latter  event,  namely,  on  the  24th 
December,  1797,  he  had  married  3Iiss  Carpenter,  a  young  Frenchwoman  of 
good  parentage,  whom  he  accidentally  met  at  Gilsland  wells,  in  Cumberland, 
and  who  possessed  a  small  animity.  It  is  also  worthy  of  notice,  that,  in  1799, 
he  was  appointed  sheriff  of  Selkirkshire,  a  respectable  situation,  to  which  an  in- 
come of  ^300  was  attached. 

The  success  of  Burger  in  ballad-wTiting,  operating  upon  his  predilection  for 
that  part  of  our  own  national  poetry,  induced  him,  about  this  time,  to  make  se- 
veral attempts  in  that  line  of  composition,  and  soon  after  to  commence  the  col- 
lection of  those  ancient  original  ballads,  which  in  1802  were  publislied  in  two  vo- 
lumes octavo,  as  the  3Iinstrelsy  of  the  Scottish  Border.  On  the  reprinting  of 
this  work,  in  the  ensuing  year,  he  added  a  third  volume,  consisting  chiefly  of  ori- 
ginal ballads,  by  himself  and  others.  The  work  was,  upon  the  whole,  a  pleas- 
ing melange  of  history,  poetry,  and  tradition  ;  and  it  gained  the  author  a  con- 
siderable reputation,  though  certainly  not  that  of  an  original  poet  in  any  emi- 
nent degree.  In  the  annotations  to  the  ancient  romance  of  Sir  Tristrem,  which 
he  published  in  1804,  he  gave  still  more  striking  proof  of  the  extent  of  his  ac- 
quirements in  metrical  antiquities. 

It  was  not  till  the  year  1805,  when  Scott  had  reached  the  age  of  thirty- 
four,  and  had  a  family  rising  around  him,  that  he  attracted  decided  attention  as 
an  original  poet.  He  published  in  that  year  his  "  Lay  of  the  Last  ]Minstrel," 
an  extended  specimen  of  the  ballad  style,  and  one  which  fell  upon  the  public 
mind  as  something  entirely  new  in  poetry.  The  caution  which  he  may  be  said 
to  have  observed  in  coming  before  the  world,  arose  from  prudential  considera- 
tions. He  hesitated  to  come  to  a  breach  with  his  professional  hopes,  which 
a  decided  attempt  in  literature  would  have  implied,  before  he  should  have 
attained  something  to  assure  him  of  a  competency  in  the  worst  resort.  This  he 
had  in  some  measure  secured  by  his  patrimony,  his  wife's  annuity,  and  his 
salary  as  sheriff';  but  it  was  not  till  1S06,  when  he  received  the  appointment  of 
a  principal  clerk  of  session,  that  he  considered  himself  at  perlect  liberty  to 


232  SIR  "WALTER   SCOTT,  BART. 

pursue  a  literary  career.  For  this  latter  appointment,  he  was  indebted  to  the 
interest  of  the  liuccleuch  and  3Ielville  families,  uiiich  he  had  conciliated,  partly 
by  his  talents,  and  partly  by  the  zeal  with  which  he  entered  into  the  volunteer 
system  at  the  close  of  the  past  century.  He  succeeded  31r  George  Home,  upon 
an  arrangement,  by  which  that  gentleman  was  to  enjoy  tiie  salary  for  life  ;  so 
that  it  was  not  till  1811  that  the  poet  reaped  any  actual  benefit  from  it.  The 
appointment  was  given  by  iMr  Pilt,  but  was  formally  completed  under  the  en- 
suing administration  of  Lord  Grenvilie. 

In  1808,  Mr  Scott  published  his  second  poem  of  magnitude,  *' Marmion," 
which  displayed  his  metrical  genius  in  greater  perfection  than  the  Lay  of  the 
Last  Minstrel,  and  greatly  increased  his  reputation.  \VhiIe  the  latter  work 
had  produced  him  ^GOO,  the  present  secured  one  thousand  guineas.  Previously 
to  1825,  no  fewer  than  thirty-six  thousand  copies  of  31armion  were  sold. 
In  the  same  ycir,  Mr  Scott  published  an  edition  of  Dryden's  works,  with  notes, 
and  a  life  of  that  poet  In  1809,  he  edited  tiie  State  Papers  and  Letters  of 
Sir  Ralph  Sadler  ;  and  soon  after  he  became  a  contributor  to  the  Edinburgh 
Annual  Register,  started  by  Mr  Southey. 

"  Tlie  Lady  of  the  Lake,"  in  which  his  poetical  genius  seems  to  have  reached 
the  acme  of  its  powers,  was  published  in  1810.  His  earlier  edbrts  were  less 
matured  and  refined ;  and  the  later  are  all,  in  various  degrees,  less  spirited  and 
effective.  In  1811  appeared  "  Don  Roderick,"  a  dreamy  vaticination  of  mo- 
dern Spanish  history;  in  1813  he  published  "  Rokeby,"  in  which  he  attempt- 
ed, but  without  success,  to  invest  English  scenery  and  a  tale  of  the  civil  war 
with  the  charm  which  he  had  already  thrown  over  the  Scottish  Highlands  and 
Borders,  and  their  romantic  inhabitants.  Rokeby  met  with  a  decidedly  unfavour- 
able reception;  and,  it  cannot  be  denied,  the  public  enjoyed  to  a  greater  extent 
a  burlesque,  which  appeared  upon  it,  under  the  title  of  "  Jokeby."  The  evil 
success  of  this  poem  induced  him  to  make  a  desperate  adventure  to  retrieve  his 
laurels;  and  in  1814  he  published  "  The  Lord  of  the  Isles."  Even  the  name 
of  Bruce,  however,  could  not  compensate  the  want  of  what  had  been  tlie  most 
captivating  charm  of  his  earlier  productions — the  development  of  new  powers 
and  styles  of  poesy.  The  public  was  now  acquainted  witli  his  whole  "  fence," 
and  could,  therefore,  take  no  longer  the  same  interest  in  his  exhibitions.  As 
if  to  try  how  far  his  name  now  operated  in  promoting  the  sale  of  his  writings,  he 
produced,  anonymously,  two  small  poems  in  succession,  "  Harold  the  Dauntless," 
and  "The  Bridal  of  Triermain."  Neither  made  any  considerable  impression 
upon  the  public ;  and  he,  therefore,  seems  to  have  concluded  that  poetry  was 
no  longer  a  line  in  which  he  ought  to  exercise  his  talents. 

Many  years  before,  while  as  yet  unknown  as  a  poet,  he  had  commenced  a 
prose  tale  upon  the  legendary  story  of  Thomas  the  Rymer,  which  never  went 
beyond  the  first  chapter.  Subsequently,  he  contemplated  a  prose  romance,  re- 
lating to  an  age  much  nearer  our  own  time.  "  IMy  early  i-ecollections,"  says 
he,'  "  of  the  Highland  scenery  and  customs  made  so  favourable  an  impression 
in  the  poem  called  the  *  Lady  of  the  Lake,'  that  1  was  induced  to  think  of  at- 
tempting something  of  the  same  kind  in  pruse.  I  had  been  a  good  deal  in  the 
Highlands  at  a  time  when  they  were  much  less  accessible,  and  much  less  visited, 
than  they  have  been  of  late  years,  and  was  acquainted  with  many  of  the  old 
warriors  of  1745,  who  were,  like  most  veterans,  easily  induced  to  fight  their 
battles  over  again,  for  the  benefit  of  a  willin<>  listener  like  myself.  It  naturally 
occurred  to  me  that  the  ancient  traditions  and  high  spirit  of  people,  who,  living 
in  a  civilized  age  and  country,  retained  so  strong  a  tincture  of  manners  belong- 
ing to  an  early  period  of  society,  must  afford  a  subject  favourable  for  romance, 
if  it  should  not  prove  a  curious  tale  marred  in  the  telling. 

•  In  tlie  auto- biographical  introduction  to  the  revised  ediiions  of  his  works. 


SIR  WALTER   SCOTT,  BART.  233 

"  It  was  with  some  idea  of  this  kind,  tliat,  about  the  year  1805,  I  threw  to- 
gether about  one-third  part  of  the  first  volume  of  Waverley.  It  was  advertised 
to  be  published  by  the  late  3Ir  John  Ballantyne,  bookseller  in  Kdinburgh,  un- 
iler  tlie  name  of  *  \Yaverley.'  #  *  *  Having  proceeded  as  far,  I  think,  as 
the  seventh  chapter,  I  showed  my  work  to  a  critical  friend,  whose  opinion  was 
unfavourable  ;  and  having  some  poetical  reputation,  I  was  unwilling  to  risk  the 
loss  of  it  by  attempting  a  new  style  of  composition.  I  therefore  threw  aside 
the  work  I  had  commenced,  without  either  reluctance  or  remonstrance.  *  *  * 
This  portion  of  the  manuscript  was  laid  aside  in  the  drawers  of  an  old  writ- 
ing-desk, which,  on  my  first  coming  to  reside  at  Abbotsford  in  18 II,  was 
placed  in  a  lumber  garret,  and  entirely  forgotten.  Thus,  though  I  sometimes, 
among  other  literary  avocations,  turned  my  thoughts  to  the  continuation  of  the 
romance  which  I  had  commenced,  yet,  as  I  could  not  find  what  I  had  already 
written,  after  searching  such  repositories  as  were  within  my  reach,  and  was  too 
indolent  to  attempt  to  write  it  anew  from  memory,  I  as  often  laid  aside  all 
thoughts  of  that  nature." 

The  author  then  adverts  to  two  circumstances,  which  particularly  fixed  in  his 
mind  the  wish  to  continue  this  work  to  a  close — namely,  the  success  of  Miss 
Edgeworth's  delineations  of  Irish  life,  and  his  happening  to  be  employed  iu 
1808,  in  finishing  the  romance  of  Queen- Hoo-Hall,  left  imperfect  by  Mr 
Strutt.  *'  Accident,"  he  continues,  "  at  length  threw  the  lost  sheets  in  my 
way." 

'*  I  happened  to  want  some  fishing-tackle  for  the  use  of  a  guest,  when  it  oc- 
curred to  me  to  search  the  old  writing-desk  already  mentioned,  in  which  I  used 
to  keep  articles  of  that  nature.  I  got  access  to  it  with  some  difiiculty  ;  and  in 
looking  for  lines  and  Hies,  the  long-lost  manuscript  presented  itself.  I  imme- 
diately set  to  work  to  complete  it,  according  to  my  original  purpose.  *  *  * 
Among  other  unfounded  reports,  it  has  been  said  that  the  copyright  was,  dur- 
ing the  book's  progress  through  the  press,  offered  for  sale  to  v.irious  booksellers 
in  London  at  a  very  inconsiderable  price.  This  was  not  the  case.  Messrs 
Constable  and  Cadell,  who  published  the  work,  were  the  only  persons  acquaint- 
ed with  the  contents  of  the  publication,  and  they  offered  a  large  sum  for  it, 
while  in  the  course  of  printing,  which,  however,  was  declined,  the  author  not 
choosing  to  part  with  the  copyright. 

"  Waverley  was  published  in  1814,  and  as  the  title-page  was  without  the 
name  of  the  author,  the  work  was  left  to  win  its  way  in  the  world  without  any 
of  the  usual  recommendations.  Its  progress  was  for  some  time  slow ;  but  after 
the  first  two  or  three  months,  its  popularity  had  increased  in  a  degree  which 
must  have  satisfied  the  expectations  of  the  <^uthor,  bad  these  been  far  more  san- 
guine than  he  ever  entertained. 

"  Great  anxiety  was  expressed  to  learn  the  name  of  the  author,  but  on  this 
no  authentic  information  could  be  attained.  My  original  motive  for  publishing 
the  work  anonymously,  was  the  consciousness  that  it  was  an  experiment  on  the 
public  taste,  which  might  very  probably  fail,  and  therefoie  there  was  no  occa- 
sion to  take  on  myself  the  personal  risk  of  discomfiture.  For  this  purpose, 
considerable  prec^autions  were  used  to  preserve  secrecy.  My  old  friend  and 
schoolfellow,  Mr  James  Ballantyne,  who  printed  these  novels,  had  the  ex- 
clusive task  of  corresponding  with  the  author,  who  thus  had  not  only  the  ad» 
vantage  of  his  professional  talents,  but  of  his  critical  abilities.  The  original 
manuscript,  or,  as  it  is  technically  called,  copy,  was  transcribed  under  Mr  Bal- 
lantyne's  eye,  by  confidential  ],ersons  ;  nor  was  there  an  instance  of  treachery 
during  tlie  many  years  in  which  these  precautions  were  resorted  to,  although 
various  individuals  were  employed  at  different  limes.  Double  proof-sheets  were 
regularly  printed  off.     One  was  forwarded  to  the  author  by  Mr  Ballantyne, 


234  SIR  WALTER  SCOTT,  BART. 

and  tlie  alterations  which  it  rcceired  were,  by  his  own  hand,  copied  upon  the 
other  proof-sheet  for  the  use  of  the  printers,  so  tliat  even  the  corrected  proofs 
cf  the  author  were  never  seen  in  the  printing  ofRce;  and  tlius  the  curiosity  of 
such  eager  inquirers  aa  made  the  most  minute  inrestigation,  was  entirely  at 
fault." 

To  this  account  of  the  publication  of  Waverley  it  is  only  to  be  added,  that 
the  popularity  of  the  work  became  decided  rather  more  quickly,  and  was,  when 
decided,  much  higher,  than  the  author  has  given  to  be  understood.  It  was 
read  and  admired  universally,  both  in  Scotland  and  England,  so  that,  in  a  very 
short  time  about  twelve  thousand  copies  were  disposed  of. 

Previously  to  1811,  Mr  Scott  had  been  in  the  habit  of  residing,  during  the 
summer  months,  at  a  villa  called  Ashicstiel  on  the  banks  of  the  Tweed,  near 
Selkirk,  belonging  to  his  kinsman  colonel  Russell.  He  now  employed  part  of 
his  literary  gains  in  purchasing  a  farm  a  few  miles  farther  down  the  Tweed, 
and  within  three  miles  of  Melrose.  Here  he  erected  a  small  house,  Avhich  he 
gradually  enlarged,  as  his  emoluments  permitted,  till  it  eventually  became  a 
(lothic  castellated  mansion  of  considerable  size.  He  also  continued  for  some 
years  to  make  considerable  purchases  of  the  adjacent  gi'ounds,  generally  paying 
much  more  for  them  than  their  value.  The  desire  of  becoming  an  extensive 
land-proprietor  was  a  passion  which  glowed  more  warmly  in  his  bosom  than  any 
appetite  which  he  ever  entertained  for  literary  fame.  The  whole  cast  of  his 
mind,  from  the  very  beginning,  was  essentially  aristocratic ;  and  it  is  probable 
that  he  looked  with  more  reverence  upon  an  old  title  to  a  good  estate,  than 
upon  the  most  ennobled  title-page  in  the  whole  catalogue  of  contemporary 
genius.  Thus  it  was  a  matter  of  astonishment  to  many,  that,  while  totally  in- 
sensible to  flattery  on  the  score  of  his  works,  and  perfectly  destitute  of  all  the 
airs  of  a  professed  or  practised  author,  he  could  not  so  well  conceal  his  pride 
in  the  possession  of  a  small  patch  of  territory,  or  his  sense  of  importance  as  a 
local  dispenser  of  justice.  As  seen  through  the  medium  of  his  works,  he  rather 
appears  like  an  old  baron  or  chivalrous  knight,  displaying  his  own  character 
and  feelings,  and  surrounded  by  the  ideal  creatures  which  such  an  individual 
would  have  mixed  with  in  actual  life,  than  as  an  author  of  the  modern  world, 
writing  partly  for  fame,  and  partly  for  subsistence,  and  glad  to  woi-k  at  that 
which  he  thinks  he  can  best  execute.  It  was  unquestionably  owing  to  the  same 
principle  that  he  kept  the  Waverley  secret  with  such  pertinacious  closeness — 
being  unwilling  to  be  considered  as  an  author  writing  for  fortune,  which  he  must 
have  thought  somewhat  degrading  to  the  baronet  of  Abbotsford.  It  was  now 
the  principal  spring  of  hia  actions  to  add  as  much  as  possible  to  the  little  realm 
of  Abbotsford,  in  order  that  he  might  take  his  place — not  among  the  great 
literary  names  which  posterity  is  to  revere,  but  among  the  country  gentlemen  of 
Roxburghshire !' 

Under  the  influence  of  this  passion — for  such  it  must  be  considered — 
Mr  Scott  produced  a  rapid  succession  of  novels,  of  which  it  Avill  be  suflicient 
hereto  state  the  names  and  dates.  To  Waverley  succeeded,  in  1815,  Guy 
Mannering ;  in  1816,  the  Antiquary,  and  the  First  Series  of  the  Tales  of  my 
Landlord,  containing  the  Black  Dwarf  and  Old  Mortality  ;  in  1818,  Rob  Roy, 
and  the  Second  Series  of  the  Tales  cf  my  Landlord,  containing  the  Heart  of 
Mid  Lothian ;  and  in  1819,  the  Third  Series  of  the  Tales  of  my  Landlord,  con- 
taining the  Bride  of  Lammermoor,  and  a  Legend  of  IMontrose. 

It  is  to  be  observed,  that  the  series,  called  **  Tales  of  my  Landlord,"  were 

*  Lest  these  speculations  may  appear  somewhat  paradoxical,  the  editor  may  mention 
tliat  they  were  pronounced,  by  the  late  Mr  James  Ballant^ue,  in  wriliiig,  to  be  "admim- 
bly  truc.^' 


SIR   WALTER   SCOTT,  BART.  235 

professedly  by  a  diirerent  author  from  him  of  Waverley :  an  expedient 
which  the  real  author  had  thought  conducive  to  the  maintenance  of  the  pubh'c 
interest  Having  now  drawn  upon  public  curiosity  to  the  extent  of  twelve 
Tolunics  in  each  of  his  two  incognitos,  he  seems  to  have  thought  it  necessary  to 
adopt  a  third,  and  accordingly  lie  intended  Ivanhoe,  which  appeared  in  the  be- 
ginning of  1820,  to  come  forth  as  the  first  work  of  a  new  candidate  for  public 
favour.  From  this  design  he  was  diverted  by  a  circumstance  of  trivial  impor- 
tance, the  publication  of  a  novel  at  London,  pretending  to  be  a  fourth  series  of 
the  Tales  of  my  Landlord.  It  was  therefore  judged  necessary  that  Ivanhoe 
should  appear  as  a  veritable  production  of  the  author  of  Waverley.  To  it  suc- 
ceeded, in  the  course  of  the  same  year,  the  Monastery  and  the  Abbot, 
which  were  judged  as  the  least  meritorious  of  all  his  prose  tales.  In  the  be- 
ginning of  the  year  1 82  L,  appeared  Kenilworth  ;  making  twelve  volumes,  if  not 
written,  at  least  published,  in  as  many  months.  In  1822  he  produced  the 
Pirate  and  the  Fortunes  of  Nigel ;  in  1S23,  Peveril  of  the  Pe.ik  (four  volumes) 
and  Quentin  Durward ;  in  1824,  St  Ronan's  Well  and  Redgauntlet;  in  1825, 
Tales  of  the  Crusaders  (four  volumes);  in  1826,  Woodstock;  in  1827,  Chro. 
nicies  of  the  Canongate,  first  series  (tsvo  volumes) ;  in  1823,  Chronicles  of  the 
Canongate,  second  series  ;  in  1  829,  Anne  of  Geierstein  ;  and  in  1831,  a  fourth 
ieries  of  Tales  of  my  Landlord,  in  four  volumes,  containing  two  tales,  respec- 
tively entitled  Count  Robert  of  Paris,  and  Castle  Dangerous.  The  whole  of 
these  novels,  except  where  otherwise  specified,  consisted  of  three  volumes,  and, 
with  those  formerly  enumerated,  make  up  the  amount  of  liis  fictitious  prose 
compositions  to  the  enormous  sum  of  seventy-four  volumes. 

Throughout  the  whole  of  his  career,  both  as  a  poet  and  novelist.  Sir  Walter 
was  in  the  liabit  of  turning  aside  occaaionally  to  less  important  avocations  of  a 
literary  character.  He  was  a  contributor  to  the  Edinburgh  Review  during  the 
first  few  years  of  its  existence.  To  the  Quarterly  Review,  he  was  a  consider- 
able contributor,  especially  for  the  last  five  or  six  years  of  his  life,  during 
which  the  work  was  conducted  by  his  son-in-law,  Mr  Lockhart.  To  the  Sup- 
plement of  the  sixth  edition  of  the  Encyclopaedia  Britannica,  he  contributed 
the  articles  Chivalry,  Romance,  and  the  Drama.  In  1818,  he  wrote  one  or 
two  small  prose  articles  for  a  periodical,  after  the  manner  of  the  Spectator, 
which  was  started  by  his  friend  Mr  John  Ballantyne,  under  the  title  of  "  The 
Saleroom,"  and  was  soon  after  dropped  for  want  of  encouragement  In  1814, 
he  edited  the  Works  of  Swift,  in  nineteen  volumes,  with  a  life  of  the  author. 
In  1814,  Sir  Walter  gave  his  name  and  an  elaborate  introductory  essay  to  a 
work,  entitled  '*  Border  Antiquities,"  (two  volumes,  quarto,)  which  consisted  of 
engravings  of  the  principal  antique  objects  on  both  sides  of  the  Border,  accom- 
panied by  descriptive  letter-press.  In  1815,  he  made  a  tour  of  France  and 
Belgium,  visiting  the  scene  of  the  recent  victory  over  Napoleon.  The  result 
was  a  lively  traveller's  volume,  under  the  title  of  "  Paul's  Letters  to  his  Kins- 
folk,"' and  a  poem,  styled  "  The  Field  of  Waterloo."  In  the  same  year  he 
joined  with  Mr  Robert  Jamieson  and  Mr  Henry  Weber,  in  composing  a  quarto 
on  Icelandic  Antiquities.  In  1819,  he  published  **  An  Account  of  the  Regalia 
of  Scotland,"  and  undertook  to  furnish  the  letter-press  to  a  second  collection  of 
engravings,  under  the  title  of  "  Provincial  Antiquities  and  Picturesque  Scenery 
of  Scotland,"  one  of  the  most  elegant  books  which  has  ever  been  published  re- 
specting the  native  country  of  the  editor. 

In  the  year  1820,  the  agitated  state  of  the  country  was  much  regretted  by  Sir 
Walter  Scott ;  and  he  endeavoured  to  prove  the  absurdity  of  the  popular  excite- 
ment in  favour  of  a  more  extended  kind  of  parliamentary  representation,  by 
three  papers,  which  he  inserted  in  the  Edinburgh  Weekly  Journal  newspaper, 


23G  SIR  WALTER   SCOTT,  BART. 

under  the  title  of  "  The  Visionary."  However  well  intended,  these  were  not 
by  any  means  happy  specimens  of  political  disquisition.  Some  months  after- 
wards, it  was  deemed  necessary  by  a  few  Tory  gentlemen  and  lawyers,  to 
establish  a  newspaper,  in  which  the  more  violent  of  the  radical  prints  should  be 
met  upon  their  own  grounds.  To  tiiis  association  3Ir  Scott  subscribed,  and,  by 
means  partly  furnished  upon  his  credit,  a  weekly  journal  was  commenced,  under 
llie  title  of  "  The  Beacon."  As  the  scurrilities  of  this  print  inflicted  much  pain 
in  very  respectable  quarters,  it  sank,  after  an  existence  of  a  few  months,  amidst 
the  general  execrations  of  the  community.  Mr  Scott,  though  he  probably  never 
contemplated,  and  perhaps  was  hardly  aware  of  the  guilt  of  the  Beacon,  was 
loudly  blamed  for  his  connexion  with  it. 

In  18-22,  Sir  Walter  published  "  Trivial  Poems  and  Triolets,  by  P.  Carey, 
with  a  Preface;"  and,  in  1822,  appeared  his  dramatic  poem  of"  Halidon  Hill." 
In  the  succeeding  year,  he  contributed  a  smaller  dramatic  poem,  under  the  title 
of  "  Macduff's  Cross,"  to  a  collection  of  Miss  Joanna  Baillie.  The  sum  of  his 
remaining  poetical  works  may  here  be  made  up,  by  adding  "  The  Doom  of 
Devorgoil,"  and  "  The  Auchindrane  Tragedy,"  which  appeared  in  one  volume 
in  1830.  It  cannot  be  said  of  any  of  these  compositions,  that  they  have  made 
the  least  impression  upon  the  public. 

The  great  success  of  the  earlier  novels  of  Sir  Walter  Scott  had  encouraged 
his  publishers,  Messrs  Archibald  Constable  and  Company,  to  give  large  turns  for 
those  works:  and,  previous  to  1824,  it  was  understood  that  the  author  had 
spent  from  fifty  to  a  hundred  thousand  pounds,  thus  acquired,  upon  his  house 
and  estate  of  Abbotsford.  During  the  months  which  his  official  duties  permitted 
liim  to  spend  in  the  country — that  is,  the  whole  of  the  nmre  genial  part  of  tiie 
year,  from  March  till  November,  excepting  the  months  of  3Iay  and  June — he 
kept  state,  like  a  wealthy  country  gentleman,  at  this  delightful  seal,  where  ho 
was  visited  by  many  distinguished  pei-sons  from  England,  and  from  the  conti- 
nent As  he  scarcely  ever  spent  any  other  hours  than  those  between  seven  and 
eleven,  a.m.,  in  composition,  he  was  able  to  devote  the  greater  part  of  the  morn- 
ing to  country  exercise,  and  the  superintendence  of  his  planting  and  agricul- 
tural operations  ;  while  the  evenings  were,  in  a  great  measure,  devoted  to  his 
guests.  Almost  every  day,  he  used  to  ride  a  considerable  distance — sometimes 
not  less  than  twenty  miles — on  horeeback.  He  also  waiited  a  great  deal  ;  and, 
lame  as  he  was,  would  sometimes  tire  the  stoutest  of  his  companions. 

Among  the  eminent  persons  to  whom  he  had  been  recommended  by  his 
genius,  and  its  productions,  tiie  late  king  George  IV.  was  one,  and  not  the 
least  warm  in  his  admiration.  The  poet  of  Marmion  had  been  honoured  with 
many  interviews  by  his  sovereign,  when  prince  of  Wales  and  prince  regent ; 
and  his  majesty  was  pleased,  in  3Iarch,  1820,  to  create  him  a  baronet  of  the 
United  Kingdom,  being  the  first  to  whom  he  had  extended  tliat  honour  after 
his  accession  to  the  crown. 

In  1822,  when  his  majesty  visited  Scotland,  Sib  \Valter  found  the  duty  im- 
posed upon  him,  as  in  some  measure  the  most  prominent  man  in  the  country,  of 
acting  as  a  kind  of  master  of  ceremonies,  as  well  as  a  sort  of  dragoman,  or  me- 
diator, between  the  sovereign  and  his  people.  It  was  an  occasion  for  the  re- 
vival of  all  kinds  of  historical  and  family  reminiscences;  and  Sir  Walter^s  ac- 
quaintance with  national  antiquities,  not  less  than  his  universally  honoured  cha- 
racter, caused  him  to  be  resorted  to  by  innumerable  individuals,  and  many 
respectable  public  bodies,  for  information  and  advice.  On  the  evening  of  the 
14th  of  August,  when  his  majesty  cast  anchor  in  Lcith  Iloads,  Sir  Walter  Scott 
went  out  in  a  boat,  com.missioned  by  the  Ladies  of  Scotland,  to  weleome  the  king, 
and  to  present  his  majesty  with  an  elegant  jewelled  cross  of  St  Andrew,  to  be 


SIR  WALTER  SCOTT.  BART.  237 

worn  on  his  breast,  as  a  national  emblem.  When  the  king  was  informed  of 
Sir  Walter's  approach,  he  exclaimed,  "  What!  Sir  Walter  Scott?  The  man  in 
Scotland  I  most  wish  to  see!  Let  him  come  up."  Sir  Walter  accordingly 
ascended  the  ship,  and  was  presented  to  the  king  on  the  quarter-deck,  where 
he  met  witii  a  most  gracious  reception.  After  an  appropriate  speech,  Sir  AVal- 
ter  presented  his  gift,  and  then  knelt  and  kissed  the  king's  hand.  He  had 
afterwards  the  honour  of  dining  with  liis  majesty,  being  placed  on  his  right 
hand.  Throughout  the  whole  proceedings  connected  with  the  reception  and  re- 
sidence of  the  king  in  Scotland,  Sir  Walter  Scott  bore  a  very  conspicuous  part. 

Sir  Walter  Scott  had  now  apparently  attained  a  degree  of  human  greatness, 
Buch  as  rarely  falls  to  the  lot  of  literary  men  ;  and  he  was  generally  considered 
as  having,  by  prudence,  fairly  negatived  the  evils  to  which  the  whole  class  are  al- 
most proverbially  subject.  It  was  now  to  appear,  that,  though  he  had  exceeded 
his  brethren  in  many  points  of  wisdom,  and  really  earned  an  unusually  large 
sum  of  money,  he  had  not  altogether  secured  himself  against  calamity.  The 
bookselling  house  with  which  he  had  all  along  been  chiefly  connected,  Avas  one 
in  which  tlie  principal  partner  was  3Ir  Archibald  Constable,  a  man  who  will 
long  be  remembered  in  Scotland  for  the  impulse  which  he  gave  by  his  liberality 
to  the  literature  of  the  country,  but  at  the  same  time  for  a  want  of  calculation 
and  prudence,  whicii  in  a  great  measure  neutralized  his  best  qualities.  It  is 
diflicult  to  arrive  at  exact  infoi'mation  respecting  the  connexion  of  the  author 
with  his  publisher,  or  to  assign  to  each  the  exact  degree  of  blame  incidental  to 
him,  for  the  production  of  their  common  ruin.  It  appears,  however,  to  be  as- 
certained, that  Sir  Walter  Scott,  in  his  eagerness  for  the  purchase  of  land,  and 
at  the  same  time  to  maintain  the  style  of  a  considerable  country  gentleman, 
incurred  obligations  to  iMessrs  Constable  and  Company,  for  money  or  accep- 
tances, upon  the  prospect  of  works  in  the  course  of  being  written,  or  which  the 
author  only  designed  to  write,  and  was  thus  led,  by  a  principle  of  gratitude,  to 
grant  counter-acceptances  to  the  bookselling  house,  to  aid  in  its  relief  from 
those  embarrassments,  of  which  he  was  himself  partly  the  cause.  It  is  impossi- 
ble otherwise  to  account  for  Sir  Walter  Scott  having  incurred  liabilities  to  the 
creditors  of  that  house,  to  the  amount  of  no  less  than  £72,000,  while  of  its  pro- 
fits he  had  not  the  prospect  of  a  single  farthing. 

On  the  failure  of  Messrs  Constable  and  Company,  in  January,  1826,  Messrs 
Ballantyne  and  Company,  printers,  of  which  firm  Sir  Walter  Scott  was  a  part- 
ner, became  insolvent,  with  debts  to  the  amount  of  j£l02,000,  for  the  whole 
of  Avhich  Sir  Walter  was,  of  course,  liable,  in  addition  to  his  liabilities  for 
the  bookselling  house.  It  thus  appeared  that  the  most  splendid  literary  re- 
venue that  ever  man  made  for  himself,  had  been  compromised  by  a  connexion, 
partly  for  profit,  and  partly  otherwise,  with  the  two  mechanical  individuals  con- 
cerned in  the  mere  bringing  of  his  writings  before  the  world.  A  per-centage 
was  all  that  these  individuals  were  fairly  entitled  to  for  their  trouble  in  putting 
the  works  of  Sir  Walter  into  shape  ;  but  tiiey  had  absorbed  tlie  whole,  and 
more  than  the  whole,  leaving  both  him  and  themselves  poorer  than  they  were  at 
the  beginning  of  their  career. 

The  blow  was  endured  with  a  magnanimity  worthy  of  the  greatest  writer  of 
the  age.  On  the  very  day  after  the  calamity  had  been  made  known  to  him,  a 
friend  accosted  him  as  he  was  issuing  from  his  house,  and  presented  tlie  con> 
dolences  proper  to  such  a  melancholy  occasion. 

"  It  is  very  hard,"  said  he,  in  his  usual  slow  and  thoughtful  voice,  "  thus  to 
lose  all  the  labours  of  a  lifetime,  and  be  made  a  poor  man  at  last,  when  I  ought 
to  have  been  otherwise.  But  if  God  grant  me  health  and  strength  for  a  few 
years  longer,  I  have  no  doubt  that  I  shall  redeem  it  all." 


233  SIR  WALTER  SCOTT,  BART. 

The  principal  assets  wliich  he  could  present  against  the  large  claims  now 
made  upon  him,  were  the  mansion  and  grounds  of  Abbotsford,  which  he  had 
entailed  upon  his  son,  at  the  marriage  of  that  young  gentleman  to  Miss  Jobson 
of  Lochore,  but  in  a  manner  now  found  invalid,  and  which  were  burdened  by  a 
bond  for  £10,000.  He  had  also  his  house  in  Edinburgh,  and  the  furniture  of 
both  mansions.  His  creditors  proposed  a  composition  ;  but  his  honourable  na- 
ture, and  perhaps  a  sense  of  reputation,  prevented  him  from  listening  to  any 
such  scheme.  "  No,  gentlemen,"  said  he,  quoting  a  favourite  Spanish  proverb, 
"  Time  and  I  against  any  two.  Allow  me  time,  and  I  will  endeavour  to  pay 
all."  A  trust-deed  was,  accordingly,  executed  in  favour  of  certain  gentlemen, 
whose  duties  were  to  receive  the  funds  realized  by  our  author's  labours,  and 
gradually  pay  off  the  debts,  with  interest,  by  instalments.  He  likewise  insured 
his  life,  .with  the  sanction  of  his  trustees,  for  the  sum  of  £22,000,  by  which  a 
post-obit  interest  to  that  amount  was  secured  to  his  creditors.  He  was  the  bet- 
ter enabled  to  carry  into  execution  the  schemes  of  retrenchment  which  he  had 
resolved  on,  by  the  death  of  lady  Scott,  in  May,  182G.  Her  ladyship  had 
born  to  him  two  sons  and  two  daughters ;  of  the  latter  of  whom,  the  elder  liad 
been  married,  in  1820,  to  Mr  J.  G.  Lockhart,  advocate. 

Sir  Walter  was  engaged,  at  the  time  of  his  bankruptcy,  in  the  composition  of 
a  Life  of  Napoleon  Bonaparte,  which  was  originally  designed  to  fill  only  four 
volumes,  but  eventually  extended  to  nine.  In  the  autumn  of  1826,  he  paid  a 
visit  to  Paris,  in  company  with  his  youngest  and  only  unmarried  daughter,  in  or- 
der to  acquaint  himself  with  several  historical  and  local  details,  requisite  for  the 
work  upon  which  he  was  engaged.  On  this  occasion,  he  was  received  with 
distinguished  kindness  by  the  reigning  monarch,  Charles  X.  The  "  Life  of 
Napoleon"  appeared  in  summer,  1827  ;  and,  though  too  bulky  to  be  very  po- 
pular, and  perhaps  too  hastily  written  to  bear  the  test  of  rigid  criticism,  it  was 
understood  to  produce  to  its  author  a  sum  little  short  of  £12,000.  This,  with 
other  ejirnings  and  accessory  resources,  enabled  him  to  pay  a  dividend  of  six 
shillings  and  eightpence  to  his  creditors. 

Till  tliis  period,  Sir  Walter  Scott  had  made  no  avowal  to  the  public  of  his 
being  the  author  of  that  long  series  of  prose  fictions,  which  had  for  some  years 
engaged  so  much  of  public  attention.  It  being  no  longer  possible  to  presen'e 
his  incognito,  he  permitted  himself,  at  a  dinner  for  the  benefit  of  the  Edinburgh 
Theatrical  Fund,  February  23,  1827,  to  be  drawn  into  a  disclosure  of  the 
secret.  On  his  health  being  proposed  by  lord  Meadow  bank,  as  the  "  Great 
Unknown,"  now  unknown  no  longer,  he  acknowledged  the  compliment  in  suit- 
able terms,  and  declared  himself,  unequivocally,  to  be  tl;e  sole  author  of  what 
were  called  the  Waverley  Novels. 

About  the  same  time,  the  copyright  of  all  his  past  novels  was  brought  to  the 
hammer,  as  part  of  the  bankrupt  stock  of  Messrs  Constable  and  Company.  It 
was  bought  by  IMr  Ilobert  Cadell,  of  the  late  firm  of  Archibald  Constable  and 
Company,  and  who  was  now  once  more  engaged  in  the  bookselling  business,  at 
£8,400,  for  the  purpose  of  republishing  the  whole  of  these  delightful  works  in 
a  cheap  uniform  series  of  volumes,  illustrated  by  notes  and  prefaces,  and 
amended  in  many  parts  by  the  finishing  touches  of  the  author.  Sir  Walter  or 
his  creditors  were  to  have  'half  the  profiu,  in  consideration  of  his  lite- 
rary aid. 

This  was  a  most  fortunate  design.  The  new  edition  began  to  appear  in 
June,  1829;  and  such  was  its  adaptation  to  the  public  convenience,  and  the 
eagerness  of  all  ranks  of  people  to  contribute  in  a  way  convenient  to  themselves 
towards  the  reconstruction  of  the  author's  fortunes,  that  the  sale  soon  reached 
an  average  of  twenty-three  thousand  copies.     To  give  the  reader  an  idea  of  the 


SIR  WALTER   SCOTT,  BART.  239 

niagiiitude  of  this  concern — speaking  coinmerdaliy — it  may  be  stated  that,  in 
tlie  mere  production  of  the  work,  not  to  speak  of  its  sale,  about  a  thousand 
persons,  or  nearly  a  hundredili  part  of  the  population  of  Edinburgh,  were  sup- 
ported. The  author  was  now  cliiefly  employed  in  preparing  these  narratives 
for  the  new  impression  ;  but  he  nevertheless  found  time  occasionally  to  produce 
original  works.  In  November,  1828,  he  published  the  first  part  of  a  juvenile 
History  of  Scotland,  under  the  title  of  "  Tales  of  a  Grandfather,"  being  ad- 
dressed to  his  grandchild,  John  Hugh  Lockhart,  whom  he  typified  under  the 
appellation  of  Hugh  Littlejohn,  Esf;.  In  1829,  appeared  the  second,  and  in 
1830,  the  third  and  concluding  series  of  this  charming  book,  which  fairly  ful- 
filled a  half-sportive  expression  that  had  escaped  him  many  years  before,  in 
the  company  of  his  children — that  "  he  would  yet  make  the  history  of  Scotland 
as  familiar  in  the  nurseries  of  England  as  lullaby  ihymes."  In  1830,  he  also 
contributed  a  graver  History  of  Scotland,  in  two  volumes,  to  the  periodical  woik 
called  "  Lardner's  Cabinet  Cyclopasdia."  In  the  same  year,  appeared 
his  Letters  on  Demonology  and  Witchcraft,  as  a  volume  of  Mr  Murray's  "  Fami- 
ly Library;"  and,  in  1831,  he  added  to  his  Tales  of  a  Grandfather,  a  uniform 
series  on  French  history.  In  the  same  year,  two  sermons  which  he  had  writ- 
ten a  considerable  time  before,  for  a  young  clerical  friend,  were  published  by 
that  individual  in  London,  and,  as  specimens  of  so  great  an  author  in  an  extra- 
ordinary line  of  composition,  met  with  an  extensive  sale. 

The  profits  of  these  various  publications,  but  especially  his  share  of  the 
profits  of  the  new  edition  of  his  novels,  enabled  him,  towards  the  end  of  the 
year  1830,  to  pay  a  dividend  of  three  shillings  in  the  pound,  which,  but  for 
the  accumulation  of  interest,  would  have  reduced  his  debts  to  nearly  one-half. 
Of  £54,000  which  had  now  been  paid,  all  except  six  or  seven  thousand  had 
been  produced  by  his  own  literary  labours ;  a  fact  which  fixes  the  revenue  of 
his  intellect  for  the  last  four  or  five  years  at  nearly  £10,000  a-year.  Besides 
this  sum.  Sir  Walter  had  also  paid  up  the  premium  of  the  policy  upon  his  life, 
which,  as  already  mentioned,  secured  a  post  obit  interest  of  £22,000  to  his 
creditors.  On  this  occasion,  it  was  suggested  by  one  of  these  gentlemen,  (Sir 
James  Gibson  Craig,)  and  immediately  assented  to,  that  they  should  present  to 
Sir  Walter  personally  the  library,  manuscripts,  curiosities,  and  plate,  which  had 
once  been  his  own,  as  an  acknowledgment  of  the  sense  they  entertained  of  his 
honourable  conduct. 

In  November,  1830,  he  oetired  from  his  office  of  principal  clerk  of  session, 
with  the  superannuation  allowance  usually  given  after  twenty-three  years'  ser- 
vice. Earl  Grey  offered  to  make  up  the  allowance  to  the  full  salary  ;  but,  from 
motives  of  delicacy.  Sir  Walter  firmly  declined  to  accept  of  such  a  faTOur  from 
one  to  whom  he  was  opposed  in  politics. 

His  health,  from  his  sixteenth  year,  had  been  very  good,  except  during  the 
years  1818  and  1819,  when  he  suffered  under  an  illness  of  such  severity  as  to 
turn  his  hair  quite  grey,  and  send  him  out  again  to  the  world  apparently  ten 
years  older  than  before.  It  may  be  mentioned,  however,  that  this  illness, 
though  accompanied  by  very  severe  pain,  did  not  materially  interrupt  or  retard 
his  intellectual  labours.  He  was  only  reduced  to  the  necessity  of  employing  an 
amanuensis,  to  whom  he  dictated  from  his  bed.  The  humorous  character, 
Dugald  Dalgetty,  in  the  third  series  of  the  Tales  of  my  Landlord,  and  the  splen- 
did scene  of  the  Siege  of  Torquilston  in  Ivanhoe,  were  created  under  these  cir- 
cumstances. iMr  William  Laidlaw,  his  factor,  who  at  one  time  performed  the 
task  of  amanuensis,  has  described  how  he  would  sometimes  be  stopped  in  the 
midst  of  some  of  the  most  amusing  or  most  elevated  scenes,  by  an  attack  of 
pain — which  being  past,  he  would  recommence  in  the  same  tone  at  the  point 


240  Sill  WALTER  SCOTT,  BART. 

where   lie   bad   left  oft*,   and  so    on   for  day  after  day,  till  the  novel  wna 
finished. 

It  happened  very  unfortunately,  that  the  serere  task  uhich  he  imposed  upon 
himself,  for  the  purpose  of  discharging  his  obligations,  cnme  at  a  period  of  life 
^lien  he  was  least  able  to  accomplish  it.  It  uill  hardly  be  believed  that,  even 
nhen  so  far  occupied  with  his  official  duties  in  town,  he  seldom  permitted  a  day 
to  pass  over  his  head  without  writing  as  much  .is  to  fill  a  sheet  of  print,  or  six- 
teen pages;  and  this,  whether  it  was  cf  an  historical  nature,  with  of  course  the 
duty  of  consulting  documents,  or  of  fictitious  matter  spun  from  the  loom  of  his 
fancy.  Although  this  labour  was  alleviated  in  the  country  by  considerable 
exercise,  it  nevertheless  must  have  pressed  severely  upon  the  powers  of  a  man 
nearly  sixty  bt/  years,  and  fully  seventy  by  constitution.  The  reader  may 
judge  how  strong  must  have  been  that  principle  of  integrity,  which  could  com- 
mand such  a  degree  of  exertion  and  self-denial,  not  so  much  to  pay  debts  con- 
tracted by  himself,  as  to  discharge  obligations  in  which  he  was  involved  by 
others.  He  can  only  be  likened,  indeed,  to  the  generous  elephant,  which, 
being  set  to  a  task  above  its  powers,  performed  it  at  the  expense  of  life,  and 
then  fell  dead  at  the  feet  of  its  master. 

His  retirement  from  official  duty  might  have  been  expected  to  relieve  in 
some  measure  the  pains  of  intense  mental  application.  It  was  now  too  late, 
however,  to  redeem  the  health  tliat  had  fled.  During  the  succeeding  winter, 
symptoms  of  gradual  paralysis,  a  disease  hereditary  in  his  family,  began  to  be 
manifested.  His  contracted  limb  be<"ame  gradually  weaker  and  more  painful, 
and  his  tongue  less  readily  obeyed  the  impulse  of  the  will.  In  March,  1831, 
he  attended  a  meeting  of  the  freeholders  of  the  county  of  Koxburgh,  to  aid  in 
the  expression  of  disapprobation,  with  which  a  majority  of  those  gentlemen  de- 
signed to  visit  the  contemplated  reform  bills.  Sir  Walter  was,  as  already 
liinted,  a  zealous  Tory,  though  more  from  sentiment,  perhaps,  than  opinion, 
and  he  regarded  those  regenerating  measures  as  only  the  commencement  of  the 
ruin  of  his  country.  Having  avowed  this  conviction  in  very  warm  language,  a 
few  of  the  individuals  present  by  courtesy,  expressed  their  dissent  in  the  usual 
vulgar  manner ;  whereupon  lie  turned,  with  anger  flashing  in  Iiis  eye — with 
him  a  most  unwonted  passion — and  said,  that  he  cared  no  more  for  such  ex- 
pressions of  disapproval  than  he  did  for  the  hissing  of  geese  or  the  braying  of 
asses.  He  was  evidently,  however,  much  chagrined  at  the  reception  his 
opinions  had  met  with,  and  in  returning  home  was  observed  to  shed  tears. 

During  the  summer  of  1831,  the  symptoms  of  his  dis'rder  became  gradually 
more  violent;  and  to  add  to  the  distress  of  those  around  him,  his  temper,  for- 
merly so  benevolent,  so  imperturbable,  became  peevish  and  testy,  insomuch 
that  his  most  familiar  relatives  could  hardly  venture,  on  some  occasions,  to  ad- 
dress him.  At  this  period,  in  writing  to  the  editor  of  the  present  work,  he 
thus  expressed  himself: — 

**  Although  it  is  said  in  the  newspapers,  I  am  actually  far  from  well, 
and  instead  of  being  exercising  {sic),  on  a  brother  novelist,  Chateaubriand, 
my  influence  to  decide  him  to  raise  an  insurrection  in  France,  which  is  the 
very  probable  employment  allotted  to  me  by  some  of  the  papers,  I  am  keeping 
my  head  as  cool  as  I  can,  and  speaking  with  some  difficulty. 

"  I  have  owed  you  a  letter  longer  than  I  intended,  but  write  with  pain,  and 
in  general  use  the  hand  of  a  friend.  I  sign  with  my  initials,  as  enough  to  ex- 
press the  poor  half  of  me  that  is  left.     But  I  am  still  much  yours, 

"  W.  S." 

Since  the  early  part  of  the  year,  he  had,  in  a  great  measure,  abandoned  the 
pen  fur  the  purposes  of  authorship.     This,  however,  he  did  with  some  difficulty, 


SIR  WALTER   SCOTT,  BART.  241 

and  it  is  to  be  feared  that  he  resumed  it  more  frequently  than  he  ought  to  have 
done.  "  Dr  Abercroniby,''  says  he,  in  a  letter  dated  March  7,  "  threatens  me 
with  deatii  if  I  write  so  much  ;  and  die,  I  suppose,  I  must,  if  I  give  it  up  sud- 
denly. I  must  assist  Lockhart  a  little,  for  you  are  aware  of  our  connexion, 
and  he  has  always  showed  me  the  duties  of  a  son  ;  but,  except  that,  and  my 
own  necessary  work  at  tiie  edition  of  the  Waverley  Novels,  as  they  call  them, 
I  can  hardly  pretend  to  put  pen  to  paper ;  for  after  all  this  same  dying  is  a 
ceremony  one  would  put  off  as  long  as  possible." 

In  the  autumn,  his  physicians  recommended  a  residence  in  Italy,  as  a  means 
of  delaying  the  approaches  of  his  illness.  To  this  scheme  he  felt  the  strongest 
repugnance,  as  he  feared  he  should  die  on  a  foreign  soil,  far  from  the  moun- 
tain-land which  Avas  so  endeared  to  himself,  and  which  he  had  done  so  much  to 
endear  to  others  ;  but  by  the  intervention  of  some  friends,  whose  advice  he  had 
been  accustomed  to  respect  from  his  earliest  years,  he  was  prevailed  upon  to 
comply.  By  the  kind  offices  of  captain  Basil  Hall,  liberty  was  obtained  for 
him  to  sail  in  his  majesty's  ship  the  Barham,  which  was  then  fitting  out  for 
Malta. 

He  sailed  in  this  vessel  from  Portsmouth,  on  the  27th  of  October,  and  on 
the  27th  of  December  landed  at  Naples,  where  he  was  received  by  the  king 
and  his  court  with  a  feeling  approaching  to  homage.  In  April,  he  proceeded 
to  Rome,  and  was  there  received  in  the  same  manner.  He  inspected  the  re- 
mains of  Roman  grandeur  with  some  show  of  interest,  but  was  observed  to  mark 
with  a  keener  feeling,  and  more  minute  care,  the  relics  of  the  more  barbarous 
middle  ages  ;  a  circumstance,  in  our  opinion,  to  have  been  predicated  from  the 
whole  strain  of  his  writings.  He  paid  visits  to  Tivoli,  Albani,  and  Frescati. 
If  any  thing  could  have  been  effectual  in  re-illuming  that  lamp,  which  was  now 
beginning  to  pale  its  mighty  lustres,  it  might  have  been  expected  that  tJiis 
Avould  have  been  the  ground  on  which  the  miracle  was  to  take  place.  But  he 
was  himself  conscious,  even  amidst  the  flatteries  of  his  friends,  that  all  hopes  of 
this  kind  were  at  an  end.  P'eeling  that  his  strength  was  rapidly  decaying,  he 
determined  upon  returning  with  all  possible  speed  to  his  native  country,  in  or- 
der that  his  bones  might  not  be  laid  (to  use  the  language  of  his  own  favourite 
minstrelsy)  "  far  from  the  Tweed."  His  journey  was  performed  too  rapidly 
for  his  strength.  For  six  days  he  travelled  seventeen  hours  a-day.  The  con- 
sequence was,  that  in  passing  down  the  Rhine  he  experienced  a  severe  attack 
of  his  malady,  which  produced  complete  insensibility,  and  would  have  inevitably 
carried  him  off,  but  for  the  presence  of  mind  of  his  servant,  who  bled  him  pro- 
fusely. On  his  arrival  in  London,  he  was  conveyed  to  the  St  James's  Hotel, 
Jermyn  Street,  and  immediately  attended  by  Sir  Henry  Halford  and  Dr  Hol- 
land, as  well  as  by  his  son-in-law  and  daughter.  All  help  was  now,  however, 
useless.  The  disease  had  reached  nearly  its  most  virulent  stage,  producing  a 
total  insensibility  to  the  presence  of  even  his  most  beloved  relatives — 


-"  omni 


Membrorum  damno  major,  dementia,  quae  nee 
Nomina  servorum,  nee  vultum  agnoscit  amici." 

After  residing  for  some  weeks  in  London,  in  the  receipt  of  every  attention 
which  filial  piety  and  medical  skill  could  bestow,  the  expiring  poet  desired  that, 
if  possible,  he  might  be  removed  to  his  native  land — to  his  own  home.  As 
the  case  was  reckoned  quite  desperate,  it  was  resolved  to  gratify  him  in  his  dying 
wish,  even  at  the  hazard  of  accelerating  his  dissolution  by  the  voyage.  He 
accordingly  left  London  on  the  7th  of  July,  and,  arriving  at  Ne\\haven  on  the 
evening  of  the  9th,  was  conveyed  with  all  possible  care  to  a  hotel  in  his  na- 


242  SIS  WALTER  SCOTT,  BART. 

live  city.     After  spending  two  nights  and  a  day  in  Edinburgh,  he  was  removed^ 
on  the  morning  of  the  1 1th,  to  Abbotsford. 

That  intense  love  of  home  and  of  country,  which  had  urged  his  return  from 
the  continent,  here  seemed  to  dispel  for  a  moment  the  clouds  of  the  mental  at- 
mosphere. In  descending  the  vale  of  Gala,  at  the  bottom  of  whidi  the  view  of 
Abbotsford  first  opens,  it  was  found  difficult  to  keep  him  quiet  in  his  carriage, 
so  anxious  was  he  to  rear  himself  up,  in  order  to  catcli  an  early  glimpse  of  the 
beloved  scene.  On  arriving  at  his  house,  lie  hardly  recognized  any  body  or  any 
thing.  He  looked  vacantly  on  all  the  objects  that  met  his  gaze,  except  the  well- 
remembered  visage  of  his  friend  Laidlaw,  whose  hand  he  atlectionately  pressed, 
munnuring,  "  that  ndw  he  knew  that  he  was  at  Abbotsford."  He  was  here  at- 
tended by  most  of  the  members  of  iiis  family,  including  Mr  Lockhart,  while  the 
general  superintendence  of  his  death-bed  (now  too  certainly  such)  was  committed 
to  Dr  Clarkson  of  IMelrose.  He  was  now  arrived  at  that  melancholy  state,  when 
the  friends  of  the  patient  can  form  no  more  affectionate  wish  than  that  death 
may  step  in  to  claim  his  own.  Yet  day  after  day  did  the  remnants  of  a  robust 
constitution  continue  to  hold  out  against  the  gloomy  foe  of  life,  until,  notwith- 
standing every  eflbrt  to  the  contrary,  mortification  commenced  at  several  parts 
of  the  body.  This  was  about  twelve  days  before  his  demise,  which  at  length 
took  place  on  the  21st  of  September,  (1832,)  the  principles  of  life  having  been 
by  that  time  so  thorouglily  worn  out,  that  nothing  remained  by  which  pain 
could  be  either  experienced  or  expressed.  On  the  2Gth,  the  illustrious  deceased 
was  buried  in  an  aisle  in  Dryburgh  abbey,  which  had  belonged  to  one  of  his  an- 
cestors, and  which  had  been  given  to  him  by  the  late  earl  of  Euchan. 

Sir  Walter  Scott  was  in  stature  above  six  feet ;  but,  having  been  lame  from 
an  early  period  of  life  in  the  right  limb,  he  sank  a  little  on  that  side  in  walk- 
ing. His  person  was,  in  latter  life,  bulky,  but  not  corpulent,  and  made  a  grace- 
ful appearance  on  horseback.  Of  his  features,  it  is  needless  to  give  any  parti- 
cular description,  as  they  must  be  familiar  to  every  reader  through  the  medium 
of  the  innumerable  portraits,  busts,  and  medallions,  by  wliich  they  have  been 
commemorated.  His  complexion  was  fair,  and  the  natural  colour  of  his  hair 
sandy.  The  portrait,  by  Kaeburn,  of  which  an  engraving  was  prefixed  to  the 
Lady  of  the  Lake,  gives  the  best  representation  of  the  poet,  as  he  appeared  in 
the  prime  of  life.  The  bust  of  Cliantry,  taken  in  1820,  affords  the  most  faith- 
ful delineation  of  his  features  as  he  was  advancing  into  age.  And  his  aspect,  in 
his  sixtieth  year,  when  age  and  reflection  had  more  deeply  marked  his  coun- 
tenance, is  most  admirably  preserved  in  Mr  Watson  Gordon's  portrait,  of  which 
an  engraving  is  prefixed  to  the  new  edition  of  his  novels.  There  is,  likewise,  a 
very  faithful  portrait  by  Mr  Leslie,  an  American  artist. 

Sir  \\  alter  Scott  possessed,  in  an  eminent  degree,  the  power  of  imagination, 
with  the  gift  of  memory.  If  to  this  be  added  his  strong  tendency  to  venerate 
past  things,  we  at  once  have  the  most  obvious  features  of  his  intellectual  charac- 
ter. A  desultory  course  of  reading  liad  brougiit  him  into  acquaintance  with 
almost  all  the  fictitious  literature  that  existed  before  his  own  day,  as  well  as  the 
minutest  points  of  British,  and  more  particularly  Scottish  history.  His  easy 
and  familiar  habits  had  also  introduced  him  to  an  extensive  observation  of  the 
varieties  of  liuman  character.  His  immense  memory  retained  the  ideas  thus 
acquired,  and  his  splendid  imagination  gave  them  new  shape  and  colour.  Thus, 
his  literary  character  rests  almost  exclusively  upon  his  power  of  combining  and 
embellishing  past  events,  and  his  skill  in  delineating  natural  character.  In 
early  life,  accident  threw  his  ons  into  the  shape  of  verse — in  later  life, 

into  prose  ;  but,  in  whatever  form  they  appear,  the  powers  are  not  much  diffe- 
rent.    The  same  magician  is  still  at  work,  re-awaking  the  figures  and  events  of 


HENRY  SCOUGAL.  243 


hifltory,  or  sketcliing  the  characters  Avhich  we  CTery  day  see  around  us,  and  in- 
vesting the  A\hole  with  the  light  of  a  most  extraordinary  fancy. 

It  is  by  far  the  greatest  glory  of  Sir  Walter  Scott,  that  he  shone  equally  as  a 
good  and  virtuous  man,  as  he  did  in  his  capacity  of  the  first  fictitious  writer  of 
the  age.  His  behaviour  through  life  was  marked  by  undeviating  integrity  and 
purity.  His  character  as  a  husband  and  father  is  altogether  irreproachable. 
Indeed,  in  no  single  relation  of  life  does  he  appear  liable  to  blame,  except  in  the 
facility  with  which  he  yielded  his  fortunes  into  the  power  of  others,  of  whom  he 
ought  to  have  stood  quite  independent.  Laying  this  imprudence  out  of  view,  his 
good  sense,  and  good  feeling  united,  appear  to  have  guided  him  aright  through 
all  the  ditliculiies  and  temptations  of  life.  Along  with  the  most  perfect  upright- 
ness of  conduct,  he  was  characterized  by  extraordinary  simplicity  of  manners. 
He  was  invariably  gracious  and  kind,  and  it  was  impossible  ever  to  detect  in 
his  conversation  a  symptom  of  his  grounding  the  slightest  title  to  consideration 
upon  his  literary  fame,  or  of  his  even  being  conscious  of  it. 

By  dint  of  almost  incredible  exertions.  Sir  Walter  Scott  had  reduced  the 
amount  of  his  debts,  at  the  time  of  his  decease,  to  about  £20,000,  exclusive  of 
the  accumulated  interest.  On  the  29th  of  October,  a  meeting  of  his  creditors 
was  called,  when  an  offer  was  made  by  his  family  of  that  sum  against  the  ensu- 
ing February,  on  condition  of  their  obtaining  a  complete  discharge.  The 
meeting  was  very  numerously  attended,  and  the  proposal  was  accepted  without  a 
dissentient  voice.  In  addition  to  the  resolution  accepting  the  offer,  and  directing 
the  trustees  to  see  tlie  acceptance  carried  into  effect,  the  following  resolution 
was  moved  and  carried  with  a  like  unanimity  : — 

"  And  while  the  meeting  state  their  anxious  wish  that  every  creditor,  who  is 
not  present,  may  adopt  the  same  resolution,  they  think  it  a  tribute  justly  due  to 
the  memory  of  Sir  Walter  Scott,  to  express,  in  the  strongest  manner,  their  deef 
sense  of  his  most  honourable  conduct,  and  of  the  unparalleled  benefits  which 
they  have  derived  from  the  extraordinary  exertion  of  his  unrivalled  talents,  un- 
der misfortunes  and  difficulties,  which  would  have  paralyzed  the  exertions  of 
any  one  else,  but  in  him  only  proved  the  greatness  of  mind  which  enabled  him 
to  rise  superior  to  them." 

SCOUGAL,  Henry,  a  theological  writer  of  considerable  eminence,  was 
born  in  the  end  of  June,  1G50.  He  was  descended  of  the  family  of  the  Scou- 
gals  of  that  ilk,  and  was  the  son  of  Patrick  Scougal,  bishop  of  Aberdeen, 
from  1664  to  1682  ;  a  man  whose  piety  and  learning  have  been  comme- 
morated by  bishop  Burnet.  His  son  Henry  is  said  to  have  early  displayed 
symptoms  of  those  talents  for  which  he  was  afterwards  distinguished.  We  are 
told  by  Dr  George  Garden,  that  "  he  was  not  taken  up  with  the  plays  and  lit- 
tle diversions  of  those  of  his  age  ;  but,  upon  such  occasions,  did  usually  retire 
from  them,  and  that  not  out  of  sullenness  of  humour  or  dulness  of  spirit,  (the 
sweetness  and  serenity  of  whose  temper  did  even  then  appear,)  but  out  of  a  stayed- 
oess  of  mind,  going  to  some  privacy,  and  employing  his  time  in  reading,  prayer, 
rnd  such  serious  thoughts,  as  that  age  was  capable  of."^  Tradition  has  asserted 
that  Scougnl  was  led  to  the  study  of  theology,  in  the  hope  of  finding  in  it  a 
balm  for  disappointed  affections;  and  this  is  in  so  far  countenanced  by  the 
tenor  of  several  passages  of  his  Avritings,  Another  cause,  however,  has  been 
assigned,  and  apparently  on  better  authority.  "  Being  once  in  a  serious  reflec- 
tion what  course  of  life  he  should  take,  he  takes  up  the  Bible,  to  read  a  portion 
of  it ;  and  though  he  was  always  averse  to  the  making  a  lottery  of  the  Scrip- 
tures, yet  he  could  not  but  take  notice  of  the  first  words  which  he  cast  his  eyes 

I  A  Sermon  preached  al  the  Funeral  of  the  reverend  Henrj-  Scougal,  M.  A.  ByG.  G. 
[George  Garden],  D.  D,,  p.  285. 


244  HENRY  SCOUGAL. 


upon,  and  which  made  no  small  impression  on  his  spirit :  *  By  what  means 
shall  a  young  man  learn  to  purify  his  way  ?  By  taking  heed  thereto  according 
to  thy  word.'  "  On  his  father's  election  to  the  see  of  Aberdeen,  Scougal  en- 
tered as  a  student  at  King's  college  there,  of  which  university  his  father  was  chan- 
cellor, lie  seems  to  have  taken  the  lead  of  iiis  fellow  students  in  almost  every 
department  of  science  ;  and,  in  addition  to  the  usual  branches  of  knowledge 
pursued  in  the  univeraity,  to  have  acquired  a  knowledge  of  some  of  the  Orien- 
tal tongues.  Immediately  on  taking  his  degree,  he  was  selected  to  assist  one  of 
the  regents  in  the  instruction  of  his  class;  and  the  next  year,  1669,  he  was,  at  the 
early  age  of  nineteen,  appointed  a  professor.  His  immature  age  was  probably 
incapable  to  preserve  order  in  his  class  ;  at  all  events,  tumults  and  insubordina- 
tion broke  forth  among  his  students,  of  whom  so  many  were  expelled  from  the 
college,  that  he  scarce  had  a  class  to  teach.  His  office  of  regent,  which  was 
thus  inauspiciously  commenced,  he  held  but  for  four  years,  having  at  tlie  end  of 
that  time  accepted  the  pastoral  charge  of  the  parish  of  Auchterless,  in  Aberdeen- 
shire. He  retained  this  charge  no  longer  than  a  twelvemonth,  and,  in  1674, 
Avas  appointed  professor  of  divinity  in  the  King's  college  ;  a  chair  which  had 
shortly  before  been  filled  by  the  celebrated  John  Forbes  of  Corse,  and  more 
lately  by  William  Douglas,  the  learned  author  of  the  "  Academiarum  Vindiciae," 
and  other  works.  As  was  customary  in  that  age,  Scougal  printed  a  thesis  on 
his  accession  to  the  divinity  chair  :  this  tract,  which  is  still  preserved  and  highly 
prized,  is  entitled,  "  De  Objecto  cultus  Religiosi." 

In  1677,  appeared  "  The  Life  of  God  in  the  Soul  of  Man,  or  the  Nature  and 
Excellency  of  the  Christian  religion."  This  work,  to  which  Scougal's  modesty 
would  not  permit  him  to  prefix  his  name,  was  edited  by  bishop  Burnet,  who 
appended  to  it  a  tract  called  "  An  account  of  the  Spiritual  Life,"  supposed  to 
be  written  by  himself.  In  the  prefatory  notice,  Burnet  states  of  the  author, 
"  that  the  book  is  a  transcript  of  those  divine  impressions  that  were  upon  his 
own  heart,  and  that  he  has  written  nothing  in  it  but  what  he  himself  did  well 
feel  and  know."  The  work  passed  at  once  into  that  extensive  popularity  and 
high  reputation  it  has  ever  since  enjoyed.  Before  1727,  it  had  gone  through 
five  editions,  the  last  under  the  superintendence  of  the  Society  for  promoting 
Christian  knowledge.  In  1735,  it  was  again  reprinted  with  the  addition  of 
"  Nine  Discourses  on  Important  Subjects,"  and  Dr  Garden's  funeral  sermon  ;  and 
in  1740,  another  edition  appeared,  with  some  "  Occasional  Meditations,"  not 
previously  published.  Since  that  period  editions  have  nmltiplied  very  rapidly. 
In  1722,  it  was  translated  into  French,  and  published  at  the  Hague.  Scougal 
survived  the  publication  of  his  work  for  no  longer  than  a  twelvemonth.  At  the 
early  age  of  twenty-eiglit,  he  died  on  the  13th  of  June,  in  the  year  1678,  and 
was  interred  on  the  north  side  of  the  chapel  of  King's  college,  where  a  tablet 
of  black  marble,  bearing  a  simple  Latin  inscription  was  erected  to  his  memory. 
He  bequeathed  a  sum  of  five  thousand  merks  to  augment  the  salary  of  the  pro- 
fessor of  divinity  in  the  university,  and  left  his  books  to  the  college  library. 
A  portrait  of  Scougal  is  preserved  in  the  college  hall,  and  the  countenance 
breathes  all  that  serene  composure,  benevolence,  purity,  and  kindness  which  so 
strikingly  mark  his  writings.  Besides  the  works  which  have  been  mentioned, 
Scougal  left  behind  him  in  manuscript  various  juvenile  essays,  and  some  Latin 
tracts,  among  which  are  "  A  short  System  of  Ethics  or  Moral  Philosophy  ;'* 
**  A  Preservative  against  the  Artifices  of  the  Romish  missionaries,"  and  a  frag- 
ment "  On  the  Pastoral  Cure."  This  last  work  was  designed  for  the  use  of 
students  in  divinity  and  candidates  for  holy  orders.  None  of  the  least  beautiful 
or  remarkable  of  his  works  is  **  The  Morning  and  Evening  Service,"  which  he 
composed  for  the  Cathedral  of  Aberdeen,  and  which  is  characterized  by  a  spirit 


HENRY   SCRIMGER.  245 


of  fervid  devotion,  and  a  deep  and  singular  elevation  of  thought,  and  solemnitj 
of  diction. 

SCRIMGER,  Henry,  a  learned  person  of  the  sixteenth  century,  was  the  son 
of  Walter  Scrimger  of  Glasswell,  wiio  traced  his  descent  from  the  Scrimgers  or 
Scrinizeors  of  Dudhojje,  constables  of  Dundee,  and  hereditary  standard-bearers 
of  Scotland.  The  subject  of  this  memoir  was  born  at  Dundee  in  150G,  and  re- 
ceived the  rudiments  of  his  education  in  the  grammar  school  of  that  town,  where 
he  made  singular  proficiency  both  in  the  Latin  and  Greek  languages.  He  af- 
terwards went  through  a  course  of  philosophy  in  the  university  of  St  Andreu» 
with  great  applause.  From  thence  he  proceeded  to  Paris  to  study  civil  law. 
He  next  removed  to  Bourges,  where  he  studied  for  some  time  under  Baro  and 
Duaren,  who  were  considered  the  two  greatest  lawyers  of  the  age  in  which  they 
lived.  Here  he  formed  an  acquaintance  with  the  celebrated  Amiot,  who  at 
that  time  filled  the  Greek  chaii  at  Bourges,  and  through  his  recommendation  was 
appointed  tutor  to  the  children  of  secretary  Boucherel.  In  this  situation,  whid* 
he  filled  to  the  entire  satisfaction  of  his  employers,  Scrimger  became  acquainted 
with  Bernard  Bcpnetel,  bishop  of  Rennes,  who,  on  being  appointed  ambassadoi 
from  the  court  of  France  to  some  of  the  states  of  Italy,  made  choice  of  him  for 
his  private  secretary  With  this  dignitary  he  travelled  through  the  greater 
part  of  that  interesting  country,  and  was  introduced  to  a  great  many  of  its  most 
eminent  and  learned  men.  While  on  a  visit  to  Padua,  he  had  an  opportunity 
of  seeing  the  notorious  apostate  Francis  Spira,  of  whose  extraordinary  case  he 
wrote  a  narrative,  which  was  published  along  with  an  account  of  the  same  case- 
by  Petrus  Paulus  Virgerus,  Mattheus  Gribaldus,  and  Sigismundus  Gelous,  under 
the  following  title  "  The  history  of  Franciscus  Spira,  who  fell  into  a  dreadful 
state  of  despair  because,  having  once  assumed  a  profession  of  evangelical  truili, 
he  had  afterwards  recanted  and  condemned  the  same,  most  faithfully  written  by 
four  most  excellent  men,  together  with  prefaces  by  these  illustrious  men  Caeliirs 
S.C.  and  John  Calvin,  and  an  .apology  by  Petrus  Paulus  Virgerus,  in  aH. 
which,  many  subjects  worthy  of  examination  in  these  times  are  most  gravely 
handled.  To  which  is  added  the  judgment  of  Martinus  Borrhaus  on  the  im»- 
provement  which  may  be  made  of  Spira's  example  and  doctrine,  2  Pet.  2.  '  It 
had  been  better  for  them  not  to  have  known  the  way  of  life,'"  &c.  The  book 
is  written  in  Latin,  but  has  neither  the  name  of  printer,  nor  the  place,  or  date 
of  printing.  It  was,  however,  probably  printed  at  Basil  in  the  year  1550  or- 
1551.  Deeply  affected  with  the  case  of  Spira,  Scrimger  determined  to  sacri- 
fice all  the  prospects,  great  as  they  were,  which  his  present  situation  held  out  to 
him,  and  to  retire  into  Switzerland,  where  he  could  profess  the  reformed  religion 
without  danger.  It  appears  that  he  shortly  after  this  entertained  the  idea  of 
returning  to  Scotland ;  but,  on  his  arrival  in  Geneva,  he  was  invited  by  the 
syndics  and  magistrates  of  the  city  to  set  up  a  profession  of  philosophy  for  the 
instruction  of  youth,  for  which  they  made  a  suitable  provision.  Here  he  con- 
tinued to  teach  philosophy  for  some  time.  A  fire,  however,  happening  in  the 
city,  his  house  was  burnt  to  the  ground  with  all  that  was  in  it,  and  he  was  in 
consequence  reduced  to  great  straits,  though  his  two  noble  pupils,  the  Bucherels, 
no  sooner  heard  of  his  misfortune  than  they  sent  him  a  considerable  supply  of 
money.  It  was  at  this  time  tluit  Ulrich  Fugger,  a  gentleman  possessed 
of  a  princely  fortune,  and  distinguished  alike  for  his  learning  and  for  his  vir- 
tues, invited  him  to  come  and  live  with  him  at  Augsburg  till  his  affairs  could 
be  put  in  order.  This  generous  invitation  Scrimger  accepted,  and  he  lived  with 
his  benefactor  at  Augsburg  for  a  number  of  years,  during  which  he  employed 
himself  chiefly  in  collecting  books  and  manuscripts,  many  of  them  exceedingly 
curious  and  valuable.      Under    the  patronage  of  this  amiable  person  he  ap 


2-46  HENRY  SCRIMGER. 


pears  also  to  have  composed  several  of  his  treatises,  which  he  returned  to  Geneva 
to  have  printed.  On  his  arrival,  the  magistrates  of  that  city  importuned  him  to 
resume  his  class  for  teaching  philosophy.  With  this  request  he  complied,  and 
continued  again  in  Geneva  for  two  years,  1563  and  ISGl.  In  the  year  1565, 
he  opened  a  school  for  teaching  civil  law,  of  which  he  had  the  honour  of  being 
the  first  professor  and  founder  in  Geneva.  This  class  he  continued  to  teach  till 
his  death.  In  the  year  1572,  Alexander  Young,  his  nephew,  was  sent  to  him 
to  Geneva,  with  letters  from  the  regent  IMarr,  and  George  Buchanan,  with  the 
latter  of  whom  he  had  been  long  in  terms  of  intimacy ;  requesting  him  to  re- 
turn to  his  native  country,  and  promising  him  every  encouragement. 

Buchanan  had  before  repeatedly  written  to  him,  pressing  his  return  to  his 
native  country,  in  a  manner  that  sufficiently  evinced  the  high  esteem  he  enter- 
tained for  him.  The  venerable  old  scholar,  however,  could  not  be  prevailed 
on  to  leave  the  peaceful  retreat  of  Geneva,  for  the  stormy  scenes  which  were 
now  exhibiting  in  his  native  country ;  pleading,  as  an  apology,  his  years  and 
growing  infirmities.  The  letters  of  Buchanan,  however,  were  the  means  of 
awakening  the  ardour  of  Andrew  3Ielville,  (who  was  at  that  time  in  Geneva, 
and  in  the  habit  of  visiting  Scrimger,  whose  sister  was  married  to  Melville's 
elder  brother,)  and  turning  his  attention  to  the  state  of  learning  in  Scotland,  of 
which,  previously  to  this  period,  he  does  not  seem  to  have  taken  any  particular 
notice. 

Though  his  life  had  not  passed  without  some  vicissitudes,  the  latter  days  of 
Scjimger  appear  to  have  been  sufficiently  easy  as  to  circumstances.  Besides  the 
house  which  he  possessed  in  the  city,  he  had  also  a  neat  villa,  which  he  called 
the  Violet,  about  a  league  from  the  town.  At  this  latter  place  he  spent  the 
-most  of  his  time,  in  his  latter  years,  in  the  company  of  his  wife  and  an  only 
daughter.  The  period  of  his  death  seems  to  be  somewhat  uncertain.  Thuanus 
says  he  died  at  Geneva  in  the  year  1571  ;  but  an  edition  of  his  novels  in  the 
Advocates'  library,  with  an  inscription  to  his  friend,  Edward  llerrison,  dated 

1572,  is  sufficient  evidence  that  this  is  a  mistake.  George  Buchanan,  however, 
in  a  letter  to  Christopher  Plaintain,  dated  at  Stirling  in  the  month  of  November, 

1573,  speaks  of  him  as  certainly  dead  ;  so  that  his  death  must  have  happened 
either  in  the  end  of  1572,  or  the  beginning  of  1573. 

The  only  work  which  Scrimger  appears  to  have  published,  besides  the  ac- 
count of  Spira,  which  we  have  already  noticed,  was  an  edition  cf  the  "Sovella 
Constitutiones  of  Justinian,  in  Greek  ;  a  work  which  was  highly  prized  by  the 
fii-st  lawyers  of  the  time.  lie  also  enriched  the  editions  of  several  of  the  clas- 
sics, published  by  Henry  Stephens,  with  various  readings  and  remarks.  From 
his  preface  to  the  Greek  text  of  the  Novelise,  it  is  evident  that  Scrimger  in- 
tended to  publish  a  Latin  translation  of  tliat  work,  accompanied  with  annota- 
tions ;  but,  from  some  unknown  cause,  that  design  was  never  accomplished. 
Mackenzie  informs  us,  that,  though  he  came  with  the  highest  recommendations 
from  Ulrich  Fugger  to  Stephens,  who  was,  lilic  Scrimger,  one  of  Fugger's  pen- 
sioners, yet,  from  an  apprehension  on  the  part  of  Stephens,  that  Scrimger  in- 
tended to  commence  printer  himself,  there  arose  such  a  difference  between  them, 
that  the  republic  of  letters  was  deprived  of  Scriniger's  notes  upon  Athenaeus, 
Strabo,  Diogenes  Laertius,  the  Basilics,  Phornulhus,  and  Palcephatus  ;  all  of 
which  he  designed  that  Stephens  should  have  printed  for  him.  The  most  of 
these,  according  to  Stephens,  after  Scriniger's  death,  fell  into  the  hands  of  Isaac 
Casaubon,  who  published  many  of  them  as  his  own.  Casaubon,  it  would  ap- 
pear, obtained  the  use  of  his  notes  on  Strabo,  and  applied  for  those  on  Polybius, 
when  he  published  his  editions  of  these  writers.  In  his  letters  to  Peter  Young, 
who  was  Scriniger's  nephew,  and  through  whom  he  appears  to  have  obtained  the 


Sfc  B  L%. 


ARCHBISHOP  OF  SvilN'P  ANDREVi'S 


SiACEQ;  &  SON ,  GliAS  GOlf.  EBINSURKl&iOllDriK . 


JAMES  SHARP.  247 


use  of  these  papers,  he  speaks  in  high  terms  of  their  great  merit;  but  he  haa 
not  been  candid  enough  in  his  printed  works,  to  own  the  extent  of  his  obliga- 
tions. Buclianan,  in  a  letter  to  Christopher  Plaintain,  informs  him,  that  Scrim- 
ger  had  left  notes  and  observations  upon  Demostlienes,  Eusebius's  Ecclesiastical 
History,  and  many  other  Greek  authors  ;  as  likewise  upon  the  philosophical 
iv'orks  of  Cicero :  all  which,  he  informs  his  correspondent,  were  in  the  hands  of 
Scrimger's  nephew,  the  learned  Mr  Peter  Young ;  and  being  well  worth  the 
printing,  should  be  sent  liim,  if  he  would  undertake  the  publication.  Plaintain 
seems  to  have  declined  the  offer ;  so  that  the  Novelise  and  the  Account  of  Spira, 
are  all  that  remain  of  tlie  learned  labours  of  Scrimger,  of  whom  it  has  been 
said,  that  no  man  of  his  age  had  a  more  acute  knowledge,  not  only  of  the  La- 
tin and  Greek,  but  also  of  the  Oriental  languages.  His  library,  which  was  one 
of  the  most  valuable  in  Europe,  he  left  by  testament  to  his  nephew,  Peter 
Young,  who  was  Buchanan's  assistant  in  the  education  of  James  VI.,  and  it  was 
brought  over  to  Scotland  by  the  testator's  brother,  Alexander  Scrimger,  in  the 
year  1573.  Besides  many  valuable  books,  tliis  library  contained  31SS.  of  great 
value ;  but  Young  was  not  a  very  enthusiastic  scholar ;  and  as  he  was  more  in- 
tent upon  advancing  his  personal  interests  in  the  world,  and  aggrandizing  his 
family,  than  forwarding  the  progress  of  knowledge,  they  probably  came  to  but 
Email  account. 

The  testimonies  to  Scrimger's  wortli  and  merits,  by  his  contemporaries,  are 
numerous.  Thuanus,  Casaubon,  and  Stephens,  with  many  others,  mention  his 
name  with  the  highest  encomiums.  Dempster  says  he  was  a  man  indefatigable 
in  his  reading,  of  a  most  exquisite  judgment,  and  without  the  smallest  particle 
of  vain-glory.  And  the  great  Cujanus  was  accustomed  to  say,  tli»t  he  never 
parted  from  the  company  of  Henry  Scrimger,  without  having  learned' something 
that  he  never  knew  before. 

SHARP,  James,  archbishop  of  St  Andrews,  was  the  son  of  William  Sharp, 
sherift-clerk  of  the  shire  of  Banff,  by  his  wife,  Isobel  Lesly,  daughter  of  Les- 
ly  of  Kininvey,  and  was  born  in  the  castle  of  Banff,  in  the  month  of  May, 
1613.  His  parents  seem  to  have  been  industrious  and  respectable  in  the  class 
of  society  to  which  they  belonged;  his  father  following  his  calling  with  dili- 
gence, and  his  mother,  though  a  gentlewoman  by  birth,  assisting  his  means  by 
setting  up  a  respectable  brewery  at  Dun,  which  she  appears  to  have  conducted 
creditably  and  profitably  to  the  day  of  her  death.  The  subject  of  this  memoir, 
probably  with  a  view  to  the  church,  where,  through  the  patronage  of  the  earl 
of  Findlater,  which  the  family  had  long  enjoyed,  a  good  benefice  might  be 
supposed  attainable,  was  sent  to  the  university  of  Aberdeen.  But  the  disputes 
betueen  Charles  I.  and  his  parliament  having  commenced,  and  the  prelaiic  form 
of  the  church  being  totally  overthrown  in  Scotland,  he  took  a  journey  into 
England ;  in  the  course  of  which  he  visited  both  the  universities,  where  he  was 
introduced  to  several  persons  of  distinction.  He  had,  however,  no  ofl'ers  of 
preferment ;  but,  finding  the  church  of  England  ready  to  follow  that  of  Scot- 
land, he  addressed  himself  to  the  celebrated  Mr  Alexander  Henderson,  then  in 
England  as  a  commissioner  from  the  Scottish  church,  and  enjoying  a  very  high 
degree  of  popularity,  from  whom  he  obtained  a  recommendation  for  a  regent's 
place  in  the  university  of  St  Andrews,  to  which  he  was  accordingly  admitted. 
3Ir  James  Guthrie  was  at  this  time  also  a  regent  in  the  college  of  St 
Andrews,  but  whether  suspecting  the  sincerity,  or  undenaluing  the  talents 
of  Mr  Sharp,  he  gave  his  whole  favour  to  Mr  John  Sinclair,  an  unsuccessful 
candidate  for  the  regent's  place  which  Sharp  had  obtained,  and  to  whom, 
when  called  to  the  ministry,  he  afterwards  deuiilted  his  professional  chair.  It 
was  with  this  circumstance,  not  improbably,  that  the  opposition  began  which 


248  JAMES  SHARP. 


continued  between  Mr  Guthrie  and  Sharp  throughout  the  whole  of  their  after 
lives.  With  Mr  Sinclair,  now  his  co-regent,  Mr  Sharp  seems  also  for  some  time 
to  have  lived  on  very  bad  terms,  and  even  to  have  gone  the  length  of  striking 
him  at  the  college  table  on  the  evening  of  a  Lord's  day  in  the  presence  of  the 
principal  and  the  other  regents.  For  this  outrage,  however,  he  appears  to 
have  made  a  most  ample  acknowledgment,  and  to  have  been  sincerely  repent- 
ant. Mr  Sharp's  contrition  attracted  the  notice  and  procured  him  the  good 
graces  of  several  of  the  most  highly  gifted  and  respected  ministers  of  the  Scot- 
tish church,  particularly  Mr  Robert  Blair.  Mr  Samuel  Rutherford,  an  eminent 
Christian,  and  a  person  of  the  highest  attainments  in  practical  religion,  uas  so 
much  struck  with  what  had  been  related  by  some  of  the  brethren  respecting 
Mr  Sharp's  exercises  of  soul,  that,  on  his  coming  in  to  see  him  on  his  return  from 
a  disLmt  mission, he  embraced  him  most  aflectionately,  saying,  "  he  saw  that  out  of 
the  most  rough  and  knotty  timber  Christ  could  make  a  vessel  of  mercy."  With 
the  brethren  in  general  IMr  Sharp  also  stood  on  high  ground,  and  at  tlie  request 
of  3Ir  James  Bruce,  minister  of  Kingsbarns,  he  was,  by  the  earl  of  Crawford, 
presented  to  the  church  and  parisli  of  Ci-ail.  On  his  appointment  to  this  charge 
Mr  Sharp  began  to  take  a  decided  part  in  the  management  of  the  external 
affairs  of  the  church,  in  which  he  displayed  singular  ability.  His  rapidly  in- 
creasing popularity  in  a  short  time  procured  him  a  call  to  be  one  of  the  minis- 
ters of  Edinburgh,  but  his  transportation  was  refused,  both  by  the  presbytery  of 
St  Andrews  and  the  synod  of  Fife.  It  Avas  at  length  ordered,  however,  by  an 
act  of  the  General  Assembly  ;  but  the  invasion  of  the  English  under  Cromwell 
prevented  its  being  any  further  insisted  in.  In  the  disputes  that  agitated  tlis 
Scottish  church  after  the  unfortunate  battle  of  Dunbar,  the  subject  of  this 
juemoir,  who  was  a  stanch  resolutioner,  was  the  maiii  instrument,  according  to 
Mr  Robert  Baillie,  of  carrying  the  question  against  the  Protesters.  His  conduct 
on  this  occasion  highly  enhanced  his  talents  and  his  piety,  and  was  not  impro- 
bably the  foundation  upon  which  his  whole  after  fortune  was  built.  In  the 
troubles  which  so  speedily  followed  this  event,  Sharp,  along  with  several  other 
ministers  and  some  of  the  nobility,  was  surprised  at  Elliot  in  Fife  by  a  party 
of  the  English,  and  sent  up  a  prisoner  to  London.  In  IG57,  he  was  deputed 
by  the  Resolutioners  to  proceed  to  London  to  plead  their  cause  with  Cromwell 
in  opposition  to  the  Protesters  who  had  sent  up  Messrs  James  Guthrie,  Patrick 
Gillespie',  and  others,  to  represent  the  distressed  state  of  the  Scottish  church, 
and  to  request,  that  an  Assembly  niiglit  be  indicted  for  determining  tlie  contro- 
versies in  question,  and  composing  the  national  disorders.  From  the  state  ol 
parties  both  in  Scotland  and  England,  and  from  the  conduct  wliich  Cromwell 
Lad  now  adopted,  he  could  not  comply  with  this  request,  but  he  seems  to  have 
set  a  high  value  upon  the  commissioners  ;  to  have  appreciated  tlieir  good  sense 
and  fervent  piety,  and  to  have  done  everything  but  grant  their  petition  to 
evince  his  good-will  towards  them.  They,  on  tlie  other  hand,  seem  not  to  have 
been  insensible  either  to  his  personal  merits,  though  inimical  to  his  govern- 
ment, or  to  that  of  some  of  the  eminent  men  that  were  about  him.  litis  was 
terrifying  to  the  Resolutioners,  who  saw  in  it  nothing  less  than  a  coincidence 
of  views  and  a  union  of  purposes  on  the  part  of  the  whole  protesting  body  with 
the  abhorred  and  dreaded  sectaries.  "Their  [the  leading  protesters']  piety  and 
zeal,"  says  Baillie,  "  is  very  susceptible  of  schism  and  error.  I  am  oft  afraid  of 
their  apostasy;"  and,  after  mentioning  with  a  kind  of  instinctive  horror  their 
praying  both  in  public  and  private  with  Owen  and  Caryl,  he  adds  with  exulta- 
tion, "the  great  instrument  of  God  to  cross  their  evil  designs  has  been  that  very 
worthy,  pious,  wise,  and  diligent  young  man,  Mr  James  Sharp."  It  was  part  of 
the  energetic  policy  of  Cromwell,  while  he  was  not  dependent  on  the  party 


JAMES   SHARP.  2iO 

whom  he  favoured,  not  to  offend  the  other,  and  the  mission  had  little  effect  ex- 
cept that  of  preparing  the  way  for  Sharp  to  assume  one  which  he  made  more 
advantageous  to  liimself. 

After  the  death  of  Oliver  Cromwell,  and  while  Monk  was  making  his 
memorable  march  to  England,  the  presbyterians  sent  to  him  David  Dickson  and 
Robert  Douglas,  accompanied  by  a  letter,  in  which,  expressing  their  confidence 
in  whatever  measures  he  should  propose  regarding  Scotland,  they  suggested  the 
propriety  of  his  having  some  one  near  his  person  to  remind  him  of  such  mat- 
ters as  were  necessary  for  their  interest,  and  requested  a  pass  for  Sharp,  as  a 
person  qualified  for  the  duty.  IMonk,  who  had  in  the  mean  time  requested 
Siiarp  to  come  to  him,  wrote  an  answer,  addressed  to  Messrs  Dickson  and 
Douglas  from  Ferry-bridge,  to  the  following  effect  :■ — "  I  do  assure  you,  the  well- 
fare  of  your  church  shall  be  a  great  part  of  my  care,  and  that  you  shall  not  be 
more  ready  to  propound  than  I  shall  be  to  promote  any  reasonable  thing  that 
may  be  for  the  advantage  thereof,  and  to  that  end  1  have  herewith  sent  you  ac- 
cording to  your  desire  a  pass  for  I\Ir  Sharp,  who  the  sooner  he  comes  to  me 
the  more  welcome  he  shall  be,  because  he  will  give  me  an  opportunity  to  show 
him  how  much  I  am  a  well-wislier  to  your  church  and  to  yourselves,"  &:c.  This 
was  dated  January  10th,  1660,  and  by  the  6th  of  February,  Sharp  was 
despatched  with  the  following  instructions:  "  Ist.  You  are  to  use  your  utmost 
endeavours  that  the  kirk  of  Scotland  may,  without  interruption  or  encroachment, 
enjoy  the  freedom  and  privilege  of  her  established  judicatories  ratified  by  the 
laws  of  the  land.  2nd.  Whereas  by  the  lax  tolei-ation  that  is  established,  a 
door  is  opened  to  a  very  many  gross  errors  and  loose  practices  in  this  church, 
you  shall  therefore  use  all  lawful  and  prudent  means  to  represent  the  sinfulness 
and  oflensiveness  thereof,  that  it  may  be  timeously  remedied.  3rd.  You  are 
to  represent  the  prejudice  this  church  doth  suffer  by  the  interverting  of  the 
vaking  stipends,  which  by  law  were  dedicated  to  pious  uses,  and  seriously  en- 
deavour that  hereafter  vaking  stipends  may  be  intermitted  with  by  presbyteries 
and  such  as  shall  be  warranted  by  them,  and  no  others,  to  be  disposed  of  and. 
applied  to  pious  uses  by  presbyteries  according  to  the  twentieth  act  o£ 
the  parliament  1644,  4th.  You  are  to  endeavour  that  ministers  lawfully  called 
and  admiited  by  presbyteries  to  the  ministry  may  have  the  benefit  of  the  thirty- 
ninth  act  of  the  pailiament,  intituled  act  anent  abolishing  patronages  for 
obtaining  summarily  upon  the  act  of  their  admission,  decreet,  and  letters  con- 
form, and  other  executorial  to  the  eflect  they  may  get  the  right  and  possession 
of  their  stipends  and  other  benefits  without  any  other  address  or  trouble.  If 
you  find  that  there  will  be  any  commission  appointed  in  this  nation  for  settling 
and  augmenting  stipends,  then  you  are  to  use  your  utmost  endeavours  to  have 
faithful  men,  well  affected  to  the  interests  of  Christ  in  this  church  employed 
therein."  As  the  judicatures  of  the  church  were  not  at  this  time  allowed  to  sit, 
these  instructions  were  signed  by  David  Dickson,  Robert  Douglas,  James  Wood, 
John  Smith,  George  Hutchison,  and  Andrew  Ker,  all  leading  men  and 
all  Resolutioners.  He  was  at  the  same  time  furnished  with  a  letter  of  recom- 
mendation to  IMonk,  another  to  colonel  Witham,  and  a  third  to  Messrs  Ash  and 
Calamy,  to  be  shown  to  Messrs  Manton  and  Cowper,  and  all  others  with  whom 
they  might  think  it  proper  to  communicate,  requesting  them  to  afford  him  every 
assistance  that  miglit  be  in  their  power  for  procuring  relief  to  the  'enthralled 
and  afflicted'  church  of  Scotland.  Sharp  arrived  at  London  on  the  13th  of  the 
month,  and  next  day  wrote  his  constituents  a  very  favourable  account  of  his 
reception  by  Monk,  who  had  already  introduced  him  to  two  parliament  men, 
Mr  Weaver,  and  the  afterwards  celebrated  Anthony  Ashley  Cowper,  earl  of 
Shaftesbury.  Monk  himself  also  wrote  the  reverend  gentlemen  two  days  after,  the 
IV.  2  1 


250  JAMES  SHARP. 


16th,  in  the  most  saintly  style  imaginable.  Mr  Sharp,  he  says,  is  dear  to 
him  as  his  good  friend,  but  much  more  having  their  recommendation,  and  he 
cannot  but  receive  him  as  a  minister  of  Christ  and  a  messenger  of  liis  church ; 
and  he  assures  them  that  he  will  improve  his  interest  to  tlie  utmost  for  the 
preservation  of  the  rights  of  the  church  of  Scotland,  and  their  afflicted  country, 
which  he  professed  to  love  as  his  own  gospel  ordinances,  and  the  privileges  of 
God's  people  he  assured  tliem  it  should  be  his  care  ta  establish  ;  and  he  im- 
plores their  prayers  for  God's  blessing  on  their  counsels  and  undertakings,  en- 
treating them  to  promote  the  peace  and  settlement  of  the  nations,  and  do  what 
in  them  lies  to  compose  men's  spirits,  that  with  patience  the  fruit  of  hopes  and 
prayei-s  may  be  reaped,  &c.  This  language  answered  the  purpose  for  which  it 
was  uttered,  and  Robert  Douglas  in  a  few  days  acquainted  Sharp  with  the  re- 
ceipt of  his  own  and  the  general's  letter,  desiring  him  to  encourage  the  general 
in  his  great  work  for  the  good  of  religion  and  peace  of  the  three  nations.  *'  For 
yourself,"  he  adds,  "  you  know  what  have  been  my  thoughts  of  this  undertaking 
from  the  beginning,  which  I  have  signified  to  the  general  himself,  though  I  was 
sparing  to  venture  my  opinion  in  ticklish  matters,  yet  I  looked  upon  him  as 
called  of  God  in  a  strait  to  put  a  check  to  those  who  would  have  run  down  all 
our  interests."  Not  satisfied  with  expressing  his  feelings  to  Sharp,  Mr  Douglas 
wrote  Monk,  thanking  him  for  his  kind  reception  of  Sharp,  and  encouraging 
him  to  go  on  with  the  great  work  he  had  in  hand,  adding,  in  the  simplicity  of 
his  heart,  "  I  have  been  very  much  satisfied  from  time  to  time  to  hear  what  good 
opinion  your  lordship  entertained  of  presbyterial  government,  and  I  am  confi- 
dent you  shall  never  have  just  cause  to  think  otherwise  of  it," — an  expression  sug- 
gested by  the  information  of  Sharp,  who  had  represented  3Ionk  as  favourable 
to  a  liberal  presbyterian  government. 

Sharp  had,  previously  to  all  this,  settled  with  Glencairn,  and  others  of  the 
Scottish  nobility,  Avho  hated  the  severity  of  the  presbyterian  discipline,  to  over- 
throw that  form  of  government,  and  to  introduce  episcopacy  in  its  place ;  in 
other  words,  he  was  disposed  to  assist  whatever  religious  party  oflered  the  great- 
est bribe  to  his  ambition.  It  was  natural  that  he  sliould  conceal  his  intentions 
from  his  employers.  Accordingly,  in  a-  series  of  letters  to  BIr  Douglas,  and  the 
others  from  whom  he  derived  his  commission,  written  in  the  months  of  Feb- 
ruary, March,  and  April,  he  occasionally  regrets,  in  suitable  terms,  the  peril  of 
the  suffering  church :  at  other  times  holds  forth  glimpses  of  hope ;  and  at  all 
times  explains  the  utility  and  absolute  necessity  of  his  own  interference  in  its 
behalf.  During  the  course  of  this  correspondence,  he  declines  becoming 
minister  of  Edinburgh,  (a  situation  to  which  there  seem  to  have  again  been 
intentions  of  calling  him,)  having  perhaps  previously  secured  a  charge  of 
more  dignity.  On  the  twenty-seventh  of  the  month,  he  again  writes  to  Mr 
Douglas,  wishing  to  be  recalled ;  and  informing  him,  that  his  sermon  on  the 
coronation  of  Charles  II.  at  Scone,  with  the  account  of  that  ceremony,  had  been 
reprinted  at  London ;  and  that  it  gave  great  offence  to  the  episcopal  party, 
which,  he  says,  does  not  much  matter;  but  the  declaration  at  Dunfermline,  bear- 
ing  the  king's  acknowledgment  of  the  blood  shed  by  his  father's  house,  is  what 
he  knows  not  how  to  excuse.  He  and  Lauderdale,  however,  are  represented  as 
endeavouring  to  vindicate  Scotland,  for  treating  with  the  king  upon  the  terms 
of  the  covenant,  from  the  necessity  which  England  now  finds  of  treating  with  him 
upon  terms  before  his  return  ;  and  he  says  he  is  reported,  both  here  and  at  Brus- 
sels, to  be  a  rigid  Scottish  presbyterian,  making  it  his  work  to  have  presbytery 
settled  in  England.  He  adds,  with  matchless  eflrontery,  *'  they  sent  to  desire 
me  to  move  nothing  in  prejudice  of  the  church  of  England  ;  and  they  would  do 
nothing  in  prejudice  of  our  church.     I  bid  tell  them,  it  was  not  my  employ- 


JAMES   SHAKP.  251 


ment  to  move  to  the  projadice  of  any  party ;  and  I  thought,  did  they  really 
mind  the  peace  of  those  churches,  they  would  not  start  such  propositions :  but 
all  who  pretend  to  be  for  civil  settlement,  would  contribute  their  endeavours  to 
restore  it,  and  not  meddle  unseasonably  with  those  remote  causes.  The  fear  of 
rigid  presbytery  is  talked  much  of  here  by  all  parties ;  but,  for  my  part,  I  ap- 
prehend no  ground  for  it.  I  am  afraid  that  something  else  is  like  to  take  place 
in  the  church,  than  rigid  presbytery.  This  nation  is  not  fitted  to  bear  that 
yoke  of  Christ;  and  for  religion,  I  suspect  it  is  made  a  stalking  horse  still." 
In  a  letter,  previous  to  this,  Mr  Douglas  had  informed  him,  that  those  in  Scot- 
land,who  loved  religion  and  liberty,  had  their  fears,  that,  if  the  king  came  not 
in  upon  the  terms  of  the  solemn  league  and  covenant,  his  coming  in  would  be 
disadvantageous  to  religion  and  the  liberties  of  the  three  nations  ;  and  he  ex- 
horted Crawford,  Lauderdale,  and  Sharp,  to  deal,  with  all  earnestness,  that  the 
league  and  covenant  be  settled,  as  the  only  basis  of  the  security  and  happiness 
of  these  nations.  On  the  reception  of  the  last  we  have  quoted  from  Sharp,  we 
find  Douglas  again  addressing  his  treacherous  messenger,  and,  in  the  purest  sim- 
plicity, providing  him  with  some  of  those  arguments  in  defence  of  presbytery, 
which  it  is  probable  Sharp  well  knew.  The  deceiver  answered,  that  he  found 
It  at  that  time  utterly  impossible  to  return,  as  the  general  would  communicate 
on  Scottish  affairs  with  no  one  but  himself;  and  ihe  Scots  had  nothing  to  do  but 
be  quiet,  and  their  affairs  would  be  done  to  their  hand  ;  he  and  Lauderdale 
having  agreed,  with  ten  presbyterian  ministers,  on  the  necessity  of  bringing  in 
the  king  upon  covenant  terms,  and  taking  off  the  prejudices  that  lie  upon  some 
presbyterians  against  them.  Two  days  afterwards,  he  says,  "  The  Lord  having 
opened  a  fair  door  of  hope,  we  may  look  for  a  settlement  upon  the  grounds  of 
the  covenant,  and  thereby  a  foundation  laid  for  security  against  the  prelaticand 
fanatic  assaults :  but  I  am  dubious  if  this  shall  be  the  result  of  the  agitations 
now  on  foot."  "  We  intend,"  he  adds,  "  to  publish  some  letters  from  the 
French  protestant  ministers,  vindicating  the  king  from  popery,  and  giving  him 
a  large  character.  The  sectaries  will  not  be  able  to  do  anything  to  prevent 
the  king's  coming  in.  Our  honest  presbyterian  brethren  are  cordial  for  him,  I 
have  been  dealing  with  some  of  them,  to  send  some  testimony  of  their  affection 
for  him  ;  and,  yesternight,  five  of  them  promised,  within  a  week,  to  make  a 
shift  to  send  a  thousand  pieces  of  gold  to  him.  I  continue  in  my  opinion,  that 
Scotland  should  make  no  applications  till  the  king  come  in.  I  have  received 
letters  from  Mr  Bruce  at  the  Hague,  and  the  king  is  satisfied  that  Scotland  keep 
quiet."  "  No  notice,"  he  writes  in  another  letter,  "  is  taken  of  Scotland  in 
the  treaty  :  we  shall  be  left  to  the  king,  which  is  best  for  us.  God  save  us 
from  divisions  and  self  seeking.  I  have  acquainted  Mr  Bruce  how  it  is  with 
you,  and  what  you  are  doing ;  and  advised  him  to  gJiard  against  3Iiddleton's 
designs,  and  those  who  sent  that  Murray  over  to  the  king.  If  our  noblemen, 
or  others,  fall  upon  factious  ways,  and  grasp  after  places,  they  will  cast  reproach 
upon  their  country,  and  fall  short  of  their  ends.  I  fear  the  interest  of  the  so- 
lemn league  and  covenant  shall  be  neglected  ;  and,  for  religion,  I  smell  that 
moderate  episcopacy  is  the  fairest  accommodation  which  moderate  men,  who 
wish  well  to  religion,  expect.  Let  our  noble  friends  know  what  you  think  of 
it."  This  first  decided  breathing  of  his  intentions  Avas  answered  by  Douglas 
with  moderation  and  good  sense.  He  wishes  3Ionk  might  grant  permission  for 
him  to  go  over  to  the  king,  to  give  a  true  representation  of  the  state  of  matters. 
"  I  fear,''  says  he,  "  3Ir  Bruce  hath  not  sufficient  credit  for  us.  If  the  solemn 
league  and  covenant  be  neglected,  it  seems  to  me  that  the  judgment  on  these 
nations  is  not  yet  at  an  end.  The  greatest  security  for  the  king  and  these  na- 
tions, were  to  come  in  upon  that  bottom."     Before  this  could  reach  Sliarp, 


252 


JAMES  SHARP. 


however,  it  had  been  concerted,  as  he  writes  to  Mr  Douglas,  between  him  and 
Monk,  that  he  should  go  over  to  the  king,  "  to  deal  with  him,  that  he  may 
write  a  letter  to  Mr  Calamy,  to  be  communicated  to  the  presbyterian  ministers, 
showing  his  resolution  to  own  the  godly  sober  party,  and  to  stand  for  the  true 
protestant  religion,  in  the  power  of  it :  and,  withal,  he  [Monk]  thinks  it  fit  I 
were  there,  were  it  but  to  acquaint  the  king  with  the  passages  of  his  undertfik* 
ing,  known  to  Mr  Douglas  and  to  me,  and  to  tell  him  of  matters  in  Scotland.  He 
spoke  to  me  three  several  times  this  week;  and  now  I  am  determined  to  go;  I  hope 
I  sliall  do  some  service  to  the  honest  party  here,  and,  indeed,  to  ours  at  home. 
If  you  think  fit  to  write  to  the  king,  the  sooner  the  belter.''  On  the  4lh  of  May 
he  Avrites,  that  he  could  not  go  ofl'  to  Breda  till  that  day.  "  The  presbyterian 
ministers  of  the  city,"  he  adds,  "  after  several  meetings,  have  resolved  to  send 
over  next  week  some  ministers  from  the  city,  Oxford  and  Cambridge,  to  congra- 
tulate the  king;  and  I  am  desired  to  acquaint  the  king  with  their  purpose,  and 
dispose  for  their  reception:  or,  if  it  be  practicable  that  he  would  write  lo  both 
houses,  by  way  of  prevention,  that  they  Avould  secure  religion,  in  regard  to 
some  points.  Some  particulars  of  secresy  the  general  [Monk]  iiath  recommend- 
ed to  me,  and  given  orders  to  transport  me  in  a  frigate.  I  have  got  a  large 
letter  to  the  king,  and  another  to  his  prime  minister.  Providence  hath  ordered 
it  Avell,  that  my  going  carries  the  face  of  some  concernment  in  i-eference  to 
England  ;  but  I  shall  have  hereby  the  better  access  and  opportunity,  to  speak 
what  the  Lord  shall  direct  as  to  our  matters,  and  give  a  true  information  of  the 
carriage  of  business.  I  think  I  need  not  stay  ten  days.  It  will  be  best  to  ad- 
dress the  king  by  a  letter.  Presbyterians  here  are  few,  and  all  are  English- 
men ;  and  these  will  not  endure  us  to  do  anything  that  may  carry  a  resem- 
blance to  pressing  uniformity.  For  my  part,  I  shall  not  be  accessory  to  anything 
prejudicial  to  the  presbyterian  government ;  but  to  appear  for  it  in  any  other 
way  than  is  Avithin  my  sphere,  is  inconvenient,  and  may  do  harm,  and  not  good." 
Mr  Douglas  lost  no  time  in  preparing  instructions  for  Sliarp,  and  a  letter  to  the 
king,  which  he  forwarded  on  the  8th  of  the  month,  witli  the  following  letter: — 
"  I  perceive  by  all  that  you  write,  that  no  respect  will  be  had  to  the  covenant 
in  this  great  transaction,  which,  if  neglected  altogether,  it  fears  me  that  the 
Lord  will  be  greatly  provoked  to  wratli.  It  will  be  the  presbyterians'  fault,  if 
they  get  not  as  much  settled,  at  least,  as  was  agreed  upon  by  the  synod  of 
divines,  and  ratified  by  parliament:  for  I  perceive  that  the  king  will  be  most 
condescending  to  the  desires  oflered  by  the  parliament :  but  I  leave  that. 
However  our  desires  may  be  for  uniformity  in  doctrine,  worship,  discipline, 
and  government,  if  they  will  not  press  it  themselves,  we  are  free.  Your  great 
eiTand  will  be  for  this  kirk.  I  am  confident  the  king  will  not  wrong  our 
liberties,  whereunto  himself  is  engaged.  He  needs  not  declare  any  liberty  to 
any  tender  consciences  here,  because  the  generality  of  the  people,  and  whole 
ministry,  have  embraced  the  established  religion  by  law,  with  his  majesty's  con- 
sent It  is  known  that  in  all  the  times  of  the  prevailing  of  the  late  party  in 
England,  none  petitioned  here  for  a  toleration,  except  some  inconsiderable, 
naughty  men.  Whatever  indulgence  the  king  intends  to  persons  who  have 
failed  under  the  late  revolutions,  yet  he  would  be  careful  to  do  it  so,  as  they 
shall  be  in  no  capacity  to  trouble  the  peace  of  the  land,  as  formerly  they  did. 
1  doubt  not  but  you  will  inform  the  king  of  the  circumstances  and  condition  of 
our  kirk.  It  is  left  wholly  upon  you  to  do  what  you  can,  for  the  benefit  of 
this  poor  distracted  kirk,  that  the  king's  coming  may  be  refreshful  to  the  lionest 
party  here,  since  no  directions  from  us  can  well  reach  you  before  you  come  back 
to  London."  This  letter  enclosed  a  set  of  instructions  for  Sharp,  similar  to  those 
he  had  already  received,  equally  formal,  though  extending  to  some  tilings  less 


JAMES   SHAKP.  253 


particularly  slated  in  the  former  ;  and  was  accompanied  by  a  letter  to  tha 
king,  which,  after  the  usual  formalities  of  congratulation,  continued  in  these 
terms  : — "  But  now  since  it  hath  pleased  God  to  open  a  door  (which  we  have 
long  desired)  for  our  brother,  Mr  Sharp,  to  come  and  wait  upon  your  majesty, 
we  could  not  any  longer  forbear  to  present,  by  him,  this  our  humble  address, 
in  testimony  of  our  loyal  aflection  to  your  majesty,  and  our  humble  acknowledg- 
ment of  the  Lord's  goodness  to  these  your  dominions  in  this  comfortable  revo- 
lution of  allairs,  making  way  for  your  majesty's  reinstalment.  If  it  had  been 
expedient  in  this  juncture  of  affairs,  your  majesty  might  have  expected  an  ad- 
dress from  the  generality  of  the  ministei-s  of  this  church,  who,  we  assure  your  ma- 
jesty, have  continued,  and  will  continue  in  their  loyalty  to  authority,  and  the 
maintenance  of  your  just  rights,  in  their  stations,  according  to  those  principles 
by  which  your  majesty  left  them,  walking  in  opposition  both  to  enemies  from 
without  and  disturbers  from  within  ;  but  doubting  that  such  an  application  is 
not  yet  seasonable,  we  have  desired  IMr  Sharp  to  inform  your  majesty  more 
fully  of  the  true  state  of  this  church,  whereby  we  trust  your  majesty  will  per- 
ceive our  painfulness  and  fidelity  in  these  trying  times  ;  and  that  the  principles 
of  the  church  of  Scotland  are  such,  and  so  fixed  for  the  preservation  and  main- 
tenance  of  lawful  authority,  as  your  majesty  needs  never  repent  that  you  have 
entered  into  a  covenant  for  maintaining  thereof.  So  that  we  nothing  doubt  of 
your  majesty's  constant  resolution  to  protect  this  church  in  her  established  pri- 
vileges ;  and  are  no  less  confident,  (though  we  presume  not  to  meddle  without 
our  sphere,)  that  your  majesty  will  not  only  hearken  to  the  humble  advices  of 
those  who  are  concerned,  but  will  also,  of  your  own  royal  inclination,  appear 
to  settle  the  house  of  God,  according  to  his  word,  in  all  your  dominions.  Now, 
the  Lord  himself  bless  your  majesty ;  let  his  right  hand  settle  and  establish  you 
upon  the  throne  of  your  dominions,  and  replenish  your  royal  heart  with  all 
those  graces  and  endowments  necessary  for  repairing  the  breaches  of  these  so  long 
distracted  kingdoms,  that  religion  and  righteousness  may  flourish  in  your  reign, 
the  present  generation  may  bless  God  for  the  mercies  received  by  you,  and  the 
generations  to  come  may  reap  the  fruits  of  your  royal  pains.  So  pray,  &c., 
Robert  Douglas,  David  Dickson,  James  Hamilton,  John  Smith,  and  George 
Hutcheson."  This  letter  was  dated  May  the  8th,  the  same  day  Avith  Sharp's 
instructions,  and  a  double  of  it  was  enclosed  for  himself;  but  he  kept  this,  and 
a  similar  one  sent  him  by  tiie  earl  of  Rothes,  on  the  lOlh,  till  after  the  king's 
arrival  in  England,  when  everything  was  settled,  and  Sharp  assured  of  being 
archbishop  of  St  Andrews.  This  indeed  was  the  sole  object  of  his  journey  to 
Breda,  where  he  was  recommended  to  the  king  by  a  letter  from  Monk,  as  a  fit 
person  for  establishing  episcopal  government  in  Scotland;  and  by  a  letter  from 
lord  Glencairn,  he  was  recommended  in  a  similar  manner  to  Hyde,  afterwards 
earl  of  Clarendon. 

It  is  almost  unnecessary  to  mention  that,  in  the  whole  transaction,  it  does  not 
fall  to  our  lot  to  record  any  occasion  in  which  Sharp  performed  the  instructions 
of  his  mission,  or  the  duty  for  which  he  was  paid  by  those  whose  simple  zeal 
exceeded  either  their  means  or  their  discernment.  On  the  2nd  of  June,  Sharp 
writes  3Ir  Douglas,  that  he  had  presented  their  letter  ;  that  the  king,  having 
read  some  part  of  it,  and  looked  at  the  subscriptions,  told  him  he  was  glad  to 
see  a  letter  under  their  hands  ;  and  that  he  would  consider  it,  and  return  an 
answer  at  an  after  period.  In  this  letter,  which  is  long  and  desultory,  he  seems 
frequently  to  think,  without  absolutely  deciding,  that  it  is  time  to  terminate  liia 
connexion  with  his  employers,  by  extinguishing  their  hopes.  "  I  shall  never," 
he  tells  them,  "  espouse  the  interest  of  any  person  or  party  ;  'tis  our  common 
interest  to  keep  an  equal  way  with  all  who  mind  the  good  of  kirk  and  country. 


254:  JAMES  SHARP. 


Cementing  and  prising  Avill  be  our  mercy,  and  dividing  more  our  reproach 
than  we  are  aware  of.  The  king  hath  allowed  the  noblemen  who  are  here,  to 
meet  and  consult  what  is  proper  to  be  offered  for  the  good  of  the  nation.  They 
meet  on  3Ionday.  It  is  in  his  heart  to  restore  to  us  our  liberties  and  privi. 
leges,  if  our  folly  do  not  mar  it"  "  The  intiuencing  men  of  the  presbyterian 
judgment,'*  he  adds,  "  are  content  with  episcopacy  of  bishop  Usher's  model, 
and  a  liturgy  somewhat  corrected.  A  knowing  minister  told  me  this  day,  that 
if  a  synod  should  be  called,  by  a  plurality  of  incumbents,  they  would  infallibly 
carry  episcopacy.  There  are  many  nominal,  few  real  presbyterians.  The 
cassock  men  do  swarm  here ;  and  such  who  seemed  before  to  be  for  presbytery, 
would  bo  content  of  a  moderate  episcopacy.  We  must  leave  this  in  the  Lord's 
hand,  who  may  be  pleased  to  preserve  to  us,  what  he  hath  wrought  for  us.  I 
see  not  what  use  I  can  be  any  longer  here.  I  wish  my  neck  were  out  of  the 
collar.  Some  of  our  countrymen  go  to  the  common  prayer.  All  matters  are 
devolved  into  the  hands  of  the  king,  in  whose  power  it  is  to  do  absolutely  what 
he  pleases  in  church  and  state.  His  heart  is  in  his  hand,  upon  whom  are  our 
eyes."  The  very  same  day  he  writes  a  letter  to  Mr  Douglas,  upon  whom  thero 
was  a  design  at  court,  to  draw  over  by  the  bribe  of  a  bishopric,  that  it  were 
well  if  he  would  come  up  to  London,  where  his  presence  might  be  of  great  uti- 
lity ;  at  the  same  time  he  forbids  any  other ;  and  assures  them,  that  if  they 
come,  they  will  be  discountenanced,  and  give  suspicion  of  driving  a  disobliging 
design.  "  I  find  our  presbyterian  friends  quite  taken  off  their  feet;  and  what 
they  talk  of  us,  and  our  help,  is  merely  for  their  own  ends.  They  stick  not  to 
say  that,  had  it  not  been  for  the  vehemency  of  the  Scots,  Qlessrs  Henderson, 
Gillespie,  &c.,  set  forms  had  been  continued;  and  they  were  never  against 
them.  The  king  and  grandees  are  wholly  for  episcopacy.  The  episcopal  men 
are  very  high.  I  beseech  you.  Sir,  decline  not  to  come  up.  It  will  be  necesi 
sary  for  you  to  come  and  speak  with  his  majesty,  for  preventing  of  ill,  and 
keeping  our  noblemen  here  right." 

The  consequence  of  his  communication,  which  must  have  been  alarming,  was  a 
more  distinct  direction  as  to  his  duties,  which  did  not  reach  him  at  a  time  when  he 
was  much  disposed  to  attend  to  such  suggestions.  In  his  answer  he  reproves 
his  employers  for  their  violence,  and,  still  unwilling  entirely  to  reveal  himself, 
continues,  "  I  apprehend  it  will  come  to  nothing.  However,  the  high  carriage 
of  the  episcopal  men  gives  great  dissatisfaction,  the  Lord  may  permit  them  thus 
to  lift  up  themselves  that  thereby  they  may  meet  with  a  more  effectual  check. 
I  hear  Leighton  is  here  in  town  in  private."  The  answer  of  Douglas  was  in 
more  distinct  terms  of  suspicion,  mentioning  those  circumstances  of  danger 
gathering  round  the  churcli,  the  existence  of  which  he  to  whom  he  wrote  knew 
too  well.  Sharp  still  equivocated,  and  looked  to  episcopacy  ns  a  thing  to  be 
dreaded,  but  which  he  feared  could  not  be  avoided.  In  his  return  in  August, 
he  brought  the  king's  celebrated  letter  to  Douglas  and  the  presbytery  of  Edin- 
burgh, which  in  conformity  with  the  policy  pursued  by  Slmrp  and  his  friends, 
bore,  "  We  do  also  resolve  to  protect  and  preserve  the  government  of  the 
church  of  Scotland,  as  it  is  settled  by  law,  without  violation,  and  to  countenance 
in  the  due  exercise  of  their  functions  all  such  ministers  who  shall  behave  them- 
selves dutifully  and  peaceably  as  becomes  men  of  their  calling.  We  will  also 
take  care  that  the  authority  and  acts  of  the  General  Assembly  at  St  Andrews 
and  Dundee,  1651,  be  owned  and  stand  in  force  until  we  shall  call  anothet 
General  Assembly  (which  we  purpose  to  do  as  soon  as  our  affairs  will  permit), 
and  we  do  intend  to  send  for  Mr  llobert  Douglas,  and  some  other  roinisterSj 
that  we  may  speak  with  them  in  what  may  further  concern  the  aflairs  of  that 
church.  -   And  as  we  are  very  well  satisfied  with  your  resolution  not  to  meddle 


JAMES  SHARP.  255 


without  your  sphere,  so  we  do  expect  that  church  judicatories  in  Scotland  and 
ministers  there  will  keep  within  tiie  compass  of  their  station,  meddling  only 
with  matters  ecclesiastic,  and  promoting  our  authority  and  interest  with  our 
subjects  against  all  opposers,  and  that  they  will  take  special  notice  of  such  who 
by  preachings  or  private  conventicles,  or  any  other  way  transgress  the  limits  of 
their  calling  by  endeavouring  to  cormpt  the  people  or  sow  seeds  of  disaffection 
to  us  or  our  gov  ernment."  The  simple  enthusiasm  with  which  this  document 
was  received,  by  tiiose  who  were  accustomed  to  give  plain  meanings  to  ordinary 
words,  is  well  known.  In  the  synod  of  Fife,  which  met  at  Kirkaldy,  Mr  John 
Macgill,  IMr  Alexander  Wedderburn,  and  some  others,  contended  for  introduc- 
ing the  covenant  into  their  letter  of  thanks,  ''  as  the  bond  which,  while  it  bound 
both  king  and  subjects  to  God,  did  also  tie  them  to  one  another.^'  This  drew 
from  Sharp  a  long  speech,  in  which  he  had  many  oblique  reflections  upon  the 
covenant,  which  he  with  some  truth  alleged  could  not  be  mentioned  to  his  majasty 
without  exciting  his  displeasure.  He  further  in  justification  of  his  majesty  af- 
firmed that  "  there  was  not  a  man  in  England  would  own  that  covenant  save  Mr 
Ash,  an  old  man,  whose  one  foot  was  already  in  the  grave,"  and  so  great  was 
his  influence  that  he  carried  a  plurality  of  the  synod  along  with  him,  and  the 
covenant  of  duty  was  set  aside  for  the  conventional  one  of  good  manners.  A 
vote  of  thanks  to  3Ir  Sharp  was  also  carried  in  this  synod  for  his  faithfulness 
and  painstaking  in  the  aflairs  of  the  church.  At  the  dismissal  of  the  synod,  3Ir 
William  Row  coming  in  contact  with  i^harp  at  the  door,  laid  hold  of  his 
cloak,  and  inquired  how  he  could  afKrm  in  the  face  of  the  synod  that  no  man 
in  England  owned  the  covenant  but  Mr  Ash,  when  3Ir  Crofton  had  just  come 
forth  in  print  in  belialf  of  its  perpetual  obligation,  to  which  Sharp  made  no 
other  reply  than  that  he  knew  Mr  Crofton  a  little  knuckity  body,  just  like  Mr 
Henry  Williams.  Though  eminently  successful  in  his  endeavours.  Sharp  still 
kept  the  mantle  of  hypocrisy  closely  drawn  around  him,  and  was  elected  pro- 
fessor of  theology  in  the  college  of  St  Andrews,  where  he  had  formerly  been 
professor  of  philosophy.  He  was  keenly  opposed  by  the  principal,  Mr  Samuel 
Rutherford,  who  had  made  an  early  discovery  of  his  true  character,  and  could 
never  be  brought  to  countenance  hinu  Mr  Rutherford,  however,  Mas  a  Pro- 
tester, his  Lex  Rex  had  been  condemned  to  the  flames  by  the  committee  of  es- 
tates, and  he  was  confined  to  his  own  house  by  sickness,  and  Sharp  had  the 
satisfaction  of  assisting  at  the  burning  of  his  book  at  the  gate  of  his  college. 
He  died  soon  after  or  he  might  have  shared  the  fate  of  his  book. 

The  committee  of  estates  whicii  sat  down  in  August,  1660,  and  the  parliament 
which  followed,  commenced  the  wild  work  of  tyranny,  which  so  darkly  character- 
izes the  period.  When  prelacy  was  established  by  royal  proclamation  in  the  month 
of  August,  1661,  Mr  Sharp,  who  had  been  the  principal  agent  in  this  melan- 
choly overturning,  was  now  rewarded  with  the  primacy  of  Scotland,  and  was 
called  up  to  London,  along  with  Fairfoul,  appointed  to  the  see  of  Glasgow, 
Hamilton  to  that  of  Galloway,  and  Leighton  to  that  of  Dunblane,  to  receive 
episcopal  ordination.  Sharp  made  some  objections  against  being  re-ordained, 
but  yielded  when  he  found  it  was  to  be  insisted  on,  a  circumstance  which  made 
Sheldon,  bishop  of  London,  say,  he  followed  the  Scots'  fashion,  which  was  to 
scruple  at  everything,  and  to  swallow  anything.  The  other  three  yielded  at 
once,  and  they  were  all  four  on  the  16th  day  of  December,  1661,  before  a 
great  concourse  of  Scottish  and  English  nobility  in  the  chapel  of  Westminster, 
ordained  preaching  deacons,  then  presbyters,  and  lastly  consecrated  bishops. 
In  the  month  of  April  they  returned  in  great  state  to  Scotland,  where  in  the 
following  month  they  proceeded  to  consecrate  their  ten  brethren,  the  parlia- 
ment having  delayed  to  sit  till  they  should  be  ready  to  take  their  seats.     We 


256  JAMES   SHARP. 


might  have  remarked,  that  on  the  parliament  passing  the  act  recissory,  Sharp 
affected  concern  sufficient  to  qualify  him  for  a  new  uiission,  which  afforded  him 
an  opportunity  of  perfecting  what  he  had  already  so  far  advanced,  and  ended 
in  his  now  exalted  situation  of  primate  of  all  Scotland.  Well  might  Burnet 
say  of  the  Scottish  ministers,  "  poor  men,  they  were  so  struck  with  the  ill  state 
of  their  affairs  that  they  had  neither  sense  nor  courage  left  them."  Sharp, 
when  made  archbishop  of  St  Andrews,  affirmed  tiiat  he  had  only  accepted  of  it, 
seeing  the  king  would  establish  episcopacy,  to  keep  it  out  of  more  violent 
hands,  and  that  he  might  be  able  so  to  moderate  matters  that  good  men  might 
be  saved  from  a  storm  that  otherwise  could  not  have  failed  to  break  upon 
tiiem.  No  sooner  had  he  the  reins  of  ecclesiastic  government  in  his  hands 
than  a  proclamation  was  issued,  forbidding  any  clergymen  to  meet  in  a  presby- 
terial  capacity  till  such  time  as  the  bishops  had  settled  the  order  of  procedure 
in  them,  and  he  was  so  very  moderate  in  his  measures,  that  of  his  co-presbyters 
of  St  Andrews,  he  spared  only  three  old  men  who  were  nonconformists,  and 
these  were  spared  not  without  great  difficulty.  Nor  did  his  elevation,  which 
he  had  attained  Avith  so  much  infamy,  content  him  ;  besides  the  dignity  of  the 
church,  he  loved  that  of  the  state,  and  in  the  differences  that  fell  out  between 
Lauderdale  and  Middleton  he  narrowly  escaped  a  fall  with  the  latter.  He 
had  been  prevailed  on  to  write  to  the  king  that  the  standing  or  falling  of  31id- 
dleton  would  be  the  standing  or  falling  of  the  church,  and  he  went  up  to  Lon- 
don to  support  him  personally.  When  he  came  to  London,  however,  and  saw 
how  much  Middleton  had  fallen  in  the  estimation  of  the  king,  he  resolved  to 
make  great  concessions  to  Lauderdale,  and  when  the  latter  reproached  him 
with  his  engagements  with  Middleton,  he  boldly  averred  that  he  had  never 
gone  farther  with  him  than  what  was  decent,  considering  his  post.  That  he  had 
ever  written  to  the  king  in  his  behalf,  he  totally  denied.  But  Charles  had 
given  Lauderdale  the  prelate's  letter.  When  it  was  shown  to  the  writer  he  fell 
a-weeping,  and  begged  pardon  in  the  most  abject  manner,  saying  "  what  could 
a  company  of  poor  men  refuse  to  the  earl  of  Middleton,  who  had  done  so  much 
for  them,  and  had  them  so  entirely  in  his  power."  Lauderdale,  upon  this,  said 
he  would  forgive  them  all  that  was  past ;  and  would  serve  them  and  the  church 
at  another  rate  than  Middleton  was  capable  of  doing  ;  and  Sharp  became  wholly 
Lauderdale's.  In  1663,  he  went  up  to  court  to  complain  of  the  chancellor 
Glencairn  and  the  privy  council,  when  he  said  there  was  so  much  remissness 
and  popularity  on  all  occasions  that,  unless  some  more  spirit  was  put  into  it,  the 
church  could  not  be  preserved.  On  this  occasion  he  obtained  an  order 
for  establishing  a  kind  of  high  commission  court,  a  useful  instrument  of  oppres- 
sion, and  procured  a  letter  to  the  council  directing  that  in  future  the  primate 
should  take  the  place  of  the  chancellor,  which  so  mortified  Glencairn  that  he  is 
said  to  have  in  consequence  caught  the  fever  of  which  he  died.  Sharp,  who 
now  longed  for  the  chancellorsliip,  wrote  immediately  to  Sheldon,  bishop  of 
London,  that  upon  the  disposal  of  this  place  the  very  being  of  the  church  de- 
pended, and  begging  that  he  would  press  the  king  to  allow  him  to  come  up  be- 
fore he  gave  away  the  place.  Tiie  king,  who  by  this  time  had  conceived  a 
great  dislike  for  Sharp,  bade  Sheldon  assure  him  that  he  would  take  care  the 
place  should  be  properly  filled,  but  that  there  was  no  occasion  for  his  coming 
up.  Sharp,  however,  could  not  restrain  himself,  but  ventured  up.  The  king 
received  him  coldly,  and  asked  if  he  had  not  had  the  bishop's  letter.  He  ad- 
mitted that  he  had,  but  he  chose  rather  to  venture  on  his  majesty's  displeasure 
than  see  the  church  ruined  through  his  caution  or  negligence.  "  In  Scotland 
tliey  had  but  few  and  cold  friends,  and  many  violent  enemies.  His  majesty's 
protection  and  the  execution  of  the  law  were  all  they  had  to  depend  on,  and 


JAMES   SHARP.  257 


these  depended  so  much  upon  the  chancellor,  that  he  could  not  answer  to  God 
and  the  church,  if  he  did  not  bestir  himself  in  that  matter.  He  knew  many 
thought  of  him  for  that  post^  but  he  was  so  far  from  that  thougiu,  that  if  his 
majesty  had  any  such  intention  he  would  rather  choose  to  be  sent  to  a  planta- 
tion. He  desired  that  he  should  be  a  churchman  in  heart  but  not  in  habit, 
that  should  be  called  to  that  trust."  From  the  king  he  went  straight  to  Shel- 
don, and  begged  him  to  move  the  king  to  bestow  it  upon  himself,  furnishing 
liim  with  many  arguments  in  support  of  the  proposal,  one  of  which  was  that 
the  late  king  had  raised  his  predecessor,  Spottiswood,  to  that  dignity.  Sheldon 
moved  the  king  accordingly  with  more  than  ordinary  fervour;  and  the  king, 
suspecting  Sharp  had  set  him  on,  charged  him  to  tell  the  truth,  which  he  did, 
though  not  without  a  threat  deal  of  hesitation.  The  king  told  him,  in  return, 
the  whole  affair.  Sheldon  prayed  him  to  remember  the  arciibisliop  and  the 
church,  whatever  he  might  think  of  the  man,  which  the  king  graciously  assured 
him  he  would  do.  Sheldon  told  Sharp  he  saw  the  motion  for  himself  would  be 
ineffectual,  and  he  nnist  think  of  some  one  else.  Sharp  then  nominated 
liothes,  who  was  appointed  accordingly ;  and  with  a  commission  to  prepare 
matters  for  a  national  synod,  to  settle  a  book  of  common  prayer  and  a  book  of 
canons,  Sharp  returned  to  Scotland,  having  assured  the  king  that  now,  if  all 
went  not  well,  either  Rothes  or  Lauderdale  nmst  bear  the  blame. 

In  another  visit  to  court,  along  with  Rothes,  he  endeavoured  to  undermine 
the  influence  of  Lauderdale  ;  but  that  bold  and  unhesitating  man  did  not  flinch 
from  his  averments,  whether  true  or  false,  and  compelled  him  publicly  to  re- 
tract them.  Nor  was  he  more  successful  in  an  overture  to  join  with  Middleton, 
in  supplanting  his  rival.  His  terrors  on  the  rising  at  Pentland,  rendering  him 
anxious  for  an  increase  of  troops,  he  recounnended  the  fines  to  be  applied 
that  way,  by  which  many  of  the  cavaliers,  who  looked  to  that  fund,  were  disap- 
pointed in  their  expectcitions,  and  became  his  mortal  enemies.  Lauderdale, 
too,  to  complete  his  disgrace,  procured  a  number  of  letters,  written  to  the  pres- 
byterians  after  he  had  negotiated  for  the  introduction  of  episcopacy,  and  gave 
them  to  the  king,  who  looked  on  him  ever  after  as  the  worst  of  men.  Dur- 
ing the  rising  at  Pentland,  Sharp  was  the  principal  administrator  of  the  govern- 
ment ;  in  which  situation,  the  cruelty  of  nature,  and  insatiability  in  vengeance, 
which  he  displayed,  are  well  known.  After  this  period,  he  was  so  much  dis- 
liked at  court,  (while  he  was  a  necessary  instrument,)  that,  in  1667,  he  was  or- 
dered to  confine  himself  to  his  own  diocese,  and  come  no  more  to  Edinburgh. 
With  the  indulgences,  the  comprehension,  &c..  Sharp  had  little  connexion, 
except  in  narrowing  their  effect.  In  the  month  of  July,  1668,  as  he  was  going 
into  his  coacii  in  daylight,  he  was  fired  at  with  a  pistol  loaded  with  a  brace  of 
bullets  :  but  his  life  was  saved  by  Honeyman,  bishop  of  Orkney,  who,  lifting 
up  his  hand  to  step  into  the  coach  after  him  at  the  time,  received  the  shot  in 
his  wrist,  which  caused  his  death  a  few  years  afterwards,  the  wound  never  hav- 
ing healed.  So  universally  was  Sharp  hated,  that  when  the  cry  was  made  that 
a  man  had  been  shot  in  the  street,  the  reply  was  instantly  made,  that  it  wag 
only  a  bishop,  and  not  a  single  individual  offered  to  lay  hold  on  the  perpetra- 
tor of  the  deed.  The  court,  however,  took  some  compassion  on  him  in  this  ex- 
tremity, and  he  was  repaid  for  his  fears  by  a  little  gleam  of  favour.  The  person 
who  committed  the  daring  act,  Mr  James  3Iitchel,  was  afterwards  seized,  and, 
upon  a  promise  of  life,  confessed,  what  it  was  impossible  for  his  enemies  to 
prove,  he  having  no  associates  in  the  affair.  That  promise,  however,  was  vio- 
lated,' and  31itchel  suffered. 

We  now  approach  the  violent  end  of  this  man,  whose  life  was  spent  in  vio- 

'  On  this  subject,  vide  the  Mem.  of  Sir  George  Lockhart,  Mitchel's  counsel- 
IV.  2K 


253  JAMES  SHORT. 


lencc.  It  was  characteristic  of  the  excess  of  the  iniquity  of  the  period  ;  for,  iu 
the  whole  course  of  national  discord  which  preceded,  an  action  of  political  as- 
sassination, without  the  colour  of  any  human  law,  does  not  stand  on  record.  A 
few  of  the  more  zealous  and  uncompromising  presbyterians,  wandering  on 
Magus  Moor,  near  St  Andrews,  on  the  3rd  of  May,  1679,  in  search  of  tlie 
fiheriri'  of  Fife,  whose  activity  as  a  servant  to  the  archbishop,  had  roused  them 
to  violent  intentions,  fell  in  with  tiie  master,  instead  of  the  servant ;  and  their 
passions  dictating  to  them  that  they  had  what  was  termed  a  call  from  God  to 
put  him  to  death,  they  followed  the  suggestion  with  circumstances  of  consider- 
able barbarity.  Having  cut  the  traces  of  his  carriage,  they,  in  the  most  cool 
and  deliberate  manner,  commanded  him  to  come  out  of  his  coach,  or  they  would 
do  harm  to  his  daughter.  Mho  was  along  with  him ;  and  tknt  his  days  were  now 
numbered,  as  they  were  to  take  vengeance  upon  him  for  a  betrayed  church,  and 
for  so  many  of  their  murdered  brethren,  particularly  for  the  life  of  Mr  James 
Mitchel,  to  whom  he  had  sworn  so  perfidiously,  and  for  keeping  up  the  king's 
pardon  after  Pentland.  After  repeatedly  assuring  him  of  their  purpose,  and 
exhorting  him  to  repentance  and  prayer,  in  which  he  could  not  be  persuaded 
to  engage,  they  fired  upon  him,  and  afterwards  slashed  his  head  witli  their 
swords,  leaving  him  a  lifeless  corpse  on  the  king's  highway.  A  particular  ac- 
count of  this  affair,  exaggerated  probably  in  its  details,  was  speedily  published, 
and  large  rewards  offered  for  the  perpetrators  ;  not  one  of  whom  was  ever 
brought  to  trial,  Hackston,  of  Raithelet,  excepted,  who  was  one  of  the  party, 
but  who  had  refused  to  have  any  hand  in  the  work  of  death,  from  the  circum- 
stance of  his  having  had  some  personal  quarrel  with  tlie  bishop.  Sharp  was 
buried  with  great  pomp,  and  a  splendid  monument  erected  over  him,  at  St  An-^ 
drews,  which,  though  it  attracts  little  respect,  is  still  to  be  seen  aa  one  of  the 
curiosities  of  that  city. 

SHORT,  Jajuis,  an  eminent  optician  and  constructor  of  reflecting  telescopes, 
was  the  son  of  William  Short,  a  joiner  in  Edinburgh,  where  he  Avas  born  on  the 
10th  of  June,  1710.  The  Christian  name,  James,  was  conferred  upon  him,  in 
consequence  of  his  having  thus  been  ushered  into  the  world  on  the  birth-day  of 
the  Pretender.  Having  lost  his  parents  in  early  life,  he  was  entered,  at  the 
age  of  ten,  on  the  foundation  of  George  Heriot,  where  he  rendered  himself  a 
favourite  among  his  companions,  by  his  talent  for  fabricating  little  articles  in 
joinery.  At  twelve  years  old,  he  began  to  attend  the  High  School  for  classical 
literature,  in  which  he  distinguished  himself  so  greatly,  that  a  pious  grand- 
mother determined  to  devote  him  to  the  church.  He  actually  commenced  a 
course  of  attendance>at  the  university  for  this  purpose,  in  1726,  took  his  degree 
of  master  of  arts,  attended  the  divinity  hall,  and  in  1731  passed  the  usual  trials 
preparatory  to  his  being  licensed  as  a  preacher  of  the  gospel ;  when  his  natural 
taste  for  mechanics,  receiving  excitement  from  an  attendance  at  Mr  Maclaurin's 
mathematical  class,  induced  him  to  turn  back  from  the  very  threshold  of  the 
church,  and  apply  himself  to  a  different  profession.  He  very  quickly  attracted 
the  favourable  attention  of  the  illustrious  expositor  of  Newton,  Avho  invited  him' 
frequently  to  his  house,  in  order  to  observe  liis  capacity  more  narrowly,  and  en- 
couraged him  to  proceed  in  the  new  line  of  life  which  he  had  embraced.  In 
1732,  Maclaurin  permitted  Short  to  use  his  rooms  in  the  college  for  his  appa- 
ratus, and  kindly  superintended  all  his  proceedings.  Two  yeara  after,  in  a  let- 
ter to  Dr  Turin,  he  takes  notice  of  the  proficiency  of  Mr  Sliort,  in  the  casting 
and  polishing  of  the  metallic  specula  of  reflecting  telescopes.  The  young 
mathematician  had  already  improved  greatly  upon  the  construction  of  the  Gre- 
gorian telescope.  The  figure  which  he  gave  to  his  great  specula  was  parabolic ; 
not,  however,  by  any  rule  or  canon,  but  by  practice  and  mechanical  devices, 


JAMES   SIBBALD. 


259 


joined  to  an  exact  knowledge  of  the  principles  of  optics.  The  improvement 
had  been  pointed  out  by  Newton,  as  the  most  necessary  attainment  for  the  per- 
fection of  those  instruments.  In  1736,  he  had  obtained  so  much  distinction  by 
his  acquirements,  as  to  be  called  by  queen  Caroline  to  give  instructions  in 
mathematics  to  her  second  son,  the  duke  of  Cumberland.  On  leaving  Edin- 
burgh for  tiiis  purpose,  he  deposited  £500,  which  he  had  already  saved  from 
his  gains,  in  the  bank  of  Scotland.  In  London,  he  was  elected  a  fellow  of  the 
Royal  Society,  and  was  much  patronized  by  the  earls  of  Morton  and  3Iaccles- 
field.  Towards  the  end  of  tlie  year,  he  returned  to  Edinburgh,  and  resumed 
the  usual  course  of  his  profession.  Three  years  afterwards,  he  accompanied  the 
earl  of  Morton  on  a  progress  to  his  lordship's  possessions  in  Orkney,  for  the 
purpose  of  adjusting  the  geography  of  that  remote  archipelago;  while  the  laird 
of  3Iacfarlane  accompanied  the  party,  as  a  surveyor  of  antiquities.  After  that 
business  had  been  concluded,  Mr  Short  accompanied  the  earl  to  London,  where 
he  finally  settled,  and  for  some  years  carried  on  an  extensive  praciice  in  the 
construction  of  telescopes  and  other  optical  instruments.  One  of  the  former, 
containing  a  reflector  of  twelve  feet  focus,  was  made  for  lord  Thomas  Spencer, 
at  six  hundred  guineas  ;  another  of  still  greater  extent,  and  the  largest  which 
had  till  then  been  constructed,  was  made  for  the  king  of  Spain,  at  £1200. 
3Ir  Short  died,  June  15,  1768,  of  mortification  in  the  bowels,  leaving  a  fortune 
of  £20,000. 

SIBBALD,  Jam33,  an  ingenious  inquirer  into  Scottish  literary  antiquities,  was 
the  son  of  I\Ir  John  Sibbaid,  farmer  at  Whitlaw,  in  Roxburghshire,  where  he 
waa  born  in  the  year  1747,  or  early  in  1748.  He  was  educated  at  the  gram- 
mar school  of  Selkirk,  from  which  Whitlaw  is  only  a  few  miles  distant.  He 
commenced  life,  by  leasing  the  farm  of  Newton  from  Sir  Gilbert  Elliot  of  Stobs. 
Hei'e  he  pursued  various  studies,  each  of  which,  for  tlie  time,  seemed  to  him  the 
most  important  in  the  world  ;  till  another  succeeded,  and  in  its  turn  absorbed 
his  whole  attention.  One  of  his  favourite  pursuits  was  botany,  then  little  stu- 
died by  any  class  of  people  in  Scotland,  and  particularly  by  farmers.  O wing- 
to  tlie  depression  which  the  American  war  produced  in  the  value  of  farm  stock, 
Mr  Sibbaid  found  his  affairs  by  no  means  in  a  prosperous  condition  ;  and,  ac- 
cordingly, in  May,  1779,  he  disposed  of  tlie  whole  by  auction,  and,  giving  up 
his  lease  to  the  landlord,  repaired  to  Edinburgh,  with  about  a  hundred  pounds 
in  his  pocket,  in  order  to  commence  a  new  line  of  life.  A  taste  for  literature, 
and  an  acquaintance  with  3Ir  Charles  Elliot,  >\ho  was  a  native  of  the  same  dis- 
trict, induced  him  to  enter  as  a  kind  of  volunteer  shopman  into  the  employment 
of  that  eminent  publisher,  with  whom  he  continued  about  a  year.  He  then 
purchased  the  circulating  library  which  had  formerly  belonged  to  Allan  Ram- 
say, and,  in  1780  or  1781,  commenced  business  as  a  bookseller  in  the  Parlia- 
ment Square.  It  is  not  unworthy  of  notice,  that  Mr  Sibbaid  conducted  the 
library  at  the  time  when  Sir  Walter  Scott,  then  a  boy,  devoured  its  contents 
with  the  ardour  described  in  one  of  his  autobiographical  prefaces.  Mr  Sib- 
baid cax-ried  on  business  with  a  degree  of  spirit  and  enterprise,  beyond  the 
most  of  his  brethren.  He  was  the  first  to  introduce  the  belter  order  of  engrav- 
ings into  Edinburgh,  in  which  department  of  trade  he  was  for  a  considerable 
time  eminently  successful.  Many  of  these  prints  were  of  the  mezzotinto  kind, 
and  were  coloured  to  resemble  paintings.  Being  viewed  in  the  Scottish  capital 
as  altogether  the  production  of  metropolitan  genius,  they  were  exceedingly  well 
received,  and  extensively  purchased.  At  length,  3Ir  Sibbaid  was  detected  one 
day  in  the  act  of  colouring  some  of  them  himself;  and  from  that  time  his  trade 
experienced  an  evident  decline.  He  had  not  been  long  in  business,  when  his 
talents  and  acquired  knowledge  sought  an  appropriate  field  of  display,  in  a 


260 


JAMES  SIBBAU). 


monthly  literary  miscellany,  uhich  lie  established,  (1783,)  under  the  name  of  the 
"  Edinburgh  Magazine."  This  was  the  first  time  that  a  rival  to  the  ancient 
Scots  Magazine  met  with  decided  success.  The  Edinburgh  Magazine  was  of  a 
somewhat  more  ambitious  and  attractive  character  than  its  predecessor  ;  con- 
tained more  original  matter,  and  that  of  a  livelier  kind  ;  and  was  ornamented 
by  engraved  frontispieces,  representing  mansions,  castles,  and  other  remarkable 
objects.  Mr  Sibbald  was  himself  the  editor  and  chief  contributor ;  and  it  is 
said  that  his  articles,  though  not  marked  by  any  signature,  were  generally  distin- 
guished as  superior  to  the  ordinary  papers  then  admitted  into  magazines.  His 
lucubrations  on  Scottish  antiquities  were  of  so  much  merit,  as  to  secure  to  their 
author  the  friendship  of  lord  Hailes,  and  other  eminent  literary  characters,  who 
became  occasional  contributors  to  his  miscellany.  Early  in  1791,  with  the 
view  of  devoting  himself  more  to  literary  pursuits,  Mr  Sibbald  made  an  arrange- 
ment for  giving  up  the  management  of  his  business  to  two  young  men,  Messrs 
Laurie  and  Symington,  the  property  of  the  stock  and  of  the  magazine  continu- 
ing in  his  own  hands,  while  those  individuals  paid  him  an  allowance  for  both 
out  of  the  profits.  From  this  period,  till  late  in  1792,  the  magazine  professes, 
on  the  title-page,  to  be  printed  for  him,  but  sold  by  Laurie  and  Symington. 
At  the  date  last  mentioned,  his  name  disappears  entirely  from  the  work,  wliich, 
however,  Avas  still  carried  on  for  his  benefit,  the  sale  being  generally  about  six 
or  seven  hundred  copies. 

In  1792,  3Ir  Sibbald  conducted  a  newspaper,  which  was  then  started,  under 
the  name  of  the  "  Edinburgh  Herald,"  and  which  did  not  continue  long  in 
existence.  It  is  worth  mentioning  that,  in  this  paper,  he  counnenced  the  prac- 
tice of  giving  an  original  leading  article,  similar  to  what  was  presented  in  the 
London  prints,  though  it  has  only  been  in  recent  times  that  such  a  plan  became 
general  in  Scotland.  According  to  the  notes  of  an  agreement  formed  in  July, 
1793,  between  Mr  Sibbald  and  Mr  Laurie,  the  temporary  direction  and  profits 
of  the  Edinburgh  circulating  library,  were  conveyed  to  the  latter  for  ten  years, 
from  the  ensuing  January,  in  consideration  of  a  rent  of,  it  is  believed,  ^6200 
per  annum,  to  be  paid  quarterly  to  Mr  Sibbald,  but  subject  to  a  deduction  for 
the  purchase  of  new  books,  to  be  added  to  the  library.  Mr  Sibbald  now  went 
to  London^  where  he  resided  for  some  years,  in  the  enjoyment  of  literary  so- 
ciety, and  the  prosecution  of  various  literary  speculations,  being  supported  by 
the  small  independency  which  he  had  thus  secured  for  himself.  Here  he  com- 
posed a  work,  entitled,  "  Record  of  the  Public  Ministry  of  Jesus  Christ; 
comprehending  all  that  is  related  by  the  Four  Evangelists,  in  one  regular  nar- 
rative, without  repetition  or  omission,  arranged  with  strict  attention  to  the 
Chronology,  and  to  their  own  Words,  according  to  the  most  esteemed  transla- 
tion ;  with  Preliminary  Observations."  This  work  was  published  at  Edinburgh 
in  1798,  and  was  chiefly  remarkable  for  the  view  which  it  took  respecting  the 
space  of  time  occupied  by  the  public  ministrations  of  Christ,  which  former 
writers  liad  supposed  to  be  three  or  four  years,  but  was  represented  by  Mr 
Sibbald  as  comprehended  within  twelve  months.  While  in  London,  his  Scot- 
tish relations  altogetlier  lost  sight  of  him  ;  they  neither  knew  where  he  lived, 
nor  how  he  lived.  At  length  liis  brother  William,  a  merchant  in  Leith,  made 
a  particular  inquiry  into  tliese  circumstances,  by  a  letter,  which  he  sent  through 
such  a  channel  as  to  be  sure  of  reaching  him.  The  answer  was  comprised  in 
the  following  words  : — "My  lodging  is  in  Soho,  and  my  business  is  so  so." 
Having  subsequently  returned  to  Edinburgh,  he  there  edited,  in  1797,  a  work, 
entitled,  "  The  Vocal  31agazine,  a  Selection  of  the  most  esteemed  English, 
Scots,  and  Irisli  Airs,  ancient  and  modern,  adapted  fur  the  Harpsichord  or 
Violin."     For  such  an  employment  he  was  qualified  by  a  general  acquaintance 


SIR  ROBBET  SIBBALD.  261 


with  music.  In  1799,  Mr  Sibbald  revised  his  agreement  with  Mr  Laurie,  who 
undertook  to  lease  the  business  for  twenty-one  years,  after  January,  1800,  at 
the  rent  of  one  hundred  guineas,  himself  supplying  the  new  books,  which  were 
to  remain  his  own  property.  Finding,  however,  that,  even  at  this  low  rental^ 
he  did  not  prosper  in  liis  undertaking,  Laurie  soon  after  gave  up  the  business 
into  the  liands  of  Mr  Sibbald,  by  whom  it  was  carried  on  till  his  death.^ 

Tlie  latter  years  of  this  ingenious  man  were  chiefly  spent  in  the  compilation 
of  his  well-known  "  Chronicle  of  Scottish  Poetry,  and  Glossary  of  the  Scottish 
Language,"  four  volumes,  1 2mo ;  a  Mork  of  taste  and  erudition,  which  will  per- 
pet'Jate  his  name  among  those  wiio  have  illustrated  our  national  literature. 
The  three  first  volumes  exhibit  a  regular  chronological  series  of  extracts  from 
the  writings  of  the  Scottisii  poets  to  the  reign  of  James  VI. ;  illustrated  by 
biographical,  critical,  and  archaeological  notices  :  the  fourth  contains  a  voca- 
bulary of  the  language,  only  inferior  in  amplitude  and  genei-al  value  to  the 
more  voluminous  work  of  Dr  Jamieson.      The  "  Chronicle"  appeared  in  1802. 

This  ingenious  writer  died,  in  April,  1803,  at  his  lodgings  in  Leith  Walk. 
Two  portraits  of  him  have  been  given  by  Kay  ;  one  representing  him  as  he 
daily  walked  up  the  centre  of  the  High  Street  of  Edinburgh,  with  his  hand  be- 
hind his  back,  and  an  umbrella  under  his  arm  ;  another  places  him  amidst  a 
group  of  connoisseurs,  who  are  inspecting  a  picture.  He  was  a  man  of  eccentric, 
but  benevolent  and  amiable  character.  The  same  exclusiveness  which  actuated 
his  studies,  governed  him  in  domestic  life  :  even  in  food,  he  used  to  give  his 
whole  favour  for  a  time  to  one*object,  and  then  change  it  for  some  other,  to  which 
he  was  in  turn  as  fondly  devoted.  He  belonged  to  a  great  number  of  convivial 
clubs,  and  was  so  much  beloved  by  many  of  his  associates  in  those  fraternities, 
that,  for  some  yeais  after  his  death,  they  celebrated  his  birth-day  by  a  social 
meeting. 

SIBBALD,  (Sir)  Robert,  an  eminent  physician,  naturalist,  and  antiquary, 
was  descended  of  the  ancient  family  of  the  Sibbalds  of  Balgonie  in  Fife.  He 
received  the  principal  part  of  his  education,  particularly  in  philosophy  and 
languages,  at  the  university  of  Edinburgh.  Having  completed  himself  in  these 
branches  of  learning,  he  Ment  to  Leyden  to  study  medicine,  and  in  1661,  he 
obtained  there  a  doctor's  degree.  On  this  occasion  he  published  an  inaugural 
dissertation  entitled,  "  De  Variis  Speciebus."  Sir  Robert  immediately  afterwards 
returned  to  his  native  country,  and  took  up  his  residence  in  Edinburgh,  from 
which,  however,  he  occasionally  retired  to  a  rural  retreat  in  the  neighbour- 
hood of  the  city,  where  he  cultivated  rare  and  exotic  plants,  and  pursued,  un- 
disturbed, his  favourite  study  of  botany.  The  i-eputation  which  he  soon  after- 
wards acquired  procured  him  the  honour  of  knighthood  from  Charles  11.,  who 
also  appointed  him  his  physician,  natural  lustorian,  and  geographer-royal  for 
Scotland.  In  this  capacity  he  received  his  majesty's  commands  to  write 
a  general  description  of  the  whole  kingdom,  including  a  particular  history  of 
the  diflerent  counties  of  Scotland.     Of  this  undertaking,  howerer,  the  only  pait 

1  T  he  history  of  the  Edinburgh  circulating  h'brar)-  may  here  be  briefly  narrated.  Estab- 
lished by  Allan  Ramsay  in  1723,  it  was  conducted  by  that  eminini  person  till  near  the 
period  of  his  death,  in  1757,  when  it  was  sold  to  a  Mr  Yair,  whose  widow  carried  it  on  till 
1780,  when  it  was  sold  to  .Mr  Sibbiild.  A  daughter  of  Mrs  Yair  was  married  to  the  late 
Dr  Bell,  author  of  the  "  Madras  System  of  Education.''  By  Mr  Sibbald,  who  greatly  in- 
crtastd  the  collection,  it  was  conducted,  under  various  circumstances,  as  above  stated,  till 
1803,  when  his  brother  and  executor.  William  Sibbald,  merchant  in  Leith,  endeavoured  to 
carr)'  it  on,  under  the  supeiintendence  of  a  Mr  Stevenson.  Finding  it  by  no  mi  ans  pros- 
perous, and  the  laiter  gentleman  having  died,  .Mr  Sibbald  disposed  of  it,  in  1806,  to  Mr 
Alexander  Mackay,  who  conducted  it  until  a  reCiiit  period,  when  it  was  broken  up,  and  sold 
off  by  auction.  It  does  not  appear  to  have  thriven  in  any  remarkable  dtgree,  till  the  acces- 
sion of  Mr  Mackay,  who  retired  from  it  with  a  competency. 


262  SIR  ROBERT  SIBBALD. 


which  he  ever  executed  was  the  History  of  Fife,  published  in  1710,  a  work  of 
very  considerable  interest,  and  replete  with  curious  antiquarian  informBtion. 
A  new  edition  of  this  book,  which  had  become  exceedingly  scarce,  was  pub- 
lished at  Cupar  in  Fife  in  1803. 

In  1681,  Sir  Robert  became  a  member  of  the  Royal  College  of  Fhysicians, 
then  first  incorporated,  and  in  three  years  afterwards,  he  published  a  learned 
and  elaborate  work,  on  which  twenty  years  had  been  employed,  entitled 
"  Scotia  Illustrata,  sive  Prodromus  Uistoriae  Naturalis  Scotise,"  folio.  A  second 
edition  of  this  valuable  work,  also  in  folio,  was  published  in  1696.  One 
part  of  the  Scotia  Illustrata,  is  devoted  to  the  indigenous  plants  of  Scotland, 
and  amongst  these  there  appear  some  rare  species,  one  of  which  was  subse- 
quently called  Sibbaldia,  by  Linnaeus,  in  honour  of  its  discoverer.  For  some  of 
the  opinions  expressed  in  this  work  on  the  mathematicnl  principles  of  physic. 
Sir  Robert  was  violently  attacked  by  Dr  Pitcairne,  in  a  tract  more  remark- 
able for  the  severity  of  its  satire  than  the  fairness  or  solidity  of  its  arguments, 
entitled,  "  De  Legibus  Historiae  Naturalis,"  Edinburgh,  1696. 

In  1694,  this  ingenious  and  versatile  author  published  an  interesting  work 
on  Zoology,  entitled  "  Phalainologia  nova,  or  Observations  on  some  Animals  of 
the  Whale  genus  lately  thrown  on  the  Shores  of  Scotland."  This  was  followed 
by  "  The  Liberty  and  Independency  of  the  Kingdom  and  Church  of  Scotland  as- 
serted from  Ancient  Records,"  in  3  parts,  4to,  1704;  and  in  the  same  year  in 
which  his  history  of  Fife  appeared,  he  published  another  work,  entitled  **  Mis- 
cellanea quasdam  eruditas  Antiquitatis." 

Besides  these  wci-ks  Sir  Robert  wrote  a  great  number  of  learned  and  highly 
ingenious  treatises  and  essays  for  the  Royal  Society,  chiefly  on  subjects  con- 
nected with  the  antiquities  of  his  native  country.  These  were  collected  and 
published  after  his  death  under  the  title  of  '*  A  collection  of  several  Treatises  in 
folio,  concerning  Scotland,  as  it  was  of  old,  and  also  in  later  times,"  by  Sir 
Robert  Sibbald,  ]VLD.,  Edinburgh,  1739.  In  his  antiquarian  researches  he  was 
greatly  assisted  by  Sir  Robert  Gordon  of  Straloch,  the  first  native  of  Scotland 
who  turned  his  attention  to  the  illustration  of  the  antiquities  of  his  native  coun- 
try. The  subject  of  this  memoir  was  the  next.  It  is  recorded  of  Sir  Robert 
Sibbald,  and  by  himself,  that  when  the  earl  of  Perth  was  chancellor  of  Scot- 
land, the  latter  pressed  him  with  much  urgency  and  great  perseverance  to  come 
over  to  the  Roman  catholic  faith.  For  some  time,  Sir  Robert  says,  he  resisted 
all  his  grace's  arguments  and  entreaties,  but  at  length  found  himself  all  at  once 
convinced  by  the  reasoning  of  the  chancellor.  Under  this  sudden  sense  of  er- 
ror, and  in  the  fulness  of  his  new-born  contrition,  he  ruslted,  with  tears  in  his 
eyes,  into  the  arms  of  his  converter,  and  formally  embraced  his  reh'gion.  Soon 
afterwards,  remaining  still  steady  in  the  faith,  he  accompanied  his  lordship  to 
London,  and  resided  with  him  there  for  one  winter.  Tlie  long  and  frequent 
fastings,  however,  and  extremely  rigid  discipline  to  which  he  was  now  subjected, 
induced  him  to  reconsider  the  points  of  controversy  between  Catholicism  and  pro- 
testantism, and  the  result  was  tiiat  lie  discovered  he  liad  done  wrong  in  deserting 
the  latter,  and  with  a  heart  once  more  filled  with  contrition,  he  returned  to  his 
original  faitlu  It  may  not  be  without  its  effect  on  those  who  shall  consider 
this  circumstance  as  an  instance  of  weakness  in  Sir  Robert  Sibbald's  character, 
to  learn,  that  Dr  Johnson  entertained  a  very  different  opinion  of  it.  The  great 
moralist  considered  it  as  an  honest  picture  of  human  nature,  and  exclaimed, 
when  the  subject  was  discussed  in  his  presence,  "  How  often  are  the  primary 
motives  of  our  greatest  actions  as  small  as  Sibbald's  for  his  re-conversion."  Sir 
Robert  Sibbald  wTote  several  other  works,  and  promoted  the  establishment  of  a 
botanical  garden  at  Edinburglu     He  died  about  the  year  1712. 


GEORGE  SINCLAIR.  263 


SINCLAIR,  Gkorqk,  a  well-known  mathematical  writer,  was  professor  of 
pliilosophy  in  the  university  of  Glasgow  in  the  latter  part  of  the  seventeenth 
century.  No  particulars  of  his  early  life  have  been  ascertained.  He  was  ad- 
mitted a  professor  of  Glasgow  university,  April  18,  1651,^  and  was  ejected  in 
1662,  for  declining  to  comply  with  the  episcopal  form  of  church  government, 
then  thrust  upon  the  people  of  Scotland.  He  had,  in  the  previous  year,  pub- 
lished at  Glasgow,  his  first  known  work,  "  Tyrocinia  mathematica,  in  novem 
tractatus,  viz.,  mathematicum,  sphericum,  geographicum,  et  echometricum, 
divisa,"  12ino.  After  his  ejection,  he  betook  himself  to  the  business  of  a 
mineral  surveyor  and  practical  engineer,  and  was  employed  in  that  profession 
by  several  proprietoi-s  of  mines  in  the  southern  parts  of  Scotland,  and  particu- 
larly by  Sir  James  Hope,  who,  having  sat  in  Barebones'  parliament,  was  proba- 
bly nouise  averae  to  his  presbyterian  principles.  In  1(569,  he  published  at 
Rotterdam,  "  Ars  Nova  et  Magna  Gravitatis  et  Levitatis,"  4to.  He  was  employed 
by  the  magistrates  of  Edinburgh,  about  1670,  to  superintend  the  introduction 
of  water  from  Corraiston  into  the  city  ;  a  convenience  with  which  the  capital  of 
Scotland  had  not  previously  been  furnished.  Considerable  attention  seems  to 
have  been  paid  by  him  to  such  branches  of  hydrostatics  as  were  of  a  practical 
nature  ;  and  it  has  been  said  that  he  was  the  Rnt  person  who  suggested  the 
proper  method  of  draining  the  water  from  the  numerous  coal  mines  in  the  south- 
west of  Scotland.  In  1G72,  he  published  at  Edinburgh  a  quarto  entitled, 
"  Hydrostaticks ;  or,  the  Force,  Weight,  and  Pressure  of  Fluid  Bodies,  made  evi- 
dent by  physical  and  sensible  Experiments,  together  with  some  Miscellany 
Observations,  the  last  whereof  is  a  short  history  of  CoaL"  And,  in  1680,  he 
published  at  the  same  place,  in  8vo,  what  appears  to  have  been  a  modification 
of  the  same  work,  "  Hydrostatical  Experiments,  with  Miscellany  Observa- 
tions, and  a  relation  of  an  Evil  Spirit ;  also  a  Discourse  concerning  Coal." 
Sinclair's  writings,  in  the  opinion  of  a  very  able  judge,  are  not  desti- 
tute of  ingenuity  and  research,  though  they  may  contain  some  erroneous  and 
eccentric  views.  The  work  last  named  contained  a  rather  strange  accompani- 
ment to  a  scientific  treatise, — an  account  of  the  witches  of  Glenluce, — which, 
if  there  had  been  no  other  evidence  of  the  fact,  shows  the  author  to  have  not 
been  elevated  by  his  acquaintance  with  the  exact  sciences  above  the  vulgar  de- 
lusions of  his  age.  It  must  be  recollected,  however,  that  other  learned  men  of 
that  age  were  guilty  of  like  follies.  The  self-complacency  of  Sinclair,  and  his 
presbyterian  principles  provoked  the  celebrated  James  Gregory,  then  a  profes- 
sor at  St  Andrews,  to  attack  his  Hydrostatics  in  a  pamphlet  published  with  the 
quaint  title  of  the  "  Art  of  Weighing  Vanity,"  and  under  the  thin  disguise  of 
Patrick  Mather,  archbeadle  of  the  university  of  St  Andrews.  It  is  curious  to 
observe  that  with  all  his  eagerness  to  heap  ridicule  on  his  antagonist,  Gregory 
never  once  touches  on  what  would  now  appear  the  most  vulnerable  point,  the 
episode  about  the  witches.  After  a  long  interval,  Sinclair  wrote  an  answer  to 
Gregory,  entitled,  "  Cacus  pulled  out  of  his  den  by  the  heels,  or  the  pam- 
phlet entitled,  the  New  and  Great  Art  of  Weighing  Vanity  examined,  and 
found  to  be  a  New  and  Great  Act  of  Vanity."  But  this  production  was  never 
published  :  it  remains  in  manuscript  in  the  university  library  at  Glasgow,  to 
which  the  author  appears,  from  an  inscription,  to  have  presented  it  in  16 'J 2. 
Sinclair  was  among  the  first  in  Britain  who  attempted  to  measure  the  heights 
of  mountains  by  the  barometer.  It  is  said  that  Hartfell,  near  Moffat,  was  the 
first  hill  in  Scotland  of  which  the  height  was  thus  ascertained.  In  the  years 
1668  and  1670,  he  observed  the  altitudes  of  Arthur's  Seat,  Leadhills,  and 
Tinto,  above  the  adjacent  plains.  He  followed  the  original  mode  of  caiTving 
1  Records  of  the  University. 


264  DR.  ROBERT  SDISON. 

a  sealed  tube  to  the  top  of  the  mountain,  where,  filling  it  with  quicksilver,  and 
inverting  it  in  a  basin,  he  marked  the  elevation  of  the  suspended  column,  and 

repeated  the  same  experiment  below;   a  very  rude  method,  certainly, but  no 

better  was  practised  in  England  for  more  than  thirty  yenrs  afterwards.  To  the 
instrument  fitted  up  in  a  frame,  Sinclair  first  gave  the  name  baroscope,  or  in- 
dicator of  weight  ;  a  term  afterwards  changed  for  barometer,  or  measurer  of 
weigJit.  In  these  rude  attempts  at  measuring  weights  by  the  mercurial  column, 
the  atmosphere  Avas  regarded  simply  as  an  homogeneous  fluid,  and  possessinn  the 
Bame  density  throughout  its  whole  mass;  a  supposition,  which,  it  is  needless  to 
point  out,  must  have  led  the  observer  wide  of  the  truth,  where  the  elevation 
was  considerable. 

The  work  by  which  Sinclair  is  now  best  remembered  is  Ills  "  Satan's  Invisi- 
ble Works  Discovered,"  which  was  published  about  the  year  1685,  and 
has  since  been  frequently  reprinted.  This  is  a  treatise  on  witches,  ghosts,  and 
diablerie,  full  of  instances  ancient  and  modern,  and  altogether  forming  a 
curious  record  of  the  popular  notions  on  those  subjects  at  the  period  when  it 
appeared  :  it  was  for  a  long  time  a  constituent  part  of  every  cottage  library  in 
Scotland  In  Lee's  Memorials  for  Bible  Societies  in  Scotland,  is  given  the  fol- 
lowing decree  of  the  Privy  Council,  in  favour  of  3Ir  Sinclair's  copyright  in  this 
precious  production:  "  Apud  Edinburgh,  2G  Feb.,  168.'^-  The  lords  of  his 
majesties  privy  councill  considered  ane  address  made  to  them  by  Mr  George  Sin- 
clair, late  professor  of  philosophie  at  the  colledge  of  Glasgow,  and  author  of  the 
book  entitled  *  Satan's  Invisible  Works  Discovered,'  &c,  doe  hereby  prohibite 
and  discharge  all  persons  Avhatsomever  from  printing,  reprinting,  or  importing 
into  the  kingdome  any  copy  or  copies  of  the  said  book  during  the  space  of 
eleven  zearis  after  the  date  hereof  without  licence  of  the  author  or  his  order, 
under  the  pain  of  confiscation  thereof  to  the  said  author,  besydes  what  further 
punishment  we  shall  think  fitt  to  inflict  upon  the  contraveeners."  The  first 
edition  contains  a  very  curious  dedication  to  the  e.nrl  of  Winton,  not  to  be  found 
in  the  rest,  but  which  has  been  lately  republished  in  the  "  Hietorie  of  the 
Hous  and  Name  of  Setoun,"  printed  by  the  Maitland  Club. 

It  is  curious  to  find  science  and  superstition  so  intimately  mingled  in  the 
life  of  this  extraordinary  person.  In  1688,  he  published  at  Edinburgh,  in 
12mo,  the  "  Principles  of  Astronomy  and  Navigation."  The  only  other  publi- 
cation attributed  to  him  is  a  translation  of  David  Dickson's  "  Truth's  Victory 
over  Error."  It  is  hardly  possible  to  censure  delusions  Avhich  seem  to  have 
been  entertained  with  so  much  sincerity,  and  in  company  with  such  a  zeal  for 
the  propagation  of  real  knowledge. 

Mr  Sinclair  was  recalled  at  the  Revolution  to  the  charge  from  which  he  was 
expelled  twenty-six  years  before.  On  the  3rd  of  March,  1691,  the  faculty  of 
the  college  revived  the  professorship  of  mathematics,  which  had  been  suppressed 
for  want  of  funds  ;  and  at  the  same  time  appointed  Mr  Sinclair  to  that  chair. 
He  died  in  1696. 

SIMSON,  (Dr)  Robert,  a  mathematician,  was  the  eldest  son  of  Mr  John 
Simson  of  Kirton-hall,  in  Ayrshire,  and  was  born  on  the  14th  October,  1687. 
He  was  educated  at  the  univei-sity  of  Glasgow,  which  he  first  entered  as  a 
student  in  1701.  Being  intended  for  the  church,  his  studies  were  at  first 
directed  chiefly  to  theological  learning,  in  which,  as  well  as  in  the  classics,  he 
made  great  progress.  He  distinguished  himself  also  by  his  historical  know- 
ledge, and  was  accounted  one  of  the  best  botanists  of  his  years.  At  this  time 
no  mathematical  lectures  were  given  in  the  college  ;  but,  having  amused  him- 
self in  his  leisure  hours  by  a  few  exercises  in  Euclid,  a  copy  of  Avhich  he  found 
in  the  hands  of  a  companion,  he  quickly  found  that  llie  bent  of  his  taste  and 


DR.  ROBERT   SIMSON.  205 


genius  lay  in  that  direction.  The  farther  he  advanced  in  the  study  of  matiie- 
inatics,  the  more  engaging  it  appeared  ;  and  as  a  prospect  opened  up  to  liim  of 
making  it  his  profession  for  life,  he  at  last  gave  himself  up  to  it  entirely. 
While  still  very  young,  he  conceived  a  strong  predilection  for  the  analysis  of 
the  ancient  geometers  ;  which  increased  as  he  proceeded,  till  it  Avas  at  last  car- 
ried almost  to  devotion.  While  he,  therefore,  comparatively  neglected  the 
works  of  the  modern  mathematicians,  he  exerted  himself,  through  life,  in  an 
uncommon  manner,  to  restore  the  works  of  tlie  ancient  geometens.  The  noble 
inventions  effluxions  and  logarithms,  by  means  of  which  so  much  progress  has 
been  made  in  the  inatliematics,  attracted  his  notice  ;  but  he  was  satisfied  witli 
demonstrating  their  truth,  on  the  pure  principles  of  the  ancient  geometry. 
He  was,  however,  well  acquainted  with  all  the  modern  discoveries  ;  and  left, 
among  his  papers,  investigations  according  to  tlio  Cartesian  method,  which  show 
that  he  made  himself  completely  master  of  it.  While  devoting  himself  chiefly 
to  geometry,  he  also  acquired  a  vast  fund  of  general  information,  which  gave  a 
charm  to  his  conversation  throughout  all  the  subsequent  years  of  life.  On 
arriving  at  his  twenty-second  year,  his  reputation  as  a  mathematician  was 
so  high,  as  to  induce  the  members  of  the  college  to  offer  him  the  nMthe- 
matical  chair,  in  which  a  vacancy  was  soon  expected  to  take  place.  With  all 
that  natural  modesty  which  ever  accompanies  true  genius,  he  x-espectfully 
declined  the  high  honour,  feeling  reluctant,  at  so  early  an  age,  to  advance 
abruptly  from  the  state  of  student,  to  that  of  professor  in  the  same  college  ;  and 
therefore  requested  permission  to  spend  one  year,  at  least,  in  London.  Leave 
being  granted  to  him,  without  further  delay  he  proceeded  to  the  metropolis, 
and  there  diligently  employed  himself  in  extending  and  improving  his  mathe- 
matical knowledge.  He  now  had  the  good  fortune  to  be  introduced  to  some  of 
the  most  illustrious  mathematicians  of  the  day,  particularly  Mr  Jones,  Mr 
Caswell,  Dr  Jurin,  and  Mr  Ditton.  With  the  last,  indeed,  Avho  was  then 
mathematical  master  of  Christ's  Hospital,  and  highly  esteemed  for  his  erudi- 
tion, he  was  very  intimately  connected.  It  appears  from  Mr  Simson's  own 
account,  in  a  letter,  dated  London,  17th  November,  1710,  that  he  expected 
to  have  an  assistant  in  his  studies,  chosen  by  Mr  Caswell ;  but,  from  some  mis- 
lake,  it  was  omitted,  and  Mr  Simson  liimself  applied  to  Mr  Ditton.  "  He  went 
to  him,  not  as  a  scholar  (his  own  words) ;  but  to  have  general  information  and 
advice  about  his  mathematical  studies."  Mr  Caswell  afterwards  mentioned  to  Mr 
Simson,  that  he  meant  to  have  procured  Mr  Jones's  assistance,  if  he  had  not 
been  engaged. 

In  the  following  year,  the  vacancy  in  the  professorship  of  mathematics  at 
Glasgow  did  occur,  by  the  resignation  of  Dr  Robert  Sinclair  or  Sinclare  ;  and 
Mr  Simson,  who  was  still  in  London,  was  appointed  to  the  vacant  chair.  The 
minute  of  election,  which  is  dated  March  II,  1711,  concluded  with  this  very 
nice  condition  :  "  That  they  will  admit  the  said  Mr  Robert  Simson,  providing 
always  that  he  give  satisfactory  proof  of  his  skill  in  matliematics  previous  to  his 
admission."  Before  the  ensuing  session  at  college,  he  returned  to  Glasgow  ; 
and  having  submitted  to  the  mere  form  of  a  trial,  by  solving  a  geometrical 
problem  proposed  to  him,  and  also  by  giving  "  a  satisfactory  specimen  of  his 
skill  in  mathematics,  and  dexterity  in  teaching  geometry  and  algebra  ;"  having 
produced  also  respectable  certificates  of  his  knowledge  of  the  science  from  iMr  Cas- 
well and  others,  he  was  duly  admitted  professor  of  mathematics,  on  the  20th  of  No- 
vember of  that  year.  The  first  occupation  of  Mr  Simson,  was  to  arrange  a  proper 
course  of  instruction  for  the  students  who  attended  his  lectures,  in  two  distinct 
classes  ;  accordingly,  he  prepared  elementary  sketches  of  some  branches,  on 
which  there  were  not  suitable  treatises  in  general  use.     But  from  an  innate  love 


2G0  DR,  ROBERT  SIMSON 


for  the  science,  and  a  deep  sense  of  duty,  he  now  devoted  the  whole  of  his  at- 
tention to  the  st!:dy  of  raalhematics ;  and  tliough  he  had  a  decided  preference 
for  geometry,  he  did  not  confine  himself  to  it,  to  the  exclusion  of  the  othei* 
branches  of  mathematical  study,  in  most  of  which  there  is  abundant  evidence  of 
his  being  well  skilled.  From  1711,  he  continued  for  nearly  half  a  century  to 
teach  mathen.atics  to  two  separate  classes,  at  dirterent  hours,  for  five  days  in  the 
week,  during  a  continued  session  of  seven  months.  His  lectures  were  given 
with  such  perspicuity  of  method  and  language,  and  his  demonstrations  were  so 
clear  and  successful,  that  among  his  scholars  several  rose  to  distinction  as  mathe- 
maticians ;  among  whom  may  be  mentioned  the  celebrated  names  of  Colin  Mac- 
Jaurin,  Dr  Matthew  Stewart,  professor  of  mathematics  at  Edinburgh  ;  the  two 
reverend  doctors  Williamson,  one  of  whom  succeeded  Dr  Simson  at  Glasgow  ; 
the  reverend  Dr  Trail,  formerly  professor  of  mathematics  at  Aberdeen  ;  Dr 
James  Moor,  Greek  professor  at  Glasgow ;  and  professor  Robison  of  Edin- 
burgh, with  many  others  of  distinguished  merit. 

In  1758,  Dr  Simson  having  arrived  at  the  advanced  age  of  seventy-one  years, 
found  it  expedient  to  employ  an  assistant  in  teaching;  and  in  17Gl,on  his 
recommendation,  the  reverend  Dr  Williamson  was  made  his  assistant  and  suc- 
cessor. For  the  last  remaining  ten  years  of  his  life,  he  enjoyed  a  share  of  good 
health,  and  was  chiefly  occupied  in  correcting  and  arranging  some  of  his  mathe- 
matical papers;  and  sometimes,  for  amusement,  in  the  solution  of  problems  and 
demonstrations  of  theorems,  which  had  occurred  from  his  own  studies,  or  from 
the  suggestions  of  others.  Though  to  those  most  familiar  with  him,  his  conver- 
Eation  on  every  subject  seemed  clear  and  accurate,  yet  he  frequently  complained 
of  the  decline  of  his  memory,  which  no  doubt  protracted  and  eventually  pre- 
vented him  from  undertaking  the  publication  of  many  of  his  works,  which  were 
in  an  advanced  state,  and  might  with  little  exertion  be  made  ready  for  the 
press.  So  that  his  only  publication,  after  resigning  his  office,  was  a  new  and 
improved  edition  of  Euclid's  Data,  which,  in  1762,  was  annexed  to  the  second 
edition  of  the  Elements.  From  that  period,  he  firmly  resisted  all  solicitations 
to  bring  forward  any  of  his  other  works  on  ancient  geometry,  though  he  was  well 
aware  how  much  it  was  desired  from  the  universal  curiosity  excited  respecting 
his  discovery  of  Euclid's  Forisms.  It  is  a  matter  of  regret,  that  out  of  the  ex- 
tensive correspondence  ^\hich  he  carried  on  through  life  with  many  distin- 
guished mathematicians,  a  very  limited  portion  only  is  preserved.  Through 
Dr  Jurin,  then  secretary  to  the  Koyal  Society,  he  had  some  intercourse  with 
Dr  Halley  and  other  celebrated  men  ;  he  had  also  frequent  correspondence 
with  Mr  Maclaurin,  with  ]\Ir  James  Stirling,  Dr  James  Moor,  Ur  Matthew 
Stewart,  Dr  William  Trail,  and  Mr  Williamson  of  Lisbon.  In  the  latter  part 
of  his  life,  his  mathematical  correspondence  was  chiefly  with  that  eminent  geo- 
meter, the  earl  of  Stanhope,  and  with  George  Lewis  Scott,  esquire. 

A  life  like  Dr  Simson's,  so  uniform  and  regular,  spent  for  the  most  part 
within  the  walls  of  a  college,  affords  but  little  that  is  entertaining  for  the  bio- 
grapher. His  mathematical  researches  and  inventions  form  the  important  part 
of  his  hjutory;  and,  with  reference  to  these,  thtre  are  abundant  materials  to 
be  found  in  his  printed  works  and  MSS. ;  which  latter,  by  the  direction  of  his 
executor,  arc  deposited  in  the  college  of  Glasgow. 

Dr  Simson  never  was  married ;  he  devoted  his  life  purely  to  scientific  pur- 
suits. His  hours  of  study,  of  exercise,  and  amusement,  were  all  regulated  with 
the  most  unerring  precision.  "  The  very  walks  in  the  squares  or  gardens  of 
the  college  were  all  measured  by  his  steps ;  and  he  took  his  exercises  by  the 
hundred  of  paces,  according  to  his  time  or  inclination."  His  disposition  was 
by  no  means  of  a  saturnine  cast :  when  in  company  with  his  friends   his  con- 


DR.  ROBERT  SIMSON.  267 

versatioi)  was  remarkably  aniiaateJ,  enriched  with  much  anecdote,  and  enlivened 
also  by  a  certain  degree  of  natural  humour ;  even  the  sliglit  fits  of  absence,  to 
which  he  was  sometimes  liable,  contributed  to  the  amusement  of  those  around 
him,  without  in  the  slightest  degree  diminishing  their  affection  and  reverence, 
which  his  noble  qualities  were  calculated  to  inspire.  At  a  tavern  in  the  neigh- 
bourhood of  his  college,  he  established  a  club,  the  members  of  which  were,  for 
the  most  part,  selected  by  himself.  They  met  once  a-week  (Friday) ;  and  the 
first  part  of  the  evening  was  devoted  to  the  game  of  whist,  of  which  Dr  Simson 
was  particularly  fond  ;  but,  tiiough  he  took  some  pains  in  estimating  chances,  it 
was  remarked  that  he  was  by  no  means  fortunate  in  his  play.  The  rest  of  the 
evening  was  spent  in  social  conversation  ;  and,  as  he  had  naturally  a  good  taste 
for  music,  he  did  not  scruple  to  amuse  his  company  with  a  song :  and,  it  is  said, 
he  was  rather  fond  of  singing  some  Greek  odes,  to  which  modern  music  had 
been  adapted.  On  Saturdays,  he  usually  dined  at  the  village  of  Anderstou, 
then  about  a  mile  distant  from  Glasgow,  with  some  of  the  members  of  his  regu- 
lar club,  and  with  other  respectable  visitors,  who  wished  to  cultivate  tlie  acquaint- 
ance, and  enjoy  the. society  of  so  eminent  a  person.  In  the  progress  of  time, 
from  his  age  and  high  character,  the  company  respectfully  wished  that  every 
thing  in  these  meetings  should  be  directed  by  him;  and  although  his  au- 
thority was  somewhat  absolute,  yet  the  good  humour  and  urbanity  with  which 
it  was  administered,  rendered  it  pleasing  to  every  body.  He  had  his  own 
chair  and  particular  place  at  the  table  ;  he  ordered  the  entertainment ;  ad- 
justed the  expense,  and  regulated  the  time  for  breaking  up.  Ihese  happy 
parties,  in  the  years  of  his  severe  application  to  study,  were  useful  relaxa- 
tions to  his  mind,  and  they  continued  to  amuse  him  till  within  a  few  months 
of  his  death.  A  mind  so  richly  endowed  by  nature  and  education,  and  a 
life  of  strict  integrity  and  pure  moral  Avorth,  gave  a  correspondent  dignity 
to  his  character,  that  even  in  the  gayest  hours  of  social  intercourse,  the  doc- 
tor's presence  was  a  sufficient  guarantee  for  attention  and  decorum.  He  had 
serious  and  just  impressions  of  religion ;  but  he  was  uniformly  reserved  in  ex- 
pressing particular  opinions  about  it :  he  never  introduced  that  solemn  subject 
in  mixed  society ;  and  all  attempts  to  do  so  in  his  clubs,  were  checked  with 
gravity  and  decision.  His  personal  appearance  was  highly  prepossessing  ;  tall 
and  erect  in  his  carriage,  with  a  countenance  decidedly  handsome,  and  convey- 
ing a  pleasing  expression  of  the  superior  character  of  his  mind.  His  manner 
was  somewhat  tinged  with  the  fashion  which  prevailed  in  the  early  part  of  his 
life,  but  was  exceedingly  graceful  He  enjoyed  a  uniform  state  of  good  health, 
and  was  only  severely  indisposed  for  a  few  weeks  before  his  death,  which  took 
place  on  the  1st  of  October,  176S,  in  his  eighty-first  year.  He  bequeathed  a 
small  paternal  estate  in  Ayrshire  to  the  eldest  son  of  his  next  brother,  probably 
liis  brother  Thomas,  who  was  professor  of  medicine  in  the  university  of  St  An- 
drews, and  who  was  known  by  some  works  of  reputation. 

"  The  writings  and  publications  of  Dr  Robert  Simson,  were  almost  exclusive- 
ly of  the  pure  geometrical  kind,  after  the  genuine  manner  of  the  ancients ;  but 
from  his  liberal  education,  he  acquired  a  considerable  knowledge  of  oilier 
sciences,  which  he  preserved  through  life,  from  occasional  study,  and  a  constant 
intercourse  with  some  of  the  most  learned  men  of  the  age.  In  the  Latin  pre- 
f^ices  prefixed  to  his  works,  in  which  there  are  some  history  and  discussion,  the 
purity  of  the  language  has  been  generally  approved."  And  many  scholars  have 
regretted  that  he  had  not  an  opportunity,  ^vhile  in  the  full  vigour  of  his  intel- 
lect, and  deeply  conversant  in  Greek  and  mathematical  learning,  to  favour  the 
world  with  an  edition  of  Pappus  in  the  original  language.  He  has  only  two 
pieces  printed  in  the  volumes  of  the  Philosophical  Transactions,  viz.  : — 1.  Two 


2GS  REV.  JOHN   SKINNER. 


General  Propositions  of  Pappus,  in  Avliicli  many  of  Euclid's  Porisms  are  in- 
cluded, vol.  xxxii.,  anil.  1723.  These  tuo  pi-opositions  were  afterwards  incor- 
porated  into  tlie  autiior's  posthumous  works,   published  by  earl  Stanhope 

2.  On  the  Extraction  of  tlie  Approximate  Hoots  of  Numbere  of  Infinite  Series, 
vol.  xlviii.,  ann.  1753.  His  separate  publications  in  his  lifetime,  were: — 3. 
"  Conio  Sections,"  1735,  4to.  4.  "  Tiie  Loci  I'iani  of  Apollonius  Restored," 
1749,  4to.  5.  "Euclid's  Elements,"  1750,  4to,  of  which  there  have  been 
since  many  editions  in  8vo,  with  the  addition  of  Euclid's  Data.  In  1776,  earl 
Stanhope  printed,  at  his  own  expense,  several  <rf  Dr  Simson's  postlmmous 
pieces.  1 .  Apolloniiis's  Determinate  Section.  2.  A  Treatise  on  Porisms.  3. 
A  Tract  on  Logarithms.  4.  On  the  Limits  of  Quantities  and  Ratios;  and,  5., 
Some  Geometrical  Problems.  Besides  these,  Dr  Simson's  BISS.  contained  a 
great  variety  of  geometrical  propositions,  and  other  interesting  observations  on 
dirtcrent  parts  of  mathematics  ;  but  not  in  a  state  fit  for  publication.  Among 
other  designs,  was  an  edition  of  the  Works  of  Pappus,  in  a  state  of  considerable 
advancement,  and  which,  had  he  lived,  he  might  perhaps  have  published. 
What  lie  wrote  is  in  the  library  of  the  college  of  Glasgow;  and  a  transcript  was 
obtained  by  the  delegates  of  the  Clarendon  press.  To  this  university  he  left 
his  collection  of  mathematical  books,  supposed  to  be  the  most  complete  in  the 
kingdom,  and  which  is  kept  apart  from  tlie  rest  of  the  library. 

SKINNER,  (Rev.)  John,  the  well  known  autlior  of  several  popular  poems,  and 
of  an  ecclesiastical  history  of  Scotland,  was  born  at  Balfour,  in  the  parish  of 
Birse,  Aberdeenshire,  October  3,  1721.  His  father  was  schoolmaster  of  that 
parisii,  and  his  mother  was  the  widow  of  Donald  Farquharson,  Esq.  of  Balfour. 
Having  in  boyhood  displayed  many  marks  of  talent,  he  was  placed  at  thirteen 
years  of  age  in  IMarisciial  college,  Aberdeen,  where  his  superior  scholarship  ob- 
tained for  Iiim  a  considerable  bursary.  After  completing  iiis  academical  educa- 
tion, he  became  assistant  to  the  schoolmaster  of  Kenmay,  and  subsequently  lo 
the  same  official  at  Monymusk,  where  he  was  so  fortunate  as  to  gain  the 
friendship  of  the  lady  of  Sir  Archibald  Grant.  The  library  at  Monymusk 
house,  consisting  of  several  thousands  of  well-selected  works,  in  every  depart- 
ment of  literature,  was  placed  by  lady  Grant  at  his  command,  and  afl'orded  him 
better  means  of  intellectual  improvement,  than  he  could  have  hoped  for  in  any 
other  situation.  He  now  found  reason  to  forsake  the  presbyterian  establish- 
ment, in  which  he  had  been  reared,  and  to  adopt  the  principles  of  the  Scoltish 
episcopal  church,  of  which  he  was  destined  to  be  so  distinguished  an  orna- 
ment. After  spending  a  short  time  in  Shetland,  as  tutor  to  the  son  of  Mr  Sin- 
clair of  Scolloway,  and  marrying  the  daughter  of  3Ir  Hunter,  the  only  episcopal 
clergyman  in  that  remote  region,  he  commenced  his  studies  for  the  church ;  and, 
having  been  ordained  by  bishop  Dunbar  of  Peterhead,  was  appointed,  in  No- 
vember, 1743,  to  the  charge  of  (he  congregation  at  Longside,  over  which  he 
presided  for  sixty-five  years,  probably  wiiliout  a  wish  to  "  change  his  place." 
Of  the  severities  with  which  tiie  episcopal  clergy  were  visited  after  the  rebellion 
of  1745,  Mr  Skinner  bore  his  full  share.  His  chapel  was  one  of  those  which 
were  burnt  by  the  ruthless  soldiers  of  Cumberland.  After  that  period,  in  order 
to  evade  an  abominable  statute,  he  officiated  to  his  own  family  within  his  own 
house,  while  the  people  stood  without,  and  listened  through  the  open  windows. 
Nevertheless,  he  fell  under  the  ban  of  the  government,  for  having  officiated  to 
more  than  four  persons,  and  was  confined,  for  that  oftence,  in  Aberdeen  jail, 
from  May  2Gth,  to  November  26th,  1753.  This  was  the  more  hard,  as  Mr 
Skinner  was  by  no  means  a  parlizan  of  the  Stuart  family. 

Mr  Skinner's  first  publication  Avas  a  pamphlet,  entitled  "  A  Preservative 
against  Presbytery,"  which  he  published  in  1746,  to  re-assure  the  minds  of  his 


w  Bmm 


Tmmss  ORiGntAi  dra-wing  m  tke  possbssiok  op 

■  THE   EIGBT  KEV;  "W.    SKDOTEB..  D.  D.  ABERDEEN. 


SIACKH!  3c  eas.  QLA38Cnr,  EDDTBTIRGH  ft  LaNDON. 


people,  vinder  the  alarming  apprehension  of  the  total  extirpation  of  Scottish 
episcopacy.  In  1757,  he  published  at  London,  a  *'  Dissertation  on  Job's  Fro- 
pliecy,"  >vhich  received  the  high  approbation  of  bishop  Sherlock.  In  1767,  he 
published  a  pamphlet,  vindicating  his  church  against  the  aspersions  of  Mr  Sieve- 
wright,  of  Brechin.  The  life  of  this  good  and  ingenious  man  passed  on  in 
humble  usefulness,  cheered  by  study,  and  by  the  cultivatioil  of  the  domestic  af- 
fections. His  home  was  a  small  cottage  at  Linshart,  near  Longside,  consisting 
simply  of  a  kitchen  and  parlour,  the  whole  appearance  of  which  was,  in  th3 
highest  degree,  primitive.  Here,  upon  an  income  resembling  that  of  Gold- 
smith's parson,  he  reared  a  large  family,  the  eldest  of  whom  he  had  the  satisfac- 
tion to  see  become  his  own  bishop,  long  befoi"«  his  decease.  His  profound 
biblical  and  theological  knowledge  is  evinced  by  his  various  works,  as  collected 
into  two  volumes,  and  published  by  his  family.  The  livelier  graces  of  his  ge- 
nius are  shown  in  his  familiar  songs ;  "  TuUochgorum  ;"  "  The  Ewie  wi'  the 
Crookit  Horn  ;"  "  O  why  should  old  age  so  much  wound  us,  0  ?"  &c.  In 
1 788,  he  published  his  "  Ecclesiastical  History  of  Scotland;"  in  which  an  ample 
account  is  given  of  the  afiairs  of  the  episcopal  church,  from  the  time  of  the  Re- 
formation, till  its  ministers  at  length  consented,  on  the  death  of  Charles  Stuart, 
to  acknowledge  the  existing  dynasty.  This  work,  consisting  of  two  volumes 
octavo,  is  dedicated  in  elegant  Latin,  "  Ad  Filium  et  Episcopum,"  to  his  son 
and  bishop.  It  may  be  remarked,  that  he  wxote  Latin,  both  in  prose  and  verse, 
with  remarkable  purity. 

In  1799,  I\lr  Skinner  sustained  a  heavy  loss  in  the  death  of  Mrs  Skinner, 
who,  for  nearly  fifty-eight  years,  had  been  his  affectionate  partner  in  the  world's 
warfare.  On  this  occasion,  he  evinced  the  poignancy  of  his  grief,  and  the  depth 
of  the  attachment  with  whicli  he  clung  to  the  remembrance  of  her,  in  some  beau- 
tiful Latin  lines,  both  tenderly  descriptive  of  the  qualities  which  she  possessed, 
and,  at  the  same  time,  mournfully  expressive  of  the  desolation  which  her  de- 
parture had  caused.  Till  the  year  1 807,  the  even  tenor  of  the  old  man's  course 
was  unbroken  by  any  other  event  of  importance.  In  the  spring  of  that  year, 
however,  the  scarcely  healed  wound  in  his  heart  was  opened  by  the  death  of  his 
daughter-in-law,  who  expired  at  Aberdeen,  after  a  very  short,  but  severe  illness. 
Each  by  a  widowed  hearth,  the  father  and  son  were  now  mutually  anxious,  that 
what  remained  of  the  days  of  the  former  should  be  spent  together.  It  was  ac- 
cordingly resolved,  that  he  should  remove  from  Linshart,  and  take  up  his  abode 
with  the  bishop,  and  his  bereaved  family.  To  meet  him,  his  grandson,  the  Rev. 
John  Skinner,  minister  at  Forfar,  now  dean  of  Dunblane,  repaired,  with  all  his 
offspring,  to  Aberdeen.  This  was  in  unison  with  a  wish  which  himself  Iiad  ex- 
pressed. To  use  his  own  affecting  language,  it  was  his  desire  to  see  once  more 
his  children's  grand-cltildren,  and  peace  upon  Israel. 

On  the  4th  of  June,  he  bade  adieu  to  Linshart  for  ever.  We  may  easily  con. 
ceive  the  profound  sorrow  which,  on  either  side,  accompanied  his  separation 
from  a  flock  among  whom  he  had  ministered  for  sixty-five  years.  He  had 
baptized  them  all  ;  and  there  was  not  one  among  them  who  did  not  look  up  to 
him  as  a  father.  After  his  arrival  in  Aberdeen,  he  was,  for  a  week  or  ten  days, 
in  the  enjoyment  of  his  usual  health.  Surrounded  by  his  numerous  friends, 
he  took  a  lively  interest  in  the  common  topics  of  conversation  ;  sometimes  amus- 
ing them  with  old  stories,  and  retailing  to  them  anecdotes  of  men  and  things 
belonging  to  a  past  generation.  Twelve  days  after  his  airival,  he  was  taken 
ill  at  the  dinner-table,  and  almost  immediately  expired.  He  was  buried  in  tiie 
church-yard  of  Longside,  where  his  congregation  have  erected  a  monument  to 
his  memory.  On  a  handsome  tablet  of  statuary  marble,  is  to  be  seen  the  simple 
but  faithful  record  of  his  talents,  his  acquirements,  and  his  virtues. 


270  "WILLIAM  SMELLIE. 


SMELLIE,  William,  an  eminent  naturalist,  and  useful  miscellaneous  AmtM, 
was  born  in  Edinburgh,  about  the  year  1740,  being  the  son  of  Mr  Alexander 
Sme'lie,  a  builder,  who  belonged  to  the  stricter  order  of  presbyterians,  and  was 
thj  co;:structor  of  the  n:artyr8'  tomb  in  the  Grey  friars'  cluirch-yard.  William 
Sniellie  received  the  rudiments  of  his  education  at  the  parish  school  of  Dudding- 
8ton,  and,  though  destined  for  a  handicraft  profession,  was  afterwards  for  some 
time  at  the  High  School  of  Edinburgh.  His  father  at  first  wished  to  apprentice 
him  to  a  stay-maker,  but  the  business  of  a  printer  was  ultimately  preferred,  and 
he  was  indentured  to  Messrs  Hamilton,  Calfour,  ar.d  Neil,  then  eminent  pro- 
fessors of  that  art  in  the  Scottish  capital.  While  yet  vei^  young,  he  had  the 
misfortune  to  lose  his  father  ;  but  the  exemplary  conduct  of  the  young  printer 
soon  placed  Iiim  above  the  necessity  of  depending  upon  othere  for  his  subsist- 
ence.  Every  leisure  moment  was  devoted  to  study,  or  literary  pursuits ;  and 
only  a  few  years  of  his  apprenticeship  had  elapsed,  when  he  was  appointed 
by  his  employers  to  the  responsible  office  of  corrector  of  the  jiress,  with  a 
weekly  allowance  of  ten  shillings,  instead  of  his  stipulated  wages  of  three 
shilUngs.  Instead  of  wasting  his  earnings  on  frivolity  or  dissipation,  young 
Smellie  took  the  opportunity  of  attending  a  regular  course  of  the  univer- 
sity classes.  The  result  of  this  was  soon  evidenced,  by  his  producing  an  edi- 
tion of  Terence,  in  duodecimo,  wholly  set  up  and  corrected  by  himself;  which 
Harwood,  the  philologist,  declares  to  be  "  an  immaculate  edition  ;"  and  which 
gained  to  his  masters  an  honorary  prize,  offered  by  the  1  dinburgh  Philo- 
sophical Society,  for  the  best  edition  of  a  Latin  classic  Upon  the  expiry 
of  his  indentures,  Mr  Smellie,  then  only  nineteen  years  of  age,  accepted  em- 
ployment from  Messre  3Iurray  and  Cochrane,  printers  in  Edinburgli,  as  cor- 
rector of  their  press,  and  conductor  of  the  Scots  Magazine,  a  work  published 
by  tliem,  and  which  kept  a  conspicuous  station  in  the  literary  world,  from 
1739,  up  to  a  recent  period.  For  these  duties,  besides  setting  types  and 
keeping  accounts  "  in  cases  of  hurry,*'  Mr  Smellie  at  first  received  the  sum 
of  sixteen  shillings  per  week.  Notwithstanding,  however,  his  severe  professional 
labours,  he  still  prosecuted  his  classical  studies  with  great  ardour;  and  nothing, 
perliaps,  can  better  illustrate  the  self-tasking  nature  of  Mr  Smellie's  mind,  than 
the  fact,  that  he  instructed  himself  in  the  Hebrew  language,  solely  that  he  might 
be  thereby  fitted  for  superintending  the  printing  of  a  grammar  of  that  tongue, 
then  about  to  be  published  by  professor  Kubertson.  It  appears  that  about  this 
time  he  was  strongly  disposed  to  renounce  his  mechanical  employment,  and  adopt 
one  of  the  learned  professions,  having  already  almost  fitted  himself  either  for 
that  of  medicine  or  theology.  But  prudential  motives,  induced  by  the  certainty 
of  a  fixed  source  of  emolument,  determined  him  to  adhere  to  the  business  of  a 
printer,  which  he  did  throughout  life.  It  is  here  worthy  of  notice,  that,  dur- 
ing his  engagement  with  Messrs  Murray  and  Cochrane,  a  dispute  having  arisen 
between  the  masters  and  journeymen  printers  of  Edinburgh,  respecting  the  pro- 
per mode  of  calculating  the  value  of  manual  labour  by  the  latter;  Mr  Smellie 
devised  a  plan  for  regulating  the  prices  of  setting  up  types,  on  fixed  principles, 
being  in  proportion  to  the  number  of  letters,  of  differently  sized  types,  in  a 
certain  space.  This  useful  plan  has  since  been  almost  universally  adopted 
throughout  the  kingdom. 

Mr  Smellie  continued  in  the  employment  of  the  above  gentlemen  for  six 
years;  that  is  to  say,  until  the  year  1765,  during  which  time  we  find  him 
steadily  advancing  himself  in  life,  extending  his  acquaintance  amongst  the 
literati  of  the  day,  and  improving  himself  by  every  means  within  his  reach. 
One  plan  for  the  latter  purpose  which  he  adopted,  was  that  of  entering  largely 
into  an  epistolary  correspondence  with    his  acquaintances,  with    the  view  of 


WILLIAM  SMELLIB.  271 

giviug  him  freedom  and  facility  in  committing  his  thoughts  to  paper.  He  like- 
wise co-operated  with  a  number  of  young  men  of  similar  habits  and  pursuits  to 
Iiis  own,  in  establishing  a  weekly  club,  which  they  termed  the  Newtonian  So- 
CTETT,  and  which  included  the  names  of  president  Blair,  Dr  Hunter,  Dr  Black- 
lock,  Dr  Buchan,  (author  of  the  Domestic  Medicine,)  Dr  Adam,  and  many 
others  who  afterwards  became  celebrated  in  their  respective  walks  in  life.  Af- 
ter the  discontinuance  of  this  society,  another  was  instituted  in  1778,  called 
the  Newtonian  Club,  of  which  Mr  Smellie  was  unanimously  chosen  secretary. 
This  latter  institution  comprised  the  names  of  Dr  Duncan,  Dr  Gregory,  Diigald 
Stewart,  professor  Russell,  Dr  Wardrope, — in  short  the  whole  senatus  of  the 
nnirersity,  with  many  other  illustrious  individuals.  Mr  Smellie  had  a  decided 
preference  to  the  study  of  natural  history,  especially  of  botany,  and  about  the 
year  1760,  collected  an  extensive  Hortus  Siccus  from  the  fields  around  £din- 
burgh,  which  he  afterwards  presented  to  Dr  Hope,  professor  of  botany  in  the 
university.  He  likewise  in  the  same  year,  gained  the  honorai-y  gold  medal 
given  by  the  professor  for  the  best  botanical  dissertation ;  and  scon  af- 
terwards wrote  various  other  discourses  on  vegetation,  generation,  &c.,  all  of 
which  were  subsequently  published  in  a  large  work  solely  written  by  himself, 
entitled  the  "  Philosophy  of  Natural  History."  He  was  besides  no  mean 
chemist,  at  a  time  when  chemistry  had  scarcely  been  reduced  to  a  science,  and 
was  generally  held  as  alike  visionary  and  vain.  Upon  the  publication  of  the 
Essays  of  the  celebrated  David  Hume,  printed  by  Mr  Smellie,  an  extended  cor- 
respondence took  place  between  them,  in  which  the  latter  contested  with  great 
logical  force  and  acumen  many  of  the  heterodox  doctrines  advanced  by  the  for- 
mer ;  particularly  that  respecting  the  credibility  of  miracles.  Mr  Smellie  af- 
terwards drew  up,  in  a  masterly  manner,  an  abstract  of  the  arguments  for  and 
against  that  principle  of  our  religious  faith,  for  the  Encyclopaedia  Britannica, 
and  which  was  published  in  the  iirst  edition  of  that  work. 

Mr  Smellie  lived  in  terms  of  great  intimacy  with  Dr  William  Buchan,  au- 
thor of  the  well-known  "  Domestic  Medicine."  That  work  passed  through  the 
press  in  Messrs  Murray  and  Cochrane's  printing  office,  and  entirely  under  Mr 
Smellie's  superintendence,  Dr  Buchan  himself  then  residing  in  England.  It  is 
well  ascertained  that  JMr  Smellie  contributed  materially,  both  by  his  medical 
and  philological  knowledge,  to  the  value  and  celebrity  of  the  publication  ;  and 
from  the  fact,  indeed,  of  his  having  re-written  the  whole  of  it  for  the  printers, 
he  was  very  generally  considered  at  the  time,  in  Edinburgh,  to  be  the  sole  author  of 
it.  The  work  has  now  naturally  become  almost  obsolete  from  the  rapid  progress 
in  the  medical  and  other  sciences  therewith  connected,  since  its  composition  ; 
but  the  fact  of  its  having  passed  through  between  twenty  and  thirty  editions, 
ere  superseded,  fully  establishes  the  claim  of  the  author,  or  rather  authors,  to  a 
reputation  of  no  mean  note.  It  appears,  by  their  correspondence,  that  Dr 
Buchan  was  particularly  anxious  that  Mr  Smellie  should  qualify  himself  as 
M.D.,  and  share  his  fortunes  in  England,  in  the  capacity  of  assistant ;  but,  with 
his  constitutional  prudence,  the  latter  declined  the  invitation.  The  corre- 
spondence, however,  induced  him  to  give  a  marked  attention  to  the  practice  and 
theory  of  medicine^  as  well  as  to  stimulate  him  in  his  favourite  study  of 
natural  history ;  thus  qualifying  himself  for  the  excellent  translation  of  Buffon, 
which  he  subsequently  executed. 

In  1763,  being  then  only  twenty-three  years  of  age,  Mr  Smellie  married  a 
Miss  Robertson,  who  was  very  respectably  connected.  By  this  marriage  he 
had  thirteen  children,  many  of  whom  he  lost  by  death.  In  1765,  upon  the 
conclusion  of  his  engagement  with  Messrs  Murray  and  Cochrane,  he  commenced 
business  as  a  master-printer,  in  conjunction  with  a  Mr  Auld,  Mr  Smellie's  pe- 


272  WILLIAM  SilELLIE. 


ciiniary  proportion  of  the  copartnery  being  advanced  for  liiin  by  Dr  Hope  and 
Dr  f^ergusson,  professors  in  the  university.  In  1767,  a  new  copartnery  was  formed 
by  the  introduction  of  Mr  Balfour,  bookseller,  who  brought  along  uith  him  the 
properly  of  a  newspaper  called  tlie  Weekly  Journal,  which  liad  for  a  consider- 
able time  previously  been  est<iblished.  Tiie  management  of  the  latter  was  sole- 
ly intrusted  to  Mr  Smellie  ;  but  as  it  happened  to  be  a  losing  concern,  he 
shortly  afterwards  insisted  on  its  discontinuance.  This  led  to  disputes,  which 
finally  terminated  in  a  dissolution  of  the  copartnery  in  1771  ;  when  a  new  con- 
tract was  entered  into  between  Mr  Balfour  and  Mr  Smellie  only.  About  the 
same  time,  he  apjiears  to  have  been  on  terms  with  the  eminent  Mr  William 
Strahan,  to  undertake  the  management  of  the  vast  printing  concern  carried  on 
by  him  in  London  ;  but  from  some  cause  not  clearly  explained  the  treaty  was 
broken  off.  It  is  worthy  of  mention,  as  showing  the  respect  in  which  Mr 
Smellie  was  at  this  time  held,  that  upon  his  entering  on  this  new  copartnery, 
lord  Karnes  became  security  for  a  bank  credit  in  favour  of  the  younger  printer, 
to  the  amount  of  ^£300.  His  lordship  appears  to  have  had  a  particular  regard 
for  3Ir  Smellie,  and  at  his  suggestion  the  latter  coumienced  the  composition  of 
a  series  of  lectures  on  the  Philosophy  of  Natural  History.  About  the  same  time 
the  professorship  of  natural  history  in  the  Edinburgh  univei-sity  fell  vacant,  and 
great  exertions  were  made  to  procure  Mr  Smellie^s  appointment  to  it ;  but 
the  politic.ll  interest  of  his  rival,  Dr  Walker,  prevailed,  and  was  even  strong 
enough  to  prevent  him  from  delivering  his  lectures  publicly,  although  the  Anti- 
quarian Society,  of  whose  31useum  he  was  keeper,  offered  him  the  use  of  their  hall 
for  that  purpose. 

Mr  Smellie's  acquaintance  with  lord  Kames  originated  in  his  venturing  to 
send,  anonymously  however,  some  animadversions  on  his  lordship's  "  Elements 
of  Criticism,"  whilst  that  work  was  going  through  the  press  of  Messrs  Murray 
and  Cochrane  in  1764.  Lord  Kames  replied  by  thanking  the  young  critic, 
and  requesting  him  to  reveal  himself.  The  result  was  a  strict  and  intimate 
friendship  during  their  lives ;  lord  Kames  uniformly  submitting  all  his  subse- 
quent works  to  the  critical  judgment  of  Mr  Smellie,  who,  after  the  death  of  lord 
Kames,  wrote  the  life  of  his  illustrious  friend  for  the  Encyclopaedia  Britannica, 
in  the  third  edition  of  which  it  appeared  in  1800. 

Amongst  Mr  Smellie's  many  literary  undertakings,  one  of  the  earliest  was 
the  compilement  and  entire  conducting  of  the  first  edition  of  the  work  just 
named,  which  began  to  appear  in  numbers  at  Edinburgh  in  1771,  and  was 
completed  in  three  volumes  in  quarto.  The  plan,  and  all  the  principal  articles 
were  devised  and  written  or  compiled  by  him,  and  he  prepared  and  superin- 
tended the  whole  of  that  work,  for  which  he  only  received  the  sum  of  41200, 
from  its  proprietors,  Mr  Andrew  Bell,  engraver,  and  Mr  Colin  3Iacfarquhar, 
printer.  Had  BIr  Smellie  adhered  to  this  literary  project,  there  is  little 
d(  ubt  that  he  would  thereby  ultimately  have  realized  an  ample  fortune,  as  both 
the  proprietors  died  in  great  affluence,  arising  solely  from  the  labours  of 
Mr  Smellie  in  the  original  fabrication  of  the  work.  Unfortunately,  however, 
when  applied  to  by  the  proprietors  to  undertake  the  second  edition,  he  fastidi- 
ously refused  to  meddle  with  it  on  account  of  their  desiring  to  introduce  a  plan 
of  biography  into  it,  which  Mr  Smellie  imagined  would  detract  from  its  dignity 
as  a  Dictionary  of  Arts  and  Sciences. 

It  will,  we  should  think,  be  interesting  to  our  readers  to  learn  something  of 
the  early  history  of  a  work  which  has  latterly  swelled  out  into  such  bulk  and 
importance.  Of  the  original  edition — the  entire  work,  as  we  have  said,  of  Mr 
Smellie — it  is  not  exactly  known  how  many  copies  were  thrown  off.  The 
second  edition,  which   consisted   of  1500   copies,   extended  to  ten  volumes 


WILLIAM   SMELLIE.  273 


quarto.  A  tliird  edition,  in  eighteen  volumes,  nas  commenced  in  1786,  and 
extended  to  10,000  copies.  By  this  edition  the  proprietors  nre  said  to  have 
netted  £42,000  of  clear  profit,  besides  being  paid  for  their  respective  work  as 

tradesmen. the  one  as  printer,  and  the  other  as  engraver.      The  fourth  edition 

extended  to  twenty  quarto  volumes,  and  3,500  copies.  In  Uie  fifth  and  sixth 
editions,  only  part  of  the  work  was  printed  anew  ;  and  to  these  a  supplement  in 
six  volumes  was  added  by  Mr  Archibald  Constable,  after  the  property  of  the 
work  had  fallen  into  his  liands.  An  eighth  edition,  under  the  editorship  of 
professor  Traill,  is  now  in  the  course  of  publication. 

In  the  year  1773,  Mr  Smellie,  in  conjunction  with  Dr  Gilbert  Stuart,  com- 
menced a  new  monthly  publication.  The  Edinburgh  Magazine  and  Review, 
which  was  conducted  for  some  years  with  great  spirit  and  talent,  but  was 
dropped  in  177G,  after  the  production  of  47  numbera,  forming  five  octavo 
volumes.  Its  downfall  was  attributed  to  a  continued  series  of  harsh  and  wanton 
attacks  from  the  pen  of  Dr  Stuart,  on  the  writings  of  lord  IMonboddo,  which 
disgusted  the  public  mind.  Edinburgh  did  not  at  that  time  afford  such  ample 
scope  for  literary  stricture  as  at  the  present  day.  Lord  Monboddo,  neverthe- 
less, continued  to  be  warmly  attached  to  Mr  Smellie,  and  they  lived  on  terma 
of  the  strictest  intimacy  till  his  lordship's  death. 

In  the  year  1780,  on  the  suggestion  of  the  late  earl  of  Buchan,  a  society  for 
collecting  and  investigating  the  antiquities  of  Scotland,  was  instituted  at  Edin- 
burgh. Of  this  society,  Mr  Smellie  was  personally  invited  by  his  lordship,  to 
become  a  member ;  which  he  did,  and  was  appointed  printer  of  their  journals 
and  transactions.  Next  year,  he  was  elected  keeper  of  their  museum  of  natural 
history;  and  in  1793,  he  was  elected  secretary,  which  ofiice  he  held  till  his 
death. 

It  is  not,  we  believe,  generally  known,  that  with  Mr  Smellie  originated  that 
admirable  scheme  of  a  statistical  account  of  all  the  parishes  of  Scotland,  which 
was  afterwards  brought  to  maturity  by  Sir  John  Sinclair.  At  the  desire  of  the 
Antiquarian  Society,  3Ir  Smellie,  in  1781,  drew  up  a  regular  plan  of  the  un- 
dertjiking,  which  was  printed  and  circulated  ;  but  the  individuals  to  whom  they 
were  addressed,  do  not  seem  to  have  understood  the  important  nature  of  the 
application,  and  only  a  very  few  complied  with  the  directions  given  in  it. 

In  1780,  Mr  Smellie  commenced  the  publication  of  his  "  Translation  of  Buf- 
fon's  Natural  Histoi-y ;"  a  work  which  has  ever  stood  deservedly  high  in  the  opinion 
of  naturalists,  being  illustrated  with  numerous  notes  and  illustrations  of  the  French 
author,  besides  a  considerable  ^umber  of  new  observations.  It  is  worthy  of  no- 
tice, that  lAIr  Smellie's  knowledge  of  the  French  tongue,  which  is  acknowledged 
to  have  been  profound,  was  entirely  acquired  by  himself,  without  the  aid  of  a 
master:  and  it  is  a  curious  fact,  that,  of  a  language  he  so  thorouglily  understood, 
he  could  scarcely  pronounce  one  word.  This  fact  gave  unbounded  surprise  to 
a  friend  of  Buftbn,  who  came  to  Edinburgh  on  a  visit,  and  waited  on  Mr  Smel- 
lie. The  stranger  noted  it  down  as  one  of  the  greatest  wonders  of  his  travels, 
intending,  he  said,  to  astonish  the  French  naturalist,  by  relating  it  to  him. 
It  is  perhaps  the  best  of  all  tests,  as  regards  the  merits  of  3Ir  Smellie's  trans- 
lation, that  BufTon  himself  was  highly  pleased  with  it,  and  even  requested  him 
to  translate  some  of  his  other  works ;  but  this,  from  prudential  motives,  Mr 
Smellie  declined. 

In  the  year  1780,  the  partnership  between  Mr  Smellie  and  3Ir  Balfour  was 

dissolved,  when  the  former  entered  into  partnersiiip  with  3Ir  William  Creech, 

bookseller.     This  connexion  continued  to  the  end  of  1789,  when  3Ir  Smellie 

commenced,   and   ever  afterwards    carried    on    business,  entirely  on   his   own 

account. 

ir.  2  M 


274  THOMAS  SMETON. 


In  1790,  Mr  Sinellie  published  the  first  volume  of  his  "  Philosophy  of  Na- 
tural History,"  the  origin  of  which  haa  been  already  noticed.  The  copyright 
was  at  the  same  time  purchased  by  Mr  Elliot,  bookseller,  Edinburgh,  for  one 
thousand  guineas.  The  second  and  concluding  volume  uas  not  published,  un- 
til four  years  after  his  deatli.  Besides  this  and  the  other  larger  Morks,  which 
we  have  before  adverted  to,  as  the  production  of  ^Ir  Sinellie,  we  have  seen 
a  list  of  upwards  of  forty  miscellaneous  essays,  upon  almost  all  subjects  — 
from  politics  to  poetry,  from  optics  to  divinity — which  he  composed  at  dirterent 
times,  and  under  various  circumstances  ;  and  from  his  indefatigable  industry,  and 
wonderful  facility  of  writing,  it  is  supposed  that  these  are  scarcely  a  moiety  of 
his  literary  effusions. 

Mr  Smellie^s  acquaintance  Avith  Robert  Burns,  commenced  in  the  year  1787, 
upon  the  occasion  of  the  poet's  coming  to  Edinburgh  to  publish  his  poems, 
which  were  printed  by  Mr  Smellie.  From  their  similarly  social  dispositions, 
and  mutual  relish  of  each  other's  wit,  an  immediate  and  permanent  intimacy 
took  place  betwixt  them.  After  Burns's  departure  from  Edinburgh,  they  corre- 
sponded frequently ;  but  the  greater  part  of  the  communications  were  afterwards 
destroyed  by  Mr  Smellie,  equally,  perhaps,  on  the  bard's  account  and  his  own. 
Of  the  high  opinion  which  the  latter  entertained,  however,  of  his  friend — and  it 
is  well  known  how  fastidious  was  his  taste  on  the  score  of  talent,  honesty,  and 
real  friendship  amongst  his  fellow  creatures — we  have  su^cient  evidence  in  the 
poetical  sketch,  published  in  the  works  of  Burns,  commencing — 


—  "  To  Ciochallan  came 


The  old  oodi'd  hat,  the  brown  sui  tout,  the  same,"  Sir,. 

Mr  Smellie  expired,  afler  a  long  illness,  on  the  24th  June,  1795,  in  his 
fifty-fifth  year ;  and  we  regret  to  add  his  name  to  the  long  list  of  men  of 
genius,  who  have  terminated  a  career  of  labour,  anxiety,  and  usefulness,  amid 
the  pressure  of  pecuniary  diffculties.  Some  years  after  his  death,  a  small  vo- 
lume was  published,  under  the  care  of  his  son,  containing  memoirs  of  three 
distinguished  men,  with  whom  he  had  been  acquainted;  lord  Karnes,  Dr  John 
Gregory,  and  Mr  David  Hume:  it  formed  part  of  a  more  extended  design, 
which  Mr  Smellie  had  sketched  out,  but  found  not  time  to  execute.  A  memoir 
of  Mr  Smellie  himself  w:^  published  by  Mr  Robert  Keir,  in  two  volumes  octavo; 
a  work,  perhaps,  disproportioned  to  the  subject^  but  containing  many  curious 
anecdotes. 

SMETON,  Thomas,  an  eminent  clergyman  of  the  sixteenth  century,  was  born 
at  the  Jittle  village  of  Gask,  near  Perth,  about  1536.  Nothing  satisfactory 
seems  to  be  known  respecting  his  parentage  :  Wodrow  conjectures  it  to  have 
been  mean,  but  upon  no  better  ground  than  the  fact  of  his  having  been  born  at 
an  obscure  place.  It  is  certain,  however,  that  he  enjoyed  the  advantages  of  the 
best  instructors  that  his  country  then  afforded.  He  received  his  elementary 
education  at  the  celebrated  school  of  Perth,  then  taught  by  Mr  A.  Simson,  and 
no  less  famous  under  some  of  its  subsequent  masters.  Smeton  is  believed  to 
have  had,  as  his  schoolfellows,  James  Lawson  and  Alexander  Arbuthnot,  both  of 
whom  afterwards  acted  a  conspicuous  part  in  the  ecclesiastical  transactions  of 
their  country.  The  thorough  knowledge  of  the  Latin  language  displayed  by 
our  author,  leaves  little  room  to  doubt  that  he  profited  by  the  honourable  emu- 
lation, which  viSJ  doubtless  excited  among  such  scholars.  At  the  age  of  seven- 
teen, (1553,)  he  Avas  incorporated  a  student  in  St  Salvator's  college,  St  An- 
drews;  and  here  he  had  the  satisfaction  of  joining  Arbuthnot,  who  had  entered 
St  Mary's  two  years  earlier.'  Smeton  is  believed  to  have  studied  philosophy 
»  Records  of  the  University  of  St  Andrews. 


THOMAS  SMETON.  275 


under  the  provost  of  his  college,  Mr  William  Cranstoun  ;  but  how  far  he  pro- 
secuted his  studies,  none  of  his  biographers  mention.  He  ultimately  became 
one  of  the  regents  in  the  college,  and  continued  in  that  situation,  till  the  doc- 
trines of  the  Reformation  began  to  be  warmly  agitated  in  the  university.  When 
the  protestant  party  at  length  gained  the  ascendency,  Smeton,  still  zealously 
attached  to  the  popish  system,  left  his  native  country,  and  resided  for  many 
years  with  his  continental  brethren.  The  history  of  his  life,  for  about  twenty 
years,  is  most  fortunately  preserved,  as  related  by  himself,  in  the  Diary  of  Mr 
James  3Ielville;  a  work,  as  we  have  already  mentioned,  (see  article  James 
Melville,)  of  so  interesting  a  character,  that  we  feel  gratified  by  every  oppor- 
tunity of  quoting  from  it.  Luckily  the  narrative,  while  it  is  perfectly  distinct, 
is  so  much  condensed,  as  to  be  completely  suited  to  our  limits ;  and  we,  there- 
/bre,  make  no  apology  for  its  introduction. 

"  At  the  reformation  of  religion,  Mr  Smeton,  being  put  from  the  auld  col- 
lege of  S.  Andros,  past  to  France,  whare  in  Paris  he  thought  mikle  vpon  the 
trew  way  of  saluation ;  and  be  dealling  of  diwerss  of  his  acquentance,  namlie, 
3Ir  Thomas  IMatteland,  a  young  gentilman  of  guid  literature  and  knawlage  in 
the  treuthe  of  religion,  was  brought  to  ken  and  be  inclynde  to  the  best  way: 
whar  also  he  was  acquentit  Avith  my  vncle,  3Ir  Andro  and  Mr  Gilbert  Mon- 
creifK  Yit  lothe  to  alter  his  mynd  wherin  he  was  brought  vpe,  and  fand  him- 
selff  sum  tyme  fullie  perswadit  in  the  mater  of  his  fathe  and  saluation.  Ho 
thought  he  wfild  leaue  na  thing  vntryed  and  esseyit  perteining  therto  ;  and, 
vnderstanding  that  the  ordour  of  the  jesuists  was  maist  lerned,  halie,  and  exqui- 
sit  in  the  papistrie,  he  resoluit  to  enter  in  thair  ordour  during  the  yeirs  of  pro- 
bation ;  at  the  end  wharof,  giff  he  fand  himselft*  satteled  in  his  auld  fathe,  he 
wald  continow  a  jesuist ;  and,  giff  he  fand  nocht  amangs  tham  that  might  re- 
moue  all  the  douttes  he  was  cast  into,  it  was  bot  folie  to  seik  fordar,  he  wald 
yeild  vnto  that  light  that  God  be  the  emest  delling  of  his  lowing  frinds  and 
companions  haid  enterit  him  into.  And  sa  he  enterit  in  the  Jesuists  collage  at 
Paris,  whar  he  fand  Mr  Edmont  Hay,  a  verie  lowing  frind,  to  whom  he  com- 
municat  all  his  mynd.  Mr  Edmont,  seing  him  worthie  to  be  win  to  thara,  and 
giffen  to  lerning  and  light,  directes  him  to  Rome  ;  and  be  the  way  he  cam  to 
Geneu,  whar  Mr  Andro  Meluill  and  Mr  Gilbert  Moncreiff  being  for  the  tyme, 
he  communicat  with  tham  his  purpose,  and  cravit  thair  prayers.  Of  his  pur- 
pose they  could  gie  na  guid  warand  ;  but  thair  prayers  they  promissit  hartlie. 
Sa  making  na  stey  ther,  he  past  fordwart  to  Rome,  whar  he  was  receavit  in  the 
Jesuist's  collage  gladlie.  In  the  quhilk  collage  was  a  father,  hauldin  of  best 
lerning  and  prudence,  wha  was  ordeanit  to  trauell  with  sic  as  wer  deteinit  in 
pressone  for  religion,  to  convert  tham  :  of  him  he  cravit  that  he  might  accom- 
panie  him  at  sic  tyraes  when  he  went  to  deall  with  these  presoners,  quhilk  was 
granted  to  him.  Be  the  way  as  they  cam  from  the  presoners  to  the  collage, 
quhilk  was  neir  a  myle,  Mr  Thomas  wald  tak  the  argument  of  the  presoners, 
and  mentein  it  against  the  jesuist,  for  reasoning's  cause,  and  indeid  to  be  re- 
soluit ;  and  the  more  he  ensisted,  he  fand  the  treuthe  the  strangar,  and  the  je- 
suist's answers  never  to  satisfie  him.  This  way  he  continowit  about  a  yeir  and  a 
halff  in  Rome,  till  at  last  he  becam  suspitius,  and  therfor  was  remitted  back  to 
Paris  throw  all  the  collages  of  the  jesuists  be  the  way,  in  all  the  quhilks  he  en- 
deworit  mair  and  mair  to  haiff  his  douttes  resoluit,  bot  fand  himsel/fay  fordar 
and  fordar  confirmed  in  the  veritie.  Coming  to  Paris  again,  he  abaid  ther  a 
space  verie  lowingly  interleined  be  Mr  Edmont;^  till  at  last  he  could  nocht  bot 

2  According  to  Dempster,  Smeton  faught  humanity  in  the  university  of  Paris,  and  after- 
tvards  in  the  college  of  Clermont,  with  great  applause.     (See  M'Crie's  Melville,  2nd.  edit. 
3S0,  note.) 


L. 


276  THOMAS  SMETON. 


discover  himsellf  to  3Ir  Edtnont,  to  whom  he  says  he  was  alsmikle  behauldin  as 
to  anie  man  in  the  warld  ;  for,  noclwithslanding-  that  he  peiceavit  his  myiid 
turned  away  from  thair  ordour  and  relligion,  yit  he  ceased  noclit  to  counsall 
hun  frindlie  and  fatiierlie,  and  surtered  him  to  want  na  thing^.  And  being  a 
Terie  wyse  man,  lie  thinks  to  keipe  31r  Thomas  quyet,  and  nocht  to  siifier  iiira 
to  kythe  an  aduersar  against  them.  Perceaving,  tlierfor,  the  young  man  giften 
to  his  buik,  he  giffes  him  this  counsall,  to  go  to  a  quyet  collage,  situat  in  a 
wellhie  and  pleasant  part  in  Lorain,  whair  he  sould  haitl'  na  thing  to  do,  but 
attend  vpon  his  buiks;  wiiair  he  sould  haiti'all  the  antient  doctors,  and  sic  bulks 
as  yie  [he]  pleisit  to  rcid  ;  he  sould  leak  na  ner^ssai's  ;  thair  he  sould  keip  him 
quyet,  till  (jrod  wrought  fordar  with  him,  vtherwayes  he  wald  cast  himselfT  in 
grait  danger.  Thair  was  na  tiling  that  could  allure  3Ir  Thomas  mair  nor  this, 
and  therfor  he  resolued  to  follow  his  counsall  ;  and,  taking  iorney,  went  to- 
wards Lorain,  wluir  be  the  way  tlie  Lord  leyes  his  hand  vpon  him,  and  visites 
him  with  an  extream  fever,  casting  him  in  vttermaist  pean  and  perplexitie  of 
body  and  mynd.  Thair  he  fought  a  maist  Strang  and  ferfuU  battelle  in  his  con- 
science :  bot  God  at  last  prevealling,  he  determines  to  schaw  himseltf,  abandone 
that  damnable  societie,  and  vtter,  in  plean  proffesson,  the  treuthe  of  God,  and 
his  enemies'  falshods,  hypocrisie,  and  craft.  Sa  coming  bak  to  Paris  again,  he 
takes  his  leiue  of  Mr  Eduiont,  wha  yit,  nochtwithstanding,  kythes  na  thing  bot 
lowing  frindschipe  to  him  ;  and  at  his  parting,  ghles  thrie  counsalles  : — 1.  To 
reid  and  studie  the  antient  doctors  of  the  kirk,  and  nocht  to  trow  the  ministers. 
S.  To  go  ham  to  his  awin  countrey.  '  And,  thridly.  To  marie  a  wyfti  — From  that 
he  manifested  hiiiiseUf  amangs  the  professours  of  religion,  till  the  tyme  of  the 
massacre,  quhilk  scliorilie  ensewit ;  at  the  quhilk,  being  naiTowlie  sought,  he 
cam  to  the  Engliss  ambassator,  Mr  Secretarie  Walsingham,  in  whase  house, 
lyand  at  Paris  for  the  tyme,  as  in  a  comoun  girthe,  he,  with  manic  ma,  war 
seaif.  With  whome  also  he  cam  to  Eingland  sooiie  efter,  whar  he  remeaned 
Bchoohuaister  at  Colchester,  till  his  coming  to  Scotland. 

"  At  his  coming  to  Scotland,  he  was  gladlie  content  to  be  in  companie  with  my 
mcle,  Mr  Andro  [3Ielville],  and  sa  agreit  to  be  minister  at  Pasley,  in  place  of 
Mr  Andro  Pulwart,  wha  enterit  to  the  subdeanrie  of  Glasgw,  when  IMr  David 
Cuninghame  was  bischopit  in  Aberdein.  A  litle  efter  his  placing,  3Ir  Andro, 
principall  of  the  collage,  put  in  his  hand  Mr  Archibald  llamiltone's  apostats' 
buik,  *  De  Confusione  CaluiniancB  SectCB  apud  Scotos  ;'  and  efter  conference 
theranent,  movit  him  to  mak  answer  to  the  sam,  quhilk  was  published  in  print 
the  yeir  following,  to  the  grit  contentment  of  all  the  godlie  and  lernit.  Mr 
Thomas  was  verie  wacryfT  and  peanfull,  and  skarslie  tuk  tyme  to  refreche 
nature.  I  hai/f  sein  him  oft  find  fault  with  lang  denners  and  suppers  at  general 
assemblies ;  and  when  vthers  wer  therat,  he  wald  abstein,  and  be  about  the 
penning  of  things,  (wherin  he  excellit,  bathe  in  langage  and  form  of  letter,) 
and  yit  was  nocht  rustic  nur  auster,  bot  sweit  and  aflable  in  companie,  with  a 
modest  and  naiue  grauitie  ;  rerie  frugall  in  fude  and  reynient ;  and  walked 
maist  on  fut,  whom  I  was  verie  glad  to  acconipanie,  whylis  to  Sterling,  and 
now  and  then  to  his  kirk,  for  my  instruction  and  comfort.  He  louit  nie  ex- 
ceiding  weill,  and  wald  at  parting  thrust  my  head  into  his  bosom,  and  kis  me. 

"  He  being  weill  acquented  with  the  practizes  of  papists,  namlie,  jesuists, 
and  their  deuyces  for  subuerting  the  kirk  of  Scotland,  bathe  publiclie  and  pri- 
Tatlie,  ceasit  nocht  to  cry  and  warn  ministers  and  schollars  to  be  diligent  vpon 
ther  charges  and  buiks,  to  studie  the  controuersies,  and  to  tak  head  they  ne- 
glected nocht  the  tyme,  for  ther  wald  be  a  Strang  vnseatt  of  papists.  Also,  ho 
was  carefull  to  know  the  religion  and  affection  of  noble  men,  insinuating  him 
in  thair  companie,  in  a  wyse  and  graue  maner'  and  warning  tham  to  be  war  of 


THOMAS   SMETON.  277 


euill  companie,  and  nocht  to  send  thair  berns  to  dangerus  partes.  And, 
finalie,  Mr  Audio  and  he  marveloiislie  conspyring  in  purposes  and  iudgments, 
war  the  first  niotioners  of  an  anti-seminarie  to  be  erected  in  St  Andros  to  the 
jesuist  seminaries,  for  the  course  of  theologie,  and  cessit  never  at  assemblies  and 
court,  till  that  wark  was  begun  and  sett  fordwart." 

There  perhaps  never  was  a  period  more  calculated  to  bring  forth  the  talents 
of  our  countrymen,  than  that  of  the  Reformation.  Accordingly,  Mr  Smeton 
was  soon  required  by  his  brethren  to  take  an  active  part  in  the  more  public 
transactions  of  the  church.  In  October,  1378,  he  was  nominated  one  of  the 
assessors  to  the  moderator  of  th^  General  Assembly  ;  an  appointment  conferred 
at  that  time  upon  the  most  learned  and  judicious  of  the  members.  But  his  ta- 
lents were  considered  as  fitting  him  for  the  performance  of  functions  still  more 
important.  He  was  chosen  moderator  of  the  next  Assembly,  which  met  in  July, 
1579,  and  which  was  called  to  the  consideration  of  many  important  questions. 
Among  these  may  be  mentioned,  the  finishing  of  the  first  Scottish  edition  of  the 
Bible.  In  1580,  he  became  the  opponent  of  Nicol  Burn,  a  professor  of  philo- 
sophy in  the  university  of  St  Andre\vs,  who  had  turned  papist.^  Of  this  contro- 
versy, Dr  Mackenzie  promised  an  account  in  his  Life  of  Burn,  but  his  biogra- 
phical work  never  reached  that  point. 

James  Melville  has  alluded  in  the  passage  we  have  quoted  from  his  Diary, 
to  the  anxiety  of  his  uncle  and  Smeton  that  the  young  noblemen  and  gentle- 
men of  Scotland  should  be  educated  at  home,  and  to  tlie  measures  which  they 
proposed  for  the  attainment  of  that  object.  They  had  at  length  the  satisfac- 
tion of  seeing  their  new  constitution  of  the  university  of  St  Andrews  approved 
by  the  church,  and  ratified  by  parliament  Melville  was  chosen  principal  of 
St  Mary's,  or  the  New  college,  and,  after  much  opposition,  arising,  however, 
from  no  other  motive  than  a  conviction  of  his  usefulness  as  minister  of  Paisley, 
Smeton  was  appointed  his  successor  by  letters  under  the  Privy  Seal,  dated  the 
Srd  of  January,  1580.  Most  unfortunately  the  records  of  the  university  of 
Glasgow  are  almost  wholly  lost  for  the  period  during  which  this  excellent  man 
presided  over  it.  His  duties,  however,  are  known  to  have  been  of  no  light 
description  ;  he  was  the  sole  professor  of  divinity,  and  had  also  the  charge  of 
the  religious  instruction  of  the  parish  of  Govan.  Besides  the  mere  literary  de- 
partment, as  it  may  be  termed,  of  his  duties,  he  had  the  general  super- 
intendence of  the  university,  in  which  was  included  the  by  no  means  pleasant 
office  of  inflicting  corporal  punishment  on  unruly  boys.  Almost  equally  little 
has  been  preserved  respecting  Smeton's  share  in  the  ecclesiastical  transactions 
during  the  remainder  of  his  life.  He  was  chosen  moderator  of  the  General  As- 
sembly held  in  April,  1583.  We  have  already  alluded  in  the  life  of  Mr  Robert 
Pont  to  the  removal  of  that  learned  man  for  a  short  period  to  St  Andrews,  and 
to  the  reasons  which  obliged  him  to  relinquish  that  charge.  Andrew  Melville 
was  anxious  that  his  place  should  be  supplied  by  Smeton,  and,  it  is  not  improb- 
able, intended  to  adopt  some  measures  for  bringing  the  state  of  that  town  under 
the  notice  of  this  Assembly.  But  it  was  the  policy  of  the  Prior  and  his  de- 
pendants to  frustrate  the  settlement,  whatever  might  be  the  merits  of  the  in- 
tended minister,  that  they  might  spend  in  extravagance  or  debauchery  the  funds 
M'hich  were  destined  for  his  support.  The  king,  therefore,  probably  instigated 
by  that  ecclesiastic  (the  earl  of  March)  but  under  the  specious  pretext  of  a 
fatherly  care  over  the  university  of  Glasgow,  forbade  the  Assembly  to  "  meddle 
with  the  removing  of  any  of  the  members  thereof,  and  especially  of  the 
Principal."  Smeton's  old  schoolfellow,  Arbuthnot,  now  principal  of  King's 
3  Mackenzie's  Lives  of  Scots  Writers,  iii. 


278  ADAM  SMITH,   LL.D.,  F.R.S. 

college,  Aberdeen,  was  soon  afterwards  chosen  by  the  Kirk  Session  of  St  An- 
drews ;  but  this  election  produced  no  more  favourable  result. 

Principal  Smeton  attended  the  following  General  Assembly  (October  1583), 
and  was  again  employed  in  some  of  its  most  important  business.  But  the 
course  of  honour  and  usefulness  on  which  he  had  now  entered  was  destined  to 
be  of  Tery  short  duration.  Soon  after  his  return  to  Glasgow,  he  was  seized 
with  a  high  fever,  and  died,  after  only  eight  days'  illness,  on  the  13lh  of  De- 
cember, 1583.  About  six  weeks  earlier,  liis  friend  Arbuthnot,  with  whom  he 
had  been  so  long  and  intimately  connected,  had  been  cut  off  in  his  4Gth  year, 
and  thus  was  the  country  at  once  bereaved  of  two  of  its  greatest  lights  at  a 
period  of  no  common  difficulty.  That  was  indeed  "  a  dark  and  heavie  wintar 
to  the  kirk  of  Scotland.'' 

The  habits  and  acquirements  of  Smeton  must  have  peculiarly  adapted  him 
for  the  charge  of  a  literary,  and,  more  particularly,  of  a  theological  seminary. 
While  the  latter  were  unquestionably  inferior  to  those  of  his  predecessor  in  the 
prinnipalship  of  Glasgow  college,  his  manners  were  of  a  milder  and  more  con- 
ciliatory character.  Yet  even  his  learning  was  greatly  beyond  that  of  the  mass 
of  his  brethren.  He  wrote  Latin  with  elegance  and  facility,  and  was  a  Greek 
and  Hebrew  scholar.  Nor  had  he,  like  many  of  our  travelled  countrymen,  ne- 
glected the  study  of  his  native  tongue,  in  which  he  wrote  with  great  propriety. 
His  knowledge  of  controversial  divinity,  derived  most  probably  from  the  cir- 
cumstances attending  his  conversion  to  the  Protestant  faith,  is  represented  as 
superior  to  that  of  almost  any  of  his  contemporaries.  Of  the  works  which  he 
has  left  behind  him  the  best  known  is  his  reply  to  Hamilton,  Avhich  was  pub- 
lished at  Edinburgh  in  1579,  with  the  following  title  :  "  Ad  Virulentum  Ar- 
chibaldi  Hamiltonii  Apostatffi  Dialogura  de  Confusione  Calvinianae  Sectas  apud 
Scotos  impie  conscriptum  Orthodcxa  Responsio,  Thoma  Smetonio  Scoto  auctore, 
in  qua  Celebris  ilia  quaestio  de  Ecclesia,  de  Vniversalitate,  Successione,  et 
Romani  Episcopi  Primatu  breviter,  dilucide,  et  accurate,  tractatur  :  adjecta  est 
vera  Historia  extremae  vitae  et  obitus  eximii  viri  Joan :  Knoxii  Ecclesiae  Scoti- 
canae  instauratoris  fidelissimi,"  8vo.  The  General  Assembly  held  in  April, 
1581,  ordered  the  method  of  preaching  and  prophecying  by  .  .  . 
*'  to  be  put  in  Scotish  be  their  brother  IMr  Thomas  Smetone ;"  but  if  this 
supposed  translation  of  Hyperitis  De  formandis  Concionibus  was  ever  printed, 
it  has  escaped  the  researches  of  all  our  bibliographers.  The  Dictates  of  princi- 
pal Smeton, — that  is,  the  notes  which  he  dictated  to  his  students, — were  pre- 
served in  archbishop  Spotswood's  time,  and  are  said  by  that  author  to  have  been 
highly  esteemed.  Dempster  also  ascribes  to  Smeton  "  Epitaphium  Metallani, 
lib.  i." 

Principal  Smeton  adopted  the  advice  of  his  excellent  friend,  Edmond  Hay, 
and  "  married  a  wyff,"  but  at  what  time  is  uncertain.  We  are  equally  uncer- 
tain whether  he  left  any  children  behind  him.  The  name  of  Smeton,  and  in 
one  or  two  instances  that  of  Thomas  Smeton,  occur  in  the  records  of  the  uni- 
versity of  Glasgow  in  the  early  part  of  the  seventeenth  century,  and,  as  the 
name  was  by  no  means  common,  these  persons  were  not  improbably  his 
descendants.^ 

SMITH,  Adam,  LL.D.  and  F.R.S.  both  of  London  and  Edinburgh,  one  of 
the  brightest  ornaments  of  the  literature  of  Scotland,  was  born  on  the  6th 
of  June,  1723,  at  the  town  of  Kirkaldy,  in  the  county  of  Fife.  He  was  the 
only  child  of  Adam  Smith,  pomptroUer  nf  the  customs  at  Kirkaldy,  and  Mar- 

♦  Abridged  from  Wodrow's  Life  of  Smet*i,  apud  MSS.  in  Bib).  Acad.  Glasg.  vol.  i. 
See  also  James  IVIelville's  Diary,  pp.  56 — 6,  and  M'Crie's  Life  of  Melville,  second  edition,  i. 
158.  ii.  379-383. 


ADAM   SMITH,  LL.D^P.R.S.  279 

garet  Douglas,  daughter  of  JMr  Douglas  of  Strathenry.  His  father  having  died 
some  months  before  his  birth,  the  duty  of  superintending  his  early  education 
devolved  entirely  upon  his  mother. 

A  singular  accident  happened  to  him  when  he  was  about  three  years  of  age. 
As  he  was  amusing  himself  one  day  at  the  door  of  his  uncle,  Mr  Douglas's  house 
in  Strathenry,  he  was  carried  off  by  a  party  of  gypsies.  The  vagrants,  how- 
ever, being  pui-sued  by  Mr  Douglas,  were  overtaken  in  Leslie-wood,  and  liis 
uncle,  as  Mr  Stewart  remarks,  was  thus  the  happy  instrument  of  preserving  to 
the  world  a  genius  which  was  destined  not  only  to  extend  the  boundaries  of 
science,  but  to  enlighten  and  reform  the  commercial  policy  of  Europe. 

The  constitution  of  Dr  Smith,  during  infancy,  was  infirm  and  sickly,  and  re- 
quired all  the  delicate  attentions  of  his  surviving  parent.  'I'hough  she  treated 
him  with  the  utmost  indulgence,  this  did  not  produce  any  unfavourable  effect 
either  on  his  dispositions  or  temper,  and  he  repaid  her  atFectionate  solicitude 
by  every  attention  tliat  filial  gratitude  could  dictate  during  the  long  period  of 
sixty  years. 

He  received  the  first  rudiments  of  his  education  at  the  grammar  school  of 
Kirkaldy,  which  was  then  taught  by  Mr  David  Miller,  a  teachei',  in  his  day,  of 
considerable  reputation.  He  soon  attracted  notice  by  his  passion  for  books, 
and  the  extraordinary  powers  of  his  memory.  Even  at  this  early  period,  too, 
he  seems  to  have  contracted  those  habits  of  speaking  to  himself,  and  of  absence 
in  company,  for  which,  through  life,  he  was  ao  remarkable.  The  weakness  of 
Dr  Smith's  constitution  prevented  him  from  engaging  in  the  sports  and  pastimes 
of  his  school  companions,  yet  he  was  much  beloved  by  them  on  account  of  his 
friendly  and  generous  dispositions. 

Having  remained  at  Kirkaldy  till  he  had  completed  his  fourteenth  year,  he 
ivas  sent,  in  1737,  to  the  university  of  Glasgow,  where  he  prosecuted  his  studies 
during  three  years.  Mr  Stewart  mentions  on  the  authority  of  one  of  Mr 
Smith's  fellow  students,  Dr  Maclaine  of  the  Hague,  that  his  favourite  pursuits 
while  attending  that  university  were  mathematics  and  natural  philosophy.  He 
attended,  however,  during  his  residence  in  Glasgow,  the  lectures  of  the  cele- 
brated Dr  Hutcheson  on  moral  philosophy ;  and  it  is  probable  that  they  had 
a  considerable  effect  in  afterwards  directing  his  attention  to  those  brandies  of 
science  in  Avhich  he  was  to  become  so  distinguished. 

Dr  Smith's  friends  having  directed  his  views  towards  the  English  cliurch,  he 
went,  in  1740,  to  Balliol  college,  Oxford,  as  an  exhibitioner  on  Snell's  founda- 
tion, where  he  remained  seven  years.  At  this  celebrated  seat  of  classical 
learning  he  cultivated  with  the  greatest  assiduity  and  success  the  study  both  of 
the  ancient  and  modern  languages,  and  became  intimately  acquainted  with 
the  works  of  the  Roman,  Greek,  French,  and  Italian  poets,  as  well  as  with 
those  of  his  own  country.  With  the  view  of  improving  his  style,  he  used  fre- 
quently to  employ  himself  in  the  practice  of  translation,  particularly  from  the 
French,  as  he  was  of  opinion  that  such  exercises  were  extremely  useful  to  those 
who  wished  to  cultivate  the  art  of  composition.  But  Dr  Smith's  obligations  to 
the  university  of  Oxford  seem  to  be  confined  to  his  proficiency  in  classical 
learning,  and  a  critical  acquaintance  with  the  niceties  and  delicacies  of  the 
English  tongue.  Very  little  could  be  learned  from  the  public  lectures 
on  philosophy :  the  logic  of  Aristotle  still  maintaining  its  influence  in  both  the 
English  universities.  A  circumstance,  however,  which,  upon  good  authority,  is 
related  to  have  occurred  during  his  residence  at  Oxford,  shows,  that  in  his 
private  studies  Dr  Smith  did  not  confine  his  reading  in  philosophy  to  the  works 
of  Aristotle  and  the  schoolmen.  Something  having  excited  the  suspicion  of  his 
superiors  with  regard  to  the   nature  of  his  studies  in  pi-ivate,  the  heads  of  his 

t 


280  ADAM  SMITH,  LL.D.,  F.R.S. 

college  entered  his  apartment  one  day  without  any  previous  notice,  and  un- 
luckily found  the  young  pliilusoplier  engaged  in  reading  Hume's  Treatise  of 
Human  Nature.  The  ofl'ender  was  of  course  severely  reprimanded,  and  the  ob- 
jectionable work  seized  and  cxirried  oft". 

Dr  Smith,  having  found  that  the  ecclesiastical  profession  was  not  suitable  to 
his  taste,  resolved  at  last  to  renounce  every  prospect  of  rising  to  eminence  by 
church  preferment  He  accordingly  returned,  in  1747,  against  the  wishes  of 
his  friends,  to  Kirkaldy,  and  without  having  determined  on  any  fixed  plan  of 
life,  resided  there  nearly  two  yeai*s  with  his  mother.  In  the  end  of  the  year 
1748,  Dr  Smith  fixed  his  residence  in  Edinburgh,  and,  under  the  patronage  of 
lord  Kames,  delivered  lectures  during  three  years  on  Rhetoric  and  Belles 
Lettres.  These  lectures  were  never  published,  but  it  appears  that  the  substance 
of  them  was  communicated  to  Dr  Blair,  who  began  itis  celebrated  course  on  the 
same  subject  in  1755,  and  that  that  gentleman  iiad  a  high  opinion  of  their  merits. 
In  a  note  to  his  eighteenth  lecture,  Dr  Blair  thus  notices  them  :  "  On  this  head, 
of  the  general  character  of  style,  particularly  the  plain  and  the  simple,  and 
the  characters  of  those  English  authoi-s  wiio  are  classed  under  them  in  this  and 
the  following  lecture,  several  ideas  have  been  taken  from  a  manuscript  treatise 
on  Rhetoric,  part  of  which  was  shown  to  me  many  years  ago,  by  the  learned 
and  ingenious  author,  Dr  Adam  Smith ;  and  whicli,  it  is  hoped,  Avill  be  given 
by  him  to  the  public." 

It  appears  to  have  been  during  the  residence  of  3Ir  Smith  at  this  time  in 
Edinburgh  that  his  acquaintance  with  3Ir  David  Hume  commenced,  which 
lasted  without  the  slightest  interruption  till  the  death  of  the  latter  in  1776. 
It  was  a  friendship,  31r  Stewart  remarks,  on  both  sides  founded  on  the  admira- 
tion of  genius,  and  the  love  of  simplicity;  and  which  forms  an  interesting  cir- 
cumstance in  the  history  of  each  of  these  eminent  men  from  the  ambition  which 
both  have  shown  to  record  it  to  postei'ity. 

The  literary  reputation  of  Dr  Smith  being  now  well  established,  he 
was  elected,  in  1751,  professor  of  logic  in  the  university  of  Glasgow,  and  in 
the  year  following  he  was  removed  to  the  chair  of  moral  philosophy  in  the 
same  university,  vacant  by  the  death  of  3Ir  Thomas  Craigie,  who  was  tlie  im- 
mediate succ«ssor  of  Dr  Hutcheson.  In  this  situation  he  remained  during  thir- 
teen years,  a  period  which  he  used  to  consider  as  the  happiest  of  his  life,  the 
studies  and  inquiries  in  which  his  academical  duties  led  him  to  engage  being 
those  which  were  most  agreeable  to  his  taste.  It  is  highly  probable  that  his 
appointment  to  the  professorship  of  moral  philosophy  was  the  means  of  inducing 
him  to  mature  his  speculations  in  ethics  and  political  economy,  and  to  under- 
take those  great  works  which  have  immortalized  his  name  in  the  literature  of 
Scotland. 

No  part  of  the  lectures  which  Dr  Smith  delivered  either  as  professor 
of  logic  or  of  moral  philosophy,  has  been  preserved,  except  what  has  been 
published  in  the  "Theory  of  Moral  Sentiments,"  and  tiie  "Wealth  of  Nations." 
The  following  account  of  them,  however,  has  been  given  by  3Ir  31i]ler,  the  cele- 
brated author  of  the  Historical  View  of  the  h'nglish  Government,  and  professor 
of  law  in  the  university  of  Glasgow,  who  had  the  advantage  of  being  one  of  3Ir 
Smith's  pupils. 

"  In  the  professorship  of  logic,  to  which  Mr  Smith  was  appointed  on  his  first 
introduction  into  this  university,  he  soon  saw  the  necessity  of  departing  widely 
from  the  plan  that  had  been  fullowed  by  his  predecessoi-s,  and  of  directing  the 
attention  of  his  pupils  to  studies  of  a  more  interesting  and  useful  nature  than 
the  logic  and  metaphysics  of  the  schools.  Accordingly,  after  exhibiting  a 
general  view  of  the  powers  of  the  mind,  and  explaining  as  nmcli  of  ihe  ancient 


ADAM   SillTH,   LL.D.,  F.R.S,  281 

logic  M  was  requisite  to  gratify  curiosity  with  respect  to  an  artificial  method  of 
reasoning,  which  had  once  occupied  the  universal  attention  of  the  learned,  he 
dedicated  all  the  rest  of  his  time  to  the  delivering  of  a  system  of  rhetoric  and 
belles  lettres.  The  best  method  of  explaining  and  illustrating  the  various  powers 
of  the  human  mind,  the  most  useful  part  of  metaphysics,  arises  from  an 
examination  of  tlie  several  ways  of  communicating  our  thoughts  by  speech,  and 
from  an  attention  to  the  principles  of  those  literary  compositions  which  contri- 
bute to  persuasion  or  entertainment.  By  these  arts  everything  that  we  per- 
ceive or  feel,  every  operation  of  our  minds,  is  expressed  and  delineated  in  such 
a  manner,  that  it  may  be  clearly  distinguislied  and  remembered.  There  is  at 
the  same  time  no  branch  of  literature  more  suited  to  youth  at  their  first  en- 
trance upon  philosophy  than  this,  \vhich  lays  hold  of  their  taste  and  their 
feelings. 

**  It  is  much  to  be  regretted  that  the  manuscript,  containing  Mr  Smith's  lec- 
tures on  this  subject,  was  destroyed  before  his  death.  The  first  pai't,  in  point  of 
composition,  was  highly  finished ;  and  the  whole  discovered  strong  marks  of 
taste  and  original  genius.  From  the  permission  given  to  students  of  taking 
notes,  many  observations  and  opinions  contained  in  these  lectures  have  either 
been  detailed  in  separate  dissertations,  or  engrossed  in  general  collections, 
which  have  since  been  given  to  the  public.  But  these,  as  might  be  expected, 
have  lost  the  air  of  originality,  and  the  distinctive  character  which  they 
received  from  their  first  author,  and  are  often  obscured  by  that  multiplicity  of 
common-place  matter  in  which  they  are  sunk  and  involved. 

*'  About  a  year  after  his  appointment  to  the  professorship  of  logic,  Mr  Smith 
was  elected  to  the  chair  of  moral  philosophy.  His  course  of  lectures  on  this 
subject  was  divided  into  four  parts.  The  first  contained  natural  theology  ;  in 
which  he  considered  the  proofs  of  the  being  and  attributes  of  God,  and  those 
principles  of  the  human  mind  upon  which  religion  is  founded.  The  second 
comprehended  ethics,  strictly  so  called,  and  consisted  chiefly  of  the  doctrines 
which  he  afterwards  published  in  his  '  Theory  of  3Ioral  Sentiments.'  In  the 
third  part,  he  treated  at  more  length  of  that  branch  of  morality  which  relates 
to  justice,  and  which  being  susceptible  of  precise  and  accurate  rules,  is  for  that 
reason  capable  of  a  full  and  particular  explanation. 

"  Upon  this  subject  he  followed  the  plan  that  seems  to  bo  suggested  by 
Montesquieu ;  endeavouring  to  trace  tlie  gradual  progress  of  jurisprudence, 
both  public  and  private,  from  the  rudest  to  the  most  refined  ages,  and  to  point 
out  the  efiects  of  those  arts  which  contribute  to  subsistence,  and  to  the  accumu- 
lation of  property,  in  producing  correspondent  improvements,  or  alterations  in 
law  and  government.  This  important  branch  of  his  labours  he  also  intended 
to  give  to  the  public ;  but  this  intention,  which  is  mentioned  in  the  conclusion 
of  the    *  Theory  of  Moral  Sentiments,'  he  did  not  live  to  fulfill. 

"  In  the  last  part  of  his  lectures  he  examined  those  political  regulations 
which  are  founded,  not  upon  the  principle  of  justice,  but  that  of  expediency, 
and  which  are  calculated  to  increase  the  riches,  the  power,  and  the  prosperity 
of  a  state.  Under  this  view,  he  considered  the  political  institutions  relating  to 
commerce,  to  finances,  to  ecclesiastical  and  military  establishments.  What  he 
delivei'ed  on  these  subjects,  contained  the  substance  of  the  work  he  afterwards 
published  under  the  title  of  *  An  Inquiry  into  the  Nature  and  Sources  of  the 
Wealth  of  Nations.'' 

"  There  was  no  situation  in  which  the  abilities  of  Mr  Smith  appeared  to 
greater  advantage  than  as  a  professor.  In  delivering  his  lectures,  he  trusted 
almost  entirely  to  extemporary  elocution.  His  manner,  though  not  graceful, 
Avas  plain  and  unaffected  ;  and,  as  he  seemed  to  be  always  interested  in  the  sub- 


282  ADAM  SMITH,  LL.D.,  F.R.3. 

ject,  lie  never  failed  to  interest  his  lie.irers.  Each  discourse  consisted  commonly 
of  several  distinct  propositions,  which  he  successively  endeavoured  to  prove  and 
illustrate.  These  propositions,  when  announced  in  general  terms,  had,  from 
their  extent,  not  unfrequenlly  something  of  the  air  of  a  paradox.  In  his  at- 
tempts to  explain  them,  he  ofton  appeared  at  first  not  to  be  sufficiently  possessed 
of  the  subject,  and  spoke  with  some  hesitation.  As  he  advanced,  however,  the 
matter  seemed  to  crowd  upon  him  ;  his  manner  became  warm  and  animated, 
and  his  expression  easy  and  fluent.  In  points  susceptible  of  controversy,  you 
could  easily  discern,  that  he  secretly  conceived  an  opposition  to  his  opinions, 
and  that  he  was  led  upon  this  account  to  support  them  with  greater  energy  and 
vehemence.  By  the  fulness  and  variety  of  his  illustrations,  the  subject  grad- 
ually swelled  in  his  hands,  and  acquired  a  dimension,  which,  williout  a  tedious 
repetition  of  the  same  views,  was  calculated  to  seize  the  attention  of  his  audi- 
ence, and  to  afford  them  pleasure  as  well  as  instruction,  in  following  the  same 
subject  through  all  the  diversity  of  shades  and  aspects  in  which  it  was  present- 
ed, and  afterwards  in  tracing  it  backwards  to  that  original  proposition,  or 
general  truth,  from  which  this  beautiful  train  of  speculation  had  proceeded. 

'*  His  reputation  as  a  professor  was  accordingly  raised  very  high  ;  and  a  mul- 
titude of  students  from  a  great  distance  resorted  to  the  university  merely  upon  his 
account.  Those  branches  of  science  which  he  taught  became  fashionable  at 
tliis  place,  and  his  opinions  were  the  chief  topics  of  discussion  in  clubs 
and  literary  societies.  Even  the  small  peculiarities  in  his  pronunciation  or 
manner  of  speaking  became  frequently  the  objects  of  imitation." 

The  first  publications  of  Mr  Smith,  it  is  understood,  were  two  articles  which 
he  contributed  anonymously  to  a  work  called  the  "  Edinburgh  Review,"  begtin 
in  1755,  by  some  literary  gentlemen,  but  of  which  only  two  numbers  ever 
appeared.  The  first  cf  these  articles  was  a  Review  of  Dr  Johnson's  Dictionary 
of  the  English  Language,  which  displays  considerable  acuteness,  and  the  other 
contained  some  general  observations  on  the  state  of  literature  in  the  different 
countries  of  Europe. 

In  1759,  his  great  ethical  work,  entitled,  "  Theory  of  3Toral  Sentiments, 
or  an  Essay  towards  an  analysis  of  the  Principles  by  which  men  naturally  judge 
concerning  the  Conduct  and  Character,  first  of  their  Neighbour,  and  afterwards  of 
Themselves,"  made  its  appearance.  This  work  contributed  greatly  to  extend 
the  fame  and  reputation  of  the  author ;  and  is  ur.questionably  entitled 
to  a  place  in  the  very  first  rank  in  the  science  of  morals.  Dr  Brown, 
in  his  eighteenth  lecture,  thus  speaks  of  it:  "  Profound  in  thought,  it  exhibits, 
even  when  it  is  most  profound,  an  example  of  the  graces  with  vhich  a 
sage  imagination  knows  how  to  adorn  the  simple  and  majestic  form  of  science; 
that  it  is  severe  and  cold  only  to  those  who  are  themselves  cold  and  severe,  as 
in  these  very  graces  it  exhibits  in  like  manner  an  example  of  the  reciprocal 
embellishment  which  imagination  receives  from  the  sober  dignity  of  truth.  In 
its  minor  details  and  illustrations,  indeed,  it  may  be  considered  as  presenting  a 
model  of  philosophic  beauty  of  which  all  must  acknowledge  the  power,  mIio  are 
not  disqualified  by  their  very  nature  for  the  admiration  and  enjoyment  of  in- 
tellectual excellence ;  so  dull  of  understanding  as  to  shrink  with  a  pain- 
ful consciousness  of  incapacity  at  the  very  appearance  of  refined  analysis,  or  so 
dull  and  cold  of  heart,  as  to  feel  no  charm  in  the  delightful  varieties  of  an  elo- 
quence, that,  in  the  illustration  and  embellishment  of  the  noblest  truths,  seems  itself 
to  live  and  harmonize  with  those  noble  sentiments  which  it  ailorns."  But  it  is 
chiefly  in  its  minor  analyses  that  the  work  of  Dr  Smith  posse^es  such  excellence. 
Its  leading  doctrine  has  been  often  shown  to  be  erroneous,  and  by  none  with 


ADAM   SMITH,   LL.D.,  F.R.S. 


283 


more  acuteness  than  by  Di-  Brown.      We  shall  very  shortly  explain  the  nature 
of  that  leading  doctrine,  and  endeavour  to  show  how  it  lias  been  refuted. 

It  is  impossible  for  us  to  contemplate  certain  actions  performed  by  others,  or 
to  perfonn  such  actions  ourselves,  without  an  emotion  of  moral  approbation  or 
disapprobation  arising  in  our  minds  ;  without  being  immediately  impressed 
witli  a  vivid  feeling,  that  the  agent  is  virtuous  or  vicious,  worthy  or  unworthy 
of  esteem.  An  inquiry  regarding  such  moral  emotions,  must  form  the  most  in- 
teresting department  of  the  philosophy  of  the  mind,  as  it  comprehends  the 
whole  of  our  duty  to  God,  our  fellow  creatures,  and  ourselves.  This  depart- 
ment of  science  is  termed  Ethics,  and  is  sometimes,  tliough  not  very  correctly, 
divided  into  two  parts  ;  the  one  comprehending  the  theory  of  morals,  and  the 
other  its  practical  doctrines.  The  most  important  question  to  be  considered  in 
the  theoretical  part  of  ethics,  is  the  following : — What  is  essential  to  virtue  and 
vice — that  is  to  say — what  is  common,  and  invariably  to  be  found  in  all  those 
actions  of  whicli  we  morally  approve,  and  what  is  in  the  same  way  peculiar  to 
those  which  we  morally  condemn  ?  Philosophers  have  formed  various  opinions 
upon  this  subject,  Hobbes  and  his  followers  contended  that  all  merit  and  de- 
merit depends  upon  politicil  regulations  :  that  the  only  thing  essential  to  a 
virtuous  or  vicious  action,  is  its  being  sanctioned  or  discountenanced  by  the 
association  of  men,  among  whom  it  is  performed.  Mr  Hume  and  others  have 
supported  the  more  pbusible  theory,  that  what  is  utility  to  the  human  race,  un- 
avoidably  makes  itself  the  mejisure  of  virtue:  that  actions  are  virtuous  or  vicious, 
according  as  they  are  generally  acknowledged  to  be,  in  their  final  effects,  bene- 
ficial or  injurious  to  society  in  general.  These,  and  many  other  theories  of 
morals,  have  been  often  shown  to  be  erroneous  ;  and  it  would  be  out  of  place 
here,  to  enter  into  any  discussion  regarding  them.  We  pass  on  to  notice  the 
theory  of  Dr  Smith. 

According  to  him,  all  moral  feelings  arise  from  sympathy.  It  is  a  mistake 
to  suppose  that  we  approve  or  disapprove  of  an  action  immediately  on  becom- 
ing acquainted  with  the  intention  of  the  agent,  and  the  consequences  of  what 
he  has  done.  Before  any  moral  emotion  can  arise  in  the  mind,  we  must  ima- 
gine ourselves  to  be  placed  in  the  situation  of  the  person  who  has  acted,  and  of 
those  to  whom  his  action  related.  If,  on  considering  all  the  circumstances  in 
which  the  agent  is  placed,  we  feel  a  complete  sympathy  with  the  feelings  that 
occupied  his  mind,  and  with  the  gratitude  of  the  person  who  was  the  object  of 
the  action,  we  then  approve  of  the  action  as  right,  and  feel  the  merit  of  the 
person  who  performed  it,  our  sense  of  the  propriety  of  the  action  depending  on 
our  sympathy  with  the  agent ;  our  sense  of  the  merit  of  the  agent  on  our  sym- 
pathy with  the  object  of  the  action.  If  our  sympathies  be  of  an  opposite  kind, 
we  disapprove  of  the  action,  and  ascribe  demerit  to  the  agent. 

In  eitimating  the  propriety  or  merit  of  our  own  actions,  on  the  other  hand, 
we,  in  some  measure,  reverse  this  process,  and  consider  ho  v  our  conduct  would 
appear  to  an  impartial  spectator.  We  approve  or  disapprove  of  it,  according 
as  we  feel  from  the  experience  of  our  own  former  emotions,  when  we  imagined 
ourselves  to  be  placed  in  similar  circumstances,  estimating  the  actions  of  others, 
that  it  would  excite  his  approval  or  disapprobation.  Our  moral  judgments,  with 
respect  to  our  own  conduct  are,  in  short,  only  applications  to  ourselves  of  deci- 
sions, which  we  have  already  passed  on  the  conduct  of  otiiers. 

But  in  this  tlieory  of  Dr  Smith,  the  previous  existence  of  those  moral  feel- 
ings, which  he  supposes  to  flow  i'rom  sympathy,  is  in  reality  assumed  ;  for  the 
most  exact  accordance  of  sentiment  between  two  individuals,  is  not  sufficient  to 
give  rise  to  any  moral  sentiment.      In  the  very  striking  emotions  of  taste,  for 


284  ADAM  SMITH,   LL.D.,  r.R.S. 

example,  Dr  Brown  remarks,  we  may  feel,  on  the  perusal  of  the  same  poem, 
the  performance  of  the  same  musiaal  air,  the  sight  of  the  ^me  picture  or  statue, 
a  rapture  or  disgust,  accordant  with  the  rapture  or  disgust  expressed  by  ano- 
ther reader,  or  listener,  or  spectator  ;  a  sympathy  far  more  complete  than 
takes  place  in  our  consideration  of  the  circumstances  in  which  he  may  have  had 
to  regulate  his  conduct  in  any  of  the  common  aflairs  of  life.  If  mere  accord- 
ance of  emotion,  then,  imply  the  feeling  of  moral  excellence  of  any  sort,  we 
should  certainly  feel  a  moral  regard  for  all  whose  taste  coincides  with  ours: 
yet,  however  gratifying  the  sympathy  in  such  a  case  may  be,  we  do  not  feel,  in 
consequence  of  this  sympathy,  any  morality  in  the  taste  that  is  most  exactly  ac- 
cordant with  our  own.  There  is  an  agreement  of  emotions,  but  nothing  more; 
and  if  we  had  not  a  principle  of  moral  approbation,  by  which,  independently 
of  sympathy,  and  previously  to  it,  we  regard  actions  as  right,  the  most  exact 
sympathy  of  passion  would,  in  like  manner,  have  been  a  proof  to  us  of  an 
agreement  of  feelings,  but  of  nothing  more.  It  proves  to  us  more ;  because  the 
emotions  Avhich  we  compare  with  our  own,  are  recognized  by  us  as  moral  feel- 
ings, independently  of  tlie  agreement. 

But  though  the  leading  doctrine  of  Dr  Smith's  theory  be  considered  by  many, 
apparently  on  just  grounds,  as  erroneous,  his  work  is  still  unquestionably  oae  of 
the  most  interesting  which  have  been  produced  on  moral  science.  It  abounds 
in  faithful  delineations  of  characters  and  manners,  and  contains  the  purest 
and  most  elevated  maxims  for  the  practical  regulation  of  human  life.  The 
style,  though  perhaps  not  sufficiently  precise  for  the  subject,  is  throughout  elo- 
quent, and  serves,  by  the  richness  of-it«  colouring,  to  relieve  the  dryness  of 
some  of  the  more  abstract  discussions. 

Dr  Smitli's  *'  Dissertation  on  the  Origin  of  Languages,"  which  is  now  gene- 
rally bound  up  with  the  *'  Theory  of  Moral  Sentiments,"  made  its  first  appear- 
ance with  the  second  edition  of  that  work.  In  this  ingenious  and  beautiful  tract, 
the  author  gives  a  theoretical  history  of  the  formation  of  languages,  in  which 
he  endeavours  to  ascertain  the  different  steps  by  which  they  would  gradually 
arrive  at  their  present  so  artificial  and  complicated  state. 

As  the  "  Theory  of  Moral  Sentiments  "  contains  the  most  important  part  of 
Dr  Smith's  ethical  doctrines,  he  was  enabled,  after  the  publication  of  tliat  work, 
to  devote  a  larger  part  of  his  course  of  lectures,  than  he  had  previously  done, 
to  the  elucidation  of  the  principles  of  jurisprudence  and  political  economy. 
From  a  statement  which  he  drew  up  in  1755,  in  order  to  vindicate  his  claim  to 
certain  political  and  literary  opinions,  it  appears  that,  from  the  time  when  he 
obtained  a  chair  in  the  university  of  Glasgow,  and  even  while  he  was  delivering 
private  lectures  in  Edinburgh,  he  had  been  in  the  habit  of  teaching  the  same 
liberal  system  of  policy,  with  respect  to  the  freedom  of  trade,  which  he  after- 
wards published  in  tiie  "  Wealth  of  Nations."  His  residence  in  one  of  the 
largest  commercial  towns  in  the  island,  must  have  been  of  considerable  advan- 
tage to  him,  by  enabling  him  to  acquire  coiTect  practical  information  on  many 
points  connected  with  the  subject  of  his  favourite  studies  ;  and  3Ir  Stewart 
states,  as  a  circumstance  very  honourable  to  the  liberality  of  the  merchants  of 
Glasgow,  that,  notwithstanding  the  reluctance  so  common  among  men  of  busi- 
ness to  listen  to  the  conclusions  of  mere  speculation,  and  the  direct  opposition 
of  Dr  Smith's  leading  principles  to  all  the  old  maxims  of  trade,  he  was  able, 
before  leaving  the  university,  to  rank  some  of  the  most  eminent  merchants  of 
the  city  among  the  number  of  liis  proselytes. 

The  publication  of  the  '*  Theory  of  Moral  Sentiments,"  served  greatly  to  in- 
crease the  reputation  of  its  author.  In  1762,  the  Senatus  Academicus  of  tho 
university  of  Glasgow  unanimously  confen-ed  on  him  tlie  honorary  degree  of 


ADAM   SMITH,   LL.D..  F.R.S.  285 

Doctor  of  Laws,  in  testimony,  ns  expressed  in  the  minutes  of  the  meeting,  of 
their  respect  for  his  universally  acknowledged  talents,  and  of  the  advantage 
that  had  resulted  to  the  university,  from  the  ability  with  which  he  had,  for  many 
years,  expounded  the  principles  of  jurisprudence. 

Toward*  the  end  of  1763,  an  important  event  occurred  in  Dr  Smith's  life. 
Having  received  an  invitation  from  3Ir  Charles  Townsend,  husband  of  the 
duchess  of  Buccleuch,  to  accompany  the  young  duke,  her  grace's  son,  on  his 
travels,  he  was  induced,  from  the  liberal  terms  in  which  the  proposal  was  made, 
and  the  strong  dosire  he  entertained  of  visiting  the  continent,  to  resign  his 
chair  at  Glasgow,  and  accept  of  the  offer,  "  With  the  connection  which  he 
was  led  to  form,  in  consequence  of  this  change  in  his  situation,"  Mr  Stewart 
remarks,  "  he  had  reason  to  be  satisfied  in  an  uncommon  degree  ;  and  he  al- 
ways spoke  of  it  with  pleasure  and  gratitude.  I'o  the  public,  it  was  not,  per- 
haps, a  change  equally  fortunate,  as  it  interrupted  that  studious  leisure  for 
which  nature  seems  to  have  destined  him,  and  in  which  alone  he  could  have 
hoped  to  accomplish  those  literary  projects  which  liad  flattered  the  ambition  of 
his  youthful  genius." 

Dr  Smith  having  joined  the  duke  of  Buccleuch  at  London,  in  the  early  part 
of  the  year  1764,  they  set  out  for  the  continent  in  the  month  of  March.  After 
remaining  only  ten  or  twelve  days  in  the  capital  of  France,  they  proceeded  to 
Toulouse,  where  they  resided  during  eighteen  months.  Toulouse  was  at  that 
time  the  seat  of  a  parliament ;  and  the  intimacy  in  which  he  lived  with  some  of 
its  principal  members,  afforded  him  an  opportunity  of  acquiring  the  most  cor- 
rect information  in  regard  to  the  internal  policy  of  France. 

After  leaving  Toulouse,  they  proceeded  through  the  southern  provinces  to 
Geneva  ;  and  having  spent  two  months  in  that  city,  returned  to  Paris  about 
Christmas,  1765,  where  they  remained  nearly  a  year.  During  their  abode  in 
Paris,  Dr  Smith,  through  the  recommendation  of  Mr  Hume,  and  his  own  cele- 
brity, lived  on  the  most  intimate  terms  Avith  the  best  society  in  the  city.  Tur- 
got,  (afterwards  comptroller-general  of  finance,)  Quesnay,  Necker,  d'Alembert, 
Helvetius,  Marmontel,  the  due  de  la  Rochefoucault,  and  flladame  Riccaboni, 
were  among  the  number  of  his  acquaintances  ;  and  some  of  them  he  continued 
ever  afterwards  to  reckon  among  his  friends.  It  is  highly  probable  that  he  de- 
rived considerable  advantage  from  his  intercourse  with  Quesnay,  the  celebrated 
founder  of  the  sect  of  Economists.  Of  this  profound  and  ingenious  man,  Dr 
Smith  entertained  the  highest  opinion  ;  and  he  has  pronounced  his  work  upon 
Political  Economy,  with  all  its  imperfections,  to  be  the  nearest  approximation 
to  the  truth,  that  had  then  been  published,  on  the  principles  of  tliat  very  im- 
portant science.  Dr  Smith  intended  to  have  dedicated  to  Quesnay  the  "  Wealth 
of  Nations,"  but  was  prevented  by  his  death. 

Although  Dr  Smith  had  made  some  very  severe  remarks  in  his  "  Theory  of 
Moral  Sentiments,"  on  the  celebrated  maxims  of  the  duke  of  Rochefoucault,  this 
did  not  prevent  him  from  receiving  the  utmost  kindness  and  attention  from  the 
author's  grandson.  A  short  time  before  Dr  Smith  left  Paris,  he  received  a  flat- 
tering letter  from  the  duke  of  Rochefoucault,  with  a  copy  of  a  new  edition 
of  the  Maxims  of  his  grandfather  ;  and  informing  Dr  Smith,  at  the  same  time, 
that  he  had  been  prevented  from  finishing  a  translation  of  his  "  Theory  of 
Morals"  into  French,  only  by  the  knowledge  of  having  been  anticipated  in  the 
design. 

Dr  Smith  returned  with  his  pupil  to  London,  in  October,  1766  ;  and  soon 
after  took  up  his  residence  with  his  mother  at  Kirkaldy,  where,  with  the  ex- 
ception of  a  few  occasional  visits  to  London  and  Edinburgh,  he  resided  con- 
stantly during  the  next  ten  years,  engaged  habitually  in  intense  study.      Mt 


280  ADAM  SMITH,  LL.D.,  F.R.S. 

liuiue,  who  considered  the  town  as  tlie  proper  scene  for  a  man  of  letters,  made 
ninny  inerteotual  attempts  to  prevail  upon  hira  to  leave  his  retirement.  During 
this  residence  of  Dr  Smitli  at  Kirkaldy,  he  was  engaged  chielly  in  maturing  his 
speculations  upon  Economical  Science.  At  length,  in  1776,  the  "  Inquiry 
into  the  Nature  and  Causes  of  the  \\'calth  of  Nations,"  made  its  appearance :  a 
work  whicl)  holds  nearly  the  same  rank  in  political  economy,  that  Locke's  Es- 
say on  the  Human  Understanding  does  in  tl>e  philosophy  of  the  mind,  or  the 
Principia  of  Newton  in  astronomy. 

Our  limits  prevent  us  from  giving  anything  like  a  particular  analysis  of  this 
great  work,  but  we  shall  endeavour  to  give  some  brief  account  of  it.  We  shall 
notice  very  shortly  the  state  of  the  science  at  tiie  time  when  Dr  Smith  wrote — the 
(litierent  leading  principles  which  the  illustrious  author  endeavours  to  establish, 
and  the  principal  merits  and  defects  of  the  work. 

The  object  of  political  economy  is  to  point  out  the  means  by  which  the  in- 
dustry of  man  may  be  rendered  most  productive  of  the  necessaries,  conveni- 
encies,  and  luxuries  of  life ;  and  to  ascertain  the  laws  which  regulate  the  dis- 
tribution cf  the  various  products  which  constitute  wealth  among  the  different 
classes  of  society.  Though  these  inquiries  be  in  the  highest  degree  interesting 
and  important,  the  science  of  political  economy  is  comparatively  of  recent  ori- 
gin. It  was  not  to  be  expected  that,  among  the  Greeks  and  Romans,  who  con- 
sidered it  degrading  to  be  engaged  in  manufactures  or  commerce,  and  among 
whom  such  employments  were  left  to  slaves — where  moralists  considered  the  in- 
dulgence of  luxury  to  be  an  evil  of  the  fii'st  magnitude ;  that  the  science  which 
treats  of  the  best  methods  of  acquiring  wealth,  should  be  much  attended  to.  At 
tiie  revival  of  letters,  these  ancient  prejudices  still  maintained  a  powerful  influ- 
ence, and,  combined  with  other  causes,  long  prevented  philosophers  from  turn- 
ing their  attention  to  the  subject 

Ihe  first  inquirers  in  political  economy  were  led  away  by  a  prejudice,  which 
is,  perhaps,  one  of  the  most  deeply  rooted  in  the  human  mind ;  namely,  that 
wealth  consists  solely  in  gold  and  silver.  From  this  mistake  grew  up  that  sys- 
tem of  commercial  policy,  which  has  been  denominated  the  mercantile  system, 
according  to  the  principles  laid  down,  in  which  the  commerce  of  Europe  was, 
in  a  great  measure,  regulated  at  the  time  when  Dr  Smith's  work  appeared. 
The  leading  doctrine  of  the  connuercial  system  was,  that  the  policy  of  a  country 
should  be  directed  solely  to  the  nmltiplication  of  the  precious  metals.  Hence 
the  internal  commerce  of  a  nation  came  to  be  entirely  overlooked,  or  viewed 
only  as  subsidiary  to  the  foreign:  and  the  advantage  derived  from  foreign  trade 
was  estimated  by  the  excess  of  the  value  of  the  goods  exported,  above  that  of 
those  which  were  imported ;  it  being  supposed  that  the  balance  must  be  brought 
to  the  country  in  specie.  To  tiie  radiuil  mistake  upon  which  the  mercantile 
system  was  founded,  may  be  traced  those  restrictions  upon  tite  importation,  and 
the  encouragement  given  to  the  exportation  of  manufactures,  which,  till  lately, 
distinguished  the  commercial  policy  of  all  the  nations  in  Europe.  It  was  ima- 
gined that,  by  such  regulations,  the  excess  of  the  value  of  exports  over  imports, 
to  be  paid  in  gold,  would  be  increased. 

During  the  seventeenth,  and  the  earlier  part  of  the  eighteenth  century,  various 
pamphlets  had  appeared,  in  which  some  of  the  fundamental  principles  of  politi- 
cal economy  were  distinctly  enough  laid  down,  and  which  had  a  tendency  to 
show  tlie  futility  of  the  mercantile  theory.  For  a  particular  account  of  these 
publications,  and  their  various  merits,  we  must  refer  to  Mr  M'CulIoch's  able 
Introductory  Discourse  to  the  last  edition  of  the  "  Wealth  of  Natioi.s."  We 
shall  here  only  remark,  that  though  several  of  these  treatises  contain  the 
germs  of  some  of  the  truths  to  be  found  in  tlie  "  ^^  calth  of  Nations ;"  yet 


ada:\i  smith,  ll.d.,  f.r.s.  287 

the  principles  laid  down  in  them  are  often  stated  only  in  a  cursory  and  inci- 
dental manner.  Their  authors  frequently  appear  not  to  be  aware  of  the  im- 
portance of  the  truths  which  they  have  discovered ;  and  in  none  of  them  is 
anything  like  a  connected  view  of  political  economy  to  be  found. 

The  only  work  tliat  was  given  to  the  world  before  the  "  Wealth  of  Nations,*' 
in  which  an  attempt  was  made  to  expound  the  principles  of  political  economy 
in  a  logical  and  systematic  manner,  was  the  Economical  Table  of  the  celebrated 
Quesnay,  a  French  physician,  which  was  published  in  1758:  but  the  theory  of 
this  distinguished  economist  is  very  erroneous.  Having  been  educated  in  the 
country,  he  was  naturally  inclined  to  regard  agriculture  with  partiality;  and  he 
had  come  to  the  conclusion,  that  it  was  the  only  species  of  industry  which  could 
possibly  contribute  to  increase  the  wealth  of  a  nation.  Everything  which 
ministers  to  the  wants  of  man,  must  be  originally  derived  from  the  earth  ;  and 
the  earth,  therefore,  Quesnay  contended,  must  be  the  only  source  of  wealth. 
As  manufacturers  and  merchants  do  not  realize  any  surplus  in  the  shape  of  rent, 
he  conceived  that  their  operations,  though  highly  useful,  could  not  add  any 
greater  value  to  commodities  than  the  value  of  the  capital  consumed  by  them. 
Into  this  erroneous  theory  he  seems  to  have  been  led,  from  being  unable  to  ex- 
plain the  nature  of  rent ;  and  from  being  unacquainted  with  that  fundamental 
principle  in  political  economy,  that  labour  is  the  cause  of  exchangeable  value. 

But,  though  Quesnay  conceived  agriculture  to  be  the  only  source  of  wealth, 
the  principles  of  his  system  fortunately  did  not  lead  him  to  solicit  for  it  any 
exclusive  protection.  On  the  contrary,  he  contended  that  the  interest  of  all  the 
different  classes  of  society  would  be  best  promoted,  by  the  establishment  of  a 
system  of  perfect  freedom.  It  must,  he  conceived,  be  advantvigeous  to  the 
cultivators  of  the  soil,  that  the  industry  of  manufacturers  and  merchants  should 
not  be  fettered  ;  for  the  more  liberty  they  enjoyed,  the  greater  would  be 
their  competition,  and  in  consequence  the  cheaper  would  their  services  be 
rendered  to  the  agriculturists.  On  the  other  hand,  it  was  the  interest  of  the 
manufacturers,  that  the  cultivatoi-s  of  the  soil  should  also  have  perfect  freedom ; 
for  the  greater  liberty  they  enjoyed,  the  more  would  their  industry  increase 
that  surplus  fund,  from  which,  according  to  his  theory,  the  whole  national  re- 
venue was  ultimately  derived. 

It  was  in  the  work  of  Dr  Smith,  that  the  sources  of  the  wealth  and  prosperity 
of  nations,  were  first  fully  and  correctly  explored,  and,  in  a  systematic  manner, 
distinctly  explained  ;  and  that  the  advantages  to  be  derived  from  commercial 
freedom,  were  first  satisfactorily  established.  In  opposition  to  the  principles  of 
the  commercial  system,  Dr  Smith  showed  that  wealth  does  not  consist  in  gold 
and  silver,  but  in  the  abundance  of  the  various  necessaries,  conveniences,  and 
luxuries  of  life  ;  that  labour  is  the  only  source  of  wealth  ;  and,  in  opposition  to 
the  French  economists,  that  labour  is  productive,  when  employed  in  manufac- 
tures and  commerce,  as  well  as  in  agriculture.  He  has  investigated  the  v-arious 
causes  by  which  labour  may  be  rendered  most  productive  ;  and  has  shown  how 
immensely  its  powers  are  increased,  by  being  divided  among  different  indivi- 
duals, or  nations.  He  has  proved,  with  great  power  of  reasoning,  that  all  re- 
strictions upon  either  the  internal  or  external  commerce  of  a  country,  are  in  the 
highest  degree  absurd  and  pernicious  ;  and  that  the  progress  of  real  opulence 
will  be  most  rapidly  accelerated,  Avhen  the  industry  of  every  individual  and  na- 
tion is  employed  in  the  production  of  those  articles  for  which,  either  from  na- 
tural or  artificial  causes,  they  are  best  adapted,  and  when  the  most  unlimited 
freedom  of  making  exchanges  is  everywhere  allowed.  "It  is  the  maxim  of  every 
prudent  master  of  a  family,"  he  remarks,  B.  iv.  c.  2,  "  never  to  attempt  to 
make  at  home,  what  it  will  cost  him  more  te  make  than  to  buy.     The  tailor 


28S  ADAM   SMITH,   LL.D.,  F.R.S. 

does  not  attempt  to  make  his  own  shoes,  but  buys  them  of  the  shoemaker ;  the 
shoemaker  does  not  attempt  to  make  his  own  clothes,  but  emphtys  a  tailor. 
The  farmer  attempts  to  make  neither  the  one  nor  the  other,  but  employs  those 
different  artificers ;  all  of  them  find  it  for  their  interest  to  employ  their  whole 
industry,  in  a  way  in  which  they  have  some  advantage  over  their  neighbours, 
and  to  purchase  with  a  part  of  its  produce,  whatever  else  they  have  occasion  for," 
**  What  is  prudence  in  the  conduct  of  any  private  family,  can  scarce  be  folly  in 
that  of  a  great  kingdom.  If  a  foreign  country  can  supply  us  with  a  commodity 
cheaper  than  we  ourselves  can  make  it,  better  buy  it  of  them  with  some  part  of 
the  produce  of  our  own  industry,  employed  in  a  way  in  which  we  have  some  ad- 
vantage." "  The  natural  advantages  which  one  country  lias  over  another  in  pro- 
ducing particular  commodities,  are  sometimes  so  great,  that  it  is  acknowledged 
by  all  the  world,  to  be  in  vain  to  struggle  with  them.  By  means  of  glasses,  hot- 
beds, and  hot-walls,  very  good  grapes  can  be  raised  in  Scotland,  and  very  good 
wine  can  be  made  of  them,  at  about  thirty  times  the  expense  for  which  at  least 
equally  good  can  be  brought  fi-om  foreign  countries.  Would  it  be  a  reasonable 
law  to  prohibit  the  importation  of  all  foreign  wines,  mei-ely  to  encourage  the 
making  of  claret  and  burgundy  in  Scotland?  But  if  there  would  be  a  manifest 
absurdity  in  turning  towards  any  employment  thirty  times  more  of  the  capital 
and  industry  of  the  country,  than  Avould  be  necessary  to  purchase  from  foreign 
countries  an  equal  quantity  of  the  commodities  wanted  ;  there  must  be  an  ab- 
surdity, though  not  altogether  so  glaring,  yet  exactly  of  the  same  kind,  in 
turning  towards  any  such  employment  a  thirtieth,  or  even  a  three-hundredth 
part  more  of  either." 

But  though  Dr  Smith  contended  upon  correct  principles  for  unlimited  free- 
dom of  trade  and  commerce,  and  conceived  that  all  the  dift'erent  branches  of 
industry  must  be  advantageous  to  society,  he  was  of  opinion  that  all  were  hot 
equally  advantageous.  Agriculture  he  conceived  to  be  the  most  productive  em- 
ployment in  which  capital  could  be  engaged;  the  home  trade  to  be  more  pro- 
ductive than  the  foreign  ;  and  the  foreign  than  the  carrying  trade.  But  these 
distinctions  are  evidently  eiToneous.  Tlie  self-interest  of  individuals  will  al- 
ways prevent  them  from  employing  their  capital  in  manufactures,  or  in  com- 
merce, unless  they  yield  as  large  profits  as  they  would  have  done,  if  they  had 
been  employed  in  agriculture  :  and  a  state  being  only  a  collection  of  indivi- 
duals^ whatever  is  most  beneficial  to  them,  must  also  be  most  advantageous  to 
the  society.  Dr  Smith  has  made  another  mistake  in  regard  to  the  productive- 
ness of  labour.  He  divides  all  labourers  into  two  classes,  the  productive  and 
the  unproductive ;  and  he  limits  the  class  of  productive  labourers  to  those  whose 
labour  is  immediately  fixed,  and  realized  in  some  vendible  commodity.  But 
certainly  all  labour  ought  to  be  reckoned  productive,  which,  either  directly  or 
indirectly,  contributes  to  augment  the  wealth  of  a  society.  It  is  impossible  to 
hold  that  the  labour  of  an  Arkwright,  or  a  Watt,  was  unproductive. 

Few  chapters  in  the  "Wealth  of  Nations"  are  more  valuable,  than  that  in 
which  the  illustrious  author  explains  the  causes  of  the  apparent  inequality  in 
the  wages  and  profits  derived  from  different  craploymentp.  He  has  shown,  in 
the  fullest  and  most  satisfactory  manner,  that  when  allowance  is  made  for  all  the 
advantages  and  disadvantages  attending  the  different  employments  of  labour 
and  stock,  wages  and  profits  must,  in  the  same  neighbourhood,  be  either  perfect- 
ly equal,  or  continually  tending  to  equality.  The  circumstances  which  he 
enumerates,  .ns  making  up  for  a  low  state  of  wages  in  some  employments,  and 
counterbalancing  a  high  one  in  others,  are  five  in  number.  First,  the  agree- 
ableness  or  disagreeableness  of  the  employments  themselves;  secondly,  the  easi- 
ness and  cheapness,  or  the  difficulty  and  expense  of  learning  them ;  thirdly, 


ADAM   SMITH,   LL.D.,  F.R.S.  289 

tiie  constancy  or  inconstancy  of  employment  in  them  ;  fourthly,  the  small  or 
great  trust  which  must  be  reposed  in  those  who  exercise  them;  and,  fifthly,  the 
probability  or  improbability  of  success  in  them.  Differences  in  the  rate  of  pro- 
fit seem  to  be  occasioned,  chiefly  from  the  risk  to  which  capital  is  exposed,  be- 
ing greater  in  some  employments  than  in  others. 

One  of  the  most  important  inquiries  in  political  economy,  is  the  investigation 
of  the  laws  which  regulate  the  exchangeable  value  of  the  different  productions 
of  industry ;  and  the  disquisitions  of  Dr  Smith  on  this  subject,  are  extremely 
valuable.  He  has  shown,  in  opposition  to  the  opinion  commonly  before  enter- 
tained on  the  subject,  that  the  price  of  commodities,  the  quantity  of  Avhich  may 
be  indefinitely  increased,  does  not  depend  upon  their  scarcity  or  abundance, 
but  upon  the  cost  of  their  production  ;  that  although  variations  in  the  supply  of 
any  article,  or  in  the  demand  for  it,  may  occasion  temporary  variations  in  its 
exchangeable  value,  the  market  price  is  permanently  regulated  by  the  natural 
price,  and  on  an  average  cori-esponds  with  it.  In  estimating  the  elements, 
however,  which  form  the  necessary  price  of  commodities,  he  has  fallen  into 
some  very  important  errors,  particularly  with  regai'd  to  rent,  which,  from  being 
unacquainted  with  the  causes  that  produce  it,  he  considered  to  be  one  of  the 
component  parto  of  price.  It  was  subsequently  suggested  by  Dr  Anderson, 
and  more  specifically  laid  down  by  Ricardo  and  others,  that  rent  is  the  differ- 
ence between  the  product  of  the  fruitful  soil  of  a  country,  (in  comparison  with 
the  amount  of  labour  and  capital  expended  on  it,)  and  the  product  of  such  less 
fruitful  soil,  as  the  pressure  of  population  renders  it  necessary  to  bring  into 
cultivation  ;  and  that  rent  being  the  difference  between  returns  from  an  equal 
amount  of  capital  applied  to  superior  soils,  and  to  tliat  which  is  the  most  un- 
productive, is  the  effect,  and  not  tlie  cause,  of  the  dearness  of  agricultural  pro- 
ducts ;  and  cannot,  therefore,  form  an  element  in  their  natural  price. 

The  error  which  Dr  Smith  has  fallen  into,  with  regard  to  rent,  is  certainly 
the  most  important  mistake  in  the  **  Wealth  of  Nations,"  and  has  vitiated  a  con- 
siderable part  of  the  work.'  Among  other  mistakes,  it  has  led  him  into  error, 
in  regard  to  the  ultimate  incidence  of  different  taxes,  and  the  circumstances 
which  determine  tlie  rate  of  wages  and  profits.  Had  the  illustrious  author,  too, 
been  acquainted  with  the  true  theory  of  rent,  he  woidd  not  have  contended 
that  corn,  upon  an  average,  was  the  most  invariable  of  all  commodities  in  its 
value. 

Many  other  important  subjects,  besides  those  we  have  so  briefly  noticed,  are 
discussed  by  Dr  Smith  ;  but  we  cannot  farther  extend  our  remarks.  With  all 
its  defects,  the  "  Wealth  of  Nations  "  will  ever  remain  a  gieat  standard  work  in 
the  science  of  political  economy,  and  an  illustrious  monument  of  the  genius  and 
talents  of  its  author.  The  publication  raised  him  to  the  highest  rank  in  the 
literary  world  ;  and  he  enjoyed,  during  fifteen  years,  the  fame  which  he  had  so 
justly  acquired.  His  work  soon  after  being  published,  was  translated  into  all 
the  languages  of  Europe  ;  his  opinions  were  i-eferred  to  in  the  house  of  com- 
mons, and  he  himself  consulted  by  the  minister.  Before  his  death,  too,  he  had 
the  satisfaction  of  seeing  that  the  principles  of  commercial  freedom,  which  he 
had  so  ably  advocated,  were  beginning  to  influence  the  councils  of  Great  Bri- 
tain, and  other  European  states. 

A  few  months  after  the  publication  of  the  "  Wealth  of  Nations,"  Dr  Smith 
lost  his  highly  esteemed  friend,  Mr  Hume,  whc^died  upon  the  25th  of  August, 
1776.  Dr  Smith  was  most  assiduous  in  his  attentions  during  the  last  illness  of 
this  illustrious  man ;  and  gives  an  interesting  account,  in  a  letter  to  Mr  Strahan 

1  Dr  Smith's  theory  of  rent,  however,  is  not  without  its  defenders.  See,  in  particular, 
the  ^^'^stminster  Review. 

JV.  so 


290  ADAM  SMITH,   LL.D.,  F.R.S. 

of  London,  of  the  circumstances  attending  his  death,  and  a  eulugjum  upon  his 
character.  To  those  who  are  acquainted  with  Mr  Hume's  religious  opinions, 
some  parts  of  this  eulogium  must  certainly  appear  too  high  ;  and  the  author 
uas,  accordingly,  attacked  on  the  subject  by  Dr  Home,  bishop  of  Norwich,  who' 
rasiily  ascribed  to  him,  without  any  evidence,  the  same  sceptical  opinions  which 
liad  been  entertained  by  his  illustrioiu  friend. 

Dr  Smith  resided  cliiefly  in  London  for  about  two  years  after  his  great  work 
had  been  given  to  the  public,  during  which  time  his  society  was  courted  by  the 
most  distinguished  persons  in  tjie  metropolis.  In  1778,  he  was  appointed  one 
of  the  commissioners  of  customs  in  Scotland,  through  the  unsolicited  applica« 
tion  of  his  friend  and  former  pupil,  the  duke  of  Ruccleuch.  Upon  obtaining 
this  appointment,  he  removed  to  Edinburgh,  where  he  spent  the  remaining  years 
of  his  life,  enjoying  comparative  affluence,  and  the  society  of  his  earliest  and 
most  esteemed  friends.  His  mother,  who  was  then  in  extreme  old  age,  accom- 
panied him  to  town  ;  and  his  cousin,  Miss  Jane  Douglas,  who  had  formerly 
been  a  member  of  Iiis  family  in  Glasgow,  undertook  tlie  superintendence  of  his 
domestic  arrangements. 

The  accession  to  his  income  Avhich  he  had  now  obtained,  enabled  him  to 
gratify,  to  a  much  greater  extent  than  formerly,  the  natural  generosity  of  his 
disposition.  "  The  state  of  his  funds  at  the  time  of  his  death,"  Mr  Stewart  re- 
marks, "  compared  with  his  very  moderate  establishment,  confirmed,  beyond  a 
doubt,  what  his  intimate  acquaintances  had  often  suspected,  that  a  large  pro- 
portion of  his  savings  was  allotted  to  offices  of  secret  charity." 

In  1787,  Dr  Smith  was  elected  lord  rector  of  the  university  of  Glasgow.  A 
letter  addressed  to  the  principal  of  the  university  on  the  occasion,  shows  the 
high  sense  he  felt  of  this  honour.  "  No  preferment,"  he  writes,  "  could  have 
given  me  so  much  real  satisfaction.  No  man  can  owe  greater  obligations  to  a 
society,  than  I  do  to  the  university  of  Glasgow.  They  educated  me  :  they  sent 
me  to  Oxford.  Soon  after  my  return  to  Scotland,  they  elected  me  one  of  their 
own  members ;  and  afterwards  preferred  me  to  another  office,  to  which  the 
abilities  and  virtues  of  the  never  to  be  forgotten  Dr  Hutcheson,  had  given  a 
superior  degree  of  illustration.  The  period  of  thirteen  years,  which  I  spent  as 
a  member  of  that  society,  I  remember  as  by  far  the  most  useful,  and  therefore 
as  by  far  the  happiest  and  most  honourable  period  of  my  life  :  and  now,  after 
three  and  twenty  years'  absence,  to  be  remembered  in  so  very  agreeable  a  man* 
ner  by  my  old  friends  and  protectors,  gives  me  a  heartfelt  joy,  which  I  cannot 
easily  express  to  you." 

During  the  last  residence  of  Dr  Smith  in  Edinburgh,  his  studies  appear  to 
have  been  almost  entirely  suspended.  The  petty  routine  duties  of  his  office, 
though  requiring  little  exertion  of  thought,  were  sufficient  to  occupy  a  consider- 
able portion  of  his  time  and  attention  ;  and  it  is  deeply  to  be  regretted,  that, 
in  all  probability,  these  duties  alone  prevented  him  from  giving  that  "  Account 
of  the  general  principles  of  Law  and  Government,  and  of  the  dillerent  Revolu- 
tions they  have  undergone  in  the  diffiirent  ages  and  periods  of  society,"  which 
he  had  stated  in  the  concluding  paragraph  of  the  "  Theory  of  Moral  Senti- 
ments," it  was  his  intention  to  do. 

In  1784,  Dr  Smith  lost  his  mother,  to  whom  he  had  been  most  tenderly  at- 
tached ;  and  her  death  was  followed,  four  years  afterwards,  by  that  of  Miss 
Douglas.  These  domestic  afflictions  contributed  to  hasten  the  decline  of  his 
health.  His  constitution  had  never  been  robust,  and  began  early  to  give  way. 
His  last  illness,  which  arose  from  a  chronic  obstruction  of  the  bowels,  was 
liii^erjog  and  painful.     He  had  the  consolation,  however,  of  receiving  the  ten- 


ADAM  SMITH,  LL.D.,  F.R.S. 


291 


derest  sympathy  of  his  friends  ;  and  he  bore  his  affliction  with  the  most  perfect 
resignation.     His  death  took  place  in  July,  1790. 

A  few  days  before  his  death,  when  Dr  Snifth  found  his  end  rapidly 
approaching,  he  caused  all  his  manuscripts  to  be  destroyed  excepting  a 
few  essays,  which  he  entrusted  to  the  care  of  his  executors,  Dr  Black  and  Dr 
Hntton.  The  intention  of  destroying  all  those  of  his  manuscripts  which  he 
•  did  not  think  worthy  of  publication,  he  had  long  entertained,  and  seems  to  have 
proceeded  from  a  laudable  anxiety  in  regard  to  his  literary  reputation.  It  is 
not  exactly  known  what  were  the  contents  of  the  manuscripts  which  were  de- 
stroyed, but  there  is  every  reason  to  beVieve  that  they  consisted  in  part  of  the 
lectures  on  rhetoric  and  belles  lettres  wiiich  he  had  delivered  at  Edin- 
burgh in  1748,  and  of  the  lectures  on  natural  religion  and  jurisprudence,  which 
formed  an  important  part  of  the  course  he  had  delivered  at  Glasgow.  Of  the 
essays  which  were  left  to  the  care  of  his  friends  six  were  published  a  few  years 
after  his  death  by  his  illustrious  executors.  Three  of  them  are  fragments  of  a 
great  work  which  he  at  one  time  intended  to  write  on  the  principles  which  lead 
and  direct  philosophical  inquiries,  but  which  he  had  long  abandoned  as  far  too 
extensive.  The  first  contains  the  history  of  astronomy,  which  seems  to  be  the 
most  complete  of  tlie  three  ;  the  second  contains  the  history  of  ancient 
physics  ;  and  the  third  gives  the  history  of  the  ancient  logics  and  metaphysics. 
To  these  essays,  which  are  all  written  upon  the  plan  of  his  Essay  on  the  forma- 
tion of  the  Languages,  are  subjoined  other  three,  which  treat,  1st.  Of  the  na- 
ture of  that  imitation  which  takes  place  in  what  are  called  the  Imitative  Arts. 
2nd.  Of  the  affinity  between  certain  English  and  Italian  Verses  ;  and  3rd.  Of 
the  External  Senses.  As  to  the  merits  of  these  essays  the  distinguished 
editors  express  their  hopes  "  that  the  reader  would  find  in  them  that  happy 
connexion,  that  full  and  accurate  expression,  and  that  clear  illustration  whic'{ 
are  conspicuous  in  the  rest  of  the  author's  works,  and  that  though  it  is  difficult 
to  add  much  to  the  great  fame  he  so  justly  acquired  by  his  other  writings,  these 
would  be  read  witii  satisfaction  and  pleasure."  Tlie  library  which  Dr  Smith 
had  collected  during  his  life  though  small  was  valuable.  The  books  were  well 
selected,  and  he  was  particularly  careful  that  the  bijous  which  he  admitted 
into  his  collection  should  be  in  excellent  order.  Mr  Smellie,  in  his  life  of 
Dr  Smith,  says,  "  The  first  time  I  happened  to  be  in  his  library,  observing  me 
looking  at  the  books  with  some  degree  of  curiosity  and  perhaps  surprise,  for 
most  of  the  volumes  were  elegantly,  and  some  of  them  superbly  bound, — '  You 
must  have  remarked,'  said  he,  '  that  I  am  a  beau  in  nothing  but  ray  books.'" 
This  valuable  library,  together  with  the  rest  of  his  property,  Dr  Smith 
bequeathed  to  Mr  David  Douglas,  advocate,  his  cousin. 

We  shall  close  this  sketch  of  Dr  Smith's  life  with  a  few  observations  on  his 
habits  and  private  character,  extracted  from  the  valuable  Account  of  his  Life 
and  Writings  given  by  Mr  Stewart. 

"To  his  private  worth,  the  most  certain  of  all  testimonies  may  be  found  in 
that  confidence,  respect,  and  attachment  which  followed  him  through  all  the 
rarious  relations  of  life  ;  the  serenity  and  gayety  he  enjoyed  under  the  pressure 
of  his  growing  infirmities,  and  the  warm  interest  he  felt  to  the  last  in  every- 
thing connected  with  the  welfare  of  his  friends,  will  be  long  remembered  by  a 
small  circle,  with  whom,  as  long  as  his  strengtii  permitted,  he  regularly  spent 
an  evening  in  the  week  ;  and  to  whom  the  recollection  of  his  worth  still  forms 
a  pleasing,  though  melancholy  bond  of  union. 

"  The  more  delicate  and  characteristical  features  of  his  mind,  it  is  perhaps 
impossible  to  trace.  That  there  were  many  peculiarities  both  in  his  manners 
and  in  his  intellectual  habits  was  manifest  to  the  most  superficial  observer ;   but 


292  ADAM  SMITH,  LL.D.,  F.R.S. 

•although,  to  those  who  knew  him,  tliese  peculiarities  detracted  nothing  from  the 
respect  \\hich  his  abilities  connnanded  ;  and,  altiiougli  to  his  intimate  friends 
they  added  an  inexpressible  charm  to  his  conversation,  uhile  they  displayed  in 
tlie  most  interesting  light  the  artless  simplicity  of  his  heart ;  yet  it  would  re- 
quire a  very  skilful  pencil  to  present  them  to  the  public  eye.  He  was  certain- 
ly not  fitted  for  the  general  commerce  of  the  world,  or  for  the  business  of  active 
life.  The  comprehensive  speculations  with  which  he  had  been  occupied  from 
his  youth,  and  the  variety  of  materials  which  his  own  invention  continually  sup- 
plied to  his  tlioughts,  rendered  him  habitually  inattentive  to  familiar  objects, 
and  to  common  occurrences  ;  and  he- frequently  exhibited  instances  of  absence 
which  hare  scarcely  been  surpassed  by  the  fancy  of  La  Bruyere.  Even  in  com- 
pany he  was  apt  to  be  engrossed  with  his  studies ;  and  appeared,  at  times,  by 
the  motion  of  his  lips,  as  well  as  by  his  looks  and  gestures,  to  be  in  the  fervour 
of  composition.  I  have  often,  however,  been  struck,  at  the  distance  of  years, 
with  his  accurate  memory  of  tiie  most  trifling  particulars,  and  am  inclined  to 
believe,  from  this  and  some  other  circumstances,  that  he  possessed  a  power,  not 
perhaps  uncommon  among  absent  men,  of  recollecting,  in  consequence  of  subse- 
quent efforts  of  reflection,  many  occurrences  which  at  the  time  wlien  they  hap- 
pened did  not  seem  to  have  sensibly  attracted  his  notice. 

"  To  the  defect  now  mentioned,  it  was  probably  owing  that  he  did  not  fall 
in  easily  with  the  common  dialogue  of  conversation,  and  that  lie  was  somewiiat 
apt  to  convey  his  own  ideas  in  the  form  of  a  lecture.  When  he  did  so,  how- 
ever, it  never  proceeded  from  .a  wish  to  engross  the  discourse,  or  to  gratify  his 
vanity.  His  own  inclination  disposed  him  so  strongly  to  enjoy  in  silence  the 
gaycty  of  those  around  him,  that  his  friends  were  often  led  to  concert  little 
schemes  in  order  to  engage  him  in  the  discussions  most  likely  to  interest  him. 
Nor  do  I  think  I  shall  be  accused  of  going  too  far  when  I  say,  that  he  was 
scarcely  ever  known  to  start  a  new  topic  himself,  or  to  appear  unprepared  upon 
those  topics  that  were  introduced  by  others.  Indeed,  his  conversation  was 
never  more  amusing  than  when  he  gave  a  loose  to  his  genius  upon  the  very  few 
branches  of  knowledge  of  which  he  only  possessed  the  outlines. 

**  The  opinions  he  formed  of  men  upon  a  slight  acquaintance  were  frequent- 
ly erroneous  ;  but  Uie  tendency  of  his  nature  inclined  him  much  more  to  blind 
partiality,  than  to  ill-founded  prejudices.  The  enlarged  views  of  human  affairs 
on  which  his  mind  habitually  dwelt^  left  him  neither  time  nor  inclination  to 
study  in  detail  the  uninteresting  peculiarities  of  ordinary  characters,  and  ac- 
cordingly, though  intimately  acquainted  with  the  capacities  of  the  intellect  and 
the  workings  of  the  heart,  .and  accustomed  in  his  theories  to  mark  with  the 
most  delicate  hand  the  nicest  shades  both  of  genius  and  of  the  passions ;  yet  in 
judging  of  individuals  it  sometimes  happened  that  his  estimates  were  in  a  sur« 
prising  degree  wide  of  the  truth. 

**  The  opinions  to  which  in  the  thoughtlessness  and  confidence  of  his  social 
hours,  he  was  accustomed  to  hazard  on  books  and  on  questions  of  speculation, 
were  not  uniformly  such  as  might  have  been  expected  from  the  superiority  of 
his  understanding,  and  the  singular  consistency  of  his  philosophical  principles. 
They  were  liable  to  be  influenced  by  accidental  circumstances,  and  by  the 
humour  of  the  moment :  and  when  retailed  by  those  who  only  saw  him  occa- 
sionally, suggested  false  and  contradictory  ideas  of  his  real  sentiments.  On 
these,  however,  as  on  most  other  occasions,  tliere  was  always  much  truth,  as 
well  as  ingenuity  in  his  remarks;  and  if  the  diflerent  opinions  which  at 
different  times  he  pronounced  upon  the  same  subject  had  been  all  combined  to- 
gether, go  as  to  modify  and  limit  each  other,  they  would  probably  have  afforded 
materials  for  a  decision  equally  comprehensive  and  just.     But,  in  the  Bociety  of 


TOBIAS  GEORGE  SMOLLETT.  293 

his  friends,  he  had  no  disposition  to  form  those  qualified  conchisions  that  we 
admire  in  his  writings ;  and  he  generally  contented  himself  with  a  bold  and 
masterly  sketch  of  the  object  from  the  first  point  of  view  in  which  his  temper 
or  his  fancy  presented  iL  Something  of  the  same  kind  might  be  remarked 
when  he  attempted  in  the  flow  of  his  spirits  to  delineate  those  characters  which 
from  long  intimacy  he  might  have  been  disposed  to  understand  thoroughly. 
The  picture  was  always  lively  and  expressive,  and  commonly  bore  a  strong  and 
amusing  resemblance  to  the  original,  when  viewed  under  one  particular  aspect ; 
but  seldom,  perhaps,  conveyed  a  just  and  complete  conception  of  it  in  all  its 
dimensions  and  proportions.  In  a  word,  ifvras  the  fault  of  his  unpremeditated 
judgments  to  be  systematical,  and  too  much  in  extremes. 

"  13ut  in  whatever  way  these  trifling  peculiarities  in  his  manners  may 
be  explained,  there  can  be  no  doubt  that  they  were  intimately  connected  with 
the  genuine  artlessness  of  his  mind.  In  this  amiable  quality  he  often  recalled  to 
his  friends  the  accounts  that  are  given  of  good  La  Fontaine  ;  a  quality  which 
in  him  derived  a  peculiar  grace  from  the  singularity  of  its  combination  with 
those  powers  of  reason  and  of  eloquence  which  in  his  political  and  moral 
writings  have  long  engaged  the  admiration  of  Europe. 

"  In  his  external  form  and  appearance  there  was  nothing  uncommon. 
When  perfectly  at  ease,  and  ivhen  warmed  with  conversation,  his  gestures  were 
animated,  and  not  ungraceful ;  and  in  the  society  of  those  he  loved,  his 
features  were  often  brightened  with  a  smile  of  inexpressible  benignity.  In  the 
company  of  strangers  his  tendency  to  absence,  and  perhaps,  still  more,  his 
consciousness  of  this  tendency,  rendered  his  manner  somewhat  embarrassed, — 
an  effect  which  was  probably  uot  a  little  heightened  by  those  speculative  ideas 
of  propriety,  which  liis  recluse  habits  tended  at  once  to  perfect  in  his  concep- 
tion, and  to  diminish  his  power  of  realizing.  He  never  sat  for  his  picture ; 
but  the  medallion  of  Tassie  conveys  an  exact  idea  of  his  profile,  and  of  the 
general  expression  of  his  countenance." 

SMOLLETT,  Tobias,  or,  to  give  him  his  full  name,  as  it  appears  in  the  bap- 
tismal record,  Tobias  Gkorge  Smollett,  a  celebrated  novelist,  poet,  and  mis- 
cellaneous writer,  was  born  in  the  old  house  of  Dalquhurn,  near  the  modern 
village  of  Renton,  in  the  parish  of  Cardross,  Dumbartonshire,  in  the  year  1721. 
His  family  had  held  considerable  local  rank  for  several  centuries.  His  grand- 
father. Sir  James  Smollett,  of  Bonhill,  served  as  commissioner  for  Dumbarton, 
in  the  Scottish  parliaments,  between  the  Revolution  and  the  Union  ;  in  the  lat- 
ter negotiation,  he  was  chosen  a  commissioner  on  the  Scottish  side.  Archibald, 
the  fourth  son  of  this  gentleman,  by  Jane,  daughter  of  Sir  Aulay  IMacaulay,  of 
Ardincaple,  received  a  liberal  education,  but  was  bred  to  no  profession.  With- 
out previously  consulting  his  father,  he  married  Barbara  Cunningham,  daugh- 
ter of  3Ir  Cunningham,  of  Gilbertfield,  near  Glasgow;  a  woman  of  distinguished 
understanding,  taste,  and  elegance,  but  no  fortune.  Sir  James,  though  dis- 
pleased with  the  match,  as  having  been  entered  into  without  his  knowledge, 
provided  for  his  son,  by  giving  him  a  liferent  of  his  farm  of  Dalquhurn;  which, 
with  an  annuity,  made  his  income  about  i*300  a-year. 

Archibald  Smollett  had  three  children.  Soon  after  the  birth  of  the  youngest, 
the  subject  of  this  memoir,  he  died,  leaving  his  family  entirely  dependent  on 
the  bounty  of  his  father.  Tobias  very  early  gave  promising  indications  of  a 
lively  wit  and  vigorous  understanding,  which  were  cultivated,  not  only  by  the 
fond  partiality  of  his  mother,  but  by  a  frequent  intercourse  with  his  venerable 
grandfather,  whose  long  experience  **  in  courts  and  great  afiairs,"  conspired 
with  his  natural  inclination,  in  directing  his  attention  to  the  study  of  the  con- 
duct and  characters  of  men,  and  the  science  of  life.      He  received  the  rudi- 


294  TOBIAS  GEORGE  SMOLLETT. 


meuts  of  education  at  the  neighbouring  scliool  of  Dunibaiton,  which  -nas  then 
taught  by  IVIr  John  Lore,  a  distinguished  grauimaiian,  well  known  for  his  con- 
troversies with  Ruddiinnn. 

The  scene  of  SmoUett^s  childhood  was  the  most  favourable  that  could  be  con- 
ceived for  nursing  an  infant  poet.  Abounding  in  all  the  charms  of  natural 
scenery,  it  hung  on  the  very  confines  of  that  I'ude  romantic  land,  where  itill  the 
Highlander  roamed  in  untamed  pride,  exhibiting  nearly  all  the  primitive  fea- 
tures of  a  nomadic  tribe.  Within  a  few  miles  of  Smollett's  residence,  under  the 
roof  of  his  courtly  grandfather,  the  traveller  would  have  lost  himself  iii  the  wild 
domains  of  the  JMacfarlanes  and  Mao^regors  ;  men  who  even  still  stood  out  in 
tTims  against  the  sway  of  civilization,  and  rarely  appeared  beyond  the  threshold 
of  the  hills,  except  on  some  predatory  excursion,  or  some  wild  crusade  against 
the  existing  political  and  religious  settlements  of  the  country.  Far  and  wide  over 
the  beautiful  lowland  region,  inhabited  by  Smollett,  were  seen  the  lofty  tops  of 
Ben  Lomond,  Ben  More,  and  others  of  the  kindred  of  hills,  whose  dim  and 
misty  grandeur  was  calculated  to  awaken  vivid  associations,  regarding  the 
character  of  the  country  and  its  inhabitants.  On  the  other  hand,  he  beheld, 
rising  from  his  native  valley,  the  castles  of  Cardross  and  Dumbarton,  in  one  of 
which  the  heroic  Robert  Bruce  had  spent  his  latter  years,  and  breathed  his 
last ;  while,  in  the  other,  Wallace  had  often  defied  his  country's  foes,  and  was 
nt  length  immured  as  a  prisoner.  It  was  probably  under  the  influence  of  this 
neighbourhood,  that  Smollett,  like  Burns,  was,  at  a  very  early  period,  struck 
with  admiration  of  the  character  of  Wallace,  whose  adventures,  reduced  from 
the  verse  of  Blind  Harry,  by  Hamilton  of  Gilbertfield,  were  in  every  boy's 
hand,  and  formed  a  constant  theme  of  fire-side  and  nursery  stories.  To  such  a 
degree  arose  Smollett's  enthusiasm  on  this  subject,  that,  ere  he  had  quilted 
Dumbarton  school,  he  wrote  verses  to  the  memory  of  the  Scottish  champion.^ 

The  romantic  disposition  of  Tobias  Smollett,  thus  nursed,  made  him  wish  to 
be  a  soldier.  He  was  thwarted,  however,  in  this  predilection,  by  his  grand- 
father, who,  having  already  permitted  the  elder  brother,  James,  to  engage  in  a 
military  career,  thought  he  could  better  advance  the  prospects  of  the  younger 
in  a  distinct  course  of  life.  Tobias  was,  therefore,  sent  to  study  at  Glasgow 
college,  with  a  view  to  some  of  the  learned  professions.  There  he  was  led, 
by  the  intimacy  he  formed  with  some  of  the  medical  students,  to  embrace 
the  profession  of  physic,  which  he  forthwith  studied,  along  with  anatomy,  under 
the  proper  professors,  at  the  same  time  that  he  sei-ved  an  apprenticeship  in  town, 
I  to  a  surgeon,  named  Gordon,  whom  he  is  supposed  to  have  afterwards  cari- 
catured in  "  Roderick  Random,"  under  the  title  of  Potion.  His  talent  for 
satire  and  poignant  remark,  was  here  gradually  developed,  in  favour  of  such 
specimens  of  affectation,  hypocrisy,  and  meanness,  as  fell  under  his  observation. 
He  was  also  given  to  what  are  called  practical  jokes.  One  winter  evening, 
when  the  streets  were  covered  with  snow,  he  was  engaged  in  a  snow-ball  fight 
with  some  boys  of  his  own  age,  among  whom  was  the  apprentice  of  a  surgeon, 
whom  he  is  supposed  to  have  delineated  under  the  name  of  Crab  in  "  Roderick 
Random."  The  master  of  this  apprentice  having  entered  his  shop,  while  tho 
youth  was  in  the  heat  of  the  engagement,  rebuked  him  very  severely  on  his  re- 
turn, for  having  quitted  the  shop.  The  boy  excused  himself,  by  saying  that,  while 
engaged  in  making  up  a  prescription,  a  fellow  had  hit  him  with  a  snow-ball, 
and  he  had  gone  in  pursuit  of  the  delinquent.  "  A  mighty  probable  story,  truly," 
said  the  master,  in  an  ironical  tone ;  "  I  wonder  how  long  I  should  stand  here, 
before  it  would  enter  into  any  mortal's  head  to  throw  a  snow-ball  at  me."  Just 
as  he  pronounced  these  words,  Smollett,  who  had  overheard  them  at  the  door, 
1  It  isal£0  recorc'etl  llial  he  wrote  satires  on  his  school-fellows. 


TOBIAS  GEORGE  SilOLLETT.  295 

gave  him  a  most  unexpected  answer,  by  throwing  a  snow-ball,  which  hit  him  a 
very  severe  blow  on  the  face,  and  extricated  his  companion. 

But  the  early  years  of  Smollett  were  devoted  to  better  pursuits  than  these. 
While  still  studying  medicine  at  the  college,  he  composed  a  tragedy  on  the 
death  of  James  I.  of  Scotland,  styled  the  "  Regicide  ;"  and  which,  though  not 
calculated  for  the  stage,  certainly  displayed  considerable  ability. 

While  in  liis  eighteentli  year,  he  had  the  misfortune  to  lose  his  grandfather, 
who  died  without  making  any  provision  for  either  him  or  any  of  the  rest  of  his 
father's  family.  He,  therefore,  resolved  to  seek  his  fortune  in  London  ;  while 
his  sister,  having  married  Mr  Telfer,  a  respectable  and  wealthy  gentleman  of 
Lanarkshire,  was  able  to  afford  an  asylum  to  his  mother.  His  elder  brother, 
James,  who  had  before  this  entered  the  army,  and  reached  the  rank  of  cnptain, 
was  lost  at  sea,  oft'  the  coast  of  America. 

The  stock  with  Avhich  Smollett,  at  nineteen,  entered  upon  London  life,  con- 
sisted of  a  small  sum  of  money,  a  large  assortment  of  letters  of  introduction,  a 
mind  stored  with  professional  knowledge  and  general  literature,  a  rich  vein  of 
humour,  and  an  engaging  person  and  address.  He  tried,  at  first,  to  get  his 
tragedy  brought  upon  the  stage  ;  but  the  attempt  only  brought  him  disappoint- 
ment and  cliagrin.  His  friends,  however,  were  able  to  procure  him  an  ap- 
pointment as  surgeon's  mate  to  a  ship  of  the  line;  in  which  capacity  he  sailed, 
in  1741,  in  the  unfortunate  expedition  to  Carthagena,  under  admiral  Vernon 
and  general  Wentworth.  Of  this  blundering  affair,  he  published  a  most  faith- 
ful and  spirited  account  in  his  "  Compendium  of  Voyages  and  Travels,"  seven 
volumes,  octavo,  1756  ;  as  also,  Avhat  may  be  styled  a  personal  narrative,  in 
"  Roderick  Random."  He  was  so  much  disgusted  with  his  situation,  that, 
though  he  had  the  prospect  of  promotion,  he  quilted  the  service  at  Jamaica,  where 
he  resided  for  some  time.  On  his  return  to  Britain,  in  1746,  he  was  met  by 
accounts  of  the  barbarities  exercised  by  the  duke  of  Cumberland's  army  in  the 
north  of  Scotland;  which,  notwithstanding  that  his  political  principles  were 
whiggish,  drew  from  him  an  indignant  burst  of  patriotic  eloquence,  in  the 
well-known  ode,  beginning — 

Mourn,  hapless,  Caledonia,  mourn  ; 
Thy  banished  peace,  thy  laurels  lorn ! 

He  is  said  to  have  originally  finished  this  production  in  six  stanzas  ;  but  some 
individuals  having  represented  to  him,  that  such  an  expression  of  sentiment 
niiglit  give  offence,  and  retard  his  progress  in  life,  he  sat  down,  in  a  fit  of  still 
more  vehement  indignation,  and,  almost  instantaneously,  produced  the  seventh 
stanza,  beginning — 

While  the  warm  blood  bedews  my  veins, 
And  unimpaired  remembrance  reigns, 
Remembrance  of  my  countr}  's  fate 
Within  my  filial  breast  shall  beat 

An  anecdote,  which  shows  that  Smollett,  like  many  other  men  of  distinguished 
genius,  was 

"  Too  fond  of  the  right,  to  pui-sue  the  expedient." 

The  above  anecdote  is  taken  from  Dr  Anderson's  accurate  life  of  Smollett ; 
but  that  the  subject  of  our  memoir  was  in  London,  between  1741  and  1746,  is 
abundantly  clear  from  the  following  letter,  which  is  here,  for  the  first  time, 
committed  to  print : — 


290  TOBIAS   GEORGE  SMOLLETT. 

"  Dear  Sir, — I  am  this  minute  happy  in  yours,  which  affords  me  all  the  satis- 
faction of  hearing  from  you,  uitliout  the  anxiety  naturally  flowing  from  its  me- 
lancholy occasion  ;  for  I  was  informed  of  the  decease  of  our  late  friend  by  a 
letter  from  Mr  Gordon,*  dated  the  day  after  his  death. 

**  All  those  (as  well  as  my  dear  Barclay)  who  knew  the  intimacy  betwixt  us, 
must  imagine  that  no  stroke  of  fate  could  make  a  deeper  impression  on  my  soul 
than  that  which  severs  me  for  ever  from  one  I  so  entirely  loved !  from  one  who 
merited  universal  esteem;  and  who,  had  he  not  been  cut  ofl'in  the  very  blossom 
of  his  being,  would  have  been  an  ornament  to  society,  the  pride  and  joy  of  his 
parents,  and  a  most  inestimable  jewel  to  such  as  were  attached  to  him,  as  we 
were,  by  the  sacred  ties  of  love  and  friendship.  O  my  dear  Ritchie,  little  did 
I  think,  at  our  last  parting,  we  should  never  meet  again  !  How  many  hours, 
days,  nay,  years,  of  enjoyment,  did  I  promise  myself  on  the  prospect  of  seeing 
thee  again  !  How  has  my  heart  throbbed  at  'thy  imaginary  presence  !  And 
how  oft  have  I  conversed  with  tliee  by  the  indulgence  of  a  dream !  Even  when 
I  waked  to  my  disappointment,  I  flew  to  pleasing  hope  for  refuge,  and  reflected 
on  the  probability  of  real  gratification !  But  now,  alas,  even  that  forsakes  me. 
Hope  itself  lies  buried  with  its  object,  and  remembrance  strives  to  soothe  itself 
by  recalling  the  delightful  scenes  of  past  intercourse !  Dear  brother,  this  is  a 
theme  I  can  scarce  quit;  my  imagination  broods  o'er  my  melancholy,  and  teems 
with  endless  sentiments  of  grief  and  tenderness.  My  weeping  muse  would  fain 
pay  a  tribute  to  his  manes;  and,  were  I  vain  enough  to  think  my  verse  would 
last,  I  would  perpetuate  his  friendship  and  his  virtue. 

**  As  for  the  particulars  you  expect  from  me,  you  must  wait  until  I  shall  bo 
better  informed  myself:  for,  to  tell  you  an  extraordinary  truth,  I  do  not  know, 
as  yet,  whether  you  had  better  congratulate  or  condole  with  me.  I  wish  I  Avas 
near  you,  that  I  might  pour  forth  my  heart  before  you,  and  make  you  judge  of 
its  dictates,  and  the  several  steps  I  have  lately  taken  ;  in  which  case,  I  am 
confident  you  and  all  honest  men  would  acquit  my  principles,  howsoever  my  pru- 
dentials might  be  condemned.  However,  I  have  moved  into  tiie  house  wliere 
the  late  John  Douglas,  surgeon,  died,  and  you  may  henceforth  direct  for  Mr 
Smollett,  surgeon,  in  Downing  Street,  West  My  respects  wait  on  Mr  John 
Gordon  and  family ;  and  please  let  my  condolence  and  best  wishes  be  made  ac- 
ceptable to  the  parents  of  my  much  lamented  friend.  At  the  same  time,  receive 
yourself  the  additional  portion  of  affection  he  possessed  in  the  heart  of 

*'  Your  own, 

"  T*.  Smollett.' 
«  London,  May  22nd,  1744. 

*'  Willy  Wood,  who  is  just  now  drinking  a  glass  with  mo,  oflers  you  his 
good  wishes,  and  desires  you  to  present  his  compliments  to  Miss  Becky  Bogle. 

"  T.  S." 

In  1746,  Smollett  published  a  satirical  poem,  in  the  manner  of  Juvenal,  en- 
titled "  Advice,"  and  aimed  at  some  of  the  chief  political  characters  of  the  day. 
In  the  beginning  of  1747,  appeared  a  continuation  of  the  same  production, 
under  the  title  of  "  Reproof,"  which  attacked  all  kinds  of  odious  characters, 
military  cowards,  army-con tractors,  usurers,  gamestera,  poetasters,  &c.  The 
keen  and  energetic  expressions  of  those  poems,  caused  the  author  to  bo  re- 
spected, dreaded,  and  detested,  the  usual  fate  of  satirists. 

During  his  residence  in  Jamaica,  Smollett  had  formed  an  attachment  to  Miss 

Lascelles,  an  elegant  and  accomplished  young  lady,  of  respectable  connexions 

in  that  island,  and  who  had  the  expectation  of  a  fortune  of  ^£3000.     He  now 

married  Miss  Lascelles,  and,  setting  up  an  elegant  domestic  establishment  in 

2  Probably  liis  former  master  at  Glasgow. 


TOBIAS   GEORGE   SilOM^ETT.  297 


London,  indulged  in  a  style  of  life  suitable  to  his  own  generous  disposition,  and 
the  taste  and  education  of  his  wife.  Being  disappointed,  however,  of  the  ex- 
pected fortune  of  Mrs  Smollett,  wiiich  cost  him  an  expensive  and  vexatious  la\v- 
suit,  without  ever  being  realized,  lie  was  obliged  to  have  recourse  to  his  pen  for 
subsistence,  and  produced  liis  novel  of  '*  Roderick  Random,"  in  two  volumes 
(1748);  a  work  founded  partly  upon  the  incidents  of  his  own  life,  though  in 
no  very  decided  manner.  The  singular  humour  of  this  work,  its  amazing  truth 
to  nature,  and  the  entertainment  which  it  is  calculated  to  afford  to  minds  of 
all  orders,  secured  it  a  most  extensive  sale,  and  raised  both  the  fortune  and  the 
fame  of  the  author.  It  was  followed  by  the  publication  of  the  "  Regicide," 
wiiich  was  also  profitable  ;   and  in  1750,  Smollett  paid  a  visit  to  Paris. 

In  1751,  when  as  yet  only  thirty  years  of  age,  he  produced  "Peregrine 
Pickle,"  in  four  volumes  ;  a  more  regular,  and  perhaps  more  elaborate  novel 
than  "  Roderick  Random,"  but  hardly  so  entertaining,  and  certainly  much 
more  obnoxious  than  its  predecessor,  to  the  charge  of  licentiousness  and  coarse- 
ness, in  some  of  its  passages.  It  is  somewhat  remarkable,  that  neither  in  this 
novel,  nor  in  "  Roderick  Random,"  does  he  make  his  hero  a  perfect  gentle- 
man :  in  botli  characters,  the  mixture  of  selfishness  and  want  of  principle,  is  very 
great.  It  is  further  remarkable,  that,  while  the  humour  of  the  two  works  is  be- 
yond all  parallel  in  the  English  language,  there  is  hardly  a  single  dash  of  pathos, 
or  even  of  pure  and  virtuous  feeling.  It  must  be  concluded,  indeed,  from  these 
and  all  the  other  productions  of  Smollett,  that  though  himself  an  honourable  and 
generous  man,  he  cherished  no  notions  of  high  and  abstract  goodness:  the  fide- 
lity and  kindness  of  Strap  and  Bowling,  though  sometimes  touching,  are  too 
evidently  referable  to  the  simplicity  of  their  respective  classes,  to  countervail 
against  our  observations.  The  fine  passage,  also,  in  Peregrine  Pickle,  where  the 
exiled  Jacobites  bewail  from  the  quay  of  Boulogne,  the  land  they  can  still  see, 
but  must  never  again  tread,  is  only  an  accidental  narration  of  a  real  anecdote. 
The  chief  person  alluded  to,  was  a  Sir  Hunter,  of  Burnside,  whom  Smollett 
had  met  at  Boulogne,  under  the  circumstances  described,  when  engaged  in  his 
French  tour. 

After  a  vain  attempt  to  get  into  practice  as  a  physician — for  which  purpose 
lie  published  a  medical  pamphlet,  and  obtained  the  degree  of  Doctor  of 
Physic — he  assumed  the  character  of  an  auttior  by  profession,  and  retired  to  a 
small  house  at  Chelsea,  where  he  lived  for  some  years.  The  unmerciful  manner 
in  which  he  had  lashed  the  ministry,  precluded  all  court  patronage,  even  if  it 
had  been  the  fashion  of  the  court  of  Ueorge  II.  to  extend  it.  He  depended 
solely  on  the  booksellers,  for  whom  he  wrought  in  the  various  departments  of 
compilations,  translations,  criticisms,  and  miscellaneous  essays.  In  1753,  he 
produced  his  novel,  entitled  "  The  Adventures  of  Ferdinand  Count  Fathom;" 
a  work  Avhich  appears  to  be  founded  upon  a  mistake  both  in  morals  and  meta- 
physics. To  exhibit  the  details  of  a  life  spent  in  one  uninterrupted  series  of  base 
and  fraudulent  transactions,  cannot  be  favourable  to  the  morals  of  the  world  in 
any  case;  but  the  greatest  objection  is  that  such  a  woi'k  is  a  monstrosity,  be- 
cause no  such  chai'acter  ever  existed  or  can  exist.  In  every  view  of  the  case 
it  were  better  for  the  literary  and  moral  reputation  of  Siaollet,  that  this  work 
had  never  been  written.  In  the  beginning  of  1755,  he  published  his  transla- 
tion of  Don  Quixote,  which,  though  esteemed  less  faithful  than  others 
previously  given  to  the  English  public,  conveys  more  perfectly,  because  more 
freely,  the  humour  of  tlie  author.  This  work  was  very  profitable  to  the 
translator. 

Smollett  now  revisited  his  native  country  for  the  first  time  since  he  had  first 
left  it.     On  arriving  at  Scotston,  in  Peebleshire    where    his  mother  resided 

IV.  2P 


298  TOBIAS   GEORGE   SMOLLETT. 

with  her  daughter,  Mrs  Tolfer,  it  was  arranged  that  he  should  be  introduced  to 
the  old  lady  as  a  gentleman  from  the  West  Indies,  Avho  was  intimately 
acquainted  with  her  son.  The  better  to  support  his  assumed  character,  he  en- 
deavoured to  preserve  a  very  serious  countenance,  approaching  to  a  frown ;  but 
while  his  mother's  eyes  were  rivetted  with  the  instinct  of  affection  upon 
his  countenance,  ho  could  not  refrain  from  smiling:  she  inunediately  sprang 
from  her  chair,  and,  throwing  her  arms  around  his  neck,  exclaimed  "Ah!  my 
son,  my  son  I"  She  afterwards  told  him  that,  if  he  had  kept  his  austere  looks 
and  continued  to  gloom,  she  might  have  perhaps  been  deceived ;  but  **  your 
old  roguish  smile,"  she  added,  "  betrayed  you  at  once." 

After  a  little  tour  through  the  circle  of  his  Scottish  acquaintance,  he  returned 
to  London,  and  commenced  in  1756,  tlie  "  Critical  Review,"  which  professed 
to  maintain  Tory  principles  against  the  Whig  work  called  the  Monthly  Review. 
His  contributions  to  this  periodical  were  numei'ous  and  excellent,  though  some- 
times disgraced  by  intemperance  of  language.  He  soon  after  published  hii 
large  collection  of  Voyages  formerly  alluded  to. 

Passing  over  a  farce,  entitled  the  "  Reprisal,"  which  was  acted  with 
success  in  1757,  Smollett's  next  work  was  his  "  Complete  History  of  England," 
deduced  from  the  descent  of  Julius  Caesar,  to  the  treaty  of  Aix-la-Chapelie, 
1748,  which  appeared  in  1758  in  4  vols.,  4to.  As  only  a  part  of  Hume's  His- 
tory had  hitherto  jippeared,  this  work  was  the  first  of  the  kind,  in  which  any 
large  share  of  ability  or  any  considerable  elegance  of  composition  had  been  dis- 
played. The  judgments  of  the  writer  upon  political  characters  and  transactions 
are  by  no  means  in  the  most  popular  strain,  nor  are  they  even  consistent ; 
but,  nevertheless,  the  spirit  and  sprightliness  of  the  narrative  secured  it  appro- 
bation. It  met  with  so  extensive  a  sale,  that,  with  the  continuation  afterwards 
published  in  two  similar  quarto  volumes,  it  brought  him  two  thousand  pounds, 
while  half  as  much  was  made  by  the  bookseller  to  whom  he  sold  the  Continua- 
tion, from  a  mere  transference  of  the  copyright  of  that  part  of  the  work.  It  has 
been  declared,  and  never  contradicted,  that  the  four  quarto  volumes,  embracing 
a  period  of  thirteen  hundred  years,  were  composed  and  finished  for  the  press  in 
fotutecn  months ;  an  eftbrt  to  which  nothing  but  the  greatest  abilities,  and  the 
most  vigorous  application,  could  have  been  equal.  The  shortness  of  time  be- 
stowed on  the  "  Complete  History  of  England,"  joined  to  the  merit  of  the  per- 
formance, and  the  consideration  of  the  infinite  pains  and  perseverance  it  must 
have  cost  him  to  form  and  digest  a  proper  plan,  compile  materials,  compare  dif- 
ferent accounts,  collate  authorities,  and  compose,  polish,  and  finish  the  work, 
will  make  it  be  regarded  as  one  of  the  most  striking  instances  of  facility  in 
writing  that  is  to  be  found  in  literary  history.  The  work,  in  its  entire  shape, 
has  long  been  superseded  ;  but  it  has  always  been  customary  to  supply  the  de- 
fect of  Hume's  work  with  a  continuation  from  Smollett,  embracing  the  period 
between  the  Revolution  and  the  Accession  of  George  HI. 

The  one  grand  defect  of  Smollett's  character  was  his  propensity  to  satire. 
According  to  the  report  of  an  early  companion,  his  conversation  in  company 
was  a  continued  string  of  epigrammatic  sarcasms  against  one  or  other  of  tliose 
present ;  a  practice  so  disagreeable  that  no  degree  of  talent  could  excuse  it. 
When  he  wrote  satirically,  it  was  generally  in  reference  to  something  mean, 
cowardly,  selfish,  or  otherwise  odious  to  his  own  upright  and  generous  feelings. 
It  did  not  occur  to  him — nor  has  it  properly  been  considered  either  by 
satirists  or  those  who  delight  in  satire — that  for  a  pi'ivate  individual  to  set  him- 
self up  in  judgment  upon  a  fellow  being,  and,  without  examining  any  evidence 
or  hearing  any  defence,  to  condemn  him  at  once  and  irremediably  to  the  pillory 
of  the  press,  is  an  invasion  of  the  rights  of  the  subjects  just  as  wicked,  as  it 


TOBIAS   GEORGE   SMOLLETT.  299 


would  be  to  take  away  from  an  ordinary  culjirit  the  trial  by  jury,  and  the 
privilege  of  being  heard  by  counsel.  Smollett  was  in  the  liabit  of  indulging  hia 
propensity  very  frequently  in  the  Critical  Review,  and,  as  a  natural  result  of 
his  warm  and  hasty  temper,  he  often  censured  and  ridiculed  without  a  proper 
cause.  Hence,  he  was  perpetually  subject  to  counter  assaults  from  provoked 
authors,  and  occasionally  to  legal  prosecutions,  the  effect  of  which  was  so  severe 
that  he  is  found,  September  2S,  1758,  describing  himself  to  Dr  3Ioore,  as  sick 
of  both  praise  and  blame,  and  praying  to  his  God  that  circumstances  might  per- 
mit him  to  consign  his  pen  to  oblivion  !  In  the  end  of  this  year,  in  consequence 
of  some  severe  expressions  he  had  used  in  the  Review  regarding  admiral 
Kaowles,  a  prosecution  was  raised  against  the  printer  ;  chiefly  for  the  purpose 
of  ascertaining  the  author  of  the  offensive  article,  from  whom,  in  the  event  of 
his  proving  a  gentleman,  the  complainant  threatened  to  demand  the  usual  satis- 
faction. After  every  attempt  to  soften  admiral  Knowles  had  failed,  Smollett 
came  boldly  forward  and  screened  the  printer  by  avowing  himself  the  author  of 
the  article,  and  offering  any  satisfaction  that  might  be  required.  Knowles,  who 
had  sailed  as  a  captain  in  the  expedition  toCarthagena,  probably  thought  it  beneatii 
him  to  fight  a  man  who  had  been  a  surgeon's  mate  in  the  same  fleet,  even  though 
that  surgeon's  mate  boasted  of  some  good  Caledonian  blood,  and  was  besides 
booked  for  immortality  in  the  scrolls  of  fame.  The  penalty  paid  by  Smollett 
for  his  rashness  was  a  fine  of  one  hundred  pounds  and  an  imprisonment  for 
three  months  in  the  King's  Bench  prison.  Yet,  in  this  misfortune,  he  was  not 
without  consolation.  His  conduct  was  generally  pronounced  very  magnani- 
mous, and  his  friends  continued  to  visit  him  in  prison  the  same  as  in  his  neat 
villa  at  Chelsea. 

To  beguile  the  tedium  of  confinement,  he  wrote  a  fantastic  novel,  entitled 
"  The  Adventures  of  Sir  Launcelot  Greaves,"  which  appeared  in  detached  por- 
tions through  the  successive  numbers  of  the  British  31agazine  for  1760  ana 
1761.  This  is  deservedly  ranked  among  the  least  happy  of  Smollett's  perform- 
ances. The  drollery  entirely  lies  in  the  adventures  of  a  crazy  English  gentle- 
man, who  sets  out  armed  cap-a-pie,  in  the  character  of  a  knight-errant,  and 
roams  through  modern  England,  to  attack  vice  wherever  it  can  be  found,  to 
protect  defenceless  virtue,  and  remedy  the  evils  which  the  law  cannot  reach. 
While  some  amusement  is  afforded  by  the  contrast  of  such  a  character  with  tho 
modern  common-place  beings  amongst  whom  he  moves,  it  is  only  the  imperfect 
amusement  yielded  by  the  exhibition  of  natural  madness  :  the  adventures  of  an 
imaginary  sovereign  broken  loose  from  a  mad  house  could  hai'dly  be  less 
drearily  enterUiining.  Smollett,  in  the  haste  with  which  he  wrote  his  novel,  has 
evidently  proceeded  upon  the  idea  of  an  English  Don  Quixote  ;  without  recollect- 
ing that  the  work  of  the  illustrious  Cervantes  had  a  rational  aim,  in  proposing 
to  counteract  the  rage  of  the  Spanish  people  for  tales  of  knightly  adventure. 
His  own  work,  having  no  such  object,  labours  under  the  imputation  of  being 
an  imitation,  without  any  countervailing  advantage.  Yet,  strange  to  say,  such 
was  the  prestige  of  Smollett's  name  and  example,  that  the  work  not  only  sold 
to  a  great  extent  as  a  separate  work,  but  was  followed  by  many  sub-imitations, 
such  as  the  Spiritual  Quixote,  the  Amicable  Quixote,  the   Female   Quixote, 

In  1760,  Smollett  became  engaged,  with  other  literary  adventurers,  in  a  large 
and  important  work,  which  was  finished  in  I7G4,  in  42  volumes,  under  the  title 
of"  The  Modern  Part  of  an  Universal  History."  He  is  supposed  to  have  con- 
tributed the  histories  of  France,  Italy,  and  Germany,  to  this  work,  and  to  have 
received  altogether,  for  his  share  of  the  labour,  no  less  a  sum  than  £1575. 
Throughout  the  same  period,  he  was  engaged  in  his  "  Continuation  of  the  Hia- 


300  TOBTAS  GEORGE  SMOLLETT. 

tory  of  England,  from  1748  to  1765,"  which  first  appeared  in  five  successive 
octavo  volumes,  and  finally  in  2  vols.,  4to,  176G.  It  has  been  already  men- 
tioned that,  for  this  work,  he  is  supposed  to  have  received  such  a  price 
as  enabled  the  pur-jiaser  to  sell  it  to  a  bookseller  at  a  profit  of  one  thousand 
pounds. 

Smollett  had  been  originally  a  Whig,  but  he  gradually  became  something  very 
like  a  Tory.  A  diffusive  philanthropy,  by  wliich  he  was  inspired,  with  perhaps 
some  impressions  from  early  education,  had  made  him  the  first ;  a  disgust  at 
the  conduct  of  some  of  his  party  appears  to  have  inclined  him  to  the  second. 
The  accession  of  a  Scottish  prime  minister  in  the  earl  of  Bute,  as  it  excited  much 
opposition  among  the  English,  so  it  attracted  a  proportionate  degree  of  support 
from  the  Scotch,  who  now  very  generally  became  adherents  of  the  government, 
from  a  niotive  of  nationality,  without  regard  to  their  former  political  sentiments. 
Smollett  went  into  this  enthusiasm,  and  on  tlie  very  day  of  the  earl  of  ]3ute's 
elevation,  May  29th,  1762,  he  started  a  newspaper  entitled  **  The  Briton," 
in  which  he  laboured  to  break  down  tlie  prejudices  of  the  English  against  a 
Scottish  premier,  and  undertook  the  defence  of  tiie  new  administration  upon  its 
own  merits.  Within  a  week  after  this  event,  an  opposition  journal  was  started 
by  Wilkes,  with  whom  Smollett  had  previously  lived  on  the  most  intimate  terms 
of  friendship,  but  who  now  became  his  political  antagonist.  The  North  Briton, 
(so  was  this  paper  called,)  supported  by  the  overpowering  national  feelings  of 
England,  very  soon  proved  too  nmch  for  its  rival;  and  on  the  12th  February, 
1763,  Smollett  abandoned  the  publication.  He  did  not  shine  as  a  party  writer, 
wanting  that  coolness  which  is  necessary  in  forming  replies  and  repartees  to  all 
the  paragraphs  with  which  he  was  assailed  J  lilte  the  most  of  professed 
satirists,  he  could  endure  nothing  so  ill  as  satire.  Lord  Bute,  who  resigned  in 
the  April  following,  is  said  to  have  never  sufficiently  acknowledged  the  services 
of  Smollett 

Among  the  publications  with  which  Smollett  was  connected  about  this  time, 
were,  a  translation  of  the  works  of  Voltaire  in  twenty-seven  volumes,  and  a 
work  in  eigiit  volumes,  entitled  **  The  Present  State  of  all  Nations."  In  the 
first  his  name  was  associated  with  that  of  the  Rev.  T.  Francklin,  translator 
of  Sophocles ;  but  in  neither  is  it  probable  that  much  was  written  by  his  own 
hand. 

He  had  now  for  many  years  prosecuted  the  sedentary  and  laborious  employ- 
ment of  an  author  by  profession.  Though  little  more  than  forty  years  of  age, 
and  possessed  orioinally  of  a  most  robust  frame,  he  began  to  sufier  from 
ill  health.  His  life,  which  ought  to  have  been  rendered  comfortable  by  the 
large  sums  he  procured  for  his  works,  was  embittered  by  "  the  stings  and  ar- 
rows" which  his  own  satirical  disposition  had  caused  to  be  directed  against  him- 
self, and  by  the  loss  of  friends,  which  he  was  perpetually  suffering,  either  from 
that  cause,  or  from  political  differences.  To  add  to  his  other  miseries,  he  had 
the  misfortune  at  this  time  to  lose  his  daughter  and  only  child,  Elizabeth,  a 
girl  of  fifteen,  whose  amiable  disposition  and  elegant  accomplishments  had  be- 
come the  solace  of  his  life,  and  promised  to  be  in  future  a  still  more  precious 
blessing.  Under  this  accumulation  of  distresses,  he  was  prevailed  upon  by  his 
wife  to  seek  consolation  in  travel;  and  accordingly,  in  June,  1763,  he  went 
abroad,  and  continued  in  France  about  two  years. 

In  the  coui-se  of  his  travels,  Smollett  seems  to  have  laboured  under  a  constant 
fit  of  ill  humour,  the  result  of  morbid  feelings,  and  a  distempered  bodily 
system.  This  is  amply  visible  in  the  work  which  he  published  on  his  return, 
entitled,  "  Travels  through  France  and  Italy,"  2  vols.  8vo.,  of  which  two  pas- 
sages may  be  here  extracted. 


TOBIAS   GEORGE   SMOLLETT.  301 

*'  With  respect  to  the  famous  Venus  Pontia,  commonly  called  de  Medicis,  1 
believe  I  ought  to  be  entirely  silent,  or  at  least  conceal  my  real  sentiments, 
which  will  otherwise  appear  equally  absurd  and  presumptuous.  It  must  be 
want  of  taste  that  prevents  my  feeling  that  enthusiastic  admiration  with  which 
othera  are  inspired  at  sight  of  this  statue.  I  cannot  help  thinking  there  is  no 
beauty  in  the  features  of  Venus,  and  that  the  attitude  is  awkward  and  out  of 
character." 

"  I  was  much  disappointed  at  sight  of  the  Pantheon,  which,  after  all  that  has 
been  said  of  it,  looks  like  a  huge  cock-pit,  open  at  the  top." 

Ihese  observations  upon  works  of  art  that  had  been  the  subject  of  universal 
admiration  for  centuries,  could  not  be  attributed  to  an  original  and  native 
want  of  taste  in  such  a  man  as  Smollett :  they  must  therefore  be  ascribed  al- 
together to  the  distempered  light  which  disease  threw  around,  every  object 
that  claimed  his  attention.  The  morose  style  of  his  "Travels"  called  forth 
universal  remark  ;  but  nothing  excited  more  surprise  than  what  he  liad  said  re- 
garding Venus  and  the  Pantheon,  His  observations  upon  these  subjects  drew 
down  upon  him  the  following  sarcastic  notice  from  Sterne. 

"  The  learned  Smelfungus  travelled  from  Boulogne  to  Paris — from  Paris  to 
Rome — and  so  on  ;  but  he  set  out  with  the  spleen  and  the  jaundice,  and  every 
object  he  passed  by  was  discoloured  and  distorted.  He  wrote  an  account  of 
them,  but  it  was  nothing  but  an  account  of  his  miserable  feelings  ;  I  met  Smel- 
fungus in  the  grand  portico  of  the  Pantheon ;   he  was  just  coming  out  of  it ; 

*  It  is  nothing  but  a  huge  cock-pit,'  said  he  :  *  I  wish  you  had  said  nothing 
worse  of  the  Venus  Medicis,'  I  replied  ;  for,  in  passing  through  Florence,  I 
had  heard  he  had  fallen  foul  upon  the  goddess,  and  used  her  worse  than 
a  common  strumpet,  without  the  least  provocation  in  nature.  I  popped 
upon  Smelfungus  again  at  Turin,  in  his  return  home,  and  a  sad  and  sorrowful 
tale  of  adventures  he  had  to  tell,  wherein  he  spoke  of  moving  accidents  by  flood 
and  field,  and  of  the  cannibals  which  each  other  eat :  the  Anthropophagi.  He 
had  been  flayed  alive,  and  bedeviled,  and  worse  used  than  St  Bartholomew,  at 
every  stage  he  had  come  at,      '  I'll  tell  it,'  said  Smelfungus,  '  to  the  world.' 

*  You  had  better  tell  it,'  said  I,  *  to  your  physician.'"^ 

A  continental  tour  having  failed  to  restore  health  and  spirits,  he  now  re- 
solved to  try  the  effect  of  native  air  and  native  scenery.  About  the  beginning 
of  June,  I7G6,  he  arrived  in  Edinburgh,  where  he  passed  some  time  with  his 
mother,  who  retained,  at  an  advanced  age,  a  strong  understanding,  and  an  un- 
common share  of  humour,  and  whom  he  loved  with  all  the  warmth  of  filial  afieo- 
tion.*  He  then  proceeded  with  his  sister,  Mrs  Telfer,  and  his  nephew,  a  young 
officer  in  the  army,  to  Glasgow ;  whence,  after  a  brief  stay,  they  went,  accom- 
panied by  Dr  Moore,  to  Cameron,  the  residence  of  his  cousin,  Mr  Smollett,  of 
Bonhill,  on  the  banks  of  Lochlomond.  During  the  whole  time  of  his  stay,  he 
was  afflicted  with  severe  rheumatic  pains,  and  with  a  neglected  ulcer  in  his  aim, 
which  almost  unfitted  him  for  enjoying  society.  He  afterwards  commemorated 
the  impressions,  and  some  of  the  adventures  which  he  experienced  in  this  tour, 
in  his  last  and  best  novel,  "  Humphrey  Clinker,"  which  was  published  in  1771, 
while  he  resided  in  Italy.  In  the  account  which  he  gives  in  this  novel  of  some 
branches  of  Edinburgh  society,  he  had  real  characters  and  real  customs  in  his 

eye.     The  "  IMr  31 ,"  at  whose  house  his  characters  are  represented  as 

having  seen  a  ftaggis  at  table,  was  IMr  Mitchelson,  a  writer  to  the  signet,  con- 
nected with  the  family  of  Sir  Walter  Scott.       The  "  beautiful  Miss  E 

3  Sentimental  Journey,  vol.  i.  ... 

*  During  his  residence  in  Edinburgh,  he  lived  in  his  mother's  house,  or  rather  his  sister  s, 
at  the  head  of  St  John  Street,  in  the  Canongiite. 


302  TOBIAS  GEORGE  SMOLLETT. 

R ,"  wlioin  Jerry  Mclford  signalizes  at  a  ball,  was  Miss  Elconora  Reiiton, 

daughter  of  John  Rcnton,  Esq.  of  Lamerton,  by  lady  Susan,  daughter  of 
Alexander,  ninth  earl  of  Eglintoun.  Her  eldest  sister  became  the  wife  of 
LIi'  Telfer,  nephew  of  Smollett,  and  communicated  the  name  of  Renton  to  a 
large  manufacturing  village,  now  situated  at  Dalquhurn,  the  birth-place  of 
the  novelist.  The  young  lady  whose  elegant  person  attracted  the  notice  of 
Smollett  in  1766,  was  the  late  dowager  Mrs  Sharpe  of  Hoddani,  and  mother  of 
the  ingenious  historical  antiquary,  the  late  Mr  Charles  Kilpatrick  Sharpe.' 

It  may,  perhaps,  surprise  those  who  have  enjoyed  the  exquisite  humour 
of  the  Scottish  scenes  in  Humphrey  Clinker,  that,  during  the  whole  tour  which 
he  has  couimemorated  under  tiiat  fictitious  shape,  he  suffered  so  much  pain  from 
his  arm,  as  to  be,  in  some  measure,  mentally  ajfected  :  he  acknowledges  liim« 
self,  that,  from  April  till  November,  17GG,  he  had  a  kind  of  coma  viyil ;  and 
that  his  Scottish  journey,  therefore,  which  ended  in  August,  "  produced  only 
misery  and  disgust.''® 

He  spent  tlie  winter  of  17GG-7  in  Bath,  where  he  was  so  fortunate  as  to  get 
quit  of  liis  ulcer,  and  recover  a  considerable  portion  of  his  original  liealih.  In 
17G0,  he  published  his  "  Adventures  of  an  Atom,"  two  vols.  12mo;  a  political 
romance,  ov  jeu  d'  esprit,  exhibiting,  under  Japanese  names,  the  characters  and 
conduct  of  the  leaders  of  party,  from  tlie  commencement  of  the  French  war,  in 
175G,  to  the  dissolution  of  lord  Chatham's  administration,  in  17G7-8.  Soon 
afterwards,  his  ailments  having  recurred  with  violence,  he  was  recommended  to 
try  once  more  the  genial  climate  of  Italy;  but,  his  circumstances  being  inade- 
quate to  the  expense  of  the  journey,  and  of  his  remaining  free  from  all  care, 
but  what  concerned  his  health,  application  was  made  to  obtain  for  him  the  of- 
fice of  consul  at  Nice,  Naples,  or  Leghorn.  This  application  was  unsuccessful  ; 
because  the  government,  as  usual,  could  not  spare  any  patronage,  except  for  its 
friends.  Smollett  had,  therefore,  to  set  out  for  Italy,  in  1770,  under  circum- 
stances far  from  easy,  and  which  must  have,  no  doubt,  materially  increased  his 
personal  distress.  He  cliose  fur  his  residence  a  cottage  near  Leghorn,  situated 
on  a  mountain  side,  overlooking  the  sea,  and  suiTounded  by  some  of  the  fairest 
scenery  in  Tuscany.  While  residing  here,  he  published,  in  1771,  "  The 
Adventures  of  Humphrey  Clinker,"  in  which  his  own  character,  as  it  ap- 
peared in  later  life,  under  the  pressure  of  bodily  disease,  is  delineated  in  tho 
person  of  Matthew  Bramble.  During  the  summer  of  1774,  he  declined 
very  rapidly;  and  at  length,  on  the  21st  of  October,  death  put  a  period  to 
his  sufferings. 

Smollett,  who  thus  died  prematurely  in  the  fifty-first  year  of  his  age,  and  the 
bloom  of  his  mental  faculties,  was  tall  and  iiandsome,  with  a  most  prepossessing 
carriage  and  address,  and  all  the  marks  and  manners  of  a  gentleman.  His 
character,  laying  aside  the  unhappy  propensity  to  sarcasm  and  epigram,  was  of 
an  elevated  and  generous  cast,  humane  and  benevolent ;  and  he  only  practised 
virtue  too  rigorously,  and  abhorred  vice  too  vehemently,  for  his  own  comfort, 
in  a  world  of  inferior  morality.  An  in-itabie  and  impatient  temper,  and  a 
proud,  improvident  disposition,  were  his  gi-eatest,  and  aluiosl  his  only  failings. 

*  The  adventures  of  Ltsmahago  among  the  Indians,  were  perhaps  suggested  by  the  real 
Storj'  of  a  lieutenant  Ktnnedy,  wlio,  in  the  seven  years'  war,  nianitd  an  Indian  squaw,  and 
was  made  a  king  by  her  tribe.  "  Genei-al  Abercromby  gave  him  a  party  of  Higlilimders," 
says  a  newspaper  of  the  day,  "joined  with  a  party  of' Indians,  to  go  a-scalping,  in  which 
lie  had  some  success.  He  had  learned  llie  language;  paints,  and  dresses  like  an  huliun* 
and  it  is  thought  will  be  of  service  by  his  new  alliance.  His  wife  gots  witli  him,  and  «ir- 
ries  his  provisions  on  herbiick."  Such  was  the  enlightened  warlare  carried  on  in  those  times, 
notwithstanding  the  eloquent  denunaations  of  a  Cliathaml 

*  Letter  to  Dr  Moore. 


DK.  THOJIAS   SOMERVILLE.  303 

Of  Lis  genius,  as  a  delineator  of  human  character,  his  novels  form  an  impemli- 
able  monument,  though  certainly  not  undcfornied  by  considerable  impurity  of 
taste.  So  long  as  bis  "  Ode  to  Leven  "Water,"  and  Lis  *'  Ode  to  Independence, 
exist,  he  can  never  fail  to  be  admired  as  a  poet. 

Three  years  after  Smollett's  deatii,  a  round  column,  of  the  Tuscan  order, 
with  an  urn  on  its  entablature,  was  erected  to  his  memory,  near  the  house  in 
which  he  was  born,  by  his  cousin,  3Ir  Smollett,  of  Bonhill,  who  is  said  to  have 
never  manifested  any  kindness  towards  him  while  he  was  alive.  For  this 
memorial,  an  inscription  was  furnished  by  the  united  labours  of  professor  George 
Stuart  of  Edinburgh,  Mr  Ramsay  of  Ochtertyre,  and  Dr  Samuel  Johnson.  Lord 
Karnes  also  wrote  an  English  epitaph,  which  was  lost  to  the  learned  world,  till 
it  appeared  in  the  work,  entitled  "  Ti-adiiions  of  Edinburgh."  A  plainer  mo- 
nument was  erected  over  Smollett  s  grave  at  Leghorn,  by  his  friend  and 
countryman,  Dr  Armstrong,  who  added  a  very  elegant  inscription. 

The  widow  of  Smollett — t!ie  Narcissa  of  "  Roderick  Random" — was  left,  a 
poor  widow  in  a  foreign  land.  The  sn»all  remains  of  lier  husband's  fortune 
had  been  settled  upon  her,  under  the  trust  of  Mr  Graham  of  Gartmore,  and  Mr 
Bontine,  his  tried  and  faiUiful  friends.  The  sum,  however,  was  so  little,  that 
this  elegant  woman  was  soon  involved  in  great  distress.  It  must  have  added 
not  a  little  to  the  poignancy  of  Mrs  Smollett's  feelings,  that,  had  her  husband 
lived  a  few  years  longer,  he  would  have  succeeded  his  cousin  of  Bonhill,  as  heir 
of  entail,  in  the  possession  of  an  estate  of  a  thousand  a-year,  besides,  perhaps, 
the  private  wealth  of  that  individual,  worth  as  much  more  ;  all  of  which  de- 
scended to  his  sister,  IMrs  Telfer.  It  is  alleged  by  Dr  Andei^son,  that  neither 
Mr  Smollett  nor  Mrs  Telfer  ever  thought  of  extending  any  relief  to  the  widow 
of  their  distinguished  relative,  the  man  whose  genius  lias  consecrated  their 
family  name  to  all  posterity.  It  is  known,  however,  that  Mr  Smollett,  almost 
immediately  after  his  cousin's  death,  gave  a  considerable  sum  to  the  widow,  un- 
der pretence  of  purchasing  her  husband's  books,  few  of  which  ever  reached  the 
purchaser.  We  certainly  cannot  but  regret,  that  Mrs  Telfer  afterwards  per- 
mitted an  act  of  public  charity  to  be  resorted  to  for  the  relief  of  her  kins- 
w-(9man.  On  the  3rd  of  March,  1784,  probably  through  the  exertions  of  Mr 
Graham  of  Gartmore,  a  benefit  was  procured  for  her  in  the  Theatre  Royal, 
Edinburgh ;  on  which  occasion,  the  play  of  Venice  Preserved  was  acted,  ^vith 
a  prologue  written  by  3Ir  Graham.  The  money,  amounting,  with  private  dona- 
tions, to  ^£366,  was  remitted  to  Italy  ;  and  this  was  all  that  Scotland  ever 
sacrificed  for  the  sake  of  one  of  the  most  illustrious  of  her  sons. 

SOMERVILLE,  (Db)  Thomas,  an  eminent  historian,  was  born  at  Hawick, 
in  Roxburghshire,  in  the  spring  of  1741.'  By  the  early  death  of  his  father, 
who  was  minister  of  the  parish  of  Hawick,  he  was  left  an  orphan,  along  with 
two  sisters,  his  mother  having  predeceased  her  husband.  His  father  left  the 
cnre  of  his  early  education  to  the  reverend  3Ir  Cranstoun  of  Ancrum,  and  another 
member  of  the  presbytery  of  Jedburgh,  whose  kindness  and  attention  are  evi- 
denced by  the  affection  afterwards  exhibited  towards  them  by  their  pupil. 
Having  obtained  the  education  derivable  from  a  provincial  grammar  school,  he 
became  a  student  in  the  university  of  Edinburgh.  He  is  said  not  to  have  exhi- 
bited in  Iiis  acquirements  the  precocity  of  talent  generally  recorded  of  men  who 
have  become  eminent  in  any  branch  of  literature  ;  and  indeed  the  branch  in 
which  he  distinguished  himself,  when  qualified  by  the  manner  in  which  he 

1  Memoir  in  the  Annual  Obituary  for  1S31.  As  this  memoir  is  written  by  a  pcrsoiiai 
friend  of  Dr  Somerviile,  and  is  botli' better  writtm,  and  more  lilu  ral  in  its  views,  than  such 
productions  generally  happen  to  be,  we  sliall  Uike  llie  liberty  of  making  some  quotations 
from  it. 


304  DR.  THOMAS  SOMERYILLE. 

treated  it,  is  more  dependent  on  a  general  development  of  sound  ordinary  abi- 
lities, tlian  on  the  existence  of  tliat  genius  which  shines  before  the  judgment  is 
matured.     Nothing  seems  to  be  known  of  his  early  habits,  except  liis  having 
fallen  from  a  horse,  and  hurt  his  head ;  a  circumstance  which,  not  unnaturally, 
gave  him  a  partiality  for  pedestrian  exercises  during  the  remainder  of  his  life. 
The  accident  happened  in  Edinburgli,  close  to  the  residence  of  the  reverend 
^Ir  Bain,  an  eminent  clergyman  of  the  Relief  church.     "In  his  family  the 
patient  \vas  attended  for  several  niontlis,  uith  a  kindness  and  humanity  whicli 
made  a  lasting  impression  on  his  mind.      Often   has  the  present  Avriter,"  con- 
tinues the  memoir  above  referred  to,  "Jjeard  him  express  the  pleasure  and  im- 
provement he  had  reaped  from  the  enlightened  conversation  of  his  Avorthy  host, 
during  a  long  and   tedious  convalescence."      Somerville   was   licensed   as   a 
preacher,  about  the  year  1762.     He  shortly  after  this  event  returned  to  Rox- 
burghsliire,  and  became  tutor  to  the  son  of  Sir  Gilbert  Elliott,  afterwards  lord 
iMinto,  and  governor-general  of  India.     In  1 7(57,  Sir  (»ilbert  presented  him  with 
the  living  of  Minto  ;  and  in  1772,  the  same  friend  procured  his  promotion  to  the 
more  lucrative  living  of  Jedburgh.     At  that  period,  opposition  to  the  right  of 
patronage  in  Scotland  was  still  warm  in  the  feelings  of  the  people,  if  it  niiglit 
not  be  said  to  have  revived.     Tliere  is  no  doubt  that  the  right  was  well  exer- 
cised, and  in  the  midst  of  so  much  scrutiny  and  opposition,  it  Avould  have  been 
singular    had   it   not    been  so ;     but  the  very  circumstance   which    produced 
the  election  of  such  men  as  3Ir  Somerville,  was  naturally  the  cause  of  objection 
to  the  persons  chosen  :  and  the  subject  of  our  memoir  entered  on  his  charge  in 
direct  opposition  to  a  great  majority  of  his  parishioners.     It  may  be  predicated 
of  a  nan  of  good  feeling  and  sense,  that  he  would  hesitate  to  be  the  teacher  of 
the  conscience  of  persons  Avho  contemned  and  disliked  him  ;   but  it  was  part  of 
Somerville's  political  opinion  to  think  otherwise  ;   and  biography  affords  many 
instances  in  which  persoiis  so  swayed  have  been  excellent  men,  and  might  have 
despised  the  action,  had  it  been  set  before  them  divested  of  its  political  beai-- 
ings.     The  a}>pointment  was  followed  by  repeated  protests,  but  its  legality  was 
confirmed.    "  Wliatever,"  says  the  memoir,  "  might  be  the  cause  of  the  reverend 
presentee's  extreme  unpopularity, — whatever  objections  were  alleged  agaitist 
the  orthodoxy  of  his  creed,  or  his  mode  of  public  teaching, — his  most  strenuous 
opponents  were  compelled  to  admit  the  correctness  of  his  moral  character  ;  and 
several  of  the  most  discontented  having  seceded  to  the  relief  meeting,  tranquil- 
lity was  gradually  restored."     Somerville  commenced  authorship  by  a  pamphlet, 
entitled  "  Candid  thoughts  on  American  Independence,"  which  .nppearcd  soon 
after  the   commencement   of  the  American  war.     Like  Canij>bell,  and  other 
members  of  the  church  of  Scotland,  he  maintained  those  opinions  against  the 
claims  of  the  colonists,  which  w era  so  much  opposed  to  tlie  principles  on  which 
the  church  of  Scotland  struggled  into  existence,  however  much  they  might  ac- 
cord with  those  of  its  pastoi-s  after  it  was  firmly  established.    In  1792,  appeared 
his  "  History  of  Political  Transactions,  and  of  Parties,  from  the  Restoration  of 
Charles  II.  to  the  Death  of  King  William."     In  his  treatment  of  this  subject, 
he  showed  himself  a  member  of  that  class  of  politicians,  whose  doctrines  are 
generally  founded  on  either  or  both  of  two  opinions,  connected  w ith  the  times. 
1st,  A  dislike  of  popery,  and  all  persons  connected  with  it ;  and,  consequently, 
a  lore  of  all  measures  termed  protestant :  secondly,  An  affection  for  the  state 
of  things  existing  at  the  period  of  writing,  and  such  a  respect  for  the  persons, 
who,  by  operating  gi-eat  changes,  have  brought  about  that  existing  state,  as  the 
writer  would  have  been  the  last  person  to  feel,  when  the  change  was  about  to 
be  made.     Hence  Somerville  is,  on  all  occasions,  not  only  the  admirer,  but  the 
vindicator  of  William,  and  a  supporter  of  Avhat  are  called  "  the  principles  of  the 


DR.  THOMAS   SOMERVILLE.  305 

Revolution,"  or  tliose  of  the  future  permanency  of  the  country,  in  the  position 
in  uhich  the  ]ievohition  left  it.  Owing  to  the  other  eminent  iiistories  of  the 
same  period,  this  work  is  not  so  valuable  as  the  author's  History  of  Queen 
Anne,  uljich  appeared  in  1798,  uith  the  title,  ''*  The  History  of  Great 
Britain,  during  the  Reign  of  Queen  Anne  ;  uith  a  Dissertation  concerning  the 
Danger  of  tlie  Protestant  Succession  :  and  an  Appendix,  containing  Original 
Papers."  This  work  was  a  valuable  accession  to  the  literature  of  the  period  at 
which  it  was  published  ;  and  it  must  still  be  allowed  to  be  the  most  ample  and 
accurate,  if  not  also  the  most  impartial,  history  of  the  times  of  which  it  treats. 
It  is  certainly  above  the  average  of  historical  works  :  there  is  nothing  offensive 
or  affected  in  the  style — vices  very  common  among  those  who  were  secondary 
to  the  three  great  historians  of  the  last  century — it  is  expressive  and  plain,  and, 
in  many  cases,  elegant.  The  reflections,  if  not  those  of  a  profound  philosopher, 
show  a  well  thinking  mind ;  and,  although  breathing  party  feeling,  never  show 
violent  pi-ejudice.  That  this,  however,  should  be  the  best  history  of  so  remark- 
able an  age,  is  to  be  regretted,  especially  since  the  late  discovery  of  many  do- 
cuments, illustrative  of  its  dark  transactions.  A  change  more  interesting 
than  that  of  a  palpable  revolution,  in  the  gi-adual  passage  from  prerogative  to 
influence,  forms  a  subject  for  a  writer  more  conversant  with  constitutional  sub- 
jects, and  belter  able  to  discuss  them  in  all  their  bearings,  than  Dr  Somerville, 
who  is  in  general  a  better  narrator  of  the  intrigues  of  individual  politicians,  and 
the  diplomatic  intercourse  of  nations,  than  a  student  of  laws  and  governments, 
and  their  effects  on  society.  In  discussing  the  question  of  the  danger  of  the 
protestant  succession,  the  author  professes,  as  writing  at  a  period  when  the  sub- 
ject is  not  looked  on  with  party  >iews,  not  to  be  actuated  by  them.  It  is  very 
doubtful  whether  he  was  correct  in  the  supposition,  either  as  it  refers  to  his 
own  feelings,  or  to  those  of  the  period  ;  and,  independently  of  the  information 
acquired  since  Somemlle  wrote,  it  will  perhaps  hardly  be  denied,  that  there 
was  then  enough  known  to  show,  from  legitimate  deduction,  that  what  was 
called  "  the  protestant  succession,"  actually  was  in  danger,  not  only  from  the 
machinations  of  Bolingbroke,  and  the  zeal  of  the  Jacobites,  but  from  the  per- 
sonal feelings  of  the  queen.  In  the  interval  between  the  production  of  his  two 
great  historical  works,  (1793,)  he  wrote  a  pamphlet,  "  On  the  Constitution  and 
State  of  Gi'eat  Britain."  About  the  same  time,  he  was  chosen  one  of  the  chap- 
lains in  ordinary  to  his  majesty  for  Scotland,  and  elected  a  member  of  the 
Hoyal  Society  of  Edinburgh.  He  also  received  the  degree  of  doctor  of  divinity 
from  the  university  of  Edinburgh,  at  what  period  of  his  life  we  are  not  aware. 
At  the  period  of  the  publication  of  his  "  History  of  Queen  Anne,''  he  visited 
London,  and  presented  a  copy  of  his  work  to  the  king,  at  an  introduction  at 
St  James's.     A  whimsical  circumstance  happened  to  him  during  his  visit,  thus 

told  by  his  biographer: "  On  the  day  subsequent  to  his  arrival,  while  in  the 

lobby  of  the  house  of  commons,  Dr  Somerville  was  arrested,  and  taken  to  Bow 
street,  on  a  charge  of  felony.  Thunderstruck,  and  utterly  incapable  of  ac- 
counting for  the  stranjve  predicament  in  which  he  was  placed,  our  bewildered 
divine  could  scarcely  avail  himself  of  the  polite  advice  of  the  magistrate,  to  ap- 
prise his  friends  of  the  cii-cumstance.  Meanwhile,  the  late  lord  Melville,  then 
Sir  Henry  Dundas,  who  had  witnessed  his  seizure,  entered  the  office,  and  having 
satisfied  the  magistrate  of  the  respectability  of  his  countryman,  indulged  in  a 
hearty  laugh  at  his  expense.  A  notorious  and  specious  swindler  had  been,  it 
should  seem,  a  passenger  on  board  the  packet  in  which  Dr  Somerville  came  to 
London;  and  being  seen  in  the  company  of  this  man  on  their  landing,  led  to  his 
arrest  as  an  accomplice.  This  anecdote  the  writer  has  often  heard  Dr  Somer- 
ville relate  with  much  pleasantry." 

IV.  Srj 


308  JOHN   SPOTSWOOD. 


Besides  liis  political  and  liistorical  works,  Dr  Sonierville  wrote  "  Two  Ser- 
mons communicated  to  the  Scotch  Preacher  ;"  "  A  Collection  of  Sermons,"  pub- 
lished in  1815  ;  and  a  sermon  "  On  the  Nature  and  Obligation  of  an  Oath," 
which  appeared  in  the  "  Scottish  Pulpit."  lie  died,  after  a  few  days'  illness, 
at  Jedburgh,  on  the  I6th  May,  1830,  at  the  good  old  age  of  ninety,  and  in  the 
sixty-fourth  year  of  his  ministry.  His  faculties  were  fresh  to  the  last;  and  on 
th^  Sunday  previous  to  his  death,  he  had  preached,  and  administered  the  sacra- 
ment. Of  his  opinions  and  domestic  character,  the  following  paragraphs  from 
the  memoir  above  referred  to,  are  descriptive.  "  Political  science  having  long 
been  the  favourite  study  of  Dr  Somerville,  it  may  resdily  be  supposed  tliat  he 
took  a  deep  interest  in  all  that  concerned  the  French  Revolution.  But  he  was 
not  one  of  those  who  hailed  the  dawn  of  liberty  in  that  enslaved  and  benighted 
land  ;  on  the  contrary,  he  beheld  it  as  the  harbinger  of  evil  to  the  whole  of 
civilized  Europe  ;  while,  from  the  dissensions  to  which  this  event  gave  rise  in 
his  own  country,  he  augured  the  downfall  of  that  constitution,  in  church  and 
state,  which  he  had  so  ably  vindicated  in  his  writings,  and  which  he  regarded 
as  the  ne  plus  ultra  of  perfection.  An  alarmist  on  principle,  he  involved  in 
one  sweeping  condemnation,  all  who  entertained  views  different  from  his  own 
on  this  subject;  and  the  wild  impracticable  theorist — the  temperate  and  piiilo- 
sophical  advocate  for  reform — were  with  him  equally  objects  of  reprobation.'' 
*  #  #  «  Devoted  through  a  long  life  to  the  pursuits  of  literature,  Ur 
Somerville  numbered  among  his  friends  many  of  the  eminent  scholars  and 
divines  of  his  native  Scotland;  and,  during  his  occasional  visits  to  the  British 
metropolis,  he  was  introduced  to  several  of  the  distinguished  literati  of  the 
south.  Superior  to  the  mean  jealousy  and  petty  envy,  which  too  often  prevail 
among  the  votaries  of  science  and  learning,  Ur  Somerville  was  at  all  times,  and 
on  every  occasion,  eager  to  do  justice  to  the  talents  and  merits  of  his  gifted 
contemporaries.  No  man  could  be  more  enthusiastically  alive  to  the  transcen- 
dant  genius  of  Bums,  or  more  feelingly  deplore  the  moral  aberrations  of  that 
inspired  bard.  In  the  dark  hour  of  John  Logan's  eventful  life,  he  stretched 
towards  him  the  supporting  hand  of  friendship,  and  shielded  him,  in  some 
measure,  from  the  attacks  of  bigotry  and  illiberality,  by  the  weight  and  in- 
fluence of  his  own  pure  and  unimpeachable  character.  A  gold-headed  cane, 
the  parting  gift  of  the  grateful  poet,  when  he  bade  a  lasting  adieu  to  Scotland, 
Dr  Somerville  highly  prized,  and  always  carried  in  his  hand  when  walking." 

SPOTSWOOD,  John,  superintendent  of  Lothian,  was  descended  of  the  an- 
cient Merse  family  of  Spotswood  of  that  ilk,  and  was  born  in  the  year  1510.  His 
father,  William  Spotswood,  was  killed  at  the  battle  of  Flodden,  leaving  him  an 
orphan  at  little  more  than  three  years  of  age.  The  place  at  whicii  he  was  edu- 
cated, and  the  person  who  taught  him  in  his  early  years,  are  equally  unknown 
to  us.  We  have,  indeed,  discovered  no  further  notice  of  him,  till  1 534,  (June 
27.)  when,  at  the  very  late  age  of  four  and  twenty,  he  was  entered  a  student  in 
the  university  of  Glasgow.  There  was  perhaps,  however,  some  peculiarity  in 
his  case,  for  he  became  bachelor  in  the  very  next  year  (February  8,  1535);  a 
circumstance  which  we  can  only  account  for,  on  the  supposition  that  he  had 
either  made  very  remarkable  proficiency  in  his  studies,  or  attended  some  of  the 
other  universities  previously.  Spotswood,  it  is  believed,  intended  to  prosecute 
tlie  study  of  divinity  ;  but  he  became  disgusted  with  the  cruelty  of  the  catholic 
clergy,  manifested  most  pi-obably  in  the  condemnation  of  Russell  and  Kennedy, 
who  were  burned  for  heresy  at  Glasgow,  about  1538.  In  that  year,  he  left  his 
native  country,  apparently  horrified  at  the  spectacle  he  had  witnessed,  and  at 
other  instances  of  barbarity  which  he  must  have  heard  of,  and  retired  into 
England.     At  London,  he   became  acquainted  with  archbishop   Cranmer,  to 


yOHN  SPOTSWOOD.  307 

whose  kindness  and  encouragement  many  of  our  countrymen  were  indebted;  and 
from  whose  eagerness  in  the  dissemination  of  truth,  the  benefit  derived  by  Scot- 
land cannot  be  easily  estimated.  Mr  Spotswood  remained  in  the  south  for 
nearly  five  years,  that  is,  from  1533  till  1513,  when  Henry  VIII.  restored  the 
prisoners  taken  at  the  disgraceful  rout  of  Solway  Moss.  He  then  returned  to 
Scotland,  in  company  with  the  earl  of  Glencairn,  a  nobleman  well  known  for 
his  attachment  to  protestant  principles,  and  resided  with  him  for  several  years. 
Through  that  nobleman,  he  became  acquainted  with  the  earl  of  Lennox,  and 
was  by  him  employed  in  a  private  negociation  with  the  English  court,  in 
I5i4.  After  residing  there  for  some  months,  he  returned  to  Scotland;  but 
little  is  known  respecting  him  for  some  years  following.  In  1518,  he  was  pre- 
sented to  the  parsonage  of  Calder,  by  Sir  James  Sandelands  ;  and,  as  a  con- 
stant residence  at  his  cure  was  not  required,  he  lived  for  about  ten  years  with 
that  gentleman,  and  with  lord  James  Stewart,  then  prior  of  St  Andrews,  and 
afterwards  better  known  as  The  Regent  3Iurray.  When  commissioners  were 
appointed  by  parliament,  in  1553,  to  be  present  at  the  marriSge  of  the 
young  queen  of  Scotland  to  the  dauphin  of  France,  lord  James  was  included  in 
the  number,  and  Spots-.vood  accompanied  him.  Luckily,  both  returned  in 
safety  from  this  expedition,  so  fatal  to  many  of  their  companions. 

On  the  establishment  of  the  Reformation,  the  first  care  of  the  protestant 
parly,  was  to  distribute  the  very  few  ministers  who  held  their  sentiments,  into 
different  parts  of  the  country.  The  scarcity  of  qualified  persons,  gave  rise  to 
some  temporary  arrangements,  which  were,  however,  afterwards  abandoned, 
when  the  circumstances  which  produced  them  ceased  to  exist.  One  of  these 
was,  the  establishment  of  superintendents  over  different  districts, — an  office 
which  has  been  brought  forward,  with  but  little  justice,  we  think,  by  some 
writers,  to  prove  that  the  constitution  of  the  Scottish  church  was  originally 
episcopalian.  IMr  Spotswood  had  the  honour  of  being  first  elected,  having 
been  appointed  to  the  oversight  of  the  district  of  Lothian,  in  3Iarch,  1560-1. 
Th3  proceedings  on  this  occasion  were  conducted  by  John  Knox;  and  the 
pledges  required  by  that  zealous  reformer  must  have  impressed  both  the  super- 
intendent and  the  people,  with  a  deep  sense  of  the  importance  of  his  office, 
while  it  could  not  fail  to  be  favourably  contrasted  with  the  system  which  had 
recently  been  abolished. 

The  proceedings  of  the  church  courts,  after  the  stinmlus  created  by  the 
events  immediately  connected  with  the  Reformation  had  somewhat  subsided, 
could  not  be  supposed  to  excite  much  interest  in  the  mind  of  a  general  reader, 
unless  we  should  enter  into  much  more  minute  particulars  than  our  limits  per- 
mit. If  we  cannot,  therefore,  excite  very  deeply  our  reader's  sympathies,  we 
shall  not  tax  his  patience  more  than  is  necessary,  to  give  a  very  brief  outline  of 
the  more  important  transactions  with  which  ]Mr  Spotswood's  name  is  connected. 

Mr  Spotswood  appears  to  have  retained  the  charge  of  his  flock  at  Calder 
after  he  became  superintendent  of  Lothian  ;  but  it  cannot  be  supposed  that 
the  variety  and  extent  of  his  duties  peraiitted  anything  more  than  a  very  loose 
and  occasional  attention  to  their  interests.  Of  this  tlie  parishioners  complained 
more  than  once  to  the  General  Assembly,  but  without  success  ;  tlie  means  of  sup- 
porting a  superintendent  being  quite  inadequate  without  the  benefice  of  a  parish. 
The  mere  visitation  of  a  district  seems  to  have  been  but  a  part  of  the  labours  of  a 
superintendent :  there  were  many  occasions  on  which  these  officials  were  called 
upon  to  expend  their  time  in  behalf  of  the  general  interests  of  the  church. 
Spotswood  appears  to  have  been  frequently  deputed  by  the  General  Assembly 
to  confer  with  Queen  31ary,  with  A\hom  he  was  a  favourite,  upon  the  important 
subject  of  an  improvement  in  the  provision    for  their  maintenaiice.      On  the  in- 


,1 


308  JOHN   SPOTSWOOD. 


teresting  occasion  of  the  birth  of  her  son,  in  June,  15GS,  the  General  Assembly 
sent  him  "  to  testify  their  gladness  for  the  prince's  birth,  and  to  desire  ho 
might  be  baptized  according  to  the  form  used  in  the  Reformed  church."  He 
did  not  succeed  in  obtaining  a  favourable,  or  indeed  any,  reply  to  the  latter 
part  of  his  commission,  but  the  manner  in  which  he  conducted  himself  obtained 
for  him  a  most  gracious  reception.  Deeply  sensible  how  intinjately  the 
nation's  welfare  was  connected  Avilh  the  education  of  the  child,  he  took  him  in 
his  arms,  and  falling  on  his  knees,  implored  for  him  the  Divine  blessing  and 
protection.  This  exhibition  of  unaffected  piety  was  well  calculated  to  touch  the 
linest  feelings  of  the  soul.  It  was  listened  to  with  reverential  attention  by  the 
queen,  and  procured  for  him  the  respect  and  reverence  of  the  prince  in  his  nia- 
turer  years. 

But  JMr  Spotswood's  feelings  towards  the  queen  were  soon  to  undergo 
a  most  painful  change.  He  was  too  conscientious  to  sacrifice  his  principles  for 
the  favour  of  a  queen,  and  too  sensible  of  the  tendencies  of  her  subsequent 
conduct,  and  that  of  her  party,  to  neglect  to  warn  the  people  over  whom  he 
had  the  spiritual  oversight.  No  sooner  had  IMary  escaped  from  Lochleven  castle, 
and  prepared  for  hostilities,  than,  under  the  liveliest  convictions  of  the  responsi< 
bility  of  the  watchman  **  that  seeth  the  sword  coming  and  doth  not  blow  th? 
trumpet,"  he  addressed  a  solemn  admonition  to  the  people  within  liis  diocese, 
warned  the  unsettled, — and  exhorted  those  who  had  "  communicated  with  her 
odiouse  impietys  "  to  consider  their  fearful  defection  from  God,  and  by  public 
confession  of  their  guilt  and  folly,  to  testify  their  unfeigned  repentance. 

After  this  period  there  is  hardly  a  single  fact  recorded  respecting  Mr  Spots- 
wood  of  general  interest.  His  disposition,  as  well  as  his  feeble  state  of  healthy 
disposed  him  to  retirement,  and  he  seems  to  have  preferred  attending  to  his 
duties  as  a  clergyman,  and  thus  giving  an  example  of  the  peaceful  doctrines 
which  the  Christian  religion  inculcates,  to  taking  part  with  eitlier  of  the  factions 
in  the  struggle  which  succeeded.  Yet,  in  the  performance  of  these  duties  ho 
did  not  come  up  to  the  expectations  of  some  of  the  more  zealous  ministers 
within  his  district.  We  find  him  accused  of  "  slacknes  in  visitation  of  Kirks  " 
at  the  General  Assemblies  on  several  occasions.  On  some  of  these,  the  accusa> 
tion,  if  it  is  merely  intended  to  assert  that  he  had  not  visited  the  whole 
churches,  does  not  seem  to  have  been  made  without  ground ;  nor  will  his  ap- 
parent negligence  be  considered  wonderful  when  we  mention  that  the  district 
of  Lothian  comprehended  the  metropolis,  Stirling,  Berwick,  Linlithgow,  and 
other  considerable  towns  ;  and  that,  of  course,  it  contained  a  greater  number  of 
churches  than  any  other.  Spotswood's  health  had  also  become  impaired,  and 
we  must  add  to  this  list  of  extenuating  circumstances,  that  for  at  least  nine 
years  previous  to  1580,  he  had  received  no  emolument  in  consideration  of  his 
labours.  In  that  year,  however,  he  obtained  (December  16th,)  a  pension  for 
himself  and  his  second  son  for  three  years  of  £45,  9s.  6d.,  besides  an  allow- 
ance of  grain  for  "  the  thankfull  seruice  done  to  his  hienes  and  his  predeces- 
souris,"  and  this  grant  was  renewed,  November  26,  1583,  for  five  years  ;  but  he 
did  not  live  to  enjoy  its  full  benefit.  He  died,  December  5,  1585,  in  the 
seventy-sixth  year  of  his  age,  leaving  by  his  wife,  Beatrix  Crichton,  two  sons, 
John  and  James,  both  of  whom  attained  a  high  rank  in  the  Episcopal  church, 
and  one  dailghter.  **  He  was  a  roan,"  says  his  son,  "  well  esteemed  for  his 
piety  and  wisdom,  loving  and  beloved  of  all  persons,  charitable  to  the  poor, 
and  careful  above  .nil  things  to  give  no  man  offence." 

The  same  writer  lias  represented  him  as  having  in  his  last  years  changed  his 
sentiments  respecting  church  government,  and  as  having  become  an  Episco- 
palian ;  but  this  assertion  carries  along  with  it  the  suspicion  that  the  archbishop 


JOHN    SPOTSWOOD.  309 


Mas  more  anxious  to  obtain  for  his  own  conduct  a  partial  sanction  in  his  father's 
opinions  than  to  represent  them  as  they  really  stood. 

We  are  not  aware  that  3Ir  Spotswood  is  the  author  of  any  distinct  or 
individual  work.  Such  papers  as  lie  may  have  written,  arising  out  of  tiie  busi- 
ness of  the  churcli  courts,  certainly  do  not  deserve  that- name.* 

SPOTSWOOD,  John-,  archbishop  of  St  Andrews,  and  author  of  '*  The  His- 
tory of  the  Church  and  State  of  Scotland,"  was  one  of  the  two  sons  of  the  sub- 
ject of  the  preceding  article.  He  was  born  in  the  year  1565,  while  his  father, 
besides  serving  as  parish  minister  at  Calder,  acted  as  superintendent  of  Lothian, 
Merse,  and  Teviotdale.  Being  a  child  of  "  pregnant  wit,  great  spirit, 
and  good  memory,"  he  was  early  taught  his  letters,  and  sent  to  the  university 
of^Glasgow,  of  which  Andrew  IMelvilie  was  at  that  time  principal.  He  studied 
languages  and  philosophy  under  James  3Ielville,  and  divinity  under  his  more 
celebrated  uncle ;  but  the  opinions  of  these  men  respecting  church  government 
seem  to  have  made  no  impression  on  their  pupil.  At  the  early  age  of  sixteen 
he  took  his  degrees,  and  when  only  about  twenty,  he  was  appointed  to  succeed 
his  father  in  the  church  of  Calder.  In  the  various  agitating  disputes  between 
king  James  and  the  majority  of  the  Scottish  clergy  respecting  the  settlement  of 
the  church,  the  gentle  and  courtly  character  of  Spotswood  induced  him  to  lean 
to  the  views  espoused  by  the  king,  which  were  in  favour  of  a  moderate  episco- 
pacy, supposed  to  be  more  suitable  than  presbytery  to  the  genius  of  a  monarch- 
ical government. 

In  1601,  the  parson  of  Calder  was  selected  by  the  court  to  accompany  the 
duke  of  Lennox  as  chaplain,  on  his  embassy  to  Henry  IV. ;  and  it  is  said  by 
the  presbyterian  historians,  that  he  marked  the  looseness  of  his  principles  on 
this  occasion,  by  attending  mass  in  France,  along  with  his  principal.  In  re- 
turning through  England,  Spotswood  had  an  interview  with  queen  Elizabeth. 
When  James  proceeded  to  London  in  1603,  Spotswood  was  one  of  five  un- 
titled clergymen  whom  he  selected  to  accompany  him.  On  reaching  Burleigh 
liouse,  the  king  received  intelligence  of  the  decease  of  James  Beaton,  archbishop 
of  Glasgow,  who  had  lived  in  France  since  the  Reformation;  and  he  im. 
mediately  nominated  Spotswood  to  the  vacant  see.  The  new  archbishop  was  at 
the  same  time  directed  to  return  to  Scotland,  in  order  to  accompany  the  queen 
on  her  journey  to  London,  and  to  act  as  her  eleemosynar  or  almoner;  an  of- 
fice, his  biographer  remarks,  "  which  could  not  confidently  be  credited  but  to 
clean  hands  and  an  uncorrupt  heart,  such  as  his  really  was." 

Holding  as  he  did  the  second  episcopal  dignity  in  the  kingdom,  Spotswood 
naturally  lent  himself  with  great  willingness  to  aid  the  policy  of  the  king  for 
the  gradual  reconstruction  of  that  system  in  the  kingdom.  The  measures 
adopted  were  cautious  and  prudent,  but  nevertheless  highly  unpopular ;  and 
for  several  years  the  archbisliop  of  Glasgow  was  obliged  to  appear  obedient  to 
the  ordinary  church  courts.  At  length,  in  1610,  the  power  of  the  bishops  ex 
jure  postlimimi  was  restored  ;  and  the  subject  of  this  memoir,  with  the  bishops 
of  Brechin  and  Galloway,  repaired  to  London,  to  receive  the  solemnities 
of  consecration,  which  were  conferred  upon  them  by  the  bishops  of  London, 
Bath,  and  Ely.  About  the  same  time,  Spotswood  became  the  head  of  one  of  the 
two  courts  of  High  Commission  erected  by  James  in  Scotland  for  the  trial  of 
offences  against  the  church.  He  had  previously,  in  1609,  been  appointed  an 
extraordinary  lord  of  session,  in  accordance  with  the  policy  adopted  by  the 
king  for  giving  influence  and  dignity  to  his  ecclesiastical  office,  though  it  aiter- 

»  Abridged  from  a  memoir  of  Mr  John  Spotswood,  in  AVodiow's  Biographicil  CoIIlc- 
tlons,  printed  by  the  JVlaitland  Club. 


310  JOHN   SPOTS  WOOD. 


wards  was  niauitest  that  the  holding  of  lay  othoes  by  tlie  bishops  injured   the 
interests  of  their  church. 

In  the  month  of  October,  1611,  Spotswood  .apprehended  John  Ogilvie,  a 
Jesuit,  at  GLisgow,  where  he  had  several  times  said  mass,  and  converted  several 
young  people  of  the  better  class.  He  was  brought  to  trial  about  the  end  of 
February,  and  denying  the  king  and  his  council  to  be  competent  judges  on  some 
points  of  his  religious  belief,  he  was  condemned  and  executed.  On  the  death 
of  archbisliop  Gladstanes  in  l(jl5,  Spotswood  was  removed  from  Glasgow  to  be 
primate  and  metropolitan  of  all  Scotland,  and  the  same  year  the  two  courts  of 
high  commission  for  Scotland,  were,  under  him,  united  into  one.  In  the  year 
1(516,  he  presided  in  <in  assembly  at  Aberdeen,  in  virtue  of  his  primacy,  without 
any  election.  There  was  much  seeming  zeal  in  this  assembly  against  popery, 
and  the  archbisliop  of  Glasgow,  and  Mr  William  Strulhers,  minister  at  Edin- 
burgh, were  appointed  to  form  a  book  of  ecclesiastical  canons  for  the  purpose 
of  establishing  uniformity  of  discipline  throughout  all  the  kirks  of  the  kingdom. 
A  commission  was  also  appointed  to  draw  up  a  new  liturgy,  a  new  catechism, 
and  a  new  Confession  of  Faith.  His  majesty  visited  his  native  kingdom  in  tiie 
succeeding  year.  On  this  occasion,  twelve  apostles,  and  four  evangelists,  curi- 
ously wrought  in  wood,  were  prepared  to  be  set  up  in  his  royal  chapel,  but 
were  not  made  use  of.  The  English  service,  however,  was  introduced,  with  its 
appurtenances  of  organs,  cliorislers,  and  surplices.  Tlie  sacrament  was  also  ad- 
ministered upon  >\  liitsunday,  after  the  English  fashion.  'Ihe  consequence 
was  only  more  violent  opposition  to  these  innovations.  Notiiing,  however, 
could  deter  James  from  pressing  his  own  peculiar  views  of  ecclesiastical 
polity.  At  anotlier  Assembly  held  at  St  Andrews  in  the  montii  of  October, 
1617,  his  five  favourite  articles  were  again  brought  forward,  but  could 
not  be  carried,  even  Avith  all  the  zeal  of  the  bisliops  to  back  his  writteu 
requests.  Disappointed  by  this  result,  tlie  king  ordered  Spotswood  to  convo- 
cate  the  bishops,  and  the  niinistera  that  were  iji  Edinburgh  for  the  time, 
and  to  procure  their  approval  of  them,  and,  if  they  refused,  to  suspend  them 
from  their  ministry.  This  also  failed,  and  tlie  articles  were  enjoined  by  a  royal 
proclamation,  to  which  but  little  deference  was  paid.  Another  Assembly  was 
again  suddenly  and  unexpectedly  indicted,  by  royal  proclamation,  to  be 
held  at  Terth,  August  25,  1618,  where,  by  the  aid  of  a  long  letter  from  1  is 
majesty,  and  the  assistance  of  Dr  Teter  Young,  >\ho  was  now  dean  of  Winches- 
ter, Spotswood  at  length  carried  the  five  articles;  kneeling  at  the  sacrament; 
private  communion  ;  private  baptism  ;  confirmation  of  children  ;  and  observa- 
tion of  festivals.  All  the  archbishop's  authority,  however,  could  not  command 
obedience  to  them,  though  lie  continued  to  enforce  them  before  the  high  com- 
mission court  for  a  number  of  years.  Among  those  of  tiie  clergy  whom  he  de- 
prived of  their  livings  for  non-compliance,  were  Mr  Richard  Dickson,  Mr  An- 
drew Duncan,  3Ir  John  Scrimger,  Mr  Alexander  Simpso:i,  Rlr  John  Murray, 
Mr  George  Dunbar,  Mr  David  Dickson,  and  i\Ir  George  Johnston.  For  all 
this  severity  lie  liad  certainly  king  James's  warrant,  and  had  he  been  even 
more  severe,  would  probably  have  raised  himself  still  higher  in  his  majesty's 
favour.  At  the  coronation  of  Charles  I.,  which  took  place  in  Edinburgh  on  the 
I8lh  of  June,  1633,  Spotswood  placed  the  crown  upon  his  head,  assisted  by 
the  bishops  of  Koss,  Murray,  Dunkeld,  Dumblane,  and  Brechin,  arrayed  in 
robes  of  blue  silk,  richly  embroidered,  reaching  down  to  their  feet,  over  which 
Uiey  had  white  rockets  with  lawn  sleeves,  and  loops  of  gold.  The  archbishop 
of  Glasgow  and  other  bishops,  having  refused  to  appear  in  this  costume, 
were  not  allowed  to  take  any  active  part  in  the  ceremony.  Laud,  who  accom- 
panied the  monarch,  and  was  master  of  the  ceremonies  on  the  occasion,  had  in- 


SIR   ROBERT   SPOTSWOOD.  <  311 

Jroducctl  an  altar  ir.to  the  church,  on  which  stood  two  blind  books,  two  wax 
candles  lighted,  and  an  empty  bason.  "  Behind  the  altar  there  was  ane  rich 
tapestry  wherein  the  crucifix  was  curiously  wrought,  and,  as  thir  bishops  who 
were  on  service  past  by  this  crucifix,  they  were  seen  to  bow  their  knee  and 
beck,  which  with  their  habit  was  noted,  and  bred  great  fear  of-  inbringing  of 
popery."  Charles  by  these  means  rendered  his  visit  disagreeable  to  the  people, 
and  he  left  them  in  a  more  dissatisfied  state  than  even  tliat  in  which  he  found 
them.  A  copy  of  a  protestation,  or  statement  of  grievances,  which  had  been 
drawn  up  to  be  presented  to  the  parliament  held  by  the  king  in  IG33,  but 
which  circumstances  had  prevented  its  fraraers  from  presenting,  having  been 
shown  in  confidence  by  lord  Balmerlno,  was  surreptitiously  carried  to  Spots- 
wood,  who  hastened  with  it  to  court,  where  it  was  represented  as  a  crime  of  no 
common  kind.  Balmerino  was  immediately  brought  to  trial  under  the  statute 
of  leasing  making,  and,  chiefly  through  the  influence^of  the  primate,  who  was 
himself  an  extraordinary  lord  of  session,  of  which  his  second  son,  Bobert, 
was  president,  condemned  to  die.  This  measure  gave  so  much  ofTence  that  it 
was  found  necessary  to  pardon  Balmerino,  a  concession  which  did  not  at  all 
satisfy  the  peaple,  or  remove  their  aversion  to  the  prelates,  upon  whom  the 
whole  odium  of  these  despotic  proceedings  was  laid.  That  aversion  was  still 
heightened  by  the  zeal  displayed  by  the  primate  in  enlarging  the  revenues  of 
his  see,  which  had,  both  in  Glasgow  and  St  Andrews,  been  a  principal  object 
with  him,  and  in  prosecuting  which,  his  biographer  affirms  he  made  not  fewer 
than  fifty  journeys  between  Scotland  and  the  court  of  London.  He  had  also 
about  this  time,  on  the  death  of  lord  Kinnoul,  obtained  the  first  office  of  the 
state,  that  of  chancellor..  He  was  labouring  to  revive  the  order  of  mitred  ab- 
bots to  be  substituted  in  parliament  in  place  of  the  lords  of  erection,  whose  im- 
propriated livings  and  tithes  he  intended  should  go  to  their  endowments.  A 
book  of  canons,  and  a  liturgy  imposed  upon  the  church  by  the  sole  authority  of 
the  king  and  the  bishops  in  1G37,  filled  up  the  measure  of  court  imprudence. 
Spotswood,  whose  gentle  character  probably  revolted  at  the  strong  measures 
adopted  by  the  king,  exclaimed,  on  hearing  of  the  intention  to  meet  these  in- 
novations with  a  renewal  of  the  covenant,  tliat  the  labours  of  an  age  had  been 
undone  in  a  day.  Scotland,  in  consequence  of  their  own  intolerant  condacty 
■was  now  no  agreeable  place  for  bishops  and  the  upholders  of  a  semi-popish 
episcopacy;  and  Spotswood  retired,  with  a  depressed  mind  and  a  diseased  frame 
to  Newcastle,  where  he  was  confined  for  some  time  by  sickness.  On  recovering 
a  little,  he  proceeded  to  London,  where  he  died,  November  26,  1639,  in  the 
seventy-fourth  year  of  his  age,  just  in  time  to  escape  witnessing  the  total  over- 
throw of  his  favourite  church  polity  in  Scotland.  By  his  wife,  Kachel  Lindsay, 
daughter  of  the  bishop  of  Ross,  he  had  a  numerous  family,  though  only  three 
of  them  survived  him,  two  sons  and  a  daughter.  Spotswood  was  unquestionably 
a  man  of  excellent  abilities,  but,  though  a  clergyman,  he  was  also  a  man  of 
the  world,  and  probably  somewhat  more  ambitious  than  became  his  sacred 
profession.  He  was,  however,  neither  sanguinary  nor  cruel,  but,  on  the  con- 
trary, seems  to  have  been  desirous  of  accomplishing  all  his  purposes  by  the  gen- 
tlest means.  As  a  historian  he  is  entitled  to  very  high  piraise.  He  certainly 
leans  to  the  side  of  his  own  party,  but  his  statements,  like  bis  general  character, 
are,  for  the  most  part,  marked  by  moderation.  In  richness  and  variety 
of  materials,  his  liistory,  perhaps,  is  not  equal  to  several  contemporary,  or  per- 
haps earlier  productions  of  the  same  class,  but  in  point  of  style  and  arrange- 
ment it  is  inferior  to  none. 

SPOTSWOOD,  (Sir)  Robert,  president  of  the  court  of  session,  was  the  second 
son  of  archbishop  Spotswood,  and  Avas  born  in  the  jear  1596.     He  was  edu- 


312  SIR  ROBERT  SPOTS  WOOD. 

cnted  at  the  grammar  school  of  Glasgow,  and,  at  the  age  of  thirteau,  was  sent 
to  the  university  of  that  city,  where,  four  yea»*s  afterwards,  he  obtained  the  de- 
gree of  master  of  arts.  From  Glasgow  he  was  removed  to  Exeter  college,  Ox- 
ford, and  studied  under  the  celebrated  Dr  Pridcaux.  Honourable  mention  is 
niade  of  Sir  Robert  in  the  "  Athenee  Oxonienses."  On  the  completion  of  his 
studies,  he  made  the  tour  of  France,  Italy,  and  Germany,  studying  the  laws  of 
those  countries,  as  well  as  the  civil  and  canon  law,  and  also  theology,  in  «hicli 
last  he  was  deeply  versed.  When  king  James  conmianded  archbishop  Spots- 
wood  to  write  the  history  of  his  native  kingdom,  he  procured,  through  Sir 
Robert's  exertions,  the  ancient  3ISS.  and  records  of  the  cliurch,  but  especially 
the  famous  "  Black  Book  of  Paisley,"  which  he  recovered  at  Home.  Sir  Ro- 
bert was  also  able  to  redeem  a  number  of  other  manuscripts,  which  had  been 
carried  abroad  from  Scottish  monasteries  at  tlie  Reformation  ;  but  unfortunately 
they  were  destroyed  by  the  covenanters.  On  his  return  from  the  continent, 
after  an  absence  of  nine  yeai-s.  Sir  Robert  was  most  graciously  received  at  tlie 
court  of  England  by  king  James,  to  whom  he  gave  such  a  good  account  of  the 
laws,  customs,  and  manners  of  the  countries  where  he  had  been  travelling, 
that  the  king  appointed  him  one  of  the  extraordinary  judges  of  the  court  of 
session.  On  his  receiving  this  appointment,  the  archbishop  purchased  and  be- 
stowed on  him  the  barony  of  New-Abbey,  in  Galloway,  and  he  assumed  the 
title  of  Lord  New-Abbey.  He  continued  to  be  an  extraordinary  lord  during 
James's  reign  ;  but,  on  the  accession  of  Charles  I.,  who  deprived  the  judges  of 
their  commissions,  and  re-appointed  some  of  them.  Sir  Robert  was  nominated  an 
ordinary  lord  of  session,  or  judge,  on  the  14th  of  February,  1626.  On  the 
death  of  Sir  James  Skene,  in  November,  1633,  he  was  chosen  president  of  the 
College  of  Justice.  He  disposed  of  the  lands  of  New-Abbey  to  king  Charles, 
who  bestowed  it  on  the  newly  erected  bishopric  of  Edinburgh,  and  assumed  the 
title  of  Lord  Dunipace,  from  an  estate  he  had  purchased  in  Stirlingshire. 

As  the  father  now  occupied  the  highest  office  in  the  state,  and  the  primacy  in 
the  church,  while  the  son  filled  the  first  judicial  station  in  the  country,  no 
greatness  under  that  of  monarchy  itself,  could  have  npj>eared  more  enviable 
than  that  which  was  enjoyed  by  the  family  of  Spolswood.  It  was  greatness, 
however,  dependent  on  mere  court  favour,  and  altogether  Avanting  the  only 
firm  basis  for  official  elevation,  the  concurrence  and  good-will  of  the  nation. 
On  the  contrary,  the  SpotSAVoods  had  risen  in  consequence  of  their  address  in 
rendering  up  the  liberties  of  their  country  into  the  hands  of  the  king ;  and, 
however  endeared  to  him,  were  detested  by  the  great  mass  of  their  fellow 
citizens.  Hence,  when  the  Scots  came  to  the  point  of  resistance  in  1637,  and 
assumed  the  entire  control  of  their  own  concerns,  the  Spotswoods  vanished 
from  before  the  face  of  their  indignant  countrymen,  leaving  no  trace  of  tiieir 
greatness  behind,  except  in  the  important  offices  which  they  had  left  vacant. 

Sir  Robert  Spotswood  now  became  a  close  adherent  of  the  king's  person ; 
and,  with  other  obnoxious  individuals  in  the  same  situation,  proved  the  means 
of  preventing  that  confidence  in  the  sincerity  of  the  monarch's  concessions, 
which  operated  so  much  to  his  disadvantage.  When  Charles  was  in  Scotland, 
in  1611,  the  estates  presented  him  with  an  address,  in  which  they  beseeched 
that  the  late  president  of  the  court  of  session  might  be  moved  from  his  person 
and  councils ;  and  with  this  request  the  king  was  obliged  to  comply.  At  a 
late  period  in  the  civil  war,  (1645.)  Charles  recalled  Sir  Robert,  and  appointed 
him  secretary  of  state  for  Scotland,  in  place  of  the  earl  of  Lanark.  In  this 
character,  Sir  Robert  signed  the  commission  of  the  marquis  of  Montrose  as  com- 
mander-in-chief of  the  forces  in  Scotland;  and,  being  appointed  to  convey  this 
to  the  victorious  general,  he  took  shipping  in  the  island  of  Anglesey,  and, 


SIR  JAMES   STEUART,  BART.  313 

landing  iu  Lochaber,  joined  the  marquis  in  Atliole.  He  marched  southward 
with  the  army,  maintaining,  however,  a  strictly  civil  character,  and  was  taken 
pi-isoner  at  Philiphaiigh,  where,  it  is  said,  he  had  only  his  walking  cane  in  his 
hand.  He  was  carried,  along  with  some  other  prisoners  of  distinction,  to  St 
Andrews,  and  tried  before  the  Parliament,  on  a  charge  of  high  treason.  His 
defence  was  allowed  to  have  been  masterly,  but  a  conviction  was  inevitable. 
He  was  condemned  to  be  beheaded  by  the  maiden,  which  was  brought  from 
Dundee  for  the  purpose.  "  In  his  railing  discourse  to  the  people  on  the  scaffold 
(says  Row  in  his  life  of  Robert  Blair),  among  other  things  he  said  that  the  sad- 
dest judgment  of  God  upon  people  at  this  time  was,  that  the  Lord  had  sent  out 
a  lying  spirit  in  the  mouths  of  the  prophets,  and  that  their  ministers,  that  should 
lead  them  to  heaven,  were  leading  them  the  highway  to  hell.  Mr  Blair  stand- 
ing by  him,  as  he  was  appointed  by  the  commission  of  the  Kirk,  ia  answer  to  this, 
only  said,  '  It's  no  wonder  to  hear  the  son  of  a  false  prophet  speak  so  of  tho 
faithful  and  honest  servants  of  Jesus  Christ;'  which  did  so  enrage  the  proud 
and  impenitent  spirit  of  Spotswood,  that  he  died  raging  and  railing  against 
Christ's  honest  and  faithful  ministers,  and  his  covenanted  people."  It  was  ia 
declining  the  offer  of  Blair  to  pray  for  his  soul  that  Sir  Robert  used  the  lan- 
guage which  provoked  the  covenanter's  stern  rebuke,  pointed  with  a  sarcasm 
which  might  certainly  have  been  spared  on  such  an  occasion.  But  the  reproach 
and  the  retaliation  illustrate  the  spirit  of  the  times.  Spotswood's  biographer 
says  his  last  words  were — "  Merciful  Jesu,  gather  my  soul  unto  thy  saints  and 
martyrs,  who  have  run  before  me  in  this  race."  This  writer  accuses  "the 
fanatical  minister  of  the  place  "  of  having  incited  the  provost  to  prevent  Sir 
Robert  from  addressing  the  people  on  the  scaffold.  A  similar  story  is  repeated 
in  the  Spottiswoode  Miscellany,  where,  however,  it  is  stated  tliat  Sir  Robert 
"  inveighed  much  against  the  Parliament  of  England,"  which  is  not  consistent 
with  the  assertion  that  he  was  prevented  from  speaking  to  the  spectators. 
The  execution  took  place  at  the  cross  of  St  Andrews,  January  17, 1646.  Other 
two  prisoners  suffered  along  with  Spotswood,  namely,  Nathaniel  Gordon,  who 
recanted  his  episcopacy,  and  died  as  a  member  of  the  Kirk,  and  Andrew  Guthrie, 
"  who  died  stupidly  and  impenitently."  Of  Spotswood  and  Guthrie,  Row  ob- 
serves characteristically,  "These  two  were  bishops' sons j  mali  corvi  maluin 
ovum." 

Sir  Robert  Spotswood  was  well  skilled  in  the  Hebrew,  Chaldaic,  Syriac,  and 
Arabic  languages,  besides  his  acquaintance  with  most  of  the  modern  European 
tongues.  He  was  a  profound  lawyer,  and  au  upright  judge.  Piety  was  a  con- 
spicuous feature  in  his  character ;  though,  according  to  the  spirit  of  his  age,  it 
was  debased  by  the  exclusive  and  bigoted  feelings  of  a  partizan.  He  was  the 
author  of  "  The  Practicks  of  the  Law  of  Scotland  j "  a  work  which  was  only 
superseded  by  the  more  elaborate  work  of  Stair. 

His  remains  were  honourably  interred  in  the  parish  church  of  St  Andrews, 
by  Sir  Robert  Muri'ay  of  Melgun,  and  other  friends,  among  whom  was  Hugh 
Scrimgeour,  a  wealthy  citizen  of  St  Andrews,  who  had  formerly  been  one  of 
archbishop  Spotswood's  servants,  and  who  took  the  execution  of  his  old  master's 
son  so  much  to  heart,  that  seeing  the  bloody  scaffold  still  standing  some  days 
afterwards,  he  fainted  on  tho  spot;  and,  being  carried  home,  died  on  tho 
thi-eshold  of  his  own  door. 

STEUART  (Sir)  James,  of  Coltness,  Baronet,  the  father  of  political  economy 

in  Britain,  was  born  on  the  10th  of  October,  1713.     He  was  the  son  of  Sir 

James  Steuart,  bart.,  solicitor -general  for  Scotland,  under  queen  Anne,  and 

George  I*  by  Anne,  daughter  of  Sir  Hugh  Dalryaiple,  president  of  the  court 

of  session.     Tlie.fatlier  of  the 'solicitor-general  was  Sir  James  Steuart,  lord  ad- 
iv.  a  a 


314  SIR  JAMES  STEUART,  BART. 

vocate  under  AVilliam  III.,  whose  father  >vas  Sir  James  Steuart,  provost  of 
Edinburgh  from  1G18  to  1660,  a  descendant  of  the  Bonhill  branch  of  the 
family  of  Stewart 

Tiie  subject  of  this  article  spent  his  earliest  years  at  Goodtrees,  now  Moredun, 
a  seat  of  his  father,  near  Edinburgh.  At  the  school  of  North  Berwick,  he  re- 
ceived the  elementary  part  of  his  education,  and  it  was  afterwai-ds  completed  at 
the  university  of  Edinburgh,  whither  he  went  at  the  age  of  fourteen.  At  that 
institution,  after  going  tlirough  a  complete  course  of  languages  and  sciences,  he 
studied  the  civil  law,  with  the  occasional  assistance  of  31r  Hercules  Lindsay,  an 
eminent  civilian,  and  subsequently  professor  of  that  department  in  the  univer- 
sity of  Glasgow.  From  his  earliest  years,  his  abilities  appeared  rather  of  a 
solid  and  permanent,  than  of  a  dazzling  nature.  At  the  early  age  just  men- 
tioned, he  succeeded  his  father  in  the  baronetcy  and  estates  connected  with  it, 
which  were  of  moderate  extent  and  value. 

On  the  completion  of  his  legal  studies  at  the  university  of  Edinburgh,  Sir 
James  went  to  the  bar,  (1734,)  but  without  any  intention  of  prosecuting  the 
law  as  a  profession.  He  soon  after  set  out  upon  a  tour  of  the  continent,  where 
he  formed  an  acquaintance  with  the  duke  of  Ormond,  the  earl  Blarischal,  and 
other  exiled  Jacobite  chiefs.  The  family  from  which  he  descended  had  been 
conspicuous  for  its  attachment  to  the  popular  cause,  for  a  century ;  but  Sir 
James  appears  to  have  been  converted  by  these  nobles  from  his  original  Whig 
principles.  Having  permitted  himself  to  be  introduced  by  them  to  prince 
Charles  Stuart  at  Rome,  he  received  such  civilities  from  that  scion  of  expa- 
triated royalty,  as  had  a  material  effect  upon  the  tenor  of  his  future  life.  He 
returned  to  his  native  country  in  1740,  with  many  accomplishments,  which 
added  brilliancy  to  his  character,  but  an  unsettled  tone  of  mind,  which  he  af- 
terwards greatly  regretted. 

Among  the  intimate  friends  of  Sir  James  at  this  period  of  his  life,  was  3Ir 
Alexander  Trotter,  the  father  of  one  of  the  present  land-proprietors  of  Mid- 
Lothian.  Mr  Trotter  was  cut  off*  in  early  life  ;  and,  during  his  last  illness,  made 
a  promise  to  Sir  James,  that,  if  possible,  he  would  come  to  him  after  his  death,  in 
an  enclosure  near  the  house  of  Coltness,  which  in  summer  had  been  frequently 
their  place  of  study.  It  was  agreed,  in  order  to  prevent  mistake  or  misappre- 
hension, that  the  hour  of  meeting  should  be  noon  ;  that  Mr  Trotter  should  ap- 
pear in  the  dress  he  usually  wore,  and  that  every  other  circumstance  should  be 
exactly  conformable  to  what  had  commonly  happened  when  they  met  together. 
Sir  James  laid  greater  stress  on  this  engagement  than  sound  reason  will  war- 
rant. Both  before  and  after  his  exile,  he  never  failed,  when  it  was  in  his 
power,  to  attend  at  the  place  of  appointment,  even  when  the  debility  arising 
from  gout  rendered  him  hardly  able  to  walk.  Every  day  at  noon,  while  re- 
siding at  Coltness,  he  went  to  challenge  the  promise  of  Mr  Trotter,  and  al- 
ways returned  extremely  disappointed  that  his  expectation  of  his  friend's  ap- 
pearance had  not  been  gratified.  When  i-allied  on  the  subject,  he  always  ob- 
served seriously,  that  we  do  not  know  enough  of  "  the  other  world  "  to  entitle 
us  to  assume  that  such  an  event  as  the  reappearance  of  Mr  Trotter  was  impos- 
sible. We  fear,  however,  that  the  most  of  those  who  peruse  this  n.iiTative  will 
be  inclined  to  class  this  anecdote  with  the  "  follies  of  the  wise." 

In  the  course  of  his  travels,  Sir  James  had  formed  an  intimacy  with  lord 
Elcho,  who,  conceiving,  in  the  warmth  of  youthful  friendship,  that  the  young 
baronet  would  be  able  to  gain  the  affections  of  his  sister,  lady  Frances  Wemyss, 
carried  him  to  Cedar  Hall,  in  the  north  of  Scotland,  where  that  young  lady 
was  residing  with  the  countess  of  Sutherland.  .As  Elcho  expected,  Sir  James 
gained  the  heart  of  lady  Frances ;  and,  after  some  scruples  on  the  part  of  her 


SIR  JAMES  STEUAET,  BART.  315 


relations  had  been  overcome,  they  were  married  in  October,  1743,  at  Dunrobin 
castle,  the  lady  bringing  her  husband  what  was  then  considered  a  very  hand- 
gome  fortune,  namely,  six  thousand  pounds.  A  pair  more  elegant,  more  amiable, 
and  more  accomplished,  is  rarely  seen.  Their  union  was  blessed  in  August,  1744, 
by  the  birth  of  their  son,  the  late  Sir  James  Steuart,  who  was  for  many  years 
the  principal  object  of  their  care. 

The  subject  of  our  memoir  had  joined  the  opposition  party,  and  in  the  year 
last  named  he  had  an  unpleasant  collision  with  the  family  of  Dundas,  which  was 
then  beginning  to  take  a  leading  part  in  Scottish  politics.  A  claim  preferred 
by  him  to  be  enrolled  amongst  the  freeholders  of  Mid-Lothian,  was  refused ; 
and  for  this  he  raised  an  action  against  Dundas  of  Arniston,  then  one  of  the 
senators  of  the  college  of  justice.  In  the  course  of  the  judicial  proceedings,  Sir 
James  pled  his  own  cause  in  so  masterly  a  manner,  that  lord  Arniston  descended 
from  the  bench,  and  defended  himself  at  the  bar.  The  cause  was  given 
against  the  young  advocate ;  and  this,  no  doubt,  conspired,  with  other  circum- 
stances, to  prepare  him  for  the  step  he  took  in  the  subsequent  year. 

Sir  James  was  residing  in  Edinburgh,  in  attendance  upon  lady  Frances,  who 
was  then  in  a  state  of  ill  health,  when  prince  Charles,  at  the  h^d  of  his  High- 
land army,  took  possession  of  the  city.  Among  the  principal  adherents  of  the 
young  adventurer,  was  lord  Elcho,  the  brollier-in-law  and  bosom  friend  of 
Sir  James  Steuart.  The  lattei',  with  the  earl  of  Buchan,  who  had  married  one 
of  his  sisters,  formed  the  wish  of  being  introduced  to  prince  Charles,  but  with- 
out pledging  themselves  to  join  his  standard.  They,  therefore,  induced  lord 
Elcho  to  seize  them  at  the  cross  of  Edinburgh,  and  conduct  them,  apparently  as 
prisoners,  into  the  presence  of  the  prince.  Being  brought  into  an  ante- 
chamber in  Holyroodhouse,  tlieir  friend  proceeded  to  inform  his  royal  highness 
of  their  arrival,  and  of  the  circumstances  under  which  they  approached  him ; 
when  Charles,  with  great  dignity,  refused  to  see  them  in  any  other  character 
than  as  avowed  adherents  of  his  cause.  When  Elcho  returned  with  this  in- 
telligence, the  earl  of  Buchan  took  his  leave ;  while  Sir  James,  a  man  greatly 
excelling  that  nobleman  in  intellect,  proceeded  to  offer  his  services  to  the 
young  chevalier.  He  was  fortunately  saved  from  the  ultimate  perils  of  the 
campaign,  by  being  immediately  despatclied  on  a  mission  to  the  French  court, 
where  he  was  at  tlie  time  of  the  battle  of  CuUoden.  The  penalty  of  his  rash- 
ness, was  an  exile  of  nearly  twenty  years,  being,  though  not  attainted,  among 
the  exceptions  from  the  act  of  indemnity. 

Till  the  year  1763,  vhen  George  III.  permitted  him  to  return  home.  Sir 
James  Steuart  resided  abroad  with  his  family,  employing  his  leisure  in  those 
studies  which  he  afterwards  embodied  in  his  works.  He  spent  the  greater  part 
of  the  period  of  his  exile  in  the  town  of  Angouleme,  where  he  became  inti- 
mately acquainted  with  the  French  finance  system,  through  a  body  of  counsel- 
lors of  the  parliament  of  Paris,  Mho  were  banished  to  that  toAvn  for  nearly  the 
space  of  two  j  ears.  Sir  James  also  spent  some  time  at  Frankfort,  at  Spa,  at 
Venice,  and  at  Padua.  AVhen  in  Germany,  he  and  his  lady  were  received 
with  extraordinary  marks  of  favour  at  the  courts  of  Wirtemberg,  Baden-Dour- 
lach,  and  Hohenzollern.  At  Venice,  in  175S,  he  and  lady  Frances  had  the 
good  fortune  to  form  a  friendship  with  the  celebrated  lady  Mary  Wortley 
Montagu,  who,  till  the  end  of  her  life,  corresponded  frequently  with  both, 
and  gave  them  and  their  son  many  proofs  of  her  affection  :  a  series  of  her 
ladyship's  letters  to  Sir  James  and  lady  Frances  ivere  printed  at  Greenock, 
under  the  care  of  the  late  Sir  James,  in  1818.  Though  exiled  from  Britain, 
on  account  of  disloyalty  to  the  Hanover  dynasty.  Sir  James  Steuart  never  en- 
tertained a  disloyal  feeling  towards    his  country.     Oa  the  contrary,  the  en- 


316  DUGALD  STEWAPcT. 


thusiasm  with  which  lie  rejoiced  in  the  successes  of  the  IJritish  rnns  during  the 
seven  years'  war,  led  to  his  falling  under  the  suspicion  of  the  French  court; 
and,  while  residing  at  Spa,  in  a  neutral  temtory,  a  large  body  of  troops  was 
sent  to  apprehend  him,  and  convey  him  to  prison  in  the  duchy  of  Luxemburg. 
It  was  not  for  many  months  that  he  succeeded  in  convincing  the  French 
government  of  its  error,  or  regained  his  liberty. 

The  first  work  published  by  Sir  James,  was  a  volume,  which  appeared  at 
Frankfort  sur  le  Main,  in  1758,  under  the  title  of  "  Apologie  du  Sentiment  dc 
Monsieur  le  Chevalier  Newton,  sur  I'ancienne  Chronologic  des  Grecs,  con- 
tenant  des  reponses  a  toutes  les  objections  qui  y  ont  ete  faites  jusqu'  a  presei;L" 
In  the  same  year,  while  settled  at  Tubingen,  in  Germany,  he  produced  his 
"Treatise  on  German  Coins,"  in  the  Gemian  language.  It  was  followed,  in 
1761,  by  **  A  Dissertation  on  the  Doctrine  and  Principles  of  Money,  as  applied 
to  the  German  Coin  ;"  and  in  the  same  year,  he  so  far  made  his  peace  with  the 
British  government,  as  to  obtain  a  cornetcy  in  the  Royal,  or  1st  regiment  of 
dragoons.  At  the  peace  of  Paris,  in  1763,  he  was  tacitly  permitted  to  return 
home,  and  resu^ie  possession  of  his  estates.  It  A\as  in  retirement  at  CoUness, 
that  he  probably  put  the  last  hand  to  his  "  Inquiry  into  the  Principles  of  Poli- 
tical Economy,"  which  was  published  in  1767,  in  two  volumes,  quarto,  IMessrs 
Miller  and  Cadell  gave  five  hundred  pounds  for  the  copyright  of  this  work,  the 
merits  of  which  were  at  the  time  a  subject  of  considerable  dispute.  It  has  at 
least  the  merit  of  having  been  the  first  considerable  work  on  this  subject  pub- 
lished in  Britain,  being  about  nine  years  antecedent  to  the  work  of  Dr  Smith. 
In  1709,  Sir  .Tames  published,  under  the  assumed  name  of  Eobert  Frame, 
"  Considerations  on  the  Interests  of  the  County  of  Lanark."  By  the  interest 
of  "his  friends,  he  now  obtained  a  full  pardon,  which  passed  the  great  seal  in 
1771  ;  and  in  the  year  following,  he  printed  *'  The  Principles  of  Money  ap- 
plied to  the  present  state  of  the  Coin  of  Bengal."  He  also  Avrote,  **  A  Plan 
for  introducing  an  uniformity  of  Weights  and  Measures,"  A\hich  was  published 
after  his  death.  He  likewise  published,  "  Observations  on  Bcattie's  Essay 
on  Truth;"  "  Critical  Remarks  on  the  Atheistical  Falsehoods  of  IMirabaud's 
System  of  Nature  ;"  and  **  A  Dissertation  concerning  the  IMotive  of  Obedience 
to  the  Law  of  God.-'  It  is  supposed  that  the  ardour  and  assiduity  with  which 
he  pursued  his  studies,  proved  detrimental  to  his  health.  An  inflammation, 
commencing  with  a  toe-nail  too  nearly  cut,  put  an  end  to  his  valuable  life,  on 
the  26th  of  November,  1780.  His  remains  were  interred  in  the  family  vault 
at  Cambusnethan  church,  and  a  monument  has  been  erected  to  his  memory  in 
Westminster  abbey. 

Sir  James  Steuart  was  a  man  of  extensive  and  varied  powers  of  mind; 
cheerful  and  animated  in  conversation  ;  amiable  in  all  the  domestic  relations  of 
life  ;  and,  unlike  several  other  eminent  men  of  that  age,  was  able  to  prosecute 
philosophical  inquiries,  without  abandoning  the  faith  of  a  Christian.  His 
works  were  published,  with  a  memoir,  by  his  son,  in  160G,  occupying  six 
volumes. 

STEWART,  DuoALD,  a  celebrated  metaphysical  writer,  was  the  only  son  who 
survived  the  age  of  infancy,  of  Dr  Matthew  Stewart,  professor  of  mathematics 
in  the  university  of  Edinburgh,  and  of  Marjory  Stewart,  daughter  of  Archibald 
Stewart,  Esq.,  writer  to  the  signet.  His  father,  of  whom  a  biographical  memoir 
follows  the  present,  is  well  known  to  the  scientific  world  as  a  geometrician  of 
eminence  and  originality.  His  mother  was  a  woman  remarkable  for  her  good 
sense,  and  for  great  sweetness  and  kindliness  of  disposition,  and  was  always  re- 
membered by  her  son  with  the  warmest  sentiments  of  filial  affection.' 

1  For  the  greater  part  of  the  present  article  we  are  indebted  to  tJie  Annual  Obituary;  tha 


Sir  H  Bsebnm  ■ 


(S/^L©     STlEW/\lRTc 


p.  R.  S.  l,C(RX)(XN"«:EDINBTm.GH>C. 


BiACKIB  8,  SOS,  SLASOOW:  EnUTBirRGE  iluautto . 


DUGALD   STEWART.  317 


The  object  of  this  brief  notice  was  born  in  the  college  of  Edinburgh,  on 
the  22nd  of  November,  1753,  and  his  health,  during  the  first  period  of  his 
life,  was  so  feeble  and  precarious,  that  it  was  with  more  than  the  ordinary  anxiety 
and  solicitude  of  parents  that  his  infancy  was  reared.  His  early  years  were 
spent  partly  in  the  house  at  that  time  attached  to  the  mathemati(;al  chair  of  the 
university,  and  partly  at  Catrine,  his  father's  property  in  Ayrshire,  to  which 
the  family  regularly  removed  every  summer,  when  the  academical  session  was 
concluded.  At  the  age  of  seven,  lie  was  sent  to  the  High  School,  where  he 
distinguished  himself  by  the  quickness  and  accuracy  of  his  apprehension,  and 
where  the  singular  felicity  and  spirit  with  which  he  caught  and  transfused  into 
his  own  language  the  ideas  of  the  classical  writers,  attracted  the  particular  remark 
of  his  instructors. 

Having  completed  the  cnstoniary  course  of  education  at  this  seminary,  he 
was  entered  as  a  student  at  the  college  of  Edinburgh.  Under  the  immediate 
instruction  of  such  a  mathematician  and  teacher  as  his  father,  it  may  readily  be 
supposed  that  he  made  early  proficiency  in  the  exact  sciences  ;  but  the  distin- 
guishing bent  of  his  philosophical  genius  recommended  him  in  a  still  more  par- 
ticular manner  to  the  notice  of  Dr  Stevenson,  then  professor  of  login,  and  of 
Dr  Adam  Ferguson,  who  filled  the  moral  philosophy  chair. 

In  order  to  prosecute  his  favourite  studies  under  the  most  favourable  circum- 
stances, he  proceeded,  at  the  commencement  of  the  session  of'1771,  to  the  uni- 
versity of  (ilasgow,  to  attend  the  lectures  of  Dr  Ileid,  who  was  then  in 
the  zenith  of  his  reputation.  Tlie  progress  which  he  here  made  in  his  meta- 
physical studies,  was  proportioned  to  the  ardour  with  which  he  devoted  himself 
to  the  subject ;  and,  not  content  with  listening  merely  to  the  instructions  of  his 
master,  or  with  the  speculations  of  his  leisure  hours,  he  composed  during  the 
session  that  admirable  Essay  on  Dreaming,  which  he  afterwards  published  in  the 
first  volume  of  the  "  Philosophy  of  the  Human  Mind." 

The  declining  state  of  his  father's  health  compelled  him,  in  the  autumn  of 
the  following  year,  before  he  had  reached  the  age  of  nineteen,  to  undertake 
the  task  of  teaching  the  mathematical  classes  in  the  Edinburgh  university. 
With  what  success  he  was  able  to  fulfill  this  duty,  was  sufficiently  evinced  by  the 
event ;  for,  witii  all  Dr  3Iatthew  Stewart's  well-merited  celebrity,  the  number  of 
students  considerably  increased  under  his  son.  As  soon  as  he  had  completed 
his  twenty-first  year,  he  was  appointed  assistant  and  successor  to  his  father,  and 
in  this  c«apacity  he  continued  to  conduct  the  mathematical  studies  in  the  uni- 
versity till  his  father's  death,  in  the  year  1785,  when  he  was  nominated  to  the 
vacant  chair. 

Although  this  continued,  however,  to  be  his  ostensible  situation  in  the 
university,  his  avocations  were  more  varied.  In  the  year  1778,  during  which 
Dr  Adam  Ferguson  accompanied  the  commissioners  to  America,  he  undertook  to 
supply  his  place  in  the  moral  philosophy  class ;  a  labour  that  was  the  more 
overwhelming,  as  he  had  for  the  first  time  given  notice,  a  short  time  before 
his  assistance  was  requested,  of  his  intention  to  add  a  course  of  lectures  on 
astronomy  to  the  two  classes  which  he  taught  as  professor  of  mathematics. 
Such  was  the  extraordinary  fertility  of  his  mind,  and  the  facility  with  which  it 
adapted  its  powers  to  such  inquiries,  that,  although  the  proposal  was  made  to 
him  and  accepted  on  Thursday,  he  commenced  the  course  of  metaphysics  the 
following  Monday,  and  continued,  during  the  whole  of  the  season,  to  think  out 
and  arrange  in  his  head  in  the  morning,  (while  walking  backwards  and  for- 
wards in  a  small  garden  attached  to  his  fhther's  house  in  the  college,)  the  matter 

source  to  which,  on  application  to  Mr  Stewart's  representatives,  we  were  referred  for  authen- 
tic information  respecting  their  distinguished  relative. 


'18  DUGALD  STEWART. 


of  the  lecture  of  the  day.  The  ideas  with  which  he  had  thus  stored  his  mind, 
he  poured  forth  extempore  in  the  course  of  the  forenoon,  with  an  eloquence 
and  a  felicity  of  illustration  surpassing  in  energy  and  vivacity  (as  those  who  have 
heard  him  have  remarked)  the  more  logical  and  better  digested  expositions  of 
his  philosophical  views,  which  he  used  to  deliver  in  his  maturer  years.  The 
difficulty  of  speaking  for  an  hour  extempore  every  day  on  a  new  subject  for  five 
or  six  months,  is  not  small  ;  but,  when  superadded  to  the  mental  exertion  of 
teaching  also  daily,  two  classes  of  mathematics,  and  of  delivering,  for  the  first 
time,  a  course  of  lectures  on  astronomy,  it  may  justly  be  considered  as  a  very 
singular  instance  of  intellectual  vigour.  To  this  season  he  always  referred  as 
the  most  laborious  of  his  life ;  and  such  was  the  exhaustion  of  the  body,  from 
the  intense  and  continued  stretch  of  the  mind,  that,  on  his  departure  for  Lon- 
don, at  the  close  of  the  academical  session,  it  was  necessary  to  lift  him  into  the 
carriage. 

In  the  year  17 SO,  he  began  to  receive  some  young  noblemen  and  gentlemen 
into  his  house  as  pupils,  under  his  immediate  superintendence,  among  whom  were 
to  be  numbered  the  late  lord  Belliaven,  the  late  marquis  of  Lothian,  Basil  lord 
Daer,"  the  late  lord  Powerscourt,  3Ir  Muir  3Iackenzie  of  Delvin,  and  the  late 
Mr  Henry  Glassford.  In  the  summer  of  17S3,  he  visited  the  continent  for  the 
first  time,  having  accompanied  the  late  marquis  of  Lothian  to  Paris ;  on  his  re- 
turn from  whence,  in  the  autumn  of  the  same  year,  he  married  Helen  Banna- 
tyne,  daughter  of  Neil  Bannatyne,  Esq.,  a  merchant  in  Glasgow. 

In  the  year  1785,  during  which  Ur  Matthew  Stewart's  death  occurred,  the 
health  of  Dr  Ferguson  rendered  it  expedient  for  him  to  discontinue  his  official 
Labours  in  the  university,  and  he  accordingly  elTected  an  exchange  of  offices 
with  IMr  Stewart,  who  was  transferred  to  the  class  of  moral  philosophy,  while 
Dr  Ferguson  retired  on  the  salary  of  mathematical  professor.  In  the  year 
1787,  Mr  Stewart  was  deprived  of  his  wife  by  death  ;  and,  the  following  sum- 
mer, he  again  visited  the  continent,  in  company  with  the  late  IMr  Ramsay  of 
Barnton. 

These  slight  indications  of  the  progress  of  the  ordinary  occurrences  of 
human  life,  must  suffice  to  convey  to  the  reader  an  idea  of  the  connexion  of 
events,  up  to  the  period  when  Mr  Stewart  entered  on  that  sphere  of  action  in 
which  he  laid  the  foundation  of  the  great  reputation  which  he  acquired  as  a 
moralist  and  a  metaphysician.  His  writings  are  before  the  world,  and  from 
them  posterity  may  be  safely  left  to  form  an  estimate  of  the  excellence  of  his 
stylo  of  composition — of  the  extent  and  variety  of  his  learning  and  scientific  at- 
tainments— of  the  singular  cultivation  and  refinement  of  his  mind — of  the 
purity  and  elegance  of  his  taste — of  his  warm  relish  for  moral  and  for  natural 
beauty — of  liis  enliglitened  benevolence  to  all  mankind,  and  of  the  generous 
ardour  with  which  he  devoted  himself  to  the  improvement  of  the  human 
species — of  all  of  which,  while  the  English  language  endures,  his  works  will 
continue  to  preserve  the  indelible  evidence.  But  of  one  part  of  his  fame  no 
memorial  will  remain  but  in  the  recollection  of  those  ^\ho  have  witnessed  his 
exertions.  As  a  public  speaker,  he  was  justly  entitled  to  rank  among  the  very 
first  of  his  day;  and,  had  an  adequate  sphere  been  afforded  for  the  display  of 
his  oratorical  powers,  his  merit  in  this  line  alone  would  have  sufficed  to  secure 
him  a  lasting  reputation.    Among  those  who  attracted  the  highest  admiration 

2  liams's  first  interview  with  I^Ir  Stewart,  in  the  presence  of  this  amiable  young  no- 
bleman, at  Calrine,  will  be  in  every  reader's  remembrance,  as  well  as  the  philosopher's 
attentions  to  the  poet  during  his  subsequent  residence  in  Eklinburgh.  Tlie  house  oc- 
cupied by  Mr  Stewart  at  Catrine  still  exists,  a  small  narrow  old  £islnoned  building,  detached 
from  the  village. 


DUGALD   STEWART.  319 


in  the  senate  and  at  the  bar,  there  were  not  a  few  who  could  bear  testimony 
to  his  extraordinary  eloqvience.  The  ease,  the  grace,  and  the  dignity  of  his 
action;  the  compass  and  harmony  of  his  voice,  its  flexibility  and  variety  of 
intonation ;  the  truth  with  which  its  modulation  i-esponded  to  the  impulse  of 
his  feelings,  and  the  sympathetic  emotions  of  his  audience ;  the  clear  and  per- 
spicuous arrangement  of  his  matter;  the  swelling  and  uninteiTupted  flow  of 
his  periods,  and  the  rich  stores  of  ornament  which  he  used  to  borrow  from 
the  literature  of  Greece  and  of  Rome,  of  France  and  of  England,  and  to  inter- 
weave with  his  spoken  thoughts  with  the  most  apposite  application,  were  per- 
fections not  possessed  in  a  superior  degree  by  any  of  the  most  celebrated  orators 
of  the  age.  His  own  opinions  were  maintained  without  any  overweening 
partiality ;  his  eloquence  came  so  warm  from  the  heart,  was  rendered  so  im- 
pressive by  the  evidence  which  it  bore  of  the  love  of  truth,  and  was  so  free 
from  all  controversial  acrimony,  that  what  has  been  remarked  of  the  purity 
of  purpose  which  inspired  the  speeches  of  Brutus,  might  justly  be  applied  to 
all  that  he  spoke  and  wrote;  for  he  seemed  only  to  wish,  without  further 
reference  to  others  than  a  candid  discrimination  of  their  errors  rendered  necessary, 
simply  and  ingenuously  to  disclose  to  the  world  the  conclusions  to  which  his 
reason  had  led  him:  "Non  malignitate  aut  invidia,  sed  simpliciter  et  ingenue, 
judicium  animi  sui  detexisse." 

In  1790,  after  being  three  years  a  widower,  he  married  Helen  D'Arcy 
Cranstoun,  a  daughter  of  the  honourable  Mr  George  Cranstoun,  a  union  to 
which  he  owed  much  of  the  subsequent  happiness  of  his  life.  About  this  time 
it  would  appear  to  have  been  that  he  first  began  to  arrange  some  of  his 
metaphysical  papers  with  a  view  to  publication.  At  what  period  he  deliberate- 
ly set  himself  to  think  systematically  on  these  subjects  is  uncertain.  That  his 
mind  had  been  habituated  to  such  reflections  from  a  very  early  period  is  suf- 
ficiently known.  He  frequently  alluded  to  the  speculations  that  occupied  his 
boyish,  and  even  his  infant  thoughts,  and  the  success  of  his  logical  and  metaphy- 
sical studies  at  Edinburgh,  and  the  Essay  on  Dreaming,  which  forms  the  fifth 
section  of  the  first  part  of  the  fifth  chapter  of  the  first  volume  of  the 
Philosophy  of  the  Human  Mind,  composed  while  a  student  at  the  college  of 
Glasgow  in  1772,  at  the  age  of  eighteen,  are  proofs  of  the  strong  natural  bias 
which  he  possessed  for  such  pursuits.  It  is  probable,  however,  that  he  did  not 
follow  out  the  inquiry  as  a  train  of  thought,  or  commit  many  of  his  ideas  to 
^vriting  before  his  appointment  in  1785,  to  the  professorship  of  moral  philoso- 
phy, gave  a  necessary  and  steady  direction  to  his  investigation  of  ilietaphysical 
truth.  In  the  year  1792,  he  first  appeared  before  the  public  as  an  author,  at 
which  time  the  first  volume  of  the  Philosophy  of  the  Human  Mind  was  given 
to  the  world.  While  engaged  in  this  work  he  had  contracted  the  obligation  of 
writing  the  life  of  Adam  Smith,  the  author  of  the  Wealth  of  Nations,  and  very 
soon  after  he  had  disembarrassed  himself  of  his  own  labours,  he  fulfilled  the 
task  which  he  had  undertaken  ;  the  biographical  memoir  of  this  eminent  man 
having  been  read  at  two  several  meetings  of  the  Royal  Society  of  Edinburgh, 
in  the  months  of  January  and  March,  1793.  In  the  cpurse  of  this  year  also,  he 
published  the  Outlines  of  Moral  Philosophy ;  a  work  which  he  used  as  a  text 
book,  and  which  contained  brief  notices,  for  the  use  of  his  students,  of  the  sub- 
jects which  formed  the  matter  of  his  academical  prelections.  In  March,  1796, 
he  read  before  the  Royal  Society  his  account  of  the  Life  and  Writings  of  Dr 
Robertson,  and  in  1802,  that  of  the  Life  and  Writings  of  Dr  Reid. 

By  these  publications  alone,  which  were  subsequently  combined  in 
one  volume,  quarto,  he  continued  to  be  known  as  an  author  till  the  appear- 
ance of  his  volume   of  Philosophical  Essays  in    1810;    a   work  to  Avhich  a 


320  DUGALD  STEWART. 


melancholy  interest  attaclies,  in  the  estimation  of  his  friends,  from  the  know- 
ledge that  it  was  in  the  devotion  of  his  mind  to  this  occupation  that  he  sought 
a  diversion  to  his  thoughts,  from  the  affliction  he  experienced  in  the  death  of 
his  second  and  youngest  son.  Although,  however,  the  fruits  of  his  studies  were 
not  given  to  the  world,  the  process  of  intellectual  exertion  was  unremitted. 
The  leading  branches  of  metaphysics  had  become  so  familiar  to  his  mind,  that 
the  lectures,  which  he  delivered,  very  generally  extempore,  and  ^\hich  varied 
more  or  less  in  the  language  and  matter  every  year,  seemed  to  cost  him 
little  effort,  and  he  was  thus  left  in  a  great  degi*ee  at  liberty  to  apply 
the  larger  part  of  his  day  to  the  prosecution  of  his  further  speculations. 
Although  he  had  read  more  than  most  of  those  who  are  considered  learned,  his 
life,  as  he  has  himself  somewhere  remarked,  was  spent  much  more  in  reflecting 
than  in  reading;  and  so  unceasing  was  the  activity  of  his  mind,  and  so  strong 
his  disposition  to  trace  all  subjects  of  speculation,  that  were  worthy  to  attract  his 
interest,  up  to  their  first  principles,  that  all  important  objects  and  occurrences 
furnished  fresh  matter  to  his  thoughts.  The  public  events  of  the  time  sug- 
gested many  of  his  inquiries  into  the  principles  of  political  economy  ;  his  re- 
flections on  his  occasional  tours  through  the  country,  many  of  his  speculations 
on  the  picturesque,  the  beautiful,  and  the  sublime  ;  and  the  study  of  the 
characters  of  his  friends  and  acquaintances,  and  of  remarkable  individuals  with 
whom  he  happened  to  be  thrown  into  contact,  many  of  his  most  profound  ol>> 
servations  on  the  sources  of  the  varieties  and  anomalies  of  human  nature. 

In  the  period  which  intervened  between  the  publication  of  his  first  volume  of 
the  Philosophy  of  the  Human  Mind,  and  the  appearance  of  his  Philosophical 
Essays,  he  produced  and  prepared  the  matter  of  all  his  other  writings,  with  the 
exception  of  his  Dissertation  on  the  Progress  of  Metaphysical  and  Ethical  Phi- 
losophy, prefixed  to  the  Supplement  of  the  Encyclopasdia  Britannica.  Inde- 
pendent of  the  prosecution  of  those  metaphysical  inquiries  which  constitute  the 
substance  of  his  second  and  third  volumes  of  the  Philosophy  of  the  Human 
Mind,  to  this  epoch  of  his  life  are  to  be  referred  the  speculations  in  which  he 
engaged  with  respect  to  the  science  of  political  economy,  the  principles  of  whicli 
he  first  embodied  in  a  course  of  lectures,  which,  in  the  year  1800,  he  added  as 
a  second  course  to  the  lectures  which  formed  the  immediate  subject  of  the  in- 
struction previously  delivered  in  the  university  from  the  moral  philosophy  chair. 
So  general  and  extensive  was  his  acquaintance  with  almost  every  department  of 
literature,  and  so  readily  did  he  arrange  his  ideas  on  any  subject,  with  a  view 
to  their  communication  to  others,  that  his  colleagues  frequently,  in  the  event 
of  illness  or  absence,  availed  themselves  of  his  assistance  in  the  instruction  of 
their  classes.  In  addition  to  his  own  academical  duties,  he  repeatedly  sujiplied 
the  place  of  Dr  John  Robison,  professor  of  natural  philosophy.  He  taught  for 
several  months  during  one  winter  the  Greek  classes  for  the  late  Mr  Dalzell : 
he  more  than  one  season  taught  the  mathematical  classes  for  Mr  Playfair :  he 
delivered  some  lectures  on  logic  during  an  illness  of  Dr  F"inlayson ;  and,  if  we 
mistake  not,  he  one  winter  lectured  for  some  time  on  belles  lettres  for  the  sue* 
cpssor  of  Dr  Blair. 

In  1796,  he  was  induced  once  more  to  open  his  house  for  the  reception  of 
pupils ;  and  in  this  capacity,  the  late  lord  Ashburton,  the  son  of  the  celebrated 
Mr  Dunning,  the  earl  of  Warwick,  the  earl  of  Dudley,  the  present  lord  Palmerston, 
and  his  brother  the  honourable  Mr  Temple,  were  placed  under  his  care.  Tho 
present  marquis  of  Lansdowne,  though  not  an  inmate  in  his  family,  was  resident 
at  this  time  in  Edinburgh,  and  a  frequent  guest  at  his  house,  and  for  him  he 
contracted  the  highest  esteem;  and  he  lived  to  see  him,  along  with  ttvo  of 
Lis  own  pupils,  cabinet  miuisterB  at  the  same  time.    Justly  conceiving  that  tho 


DUGALD   STEWART.  321 


formation  of  manners,  and  of  taste  in  conversation,  constituted  a  no  less  im- 
portant part  in  the  education  of  men  destined  to  mix  so  largely  in  the  world, 
than  their  graver  pursuits,  he  rendered  his  house  at  this  time  the  resort  of  all 
nho  were  most  distinguished  for  genius,  acquirement,  or  elegance  in  Edinburgh, 
and  of  all  the  foreigners  who  were  led  to  visit  the  capital  of  Scotland.  So  hap- 
pily did  he  succeed  in  assorting  his  guests,  so  Avell  did  he  combine  the  grave 
and  the  gay,  the  cheerfulness  of  youth  with  the  wisdom  of  age,  and  amusement 
with  the  weightier  topics  that  formed  the  subject  of  conversation  to  his  more 
learned  visitors,  that  his  evening  parties  possessed  a  charm  which  many  who 
frequented  them  have  since  confessed  they  have  sought  in  vain  in  more  splendid 
and  insipid  entertainments.  In  the  year  1806,  he  accompanied  his  friend  the 
earl  of  Lauderdale  on  his  mission  to  Paris  ;  and  he  had  thus  an  opportunity  not 
only  of  renewing  many  of  the  literary  intimacies  which  he  had  formed  in 
France  before  the  commencement  of  the  Revolution,  but  of  extending  his  ac- 
quaintance with  the  eminent  men  of  that  country,  with  many  of  whom  he  con- 
tinued to  maintain  a  correspondence  during  his  life. 

While  individuals  of  inferior  talents,  and  of  much  inferior  claims,  (lad  received 
the  most  substantial  rewards  for  their  services,  it  had  been  long  felt  that  a  phi- 
losopher like  Stewart,  who  derived  so  small  an  income  from  his  professional 
occupations,  was  both  unjustly  and  ungenerously  overlooked  by  his  country. 
During  the  continuance  of  3Ir  Pitt's  administration,  when  the  government  had  so 
much  to  do  for  those  who  were  immediately  attached  to  it,  it  was  hardly  per- 
haps to  be  expected  that  an  individual  who  owned  no  party  affection  to  it, 
should  have  participated  of  its  favours.  On  the  accession,  however,  of  the 
Whig  administration,  in  1806,  the  oversight  was  corrected,  though  not  in  tha 
manner  which  was  to  have  been  Avished.  A  sinecure  office,  that  of  gazette- 
writer  for  Scotland,  was  erected  for  the  express  purpose  of  rewarding  3Ir 
Stewart,  who  enjoyed  with  it  a  salary  of  f  600  a-year  for  the  remainder  of  his 
life.  The  peculiar  mode  in  which  the  reward  was  conveyed,  excited  much  no- 
tice at  the  time.  It  was  agreed  on  all  hands,  that  Mr  Stewart  merited  the 
highest  recompense  ;  but  it  was  felt  by  the  independent  men  of  all  parties,  that 
a  liberal  pension  from  the  crown  would  have  expressed  the  national  gratitude 
in  a  more  elegant  manner,  and  placed  Mr  Stewart's  name  more  conspicuously 
in  the  list  of  those  public  servants,  who  are  repaid,  in  the  evening  of  life,  for 
the  devotion  of  their  early  days  to  the  honour  and  interest  of  their  country. 

The  year  after  the  death  of  his  son,  he  relinquished  the  active  duties  of  his 
chair  in  the  university,  and  removed  to  Kinneil  House,  a  seat  belonging  to  the 
duke  of  Hamilton,  on  the  banks  of  the  Frith  of  Forth,  about  twenty  miles  from 
Edinburgh,  where  he  spent  the  remainder  of  his  days  in  philosophical  retire- 
ment.^ From  this  place  were  dated,  in  succession,  the  Philosophical  Essays  in 
1810;   the  second  volume  of  the  Philosophy  of  the  Human  Mind,  in  1813  ;* 

3  In  1812,  Mr  Stewart  read,  before  the  Royal  Society  of  Edinburgh,  a  highly  interesting 
memoir,  entitled,  "  Some  Account  of  a  Boy  bom  Deaf  and  Blind ;"  which  was  subsequently 
published  In  the  Transactions  of  that  learned  body.  The  boy  was  James  Mitchell,  the  son 
of  a  clergyman  in  the  north  of  Scotland;  and,  owing  to  his  unfortunate  defects,  his  knowledge 
of  external  objects  was  necessarily  conveyed  through  the  organs  of  touch,  taste,  and  smell, 
only.  Mr  Stewart  entertained  hopts  of  being  iible  to  ascertain,  from  this  case,  the  distiro- 
(ioii  between  the  original  and  acquired  perceptions  of  sight;  an  expectation,  however,  which, 
from  various  circumstances,  was  not  realized. 

*  He  retired  from  active  life,  upon  an  arrangement  with  the  scarcely  less  celebrated  Dr 
Thomas  Brown,  who  had  been  his  own  pupil,  who  now  agreed,  as  joint  professor  with  Mr 
Stewart,  to  perform  the  whole  duties  of  the  chair.  Mr  Stewart's  biographer  in  the  Edin- 
I>ur(rh  Encyclopa;dia,  gives  the  following  paragraph,  in  reference  to  this  connexion . — "Al- 
though it  w'as  on  Mr  Stewart's  recommendation  that  Dr  Brown  was  raistd  to  the  chair  of 
n'.oral  philosophy,  yet  the  appointment  did  not  prove  to  him  a  source  of  unmixed  satisfac- 
tion. The  fine  poetical  imagination  of  Dr  Bnnvi),  the  quickness  of  his  apprehension, and  the 
IV.  £  3 


322  DUGALD  STEWART. 


the  Preliminary  Dissertation  to  the  Encyclopaedia;  the  continuation  of  the 
second  part  of  the  Philosophy,  in  1827;  and,  finally,  in  1828,  the  third 
volume,  containing  the  Philosophy  of  tlie  Active  and  31oral  Powers  of  Man  ;  a 
work  which  he  completed  only  a  few  short  weeks  before  his  career  was  to  close 
for  ever.  Here  he  continued  to  be  visited  by  his  friends,  and  by  most 
foreigner  who  could  procure  an  introduction  to  his  acquaintance,  till  the 
month  of  January,  1822,  when  a  stroke  of  palsy,  wliich  nearly  deprived  him  of 
the  power  of  uttemnce,  in  a  great  measure  incapacitated  him  for  the  enjoy- 
ment of  any  other  society  than  that  of  a  few  intimate  friends,  in  whose  com- 
pany he  felt  no  constraint.  This  great  calamity,  which  bereaved  him  of  the 
faculty  of  speech,  of  the  power  of  exercise,  of  the  use  of  his  right  hand, — 
which  reduced  him  to  a  state  of  almost  infantile  dependence  on  those  around 
him,  and  subjected  him  ever  after  to  a  most  abstemious  regimen,  he  bore  with 
the  most  dignified  fortitude  and  tranquillity.  The  malady  which  broke  liis 
health  and  constitution  for  the  rest  of  liis  existence,  happily  impaired  neither 
any  of  the  faculties  of  his  mind,  nor  the  characteristic  vigour  and  activity  of  his 
understanding,  wliich  enabled  him  to  rise  superior  to  the  misfortune.  As  soon 
as  his  strength  was  sufiiciently  re-established,  he  continued  to  pursue  his  studies 
with  his  wonted  assiduity,  to  prepare  his  works  for  the  press  with  the  assistance 
of  his  daughter  as  an  amanuensis,  and  to  avail  himself  with  cheerful  and  una- 
bated relish  of  all  the  sources  of  gratification  which  it  was  still  within  his  power 
to  enjoy,  exhibiting,  among  some  of  the  heaviest  infirmities  incident  to  age,  an 
admirable  example  of  the  serene  sunset  of  a  well-spent  life  of  classical  elegance 
and  refinement,  so  beautifully  imagined  by  Cicero:  "  Quiete,  et  pure,  et  ele- 
ganter  actae  aetatis,  placida  ac  lenis  senectus." 

In  general  company,  his  manner  bordered  on  reserve  ;  but  it  was  the  C07ni~ 
late  condita  gravitas,  and  belonged  more  to  the  general  weight  and  authority 
of  his  character,  than  to  any  reluctance  to  take  his  share  in  the  cheerful  inter- 
course of  social  life.  He  was  ever  ready  to  acknowledge  with  a  smile  the 
happy  sallies  of  wit,  and  no  man  had  a  keener  sense  of  the  ludicrous,  or 
laughed  more  heartily  at  genuine  humour.  His  deportment  and  expression 
were  easy  and  unembarrassed,  dignified,  elegant,  and  graceful.  His  politeness 
was  equally  free  from  all  affectation,  and  from  all  premeditation.  It  was  the 
spontaneous  result  of  the  purity  of  his  own  taste,  and  of  a  heart  warm  with  all 
the  benevolent  affections,  and  was  characterized  by  a  truth  and  readiness  of 
tact  that  accommodated  his  conduct  with  undeviating  propriety  to  the  circum- 
stances of  the  present  moment,  and  to  the  relative  situation  of  those  to  whom 
he  addressed  himself.  From  an  early  period  of  life,  he  had  frequented  the 
best  society  both  in  France  and  in  this  country,  and  lie  had  in  a  peculiar  de- 

acuteness  and  ingenuity  of  liis  argument,  were  qualities  but  little  suited  to  that  patient  and 
continuous  reseaicli,  which  the  phenomena  of  the  mind  so  peculiar) \  demand.  IJe  accordin<'ly 
imposed  his  lectures  with  the  same  rapidity  that  he  would  have  done  a  poem,  and  chit^fly 
from  the  resources  of  his  own  highly  gitied,  but  excited  mind.  Difficulties  which  had  ap- 
palled the  stoutest  hearts,  }ieldcd  to  liis  bold  analysis;  and,  despising  the  formalities  of  a 
siege,  be  entered  the  temple  of  pneiimatology  by  storm.  Wlien  Mr  Ste\vart  was  apprized 
that  his  own  favourite  and  best  founded  opinions  were  controverted  from  the  very  chair 
which  he  had  srarccly  quitted;  that  the  doctrines  of  his  revered  friend  and  master,  Dr  Keid, 
were  assailed  with  severe,  and  not  very  respectful  animadversions ;  and  that  views  even  of  a 
doubtful  tendency  were  freely  expounded  by  his  ingenious  colleague,  his  feelings  were 
strongly  roused  ;  and,  though  they  were  long  repressed  by  the  peculiar  circumstances  of  his 
situaUon,  yet  he  has  given  them  full  expression,  in  a  note  in  the  third  volume  of  his  Ele- 
menU,  which  is  alike  remarkable  for  the  severity  and  delicacy  of  its  reproof." 

Jt  is  worthy  of  notice,  that  from  1810  to  1818,  when  Mr  Adam  Ferguson  died,  there  were 
ahve  three  professors  of  moral  philosophy,  who  had  been,  or  were  connected  with  the  Edin- 
burgh unirersity.  Upon  the  death  of  Dr  Brown,  in  1820,  Mr  Stewart  resigned  the  chair  in 
favour  of  the  late  Mr  Juhn  Wilson,  who  succeeded. 


DUGALD   STEWART.  323 


gree  the  air  of  good  companjr.  In  the  society  of  ladies  he  appeared  to  great 
advantage,  and  to  women  of  cultivated  understanding  his  conversation  was  par- 
ticularly acceptable  and  pleasing.  The  immense  range  of  his  erudition,  the  at- 
tention he  had  bestowed  on  almost  every  branch  of  pliilosophy,  his  extensive 
acquaintance  with  every  department  of  elegant  literature,  ancient  or  modern, 
and  the  fund  of  anecdote  and  information  which  he  had  collected  in  the  course 
of  his  intercoui-se  witli  the  world,  with  respect  to  almost  all  tlie  eminent  men  of 
the  day,  either  in  tliis  country  or  in  France,  enabled  him  to  find  suitable  sub- 
jects for  the  entertainment  of  the  great  variety  of  visitors  of  all  descriptions, 
who  at  one  period  frequented  his  house.  In  his  domestic  circle,  his  character 
appeared  in  its  most  amiable  light,  and  by  his  family  he  was  beloved  and  vene- 
rated almost  to  adoration.  So  uniform  and  sustained  was  the  tone  of  his  man- 
ners, and  so  completely  was  it  the  result  of  the  habitual  influence  of  the  natural 
elegance  and  elevation  of  his  mind  on  his  external  demeanour,  that  when  alone 
Viitli  his  wife  and  children,  it  hardly  differed  by  a  shade  from  that  which  he 
maintained  in  the  company  of  strangers;  for,  although  his  fondness,  and  fami- 
liarity, and  playfulness,  were  alike  engaging  and  unrestrained,  he  never  lost 
anything  either  of  liis  grace  or  his  dignity:  "  Nee  vero  ille  in  luce  modo,  atque 
in  oculis  civium,  magnus,  sed  intus  domique  praestantior."  Asa  writer  of  the 
English  language, — as  a  public  speaker, — as  an  original,  a  profound,  and  a 
cautious  thinker, — as  an  expounder  of  truth,  —  as  an  instructor  of  youth, — as 
an  elegant  scholar, — as  an  accomplished  gentleman; — in  the  exemplary  dis- 
charge of  the  social  duties, — in  uncompromising  consistency  and  rectitude  of 
principle, — in  unbending  independence, — in  the  warmth  and  tenderness  of  hi? 
domestic  affections, — in  sincere  and  unostentatious  piety, — in  the  purity  and 
innocence  of  his  life,  few  have  excelled  him :  and,  take  him  for  all  in  all,  it 
will  be  difficult  to  find  a  man,  who,  to  so  many  of  the  perfections,  has  added  so 
few  of  the  imperfections,  of  human  nature.  "  Mihi  quideni  quanquam  est 
subito  ereptus,  vivit  tamen,  semperque  vivet ;  virtuteui  enim  amavi  illius  viri, 
quae  extincta  non  est ;  nee  mihi  soli  versatur  ante  oculos,  qui  illam  semper  in 
manibus  habui,  sed  etiam  posteris  erit  clara  et  insignis." 

3Ir  Stewart's  death  occurred  on  the  11th  of  June,  1828,  at  No.  5,  Ainslie 
Place,  Edinburgh,  where  he  had  been  for  a  few  days  on  a  visit. 

The  remains  of  this  distinguished  philosopher  were  interred  in  the  Canon- 
gate  churchyard,  near  the  honoured  remains  of  Dr  Adam  Smith.  At  a  meeting 
of  his  friends  and  admirers,  which  soon  after  took  place,  a  subscription  was  en- 
tered into  for  erecting  a  monument,  in  some  conspicuous  situation,  to  his  me- 
mory ;  and  a  large  sum  being  immediately  collected,  the  work  was  soon  after 
commenced,  under  the  superintendence  of  IMr  Play  fair,  architect.  Blr  Stewart's 
monument  is  an  elegant  Grecian  temple,  with  a  simple  cinerary  urn  in  the 
centre,  and  occupies  a  most  fortunate  situation  on  the  south-west  shoulder  of  the 
Calton  hill,  near  the  Observatory. 

Mr  Stewart  left  behind  him  a  widow  and  two  children,  a  son  and  daugh- 
ter :  the  former  of  whom,  lieutenant-colonel  Matthew  Stewart,  has  published 
an  able  pamphlet  on  Indian  affairs.  With  appropriate  generosity,  the  govern- 
ment allowed  the  sinecure  enjoyed  by  IMr  Stewart,  to  descend  to  his  family. 

The  subject  of  this  memoir  was  of  the  middle  size,  and  particularly  distin- 
guished by  an  expression  of  benevolence  and  intelligence,  which  Sir  Henry 
liaeburn  has  well  preserved  in  his  portrait  of  him,  painted  for  lord  Woodhouse- 
lee,  before  he  had  reached  his  55lh  year.  IMr  Stewart  had  the  remarkable  pecu- 
liarity of  vision,  which  made  him  insensible  to  tlie  less  refrangible  colours  of 
the  spectrum.  This  aff'ection  of  the  eye  was  long  unknown  both  to  himself  and 
his  friends,  and  was  discovered  from  the  accidental  circumstance  of  one  of  his 


324  DR.  MATTHEW  STEWART. 

family  directing  his  attention  to  the  beauty  of  the  fruit  of  the  Siberian  cvab, 
when  he  found  himself  unable  to  distinguish  the  scarlet  fruit  from  the  green 
leaves  of  the  tree.  One  of  the  rules  by  which  he  guided  himself  in  literary 
matters,  was  never  to  publish  anything  anonymously  :  a  rule  which,  if  gene- 
rally observed,  would  pi'obably  save  the  world  the  reading  of  much  inferior 
and  much  vicious  composition. 

STEWART,  (Dr)  Matthew,  an  eminent  geometrician,  and  professor  of 
mathematics  in  the  university  of  Edinburgh,  was  born  at  Hotlisay,  in  the 
island  of  Bute, — of  which  his  father,  the  reverend  Blr  Diigald  Stewart,  was 
minister, — in  the  year  1717.^  On  finishing  his  course  at  the  grammar  school, 
he  was  entered  at  the  university  of  Glasgow  in  1731.  At  college,  he  became 
acquainted  with  Dr  Hutcheson  and  Dr  Simson.  In  the  estimation  of  the  lat- 
ter, he  rose,  in  after  life,  from  the  rank  of  a  favourite  pupil,  to  that  of  an  es- 
teemed friend.  They  were  long  intimate  personal  companions,  admired  the 
same  branches  of  their  common  science,  and  exhibited  in  their  works  symptoms 
of  mutual  assistance.  It  is  said,  indeed,  that  we  are  indebted  to  the  friendship 
and  acuteness  of  Simson,  for  the  suggestion  of  mathematics  as  a  study  suited  to 
the  genius  of  Stewart.  At  all  events,  there  is  every  reason  to  sujjpose  that  the 
love  of  the  latter  for  the  geometry  of  the  ancients,  was  derived  from  his  inter- 
course with  his  instructor.  While  attending  tlie  lectures  of  Dr  Gregory  in 
Edinburgh,  in  1741,  the  attractions  of  the  new  analysis  wei'e  not  sufficient  to 
make  him  neglect  his  favourite  study  ;  and  he  conmiunicated  to  his  friend  his 
discoveries  in  geometry,  receiving  similar  communications  in  return.  W'liile 
Simson  was  conducting  the  laborious  investigations,  which  enabled  him  to  re- 
vive the  porisms  of  the  ancients,  Stewart  received  the  progressive  benefit  of  the 
discoveries,  long  before  they  were  communicated  to  the  world  ;  and  while  he 
probably  assisted  his  friend  in  his  investigations,  he  was  enabled,  by  investi- 
gating the  subject  in  a  new  direction,  to  publish,  in  1746,  his  celebrated  series 
of  propositions,  termed  "  General  Theorems."  **  They  are,"  says  the  author's 
biographer,  "  among  the  most  beautiful,  as  well  as  most  general  propositions 
known  in  the  Avhole  compass  of  geometry,  .ind  are  perhaps  only  equalled  by 
the  remarkable  locus  to  the  circle  in  the  second  book  of  ApoUonius,  or  by  the 
celebrated  theorems  of  Mr  Cotes.  The  first  demonstration  of  any  considerable 
number  of  them,  is  that  which  was  lately  communicated  to  this  society^  [the 
Royal  Society  of  Edinburgh];  though  I  believe  there  are  few  mathematicians, 
into  whose  hands  they  have  fallen,  whose  skill  they  have  not  often  exercised. 
The  unity  which  prevails  among  them,  is  a  proof  that  a  single,  though  ex- 
tensive view,  guided  Mr  Stewart  in  the  discovery  of  them  all." 

Meanwhile,  Mr  Stewart  had  become  a  licentiate  of  the  church  of  Scotland  ; 
and  through  the  joint  influence  of  the  earl  of  Bute  and  the  duke  of  Argyle, 
had  obtained  the  living  of  Eoseneath.  The  **  General  Theorems"  made  their 
appearance  at  a  time  when  they  were  calculated  to  have  a  considerable  eflect  on 
the  prospects  of  the  author.  In  the  summer  of  174G,  the  mathematical  chair 
of  Edinburgh  became  vacant,  by  the  death  of  Mr  Maclaurin.  Stewart  was 
not  at  that  period  known  to  the  learned  world ;  and  Mr  Stirling,  a  gentleman 
of  well  known  reputation,  was  requested  to  become  the  new  professor.  This 
gentleman  declined  the  situation  ;  and,  towards  the  end  of  the  year,  when  the 
patrons  of  the  university  were  looking  for  another  candidate  worthy  of  the  im- 
portant duty,  Stewart's  book  was  published.  The  author  was  readily  offered 
the  situation,  which  he  accepted.  "  The  duties  of  this  oflice,"  says  his  bio- 
grapher, "  gave  a  turn  somewhat  different  to  liis  mathematical  pursuits,  and  led 

'  Memoir  by  professor  Plajfair,  Trans.  R.  Soc.  Edin.  i.  57. 
'  Communicated  by  Dr  Small. 


ER.  MATTHEW  STEWART.  325 

hhu  to  think  of  the  most  simple  and  elegant  means  of  explaining  those  difficult 
propositions,  which  were  hitherto  only  accessible  to  men  deeply  versed  in  the 
modern  analysis.  In  doing  this,  he  was  pursuing  the  object  which,  of  all 
others,  he  most  ardently  wished  to  attain,  viz.,  the  application  of  geometry  to 
such  problems  as  the  algebraic  calculus  alone  had  been  thought  able  to  resolve. 
His  solution  of  Kepler's  problem  was  the  first  specimen  of  tliis  kind  whicli  he 
gave  to  the  world ;  and  it  was  impossible  to  have  produced  one  more  to  the 
credit  of  the  method  which  he  followed,  or  of  the  abilities  with  which  he  ap- 
plied it."  Tills  solution  appeared  in  the  second  volume  of  the  Essays  of  the 
Philosophical  Society  of  Edinburgh,  for  the  year  1756.  To  quote  again  the 
words  of  the  eminent  biographer  :  "  Whoever  examines  it,  will  be  astonished 
to  find  a  problem  brought  down  to  the  level  of  elementary  geometry,  which 
had  hitherto  seemed  to  require  the  finding  of  fluents,  and  the  revei'sion  of 
series ;  he  will  acknowledge  the  reasonableness  of  whatever  confidence  Mr 
Stewart  may  be  hereafter  found  to  place  in  those  simple  methods  of  investiga- 
tion, which  he  could  conduct  with  so  much  ingenuity  and  success  ;  and  will  be 
convinced,  that  the  solution  of  a  problem,  though  the  most  elementary,  may  be 
the  least  obvious  ;  and  though  the  easiest  to  be  understood,  may  be  the  most 
difiicult  to  be  discovered."  In  pursuance  of  his  principle  of  introducing  the 
forms  of  ancient  demonstration,  as  applicable  to  those  more  complicated  parts 
of  the  science,  called  the  mixed  mathematics,  for  which  they  had  been  con- 
sidered unqualified,  he  published,  in  1761,  his  "  Tracts,  Physical  and  Mathe- 
matical, containing  an  Explanation  of  several  important  Points  in  Physical  As- 
tronomy ;  and  a  New  Method  of  ascertaining  the  Sun's  distance  from  the 
Earth,  by  the  Theory  of  Gravitation."  "  In  the  first  of  these,"  says  his  bio- 
grapher, "  Mr  Stewart  lays  down  the  doctrine  of  centripetal  forces,  in  a  series 
of  propositions,  demonstrated,  (if  we  admit  the  quadrature  of  curves,)  with  the 
utmost  rigour,  and  requiring  no  previous  knowledge  of  the  mathematics,  except 
the  elements  of  plain  geometry,  and  conic  sections.  The  good  order  of  these 
propositions,  added  to  the  clearness  and  simplicity  of  the  demonstrations,  ren- 
ders tills  tract  the  best  elementary  treatise  of  physical  astronomy  that  is  any- 
where to  be  found."  It  was  the  purpose  of  the  three  remaining  tracts  to  deter- 
mine the  eftect  of  those  forces  which  disturb  the  motions  of  a  secondary  planet ; 
and,  in  particular,  to  determine  the  distance  of  the  sun,  from  its  eftect  in  dis- 
turbing the  motions  of  the  moon.  Owing  to  the  geometrical  metliod  which  he 
adopted,  and  likewise  to  the  extreme  distance  of  the  sun,  which  makes  all  the 
disturbances  he  produces  on  the  motion  of  the  moon,  very  near  to  that  point  at 
which  increase  of  distance  to  infinity  would  not  change  their  force,  he  could  only 
proceed  on  a  system  of  approximation ;  and  in  applying  the  principles  of  his  plan 
to  a  practical  calculation  of  the  sun's  distance,  which  he  published  in  1763, 
entitled,  "  Distance  of  the  Sun  from  the  Earth,  determined  by  the  Theory  of 
Gravitation,  together  with  several  other  things  relative  to  the  same  subject,"  he 
was  found  to  have  made  a  very  considerable  error.  He  found  the  distance  of  the* 
sun  to  be  equal  to  29,875  semi-diameters  of  the  earth,  or  about  118,541,423 
English  miles.  About  five  years-  afterwards,  there  appeared  a  pamphlet  from 
the  pen  of  Mr  Dawson  of  Sudbury,  cjilied  "  Four  Propositions,  intended  to 
point  out  certain  Errors  in  Dr  Stewart's  Investigation,  which  had  given  a  result 
much  greater  than  the  truth."  This  was  followed  by  a  second  attack  from  JMr 
Lauden,  who,  like  Price  in  arithmetic,  accomplished  the  difficult  task  of  be- 
coming an  enthusiast  in  mathematics,  and,  by  means  of  exagg'erating  errors, 
and  commenting  on  their  atrocity,  astonished  the  world  with  a  specimen  of  con- 
troversial mathematics.  The  biographer  thus  slates  the  sources  of  the  mistakes 
which  called  forth  these  animadversions:  *'  x\s  in  arithmetic,  we  neglect  those 


326  MAJOR-GENERAL  DAVID   STEWART. 

Email  fractions  which,  tiiougli  of  inconsiderable  amount,  would  exceedingly  em- 
barrass our  ccinpulations  ;  so,  in  geometry,  it  is  sometimes  necessary  to  reject 
those  small  quantities,  A\hich  would  add  little  to  the  accuracy,  and  much  to 
llie  ditficulty  of  the  investigation.  In  both  cases,  however,  the  same  thing  may 
happen  ;  though  each  quantity  thrown  out  may  be  inconsiderable  in  itself,  yet 
the  amount  of  them  altogether,  and  their  effect  on  the  last  result,  may  be 
greater  than  is  apprehended,  Tiiis  was  just  what  had  happened  in  the  present 
case.  The  problem  to  be  resolved,  is,  in  its  nature,  so  complex,  and  involves 
the  estimation  of  so  many  causes,  that,  to  avoid  inextricable  difficulties,  it  is 
necessary  to  reject  some  quantities,  as  being  small  in  comparison  of  the  rest, 
and  tc  reason  as  if  they  had  no  existence."  Soon  after  the  publication  of  this 
essay,  Dr  Stewart's  health  began  to  decline;  and  in  1772,  he  retired  to  the 
country,  leaving  the  care  of  his  class  to  bis  eminent  son,  Dugald  Stewart,  who 
Avas  elected  joint  professor  with  him  in  1775.  He  died  on  the  23d  January^ 
1785,  at  the  age  of  sixty-eight.  Besides  the  works  above  mentioned,  he  pub- 
lished "  Propositiones  Geometricis  more  veterum  Demonstrate  ad  Geometriara 
Antiquam  lUustrandani  et  Promovendam  IdonetE,"  1763. 

STEWART,  (JIajor-gk-neral,)  Ua\id,  author  of  the  well-known  "  Sketches" 
of  the  Highlanders  and  Highland  Regiments,  was  tlie  second  sou  of  Robert 
Stewart,  Esq.  of  Garth,  ia  Perllishire,  and  was  born  in  the  year  1772.  In  the 
seventeenth  year  of  his  age,  he  entered  the  42nd  regiment  as  an  ensign,  and 
soon  became  distinguished  for  that  steadiness  and  firmness  of  conduct,  joined 
to  benignity  of  nature  and  amenity  cf  manners,  which  marked  him  through 
life.  He  served  in  the  campaigns  of  the  duke  of  York  in  Flanders,  and  was 
present  at  the  siege  of  Nieuport  and  the  defence  of  Nimeguen.  In  1796,  he 
accompanied  the  regiment,  which  formed  part  of  the  expedition  under 
Sir  Ralph  Abercromby,  to  the  West  Indies,  and  was  for  several  years  actively 
employed  in  a  variety  of  operations  against  tlie  enemy's  settlements  in  that 
quarter  of  the  world  ;  particularly  in  the  capture  of  St  Lucia,  and  tlie  hai-assing 
and  desperate  contest  which  was  carried  on  with  the  Caribbs  in  St  Vincent  and 
other  islands.  In  the  landing  near  Pigeon  hland,  he  was  among  the  first  who 
jumped  ashore,  under  a  heavy  fire  of  round  and  grape  shot  from  a  battery  so 
posted  as  almost  to  sweep  the  beach.  "  A  cannon-ball,"  says  he,  in  a  letter 
addressed  to  Sir  John  Sinclair,  **  pnsscd  lord  Hopetoun's  left  shoulder,  and  over 
my  head.  He  observed  that  a  miss  was  as  good  as  a  mile,  to  which  I 
cordially  agreed;  and  added,  that  it  was  fortunate  for  me  that  I  was  only  five 
feet  six  inches ;  as  if  1  were,  like  him,  six  feet  five  inches,  I  would  have  been 
a  head  shorter."  In  the  year  just  mentioned,  he  was  promoted  to  the  rank  of 
captain-lieutenant,  and,  after  serving  in  the  West  Indies  for  a  year  and  a  half, 
lie  returned  to  England,  but  not  to  enjoy  repose,  for  he  was  almost  immediately 
ordered  to  join  the  head-quarters  of  the  regiment  at  Gibraltar,  and  the  follow- 
ing year  accompanied  it,  when  ordered  to  assist  in  the  expedition  against  the 
jJand  of  ^Minorca.  He  was  afterwards  taken  prisoner  at  sea,  and  detained  for 
five  months  in  Spain,  when  he  had  the  fortune  to  be  exchanged. 

At  the  close  of  1800,  he  was  promoted  to  the  rank  of  captain  ;  a  step  which 
like  all  others  he  subsequently  obtained,  was  given  him  for  his  services  alone ; 
and,  in  1601,  his  regiment  received  orders  to  join  Sir  Ralph  Abercromby,  iu 
the  memorable  expedition  to  Egypt.  At  the  landing  effected  in  the  bay 
of  Aboukir,  in  the  face  of  the  enemy,  on  the  morning  of  the  8th  of  March, 
1801,  captain  Stewart  was  one  of  the  first  to  leap  on  shore  from  the  boaU; 
and  when  tiie  four  regiments  destined  for  the  attack  of  the  enemy's  position  on 
the  fand  hills — tlie  40lh,  23rd,  2Sth,  and  '12nd — had  formed,  and  received  or- 
ders  to  charge  up  the  hill  and  dislodge  the  enemy  at  the  point  of  the  bayonet, 


Sor  J.  'Wstson.  Gord 


OF    GARTH. 


BLACKTE  &  SON.  GLASGOW;  EDINBTJRGIi  ffc  LO'NDON 


MAJOR-GENERAL  DAVID   STEWART.  32/ 

the  subject  of  this  memoir,  by  his  gallant  bearing,  and  knowledge  of  the 
capabilities  of  liis  countrymen,  when  properly  commanded,  contributed  essen- 
tially to  the  brilliant  success  -which  almost  immediately  crowned  this  daring 
operation.  In  the  celebrated  action  of  the  21st,  when  the  British  army  over- 
threw the  French,  but  with  the  loss  of  their  commander-in-chief,  the  services  of 
the  42nd  were  such  as  to  secure  for  them  undying  fame.  On  this  occasion, 
captnin  Stewart,  whose  personal  exertions  had  been  conspicuous  in  inspiring  the 
men  with  a  determination  to  conquer  or  perish,  received  a  severe  wound,  which 
prevented  his  taking  almost  any  part  in  the  subsequent  operations  of  the  cam- 
paign. 

Few  officei's  have  ever  possessed  so  powerful  a  command  over  the  energies  of 
their  men  as  the  subject  of  these  pages.  He  had  studied  the  Highland 
character  thoroughly  ;  had  made  himself  the  brother  and  confident  of  the  men 
under  him  ;  and  could,  with  an  art  approaching  to  that  of  the  poet,  awaken 
those  associations  in  their  bosoms  which  were  calculated  to  elevate  and  nerve 
their  minds  for  the  perilous  tasks  imposed  upon  them.  The  Highland  soldier 
is  not  a  mere  mercenary  :  he  acts  under  impulses  of  an  abstract  kind,  which 
none  but  one  perfectly  skilled  in  his  character,  and  who  has  local  and 
family  influences  over  him,  can  take  full  advantage  of.  Tiie  usual  principles 
of  military  subordination  fail  in  his  case  ;  while  he  will  more  than  obey,  if  that 
be  possible,  the  officer  who  possesses  the  influences  alluded  to,  and  will  use  them  in 
a  kind  and  brotherly  spirit.  Captain  Stewart  appears  to  have  enjoyed  and  used 
these  advantages  in  a  remarkable  degree,  and  to  have  possessed  not  only  the  af- 
fections of  his  men,  but  of  all  connected  with  them  in  their  own  country. 
Hence,  when  he  had  to  recruit  in  1 804,  for  a  majority,  the  stated  number  of 
men,  one  hundred  and  twenty-five,  came  to  his  quarters  at  Drumcharry  House, 
in  less  tlian  three  weeks,  after  which  between  thirty  and  forty  arrived  too  late 
for  admission  into  the  corps,  whose  disappointment  and  vexation  at  finding  they 
could  not  serve  under  captain  Stewart,  no  language  could  describe.  With  this 
contingent  he  entered  the  78th,  Avith  the  rank  of  major,  and  in  1805,  trained 
his  men  at  Hythe,  under  the  immediate  direction  of  Sir  John  Moore.  In  June 
that  year,  he  was  selected  with  four  other  officers  to  join  the  first  battalion  in 
India  ;  but  his  parting  with  his  men  was  accompanied  Avith  such  poignant  regret, 
and  so  many  marks  of  reluctance  on  their  part,  that  general  Moore  reported 
the  case  to  the  commander-in-chief,  who,  sensible  of  the  ralue  of  a  mutual 
«8teem  existing  between  men  and  officers,  countermanded  his  removal. 
In  September,  he  accompanied  his  regiment  to  Gibraltar,  where  it  continued 
to  perform  gai-rison  duty  until  the  month  of  IMay,  1806,  when  it  embarked  for 
Sicily,  to  join  in  the  descent  Avhich  general  Sir  John  Stuait  was  then 
meditating  on  Calabria.  ]Major  Stewart  accompanied  the  battalion  on  this  oc- 
casion, and  was  present  at  the  battle  of  Maida,  fought  on  the  4th  of  July,  1 806, 
where  he  was  again  severely  wounded.  Being  obliged  to  return  to  Britain  for 
his  health,  he  was,  in  April,  1808,  promoted  to  the  rank  of  lieutenant-colonel, 
with  a  regimental  appointment  to  the  3rd  West  India  Rangers,  then  iu 
Trinidad.  But  the  severity  of  the  wounds  he  had  received,  and  the  effects  of 
the  hard  service  he  had  encountered  in  various  parts  of  the  world,  ren- 
dered it  impossible  for  him  to  avail  himself  of  his  good  fortune,  and  he 
was  obliged  to  retire  upon  half-pay  at  a  period  wlien,  had  he  been  able  to 
keep  the  field,  he  would  soon  have  found  further  promotion  or  a  soldier's  grave. 
Notwithstanding  this  circumstance,  he  was,  in  1814,  promoted  to  the  rank  of 
colonel. 

Colonel  Stewart  now  for  several  years  employed  his  leisure  in  the  composi- 
tion of  his  work  on  the  Highlanders,  which  appeared  in  tlie  year  1822,  in  tAvo 


328  EDMUND  STONE. 


volumes,  8vcl*  The  earlier  part  of  this  work,  which  enters  minutely  into  the 
character  of  the  Highlanders,  and  embodies  a  great  quantity  of  original  aneo 
dote  and  observation,  is  perhaps  the  most  generally  interesting,  though  it  does 
not  aspire  to  the  important  quality  of  historical  accuracy :  the  most  truly  valua- 
ble part  of  the  book  is  that  which  details  the  services  of  the  regiments  which 
have  been  at  various  times  raised  in  the  Highlands  ;  a  body  of  soldiers  gene- 
rally allowed  to  have  surpassed  every  other  part  of  the  British  army,  of  the  same 
extent  in  numbers,  at  once  in  steady  moral  conduct  and  in  military  glory. 
The  work  attained  a  popularity  proportioned  to  its  high  merits,  and  will  ever  re- 
main as  a  memorial  of  its  author,  endearing  his  name  to  tlie  bosoms  of  his 
countrymen. 

A  few  months  after  the  publication  of  his  book,  colonel  Stewart  succeeded 
to  his  paternal  estate,  in  consequence  of  the  deaths  of  his  father  and  elder 
brother,  which  occurred  in  rapid  succession.  He  is  understood  to  liave 
employed  part  of  the  year  1823,  in  collecting  materials  for  a  history  of  the 
Rebellion  of  1745,  a  desideratum  in  our  literature  which  no  hand  was  so  well 
qualified  to  supply  ;  but,  finding  insuperable  difficulties  in  the  execution  of  the 
task,  he  was  reluctantly  obliged  to  abandon  it.  In  1825,  he  was  promoted  to 
the  rank  of  major  general,  and  he  was  soon  after  appointed  governor  of  the 
island  of  St  Lucia.  He  proceeded  to  undertake  this  duty,  with  high  hopes  on 
his  own  part,  but  the  regrets  and  fears  of  his  friends.  Unfortunately,  their 
anticipations  proved  true.  General  Stewart  died  of  fever,  on  the  18th  of 
December,  1829,  in  the  midst  of  many  improvements  which  his  active  mind  had 
originated  in  the  island,  and  which,  had  he  lived  to  complete  them,  would  have 
probably  redounded  to  his  honour  as  much  as  any  transaction  in  his  useful  and 
well-spent  life. 

General  Stewart  was  of  the  middle  stature,  but  originally  of  a  robust  frame, 
which  was  latterly  shattered  considerably  by  wounds.  His  features,  which 
spoke  his  character,  have  been  commemorated  in  a  spirited  engi-aving,  represent- 
ing him  in  the  Highland  dress.  Few  individuals  in  recent  times  have  secured 
so  large  a  share  of  the  aflections  of  all  classes  of  the  people  of  Scotland,  as 
David  Stewart  of  Garth. 

STONE,  Edmund,  an  ingenious  self-taught  mathematician,  of  whom  nothing 
is  known,  except  from  a  letter  written  by  the  chevalier  Eamsay  to  father  Castel, 
published  in  the  Memoirs  de  Irevoux.  It  there  appears  that  Stone  was  the 
son  of  a  gardener  in  the  employment  of  John,  duke  of  Argyle,  at  Inverary,  in 
the  early  part  of  the  eighteenth  century.  **  He  attained  the  age  of  eight  years 
before  he  learnt  to  read  ;  but,  a  servant  having  t.iught  him  the  letters  of  the 
alphabet,  he  soon  made  a  rapid  progress  with  very  little  assistance.  He  ap- 
plied to  the  mathematics ;  and,  notwithstanding  the  peculiar  difficulties  of  his 
situation,  attained  a  knowledge  of  the  most  sublime  geometry  and  analysis, 
without  a  master,  and  without  any  other  guide,  it  is  said,  than  his  own  genius. 
At  the  age  of  eighteen,  he  had  advanced  thus  far,  when  his  abilities  and  the  ex- 
tent of  his  acquirements  were  discovered  by  the  following  accident.  The  duke 
of  Argyle,  who  to  his  military  talents  united  a  general  knowledge  of  every 
science  that  can  adorn  the  mind  of  a  great  man,  walking  one  day  in  his  gar- 
den, saw  lying  upon  the  grass  a  Latin  copy  of  Newton's  Principia.  Having 
called  some  one  to  carry  it  back  to  his  library,  the  young  gardener  told  him 
that  it  belonged  to  himself.  The  duke  was  surprised,  and  asked  him  Avhether 
he  were  sufficiently  acquainted  with  Latin  and  geometry  to  understand  New- 
ton.    Stone  replied,  with  an  air  of  simplicity,  that  he  knew  a  little  of  both. 

1  It  was  entitled  "Sketches  of  the  Cliarncter,  Manners,  and  Present  State  of  the  High- 
landers of  Scotland,  with  details  of  the  Militaiy  services  of  the  Highland  ilegimenU." 


•^'ILLTAM  STRAHAN.  329 


Tlie  duke  then  entered  into  conversation  with  the  young  mathematician, 
asked  him  several  questions,  and  was  astonished  at  the  force  and  accuracy  of 
his  answers.  The  duke's  curiosity  being  redoubled,  he  sat  down  on  a  bank, 
and  requested  to  know  by  what  means  he  acquired  such  knowledge.  *  I  first 
learnt  to  read,'  said  Stone  :  *  the  masons  were  then  at  work  upon  your  house  : 
I  went  near  tliem  one  day,  and  I  saw  that  the  architect  used  a  rule  and  com- 
pass, and  tliat  lie  made  calculations.  I  inquired  what  might  be  the  meaning 
and  use  of  these  things ;  and  I  was  informed  that  there  was  a  science  named 
Arithmetic.  I  purchased  a  book  of  arithmetic,  and  I  learnt  it  I  was  told 
that  there  was  another  science,  called  Geometry  :  I  bought  books,  and  learnt 
geometry  also.  By  reading,  I  found  that  there  were  good  books  on  these  two 
sciences  in  Latin  :  I  bought  a  dictionary,  and  learnt  Latin.  I  understood  also 
that  there  were  good  books  of  the  same  kind  in  French:  I  bought  a  dictionary, 
and  I  learnt  French.  And  this,  my  lord,  is  what  I  have  done.  It  seems  to  me 
that  we  may  learn  anything,  when  we  know  the  twenty-four  letters  of  the  al- 
phabet.' With  this  account  the  duke  was  delighted.  He  drew  this  wonderful 
young  man  from  his  obscurity,  and  provided  him  with  an  employment,  which 
left  him  plenty  of  time  to  apply  to  his  favourite  pursuits.  He  discovered  in 
him  also  the  same  genius  for  music,  for  painting,  for  architecture,  and  for  all 
the  sciences  that  depend  upon  calculations  and  proportions." 

Stone  is  said  to  have  been  a  man  of  great  simplicity;  and,  though  sensible  of 
his  own  acquirements,  neither  vain  nor  conceited.  It  is  to  be  regretted  that 
no  particulars  are  accessible,  respecting  the  latter  part  of  his  career :  we  are 
not  even  informed,  whether  he  spent  the  remainder  of  his  life  in  Argyleshire 
or  in  London ;  though  it  seems  probable  that  the  latter  was  the  scene  of  his  chief 
scientific  labours.  His  works,  pai-tly  original  and  partly  translations,  are  as 
follows  :  "  A  New  Mathematical  Dictionary,"  first  printed  in  1726,  8vo  ;  "  A 
Treatise  on  Fluxions,"  1730,  8vo:  in  this  work,  the  direct  method  is  a  transla- 
Cion  from  the  French  of  the  Marquis  de  1*  Hopital's  "  Analysis  des  Infiniments 
Petits,"  and  the  concise  method  was  supplied  by  Stone  himself:  "The  Ele- 
ments of  Euclid,"  1731,  2  vols.  8vo;  a  neat  and  useful  edition,  with  an  ac- 
count of  tlie  Life  and  Writings  of  Euclid,  and  a  defence  of  his  elements  against 
modern  objectors ;  besides  some  smaller  Avorks.  Stone  was  a  fellow  of  the 
Royal  Society,  and  communicated  to  it  an  "  Account  of  two  species  of  Lines  of 
the  Third  Order,  not  mentioned  by  Sir  Isaac  Newton  or  Mr  Sterling,"  which 
was  printed  in  the  Philosophical  Transactions,  vol.  xli. 

STRAHAN,  William,  an  eminent  printer  and  patron  of  literature,  was  born 
at  Edinburgh  in  the  year  1 7 1 5.^  His  father,  who  held  a  situation  connected 
with  the  customs,  was  enabled  to  give  him  a  respectable  education  at  a  grammar 
school,  after  which  he  was  apprenticed  to  a  printer.  Very  early  in  life  he  re- 
moved to  the  wide  field  of  London,  where  he  appears  to  have  worked  for 
some  time  as  a  journeyman  printer,  and  to  have  with  much  frugality,  creditably 
supported  a  wife  and  family  on  the  small  income  so  aflbrded  him.  His  wife, 
whom  he  early  married,  was  sister  to  Mr  James  Elphinston,  the  translator  of 
Martial.  It  can  be  well  supposed  that  he  had  for  many  years  many 
difiiculties  to  overcome  ;  but  he  was  of  a  happy  temper,  looking  forward  to 
prosperity  as  the  reward  of  his  toils,  without  being  unduly  sanguine.  It  is  said 
he  used  to  remark,  "  that  he  never  had  a  child  born,  that  Providence  did  not 
send  some  increase  of  income  to  provide  for  the  increase  of  his  household.'' 
After  shaking  himself  free  of  his  difiiculties,  he  gi-ew  rapidly  wealthy,  and  in  1770 
was  enabled  to  purchase  a  share  of  the  patent  for  King's  Printer  of  IMr  Eyre. 
Freiiously  to  this  period,  3Ir  Strahan  had  commenced  a  series  of  speculations 
"  Memoir  in  Lounger  of  August  20, 1785 Nichol's  Lit.  An.  iii.  399. 

IV.  2X 


330  WILLIAM  STRAHAN. 


in  the  purchase  of  literary  property,  that  species  of  inercliandise  Avhich  more 
than  any  other  depends  for  its  success  on  the  use  of  great  shrewdness  and 
critical  discernment.  Strahan  was  eminently  successful,  and  with  the  usual  ef- 
fect of  good  management,  was  enabled  to  be  liberal  to  amhors,  while  he 
enriched  himself.  With  Dr  Johnson  he  was  for  some  time  intimately  connected, 
and  he  took  the  charge  of  editing  his  prayers  and  meditations  after  the  doctor's 
death.  Johnson,  howerer,  has  been  accused  of  speaking  of  him  in  a 
manner  which  the  world  seldom  admires,  when  used  towards  a  person  to  whcm 
the  speaker  owes  obligations,  whatever  may  be  the  intellectual  disparity. 
Boswell  observes,  "  Dr  Gerard  told  us,  that  an  eminent  printer  was  rei-y  inti- 
mate  with  Warburton.  Johnson.  *  Why,  sir,  he  has  printed  some  of  his  works, 
and  perhaps,  bought  the  property  of  some  of  them.  The  intimacy  is  such  as 
one  of  the  professors  here  miglit  have  with  one  of  the  cai-penters,  who  is 
repairing  the  college.' "  In  a  letter  to  Sir  William  Forbes,  Dr  Beattie  has  made 
the  following  reiflark  on  this  passage,  "  I  cannot  but  take  notice  of  a  very  11- 
libei-al  saying  of  Johnson  with  respect  to  the  late  Mr  Stralian,  (Mr  Boswell  has 
politely  concealed  the  name,)  who  was  a  man  to  whom  Johnson  had  been  much 
obliged,  and  whom,  on  account  of  his  abilities  and  virtues,  as  well  as  rank  in 
life,  erery  one  who  knew  him,  and  Johnson  as  well  as  others,  acknowledged  to 
be  a  most  respectable  character.  I  have  seen  the  letter  mentioned  by  Dr 
Gerard,  and  I  have  seen  many  other  letters  from  bishop  Warburton  to  Mr 
Strahan.  They  were  very  particularly  acquainted  :  and  Mr  Stxahan's  merit  en- 
titled him  to  be  on  a  footing  of  intimacy  with  any  bishop,  or  any  British  sub- 
ject. He  was  eminently  skilled  in  composition  and  the  English  language,  ex- 
celled ill  tlie  epistol.iry  style,  had  corrected  (as  he  told  nie  himself)  the 
phraseology  of  both  Mr  Hume  and  Dr  Robertson  ;  he  was  a  faithful  friend,  and 
his  great  knowledge  of  the  world,  and  of  business,  made  him  a  very  use- 
ful one."^  The  expression  was  probably  one  of  a  splenetic  moment,  for 
Johnson  was  not  on  all  occasions  on  good  terms  with  Strahan.  "  In  the  course 
cf  this  year,"  (1778,)  says  Boswell,  "there  was  a  diflerence  between  him 
(Johnson)  and  his  friend  iMr  Strahan  :  the  particulars  of  which  it  is  unnecessary 
to  relate."  The  doctor  must  have  been  signally  in  the  wrong,  for  he  deigned 
to  offer  terms  of  accommodation.  .**  It  would  be  very  foolish  for  us,"  he  says  in  a 
letter  to  Strahan,  "  to  continue  strangers  any  longer.  You  can  never  by  per- 
sistency make  wrong  right.  If  I  resented  too  acrimoniously,  I  resented  only 
to  yourself.  Nobody  ever  saw  or  heard  what  I  wrote.  You  saw  that  my  anger 
was  over,  for  in  a  day  or  two  I  came  to  your  house.  I  have  given  you  longer 
lime ;  and  I  hope  you  have  made  so  good  use  of  it  as  to  be  no  longer  on  evil 
tenus  Avith,  Sir,  yours,  &c.,  Sam.  Johnson."^  Strahan,  when  he  became  influen- 
tial with  the  ministry,  proposed  Johnson  as  a  person  well  fitted  to  hold  a  seat 
in  parliament  for  their  interest,  but  the  recommendation  was  not  adopted.  So 
soon  as  he  found  himself  in  easy  circumstances,  Mr  Strahan  became  an  active 
politician,  and  corresponded  with  many  eminent  statesmen.  In  the  year  17G9, 
he  wrote  some  Queries  to  Dr  Franklin,  respecting  the  discontents  of  the  Ameri- 
cans, which  were  afterwards  published  in  the  London  Chronicle  of  2Sth  July, 
1778.  In  1775,  he  was  elected  member  for  the  borough  of  Malmsbury,  in 
Wiltshire,  with  Fox  as  his  colleague,  and  in  the  succeeding  parliament  he  re- 
presented Wotton  Basset  in  the  same  county.  He  is  said  to  have  been 
an  active  and  useful  legislator.  On  the  resignation  of  his  friends  in  1784,  he 
declined,  partly  from  bad  health,  to  stand  again  for  a  seat.  His  health  from 
this  period  quickly  declined,  and  he  died  on  the  9th  July,  1785,  in  the  seven- 


s  Forbes'  Life  of  Beattk,  il.  ISa^ 
8  L'oswfil,  iii.  392. 


DR.  JOHN   STRANG.  331 


ly-first  year  of  liis  age.  He  provided  munificently  for  his  widow  and  children, 
and  among  many  other  eleemosynary  bequests,  left  .£1000  to  the  company  of 
Stationers,  to  be  disposed  of  for  charitable  purposes. 

The  author  of  the  memoir  in  the  Lounger,  gives  the  following  account  of  his 
diaracter:  "  Endued  with  much  natural  sagacity,  and  an  attentive  observation  of 
life,,  he  owed  his  rise  to  that  station  of  opulence  and  respect  which  he  attained, 
rather  to  his  own  talents  and  exertion,  than  to  any  accidental  occurrence  of 
faTOurable  or  fortunate  circumstances.  His  mind,  though  not  deeply  tinctured 
with  learning,  was  not  uninformed  by  letters.  From  a  habit  of  attention  to  style, 
he  had  acquired  a  considerable  portion  of  critical  acuteness  in  the  discernment 
of  its  beauties  and  defects.  In  one  branch  of  writing  himself  excelled.  I 
mean  the  epistolary,  in  which  he  not  only  showed  the  precision  and  clearness 
of  business,  but  possessed  a  neatness,  as  well  as  fluency  of  expression,  which  I 
hare  known  few  letter-writers  to  surpass.  Letter-writing  was  one  of  his 
favourite  amusements ;  and  among  his  correspondents  were  men  of  such 
eminence  and  talents  as  well  repaid  his  endeavours  to  entertain  them.  One  of 
these,  as  we  have  before  mentioned,  was  the  justly  celebrated  Dr  Franklin, 
originally  a  printer  like  Mr  Strahan,  whose  friendship  and  coirespondence  he 
continued  to  enjoy,  notwithstanding  the  difference  of  their  sentiments  in 
political  matters,  which  often  afl^orded  pleasantry,  but  never  mixed  anything 
acrimonious  in  their  letters.  *  *  *  In  his  elevation  he  neither  triumphed 
over  the  inferiority  of  those  he  had  left  below  him,  nor  forgot  the  equality  in 
wliich  they  had  formerly  stood.  Of  their  inferiority  he  did  not  even  remind 
them,  by  the  ostentation  of  grandeur,  or  the  parade  of  wealth.  In  his  house 
there  was  none  of  that  saucy  train,  none  of  that  state  or  finery,  with  \\liich  the 
illiberal  delight  to  confound  and  to  dazzle  those  who  may  have  formerly  seen 
them  in  less  enviable  circumstances.  No  man  was  more  mindful  of,  cr  more 
solicitous  to  oblige,  the  acquaintance  or  companions  of  his  early  days.  The  ad- 
vice which  his  experience,  or  the  assistance  which  his  purse  could  afford,  he 
was  ready  to  communicate  :  and  at  his  table  in  London,  every  Scotchman  found 
an  easy  introduction,  and  every  old  acquaintance  a  cordial  welcome." 

STRANG,  (Db)  John,  minister  of  Errol,  and  principal  of  the  university  of 
Glasgow  in  the  early  part  of  the  seventeenth  century,  was  born  at  Irvine  in 
Ayrshire,  (of  which  his  father,  Mr  AVilliam  Strang,  was  minister,)  in  1584. 
Like  many  other  eminent  men,  he  had  the  misfortune  to  lose  his  father  at  a 
very  early  period,  but  the  place  of  a  parent  was  supplied  to  him  in  Mr  Robert 
Wilkie,  minister  of  Kilmarnock,  Avhora  his  mother  maiTied  soon  after  she  be- 
came a  widow.  Under  the  care  of  that  gentleman,  he  was  educated  at  the 
public  school  of  Kilmarnock,  where  he  had  as  a  schoolfellow  Mr  Zachary 
Royd,  renowned  as  a  divine,  as  a  poetical  paraphrast  of  the  Bible,  and  as  a 
munificent  benefactor  to  the  university  of  Glasgow.  That  singular  person  always 
mentioned  Strang  as  being  from  the  earliest  period  remarkable  for  piety  : 
together  with  acuteness  and  its  frequent  concomitant,  modesty.  At  the  age 
of  twelve  his  step-father  sent  him  to  study  Greek  and  philosophy  at  St 
Leonard's  college,  St  Andrews,  then  under  the  direction  of  his  kinsman,  princi- 
pal Robert  Wilkie.  Nor  did  he  disgrace  the  patronage  of  the  principal :  he 
equalled  or  surpassed  all  his  contemporaries,  and  was  made  master  of  arts  in  his 
sixteenth  year.  Although  still  very  young,  he  was  then  unanimously  invited 
by  the  master  of  the  college  to  become  one  of  the  regents.  That  office  he  ac- 
cepted, and  continued  to  discharge  with  great  fidelity  and  effect  till  about  the 
end  of  1613,  when  he  was  with  similar  unanimity  urged  to  become  minister  of 
the  parish  of  Errol,  in  the  presbytery  of  Perth.  Thither  he  accordingly  re- 
moved in  the  beginning  of  the  following  year,  carrying  with  him  the  best  wislies 


DR.  JOHN  STRANG. 


of  his  colleagues  at  St  Andrews,  and  an  ample  testimonial  from  the  presbytery. 
Among  the  signatures  attached  to  that  document  appear  those  of  Alexander 
Henderson,  John  Carniichael,  Robert  Howie,  and  John  Dykes, — the  first  higli- 
ly  celebrated,  and  the  others  well  known  to  those  who  have  studied  the  history 
of  the  period.  The  head  of  the  family  of  Errol,  who  resided  in  the  parish  to 
which  Strang  had  been  appointed,  had  as  a  sort  of  chaplain  a  Jesuit  of  the  name  of 
Hay,  whose  subtilly  and  eloquence  are  said  to  have  been  the  means  of  convert- 
ing him  and  his  family  to  the  Roman  catholic  faith,  and  of  spreading  the  doc- 
trines of  papistry  through  the  country.  These  circumstances  afforded  Strang 
an  opportunity  not  to  be  omitted,  and  he  is  said  to  have  so  far  counteracted  the 
efforts  of  the  Jesuit,  that,  although  he  could  never  persuade  lord  Errol  fully  to 
embrace  the  protestant  doctrines,  he  was  the  means. of  converting  his  family. 
His  son,  Francis,  a  youth  of  great  hopes,  died  in  early  life  in  that  faith,  and 
his  daughters,  ladies  Mar  and  Buccleugh,  adhered  to  it.  throughout  their 
lives. 

Among  the  steps  by  which  king  James  and  the  Scottish  bishops  were  now  at- 
tempting gradually  to  introduce  episcopacy  and  conformity  to  the  Anglican 
church,  one  was  the  restoration  of  academical  degrees  in  divinity,  which  had 
been  discontinued  in  Scotland  almost  since  the  period  of  the  Reformation,  as 
resembling  too  much  some  of  the  formalities  of  the  system  which  had  been 
abolished.  In  the  year  IGIG,  it  was  determined  to  invest  several  persons  with 
the  honour  of  doctor  of  divinity  at  St  Andrews,  and,  as  it  was  considered  good 
policy  to  introduce  a  few  popular  names  into  the  list,  Mr  Strang,  though  in  no 
way  attached  to  the  new  system,  was  among  others  fixed  upon.  In  the  follow- 
ing year  the  monarch  revisited  his  native  country,  and,  among  the  long  train  of 
exhibitions  which  marked  his  progress,  tlie  public  dispensations  held  in  the  royal 
presence  were  not  the  least.  One  of  thess  was  held  at  St  Andrews  by  the  mas- 
ters of  the  university  and  doctors  of  divinity,  and  according  to  his  biographer, 
"  by  the  universall  consent  of  all  present,  Dr  Strang  excelled  all  the  rest  of  the 
speakers  in  discourse,  which  was  pious,  modest,  but  full  of  the  greatest  and 
Eubtilest  learning."  Eut  any  favour  which  he  might  gain  with  the  learned 
monarch  upon  this  occasion  was  more  than  counterbalanced  in  the  following 
year  by  his  opposition  to  the  famous  articles  of  Perth  :  he  was  the  only  doctor 
in  divinity  Avho  voted  against  their  adoption.  Yet,  notwithstanding  this  cir- 
cumstance, when  the  archbishop  of  St  Andrews  got  the  court  of  High  Commis- 
sion remodelled  with  the  view  of  compelling  conformity  to  these  articles, 
Dr  Strang's  name  was  included  among  the  members.  It  is  greatly  to  his 
honour  that  he  did  not  attend  its  meetings  or  give  his  sanction  to  any  of  its 
acts ;  a  circumstance  which  renders  it  at  least  doubtful  whether  he  approved 
of  the  principles  of  such  an  institution.  In  the  year  1020,  Dr  Strang  was 
chosen  one  of  the  ministers  of  Edinburgh  ;  but  he  was  too  shrewd  an  observer 
of  the  signs  of  those  times,  and  too  much  attached  to  his  flock  to  desire  a  more 
public  and  a  more  dangerous  field  of  ministration.  Neither  persuasion  nor  the 
threat  of  violence  could  induce  him  to  remove. 

In  1626,  Dr  Strang  received  the  king's  patent,  appointing  him  principal  of 
the  university  of  Glasgow,  in  place  of  Dr  John  Cameron,  who  resigned  tho 
charge  and  returned  to  France.  At  the  same  time  he  received  an  unanimous 
invitation  from  the  masters  of  the  university,  but  it  was  not  till  a  second  letter 
arrived  from  court,  and  till  he  had  received  many  urgent  solicitations,  both 
from  the  university  and  the  town,  that  he  could  be  prevailed  upon  to  accept  tho 
office.  His  modesty,  as  well  as  his  prudence,  seems  to  have  inclined  him  to  a 
refusal;  and  although,  perhaps,  with  such  commands  laid  upon  him,  he  could 
not  with  a  good  grace  resist,  the  subsequent  part  of  liis  history  leads  to  a  bo- 


DK.  JOHN   STRANG,  333 


lief  that  he  must  liave  often  looked  back  with  regret.  The  duties  incumbent 
on  the  principal  of  a  university  were  at  that  period  considerable  ;  but  his  active 
mind  led  him  to  take  a  voluntary  interest  in  everything  connected  either  with 
the  well-being  of  the  university  or  of  the  town.  Under  his  superintendence,  the 
revenues  of  the  former  were  greatly  augmented, — the  buildings  on  the  north 
and  east  sides  of  the  inner  court,  were  begun  and  completed, — a  large  and 
stately  orchard  was  formed, — and  it  is  supposed  that  to  liis  early  and  continued 
intimacy  with  3Ir  Zachary  Boyd,  the  society  was  indebted  for  tlie  large  endow- 
ments which  it  received  by  his  will.  In  the  business  of  the  presbytery,  he  also 
took  an  active  part;  and  when  sickness,  or  other  causes,  prevented  the  minis- 
ters of  the  town  from  occupying  their  pulpits,  he  willingly  supplied  their  place. 

Yet  the  performance  of  these  duties,  arduous  as  they  unquestionably  were, 
and  most  perseveringly  continued  for  many  years,  was  not  enough  to  screen  Dr 
Strang  from  the  suspicion  of  belonging  to  that  class  which  received  the  names 
of  3Ialignant8  and  Opposers  of  the  work  of  reformation.  A  multiplicity  of 
concurrent  circumstances  compelled  the  king,  in  1C38,  to  yield  to  a  meeting  of 
the  General  Assembly  ;  and,  from  that  period,  the  zeal  of  the  presbyterians, 
like  a  flame  long  concealed,  and  almost  smothered  by  confinement,  burst  forth 
into  open  air,  as  if  in  full  consciousness  of  its  strength  and  terrors.  It  may 
be  sufficient  to  remark  here,  that  their  suspicions  respecting  Dr  Strang  were 
verified  a  few  years  afterwards,  when,  among  the  papere  of  the  king,  taken  at 
the  battle  of  Naseby,  were  discovered,  "  nine  letters  of  Mr  William  Wilkie's,^ 
one  of  Dr  Strang's,  and  a  treatise,"  all  of  which  had  been  addressed  to  the 
noted  Dr  Walter  Bakanqual.  These  papers  were  for  some  time  retained  by  the 
commissioners,  as  an  instrument  "to  keep  the  persons  that  wrote  them  in  awe, 
and  as  a  mean  to  win  them  to  a  strict  and  circumspect  carriage  in  their  call- 
ings." At  length,  however,  they  were  sent  down  to  Scotland,  in  1646,  with  a 
desire  that  they  might  still  be  kept  private  for  the  same  reasons.  But  neither 
the  letter  of  Dr  Strang,  nor  his  treatise,  so  far  as  we  can  judge  of  its  spirit 
from  the  introduction,  (which  Wodrow  has  inserted  at  full  length,)  can  excite 
the  smallest  suspicion  of  the  perfect  integrity  of  his  character.  Like  many 
other  excellent  men,  he  objected  to  the  conduct  of  the  presbyterians,  not  from 
any  approbation  of  the  measures  of  the  king,  of  whose  character,  however,  he 
had  perhaps  too  good  an  opinion,  but  because  **  reason  and  philosophy  re- 
commendeth  unto  us  a  passing  from  our  rights  for  peace  sake."  This,  and  the 
possibility  of  obtaining  "  a  perfect  estate  of  God's  church,  or  the  government 
thereof  upon  earth,"  are  in  amount  the  arguments  upon  which  he  builds  his  ob- 
jections to  the  covenant.  He  concludes  his  introduction,  by  protesting  that 
his  opinions  were  formed  entirely  upon  information  which  was  known  to  all ; 
but,  "  if,"  says  he,  "  there  be  any  greater  mysteries,  which  are  only  communi- 
cat  to  few,  as  I  am  altogether  ignorant  therof,  so  1  am  unable  to  judge  of  the 
same,  but  am  alwise  prone  to  judge  charitably  ;  and  protest  in  God's  presence, 
that  I  have  no  other  end  herein,  but  God's  glory,  and  the  conservation  of  truth 
and  peace  within  this  kingdome."  The  treatise  is  entitled,  "  Reasons  why  all 
his  Majesty's  orthodox  Subjects,  and  namely  those  who  subscribed  the  late 
(  ovenant,  should  thankfully  acquiesce  to  his  Majesty's  late  Declaration  and 
Proclamations ;  and  especially  touching  the  subscription  of  the  Confession  of 
Faith,  and  generall  Band  therin  mentioned :  with  an  Answer  to  the  Reasons 
objected  in  the  late  Protestation  to  the  contrary." 

But  although  the  presbyterians  might  not  be  able  to  verify  their  suspicions 
respecting  principal  Strang,  while  his  correspondence  with  Balcanqual  remained 
unknown,  there  were  points  in  his  public  conduct  which  were  considered  suf- 
'  !!\Iiiii;ter  of  Guvan,  in  the  neighbourhood  of  Glasgow. 


334  DK.  JOHN  STRANG. 


ficient  to  justify  proceedings  to  a  certain  extent  against  him.  **  The  spleen  cf 
many,"  writes  Baillie,  "against  the  principal  in  the  Assembly  [of  1638]  was 
great,  for  many  passages  of  his  carriage  in  this  affair,  especially  the  last  two : 
his  subscribing  that  which  we  affirmed,  and  he  denied,  to  be  a  protestation 
against  elders,  and  so  [against]  our  Assembly,  consisting  of  them  and  ministers 
elected  by  their  voices:  also,  his  deserting  the  Assembly  ever  since  the  com- 
missioner's dei)arture,  upon  pretence  that  his  commission  being  once  cast,  be- 
cause it  was  four,  the  elector  would  not  meet  again  to  give  him,  or  any  other, 
a  new  commission.  Every  other  day,  some  one  or  other,  nobleman,  gentleman, 
or  minister,  was  calling  that  Dr  Strang  should  be  summoned  ;  but  by  the  dili- 
gence of  his  good  friends,  it  vms  shifted,  and  at  last,  by  this  means,  quite  put 
by."*  The  Assembly,  however,  appointed  a  commission  to  visit  and  determine 
all  matters  respecting  the  university.  **  This,"  continues  the  writer,  "  was  a 
terrible  wand  above  their  heads  for  a  long  time.  Divers  of  them  feared  depo- 
sition. .  .  ,  We  had  no  other  intention,  but  to  admonish  them  to  do  duty." 
From  the  account  given  by  the  same  author  of  the  proceedings  of  the  Assem- 
bly of  1643,  it  appears  that,  at  that  period,  the  principal  was  still  very  unpopular 
with  the  more  zealous  noblemen  and  ministers  ;  and  if  the  account  there  given 
of  the  manner  in  which  he  managed  the  affairs  of  the  college,  and  the  strata- 
gems by  which  he  sometimes  attempted  to  gain  his  ends,  be  correct,  we  have  no 
hesitation  in  pronouncing  him  deservedly  so.  According  to  that  statement,  the 
chancellor,  the  rector,  the  vice-chancellor,  dean  of  faculty,  the  rectors,  assessors, 
and  three  of  the  regents,  were  not  only  all  "  at  his  devotion,"  but  most  of  them 
"  otherwise  minded  in  the  public  affairs,  than  we  did  wish  ;"  and  an  attempt 
was  made  to  introduce  a  sj'stem,  by  which  he  should  alwajs  be  appointed  com- 
missioner from  the  university  to  the  Assembly.  Baillie  was  at  bottom  friendly 
to  the  principal,  and  his  fears  that  any  complaint  made  against  him  at  the  As- 
sembly, might  raise  a  storm  which  would  not  be  easily  allayed,  induced  him  to 
be  silent.  He  contented  himself  with  obtaining  a  renewal  of  the  commission  for 
visiting  the  university.  **  This  I  intend,"  he  says,  "  for  a  wand  to  threat,  but 
to  strike  no  man,  if  they  will  be  pleased  to  live  in  any  peaceable  quietness,  as  it 
fears  me  their  disaffection  to  the  country's  cause  will  not  permit  some  of  them 
to  do."^  It  must  be  confessed,  however,  that  these  statements  of  Baillie,  written 
to  a  private  friend,  and  probably  never  intended  to  meet  the  eye  of  the  public, 
form  a  strange  contrast  to  the  general  strain  in  which  he  has  written  the  life  of 
Strang,  prefixed  to  his  work  on  the  interpretation  of  Scripture.  In  the  latter 
it  is  declared,  respecting  this  period  of  his  life,  that  **  he  fell  under  the  ill-will 
of  some  persons,  without  his  doing  anything  to  lay  the  ground  of  it.  When 
such  made  a  most  diligent  search  into  his  privat  and  publick  management,  that 
they  might  have  somwhat  against  him,  he  was  found  beyond  reproach  in  his 
personall  carriage,  and  in  the  discharge  of  his  office  ;  only  in  his  dictats  to  his 
schollars,  some  few  things  were  taken  notice  of,  Avherein  he  differed  in  his  sen- 
timents from  Dr  Twiss  and  Mr  Kutherfurd  in  some  scholastick  speculations.  He 
was  not  so  much  as  blamed  for  any  depai-ture  from  the  confession  of  any  re- 
formed church,  .  .  .  but,  in  a  few  questions,  exceeding  nice  and  diffi- 
cult, as  to  God's  providence  about  sin,  he  thought  himself  at  liberty,  modestly 
to  differ  in  his  sentiments  from  so  many  privat  men."  Yet  the  clamour  thus 
raised  against  Dr  Strang,  however  groundless  in  Baillie's  estimation,  was  en- 

2  Baillie's  printed  Letters  and  Journals,  i.  145.  That  the  reader  may  understand  llie  al- 
lusion to  his  commission,  it  is  neccssjiry  to  mention,  that  the  university  of  Glasgow  had  no- 
minated four  commissioners  to  attend  the  Assembly  ;  but  the  Assembly  would  not  recognize 
their  right  to  appoint  more  than  one,  and  their  commission  was,  therel'oro,  annulled.  J  bid 
i.  107. 

'  Printed  Letters  and  Journals,  i.  378. 


DR.  JOHN   STRANG.  '635 


couraged  by  his  adversaries,  and  became  at  length  so  great,  that  the  General 
Assembly,  in  16  16,  appointed  commissioners  to  examine  his  dictates,  which  he 
Avas  required  to  produce,  and  to  report.  Their  report  accordingly  appears  in 
the  acts  of  the  next  Assembly,  (August  1647,)  and  sets  forth  that  the  said  dic- 
tates contained  some  things,  "  so  expressed,  that  scruples  hare  therefrom  risen 
to  grave  and  learned  men  ;  but  after  conference  with  the  said  doctor  anent 
those  scruples,  and  (having)  heard  his  elucidations,  both  by  word  and  writ,  given 
to  us,  we  were  satisfyed  as  to  his  orthodoxy  ;  and,  to  remove  all  grounds  of 
doubting  as  to  his  dictates,  the  doctor  himself  offered  to  us  the  addition  of 
several  words,  for  the  further  explication  of  his  meaning,  which  also  was  ac- 
ceptable to  us." 

But  the  peace  which  Dr  Strang  hoped  to  enjoy  after  the  decision  of  this 
question,  was  not  destined  to  be  gi-anted  him.  "  Some  turbulent  persons  en- 
vyed  his  peace,"  and  a  new  series  of  attacks,  of  which  Baillie  declines  giving 
any  account,  because,  to  use  his  own  strong  expression,  he  would  not  "  rake 
into  a  dunghill,"  followed.  "  The  issue  of  these  new  attacks,"  he  continues, 
was,  the  doctor,  outi'aged  by  their  molestations,  demitted  his  office,  and  the 
rather  that,  in  his  old  age,  he  inclined  to  have  leisure,  with  a  safe  reputation, 
to  revise  and  give  his  last  hand  to  his  writings.  .  .  .  To  this  hig  own 
proposall,  the  visitors  of  the  coUedge  went  in  ;  hut  both  the  theologicall  and 
philosophy  faculty  of  the  university  opposed  this,  and,  with  the  greatest  re- 
luctance, were  at  length  brought  to  part  with  a  colleague  they  so  much  honoured 
and  loved."  The  visitors,  by  their  demissory  act,  dated  19th  April,  1650, 
granted  him  "  a  testimoniall  of  his  orthodoxie  ;"  and,  as  a  proof  of  their  affec- 
tion, allowed  him  not  only  the  whole  of  his  salary  for  the  year  1650,  but  an 
annuity  of  one  thousand  nierks  Scots  from  the  funds  of  the  university,  and  two 
hundred  pounds  more  as  often  as  circumstances  would  permit;. 

The  remaining  part  of  Dr  Strang's  life  was  spent  in  comparative  quiet,  al- 
though an  expression  of  Baillie's  would  lead  to  a  supposition  that  the  malice  of 
his  enemies  reached  even  to  the  withholding  of  the  annuity  just  mentioned. 
'*  Having  to  do  in  Edinburgh  with  the  lawyers,  concerning  the  unjust  trouble 
he  was  put  to  for  his  stipend,''  says  he,  *'  Dr  Strang,  after  a  few  days'  illness, 
did  die  so  sweetly  and  graciously,  as  was  satisfactory  to  all,  and  much  applauded 
all  over  the  city,  his  very  persecutors  giving  him  an  ample  testimony."*  That 
event  took  place  on  the  20th  of  June,  1654,  when  he  was  in  the  seventy-eighth 
year  of  his  age.  Two  days  afterwards,  his  body,  followed  by  a  great  assem- 
blage of  persons  of  all  ranks,  was  carried  to  the  grave,  and  buried  next  to 
Robert  Boyd  of  Trochrig,  one  of  his  predecessors  in  the  professorship  at 
Glasgow  college. 

Among  the  last  labours  of  Dr  Strang's  life,  was  the  revisal  of  his  treatise, 
"  De  Voluntate  et  Actionibus  Dei  circa  peccatum,"  which  he  enlarged,  and 
made  ready  for  the  press.  In  the  author's  lifetime,  it  had  been  sent  to  his 
friend,  3Ir  William  Strang,  minister  of  3Iiddleburg,  with  a  desire  that  the  senti- 
ments of  the  Dutch  divines  might  be  obtained  respecting  it.  At  his  death,  it 
was  left  to  the  charge  of  Dr  Baillie,  who  got  the  MS.  transcribed,  and  sent  it 
to  the  same  person.  By  Mr  Strang  it  was  sent  to  the  famous  Elzevirs  at  Amster- 
dam ;  and,  having  been  carried  through  their  press  by  tlie  learned  Mr  Alex- 
ander 3Ioi'e,  was  published  at  that  place  in  1657.  The  only  other  work  of  Dr 
Strang  which  we  are  aware  of  having  been  published,  is  entitled,  "  De  In- 
terpretatione  et  Perfectione  Scripturas,"  Rotterdam,  1663,  4to.  To  this  work 
is  prefixed  the  life  of  tlie  author,  by  Baillie,  to  which  we  have  already  re 
ferred. 


*  Pi  iiited  Letters  and  Journal,  ii.  3S2,  3. 


33 G  SIR  EGBERT  STRANGE,  KNT. 


Dr  Slrang  was  thrice  married,  and  had  a  numerous  family,  but  few  of  his 
children  survived.  William,  the  only  son  who  lived  to  majority,  and  "  a  youth 
of  eminent  piety  and  learning,"  was  a  regent  in  the  university  of  Glasgow;  but 
died  of  a  hectic  fever,  at  the  age  of  twenty-two,  before  his  father.  He  had  four 
daughters,  who  survived  him;  all,  according  to  Baillie,  "  eminent  patterns  of 
piety,  prudence,  and  other  virtues."* 

STRANGE,  (Sm)  Robert,  Knight,  the  father  of  the  line  manner  of  engrav- 
ing  in  Britain,  waa  born  in  the  island  of  Pomona,  in  Orkney,  July  14,  1721. 
He  was  lineally  descended  from  Sir  David  Strange,  or  Strang,  a  younger  son 
of  the  family  of  Strang  of  Balcaskie,  in  Fife,  who  had  settled  in  Orkney  at  the 
time  of  the  Reformation.  He  received  a  classical  education  at  Kirkwall,  under 
the  care  of  Mr  Murdoch  Mackenzie,  teacher  there,  and  who  rendered  some  es- 
timable service  to  his  country  by  accurate  surveys  of  the  Orkney  islands,  and 
of  the  British  and  Irish  coasts. 

The  subject  of  this  niemoir  successively  applied  himself  to  the  law  and  to  the 
sea,  before  his  talent  for  sketching  pointed  out  the  propriety  of  his  making  art 
his  profession.  Some  sketches  shown  by  a  friend  to  Mr  Richard  Cooper,  an 
engraver  of  some  eminence  in  Edinburgh,  and  approved  by  him,  led  to  Mr 
Strange  being  placed  under  that  individual  as  an  apprentice;  and  the  rapid 
progress  he  made  in  his  new  profession  soon  showed  that  he  had  only  now  for  the 
first  time  fallen  into  the  line  of  life  for  which  he  was  destined  by  nature.  He 
Mas  practising  his  art  in  Edinburgh  on  his  own  account,  when,  in  September, 
1745,  the  Highland  anny  took  possession  of  the  city.  Mr  Strange  was  not 
only  himself  well-inclined  to  this  cause,  but  he  had  formed  an  attachment  to  a 
Bliss  Lumisden,^  who  had  the  same  predilections.  These  circumstances,  with 
his  local  notoriety  ns  an  engraver,  pointed  him  out  as  a  proper  person  to  under* 
take  a  print  of  the  young  chevalier.  While  employed  on  this  work,  his 
lodgings  in  Stewart's  Close  were  daily  resorted  to  by  the  chief  officei-s 
and  friends  of  the  prince,  together  with  nuiny  of  the  most  distinguished  ladies 
attached  to  his  cause.  The  portrait,  when  completed,  was  looked  upon  as  a 
wonder  of  art;  and  it  is  still  entitled  to  considerable  praise.  It  ivas  a 
half  length  in  an  oval  frame  on  a  stone  pedestal,  on  which  is  engraved, 
"  EvEnso  MISSUS  BuccuRnKim  SECLO."  As  a  reward  for  his  services,  he  was  of- 
fered a  place  in  the  finance  department  of  the  prince's  army,  or,  as  another  ac- 
count slates,  in  the  troop  of  Life  Guards  ;  which,  partly  at  the  instigation  of  his 
mistress,  who  otherwise  threatened  to  withdraw  her  favour  from  him,  he 
accepted.  He  therefore  served  throughout  the  remainder  of  the  campaign. 
Soon  after  the  battle  of  Falkirk,  while  riding  along  the  shore,  the  sword  which 
he  carried  in  his  hand  was  bent  by  a  ball  from  one  of  the  king's  vessels 
stationed  a  little  way  out  at  sea.  Having  surmounted  all  the  perils  of  the  en- 
terprise, he  had  to  sculk  for  his  life  in  the  Highlands,  where  he  endured  many 
hardships.  On  the  restoration  of  quiet  times,  he  ventured  back  to  Edinburgh, 
and  supported  himself  for  some  time  by  drawing  portraits  of  the  favourite 
Jacobite  leaders,  which  were  disposed  of  to  the  friends  of  the  cause  at  a 
guinea  each.  A  few,  also,  which  he  had  destined  for  his  mistress,  a/id  on  that 
account  adorned  with  the  utmost  of  his  skill,  were  sold  about  this  period  with  a 
heavy  heart  to  the  earl  of  Wemyss,  from  whom,  in  better  times,  he  vainly  en- 
deavoured to  purchase  them  back.    In  1 747,  he  proceeded  to  London,  but  not  be- 

5  Abridged  from  Wodrow's  Life  of  Strniiff,  in  his  biographical  INISS.  in  Bibl.  Acid. 
Ghisg.,  fol.,  vol.  ii.  See  nlso,  Life  by  Baillie,  above  mentioned.  The  extracts  from  the 
latter  are  borrowed  from  Wodrow's  translation,  inserted  in  his  life. 

»  Sister  to  Mr  Andrew  Luniisden,  a  Jacobite  parlizan  of  tome  note,  and  who  afterwards 
formed  part  of  ihe  household  of  prince  Charks  Stuart  at  Home,  of  the  anliquities  of  which 
city  he  published  an  account. 


iOIK    IK®©!£KTr     STiAl?3©E. 


FROM  THE  PRINT  ENGRAVED   BY  HIMSELF 


-riraTTREH  ArlOHDOH. 


fore  he  had  been  rewarded -for  all  his  distresses  by  the  fair  hand  of  Miss 
Luinisden.  Without  waiting  long  in  the  metropolis,  he  went  to  Rouen,  whero 
a  number  of  his  companions  in  the  late  unfortunate  war  were  living  in  exile, 
and  where  he  obtained  an  honorary  prize  given  by  the  academy.  He  after- 
wards resided  for  some  time  at  Paris,  where  he  studied  with  great  assiduity 
under  the  celebrated  Le  Bas,  who  taught  him  the  use  of  the  dry  needle.  In 
1751,  he  returned  to  London,  and  settled  as  an  engraver,  devoting  him- 
self chiedy  to  historical  subjects,  which  he  handled  in  so  masterly  a  manner  that 
he  eoon  attiacted  considerable  notice.  In  1759,  when  he  had  resolved  to  visit 
Italy,  for  his  further  improvement,  Mr  Allan  Ramsay  intimated  to  him  that  it 
would  be  agreeable  to  the  prince  of  Wales  and  the  earl  of  Bute,  if  he  would 
undertake  the  engraving  of  two  portraits  which  he  had  just  painted  for  those  emi- 
nent personages.  Mr  Strange  refused,  on  the  plea  of  his  visit  to  Italy,  which 
Avould  thus  be  put  off  for  a  considerable  time,  and  he  is  said  to  have  thus  lost 
tiie  favour  of  the  royal  preceptor,  which  was  afterwards  of  material  disadvantage 
to  him,  although  the  king  ultimately  approved  of  his  conduct,  on  the  ground 
that  the  portraits  were  not  worthy,  as  works  of  art,  of  being  commemorated  by 
him. 

Mr  Strange  set  out  for  Italy  in  1760,  and  in  the  course  of  his  tour  visited 
Naples,  Florence,  and  other  distinguished  seats  of  the  arts.  He  was  everywhere 
treated  with  the  utmost  attention  and  respect  by  persons  of  every  rank.  He 
was  made  a  member  of  the  academies  of  Rome,  Florence,  and  Bologna,  and 
professor  of  the  royal  academy  at  Parma.  His  portrait  was  introduced  by  Rof- 
fanelli,  amongst  those  of  other  distinguished  engravers,  into  a  painting  on  the 
ceiling  of  that  room  in  the  Vatican  library  where  the  engi-avings  are  kept. 
He  had  also  the  distinguished  honour  of  being  permitted  to  erect  a  scaffold  in 
one  of  the  rooms  of  that  magnificent  palace  for  the  purpose  of  taking  a  drawing 
of  the  Parnassus  of  Raphael  ;  a  favour  not  previously  granted  for  many  years  to 
any  petitioning  artist.  And  an  apartment  was  assigned  for  his  own  abode, 
while  engaged  in  this  employment  A  similar  honour  was  conferred  upon  him 
at  the  palace  of  the  king  of  Naples,  where  he  wished  to  copy  a  celebrated 
painting  by  Schidoni.  Mr  Strange's  drawings  were  in  coloured  crayons  ;  an 
invention  of  his  own,  and  they  were  admired  by  all  who  saw  them.  He  subse- 
quently  engraved  prints  on  a  splendid  scale  from  about  fifty  of  the  paintings 
which  he  had  thus  copied  in  Italy.'' 

The  subsequent  part  of  the  life  of  Mr  Strange  was  spent  in  London,  where 
he  did  not  acquire  the  favour  of  the  court  till  1787,  when  he  was  knighted.  A 
letter  by  him  to  lord  Bute,  reflecting  on  some  instances  of  persecution  which 
he  thought  he  traced  to  that  nobleman,  appeared  in  1775  and  was  subsequently 

*  The  following  are  among  the  principal  engravings  bj-  Sir  Robert  Strange  : — Two  heads 
of  himself,  one  an  etching,  the  other  a  finished  proof  j  The  Retum  from  Market  by  Wouver- 
mans  ;  Cupid  by  Vanloo  ;  Maiy  Magdalen  ;  Cleopatra;  the  Madonna;  the  Angel  Gabriel ; 
the  Virgin  with  the  child  asleep;  Liberality  and  Modesty,  by  Guido;  Apollo  rewarding 
merit  and  punishing  arrogance,  by  Andrea  Sacchi;  the  Finding  of  Romulus  and  Remus, 
bj'  Pietro  de  Cortona  ;  Csesar  repudiating  Pompeia,  by  the  same  ;  Three  children  of  Charles 
1.,  by  Vandyke ;  Kelisarius,  by  Salvator  Rosa ;  St  Agnes,  by  Domenichino  ;  the  Judgment 
cf  Hercules,  by  Nicolas  Poussin  ;  Venus  attired  by  the  Graces,  by  Guido;  Justice  »nd 
]\Ietkness,  by  Raphael;  the  Offspring  of  Love,  by  Guido;  Cupid  Sleeping,  by  the  same; 
Abraham  giving  up  the  handmaid  Hagar,  by  Guercino;  Esther,  a  suppliant  before 
Ahasuerus,  by  the  same;  Joseph  and  Poiiphar's  wife,  by  Guido;  Venus,  by  the  same; 
Danae,  by  the  same;  Portrait  of  Charks  L  by  Vandjke:  the  Madonna,  by  Corregio;  St 
Cecilia,  by  Raphael  ;  Mary  Magdalen,  by  Guido;  Our  Saviour  appearing  to  his  Mother 
after  his  resurrection,  by  Guercino;  A  Mother  and  Child,  by  Parmegiano;  Cupid  Medi- 
tating, by  Schidoni ;  Laomedon,  king  of  Troy,  detected  by  Neptune  and  Apollo,  by  Salvator 
Rosa.  Sir  Robert,  near  the  close  of  his  life',  formed  about  eighty  reserved  proof  copies  of 
his  best  prints  into  as  many  volumes,  to  which  he  added  a  general  title-page,  and  an  introduc- 
tion on  the  progress  of  engraving. 

IV.  2  tr 


338  MARY   STUART. 


prefixed  to  an  "  Inquiry  into  the  Rise  and  Establishment  of  the  Royal 
Academy  at  London,"  which  was  provoked  from  his  pen  by  a  law  of  that  insti- 
tution against  the  admission  of  engravings  into  the  exhibitions.  After  a  life 
spent  in  the  active  exercise  of  his  professional  talents,  he  died  of  an  asthmatical 
complaint  on  the  5th  of  July,  1792,  leaving,  besides  his  lady,  a  daughter  and 
three  «ons.  Sir  Robert  has  ieen  described  by  his  surviving  friends,  as  one  of 
the  most  amiable  and  virtuous  of  men,  as  he  was  unquestionably  among  the  most 
able  in  his  own  peculiar  walk.  He  was  unassuming,  benevolent,  and  liberal. 
His  industry  was  equally  remarkable  with  his  talent.  In  the  coldest  seasons, 
when  health  permitted  him,  he  went  to  work  with  the  dawn,  and  the  longest 
day  was  too  short  to  fatigue  his  hand.  Even  the  most  mechanical  parts  of  his 
labours  he  would  generally  perform  himself,  choosing  rather  to  undergo 
a  drudgery  so  unsuitable  to  his  talents  flian  trust  to  others.  His  remains  were 
interred  in  Covent  Garden  church-yard. 

STUART,  Mart,  Queen  of  Scots,  daughter  of  James  V.,  and  Mary  of  Guise, 
was  born  in  the  palace  of  Linlithgow,  December  7,  1 512.  Her  father  was  on 
his  death-bed  at  Falkland,  when  her  birth  was  announced  to  him  ;  and  in 
seven  days  after  that  event,  he  expired,  bitterly  regretting,  in  his  dying  mo- 
ments, tliat  it  was  a  female,  and  not  a  male  child,  that  had  been  born  to  him. 
The  young  queen  having  been  i^moved  to  Stirling,  was  there  solemnly  crowned 
by  cardinal  Beaton,  on  the  9th  of  September,  1  543,  while  she  was  yet  only 
nine  months  old.  The  two  first  years  of  the  infant  princess's  life  were  spent 
at  Linlithgow,  under  the  immediate  charge  of  her  mother,  and,  more  remotely, 
under  that  of  commissioners  appointed  by  parliament,  on  the  part  of  the  nation, 
to  watch  over  the  tender  years  of  their  future  sovereign.  During  her  residence 
here,  she  was  attacked  with  small  pox ;  but  the  disease  was  of  so  mild  a  nature, 
08  to  leave  no  trace  behind. 

The  three  following  years,  she  spent  at  Stirling,  under  the  superintendence 
of  the  lords  Erskine  and  Livingstone.  At  the  end  of  this  periofl,  she  was  re- 
moved to  Inchmahome,  a  small  island  in  the  lake  of  Menteith,  in  Perthshire. 
The  disturbed  state  of  the  country  had  rendered  this  measure  necessary,  as  a 
precaution  against  any  attempts  which  might  be  made  to  get  possession  of  her 
person ;  and  it  was  thought,  that  the  remote  and  sequestered  isle  to  which  she 
was  now  sent,  offered  a  greater  degree  of  security  than  could  be  found,  even 
from  the  wards  and  defences  of  a  fortress. 

To  divert  the  young  princess  in  her  solitary  residence,  four  young  ladles  of 
rank  were  chosen  by  her  mother,  the  queen  dowager,  to  accompany  her. 
These  ladies  were,  Mary  Beaton,  niece  of  cai'dinal  Beaton ;  Mary  Fleming, 
daughter  of  lord  Fleming ;  Mary  Livingstone,  daughter  of  one  of  the  young 
queen's  guardians ;  and  Mary  Seaton,  daughter  of  lord  Seaton.  Whether  it 
was  by  chance  or  by  design,  tliat  Uiese  four  ladies  bore  the  same  surname  with 
the  queen,  is  not  now  known  ;  but  tliey  have  since  been  dislingui&lied  by  the 
cofijuiictive  &p{>ellation  of  the  focb  Majurs,  and  as  such  are  cekbrated  in 
history. 

In  this  islaad,  3Iary  resided  for  upwards  of  four  years;  when,  agreeably  to 
au  intention  which  had  been  early  entertained  regarding  her,  site  was  sent  to 
France,  to  receive  the  refined  education  which  that  country  then,  above  all 
dbers,  WAS  capable  of  a^rding.  The  young  queen,  now  in  her  uxtii  year, 
eatbarked  at  Dumbarton  ©n  board  of  a  French  ship,  which,  accompanied  by 
several  other  vessels  of  tliat  nation,  had  been  sent  to  the  Clyde  to  receive  her. 

On  her  ai'rival  at  Brett,  which  she  reached  on  the  14th  of  August,  1548,  a£> 
ter  a  tempestuous  and  tedious  voyage  of  nearly  three  weeks'  duration,  she  vzs 
received,  by  the  orders  of  the  French  monarch,  Henry  II.,  with  all  the  marks 


MARY  STUART.  339 


of  respect  due  to  her  exalted  station  ;  and  was  soon  afterwards  sent,  with  the 
king's  own  daughters,  to  one  of  the  most  celebrated  monasteries  in  France,  to 
receive  such  an  education  as  should  become  the  futu»-e  queen. 

Remarkable  as  was  the  beauty  of  Mary's  person,  it  was  not  more  worthy  of 
admiration  than  her  intellectual  superiority.  In  all  the  various  and  numerous 
branches  of  education  in  which  she  was  instructed,  she  made  rapid  progress, 
and  attained  in  all  a  proficiency  that  excited  universal  admiration.  She  rode 
feax-lessly  and  gracefully,  and  in  dancing  was  unrivalled,  even  at  the  gay  and 
refined  court  of  Henry  II. 

Caressed  and  admired  by  all,  and  suiTOunded  by  every  enjoyment  within  the 
reach  of  humanity,  the  earlier  part  of  Mary's  life  glided  rapidly  away,  Avhile 
she  herself,  in  her  person,  gradually  advanced  towards  that  perfection  of  beauty, 
which  is  to  this  hour  matter  of  interesting  speculation,  and  which  she  seems  to 
have  possessed  in  the  highest  degree  of  which,  perhaps,  the  human  form  is 
susceptible. 

A  desire  long  entertained  by  Mary's  mother,  the  queen  dowager,  and  Henry 
of  France,  to  unite  the  interests  of  the  two  kingdoms,  had  early  produced  a 
contract  of  marriage  between  Francis,  the  young  dauphin,  and  the  Scot- 
tish queen.  This  contract,  Henry  now  thought  it  full  time  to  consummate,  and 
the  youthful  pair  were  accordingly  united.  The  nuptials  took  place  on  the 
24th  of  April,  1558.  Mary  was  then  in  the  sixteenth  year  of  her  age,  and 
her  husband  but  little  older.  The  ceremony,  which  was  celebrated  with  great 
pomp,  was  attended,  amongst  others,  by  the  lord  James,  prior  of  St  Andrews, 
and  other  eight  persons  of  distinction,  from  Scotland,  who  had  been  deputed 
for  that  purpose  by  the  parliament  of  that  kingdom. 

Blary,  already  queen  of  Scotland,  and  heir  presumptive  of  England,  was  now, 
by  her  marriage  to  the  dauphin,  queen  consort  apparent  of  France  ;  a  concentra- 
tion of  dignities  which  perhaps  never  before  occurred  in  one  person.  The  last 
of  these  honours  was  realized,  but  only  for  a  short  period.  In  1559,  a  year  af- 
ter her  marriage,  her  husband,  the  dauphin,  succeeded  to  the  throne,  by  the 
death  of  his  father;  but  in  another  year  afterwards,  in  1560,  he  died,  while 
yet  only  in  the  seventeenth  year  of  his  age. 

Mary's  husband  was  not,  either  in  mental  attainments,  or  personal  appear- 
ance, at  all  equal  to  his  beautiful  and  accomplished  wife ;  he  was,  besides,  of  a 
weakly  and  sickly  habit  of  body,  but  he  appears  to  have  been  of  a  mild  and  af- 
fectionate disposition;  and  there  is  every  reason  to  believe  that  he  was  sincerely 
beloved  by  his  royal  consort. 

On  the  death  of  her  husband,  Mary  was  invited  to  return  to  Scotland,  in 
order  to  undertake  the  government.  Folitical  motives  seconding  this  invitation, 
she  complied  with  it,  and,  in  August,  1561,  sailed  from  the  harbour  of  Calais, 
and  on  tiie  2 1st  of  the  same  month,  arrived  safely  at  Leith.  Her  reception  in 
her  native  land,  was  warm  and  enthusiastic ;  and  although  she  soon  discovered 
many  things  to  increase  her  respect  for  the  country  she  had  left,  she  yet  fully 
appreciated  the  sincerity  with  which  she  was  welcomed. 

The  period  of  Mary's  arrival  in  Scotland  Avas  singularly  inauspicious  for  a  - 
sovereign  educated  as  she  had  been  in  devoted  attachment  to  the  faith  which  her 
Scottish  subjects  had  just  abjured.  The  reformed  religion  had  gradually  advanced, 
from  small  beginnings,  amidst  great  opposition,  until  it  had  now  attained  a  parlia- 
mentary establishment.  Mary  had  been  taught  to  regard  the  late  proceedings  of 
her  Scottish  subjects  in  the  light  of  rebellion  against  her  lawful  authority.  Before 
she  left  France  her  mind  was  filled  with  prejudices  against  the  reformed  faith  and 
its  promoters.  She  came  to  Scotland  prepared  to  subvert  the  reformation.  Tho 
reformers  apprehended  such  an  attempt  oa  the  part  of  Mary  and  her  French  coui*- 


340  MARY  STUART. 


tiers;  and,  amidst  the  enthusiastic  loyalty  expressed  on  the  occasion  of  her  arrival 
by  all  ranks  of  the  people,  it  is  not  surprising  that  every  opportunity  was  taken  to 
impress  the  queen's  mind  with  a  sense  of  the  value  which  her  subjects  attached  to 
their  new-born  liberties.  Knox  and  the  other  leading  reformers,  who  have  been 
censured  for  their  uncompromising  deportment  towards  their  sovereign,  were,  ia 
addition,  influenced  by  a  just  regard  for  their  personal  safety,  which  could  not 
fail  to  be  seriously  compromised  in  the  event  of  popery  regaining  its  ascendency 
in  Scotland.  The  recent  history  of  France,  the  Netherlands,  Spain,  Italy,  and  Eng- 
land, bore  testimony  to  the  perfidious  and  truculent  foe  with  which  they  had  to 
contend  in  the  Romish  church.  "The  rage  for  conquest  on  the  continent  (remarks 
Dr  M'Crie)  was  now  converted  into  a  rage  for  prosely tism ;  and  st»ps  had  already 
been  taken  towards  forming  that  league  among  the  popish  princes,  which  had  for 
its  object  the  universal  extermination  of  protestants.  The  Scottish  queen  was 
passionately  addicted  to  the  intoxicating  cup  of  which  so  many  of  *  the  kings  of 
the  earth  had  drunk.'  Tlicre  were  numbers  in  the  nation  who  were  similarly 
disposed.  The  liberty  taken  by  the  queen  would  soon  be  demanded  for  all  who 
declared  themselves  catholics.  Many  of  those  who  had  hitherto  ranged  under 
the  protestaut  standard  wei-e  lukewarm  in  the  cause;  the  zeal  of  others  had 
already  suffered  a  sensible  abatement  since  the  arrival  of  their  sovereign ;  and 
it  was  to  be  feared  that  the  favours  of  tlie  court,  and  the  blandislimcnts  of  an 
artful  and  accomplished  princess,  would  make  proselytes  of  some,  and  lull  others 
into  security,  while  designs  were  carried  on  pregnant  with  ruin  to  the  religion 
and  liberties  of  the  nation."  On  the  first  Sunday  after  her  arrival,  Mary  was 
60  ill-advised  as  to  have  mass  celebrated  in  the  chapel  at  Holyrood,  on  which 
occasion  her  attendants  received  some  rough  treatment  at  the  hands  of  the 
people.  John  Knox  denounced  the  observance  of  mass  as  idolatry,  in  the  pulpit 
on  the  succeeding  Sabbath.  Two  days  afterwards,  the  queen  sent  for  Knox  to 
the  palace,  and  held  a  long  conversation  with  him  in  the  presence  of  her  brother, 
the  prior  of  St  Andrews,  afterwards  earl  of  Murray.  She  plied  all  her  blandish- 
ments to  soften  the  reformer ;  failing  in  which  she  resorted  to  threats,  in  the 
hope  of  overawing  him.  The  firmness  of  tho  reformer  was  as  immovable  as 
his  faith  was  inflexible,  and  both  were  proof  against  the  smiles  and  tears  of  the 
youthful  princess.  On  taking  leave  of  her  majesty,  Knox  said,  "  I  pray  God, 
madam,  that  you  may  be  as  blessed  within  the  commonwealth  of  Scotland  as 
ever  Deborah  was  in  the  commonwealth  of  Israel." 

Mary  soon  afterwards  made  her  first  public  entry  into  Edinburgh.  Mounted 
on  her  palfrey,  and  suitably  escorted,  she  proceeded  up  the  High  Street  to  the 
castle,  where  a  banquet  was  prepared  for  her.  Tlie  reception  she  met  with 
from  the  citizens  was  extremely  gratifying,  notwithstanding  the  somewhat 
obtrusive  manner  in  which  many  of  them  indicated  their  contempt  for  her  re- 
ligion, and  their  resolution  to  defend  their  own.  In  a  subsequent  progress 
through  Linlithgow,  Stirling,  Perth,  St  Andrews,  and  the  neighbouring  dis- 
tricts, she  was  welcomed  with  hi^h-hearted  loyalty,  such  as  tlie  Scottish  nation 
never  withheld  from  Mary  or  her  descendants  so  long  as  they  respected  the 
religious  principles  and  political  liberties  of  the  people.  On  one  occasion,  during 
the  royal  tour,  some  public  demonstration  of  the  reformers  moved  the  queen  to 
tears.  On  her  return  to  Edinburgh  she  evinced  a  disposition  to  check  the  prac- 
tice of  publicly  insulting  her  faith.  Within  a  few  days  after  her  arrival,  tho 
civil  authorities  issued  a  proclamation,  proscribing  the  "  wicked  rabble  of  the 
antichrist  of  the  pope,"  and  ordering  them  to  withdraw  from  the  bounds  of  the 
town,  within  four  and  twenty  hours,  under  pain  of  carting  through  the  streets, 
burning  on  the  cheek,  and  perpetual  banisliment.  Mary,  however,  did  not 
allow  this  invasion  of  her  authority  to  pass  with  the  same  impunity  which  she 


MARY   STUART.  Zil 

had  permitted  in  some  other  instances  of  a  similar  kind.  She  ordered  tlie 
town  council  to  deprive  the  proTost  and  baillies  instantly  of  their  offices,  and  to 
elect  others  in  their  stead. 

All  the  French  friends  who  had  accompanied  her  to  Scotland,  excepting  her 
uncle,  the  marquis  D'Elbeuf,  disgusted  with  the  treatment  which  they  met  witli 
from  the  reformers,  now  returned  to  their  own  country  ;  and  the  young  and 
inexperienced  queen  was  thus  left  nearly  alone,  to  maintain  the  elevated  and 
dangerous  position  in  which  hereditary  right  had  placed  her,  against  the  stormy 
and  conflicting  interests  and  passions  of  those  by  whom  she  was  surrounded. 
She  was  now  thrown  upon  her  own  resources,  and,  at  a  most  critical  period, 
left  to  rely  wholly  upon  the  firmness  and  energy  of  her  own  character,  to  carry 
her  tlirough  the  arduous  part  which  destiny  had  assigned  her. 

The  fame  of  Clary's  beauty  and  accomplishments,  as  was  naturally  to  be  ex- 
pected, procured  her  many  suitors,  not  only  amongst  her  own  nobility,  but 
amongst  foreign  princes.  She,  however,  declined  all  addresses  of  this  nature, 
and  resolved,  in  the  mean  time  at  least,  to  remain  as  she  was :  a  resolution, 
which  it  had  been  Avell  for  the  unfortunate  queen  she  had  always  adhered  to. 

In  the  month  of  August,  15G2,  little  of  any  interest  having  occurred  in  the 
interval,  IMary  set  out  on  a  progress  through  the  northern  part  of  her  dominions, 
accompanied  by  her  brother,  the  earl  of  Murray,  and  a  numerous  train  of  nobles 
and  attendants.  On  this  expedition  she  spent  three  months,  when  she  again 
returned  to  Edinburgh.  The  two  following  years,  viz,,  1563  and  1564,  Avere 
undistinguished  by  any  public  event  of  importance,  and  were,  on  that  account, 
probably  the  happiest  that  Mary  ever  spent  in  her  native  land. 

Though  no  circumstance  of  national  consequence,  however,  occurred  during 
this  period,  one  of  a  singular  and  melancholy  interest  did  take  place.  This 
was  the  execution  of  the  young  French  poet,  Chatelard.  This  unfortunate 
gentleman,  who  was  attached  to  Mary's  court,  had  fallen  wildly  and  desperately 
in  love  with  his  royal  mistress.  He  wrote  numerous  verses  to  her;  and,  en- 
couraged by  the  unreflecting  approbation  with  which  they  were  received,  and 
mistaking  the  good-natured  courtesy  of  3Iary  for  a  return  of  his  passion,  he 
madly  intruded  himself  into  her  bed-room.  Here  he  was  discovered  by  her 
maids  of  honour;  but,  after  being  severely  reprimanded  by  the  queen  for  his 
audacity,  was  allowed,  from  a  natural  feeling  of  lenity,  as  it  was  his  first  of- 
fence, to  escape  further  punishment.  Undeterred  by  the  imminence  of  the 
danger  to  which  he  had  been  exposed,  and  of  which  he  must  haA'o  been  fully 
aware,  Chatelard,  in  two  nights  afterwards,  again  entered  the  queen's  bed- 
chamber. On  this  occasion,  it  was  at  Dunfermline,  where  Mary  had  stopped  for 
on©  night  on  her  way  to  St  Andrews.  Highly  incensed  by  the  young  man's 
insolent  pertinacity,  Mary,  after  having  in  vain  ordered  him  to  quit  her  apart- 
ment, called  out  for  assistance,  and  was  instantly  attended  by  the  earl  of  Mur- 
ray, who  happened  to  be  within  hearing.  The  unfortunate  Chatelard  was  im- 
mediately taken  into  custody,  tried  at  St  Andrews,  condemned  to  death,  and 
executed  on  the  22nd  of  February,  1563.  Before  laying  his  head  on  the 
block,  which  he  did  with  the  utmost  composure,  he  turned  towards  the  house  in 
which  the  queen  lodged,  and  where  he  presumed  her  at  the  moment  to  be,  and 
exclaimed,  "Farewell,  loveliest  and  most  cruel  princess  whom  the  world 
contains!"  ~  • 

Mary,  if  she  had  not  hitherto  enjoyed  positive  happiness,  had  at  least  been 
free  from  any  very  serious  annoyances,  since  her  accession  to  the  throne.  This 
comparative  quiet,  however,  was  now  about  to  be  disturbed,  and  the  long  series 
of  miseries  and  misfortunes,  which  render  her  history  so  remarkable,  were  on 
the  eve  of  assailing   her.      These  began  with  her  unfortunate   marriago  to 


342  MARY  STUAET. 


Darnley,  an  event  which  took  place  on  the  29th  of  July,  1565.  The  cero- 
mony  was  performed  in  the  cliapel  of  Holyrood,  on  a  Sunday,  between  the 
hours  of  five  and  six  in  the  morning. 

Henry  Stuart,  lord  Darnley,  at  the  time  of  his  marriage,  was  in  the  nine- 
teenth year  of  his  age  ;  Mary  in  her  twenty-third.  The  former  was  the  son 
of  Matthew,  earl  of  Lennox,  and  of  the  lady  3Iargai-et  Douglas,  niece  of 
Henry  VIII.  Even  at  this  early  period  of  his  life,  Darnley  was  esteemed 
one  of  the  handsomest  men  of  his  time  ;  but,  unfortunately,  there  was  little 
correspondence  between  the  qualities  of  his  person  and  his  mind.  He  was 
weak,  obstinate,  and  wayward,  possessing  scarcely  one  redeeming  trait,  unless 
it  were  a  simplicity,  or  i-atlier  imbecility,  which  rendered  him  an  easy  dupe  to 
the  designing. 

Amongst  the  first  evil  results  which  this  unfortunate  connexion  produced  to 
Mary,  was  the  hostility  of  her  brother,  the  earl  of  3Iurray,  who  foresaw  that 
the  new  character  of  a  king  consort  would  greatly  lessen,  if  not  entirely  put  an 
end  to,  the  almost  regal  power  and  influence  which  he  enjoyed  whilst  his  sister 
remained  single.  Impressed  with  this  feeling,  he  had,  at  an  early  period,  not 
only  expressed  his  displeasure  at  the  proposed  marriage,  but,  in  concert  with 
some  other  nobles,  whom  he  had  won  over  to  his  interest,  had  taken  measures 
for  seizing  on  the  queen's  person,  whilst  she  was  ti-avelling  between  Perth  and 
Edinburgh.  Being  earlier  on  the  road,  however,  and  better  guarded  than  the 
conspirators  expected,  she  reached  the  latter  place  without  experiencing  any 
interruption ;  and  in  a  few  days  afterwards,  her  union  with  Darnley  took 
place. 

On  the  15th  of  August,  1565,  seventeen  days  aflor  the  celebration  of  the 
queen's  marriage,  Murray,  who  now  stood  forward  as  an  open  and  de- 
clared enemy,  summoned  his  pnrtizans  to  meet  him,  attended  by  their  followers, 
armed,  at  Ayr,  on  the  24th  of  the  same  month.  To  oppose  this  rebel  force, 
Mary  mustered  an  army  of  five  thousand  men,  and,  with  a  spirit  Avorthy  of  her 
high  descent,  placing  herself  in  the  midst  of  her  troops,  equipped  in  a  suit  of 
light  armour,  with  pistols  at  her  saddle  bow,  she  marched  from  Edinburgh  to 
the  westward,  in  quest  of  the  rebel  forces. 

Murray,  who  had  been  able  to  raise  no  more  than  twelve  hundred  men, 
finding  himself  unable  to  cope  with  the  queen,  retired  from  place  to  place, 
closely  pursued  by  the  royal  forces.  Being  finally  driven  to  Carlisle,  whitlier 
he  was  still  followed  by  Mary,  with  an  army  now  increased  to  eighteen  thou- 
sand men,  his  troops  there  dispei-sed,  and  he  himself  and  his  friends,  abandon- 
ing their  cause  as  hopeless,  fled  to  the  English  court. 

This  triumph  of  Mary's,  however,  in  place  of  securing  her  the  quiet  which 
might  have  been  expected  to  result  from  it,  seemed  merely  to  have  opened  a 
way  for  the  admission  of  other  miseries,  not  less  afUicting  than  that  which  had 
been  removed.  Murray,  and  the  other  lords  who  had  joined  him  in  his  rebel- 
lions attempt,  though  now  at  a  distance,  and  under  a  sentence  of  expatriation, 
still  continued  their  machinations,  and  endeavoured  to  secure,  by  plot  and  con- 
trivance, that  which  they  had  failed  to  obtain  by  force.  In  these  attempts 
they  found  a  ready  co-operator  in  the  earl  of  Morton,  who,  though  entertain- 
ing every  good-will  to  their  cause,  having  taken  no  open  part  in  their  rebellious 
measures,  was  now  amongst  the  few  counsellors  whom  Mary  had  left  to  her. 
Working  on  the  vanity  and  weakness  of  Darnley,  Morton  succeeded  in  inducing 
him  to  join  a  conspiracy,  which  had  for  its  object  the  restoration  of  the  banished 
lords,  and  the  wresting  from,  or  at  least  putting  under  such  restraints  as  they 
should  think  fit,  the  authority  of  the  queen.  Tempted  by  promises  of  undivided 
sway,  that  imbecile  prince,  slighting  the  ties  of  natural  afiection,  and  forgetting 


MARY   STUART.  343 


all  the  kindnesses  and  lionours  which  his  wife  had  heaped  upon  him,  became  an 
active  partizan  in  a  plot  devised  against  her  interest,  her  dignity,  and  her  hap- 
piness. There  was,  however,  one  person  whose  fidelity  to  the  queen  niade  him 
sufficiently  dangerous  to  render  it  necessary,  for  the  safety  of  all,  that  he  should 
be  removed  out  of  the  way.  This  was  David  Rizzio,  Mary's  secretarj'.  Sin- 
cerely interested  in  the  safety  and  honour  of  hia  royal  mistress,  he  was  known 
to  have  exerted  his  influence  with  her,  against  those  who  had  aimed  at  depriv- 
ing her  of  her  authority ;  and  he  was  also  known  to  have  exerted  that  influence 
to  prevent  her  yielding  up  too  much  of  that  authority  to  Darnley.  Being  thus 
equally  detested  by  both,  and  generally  unpopular  on  account  of  his  religion 
and  his  country,  and  for  the  high  estimation  in  which  he  was  held  by  the  queen, 
his  destruction  was  determined  upon. 

On  the  evening  of  the  9th  of  March,  15G5,  the  conspirators,  headed  by  lord 
Ruthven,  entered  the  queen's  chamber,  whilst  she  was  at  supper  with  several  of 
her  household,  including  Kizzio.  On  their  entering,  the  queen  indignantly  de- 
manded the  meaning  of  this  intrusion.  This  tliey  soon  explained;  and  im- 
mediately proceeded  to  attack  their  victim,  with  their  drawn  weapons.  Ilizzio, 
by  taking  shelter  behind  the  queen,  for  some  time  escaped  the  blows  of  the 
assassins,  but  was  at  length  stabbed  in  the  side  over  the  queen's  shoulder, 
and  immediately  after  dragged  into  an  adjoining  apartment,  and  de- 
spatched with  no  fewer  than  fifty-six  wounds.  Immediately  after  the  as- 
sassination, Darnley  and  Morton  placed  the  queen  in  ward ;  and,  on  the  fol- 
lowing morning,  issued  a  proclamation,  in  the  king's  name,  proroguing  the  par- 
liament, which  was  then  sitting,  and  which  had  discovered  such  a  disposition 
in  &vour  of  the  queen,  as  rendered  it  highly  dangerous.  In  the  evening  of 
the  same  day,  Murray,  with  the  other  banished  lords,  returned  from  England. 

At  this  critical  period,  the  vacillating  Darnley,  unable  to  pursue  any  course, 
whether  for  good  or  evil,  steadily,  began  to  repent  of  tlie  part  he  was  acting, 
and  allowed  himself  to  be  persuaded  by  Mary,  not  only  to  desert  his  accom- 
plices, but  to  assist  and  accompany  her  in  making  her  escape  from  Holyrood. 
Attended  only  by  tlte  captain  of  the  guard  and  two  other  persons,  Mary  and 
her  husband  left  the  palace  at  midnight  for  Dunbar,  to  which  they  I'ode  without 
stopping.  Here  the  queen  found  hei-self,  in  the  course  of  a  few  days,  sur- 
rounded by  the  half  of  her  nobility,  and  at  the  head  of  a  powerful  anny.  With 
these  she  returned,  after  an  absence  of  only  five  days,  in  triumph  to  Edinburgh, 
where  she  was  again  reinstated  in  full  and  uncontrolled  authority.  The  con- 
spirators, unable  to  offer  the  slightest  resistance,  fled  in  all  directions  ;  while 
their  leaders,  Morton,  3Iaitland,  Ruthven,  and  Lindsay,  sought  safety  in  New- 
castle. Mary  had,  a  few  days  before,  with  not  <in  unwise  policy,  lessened  the 
number  of  her  enemies,  and  increased  that  of  her  friends,  by  receiving  Mun-ay, 
and  several  others  of  those  who  had  been  associated  with  him,  into  favour;  and, 
therefore,  now  again  enjoyed  the  benefit  of  the  judicious  counsel  of  her  able, 
but  ambitious  brother. 

Soon  after  the  occurrence  of  the  events  just  related,  Mary  beccirae  aware  of 
the  near  approach  of  the  hour  which  was  to  make  her  a  mother.  In  the  antici- 
pation of  this  event,  she  took  up  her  abode,  by  the  advice  of  her  privy  council, 
in  the  castle  of  Edinburgh,  where,  on  the  lUlh  of  June,  1566,  between  the  hours 
of  nine  and  ten  in  the  morning,  she  was  delivered  of  a  son,  afterwards  James 
VI.  of  Scotland,  and  I.  of  England. 

The  intelligence  of  3Iary's  accouchement  was  received  with  the  utmost  joy 
throughout  the  whole  kingdom.  In  Edinburgh,  it  amounted  to  enthusiasm 
All  the  nobles  in  the  city,  accompanied  by  the  greater  part  of  the  citizens, 
went  in  solemn  procession  to  the  high  church,  and  returned  thanks  to  the  Al- 


341  MARY  STUART. 


mighty  for  bestowing  a  prince  upon  them,  and  for  the  mercy  which  had  been 
extended  to  their  queen.  This  impressive  ceremony  was  followed  by  three  en- 
tire days  of  continued  revelry  and  triumph. 

After  her  recovery,  the  queen  proceeded  on  an  excursion  through  various 
parts  of  the  country;  and  again  returned  to  Edinburgh  on  the  lllh  or  12lh 
of  September,  having  previously  placed  the  infant'prince  in  charge  of  the  earl 
and  lady  Mar. 

From  this  period,  the  page  of  Mary's  history  rapidly  darkens;  and  it  is  now 
that  her  enemies  assail  her  character,  and  that  her  friends  find  themselves  called 
upon  to  defend  it.  Each  have  written  volumes,  in  their  turn,  to  establish  her 
guilt  or  her  innocence,  but  hitherto  without  approaching  to  anything  like  com- 
plete success  on  either  side. 

At  the  suggestion  of  the  earl  of  Bothwell,  now  one  of  the  most  active  of 
Mary's  officers  of  stale,  the  privy  council  submitted  to  Mary,  then  (December, 
15G6)  residing  at  Craigmillar  castle,  the  proposal  that  she  should  divorce  her 
husband  Darnley,  to  whom  slie  had  now  been  maiTied  about  a  year  and  a  half. 
There  were  sufficient  reasons,  both  of  a  public  and  personal  nature,  to  make 
such  a  proposal  neither  singular  nor  unwarrantable.  Darnley's  intellectual 
incapacity  rendered  him  wholly  unfit  for  his  situation;  and  his  wayward  temper 
had  wrecked  the  happiness  of  his  wife.  But  the  proposal  originated  in  neither 
of  these  considerations.  It  was  the  first  step  of  tlie  new  ambition  of  Bothwell, 
which  aimed  at  the  hand  of  his  sovereign.  Mary  refused  to  accede  to  the  pro- 
posal, alleging,  amongst  other  considerations,  that  such  a  proceeding  might  pre- 
judice the  interests  of  her  son.  This  resolution,  however,  in  place  of  diverting 
Bothwell  from  his  daring  project,  had  the  effect  only  of  driving  him  to  a  more 
desperate  expedient  to  accomplish  it.  He  now  resolved  that  Darnley  should 
die.  Attended  by  a  band  of  accomplices,  he  pi-oceeded,  at  midnight,  on  Sun- 
day, the  9th  of  February,  1567,  to  the  Kirk  of  Field  house,  situated  near  to 
where  the  college  of  Edinburgh  now  stands,  and  where  Darnley,  who  was  at 
the  time  unwell,  had  taken  up  a  temporary  residence.  The  mode  of  his  death 
had  been  matter  of  some  discussion  previously,  but  it  had  been  finally  deter- 
mined that  it  should  be  accomplished  by  the  agency  of  gunpowder.  A  large 
quantity  of  that  material  had  been,  therefore,  secretly  introduced  into  the 
chamber  beneath  that  in  which  Darnley  slept.  This,  on  the  night  spoken  of, 
was  fired  by  a  match  applied  by  the  assassins,  but  which  burnt  slowly  enough 
to  allow  of  themselves  escaping  to  a  safe  distance  ;  and  in  a  few  minutes,  the 
house,  with  all  its  inmates,  including  Darnley,  was  totally  destroyed. 

For  some  time  after  the  murder,  vague  and  contradictory  surmises  regarding 
the  assassins,  filled  the  kingdom.  Suspicion,  however,  at  length  became  so 
strong  against  the  true  perpetrator,  that,  at  the  instigation  of  Darnley's  father, 
the  earl  of  Lennox,  he  was  brought  to  a  public  trial.  Bothwell,  however,  was 
too  powerful  a  man,  and  had  too  many  friends  amongst  the  nobility,  to  fear  for 
the  result,  lie  had  provided  for  such  an  occurrence.  On  the  day  of  trial,  no 
one  appeared  to  prosecute  him,  and  he  was  acquitted.  Thus  far  the  dark  and 
daring  projects  of  Bothwell  had  been  successful,  and  he  now  hurried  on  to  the 
consummation  of  his  guilty  career. 

On  the  20th  of  April,  little  more  than  two  months  after  the  nssassination 
of  Darnley,  Bothwell  procured  the  signatures  of  a  number  of  the  nobility 
to  a  document  setting  forth,  first,  his  innocence  of  that  crime  ;  secondly,  the 
necessity  of  the  queen's  immediately  entering  again  into  the  married  state ; 
and,  lastly,  recommending  James,  earl  of  Bothwell,  as  a  fit  person  to  become 
her  liusband.  In  two  or  three  days  after  this,  Mary  left  Edinburgh  for  Stir- 
ling, on  a  visit  to  her  infant  son  ;  and  as  she  was  returning  from  thence,  she 


MARY  STUAKT.  34.5 


vas  waylaid  by  Bothuell,  acccnpanied  by  a  troop  of  a  thousand  men,  all  well 
tuounted,  at  a  bridge  uhich  crosses  the  river  Ahnond,  within  a  mile  of  Linlith- 
gow. Mary,  wlien  she  encountered  Botliwell,  was  attended  by  but  a  slight  re- 
tinue, and  by  only  tliree  persons  of  note  ;  these  were  the  earl  of  Huntly,  secre- 
tary Maitland,  and  Sir  James  Melville.  Bothwell  having  dismissed  all  her 
attendants,  with  the  exception  of  the  three  last,  seized  the  bridle  of  Mary's 
horse,  and  immediately  after  the  whole  cavalcade  proceeded  with  their  ut- 
most speed  to  Dunbar,  one  of  Bothwell's  castles.  Here  Mary  was  de- 
tained for  ten  days,  during  which  time  Bothwell  had  succeeded  in  obtain- 
ing  her  consent  to  espouse  liim.  At  the  end  of  this  period,  the  queen  and 
her  future  husband  returned  to  Edinburgh,  and  in  a  few  weeks  afterwards 
Avere  married,  Bothwell  having  previously  obtained  a  divorce  from  his  wife, 
the  lady  Jane  Gordon,  and  a  formal  pardon,  before  the  lords  of  tfession, 
from  I\Iary  herself,  for  his  liaving  seized  upon  her  person.  With  regard  to 
these  transactions,  thus  briefly  narrated,  much  has  been  said  of  the  determined, 
unprincipled,  and  ferocious  charactei'  of  Bothwell,  and  much  of  the  helplessness 
of  the  condition  to  which  3Iary  was  reduced ;  but  it  cannot  be  denied  that  they 
present  still  a  startling  appearance,  even  after  all  that  has  been  said  to  explain 
away  what  part  of  them  artects  the  character  of  Mary. 

Botliwell,  however,  did  not  long  enjoy  the  success  of  his  villany  :  his  own 
ruin,  and  that  of  his  unfortunate  partner,  speedily  followed  their  unhappy  con- 
nexion. 

Disgusted  with  the  insolence  of  his  manner,  and  not  improbably  disappointed 
in  the  hopes  which  they  had  entertained  fronf  his  elevation,  a  number  of  those 
very  lords  Avho  had  assisted  hiin  to  attain  it,  together  with  many  others,  took 
up  arms  to  displace  him. 

On  learning  the  designs  of  his  enemies,  Bothwell  hastily  collected  at  Dunbar 
a  force  of  2000  men,  and  with  these  marched  towards  Edinburgh  on  the  I4tli 
of  June,  1567,  The  hostile  lords,  with  an  army  somewhat  less  in  number, 
marched  from  the  latter  city  to  meet  him,  and  on  the  15lh,  the  two  armies 
came  in  sight  of  each  other,  Bothwell's  troops  occupying  Carberry  hill,  a  rising 
ground  to  the  east  of  Musselburgh.  Neither  army  evincing  much  inclination 
to  come  to  blows,  negotiations  were  entered  into,  and  the  final  result  of 
these  was,  that  3Iary,  who  had  accompanied  Bothwell  to  the  field,  offered  to 
deliver  herself  up  to  the  opposite  party,  on  condition,  that  they  would  conduct 
her  safely  to  Edinburgh,  and  thereafter  yield  obedience  to  her  authority.  This 
being  agreed  to,  she  prevailed  upon  her  husband  to  quit  the  field,  and,  conducted 
by  Kirkaldy  of  Grange,  presented  herself  before  the  hostile  lords,  and  claimed 
their  protection.  3Iary  was  now  conducted  into  Edinburgh,  but  with  little  respect 
either  to  her  rank,  her  sex,  or  her  feelings.  Insulted  by  the  rabble  as  she 
passed  along,  and  dissolved  in  tears,  she  was  taken  to  the  house  of  the  provost, 
instead  of  the  palace,  a  circumstance  which  added  greatly  to  her  dis- 
tress. Dreading  a  re-action  of  the  popular  feeling  towards  the  queen,  which, 
indeed,  shortly  afterwards  took  place,  MaryV  captors,  for  they  now  stood  in 
that  position,  conveyed  her  on  the  evening  of  the  following  day,  to  Holyrood, 
and  at  midnight,  hurried  her  away  on  horseback  to  the  castle  of  Lochleven, 
situated  on  a  small  island  In  a  lake  of  that  name  in  Fifeshire,  and  placed  her 
in  charge  of  lady  Douglas,  mother  of  the  earl  of  IMurray  by  James  V.,  a  woman 
of  haughty  and  austere  manners  and  disposition. 

This  extreme  proceeding  towards  the  unhappy  queeu  was  in  little  more  than 
a  month  afterwards  followed  by  another  still  more  decisive  and  humiliating. 

On  the  24th  of  July,  15G7,  lord  Lindsay  and  Sir  Robert  Lindsay,  deputed 
by  the  lords  of  Secret  Council,  proceeded  to  Lochleven,  and  by  threats  of  per- 


Si6 


MARY  STUAET. 


sornl  violence,  compelled  Mary  to  sign  a  deed  of  abdication,  a  proceeding 
which  was  soon  after  followed  by  the  election  of  Murray  to  the  regency. 

Bothwell,  in  the  mean  time,  after  some  inetlectual  attempts  to  regain  hia  lost 
authority,  retired  to  his  estates  in  tlie  north,  but  being  pursued  thitlier 
by  Grange  and  Tullibardine,  he  embarked  for  Denmark,  Ruthless  and  desper- 
ate  in  all  his  proceedings,  he  attempted,  on  his  way  tliither,  to  replenish  his 
exhausted  finances  by  piracy.  The  intelligence  of  his  robberies  reaching  Den- 
mark,  se.veral  ships  were  despatched  from  that  country  in  quest  of  him,  and  in 
a  very  short  time  he  was  taken  and  carried  a  prisoner  into  a  Danish  port.  On 
his  landing  he  was  thrown  into  prison,  where  he  remained  for  many  years,  and 
finally  ended  his  days  in  misery  and  neglect.  Such  was  the  fate  of  the  proud 
ambitious,  and  wicked  Botlnvell,  the  husband  of  JMarv,  queen  of  Scotland.  ' 
Though  Mary's  fortunes  were  at  this  low  ebb,  and  though  her  enemies  were 
both  nunjcrous  and  powerful,  she  had  still  many  friends,  who  waited  anxiously 
and  impatiently  for  an  opportunity  of  asserting  her  rights  and  avenging  her 
wrongs ;  and  for  such  an  opportunity,  although  attended  with  an  unsuccessful 
result,  they  were  not  called  upon  to  wait  long. 

On  the  25th  of  March,  1568,  about  nine  months  after  she  had  been 
imprisoned  in  Lochleven  castle,  an  attempt  was  made,  by  the  assistance  of 
beorge  Douglas,  a  relation  of  the  family  of  Lochleven,  who  resided  in  the  cas- 
tle, to  effect  Mary's  escape  in  the  disguise  of  a  laundress.  She  was,  however 
discovered  by  the  boatmen,  who  had  been  employed  to  convey  her  to  the  shore' 
and  carried  back  to  the  castle.  In  about  a  month  afterwards,  the  attempt  was 
again  made,  but  now  under  the  auspices  of  \Ailliam  Douglas,  a  young  man  of 
sixteen  years  of  age,  a  relation  of  the  Douglas  family,  and  also  a  resident  on 
the  island.  Douglas,  having  purloined  the  keys  of  the  fortress,  liberated  tl-e 
captive  princess.  3Iay  2nd,  and,  conducting  her  to  a  boat  which  was  in  readiness 
o  receive  her,  conveyed  her  to  the  shore.  Here  she  was  met,  with  the  most 
lively  expressions  of  joy  and  loyal  affection,  by  a  number  of  her  nobility 
who,  having  been  previously  informed  of  the  design,  were  anxiously  awaiting 
her  arrival.  Placing  the  queen  on  horseback,  the  whole  party  instantly  set 
off  at  full  sp^ed  for  Hamilton,  where  they  arrived  on  the  following  forenoon. 

J  he  intelligence  of  Mary's  escape,  and  of  the  place  of  her  temporary  abode 
rapidly  spread  thi^ughout  the  whole  kingdom,  and  nobles  and  troops  instantW 
poured  in  from  all  quarters  to  her  assistance.  In  a  few  days  Mary  found  her. 
self  at  the  head  of  a  formidable  army,  and  suiTouuded  by  the  greater  part  of 
her  nobility  She  now  solemnly  and  publicly  protested  that  her  abdication  had 
ihl"  "•"'{»" ^•«^y'/"d  ^''^f«re  "ot  valid,  and  called  upon  Murray,  who  was 
hen  at  Glasgow,  to  surrender  his  regency.  This  he  refused  to  do  and  both 
parties  prepared  for  hostilities. 

l.n^"  J!'r?tj  '^'*  ^^'^  ""^  ^^y*  ^^""'^y'  ^^>«  ^™«  «ti"  at  Glasgow,  havi„« 
ea  ned  that  the  queen,  with  her  forces,  were  on  their  way  to  Dumbfrton,  whe^ 
It  w^s  proposed  by  the  friends  of  the  former  that  she  should  be  lodged,  a  bcin' 
a  place  ot  greater  safety  than  Hamilton,  he  hastily  assembled ^an  a  uiyo°f 
4000  men  and  marched  out  to  a  place  called  Langside,  about  three  mi  7dis. 
tan  from  the  city  to  intercept  her.  The  hostile  armies  soon  came  in  sight  of 
each  other,  and  a  batUe  followed,  fatal  to  the  hopes  of  Mary.  The  main  bodv 
of  Uie  queen's  army  was  led  by  the  earl  of  Argyfe,  the  van  by  Claud  Hmilto/ 
second  son  of  the  duke  of  Chatelherault,  and  the  cavalry^y  lord  HerWes' 

ilzZonZV:'  '^^ '''  '^'" '-'' '' '''  ^^^-^^^  ^--i  -<^  ^-s 

Mary     on   perceiving  that  the    day  had  gone  against   her,   (for  she  hid 
uunessed  the  contest  from  a  neishbouring  height,)  inLntly  took  ioLZ,a.t 


MARY  STUART.  347 


accompanied  by  lord  Herrles  and  a  few  other  trusty  friends,  rode  off  at  full 
speed,  nor  ever  drew  bridle  until  she  had  reached  Dundrennan  Abbey  in  Gal- 
loway, sixty  miles  distant  from  the  field  of  battle.  Here  she  remained 
for  two  days,  uncertain  whither  to  proceed.  Resolving  at  lengtli  to  tlirow  her- 
self on  the  protection  of  Elizabeth,  she  embarked,  with  a  train  of  eighteen  or 
twenty  persons,  on  board  a  fisliing  boat,  and  sailing  along  the  shore  until  she 
arrived  at  Workington,  in  Cumberland,  was  there  landed  with  her  suite.  From 
Workington  she  proceeded  to  Cockerraoutli,  twenty-six  miles  distant  from  Car- 
lisle, wliere  she  was  met  by  the  deputy  of  the  warden  of  these  frontiers  and  a 
number  of  gentlemen  of  rank  and  respectability,  and  conducted  with  every  mark 
of  respect  to  the  castle  of  Carlisle.  This  honourable  treatment,  however,  was 
but  of  short  duration.  Mary  was  now  in  the  hands  of  her  bitterest  and  most 
inveterate  enemy,  Elizabeth,  and  though  not  yet  aware  of  it,  the  conviction  of 
its  trutli  was  very  soon  forced  upon  her.  From  Carlisle  Mary  was,  by  Elizabeth's 
orders,  removed  to  Bolton,  where  she  was  strictly  guarded,  and  forbidden  to 
hold  any  communication  with  her  Scottish  subjects.  Elizabeth  had  previously 
refused  to  admit  Mary  to  a  personal  interview,  alleging,  that  she  was  under  a 
suspicion  of  having  been  accessary  to  the  murder  of  Darnley,  and  that,  until 
her  innocence  of  that  crime  was  established,  she  could  not  afford  her  any 
countenance,  or  bestow  upon  her  any  mark  of  favour.  Affecting  an  anxiety 
for  Clary's  honour,  Elizabeth  now  proposed  that  an  examination  of  evidence 
should  be  gone  into,  to  prove  either  the  truth  or  falsehood  of  the  allegation. 
Three  sets  of  commissioners  were  accordingly  appointed  for  this  purpose,  one 
by  Elizabeth,  as  umpires  or  judges,  one  by  Murray  and  his  party  as  defenders, 
and  one  by  Mary  as  plaintiff.  These  met  at  York  on  the  4th  of  October,  1 56  8, 
bestowing  upon  their  proceedings  the  gentle  name  of  Conference. 

From  York  the  Conference,  unattended  yet  with  any  decisive  result,  was  re- 
moved to  W^estminster,  where  it  was  again  resumed,  and  finally,  after  several 
disingenuous  proceedings  on  the  part  both  of  Elizabeth  and  Murray's  commis- 
sioners, was  brought  to  a  close  without  being  terminated.  Without  any 
conclusive  or  satisfactory  evidence  of  her  guilt,  or  any  decision  having  been 
pronounced  on  the  evidence  which  had  been  led,  Mary  was,  though  not 
formally,  yet  virtually  condemned  to  perpetual  imprisonment. 

The  unfortunate  queen  Avas  now  moved  from  castle  to  castle  as  notions 
of  caprice  or  fancied  security  dictated,  and  with  diminished  comforts  and 
enjoyments  at  each  remove,  until  she  was  finally  stripped,  not  only  of  all  per- 
sonal liberty,  but  of  every  consolation  which  could  make  life  endurable.  Her 
letters  of  remonstrance  to  Elizabeth  under  this  treatment  are  pathetic  in  the  last 
degree,  but  they  liad  no  effect  upon  her  to  whom  they  were  addressed.  For 
eighteen  years  the  severities  to  which  she  was  exposed  were  left  not  only 
uninvestigated,  but  were  gradually  increased  to  the  end  of  her  unhappy  career. 

On  the  25th  of  September,  1586,  Mary  was  removed  from  Chantly  to  the 
castle  of  Fotheringay,  with  a  view  to  her  being  brought  to  trial  before  a  com- 
mission appointed  by  Elizabeth,  on  a  charge  of  having  abetted  a  conspiracy,  in 
vhich  the  chief  actor  was  one  Anthony  Babington,  and  which  had  for  its  object 
the  assassination  of  Elizabeth  and  the  liberation  of  the  captive  queen.  The 
trial  commenced  on  the  15th  of  October,  but  was  afterwards  adjourned  to  the 
Star  Chamber  at  Westminster,  where  on  the  25th  of  the  same  month  it  was 
finally  adjudged  that  "  JMary,  commonly  called  queen  of  Scots  and  dowager  of 
France,  was  accessary  to  Babington's  conspiracy,  and  had  compassed  and 
imagined  divers  matters  within  the  realm  of  England,  leading  to  the  hurt, 
death,  and  destruction  of  the  royal  person  of  Elizabeth,  in  opposition  to  the 
statute  formed  for  her  protection."     Mary  had  been  charged  with  abetting  a 


343 


MARY  STUART. 


number  of  minor  ploU  during  the  previous  term  of  Iier  captivity,  and  one 
m  especial  set  on  foot  by  the  duke  of  Norfolk,  who  had  not  only  aimed 
at  restoring  her  to  liberty,  but  had  looked  forward  to  the  obtaining  her 
hand  Norfolk's  designs  ^vere  discovered,  and  he  perished  on  the  scaffold 
Jilizabeth's  parliament  now,  therefore,  alleged,  that  their  sovereign's  security  was 
incompatible  with  Mary's  life,  and  urged  her  to  give  effect  to  the  sentence  of  the 
Star  Chamber,  by  ordering  her  immediate  execution, 

Elizabeth  affected  to  feel  the  utmost  reluctance  to  proceed  to  the  extremity 
recommended  by  the  councillors,  but  at  length  gave  way  to  their  importunity 
and  signed  the  warrant  for  her  unfortunate  captive's  execution,  and  a  commis- 
sion was  given  to  the  earls  of  Siirewsbury,  Kent,  Derby  and  others,  to  see  it 
lurried  into  effect.  Aware  of  her  approaching  fate,  for  the  sentence  of 
the  commissioners  had  been  early  conveyed  to  her,  with  an  intimation  to  pre- 
pare for  the  result,  Mary  calmly  awaited  iU  consummation,  without  stooping  to 
any  meanness  to  avert  it,  or  discovering  the  slightest  dread  in  iis  cont^em- 
plation. 

The  fatal  hour  at  length  arrived.  On  the  7th  of  February,  15S7,  the  earls  who 
were  appointed  to  superintend  her  execution  arrived  at  Folherin.ray  and 
requesting  an  audience  of  Mary,  informed  her  of  the  purpose  for  which  they 
came,  and  that  her  execution  would  take  place  on  the  following  morning  at  eight 
o  clock.  Mary  heard  the  dreadful  intelligence  without  discovering  the  slieht- 
est  trepidation.  She  said  she  had  long  been  expecting  the  manner  ot- 
her death,  and  was  not  unprepared  to  die.  Having,  with  the  utmost  composure 
and  self-possession,  arranged  all  her  worldly  affairs,  she  retired  to  bed  about  two 
in  the  morning ;  but,  though  she  lay  for  some  hours,  she  slept  none.  At  bre.ik 
of  day  she  arose,  and  surrounded  by  her  weeping  domestics,  resumed  her  de- 
votions. She  was  thus  employed  when  a  messenger  knocked  at  the  door  to  an- 
nounce that  all  was  ready,  and  in  a  short  time  afterwards,  the  sheriff,  bearin- 
in  his  hand  the  white  wand  of  office,  entered  her  apartment  to  conduct  her  to 
the  place  of  execution. 

Mary  was  now  led  into  the  hall  in  which  her  trial  had  taken  place,  and 
which  had  been  previously  fitted  up  for  the  dreadful  scene  about  to  be  enacted. 
A  scaffold  and  block,  covered  with  black  cloth,  rose  at  the  upper  end,  and  on 
one  side  of  the  latter  stood  the  earls  of  Shrewsbury  and  Kent,  on  the  other,  two 
executioners.  Having  ascended  the  scaffold,  which  she  did  with  a  di-nity  and 
composure  that  rather  increased  than  diminished  as  her  fate  approached 
Mary  prepared  for  the  fatal  stroke.  After  spending  a  short  time  in  prayer,  she 
desired  Jane  Kennedy,  one  of  two  female  attendants,  for  whom  she  had  with 
difficulty  obtained  the  melancholy  privilege  of  accompanying  her  to  the  scaffold, 
to  bind  her  eyes  with  a  handkerchief  which  slie  had  brought  with  her  for  the 
purpose.  Tins  done,  she  laid  her  head  on  the  block,  and  the  axe  of  the  exe- 
cutioner descended.  The  severed  head  was  immediately  held  up  by  the  hair 
which  was  now  observed  to  have  become  grey,  by  the  executioner's  assistant' 
who cal^d  out  «  God  save  Elizabeth,  queen  of  England !'  To  this  sentence  tiie 
earJ  of  Kent  added,  "  Thus  perish  all  her  enemies'" 

Mary's  remains  were  embalmed  and  buried  in  the  cathedral  at  Peterborough 
but,  twenty-five  yearn  afterwards,  were  removed  by  her  son  James  VI.  to 
i  iP  71  'r^^^^^^  '"  Westminster  Abbey.  She  was  at  the  time  of  her  death 
in  the  fortj-.fifth  year  of  her  age,  and  the  nineteenth  of  her  captivity.  Time 
and   grief  had   greatly  impaired    the  symmetry  and    beauty   of  her  person  ; 

1%        JfT'Vr'"."'  '^'  ^'"'""  "^  ^"  ^'''^''  """  «"«  °f  "'«t'^J'l«"  elegance 
Still  mindful  of  her  dignity,  of  her  high  birth,  and  of  what  she  once  had  been 


ET^S-awd  ^  TV.  Knight. 


4i/;^^]Ks   s'lriEWAB^'^ti'. 


JJ\JU.  01'  MUKKAY,-   10:GT>. 


JAMES  STUART.  349 


tho  unfortunate  queen  appeared  upon  the  scaffoltl,  arrayed  in  her  best  and  raost 
splendid  attire,  and  her  whole  conduct  throughout  the  trying  scene  was  marked 
with  the  noble  bearing  and  unshaken  fortitude  of  a  heroine.  3Iary  never  for  a 
moment  forgot  that  she  was  queen  of  Scotland,  and  she  died  with  a  magnani- 
mity worthy  of  the  title. 

STUART,  James,  Earl  of  3Iurray,  celebrated  in  Scottish  history  by  the  title 
of  the  "  Good  Regent,"  was  an  illegitimate  son  of  James  V.,  by  Margaret  Er- 
skine,  daughter  of  John,  fourth  lord  Erskine.  The  precise  year  of  his  birth, 
is  not  certainly  known  ;  but  there  is  good  reason  for  believing  that  this  event 
took  place  in  1533.  Agreeably  to  the  policy  which  James  V.  pursued  with 
regard  to  all  his  sons, — that  of  providing  them  with  benefices  in  the  church, 
while  they  were  yet  in  infancy,  that  he  might  appropriate  their  revenues  dur- 
ing tlieir  nonage, — the  priory  of  St  Andrews  was  assigned  to  the  subject  of 
this  memoir,  when  he  was  only  in  his  third  year. 

Of  the  earlier  years  of  his  life,  we  have  no  particulars  ;  neither  have  we  any 
information  on  tlie  subject  of  his  education.  The  first  remarkable  notice  of 
him  occurs  in  1548,  when  Scotland  was  invaded  by  the  lords  Grey  de  Wilton 
and  Clinton,  the  one  by  land,  and  the  other  by  sea.  The  latter  having  made 
a  descent  on  the  coast  of  Fife,  the  young  prior,  who  then  lived  at  St  Andrews, 
placed  himself  at  the  head  of  a  determined  little  band  of  patriots,  waylaid  tlie 
invaders,  and  drove  them  back  to  their  boats  with  great  slaughter.  Shortly  af- 
ter this,  he  accompanied  his  unfortunate  sister,  queen  Mary,  then  a  child,  to 
France,  Avhither  a  party  of  the  Scottish  nobles  sent  her,  at  once  for  safety,  and 
for  the  benefits  of  the  superior  education  which  that  country  afforded. 

Tlie  prior,  Jiowever,  did  not  remain  long  in  France  on  this  occasion  ;  but  he 
seems  to  have  been  in  the  practice  of  I'epairing  thither,  from  time  to  time,  dur- 
ing several  years  after.  At  this  period  he  does  not  appear  to  have  taken  any 
remarkable  interest  in  national  affairs,  and  none  whatever  in  those  of  tho 
church,  to  which  he  had  always  a  decided  aversion  as  a  profession.  He,  how- 
ever, did  not  object  to  the  good  things  in  its  gift.  In  addition  to  the  priory 
of  St  Andrews,  he  acquired  that  of  Pittenweeni,  and  did  not  hesitate,  besides, 
to  accept  that  of  3Iascon  in  France,  in  commendam ,  with  a  dispensntion  to 
hold  three  benefices.  For  these  favours  of  the  French  court,  he  took  an  oath 
of  fealty  to  pope  Paul  III.  in  1544. 

From  the  year  1548,  Avhen  the  prior,  as  he  was  usually  called,  defeated  the 
English  troops  under  Clinton,  till  1557,  there  occurs  nothing  in  his  history, 
with  the  exception  of  the  circumstance  of  his  accompanying  Mary  to  France, 
worthy  of  any  particular  notice.  In  the  latter  year,  accompanied  by  his 
brother,  lord  Robert  Stuart,  abbot  of  Holyrood,  he  made  an  incursion  into 
England  at  the  head  of  a  small  force,  but  without  effecting  any  vei-y  important 
service,  or  doing  much  injury  to  the  enemy.  In  the  same  year,  he  proceeded 
to  Paris,  to  witness  the  ceremony  of  marriage  between  the  young  queen  of  Scot- 
land and  the  dauphin  of  France,  having  been  appointed  one  of  the  commission- 
ers on  the  part  of  the  former  kingdom  for  that  occasion.  Soon  after  the  cele- 
bration of  the  marriage,  the  prior  solicited  from  Mary  the  earldom  of  Murray  ; 
but  this  request,  by  the  advice  of  ler  mother,  the  queen  regent,  she  refused; 
and,  although  she  qualified  the  refusal  by  an  offer  of  a  bishopric,  either  in 
France  or  England,  instead,  it  is  said  that  from  this  circumstance  proceeded,  in 
a  great  measure,  his  subsequent  hostility  to  the  regent's  government. 

During  the  struggles  between  the  queen  regent  and  the  lords  of  the  congre- 
gation, the  prior,  who  had  at  first  taken  part  with  the  former,  liow  sincerely 
may   be   questioned,  but   latterly  with   the  lords,  gradually  acquired,  by  his 


330  JAMES  STUART. 


judicious  conduct  and  general  abilities,  a  revy  high  degree  of  consiJei-ation  in 
the  kingdom.  He  was  by  many  degrees  the  most  potent  instrument,  after 
John  Knox,  in  establishing  ihe  reformed  religion. 

Haying  nov/  abandoned  all  appearance  of  the  clerical  character,  he  was, 
soon  after  the  death  of  the  queen  regent,  which  happened  on  the  11th  of  June, 
15G0,  appointed  one  of  the  lords  of  the  Articles;  and  in  the  following  year, 
he  was  commissioned  by  a  council  of  the  nobility  to  proceed  to  FVance,  to  in- 
vite 3Iary,  whose  husband  was  now  dead,  to  return  to  Scotland.  This  commis- 
sion he  executed  with  much  judgment,  and  with  much  tenderness  towards  his 
ilJ-fated  relative ;  having,  much  against  the  inclination  of  those  by  whom  he  was 
deputed,  insisted  on  the  young  queen's  being  permitted  the  free  exercise  of  her 
own  religion,  after  she  should  have  ascended  the  throne  of  her  ancestors. 

On  Mary's  assuming  the  reins  of  government  in  her  native  land,  the  prior 
took  his  place  beside  her  throne,  as  her  confidant,  prime  minister,  and  adviser ; 
and,  by  his  able  and  judicious  conduct,  carried  her  safely  and  triumphantly 
through  the  first  act  of  her  stormy  reign.  He  swept  the  borders  of  the  numer- 
ous bands  of  freebooters  with  which  they  were  infested.  He  kept  the  enemies  of 
Slary's  dynasty  in  abeyance,  strengthened  the  attachment  of  her  friends,  and  by 
his  vigilance,  promptitude,  and  resolution,  made  those  who  did  not  love  her  go- 
vernment, learn  to  fear  its  resentment.  For  these  important  services,  Mary,  whose 
implicit  confidence  he  enjoyed,  first  created  him  lieutenant  of  the  borders,  and 
afterwai-ds  earl  of  Mar.  Soon  after  his  creation,  the  earl  married  the  lady 
Agnes  Keith,  daughter  of  the  earl  3Iai-ischal.  The  ceremony  was  publicly  per- 
formed in  the  church  of  St  Giles,  Edinburgh,  with  a  pomp  which  greatly 
oiFended  the  reformei's,  who  were  highly  scandalized  by  the  profanities  whicli 
were  practised  on  the  occasion.  The  earldom,  which  the  prior  had  just  ob- 
tained from  the  gratitude  of  the  queen,  having  been  claimed  by  lord  Erskine  as 
his  peculiar  right,  the  claim  was  admitted,  and  the  prior  resigned  both  the  title 
and  the  property  attached  to  it ;  but  was  soon  after  gratified  by  the  earldom  of 
Murray,  which  had  long  been  the  favourite  object  of  his  ambition.  Immediately 
after  his  promotion  to  this  dignity,  the  earl  of  Huntly,  a  disappointed  compe- 
titor for  the  power  and  popularity  which  Murray  had  obtained,  and  for  the 
favour  and  confidence  of  the  queen,  having  been  proclaimed  a  rebel  for  various 
overt  acts  of  insubordination,  originating  in  his  hostility  to  the  earl ;  the  latter, 
equally  prompt,  vigorous,  and  efficient  in  the  field  as  at  the  council  board,  led 
a  small  army,  hastily  summoned  for  the  occasion,  against  Huntly,  whom  he  en- 
countered at  the  head  of  his  adherents,  at  a  place  called  Corrichie.  A  battle 
ensued,  and  the  earl  of  Murray  was  victorious.  In  this  engagement  he  displayed 
singular  prudence,  skill,  and  intrepidity,  and  a  military  genius,  which  proved 
liim  to  be  as  able  a  soldier,  as  he  was  a  statesman.  On  the  removal  of  Huntly, 
— for  this  powerful  enemy  died  suddenly  and  immediately  after  the  battle,  al- 
though he  had  received  no  wound,  and  his  eldest  son  perished  on  tlie  scaffold  at 
Aberdeen, — Murray  remained  in  undisputed  possession  of  the  chief  authority  in 
the  kingdom,  next  to  that  of  the  sovereign ;  and  the  history  of  Scotland  does 
not  present  an  instance,  where  a  similar  authority  was  more  wisely  or  more 
judiciously  employed.  The  confidence,  however,  amounting  even  to  affection, 
Avhich  had  hitherto  subsisted  between  Murray  and  his  sovereign,  was  now  about 
to  be  interrupted,  and  finally  annihilated.  The  first  step  towards  this  unhappy 
change  of  sentiment,  was  occasioned  by  the  queen's  marriage  with  Darnley. 
To  this  marriage,  Murray  was  not  at  first  averse ;  nay,  he  rather  promoted  it : 
but  some  personal  insults,  which  the  vanity  and  weakness  of  Darnley  induced 
him  to  offer  to  Murray,  together  with  an  offensive  behaviour  on  the  part  of  his 
father,  the  earl  of  Lennox,  produced  in  the  haughty  statesman  that  hostility  to 


JASIES   STUART.  35  [ 


the  connexion,  which  not  only  destroyed  the  good  understanding  between  him 
and  the  queen,  but  converted  him  into  an  open  and  undisguised  enemy.  His 
irritation  on  this  occasion  was  farther  increased  by  Clary's  imprudently  evincing, 
in  several  instances,  a  disposition  to  favour  some  of  his  most  inveterate  enemies; 
and  amongst  these,  the  notorious  earl  of  Bothwell,  who  had  some  time  before 
conspired  against  hia  life.  In  this  frame  of  mind,  IMurray  not  only  obstinately 
refused  his  consent  to  the  proposed  marx'iage  of  Mary  to  Darnley,  but  ultimately 
had  recourse  to  arms  to  oppose  it.  In  this  attempt,  however,  to  establish  him- 
self by  force,  he  was  unsuccessful.  After  raising  an  army,  and  being  pursued 
from  place  to  place  by  iMary  in  person,  at  the  head  of  a  superior  force,  he  fled 
into  England,  together  with  a  number  of  his  followers  and  adherents,  and  re- 
mained there  for  several  months.  During  his  expatriation,  however,  a  total 
change  of  affaix-s  took  place  at  the  court  of  Holyrood.  The  vain  and  weak 
Darnley,  wrought  upon  by  the  friends  of  Murray,  became  jealous,  not  of  the 
virtue,  but  of  the  power  of  the  queen,  and  impatiently  sought  for  uncontrolled 
authority.  In  this  spirit  he  was  prevailed  upon,  by  the  enemies  of  his  consort, 
to  league  himself  with  Murray  and  the  banished  lords  who  were  with  him. 
The  first  step  of  the  conspirators  was  the  murder  of  Rizzio,  the  queen's  secre- 
tary ;  the  next,  the  recall,  on  their  own  responsibility,  sanctioned  by  Darnley, 
of  the  expatriated  nobleman,  who  arrived  in  Edinburgh  on  the  9th  of  March, 
15GG,  twenty- four  hours  after  the  assassination  of  the  unfortunate  Italian. 

Although  Murray's  return  had  taken  place  without  the  queen's  consent,  she 
was  yet  very  soon,  not  only  reconciled  to  that  event,  but  wns  induced  to  receive 
him  again  apparently  into  entire  favour.  Whatever  sincerity,  however,  there 
was  in  this  seeming  reconciliation  on  the  part  of  the  queen,  there  appears  to  be 
good  reason  for  believing  that  there  was  but  little  of  that  feeling  on  the  side  of 
Murray  ;  for,  from  this  period  he'may  be  distinctly  traced,  notwithstanding  of 
occasional  instances  of  apparent  attachment  to  the  interests  of  the  queen,  as  the 
prime  mover,  sometimes  seccetly,  and  sometimes  openly,  of  a  faction  opposed 
to  the  government  of  Mary ;  and  whose  object  evidently  was  to  overthrow  her 
power,  and  to  establish  their  own  in  its  stead.  To  this  end,  indeed,  the  aim 
of  Murray  and  his  confederates  would  seem  to  have  been  long  steadily  directed  ; 
and  the  unguarded  and  imprudent,  if  not  criminal,  conduct  of  the  queen,  en- 
abled them  speedily  to  attain  their  object.  The  murder  of  Darnley,  and  the 
subsequent  marriage  of  Mary  to  Bothwell,  had  the  twofold  effect  of  adding  to 
the  number  of  her  enemies,  and  of  increasing  the  hostility  of  those  who  already 
entertained  unfriendly  sentiments  towards  her.  The  result  was,  that  she  «as 
finally  dethroned,  and  confined  a  prisoner  in  Lochleven  castle,  and  the  eail  of 
Murray  was  appointed  regent  of  Scotland.  With  this  dignity  he  was  invested 
on  the  22nd  of  August,  I5G7  ;  but  whatever  objection  may  be  urged  against 
his  conduct  previous  and  relative  to  his  elevation,  or  the  line  of  policy  he  pur- 
sued when  seeking  the  attainment  of  this  object  of  his  ambition,  there  can  be 
none  urged  against  the  system  of  government  he  adopted  and  acted  upon, 
when  placed  in  power.  He  procured  the  enactment  of  many  wise  and  salutary 
laws,  dispensed  justice  with  a  fearless  and  equal  hand,  kept  down  the  turbulent 
and  factious,  restored  internal  tranquillity  and  personal  safety  to  the  people  ; 
and,  in  every  public  act  of  his  authority,  discovered  a  sincere  desire  for  the 
Avelfare  of  his  country.  Still  the  regent  was  yet  more  feared  and  respected, 
than  loved.  He  had  many  and  powerful  enemies;  while  the  queen,  though  a 
captive,  had  still  many  and  powerful  friends.  These,  having  succeeded  in  ef- 
fecting her  liberation  from  Lochleven,  mustered  in  arms,  and  took  the  field  in 
great  force,  with  the  view  of  restoring  her  to  her  throne.  With  his  usual  pre- 
sence of  mind,  fortitude,  and  energy,  the  regent  calmly,  but  promptly,  prepared 


S53  JOHN  STUART. 


to  meet  the  coming  storm  ;  and,  iu  place  of  demitting  the  regency,  as  he  had 
been  required  to  do  by  the  queen,  he  determined  on  repelling  force  by  force. 
Having  mustered  an  army  of  three  thousand  men,  he  encountered  the  forces  of 
the  queen,  which  consisted  of  double  that  number,  at  Langside,  and  totally 
routed  them  ;  his  cool,  calculating  judgment,  calm  intrepidity,  and  high  mili- 
tary titlenls,  being  more  than  a  niatcii  for  their  numerical  superiority.  This 
victory  the  regent  instantly  followed  up  by  tlie  most  decisive  measures.  He 
attacked  and  destroyed  all  the  castles  and  strongholds  of  the  nobles  and  gentle- 
men  who  had  joined  the  queen;  and  infused  a  yet  stronger,  and  more  deter- 
mined spirit  into  the  administration  of  the  laws  :  and  thus  lie  eventually  estab- 
lished liis  authority  on  a  firmer  basis  than  that  on  which  it  had  rested  before. 

After  the  queen''8  flight  to  England,  the  regent,  with  some  others,  was  sum- 
moned to  York,  by  Elizabeth,  to  bear  witness  against  her,  in  a  trial  which  had 
been  instituted  by  the  latter,  to  ascertain  Mary's  guilt  or  innocence  of  the 
crime  of  Darnley's  murder.  The  regent  obeyed  the  summons,  and  did  not 
hesitate  to  give  the  most  unqualified  testimony  against  his  unhappy  sister. 
Having  performed  this  ungenerous  part,  he  left  the  unfortunate  queen  in  the 
hands  of  her  enemies,  and  returned  to  the  adntinistration  of  the  aftairs  of 
that  kingdom,  of  which  he  was  now  uncontrolled  master.  The  proud  career, 
however,  of  this  wily,  but  able  politician,  this  stern,  but  just  ruler,  was  now 
soon  to  be  darkly  and  suddenly  closed.  While  passing  on  horseback  through 
the  streets  of  Linlithgow,  on  the  23rd  of  January,  1570,  lie  was  fired  at,  from 
a  window,  by  James  Hamilton,  of  Botluvelhaugh,  nephew  to  the  archbishop  of 
St  Andrews.  The  ball  passed  through  his  body,  but  did  not  instantly  prove 
fatal.  Having  recovered  from  the  first  shock  of  the  wound,  he  walked  to  his 
lodgings,  but  expired  a  little  before  midnight,  being  at  the  period  of  his  death  in 
the  thirty-eighth  year  of  his  age.  Hamilton's  hostility  to  the  regent,  proceeded 
from  some  severities  with  Avhich  the  latter  had  visited  him,  for  having  fought 
under  the  queen  at  Langside.  The  assassin  escaped  to  France,  where  he  died 
a  few  years  afterwards,  deeply  regretting  the  crime  he  had  committed. 

STUART,  John,  third  earl  of  Bute,  and  prime  minister  of  (ireat  Britain, 
was  the  eldest  son  of  the  second  earl  of  Bute,  by  lady  Anne  Campbell,  daughter 
of  Archibald,  first  duke  of  Argyle.  He  was  born  in  the  I'arliament  Square, 
Edinburgh,  May  25,  1713,  and  succeeded  to  the  title,  on  the  death  of  his 
father,  in  January,  1723.  In  April,  1737,  on  a  vacancy  occurring  in  the 
representation  of  the  Scottish  peerage,  the  earl  of  Bute  was  chosen  to  fill  it : 
he  was  re-chosen  at  the  general  elections  of  1761,  1768,  and  1774.  His 
lordship  married,  August  24,  1736,  Mary,  only  daughter  of  the  celebrated 
lady  Mary  Wortley  Montagu,  by  whom  he  had  a  numerous  family.  On  his  first 
introduction  to  court  life,  lord  Bute  had  the  good  fortune  to  ingratiate  himself 
with  the  princess  of  Wales,  mother  of  (ieorgo  111.,  who  admitted  him  to  that 
close  superintendence  of  the  education  of  her  son,  which  was  the  foundation  of  all 
his  historical  importance.  In  1750,  he  was  appointed  one  of  the  lords  of  the 
bed-chamber  to  Frederick,  prince  of  Wales  ;  and  on  the  settlement  of  the 
household  of  the  heir  apparent,  in  1756,  the  earl  of  Bute  was  appointed  his 
groom  of  the  stole.  His  lordship  acquired  the  full  confidence  and  friendship  of 
the  young  prince;  and  is  believed  to  have  been  chiefly  instrumental  in  training 
nnd  informing  his  mind.  Before  the  prince's  accession  to  the  throne  in  1760, 
Lord  Bute  was  continued  in  his  situation  as  groom  of  the  stole  ;  and  in  March, 
next  year,  on  the  dismissal  of  the  Wl\ig  ministry,  was  appointed  one  of  the 
principal  secretaries  of  state.  His  lordship  was  in  the  same  year  appointed 
keeper  and  ranger  of  liichmond  park,  on  the  resignation  of  the  princess 
Amelia ;  and  invested  with  the  order  of  the  garter, — au  honour,  as  is  well 


JOHN   STUART.  353 


known,  rarely  bestowed,  except  upon  persons  who  hare  rendered  important 
services  to  the  state. 

The  elevation  of  a  nobleman,  only  known  heretofore  as  the  royal  preceptor, 
and  who  was  also  obnoxious  to  vulgar  prejudices  on  account  of  his  country,  to 
such  higli  place  and  honour,  naturally  excited  much  irritation  in  England. 
This  feeling  «as  greatly  increased,  when,  in  May,  1762,  his  lordship  was  con- 
stituted first  lord  of  the  treasury.  It  reached  its  acme,  on  his  lordship  taking 
measures  for  concluding  a  war  with  France,  in  which  the  British  arms  had  been 
singularly  successful,  and  which  the  nation  in  general  wished  to  see  carried 
on,  till  that  country  should  be  completely  humbled.  The  great  Whig  oli- 
garchy, Avhich,  after  swaying  the  state  from  the  accession  of  the  house  of 
Hanover,  had  now  seen  the  last  days  of  its  dorainancy,  was  still  powerful,  and 
it  received  an  effective,  though  ignoble  aid,  from  a  popular  party,  headed  by 
the  infamous  Wilkes,  and  inflamed  by  other  unprincipled  demagogues,  chiefly 
through  the  medium  of  the  press.  A  newspaper,  called  the  Briton,  had  been 
started  for  the  purpose  of  defending  the  new  administration.  It  was  met  by 
one  called  the  North  Briton,  conducted  by  Wilkes,  and  which,  in  scurrility 
and  party  violence,  exceeded  all  that  went  before  it.  Wilkes,  it  is  said,  might 
at  one  time  have  been  bribed  to  silence  by  lord  Bute ;  he  now  took  up  the  pen 
with  the  determined  purpose,  as  he  himself  expressed  it,  of  writing  his  lordship 
out  of  office.  Neither  the  personal  character  of  the  minister,  nor  his  political 
proceedings  furnishing  much  matter  for  satire,  this  low-minded,  though  clever 
and  versatile  man,  set  up  his  country  and  countrymen  as  a  medium  through 
which  to  assail  him.  The  earl,  seeing  it  in  vain  to  contend  against  prejudices 
80  firndy  rooted,  lost  no  time,  after  concluding  the  peace  of  Paris,  in  resign- 
ing ;  he  gave  up  office  on  the  16th  of  April,  1763,  to  the  great  surprise  of  his 
enemies,  who,  calculating  his  motives  by  their  own,  expected  him,  under  all 
circumstances,  to  adhere  to  the  so-called  good  things  which  were  in  his 
grasp. 

The  Bute  administration,  brief  as  it  was,  is  memorable  for  the  patronage 
which  it  extended  to  literature.  The  minister,  himself  a  man  of  letters  and 
of  science,  wished  that  the  new  reign  should  be  the  commencement  of  an 
Augustan  era ;  and  he  accordingly  was  the  means  of  directing  the  attention  of 
the  young  monarch  to  a  number  of  objects,  which  had  hitherto  languished  for 
want  of  the  crown  patronage.  One  of  the  most  remarkable  effects  of  the  spirit 
infused  by  his  lordship  into  the  royal  mind  w<is,  the  rescuing  of  the  majestic 
mind  of  Johnson  from  the  distresses  of  a  dependence  on  letters  for  subsistence ; 
a  transaction,  for  which  many  bosoms,  yet  to  be  animated  with  tiie  breatli  of 
life,  will  expand  in  gratitude  at  the  mention  of  the  name  of  George  III. 

The  ministerial  character  of  ford  Bute  has  been  thus  drawn  by  an  impartial 
writer  :  "  Few  ministers  have  been  more  hated  than  lord  Bute  was  by  the  Eng- 
lish nation ;  yet,  if  we  estimate  his  conduct  from  facts,  Avithout  being 
influenced  by  local  or  temporary  prejudices,  we  can  by  no  means  find  just 
grounds  for  the  odium  which  he  incurred.  As  a  war  minister,  though  his  plans 
disrx)vered  little  of  original  genius,  and  naturally  proceeded  from  the  measures 
of  his  predecessor,  the  general  state  of  our  resources,  the  conquests  achieved, 
and  the  dispositions  of  our  fleets  and  armies,  yet  they  were  judicious  ;  the  agents 
appointed  to  carry  them  on  were  selected  with  discernment,  and  the  whole  re- 
sult was  successful.  His  desire  of  peace,  after  so  long  and  burdensome  a  Avar, 
was  laudable,  but  perhaps  too  eagerly  manifested.  As  a  negotiator,  he  did  not 
procure  the  best  terms,  which,  from  our  superiority,  might  have  been  obtained. 
His  project  of  finance,  in  itself  unobjectionable,  derived  its  impolicy  from  the 
unpopularity  of  his  administration.      Exposed   from  unfounded    prejudices   to 


354  JOHN  STUART. 


calumny,  he  deserved  and  earned  dislike  by  his  haughty  deportment.  The  man- 
ners which  custom  might  hare  sanctioned  from  an  imperious  chieftain  to  his  servile 
retainers  in  a  remote  corner  of  the  island,  did  not  suit  the  independent  spirit  of 
the  English  metropolis.  The  respectable  mediocrity  of  his  talents,  with  the 
suitable  attainments,  and  his  decent  moral  character,  deserved  an  esteem  which 
his  manners  precluded.  Since  he  could  not,  like  Pitt,  command  by  superior 
genius,  he  ought,  like  the  duke  of  Newcastle,  to  have  conciliated  by  affable  de- 
meanour. His  partizans  liave  praised  the  tenacity  of  lord  Bute  in  his  pur- 
poses ;  a  quality  which,  guided  by  wisdom  in  the  pursuit  of  right,  and  combined 
with  the  power  to  render  success  ultimately  probable,  is  magnanimous  firmness, 
but,  without  these  requisites,  is  stubborn  obstinacy.  No  cliarge  has  been  more 
frequently  made  against  lord  Bute,  than  that  he  was  a  promoter  of  arbitrary 
principles  and  measures.  This  is  an  accusation  for  which  its  supporters  can  find 
no  grounds  in  his  particular  acts ;  they  endeavoured  therefore  to  establish  their 
assertion  by  circuitous  arguments.  Lord  Bute  had  been  the  means  of  dispos- 
sessing tlie  Whig  connection  of  power,  and  had  given  Scotsmen  appointments, 
which  were  formerly  held  by  the  friends  of  the  duke  of  Newcastle.  To  an  im- 
partial investigation,  however,  it  appears  evident,  that  lord  Bute  merely 
preferred  himself  as  minister  to  the  duke  of  Newcastle.  If  we  examine  his  par^ 
ticular  nominations,  we  shall  find  that  he  neither  exalted  the  friends  of  liberty 
nor  despotism,  but  his  own  friends.  It  would  probably  have  been  better  for 
the  country  if  lord  Bute  had  never  been  minister;  but  all  the  evils  that  may 
be  traced  to  that  period  did  not  necessarily  proceed  from  his  measures,  as  many 
of  them  flowed  from  circumstances  over  which  he  had  no  control.  Candour 
must  allow  that  the  comprehensive  principle  on  which  his  majesty  resolved  to 
govern  was  liberal  and  meritorious,  though  patriotism  may  regret  that  he  was 
not  more  successful  in  his  first  choice.  The  administration  of  Bute  teaches  an 
instructive  lesson,  that  no  man  can  be  long  an  effectual  minister  of  this  country, 
who  will  not  occasionally  attend,  not  only  to  the  Avell-founded  judgment,  but 
also  to  the  prejudices,  of  Englishmen." ^ 

The  earl  of  Bute  spent  the  most  of  the  remainder  of  his  life  in  retirement, 
at  his  seat  of  Luton  in  Bedfordshire,  but  not  without  the  suspicion  of 
still  maintaining  a  secret  influence  over  the  royal  counsels.  "  The  spirit  of  the 
Favourite,"  says  Junius,  "  had  some  apparent  influence  over  every  administra- 
tion ;  and  every  set  of  ministers  preserved  an  appearance  of  duration,  as  long  as 
they  submitted  to  that  influence."  The  chief  employment,  however,  of  the  ex- 
minister  was  the  cultivation  of  literature  and  science.  He  was  more  fond  of 
books  of  information  than  of  imagination.  His  favourite  study  was  botany, 
with  which  he  acquainted  himself  to  such  an  extent,  that  the  first  botanists  in 
Europe  were  in  the  habit  of  consulting  his  lordship.  He  composed  a  work  on 
English  plants,  in  nine  quarto  volumes,  of  which  only  sixteen  copies  were 
thrown  off;  the  text  as  well  as  the  figures  of  the  plants  being  eng^raved  on  cop- 
per-plates, and  these  plates,  it  is  said,  immediately  cancelled,  though  the  work 
cost  upwards  of  one  thousand  pounds.  He  presented  to  the  Winchester  college 
a  bronze  statue  of  their  founder,  William  of  Wykham,  supposed  to  have  been 
the  work  of  some  great  artist  in  the  fourteenth  century.  It  is  a  full  length 
figure  in  the  episcopal  habit,  sixteen  inches  high,  and  executed  with  remarkable 
elegance.  His  lordship  was  elected  one  of  the  trustees  of  the  British  Museum 
in  1765,  held  the  office  of  chancellor  of  the  Marischal  college  of  Aberdeen, 
and,  on  the  institution  of  the  Society  of  Antiquaries  in  Scotland  (1780,)  was 
elected    president.     He    was   an  honorary  fellow    of  the  Royal  College    of 

1  Bisset's  Reign  of  George  III.  apud  Brydges'  Peerage. 


DK.  GILBERT  STUART.  355 

Physicians  at  Edinburgh,  and  to  him  the  university  of  that  city  was  indebted  for 
its  useful  appendage,  the  Botanic  Garden. 

Part  of  his  lordship's  time  in  his  latter  years  was  spent  at  a  marine  villa 
which  he  built  on  the  edge  of  the  clift'  at  Christ  Church,  in  Hampshire,  over- 
looking the  Needles  and  the  Isle  of  Wight.  Here  his  principal  delight  was  to 
listen  to  the  melancholy  roar  of  the  sea ;  of  which  the  plaintive  sounds  were 
probably  congenial  to  a  spirit  soured  with  what  he  believed  to  be  the  ingrati- 
tude of  mankind.  His  lordship  died  at  his  house  in  South  Audley  Street,  Lon- 
don, March  10,  1792,  in  the  seventy-ninth  year  of  his  age.  Of  his  private 
character  and  manners,  which  may  now  properly  be  touched  upon,  an  acute  ob- 
server has  written  as  follows : — "  I  never  knew  a  man  Avith  whom  one  could  be 
so  long  tete  a  tete  without  being  tii'ed.  His  knowledge  was  so  extensive,  and 
consequently  his  conversation  so  varied,  that  one  thought  one's  self  in  the  com- 
pany of  several  persons,  with  the  advantage  of  being  sure  of  an  even  temper  in 
a  man  whose  goodness,  politeness,  and  attention,  were  never  wanting  to  those 
who  lived  with  him."- 

STUART,  (Db)  Gilbkbt,  an  eminent  historical  essayist,  was  born  at  Edinburgh 
in  1742.  His  father  was  Mr  George  Stuart,  professor  of  humanity  (Latin)  and 
Koman  antiquities,  in  the  university  of  Edinburgh.  Gilbert  received  an  accom- 
plished education  in  his  native  city,  under  the  superintendence  of  his  father.  His 
education  was  directed  towards  qualifying  him  for  the  bar  ;  but  it  is  question- 
able whether  his  magnificent  opinion  of  his  own  abilities  permitted  him  ever 
seriously  to  think  of  becoming  an  ordinary  practising  advocate.  Before  he 
was  twenty-two  years  of  age,  he  made  what  was  considered  a  splendid  entrance 
on  the  career  of  authorship,  by  publishing  an  *'  Historical  Dissertation  concern- 
ing the  English  Constitution  ;"  the  circumstance,  that  four  editions  of  a  work 
on  a  subject  requiring  so  much  information  and  power  of  thought,  yet  which 
almost  every  man  possessed  knowledge  enough  to  criticise,  were  speedily  issued, 
is  of  itself  sufficient  evidence  that  the  young  author  possessed  a  very  powerful 
intellect.'  When  we  consider  the  reputation  of- his  father,  it  cannot  perhaps 
be  argued  as  a  very  strong  additional  evidence  of  the  esteem  in  Avhich  the  work 
was  held,  that  the  university  of  Edinburgh  conferred  on  the  author  the  degree 
of  Doctor  of  Laws.  His  next  literary  labour  Avas  the  editing  of  the  second  edi- 
tion of  Sullivan's  Lectures  on  the  English  Constitution,  in  1772,  to  which  he 
prefixed  a  "  Discourse  on  the  Government  and  Laws  of  England."  Dr  Stuart 
endeavoured  to  obtain  one  of  the  law  chairs  in  the  university  of  Edinburgh, 
whether  that  of  Scottish  or  of  civil  law,  the  writers  who  have  incidentally  noticed 
the  circumstances  of  his  life,  do  not  mention  ;  nor  are  they  particular  as  to  the 
period,  which  would  appear  from  his  conduct  to  his  opponents,  in  the  Edin- 
burgh Magazine  of  1773,  to  have  been  some  time  before  that  year.^  Whether 
he  possessed  a  knowledge  of  his  subject  sufficiently  minute  for  the  task  of  teaching 
it  to  others,  may  have  been  a  matter  of  doubt;  his  talents  and  general  learning 
were  certainly  sufficiently  high,  but  his  well-earned  character  for  dissipation,  the 
effect  of  which  was  not  softened  by  the  supei'cilious  arrogance  of  his  manners, 

*  Memoirs  of  a  Tnivcller  now  in  Retirement,  iv.  177. 

^  Kerr  (Life  of  Smellie)  and  others  say  he  was  then  only  twenty-two  yeai-s  okl ;  yet  there 
is  no  edition  of  this  work  older  than  1768,  when,  according  to  the  same  authorities,  he  must 
have  been  twentj'-six  years  old. 

2  According  to  the  list  of  Professors  in  Bower's  History  of  the  University  of  Edinburgh, 
the  only  law  chair  succeeded  to  for  many  years  at  this  period  of  Stuart's  life,  is  that  of  the 
law  of  nature  and  nations,  presented  to  Mr  James  Balfour,  in  176't.  If  we  am  suppose  this 
person  to  have  been  Mr  Stuart's  successful  opponent,  we  would  find  him  disappointed  by  the 
same  fortunate  person  who  snatched  the  moral  philosophy  chair  from  Hume.  The  list 
seems,  however,  to  be  imperfect.  No  notice,  for  instance,  is  taken  of  any  one  entering  on 
the  Scots  law  chair  in  1765,  when  it  was  resigned  by  Erskine. 


35G  DR.  GILBERT  STUART. 


yvas,  to  Dr  Robertson  and  011161*8,  tyfficient  reason  for  opposing  him,  without 
farther  inquiry.  To  the  influence  of  the  worthy  principal,  it  has  generally 
f)een  considered  that  his  rejection  was  owing ;  and  as  he  was  of  a  temperament 
never  to  forgive,  he  turned  the  course  of  his  studies,  and  the  future  labour  of 
tiis  life,  to  the  depreciation  of  the  literary  performances  of  his  adversai*y;  turn- 
ing aside  only  from  his  grand  pursuit,  when  some  other  object  incidentally  at- 
tracted his  vii-ulence,  and  making  even  his  inordinate  thirst  of  fame  secondary 
to  his  desire  of  vengeance.  After  his  disappointment,  Stuart  proceeded  to 
London,  where  he  was  for  some  time  employed  as  a  Avriter  in  the  Monthly  Re- 
view. His  particular  contributions  to  this  periodical  have  not  been  specified  ; 
but  to  one  at  all  curious  about  the  matter,  it  might  not  be  difficult  to  detect 
every  sentence  of  his  magniloquent  pen,  from  the  polislied  order  of  the  sen- 
tences, tlieir  aspect  of  grave  reflection,  and  the  want  of  distinctness  of  idea, 
when  they  are  o-itically  examined.  By  the  establishment  of  the  Edinburgh 
M<igazine  and  Review,  in  1773,  Stuart  had  more  unlimited  opportunities  of 
performing  the  great  duty  of  his  life.  As  manager  of  tliat  periodical,  he  was 
associated  with  Mr  Smellie,  a  man  of  very  difl^erent  habits  and  temperament ; 
an^  Blacklock,  Richardson,  Gillies,  and  other  men  of  considerable  eminence, 
were  among  the  contributors.  This  periodical,  which  extended  to  five  volumes, 
was  creditable  to  the  authors  as  a  literary  production,  and  exhibited  spirit  and 
originality,  unknown  to  that  class  of  literature  in  Scotland  at  the  period,  and 
fieldom  equalled  in  England.  But  in  regard  to  literature,  Edinburgh  was  then, 
what  it  has  ceased  to  be,  a  merely  provincial  town.  The  connexions  of  the 
booksellers,  and  the  literature  expected  to  proceed  from  it,  did  not  enable  it 
to  support  a  periodical  for  the  whole  country.  It  was  the  fate  of  that  under 
consideration,  while  it  aimed  at  talent  which  would  make  it  interesting  else- 
where, to  concentrate  it,  in  many  instances,  in  virulence  which  was  uninterest- 
ing to  the  world  in  general,  and  which  finally  disgusted  those  persons  more 
personally  acquainted  with  the  parties  attacked,  whose  curiosity  and  interest  it 
at  first  roused.  Mr  DTsraeli  has  discovered,  and  printed  in  his  Calamities  of 
Authors,  a  part  of  the  correspondence  of  Stuart  at  this  period,  curiously  charac- 
teristic of  his  exulting  hopes  of  conquest.  "  The  proposals,"  he  says,  "  are 
issued  :  the  subscriptions  in  the  booksellers'  shops  astonish :  correspondents 
flock  in  ;  and,  what  will  surprise  you,  the  timid  proprietors  of  the  Scots 
Magazine,  have  come  to  the  resolution  of  dropping  their  work.  You  stare  at 
all  this  ;  and  so  do  I  too."  "  Thus,"  observes  Mr  DTsraeli,  "  he  flatters  him- 
self he  is  to  annihilate  his  rival,  witiiout  even  striking  the  first  blow  ;  the  ap- 
pearance of  his  firat  number  is  to  be  the  moment  when  their  Inst  is  to  come 
forth."  Authors,  like  the  discoverei-s  of  mines,  are  the  most  sanguine  creatures  in 
the  world.  Gilbert  Stuart  afterwards  flattered  himself  that  Dr  Henry  was  lying 
at  the  point  of  death,  from  the  scalping  of  his  tomahawk  pen.  But  of  this 
anon.  On  the  publication  of  the  first  number,  in  November,  1773,  all  is  exul- 
tation ;  and  an  account  is  facetiously  expected,  tliat  "  a  thousand  copies  had 
emigrated  from  the  Row  and  Fleet  Street."  There  is  a  serious  composure  in 
letter  of  December,  which  seems  to  be  occasioned  by  tlie  tempered  answer 
of  his  London  correspondent.  The  work  was  more  suited  to  the  meridian  of 
Edinburgh,  and  from  causes  sufliciently  obvious,  its  personality  and  causticity. 
St(iart,  however,  assures  his  friend,  that  "  the  second  number  you  will  find  bet- 
ter than  the  first,  and  the  third  better  than  the  second."  The  next  letter  is 
dated  IMarch  4th,  1774,  in  which  I  find  our  author  still  in  good  spirits.  "  The 
magazine  rises  and  promises  much  in  this  quarter.  Our  artillery  has  silenced 
•11  opposition.  The  rogues  of  the  '  uplifted  hands '  decline  the  combat." 
These  rogues  are  the  clergy :    and  some  others,  who  had  "  uplifted  hands," 


DR.  GILBERT  STUART.  *  357 

from  the  vituperative  nature  of  their  adversary :  for  he  tells  us,  that  "  now  the 
clergy  are  silent ;  the  town  council  have  had  the  presumption  to  oppose  us, 
and  have  threatened  Creech  (the  publisher  in  Edinburgh)  with  the  terror  of 
making  him  a  constable  for  his  insolence.  A  pamphlet  on  the  abuses  of 
Heriot's  hospital,  including  a  direct  proof  of  perjury  in  the  provost,  was  the 
punishment  inflicted  in  turn.  And  new  papers  are  forging  to  chastise  them,  in 
regard  to  the  poor's  rate,  which  is  .again  started  ;  the  improper  choice  of 
professors  ;  and  violent  stretches  of  the  impost.  The  liberty  of  the  press,  in 
its  fullest  extent,  is  to  be  employed  against  tliem."'* 

The  natural  conclusion  from  the  tone  of  these  letters,  from  circumstances  in 
the  conduct  of  Stuart,  which  we  have  already  recorded,  and  from  some  we  may 
hereafter  mention,  might  perhaps  be,  that  he  was  a  man  possessed  with  a  gene- 
ral malignity  against  the  human  race ;  yet  it  has  been  said  that  he  was  warm  in 
his  friendships,  and  that  his  indignation  against  vice  and  meanness,  frequently 
exhibited,  came  from  his  heart.  It  will  appear  perhaps  to  be  the  truest  con- 
clusion as  to  his  character,  that  he  was  simply  one  of  those  men  who  are  termed 
persons  of  violent  passions,  and  who  may  be  made  Falconbridges,  squire  Wes- 
terns, or  Gilbei't  Stuarts,  from  circumstances.  The  circumstances  which  swerved 
his  feelings  into  their  particular  course,  appear  to  have  done  so,  by  feeding  his 
mind  with  aiTOgance,  and  making  him  look  upon  himself  as  a  being  of 
superior  mould  to  that  of  his  fellows.  Such  a  man,  independently  of  the  want 
of  restraint,  which  he  must  feel  from  the  opinions  of  people  whom  he  thinks 
beneath  him,  invariably  finds  the  world  not  so  complimentary  to  his  genius  as 
he  is  himself ;  and  he  consequently  feels  surrounded  by  enemies, — by  people 
who  rob  him  of  his  just  right.  His  father,  long  a  respectable  professor,  is  said 
to  have  possessed  the  same  fiery  temperament ;  but  his  mind  was  regulated  by  a 
routine  of  studies  and  duties.  He  probably  entered  the  world  with  lower  expec- 
tations than  those  of  his  son,  and  had  less  opportunity  of  nursing  his  arrogance, 
and  his  passions  effervesced  in  common  irritability,  and  enthusiasm  for  parti- 
cular branches  of  literature.  The  mind  of  such  a  man  as  Stuart  deserves  a 
little  study,  beyond  the  extent  to  which  his  merely  literary  importance  would 
entitle  him  ;  and  perhaps  a  few  extracts  from  his  letters  to  Mr  Smellie — a  man 
■certainly  his  equal  in  talent,  and  his  superior  in  useful  information — may  form 
not  uninteresting  specimens  of  his  arrogance.  As  Stuart  was  above  troubling 
Iiimself  with  dates,  the  extracts  are  picked  miscellaneously. 

"  Inclosed  is  Murray's  letter,  which  you  will  consider  attentively,  and  send 
me  the  result,  that  I  may  write  to  him.  That  was  to  have  been  done  by  Creech 
and  you,  but  has  not  yet  been  thought  of  by  either.  The  business  we  are  about 
to  engage  in,  is  too  serious  to  be  trifled  with. 

"  It  appears  to  me  perfectly  obvious,  that  without  a  partner  in  London,  we 
cannot  possibly  be  supplied  with  books ;  and  on  our  speedy  supply  of  them, 
the  whole  success  of  the  work  must  depend.  Murray  seems  fully  apprized  of  the 
pains  and  attention  that  are  necessary, — has  literary  connexions,  and  is  fond 
of  the  employment, — let  him,  therefore,  be  the  London  proprietor. 

"  If  I  receive  your  letters  to-morrow,  they  may  be  sent  off  the  day  after. 
Shut  yourself  up  for  two  hours  after  supper.  Be  explicit  and  full ;  and  in  the 
mean  time,  let  me  know  what  books  are  sent  off,  besides  Harwood  and  the  Child 
of  Nature  ;  which,  by  the  by,  might  have  been  sent  off  three  full  weeks  ago, 
as  they  have  been  so  long  in  your  possession. 

"As  to  the  introductory  paragraph  about  an  extract  from  Kames,  I  wrote 
you  fully  about  it  ten  days  ago  ;  and  it  is  a  pain  to  me  to  write  fifty  times  on 
the  same  subject.  It  is  odd  that  you  will  rnlher  give  one  incessant  trouble, 
^  Calamities  of  Authora,  i.  51 — 7. 


353  •  DR.  GILBERT  STUART. 


tlian  keep  a  book  of  transactions,  or  lay  aside  the  letters  you  receive,  with  copy 
inclosed.      The  extract  from  Kniiies  is  laid  aside,  lo  make  way  for  extracts  from 

Pennant,  which  are  more  popular.      Explain  to  ,  who  is  by  this  time  in 

town,  the  ridiculousness  of  his  behariour.  It  would  seem  tliat  his  servants  are 
perfect  idiots,  and  that  he  trusts  to  them.  If  I  were  in  his  place,  and  a  ser- 
vant  once  neglected  to  do  what  I  had  ordered  him,  he  should  never  receive 
from  me  a  second  order. 

"  I  beg  that  Creech  and  you  may  have  some  communing  about  the  fate  of 
the  magazine  ;  as  I  am  no  longer  to  have  any  concern  with  it.  I  do  not  mean 
to  write  anything  for  it,  after  the  present  volume  is  finished ;  and  I  fancy  the 
next  is  the  last  number  of  the  third  volume.  I  have  another  view  of  disposing 
of  my  time,  and  I  fancy  it  will  almost  wholly  be  taken  up  ;  the  sooner,  there- 
fore, that  I  am  informed  of  your  resolutions,  the  better."* 

Poor  3Ir  Smellie  seems  to  have  laboured  with  patient,  but  ineflectual  pei^se- 
verance,  to  check  the  ardour  of  his  restless  colleague.  An  attack  by  Stuart  on 
the  Elements  of  Criticism  by  lord  Karnes,  he  managed,  by  the  transmutation  of 
a  few  words,  adroitly  to  convert  into  a  panegyric.  "  On  the  day  of  publica- 
tion," says  the  memorialist  of  Smellie,  "  Dr  Stuart  came  to  inquire  at  the  print- 
ing office,  *if  the was  damned;'"  using  a  gross  term  which  he  usually  in- 
dulged in,  when  he  was  censuring  an  author.  Mr  Smellie  told  him  what  he 
had  done,  and  put  a  copy  of  the  altered  review  into  his  hands.  After  reading 
the  two  or  three  introductory  sentences,  he  fell  down  on  the  floor,  apparently 
in  a  fit ;  but,  on  coming  to  himself  again,  he  good  naturedly  said,  "  William, 
after  all,  I  believe  you  have  done  right."*  Smellie  was  not,  however,  so  for- 
tunate on  other  occasions.  The  eccentricities  of  the  classical  Burnet  of  Mon- 
boddo,  afforded  an  opportunity  which  Stuart  did  not  wish  to  omit.  He  pro- 
posed to  adorn  the  first  number  of  the  Magazine  with  "  a  print  of  my  lord 
Monboddo,  in  his  quadruped  form.  I  must,  therefore,"  he  continues,  "  most 
earnestly  beg  that  you  will  purchase  for  me  a  copy  of  it  in  some  of  the  maca- 
roni-print shops.  It  is  not  to  be  procured  at  Edinburgh.  They  are  afraid  to 
vend  it  here.  We  are  to  take  it  on  the  footing  of  a  figure  of  an  animal,  not 
yet  described  ;  and  are  to  give  a  grave,  yet  satirical  account  of  it,  in  the  man- 
ner of  Bufibn.  It  would  not  be  proper  to  allude  to  his  lordship,  but  in  a  very 
distant  manner."®  Although  this  laborious  joke  was  not  attempted,  Stuart's 
criticism  on  the  Origin  and  Progress  of  Language,  notwithstanding  the  mollifi- 
cations of  Smellie,  had  a  sensible  efi'ect  on  the  sale  of  the  magazine.  "  I  am 
sorry,"  says  Mr  Murray,  in  a  letter  to  Smellie,  "  for  the  defeat  you  have  met 
with.  Had  you  praised  lord  Monboddo,  instead  of  damning  him,  it  would  not 
have  happened."  It  is  to  be  f«ared  the  influence  against  the  periodical  was 
produced,  not  so  much  by  its  having  unduly  attacked  the  work  of  a  philosopher, 
as  from  its  having  censured  a  lord  of  session. 

During  his  labours  for  liiis  magazine,  Stuart  did  not  neglect  his  pleasures. 
He  is  said  one  night  to  have  called  at  the  house  of  his  friend  Smellie,  in  a  state 
of  such  complete  jollity,  that  it  was  necessary  lie  should  be  put  to  bed.  Awaken- 
ing, and  mistaking  the  description  of  place  in  which  he  was  lodged,  he  brought 
his  friend  in  his  night-gown  to  his  bed-side,  by  his  repeated  cries  of  "  house  I 
house!"  and,  in  a  tone  of  sympathy,  said  to  him,  "  Smellie  !  1  never  expected 
to  see  you  in  such  a  house.  Get  on  your  clothes,  and  return  immediately  to 
your  wife  and  family  :  and  be  assured  I  shall  never  mention  this  afiair  to  any 
one."  Ihe  biographer  of  Smellie,  who  has  recorded  the  above,  gives  the  fol- 
lowing similar  anecdote  of  Stuart  and  his  friends.     "  On  another  ramble  of 

*  Kerr's  Lifeof  Smtllie,  v.  i.  *  Kerr's  Smclh'e,  i.  4C9. 

<*  Calamities  of  Authors,  i.  52. 


DK.  GILBERT  STUART.  359 


dissipation,  Dr  Stuart  is  Eaid  to  have  token  several  days  to  travel  on  foot  be- 
tween the  cross  of  Edinburgh  and  Musselburgh,  a  distance  of  only  six  miles ; 
stopping  at  every  public-house  by  the  way,  in  which  good  ale  could  be  found. 
In  this  strange  expedition  he  was  accompanied  part  of  the  way  by  several  boon 
companions,  who  Avere  fascinated  beyond  their  ordinary  excesses,  by  his  great 
powers  of  wit  and  hilarity  in  conversation  ;  but  Avho  gi-adually  fell  off  at  various 
stages  of  the  slow  progression.  The  last  of  these  companions  began  his  re- 
turn towards  Edinburgh  from  the  Magdalen  bridge,  within  a  mile  of  Mus- 
selburgh ;  but,  oppressed  by  the  fumes  of  the  ale,  which  he  had  too  long  and 
too  liberally  indulged  in,  he  staggered,  in  the  middle  of  the  night,  into  the 
ash-pit  of  a  great  steam  engine,  which  then  stood  by  the  road  side,  and  fell  into 
a  profound  sleep.  On  awakening  before  day,  he  beheld  the  mouth  of  an  im- 
mense fiery  furnace  open,  several  figures,  all  grim  with  soot  and  ashes,  were 
stirring  the  fire,  ranging  the  bars  of  the  enormous  grate,  and  throwing  on  more 
fuel ;  while  the  terrible  clanking  of  the  chains  and  beams  of  the  machinery 
above,  impressed  his  still  confused  imagination  with  an  idea  that  he  was  in 
hell.  Horror-struck  at  the  frightful  idea,  he  is  said  to  have  exclaimed,  *  Good 
God!  is  it  come  to  this  at  last?'  "^  ; 

The  persecution  of  Henry,  the  author  of  the  Histoi7  of  Great  Britain,  com- 
menced by  Stuart  in  the  Edinburgh  Magazine  and  Review,  has  been  recorded 
in  the  memoir  of  that  individual.  Before  quitting  this  subject,  let  us  give  the 
parting  curse  of  the  editor  for  his  literary  disappointments  in  Scotland.  "  It 
is  an  infinite  disappointment  to  me  tliat  the  JMagazine  does  not  grow  in  Lon- 
don. I  thought  the  soil  had  been  richer.  But  it  is  my  constant  fate  to  be  dis- 
appointed in  everything  I  attempt ;  I  do  not  think  I  ever  had  a  wish  that  was 
gratified  ;  and  never  dreaded  an  event  that  did  not  come.  With  this  felicity  of 
fate,  I  wonder  how  the  devil  I  could  turn  projector.  I  am  now  sorry  that  I 
left  London  ;  and  the  moment  I  have  money  enough  to  carry  me  back  to  it,  t 
shall  set  ofil  /  mortally  detest  and  abhor  this  place,  and  every  body  in  it. 
Never  was  there  a  city  where  lliere  was  so  much  pretension  to  knowledge,  and 
that  had  so  little  of  it.  The  solemn  foppery,  and  the  gross  stupidity  of  tho 
Scottish  literati  are  perfectly  insupportable.  I  shall  drop  my  idea  of  a  Scots 
newspaper.  Nothing  will  do  in  this  country  that  has  common  sense  in  it; 
only  cant,  hypocrisy,  and  superstition,  will  flourish  here.  A  curse  on  the  cowi' 
try,  and  on  all  the  men,  women,  and  children  of  it.^^^  Accordingly,  Sluart 
did  return  to  England,  and  along  with  Whitaker,  the  historian  of  Manchester, 
a  man  of  very  different  literary  habits,  but  somewhat  similar  in  temper, 
for  some  time  supported  the  English  Review.  In  1778,  he  published  his  well 
known  "  View  of  Society  in  Europe  in  its  progress  from  rudeness  to  refine- 
ment ;  or,  Inquiries  concerning  the  History  of  Law,  Government,  and 
Manners."  This,  the  most  popular  of  his  works,  and  for  a  long  time  a  standard 
book  on  the  subject,  is  certainly  the  most  carefully  and  considerately  prepared 
of  all  his  writings.  Its  adoption  almost  to  caricature,  of  that  practice  of  the 
great  Montesquieu,  which  was  all  of  him  that  some  writers  could  imitate,  of 
drawing  reflections  Avhether  there  were,  or  were  not  facts  to  support  them,  was 
fashionable,  and  did  not  perhaps  disparage  the  work  ;  while  the  easy  flow  of 
the  sentences  fascinated  many  readers.  It  cannot  be  said  that  in  this  book  he 
made  any  discovery,  or  established  any  fact  of  importance.  He  contented  him- 
self  with  vague  speculations  on  the  description  of  the  manners  of  the  Germans 
by  Tacitus,  and  new  reflections  upon  such  circumstances  as  had  been  repeated- 
ly noticed  before.     To  have  made  a  book  of  permanent  interest  and  utility 

'I  Kerr's  Smellie,  i.  50-1.  a  Calamities  of  Authors,  ii.  CO. 


800  DR.  GILBERT  STUART. 


from  facts  which  every  one  knew,  requited  a  higher  philosophical  genius  than 
that  of  Stuart,  and  since  the  more  accurate  researches  of  Hallani  and  I\Ieycr, 
the  book  has  fallen  into  disuse.  In  1779,  he  published  "  Observstions 
concerning  the  I'ublic  Law,  and  the  Constitutional  History  of  Scotland,  wiih 
occasional  remarks  concerning  English  Antiquity."  To  a  diligent  man,  who 
would  have  taken  the  trouble  of  investigating  facts,  there  Avould  here  have  been 
a  very  tolerable  opportunity  of  attacking  Robertson,  at  least  on  the  score  of 
omissions,  for  his  constitutional  views  are  very  imperfect ;  Stuart,  however, 
had  no  more  facts  than  those  which  his  adversary  provided  him  with, 
and  ho  contented  himself  Avith  deducing  opposite  opinions.  As  there  was 
a  real  want  of  matter  sufficient  to  supply  anything  like  a  treatise  on  the  sulj- 
ject — a  want  scarcely  yet  filled  up — this  work  was  still  more  vague  and  senten- 
tious, than  that  on  the  general  history  of  Europe.  A  sentence  towards  the 
commencement  is  very  characteristic  of  the  author's  habits  of  thought.  "  An 
idea  has  prevailed,  that  one  nation  of  Europe  adopted  the  feudal  institutions 
from  another,  and  the  similarity  of  fiefs  in  all  the  states  where  they  were  es- 
tablished, has  given  an  air  of  plausibility  to  this  opinion.  It  is  contradicted, 
however,  by  the  principles  of  natural  reason,  and  by  the  nature  of  the  feudn? 
usages  :  and,  if  1  am  not  mistaken,  it  receives  no  real  sanction  from  records  or 
history."  Thus,  his  own  opinions  on  "  the  principles  of  natural  reason,"  and 
on  "  the  nature  of  the  feudal  usages,"  were  to  him  of  more  importance  tlian 
"  records  or  history."  In  1780,  he  published  his  "  History  of  the  establishment 
of  the  Reformation  of  Religion  in  Scotland,"  commencing  in  1517,  and  ending 
in  15G1 ;  and  in  1782,  *'  The  History  of  Scotland,  from  the  Establishment  of 
the  Reformation  till  the  death  of  queen  IMary."  Both  these  works  are  said  by 
those  who  have  perused  them,  to  be  written  with  the  view  of  controverting  the 
opinions  of  Dr  Robertson.  In  1785,  Stuart  was  at  the  head  of  "  The  Political 
Herald  and  Review,  or  a  survey  of  Domestic  and  Foreign  Politics,  and 
a  critical  account  of  Political  and  Historical  Publications."  In  this  work  we 
frequently  meet  the  flowing  sentences  of  Stuart,  especially  in  papers  relating  to 
Scotland,  of  wliich  there  are  several.  It  is  a  curious  circumstance  that, 
especially  in  letters  of  animadversion  addressed  to  individuals,  he  has  evidently 
endeavoured  to  ingraft  the  pointed  sarcasm  of  Junius  on  his  own  slashing 
weapon.  One  of  these,  "  An  Address  to  Henry  Dundas,  Esq.,  treasurer  of  the 
Navy,  on  the  Perth  Peerage,"  is  with  some  servility  signed  "  Brutus."  This 
wotk  extended,  we  believe,  to  only  two  volumes,  which  are  now  rather  rare. 

In  London,  Stuart  seems  to  have  suflered  most  of  the  miseries  of  unsuccessful 
authorship,  and  to  have  paid  dearly  for  talents  misapplied. 

In  the  life  of  Dr  William  Thomson,  in  the  Annual  Obituary  for  1822,  there 
is  the  following  highly  characteristic  notice  of  his  life  and  habits  at  this  period  : 
"  Although  the  son  of  a  professor,  and  himself  a  candidate  for  the  same  office, 
after  a  regular  education  at  the  univereity  of  Edinburgh  :  yet  we  have  heard 
his  friend  asseii.,  and  appeal  to  their  common  acquaintance,  Dr  Grant,  for  the 
truth  of  the  position,  that,  although  he  excelled  in  composition,  and  possessed  a 
variety  of  other  knowledge,  yet  he  was  actually  unacquainted  with  the  common 
divisions  of  science  and  philosophy.  Under  this  gentleman,  &s  has  been  aU 
ready  observed,  he  (Dr  Thomson)  composed  several  papers  for  the  Political 
Herald,  for  which  the  former,  as  the  ostensible  editor,  was  handsomely  paid ; 
while  the  latter  received  but  a  scanty  remuneration.  But  it*vns  as  a  boon  com- 
panion that  he  was  intimately  acquainted  «ith  this  gentleman,  who  was  greatly 
addicted  to  conviviality,  and  that  too  in  a  manner,  and  to  an  excess  which  (ra!i 
scarcely  be  credited  by  one  who  is  acquainted  with  the  elegant  effusions  of  his 
polished    mind.     The    *  Peacock.'    in    Grays-Inn    Line,    was    tlie    scene    of 


[EOSJEIT    ¥/\i^I^AlH]I!L!L, 


?ROM  ntE  OWGIHAL  IB  POSSESSION  OS  TE£  TOBLXSHERS, 


biiAcub  tc  BON  (sjsoan.scaiBrmsB  iihdsixB 


ROBERT  TANNAIIILL.  301 


their  festivities,  and  it  was  there  that  these  learned  Doctors,  in  rivulets  of  Bur- 
ton ale,  not  unfrequeutly  quaffed  libations  to  their  favourite  deity,  until  tho 
clock  informed  tliem  of  the  approaching  day." 

His  constitution  at  length  broke  down,  and  he  took  a  sea-vovage  to  the  place 
of  his  nativity  for  the  recovery  of  his  health,  but  died  of '  dropsy,  at  his 
father's  house,  near  Musselburgh,  August  13,  1786,  aged  forty-four. 


TANNAHILL,  RoBEBT,  a  very  popular  writer  of  Scottish  songs,  was  born  in 
Paisley  on  the  3rd  of  June,  1774.  He  was  the  son  of  James  Tannahill,  a  weaver 
of  silk  gauze  there,  who  originally  came  from  Kilmarnock,  and  Janet  Pollock, 
the  daughter  of  a  farmer  near  Beith.  Both  parents  Avere  much  respected  for 
their  intelligence  and  woi-th  ;  the  mother,  in  particular,  was  a  woman  of  very 
general  information,  and  exemplary  conduct  in  life.  Their  family  consisted  of 
six  sons  and  one  daughter  ;  Robert  being  the  fourth  child.  At  his  birth,  one 
of  his  legs  was  deformed,  the  foot  being  considerably  bent,  and  the  leg  smaller 
than  the  other.  During  his  boyhood,  he  was  much  ashamed  of  his  crooked  foot, 
and  took  every  opportunity,  when  alone,  to  try  and  straighten  it  with  his  hand. 
In  this  manner,  by  constant  application,  he  brought  it  into  a  pi'oper  position  ; 
but  the  1*  always  continued  smaller  than  its  fellow,  and,  to  hide  this  deformity, 
he  generally  wore  upon  it  two  or  more  pairs  of  stockings.  The  deception  suc- 
ceeded so  well,  that  few  of  his  companions  knew  that  the  one  leg  differed  from 
the  other  ;  nor  did  he  suffer  much  inconvenience  from  it,  being  able  to  join  in 
the  dance,  or  afternoon  excursion,  without  betraying  any  lameness,  although  in 
long  journeys  it  generally  failed  him.  When  at  school,  he  began  to  distinguish 
himself  by  writing  vei-ses.  These  were  generally  upon  some  odd  character 
about  the  place,  or  upon  any  unusual  circumstance  that  might  occur.  After 
school-hours,  it  was  customary  for  the  boys  to  put  riddles  to  each  other,  or,  as 
they  called  it,  to  "  speer  guesses."  Robert  usually  gave  his  in  rhyme;  and  a 
schoolfellow,  to  whom  we  are  indebted  for  some  of  the  particulars  of  this  me- 
moir, remembers  one  of  them  to  this  day.     It  was  as  follows  :— 

My  colour's  brown,  my  shape's  uncouth, 
On  ilka  side  I  hae  a  mouth ; 
And,  strange  to  tell,  I  will  devour 
My  bulk  of  meat  in  half  an  hour. 

This  riddle,  on  being  solved,  turned  out  to  allude  to  the  big,  brown,  unshapely 
nose  of  a  well-known  character,  who  took  large  quantities  of  snufE 

From  the  school,  where  lie  was  taught  to  read,  write,  and  cast  accounts, 
Tannahill  was  sent  to  the  loom.  About  this  time,  the  weaving  of  cotton  was 
introduced  into  Paisley  ;  and  the  high  wages  realized  by  it,  induced  parents  to 
teach  their  children  tiie  trade  at  an  early  age,  so  that  their  apprenticeships 
were  generally  finished  by  the  time  they  reached  fifteen  or  sixteen.  The  flow  of 
money,  which  persons  thus  so  young  could  command  by  tho  exercise  of  a  flourish. 
iag  handicraft,  led  to  the  early  marriages  for  which  Paisley  was  then  noted;  and 
no  town  at  the  time  abounded  in  more  merrymakings,  or  presented  a  more  gay 
and  thriving  community.  Education  was  widely  diffused  amongst  the  inhabitants, 
who  were  remarkable  for  the  intelligent  and  active  interest  they  took  in  public 
affairs.  Tho  weaving  population  could  always  afford  a  weekly  half-holiday  for 
cultivating  their  gardens  or  rambling  into  the  country.  Tannahill  participated 
in  the  general  prosperity.    Dancing  parties  and  rural  excui'sions  were  frequent 


862  EGBERT  TANNAHILL. 


among  the  young  people  of  both  sexes,  and  in  these  he  often  joined.  He  then 
formed  many  of  those  poetical  attachments,  which  he  afterwards  celebrated  in 
song.  It  was  in  such  meetings,  and  such  excursions,  that  lie  first  saw  "  Jessie 
the  flower  o'  Dumblane,"^ — first  heard  the  song  of  the  "  mavis"  from  the  "  Wood 
of  Craigielee," — and  first  breathed  the  fragrant  "  broom"  of  the  "  Braes  o* 
Gleniffer." 

While  at  work,  it  was  his  custom  to  occupy  his  mind  with  the  composition  of 
Tcrses.  To  his  loom  he  attached  a  sort  of  wTiting-desk,  by  which  he  was  en- 
abled, in  the  midst  of  his  laboui-s,  to  jot  down  any  lines  that  might  occur  to 
him,  without  rising  from  his  seat  In  this  way,  some  of  his  best  songs  were 
composed.  He  h.id  a  correct  ear  for  music,  and  played  the  flute  well ;  and 
whenever  a  tune  greatly  pleased  him,  it  was  his  ambition  to  give  it  nppropriata 
words  of  his  own.  It  has  been  said  in  most  of  the  notices  of  his  life, 
that  from  liis  fourteenth  to  his  twenty-fourth  year,  he  wholly  neglected  the 
muse  ;  but  this  is  a  mistake.  He  seldom  allowed  many  days  to  pass  without 
composing  some  song  or  copy  of  verses,  which  it  was  his  custom  to  read  to  one 
or  two  only  of  his  intimate  acquaintances.  The  first  poem  of  his  which  ap> 
peared  in  print,  was  in  praise  of  Ferguslee  wood ;  a  wood  ^vhich  was  one  of  his 
favourite  liaunts,  and  which  often  in  the  summer  evenings  rang  to  the  notes  of 
his  flute.  Tlie  lines  were  sent  to  a  Glasgow  periodical,  and  obtained  immediate 
insertion,  accompanied  with  a  request  for  further  favours.  This  wa^he  more 
gratifying  to  the  young  poet,  as  in  one  or  two  previous  endeavours  at  publica> 
tion,  lie  liad  been  unsuccessful ;  and  from  this  period  he  continued,  for  two  or 
three  years  afterwards,  to  send  occasional  contributions  to  the  Glasgow  papers. 

After  his  apprenticeship  had  expired,  he  removed  to  the  village  of  Loch- 
winnoch,  about  nine  miles  from  Paisley,  where  he  continued  to  work  at  the 
loom  for  some  time.  It  may  be  worth  mentioning,  that  Alexander  Wilson,  the 
poet  and  future  American  ornithologist,  was  at  this  time  also  weaving  in  the 
same  village.  He  was  by  some  years  the  senior  of  Tannahill ;  and  the  latter, 
being  then  unknown  to  fame,  had  not  the  fortitude  to  seek  his  acquaintance, 
although  he  greatly  admired  the  pieces  by  which  Wilson  had  already  distini 
guished  himself. 

About  the  year  1  800,  some  of  the  figured  loora-Avork,  for  which  Paisley  was 
famed,  was  beginning  to  be  manufactured  in  England,  and  it  was  reported 
that  great  wages  were  to  be  had  there  for  weaving  iL  Tempted  by  the  report, 
or  more  probably  by  a  desire  of  seeing  the  country,  Tannahill  left  Paisley  for 
England,  accompanied  by  a  younger  brother.  They  went  away  without  inform- 
ing their  parents,  who,  they  rightly  supposed,  would  have  put  a  stop  to  the 
journey,  as  their  circumstances  in  Paisley  were  too  comfortable  to  justify  a 
change.  They  were  both  at  this  time  in  the  strength  and  buoyancy  of  youth  ; 
they  were  both  also  of  industrious  habits,  of  excellent  dispositions,  and  of  modest 
manners.  They  travelled  mostly  on  foot,  often  stepping  out  of  the  way  to  view 
the  curiosities  of  the  country,  until  they  reached  Preston,  which  they  had 
marked  as  the  limit  of  their  journey.  They  found,  however,  that  nothing  but 
plain  work  was  woven  there  ;  and  while  Robert  went  forward  to  Bolton,  to  in- 
quire after  figured  work,  his  brother  took  lodgings  at  Preston,  in  the  house  of 
an  old  woman  of  the  Roman  catholic  persuasion.     At  Bolton,  Robert  found 

'  It  disturbs  the  fancy  to  know,  that,  although  Tannahill  wrote  all  his  love-songs  under  the 
inspiration  of  some  particular  object,  in  this  case  the  girl  was  neither  a  Jessie,  nor  was  she 
from  Dumblane.  The  words  were  originally  written  to  supplant  the  old  doggerel  song, 
"  Bob  o'  Dumblane,"— hence  the  title.  Tannahill  never  was  in  Dumblane, — never,  indeed, 
beyond  the  Forth, — and  knew  no  person  belonging  to  Dumblane;  yet  the  guards  of 
coaches,  and  others,  hesitate  not  to  point  out  the  very  house  in  Dumblane  in  which  Jessie 
was  bom. 


ROBERT  TANNAIIILL.  363 


plenty  of  employment  of  the  desired  description  :  but  his  brother,  notwith- 
standing the  superior  wages  to  be  made  there,  remained  at  Preston  all  the  time 
he  resided  in  England,  being  constrained  to  do  so  by  the  kindness  of  his  old 
landlady,  in  whom  he  found  a  second  mother.  The  two  brothers,  though  thus 
separated,  did  not  forget  each  other.  Being  much  attached,  they  frequently 
met  half-way  between  Preston  and  Bolton,  and  spent  a  few  hours  together : 
they  also  frequently  wrote  home  to  their  parents  an  account  of  their  welfare. 
Their  stay  in  England  lasted  two  years,  and  was  only  cut  short  by  receiving 
intelligence  of  the  fatal  illness  of  their  father.  They  hurried  home  without 
delay,  and  arrived  in  time  to  receive  his  dying  blessing.  After  that  event,  they 
did  not  choose  to  return  to  England.  The  younger  brother  married,  while 
Robert  took  up  his  abode  Avith  his  mother,  and  till  his  death  continued  to  be  a 
comfort  to  her.  His  filial  affections  were  at  all  times  strong,  and  through  life 
he  honourably  discharged  the  duties  of  an  affectionate  son. 

It  may  be  proper  here  to  advert  to  a  very  erroneous  impression  which  prevails 
respecting  his  worldly  circumstances.  In  most  of  the  notices  taken  of  him,  he 
is  represented  as  leading  a  life  of  privation,  and  as  fulfilling  all  that  is  sup- 
posed to  be  connected  with  the  poet's  lot  in  regard  to  penury.  But  so  far  from 
this  being  the  case,  his  means  were  always  above  his  wants.  The  house  in 
which  his  mother  resided  was  her  own,  and  she  was  not  only  herself  comfortably 
situated,  but  was  enabled,  by  indulging  in  little  charities,  to  add  somewhat  to 
the  comforts  of  others.  Such,  also,  was  the  state  of  trade  at  the  time,  that 
Robert  could  command  good  wages  without  extreme  labour,  and  though  more 
than  one  respectable  situation,  as  foreman  or  overseer,  was  offei'ed  him,  he 
chose  to  continue  at  the  loom,  because,  by  doing  so,  his  time  was  more  at  his 
own  disposal,  and  his  personal  independence  greatef.  He  had  no  wish  to  ac- 
cumulate money ;  but  long  before  his  death,  he  lodged  twenty  pounds  in  the 
bank,  with  the  express  intention  that  it  should  go  to  defray  the  expense  of  his 
funeral,  and  this  sum  was  found  untouched  when  his  melancholy  decease  took 
place,  a  circumstance  >vhich  of  itself  proves  the  unfounded  nature  of  the  reports 
regarding  his  poverty  and  destitution. 

Soon  after  his  return  from  England,  he  had  the  good  fortune  to  become  ac- 
quainted with  the  late  Mr  R.  A.  Smith,  a  gentleman  of  distinguished  talent  as  a 
composer,  Avho  set  to  music  and  arranged  some  of  his  finest  songs.  He  also 
formed  an  intimacy  with  several  other  individuals  possessed  of  good  judgment 
in  musical  matters,  such  as,  BIr  James  Barr  of  Kilbarchan  (composer  of  the 
tune  of  '  Craigielee,')  Mr  Andrew  Blaikie,  engraver.  Paisley,  and  Mr  James 
Clark,  master  of  the  Argyle  Band.  These  gentlemen,  and  several  others,  were 
of  service  to  him  in  improving  his  taste  for  composition,  and  in  encouraging 
him  in  his  love  of  song.  His  own  manners  were  so  retiring,  and  his  reliance 
on  himself  so  small,  that,  without  the  assurances  of  friendship,  he  probably  would 
never  have  been  induced  to  give  to  the  world  many  of  those  pieces  which  have 
made  his  name  known. 

The  first  edition  of  his  "  Poems  and  Songs"  appeared  in  the  year  1807.  It 
was  very  favourably  received  by  the  public,  the  previous  popularity  of  several 
of  his  songs  tending  to  make  it  sought  after.  But  the  author  speedily  came  to 
regret  that  he  had  so  prematurely  given  it  to  the  world.  Errors  and  faults  he 
now  detected  in  it,  Avhich  had  before  escaped  him,  and  he  began  assiduously  to 
correct  and  re-Avrite  all  his  pieces,  with  a  view  to  a  second  edition.  He  con- 
tinued also  to  add  to  the  number  of  his  songs,  and  in  these  reached  a  high  de- 
gree of  excellence.  Some  of  them,  indeed,  may  be  pronounced  to  be  the  very 
perfection  of  song- writing,  so  far  as  that  consists  in  the  simple  and  natural  ex- 
pression of  feelings  common  to  all.     The  extensive  popularity  which  they  at- 


364  KOBERT  TANNAHILL. 


taincd  indicates  how  universally  ^vere  felt  and  understood  the  sentiments  which 
they  recorded.  It  is  gratifying  to  know,  that  the  poet  \vas  in  some  measure  a 
witness  of  his  own  success,  and  lived  to  hear  his  songs  sung  with  approbation 
both  in  hall  and  cottage.  In  a  solitary  Malk,  on  one  occasion,  his  musings 
were  interrupted  by  the  voice  of  a  country  girl  in  an  adjoining  field,  who  ^\aa 
singing  by  herself  a  song  of  his  own — 

"  We'll  meet  beside  the  dusky  glen,  on  jon  buriisidc  •," — 

and  he  used  to  say,  that  he  was  more  pleased  at  this  evidence  of  his  popularity 
than  at  any  tribute  wliich  had  ever  been  paid  him. 

But  his  celebrity  as  a  song  writer  brought  its  annoyances.  Visitors  of  every 
description  broke  in  upon  his  daily  labours ;  an  adjournment  to  the  tavern  was 
often  the  result,  and  acquaintanceships  Avere  formed  too  frequently  over  the 
bowi.^  Tannahill  at  no  time  was  addicted  to  liquor,  but  the  facility  of  his 
nature  prevented  him  from  resisting  the  intrusions  of  idle  and  curious  people, 
and  the  very  character  of  the  pieces  for  which  he  was  distinguished  led  to  con- 
vivialities, for  how  could  the  merits  of  a  song  be  tested  without  the  flowing  glass  ? 
This  was  the  more  to  be  pitied,  as  the  slightest  irregularity  injured  him.  His 
constitution  was  never  strong.  His  father,  his  sister,  and  three  brothers  had  all 
died  of  consumption,  and  he  himself  was  often  troubled  with  a  pain  in  the  chest, 
which  was  increased  by  working  too  hard.  For  some  time  before  his  lamenta- 
ble end,  he  was  observed  frequently  to  fall  into  a  deep  melancholy.  His  tem- 
per became  irritable,  he  was  easily  agitated,  and  prone  to  imagine  that  his  best 
friends  were  disposed  to  injure  him.  His  eyes  were  observed  to  sink,  his 
countenance  got  pale,  and  his  body  emaciated.  His  whole  appearance,  in  short, 
indicated  a  breaking  up  of  his  mental  and  bodily  powers.  The  second  edition 
of  his  Poems,  which  he  had  prepared  for  the  press,  was  offered  about  this  time 
to  Mr  Constable  of  Edinburgh  for  a  very  small  sum,  but  was  unfortunately  de- 
clined. This  tended  still  farther  to  depress  him,  and  he  came  to  the  resolution 
of  destroying  everything  which  he  had  written.  All  his  songs,  to  the  amount 
of  one  hundred,  many  of  which  had  never  been  printed,  and  of  those  printed 
all  had  been  greatly  corrected  and  amended,  he  put  into  the  fire ;  and 
so  anxious  was  he  that  no  scrap  of  his  should  be  preserved,  he  requested  his 
acquaintances  to  return  any  manuscript  which  they  had  ever  got  from  him.  Of 
the  immediate  circumstances  connected  with  his  death,  we  have  received  the 
following  account  The  day  previous  to  that  event,  he  went  to  Glasgow,  and 
displayed  there  such  unequivocal  proofs  of  mental  derangement,  that  one  of  his 
friends,  upon  whom  he  called,  felt  it  necessary  to  convoy  him  back  all  the  way 
to  Paisley,  and  to  apprize  his  relations  of  the  state  of  his  mind.  Alarmed  at 
the  intelligence,  his  brothers,  who  were  married,  and  resided  at  different  parts 
of  the  town,  hastened  to  their  mothers  house,  where  they  found  that  he  had 
gone  to  bed,  and  as  it  was  now  late,  and  he  was  apparently  asleep,  they  did  not 
choose  to  disturb  him,  hoping  that  by  the  morning  he  would  be  better.  About 
an  hour  after  leaving  the  house,  one  of  the  brothers  had  occasion  to  pass  the 
door,  and  was  surprised  to  find  the  gate  that  led  to  it  open.  On  further  inves- 
tigation, it  was  found  that  Kobert  had  risen  from  bed,  and  stolen  out,  shortly 
after  their  departure.     Search  was  now  made  in  every  direction,  and  by  the 

*Au  exception  must  here  be  made  in  fiiTour  of  Mr  James  Hogg,  the  Ettrick  Shepherd, 
who,  much  to  his  own  credit,  and  the  credit  of  Tannahill,  made  a  pilgrimage  to  Paisley, 
with  the  express  purpose  of  seeing  him.  They  spent  one  happy  night  together,  and,  next 
morning,  Tannahill  convoyed  him  half-way  on  the  road  to  Glasgow.  On  parting,  Tanna- 
hill, wiQi  tears  in  his  ejes,  said,  "  Farewell !  we  shall  never  meet  again!  Farewell  I  I  shall 
never  sec  jou  mere !"  a  prediction  which  was  too  truly  verified. 


JAMES  TAYLOR.  3G5 


grey  of  the  morning,  the  worst  fears  of  the  poet's  friends  were  realized,  by  the 
discovery  of  his  coat  lying  at  the  side  of  a  pool  in  the  vicinity  of  Paisley, 
which  pointed  out  where  his  body  was  to  be  found.  This  melancholy  event  hap- 
pened on  the  17th  of  May,  1810,  when  he  had  only  reached  his  thirty-sixth  year. 

Tannahill's  appearance  was  not  indicative  of  superior  endowment.  He  was 
email  in  stature,  and  in  manners  diffident  almost  to  bashfulness.  In  mixed 
company  he  seldom  joined  in  general  conversation,  yet  from  the  interest  ho 
manifested  in  all  that  was  said,  his  silence  was  never  offensive.  Among  intimate 
friends  he  was  open  and  communicative,  and  often  expressed  himself  with 
felicity.  His  sympathies  invariably  went  with  the  poor  and  unfortunate,  and  per- 
haps it  was  the  result  of  his  education  and  position  in  societyi  that  he  was 
jealous  of  the  attentions  of  the  wealthy,  and  disposed  rather  to  avoid  than  to 
court  their  company.  In  liis  disposition  he  was  tender  and  humane,  and  ex- 
tremely attached  to  his  home,  his  kindred,  and  hLs  friends.  His  life  was  simple 
and  unvaried  in  its  details,  but  even  the  uneventful  chai'acter  of  his  existence 
renders  more  striking  and  more  affecting  its  tragic  close.  In  1838  an  enlarged 
edition  of  his  poems  and  songs,  with  memoirs  of  the  author  and  of  his  friend, 
Robert  Archibald  Smith,  by  Mr  Philip  A.  Ramsay,  was  published  in  Glasgow. 

TAYLOR,  James,  whose  name  must  ever  bear  a  conspicuous  and  honourable 
place  in  the  history  of  the  invention  of  steam  navigation,  was  born.  May  3, 
1758,  at  the  village  of  Leadhills,  in  Lanarkshire,  and  received  the  rudiments  of 
his  education  at  the  academy  of  Closeburn.  After  fitting  himself  to  enter  the 
medical  profession,  he  was  engaged,  in  the  year  1785,  by  Mr  Patrick  Miller 
of  Dalswinton,  to  superintend  the  education  of  the  two  sons  of  that  gentleman, 
who  were  in  attendance  at  the  university  of  Edinburgh.  It  was  also  the  aim 
of  Mr  Miller,  that  Mr  Taylor,  whose  scientific  acquirements  had  been  warmly 
spoken  of  by  the  common  friend  who  recommended  him  to  the  situation,  should 
assist  him  in  those  mechanical  pursuits  with  which  for  some  years  he  had  been 
in  the  habit  of  amusing  his  leisure  hours.  In  the  year  just  mentioned,  Mr  Miller 
was  engaged  in  a  series  of  operations  for  applying  paddle-wheels  to  vessels, 
rather  witli  a  view  to  extricating  them  from  perilous  situations  against  the  im- 
pulse of  wind  and  tide,  than  with  any  expectation  that  such  machinery,  driven, 
as  he  contemplated  it  to  be,  by  human  power  alone,  could  be  of  use  in  ordinary 
navigation.  Mr  Taylor  entered  at  once  into  Mr  Miller's  views,  and  aided  in  the 
preparation  of  a  double  vessel,  of  sixty  feet  in  length,  with  intermediate  paddles, 
di-iven  by  a  capstan,  which  Mr  Miller  tried  in  the  Firth  of  Forth,  in  spring,  1787, 
against  a  custom-house  wherry,  which  it  easily  distanced.  On  this  occasion  Jlr 
Taylor  became  convinced  of  the  utility  of  the  paddles ;  but,  observing  that  the 
men  were  much  exhausted  by  their  labour,  he  was  equally  convinced  that  a 
superior  mechanical  pgwer  was  wanting,  in  order  to  realize  the  full  value  of  the 
invention.  Having  communicated  his  thoughts  to  Mr  Miller,  he  received  from 
that  gentleman  the  following  answer : — "  I  am  of  the  same  opinion,  and  that 
power  is  just  what  I  am  in  search  of.  My  object  is  to  add  mechanical  aid  to  the 
natural  power  of  the  wind,  to  enable  vessels  to  avoid  and  to  extricate  themselves 
from  dangerous  situations,  which  they  cannot  do  on  their  present  construction.' 
Invited  to  co-operate  in  this  object,  Mr  Taylor  applied  himself  to  the  considera- 
tion of  all  the  mechanical  powers  already  in  common  use,  but  without  being  able 
to  convince  himself  of  the  applicability  of  any  of  them.  At  length  the  steam- 
engine  presented  itself  to  him;  and  though  he  might  be  naturally  supposed  to 
have  been  himself  startled  at  the  boldness  of  such  a  thought,  he  soon  convinced 
himself  of  its  being  practicable.  On  suggesting  it  to  Mr  Miller,  he  found  he  had 
excited  more  astonishment  at  the  novelty,  than  respect  for  the  feasibility  of  the 
Bcheme.     Mr  Miller  aUowed  the  sufficiency  of  the  power;  but  was  disposed  to 


366  JAMES  TAYLOR. 


deny  that  it  could  be  applied,  more  particularly  in  those  critical  circumstances 
to  obviate  wliich  was  the  chief  aim  of  his  own  project.  "  In  such  cases,"  said 
he,  "  as  that  disastrous  event  which  happened  lately,  of  the  wreck  of  a  whole 
fleet  upon  a  lee  shore,  off  the  coast  of  Spain,  every  fire  on  board  must  be  ex- 
tinguished, {^nd  of  course  such  an  engine  could  be  of  no  use."  Mr  Taylor  was 
not  daunted  by  these  objections,  but,  on  the  contrary,  the  more  he  thought  of 
the  project,  the  more  convinced  he  became  of  its  practicability.  He  repre- 
sented to  Mr  Miller,  that,  if  not  applicable  to  purposes  of  general  navigation, 
it  might  at  least  prove  useful  on  canals  and  estuaries.  After  many  conversa- 
tions, the  latter  gentleman  at  length  conceded  so  far  to  Mr  Taylor's  suggestion, 
as  to  request  him  to  niake  drawings,  for  the  purpose  of  showing  how  the  engine 
could  be  connected  with  the  paddle-wheels.  JMr  Taylor  did  so,  and  ?dr  Miller, 
being  still  farther  satisfied,  though  as  yet,  it  appears,  unconvinced,  agreed  to  be 
at  the  expense  of  an  experiment,  provided  it  should  not  amount  to  a  large  sum, 
and  that  3Ir  Taylor  should  superintend  the  operations,  as  he  candidly  confessed 
he  was  a  stranger  to  the  use  of  steam.  The  two  projectors  were  then  at 
Dalswinton  ;  but  it  was  arranged  that,  when  they  should  return  to  Edinburgh 
in  the  early  part  of  winter,  an  engine  should  be  constructed  for  the  purpose. 
Part  of  the  summer  was  employed  by  IMr  Miller  in  drawing  up  a  narrative  of 
his  experiments  upon  shipping,  with  a  view  to  its  being  printed  and  circulated. 
This  he  submitted  to  Mr  Taylor  for  the  benefit  of  his  correction  ;  and  the  latter 
gentleman,  observing  that  no  mention  had  been  made  of  the  application  of  the 
steam  engine,  "  I  have  not  done  that  inadvertently,"  answered  Mr  Miller,  "  but 
from  a  wish  not  to  pledge  myself  to  the  public  for  a  thing  I  may  never  per- 
form :  you  know  my  intentions  on  that  subject  are  as  yet  conditional."  Mr  Taylor 
replied,  that  he  could  hardly  look  upon  them  in  that  light,  as  he  was  satisfied 
that  any  expense  which  could  attach  to  so  small  a  matter  would  not  prevent  him 
(Mr  Miller)  from  making  the  experiment ;  that  he  considered  the  mention  of 
the  steam  engine  as  of  importance ;  and  that  it  could  be  alluded  to  in  such  a 
manner  as  to  pledge  him  to  nothing.  Mr  Miller  Avas  convinced,  and  introduced 
an  allusion  to  steam,  as  an  agent  he  might  perhaps  employ  for  the  propulsion  of 
his  vessels.  Copies  of  the  paper  thus  improved  were  transmitted  to  the  royal 
family,  the  ministers,  many  of  the  leading  members  of  both  houses  of  parlia- 
ment, and  to  all  the  maritime  powers  in  Europe,  besides  the  president  of  the 
United  States  of  America. 

In  November,  1787,  Mr  Miller  removed  as  usual  to  the  capital,  and  Mr 
Taylor,  having  been  empowered  by  his  employer  to  proceed  about  the  con- 
struction of  an  engine,  recommended  to  Mr  Miller's  notice  a  young  man  named 
Symington,  who  had  attempted  some  alterations  upon  the  steam  engine,  and 
was  now  residing  in  Edinburgh  for  his  improvemei^;  in  mechanics.  It 
was  agreed  that  Symington  should  form  an  engine  on  his  own  plan,  and  that 
the  experiment  should  be  made  in  the  ensuing  summer  upon  the  lake  of 
Dalswinton.  The  construction  of  the  engine  occupied  several  months,  and  was 
not  completed  at  the  conclusion  of  that  session  of  the  university  ;  so  that  Mr 
Taylor  was  detained  in  town,  to  superintend  the  operations,  for  some  time  after 
his  pupils  had  returned  with  their  father  to  the  country.  When  all  was  ready, 
he  proceeded  with  Symington  to  Dalswinton,  where,  on  the  I4th  of  October, 
1788,  the  experiment  was  made  in  the  presence  of  3Ir  Miller  and  a  con- 
siderable concoui-se  of  spectators.  The  boat  was  a  double  one,  and  the  engine, 
which  iiad  a  four  inch  cylinder,  was  placed  in  a  frame  upon  the  deck.  The 
experiment  was  successful  beyond  the  most  sanguine  wishes  of  any  of  the  parties 
concerned.  The  vessel  moved  at  the  rate  of  five  miles  an  hour,  and  neither 
was  any  awkwardness  found  in  the  connexion  of  the  engine  with  the  wheels, 


JAMES  TAYLOK.  367 


nor  hazard  apprehended  in  any  considerable  degree  from  the  introduction  of 
a  farnace  into  so  inflammable  a  fabric.  The  experiment  was  repeated  sereral 
times  during  the  eoui'se  of  the  few  ensuing  days,  and  always  with  perfect  suc- 
cess, insomuch  that  the  invention  became  a  subject  of  great  local  notoriety. 
An  account  of  the  experiments,  di-awn  up  by  Mr  Taylor,  was  inserted  in  the 
Dumfries  Journal  newspaper,  and  the  event  was  also  noticed  in  the  Scots  Maga- 
zine of  the  ensuing  month. 

Mr  Miller  now  formed  the  design  of  covering  his  own  and  Mr  Taylor's  joint 
invention  by  a  patent;  but,  in  the  first  place,  it  was  judged  expedient  that  ex- 
periments should  be  made  with  a  vessel  and  engine  more  nearly  approaching 
the  common  size.  For  this  purpose  Mr  Taylor  went  to  the  Carron  foundry, 
with  his  engineer,  Symington,  and  there,  in  the  summer  of  1789,  fitted  up  a 
vessel  of  considerable  dimensions,  with  an  engine,  of  which  the  cylinder  measured 
eighteen  inches  in  diameter.  In  the  month  of  November  this  was  placed  on 
the  Forth  and  Clyde  canal,  in  the  presence  of  the  Carron  Committee  of  Manage- 
ment, and  of  the  parties  chiefly  interested.  The  vessel  moved  along  very 
smootlily  for  a  space  beyond  Lock  Sixteen,  when,  on  giving  the  engine  full  play, 
the  flat  boards  of  the  paddles,  which  had  been  weakly  constructed,  began  to 
give  way,  which  put  an  end  to  the  experiment.  The  paddles  having  been  re- 
constructed on  a  stronger  principle,  another  experiment  was  made  on  the  26th 
of  December,  when  the  vessel  made  easy  and  uninteiTupted  progress,  at  the  rate 
of  seven  miles  an  hour.  Except  in  speed,  the  performances  on  these  occasions 
were  as  perfect  as  any  which  have -since  been  accomplished  by  steam- vessels. 
The  project  was  now  conceived,  by  all  parties,  to  have  gone  through  a  sufficient 
probation,  so  far  as  the  objects  of  inland  navigation  were  concerned;  and  in  an 
account  of  the  latter  experiments,  drawn  up  by  Mr  (afterwards  lord)  Cullen, 
and  published  in  the  Edinburgh  newspapers,  February  1790,  this  view  is  firmly 
taken. 

On  reviewing  the  expenses  of  these  proceedings,  Mr  Miller  found  considerable 
cause  of  chagrin  in  their  amount,  which,  chiefly  in  consequence,  as  he  said,  of 
the  extravagance  of  the  engineer,  greatly  exceeded  what  he  had  been  led  to 
expect.  Subsequently  he  devoted  his  attention  and  means  to  agricultural  im- 
provements ;  and  Mr  Taylor  could  never  prevail  on  him  to  resume  their  project. 
The  cultivation  of  fiorine  grass  at  last  took  such  hold  of  the  mind  of  Mr  Miller, 
that,  in  the  belief  of  Mr  Taylor,  no  other  object  on  earth  could  have  withdrawn 
liim  from  it.  Mr  Fergusson,  younger  of  Craigdarroch,  in  1790,  endeavoured, 
but  in  vain,  to  engage  the  interest  of  the  court  of  Vienna  in  the  new  invention. 

The  indiiference  of  Mr  Miller,  the  direction  of  public  attention  to  the  war 
which  soon  after  commenced,  and  the  unfavourable  situation  of  Mr  Taylor,  in 
an  inland  part  of  the  country,  and  unable  of  himself  to  do  anything,  conspired 
to  throw  the  project  for  several  years  into  abeyance.  At  length,  in  1801,  Mr 
Symington,  who  had  commenced  business  at  Falkh-k,  resolved  to  prosecute  a 
design,  in  the  origination  of  which  he  had  borne  an  active  and  serviceable, 
though  subordinate  part.  He  wished  lord  Dundas  to  employ  him  to  fit  up  a 
small  experimental  steam-vessel,  which  was  tried  on  the  Forth  and  Clyde  canal, 
but,  causing  much  disintegration  of  the  banks,  was  forbidden  by  the  Company 
to  be  ever  set  in  motion  again.  This  vessel  was  laid  up  at  Lock  Sixteen,  where 
it  remained  for  a  number  of  years.  Symington  was  afterwards  in  terms  with 
the  duke  of  Bridgewater  for  introducing  steam  navigation  on  his  grace's  canal, 
and  Messrs  Miller  and  Taylor  were  about  to  take  measures  to  protect  their  joint 
invention  from  being  appropriated  by  this  individual,  when  tlie  death  of  the 
duke,  and  the  abandonment  of  the  scheme,  saved  them  that  trouble. 

Some  time  after,  Mr  Fulton,  from  the  United  States  of  America,  accompanied 


3G8 


THOMAS  TELFORD. 


by  Mr  Henry  Bell  of  Glasgow,  when  on  a  risit  to  the  Carron  works,  waited 
on  Mr  Symington,  and  inspected  the  boat  which  he  had  iitted  up  for  the 
Forth  and  Clyde  canal.  The  consequence  was,  that,  in  1  807,  the  former  gen- 
tleman launched, a  steam  vessel  on  the  Hudson,  and,  in  1812,  Mr  Bell  another 
upon  Clyde,  being  respectively  the  first  vessels  of  the  kind  used  for  the  service 
of  the  public  in  the  new  and  old  hemispheres.  Thus,  after  all  the  primary  dif- 
ficulties of  the  invention  had  been  overcome, — when  the  bark  was  ready,  as  it 
were,  to  start  from  the  shore,  and  waited  only  for  the  master  to  give  the  word 
for  that  purpose, — did  two  individuals,  altogether  alien  to  the  project,  come  in 
and  appropriate  the  honour  of  launching  it  into  the  open  sea.  Unquestionably, 
the  merit  of  these  individuals  in  overcoming  many  practical  difiiculties,  is  very 
considerable  ;  yet  it  is  clear  that  they  were  indebted  for  the  idea  to  the 
previous  inventions  and  operations  of  Jlessrs  IMiller  and  Taylor,  and  that  if  the 
latter  gentlemen  had,  in  the  one  instance,  been  inclined,  and  in  the  other  able. 
to  carry  their  project  into  effect  at  the  pi'oper  time,  they  would  not  have  been 
anticipated  in  this  part  of  the  honour,  any  more  than  in  the  suggestion  of  the 
paddles  and  the  engine. 

It  appears  that  Mr  Taylor  by  no  means  sat  tamely  by,  while  Fulton  and 
Bell  were  reaping  the  credit  due  to  their  labours.  Mr  Taylor  repeatedly  urged 
Mr  Bliller  to  renewed  exertions,  though  always  without  success;  kept  his 
claims  as  well  as  he  could  before  the  public  eye;  and,  on  finding  that  JMr 
Symington  had  obtained  a  patent,  forced  him  into  an  agreement  to  share  the 
profits,  none  of  which,  however,  were  ever  realized.  When  the  vast  impor- 
tance of  steam  navigation  had  become  fully  established,  the  friends  of  Mr 
Tayloi',  who  was  not  in  prosperous  circumstances,  urged  upon  hint  the 
propriety  of  laying  his  claims  before  the  government,  and  soliciting  a  reward 
suitable  to  the  magnitude  and  importance  of  the  discovery.  At  last,  in  1824<, 
he  was  induced  to  draw  up  a  statement  of  his  concern  in  the  invention  of  steam 
navigation,  which  he  printed  and  addressed  to  Sir  Henry  Parnell,  chairman  of 
a  select  committee  of  the  House  of  Commons,  upon  steam  boats.  He  hoped 
that  this  narrative  might  be  the  means  of  obtaining  from  the  government  some 
remuneration  for  the  incalculable  services  he  had  performed  to  mankind  ;  but 
it  had  no  such  effect.  Bowed  down  by  infirmities,  and  the  fruits  of  a  long  lite 
of  disappointments,  this  ingenious  man  died  on  the  I8th  of  September,  1825, 
in  the  sixty-eighth  year  of  his  age. 

TELFOllD,  Thomas,  an  eminent  engineer  and  constructor  of  public  works, 
was  born  about  the  year  1755,  in  the  parish  of  Westerkirk  in  Dumfriesshire. 
His  outset  in  life  was  strikingly  humble  in  comparison  with  its  close.  He 
began  the  world  as  a  working  stone-mason  in  his  native  parish,  and  for  a  long 
tiuie  was  only  remarkable  for  the  neatness  with  which  he  cut  the  letters  upon 
those  frail  sepulchral  memorials  which  "  teach  the  rustic  moralist  to  die."  His 
occupation  fortunately  aflbrded  a  greater  number  of  leisure  hours  than  what  are 
usually  allowed  by  such  laborious  employments,  and  these  young  Telford  turned 
to  the  utmost  advantage  in  his  power.  Having  previously  acquired  the  elements 
of  learning,  he  spent  all  his  spare  time  in  poring  over  such  volumes  as. fell 
witiiin  his  read),  with  no  better  light  in  general  than  what  was  aflbrded  by  the 
cottage  fire.  Under  these  circumstances  the  powers  of  his  mind  took  a 
direction  not  unconnnon  among  rustic  youths ;  he  became  a  noted  rhmyster  in 
the  homely  style  of  Ramsay  and  Fergusson,  and,  while  still  a  very  young  man, 
contributed  verses  to  Ruddiman's  Weekly  Magazine,  under  the  unpretending 
signature  of  "  liskdale  Tarn."  In  one  of  these  compositions,  which  was  ad- 
dressed to  Burns,  he  sketched  his  own  character,  and  hinted  his  own  ultimate 
fate— 


THOMAS  TELFORD.  SG9 


Nor  pass  the  tcntie  curious  lad, 
AV'ho  o'er  the  ingle  hangs  his  head, 
And  begs  of  neighbours  books  to  rej.d ; 

For  hence  arise. 
Thy  country's  sons,  who  far  are  spread, 

Baith  bold  and  wise. 

Tliough  Mr  Telford  afterwards  abandoned  the  thriftless  trade  of  rersifying  he 
is  said  to  have  retained  through  life  a  strong  "  frater-feeling  "  for  the  corps 
which  he  showed  in  a  particular  manner  on  the  death  of  Burns,  in  exertions 
for  the  benefit  of  his  family.  Having  proceeded  to  London  in  quest  of  work 
he  had  the  good  fortune  to  be  employed  under  Sir  William  Chambers  in  thg 
building  of  Somerset  house.  Here  his  merit  was  soon  discovered  by  tlie  illus- 
trious architect,  and  he  experienced  promotion  accordingly.  We  are  unable  to 
detail  the  steps  by  which  he  subsequently  placed  himself  at  the  head  of  (he 
profession  of  engineering ;  but  it  is  allowed  on  all  hands  that  his  elevation  was 
owing  solely  to  his  consummate  ability  and  persevering  industry,  unless  we  are 
to  alloiv  a  share  in  the  process  to  the  singular  candour  and  integrity  which 
marked  every  step  in  his  career.  His  works  are  so  numerous  all  over  the 
island,  that  there  is  hardly  a  county  irt  England,  Wales,  or  Scotland,  in  which 
ihey  may  not  be  pointed  out.  The  3Ienai  and  Conway  bridges,  the  Caledonian 
canal,  the  St  Katharine's  docks,  tlie  Holyhead  roads  and  bridges,  tlie  Highland 
roads  and  bridges,  the  Chirke  and  Pontcysulte  aqueducts,  the  canals  in  Salop, 
and  great  works  in  that  county,  of  which  he  was  surveyor  for  more  than  half  a 
century,  are  some  of  the  traits  of  his  genius  which  occur  to  us,  and  which  will 
immortalize  tlie  name  of  Thomas  Telford. 

Tlie  IMenai  bridge  will  probably  be  regarded  by  the  public  as  the  most  im- 
perishable monument  of  IMr  Telford's  fame.  This  bridge  over  the  Bangor 
ferry,  connecting  the.  counties  of  Caernarvon  and  Anglesea,  partly  of  stone  and 
partly  of  iron,  on  the  suspension  principle,  consists  of  seven  stone  arches,  ex- 
ceeding in  magnitude  every  work  of  the  kind  in  the  world.  They  connect  the 
land  with  the  two  main  piers,  which  rise  fifty-three  feet  above  the  level  of  the 
road,  over  the  top  of  which  the  chains  are  suspended,  each  chain  being  1714 
feet  from  the  fastenings  in  the  rock.  The  first  three-masted  vessel  passed 
under  the  bridge  in  I82G.  Her  topmasts  were  nearly  as  high  as  a  frigate,  but 
they  cleared  twelve  feet  and  a  half  below  the  centre  of  the  roadway.  The  sus- 
pending power  of  the  chains  was  calculated  at  2016  tons.  The  total  weight  of 
each  chain,  121  tons. 

The  Caledonian  canal  is  another  of  Mr  Telford's  splendid  works,  in  con- 
structing every  part  of  which,  though  prodigious  difficulties  were  to  be  sur- 
mounted, he  was  successful.  But  even  this  great  work  does  not  redound  so 
much  to  his  credit  as  the  roads  throughout  the  same  district.  That  from  Inver- 
ness to  the  county  of  Sutherland,  and  through  Caithness,  made  not  only,  so  far 
as  i-espects  its  construction,  but  its  direction,  under  Mr  Telford's  orders,  is  supe- 
rior in  point  of  line  and  smoothness,  to  any  part  of  the  road  of  equal  conti- 
nuous length  between  London  and  Inverness.  This  is  a  remarkable  fact,  which, 
from  the  great  difficulties  he  had  to  overcome  in  passing  through  a  rugged,  hilly, 
and  mountainous  district,  incontrovertibly  establishes  his  great  skill  in  tho 
engineering  department,  as  well  as  in  the  construction  of  great  public  communi- 
cations. 

Mr  Telford  was  not  more  remarkable  for  his  great  professional  abiliiies  than 
for  Lis  sterling  worth  in  private  life.  His  easiness  of  access,  and  the  playful- 
ness  of  his  disposition,  even  to  the  close  of  life,  endeared  him  to  a  numerous 
circle  of  friends,  including  all  the  most  distinguished  men  of  his  time.     For 

IT.  °  3  A 


370  ANDREW  THOJISON,  D.D. 

some  years  before  bis  deatb,  be  bad  witbdrawn  bimself  iu  a  great  measure  from 
professional  employment,  and  amused  bis  leisure  by  writing  a  detailed  account  of 
the  principal  works  be  bad  planned,  and  lived  to  see  executed.  He  died  Sep- 
tember 9, 1834,  in  bis  seventy-ninth  year,  and  was  buried  in  Westminster  Abbey. 

THOMSON,  Andrew,  D.  D.,  an  eminent  modern  divine,  and  leader  in  the 
national  church  courts,  was  born  at  Sanquhar,  in  Dunifries-shire,  July  11,  1779. 
His  father,  Dr  John  Thomson,  was  originally  minister  of  Sanquhar,  afterwards 
of  Markinch  in  Fife,  and  lastly  one  of  the  ministers  of  Edinburgh.  In  early 
•life,  the  subject  of  this  memoir  exhibited  no  indications  of  those  singular  talents 
which  afterwards  distinguished  him  ;  and  he  was  several  years  at  college  before 
he  discovered  any  predilection  for  that  pi'ofession  of  which  be  was  destined  to 
become  so  great  an  ornament,  or  felt  the  influence  of  that  spirit  which  is  so 
necessary  for  its  effectual  exercise.  The  pi'ecise  period  nlien  he  first  turned 
his  attention  to  the  ministry,  is  not  known  ;  but,  in  1802,  he  was  licensed  to 
l)reach  the  gospel  by  the  presbytery  of  Kelso ;  and,  on  the  1 1th  of  March  of 
the  same  year,  was  ordained  minister  of  the  parish  of  Sprouston  :  shortly  after 
Avhich  he  married,  and,  by  a  happy  union,  added  greatly  to  his  felicity. 

Though  Dr  Thomson's  earlier  yeai's  presented  no  indications  of  those  power- 
ful talents  which  raised  him,  in  more  advanced  life,  to  a  high  place  amongst 
tlie  eminent  men  of  his  country  and  time,  he  had  not  long  ascended  the  pulpit 
before  these  talents  became  conspicuous.  During  bis  ministry  at  Sprouston,  he 
ivas  distinguished  by  that  unbending  integrity  of  character,  that  zeal  in  the 
sacred  cause  to  which  he  had  devoted  his  life,  and  that  vigorous  eloquence 
which  procured  him  so  high  a  reputation  in  the  elevated  sphere  in  which  he 
was  afterwards  placed.  Dr  Thomson  now,  also,  began  to  take  an  active  part 
in  tlie  business  of  the  church  courts,  of  which  he  was  a  member ;  and  further 
aided  the  interests  of  religion,  by  publishing  a  catechism  on  the  Lord's  Supper, 
which  subsequently  passed  through  many  editions,  and  has  proved  eminently 
beneficial  and  useful. 

In  1808,  Dr  Thomson  was  removed  to  the  East  church  of  Perth,  Avhere  he 
laboured,  assiduously  and  successfully,  till  the  spring  of  1810,  when  he  received 
a  presentation  from  the  magistrates  and  council  of  Edinburgh  to  the  New  Grey 
Friars'  church  in  that  city.  He  was  now  in  a  situation,  where  his  singular  ta- 
lents could  be  fully  appreciated,  and  where  they  had  a  field  wide  enough  for 
their  exercise:  of  these  advantages  he  did  not  fail  to  avail  himself.  He  applied 
himself  to  the  disdiarge  of  his  sacred  duties  with  redoubled  ardour,  and  with  a 
vigour  and  activity  both  of  body  and  mind,  that  at  once  procured  him  an  extraor- 
dinary share  of  public  admiration.  His  powerful  eloquence  and  fearless  charac- 
ter, pointed  him  out  as  no  ordinary  man,  and  made  an  impression  on  the  public 
mind,  which  has  but  few  parallels  in  the  histoi-y  of  ministerial  labours.  Inde- 
fatigable and  zealous,  in  a  singular  degree,  he  left  no  hour  unemployed,  and  no 
means  untried,  to  forward  the  good  Avork  in  which  he  was  engaged.  He  la- 
boured incessantly  ;  and  such  was  the  vigour  and  grasp  of  his  comprehensive 
mind,  and  the  versatility,  as  well  as  brilliancy  of  his  talents,  that  he  could,  at 
one  and  the  same  time,  bring  the  most  various  and  wholly  different  means,  to 
bear  upon  the  one  great  end  which  he  had  in  view,  the  spiritual  and  temporal 
happiness  of  mankind.  To  the  discussion  of  every  variety  of  subject  within  tlie 
sphere  of  his  calling,  he  came  alike  prepared,  and  on  each  shed  the  strong  light 
of  his  powerful  intellect,  exciting  the  admiration  of  all  who  beard  him,  by  bis 
manly  eloquence,  and  convincing  most,  it  is  to  le  hoped,  by  the  force  of  his 
rcisoning. 

Among  the  other  means  to  which  Dr  Thomson  had  recourse  to  promote  the 
interests  of  religion,  was  the  publication  of  a  periodical  work,  entitled  "  The 


fAjTli..  HivT"^ 


E\/o  APHP^EW    TrGilOliKJS©!?^ 


Wirn.-T;:!-*  r,v   r- 


ANDREW  THOMSON,   D.D.  371 

Christian  Instructor."  This  work  he  commenced,  with  the  assistance  of  several 
of  his  clerical  brethren,  a  few  months  after  his  settlement  in  Edinburgh  ;  and 
for  many  years  he  discharged  the  duties  of  its  editor,  besides  contributing  largely 
to  the  work  itself.  It  is  almost  unnecessary  to  add,  after  what  has  been  said  of 
Dr  Thomson,  that  the  "  Christian  Instructor"  is  a  Avork  of  singular  merit,  and, 
altogether,  perhaps,  one  of  the  ablest  of  the  kind  which  the  cause  of  Christianity 
has  produced. 

Dr  Thomson's  literary  labours  were  not,  however,  confined  at  this  period  to 
the  "  Christian  Instructor."  He  contributed,  besides,  many  valuable  articles  to 
the  Edinburgh  Encyclopaedia  ;  all  of  which  are  distinguished  by  that  nervous 
style  and  accuracy  of  conception,  which  so  peculiarly  belonged  to  their  author. 
The  extraordinary  merits  of  Ur  Thomson  had  early  forced  themselves  on  the 
public  notice ;  but  they  were  now  become  so  obvious  and  incontestable,  as  to 
engross  a  very  large  share  of  the  public  attention,  and  to  form  a  subject  of  its 
consideration.  The  result  of  this  general  feeling  was,  his  appointment  to  St 
George's  church,  which  took  place  on  the  16th  of  June,  1814;  one  of  the  most 
important  and  dignified  charges  in  the  church  of  Scotland.  In  this  conspicuous 
situation,  he  rapidly  extended  his  reputation,  and  increased  the  number  of  his 
friends;  and,  ultimately,  acquired  an  influence  over  his  congregation, composed 
of  the  most  influential  pei'sons  in  the  metropolis,  which  few  pi-eachera  have  ever 
enjoyed.  Previously  to  his  appointment  to  St  George's,  Dr  Thomson  had  not 
been  in  the  habit  of  writing  out  his  discourses.  He  trusted  to  the  natural 
promptness  with  which  his  ideas  presented  and  arranged  themselves,  and  to  the 
remarkable  fluency  of  expression  with  which  he  was  gifted  ;  and  these  did  not 
fail  him:  but  he  now  thought  it  advisable,  as  he  was  to  preach  to  a  more  refined 
class  of  persons,  to  secure  more  correctness  for  his  discourses,  by  committing 
them  to  paper,  before  delivering  them  from  the  pulpit.  And  in  the  pursuance 
of  this  resolution,  he  weekly  composed  and  wrote  two  sermons,  and  this  in  the 
midst  of  other  avocations,  which  alone  would  have  occupied  all  the  time  of  any 
man  of  less  bodily  and  mental  activity  than  he  was  possessed  of. 

To  the  ordinary  duties  of  the  Sunday,  Dr  Thomson  added  the  practice  of 
catechising  the  young  persons  of  his  congregation,  devoting  to  this  exercise  the 
interval  between  the  forenoon  and  afternoon  services.  He  also  held  week-day 
meetings  in  the  church,  for  the  purpose  of  instructing  in  the  principles  of  re- 
ligion, as  they  are  taught  in  the  Shorter  Catechism ;  and,  to  complete  the  sys- 
tem of  moral  and  religious  culture,  which  his  unwearying  zeal  had  planned  out, 
he  instituted  a  week-day  school,  for  the  benefit  of  those  of  his  young  parishionei-s 
whose  circumstances  either  prevented  their  attending  church,  or  rendered  a 
greater  extent  of  tuition  necessary  than  he  could  aftbrd  to  bestow  on  Sunday. 
But  he  did  still  more  than  merely  institute  this  little  seminary.  He  compiled 
suitable  books  for  the  difl^erent  classes  it  comprised,  and  crowned  the  good 
work,  by  acting  himself  as  their  teacher, — as  the  teacher  of  the  poorest  and 
humblest  of  his  flock. 

With  all  this  devotion  to  the  higher  and  more  important  duties  of  his  gacred 
office,  Dr  Thomson  di-d  not  neglect  those  of  a  minor  character.  Amongst 
these,  church  music  had  an  especial  share  of  his  attention.  Together  with  his 
other  rare  endowments,  he  possessed  an  exquisite  ear  and  taste  for  music,  and 
not  only  introduced  an  improved  psalmody  into  the  Scottish  church,  but  added 
to  it  several  eminently  beautiful  compositions  of  his  own.  Admirable  as  Dr 
Thomson  was  in  all  his  relations  to  his  flock,  he  was  in  none  more  so,  than  in 
that  of  the  personal  friend,  the  soother  of  affliction,  and  the  alleviator  of  domes- 
tic  misery.  His  private  labours  of  this  kind  were  very  great,  and  eminently 
successful.      His   presence  never  failed  to  excite  a  new  feeling  of  animation, 


.) 


372  ANDREW  THOMSON,  D.D. 

nor  his  words  to  inspire  hope.  To  the  sick  and  the  bei'caved  his  visits  were 
peculiarly  acceptable;  for  his  manner  and  his  language  were  kind,  and  soothing, 
and  conciliating,  in  a  remarkable  degree:  and,  although  these  could  not  always 
lessen  pain,  they  never  missed  of  reconciling  the  sufferer  to  that  wliich  was 
inevitable. 

Besides  thus  faithfully  and  laboriously  discharging  the  various  important  duties 
of  his  office,  Dr  Tlionison  took  an  active  part  in  all  the  church  judicatories  of 
which  he  was  a  member.  In  these,  his  singular  talents  and  high  character,  as 
as  might  be  expected,  always  secured  for  him  the  first  place,  and  at  length  ac- 
quired for  him  the  distinction,  conceded  silently  but  spontaneously,  of  being  con- 
sidered the  leader  of  the  evangelical  party  in  the  church  to  which  he  had  attached 
himself.  Amongst  the  other  characteristics  of  that  party,  was  a  strong  feeling 
of  hostility  to  the  system  of  patronage ;  and  to  this  feeling  Dr  Thomson  gave 
utterance  in  the  General  Assembly,  on  several  occasions,  in  a  strain  of  eloquence, 
and  with  a  power  of  reasoning,  that  will  not  soon  be  forgotten. 

Although  a  zealous  member  of  the  church  of  Scotland,  and  strongly  attached 
to  her  institutions,  Dr  Thomson's  liberal  and  enlightened  mind  kept  him  entirely 
aloof  from  anything  approaching  to  bigotry.  With  dissenters  of  all  descriptions 
he  maintained  a  friendly  understanding.  He  made  every  allowance  for  differ- 
ence of  opinion  on  points  of  comparatively  inferior  importance;  and,  when  he  was 
satisfied  that  a  genumo  spirit  of  Christianity  existed,  never  allowed  such  differ- 
ence of  opinion  to  disturb  that  harmony  which  he  wisely  and  benevolently  con- 
ceived ought  to  exist  between  those  whOj  after  all;  laboured  in  the  same  vine- 
yard, and  to  obtain  the  same  end.  ' 

Ever  ready  to  lend  his  powerful  aid  to  all  rational  schemes  for  promoting 
the  interests  of  religion  and  extending  its  sacred  influence,  he  eagerly  enrolled 
himself  amongst  the  supported  of  the  British  and  Foreign  Bible  Society  ;  and 
while  that  society  adiiered  to  the  principles  uhich  were  laid  down  at  its  institution, 
he  continued  to  take  a  warm  interest  in  its  affairs,  and  laboured  with  tongue 
and  pen  to  secure  success  to  its  efforts.  On  the  departure,  however,  of  this 
society  from  one  of  the  leading  conditions  by  which  it  was  understood  it  should 
be  regulated,  namely,  that  the  copies  of  the  Bible  which  it  issued,  should  be 
purely  scriptural,  and  unaccompanied  by  note  or  comment  of  any  kind  ;  Dr 
Thomson  felt  himself  called  upon,  as  a  minister  of  the  gospel,  not  only  to  with- 
draw his  support  from  it,  but  to  oppose,  by  every  means  in  his  power,  the  con- 
tinuance of  a  system  so  injurious  to  the  best  interests  of  religion.  Into  the 
Avell  known  controversy  which  ensued,  and  which  has  been  called  "  the  Apo- 
crypha Controversy,"  he  entered  with  all  his  characteristic  zenl ;  and  so  effec- 
tually employed  his  powerful  talents  during  its  progress,  that  his  enemies, 
whatever  cause  they  may  have  found  for  rejoicing  in  the  issue,  could  find  but 
little  in  the  circumstance  of  liaving  provoked  his  resentment 

The  last  great  public  effort  of  Dr  Thomson  was  in  behalf  of  the  slaves  in  our 
West  India  colonies;  and,  in  the  prosecution  of  this  humane  and  philanthropic 
work,  he,  on  several  occasions,  m.nde  displays  of  oratory,  which  have  been 
seldom  equalled,  and  still  seldomer  surpassed.  He  denuinded  immediate  eman- 
cipation, and  supported  this  demand  with  an  eloquence  and  power  of  reasoning, 
which  were  altogether  overpowering. 

These  mighty  labours,  and  unceasing  exertions  in  the  causes  of  religion  and 
philanthropy,  were  destined,  however,  to  come  to  a  premature  termination. 
Dr  Thomson's  constitution  was  naturally  strong,  and  in  person  he  was  robust 
and  athletic ;  but  unremitting  study,  and  incessant  toil  of  both  body  and  mind, 
had  their  usual  effects.  His  health  was  impaired ;  and  for  some  time  be- 
fore his  death,  a  secret  sensation  gave  him  warning  that  that  event  would  take 


JAMES  THOMSON.  373 


place  soon,  and  suddenly.  The  fulfilment  of  this  melancholy  anticipation 
took  place  on  the  9lh  of  Febiuaiy,  1831.  On  that  day,  he  appeared  in  his 
usual  health,  and  went  through  the  ordinary  routine  of  business  with  his  accus- 
tomed activity  and  energy,  taking  the  same  interest  in  everything  that  came 
under  his  consideration,  as  he  had  been  accustomed  to  do ;  and  altogether  pre- 
senting nothing,  in  either  manner  or  appearance,  to  indicate  the  near  approach 
of  that  catastrophe  which  was  to  deprive  religion  and  morality  of  one  of  their 
ablest  supports,  and  society  of  one  of  its  brightest  ornaments.  Having  com- 
pleted the  out-door  business  of  the  day,  Dr  Thomson  returned  home  about  five 
o'clock  in  the  afternoon,  and  while  standing  on  the  threshold  of  his  own  door, 
just  previous  to  his  er.tering  the  house,  he  suddenly  fell  down,  and  expired 
Avithout  a  struggle  or  a  groan,  liis  remains  were  interred  in  St  Cuthbert's 
church-yard  ;  and  if  anything  were  wanting  to  impress  those  who  have  only 
read  or  heard  of  him,  with  a  full  conception  of  the  estimation  in  which  he  was 
held  by  all  ranks  and  denominations  in  the  metropolis,  it  Avould  be  found  in  a 
description  of  his  funeral, — the  most  numerously  attended,  perhaps,  that  had 
ever  been  witnessed  in  the  Scottish  capital.  Dr  Thomson's  literary  labours  ex- 
hibit a  long  array  of  religious  Avorks  of  various  descriptions,  including  lectures, 
sermons,  and  addresses.  To  these  there  is  to  be  added,  a  volume  of  posthu- 
mous *'  Sermons  and  Sacramental  Exhortations,"  published  in  Edinburgh  in  the 
same  year  in  which  he  died  ;   with  a  memoir  prefixed. 

TH03IS0N,  James,  a  celebrated  poet,  was  born,  September  11,  1700,  at 
Ednara,  near  Kelso,  of  which  parish  his  father  was  minister.  Beatrix  Trotter, 
the  mother  of  the  poet,  was  daughter  and  co-heiress  of  a  small  portion  of  land 
at  Foggo  in  Berwickshire,  and  is  described  as  having  been  a  woman  of  "  a  sin- 
gular lervour  of  imagination,"  at  the  same  time  that  she  shone  in  the  domestic 
and  social  virtues.  The  difficulty  with  which  his  father  supported  his  family, 
having  nine  children,  occasioned  his  removal,  in  the  early  childhood  of  the 
poet,  to  the  parish  of  Southdean,  in  the  presbytery  of  Jedburgh,  where 
the  stipend,  though  not  large,  was  somewhat  better  than  that  which  he  had  en- 
joyed at  Ednam.  The  change  was  from  a  low  and  beautifully  ornamented  part 
of  the  country,  and  the  close  neighbourhood  of  a  considerable  market  town,  to 
an  elevated  pastoral  district,  enlivened  only  by  the  slender  waters  of  the  Jed, 
and  frequented  by  few  except  the  lonely  angler.  In  the  church-yard  of  South- 
dean,  may  yet  be  seen  the  humble  monument  of  the  father  of  the  poet,  with 
the  inscription  almost  obliterated.  The  manse  in  which  that  individual  reared 
his  large  family,  of  whom  one  was  to  become  so  illustrious,  was  ;vhat  would  now 
be  described  as  a  small  thatched  cottage.'  The  poet  received  the  rudiments  of 
his  education  at  the  school  of  Jedburgh,  and  was  not  distinguished  among  his 
youthful  companions,  by  remarkable  superiority  of  parts.  He  was  still,  however, 
very  young,  when  his  talents  for  writing  verses  attracted  the  attention  of  several 
respectable  individuals  in  that  part  of  the  country.  Mr  Riccarton,  minister  of 
the  neighbouring  parish  of  Hobkirk,  and  a  man  of  taste  and  learning,  observed 
and  encouraged  tiiis  talent ;  and  young  Thomson  was  occasionally  invited,  on 
account  of  his  promising  abilities,  to  spend  his  vacations  at  the  country  seats  of 
Sir  William  Bennet  of  Ghesters,  Sir  Gilbert  Elliot  of  Minto,  and  lord  Cranstoun. 
He  was  so  little  pleased,  however,  with  the  poetry  he  produced  at  this  early 
period,  that  on  every  new-year's  day  he  burnt  all  that  he  had  composed  during 
li»e  foregoing  year.  At  a  pi-oper  age  he  was  sent  to  the  university  of  Edin- 
burgh. According  to  tradition,  a  servant  of  his  father  conducted  hinj  to  the 
capital,  seated  behind  himself  on  horseback  ;  but  such  was  his  reluctance  to  for- 
sake the  country,  that  he  had  no  sooner  been  left  to  himself  in  the  city,  than 
»  Information  by  Mr  Richmond,  the  present  minister  of  Southdean. 


574  JAMES  THOMSON. 


he  set  out  on  foot  for  home,  and  was  back  at  his  father's  manse  (between  fifty 
and  sixty  miles  distant)  as  soon  as  the  man  and  the  liorse.  When  Iiis  parents 
remonstrated  with  Iiini  respecting  this  disobedient  conduct,  he  passionately  ob- 
served that  "  he  could  study  as  well  on  the  hauglis  of  Sou'den  [so  Southdean  is 
commonly  pronounced]  as  in  Edinburgh."^  He  was,  nevertheless,  prevailed 
upon  to  commence  a  course  of  study  in  Edinburgh. 

In  the  second  year  of  his  attendance  at  the  university,  his  studies  were 
interrupted  by  the  sudden  deatli  of  his  father.  He  was  summoned  home  to  re- 
ceive his  parent's  dying  benediction,  but  came  too  late.  This  circumstance 
contributed  to  increase  his  sorrow,  and  his  filial  piety  was  expressed  on  this 
mournful  occasion  in  instances  of  conduct  which  his  surviving  relations  afterwards 
delighted  to  recollect. 

His  mother  now  rej»lized  as  much  as  she  could  from  her  own  little  inheri- 
tance, and  removed  with  her  family  to  Edinbui-gh,  in  order  to  give  them  what 
persons  of  her  rank  in  Scotland  generally  consider  as  the  best  of  all  endow- 
ments, a  good  education.  James  re-commenced  his  studies,  and  with  some  re- 
luctance was  induced  by  his  friends  to  enter  upon  a  course  of  divinity,  with  the 
view  of  applying  his  talents  to  the  church.  After  the  usual  attendance  on  the 
professor  of  theology,  he  delivered  a  probationary  exercise  in  tlie  hall ;  but  his 
diction  was  so  poetically  splendid,  that  the  professor  reproved  him  for  using  lan- 
guage unintelligible  to  a  popular  audience  ;  which  so  disgusted  him  witli  his 
theological  pursuits,  that  he  seems  to  have,  soon  after  this  event,  resolved 
to  abandon  them.  He  had  already  contributed  to  a  poetical  volume,  entitled 
the  Edinburgh  3Hscellany,  which  was  compiled  by  a  society  of  young  aspirants 
in""  verse  who  were  attending  the  college,  and  among  whom,  was  David  Mallet. 
About  the  same  time  he  acted  as  tutor  to  lord  Binning, — the  son  of  the  sixth  earl 
of  Haddington,  and  himself  a  poet ;  to  whom  he  had  probably  been  introduced 
by  his  mother's  friend,  lady  Grizzel  Baillie,  mother-in-law  to  his  lordship,  and 
^vhose  "  Memoirs"  possess  so  much  tender  interest;  who,  finding  him  unlikely 
to  do  well  in  any  other  pursuit,  advised  him  to  try  his  fortune  in  London  as  n 
poet,  and  promised  him  some  countenance  and  assistance.  Accordingly,  in  the 
ai.tumn  of  1725,  he  took  leave  of  his  mother,  whom  he  was  never  more  to  be- 
hold, and  proceeded  by  sea  to  London,  carrying  with  him  little  besides  his  poem 
of  "  Winter."  On  arriving  in  the  metropolis,  he  found  his  way  to  his  college 
friend  Mallet,  who  then  acted  as  preceptor  to  the  two  sons  of  the  duke  of  Mon- 
trose ;  he  also  sought  out  Mr  Duncan  Forbes,  afterwards  president  of  the  court 
of  session,  who,  having  conceived  a  favourable  opinion  of  histalentsin  Scotland,  was 
now  disposed  to  promote  his  views  by  all  means  in  his  power.  He  was  at  first  in 
considerable  difiicultics  for  the  means  of  subsistence,  and  is  found  writing  to  an 
incient  friend  of  his  family,  the  minister  of  Ancrum,  for  the  loan  of  twelve 
pounds,  in  order  to  pay  off  some  little  debts  lie  had  contracted  since  his  arrival 
in  the  metropolis,  and  to  procure  necessaries,  till  he  should  raise  some- 
thing by  the  sale  of  his  deceased  mother's  lands  of  Whithope.  By  the  friendly 
intervention  of  Mallet,  a  bool<seller  named  Millar  was  induced  to  buy  "  Winter" 
at  a  low  price,  and  it  was  accordingly  published  in  1726,  with  a  dedication  to 
Sir  Spencer  Compton,  and  several  recommendatory  verses  by  his  friends. 
Though  unnoticed  for  some  time,  it  gradually  attained  that  estimation  Avhich  it 
has  ever  since  maintained,  and  soon  procured  for  the  author  the  friendship  of 
all  the  men  then  distinguished  in  literature.  His  acquaintance  was  sought  by 
l>p  Ilundle,  afterwards  bishop  of  Derry,  who  recommended  him  to  the 
lord  chancellor  Talbot.  In  1727,  he  published  another  of  his  Seasons,  "  Sum- 
mer," which  he  at  first  proposed  dedicating  to  lord  Binning,  but  eventually 
*  The  editor  is  obliged  for  this  curious  anecdote  to  Mr  Riclunond. 


JAMES  THOMSON. 


375 


by  the  disinterested  advice  of  tliat  nobleman,  inscribed  to  Mr  Dodington,  after- 
wards lord  3Ielcorabe,  whom  Binning  thought  likely  to  advance  his  interest 
The  same  year  he  gave  to  the  public  two  more  of  his  productions ;  "  A  Poem 
Sacred  to  the  3Iemory  of  Sir  Isaac  Newton,"  who  died  in  that  year ;  and 
"  Britannia,"  a  poetical  invective  against  the  ministry,  whom  the  nation'  then 
thought  not  forward  enough  in  resenting  the  depredations  of  the  Spaniards. 
His  "  Spring,*'  published  in  1728,  and  addressed  to  the  countess  of  Hertford* 
afterwards  duchess  of  Somerset,  procured  him  an  invitation  to  pass  a  summer 
at  lord  Hertford's  country-seat.  The  Seasons  were  not  completed  by  the 
addition  of  "  Autumn,"  till  1730,  when  he  published  his  poems  coUectirely. 
Autumn  Avas  addressed  to  Mr  Onslow. 

In  the  same  year,  he  brought  upon  the  stage,  at  Drury  Lane,  his  tragedy  of 
Sophonisba,  which  raised  such  expectation,  that  every  rehearsal  was  dignified 
with  a  splendid  audience,  collected  to  anticipate  the  delight  that  was  preparing 
for  the  publia  It  was  observed,  however,  that  nobody  was  affected,  and  that 
the  company  rose  as  from  a  moral  lecture.  It  was  one  of  the  many  proofs  that 
dramatic  genius  is  a  very  different  thing  from  the  power  of  putting  in  dialogue 
fine  sentiment  and  poetical  description.  Not  long  afterwards,  the  recommenda- 
tion of  Dr  Bundle  caused  him  to  be  selected  as  the  travelling  associate  of  the 
honourable  3Ir  Talbot,  eldest  son  of  the  chancellor,  with  whom  he  visited  most 
of  the  courts  and  countries  of  the  European  continent.  Such  an  opportunity 
could  not  fail  to  be  a  source  of  much  improvement  to  one,  whose  mind  was  well 
prepared  for  the  observation  of  the  different  forms  of  society,  and  appearances 
in  external  nature.  The  idea  of  his  poem  on  Liberty  suggested  itself  to  him 
during  this  tour,  and  after  his  return  he  employed  nearly  two  years  in  its  com- 
pletion. He  was  now  enabled  to  pursue  his  studies  at  leisure,  having  been  re- 
munerated for  his  attendance  on  Mr  Talbot,  by  the  place  of  secretary  of  tlie 
briefs,  which  was  nearly  a  sinecure.  His  poem  "  Liberty  "  at  length  appeared, 
being  inscribed  to  Frederick,  prince  of  Wales,  and  opening  with  an  affectionate 
tribute  to  the  memory  of  Mr  Talbot,  who  had  died  during  his  journey  with  the 
poet.  Thomson  congratulated  himself  upon  this  work  as  the  noblest  effort  of 
his  mind  ;  but  it  was  received  with  coldness  by  the  public,  and  has  never  been 
so  generally  read  as  the  rest  of  his  compositions.  In  reality,  a  long  historical 
piece  in  blank  verse,  the  incidents  of  which  were  taken  from  common  reading, 
was  not  very  likely  to  prove  attractive. 

The  lord  chancellor  soon  after  died,  and,  Thomson  having  neglected  to  ap- 
ply for  a  renewal  of  his  place,  it  was  bestowed  by  the  succeeding  judge,  lord 
Hardwicke,  upon  another.  The  poet  was,  therefore,  reduced  once  more  to  a 
dependence  on  his  talents  for  support.  It  is  creditable  to  him,  that,  while  in 
this  painful  situation,  he  showed,  in  his  letters  to  a  friend  in  Edinburgh,  an 
affectionate  anxiety  to  assist  the  narrow  circumstances  of  his  sisters,  Jean  and 
Elizabeth,  who  then  lived  with  Mr  Gusthart,  one  of  the  ministei-s  of  the  city. 
He  was  introduced,  about  this  time,  by  Mr  (afterwards  lord)  Littleton,  to  the 
prince  of  AVales ;  and,  being  questioned  as  to  the  state  of  his  affairs,  he  an- 
swered, "  that  they  were  in  a  more  poetical  posture  than  formerly  :"  which 
induced  the  prince  to  bestow  upon  him  a  pension  of  one  hundred  pounds  a- 
year. 

In  1738,  his  second  tragedy,  entitled  "  Agamemnon,"  was  brought  upon  the 
stage  at  Drury  Lane.  Pope,  who  had  favoured  the  author,  when  in  Italy,  with 
a  poetical  epistle,  countenanced  the  performance  on  the  first  night  by  his  pre- 
sence ;  and  Avas  received  in  the  house  with  a  general  clap.  It  had  the  fate  of 
most  mythological  pieces,  and  was  only  endured,  not  favoured.  The  reception 
it  met  with,  is  said  to  have  thrown  the  author  into  such  a  copious  perspiration, 


376  JAMES  THOMSON. 


that  he  found  it  necessary  to  change  his  wig,  before  he  could  join  a  party  of 
friends  at  supper.  Another  tragedy,  which  he  offered  to  the  theatre,  was 
'*  Edward  and  J'lleonora ;"  but  it  was  prevented  from  appearing  by  the  lord 
chamberlain,  on  account  of  its  political  complexion.  In  1740,  he  wrote,  in 
conjunction  with  3Iallet,  the  "  JIasque  of  Alfred,"  which  was  performed  before 
the  prince  of  Wales,  at  Cliefden  House,  on  the  birth-day  of  the  princess  Au- 
gusta. In  this  piece  was  introduced  the  song,  "  Rule  liritannia,"  which  hns 
ever  since  maintained  so  high  a  popularity.  It  is  understood  to  be  the  com- 
position of  Thomson.^ 

The  most  successful  of  his  dramatic  compositions,  "  Tancred  and  Sigis- 
munda,"  was  brought  out  at  Drury  Lane,  in  1745:  it  is  still  occasionally  acted. 
His  poem,  entitled  "  The  Castle  of  Indolence,"  which  had  been  several  years 
under  his  polishing  hand,  and  which  is  perhaps  the  most  perfect  and  pleasing 
of  all  his  compositions,  was  published  in  1746.  His  friend,  lord  Lyttleton,  was 
now  in  power,  and  procured  him  the  place  of  surveyor-general  of  the  Leeward 
Islands;  from  which,  when  his  deputy  was  paid,  he  received  about  three  hun- 
dred pounds  a-year.  He  did  not  live  long  to  enjoy  this  state  of  comparative 
independence.  He  was  in  the  habit  of  walking  from  London  to  his  house  nt 
Richmond,  for  the  sake  of  exercise.  One  evening,  after  he  had  proceeded  a 
certain  distance,  being  fearful  that  he  would  be  too  late,  he  took  a  boat  for  the 
remainder  of  the  way,  not  observing  that  the  dews  of  the  evening,  and  the  cold 
nir  of  the  river,  were  dangerous  to  a  person  whose  pores  were  opened  by  the 
perspiration  of  a  hasty  walk.  The  cold  which  he  caught  on  this  occasion,  ter- 
minated in  a  fever,  which  carried  him  oft',  August  27,  1748,  when  he  had 
nearly  completed  the  forty-eighth  year  of  his  age.  He  was  buried  under  a  plain 
stone  in  Richmond  church,  where  the  earl  of  Buchan,  forty  years  afterwards, 
erected  a  tablet  to  his  memory.  A  monument,  however,  had  been  raised  to 
him  at  an  earlier  period  in  Westminster  Abbey.  The  poet  left  a  tragedy,  en- 
titled "  Coriolanus,"  which  was  brought  upon  the  stage  at  Covent  Garden,  in 
1749,  and  realized  a  considerable  sum  for  the  benefit  of  his  relations. 

It  is  as  a  descriptive  poet  that  Thomson  has  gained  a  permanent  fame  ;  for 
all  his  compositions,  except  of  that  kind,  have  sunk  into  comparative  neglect. 
His  "  Seasons"  has  now  kept  its  place  amongst  the  poetical  classics  of  England, 
for  upwards  of  a  century ;  and  still  there  is  no  perceptible  tendency  to  decline  in 
its  popularity.  In  reference  to  this  poem,  Dr  Johnson  has  Avritten  as  follows  ; 
and  no  further  criticism  seems  to  be  necessary  : — •*  As  a  writer,  Thomson  is 
entitled  to  one  praise  of  the  highest  kind, — his  mode  of  thinking,  and  of  ex- 
pressing his  thoughts,  is  original.  His  blank  verse  is  no  more  the  blank  verse 
of  3Iilton,  or  of  any  other  poet,  than  the  rhymes  of  Prior  are  the  rhymes  of 
Cowley.  His  numbers,  his  pauses,  his  diction,  are  of  his  own  growth,  without 
transcription,  without  imitation.  He  thinks  in  a  peculiar  train,  and  he  always 
thinks  as  a  man  of  genius  :  he  looks  round  on  nature,  and  on  life,  with  the  eye 
which  nature  only  bestows  on  a  poet,  the  eye  that  distinguishes,  in  every  thing 
presented  to  ita  view,  whatever  there  is  on  which  imagination  can  delight  to  be 
detained,  and  with  a  mind  that  at  once  comprehends  the  vast,  and  attends  to 
the  minute.  The  reader  of  the  '  Seasons,'  wonders  that  he  never  saw  before 
what  Thomson  shows  him,  and  that  he  never  yet  felt  what  Thomson  impresses. 
His  descriptions  of  extended  scenes,  and  general  eflects,  bring  before  us  llie 
whole  magnificence  of  nature,  whether  pleasing  or  dreadful.     The  gaiety  of 

3  It  appears  from  the  letters  published  by  the  earl  of  Buchan,  that  Thomson  at  this  lime 
rented  a  house  at  the  upper  end  of  Kew  Lane ;  and  that  the  Amanda  whom  he  so  fie- 
qu?nly  celebrated  in  his  verses,  was  a  Miss  Young,  sister  of  Mrs  Robertson,  wife  of  the  sur- 
geon to  the  household  at  Kew. 


.  JAMES  THOMSON. 


377 


Spring,  the  splendour  of  Summer,  the  tranquillity  of  Autumn,  and  the  horrors 
of  Winter,  talce,  in  their  turns,  possession  of  the  mind.  Tiie  poet  leads  us 
through  the  appearances  of  things,  as  they  are  successively  varied  by  the  vicis- 
situdes of  the  year ;  and  imparts  to  us  so  much  of  his  own  enthusiasm,  that  our 
thoughts  expand  with  his  imagery,  and  kindle  with  his  sentiments.  Nor  is  the 
naturalist  without  his  share  in  the  entertainment ;  for  he  is  assisted  to  recollect 
and  to  combine,  to  arrange  his  discoveries,  and  to  amplify  the  sphere  of  his 
contemplation." 

"  Thomson,"  says  Dr  Aikin,  "  was  in  person  large  and  ungainly,  with  a 
heavy  unanimated  countenance,  and  nothing  in  his  appearance  or  manner  in 
mixed  society  indicating  the  man  of  genius  or  refinement.  He  was,  however, 
easy  and  cheerful  with  select  friends,  by  whom  he  was  singularly  beloved  for 
the  kindness  of  his  heart,  and  his  freedom  from  all  the  little  malignant  passions, 
•which  too  often  debase  the  literary  character.  His  benevolence  is  said  to  be 
more  ardent  than  active,  for  indolence  was  extremely  prevalent  in  his  nature  ; 
and  though  he  would  readily  give  to  the  utmost  of  his  ability,  he  could  not 
overcome  his  reluctance  to  exert  himself  in  doing  services.  He  was  fond  of  in- 
dulgences of  every  kind,  and  was  more  attached  to  the  grosser  pleasures  of 
sense,  than  the  sentimental  delicacy  of  his  writings  would  lead  a  reader  to  sup- 
pose :  but  this  is  a  common  failing.  No  poet  has  deserved  more  pi-aise  for  the 
moral  tenor  of  his  works.  Undoubted  philanthropy,  enlarged  ideas  of  the  dig- 
nity of  man,  and  of  his  rights  ;  love  of  virtue,  public  and  private,  and  of  a  de- 
votional spirit,  narrowed  by  no  views  of  sect  or  party,  give  soul  to  his  verse, 
when  not  m^ely  descriptive :  and  no  one  can  rise  from  the  perusal  of  his 
pages,  without  melioration  of  his  principles  or  feelings." 

Tlie  remark  here  made  as  to  the  attachment  of  Thomson  "  to  the  grosser 
pleasures  of  sense,"  demands  some  comment  The  purity  of  his  writings  has 
been  celebrated  by  lord  Lyttleton,  and  generally  allowed  by  the  world ;  and, 
excepting  the  above  remark,  which  is  to  be  traced  to  the  report  of  Savage  to 
Dr  Johnson,  and  has  not  been  generally  credited,  no  charge  has  ever,  till 
lately,  been  laid  against  Uie  private  character  of  the  poet 

In  a  work  lately  published,  under  the  title  of  **  Records  of  my  Life,"  a 
posthumous  autobiogi'aphy  of  3Ir  John  Taylor,  the  author  of  the  humorous 
poem  of  "  Monsieur  Tonson,"  a  curious  tale  is  related,  on  the  authority  of  the 
late  Mr  George  Chalmers.  "  Mr  Chalmers,"  says  Taylor,  "  had  heard  that  an 
old  housekeeper  of  Thomson's  was  alive,  and  still  resided  at  Richmond.  Hav- 
ing determined  to  write  a  life  of  the  celebrated  poet  of  his  country,  he  went  to 
Richmond,  thinking  it  possible  he  might  obtain  some  account  of  the  domestic 
habits  of  the  poet,  and  other  anecdotes  which  might  impart  interest  and  novelty 
to  his  narration.  He  found  that  the  old  housekeeper  had  a  good  memory,  and 
was  of  a  communicative  turn.  She  informed  him  Thomson  had  been  actually 
married  in  early  life,  but  that  his  wife  had  been  taken  by  him  merely  for  her 
person,  and  was  so  little  calculated  to  be  introduced  to  his  great  friends,  or  in- 
deed his  friends  in  general,  that  he  had  kept  her  in  a  state  of  obscurity  for 
many  years  ;  and  when  he  at  last,  from  some  compunctious  feelings,  required 
her  to  come  and  live  with  him  at  Richmond,  he  still  kept  her  in  the  same  se- 
cluded state,  so  that  she  appeared  to  be  only  one  of  the  old  domestics  of  the 
family.  At  length  his  wife,  experiencing  little  of  the  attention  of  a  husband, 
though  otherwise  provided  with  every  thing  that  could  make  her  easy,  if  not 
comfortable,  asked  his  permission  to  go  for  a  few  weeks  to  visit  her  own  rela- 
tions in  the  north.  Thomson  gave  his  consent,  exacting  a  promise  tiiat  she 
would  not  reveal  her  real  situation  to  any  of  his  or  her  own  family.  She  agreed; 
but  when  she  had  advanced  no  farther  on  her  journey  than  to  London   she  was 

IV.  3B 


378  DR.  WILLIAM  THOMSON. 

there  taken  ill,  and  in  a  short  time  died.  The  news  of  her  death  was  immedi- 
ately conveyed  to  Thomson,  who  ordered  a  decent  funeral ;  and  she  was  buried, 
as  the  old  housekeeper  said,  in  the  churchyard  of  old  Maryleboue  church.  Mr 
Chalmers,  who  was  indefatigable  in  his  inquiries,  was  not  satisfied  with  the  old 
woman's  information,  but  immediately  went  and  examined  the  church  register; 
where  he  found  the  following  entry — 'Died,  Mary  Thomson,  a  stranger' — in 
confirmation  of  the  housekeeper's  testimony." 

There  is  little,  perhaps,  in  this  story  to  invalidate  the  commonly  received 
notions  as  to  the  worth  of  Thomson's  character ;  though,  allowing  it  to  bo 
true,  it  certainly  is  not  calculated  to  elevate  him  in  the  estimation  of  the  world. 
The  present  writer  has,  of  course,  no  wish  to  degrade  any  of  the  eminent  names 
of  the  past  j  but  he  thinks  it  worth  while,  by  way  of  correcting  a  piece  of  lite- 
rary history,  to  mention  that  the  late  earl  of  Buchan  possessed  a  poem  in  Thom- 
son's hand-writing,  and  bearing  all  the  erasures,  interpolations,  and  other  pe- 
culiarities, that  could  mark  the  composition  as  his  own,  which  displayed  a 
marked  degree  of  licentiousness.  He  has,  therefore,  been  satisfied  that  Thom- 
son, though  he  had  the  good  sense  to  publish  nothing  of  an  impure  character, 
was  not  incapable  of  delighting  in  gross  ideas,  and  composing  lines — ' 

'' which,  dying,  he  could  wish  to  blot." 

THOMSON,  (Dr)  William,  an  ingenious,  versatile,  and  multifarious  writer, 
was  born  in  1746,  in  the  parish  of  Fortcviot,  in  Perthshire.  His  father,  though 
in  humble,  was  in  decent  circumstances,  earning  a  livcliliood  by  uniting  the 
businesses  of  carpenter,  builder,  and  farmer.  Young  Thomson  was  instructed 
in  the  first  rudiments  of  education  by  his  mother,  and  was  then  sent  to  tho 
parochial  school.  He  afterwards  attended  tho  grammar-school  of  Perth,  and  on 
leaving  it  proceeded  to  St  Andrews,  where  his  abilities  attracted  the  notice  and 
procured  him  the  patronage  of  the  Earl  of  Kinnoul,  then  chancellor  of  the  uni- 
versity. This  munificent  nobleman,  after  satisfying  himself,  by  personal  exami- 
nation, that  young  Thomson's  high  reputation  as  a  classical  scholar  was  not  ex- 
aggerated, admitted  him  into  his  family  in  the  capacity  of  librarian,  and  shortly 
after  directed  his  views  to  the  church,  with  the  intention  of  presenting  him  to 
one  of  the  livings  in  his  gift. 

Mr  Thomson  prosecuted  hia  theological  studies,  first  at  St  Andrews,  and  then  at 
Edinburgh,  and,  having  obtained  a  license  to  preach,  was  appointed  assistant  to  the 
minister  of  Monivaird.  Unfortunately  neither  his  tastes  nor  habits  accorded  with 
the  clerical  calling.  His  temper  was  irascible,  and  he  delighted  more  in  field 
sports  and  jovial  companionship  than  in  the  discharge  of  his  professional  duties. 
The  complaints  of  the  parishioners  induced  him  to  resign  his  office,  and  he  resolved 
to  try  his  fortune  in  London  as  a  man  of  letters.  In  this  he  was  at  first  far  from  suc- 
cessful. At  length,  through  theinfluenceof  liis  distinguished  friends,  Drs  Robertson 
and  Blair,  he  was  chosen  to  continue  the  History  of  Philip  III.  of  Spain,  a  work 
begun  by  Dr  Robert  Watson,  principal  of  the  United  Colleges  of  St  Andrews, 
but  which  that  gentleman  left  unfinished  at  his  death,  which  happened  in  1780. 
This  work  Dr  Thomson  completed  in  a  manner  highly  creditable  to  his  talents, 
and  so  much  to  the  satisfaction  of  the  public,  that  he  soon  found  himself 
surrounded  with  friends,  and  his  hands  filled  with  employn.ent.  The  former 
procured  him  about  this  period,  wholly  unsolicited  on  his  part,  the  degree  of 
LL.D.  from  tho  university  of  Glasgow.  Dr  Thomson  now  became  a  regular 
London  author,  being  ready  to  write  on  any  subject,  and  for  any  one  who  should 
employ  liis  versatile  talents.  Business  increased  apace  upon  him,  and  from 
this  period  till  near  the  close  of  his  life,  extending  to  upwards  of  five  and  thirty 
years,  he  continued  in  close  connection  with  the  press,  and  with  the  exception 


WILLIAM  TURNBULL. 


379 


of  poetry,  went,  in  that  time,  creditably  through  every  department  of  English 
literature.  Nothing  came  amiss  to  him ;  history,  biography,  voyages,  travels 
and  memoirs,  novels  and  romances,  pamphlets  and  periodicals.  In  all 
of  these  he  wrote  largely,  and  wrote  well.  In  his  literary  labours  he  was  inde- 
fatigable. Night  and  day  he  wrought  with  unwearying  perseverance,  and,  by  dint 
of  this  industry,  associated  with  a  remarkable  facility  in  composition,  he  accom- 
plished, in  the  course  of  his  life,  a  greater  amount  of  literary  work,  and  of  a 
greater  variety  of  character,  llian  perhaps  any  English  writer  who  preceded 
him.  Amongst  the  most  important  of  his  avowed  works  are,  "  The  3Ian  in  the 
Moon,"  a  novel;  "  Travels  in  Europe,  Asia,  and  Africa,"  a  compilation  from 
other  works,  published  in  1782  ;  a  translation  of  "  A  History  of  Great  Britain 
from  the  Revolution  in  16S3,  to  the  Accession  of  George  I.  in  1714,"  from 
the  Latin  of  Cunningham,  2  volumes  4to,  1787;  "Memoirs  of  War  in 
Asia,"  1788;  "  3Iammoth,  or  Human  Nature  displayed  on  a  Grand  Scale," 
a  novel,  1789  ;  "  Travels  in  the  Western  Hebrides,  from  1782  to  1790,"  from 
notes  by  the  Rev.  John  Lane  Buchanan,  A.M.,  missionary  minister  to  the  Isles 
from  the  church  of  Scotland,  1793.  Dr  Thomson  also  largely  assisted  in  a 
work  which  appeared  about  this  period,  entitled,  "  Travels  into  Norway,  Den- 
mark, and  Russia,"  by  A.  Smith,  Esq. 

Numerous  as  this  list  is,  it  comprises  but  a  very  small  portion  of  our  author's 
literary  achievements,  and  gives  but  a  faint  idea  of  the  extent  and  variety  of  his 
labours.  He  contributed  largely,  besides,  to  various  newspapers,  magazines, 
and  other  periodicals  of  the  day.  He  also  frequently  acted  as  a  reporter,  and 
is  said  to  have  greatly  excelled  in  this  department  of  literary  labour.  For  many 
years  he  published  a  weekly  abridgment  of  politics  in  the  Whitehall  Evening 
Post,  but  lost  this  employment  in  1798,  in  consequence  of  some  political 
transgressions.  In  the  latter  years  of  his  life,  he  was  engaged  in  bringing  up 
the  arrears  of  Dodsley's  Annual  Register,  of  which  he  compiled  the  historical 
part  from  1790  to  1800  inclusive.  Amongst  the  last  of  his  literary  perform- 
ances, (and  it  is  a  remarkable  proof  of  the  variety  of  his  attainments,)  was  a  ^rock 
entitled  "  Memoirs  relative  to  Military  Tactics,"  dedicated  to  his  royal  high- 
ness, the  duke  of  York,  commander-in-chief  of  the  forces.  This  work,  which 
was  begun  in  1805,  and  finished  in  the  ensuing  year,  was  reckoned  no  incon- 
siderable addition  to  that  department  of  literature  to  which  it  belongs,  and  is 
said  to  have  been  looked  upon  with  favour  by  those  competent  to  judge  of  its 
merits.  Towards  the  close  of  his  life,  Dr  Thomson  wholly  resigned  his  literary 
labours,  and  retired  to  Kensington,  where  he  died,  in  decent,  but  not  by  any 
means  affluent  circumstances,  on  the  16lh  of  March,  1817,  in  the  7l8t  year  of 
his  age,  leaving  behind  hhn  a  reputation  very  far  from  being  proportioned, 
either  to  the  extent  of  his  labours,  or  to  the  amount  of  his  abilities  and  ac- 
quirements. 

TURNBULL,  William,  bishop  of  Glasgpw,  and  lord  privy  seal  of  Scotland, 
descended  from  the  Tumbulls  of  Minto,  in  Roxburghshire,  was  born  in  the 
early  part  of  the  fifteenth  century.  Having  been  educated  for  the  church,  he 
entered  into  orders,  and  was  appointed  prebend  of  Balenrick  (connected  with 
which  dignity  was  the  lordship  of  Prevan)  in  the  year  1440.  In  the  year 
1445,  he  was  prefened  to  be  secretary  and  keeper  of  the  privy  seal ;  at  which 
time,  as  appears  by  the  act  of  council,  he  was  called  William  Turnbull,  lord  of 
Prevan.  He  was  shortly  after  this  inaugurated  Doctor  of  Laws,  and  made 
archdeacon  of  St  Andrews,  within  the  bounds  of  Lothian.  By  some  writers,  he 
is  said  to  have  been  about  this  time  bishop  of  Dunkeld  ;  but  this,  we  think,  is 
doubtful.  In  the  year  1447,  he  was  promoted  to  the  see  of  Glasgow,  upon  llie 
death  of  bishop  Bruce,  and  was  consecrated  in  the  year  1448. 


380  -WILLIAM  TURNBULL. 


No  sooner  wns  bishop  Turnbull  settled  in  the  see,  than  he  set  about  erecting 
or  founding  a  college  in  the  city.  For  this  purpose,  a  bull,  at  the  request  of 
king  James  II.,  was  procured  from  pope  Nicholas  V.,  constituting  a  university, 
to  continue  in  all  time  to  come,  in  the  city  of  Glasgow,  "  it  being  ane  notable 
place,  with  gude  air,  and  plenty  of  provisions  for  human  life."  The  pope,  by  his 
apostolical  authority,  ordained  that  the  doctors,  masters,  renders,  and  students  of 
the  utiirersity  of  Glasgow,  should  enjoy  all  the  privileges,  liberties,  honours,  ex- 
emptions, and  immunities,  which  he  had  granted  to  the  city  of  Bononia.  He  like- 
wise appointed  William  Turnbull,  bishop  of  Glasgow,  and  his  successors  in  that 
see,  chancellors  of  the  university,  and  to  have  the  same  authority  over  the  doc- 
tors, masters,  readers,  and  scholars,  as  the  chancelloi's  of  the  university  of 
Bononia.  This  bull  is  dated  at  Rome,  January  7,  1450.  By  the  care  of  the 
bishop  and  his  chapter,  a  body  of  statutes  was  prepared,  and  a  university  esta- 
blished the  following  year,  1451. 

The  university  consisted,  besides  the  chancellor,  of  a  rector,  and  masters  of 
the  four  faculties,  who  had  taken  their  degrees  in  other  colleges ;  and  students, 
who,  after  a  course  of  study,  might  be  promoted  to  academical  degrees.  That 
the  classes  in  the  university  might  commence  with  some  degree  of' celebrity,  a 
bull  had  been  procured  from  the  pope,  and  was  now  published,  granting  an 
universal  indulgence  to  all  faithful  Christians,  who  should  visit  the  cathedral  of 
Glasgow  in  the  year  1451.  The  first  rector  was  David  Cadzow,  who  was  re- 
elected in  1452.  During  the  first  two  years,  upwards  of  a  hundred  members 
were  incorporated,  most  of  them  secular  or  regular  clergy,  canons,  rectors, 
vicars,  abbots,  priora,  and  monks.  The  clergy  attended  the  university  the 
more  willingly,  that  the  bishop  had  procured  royal  charters  and  acts  of  parlia- 
ment, exempting  them  from  all  taxes  and  public  burdens,  and  from  their  resi- 
dence in  their  own  cures.  The  whole  incorporated  members,  students,  as  well 
as  doctors  and  masters,  were  divided  into  four  parts,  called  the  Quatuor  Na« 
tiones,  according  to  the  place  of  their  nativity.  The  whole  realm  of  Scotland 
and  the  isles  was  divided  into  four  districts,  under  the  names  of  Clydesdale, 
Teviotdale,  Albany,  and  Rothsay ;  a  meeting  of  the  whole  was  annually  called 
the  day  after  St  Crispin's  day  ;  and,  being  divided  into  four  nations,  each  na- 
tion by  itself  chose  a  procurator  and  intrant,  and  the  intrants  meeting  by  them> 
selves,  made  choice  of  a  rector  and  a  deputation  of  each  nation,  who  were 
assistants  and  assessors  to  the  rector.  The  rector  and  his  deputation  had  vari- 
ous and  important  functions.  They  were  judges  in  all  criminal  causes,  wherein 
any  member  of  the  university  was  a  party.  Every  member  who  either  sued  or 
answered  before  any  other  court,  was  guilty  of  perjury,  and  incurred  the 
penalty  of  expulsion.  The  ecclesiastics  in  the  university,  of  course,  to  what- 
ever dior^se  they  belonged,  could  no  longer  be  called  before  their  rural  deans. 
All  members  were  incorporated  by  the  rector  and  deputation,  after  taking  an 
oath  to  obey  the  rector  and  his  successors,  to  observe  the  statutes,  preserve  the 
privileges  of  the  university,  and  keep  its  secrets,  revealing  nothing  to  its  pre- 
judice, whatever  station  in  society  they  might  afterwards  attain.  The  rector 
and  deputies  were  also  the  council  of  the  college.  It  was  their  business  to  de- 
liberate upon,  and  digest  all  matters  to  be  brought  before  the  congregation  of 
the  doctors  and  masters,  whose  determinations  in  such  cases  were  accounted,  in 
respect  of  authority,  next  to  the  statutes.  Two  other  office-bearers  were  chosen 
annually,  on  the  day  after  St  Crispin's,  namely,  a  bursarius,  who  kept  the  uni- 
versity purse,  and  accounted  for  all  his  intromissions  ;  and  a  promoter,  whose 
business  it  was  to  see  to  the  observation  of  the  statutes,  and  to  bring  delin- 
quents before  the  rector's  court,  which  had  power  to  enforce  the  statutes,  or  to 
dispense  with  them,  in  certain  cases.     The  second  division  of  the  university  was 


WILLIAM  TURNBULL.  381 


into  its  different  faculties,  four  of  which,  in  the  pope's  bull,  are  specified  by 
name.  Theology,  Canon  Law,  Civil  Law,  and  the  Arts.  All  others  are  com- 
prehended  in  a  general  clause,  quacunque  licita  facuUate.  In  these  times,  the 
professions  of  theology,  canon,  and  civil  laws,  were  denominated  tlie  tliree 
learned  professions,  as  being  the  only  ones  in  which  learning  was  thought  ne- 
cessary. They  alone  fitted  men  for  honourable  or  profitable  employments,  for 
being  admitted  to  dignities  in  the  church  or  the  state  ;  and  to  train  men  to 
eminence  in  these  professions,  was  the  original  intention  of  universities.  Tlie 
arts,  however,  under  which  were  comprehended  logic,  physics,  and  morals,  be- 
ing considered  as  necessary  to  these  professions,  formed  an  indispensable  part 
of  study  in  every  university.  The  universities  were  all  incorporated  by  the 
popes,  who  appear  to  have  borrowed  their  plan  from  that  of  incorporated 
towns  and  burghs,  the  university  corresponding  to  the  whole  incorporation  of 
the  burgh,  and  the  different  faculties  to  the  different  companies  of  trades  or 
crafts  into  which  the  burgh  is  divided.  The  companies  in  the  incorporated 
towns,  were  anciently  called  collegia,  cr  colleges  ;  and  the  whole  incorpora- 
tion, comprehending  all  the  companies,  was  called  the  universitas  of  that 
town.  These  names,  by  analogy,  were  at  first  applied  to  corporations  of  the 
learned  professions,  and  at  length  appropriated  solely  to  them.  The  govern- 
ment of  every  faculty  was  similar  to  that  of  the  university.  Each  had  its  own 
statutes,  determining  the  time  of  study,  and  the  exercises  and  examinations 
necessary  for  attaining  degrees  in  that  faculty.  Each  chose  annually  its  own 
dean,  its  own  bursarius,  and  sometimes  four  deputations,  as  a  council  to  the  dean. 
Of  the  three  higher  faculties  in  this  university,  nothing  is  known,  there  being  no 
record  of  their  statutes  or  transactions  extant  A  third  division  in  the  college 
was  made,  according  to  the  academical  degree  of  every  member.  The  highest 
degree  in  theology,  canon  and  civil  law,  was  that  of  doctor  in  the  arts.  In  all 
the  faculties,  there  were  two  degrees  by  which  a  man  rose  to  the  highest. 
These  were  bachelor  and  licentiate.  The  degree  of  licentiate,  as  well  as  that 
of  doctor  or  master,  was  conferred  by  the  chancellor  or  vice-chancellor.  The 
requisites  to  all  the  degrees,  were  a  certain  time  of  study,  having  heard  certain 
books  prelected  upon,  and  pei-formed  certain  exercises,  and  gone  through  cer- 
tain examinations.  The  age  of  fifteen  was  necessary  for  being  made  a  bachelor 
of  arts,  and  twenty  to  become  a  master.  It  was  forbidden,  under  a  heavy 
penalty,  to  give  any  man  the  title  of  master,  by  word  or  writing,  who  had  not 
attained  that  degree ;  and  the  penalty  was  still  heavier,  if  any  man  took  it  to 
himself,  without  having  obtained  it  in  the  regular  manner.  Nor  can  we  feel 
surprised  at  degrees  being  thus  carefully  guarded,  seeing  they  were  held  to  be  of 
divine  institution,  and  were  always  conferred  by  the  chancellor,  or  vice-chan- 
cellor, in  the  name  of  the  Father,  of  the  Son,  and  of  the  Holy  Ghost.  Soma 
years  after  the  university  was  founded,  a  number  of  the  students  being  young  men 
to  whom  tuition  as  well  as  teaching  was  necessary,  provision  was  made  that  they 
should  live  and  eat  in  one  house,  which  was  called  Pedagogium,  or  the  college  of 
arts.  Here  they  were  taught  and  governed  by  certain  masters,  called  Regentes 
Artibus.  This  college  was  at  fii-st  on  the  south  side  of  the  Rottenrow,  near  the 
cathedral ;  but  afterwards  a  tenement  was  bequeathed  for  it  by  lord  Hamilton, 
situated  where  the  college  now  stands.  There  were  at  first  in  the  university, 
three  regents  in  the  arts,  viz,,  Alexander  Geddes,  a  Cistertian  monk;  Duncan 
Burch,  and  William  Arthurlie,  Afterwards  there  were  sometimes  two,  and 
sometimes  only  one.  This  seems  to  have  been  the  most  laborious  and  least 
coveted  oflice  in  the  university.  Besides  teaching  and  presiding  in  disputa- 
tions, every  lawful  day,  the  regents  lived  within  the  college,  ate  at  a  common 
table  with  the.  students  of  arts,  visited  the  rooms  of  the  students  before  nine 


382  -WILLIAM  TURNBULL. 


at  night,  when  the  gates  were  shut,  and  at  fire  in  the  morning,  and  assisted  in 
all  examinations  for  degrees  in  the  faculties  of  arts.  For  many  years  the  office 
had  no  salary,  and  the  fees  paid  by  the  students  were  very  small.  All  that  held 
the  office,  two  only  excepted,  kept  it  but  for  a  short  time  ;  and  often  one,  who 
was  not  a  member  of  the  faculty,  was  called  to  the  office  ;  which  renders  it 
probable  that  there  was  no  competition  in  those  days,  either  for  the  office  it- 
self, or  for  the  patronage  of  it ;  but,  on  the  contrary,  some  difficulty  was  ex- 
perienced in  finding  persons  qualified  to  fill  it,  or  who  were  willing  to  take  it. 
James  XL,  the  year  after  its  foundation,  granted  a  royal  charter  in  favour  of 
the  university,  by  which  the  rectors,  the  deans  of  the  faculties,  the  procurators 
of  the  four  nations,  the  masters,  regents,  and  scholars,  with  the  beadles,  writers, 
stationers,  and  parchment  makers,  were  exempted  from  all  taxes,  watchings,  and 
wordings,  weapon-scha wings,  &c  ;  but  it  had  no  property,  either  of  lands, 
houses,  or  rents.  The  congregatio  universilatis  was  always  held  at  the 
cathedral.  The  doctors  and  masters  met  sometimes  at  the  convent  of  the 
Dominicans,  or  predicatores ,  as  Uiey  were  called,  where  all  the  lectures  wo 
find  mentioned  in  theology,  canon  and  civil  law,  were  read.  There  was 
a  university  purse,  into  which  perquisites,  paid  on  being  incorporated 
at  examinations  and  promotions  to  degrees,  were  put  From  tliis  purse, 
after  it  had  accumulated  for  some  years,  cups  of  ceremony  were  fur- 
nished ;  but  to  defray  tlie  expense  of  a  silver  rod  or  mace,  to  be  borne  be- 
fore the  rector  on  solemn  occasions,  it  ^vas  necessary  to  tax  all  the  incor- 
porated members,  on  which  occasion  David  Cadzow,  the  first  rector,  gave 
twenty  nobles.  The  first  property  tlie  college  acquired  was  two  or  three  chap- 
lainaries  bequeathed  by  some  of  its  first  members.  The  duly  of  the  chaplain 
was  to  perforin  certain  masses  at  a  specified  altar  for  the  souls  of  the  founder 
and  his  friends,  for  which  he  was  paid  a  small  annuity.  These  chaplainarics 
were  commonly  given  to  some  of  the  regents  of  the  college  of  arts,  probably  be- 
cause they  were  the  parent  of  the  sacerdotal  order  in  -the  univei-sity.  Tliis 
patronage,  and  this  purse,  so  far  as  appears,  were  all  the  property  the 
university  ever  possessed ;  nor  does  it  appear  that  the  faculties  of  theology, 
canon  and  civil  law,  ever  had  any  property.  The  individuals  had  each 
livings  through  all  parts  of  the  nation,  abbacies,  priories,  prebendaries,  rec- 
tories, and  vicarages,  but  the  community  had  nothing.  Its  privileges  wei-e  the 
sole  inducement  to  bring  rich  ecclesiastics  into  a  society  in  which  they  lived  at 
ease  free  of  all  taxes,  and  subject  to  no  authority  but  that  of  their  own  rector. 
The  college  of  arts,  however,  which  the  public  even  then  had  the  good  sense 
to  see  was  the  most  useful  part  of  the  whole,  and  particularly  entitled  to  public 
favour,  as  being  entrusted  with  the  education  of  youth,  soon  came  to  have  some 
properly. 

In  the  year  1469,  only  eight  years  after  its  foundation,  James  lord  Hamil- 
ton bequeathed  to  Mr  Duncan  Burch,  principal  regent  of  the  college  of  arts, 
and  his  successors,  regents,  for  the  use  of  the  said  college,  a  tenement,  with  tlie 
pertinents  lying  on  the  north  side  of  the  church  and  convent  of  Uie  Domini- 
cans, together  with  four  acres  of  land  in  the  Dovo-hill,  with  a  request  that  the 
regents  and  students  every  day  after  dinner  and  after  supper  should  stand  up 
and  pray  for  the  souls  of  him  lord  James  Hamilton,  of  Liuphemia,  his  spouse, 
countess  of  Douglas,  of  his  ancestors  and  successoi'S,  and  of  all  from  whom  he 
had  received  any  benefit  for  which  he  had  not  made  a  proper  return.  These 
four  acres  of  land  still  form  part  of  the  college  garden,  and  from  this  date  the 
faculty  of  arts  from  time  to  time  were  enabled  to  devote  somewhat  to  the  re- 
pairing, and  even  to  make  additions  to  the  buildings  of  the  college,  furnishing 
rooms  for  the  regents  and  students,  with  things  necessary  for  tlie  kitchen  and 


"WILLIAM  TYTLER.  383 


a  common  table.  Nearly  thirty  years  after  this,  Mr  Thomas  Arthurlie 
bequeathed  to  the  imiversity  another  tenement  adjoining  to  the  college.  By 
this  time  the  students  consisted  generally  of  the  youth  of  the  nation,  whose 
education  was  of  the  utmost  importance  to  the  public.  They  were  distinguished 
according  to  their  I'ank  into  sons  of  noblemen,  of  gentlemen,  and  those  of 
meaner  rank,  and,  with  a  degree  of  consideration  Avhich  in  modern  times  has 
been  lost  sight  of,  for  the  expense  of  their  education  were  taxed  accordingly. 
Such  is  the  early  history  of  the  university  of  Glasgow,  founded  by  bishop 
TurnbuU,  probably  in  imitation  of  that  established  by  bishop  Wardlaw  at  St 
Andrews.  Neither  of  those  bishops,  it  may  be  remarked,  bestowed  any  or 
tlieir  funds  upon  tlie  colleges  they  were  the  means  of  establishing,  and 
in  this  respect  came  far  short  of  bishop  Elphinston  of  Aberdeen,  who  not  only 
procured  the  foundation  of  a  college  in  that  city,  but  contributed  largely  to 
its  endowment.  Bishop  Turnbull  also  obtained  from  James  II.  a  charter  erect- 
ing the  town  and  patrimonies  of  the  bishopric  of  Glasgow  into  a  regality, 
and  after  he  had  done  many  acts  highly  beneficial  to  the  age  in  which  he 
lived,  and  worthy  to  be  remembered  by  posterity,  died  at  Rome,  on  the  iird 
day  of  September,  1454.  His  death  was  universally  regretted;  and  his  name 
must  always  bear  a  conspicuous  place  among  the  more  worthy  and  useful  clergy 
of  the  elder  establishment  in  Scotland. 

TYTLER,  William,  of  Woodhouselee,  an  eminent  antiquarian  writer;  was 
born  in  Edinburgh  on  the  12th  October,  1711.  His  father,  Alexander  Tytler, 
was  a  writer  by  profession  in  the  same  city.  His  mother  was  daughter  of 
Mr  William  Leslie,  merchant  in  Aberdeen,  and  grand-daughter  of  Sir  Patrick 
Leslie  of  Iden. 

The  subject  of  this  memoir  received  his  education  at  the  High  School  and 
university  of  his  native  city,  and  in  both  distinguished  himself  by  assiduity  in 
his  studies,  and  by  an  early  and  more  than  ordinary  proficiency  in  classical 
learning.  Having  added  to  his  other  acquirements  a  competent  knowledge  of 
municipal  law,  which  he  studied  under  Mr  Alexander  Bryce,  professor  of  that 
science  in  the  university  of  Edinburgh,  he  was,  in  1744,  admitted  into  the 
Society  of  Writers  to  his  majesty's  Signet,  in  which  capacity  he  practised  with 
increasing  success  till  his  death. 

Mr  Tytler's  first  appearance  as  an  author  took  place  in  1759,  when  he  pub- 
lished an  "  Inquiry,  historical  and  critical,  into  the  Evidence  against  Mary, 
Queen  of  Scots,  and  an  Examination  of  the  Histories  of  Dr  Robertson  and  Mr 
Hume  with  respect  to  that  Evidence."  In  this  work  Mr  Tytler  warmly  espoused 
the  cause  of  the  unfortunate  princess,  and  brought  a  force  of  argument,  and  an 
acuteness  and  precision  of  reasoning  to  the  discussion  of  the  interesting  question 
of  her  innocence  or  guilt,  which  had  never  been  employed  on  it  before.  It  was 
the  first  appeal  in  behalf  of  the  Scottish  queen  Avhich  made  any  impression  on 
tlie  public  mind,  or  which  excited  any  feeling  of  particular  interest  in  the 
charges  which  had  been  brought  against  her  moral  character.  A  similar  attempt 
with  this  of  Mr  Tytler's,  had  been  made  some  years  previously  by  Walter 
Goodal,  one  of  the  under  keepera  of  the  Advocates'  Library  in  Edinburgh,  but 
it  was  so  indifferently  written,  and  its  matter  so  unskilfully  arranged,  that  it 
entirely  failed  to  attract  any  share  of  the  public  attention.  Mr  Tytler,  how- 
ever, found  it  a  useful  assistant.  He  adopted  many  of  Goodal's  argumenU,  but 
he  arranged  them  anew,  and  gave  them  that  consistency  and  force  which  js  so 
essential  to  efficien(;y.  The  first  edition  of  the.Inquiry  was  published  m  a  single 
octavo  volume;  another,  considerably  enlarged,  particularly  m  the  Instoricai 
part,  soon  afterwards  appeared,  and  in  1790,  a  fourth  edition  was  published  in 
two  volumes. 


384  WILLIAM  TYTLER. 


The  ability  displayed  by  this  work  acquired  for  Mr  Tytler  a  very  high 
reputation  in  the  world  of  lettei-s.  It  was  eagerly  read  throughout  Britain,  and 
Has  scarcely  less  popular  in  France,  into  the  language  of  whicii  country  it  was 
pretty  ably  translated.  The  interest  which  the  Inquiry  excited  was  also  very 
great.  There  were  a  novelty  and  chivalry  in  the  attempt  eminently  calculated 
to  attract  attention,  and  to  excite  sympathy,  and  it  obtained  a  large  share 
of  both.  It  was  reviewed  in  many  of  the  different  periodicals  of  the  day 
by  some  of  the  most  eminent  literary  men  then  living ;  amongst  these  were 
Johnson,  Smollett,  and  Douglas,  bishop  of  Salisbury,  To  the  favourable  tes- 
timony to  the  merits  of  the  work  borne  by  these  competent  judges,  was  added 
that  of  lord  chancellor  Hardwicke,  who  said  it  was  the  most  conclusive  arrange- 
ment of  circumstantiate  proofs  he  had  ever  seen. 

Mr  Ty tier's  next  literary  production  was,  "  The  Poetical  Remains  of  James 
the  First,  king  of  Scotland,"  in  one  volume,  8vo,  Edinburgh,  1783.  In  this 
publication  31r  Tytler,  on  very  strong  grounds,  ascribes  to  that  monarch  the 
celebrated  poems  of  **  The  King's  Quair,"  and  "  Christ's  Kirk  on  the  Green." 
His  reasoning  here,  as  in  the  defence  of  Mary,  is  remarkable  for  cogency  and 
conciseness,  and  if  it  is  not  always  convincing,  it  is,  at  least,  always  plausible. 
To  the  Poetical  Remains  there  is  added  a  Dissertation  on  the  Life  and  Writings 
of  James,  remarkable  at  once  for  profound  antiquarian  research,  and  the  lucid 
arrangement  of  its  facts. 

Mr  Tytler  was  an  ardent  lover  of  music,  especially  of  the  music  of  his  native 
country.  He  was  himself  a  good  performer,  and  his  theoretical  knowledge  of 
the  science  was  fully  equal  to  his  practical  proficiency.  This  devotion  to  music, 
together  with  a  fine  sensibility,  which  subjected  him  in  a  peculiar  manner  to  the 
infiucnce  of  the  pathetic  strains  of  the  national  melodies  of  Scotland,  led  him 
to  write  a  highly  interesting,  though  in  some  respects  fanciful,  essay  on  Scottish 
music,  which  is  appended  to  Arnot's  History  of  Edinburgh. 

The  ability  which  these  various  publications  displayed  rapidly  increased  Mr 
Tytler's  reputation,  and  procured  him  the  respect  and  esteem  of  men  of  taste 
and  learning,  especially  of  those  of  his  native  country,  who  felt  and  acknow- 
ledged the  good  service  he  was  doing  towaids  completing  their  national  history 
by  his  industry,  diligence,  and  patient  research  in  the  peculiar  walk  of  litera- 
ture he  had  chosen  :  a  feeling  which  was  yet  further  increased  by  his  subse- 
quent publications.  The  next  of  these,  of  the  character  alluded  to,  was  a  Dis- 
sertation on  the  mai-riage  of  Queen  Mary  to  the  earl  of  Bothwell,  published  in 
the  first  volume  of  the  Transactions  of  the  Society  of  Antiquaries  in  17U1.  In 
this  Dissertation,  which  is  distinguished  by  all  the  merits  displayed  by  Mr 
Tytler's  other  productions,  he  defends,  with  much  ingenuity,  that  unhappy  step 
which  united  Mary  to  Bothwell ;  but  it  is  to  be  feared,  that,  with  all  its 
ingenuity  and  judicious  remark,  it  can  never  be  otherwise  considered  tiian  as  an 
attempt,  generous  and  chivalrous  indeed,  but  unavailing,  to  defend  a  thing  in  it* 
self  indefensible. 

In  the  year  following,  viz.,  1792,  3Ir  Tytler  published,  through  the  same 
channel  with  that  by  which  the  Dissertation  had  been  given  to  the  world,  "  Ob- 
servations on  the  Vision,  a  poem,"  first  published  in  Ramsay's  Evergreen.  The 
object  of  these  observations  was  the  generous  one,  of  vindicating  Ramsay's  title 
to  the  merit  of  being  the  author  of  the  poem  in  question,  of  which  some  doubts 
had  been  entertained. 

The  "  Observations,"  &c.,  were  soon  after  followed  by  a  production  of  singular 
interest.  This  was  "  An  Account  of  the  Fashionable  Amusements  and  Enter- 
tainments of  Edinburgh  in  the  last  (seventeenth)  century,  with  the  plan  of  a  grand 
Concert  of  Music  performed  there  on  St  Cecilia's  day^  1G95." 


ALEXANDER  FRASER  TYTLER.  385 

MrTytlerwas  also  the  author  of  a  paper  in  the  Lounger,  No.  16,  entitled  the 
"  Defects  of  Modern  Female  education  in  teaching  the  Duties  of  a  Wife ;"  and 
with  this  terminates  the  catalogue  of  his  published  literary  achievements,  so  far 
as  these  are  known  or  acknowledged. 

To  MrTytler's  talents  and  acquirements  his  works  will  always  bear  evidence, but 
there  are  other  merits  which  he  possessed  in  an  eminent  degree,  which  it  requires 
the  pen  of  the  biographer  to  perpetuate.  His  works  sufficiently  inform  us  of 
his  profound  and  intimate  acquaintance  with  Scottish  history  and  antiquarian 
lore  ;  of  his  zealous  patriotism,  and  eminent  knowledge  of  the  science  of  music ; 
but  they  do  not  inform  us  of  his  generous  and  benevolent  disposition,  nor  of 
that  delightful  and  enviable  buoyancy  of  spirit,  Avhich  enabled  him,  at  the 
latest  period  of  a  life  protracted  beyond  the  usual  limit  of  human  existence, 
to  join,  with  the  utmost  glee,  in  all  the  pranks  and  follies  of  the  young  persons, 
his  friends  and  relatives,  who  came  to  visit  him,  and  whom  he  was  always 
rejoiced  to  see-  Mr  Tytler  not  only  attained  and  enjoyed  himself  a  healthy 
and  happy  old  age,  but  had  a  prescription  ready  for  his  friends  which  would 
confer  the  same  blessing.  This  prescription  was  "  short,  but  cheerful  meals, 
music,  and  a  good  conscience." 

Mr  Tytler  was  one  of  the  original  members  of  the  Musical  Society  of  Edin- 
burgh, and  continued  his  connexion  with  that  body  for  nearly  sixty  years.  He 
usually  spent  a  portion  of  the  summer  at  his  beautiful  country  seal  of  Wood- 
houselee.  Here  in  a  private  and  shady  walk  he  had  erected  an  urn  with  the 
following  inscription : — 

Hunc  lucum 
Cans  mortuis  amicis. 
Sacrum  dicut 
W.  T. 

Some  time  before  his  death,  Mr  Tytler  was  seized  with  a  slight  paralytic  af- 
fection, but  it  did  not  much  debilitate  his  frame,  nor  did  it  in  the  least  degree 
affect  his  faculties,  all  of  which  remained  unimpaired  till  the  hour  of  his  death, 
an  event  which  happened  on  the  12th  of  September,  1792,  in  the  eighty-first 
year  of  his  age. 

Mr  Tytler  was  married  in  1745,  to  3Iiss  Anne  Craig,  daughter  of  James 
Craig,  Esq.  of  Costerton,  in  the  county  of  Mid  Lothian,  one  of  the  writers  to 
his  majesty's  Signet,  by  whom  he  left  two  sons,  Alexander  Fraser  Tytler,  after- 
wards lord  Woodhouselee,  and  major  Patrick  Tytler,  fort-major  of  the  castle  of 
Stirling.  He  left  also  one  daughter,  3Iiss  Christina  Tytler.  It  only  remains 
to  be  added  to  this  sketch,  and  the  addition  though  short,  comprises  one 
of  the  strongest  eulogiums  which  was  ever  bestowed  on  human  virtue :  it  is  re- 
corded of  3Ir  Tytler,  that  no  one  ever  spoke  ill  of  him. 

TYTLER,  Alexander  Fraseb,  usually  styled  Lord  Woodhouselee,  was  born 
in  Edinburgh,  on  the  15th  of  October,  1747.  He  was  the  eldest  son  of 
William  Tytler,  esquire  of  Woodhouselee,  by  his  wife,  Anne  Craig.  The 
earlier  rudiments  of  education  he  received  from  his  father  at  home  ;  but  in  the 
eighth  year  of  his  age,  he  Avas  sent  to  the  High  School,  then  under  the  direction  of 
Mr  Mathison.  At  this  seminary,  young  Tytler  remained  for  five  years,  distinguish- 
ing himself  at  once  by  the  lively  frankness  of  his  manners,  and  by  the  industry 
and  ability  with  which  he  applied  himself  to,  and  pursued  his  studies.  Tlie 
ktter  procured  him  the  highest  honours  of  the  academy  ;  and,  finally,  in  the 
last  year  of  his  course,  obtained  for  him  the  dignity  of  dux  of  the  rectors 

On  the  completion  of  his  curriculum  at  the  High  School  his  father  sent  him 

IT.  3  0 


380  ALEXANDER  ERASER  TYTLER. 

to  an  academy  at  Kensington,  for  the  still  further  improrement  of  his  classicil 
attainments.  This  academy  was  then  under  the  care  of  Mr  Elpliinston,  a  man 
of  great  learning  and  singular  worth,  who  speedily  formed  a  strong  attachment 
to  his  pupil,  arising  from  the  pleasing  urbanity  of  his  manners,  and  the  zeal 
and  devotion  with  which  he  applied  himself  to  the  acquisition  of  classical  learn- 
ing. When  Mr  Tytler  set  out  for  Kensington,  which  was  in  17G3,  in  the  six- 
teenth  year  of  his  age,  he  went  with  the  determination  of  returning  an  accom- 
plished scholar  ;  and  steadily  acting  up  to  this  determination,  he  attained  the 
end  to  which  it  was  directed.  At  Kensington,  he  soon  distinguished  himself  by 
his  application  and  proficiency,  particularly  in  Latin  poetry,  to  which  he  now 
became  greatly  attached,  and  in  which  he  arrived  at  great  excellence.  His 
master  was  especially  delighted  with  his  efforts  in  this  way,  and  took  every  op- 
portunity, not  only  of  praising  them  himself,  but  of  exhibiting  them  to  all  with 
whom  he  came  in  contact  who  were  capable  of  appreciating  their  merits.  To 
his  other  pursuits,  while  at  Kensington,  Mr  Tytler  added  drawing,  which  soon 
became  a  favourite  amusement  with  him,  and  continued  so  throughout  the  whole 
of  his  after  life.  He  also  began,  by  himself,  to  study  Italian,  and  by  earnest 
and  increasing  assiduity,  quickly  acquired  a  sufficiently  competent  knowledge  of 
that  language,  to  enable  him  to  read  it  fluently,  and  to  enjoy  the  beauties  of 
the  authors  who  wrote  in  it.  The  diversity  of  Mr  Tytler's  pursuits  extended 
yet  further.  He  acquired,  while  at  Kensington,  a  taste  for  natural  history,  in 
the  study  of  which  he  was  greatly  assisted  by  Dr  Russel,  an  intimate  friend  of 
his  father,  who  then  lived  in  his  neighbourhood. 

In  1765,  Mr  Tytler  returned  to  Edinburgh,  after  an  absence  of  two  years, 
which  he  always  reckoned  amongst  the  happiest  and  best  spent  of  his  life. 
On  his  return  to  his  native  city,  his  studies  naturally  assumed  a  more  direct 
relation  to  the  profession  for  which  he  was  destined, — the  law.  With  this  ob- 
ject chiefly  in  view,  he  entered  the  university,  where  he  began  the  study  of  civil 
law,  under  Dr  Dick  ;  and  afterwards  that  of  municipal  law,  under  Mr  Wallace. 
He  also  studied  logic,  under  Dr  Stevenson  ;  rhetoric  and  belles  lettres,  under 
Dr  Blair  ;  and  moral  science,  under  Dr  Fergusson.  Mr  Tytler,  however,  did 
not,  by  any  means,  devote  his  attention  exclusively  to  these  preparatory  profes- 
sional studies.  He  reserved  a  portion  for  those  that  belong  to  general  know- 
ledge. From  these  he  selected  natural  philosophy  and  chemistry,  and  attended 
a  course  of  each. 

It  will  be  seen,  from  the  learned  and  eminent  names  enumerated  above,  that 
Mr  Tytler  was  singularly  fortunate  in  his  teachers  ;  and  it  will  be  seen,  from 
those  that  follow,  that  he  was  no  less  fortunate,  at  this  period  of  his  life,  in  his 
acquaintance.  Amongst  these  he  had  the  happiness  to  reckon  Henry  Mac- 
kenzie, lord  Abei-cromby,  lord  Craig,  Mr  Playfair,  Dr  Gregory,  and  Dugald 
Stewart.  During  the  summer  recesses  of  the  university,  Mr  Tytler  was  in  the 
habit  of  retiring  to  his  father's  residence  at  Woodhouselee.  The  time  spent 
here,  however,  was  not  spent  in  idleness.  In  the  quiet  seclusion  of  this  de- 
lightful country  residence,  he  resumed,  and  followed  out  with  exemplary  assi- 
duity, the  literary  pursuits  to  which  he  was  so  devoted.  He  read  extensively 
in  the  Roman  classics,  and  in  French  and  Italian  literature.  He  studied  deeply, 
besides,  the  ancient  writers  of  England;  and  thus  laid  in  a  stock  of  knowledge' 
and  acquired  a  delicacy  of  taste,  which  few  have  ever  attained.  Nor  in  this 
devotion  to  severer  study,  did  he  neglect  those  lighter  accomplishments,  which  so 
elegantly  relieve  the  exhaustion  and  fatigues  of  mental  application.  He  in- 
dulged liis  taste  for  drawing  and  music,  and  always  joined  in  the  little  family 
concerts,  in  which  his  amiable  and  accomplished  father  took  singular  delight. 
In  1770,  Mr  Tytler  was  called  to  the  bar;  and  in  the  spring  of  the  succeed- 


ALEXANDER  FRASER  TYTLER.  387 

ing  year,  he  paid  a  visit  to  Paris,  in  company  with  Mr  Kerr  of  Blackfiliiel& 
Shortly  after  this,  lord  Kames,  with  whom  he  had  the  good  fortune  to  become 
acquainted  in  the  year  1767,  and  who  had  perceived  and  appreciated  his  talents, 
having  seen  from  time  to  time  some  of  his  little  literary  efforts,  recommended  to 
liim  to  write  something  in  the  way  of  his  profession.  This  recommendation, 
which  had  for  its  object  at  once  the  promotion  of  his  interests,  and  the  acquisi- 
tion of  literary  fame,  his  lordship  followed  up,  by  proposing  that  Mr  Tytter 
should  write  a  supplementary  volume  to  his  Dictionary  of  Decisions.  Inspired 
with  confidence,  and  flattered  by  the  opinion  of  his  abilities  and  competency 
for  the  work,  which  this  suggestion  implied  on  the  part  of  lord  Kames,  Mr 
Tytler  immediately  commenced  the  laborious  undertaking,  and  in  five  years  of 
almost  unremitting  toil,  completed  it  The  work,  which  was  executed  in  such 
a  manner  as  to  call  forth  not  only  the  unqualified  approbation  of  the  eminent 
person  who  had  first  proposed  it,  but  of  all  who  were  competent  to  judge  of  its 
merits,  was  published  in  folio,  in  1778.  Two  years  after  this,  in  1780,  Mr 
Tytler  was  appointed  conjunct  professor  of  universal  history  in  the  college  of 
Edinburgh  with  3Ir  Pringle  ;  and  in  17 86,  he  became  sole  professor.  From 
this  period,  till  the  year  1800,  he  devoted  himself  exclusively  to  the  duties  of 
his  office  ;  but  in  these  his  services  were  singularly  efficient,  surpassing  far  in 
importance,  and  in  the  benefits  which  they  conferred  on  the  student,  what  any  of 
his  predecessors  had  ever  performed.  His  course  of  lectures  was  so  remarkably 
comprehensive,  that,  although  they  were  chiefly  intended,  in  accordance  with  the 
object  for  which  the  class  was  instituted,  for  the  benefit  of  those  who  were  intended 
for  the  law,  he  yet  numbered  amongst  his  students  many  who  were  not  destined 
for  that  profession.  The  favourable  impression  made  by  these  performances,  and 
the  popularity  which  they  acquired  for  3Ir  Tytler,  induced  him,  in  1782,  to 
publish,  what  he  modestly  entitled  "  Outlines"  of  his  course  of  lectures.  These 
were  so  well  received,  that  their  ingenious  author  felt  himself  called  upon  some 
time  afterwards  to  republish  them  in  a  more  extended  form.  This  he  accord- 
ingly did,  in  two  volumes,  under  the  title  of  "  Elements  of  General  History." 
Tiie  Elements  were  received  with  an  increase  of  public  favour,  proportioned  to 
the  additional  value  which  had  been  imparted  to  tlie  work  by  its  extension. 
It  became  a  text  book  in  some  of'  the  universities  of  Britain  ;  and  was  held  in 
equal  estimation,  and  similarly  employed,  in  the  universities  of  America.  The 
work  has  since  passed  through  many  editions.  The  reputation  of  a  man  of 
letters,  and  of  extensive  and  varied  acquirements,  which  Mr  Tytler  now  de- 
servedly enjoyed,  subjected  him  to  numerous  demands  for  literary  assistance 
and  advice.  Amongst  these,  was  a  request  from  Dr  Gregory,  then  (1788)  en- 
gaged in  publishing  the  works  of  his  father,  Dr  John  Gregory,  to  prefix  to 
these  works  an  account  of  the  life  and  writings  of  the  latter.  >Yith  this  request, 
3Ir  Tytler  readily  complied ;  and  he  eventually  discharged  the  trust  thus  con- 
fided to  him,  with  great  fidelity  and  discrimination,  and  with  the  tenderest  and 
most  affectionate  regard  for  the  memory  which  he  was  perpetuating. 

Mr  Tytler  wrote  pretty  largely,  also,  for  the  well  known  periodicals,  the 
Mirror  and  the  Lounger.  To  the  former  of  these  he  contributed,  Nos.  17,  37, 
59,  and  79  ;  and  to  the  latter,  Nos.  7,  9,  24,  44,  67,  70,  and  79.  The  first 
of  these  were  written  Avith  the  avowed  intention  of  giving  a  higher  and 
sprightlier  character  to  the  work  to  which  they  were  furnished  ;  qualities  in 
which  he  thought  it  deficient,  although  he  greatly  admired  the  talent  and 
genius  displayed  in  its  graver  papers;  but  he  justly  conceived,  tliat  a  judicious 
admixture  of  a  little  humour,  occasionally,  would  not  be  against  iU  popularity. 
The  circumstances  in  which  his  contributions  to  the  Lounger  were  coni posed, 
afford  a  very  remarkable  instance  of  activity  of  mind  and  habits,  ot  facility  ot 


388  AIJIXANDER  FRASER  TYTLER. 

expression,  and  felicity  of  imagination.  They  were  almost  all  written  at  inns, 
where  he  happened  to  be  detained  for  any  length  of  time,  in  his  occasional 
journeys  from  one  place  to  another.  Few  men  would  have  thought  of  devoting 
such  hours  to  any  useful  purpose  ;  but  the  papers  of  the  Lounger,  above  enu- 
oierated,  show  how  much  may  be  made  of  them  by  genius  and  diligence. 

On  the  institution  of  the  Royal  Society  of  Edinburgh,  in  1783,  3Ir  Tytler  be- 
came one  of  its  constituent  members;  and  was  soon  afterwards  unanimously  elected 
one  of  the  secretaries  of  the  literary  class,  in  which  capacity  he  drew  up  an  account 
of  the  Origin  and  History  of  the  Society,  which  was  prefixed  to  the  first  volume  of 
its  Transactions.  In  1788,  Mr  Tytler  contributed  to  the  Transactions,  a  biogra- 
phical sketch  of  Robert  Dundas  of  Arniston,  lord  president  of  the  Court  of  Ses- 
sion; and  in  the  year  following,  read  a  paper  to  the  society  on  the  vitrified  forts 
in  the  Highlands  of  Scotland.  The  principal  scope  of  this  paper,  which  dis- 
covers great  antiquarian  knowledge  and  research,  is  to  show,  that,  in  all  proba- 
bility, this  remarkable  characteristic  of  the  ancient  Highland  forts — their  vitri- 
fication— Avas  imparted  to  them,  not  during  their  erection,  as  was  generally  sup- 
posed, but  at  their  destruction,  which  its  author  reasonably  presumes,  would  be, 
in  most,  if  not  all  cases,  effected  by  fire.  With  the  exception  of  some  trifling 
differences  of  opinion  in  one  or  two  points  of  minor  importance,  Mr  Tytler's 
essay  met  with  the  warm  and  unanimous  approbation  of  the  most  eminent  anti- 
quarians of  the  day. 

The  next  publication  of  this  versatile  and  ingenious  writer,  was,  an  "  Essay 
on  the  Principles  of  Translation,"  published,  anonymously,  in  1790.  By  one 
of  those  singular  coincidences,  which  are  not  of  unfrequent  occurrence  in  the 
literary  world,  it  happened  that  Dr  Campbell,  principal  of  the  3Iarischal  col- 
lege, Aberdeen,  had,  but  a  short  while  before,  published  a  work,  entitled 
"  Translations  of  the  Gospel;  to  which  was  prefixed  a  Preliminary  Dissertation 
on  the  Principles  of  Taste."  Between  many  of  the  sentiments  expressed  in  this 
dissertation,  and  those  promulgated  in  Mr  Tytler's  essay,  there  was  a  resem- 
blance so  strong  and  close,  that  Dr  Campbell,  on  perusing  the  latter,  immedi- 
ately conceived  that  the  anonymous  author  had  pillaged  his  dissertation  ;  and 
instantly  «Tote  to  Mr  Creech  of  Edinburgh,  his  publisher,  intimating  his  sus- 
picions. Mr  Tytler,  however,  now  came  forward,  acknowledged  himself  to  be 
the  author  of  the  suspected  essay,  and,  in  a  correspondence  which  he  opened 
with  Dr  Campbell,  not  only  convinced  him  that  the  similarity  of  sentiment 
which  appeared  in  their  respective  publications,  was  the  result  of  mere  acci- 
dent, but  succeeded  in  obtaining  the  esteem  and  warmest  friendship  of  his 
learned  correspondent. 

Mr  Tytler's  essay  attiined  a  rapid  and  extraordinary  celebrity.  Compli- 
mentary letters  flowed  in  upon  its  author  from  many  of  the  most  eminent  men 
in  England ;  and  the  book  itself  speedily  came  to  be  considered  a  standard 
work  in  English  criticism.  Mr  Tytler  had  now  attained  nearly  the  highest 
pinnacle  of  literary  repute.  His  name  was  widely  known,  and  was  in  every 
case  associated  with  esteem  for  his  worth,  and  admiration  of  his  talents.  It  is 
no  matter  for  wonder  then,  that  such  a  man  should  have  attracted  the  notice  of 
those  in  power,  nor  that  they  should  have  thought  it  would  reflect  credit  on 
themselves,  to  promote  his  interests. 

In  1790,  Mr  Tytler,  through  the  influence  of  lord  3Telville,  was  appointed 
to  the  high  dignity  of  judge-advocate  of  Scotland.  The  duties  of  this  important 
oflice  had  always  been,  previously  to  3Ir  Tytler's  nomination,  discharged  by  de- 
puty ;  but  neither  the  activity  of  his  body  and  mind,  nor  the  strong  sense  of 
the  duty  he  owed  to  the  public,  would  permit  him  to  have  recourse  to  such  a 
subterfuge.      He  resolved  to  discharge  the  duties  now  imposed  upon  him  in 


ALEXANDER  TRASER  TYTLER.  389 

person,  and  continued  to  do  so,  attending  himself  on  erery  trial,  so  long  as 
he  held  the  appointment.  He  also  drew  up^  while  acting  as  judge-advocate,  a 
treatise  on  Martial  Law,  which  hns  been  found  of  great  utility.  Of  the  zeal 
with  which  Mr  Tytler  discharged  the  duties  of  his  office,  and  of  the  anxiety 
and  impartiality  with  which  he  watched  over  and  directed  the  course  of  justice, 
a  remarkable  instance  is  afforded  in  the  case  of  a  court-martial,  which  was 
held  at  Ayr.  Mr  Tytler  thought  the  sentence  of  that  court  unjust ;  and  under 
this  impression,  whicli  was  well  founded,  immediately  represented  the  matter  to 
Sir  Charles  Morgan,  judge-advocate  general  of  England,  and  prayed  for  a  re- 
version of  the  sentence.  Sir  Charles  cordially  concurred  in  opinion  with 
Mr  Tytler  regarding  the  decision  of  the  court-martial,  and  immediately  pro- 
cured the  desired  reversion.  In  the  fulness  of  his  feelings,  the  feelings  of  a 
generous  and  upright  mind,  Mr  Tytler  recorded  his  satisfaction  with  the  event, 
on  the  back  of  the  letter  which  announced  it. 

In  the  year  1792,  Mr  Tytler  lost  his  father,  and  by  his  death  succeeded  to 
the  estate  of  Woodhouselee,  and  shortly  after  Mrs  Tytler  succeeded  in  a  similar 
manner  to  the  estate  of  Balmain  in  Inverness-shire.  On  taking  possession  of 
Woodhouselee,  Mr  Tytler  designed,  and  erected  a  little  monument  to  the 
memory  of  his  father,  on  which  was  an  appropriate  Latin  inscription,  in  a 
part  of  the  grounds  Avhich  his  parents  had  delighted  to  frequent 

This  tribute  of  filial  afl'ection  paid,  Mr  Tytler,  now  in  possession  of 
affluence,  and  every  other  blessing  on  which  human  felicity  depends,  be- 
gan to  realize  certain  projects  for  the  improvement  and  embellishment  of  his 
estate,  which  he  had  long  fondly  entertained,  and  thinking  with  Pope  that 
"  to  enjoy,  is  to  obey,"  he  prepared  to  make  the  proper  use  of  the  wealth 
uhich  had  been  apportioned  to  him.  This  was  in  opening  up  sources  of 
rational  and  innocent  enjoyment  for  himself,  and  in  promoting  the  happiness 
and  comfort  of  those  around  him.  From  this  period  he  reS'ided  constantly  at 
Woodhouselee,  the  mansion-house  of  which  he  enlarged  in  order  that  he  might 
enlarge  the  bounds  of  his  hospitality.  The  felicity,  however,  which  he  now  en- 
joyed, and  for  which,  perhaps,  no  man  was  ever  more  sincerely  or  piously 
grateful,  was  destined  soon  to  meet  with  a  serious  interruption.  In  three  years 
after  his  accession  to  his  paternal  estate,  viz.  in  1795,  Mr  Tytler  was  seized  with 
a  dangeious  and  long  protracted  fever,  accompanied  by  delirium.  The  skill 
and  assiduity  of  his  friend  Dr  Gregory,  averted  any  fatal  consequences  from  the 
fever,  but  during  the  paroxysms  of  the  disease  he  had  burst  a  blood  vessel,  an 
accident  which  rendered  his  entire  recovery  at  first  doubtful,  and  afterwards  ex*' 
ceedingly  tardy.  During  the  hours  of  convalescence  which  succeeded  his  illne^B 
on  this  occasion,  Mr  Tytler  employed  himself  in  improving,  and  adapting  to 
the  advanced  state  of  knowledge,  Deiham's  Physico-Theology,  a  work  which 
he  had  always  held  in  high  estimation.  To  this  new  edition  of  Derhani's 
work,  which  he  published  in  1799,  he  prefixed  a  "  Dissertation  on  Final 
Causes."  In  the  same  year  Mr  Tytler  wrote  a  pamphlet  entitled,  "  Ire- 
land profiting  by  Example,  or  the  Question  considered.  Whether  Scotland  has 
gained  or  lost  by  the  Union."  He  was  induced  to  this  undertaking  by  the  cir- 
cumstance of  the  question  having  been  then  furiously  agitated,  whether  any 
benefit  had  arisen,  or  was  likely  to  arise  from  the  Union  with  Ireland.  Of  Mr 
Tytler's  pamphlet  the  interest  was  so  great  that  no  less  than  3000  copies  were 
sold  on  the  day  of  publication. 

The  well  earned  reputation  of  Mr  Tytler  still  kept  him  in  the  public  eye, 
and  in  the  way  of  preferment.  In  1801,  a  vacancy  having  occurred  in  the 
bench  of  the  court  of  Session  by  the  death  of  lord  StonefieUl,  the  subject  of  this 
memoir  was  appointed,  through  the  influence  of  lord  Melville,  to  succeed  him, 


390  ALEXANDER  ERASER  TYTLER. 

and  took  his  seat,  on  the  2nd  of  February,  1802,  as  lord  Woodhouselee.  His 
lordsliip  now  devoted  himself  to  the  duties  of  liis  office  Avith  the  same  zeal  and 
assiduity  Mhich  had  distinguished  his  proceedings  as  judge-advocate.  While 
the  courts  were  sitting,  he  resided  in  town,  and  appropriated  every  hour  to  the 
business  allotted  to  him  ;  but  during  the  summer  rec«ss,  he  retired  to  his 
country-seat,  and  there  devoted  himself  with  similar  assiduity  to  literary  pur- 
suits. At  this  period  his  lordship  contemplated  several  literary  works ;  but 
gratitude,  and  a  Avarm  and  aflectionate  regard  for  the  memory  of  his  early  patron 
induced  him  to  abandon  them  all,  in  order  to  write  the  Life  of  Lord  Karnes. 
This  work,  which  occupied  him,  interveniently,  for  four  years,  was  published  in 
2  volumes,  quarto,  in  1807,  with  the  title  of  "  Memoirs  of  the  Life  and  Writings 
of  Henry  Home,  lord  Kames."  Besides  a  luminous  account  of  its  proper  sub- 
ject, and  of  all  his  writings,  it  contains  a  vast  fund  of  literary  anecdote,  and 
many  notices  of  eminent  persons,  of  whom  there  was  hardly  any  other  com- 
memoration. 

On  the  elevation  of  lord  justice  clerk  Hope  to  the  president's  chair 
in  1811,  lord  Woodhouselee  was  appointed  to  the  Justiciary  bench,  and  with 
this  appointment  terminated  his  professional  advancement.  His  lordship  still 
continued  to  devote  his  leisure  hours  to  literary  pursuits,  but  these  were  now 
exclusively  confined  to  the  revision  of  his  Lectures  upon  History.  In  this  task, 
however,  he  laboured  with  unwearied  assiduity,  adding  to  them  the  fresh  matter 
with  which  subsequent  study  and  experience  had  supplied  him,  and  im- 
proving them  where  an  increased  refinement  in  taste  showed  him  they  were 
defective.  f 

In  1812,  lord  Woodhouselee  succeeded  to  some  property  bequeathed  him  by 
his  friend  and  relation,  Sir  James  Craig,  governor  of  Canada.  On  this 
occasion  a  journey  to  London  was  necessary,  and  his  lordship  accordingly  pro- 
ceeded thither.  Amongst  the  other  duties  which  devolved  upon  him  there,  as 
nearest  relative  of  the  deceased  knight,  was  that  of  returning  to  the  sovereign 
the  insignia  of  the  order  of  the  Bath  with  which  Sir  James  had  been  invested. 
In  the  discharge  of  this  duty  his  lordship  had  an  interview  with  the  Prince 
Regent,  who  received  him  with  marked  cordiality,  and,  from  the  conversation 
which  afterwards  followed,  became  so  favourably  impressed  regarding  him,  tiiat 
he  caused  an  intimation  to  be  conveyed  to  him  soon  after,  that  the  dignity  of 
baronet  would  be  conferred  upon  him  if  he  chose  it.  This  honour^  however, 
his  lordship  modestly  declined. 

On  his  return  from  London,  his  lordship,  who  Avas  now  in  the  sixty-fifth  year 
of  his  age,  was  attacked  with  his  old  complaint,  and  so  seriously,  that  he  was 
advised,  and  prevailed  upon  to  remove  from  Woodhouselee  to  Edinburgh  for 
the  benefit  of  the  medical  skill  which  the  city  afforded.  No  human  aid,  how- 
ever, could  now  avail  him.  His  complaint  daily  gained  ground  in  despite  of 
every  effort  to  arrest  its  progress.  Feeling  that  he  had  not  long  to  live, 
although  perhaps,  not  aware  that  the  period  was  to  be  so  brief,  he  desired  his 
coachman  to  drive  him  out  on  the  road  in  the  direction  of  Woodhouselee,  the 
scene  of  the  greater  portion  of  the  happiness  which  he  had  enjoyed  through 
life,  that  he  might  obtain  a  last  sight  of  his  beloved  retreat. 

On  coming  within  view  of  the  well-known  grounds  his  eyes  beamed  with  a 
momentary  feeling  of  delight.  He  returned  home,  ascended  the  stairs  which 
led  to  his  study  with  unwonted  vigour,  gained  the  apartment,  sank  on  the  floor, 
and  expired  without  a  groan. 

Lord  Woodhouselee  died  on  the  5th  January,  1813,  in  the  66th  year  of  his 
age ;  leaving  a  name  which  will  not  soon  be  forgotten,  and  a  reputation 
for  taste,  talent,  and  personal  worth,  which  will  not  often  be  surpassed. 


JAMES   TYTLER.  391 


TYTLER,  Jamks,  a  laborious  miscellaneous  writer,  was  the  son  of  the  minister 
of  Fern,  in  the  county  of  Forfar,  where  he  was  born  about  the  middle  of  the 
last  century.  After  receiving  a  good  education,  he  was  apprenticed  to  a 
Mr  Ogilvie,  a  surgeon  in  Forfar,  for  whom  he  probably  prepared  the  drugs 
Avhich  almost  invariably  form  a  part  of  the  business  of  such  provincial  practi- 
tioners. He  afterwards  commenced  a  regular  medical  education  at  the  uni- 
versity of  Edinburgh,  for  which  the  necessary  finances  were  partly  supplied  by 
two  voyages  which  he  made  in  the  capacity  of  surgeon  on  board  a  Greenland 
whaler.  From  his  earliest  years,  and  during  the  whole  course  of  his  professional 
studies,  he  read  Avith  avidity  every  book  that  fell  in  his  way ;  and,  having  a 
retentive  memory,  he  thus  acquired  an  immense  fund  of  knowledge,  more  parti- 
cularly, it  is  said,  in  the  department  of  history.  If  reared  in  easy  circumstances, 
and  Avith  a  proper  supervision  over  his  moral  nature,  it  is  probable  that  Tytler 
would  have  turned  his  singular  aptitude  for  learning,  and  his  prompt  and  lively 
turn  of  mind,  to  some  account,  either  in  the  higher  walks  of  literature,  or  in  some 
professional  pursuit.  He  appears,  however,  to  have  never  known  anything  but  the 
most  abject  poverty,  and  to  have  never  been  inspired  with  a  taste  for  anything 
superior :  talent  and  information  were  in  him  unaccompanied  by  any  develop- 
ment of  the  higher  sentiments  :  and  he  contentedly  settled  at  an  early  period 
of  life  into  an  humble  matrimonial  alliance,  which  obliged  him  to  dissipate,  upon 
paltry  objects,  the  abilities  that  ought  to  have  been  concentrated  upon  some 
considerable  effort.  Whether  from  the  pressing  nature  of  the  responsibilities 
thus  entailed  upon  him,  or  from  a  natural  want  of  the  power  of  application, 
Tytler  was  never  able  to  fix  himself  steadily  in  any  kind  of  employment.  He 
first  attempted  to  obtain  practice  as  a  surgeon  in  Edinburgh  ;  but  finding  the 
profits  of  that  business  inadequate  to  the  support  of  his  family,  and  being 
destitute  of  that  capital  which  might  have  enabled  him  to  overcome  the 
first  difficulties,  he  was  soon  induced  to  remove  to  Leith,  in  order  to  open 
a  shop  for  the  sale  of  chemical  preparations.  For  this  department  he  was  cer- 
tainly qualified,  so  far  as  a  skill  in  chemistry,  extraordinary  in  that  age,  could 
be  supposed  to  qualify  him.  But  either  from  the  want  of  a  proper  market  for 
his  commodities,  or  because,  as  formerly,  he  could  not  aflbrd  to  wait  till  time 
should  establish  one,  he  failed  in  this  line  also.  In  the  mean  time,  some  lite- 
rary efforts  of  Tytler  had  introduced  him  to  the  notice  of  the  booksellers  of 
Edinburgh,  and  he  was  employed  by  Messrs  Bell  and  Macfarquhar,  as  a  contri- 
butor to  the  second  edition  of  the  Encyclopasdia  Britannica,  uhich  began  to  be 
published  in  1776.  As  noticed  in  the  life  of  Mr  William  Sinellie,  the 
first  edition  of  the  Encyclopasdia  was  chiefly  compiled  by  that  gentleman,  and 
was  comprised  in  three  volumes  quarto.  3Ir  Smellie  having  declined  both  a 
commercial  and  literary  share  in  the  second  impression,  on  account  of 
its  including  a  biographical  department,  the  proprietors  appear  to  have  en- 
gaged the  pen  of  Mr  Tytler  as  the  next  most  eligible  person  that  was  at  their 
command  as  a  compiler ;  and  accordingly,  a  large  proportion  of  that  addi- 
tional matter,  by  which  the  work  was  expanded  from  three  to  ten  volumes,  was 
the  production  of  the  subject  of  this  memoir.  The  payment  for  this  labour  is 
said  to  have  been  very  small,  insomuch  that  the  poor  author  could  not  support 
his  family  in  a  style  superior  to  that  of  a  common  labourer.  At  one  time,  dur- 
ing the  progress  of  the  work,  he  lived  in  the  village  of  Duddingston,  in  the 
house  of  a  washerwoman,  whose  tub,  inverted,  formed  the  only  desk  he  could 
command ;  and  the  editor  of  this  dictionary  has  heard  one  of  his  children  re- 
late, that  she  was  frequently  despatched  to  town  with  a  small  parcel  of  copy, 
upon  the  proceeds  of  which  depended  the  next  meal  of  the  family.  It 
is  curious  to  reflect  that  the  proceeds  of  the  work  \>hich  included  so  much  of 


392  JAMES  TYTLEIl. 


this  poor  man's  labours,  were,  in  the  next  ensuing  edition,  no  less  than  forty- 
two  thousand  pounds.  It  is  proper,  however,  to  mention  that  the  poverty  of 
Tytler  was  chiefly  attributable  to  liis  own  imprudence  and  intemperate  habits. 
A  highly  characteristic  anecdote,  related  by  an  anonymous  biographer,'  will 
make  this  sufficiently  clear.  "  As  a  proof,"  says  this  writer,  "  of  the  extra- 
ordinary stock  of  general  knowledge  which  Mr  Tytler  possessed,  and  with  wiiat 
ease  he  could  write  on  any  subject  almost  extempore,  a  gentleman  in  the  city 
of  Edinburgh  once  told  me  that  he  had  occasion  to  apply  to  this  extraordinary 
man  for  as  much  matter  as  would  form  a  junction  between  a  certain  his- 
tory and  its  continuation  to  a  later  period.  He  found  him  lodged  in  one  of 
those  elevated  apartments  called  garrets,  and  was  informed  by  the  old  woman 
with  whom  he  resided,  that  he  could  not  see  him,  as  he  had  gone  to  bed  rather 
the  worse  of  liquor.  Determined,  however,  not  to  depart  without  his  errand, 
he  was  shown  into  Mr  Tytler's  apartment  by  the  light  of  a  lamp,  where  he 
found  him  in  the  situation  described  by  the  landlady.  The  gentleman  having 
acquainted  him  with  the  nature  of  the  business  which  brought  him  at  so  late  an 
hour,  Mr  Tytler  called  for  pen  and  ink,  and  in  a  short  time  produced  about  a 
page  and  a  half  of  letter-press,  which  answered  the  end  as  completely  as  if  it 
had  been  the  result  of  the  most  mature  deliberation,  previous  notice,  and  a  mind 
undisturbed  by  any  liquid  capable  of  deranging  its  ideas."  A  man  who  has  so 
little  sense  of  natural  dignity  as  to  besot  his  senses  by  liquor,  and  who  can  so 
readily  make  his  intellect  subservient  to  the  purposes  of  all  who  may  choose  to 
employ  its  powers,  can  hardly  expect  to  be  otherwise  than  poor ;  while  his  very 
poverty  tends,  by  inducing  dependence,  to  prevent  him  from  gaining  the 
proper  reward  for  his  labours.  Tytler,  moreover,  had  that  contentment  with 
poverty,  if  not  pride  in  it,  which  is  so  apt  to  make  it  permanent.  "It  is  said," 
proceeds  his  biographer,  after  relating  the  above  anecdote,  "  that  Mr  Tytler 
was  perfectly  regardless  about  poverty,  so  far  as  to  feel  no  desire  to  conceal  it 
from  the  world.  A  certain  gentleman  who  had  occasion  to  wait  upon  him  on 
some  particular  business,  found  him  eating  a  cold  potatoe,  which  he  continued 
to  devour  with  as  much  composure,  as  if  it  had  been  the  most  sumptuous  repast 
upon  earth."  It  is  mentioned  elsewhere  by  the  same  writer  that  poor  Tytlei 
never  thought  of  any  but  present  necessities,  and  was  as  happy  in  the  possession 
of  a  few  shillings  as  a  miser  could  be  with  all  the  treasures  of  India. 

Besides  his  labours  in  the  Encyclopaedia  Britannica,  to  the  third  edition  of 
which  he  is  said  to  have  also  contributed,  (particularly  the  article  "  Electricity," 
which  was  allowed  to  be  excellent,)  he  was  employed  in  the  compilation  of 
many  miscellaneous  books  of  an  useful  character,  and  also  in  abridgments.  At 
one  time,  while  confined  within  the  precincts  of  the  sanctuary  of  Holyrood,  he 
had  a  press  of  his  own,  from  which  he  threw  off  various  productions,  generally 
without  the  intermediate  use  of  manuscript.  In  a  small  mean  room,  amidst  the 
squalling  and  squalor  of  a  number  of  children,  this  singular  genius  stood  at  a 
printer's  case,  composing  pages  of  types,  either  altogether  from  his  own  ideas, 
or  perhaps  with  a  volume  before  him,  the  language  of  which  he  was  condensing 
by  a  mental  process  little  less  difficult.  He  is  said  to  have,  in  this  manner, 
fairly  commenced  an  abridgment  of  that  colossal  work,  the  Universal  History  : 
it  was  only  carried,  however,  through  a  single  volume.  To  increase  the  sur- 
prise  which  all  must  feel  regarding  these  circumstances,  it  may  be  mentioned, 
that  his  press  was  one  of  his  own  manufacture,  described  by  his  biographer,  as 
being  "  wrought  in  the  direction  of  a  smith's  bellows  ;"  and  probably,  there- 
fore, not  unlike  that  subsequently  brought  into  use  by  the  ingenious  John  Iluth- 

1  See  "  a  Biographical  Sketch  of  the  Life  of  James  Tytler;"  Edinburgh,  printed  by  and 
for  Denovan,  I^^vnmarket,  ISOo. 


JAMES  TYTLER.  393 


ven.  This  machine,  however,  is  allowed  to  have  been  «  but  an  indifferent 
one  :"  and  tliiis  it  was  with  almost  everything  in  which  Tytler  was  concerned. 
EveryUiing  was  wonderful,  considering  the  circumstances  under  which  it  was 
produced ;   but  yet  nothing  was  in  itself  very  good. 

Tytler  was  at  one  period  concerned  in  a  manufactory  of  magnesia,  which, 
however,  did  no  good  as  long  as  he  was  connected  with  it ;  though  it  is  said  to 
have  realized  much  money  afterwards  to  his  partner  and  successors.  Such  was 
constantly  his  fate :  his  ingenuity  and  information,  useless  to  himself,  were  per- 
petually taken  advantage  of  by  meaner,  but  more  steady  minds.  On  the  com- 
mencement of  the  balloon  mania,  after  the  experiments  of  Montgolfier,  Tytler 
would  try  his  hand  also  at  an  aeronautic  voyage.  Accordingly,  having  con- 
structed a  huge  dingy  bag,  and  filled  it  with  the  best  hydrogen  he  could  pro- 
cure, he  collected  the  inhabitants  of  Edinburgh  to  the  spot,  and  prepared  to 
make  his  ascent.  The  experiment  took  place  in  a  garden  within  the  Sanctuary ; 
and  the  wonder  is,  that  he  did  not  fear  being  carried  beyond  it,  as  in  that 
event,  he  would  have  been  liable  to  the  gripe  of  his  creditoi-s.  There  was  no 
real  danger,  however ;  the  balloon  only  moved  so  high,  and  so  far,  as  to  carry 
him  over  the  garden  wall,  and  deposit  him  softly  on  an  adjoining  dunghill. 
The  crowd  departed,  laughing  at  the  disappointed  aeronaut,  who  ever  after 
went  by  the  name,  appropriate  on  more  accounts  than  one,  of  "  Balloon 
Tytler." 

During  his  residence  in  the  Sanctuary,  Tytler  commenced  a  small  periodical 
work,  entitled  the  "  Weekly  Review,"  which  was  soon  discontinued.  Afterwards, 
in  1780,  a  similar  work  was  undertaken  by  a  printer,  named  Mennons,  and  Tyt- 
ler was  employed  in  the  capacity  of  chief  contributor.  This  was  a  cheap  miscel- 
lany, in  octavo ;  and  the  present  writer,  who  once  possessed  a  volume  of  it,  is 
inclined,  on  recollection,  to  say,  that  it  displayed  considerable  talent.  Tytler 
also  tried  poetry,  and  was  the  author  of  at  least  one  popular  song — "  I  canna 
come  ilka  day  to  woo ;"  if  not  also  of  another,  styled  "  The  bonnie  brucket 
Lassie."  Burns,  in  his  notes  on  Scottish  Song,  alludes  with  surprise  to  the 
fact,  that  such  clever  ballads  should  have  been  the  composition  of  a  poor  devil, 
with  a  sky-light  hat,  and  hardly  a  shoe  to  his  feet  One  of  the  principal  works 
compiled  by  Tytler,  was  the  "  Edinburgh  Geographical  Grammar,"  published 
by  Mr  Kincaid,  as  an  improvement  upon  the  work  bearing  the  name  of 
Guthrie,  which  had  gone  through  numerous  editions,  without  any  revisal  to 
keep  it  abreast  of  the  march  of  information.  In  the  year  1792,  Mr  Tytler 
was  conducting  a  periodical  work,  entitled  "  The  Historical  Register,  or  Edin- 
burgh Monthly  Intelligencer,"  and  putting  the  last  hand  to  a  "  System  of  Sur- 
gery," in  three  volumes,  which  he  had  undertaken  for  a  surgeon  in  Edinburgh, 
who  wished  to  liave  the  nominal  credit  of  such  a  work,  when  he  was  suddenly 
obliged  to  leave  his  native  country.  Having  espoused  the  cause  of  parlia- 
mentary reform,  and  joined  the  society  entitled  "  Friends  of  the  People,"  he 
published,  at  the  close  of  the  year  1792,  a  political  placard,  which,  in  that 
excited  time,  was  deemed  by  the  authorities  to  be  of  a  seditious  tendency. 
Learning  that  the  emissaries  of  the  law  had  been  sent  forth  in  quest  of  him,  he 
sought  refuge  in  the  house  of  a  friend  in  a  solitary  situation  on  the  northern 
skirts  of  Salisbury  Crags  ;  whence,  after  a  short  concealment,  he  withdre\y  to 
Ireland;  and  thence,  after  finishing  his  "  System  of  Surgery,"  to  the  United 
States  of  America.  Having  been  cited  before  the  High  Court  of  Justiciary,  and 
failed  to  appear,  he  was  outlawed  by  that  tribunal,  January  7,  1793.  His 
family,  which  he  necessarily  left  behind  him,  was  for  some  time  in  great  dis- 
tress ;  nor  did  they  ever  rejoin  him  in  tlie  land  of  his  adoption,  poverty  on  botii 
sides,  perhaps,  refusing  the  necessary  expenses.      In  America,  Tytler  resumed 


394  Sill  THOMAS  UllQUHART. 

the  course  of  life  which  had  been  interrupted  by  political  persecution.  He  was 
conducting  a  newspaper  at  Salem,  when  he  died  of  a  severe  cold,  in  the  Lit- 
ter part  of  the  year  1803. 

Tliis  extraordinary  genius  was,  perhaps,  a  fair  specimen  of  a  class  of  literary 
men  who  lr?ed  in  the  latter  part  of  the  eighteenth  century,  and  were  cliarac- 
terized  by  many  of  the  general  peculiarities  of  that  bad  era,  in  a  form  only 
exaggerated  perhaps  by  their  abilities.  They  were  generally  open  scoffers  at  what 
their  fellow  creatures  held  sacred  ;  decency  in  private  life,  they  esteemed  a  mean 
and  unworthy  virtue ;  to  desire  a  fair  share  of  worldly  advantages,  Mas,  with  them, 
the  mark  of  an  ignoble  nature.  They  professed  boundless  benevolence,  and  a 
devotion  to  the  spii-it  of  sociality,  and  thought  that  talent  not  only  excused  all 
kinds  of  frailties,  but  was  only  to  be  effectually  proved  by  such.  The  persons 
**  content  to  dwell  in  decencies  for  ever,"  were  the  chief  objects  of  their  aver- 
sion ;  while,  if  a  man  would  only  neglect  his  affairs,  and  keep  himself  and 
his  family  in  a  sufficient  degree  of  poverty,  they  would  applaud  him  as  a  para- 
gon of  self-denial.  Fortunately,  this  class  of  infatuated  beings  is  now  nearly 
extinct ;  but  their  delusion  had  not  been  exploded,  till  it  had  been  the  cause  of 
much  intellectual  ruin,  and  the  vitiation  of  a  large  share  of  our  literature. 


u 


URQUHART,  (Sir)  Thomas,  of  Cromarty,  as  he  designates  liimself,  was  a 
writer  of  some  note,  in  the  seventeenth  century,  but  is  much  more  remarkable 
for  the  eccentricity,  than  either  the  depth  or  extent,  of  his  genius.  Of  this 
singular  person,  there  is  scarcely  anything  more  known,  than  that  he 
was  knighted,  though  for  what  service  is  not  recorded,  by  Charles  I.  at  White* 
hall;  and  that  having,  at  an  after  period,  viz.,  in  1651,  accompanied  his  suc- 
cessor, Charles  II.,  from  Scotland,  in  his  invasion  of  England,  he  was  taken 
prisoner  at  the  battle  of  Worcester.  After  his  capture,  he  was  detained  in 
London  on  his  pnrole  ;  and  this  interval  he  employed  in  ivriting  some  of  the 
extraordinary  works  which  have  perpetuated  his  name. 

He  appears  to  have  travelled,  at  some  period  of  his  life,  through  the  greater 
part  of  Europe,  to  have  been  well  skilled  in  the  modern  languages  of  the 
continent,  and  to  have  been  tolerably  accomplished  in  the  fashionable  arts  of 
the  times  in  which  he  lived. 

Meagre  and  few  as  these  particulars  are,  they  yet  comprehend  all  that  is 
left  us  regarding  the  history  of  a  person,  who,  to  judge  by  the  expressions  which 
he  employs,  when  speaking  of  himself  in  his  writings,  expected  to  fill  no  in- 
considerable space  in  the  eyes  of  posterity.  Amongst  Sir  Thomas's  works,  is  a 
translation  of  Rabelais,  remarkably  well  executed  ;  but,  with  this  performance, 
begins  and  ends  all  possibility  of  conscientiously  complimenting  him  on  his 
literary  attainments.  All  the  rest  of  his  productions,  though  in  each  occasional 
scintillations  of  genius  may  be  discovered,  are  mere  rhapsodies,  incoherent, 
unintelligible,  and  extravagantly  absurd.  At  the  head  of  this  curious  list,  ap- 
pears *'  The  Discovery  of  a  most  exquisite  Jewel,  more  precious  than  diamonds 
inchnsed  in  gold,  the  like  whereof  was  never  seen  in  any  age ;  found  in  the 
kennel  of  Worcester  streets,  the  day  after  the  fight,  and  six  before  the  autumnal 
equinox,  &c.,&c.,  anno  1G5I."  This  extraordinary  work  was  written,  as  its 
author  avows,  for  the  extraordinary  purpose  of  helping  him,  by  the  display  of 
talent  wiilch  he  conceived  it  would  exhibit,  to  the  recovery  of  his  forfeited 


WILLIAM  WALLACE.  395 


estates  in  Cromarty.  As  may  be  readily  conceived,  howeyer,  it  had  no  such 
effect ;  and  it  will  be  at  once  understood  why  it  should  uot,  when  it  is  men- 
tioned that  Cromwell  was  then  protector  of  England.  The  "  Jewel,"  its  author 
boasts,  was  written  in  fourteen  days  ;  there  being  a  struggle  between  him  and 
the  printer,  which  should  get  on  fastest :  a  contest  which  sometimes  bore  so 
hard  upon  him,  that  he  was,  as  he  tells  us,  obliged  to  tear  off  fragments  from 
the  sheet  he  was  writing,  in  order  to  keep  the  press  going.  The  "Jewel" 
contains,  amongst  other  piquant  matters,  the  adventures  of  the  Admirable 
Crichton,  and  a  pedigree  of  tlie  author's  family,  in  which  he  traces  the  male 
line,  witli  great  precision  and  accuracy,  from  Adam  to  himself;  and  on  the 
female  side,  from  Eve  to  his  mother ;  regulating,  as  he  goes  along,  the  great 
events  in  the  history  of  the  world,  by  the  births  and  deaths  of  the  Urquharts;  to 
which  important  events,  he,  with  a  proper  sense  of  the  respectability  and  dig- 
nity of  his  progenitors,  makes  them  quite  subordinate. 

This  multifarious  and  elaborate  work,  although  the  most  important  of  the 
learned  knight's  productions,  was  not  the  first  in  point  of  time.  In  1645,  he 
published,  in  London,  a  treatise  on  Trigonometry,  dedicated,  in  very  flowery 
language,  to  "  the  right  honourable,  and  most  noble  lady,  my  dear  and  loving 
mother,  the  lady  dowager  of  Cromartie."  This  work,  though  disfigured  by  all 
the  faults  of  manner  and  style  peculiar  to  its  author,  yet  discovers  a  knowledge 
of  mathematics,  which,  when  associated  with  his  other  attainments,  leaves  no 
doubt  of  his  having  been  a  man  of  very  superior  natural  endowments. 


w 


WALLACE,  WiLi,i4.r,  the  celebrated  asserter  of  the  national  independence, 
was  born  probably  about  the  middle  of  the  reign  of  Alexander  111.,  or  the  year 
1270.  Part  of  the  circumstances  which  called  forth  this  hero  from  obscurity 
are  already  detailed  under  the  life  of  Baliol ;  the  remainder  must  here  be 
briefly  noticed. 

After  the  deposition  of  that  unfortunate  sovereign  in  1296,  king  Edward  I. 
overran  Scotland  with  his  troops,  and  united  it,  as  he  thought,  for  ever,  to  his 
native  dominions.  Many  of  the  nobility  who  had  taken  part  in  the  resistance 
of  king  John,  fell  into  his  hands,  and  were  sent  prisoner  to  Engl.ind,  whither 
Baliol  himself,  along  with  his  eldest  son,  had  also  been  sent  He  destroyed 
or  took  away  all  the  public  records  ;  and  endeavoured  to  obliterate  every 
monument  of  the  former  independence  of  Scotland.  He  displaced  those  who 
liad  held  important  ofiices  under  Baliol,  and  bestowed  them  on  Englishmen. 
Warenne,  earl  of  Surrey,  was  appointed  governor,  Hugh  de  Cressinghara 
treasurer,  and  William  Ormesby  justiciary  of  Scotland  ;  and  having  thus  set- 
tled all  things  in  a  state  of  seeming  tranquillity,  he  departed  with  the  conviction 
that  he  had  made  a  final  conquest  of  the  country. 

Scotland  was  now  fated  to  experience  the  most  flagrant  oppression  and 
tyranny.  The  unlimited  exactions  of  Cressingham,  the  treasurer,  a  volup- 
tuous and  selfish  ecclesiastic,  and  the  rigour  of  Ormesby,  the  justiciary, 
in  taking  the  oath  of  fealty,  soon  rendered  them  odious  to  the  nobles ;  «hile 
the  rapacity  and  barbarism  of  the  soldiers  laid  the  wretched  inhabitanU  open  to 


396  WILLIAM   WALLACE. 


every  species  of  HTong  and  insult,^  Those  who  refused  to  tike  the  oath  of  al- 
legiance to  Edward  were  deprived  of  their  estates,  and  in  many  cases  of  their 
lives.  Whatever  was  valuable  in  the  kingdom  was  seized  upon  by  its  oppres- 
sors ;  even  the  cause  of  female  virtue  was  not  held  sacred  under  their  unhal- 
lowed domination  ;  and  in  short,  the  whole  country  was  laid  under  a  military 
despotism  of  the  most  unqualified  and  irresponsible  kind.  It  wns  at  this  dark 
hour  of  Scotland's  history,  when  the  cry  of  an  oppressed  people  ascended  to 
heaven,  and  the  liberty  for  which  they  had  so  long  struggled  seemed  to  have 
departed  for  ever  from  them,  that  Sir  William  Wallace  arose,  to  avenge  the 
wrongs,  and  restore  the  rights  of  his  country. 

Sir  William  Wallace  was  descended  from  an  ancient  Anglo-Norman  family  in 
the  west  of  Scotland.  His  father  was  knight  of  Elderslie  and  Auchinbothie, 
in  Renfrewshire,  and  his  mother  daughter  of  Sir  Baynauld  Crawford,  sheriff  of 
Ayr.     Wynton,  in  his  Chronicle,  speaking  of  him,  says, 

Hys  Fadyerc  was  a  manly  knycht, 
Hys  Modyere  was  a  lady  bricht, 
Begothene  and  born  in  mariage  ; 
Hys  eldare  brodyere  the  herytage 
Had  and  enjoyed  in  his  da}  is. 

According  to  some  writera,  his  father  and  brother  were  both  slain  by  the 
English  at  Lochinaben  ;  but  from  the  above  lines  it  would  seem,  that  the  elder 

'  Barbour,  in  his  Bruce,  has  given  the  foUowihg  lively  picture  of  the  deplorable  stale 
to  which  the  country  was  reduced : — 

Fra  Weik  anent  Orkena)-, 
To  Mullyr  snwk  in  Gallaway ; 
And  slufTyt  all  with  Ingliss  men. 
Schyrreflys  and  bailyhejs  maid  he  then ; 
And  alkjn  othir  officeris, 
That  for  to  gonern  land  afleris, 
He  maid  oil'  Inglis  nation ; 
That  worth)!  than  sa  rjch  fellouo, 
And  sa  wykkyt  and  cowatouss, 
And  swa  liawtane  and  dispitouss, 
That  Scottis  men  mycht  do  na  thing 
That  euir  mycht  plejss  to  thar  liking. 
Tlia'r  wyffis  wald  thai  oft  forly, 
And  thar  dochtr3S  dispitusly: 
And  gyfToiiy  of  thaim  thair  at  war 
Thai  wat)  t  hym  wele  with  gret  scaith  % 
For  thai  suld  fjnd  sone  enchesone  n 

To  out  hym  to  destructione. 
And  gyffthat  ony  man  thaim  by 
Had  ony  thing  that  wes  worthy, 
As  horss,  or  bund,  or  othir  thing', 
That  war  plcsand  to  thar  liking; 
With  rycht  or  wrang  it  have  wald  thai 
And  gyf  ony  wald  thaim  withsay  ; 
Tiuii  suld  swa  do,  that  thai  suld  tjno 
Othir  land  or  lyfl",  or  le}H  in  pjne. 
For  thai  dempt  thaim  eftir  thair  will. 
Takand  na  kep  to  r^cht  na  skill. 
A  !  quhat  thai  dempt  thaim  felonly 
For  gud  kn}chtis  that  war  worthy. 
For  lilill  enchesoune,  or  than  nan«j. 
Thai  hangyt  be  the  nekbane. 
Als  that  folk,  that  euir  wes  frc, 
•  And  in  fredome  wount  for  to  be, 
Throw  thar  gret  myschance,  and  foly, 
War  tretyt  than  sa  wykkytlj', 
That  thair  fap  thair  jugis  war: 
Quhat  wrech lines  may  man  have  mai  >' 


WILLIAM  WALLACE.         '  397 


brother  survived  his  father,  and  succeeded  to  the  heritage.  Sir  William,  who, 
83  already  mentioned,  seems  to  have  been  born  about  the  middle  of  the  reign 
of  Alexander  III.,  received  the  rudiments  of  his  education  at  Dunipace 
in  Stirlingshire,  under  the  guardianship  of  his  uncle,  a  wealthy  ecclesiastic 
there.  This  worthy  man  is  said  to  have  stored  his  nephew's  mind  with  the 
choicest  maxims  from  the  ancients,  and  in  particular  to  have  imprinted  upon 
his  memory  the  following  Leonine  verses,  which  Wallace  often  repeated  in  after 
years  : 

DIco  tibi  verum,  Libertas  optima  rerum, 
Nuiiquam  servili  sub  nexu  vivito,  fili. 

Thus  translated  by  Monipennie  : 

My  Sonne  (I  say)  Freedom  is  best, 
Then  never  yield  to  thrall's  arrest. 

From  Dunipace  Wallace  was  removed  to  a  public  seminary  at  Dundee, 
wliere  he  contracted  a  friendsiiip  with  John  Blair,  a  Benedictine  monk,  who 
afterwards  became  his  chaplain.  Blair,  being  an  eye-witness  to  most  of  his 
actions,  composed  a  history  of  them  in  Latin  ;  but  the  work  has  not,  unfortu- 
nately, come  down  to  us,  though  a  liberal  use  has  evidently  been  made  of  it  in 
the  vernacular  metrical  work  of  Blind  Harry.^ 

It  would  appear  that  Wallace  first  displayed  his  intrepid  temper  in  a 
(juarrel  at  Dundee  with  a  young  Englisli  nobleman  of  the  name  of  Selby, 
Avhom,  provoked  by  some  wanton  indignity,  he  stabbed  with  his  dagger,  ^nd 
slew  en  the  spot.  The  consequence  of  this  was,  that  he  was  obliged  to  seek 
for  safety  among  the  wilds  and  fastnesses  of  his  country,^  where  by  degrees  he 
collected  a  little  band,  whom  he  inspired  with  his  own  patriotic  sentiments. 

Although  deserted  by  their  nobility,  a  spirit  of  determined  hostility  to  the 
English  government  was  strongly  manifested  by  the  great  body  of  the  people. 
Throughout  the  country,  numerous  bands  of  armed  peasants  collected,  and 
harassed  in  every  possible  way  the  English  soldiers.  A  master  spirit  was  only 
wanting  to  guide  them  to  the  restoration  of  their  country's  independence — and 
such  they  found  in  Sir  William  Wallace.  He  had  every  personal  and  mental 
qualification  to  constitute  him  the  leader  of  his  countrymen  at  this  period  of 
oppression.  In  the  fragment  ascribed  to  Blair,  which  is  preserved,  he  is  de- 
scribed as  of  a  tall  and  gigantic  stature,  a  serene  countenance,  a  pheasant  as- 
pect, large  and  broad-shouldered,  but  of  no  unwieldy  bulk  ;  liberal  in  his 
gifts,  just  in  his  judgments,  eloquent  in  discourse,  compassionate  to  those  in 

1  The  following  lines  occur  near  the  conclusion  of  Blind  Harry's  performance : 

Of  Wallace'  Life,  who  hath  a  belter  skeel, 

May  show  forth  more  with  wit  and  eloquence 

For  I  to  this  have  done  my  diligence, 

After  the  prose,  given  from  the  Latin  book, 

Which  Master  Blair  in  his  time  undertook, 

In  fair  Latin  compiled  to  an  end,  &c. 
^  •'  There  is  a  respectable  man  in  Longforgan,  Perthshire,  who  hits  in  his  possession  a 
stone,  called  W'allace^s  stone.  It  was  what  was  formerly  called  in  this  country  a  bear  stone, 
hollow  like  a  large  mortar,  and  was  made  use  of  to  unhusk  the  bear  or  barley,  as  a  prepara- 
tive for  the  pot,  with  a  large  wooden  mell,  long  before  barley-mills  were  known,  its 
station  was  on  one  side  of  the  door,  and  covered  with  a  flat  stone  for  a  seat  when  ni>K>»)«J- 
wise  employed.  Upon  this  stone  Wallace  sat  on  his  way  from  Dundee,  when  he  «/«  »"" 
killing  Selby,  the  governor's  son,  and  was  fed  with  bread  and  mi  k  by  the  go"''"'!^  °^  "> « 
house;  from  whom  the  man  who  now  lives  there,  and  is  the  proprietor  of  the  stonf'/^  '""fa'" 
Iv  descended  •,  and  here  his  forbears  (ancestors)  have  lived  ever  since,  in  nearly  the  same 
s"lation  and  circumstances  for  about  £00  \ears:' ^Statistical  Account  of  Scotland,  xix.  ooi. 


398  WILLIAM  WALLACE. 


distress,  a  strong  protector  and  deliverer  of  the  oppressed  and  poor,  and  a  great 
enemy  to  liars  and  cheats.  Fordun  and  Budinnan  also  cliaracterize  him 
as  superior  to  the  rest  of  mankind  in  bodily  stature,  strength,  and  activity;  in 
bearing  cold  and  heat,  thirst  and  hunger,  watching  and  fatigue  ;  valiant  and 
prudent,  magnanimous  and  disinterested,  undaunted  in  adversity,  modest  in 
prosperity,  and  animated  by  the  most  ardent  and  unextinguisliable  love  of  his 
country.  With  these  qualifications,  and  with  a  band  of  followers  who  confided 
in  him,  and  who  were  stimulated  by  the  same  wish  of  x'escuing  their  country 
from  the  tyranny  under  which  it  groaned,  he  soon  became  a  terror  to  the 
Knglish,  and  performed  many  daring  feats  of  valour.  His  early  and  desultory 
enterprises  against  the  enemy  were  almost  all  successful ;  and  the  result  was, 
that  numbers  who  had  looked  with  indignation  at  the  usurpation  of  the  crown 
by  Edward,  and  who  only  waited  for  an  opportunity  of  asserting  the  independ- 
ence of  their  country,  flocked  to  his  standard,  until  he  found  himself  at  the 
head  of  a  great  body  of  men,  all  fired  with  the  same  patriotic  spirit. 

As  Wallace's  party  grew  stronger,  several  of  the  Scottish  nobles  joined 
him.  Among  these  were,  the  steward  of  Scotland,  and  Sir  Andrew  Mur- 
ray of  Bothwell  ;  Sir  John  the  Grahame,  who  became  W^allace's  bosom  friend 
and  confidant ;  William  Douglas,  lord  of  Douglasdale,  designated  the  Hardy  ; 
Sir  Robert  Boyd ;  Alexander  de  Lindesay  ;  Sir  Richard  Lundin ;  and  Wisheart, 
bishop  of  Glasgow.  These  either  acted  together,  or  engaged  in  separate  ex- 
peditions, as  circumstances  allowed.  Ormesby,  the  English  justiciary,  was 
•about  this  time  holding  his  court  at  Scone.  Wallace  attacked  him  there,  killed 
some  of  his  followers,  and  took  many  prisoners  ;  but  the  justiciary  had  the 
good  fortune  to  escape.  While  Wallace  was  engaged  in  this  expedition,  or 
some  other  equally  daring,  lord  Douglas  recovered  the  castles  of  Durisdeer  and 
Sanquhar  from  the  English.' 

About  the  same  period,  a  memorable  adventure  in  the  history  of  Wallace, — 
the  burning  of  the  barns  of  Ayr, — is  said  to  have  taken  place.  According  to 
prevalent  tradition,  the  English  governor  of  Ayr  invited  to  a  friendly  con- 
ference many  of  the  Scottish  gentry,  in  some  large  buildings,  called  the  Barns 
of  Ayr,  where,  by  a  treacherous  and  premeditated  stratagem,  they  were  strangled 
to  death.  Among  those  slain  in  this  base  manner,  were,  Sir  Raynauld  Craw- 
ford, sheriff  of  the  county  of  Ayr,  and  maternal  undo  to  Wallace ;  Sir  Neil 

'  The  manner  of  his  bikinv  the  caslle  of  Sanc^uhar,  is  thus  described  by  Hume  of  Gods- 
croft,  in  his  History  of  the  House  of  Douglas  : — '•  There  was  one  Anderson  that  served  the 
caslle,  and  furnished  it  with  wood  and  fuel.  The  lord  Douglas  directs  one  of  his  trustiest 
;iud  stoutest  of  his  servants  to  deal  with  him,  or  to  find  some  means  to  betray  the  castle  to 
him,  and  to  bring  him  within  the  gates  only.  Anderson,  either  persuaded  by  entreaty,  or 
corrupted  by  money,  gave  my  lord's  servant,  allied  Thomas  Dickson,  his  apparei  and  car- 
riages-, who,  coming  to  the  castle,  was  let  in  by  the  porter  for  Anderson.  Dickson  stabbed 
the  porter  ;  and,  giving  the  signal  to  my  lord,  who  lay  near  by  with  his  companions,  set  open 
the  gates,  and  received  them  into  the  court.  They,  being  entered,  killed  the  ciptain,  and 
the  whole  of  the  English  garrison,  and  so  remained  masters  of  the  place.  The  captain's 
name  was  Beauford,  who  had  oppressed  the  country  that  lay  near  him  very  insolently.  One 
of  the  English  that  had  been  in  the  castle,  escaping,  went  to  the  other  garrisons  that  were  in 
other  castles  and  towns  adjacent,  and  told  them  what  had  befallen  his  fellows,  and  withal 
informed  them  how  the  ciistle  might  be  recovered.  Whereupon,  joining  their  forces  together, 
they  came,  and  besieged  it.  Lord  Douglas,  finding  himself  straitened,  and  unprovided  of 
necessaries  for  his  d«;fence,  did  secretly  convey  his  man,  Dickson,  out  at  a  postern  or  some 
hidden  passage,  and  sent  him  to  William  Wallace  for  aid.  Wallace  was  then  in  Lennox ; 
and,  hearing  of  the  dimger  Douglas  was  in,  made  all  the  haste  he  could  to  corne  to  his  relief. 
The  English,  having  notice  of  Wallace's  approach,  left  the  siege,  and  retired  towards  Eng- 
land, yet  not  so  quickly,  but  that  Wallace,  accompanied  by  Sir  John  Graham,  did  overtake 
them,  and  killed  five  hundred  of  their  numl>er,  before  they  could  pass  Dalswinton.  By 
these,  and  such  like  means,  Wallace,  with  his  assistants,  having  beaten  the  English  from 
most  parts  of  their  strengths  in  Scotland,  did  commit  the  Ciire  and  custody  of  the  whole 
country,  from  Drumlanrig  to  Ayr,  to  the  charge  of  the  lord  Douglas." 


WILLIAIM  WALLACE.  399 


Montgomerie,  Sir  Bryce  Blair,  and  Crystal  of  Seaton.*  Wallace,  on  hearing 
of  this  circumstance,  instantly  set  forward  towards  Ayr,  accompanied  by  hi« 
confederates ;  and,  about  niidniglit,  surrounded  the  barns,  where  the  En<r]igh 
soldiers  were  cantoned,  set  them  on  fire,  and  either  killed,  or  forced  back  to 
perish  in  tlie  flames,  all  who  endeavoured  to  escape.  3Iany  of  the  English 
soldiers  who  lodged  in  a  convent,  were,  at  the  same  time,  attacked  and  put  to 
the  sword  by  the  friars  :  and  this  is  still  proverbially  called  the  Friar  of  Ayr's 
Blessing.  On  returning  from  Ayr,  with  a  body,  it  is  said,  of  three  hundred 
men,  Wallace  proposed  to  make  an  attack  upon  Glasgow,  which  was  possessed 
by  an  English  force  of  a  thousand  soldiers.  With  this  purpose,  he  divided  his 
band  into  two,  giving  the  command  of  one  of  them  to  Boyd  of  Auchinleck,* 
Avith  instructions  to  make  a  circuit  and  enter  the  town  at  an  opposite  point, 
while  he  himself  would  engage  in  the  front  Wallace  came  in  contact  with 
the  English,  near  the  present  site  of  the  college  ;  a  desperate  and  well-con- 
tested combat  ensued  :  the  leader  of  the  English  fell  beneath  the  sword  of 
Wallace  ;  and,  on  the  appearance  of  Boyd,  the  English  Avere  tluroun  into  con- 
fusion, and  pursued,  with  great  loss,  as  f^ir  as  Bothwell  castle. 

These,  and  similar  gallant  exertions  in  the  cause  of  Scotland,  at  length 
roused  the  indignation  of  the  English  monarch,  who  had  been  at  firet  inclined 
to  treat  them  with  disdain.  Calling  forth  the  military  force  on  the  north  of 
the  Trent,  he  sent  Sir  Henry  Percy,  nephew  of  the  earl  of  Surrey,  and  Sir 
Robert  Clifford,  into  Scotland  to  reduce  the  insurgents,  at  the  head  of  an  army 
of  forty  thousand  foot,  and  three  hundred  fully  caparisoned  horse.  The  Eng- 
lish army  marched  through  Annandale  to  Lochmaben,  where,  during  the  night, 
their  encampment  was  suddenly  surprised,  and  attacked  with  great  fury  by 
Wallace  and  his  party,  who,  however,  in  the  end,  were  obliged  to  retire.  At 
break  of  dawn,  the  English  advanced  towards  Irvine,  and  soon  discovered 
the  Scottish  squadrons  drawn  up  on  the  border  of  a  small  lake.  The  force  of 
the  latter  was  unequal  to  a  well-appointed  army;  but  Wallace  was  among  them, 
and  under  his  conduct  they  might  have  made  a  successful  resistance.  Dissen- 
sions, hoivever,  arose  among  the  chiefs  as  to  precedency ;  and  they  were,  per- 
haps, the  more  untractable  from  a  conviction  of  their  inferiority  to  the  enemy. 
Sir  Richard  Lundin  was  the  first  to  set  the  example.  ExcLaiming  that  he 
would  not  remain  with  a  party  at  variance  with  itself,  he  left  the  Scottish  camp, 
and  went  over  with  his  retainers  to  the  English.  He  was  followed  in  this  by 
Bruce,  (afterwards  the  hero  of  Bannockburn,)  who  had  lately  joined  the  Scot- 
tish army  ;  by  the  steward  of  Scotland,  and  his  brother ;  by  Alexander  de 
Lindesay ;  William,  lord  of  Douglasdale  ;  and  tlie  bishop  of  Glasgow.  All 
these  acknowledged  their  offences,  and  for  themselves  and  their  adherents 
made  submission  to  Edward.  A  treaty^  to  this  effect,  to  which  their  seals  were 
appended,  was  drawn  up  in  Norman  French,  and  a  copy  transmitted  to  Wal- 

^  Barbour,  a  credible  author,  sajfl,  (alluding  to  Crjsial  of  Seaton,) 

It  wes  gret  sorrow  sekyrly, 
That  so  worthy  persoune  as  he, 
Suld  on  sic  manner  hancryt  be : 
This  gate  endyt  his  wortu}Ties, 
And  off"  Craw  ford  ah  Schi/r  Ranald  toes. 
And  Schyr  Bryce  als  tlie  Blar, 

Uansyt  in  tUl  a  barne  in  Ar,  .„  _„^ 

Tlie  Bruce,  nu  2604 

5  Tlie  father  of  this  warrior,  in  consequence  of  the  gallantry  he  displajed  at  the  balOe  of 
Largs,  obtained  a  grant  oflands  in  Cunringliam  from  Alexander  III. 
0  it  is  dated  9th  July,  1297.     See  Rymer,  Foedera,  vol  ii.  p.  774. 


400  WILLIAM  WALLxVCE. 


lace  ;  but  this  brave  and  patriotic  man  rejected  it  with  disdain.  It  is  suppo>iod 
that  Sir  John  Grahame  and  Sir  Robert  Boyd  were  not  present  on  this  occasion; 
their  names  are  not  in  the  treaty  ;  and  historians  say,  that  Sir  Andrew  Murray 
of  Bothwell  was  the  only  boron  who  remained  with  Wallace,  after  this  disgrace- 
ful desertion. 

Undismayed  by  the  occurrence,  Wallace  retired  to  the  north,  after  venting 
his  indignation  on  the  castle  and  lands  of  the  bishop  of  Glasgow,  who  was  the 
negotiator  of  the  treaty,  and  who,  by  his  intrigues,  had  the  common  fortune  of 
being  suspected  by  both  parties.  There  are  no  authentic  memorials  regarding 
the  particular  actions  of  Wallace  during  the  summer  months  that  intervened  be- 
tween the  treaty  of  Irvine  and  the  battle  of  Stirling  ;  but  he  seems  to  have  been 
active  and  successful  in  raising  a  formidable  army.  The  spirit  of  his  country- 
men was  now  roused.  Knighton,  an  old  English  historian,  informs  us,  that 
"  although  the  nobility  of  Scotland  had  attached  themselves  to  England,  the 
HEART  OF  THE  PEOPLE  WAS  WITH  Wallace,  and  the  Community  of  the  land  obeyed 
him  as  their  leader  and  their  prince."  The  cause  of  this  is  obvious.  3Iany, 
or  most  of  the  nobles,  were  Normans,  of  recent  connexion  with  Scotland j  still 
disposed  to  look  rather  to  England  than  to  Scotland  as  their  country,  and  to 
the  English  monarch,  than  to  the  Scottish,  as  their  sovereign  :  while  the  com- 
mon people  had  no  attachment  but  to  their  native  soil,  and  their  native  prince. 
Wallace  was  one  of  the  Anglo-Normans  who  sided  with  the  body  of  the 
people,  in  this  quarrel,  and  it  is  easy  to  see  that  much  of  the  jealousy  of  the 
nobility  towards  hiu),  was  excited  by  the  reflection,  that  he  deserted  the  cause 
of  his  kindred  aristocracy,  for  the  sake  of  popular  and  national  rights. 

It  was  when  Wallace  had  succeeded  in  expelling  the  English  from  the  castles 
of  Forfar,  Brechin,  Montrose,  and  nearly  all  their  strongholds  on  the  north  of 
the  Forth,  and  had  just  begun  the  siege  of  the  castle  of  Dundee,  that  intelli- 
gence reached  him  of  the  English  a»-my,  under  the  command  of  the  earl  of  Sur- 
rey and  Cressingham,  the  treasurer,  being  on  its  march  to  oppose  him. 
Charging  the  citizens  of  Dundee  to  continue,  on  pain  of  death,  the  siege  of  the 
castle,  he  hastened  with  all  his  troops  to  guard  the  important  passage  of  the 
Forth,  before  Surrey  had  passed  the  bridge  at  Stirling,  and  encamped  behind 
a  rising  ground  in  the  neighbourhood  of  the  abbey  of  Cambuskenneth.  His 
nrmy,  at  this  time,  amounted  to  forty  thousand  foot,  and  a  hundred  and  eighty 
horse.  That  of  the  English  was  superior  in  numbers,  being  fifty  thousand  foot, 
and  one  thousand  hoi-se.  The  Steward  of  Scotland,  the  earl  of  Lennox,  Sir 
Richard  Lundin,  and  others  of  the  Scottish  barons,  were  now  with  the  Englisli, 
and,  on  the  army  reaching  Stirling  bridge,  they  requested  Surrey  to  delay  an 
attack,  till  ihey  had  attempted  to  bring  Wallace  to  terms.  They  soon  returned 
with  the  information,  that  they  had  failed  in  their  efforts  at  a  reconciliation,  and 
that  they  had  not  been  able  to  persuade  a  single  soldier  to  desert.  Surrey,  who 
seems  to  have  been  aware  of  the  danger  of  passing  the  bridge,  as  a  last  resource, 
sent  two  friars  to  offer  a  pardon  to  \Vallace  and  his  followers,  on  condition  that 
they  would  lay  down  their  arms.  But  the  spirit  of  Wallace  was  unsubdued.  "  Go 
back  to  your  masters,"  he  said,  *'  and  tell  them,  that  we  stand  not  here  to  treat 
of  peace,  but  to  avenge  the  wrongs,  and  restore  the  freedom  of  our  country. 
Let  the  English  come  on — we  shall  meet  them  beard  to  beard.''  On  hearing 
this  defiance,  the  English  impatiently  demanded  to  be  led  to  the  attack ; 
but  Surrey,  alive  to  the  strong  position  occupied  by  the  Scots,  hesitated,  until 
overcome  by  the  taunts  and  impatience  of  Cressingham.  "  Why,  my  lord," 
cried  this  insolent  churchman,  "  should  we  protract  the  war,  and  spend  the 
king^s  money  ?  Let  us  forward  as  becomes  us,  and  do  our  knightly  duly." 

The  English  army  began  to  cross  the  bridge,  led  by  Sir  Marmaduke  Twenge 


"WILLIAM  WALLACE.  401 


and  Cressingham;  and  when  nearly  the  half  had  passed,  Wallace  charged  them 
with  his  whole  force,  before  they  had  time  to  form,  and  threw  them  into  inex- 
tricable confusion.  A  vast  multitude  was  slain,  or  drowned  in  the  river  in  at- 
tempting to  rejoin  Surrey,  who  stood  on  the  other  side,  a  spectator  of  the  dis- 
comfiture. Cressingham,  the  treasurer,  was  among  the  fii-st  who  fell ;  and  so 
deeply  was  his  character  detested,  that  the  Scote  mangled  his  dead  body,  and 
tore  the  skin  from  his  limbs.'  Twenge,  by  a  gallant  struggle,  regained  the 
bridge,  and  got  over  to  his  friends.  A  panic  seized  the  English  "who  stood 
with  Sujiey,  spectators  of  the  rout  Abandoning  their  wagons  and  baggage, 
they  fled  precipitately,  burning  the  bridge,  (which  was  of  wood,)  to  prevent 
pursuit.  The  earl  of  Lennox  and  the  Scottish  barons,  perceiving  this,  threw 
off  their  mask  of  alliance  with  Edward ;  and,  being  joined  by  part  of  the 
Scottish  army,  who  crossed  the  river  by  means  of  a  ford  at  some  distance  from 
the  bridge,  pursued  the  English  with  great  vigour  as  far  as  Berwick,  which  was 
soon  abandoned,  and  taken  possession  of  by  the  victorious  army.  It  is  not 
known  how  many  of  the  English  fell  at  this  battle,  but  the  slaughter  must  have 
been  great,  as  few  of  those  who  crossed  the  bridge  escaped ;  and  the  Scots, 
smarting  under  the  cruel  insolence  and  rapacity  with  which  they  had  been 
treated,  gave  little  quarter.  On  the  side  of  the  Scots,  few  of  any  note  were 
slain,  with  the  exception  of  Sir  Andrew  Murray  of  Bothnell,  the  faithful  com- 
panion of  Wallace,  whose  son,  some  time  after,  was  made  regent  of  Scotland. 

This  decisive  engagement  took  place  on  the  11th  of  September,  1297  ;  and 
its  consequences  were  important.  The  castles  of  Dundee,  Edinburgh,  and 
Roxburgh,  immediately  surrendered  to  Wallace  :  and  in  a  short  time  not  a  for- 
tress or  castle'  in  Scotland  remained  in  the  hands  of  the  English.  Thus, 
through  the  means  of  one  man,  was  Scotland  delivered  from  the  iron  yoke  of 
Edward,  and  her  name  and  independence  among  the  nations  of  the  earth 
restored. 

Wallace  was  now  declared,  by  the  voice  of  the  people,  governor  and  guardian 
of  the  kingdom,  under  Baliol.^  About  the  same  time,  a  severe  dearth  and  fa- 
niine,  the  consequence  of  bad  seasons  and  the  ravages  of  war,  afflicted  Scot- 
land; and  Wallace,  with  the  view  of  procuring  sustenance  for  his  followers,  and 
of  pi'ofiting  by  his  victory  at  Stirling,  resolved  upon  an  immediate  expedition 
into  England.  For  the  purpose  of  raising  a  formidable  anny,  he  commanded 
that  from  every  county,  barony,  town,  and  village,  a  certain  proportion  cf 
lighting  men,  between  the  ages  of  sixteen  and  sixty,  should  be  levied ;  and  al- 
though the  jealousy  of  the  Scottish  nobility  began  to  be  more  than  ever  excited, 
and  many  endeavours  were  made  by  them  to  prevent  cordial  co-operation,  he 
soon  found  himself  at  the  head  of  a  numerous  body  of  men,  with  whom  he 
marched  towards  the  north  of  England,  taking  with  him,  as  his  partner  in  com- 
mand. Sir  Andrew  Murray  of  Bothwell,  son  of  the  gallant  knight  who  fell  at 
the  battle  of  Stirling  bridge.  The  approach  of  the  Scottish  army,  struck  the 
inhabitants  of  the  northern  counties  with  terror  :  they  abandoned  their  dwel- 
lings, and,  with  their  cattle  and  household  goods,  took  refuge  in  Newcastle. 
"  At  this  time,"  says  Hemingford,  an  English  historian,  "  the  praise  of  God 
was  unheard  in  any  church  or  monastery  throughout  the  whole  country,  from 
Newcastle-upon-Tyne  to  the  gates  of  Carlisle  ;  for  the  monks,  canons  regular, 

7  It  is  said  in  an  old  MS.  Chronicle,  that  Wallace  made  a  sftord-belt  of  Cressingham 's 
skin.  I  his  may  be  the  origin  of  the  story,  tliat  the  Scots  made  girllis  of  his  skin ;  an  absur- 
c*ity  upon  whicli  lord  Hailts  is  at  the  pains  of  passing  a  joke. 

8  His  title  runs  thus  in  a  document  of  his  own  time :—«' WillelmusVValays,  miles, 
custos  regni  Scolite,  et  ductor  exercituum  ejusdem,  nomine  prsedan  Prina^ is  Uonuni 
JohaiinJs,  Dei  gratia,  regis  Scotia;  illustris,  de  consensu  communitatis  ejusdtm. 

lY,  8B 


402  WILLIAM  WALLACE. 


and  other  priests,  who  were  ministers  of  the  Lord,  Ced,  with  the  wholo  people, 
from  the  face  of  the  enemy  :  nor  wcs  there  any  to  oppose  tlieiu,  except  that, 
now  and  then,  a  few  English,  Mho  belonged  to  the  castle  of  Alnwick,  and  other 
strengths,  ventured  from  their  safe-holds,  and  slew  some  stragglers.  I3ut  these 
were  slight  successes;  and  the  Scots  roved  over  the  country,  fiom  the  Feast  of 
St  Luke's  to  St  Martin's  Day,  inflicting  upon  it  all  the  miseries  of  unrestrained 
rapine  and  bloodshed.'"  All  the  tract  of  country,  from  Cockerniouth  and  Carlisle, 
to  the  gates  of  Newcastle,  was  laid  waste;  and  it  was  next  determined  to  invade 
the  county  of  Durham.  But  the  Avinter  set  in  with  such  severity,  and  provisions 
became  so  scarce,  that  multitudes  of  the  Scots  perished  through  cold  and  famine, 
and  Wallace  was  obliged  to  draw  off  his  army.  It  seems  that  he  endeavoured  in 
vain  to  restrain  many  outrages  of  his  followers.  The  canons  of  Hexham,  a  large 
town  in  Northumberland,  complained  to  him  that  their  monastery  had  been  sa- 
crilegiously  plundered,  and  that  their  lives  were  in  danger.  "Eemain  with 
me,"  he  said  ;  "for  I  cannot  protect  you  from  my  soldiers,  when  you  are  out 
of  my  presence."  At  the  same  time,  he  granted  them  a  charter,  by  wliicli  the 
priory  and  convent  were  admitted  under  the  peace  of  the  king  of  Scotland ; 
and  all  persons  interdicted,  on  pain  of  the  loss  of  life,  from  doing  them  injury 
This  curious  document  still  exists.  It  is  dated  at  Hexham  on  the  8th  of  Novem- 
ber, 1297. 

After  his  return  from  England,  Wallace  proceeded  to  adopt  and  enforce  those 
public  measures,  which  he  considered  necessary  for  securing  the  liberty  of  his 
country.  With  the  consent  and  approbation  of  the  Scottish  nobility,  he  con- 
ferred the  office  of  constabulary  of  Dundee,  on  Alexander,  named  Skirmischur, 
or  Scrimgeour,  and  his  heii-s,  "for  his  faithful  aid  in  bearing  the  banner  of 
Scotland."'"  He  divided  the  kingdom  into  military  districts,  in  order  to  secure 
new  levies,  at  any  time  when  the  danger  or  exigency  of  the  state  required 
them.  He  appointed  an  officer  or  sergeant  over  every  four  men,  anotlier  of 
higher  power  over  every  nine,  another  of  still  higher  authority  over  every 
nineteen  ;  and  thus,  in  an  ascending  scale  of  disciplined  authority,  up  to  the 
officer,  or  chiliarch,  who  commanded  a  thousand  men.  In  other  resjpects,  his 
administration  was  marked  by  justice  and  sound  judgment.  He  was  liberal  in 
rewarding  those  who  deserved  well  of  their  country,  by  their  exertions  during 
its  late  struggle  for  liberty  ;  and  strict  in  punishing  all  instances  of  private 
wrong  and  oppression.  But  the  envy  and  jealousy  of  the  higher  nobility,  who 
could  ill  brook  the  elevation  of  one  whose  actions  had  thrown  them  so  much 
into  the  shade,  perplexed  the  councils,  and  weakened  the  government,  of  the 
country,  at  a  time  when  the  political  existence  of  Scotland  depended  on  its 
unanimity. 

Edward  was  in  Flanders  when  the  news  reached  him,  that  th.e  Scots,  under 
Sir  William  Wallace,  had  entirely  defeated  Surrey,  driven  every  Ei.'glish  sol- 
dier out  of  their  countrj',  invaded  England,  and,  in  short,  had  thrown  off 
effectually  the  yoke  with  Mhich  he  had  fettered  them.  Inflamed  against  Uiem, 
at  this  overthrow  of  his  exertions  and  schemes,  he  issued  orders  to  ail  the  forces 
of  England  and  Wales  to  meet  him  at  York ;  and,  concluding  a  truce  with 
France,  hastened  home,  to  take  signal  vengeance  on  the  assertors  of  their 
liberty,  and  to  make  final  conquest  of  a  country  which  had  proved  so  con- 
tumacious and  untractable.     At  York,  he  held  a  parliament,  on  the  Feast  of 

9  In  retaliation,  lord  Robert  Cliflbrd  twice  invaded  Annandale  witli  an  army  of  twenty 
thousand  men  and  one  hundred  horse.  In  his  stcond  inroad,  the  town  of  Annan,  whicli  be- 
longed to  Robert  Bruce,  and  the  chuicli  of  G_\sbome,  xvcrc  bunit  and  i)lunri(  rtd.  'I'Jiis  is 
said  to  have  determined  Bruce  to  desert  the  English,  and  join  the  part)  of  Wallace. 

W  Tiiis  grant  is  dated  at  Torphicheii,  29th  IMarcli,  \29A. 


J*,  -nsm 


•Hfe-'-i 


WILLTiM  WALLACE.  403 


Pentecost,  1298,  where,  to  secure  the  hearty  cooperation  of  his  subjects  in  his 
invasion  of  Scotland,  he  passed  several  gracious  and  popular  acts,  and  came 
under  a  promise  of  ratifying  more,  should  he  return  victorious.  He  soon  found 
himself  at  tl'.e  head  of  an  aniiy,  formidable  in  number,  and  splendid  in  equip- 
ment. It  consisted  at  first  of  seven  thousand  fully  caparisoned  hoi-se,  and 
eighty  thousand  infantry;  and  these  were  soon  strengthened  by  the  arrival  of 
a  powerful  reinforcement  from  Gascony.  A  large  fleet,  laden  with  proTisions, 
had  orders  to  sail  up  the  Frith  of  Forth,  as  the  army  advanced. 

The  English  rendezvoused  near  Roxburgh  ;  and,  about  midsummer,  ad- 
vanced into  the  country  by  easy  marches.  A  party  under  Aymer  de  Valloins, 
earl  of  Pembroke,  landed  in  the  north  of  Fife.  Wallace  attacked  and  routed 
them  in  the  forest  of  Black  Ironside,  12th  June,  1298.  Among  the  Scots, 
Sir  Duncan  Balfour,  sheriff  of  Fife,  was  the  only  person  of  importance  who  fell 
in  this  engagement. 

This  partial  success,  however,  of  the  ever-active  guardian  of  his  country, 
could  not  aftect  the  terrible  array  that  was  now  coming  against  him.  He  had 
no  army  at  all  able  to  compete  with  Edward  ;  and  his  situation  was  rendered 
more  perilous  by  the  mean  fears  and  jealousies  of  the  nobility.  Many  of  these, 
alarmed  for  their  estates,  abandoned  him  in  his  need ;  and  others,  who  yet  re- 
tained a  spirit  of  resistance  towards  the  English  supremacy,  envied  his  eleva- 
tion, and  sowed  dissensions  and  divisions  among  his  council.  Wallace,  how- 
ever, with  a  spirit  equal  to  all  emei'^encies,  endeavoured  to  collect  and  conso- 
lidate the  strength  of  the  country.  Among  the  barons  who  repaired  to  his 
standard,  only  the  four  following  are  recorded  :  John  Comyn  of  Badenoch,  the 
younger  ;  Sir  John  Stewart  of  Bonkill ;  Sir  John  Graham  of  Abercom  ;  and 
Macduff,  the  granduncle  of  the  young  earl  of  Fife.  Robert  Bruce  remained 
with  a  strong  body  of  his  vassals  in  the  castle  of  Ayr."  As  the  army  of  Wallace 
was  altogether  unequal  to  the  enemy,  he  adopted  the  only  plan  by  which  he 
could  hope  to  overcome  it.  He  fell  back  slowly  as  Edward  advanced,  leaving 
some  garrisons  in  the  most  important  castles,  driving  off  all  supplies,  wasting 
the  country  through  which  the  English  were  to  pass,  and  waiting  till  a  scarcity 
of  provisions  compelled  them  to  retreat,  and  gave  him  a  favourable  opportunity 
of  attacking  them. 

Edward  proceeded  as  far  as  Kirkliston,  a  village  six  miles  west  of  Edin- 
burgh, without  meeting  any  resistance,  except  from  the  castle  of  Dirleton,  which, 
after  a  resolute  resistance,  surrendered  to  Anthony  Beck,  bishop  of  Durham. 
But  a  devastating  ai-my  had  gone  before  him,  and  his  soldiers  began  to  suffer 
severely  from  the  scarcity  of  provisions.  At  Kirkliston,  therefore,  he  deter- 
mined to  wait  the  arrival  of  his  fleet  from  Berwick  ;  but,  owing  to  contrary 
winds,  only  a  few  ships  reached  the  coast ;  and,  in  the  couise  of  a  month,  his 
army  was  reduced  to  absolute  famine.  An  insurrection,  also,  arose  among  the 
English  and  Welsh  cavalry,  in  which  the  latter,  exasperated  at  the  death  of 
several  of  their  companions,  threatened  to  join  the  Scots.  "  Let  them  go,' 
said  Edward,  courageously:  "  I  shall  then  have  an  opportunity  of  chastising  all 

"  The  story  told  by  Fordun  of  the  interview  between  Wallace  and  Bruce  on  the  banks  of 

r  .        •  -—,.....  1.    I  ,1.1.     _f t.»«A^f  nF  »i-»o    r*;ir_ 


held  a  .auspicious  neutrality  «itii  regard  to  Wallace;  and,  if  «e  can  reconcile  ^'''^}^\^^J'^. 
probability  of  a  meeting  between  these  two  heroes,  it   is   not  '''f'^"''  '° '"PP^^gjg     " 


effusions  in  verse,  was  the  successlul  competitor. 


^. 


404  WILLIAM   WALLACE. 


my  enemies  at  the  same  time."  Worn  out,  however,  by  a  daily  Inci'eaeing  fa- 
mine, Edward  was  at  Inst  obliged  to  abandon  his  prospects  of  ambition  and  re- 
venge, and  to  issue  orders  for  a  retreat  to  the  eastern  borders.  It  was  at  this 
critical  moment,  when  the  English  army  began  to  break  up  their  quarters,  that 
Edward,  through  the  ti'eachery  of  two  Scottish  lords,  Patrick,  earl  of  Dunbar, 
and  the  earl  of  Angus,  received  information  that  the  Scots  lay  encamped  in  the 
forest  of  Falkirk ;  and  that  it  was  the  intention  of  Wallace  to  surprise  him  by 
a  night  attack,  and  to  hang  upon  and  harass  his  rear.  "  Tliank  (iod,"  cried 
Edward:  "  they  shall  not  need  to  follow  me;  I  shall  go  and  meet  them."  His  army 
was  immediately  marched  towards  Falkirk,  and  on  the  evening  of  the  day  on  which 
he  received  the  information,  encamped  on  a  heath  near  Linlithgow. 

Next  morning,  (July  22nd,  1298,)  the  Scottish  army  was  descried  forming 
on  a  stony  field  at  the  side  of  a  small  eminence  in  the  neighbourhood  of  Fnl> 
kirk.  It  did  not  amount  in  number  to  the  third  part  of  the  English,  and,  weak 
as  it  was,  is  said  by  the  Scottish  historians  to  have  been  still  further  weakened 
by  fatal  dissensions.  Wallace,  however,  seems  to  have  availed  himself 
of  every  adrantaga  vA&fa  his  situation  and  circumstances  permitted.  Pie 
placed  his  army  on  the  front  of  a  morass,  and  divided  his  infantry  into  four 
compact  bodies  of  a  circular  form.  In  these  masses  composed  of  his  spearmen, 
and  called  Shiltrons,'^  consisted  the  strength  of  the  Scottish  army ;  for 
they  were  linked  together  so  closely  that  it  was  extremely  difficult  to  break 
them.^''  In  the  spaces  between  the  Shiltrons  were  placed  the  archers,  commanded 
by  Sir  John  Stewart,  of  Bonkill,  and  at  some  distance  in  the  rear  was  drawn  up 
the  cavalry,  amounting  to  no  more  than  a  thousand.  When  he  had  thus  drawn  up 
his  little  army,  and  the  enemy  appeared  in  view,  Wallace  said  pleasantly  to  his 
men,  "  I  have  brought  you  to  the  ring ;  let  me  see  how  you  can  dance."" 

The  English  monarch  arranged  his  army  into  three  divisions;  the  first 
headed  by  Bigot,  earl  Marshall,  and  the  earls  of  Hereford  and  Lincoln  ;  the 
second  by  the  bishop  of  Durham  and  Sir  Ralph  Basset  of  Drayton  ;  and 
the  third  by  Edward  himself,  who,  although  wounded  on  ths  previous  night  by 
a  kick  from  his  horse,  was  yet  able  to  mingle  in  the  engagement.  The 
first  division  led  on  the  attack ;  but  was  checked  by  the  morass  that  stretched 
along  the  front  of  the  Scottish  position,  and  obliged  to  make  a  circuit  to 
the  west.  Meanwhile,  the  second  line,  under  the  command  of  the  bishop  of 
Durham,  and  Basset,  inclined  to  the  right,  turned  the  morass,  and  advanced 
towards  the  left  flank  of  the  Scottish  army.  The  bishop  proposed  to  defer  the 
attack  till  the  rest  of  the  army  should  advance.  *'  Return  to  tliy  mnss,  bishop," 
said  Basset,  sneeringly.  "Not  so,"  answered  the  bishop:  "  we  are  all  soldiers 
to-day ;  lead  on  >"     At  the  same  moment  the  first  division  made  its  appearance, 

^  This  word  is  used  by  Barbour,  in  his  desci'iplion  of  tlie  batile  of  Bannockburn  ;.— 
'  J:^or  Scotsmen  that  them  hard  essayed. 
That  then  were  in  a  thiltnim  all.' 
'3  '  Ther  formost  convey  ther  bukkis  togidere  selte, 
Ther  spcres,  point  over  point,  »>  sare,  and  so  thikke 
And  fast  togidere  joj nt,  to  se,  It  ^vas  feilike, 
Als  a  castelie  thei  stode,  that  were  ^Talled  with  stone. 
The!  wende  no  man  of  blode  thorgh  them  suld  haf  ffone.' 

Langtqft  s  Chronicle,  book  if. 
'♦  The  words  of  Wallace  were,  «•  /  haif  brochl  you  to  the  ring;  hap,  gif  you  cun."  The 
ring  means  the  dame  d  la  ronde.     Hap  is  an  old  word  for  dance. 
'  The  dansand  priestis,  clepit  Sulii, 
Happand  and  singand.' 

Douglas's  Miuid,  viii.  2L 
Lord  Hailes  supposes  cun  to  be  an  obsolete  verb  of  the  noun  and  adjective  cunnitig,  still 
used  as,  "  Let  my  right  hand  forget  its  cuntiing,"  &c. ;  and  tmnslates  "  gif  you  cun,"  i/ 
you  have  skill.     But  we  should  imagine  cun  to  be  simply  can,  corruptly  spelt : — "  Gff 
you  cun," — if  you  can. 


AVILLIASI  WALLACE.  405 


having  extricated  itself  from  the  morsEs ;  and  they  both  attacked  the  Scottish 
shihrons  simultaneously.  Tlie  shock  was  tremendous.  The  English  cavalry 
was  fully  caparisoned  and  armed,  and  made  desperate  endeavours  to  break 
through  the  columns  of  the  Scottish  infantry ;  but  were  gallantly  withstood. 
"  They  could  not  penetrate  that  wood  of  spears,"  says  one  of  their  historians. 
Their  charges  were  repeatedly  repulsed,  notwithstanding  that  the  Scottish 
horse,  conunanded  by  some  of  the  nobles  at  variance  with  Wallace,  either  from 
mean  jealousy  towards  him,  or  fear  at  the  number  and  force  of  the  English,  did 
not  come  to  the  assistance  of  the  infantry,  but  left  the  field  without  striking  a 
blow.  Edward  then  brought  fornard  his  numerous  body  of  archers,  a  class  of 
soldiers  for  which  England  was  long  celebrated,  and  who,  as  a  proverbial  illus- 
tration of  the  accuracy  of  their  aim,  were  said  to  carry  each  twelve  Scotsmen's 
lives  under  their  girdle,  because  they  generally  bore  twelve  arrows  in  their  belt. 
These  by  thick  and  incessant  volleys  dreadfully  galled  the  Scottish  columns. 
The  archers  on  the  Scottish  side  were  a  small  but  select  body  from  the  forest  of 
Selkirk,  ^'  under  the  command  of  Sir  John  Stewart.  In  one  of  the  charges, 
Sir  John  was  thrown  from  his  horse.  His  faithful  bowmen  crowded  around 
him,  and  tried  to  rescue  him ;  but  in  vain.  They  all  perished;  and  their 
bodies  were  afterwards  recognized  by  the  English,  as  being  the  tallest 
and  handsomest  on  the  field.  Still  the  infantry  under  Wallace  did  not 
give  way,  and  still  his  sword  flashed  with  terrific  effect,  amidst  the  throng  of 
the  English  cavalry,  and  the  unceasing  shower  of  the  English  arrows.  But  thfe 
firm  columns  of  the  Scots  were  at  length  disunited  by  dreadful  gaps  of  slain, 
and  they  could  no  longer  withstand  the  overpowering  numbers  borne  against 
them.  Macduff  and  all  his  vassals  from  Fife  were  killed,  and  at  last  Sir 
John  the  Graham  fell  by  the  side  of  Wallace.  To  him,  of  all  others,  Wallace 
was  particularly  attached;  and  when  he  saw  him  fall,  he  plunged  with  ten- 
fold  fury  into  the  thickest  of  his  enemies,  dealing  with  his  irresistible  arm  deatik 
and  destruction  ai'ound  him.  It  was  impossible,  however,  that  with  the  hand- 
ful  of  men  to  wb.ich  his  army  was  now  reduced,  he  could  for  any  length 
of  time  successfully  oppose  the  strength  brought  against  him.  He  was  obliged 
at  last  to  make  good  his  retreat,  and  gained  a  neighbouring  wood,  leaving  fif- 
teen thousand  of  his  followers  dead  on  the  field.'® 

According  to  Blind  Harry,  Wallace,  when  the  English  had  removed  to  Lin- 
lithgow,  returned  to  the  field  of  battle,  in  order  to  obtain  the  body  of 
his  friend.  Sir  John  the  Graham.  This  is  somewhat  countenanced  by  the  fact, 
that  Sir  John  lies  buried  in  the  church-yard  of  Falkirk,  having  the  following 
inscription  on  his  grave-stone,  which  has  been  several  times  renewed  : 
JMente  manuqve  Potens  et  Vallae  Fidvs  Achates, 
CoNDiTua  Hic  Gramvs,  bello  interfectus  ab  Angus, 

XXII  jvLii  Anno  1298. 
Here  lies  Sir  John  the  Grame,  baith  wight  and  wise, 
Ane  of  the  cheefe  who  rescewit  Scotland  thrisei 
Ane  better  knicht  not  to  the  world  was  lent 
Nor  was  gude  Grame  of  truth  and  hardiment." 
li  The  Foreste  of  Selkyrke  in  those  dajs  compi-ehcndcd  not  only  the  tract  now  known  by 
that  name,  but  also  the  upper  parU  of  CI\desdale  and  Ayrshire.      ,_,,.,     ^^  „„r«mplv 
16  The  accounts  of  the  loss  on  the  Scbttish  side  at  Uie  battle  "^  Falkirk  are  ex  reme^ 
various.     Fifteen  thousand  is  stated  above,  on  the  authont)-  of  two  E"gl'sh  Chron  ck^  v  z. 
the  Norwich  Chronicle,  and  the  Chronica  of  John  Eve.-sde„^_  U  f^Z'JflZ.  ^/h"   S?l 
than  an) 
amount 

S^;ir^ain.^;ihi;r-S;;S^ols^red  severely.     ^  l^/'^^  S  r«"'i^"""^e 
loss.    Only  two  men  of  note  are  mentioned  as  having  fallen  on  tneu   siuc ,  ^ 
Jave,  and  the  prior  of  Torphicheii.  , 

>>  His  gnice  the  duke  of  Montrose  possesses  an  antique  sword,  on 
inscription: 


406  WILLIAil  WALLACE. 


Blind  Harry's  description  of  the  distress  of  Wallace,  when  he  saw  the  body 
of  his  beloved  friend  and  brother  in  arms,  is  touching  in  the  extreme. 

Tlie  corec  of  Gra3m,  for  whom  he  raurned  maist, 
When  thae  him  fund,  and  Gude  Wallace  him  saw, 
He  lychtjt  down,  aiid  hynt  him  frae  thame  aw 
In  armjss  up.     Behaldand  his  pale  face, 
He  kj-ssjt  him,  and  cryt  full  oft,  '  Alacc '. 
My  best  brothir  in  waild  that  evir  I  had  '. 
My  afiild  frejTid  quhen  I  was  hardest  stad  I 
My  hope,  my  heill ! — thow  was  in  maist  honour  ! 
My  faith,  my  help,  my  strengtliener  in  stour  I 
In  thee  ^vas  wit,  fredom,  and  hardiness  ; 
In  thee  was  treuth,  manhood,  and  nobilness; 
In  thee  was  rewll ;  in  thee  was  governans; 
In  thee  was  virtue,  ^vithouten  varians  ; 
In  thee  lawty  ;  in  thee  was  gret  largness; 
In  thee  gentjice;  in  thee  was  sledfastness. 
Thow  was  gret  cause  oif  winning  o.T  Scotland, 
Thoch  I  began,  and  tok  the  \var  on  hand. 
I  TOW  to  God,  that  has  the  warld  in  wauld, 
Thy  dead  sail  be  to  Southeam  full  dear  said! 
Martyr  thow  art  for  Scotlandis  rycht  and  rael 
I  sail  thee  venge,  or  els  therefor  sail  dee !' 

The  remains  of  the  Scottish  army,  in  their  retreat,  bunit  the  town  and 
castle  of  Stirling.  Edward,  who  had  not  recovered  from  tlie  k'ck  lie  re- 
ceived from  his  horse,  took  up  his  quartere  for  some  time  in  the  convent  of  the 
I>ominicans  there,  which  had  escaped  the  flames  ;  and  sent  a  division  of  his 
army  into  Clackmannanshire,  Monteith,  and  Fifeshire,  who  laid  waste  tlie 
country.  He  then  marched  to  the  west,  through  the  district  of  Clydesdale  to 
Lanark,  and  afterwards  to  Ayr,  where  he  found  tlie  castle  forsaken,  and  burnt 
by  Robert  Bruce.  A  want  of  provisions  prevented  Edward  from  pursuing 
Bruce  into  Galloway,  as  he  intended.  After  capturing  Bi-uce's  castle  of  Loch- 
maben,  he  was  constrained  to  march  through  Annandaie  into  England,  leaving 
Scotland  only  partially  subdued,  and  ready  to  rise  into  a  new  revolt  against 
him. 

Wallace,  after  the  defeat  of  Falkirk,  feeling  how  little  he  was  supported  by 
the  nobility,  and  how  much  jealousy  and  envy  his  elevation  had  occasioned,  re- 
signed the  office  of  governor  of  Scotland,  reserving  to  himself  no  other  pmi- 
lege  than  that  of  fighting  against  the  enemies  of  his  country,  at  the  head  of 
such  friends  as  might  be  inclined  to  adhere  to  him.  His  resignation  was  fol- 
lowed by  the  election  of  a  regency,  consisting,  at  first,  of  Jolin  Comyn  of 
Badenoch,  the  younger,  and  John  de  Soulis  ;  to  whom  were  afterwards  added, 
as  partnei-s  in  administration,  Bruce,  earl  of  Carrick,  and  William  Lamberton, 
bishop  of  Saint  Andrews. 

The  first  enterprise  of  the  new  governors  was  against  the  castle  of  Stirling, 
which  Edward  had  left  garrisoned.  To  preserve  tliat  important  place  from 
falling  into  their  hands,  Edward  determined  upon  another  expedition  into  Scot- 
land, and  with  tliat  purpose  assembled  his  army  at  Berwick ;  but  the  English 

Sir  lone  )e  Gmme,  verry  vicht  and  vr\se, 
One  of  ye  cheefs  relievit  Scotland  thrvs'e, 
Favght  vitli  )s  svord,  and  ner  thout  sciiame, 
Commandit  nane  to  beir  it  hot  his  name. 

Kimmo's  History  ofSlirlingsIiire. 


>« 


AVILLIAM  WALLACE.  407 


barons,  to  whom  he  liad  not  confirmed  certain  privileges  as  he  had  promised 
refused  to  go  fartlier,  urging  the  inclemency  of  Uie  season,  and  the  danger  of  a 
winter  campaign.  He  was,  therefore,  obliged  to  abandon  his  design,  and  to 
allow  tlie  English,  who  were  beleaguered  in  Stirling,  to  capitulate. 

In  the  course  of  the  following  year,  (1300.)  Edward,  by  confirming  the 
charters  of  the  barons,  was  enabled,  once  more,  to  prosecute  his  great  object, 
the  invasion  and  subjugation  of  Scotland.  At  the  head  of  a  great  army,  he 
entered  the  country  by  the  western  marches,  and  penetrated  into  Galloway. 
He  was  here  met  by  a  petition  from  the  governors  and  community  of  Scotland 
requesting  that  John  Baliol,  their  lawful  king,  should  be  permitted  to  reign 
peaceably  over  them ;  but  he  rejected  it  with  disdain.  The  Scottish  army,  now 
profiting  by  experience,  confined  itself  to  cutting  off  the  supplies  of  the  enemy; 
and  Edward,  after  spending  five  months  in  the  southern  part  of  the  country, 
without  efl^ecting  anything  material,  found  himself  compelled,  by  the  approach 
of  winter,  and  the  scarcity  of  provisions,  to  return  to  England.  Before  leaving 
Scotland,  when  no  other  alternative  remained,  he  afiected  to  listen  to  the  me- 
diation of  France,  and  concluded  a  tiuce  with  the  Scots,  at  Dumfries,  30th  Oc- 
tober, 1300,  to  endure  till  Whitsunday,  1301. 

Meanwhile  a  new  competitor  to  the  crown  of  Scotland  arose  in  the  person  of 
liis  holiness,  pope  Boniface  VIII.  This  singular  claim  had  been  suggested  to 
the  Roman  see  by  certain  Scottish  commissioners,  who  wished  his  holiness  to 
interpose  in  behalf  of  their  distracted  country.  The  arguments  upon  which  it 
was  founded,  Avere  altogether  absurd,  (such  as,  "  that  Scotland  has  been  mira- 
culously converted  to  the  Christian  faith,  by  the  relics  of  St  Andrew,"  &c.) ;  but 
Edward's  own  pretensions  were  clearly  and  justly  refuted.  As  it  was  dangerous 
for  the  English  monarch  to  break  with  the  pope  at  this  time,  owing  to  several 
continental  arrangements,  Edward  laid  the  affair  before  Ips  barons,  wlio  pro- 
tested, with  much  spirit,  that  they  would  not  allow  the  rights  of  their  sovereign 
to  be  interfered  with  by  any  foreign  potentate  ;  and,  to  soothe  his  holiness, 
he  sent  him  a  long  letter  in  his  own  name,  "  not  in  the  form  (as  he  says)  of  an 
answer  to  a  plea,  but  altogether  extrajudicially ;"  wherein  he  enumerated  all  his 
claims  to  the  superiority  of  Scotland,  from  the  days  of  his  "  famous  predecessor, 
Brutus,  the  Trojan,"  to  his  own. 

In  the  ensuing  summer,  as  soon  as  the  truce  had  expired,  Edward,  accom- 
panied by  his  son,  the  prince  of  Wales,  and  a  great  array,  marched  again  into 
Scotland,  and  spent  the  winter  at  Linlithgow,  where  he  ratified  another  truce 
with  the  Scots,  to  endure  until  Saint  Andrew's  day,  1302,  and  soon  afterwards 
returned  to  London.  On  the  expiry  of  this  second  truce,  having  gained  Pope 
Boniface  over  to  his  interest,  he  sent  Sir  John  de  Segrave,  a  celebrated  warrior 
into  Scotland,  with  an  army  of  20,000  men,  chiefly  consisting  of  cavalry. 
Segrave,  when  near  Roslin,  on  his  march  to  Edinburgh,  separated  his 
army  into  three  divisions  ;  the  first  led  by  himself,  the  second  by  Ralph 
de  Manton,  called  from  his  oflice  of  pay-master  the  Cofl'erer,  and  the 
third  by  Robert  de  Neville.  These  divisions,  having  no  communication 
established  between  them,  were  successively  attacked  and  defeated  at  Roslin,  on 
the  24th  February,  1303,  by  a  small  body  of  8000  horse,  under  the  command 
of  Sir  John  Comyn  and  Sir  Simon  Fraser.  Ralph  the  Cofferer  and  Neville 
were  slain.  Segrave  escaped,  and  fled,  with  the  remains  of  his  army,  to 
England,  leaving  behind  an  immense  booty. 

But  while  the  Scots  thus  persevered  in  defence  of  their  country,  Philip  le 
Bel,  king  of  France,  upon  whose  alliance  they  had  confided,  concluded 
a  treaty  of  peace  with  Eduard,  (20th  Blay,  1303,)  in  which  they  were  not  in- 
eluded;    and    the    English    monarch,   being    now    freed    from    foreign    wars. 


408  WILLIAM  WALLACE. 


bent  his  whole  force  to  make  a  complete  conquest  of  Scotland,  which  had  long 
been  the  ruling  object  of  his  ambition  and  exertions.  Mis  passions  were  now 
exasperated  to  the  utmost  by  the  repeated  failures  of  his  attempts,  and  he  de- 
clared liis  determination  either  to  subjugate  it  entirely,  or  to  raze  it  utterly 
with  fire  and  sword,  and  blot  it  out  from  existence  in  the  list  of  nations. 
With  this  purpose,  he  marched  into  Scotland  at  the  head  of  an  army  too  powerful 
to  be  resisted  by  an  unfortunate  people,  already  broken  down  by  the  accumu- 
lated miseries  that  attended  their  long  continued  conflict  with  an  unequal  enemy. 
The  inliabitants  fled  before  him,  or  submitted  to  his  power,  and  his  whole 
course  was  marked  by  scenes  of  slaughter,  devastation,  and  ruin.  The 
gorernor,  Comyn,  Sir  Simon  Fraser,  and  Sir  William  Wallace,  with  their  fol. 
lowers,  were  driven  into  the  fields  and  fastnesses  of  the  country,  from  which 
they  only  issued  in  irregular  predatory  expeditions  against  detachments  of  the 
English.  Edward  continued  his  victorious  progress  as  far  as  the  extremity  of 
the  province  of  Moray,  and  the  only  fortress  that  opposed  his  course  was 
the  castle  of  Brechin,  which,  after  an  obstinate  resistance,  surrendered  on  the 
death  of  Sir  Thomas  Maule,  its  gallant  commander,  who  was  killed  by  a  stone 
discharged  from  one  of  the  besieging  engines.  Edward  then  returned  to 
Dunfermline,  where  he  spent  the  winter  in  receiving  the  submission  of  those 
who  had  not  made  their  peace  with  him  during  his  progress  through  the 
kingdom.  Almost  all  the  nobles  gave  in  submissions.  Bruce  surrendered  him- 
self to  John  de  St  John,  the  English  warden  ;  and  at  last  Comyn,  the  governor, 
snd  his  followers,  delivered  themselves  up  to  Edward,  under  a  stipulation 
for  their  lives,  liberties,  and  lands,  and  a  subjection  to  certain  pecuniary 
penalties.  From  this  stipulation  Edward  excepted  the  following,  as  being 
more  obstinate  in  their  rebellion:  Wishart,  bishop  of  Glasgow,  James, 
the  Steward  of  Scotland,  Sir  John  Soulis,  the  late  associate  of  Comyn  in 
the  government  of  the  kingdom,  David  de  Graham,  Alexander  de  Lindesay, 
Simon  Fraser,  Thomas  Bois,  and  William  Wallace.  The  bishop  of  Glasgow, 
the  Steward,  and  Soulis,  were  to  remain  in  exile  for  two  years;  Graham  and 
Lindesay  were  to  be  banished  from  Scotland  for  six  months ;  and  P'raser 
and  Bois  for  three  years.  "  As  for  William  Wallack,"  says  the  deed,  "  it  is 
covenanted,  that  if  he  thinks  proper  to  surrender  himself,  it  must  be  uncondi- 
tionally to  the  will  and  mercy  of  our  lord  the  king."'* 

Soon  after,  an  English  parliament  was  held  at  St  Andrews,  to  which  the 
king  summoned  all  the  Scottish  barons  and  nobles.     The  summons  was  obeyed 

I*  Langtoft,  in  his  Chronicle,  says  that  Wallace  proposed,  on  certain  terms,  to  surrender 
liimsel£  These  terms  mark  his  bulcl  and  unsubdued  spirit.  Their  effect  upon  Edward 
was  to  throw  liiin  into  a  fit  of  rage.     The  passage  is  as  follows : 

Turn  we  now  other  weyes,  unto  our  owen  gestc, 

And  speke  of  the  Waleys  that  lies  in  the  loreste  ; 

In  the  forest  he  lendes  of  Dounfermelyn, 

He  pniied  all  his  frendes,  and  other  of  liis  kyn, 

After  that  Yole,  thei  wilde  beseke  Edward, 

That  he  might  yelde  till  him,  in  a  fur\Tard 

That  were  honorable  to  kepe  wod  or  beste, 

And  with  his  scrite  full  staole,  and  seled  at  the  least. 

To  him  and  uU  his  to  haf  in  heritage ; 

And  none  otherwise,  als  term  t)  me  and  stage 

Bot  als  a  propre  thing  that  were  conquest  till  him. 

Whan  thei  brouht  that  telhing  Edward  was  fuUe  grim. 

And  bilauht  him  the  fende,  als  trajtoure  in  Lond, 

And  ever-ilkon  his  frende  that  him  sustejTi'd  or  fond. 

Three  hundreth  marke  he  helte  unto  his  >varisoun, 

That  with  him  so  mette,  or  bring  his  liede  to  toun. 

Now  flics  William  Waleis:,  of  pres  iioulit  he  sptdis, 

In  mores  and  mareis  with  robberie  him  fedis. 


ATILLIAM   WALLACE.  409 


by  all,  except  Sir  William  Oliphant,  Sir  Simon  Fraser,  and  Sir  "William  Wal- 
lace. Olipliant  lieUl  the  castle  of  Stirling,  and  refused  to  capitulate.  It  was 
t.lie  only  stronghold  of  Scotland  not  in  the  liands  of  the  Englisli  ;  and  Edward 
brought  all  his  force  to  besiege  it.  Every  engine  known  in  those  days  was 
employed  in  the  attack.  After  an  obstinate  defence  for  three  months,  of  which 
the  English  historians  speak  with  admiration.  Sir  William  Oliphant  and  his 
little  garrison  were  compelled  to  surrender  at  discretion.  Fraser,  too,  despair- 
ing of  further  resistance,  at  last  accepted  the  conditions  of  Edward,  and  ofl'ered 
liimself  up  to  the  conqueror.  Wallace  alone  remained  unsubdued,  amid  tliis 
wreck  of  all  that  was  free  and  noble,  standing  like  a  solitary  monument  among 
the  ruins  of  an  ancient  dynasty — destined  then  to  be  the  emblem  of  his  coun- 
try's independence  ;   now,  to  be  its  watchword,  its  pride,  and  its  praise. 

Having  gained  the  submission  of  the  principal  men  of  Scotlaiul,  and,  in  the 
capture  of  Stirling,  i-educed  tlie  last  castle  which  had  resisted  his  authority, 
Edward  returned  to  England,  in  the  pleasing  conviction  that  he  had,  at  length, 
finally  accomplished  the  object  upon  which  so  nmch  of  the  blood  and  money  of 
England  had  been  expended.  Yet,  while  Wallace  still  lived,  he  felt  his  pos- 
session insecure  ;  and  he  used  every  possible  means  to  obtain  the  person  of 
this  his  first,  most  dangerous,  and  uncompromising  opponent.  After  the  battle 
of  Falkirk,  and  his  resignation  of  the  governorship  of  Scotland,  little  is  authen- 
tically known  of  the  particular  transactions  of  Wallace.  Great  part  of  the 
time  between  1298  and  1305,  was  no  doubt  spent  in  desultory  attempts  to  an- 
noy the  English  garrisons  and  migratory  parties.  But  that  a  portion  was  also 
devoted  to  a  visit  to  France,  as  has  been  related  by  Blind  Harry,  and  disputed 
by  subsequent  writers,^"  appears  now  to  be  equally  certain  ;  as  a  manuscript 
English  chronicle,  recently  discovered  by  BIr  Stevenson  in  the  British  Museum, 
speaks  of  such  a  visit,  without  the  intimation  of  any  doubt  upon  the  subject. 
Wallace  was  probably  induced  to  visit  the  French  court,  by  a  hope  of  obtain- 
ing some  auxiliaries  from  Philip,  for  the  purpose  of  carrying  on  the  war  against 
Edward  ;  or,  by  a  wish  to  urge  the  interests  of  Scotland,  in  the  treaty  which  that 
monarch  formed  in  1303  with  the  English  king,  and  in  which  Scotland  was  over- 
looked. Finding  no  success  in  either  of  these  objects,  he  seems  to  have  returned 
to  his  native  country,  to  renew  that  partisan  warfare,  which  was  now  the  only 
method  left  to  him  of  manifesting  his  patriotic  feelings.  That  his  deeds,  hou- 
ever  obscure,  were  of  no  small  consequence,  is  shown  by  the  eager  solicitude  which 
Edward  evinced  to  secure  his  person,  and  the  means  which  he  took  for  effecting 
that  end.  Besides  setting  a  great  reward  upon  his  head,  he  gave  strict  orders 
to  his  captains  and  governors  in  Scotland,  to  use  every  endeavour  to  seize  lum; 
and  sought  out  those  Scotsmen,  who  he  had  reason  to  think  entertained  a  per- 
sonal  pique  at  Wallace,  in  the  hope  of  bribing  them  to  discover  and  betray 
him.  Sir  John  de  Mowbray,  a  Scottish  knight,  then  at  his  court,  was  em- 
ployed to  carry  into  Scotland,  Ralph  de  Haliburton,  one  of  the  prisoners  taken 
at  Stirling  castle,  with  the  view  of  discovering  and  seizing  the  deliverer  and 
protector  of  his  country.  What  these  creatures  did  in  this  dishonourable  afta-r, 
or  with  whom  they  co-operated,  is  not  known  ;  the  lamentable  fact  alone  re- 


-■"  In  the  present  narrative,  it  iias  been  our  endeavour  to  go  no  further  than  Uie  wtll- 
uccredited  histories  of  both  countries  warrant;  and  the  numerous  stories  told  by  Hlind  FJiiiry 


Wallac^VFrencirexpS^  pc^^nal  kindness  of  Mr  Tjtler,  who  saw  and  a.pied  the 

document  alluded  to  in  the  text. 

IV.  3f 


410  WILLIAM  WALLACE. 

mains,  that  Sir  WUliam  Wallace  was  at  last  treacherously  betrayed  and  taken, 
through  the  agency  of  one  of  his  own  countrymen,  and  one  who  had  served 
under  him  against  the  Englisli,  Sir  John  Menteith,  a  baron  of  high  rank  ; 
whose  name,  for  this  cause,  is  throughout  Scotland,  even  unto  this  day,  a  bye-v 
word  of  scorn  and  detestation."'  Wallace  was  made  prisoner  at  Robroyston, 
in  the  neighbourhood  of  Glasgow,  on  the  5th  of  August,  1305. 

The  fate  of  this  great  man  was  soon  decided.  He  was  first  taken  to 
Dumbarton  castle,'-  then  under  the  command  of  Menteith,  and  afterwards  car- 
ried to  London,  heavily  fettered,  and  guarded  by  a  powerful  escort.  The 
people  in  the  northern  counties  of  England  are  said  to  liave  exulted  greatly  at 
the  news  of  his  capture  ;  and,  as  the  cavalcade  advanced,  multitudes  flocked 
from  all  quarters  to  gaze  at  its  illustrious  prisoner.  On  reaching  London,  lie 
was  lodged  for  the  night  in  Fenchurch  street,  in  the  house  of  a  citizen, 
by  name  William  Delect  ;-^  and  next  day  (23rd  August,)  carried  to  Westminster 

'^^  Some  attempt  has  been  made  (especially  by  lord  Hailes,  wlio  seems  to  have  sometimes 
opposed  ordinary  facts  and  notions,  under  the  vulgar  delusion  of  being  philosopliicid  and  un- 
prejudiced,) to  deny  tliat  Sir  John  Menteith  was  the  raptor  of  Wallace,  liul  no  circum- 
stance in  history  could  be  better  corroborated  than  lliis.  All  the  English  and  Scottish  wiit- 
ers  iigree  on  the  subject.  The  Clironicle  of  Lanercost  Priory,  a  MS.  of  tlie  tkirleaUh  cen- 
tury, preserved  in  the  British  Museum,  has  this  passage:  "  Captus  fuit  Willelmus  Waleis 
;;«•  U7ium  Scolum,  scilicet  j>er  Dominum  Johannem  de  Mentiplie,  et  usque  London  ad  Regem 
adductus,  et  adjudicatum  fuit  quod  tralieretur,  et  suspenderetur,  et  decoUaretur."  Another 
ancient  MS.  (the  Scila  Chronicle)  preserved  at  Cambridge,  says,  "  Wi/lliam  Walei/s  was 
taken  of  the  Counle  of  Menleth  about  Glaskow,  and  sent  to  King  Edward,  and  after  was 
hangid,  drawn,  and  quarterid,  at  London."  Langloft's  Chronicle  (another  English  ati- 
thority)  is  also  conclusive. 

Sir  Jon  of  Alenetest  sewed  William  so  nehi, 

He  took  him  when  he  wend  lest,  on  nyght  his  leman  bi ; 

That  was  thought  treson  of  Jak  Short  his  man  ; 
Lie  was  the  encheson,  that  Sir  Jon  so  him  nam. 


r  ordun,  ^'\YHldmus  Wallace  j^r  Johannem  de  MentHhfraudulenter  et  prodicionaliler  capi 
dJtur,  Londinis  demembralur."     Wynton's  cliapler  on  the  subject  is 


lur,  Kegi  Anglise  traditur 
headed  thus : — 


Q.ithen  Jhon  of  Mentetk  in  his  dayit, 
DUmvit  gude  Willame  Walays. 


And,  further,  he  says: — 


A  thousand  thre  hundjr  and  the  fyfl  ycrc 
Efter  the  byrth  of  our  Lord  dere, 
Schure  Jon  of  Menleth  in  tha  dayis 
Tuk  in  Glasco  Willame  Walays. 

That  Menteith  was  at  one  time  a  fellow  soldier  of  Wallace,  is  proveil  by  the  following  pas- 
sage from  Bower,  preserved  in  the  Relationes  Arnaldi  Blair:—"  In  hoc  ipso  anno  ri298) 
viz  23  die  moiisis  August!,  Domiims  Wallas,  Scotiae  custos,  cum  Johanne  Gnihame,  et 
Johaiinede  Menteith,  militibusjnecnon,  Alexandro  Scrymgeour,  constiibulario  villa;  de  Dun- 
dee et  vexillario  Scotia,  cum  quinquagenlis  militibus  armatis,  rcbelles  Gallovidienses  pu- 
nierunt,  qui  Regis  Anglite  et  Cuminorum  partibus  sine  aliquo  jure  steterunt."  As  to  iny 
lurther  intimacy  between  Menteith  and  Wallace,  there  is  no  evidence  be\ond  Blind  llarrv 
and  popular  tradition.  •' 

K  A  sword  and  mail  are  still  sliown  in  Dumbaiton  aistle,  as  havin<r  belonffcd  to 
Wallace.  °  ° 

23  The  following  passage  occurs  in  Stows  Chronicle:  «  WiUiam  Wallace,  which  had  oft- 
times  set  Scotland  in  great  trouble,  was  taken  and  brought  to  Loudon,  wiUi  gicat  numbers 
of  men  and  women  wondering  upon  him.     He  was  lodged  in  the  house  of  William  Delect 


Iiall,  accompanied  by  the  mayor,  sheriffs,  and  aldermen  of  the  city,  and  there 
arraigned  of  treason.  A  crown  of  laurel  was  in  mockery  placed  on  his  head, 
because,  as  was  alleged,  he  had  been  ambitious  of  the  Scottish  crown.  The 
king's  justice,  Sir  Peter  ilallorie,  then  impeached  him  as  a  traitor  to  Edward, 
nnd  as  having  burned  villages,  stormed  castles,  and  slain  many  subjecU  of 
England.  "  I  could  not  be  a  traitor  to  the  king  of  England,"  said  Wallace, 
"for  I  was  never  his  subject,  and  never  swore  fealty  to  him.  It  is  true  I  have 
elain  many  Englishmen;  but  it  was  in  the  defence  of  tlie  rights  and  liberties 
of  my  native  country  of  Scotland."  Notwithstanding  the  truth  and  justice  of 
his  plea,  Wallace  was  found  guilty,  and  condemned  to  a  cruel  deatli.  It  is  a 
stain  on  the  character  of  Edward,  and  a  reproach  to  the  spirit  of  his  age  and 
country,  that,  wliile  he  pardoned,  and  even  favoured  many  who  had  repeatedly 
violated  their  oaths  of  allegiance  to  him,  he  not  only  bestowed  no  mercy  on 
this  brave  and  true-hearted  man,  who  had  never  professed  allegianca,  but,  with 
an  enmity  which  showed  how  little  sympathy  he  had  for  his  noble  qualities,  add- 
ed insult  to  injustice,  and  endeavoured  to  heap  indignity  on  the  head  of  him 
whose  name  shall  be  through  all  ages  honoured  and  revered  by  every  generous 
breast  Sir  William  Wallace  was  dragged  at  the  tails  of  horses  through  the 
streets  of  London  to  a  gallows  in  Smithfield,  where,  after  being  hanged  a  short 
time,  he  was  taken  down,  yet  breathing,  and  his  bowels  torn  out,  and  burned. 
His  head  was  then  struck  off,  and  his  bcdy  divided  into  quarters.  His  head 
was  placed  on  a  pole  on  London  Bridge,  his  right  arm  above  the  bridge  at  New- 
castle, his  left  arm  was  sent  to  Berwick,  his  right  foot  and  limb  to  Perth,  and 
his  left  quarter  to  Aberdeen.  "  These,"  says  an  old  English  historian,  "  were 
the  trophies  of  their  favourite  hero,  which  the  Scots  had  now  to  contemplate, 
instead  of  his  banners  and  gonfanons,  which  they  had  once  proudly  followed." 
But  he  might  have  added,  as  is  well  remarked  by  3Ir  Tytler,  that  "  they 
were  trophies  more  glorious  than  the  richest  banner  tliat  had  ever  been 
borne  before  him ;  and  if  Wallace  already  had  been  the  idol  of  the  people,  if 
they  had  long  regarded  him  as  the  only  man  who  had  asserted,  throughout 
every  change  of  circumstances,  the  independence  of  his  country,  now  that  bis 
mutilated  limbs  were  brought  before  them,  it  may  well  be  conceived  how  deep 
and  unextinguishable  were  their  feelings  of  pity  and  revenge."  Edward,  as- 
suredly, could  have  adopted  no  more  certain  way  of  canonizing  the  memory  of 
his  enemy,  and  increasing  the  animosity  of  tlie  Scottish  people.  Accordingly, 
we  find,  although  the  execution  of  Wallace  may  be  said  to  have  completed  that 
subjugation  of  the  country  which  the  English  monarch  had  been  straining  for, 
by  force  and  fraud,  during  a  period  of  fifteen  years, — that  in  less  than  six 
months  from  the  death  of  her  great  champion,  Scotland,  roused  to  the  cause 
now  sealed  and  made  holy  by  her  patriot's  blood,  sbook  ofi^  the  yoke  of 
England,  and  became  once  more  a  free  kingdom. 

WALLACE,  Jamhs,  usually  called  Colonel  Wallace,  leader  of  the  Covenanters 
at  the  battle  of  Pentland  hills,  was  descended  from  the  Wallaces  of  Dundonald, 
a  branch  of  the  Wallaces  of  Craigie.  Neither  the  place,  nor  the  year  of  his 
birth  is  known :  but  in  the  sentence  of  death,  whicii  was  passed  against  him 
in  absence,  after  the  battle  of  Pentland,  he  is  styled  "  of  Aucbens,"  an  estate 
Eituated  in  the  parish  of  Dundonald,  in  Ayrshire,  and  which  was  the  family  seat 
of  his  ancestors,  and  most  probably  his  own  birth-place.     Of  his  education 

foot,  accompanying  him;  and  in  the  grent  hall  at  Westminster,  he  bting  placed  on  the 
south  bench,  crowned  with  laurel,  for  ttiat  he  had  said  in  times  past  that  he  ought  to  bear 
a  crown  in  that  hall,  as  it  was  commonly.reported  ;  and  being  appeached  for  a  traiiour  by  air 
Peter  Mallorie,  the  king's  justice,  he  answered,  that  he  \v;is  never  traitour  to  the  kmg  of 
England  ;  but  for  other  things  whereof  he  was  accused,  he  confessed  them;  and  ^^•as  alter 
headed  and  quartered." 


41?  JAMES  WALLACE. 


there  is  equnlly  little  known,  fls  of  the  other  particulars  alluded  to.  He  ap- 
pears, however,  to  have  adopted  the  military  profession  at  a  very  early  period 
of  life,  and  having  distinguished  himself  in  the  parliamentary  army,  was  raised 
to  the  rank  of  lieutenant-colonel.  He  went  to  Ireland  in  the  marquis 
of  Argyle's  regiment  in  the  year  1642,  and  in  1615,  was  recalled  to  oppose 
the  progress  of  the  nnrquis  of  Montrose.  At  what  period  of  the  struggle 
colonel  Wallace  joined  the  army  of  the  covenantee,  under  general  Baillie,  is 
unknown,  but  he  was  at  the  battle  of  Kilsyth,  where  ho  was  taken  prisoner. 

In  1650,  when  Charles  II.  came  from  the  continent,  at  the  entreaty  of  the 
Scottish  parliament,  two  regiments  being  ordered  to  be  embodied  of  '*  the 
choicest  of  the  army,  and  fittest  for  that  trust,"  one  of  horse  and  another  of 
foot,  as  his  body  guards,  Wallace  was  appointed  lieutenant-colonel  of  the  foot 
regiment,  under  lord  Lorn,  who  was  colonel.  Sir  James  Balfour,  lord  Lyon 
King  at  Arms,  by  his  majesty's  command,  set  down  the  devices  upon  the  en- 
signs and  colours  of  these  regiments.  Those  of  the  lieutenant  colonel  [Wallace] 
were  azure,  a  unicorn  argent,  and  on  the  other  side  in  "  grate  gold  lelers," 
these  words,  "  Covenant  for  religion,  king,  and  kingdoms."  At  the  battle  of 
Dunbar  Wallace  was  again  made  prisoner  ;  and  in  the  end  of  that  year,  lord 
Lorn,  in  a  petition  to  the  parliament,  says,  "  In  respect  my  lieutenant'colonel 
has,  in  God's  good  providence,  returned  to  his  charge,  whose  fidelity  in  this 
cause  is  well  known  both  in  Ireland  and  in  this  kingdom,  and  that  his  losses 
are  very  many  and  great,  I  do  humbly  desire  that  your  majesty  and  this  high 
court  of  parliament  may  be  pleased  in  a  particular  manner  to  take  notice  of  him, 
that  he  may  not  only  have  a  company  appointed  him,  but  likewise  something 
may  be  done,  for  the  satisfaction  of  his  former  losses."  Upon  this  petition  the 
Committee  of  Bills  reported,  "  that  lieutenant-colonel  Wallace  may  be  referred 
to  the  Committee  of  Estates, ^that  he  may  be  assigned  to  some  jKirt  of  the  excise 
or  maintenance  forth  of  the  shire  of  Ayr,  or  any  other  of  the  shires  in  the 
south." 

Colonel  Wallace  seems  to  have  lived  in  retirement , from  the  Restoration  till 
the  month  of  November,  1666,  when  Maclellan  of  Barscob,  and  some  other 
gentlemen  who  had  been  driven  into  hiding,  happening  to  fall  in  with  some 
soldiers  whom  they  found  maltreating  a  poor  old  countryman,  immediately  dis- 
armed the  latter,  and  thus  gave  occasion  to  that  rising,  which,  from  the  place 
where  it  was  suppressed,  has  always  been  called  the  rising  of  Pentland.  Hav- 
ing fairly  committed  themselves  by  their  humane  interference,  these  gentlemen 
conceived  the  design  of  anticipating  the  vengeance  of  Sir  .Tames  Turner,  by 
surprising  him  with  his  whole  party  Avhere  he  lay  in  the  town  of  Dum- 
fries, about  sixteen  miles  distant.  Accordingly,  having  assembled  their  friends, 
to  the  number  of  about  fifty  horse,  w  ilh  a  few  foot,  they  marched  into  that  town 
upon  Thursday,  the  1  5ih  of  November,  and  made  Sir  James  prisoner  with  his 
whole  party,  wounding  only  one  man.  The  insurgents  on  this  occasion,  were 
led  by  a  3Ir  Andrew  Gray,  a  merchant  in  Edinburgh,  who  happened 
by  chance  to  be  in  that  part  of  the  country  at  the  time.  Neilson  of  Corsack, 
however,  was  the  leader,  before  whom  Sir  James  Turner,  upon  being  made 
prisoner,  was  brought.  From  this  gentleman  he  obtained  quarter  and  protec- 
tion ;  but  when  Gray,  the  chief  of  the  party,  came  up,  he  insisted  upon  having 
him  shot  upon  the  spot.  They  finally,  however,  set  him  upon  a  sorry  beast, 
and  carried  him  about  with  them  in  his  dishabille,  and  in  this  manner  proceeded 
to  the  market  cross,  where  they  drank  the  king's  health,  and  prosperity  to  his 
government.  Sir  James,  however,  for  some  days  could  not  believe  but  that 
they  intended  to  hang  him  when  they  should  find  time  and  place  suitable. 
While  these  things  were  transacting  in  Dumfries,  the  friends  of  religion  and 


JAMES  WALLACE.  413 


liberty,  kept  up  a  correspondence  by  special  messengers,  and  continued  de- 
liberating on  what  was  best  to  be  done.     Among  others,  Wallace  joined  a  con- 
sultation, which  was  held  at  the  chambers  of  Mr  Alexander  Robertson  in  Edin- 
burgh, the  same  night  that  Sir  James  Turner  was  made  prisoner.     At  this  meet- 
ing it  was  resolved  to  make  common  cause  with  the  western  brethren,  and  seek 
redress  from  government  with  arms  in  their  hands.     Colonel  Wallace,  and  a 
little  band  of  adherents,  lost  co  time  in  proceeding  to  Ayrshire,  in  the  hope  of 
being  joined  by  the  friends  of  religion  and  liberty  there.     They  visited  succes- 
sively Mauchline,  Ayr,  Ochiltree,  Cumnock,  Muirkirk,  and  other  places  on  the 
route ;  but  met  with  little  encouragement  in  their  enterprise.     Mr  Robertso:i, 
who  had  been  still  less  successful  in  procuring  assistance,  rejoined  Wallace,  along 
with  captain  Robert  Lockhart,  and  insisted  that  the  undertaking  should  be 
abandoned.     This  counsel  was  unpalatable  to  Wallace,  but  he  forthwith  sent 
Maxwell  of  Monreith  to  consult  with  John  Guthrie,  brother  to  the  celebrated 
minister  of  Fenwick,  on  the  subject.     Having  been  reinforced  by  a  small  party 
from  Cunningham,  under  captain  Arnot,  the  whole  body  marched  to  Douglas,  ou 
Saturday  the  24th,  where,  at  night,  after  solemn  prayer,  the  proposal  of  Robert- 
son and  Lockhart  was  carefully  considered.     It  was  rejected  without  one  dis- 
senting  voice,  all  being  clear  that  they  had  a  Divine  warrant  for  the  course  they 
were  pursuing.     They  resolved,  therefore,  to  persevere  in  it,  although  they 
should  die  at  the  end  of  it;  hoping  that,  at  least,  their  testimony  would  not  bo 
given  in  vain  to  the  cause  they  had  espoused.      Two  other  questions  wero 
discussed  at  this  meeting:  the  renewing  of  tlie  covenants, — to  which  all  agreed; 
and,  what  should  be  done  with  Sir  James  Turner,  whom,  for  want  of  any  place 
in  which  to  confine  him,  they  still  carried  about  with  them;  and  who,  as  a  per- 
secutor  and  murderer  of  God's  people,  it  was  contended  by  many,  ought  to  have 
been  put  to  death.     As  quarter,  however,  as  it  was  alleged,  had  been  granted 
to  him,  and  as  he  had  been  spared  so  long,  "  the  motion  for  pistoling  him  was 
slighted."     On  the  morrow.  Sabbath,  they  marched  for  Lesmahago,  and  passed 
the  house  of  Robert  Lockhart,  where  Mr  Robertson  also  was,  at  the  time ;  but 
neither  of  the  two  came  out.     This  day,  they  perfected,  as  well  as  they  could, 
the  modelling  of  their  force  ;  but  few  as  their  numbers  were,  they  had  not  the 
half  of  the  officers  requisite  :  they  had  not  above  four  or  five  that  had  ever 
been    soldiers.       At    right,  they   entered   Lanark,   crossing    Clyde    near    the 
town.     Next  day,  Monday,  the' 26th,  guards  being  set  upon  the  water  in  a 
boat,  to  prevent  any  surprise  from  the  enemy,  the  covenants  were  renewed, 
Mr  John  Guthrie  preaching  and  presiding  to  one  part  of  the  army,  and  Messrs 
Gilbert  Semple  and  Crookshanks  to  the  other;  and  the  work  was  gone  about 
"  with  as  much  joy  and  cheerfulness  as  may  be  supposed  in  such  a  condition." 
On  this  dav,  considerable  numbers  joined  them  ;   and,  with  the  view  of  favour- 
in*   the   rising  of   their   friends,  who  were  understood    to    be    numerous,  m 
Shotts   West  Calder,  and  Bathgate,  they  marched  for  the  latter  place  ;  but  did 
not  reach  it  till  late  in  the  evening.      Part  of  the  way,  a  large  body  of  the 
enemy's  horse  hung  upon  their  rear;  the  roads  were  excessively  bad,  and  the 
place  could  not  so  much  as  afford  them  a  cover  from  the  rain,  which  was  falling 
in  torrents.      The  officers  went  into  a  house  for  prayer,  and  to  deliberate  upon 
their  further  procedure,  when  it  was  resolved  to  march  early  in  the  direction 
of  Edinburgh,  in  the  hope  of  meeting  their  friends  from  that  quarter,  as  well  as 
those  they  had  expected  through  the  day.     Scarcely,  however,  had  the  meeting 
broken  up,  when  their  guards  gave  the  alarm  of  the  enemy  ;  and  though  the 
night  was  dark  and  wet  in  the  extreme,  they  set  out  at  twelve  o  clock,  taking 
the  road  through  Broxburn,  and  along  the  new  bridge  for  Collmgton.      Uay- 
1i..ht  appeared  as  they  came  to  the  bridge,  in  the  most  miserable  plight  imagin- 


414  JAMES  WALULCK 


able.  From  their  Edinburgh  friends  there  was  no  intelligence;  and  when  they 
drew  up  on  the  east  side  of  the  bridge,  there  was  not  a  captain  with  the  horse, 
save  one,  and  tlie  enemy  were  close  at  hand,  marching  for  the  same  bridge. 
Wallace,  however,  was  a  man  of  singular  resolution,  and  of  great  self-possession. 
Even  in  these  distressing  circumstances,  he  sent  a  party  to  occupy  the  bridge, 
and  marched  oiTthe  main  body  of  bis  little  army  to  a  rising  ground,  where  he 
awaited  the  enemy  to  give  hiiu  battle. 

It  was  at  this  critical  juncture,  that  Lawrie  of  Blackwood  paid  him  a  second 
visit,  not  to  assist,  but  to  discourage  him,  by  proposing  a  second  time  that  he 
should  disband  his  followers,  and  trust  to  an  indemnity,  which  he  assured  him 
tlie  duke  Hamilton  would  exert  himself  to  obtain  for  them.  As  he  had  no  cre- 
dentials to  show,  and  seemed  to  be  speaking  merely  his  own  sentiments,  with- 
out the  authority  of  either  party,  Blackwood's  proposal  excited  suspicions  of  his 
motives.  He,  however,  remained  with  the  party,  which  had  now  moved  on  to 
CoUington,  all  night ;  and  in  the  morning  was  the  bearer  of  a  letter  from 
colonel  Wallace  to  general  Dalzell,  who  sent  it  to  the  council,  while  he  hastened 
himself  to  pursue  the  insurgents.  Wallace,  in  the  mean  time,  marched  to 
Tngliston  bridge,  at  the  point  of  the  Pentland  hills,  and  was  in  tlie  act  of  drawing 
up  his  little  party  to  prevent  straggling,  when  he  learned  that  Dalzell,  with  tlia 
advance  of  the  lung's  troops,  was  witliin  half  a  mile  of  him.  There  had  been 
a  heavy  fall  of  snow  through  the  night,  but  it  was  succeeded  by  a  clear  frosty 
day;  and  it  was  about  noon  of  that  day,  the  2Slh  of  November,  when  the  ar- 
mies came  in  sight  of  each  other.  That  of  the  insurgents  did  not  exceed  nine 
hundred  men,  ill-armed,  worn  out  with  fatigue,  and  half  starving.  The  royal 
army,  which  amounted  to  upwards  of  three  thousand  men,  was  in  the  highest 
order,  and  well  provided  in  all  respects.  Wallace  disposed  his  little  army  with 
great  judgment  upon  the  side  of  a  hill,  running  from  north  to  south.  The 
iialloway  gentlemen,  on  horseback,  under  M'Clellan  of  Barmagachan,  were 
stationed  on  the  south  ;  the  remainder  of  the  horse,  under  Major  Learraont,  on 
the  north;  and  tlie  foot,  who  were  exceedingly  ill  armed,  in  the  middle. 
Dalzell  seems  to  have  been  for  some  time  at  a  loss  how  to  proceed ;  liaving 
such  a  superiority,  however,  in  numbers,  he  detached  a  party  of  horse,  under 
general  Druramoud,  to  the  westward,  in  order  to  turn  Wallace's  left  wing. 
This  detachment  was  met  by  tlie  Galloway  gentlemen,  under  captain  Arnot  and 
Barnuigaclian,  and  completely  routed  in  an  instant ;  and  had  Wallace  been  in 
a  condition  to  have  supported  and  followed  up  this  masterly  movement,  the 
king's  army  would  inevitably  have  lost  the  day.  A  second  attack  was  met  by 
major  Learmont,  with  equal  spirit;  and  it  was  not  till  after  sunset,  when 
Dalzell  himself  charged  the  feeble  unarmed  centre  with  the  sU-engtli  of  his 
army,  horse  and  foot,  that  any  impression  was  made  upon  them.  This  charge 
they  were  unable  to  resist,  but  were  instantly  broken  and  dispereed.  The 
nature  of  the  ground,  and  the  darkness  of  the  night,  favoured  their 
flight,  and  there  were  not  more  tluin  one  hundred  of  them  killed  and  taken  by 
the  victoi-8  ;  but  they  were  in  an  unfriendly  part  of  the  country,  and  many  of 
the  fugitives  were  murdered  by  their  inhumane  countrymen,  for  whose  rights 
and  liberties  they  were  contending. 

Colonel  Wallace  after  the  battle  left  the  field,  in  company  with  Mr  John 
Welch,  and,  taking  a  north-westerly  direction  along  the  hills,  escaped  pursuit. 
After  gaining  wliat  they  conceived  to  be  a  safe  distance  from  the  enemy,  they 
turned  their  horses  loose,  and  slept  the  remainder  of  the  night  in  a  barn. 
Wallace  for  some  time  concealed  himself  in  different  parts  of  the  country,  and 
at  length  escaped  to  the  continent,  where  he  assumed  the  name  of  Forbes. 
Eyen  there,  however,  he  was  obliged  to  wander  from  place  to  place  for  several 


DR.  EGBERT  WALLACE.  415 

yaars,  to  avoid  his  enemies,  who  still  continued  to  seek  him  out.  When  the 
eagerness  of  the  pursuit  abated,  he  took  up  his  residence  at  Rotterdam,  where 
Mr  M.icward  and  Mr  John  Brown  had  found  an  asylum,  and  were  now  eiu- 
played  in  dispensing  ordinances  to  numerous  congregations  ;  but  on  the  com- 
plaint of  one  Henry  Wilkie,  whom  the  king  had  placed  at  the  head  of  the 
Scottish  factory  at  Campvere,  who  found  his  interests  suffering  by  the  greater  re- 
sort of  Scottish  merchants  at  Ilotterdam,  for  the  sake  of  enjoying  the  ministry  of. 
these  worthy  men,  the  states-general  were  enjoined  by  Uie  British  government 
to  send  all  the  three  out  of  their  territories.  In  the  case  of  Wallace,  the  states 
were  obliged  to  comply,  as  he  had  been  condemned  to  be  executed  as  a  traitor, 
when  he  should  be  apprehended,  and  his  lands  forfeited  for  his  majesty's  use ; 
but  they  gave  him  a  recommendation  to  all  kings,  republi(;s,  &c.,  &c.,  to  whom 
he  might  come,  of  the  most  flattering  description.  In  the  case  of  the  other 
two,  the  order  seems  to  have  been  evaded.  Wallace  ventured  in  a  short 
time  back  to  Holland,  and  died  at  Rotterdam  in  the  end  of  the  year  1678, 
**  laiuented  of  all  the  serious  English  and  Dutch  of  his  acquaintance,  who  were 
many ;  and,  in  particular,  the  members  of  the  congregation,  of  which  he  was 
a  ruling  elder,  bemoaned  his  death,  and  their  less,  as  of  a  father."  "  To  tlie  last, 
he  testified  his  attachment  to  tlie  public  cause  which  he  had  owned,  and  his 
satisfaction  in  reflecting  on  what  he  had  hazarded  and  suffered  in  its  defence." 
He  left  one  son,  Avho  succeeded  to  his  father's  property,  as  the  sentence  of 
death  and  of  fugitation,  which  was  ratified  by  the  parliament  in  1669,  was  re- 
scinded at  the  Revolution. 

Among  the  sufiering  Scottish  exiles,  there  were  few  more  esteemed  than 
colonel  Wallace.  Mr  Brown  of  Wamphray,  in  a  testament  executed  by  him  at 
Rotterdam,  in  1676,  ordered  one  hundred  guineas  *'  to  be  put  into  the  hands 
of  Mr  AYalkce,  to  be  given  out  by  him  to  such  as  he  knoweth  indigent  and 
honest ;"  and  while  he  leaves  the  half  of  liis  remanent  gold  to  Mr  Macward,  he 
leaves  the  other  half  to  I\Ir  Wallace.  Mr  Macward,  who  was  honoured  to  close 
the  eyes  of  his  valued  friend  and  fellow  Christian,  exclaims :  "  Great  Wallace 
is  gone  to  glory ;  of  whom  I  have  no  doubt  it  may  be  said,  he  hath  left  no  man 
behind  him  in  that  church,  minister  nor  professor,  who  hath  gone  through  such  a 
variety  of  tentations,  without  turning  aside  to  the  right  hand  or  to  the  left.  He 
died  in  great  serenity  of  soul.  When  the  cause  for  which  he  suffered  was  men- 
tioned, when  it  was  scarce  believed  he  understood  or  could  speak,  there  was 
a  sunshine  of  joy  looked  out  of  his  countenance,  and  a  lifting  up  of  liands  on 
high,  as  to  receive  the  martyr's  crown  ;  together  with  a  lifting  up  of  the  voice, 
with  an  *  Aha^  as  to  sing  the  conqueror's  song  of  victory." 

WALLACE,  (Dr)  Robert,  celebrated  as  the  author  of  a  work  on  the  numbere 
of  mankind,  and  for  his  exertions  in  establishing  the  Scottisli  Ministers'  Widows' 
Fund,  was  born  on  the  7th  January,  1697,  O.S.  in  the  parish  of  Kincardine 
in  Perthshire,  of  Avhich  his  father,  Matthew  Wallace,  was  minister.^  As  he  was 
an  only  son,  his  early  education  was  carefully  attended  to.  He  acquired  Latin 
at  the  grammar-school  of  Stirling,  and,  in  1711,  was  sent  to  the  university  of 
Edinburgh,  where  he  passed  through  the  usual  routine  of  study.  He  was 
one  of  the  original  members  of  the  Rankenian  club,  a  social  literary 
fraternity,  which,  from  the  subsequent  celebrity  of  many  of  its  members, 
became  remarkably  connected  with  the  literary  history  of  Scotland.  Mr  Wal- 
lace directed  his  studies  towards  qualifying  himself  for  the  church  of  Scotland. 
In  1722,  he  was  licensed  to  preach  by  the  presbytery  of  Dumblane,  and  in  Au- 
gust, 1723,  the  marquis  of  Annandale  presented  him  with  the  living  of  Moffat. 

Dr  Wallace  had  an  early  laste  for  mathematics,  to  Avhich  he  directed  his  at- 
'  Scots  Magazine,  xxxiii.  34v).  Ixxi.  5Q1. 


416  BE.  ROBERT  •WALLACE. 


tention  wliilc  a  student  at  the  university,  and  on  that  study  ho  bestowed  many 
of  his  spare  hours  during  his  ministry.  Ho  has  left  behind  him  voluminous 
manuscript  specimens  of  his  labours;  but  it  will  probably  be  now  considci'od 
better  evidence  of  his  early  proficiency,  that  in  1720  he  was  chosen  assistant  to 
Dr  Gregory,  then  suffering  under  bad  health.  Wallace  was,  in  1733,  appointed 
one  of  the  ministers  of  the  Greyfriars'  church  in  Edinburgh.  The  countenance 
of  the  government,  which  he  had  previously  obtained,  he  forfeited  in  173G,  by 
refusing  to  read  in  his  church  the  act  for  the  more  effectually  bringing  to  justice 
the  murderers  of  Porteous,  which  the  zealous  rage  of  the  ministry  and  the  house 
of  peers  had  appointed  to  be  read  from  the  pulpit.  He  was  in  disfavour  during 
the  brief  reign  of  the  Walpole  ministry;  but  under  their  successors  was  intrusted 
with  tho  conduct  of  ecclesiastical  affairs.  The  revolution  in  the  ministry  hap- 
pened at  a  moment  when  Dr  Wallace  was  enabled  to  do  essential  service  to  his 
country,  by  furthering  the  project  of  the  Ministers'  Widows'  Fund.  The  policy 
of  that  undertaliing  was  first  hinted  at  by  Mr  Mathieson,  a  minister  of  tho  high 
church  of  Edinburgh ;  Dr  Wallace  in  procuring  the  sanction  of  the  legislature, 
and  Dr  Webster,  by  an  active  correspondence,  and  the  acquisition  of  statistical 
information,  brought  the  plan  to  its  practical  bearing,  by  apportioning  the  rates, 
&c.,  and  afterwards  zealously  watched  and  nurtured  the  infant  system.  As  the 
share  wliich  Dr  Wallace  took  in  the  promotion  of  this  measure  is  not  very  well 
known,  it  may  be  mentioned,  that  it  appears  from  documents  in  the  office  of  tho 
trustees  of  the  Ministers*  Widows'  Fund,  that  he  was  moderator  of  the  General 
Assembly  in  1743,  which  sanctioned  the  measure.  In  tho  ensuing  November 
he  was  commissioned  by  the  church,  along  with  Mr  George  Wishart,  minister  of 
the  Tron  church,  to  proceed  to  London,  and  watch  the  proceedings  of  the  legis- 
lature regarding  it.  He  there  presented  the  scheme  to  the  lord  advocate,  who 
reduced  it  to  the  form  of  a  Bill.  The  corrections  of  Messrs  Wallace  aud  Wishart 
appear  on  the  scroll  of  the  Bill. 

In  1744,  Dr  Wallace  was  appointed  one  of  the  royal  chaplains  for  Scotland. 
He  had  read  to  the  Philosophical  Society  of  Edinburgh,  of  which  he  was  aa 
original  member  and  active  promoter,  a  "Dissertation  on  the  numbers  of  Man- 
kind in  ancient  and  modern  times,"  which  he  revised  and  published  in  1752, 
In  this  work  he  was  the  first  to  apply  to  purposes  of  investigation  one  of  those 
truisms  which,  however  plain,  are  never  stated  until  some  active  mind  employs 
them  as  foundations  for  more  intricate  deductions,  that  the  number  of  human 
beings  permanently  existing  in  any  portion  of  the  earth  must  be  in  the  ratio  of 
the  quantity  of  food  supplied  to  them.  Tho  explanation  of  this  truth  b^  Dr 
Wallace  has  been  acknowledged  by  Maltlius,  and  the  work  in  which  it  was 
discussed  has  acquired  deserved  fame  for  the  mass  of  curious  statistical  informa- 
tion with  which  the  author's  learning  furnished  it;  but  iu  the  great  tlieoiy 
which  he  laboured  to  establish,  the  author  is  generally  allowed  to  have  failed. 
He  maintained,  as  a  sort  of  corollary  to  the  truth  above  mentioned,  that  where 
the  greatest  attention  is  paid  to  agriculture,  the  greatest  number  of  huraau 
beings  will  be  fed,  and  that  the  ancients  having  paid  greater  attention  to  that 
art  than  the  moderns,  the  world  of  antiquity  must  have  been  more  populous 
than  that  of  modern  days.  Were  all  food  consumed  where  it  is  produced,  tho 
proposition  would  be  true,  but  in  a  world  of  traffickers,  a  sort  of  reverse  of  the 
proposition  may  be  said  to  hold  good,  viz.,  that  in  the  period  where  the  smallest 
proportion  of  the  human  beings  on  the  surface  of  the  earth  is  employed  iu 
agriculture,  the  world  will  be  most  populous,  because  for  every  human  being  that 
exists,  a  quantity  of  food  sufficient  to  live  upon  must  bo  procured;  for  procuring 
this  food  the  easiest  method  will  always  be  preferred,  and  therefore  whe»  the 
proportion  of  persons  engaged  in  agriculture  is  the  smaller,  we  are  to  presume,  not 


HENRY   WAUDLAW.  417 


that  the  less  is  produced,  but  that  the  easier  method  of  providing  for  the  aggre- 
gate number  has  been  followed.  Tiie  greatengineof  facilitating  ease  of  production 
is  commerce,  which  miikes  the  abundance  of  one  place  supply  tlie  deficiency  of 
another,  in  exchange  for  such  necessaries  and  luxuries,  as  enable  the  dwellers 
on  the  fertile  spot  to  bestow  more  of  their  time  in  cultivation  than  thay  could 
do,  were  they  obliged  to  provide  these  things  for  themselves.  Hence  it  is 
pretty  clear,  that  increase  of  populousness  has  accompanied  modern  commerce. 
Previously  to  the  publication  of  this  treatise,  Hume  had  produced  his  invaluable 
critical  essay  on  the  populousness  of  ancient  nations,  in  which,  on  politico-eco- 
nomical  truths,  he  doubted  the  authenticity  of  those  authorities  on  the  populous- 
ness of  antiquity,  on  many  of  which  Wallace  depended.  In  publishing  his 
book,  Dr  Wallace  added  a  long  supplement,  discussing  Hume's  theory  with 
much  learning  and  curious  information,  but  leaving  the  grounds  on  which  the 
sceptic  had  doubted  the  good  faith  of  the  authorities  unconfuted,  Wallace's 
treatise  was  translated  into  French,  under  the  inspection  of  Montesquieu  ,•  and 
was  republished  in  1809,  with  a  life  of  the  author.  Dr  Wallace's  other  pub- 
lished works,  are  "  A  Sermon,  preached  in  the  High  Church  of  Edinburgh, 
Monday,  January  6,  1745-6,  upon  occasion  of  the  Anniversary  Meeting  of  the 
Society  in  Scotland  for  Propagating  Christian  Knowledge  ;"  in  which  he  min- 
gled, witli  a  number  of  extensive  statistical  details  concerning  education,  col- 
lected with  his  usual  learning,  and  tinged  with  valuable  remarks,  a  political  at- 
tack on  the  Jacobite  insurrection  of  the  period,  and  the  motives  of  its  instigators, 
"  Characteristics  of  the  Present  State  of  Great  Britain,"  published  in  1758 ;  and 
*'  Various  Prospects  of  Mankind,  Nature,  and  Providence,"  published  in  1761  ; 
in  which  he  discussed  the  abstruse  subjects  of  liberty  and  necessity,  the  perfecti- 
bility of  human  nature,  &a  He  left  behind  him  a  MS.  essay  on  Taste,  of  con- 
siderable length,  which  was  prepared  for  the  press  by  his  son,  Mr  George 
Wallace,  advocate,  but  never  published.  From  the  new  aspect  which  modern 
inquiries  on  this  subject  have  assumed,  in  their  adoption  of  tlie  cumulative  prin- 
ciple of  association,  this  work  can  now  be  of  little  interest ;  but  it  may  be  worth 
while  to  know,  that  his  "  Principles  of  Taste,"  or  sources  from  whence  the  feeling 
was  perceived  to  emanate,  were  divided  into,  1st,  grandeur  ;  2nd,  novelty;  3rd, 
variety;  4th,  uniformity,  proportion,  and  order;  5th.  symmetry,  congruity,  or 
propriety  ;  and,  6th,  similitude  and  resemblance,  or  contrast  and  dissimilitude. 

Dr  Wallace  died  on  the  29th  of  July,  1771,  in  consequence  of  a  cold,  caught 
in  being  overtaken  in  a  walk  by  a  snow  storm.  His  son  George,  already 
mentioned,  is  known  as  the  author  of  a  work  on  the  Descent  of  ancient  Peerages, 
and  "  Principles  of  the  Law  of  Scotland,"  which  has  fallen  into  obscurity. 

WARDLAW,  Hknby,  bishop  of  St  Andrews,  and  founder  of  the  university 
there,  was  descended  from  the  WardlawG  of  Torry,  in  Fife,  and  was  nephew 
to  Walter  Wardlaw,  bishop  of  Glasgow,  who  was  created  a  cardinal  by  pope 
Urban  VI.,  in  the  year  13S1.  The  subject  of  this  memoir,  having  received 
tlie  usual  education  of  a  churchman,  was  appointed,  not  improbably  through  the 
interest  of  his  uncle,  to  the  office  of  precentor  in  the  cathedral  church  of  Glas- 
gow. He  afterwards  went  to  Avignon,  probably  on  sohie  mission  from  his  dig- 
nified relative.  While  residing  at  the  papal  court  there,  Thomas  Stewart,  son 
to  Robert  II.,  king  of  Scotland,  who  had  been  elected  bishop  of  St  Andrews, 
died,  and  the  subject  of  this  memoir  ivas  preferred  to  the  vacant  see  by  pope 
Benedict  XIII.,  in  the  year  1404.  He  returned  to  Scotland  shortly  after, 
bearing  the  additional  title  and  office  of  pope's  legate  for  Scotland.  Being  a 
man  of  strict  morals,  his  first  care  was  to  reform  the  lives  of  the  clergy,  whicli 
had  become  profligate  to  an  extreme  degree.  In  the  mean  time,  king  Robert 
III.,  having  lost  his  eldest  son  David,  by  the  treacherous  cruelty  of  his  brother 


418  HENRY  -WAllDLAW. 


the  duke  of  Albany,  to  secure  the  life  of  his  sou  James,  sent  him  to  the  care  of 
bishop  W.irdlaw,  who,  dreading  the  power  nnd  the  ciuelty  of  Albany,  advised 
his  father  to  send  him  to  France  to  the  care  of  Charles  "VI.,  on  whose  friendly 
dispositions  he  assured  him  he  might  confidently  rely.  On  the  seizure  of 
James,  in  1404,  by  Henry  IV.  of  England,  the  bishop  was  left  at  liberty  to 
pursue  his  plans  of  improvement  at  his  leisure,  but  from  the  unsettled  slate 
of  the  country,  and  the  deplorable  ignorance  which  prevailed  among  all  classes 
of  the  community,  with  very  little  success.  With  the  view  of  surmounting 
these  obstacles,  he  erected  a  college  .it  St  Andrews  in  1111,  for  which  he 
procured  a  confirmation  from  Pope  Benedict  in  the  year  following.  His 
agent  on  this  occasion  was  Alexander  Ogilvy.  On  the  return  of  this  missionary 
in  the  year  1412,  uilh  the  bull  of  confirmation,  bonfires  were  kindled,  bells 
were  rung,  and  tlie  night  spent  with  every  demonstration  of  joy.  The  next 
day  was  devoted  to  a  solemn  religious  procession,  in  which  there  were  four 
hundred  clergymen,  besides  novices  of  various  orders  and  degrees.  Tlie 
model  upon  which  the  bishop  formed  this  university  was  that  of  Paris, 
where,  it  is  probable,  he  had  received  his  own  education  ;  and  he  nominated 
Mr  John  Shevez,  his  first  official,  Mr  William  Stephen,  afterwards  bishop 
of  Dumblane,  and  Sir  John  Leister,  a  canon  of  the  abbey,  readers  of  divinity, 
Mr  Laurence  Lindores,  reader  of  the  canon,  and  Mr  Richard  Cornwall  of  tlie 
civil  law,  and  Messra  John  Gow,  William  Foulis,  and  William  Croisier,  profes- 
sors of  philosophy,  "  persons,"  says  Spotiswood,  "  worthy  of  being  remem- 
bered for  being  the  first  instruments  that  were  employed  in  that  service,  and 
for  the  attendance  they  gave  upon  it,  having  no  allowance  for  their  labour." 
Buchanan  has  not  recorded  the  names  of  these  worthy  men,  but  he  alludes  to 
them  when  he  says,  "  the  university  of  St  Andrews  was  founded  througb  the  ef- 
foi-ts  of  learned  men,  who  gratuitously  offered  their  services  as  professors,  ratlier 
than  from  any  stipendiary  patronage  either  of  a  public  or  private  character." 
For  sixty-four  years  after  its  foundation  the  lectures  were  read  in  a  wooden 
building  called  the  pedagogy,  erected  on  the  spot  where  St  Mary's  now  stands, 
the  number  of  students  amounting,  if  we  may  credit  some  authors,  to  several 
thousands.  The  professors  had  no  fixed  salaries,  and  the  students  paid  no 
fees.* 

Notwithstanding  all  the  bishop's  industry,  and  the  diligence  of  his  professors, 
matters  do  not  seem  to  have  mended  with  the  clergy.  King  James,  after  his 
return,  attempted  to  check  their  licentiousness  without  effect,  as  they  had  now 
got  beyond  the  reach  of  all  authority  except  that  of  the  court  of  Rome.  The 
university  seems  as  yet  to  have  been  wholly  unappreciated  by  the  only  classes 
who  could  partake  of  its  benefits ;  for  we  find  the  monarch,  in  order  to  rid 
himself  of  the  profligate  clergy,  bestowing  a  large  portion  of  his  attention  on 
the  establishment  of  schools,  and  supporting  them  liberally,  that  they  might  bo 
available  to  all  ranks.  Learned  men  he  induced  by  rewards  to  attend  him,  and 
as  often  as  he  could  disengage  himself  from  public  business  he  resorted  to  the 
scene  of  their  disputalioi)3,  and  listened  to  their  discourses.  By  these  means 
he  laboured  to  overcome  the  ignorant  prejudices  of  his  nobility,  who,  look- 

'  Forty-four  jears  after  this,  vit,  1455,  while  the  pedagogy  was  yet  standing,  archbishop 
Kennedy  founded  St  Salvador's  college,  and  in  1512,  one  hundred  and  one  years  after  the 
foundation  of  the  pedagogv,  prior  Uepbum  founded  St  Leonard's.  The  pedagogy  being 
taken  don-n,  St  Mary's  or  Divinity  college  was  erected  in  its  stead.  Towards  this  erection 
the  two  Beatons,  Uavid  and  James,  contributed  considerable  sums,  and  lectures  on  theology 
were  there  first  introtluced  by  cardinal  Beaton's  successor,  archbishop  Hamilton,  about  the 
year  1657.  St  Salvador's  and  St  Leonard's  were  in  comparatively  recent  times  conjoined, 
and  go  by  the  name  of  the  United  college.  St  Mary's  is  still  distinct,  and  by  the  favour  cf 
different  individuals,  all  of  them  have  been  pretty  iibemlly  endowed. 


IlENKY  WARDLiLW.  419 


ing  at  the  worthless  and  ignoble  lives  of  the  clergy,  only  conceived  that 
learning,  to  which  the  latter  urged  an  exclusive  claim,  uas  the  nurse  of  idle^ 
ness  and  sloth,  and  fit  to  be  exercised  only  in  the  gloom  of  a  monastic  cell. 
Ill  these  generous  and  truly  princely  endeavours,  however,  James  wr.s 
grievously  thwarted  by  the  exhausted  condition  of  the  public  revenues,  whicli, 
what  with  foreign  wars,  and  domestic  seditions,  had  almost  entirely  disappeared. 
To  remedy  this  evil  he  called  a  parliament  at  Edinburgh,  mainly  with  a  view 
to  relieve  the  hostages  that  remained  in  England  for  the  king's  ransom,  of  which 
one  half,  or  two  hundred  thousand  nierks,  stood  unpaid.  To  raise  this  money 
a  general  tax  of  twelve  pennies  on  the  pound  of  all  land,  spiritual  ar.d  tem- 
poral, and  four  pennies  on  every  cow,  ox,  and  horse  for  the  space  of  two  years 
was  imposed.  This  tax,  however,  was  so  grievously  resented  by  the  people, 
and  so  many  extortions  were  committed  in  its  exaction,  tliat  the  generous 
monarch,  after  the  first  collection,  compassionately  remitted  what  was  unpaid, 
and,  so  far  from  being  enabled  to  be  more  generous  in  rewarding  men 
of  learning  and  talents,  the  greater  number  of  the  hostages  for  his  ransom 
were  allowed  to  die  in  bondage,  from  his  inability  to  redeem  them.  What  good 
was  in  his  power,  however,  he  did  not  fail  to  perform,  lie  invited  from 
the  universities  on  the  continent  no  fewer  than  eighteen  doctors  of  theology, 
and  eight  doctors  of  the  canon  law.  He  attended  in  person  the  debates  in  the 
ivfant  university  of  St  Andrews,  and  visited  the  other  seminaries  of  learning. 
He  advanced  none  to  any  dignity  in  the  church  but  persons  of  learning  and 
merit ;  and  he  passed  a  law,  that  no  man  should  enjoy  the  place  of  a  canon 
in  any  cathedral  church  till  he  had  taken  the  degree  of  a  bachelor  in  divinity, 
or  of  the  canon  law.  He  placed  choristers  and  organs  in  every  cathedral  in 
the  kingdom  ;  and,  that  the  nobility  might  be  compelled  to  apply  themselves 
to  learning,  he  ordained,  that  no  nobleman  should  be  allowed  to  accede  to 
his  father's  estates  till  he  was  in  some  degree  acquainted  with  the  civil  law, 
or  the  common  law  of  his  own  country.  James  was  also  careful  to  encour- 
age artists  from  abroad  to  settle  among  his  rude  people,  who  were  miserably 
destitute  of  all  the  conveniences  and  comforts  of  civilized  life. 

A  degree  of  prosperity,  for  a  long  period  unknown  in  Scotland,  followed ; 
and,  in  its  train,  if  we  may  believe  Buchanan,  ease,  luxury,  and  licentiousness, 
and,  to  such  an  extent,  as  not  only  to  disturb  the  public  tranquillity,  but  to 
destroy  all  sobriety  of  individual  conduct.  Hence,  he  says,  arose  sumptuous 
entertainments  by  day,  and  revellings  by  night,  masquerades,  a  passion  for 
clothes  of  the  most  costly  foreign  materials,  houses  built,  not  for  use  but  for 
show,  a  perversion  of  manners  under  the  name  of  elegance,  native  customs 
came  to  be  contemned,  and,  from  a  fastidious  fickleness,  nothing  was  esteemed 
handsome  or  becoming  that  was  not  new.  All  this  was  charged  by  the  common 
people,  though  they  themselves  were  following  it  up  as  fast  as  possible,  upon 
the  courtiers  who  had  come  with  the  king  from  England,  in  the  train  of  his 
queen,  Jane,  daughter  to  the  duke  of  Somerset  Nor  did  the  king  himself 
escape  blame,  though,  by  his  own  example,  he  did  all  that  he  could  to  repress 
the  evil ;  for  not  only  were  his  dress  and  his  household  expenses  restrained 
within  the  most  moderate  bounds,  but  extravagance  of  every  kind  he  reproved, 
wherever  he  beheld  it.  The  matter,  however,  was  considered  of  so  great  im- 
portance by  some  of  the  Scottish  nobility,  who  were  accustomed  themselves  to 
wear  the  plainest  habiliments,  to  live  on  the  plainest  and  simplest  description 
of  food,  and  to  accustom  themselves  to  all  manner  of  privations,  in  order  to  fit 
them  for  the  fatigues  of  war,  that  they  pressed  the  bishop  to  move  the  king  to 
call  a  parliament,  for  abolishing  these  English  customs,  as  they  were  called. 
A  parliament  was  accordingly  assembled  at  Perth,  in  tlie  year  1430,  when  it  was 


420  DR.  ROBERT  WATSON. 


enacted  that  pearls  should  be  worn  only  by  ladies,  who  were  permitted  to  hang 
a  small  collar  of  them  about  their  nocks.  All  furs  and  ermines,  and  excossivo 
use  of  gold  and  silver  lace,  all  banqueting  and  riotous  feasting,  with  other 
abuses  of  a  similar  kind,  were  prohibited ;  and  this  prohibition,  says  the  writer 
of  the  bishop's  life,  was  so  effectual,  that  no  more  complaints  of  the  kind 
were  heard  of.  The  bishop,  though  remarkable  for  the  great  simplicity  of  his 
character,  for  his  piety  and  well  meaning,  was  yet  a  greater  enemy  to  what  ho 
believed  to  be  heresy,  than  to  immorality.  In  1422,  John  Rcsby,  an  English- 
man, was  apprehended  by  Lawrence  Liudorcs,  professor  of  common  law  in  the 
newly  erected  university  of  St  Andrews,  who  accused  him  in  the  ecclesiastical 
court  of  having  denied  tho  pope's  vicarship,  &c.,  &c.  For  this,  Resby  was 
condemned  to  be  burnt  alive,  and  suffered  accordingly.  In  tho  year  1432, 
Paul  Craw,  a  Bohemian,  was  also  apprehended  in  the  university  of  St  Andrews, 
and  accused  before  the  bishops*  court  of  following  Wickliffe  and  Huss;  of 
denying  that  tho  substance  of  bread  and  wine,  in  the  sacrament,  was  changed 
by  virtue  of  any  words;  of  denying  that  confession  should  be  made  to  priests; 
or  that  prayer  should  be  offered  up  to  saints.  He  likewise  was  condemned  and 
burnt  alive,  at  tho  instigation  of  the  bishop.  Notwithstanding  this,  Wardlaw 
was  celebrated  for  his  charity;  and  though  he  laboured  to  suppress  the  riotous 
living  which  had  become  so  general  in  the  kingdom,  he  was  yet  a  man  of 
boundless  hospitality.  It  is  recorded  of  him,  that  tho  stewards  of  his  household, 
on  one  occasion,  complained  to  him  of  the  numbers  that  resorted  to  his  table,  to 
share  in  the  good  things  which  it  afforded;  and  requested  that,  out  of  compassion 
for  his  servants,  who  were  often  quite  worn  out  with  their  labours,  he  would 
furnish  them  with  a  list  of  his  intended  guests,  that  they  might  know  how  ma'ny 
they  should  have  to  serve.  To  this  he  readily  assented,  and  sent  for  his  secre- 
tary, to  prepare  the  required  document.  Tho  latter  having  arranged  his  writing 
materials,  inquired  who  was  to  be  put  down.  "  Put  down,  first,"  replied  tho 
bishop,  "Fife  and  Angus,"  (two  largo  counties).  This  was  enough:  his  servants, 
appalled  by  anticipations  of  a  list  which  began  so  formidably,  instantly  relin- 
quished their  design  of  limiting  the  hospitality  of  their  generous  master.  For 
the  benefit  of  his  diocese,  the  bishop  built  a  bridge  over  the  Eden,  near  its 
mouth.  Dempster  charges  him  with  having  written  a  book,  "  Do  Reformationc 
Cleri  et  Oratio  pro  Reformatione  conviviorum  et  luxus ; "  but  this  seems  to  have 
been  simply  a  speech  which  he  delivered  in  parliament  on  tho  sumptuary  laws, 
and  which,  by  some  miracle,  similar  to  that  bo  often  employed  by  Livy,  has 
found  its  way  into  the  Scottish  histories. 

Wardlaw  departed  this  life  in  his  castle  of  St  Andrews,  on  the  6th  day  of 
April,  1440,  and  was  buried  in  the  church  of  that  city,  wiih  great  pomp  and 
splendour,  having  held  his  dignified  situation  for  nearly  forty  years. 

WATSON,  (Dr)  Robert,  author  of  tho  History  of  the  Reign  of  Philip  II.  of 
Spain,  was  born  at  St  Andrews  about  the  year  1730.  He  was  the  son  of  an 
apothecary  of  that  city,  who  was  also  a  brewer.  He  studied  successively  at  the 
universities  of  St  Andrews,  Glasgow,  and  Edinburgh,  with  a  view  to  the  ministry, 
availing  himself  of  the  leisure  which  a  course  of  theology  leaves  to  the  student 
to  cultivate  English  literature  and  rhetoric,  upon  which  subjects  he  delivered  a 
series  of  lectures  in  Edinburgh,  to  an  audience  comprising  the  principal  literary 
and  philosophical  men  of  the  day. 

Soon  after  he  had  been  licensed  to  preach,  a  vacancy  occurred  in  one  of  the 
churches  of  his  native  city,  and  for  this  he  became  a  candidate,  but  was  disap- 
pointed. About  this  time,  however,  Mr  Rymcr,  tho  professor  of  logic  in  St 
Salvador's  college,  feeling  the  infirmities  of  old  age  advancing  upon  liim, 
was  inclined  to  enter  into   a   negotiation   for   retiring,  and,  according   to  a 


DR.  ROBERT  WATSON.  431 


prevailing  though  not  a  laudable  custom,  Watson  obtained  his  chair  for  the 
payment  of  a  small  sum  of  money,  and  on  the  condition  that  the  retiring  pro- 
fessor should  continue  to  enjoy  his  salary.  The  subject  of  our  memoir  obtained 
at  the  same  time  a  patent  from  the  crown,  constituting  him  professor  of  rhetoric 
and  belles  lettres.  The  study  of  logic,  in  St  Andrews,  as  in  most  other 
places,  was  confined  to  syllogisms,  modes,  and  figures.  Watson,  whose  mind 
had  been  expanded  by  intercourse  with  the  most  enlightened  men  of  his  day, 
and  by  the  study  of  tha  best  modern  literature,  prepared  and  read  to  his 
students  a  course  of  metaphysics  and  logic  on  an  improved  plan  ;  in  which  he 
analyzed  the  powers  of  the  mind,  and  entered  deeply  into  the  nature  of  the 
different  species  of  evidence  of  truth  or  knowledge. 

After  having  fully  arranged  the  course  of  his  professional  duties,  Watson  was 
induced  by  the  success  of  Hobertson  and  Hume  in  the  composition  of  history, 
as  well  as  by  the  natural  tendencies  of  his  mind,  to  attempt  a  Avork  emulating 
theirs  in  labour  and  utility.  The  reign  of  Philip  II.  of  Spain  presented  itself 
to  him  as  a  proper  subject,  not  only  on  account  of  its  intrinsic  interest,  but  as 
a  continuation  of  the  admired  work  of  Robertson  on  the  preceding  reign. 
Having  therefore  prepared  this  composition  with  all  due  care,  it  was  published 
at  London  in  1777,  in  two  volumes  quarto.  A  periodical  critic  thus  charac- 
terizes the  work  :  "  The  style  and  narration  of  this  history  deserve  much 
praise  ;  it  is  easy,  flowing,  and  natural,  always  correct,  and  well  adapted  to  the 
difi'erent  subjects  which  come  under  review ;  it  possesses,  however,  more  of  the 
dignified  simplicity  and  strength  of  the  philosopher,  than  the  floAving  embel- 
lishments of  the  poet.  Watson  rests  none  of  his  merit  upon  external  orna- 
ment ;  he  is  chiefly  anxious  to  relate  facts,  clearly  and  completely  in 
their  due  proportion  and  proper  connexion,  and  to  please  and  interest, 
rather  by  what  he  has  to  tell  than  by  any  adventitious  colouring.  But  though 
he  does  not  seem  solicitous  to  decorate  his  narrative  with  beauty  or  sublimity 
of  diction,  we  feel  no  want  of  it ;  we  meet  with  nothing  harsh,  redundant,  or 
inelegant ;  we  can  on  no  occasion  say  that  he  has  not  done  justice  to  his  sub- 
ject, that  his  conceptions  are  ever  inadequate,  his  views  deficient,  or  his 
description  feeble.  *  *  *  The  whole  series  of  events  lies  full  and  clear 
before  us  as  they  actually  existed  ;  nothing  is  heightened  beyond  truth  by  the 
false  colourings  of  imagination,  nor  does  anything  appear  without  suitable  dig- 
nity. The  principal  circumstances  are  selected  with  judgment,  and  displayed 
with  the  utmost  perspicuity  and  order.  On  no  occasion  are  we  at  a  loss  to  ap- 
prehend his  meaning,  or  follow  the  thread  of  his  narrative ;  we  are  never 
fatigued  with  minute  attentions,  nor  distracted  with  a  multiplicity  of  things  at 
once." ' 

On  the  death  of  principal  Tullidelph,  November  1777,  Watson,  now  graced 
with  the  degree  of  doctor  of  laws,  was,  through  the  influence  of  the  earl  of 
Kinnoul,  appointed  to  that  respectable  situation,  and,  at  the  same  time,  pre- 
sented to  the  church  and  parish  of  St  Leonard,  in  St  Andrews,  which  had  pre- 
viously been  enjoyed  by  Tullidelph.  Dr  Watson  died  March  31,  1781,  leaving 
by  his  lady,  who  was  a  daughter  of  Mr  Shaw,  professor  of  divinity  in  St 
Mary's  college,  five  daughters.  He  also  left  the  first  four  books  of  a  history 
of  the  Reign  of  Philip  IH.,  being  a  continuation  of  his  former  work.  The  task 
of  completing  this  by  the  addition  of  two  books  having  been  confided  to  Dr 
William  Thomson,  (see  the  life  of  tliat  gentleman,)  the  work  was  published  at 
London  in  1783,  in  one  volume  quarto.  Both  of  this  and  of  the  history  of  PhiL'p 
11.,  there  were  subsequent  editions  in  octavo. 

1  Bee,  volumes  vii.  and  viii. 


422  JAMES  WATT. 


WATT,  James,  one  of  the  raost  illustrious  men  of  bis  time  as  a  natural  phi- 
losopher, clietnist,  and  civil  engineer,  was  born  at  Greenock,  on  the  19th  of 
January,  1736.  His  father,  James  Watt,  was  a  block-maker  and  ship  chand- 
ler, and  for  some  time  one  of  the  magistrates  of  Greenock;  and  his  mother, 
Agnes  Muirhead,  was  descended  from  a  respectable  family.  During  boyhood 
his  health  was  very  delicate,  so  that  his  attendance  at  school  was  by  no  means 
regular;  nevertheless,  by  assiduous  application  at  home,  he  soon  attained  great 
proficiency  in  reading,  writing,  and  arithmetic;  and,  by  the  perusal  of  books 
that  came  within  his  command,  he  extended  his  knowledge  beyond  the  circle  of 
elementary  instruction  of  the  public  schools,  and  cherished  that  thirst  for  in- 
formation which  is  the  characteristic  of  all  men  of  genius,  and  for  which  he  was 
throughout  life  remarkable.  Au  anecdote  of  his  boyhood  lias  been  preserved, 
showing  the  early  bent  of  his  mind.  His  aunt,  Mrs.  Muirhead,  sitting  with  him 
one  evening  at  the  tea-table,  said,  "  James,  I  never  saw  such  an  idle  boy!  Take 
a  book,  or  employ  yourself  usefully ;  for  the  last  half  hour  you  have  not  spoken 
a  word,  but  taken  ofif  the  lid  of  that  kettle,  and  put  it  on  again."  With 
the  aid  alternately  of  a  cup  and  a  silver  spoon,  he  was  observing  how  tho 
steam  rose  from  the  spout  and  became  condensed,  and  was  counting  tho 
di'ops  of  water.  But  there  is  little  incident  in  his  life  until  he  reached  his 
eighteenth  year,  excepting  that  he  manifested  a  strong  predilection  for  mechani- 
cal and  matliematical  pursuits.  In  accordance  with  this  natural  bent,  he  de- 
parted for  London,  in  1754,  in  order  to  learn  the  profession  of  a  mathe- 
matical instrument-maker.  When  he  arrived  in  London,  he  placed  himself 
under  the  direction  of  a  mathematical  instrument-maker,  and  applied  himself 
with  great  assiduity,  and  with  such  success,  that,  although  he  was  obliged,  from 
want  of  health,  to  return  to  his  father's  roof  in  little  mora  than  a  year,  yet  he 
persevered,  and  soon  attained  proficiency  in  his  business.  lie  made  occasional 
visits  to  his  mother's  relations  in  Glasgow,  a  city  at  that  time  considerably  ad- 
vanced in  that  career  of  manufacturing  industry  and  opulence,  for  which  it 
has  in  more  recent  times  been  so  eminently  distinguished.  In  that  city,  it  was 
his  intention  to  settle  as  a  mathematical  instrument-maker;  but  he  was  violently 
opposed  by  some  corporations  of  the  trades,  who  viewed  him  as  an  intruder 
upon  their  privileges,  although  the  business  which  he  intended  to  follow,  was  at 
that  time  little  practised  in  Scotland.  By  this  occurrence,  the  hopes  of  Watt 
had  been  well  nigh  frustrated,  and  the  energies  of  his  inventive  mind  had 
probably  been  turned  in  a  different  channel  from  that  which  distinguished  his 
future  years,  had  it  not  been  for  the  kind  and  well  directed  patronage  of  the 
professors  of  the  university.  In  the  year  1757,  this  learned  body,  who  had  at 
that  time  to  reckon  among  their  number  some  of  the  greatest  men  then  living — 
Smith,  the  political  economist,  Black,  the  chemist,  and  Simson,  the  geometer — 
conferred  upon  Watt  the  title  of  mathematical  instruroent^maker  to  the  univer- 
sity, with  all  the  privileges  of  that  office,  and  cliambers  within  the  walls  of 
their  venerable  seminary,  adjoining  the  apartments  occupied  by  the  cele- 
brated printers,  the  Messrs  Foulis.  He  continued  to  prosecute  his  avo- 
cation in  this  place  for  about  six  years,  during  which  time,  so  far  as  health 
and  necessary  employment  would  permit,  he  applied  himself  to  the  acquisition 
of  scientific  knowledge.  It  was  during  this  period,  also,  that  he  contracted  a 
lasting  friendship  with  l)r  Black,  whose  name  will  ever  be  conspicuous  in  the 
history  oT  philosophyj  for  his  valuable  additions  to  our  knowledge  of  the  doc- 
trine of  heat;  and  also  with  Hobison,  then  a  student  in  Glasgow  college, 
and  who  afterwards  filled  the  natural  philosophy  chair  in  the  university  of 
Edinburgh. 

This  period  of  Watt's  life  was  marked  by  an  incident,  which  in  itself  might 


.Ji^i 


SirTPfBeedlgr 


^^l^[ES     WATT, 

li.h.D.    F.  R.S.  E.fcU.  Sec. 


BLA.CHIE  *  gON,  '••'  »=■    "W^  ..nr»j,;,.i,"-... 


JAMES  WATT.  423 


appear  trifling,  and  not  at  all  out  of  the  course  of  his  ordinary  business,  but 
which  was  nevertheless  productive  of  results,  that  not  only  gave  immortality  to 
his  name,  but  impressed  a  great  and  lasting  change  on  the  commerce  and  man- 
ners  of  his  own  country,  and  also  of  a  great  portion  of  the  world.  We  here 
allude  to  a  circumstance  that  shall  shortly  be  mentioned,  that  led  to  the  im- 
provements of  Watt  on  the  steam  engine ;  and  the  events  of  his  life  are  so 
intimately  interwoven  with  the  history  of  the  perfection  of  this  extraordinary 
machine,  that  it  will  be  necessary,  in  a  brief  and  popular  way,  to  describe  tlie 
leading  principles  of  its  action. 

The  steam  engine,  at  the  time  of  which  we  speak,  was  constructed  after  the 
plan  invented  by  Newcomen.  The  chief  use  to  which  these  engines  were  ap- 
plied, was  the  pumping  of  water  from  coal  mines,  one  end  of  the  pump  rod 
being  attached  to  a  long  lever,  or  beam  suppoi-ted  in  the  middle.  To  tlie  other 
end  of  this  lever  was  attached  the  rod  of  a  piston,  capable  of  moving  up  and 
down  in  a  cylinder,  after  the  manner  of  a  common  syringe.  The  weight  of 
the  pump  rod,  &c.,  at  the  one  end  of  the  beam,  having  caused  that  end  to 
descend,  the  other  end  was  necessarily  raised,  and,  the  piston  rising  in  the 
cylinder,  steam  was  admitted  from  the  bottom  to  fill  the  vacuity.  But  when 
the  piston  arrived  at  the  top,  cold  water  was  injected  at  the  bottom,  and  by 
reducing  the  temperature  of  the  steam,  condensed  it,  forming  a  vacuum.  In 
this  state  of  things,  the  atmosphere  pressing  on  the  top  of  the  piston,  forced  it 
down,  and  raised  the  pump  rod  at  the  other  end  of  the  beam.  This  operation 
being  continued,  the  pumping  of  the  mine  was  carried  on.  Such  was  the  form 
of  the  steam  engine,  when  Watt  first  found  it;  and  such  is  its  construction  at 
many  coal  mines  even  in  our  own  day,  where  the  economy  of  fuel  is  not  a 
matter  of  any  importance. 

Anderson,  the  professor  of  natural  philosophy,  in  the  course  of  the  win- 
ter of  1763,  sent  a  model  of  Newcomen's  engine  to  Mr  Watt  in  order  to 
be  repaired.  This  was  accordingly  done,  and  the  model  set  in  operation,  and 
with  this  an  ordinary  mechanic  Avould  have  been  satisfied.  But  the  mind  of 
the  young  engineer  had  two  yeara  before  this  time  been  occupied  in  researches 
into  the  properties  of  steam.  During  the  winter  of  1761,  he  made  several 
vei'y  simple  yet  decisive  experiments,  for  the  most  part  with  apothecaries' 
phials,  by  which  he  found  that  a  cubic  inch  of  water  will  form  a  cubic 
foot  of  steam,  equal  in  elasticity  to  the  pressure  of  the  atmosphere,  and  also 
that  when  a  cubic  foot  of  steam  is  condensed  by  injecting  cold  water,  as  much 
heat  is  given  out  as  would  raise  six  cubic  inches  of  water  to  the  boiling  point. 
To  these  important  discoveries  in  the  theory  of  steam,  he  subsequently  added 
a  third,  beautifully  simple,  as  all  philosophical  truths  are,  and  valuable  from  its 
extensive  application  to  practical  purposes  :  he  found  that  the  latent  heat  of 
steam  decreases  as  the  sensible  heat  increases,  and  that  univei-sally  these 
two  added  together  make  a  constant  quantity  which  is  the  same  for  all  temper- 
atures. This  matter  is  commonly  misrepresented,  and  it  is  stated  not  only  in 
accounts  of  the  steam  engine,  but  also  in  memoirs  of  Mr  Watt,  that  the 
discoveries  of  Dr  Black  regarding  the  properties  of  heat  and  steam  laid  the 
foundation  of  all  Watt's  inventions.  Dr  Black  himself  gave  a  correct  state- 
ment of  the  matter,  and  frequently  mentioned  with  great  candour,  that 
Mr  Watt  discovered  unaided  the  latent  heat  of  steam,  and  having  coumiuni- 
cated  this  to  the  doctor,  that  great  chemist  was  agreeably  surprised  at  this 
confirmation  of  the  theory  he  had  already  formed,  and  explained  that  theory 
to  Mr  Watt;  a  theory  which  was  not  made  public  before  the  year  1762. 
During  the  same  year  Watt  made  sonic  experiments  with  a  Papin's  digester, 
causing  the  piston  of  a  syringe  to  move  up  and  down  by  the  force  of  steam  of 


424  JAMES  WATT. 


high  temperature,  on  the  principle  of  the  high  pressure  engine,  now  employed 
for  various  purposes.  But  he  gave  up  ihe  idea  from  fear  of  bnrstinp  the 
boiler,  and  the  difficulty  of  making  tight  joints.  These  facts  are  sufficient  to 
prove  that  he  had  at  this  time  some  idea  of  improving  the  steam  engine  ;  and 
lie  himself  modestly  says,  "  My  attention  was  first  directed  in  1759,  to  the  sub- 
ject of  steam  engines  by  Dr  Robison,  then  a  student  in  the  university  of 
Glasgow,  and  nearly  of  my  own  age.  Robison  at  that  time  threw  out  the  idea 
of  applying  the  power  of  the  steam  engine  to  the  moving  of  wheel  carriages 
and  to  otiier  purposes ;  but  the  scheme  was  not  matured,  and  was  soon 
abandoned  on  his  going  abroad."  His  active  mind,  tlius  prepared,  was  not 
likely  to  allow  the  defects  of  the  model  which  was  put  in  his  hands  to  pass  un- 
observed. This  interesting  model,  which  is  still  preserved  among  the  apparatus 
of  the  Glasgow  university,  has  a  cylinder  whose  diameter  is  two  incites,  tlie 
length  of  stroke  being  six.  Having  repaired  it,  he  tried  to  set  it  a-going,  the 
steam  being  formed  in  a  spherical  boiler  whose  diameter  was  about  nine  inches. 
In  the  course  of  these  trials  he  found  the  quantity  of  steam,  as  likewise  that 
of  the  cold  injection  water,  to  be  far  greater  in  proportion,  than  what  he  un- 
derstood was  required  for  engines  of  a  larger  size.  Tliis  great  waste  of  steam, 
and  consequently  fuel,  he  endeavoured  to  remedy  by  forming  cylinders  of  bad 
conductors  of  heat,  such  as  Avood  saturated  with  oil,  but  this  had  not  the  desired 
effect.  At  last  the  fact  occurred  to  him,  that  the  cylinder  was  never  suf- 
ficiently cooled  down  in  order  to  obtain  a  complete  vacuum.  For  some  time 
before  this  it  had  been  found  by  Dr  Cullen  that  under  diminished  pressure 
there  is  a  corresponding  fall  of  the  boiling  point  It  now  became  necessary  to 
ascertain  the  relation  which  the  boiling  point  bears  to  the  pressure  on  the  sur- 
face of  the  water.  He  was  not  possessed  of  the  necessary  instruments  to  try 
the  boiling  points  under  pressures  less  than  that  of  the  atmosphere,  but  having 
tried  numerous  points  under  increased  pressures,  he  laid  down  a  curve  whose 
ordinates  represented  the  pressures  and  abscissas  the  corresponding  boiling 
points,  and  thus  discovered  the  equation  qf  the  boiling  point.  These  consider- 
ations led  Watt,  after  much  reflection,  to  the  true  method  of  overcoming  the 
difficulties  in  the  operation  of  Newcomen's  engine.  The  two  things  to  be  ef- 
fected were,  1st,  to  keep  the  cylinder  always  as  hot  as. the  steam  to  be  admitted 
into  it,  and  secondly,  to  cool  down  the  condensed  steam  and  the  injection  water 
used  for  condensation  to  a  temperature  not  exceeding  100  degrees.  It  was 
early  in  the  summer  of  1765  that  the  method  of  accomplishing  these  two  ob- 
jects  was  first  matured  in  his  mind.  It  then  occurred  to  him  that  if  a  communi- 
cation were  opened  between  a  cylinder  containing  steam  and  another  vessel 
exhausted  of  air  and  other  fluids,  the  steam  would  immediately  rush  into  the 
empty  vessel,  and  continue  so  to  do  until  an  equilibrium  was  established,  and 
by  keeping  that  vessel  very  cool  the  steam  would  continue  to  enter  and  be  con- 
densed. A  difficulty  still  remained  to  be  overcome,  how  was  the  condensed 
steam  and  injection  water,  together  with  the  air,  which  must  necessarily  ac- 
company, to  be  withdrawn  from  the  condensing  vessel.  Watt  thought  of  two 
methods,  one  by  a  long  pipe,  sunk  into  the  earth,  and  the  other  by  employing 
a  pump,  wrought  by  the  engine  itself;  the  latter  was  adopted.  Tlius  was 
laid  open  the  leading  principle  of  a  machine  the  most  powerful,  tlie  most 
regular,  and  the  most  ingenious,  ever  invented  by  mnn. 

Watt  constructed  a  model,  the  cylinder  of  which  was  nine  inches  diameter, 
making  several  improvements  besides  those  above  alluded  to.  He  sui-rounded 
the  cylinder  with  a  casing,  the  intervening  space  being  filled  with  steam  to 
keep  the  cylinder  warm.  He  also  put  a  cover  on  the  top,  causing  the  piston 
rod  to  move  through  a  hole  in  it,  and  the  piston  was  rendered  air-tight  by 


JAMES  WATT,  425 


being  lubricated  uith  \vax  .ind  tallow,  instead  of  water  as  formerly.  The 
model  answered  the  expectations  of  tlie  inventor,  but  in  tlje  course  of  liis  trials 
the  beam  broke,  and  lie  set  it  aside  for  some  time. 

In  tracing  the  progress  of  improvement  in  tlie  steam  engine,  we  have  been 
obliged  to  pass  over  some  incidents  in  his  life  which  took  place  during  the 
same  period,  and  wliich  we  now  proceed  to  notice.  In  tlie  course  of  the  year 
17G3,  Mr  Watt  married  his  cousin  3Iiss  3Iiller,  daughter  of  the  chief 
magistrate  of  Calton,  Glasgow ;  previously  to  which  he  removed  from  his 
apartments  in  the  college,  and  opened  a  shop  in  the  Saltniarket,  opposite  St 
Andrew's  Square,  for  the  purpose  of  carrying  on  his  business  as  Mathematical 
and  Philosophical  instrument-maker.  Here  he  applied  himself  occasionally  in 
making  and  repairing  musical  instruments,  and  made  several  improvements  on 
tlie  organ.  He  afterwards  removed  to  Buchanan's  land  in  the  Trongate,  a  lit- 
tle west  of  the  Tontine,  and  in  17G3  he  shut  shop,  and  removed  to  a  private 
house  in  King  Street,  nearly  opposite  to  the  Green  market.  It  was  not,  how- 
ever, in  any  of  these  residences  that  the  interesting  experiments  and  valuable 
discoveries  connected  with  the  steam  engine  were  made  ;  the  experiments  were 
pei-formed,  and  the  model  erected  in  the  delft  work  at  the  Broomielaw  quay, 
in  which  concern  AVatt  soon  after  became  a  partner,  and  continued  so  to  the 
end  of  his  life. 

In  17G»,  Dr  Lind  brought  from  India  a  perspective  machine,  invented  there 
by  a  3Ir  Hurst,  and  showed  it  to  his  friend  Mr  Watt,  who,  by  an  ingenious 
application  of  the  principle  of  the  parallel  ruler,  contrived  a  machine 
mucli  lighter,  and  of  more  easy  application.  Blany  of  these  maciiines  were 
made  and  sent  to  various  parts  of  ibc  world;  and  Adams,  the  eminent  philoso- 
phical iastrament-maker,  copied  cue  of  those  sent  to  London,  and  made  them 
for  sale. 

Mr  Watt,  having  relinquished  the  business  of  mathematical  instrument- 
maker,  commenced  that  of  civil  engineer,  and  in  the  course  of  1767,  he  sur- 
veyed the  Forth  and  Clyde  canal ;  but  the  bill  for  carrying  on  this  gi'eat  and 
beneficial  public  work  being  lost  in  parliament,  his  attention  was  directed  to 
the  superintendence  of  the  3Ionkland  canal,  for  which  he  had  previously  pre- 
pared the  estimates  and  a  survey.  He  likewise  surveyed  for  the  pro- 
jected canal  between  Perth  and  Forfar,  as  also  for  the  Crinan  canal,  which 
was  subsequently  executed  under  the  superintendence  of  Rennie. 

In  1773,  the  importance  of  an  inland  navigation  in  the  northern  part  of 
Scotland  between  the  eastern  and  western  seas  became  so  great,  that  Mr  Watt 
was  employed  to  make  a  survey  of  the  Caledonian  canal,  and  to  report  on  the 
practicability  of  connecting  that  remarkable  chain  of  lakes  and  valleys. 
These  surveys  he  made,  and  reported  so  favourably  of  the  practicability  of 
tlie  undertaking,  that  it  would  have  been  immediately  executed,  had  not  the 
forfeited  lands,  from  which  the  funds  were  to  be  derived,  been  restored  to  their 
former  proprietors.  This  great  national  work  was  afterwards  executed"  by  Mr 
Telford,  on  a  more  magnificent  scale  than  had  originally  been  intended. 

What  Johnson  said  of  Goldsmith  may  with  equal  justice  be  applied  to 
Watt,  "  he  touched  not  that  which  he  did  not  adorn."  In  the  course  of  his 
surveys,  his  mind  was  ever  bent  on  improving  the  instruments  he  employed,  or 
in  inventing  others  to  facilitate  or  correct  his  operations.  During  the  period 
of  which  we  have  been  speaking  ha  invented  two  micrometers  for  measuring  dis- 
tances not  easily  accessible,  such  as  arms  of  the  sea.  Five  years  after  the  inven- 
tion of  these  ingenious  instruments,  one  3Ir  Green  obtained  a  premium  for  an  in- 
vention similar  to  one  of  tliem,  from  the  Society  of  Arts,  notwithstanding  the 
evidence  of  Smeaton  and  other  ;iroofs  that  Watt  was  the  original  contriver. 

IV.  '  2" 


42G  JAMES  WATT. 


Mr  Watt  applied  for  lettei's  patent  in  1768,  for  **  methods  of  lessening  the 
consumption  of  steam,  and  consequently  of  fuel  in  the  steam  engine,"  whidi 
passed  the  seals  in  January,  17G9.  Besides  the  improvements,  or  rather  inven- 
tions, already  alluded  to,  this  patent  contained  in  its  specification  methods  to 
employ  the  steam  expansively  upon  the  piston,  and,  where  water  was  not  plenti- 
ful, to  work  the  engine  by  tliis  force  of  steam  only,  by  dischai-ging  the  steam 
into  the  open  air  after  it  has  done  its  office ;  and  also  methods  of  forming  a 
rotatory  steam  engine.  Thus  was  completed  Watt's  single  reciprocating  engine, 
and  while  the  patent  was  passing 'through  the  different  stages  an  engagement 
was  entered  into  between  the  inventor  and  Dr  Roebuck  of  the  Carron  iron 
works,  a  man  equally  eminent  for  kindness  of  heart,  ability,  and  enterprise. 
The  terms  of  this  agreement  Avere,  that  Dr  Roebuck,  in  consideration  of  his  risk 
of  capital,  should  receive  two-thirds  of  the  clear  profits  of  the  sale  of  the 
engines  which  they  manufactured.  Dr  Roebuck  at  this  time  rented  the  large 
coal  mines  at  Kinneil,  near  Borrowstownness,  and  under  the  superintendence  of 
Mr  Watt  an  engine  was  erected  at  Kinneil  house,  the  cylinder  of  which  was 
made  of  block  tin,  being  eighteen  inches  diameter.  The  action  of  this  engine 
far  surpassed  even  the  sanguine  expectations  of  the  proprietors.  Preparations 
were  accordingly  made  for  the  manufacture  of  the  new  steam  engine  ;  but  tiie 
pecuniary  difficulties  in  which  Dr  Roebuck  became  at  this  time  involved,  threw 
a  check  on  the  proceedings.  From  this  period  till  the  end  of  1773,  during 
which  time,  as  we  have  seen,  Mr  Watt  was  employed  in  surveys,  &c.,  little  was 
done  with  the  patent  right  obtained  in  1769.  About  the  end  of  the  year 
1773,  while  Mr  Watt  was  engaged  in  his  survey  of  the  Caledonian  canal,  ho 
received  intimation  from  Glasgow  of  the  death  of  his  wife,  who  left  him  a 
son  and  a  daughter. 

His  fame  as  an  engineer  had  now  become  generally  known,  and  about 
the  commencement  of  1774,  he  received  an  invitation  from  Mr  Matthew 
Boulton,  of  the  Soho  foundery,  near  Bii-mingham,  to  enter  into  copartnership, 
for  the  manufacture  of  the  steam  engine.  Mr  Watt  prevailed  upon  Dr  Roe- 
buck to  sell  his  share  of  the  patent  right  to  Mr  Boulton,  and  immediately  pro- 
ceeded to  Birmingham,  and  entered  on  business  with  his  new  partner.  This 
new  alliance  was  not  only  exceedingly  fortunate  for  the  parties  themselves,  but 
forms  an  important  era  in  the  history  of  the  manufactures  of  Great  Britain. 
Few  men  were  so  well  qualified  as  Boulton  to  appreciate  the  merits  of  Watt's 
inventions,  or  possessed  of  so  much  enterprise  and  capital  to  put  them  into 
operation.  He  had  already  established  the  foundery  at  Soho  on  a  scale  of 
magnificence  and  extent,  not  at  that  time  elsewhere  to  be  found  ;  and  the  in- 
troduction of  Watt  made  an  incalculable  addition  to  the  extent  and  regularity 
of  its  operation. 

The  length  of  time  and  great  outlay  necessary  for  bringing  the  manufacture 
of  steam  engines  to  such  a  state  as  would  yield  a  remuneration,  was  now  appa- 
rent to  Mr  Watt,  and  he  clearly  saw  that  the  few  years  of  his  patent  which  had 
yet  to  run,  would  not  be  by  any  means  sufficient  to  yield  an  adequate  return. 
Early,  therefore,  in  1774,  he  applied  for  an  extension  of  his  patent  right,  and 
by  the  zealous  assistance  of  Drs  Roebuck  and  Robison,  he  obtained  this  four 
years  afterwards,  the  extension  being  granted  for  twenty-five  years.  The  year 
following  the  first  applTcation  for  the  extension  of  the  patent,  tlie  manufacture 
of  steam  engines  was  commenced  at  Soho,  under  the  firm  Boulton,  Watt,  and 
Co.  ^lany  engines  were  made  at  this  foundery,  and  licenses  granted  to  miners 
in  various  parts  of  the  country  to  use  their  engines,  on  condition  that  the 
patentees  should  receive  a  third  part  of  the  saving  of  coals  of  the  new  engine, 
compared  with  one  of  the  same  power  on  Newcomen's  construclion.     Au  iden 


JAMES  WATT.  427 

may  be  formed  of  the  profits  arising  by  this  arrangement,  when  we  know  thnt 
from  the  proprietors  of  throe  large  engines  erected  at  Cliacewater  in  Cornwall, 
Watt  and  Boulton  received  ^6800  anniially. 

John  Smeaton  had  for  many  years  been  employed  in  erecting  and  improving 
tlie  steam  engine  on  Newcomen's  principle,  and  did  as  much  for  its  perfection 
as  beauty  and  proportion  of  mechanical  construction  could  effect.  The  fame  of 
Smeaton  does  not  rest  on  his  improrements  on  the  steam  engine.  What  he  has 
done  in  other  departments  of  engineering,  is  amply  sufficient  to  rank  him  as 
one  of  the  most  ingenious  men  England  ever  produced.  Yet  even  what  he  has  left 
behind  him,  in  the  improvement  of  Newcomen's  engine,  is  well  worthy  the 
study,  and  will  ever  elicit  the  admiration,  of  the  practical  mechanic  To  a  man 
of  weaker  mind  than  Smeaton,  it  must  have  been  galling  to  see  all  the  ingenuity 
and  application  which  he  had  bestowed  on  the  subject  of  steam  power,  rendered 
ahnost  useless  by  the  discovery  of  a  younger  man.  Yet  when  he  saw  Watt's 
improvement,  he  was  struck  with  its  excellence  and  simplicity,  and  with  that 
readiness  and  candour  which  are  ever  the  associates  of  true  genius,  he  com- 
municated to  INIr  Watt,  by  a  complimentary  letter,  the  high  opinion  he  held 
of  his  invention  ;  admitting  that  *"'  the  old  engine,  even  when  made  to  do  its 
best,  was  now  driven  from  every  place,  where  fuel  could  be  considered  of  any 
value."  How  different  this  from  the  treatment  he  received  from  inferior  in- 
dividuals, labouring  in  the  same  field  !  His  right  to  the  invention  of  a  separate 
condenser,  was  disputed  by  several,  whose  claims  were  publicly  and  satisfac- 
torily refuted.  Among  others,  he  Avas  attacked  in  a  strain  of  vulgar  abuse,  and 
a  tissue  of  arrant  falsehoods,  by  a  Jlr  Hornblower,  who  Avrote  the  article 
"  Steam  Engine,"  in  the  first  and  second  editions  of  Gregory's  3Iechanics. 
This  Mr  Hornblower,  not  contented  with  giving  his  own  sliallow  evidence 
against  Watt,  has,  with  the  characteristic  grovelling  which  pervades  the  whole 
of  his  article,  endeavoured  to  give  weight  to  his  assertions,  by  associating  witli. 
himself  a  respectable  man.  Mr  Hornblower  states,  that,  in  a  conversation  with 
Mr  S.  3Ioor,  secretary  to  the  Society  for  tlie  Encouragement  of  Arts,  that 
gentleman  had  stated  that  Mr  Gainsborough  was  the  true  inventor  of  the  sepa- 
rate condenser.  Mr  Moor  had  doubtless  an  intimate  knowledge  of  the  true 
state  of  the  matter  ;  and,  fortunately  for  his  reputation  as  a  sincere  and  candid 
man,  we  find  him  controvert  this  upon  oath,  at  his  examination  in  the  case, 
Watt  and  Boulton  verstis  Bull,  in  1792. 

In  1775,  Mr  Watt  married,  for  the  second  time.  The  lady,  Bliss  M'Gre- 
gor,  was  the  daughter  of  3Ir  M'Gregor,  a  wealthy  merchant  of  Glasgow,  who, 
as  will  be  seen  hereafter,  was  the  first  in  Britain,  in  conjunction  with  3Ir  Watt, 
to  apply  chlorine  in  the  process  of  bleaching.  From  this  time,  Watt  applied 
himself  assiduously  to  the  improvement  of  that  powerful  machine  for  which 
he  had  already  done  so  mucli.  In  17SI,  he  took  out  a  patent  for  the  re- 
gulating motion,  and  that  beautiful  contrivance,  the  sun  and  planet  wheel. 
The  short  history  of  this  latter  invention,  gives  an  apt  illustration  of  his 
exhaustless  powers  of  contrivance.  For  the  purpose  of  converting  the  re- 
ciprocating motion  of  the  large  beam  into  a  rotatory  movement  for  driving 
machinery,  he  had  recourse  to  that  simple  contrivance,  the  crank  ;  but  while 
it  was  preparing  at  Soho,  one  of  the  workmen  communicated  it  to  3Ir  Steed,  who 
immediately  took  out  a  patent,  and  thus  frustrated  Watt's  views.  Mr  Watt  be- 
thought himself  of  a  substitute,  and  hit  upon  the  happy  idea  of  the  sun  and 
planet  wheel.  This  and  the  like  occurrences  may  have  given  him  that  fond- 
ness for  patents,  with  which  he  has  frequently  been  charged. 

During  the  course  of  the  following  year,  two  distinct  patents  were  granted  to 
Mr  Watt,  one  in  February,  and  the  other  in  July,  for  an  expansive  engine — 


J 


428  JAMES  WATT. 


six  contrivances  for  regulating  the  motion — double  acting  engine — two  cylin- 
ders— parallel  motion,  by  rack  and  sector — semirotative  engine — and  steam 
wheel.  A  third  was  granted  in  1784,  for  a  rotative  engine — parallel  mo- 
tions— portable  engine  and  steam  carriage — Avorking  hammers — improved 
hand  gear,  and  new  method  of  working  the  valves.  The  most  important  of 
these  inventions  are,  the  double  acting  engine,  in  which  steam  is  admitted 
both  below  and  above  the  piston  alternately,  steam  pressure  being  thus  em- 
ployed to  press  on  each  side  of  the  piston,  while  a  vacuum  was  formed  over  the 
other.  By  this  contrivance,  he  was  enabled  to  double  the  power  of  the  en- 
gine, Avithout  increasing  the  dimensions  of  tlie  cylinder.  To  the  complete 
effecting  of  this,  he  was  obliged  to  cause  the  piston  rod  to  move  througli  a  stuf- 
fing box  at  the  top  of  the  cylinder ;  a  contrivance,  it  must  be  stated,  wliich  had 
been  some  years  previous  applied  by  Smeaton,  in  the  construction  of  pumps. 
Simple  as  these  additions  may  at  first  appear,  they  were,  nevertheless,  followed 
by  many  great  advantages.  They  increased  the  uniformity  of  motion,  and  at 
the  same  time  diminished  the  extent  of  cooling  surface,  the  size  of  boiler,  and 
the  weight  and  magnitude  of  the  whole  machinery.  Another  vast  improvement 
involved  in  these  patents,  is  the  expansive  engine  in  which  the  steam  was 
let  fully  in,  at  the  beginning  of  tlie  stroke,  and  the  valves  shut,  when  the 
piston  had  advanced  througli  a  part  of  its  progress,  the  rest  being  completed  by 
the  expansion  of  the  steam;  which  arrangement  greatly  increases  the  power. 
This  engine  was  included  in  the  patent  for  1782  ;  though  JMr  Hornblower  had 
published  something  of  the  same  nature  the  year  before.  But  an  engine  on 
the  expansive  principle  was  erected  by  Watt  at  Shadwell  iron  works  in  1778, 
and  even  two  years  before  expansive  engines  had  been  manufactured  at  Soho ; 
facts  which  secure  to  Watt  the  honour'  of  the  priority  of  discovery.  That  in- 
genious combination  of  levers  which  guided  the  piston  rod,  and  is  called  the 
parallel  motion,  was  secured  by  patent  of  1784,  and  remains  to  this  day 
unsurpassed  as  a  beautifully  simple  mechanical  contrivance. 

In  1785,  a  patent  was  granted  to  Mr  Watt  for  a  new  method  of  constructing 
furnaces,  and  the  consumption  of  smoke.  He  likewise  applied  to  the  stenm 
engine  the  governor,  or  conical  pendulum,  the  steam  and  condension  gauges, 
and  the  indicator.  About  the  same  time,  in  consequence  of  the  delay  and  ex- 
pense attendant  on  the  numerous  experiments  towards  the  perfection  of  this 
vast  creator  and  distributor  of  power,  he  found  it  necessary  to  apply  to  par- 
liament for  an  extension  of  his  patent,  which  was  granted  to  the  end  of  the 
eighteenth  century.  By  this  grant,  the  proprietors  of  the  Solio  foundery  were 
enabled  speedily  to  realize  a  great  fortune. 

In  the  winter  of  the  year  1786,  the  subject  of  this  memoir,  together  with 
his  able  and  active  partner,  went  to  Paris,  at  the  solicitation  of  the  French 
government,  in  order  to  improve  the  method  of  raising  water  at  3Iarley.  Here 
fllr  Watt  met  with  most  of  the  eminent  men  of  science,  who  at  that  time 
adorned  the  French  metropolis  ;  and  among  the  rest,  tlie  celebi-ated  chemist, 
Berthollet.  The  French  philosopher  had  discovered,  in  1785,  the  bleaching 
properties  of  chlorine,  and  communicated  the  fact  to  Mr  Watt^  willi  the  power 
of  patenting  the  invention  in  England.  This  Mr  Watt  modestly  declined  do- 
ing, on  the  ground  that  he  was  not  the  author  of  the  discovery.  Mr  Watt  saw 
the  value  of  this  new  process,  and  communicated  the  matter,  tlirough  the  course 
of  the  following  year,  to  his  father-in-law,  iMr  M'Gregor,  who  at  that  time  car- 
ried on  a  large  bleaching  establishment  in  the  vicinity  of  Glasgow.  He  sent 
an  account  of  the  process,  together  with  some  of  the  bleaching  liquor,  in  March, 
1787  ;  and  the  process  of  bleaching  by  the  new  method  was  immediately  com- 
menced at  3Ir  McGregor's  field,  and  fire  hundred  pieces  were  speedily  executed 


JAMES  WATT.  429 


to  entire  satisfaction.  Early  in  the  following  year,  two  foreigners  niado  an 
attempt  to  gain  a  patent  for  the  new  bleaching  process  ;  but  they  were  opposed 
by  IVIr  Walt,  and  Jlessrs  Cooper  and  Henry  of  3Ianchester,  all  of  whom  had 
already  bleaciied  by  Berthollet's  method.  Notwithstanding  ihe  misrepresenta- 
tions in  several  histories  of  bleaching,  it  is  manifest  from  these  facts,  as  well  as 
from  the  dates  of  several  letters  of  INIr  Watt  and  Sir  Henry,  that  the  great  im- 
prover of  tlie  steam  engine,  had  also  the  honour  of  introducing  the  process  of 
bleaching  by  chlorine  into  Great  Britain;  and  though  he  was  not  the  original 
discoverer,  yet  he  greatly  simplified  and  economised  the  process  of  obtaining 
the  discharging  agent  employed,  and  the  vessels  and  other  arrangements  used 
in  the  art  of  bleaching.  Among  other  improvements  may  be  mentioned,  his 
method  of  testing  the  strength  of  the  chlorine  liquor,  by  ascertaining  how 
much  of  it  is  necessary  to  discharge  the  colour  of  a  given  quantity  of  infusion 
of  cochineal.  The  benefits  which  31r  Watt  confen-ed  on  chemical  science,  did 
not  terminate  here.  From  a  letter  written  to  Dr  Priestley  in  1763,  and  in 
another  to  31,  De  Luc,  in  the  same  year,  he  communicated  his  important  dis- 
covei*y  of  the  composition  of  water.  But  in  the  beginning  of  the  following 
year,  jMr  Cavendish  read  a  paper  on  the  same  subject,  claiming  to  himself  the 
honour  of  discovery  ;  ar.d  in  the  histories  of  chemistry,  the  claims  of  Caven- 
dish are  silently  admitted.  There  is  a  confusion  of  dates  in  the  documents  on 
this  subject,  which  at  the  present  day  it  is  impossible  to  reconcile;  but  from  the 
characters  of  the  two  men,  we  are  inclined  to  think  that  each  made  the  dis- 
covery independently  of  the  other,  and  that  therefore  the  credit  is  due  to 
both.  3Ir  Watt's  letter  to  IM.  De  Luc  was  read  before  the  Royal  Society,  and 
published  in  their  Transactions  for  1784,  under  the  title  of"  Thoughts  on  the 
Constituent  parts  of  V\'ater,  and  of  Dephlogisticated  Air  ;  with  an  Account  of 
some  Experiments  on  that  subject."  Mr  Watt  also  contributed  a  paper  on  the 
medical  properties  and  application  cf  the  factitious  airs,  to  the  treatise  of  Dr 
Beddoes  on  pneumatic  medicine,  and  continued  during  the  latter  period  of  his 
life  deeply  to  engage  himself  in  chemical  pursuits. 

A  patent  was  granted  to  Mr  Watt  in  1780,  for  a  machine  for  copying  let- 
ters and  drawings.  This  machine,  Avhich  soon  became  well  known,  and  exten- 
sively  used,  was  manufactured  by  Messrs  Boulton  and  Kier,  under  the  firm  of 
James  Walt  and  Company.  He  was  led  to  this  invention,  from  a  desire  to 
abridge  the  lime  necessarily  spent  in  taking  copies  of  the  numerous  letters  he 
was  obliged  to  write.  It  was  constructed  in  two  forms,  on  the  principle  of  the 
rolling  press,  one  of  them  being  large,  and  fitted  for  oflices  ;  the  other  light, 
and  capable  of  being  inclosed  in  a  portable  writing  desk.  Through  the  course 
of  the  following  year,  Mr  Watt  invented  a  steam  drying  apparatus,  for  his 
friend,  3Ir  3I'Gregor,  of  Glasgow.  For  this  machine  he  never  took  out  a  patent, 
although  it  was  the  first  thing  of  the  kind  ever  contrived;  nor  was  there  ever  any 
drawing  or  description  of  it  published  during  his  lifetime.'  During  the  winter 
of  1784,  Mr  Watt  made  arrangemenU  for  heating  his  study  by  steam  ;  which 
method  has  since  been  extensively  applied  to  the  heating  of  private  houses,  con- 
servatories, hot-houses,  and  manufactories.  Concerning  the  history  of  this  ap- 
paratus, it  is  but  justice  to  state,  that  colonel  Cook  had,  in  the  Philosophical 
Transactions  for  1745,  described  a  method  of  "heating  apartments  by  means  of 
the  steam  of  water  conveyed  along  the  walls  by  pipes  ;"  but  there  is  no  proof 
that  this  was  known  to  3Ir  Walt 

In  the  year  1800,  Mr  Watt  withdrew  from  the  concern  at  Soho,  delivering 
liis  share  of  the  business  to  his  two  sons,  James  and  Gregory,  the  latter  of  whom 
died    in    the  prime    of   life,  much    regretted   by  all   uho  knew  him.     Afier 
'  See  Edinburgh  Eiicyc  xviii..  Steam  Drying. 


430  JAMES  WATT. 


having  given  ample  proofs  of  great  niexital  endowments  3Ir  Watt  thus  retired 
from  business,  witii  a  well  earned  competency,  which  enabled  him  to  enjoy  tha 
evening  of  n  well  spent  life  with  ease  and  comfort  in  the  bosom  of  his  family. 
At  no  time  had  he  taken  any  active  sliare  in  the  management  of  the  busi- 
ness of  the  Soho  foundery,  nor  were  his  visits  to  it,  even  while  he  was  a  partner, 
by  any  means  frequent.  Mr  Boulton  was  a  man  of  excellent  address,  great 
wealth,  of  business  habits,  and  full  of  enterprise,  and  contributed  greatly  to  tha 
improvement  of  the  steam  engine,  by  taking  upon  himself  the  entire  manage- 
ment of  the  works  at  Soho  :  he  thus  relieved  from  all  worldly  concern,  the  mind 
of  his  illustrious  partner,  which  was  much  more  profitably  employed  on  those 
profound  and  valuable  researches,  by  which  he  has  added  so  largely  to  the 
field  of  science.  As  Dupin  well  observes,  "men  who  devote  themselves  en- 
tirely to  the  improvement  of  industi-y,  will  feel  in  all  their  force  the  services 
that  Boulton  has  rendered  to  the  arts  and  mechanical  sciences,  by  freeing  tha 
genius  of  Watt  from  a  crowd  of  extraneous  difficulties  which  would  have  con- 
sumed those  days  that  were  far  better  dedicated  to  the  improvement  of  tlic 
useful  arts." 

Although  3Ir  Watt  retired  from  public  business,  he  did  not  relax  in  his  ar- 
dour  for  scientific  pursuits  and  new  inventions.  Towards  the  end  of  the  year 
1809, he  wasapplied  to  by  the  Glasgow  Water  Company  to  assist  them  in  pointing 
out  a  method  of  leading  water  across  the  river,  from  a  well  on  the  south  side, 
which  atlbrded  a  natural  filter.  From  a  consideration  of  the  structure  of  the 
lobster's  tail,  he  funned  the  idea  of  a  flexible  main,  with  ball  and  socket 
joints,  to  be  laid  across  the  bed  of  the  river,  and  which  was  constructed  accord- 
ing to  his  plan  in  the  summer  of  IS  19.  This  ingenious  contrivance  gave  such 
satisfaction,  that  another  precisely  similar  was  added  a  short  time  afterwards. 
Two  years  subsequent  to  this,  he  received  the  thanks  of  the  Board  of  Admiralty, 
for  his  opinion  and  advice  regarding  the  formation  of  the  docks  then  carrying 
on  at  Sheerness. 

About  the  year  1813,  it  was  proposed  to  publish  a  complete  edition  of  Dr 
Robison's  works,  and  the  materials  were  delivered,  for  the  purpose  of  editing, 
into  the  hands  of  his  able  friend,  Piayfair,  who,  not  having  sufficient  leisure 
for  such  an  undertaking,  transmitted  them  to  Sir  U.  Brewster.  The  Litter 
gentleman  applied  to  IMr  Watt  for  his  assistance  ia  the  revision  of  the  article 
"  Steam  Engine,"  for  which  article  he  had  originally  furnished  some  materials, 
when  it  first  appeared  in  the  Encyclopasdia  Britannica;  and  to  the  article,  in  its 
new  form,  he  furnished  many  valuable  corrections  and  additions. 

In  1817,  Mr  Watt  paid  a  visit  to  his  native  country  ;  and  it  surprised  and 
delighted  his  friends  to  find  that  he  enjoyed  good  health,  his  mind  possessed  its 
wonted  vigour,  and  his  conversation  its  wonted  charms.  During  the  last  years 
of  his  life,  he  en)ployed  himself  in  contriving  a  machine  for  taking  copies  of 
pieces  of  sculpture.  This  machine  never  received  the  finishing  touch  of  its  in- 
ventor's liand ;  but  it  was  bi'ought  to  such  perfection,  that  seven  specimens  were 
executed  by  it  in  n  very  creditable  manner.  Some  of  these  he  distributed 
among  his  friends,  "  r.a  the  productions  of  a  young  artist,  just  entering  his 
eighty-third  year."  When  tins  machine  was  considerably  advanced  in  construc- 
tion, Mr  Watt  learned  that  a  neighbouring  gentleman  had  been  for  some  time 
engaged  in  a  similar  undertaking ;  and  a  proposal  was  made  to  IMr  Watt,  that 
they  should  jointly  take  out  a  patent,  whicli  he  declined,  on  the  ground,  that 
from  his  advanced  age,  it  would  be  unwise  for  him  to  enter  upon  any  new  spe- 
culation. It  was  always  Mr  Watt's  opinion  that  this  gentleman  had  no  know- 
ledge whatever  of  ilie  constniction  of  the  machine. 

The  health  of  3Ir  Watt,  which  was  naturally  delicate,  became  gradually  bel- 


JAMES  WATT. 


431 


ter  towards  the  latter  period  of  his  long  and  useful  life.  Intense  headaches 
arising  from  an  organic  defect  in  the  digestive  system,  often  afflicted  him. 
These  were  often  aggravated  and  induced  by  the  severe  study  to  which  he  com- 
iiionly  subjected  himself,  and  the  perplexity  arising  from  the  frequent  law- 
suits  in  uhich  he  had  been  engaged  towards  the  close  of  the  eiohteenth  cen- 
tury. It  must  not  be  inferred  from  this  last  statement,  that  this  great  man 
whose  discoveries  we  have  been  recounting,  was  by  any  means  litigiously  in- 
clined. His  quiet  and  peaceful  mind  was  ever  disposed  to  shrink  from  the 
agitations  of  paper  wars  and  law  pleas,  and  to  repose  in  the  quiet  retreats  of 
science.  IMany  attempts  were  made  to  pirate  his  inventions  and  to  encroach 
upon  his  patent  rights,  against  which  he  never  made  any  other  defence  tlian 
that  which  become  an  honest  man,  i.  e.  an  appeal  for  the  protection  of  the  law 
of  the  land.  He  lived  to  see  all  these  attempts  to  rob  him  of  the  profits  of  his 
inventions,  as  well  as  the  envy  and  detraction  which  are  ever  the  followers  of 
merit,  silenced  for  ever,  and  terminated  a  long,  useful,  and  honourable  life  in 
the  full  possession  of  his  mental  faculties,  at  his  residence  at  Heathfield  in  Staf- 
fordshire, on  the  25lh  of  August,  1819,  having  reached  his  eighty-fourth 
year. 

The  fame  of  Watt  will  in  future  ages  rest  secure  upon  the  imperishable  basis 
of  liis  many  discoveries,  and  he  will  ever  be  ranked  in  the  first  class  of  tliose 
great  men  who  have  benefited  the  human  race  by  the  improvement  of  the  arts 
of  industry  and  peace.  Even  dui-ing  his  lifetime  this  was  known  and  recog- 
nized, and  he  received  several  honorary  distinctions.  In  1784,  he  was  elected 
a  fellow  of  the  Royal  Society  of  Edinburgh,  and  the  year  following  he  became 
fellow  of  the  Royal  Society  of  London.  In  1787,  he  Avas  chosen  con-espond- 
ing  member  of  the  Batavian  Society;  in  1806,  he  received  the  honorary  de- 
gree of  LL.D.  from  the  university  of  Glasgow ;  and  ten  years  later,  he  was 
made  a  member  of  the  national  institute  of  France. 

Respecting  the  private  character  of  Watt  it  would  be  difficult  to  communi- 
cate an  adequate  idea  of  its  excellence.  Those  who  knew  him  will  ever 
remember  that  in  his  private  intercourse  with  society  he  elicited  from  them 
more  love  and  admiration  than  they  can  ever  express.  He  was  benevolent  aud 
kind  to  all  those  who  came  about  him,  or  solicited  either  his  patronage  or  ad- 
vice. His  conversation  was  easy,  fluent,  and  devoid  of  all  formality  ;  replete 
with  profound  and  accurate  information  on  all  subjects,  blended  with  pertinent 
and  amusing  anecdote — such  that,  when  combined  with  liis  plain  unafiected  lan- 
guage, the  mellow  tones  of  his  manly  voice,  his  natural  good  humour  and  ex- 
pressive countenance,  produced  an  effect  on  those  around  him  wiiich  will 
hardly  ever  fade  from  memory.  He  read  much,  and  could  easily  i-emem- 
ber  and  readily  apply  all  that  was  valuable  of  what  he  read.  He  was 
versed  in  several  of  the  modern  languages,  antiquities,  law,  and  the  fine  arts, 
and  was  largely  read  in  light  literature.  His  character  was  drawn  up  by  his 
friend  Francis  Jeffrey,  with  a  fidelity  and  eloquence  that  has  made  it 
known  to  almost  every  one.  We  will,  thei-efore,  forbear  to  quote  it  here,  and 
bring  this  memoir  to  a  conclusion  by  placing  before  the  reader  what  has  been 
said  of  Watt  by  his  illustrious  countryman  and  friend,  the  author  of  Waverley. 
In  the  playful  letter  to  captain  Clutterbuck  in  the  introduction  to  the  3Ionas- 
tery,  Sir  Walter  Scott  gives  the  following  lively  description  of  his  meeting  in 
Edinburgh  Tvith  this  remarkable  man: — "Did  you  know  the  celebrated  Watt  of 
Birmingham,  captain  Clutterbuck  ?  I  believe  not,  though,  from  what  I  am  about 
to  state,  he  would  not  have  failed  to  have  sought  an  acquaintance  with  you. 
It  was  only  once  my  fortune  to  meet  him,  whether  in  body  or  in  spirit  it  matters 
not.     There  were  assembled  about  half  a  score  of  our  northern  lights,  who  had 


432  JAMES  WATT. 


amongst  them,  heaveo  knows  liovr,  a  well  known  character  of  your  country, 
Jcdediah  Cleishbotham.  This  worthy  person  having  come  to  Edinburgh  during 
the  Christmas  vacation,  had  become  a  sort  of  lion  in  the  place,  and  was  led  in 
leash  from  house  to  house  along  with  the  guizzards,  the  stone  eater,  and  other 
amusements  of  the  season,  which  'exhibit  their  unparalleled  feats  to  private 
family  parties,  if  required.'  Amidst  this  company  stood  Mr  Watt,  tho  man 
whose  genius  discovered  the  means  of  multiplying  our  national  resources  to 
a  degree  perhaps  even  beyond  his  own  stupendous  powers  of  calculation  and 
combination,  bringing  the  treasures  of  the  abyss  to  tho  summit  of  the  earth; 
giving  the  feeble  arm  of  man  the  momentum  of  an  Afrite;  commanding  manu- 
factures to  arise,  as  tho  rod  of  the  prophet  produced  water  in  the  desert; 
affording  the  means  of  dispensing  with  tliat  time  and  tido  which  wait  for  no 
man,  and  of  sailing  without  that  wind  which  defied  the  commands  and  threats 
of  Xerxes  himself.  This  potent  commander  of  tho  elements — this  abridge*  of 
time  and  space — this  magician,  whose  cloudy  machinery  has  produced  a  change 
on  the  world,  the  effects  of  which,  extraordinary  as  they  are,  are  perhaps 
only  now  beginning  to  be  felt — was  not  only  the  most  profound  man  of  science, 
the  most  successful  combiner  of  powers  and  calculator  of  numbers,  as  adapted 
to  practical  purposes — was  not  only  one  of  the  most  generally  well  informed, 
but  one  of  the  best  and  kindest  of  human  beings. 

"  There  ho  stood,  surrounded  by  the  little  band  I  have  mentioned  of  north- 
ern literati,  men  not  less  tenacious,  generally  speaking,  of  their  own  fame 
and  their  own  opinions  than  the  national  regiments  are  supposed  to  be  jealous 
of  the  high  character  which  they  have  gained  upon  service.  Methinks  I  yet 
see  and  hear  what  I  shall  never  see  and  hear  again.  In  his  eighty-fifth  year, 
the  alert,  kind,  benevolent  old  man  had  his  attention  at  every  one's  question, 
his  information  at  every  one's  command.  His  talents  and  fancy  overflowed 
on  every  subject.  One  gentleman  was  a  deep  philologist;  he  talked  with 
him  on  the  origin  of  the  alphabet  as  if  he  had  been  coeval  with  Cadmus : 
another  was  a  celebrated  critic;  you  would  have  said  the  old  man  had  studied 
political  economy  and  belles  lettres  all  his  life;  of  science  it  is  unnecessary 
to  speak,  it  was  his  own  distinguished  walk.  And  yet,  captain  Clutterbuck, 
when  he  spoke  with  your  countryman,  Jedcdiah  Cleishbotliam,  you  would 
have  sworn  he  had  been  coeval  with  Clavcrse  and  Burley,  with  the  persecutors 
and  persecuted,  and  could  number  every  shot  the  dragoons  had  fired  at  the  fugi- 
tive Covenanters.  In  fact,  we  discovered  that  no  novel  of  the  least  celebrity 
escaped  his  perusal,  and  that  the  gifted  man  of  science  was  as  much  addicted  to 
the  productions  of  your  native  country,  (the  land  of  Utopia  aforesaid  ;)  in  other 
words,  as  shameless  and  obstinate  a  peruecr  of  novels  as  if  he  had  been  a  very 
milliner 's  apprentice  of  eighteen." 

A  highly  characteristic  statue  of  Watt,  by  Cliantrc}',  adorns  a  Gothic  monu- 
ment reared  to  his  memory,  by  his  son,  Mr  James  Watt,  who  died  June  2,  1848, 
in  his  80th  year.  Three  other  statues  of  him  by  Cbantrcy  have  been  erected — 
one  of  them,  of  colossal  size,  stands  in  Westminster  Abbey,  and  boars  an  elegant 
inscription  by  lord  Brougham.  The  countenance  of  this  statue  has  been  cha- 
racterised as  the  personification  of  abstract  thought.  Glasgow  possesses  the  other 
two — one  of  marble,  in  the  museum  of  the  university,  and  the  other  of  bronze, 
in  George's  Square.  His  native  town  of  Greenock  has  also  rendered  appropriate 
homage  to  his  genius,  by  erecUng  not  only  his  statue  but  a  public  library,  which 
bears  his  name.  An  admirable  Eloge  on  Watt  and  his  inventions  was  pronounced 
before  the  National  Institute  of  France  by  the  late  M.  Arago.  Lord  Brougham 
has  also  celebrated  his  merits  in  his  Historical  Account  of  the  Composition  of 
Water,  which  is  published  as  an  appendix  to  tho  Eloge. 


ROBERT  WATT,  M.D.  433 


WATT,  Robert,  M.D.,  the  author  of  the  Bibliotheca  BiiiTANNrcA,  and  of 
several  medical  treatises,  was  born  in  May,  1774.  His  father,  John  Watt, 
possessed  a  small  farm,  called  Muirhead,  in  tho  parish  of  Stewarton,  Ayrshire 
which  had  belonged  to  tho  ftimily  for  several  generations,  but  which  was  sold 
shortly  after  his  death,  in  1810.  Robert  was  tho  youngest  of  three  sons;  and, 
Avith  his  elder  brothers,  was  employed,  during  his  boyhood,  in  attending 
school,  and  in  assisting  his  father  in  the  management  of  tho  farm.  His  early 
life,  it  would  seem,  was  subject  to  considerable  hardships,  and  afforded  few  op. 
portunitics  for  cultivating  his  mind.  In  a  letter  of  his  now  before  us,  written 
a  short  lime  before  his  death,  we  find  the  following  notanda  of  his  early  years, 
prepared  at  the  request  of  a  friend.  After  recording  his  recollections  of  an 
English  school,  to  which  he  was  sent  at  the  age  of  five  or  six,  and  where  he 
learned  to  read,  write,  and  count,  the  narrative  proceeds: — 

**  About  the  age  of  thirteen,  I  became  a  plougliboy  to  a  fanner  in  a  neigh- 
bouring parish.  After  this,  I  was  sometimes  at  home,  and  sometimes  in 
the  service  of  other  people,  till  the  age  of  seventeen.  Before  this  age,  I  had 
begun  to  acquire  a  taste  for  reading,  and  spent  a  good  deal  of  my  time  in  that 
way.  Tlie  books  I  read  were  such  as  I  found  about  my  father's  house  ;  among 
Avhicli  I  remember  the  "  Pilgrim's  Progress,"  "  The  Lives  of  Scotch  Wor- 
thies," &c.  A  spirit  for  extending  my  knowledge  of  the  country,  and  other 
tilings,  had  manifested  itself  early,  in  various  forms.  When  very  young,  my 
great  ambition  was  to  be  a  chapman  ;  and  it  was  long  before  the  sneers  of  my 
friends  could  drive  me  from  this  favourite  project.  It  was  the  same  spirit,  and 
a  wish  of  doing  something  for  myself,  that  made  me  go  into  the  service 
of  other  farmers.  I  saw  more  than  I  did  at  home,  and  I  got  money  which  I 
could  call  my  own.  My  father's  circumstances  were  very  limited  ;  but  they 
were  equal,  with  his  own  industry,  to  the  bringing  up  of  his  family,  and 
putting  them  to  trades.  This  was  his  great  wish.  I  remember  he  preferred  a 
trade  greatly  to  being  farmer's  servants. 

"  With  a  view  to  extend  my  knowledge  of  the  country,  I  went  with  a  party 
into  Galloway,  to  build  stone  dykes.  On  getting  there,  however,  the  job  which 
we  had  expected  was  abandoned,  on  account  of  some  difference  taking  place 
between  the  proprietor  of  the  land  and  the  cultivator ;  and  we  went  to 
the  neighbourhood  of  Dumfries,  where  our  employer  had  a  contract  for  making 
part  of  the  line  of  road  from  Sanquhar  to  Dumfries.  During  my  short  stay  in 
Galloway,  which  was  at  Loch  Fergus,  in  the  vicinity  of  Kirkcudbright, 
I  lodged  in  a  house  where  1  had  an  opportunity  of  reading  some  books,  and  saw 
occasionally  a  newspapei*.  This  enlarged  my  views,  increased  the  desire  to  see 
and  learn  more,  and  made  me  regret  exceedingly  my  short  stay  in  the 
place. 

"  On  our  arrival  at  Dumfries,  we  were  boarded  on  the  farm  of  Ellisland,  in 
the  possession  of  Robert  Burns.  The  old  house  which  he  and  his  family  liad 
recently  occupied  became  our  temporary  abode.  This  was  only  for  a  few  days. 
I  was  lodged,  for  the  rest  of  the  summer,  in  a  sort  of  old  castle,  called  the 
Isle,  from  its  having  been  at  one  time  surrounded  by  the  Nith.  While  at  El- 
lisland, I  formed  the  project  of  going  up  to  England.  This  was  to  be  accom- 
plished by  engaging  as  a  drover  of  some  of  the  droves  of  cattle  that  continually 
pass  that  way  from  Ireland  and  Scotland.  My  companions,  however,  disap- 
proved of  the  project,  and  I  gave  it  up. 

"  During  the  summer  I  spent  in  Dumfries-shire,  I  had  frequent  opportunities 
of  seeing  Burns  •.  but  cannot  recollect  of  having  formed  any  opinion  of  him, 
except  a  confused  idea  that  he  was  an  extraordinary  character.  \\  hile  here,  I 
read  Burns's  Poems  ;   and,  from  an  acquaintance  with  some  of  his  relations,  I 


IT. 


434  ROBERT  "WATT,  M.D. 


occasionally  got  from  his  library  a  reading  of  other  works  of  the  same  kind. 
With  these  I  used  to  retire  into  some  of  the  concealed  places  on  the  banks  of 
the  Nith,  and  pass  my  leisure  hours  in  reading,  and  occasionally  tried  my  liand 
in  writing  rhymes  myself.  My  business  at  this  lime  consisted  chiefly  in  driving 
stones,  from  a  distance  of  two  or  three  miles,  to  build  bridges  and  sewers. 
This  occupation  gave  me  a  further  opportunity  of  perusing  books,  and 
although,  from  the  desultory  nature  of  my  reading,  I  made  no  proficiency  in 
any  one  thing,  I  acquired  a  sort  of  smattering  knowledge  of  many,  and  a  de- 
sire to  learn  more.  From  this  period,  indeed,  I  date  the  commencement  of 
my  literary  pursuits. 

"  On  my  return  home,  the  first  use  I  made  of  the  money  I  had  saved  was 
to  purchase  a  copy  of  Bailey's  Dictionary,  and  a  copy  of  Burn's  English  gram- 
mar. AVith  these  I  began  to  instruct  myself  in  the  principles  of  the  English 
language,  in  the  best  way  I  could. 

"  At  this  time,  my  brother  John,  who  had  been  in  Glasgow  for  several 
years,  following  the  business  of  a  joiner  and  cabinet-maker,  came  home,  with 
the  design  of  beginning  business  for  himself  in  the  country.  It  was  proposed 
that  I  should  join  hira.  This  was  very  agreeable  to  me.  I  had,  at  that  time,  no 
views  of  anything  higher  ;  and  it  accorded  well  with  the  first  bent  of  my  mind, 
which  was  strongly  inclined  to  mechanics.  If  of  late  all  my  spare  hours  had 
been  devoted  to  reading,  at  an  earlier  period  they  had  been  equally  devoted  to 
mechanics.  When  very  young,  I  had  erected  a  turning  lath  in  my  father's 
barn  ;  had  procured  planes,  chisels,  and  a  variety  of  other  implements,  which  I 
could  use  with  no  small  degree  of  dexterity. 

"  For  some  time  my  mind  Avas  wholly  occupied  with  my  new  trade. 
I  acquired  considerable  knowledge  and  facility  in  constructing  most  of  the  dif- 
ferent implements  used  in  husbandry,  and  could  also  do  a  little  as  a  cabinet- 
maker.  But  I  soon  began  to  feel  less  and  less  interest  in  my  new  employ- 
ment. My  business  came  to  be  a  repetition  of  the  same  thing,  and  lost  ail  its 
charms  of  novelty  and  invention.  The  taste  for  reading,  which  I  had  brought 
from  the  south,  though  it  had  suffered  some  abatement,  had  not  left  me.  I  was 
occasionally  poring  over  my  dictionary  and  grammar,  and  other  volumes  that 
came  in  my  way. 

**  At  this  time,  a  circumstance  occurred  which  gave  my  mind  an  entirely 
new  bent.  My  brother,  while  at  Gl.isgow,  had  formed  a  very  close  intimacy 
with  a  student  there.  Tliis  young  gentleman,  during  the  vacation,  came  out 
to  see  my  brother,  and  pass  a  few  days  in  the  country.  From  him  I  received 
marvellous  accounts  of  what  mighty  things  were  to  be  learned,  what  wonders 
to  be  seen — about  a  university  ;  and  I  imbibed  an  unquenchable  desire  to  fol- 
low his  course." 

Here  his  own  account  of  himself  closes,  and  what  we  have  to  add  must  of 
course  be  deficient  in  that  interest  which  attaches  itself  to  all  personal  memoirs 
that  are  written  wth  frankness  and  sincerity.  The  newly-imbibed  desire  of  an 
academical  education,  to  which  he  alludes,  was  not  transient  in  its  character. 
To  prepare  himself  for  its  accomplishment,  he  laid  aside  as  much  of  his  earnings 
as  he  could  spare,  and  applied  himself,  in  the  intervals  of  manual  occupa- 
tion, to  the  Latin  and  Greek  languages.  It  was  not  long  ere  he  thus  qualified 
himself  for  beginning  his  course  at  the  university.  In  1793,  at  the  age  of 
eighteen,  he  matriculated  in  the  Glasgow  college,  under  professor  Richardson ; 
and,  from  that  period,  went  regularly  through  the  successive  classes  in  the  uni- 
versity, up  to  the  year  1797.  Baring  the  summer  recesses,  he  supported  him- 
self by  teaching,  at  first  as  a  private  tutor ;  but  latteriy  he  took  up  a  small 
public  school   in   the   village   of  Symington,   in   Ayrshire.      It  was    his   first 


=.  ^tui^:. 


ROBERT  WATT,  M.D.  435 


determination  to  follow  the  clerical  profession  ;  but  after  he  liad  attended  tivo 
sessions  at  the  Dirinity  Hall  of  Glasgow,  he  turned  himself  to  the  study 
of  medicine;  and,  in  order  to  have  evei-y  advantage  towards  acquiring 
a  proficiency  in  that  branch  of  knowledge,  he  removed  to  Edinburgh,  whicli 
has  been  so  long  celebrated  as  a  medical  school.  Here  he  remained  until  he 
had  gone  through  the  usual  studies  of  the  science. 

In  1799,  he  returned  to  Glasgow ;  and,  after  an  examination  by  the 
faculty  of  Physicians  and  Surgeons  there,  he  was  found  *  a  fit  and  capable  per- 
son to  exercise  the  arts  of  surgery  and  pharmacy.'  In  the  same  year,  he  set 
up  as  surgeon  in  the  town  of  Paisley ;  and  soon  began  to  attain  great  popular- 
ity in  his  profession,  and  to  reap  the  reward  of  his  talents  and  perseverance. 
In  a  short  time  he  had  engrossed  so  much  practice,  as  to  find  it  ne- 
cessary to  take  in,  as  partner  and  assistant,  Mr  James  Muir,  who  had  been 
his  fellow  student  at  Edinburgh.  This  gentleman  possessed  considerable 
literary  abilities,  and  was  author  of  various  pieces  of  a  didactic  character, 
whicli  appeared  in  the  periodicals  of  the  day.  On  his  death,  which  hap- 
pened early  in  life,  he  left  behind  him,  in  manuscript,  a  volume  of  mis- 
cellaneous essays,  and  a  poem,  entitled  "  Home,"  consisting  of  354  Spen- 
serian stanzas.  He  was,  in  particular,  greatly  attached  to  painting,  and 
exhausted  much  of  his  time  and  money  upon  that  art.  Dr  Watt,  on  the 
other  hand,  was  chiefly  attached  to  that  department  of  human  inquiry  which 
comes  under  the  denomination  of  experimental  philosophy — particularly 
chemistry,  to  which  science  he,  for  a  considerable  time,  devoted  his  leisure 
hours  almost  exclusively.  Yet,  with  these  differences  of  pursuits,  they  lived  in 
good  harmony  during  a  partnership  of  nearly  ten  yeare,  each  following  his 
o>vn  course,  and  both  holding  the  most  respectable  station  of  tlieir  profession 
in  the  place  whei-e  they  resided. 

The  period  of  Dr  Watt's  residence  in  Paisley,  was  perhaps  the  busiest  in  his 
life.  He  enjoyed,  during  it,  a  better  state  of  health  than  he  ever  did  after- 
wards ;  and  had,  besides,  all  the  ardour  and  enterprise  of  one  newly  entered 
into  a  sphere  for  which  he  liad  long  panted.  The  number  and  variety  of  manu- 
scripts which  he  has  left,  sufficiently  attest  the  persevering  activity  of  his  mind 
during  this  period.  The  most  important,  perhaps,  of  these  is  one  in  quarto, 
entitled  "  An  Abstract  of  Philosophical  Conjectures;  or  an  Attempt  to  Explain 
the  Principal  Phenomena  of  Light,  Heat,  and  Cold,  by  a  few  simple  and  ob- 
vious  Laws."  This  volume  contains  some  curious  and  interesting  experiments; 
but,  of  course,  since  the  date  of  its  composition  (1805)  many  new  lights  have 
been  thrown  on  the  subjects  it  embraces,  which,  in  a  great  measure,  diminish  its 
importance,  and  render  its  publication  unadvisable.  The  only  work  which  he 
ventured  to  publish  while  at  Paisley,  amid  the  many  he  composed  and  contem- 
plated, was  one,  entitled  "  Cases  of  Diabetes,  Consumption,  &c;  with  Observations 
on  the  History  and  Treatment  of  Disease  in  general."  This  appeared  in  1803, 
and  excited  considerable  interest  at  the  time  among  the  learned  of  the  profession. 
The  method  which  the  author  adopted  in  treating  Diabetes,  was  venesection, 
blistering,  and  an  abstemious  diet;  and  the  various  cases  which  he  records,  were 
considered  at  the  time  as  tending  to  establish  the  propriety  of  this  mode  of  treat- 
ment. At  the  end  of  the  volume  observations  are  given  upon  different  diseases, 
as  asthma,  English  cholera,  colic,  &c.;  and  these  are  also  illustrated  by  cases 
which  came  under  his  own  observation. 

Soon  after  the  publication  of  this  volume,  lie  felt  a  desire  to  remove  to  an- 
other quarter,  and  commence  for  himself  on  a  higher  scale  than  he  had  hitherto 
done.  There  was  no  place,  however,  which  he  had  particularly  fixed  upon ; 
and,  before  coming  to  any  decision  on  this  point,  he  determined   to  make  a 


436  EGBERT  WATT,  M.D. 


tour  through  England,  with  the  view  of  oscerLiining  wlietlier  that  country  might 
not  afford  an  eligible  spot.  The  journey  uoiild,  at  the  same  time,  be  favour- 
able to  his  health,  which  was  beginning  to  be  impaired.  In  1809,  having  fur- 
nished himself  with  letters  of  recommendation  to  many  eminent  in  his  profession 
throughout  England,  he  went  to  London,  by  a  circuitous  route,  embracing,  on 
his  way,  most  of  the  principal  towns  in  the  country.  It  does  not  appear,  how- 
ever, that  he  found  any  situation  tliere  agreeable  to  his  wishes  ;  fur  on  his  re- 
turn home,  after  an  absence  of  several  months,  he  determined  on  settling  at 
Glasgow  :  and,  accordingly,  in  1810,  as  soon  as  matters  could  properly  be  ar- 
ranged, he  removed  to  that  city. 

Previously  to  this,  he  had  received  from  the  university  of  Aberdeen  the  title  of 
doctor  in  3Iedicine,  and  liad  been  elected  member  of  the  Faculty  of  Physicians 
and  Surgeons  of  Glasgow.  He  had  also  become  pretty  well  known  in  the 
neighbourhood  as  an  eminent  practitioner,  and  had  every  reason  to  calculate 
upon  success,  whatever  rank  of  his  pi'ofession  he  should  assume.  He,  thei*e- 
fore,  commenced  upon  the  highest  scale,  took  a  large  house  in  Queen  Street, 
and  confined  his  profession  to  that  of  physician  and  accoucheur.  In  the  same 
winter,  he  began  his  lectures  on  tiie  theory  and  practice  of  medicine ;  and 
thus  at  once  placed  himself  in  that  station  of  life  for  which  he  was  so  eminently 
qualified. 

His  success  in  Glasgow  was  complete  and  jumiediato.  As  a  physician,  he 
suddenly  acquired  a  most  respectable  and  extensive  practice;  and  as  a  lecturer, 
his  popularity  was  equally  gratifying.  The  continental  war,  which  was  then 
raging,  occasioned  a  great  demand  for  surgeons,  and  increased  the  number  of 
students  much  above  the  ordinary  average.  Dr  Watt's  leclure-room  was 
numerously  attended  ;  and  he  spared  no  pains  or  expense  that  might  conduce 
to  the  advantage  of  his  pupils.  His  lectures  were  formed  on  the  best  models, 
and  from  the  most  extensive  sources,  and  his  manner  of  delivering  them  was 
easy  and  engaging.  During  the  first  course,  he  read  them  from  his  MSS. ;  but 
he  afterwards  abandoned  that  method  for  extemporaneous  delivery,  assisting  his 
memory  merely  by  brief  memorandums  of  the  chief  heads  of  discourse.  He 
used  to  say,  that  this  method,  by  keeping  his  mind  in  a  state  of  activity, 
fatigued  him  less  than  the  dull  rehearsal  of  what  lay  before  him.  With  a  view- 
to  the  advantage  of  his  students,  he  formed  a  library  of  medical  books,  uhich 
was  very  complete  and  valuable,  containing,  besides  all  the  popular  works  on 
medicine,  many  scarce  and  high-priced  volumes.  Of  this  library  he  published 
a  catalogue,  in  1812  ;  to  which  he  appended,  "  An  Address  to  Medical  Stu- 
dents on  the  best  Method  of  prosecuting  their  Studies." 

The  "  Bibliotheca  Britcinnica  "  may  be  said  to  have  originated  with  the  for- 
mation of  this  library.  Besides  the  catalogue  of  it,  Avhich  was  printed  in  the 
usual  form,  having  the  works  arranged  under  their  respective  authors  in  alpha- 
betical order,  he  drew  out  an  index  of  the  various  subjects  which  the  volumes 
embraced,  making  references  to  the  place  which  each  held  upon  the  shelf;  and 
thus  brought  before  his  eye,  at  one  view,  all  the  books  in  his  possession  that 
treated  on  any  particular  point.  The  utility  of  this  index  to  himself  and  his 
students,  soon  turned  his  mind  to  the  consideration  of  one  upon  a  more  com- 
prehensive scale,  that  would  embrace  all  the  medical  works  which  had  been 
printed  in  the  British  dominions.  This  he  immediately  set  about  drawing  out, 
and  devoted  much  of  his  time  to  it.  After  he  had  nearly  completed  his  object, 
he  extended  the  original  plan  by  introducing  works  on  law,  and  latterly  works 
on  divinity  and  miscellaneous  subjects.  This  more  than  tripled  his  labours  ; 
but  it  proportionably  made  them  more  useful.  Tlie  extent  of  the  design,  how- 
ever, was  not  yet  completed.     Hiiherto,  all  foreign  publications  had  been  ex- 


'•*d^-A- ' 


ROBERT  WATT,  M.D.  437 


eluded  from  it ;  and,  although  a  prospectus  of  the  work  had  been  publishf^d 
containing  very  copious  explanations  and  specimens,  uhich  might  be  supposed 
to  have  determined  its  nature  and  bounds,  he  resolved—uhen  it  was  on  the  ere 
ot  going  to  press— to  make  the  work  still  further  useful,  by  introducing  the  more 
popular  and  important  of  foreign  authors  and  their  productions  ;  embracin^r  at 
the  same  time,  the  various  continental  editions  of  the  classics.  Thus  was  an- 
other  mighty  addition  made  to  the  original  plan  ;  and  it  is  thus  that  many  of 
the  most  splendid  monuments  of  human  intellect  and  industry  originate  in 
trifling  or  small  beginnings. 

In  1813,  he  published  a  "  Treatise  on  the  Histoi-y,  Nature,  and  Treatment 
of  Chincough."  He  was  led  to  investigate  particularly  this  disease,  by  a  severe 
visitation  of  it  in  his  own  family,  in  which  four  of  his  children  were  afiected  at 
the  same  time,  the  two  eldest  of  Avhom  died.  The  treatise  contains  not  only 
the  author's  own  observation  and  experience,  but  also  that  of  the  best  medical 
writers  on  the  subject.  To  the  volume  is  subjoined,  "  An  Inquiry  into  the 
Relative  Mortality  of  the  principal  Diseases  of  Children,  and  the  Numbers  Avho 
have  died  under  Ten  Years  of  Age,  in  Glasgow,  during  the  last  Thirty  Years." 
In  this  Inquiry,  the  author  was  at  infinite  pains  in  comparing  and  digesting  the 
registers  of  the  various  burying-grounds  in  the  city  and  suburbs ;  and  of  these 
he  gives  numerous  tables,  so  arranged,  as  to  enable  the  reader  to  draw  some 
very  important  conclusions  regarding  the  diseases  of  children,  and  their  respec- 
tive mortalities. 

In  1814,  he  issued,  anonymously,  a  small  volume,  entitled  "Rules  of  Life, 
with  Reflections  on  the  Manners  and  Dispositions  of  Mankind."  The  volume 
was  published  by  Consbible  of  Edinburgh,  and  consisted  of  a  great  number  of 
apophthegms  and  short  sentences,  many  of  them  original,  and  the  others  selected 
from  the  best  English  writers.  • 

About  this  time,  his  health  began  rapidly  to  decline.  From  his  youth  lie 
had  been  troubled  with  a  stomachic  disorder,  which  attacked  him  at  times  very 
severely,  and  kept  him  always  under  great  restrictions  in  his  diet  and  general 
regimen.  The  disease  had  gained  ground  with  time,  and  perhaps  was  accele^ 
rated  by  the  laborious  life  which  he  led.  He,  nevertheless,  continued  to 
struggle  against  it,  maintained  his  usual  good  spirits,  and  went  through  the 
various  arduous  duties  of  his  profession.  His  duties,  indeed,  had  increased 
upon  him.  He  had  become  a  member  of  various  literary  and  medical  societies, 
of  several  of  which  he  was  president,  and  had  been  elected  physician  to  the 
Glasgow  Royal  Infirmary,  and  president  of  the  Faculty  of  Physicians  and 
Surgeons.  These  two  latter  situations  involved  a  great  deal  of  trouble  and  at- 
tention. He  held  them  both  for  two  successive  years  ;  the  former  he  was 
obliged  to  resign,  on  account  of  the  state  of  his  health,  just  at  the  period 
when  a  handsome  compensation  would  have  followed  his  holding  it ;  the  latter 
was  resigned  at  the  expiry  of  the  usual  term  of  its  continuance. 

Although  he  had  long  laboured  under  that  painful  disease  which  we  have 
spoken  of,  and  of  which  he  eventually  died,  it  was  not  until  the  year  1817, 
that  he  totally  discontinued  his  professional  pursuits.  Nor  would,  perhaps,  his 
active  spirit  have  so  soon  submitted  to  this  resignation,  had  not  another  employ- 
ment engaged  his  attention.  He  had,  by  this  time,  brought  iiis  great  work, 
the  "  Bibliotlieca  Britannica,"  to  a  very  considerable  state  of  forvNardness;  had 
become  interested  in  it,  and  anxious  for  its  completion.  He  probably  saw 
that,  from  the  state  of  his  health,  the  duration  of  his  life  must  be  but  limited, 
and  was  desirous,  while  yet  some  strength  and  vigour  remained,  to  place  tlie 
work  in  such  a  state,  that  even  his  deatii  would  not  prevent  its  publication. 
He  retired,  therefore,  with  his  family,  to  a  small  country-house  about  two  mile* 


i*^* 


438  ROBERT   WATT,  M.D. 


from  Glasgow,  engaged  several  young  men  as  amanuenses,^  and  devoted  hiuiself 
exclusively  to  the  compilation. 

In  this  literary  seclusion,  Dr  Watt  was  fur  some  time  able  to  make  great  pro- 
gress in  iiis  undertaking  ;  but,  though  freed  from  worldly  interruptions,  he  had 
to  combat  with  a  dise.'ise  uhich  was  every  day  becoming  more  formidable,  and 
which  at  last  obliged  him  to  discontinue  all  personal  labour.  lie  still,  how- 
ever, continued  to  oversee  and  direct  liis  amanuenses  ;  and  nothing  could  ex- 
ceed the  kind  attention  which  he  paid  to  tlieir  comforts,  even  when  suflering 
under  his  fatal  malady.  In  his  own  retirement,  he  practised  every  method 
which  his  knowledge  or  experience  could  suggest  to  stem  the  progress  of  the 
disease,  but  they  were  all  unavailing.  In  the  hope  that  travel  and  a  sea 
voyage  might  benelit  him,  he  went  in  one  of  the  Leith  smacks  to  London,  made 
a  considerable  tour  through  England,  and  returned  more  exliaustud  and  ema- 
ciated than  before.  From  that  period,  until  his  death,  he  was  scarcely  out  of 
bed,  but  underwent,  with  wonderful  fortitude,  an  alllicting  and  uninterrupted 
illness  of  several  mouths.  He  died  upon  the  1 2th  of  3Iarcli,  IS  19,  aged  only 
forty-five,  and  was  interred  in  the  Glasgow  High  Church  burying  ground. 

Dr  Watt's  personal  appearance  was  prepossessing.  He  was  tall  in  stature, 
and  in  early  life,  before  his  health  declined,  robust  His  countenance  displayed 
great  intelligence.  In  private  life,  he  was  universally  esteemed.  His  character 
was  formed  on  the  strictest  principles  of  morality,  with  which  was  blended  a  gene- 
ral urbanity  of  manners,  that  won  at  once  the  good- will  of  wlioever  be  addressed. 
Hi<  conversation  was  connnunicative  and  engaging,  apart  equally  from  dulness 
and  tediousness,  as  from  what  is  quite  as  intolerable,  a  continued  study  at  effect. 
In  his  habits,  lie  was  extremely  regular  and  persevering.  There  was  nothing 
from  which  he  shrunk,  if  usefulness  recommended  it,  and  exertion  made  it  at- 
tainable. This  i«  particularly  exemplitied  in  his  undertaking  and  executing 
such  a  work  as  tlie  "  Bibliotheca  Britannica,"  the  bare  conception  of  which 
would,  to  an  ordinary  or  less  active  mind,  have  been  appalling ;  but  which,  be- 
set as  he  was  by  professional  duties  and  a  daily  increasing  malady,  he  under- 
took and  accomplished.  But  laborious  as  the  work  is — beyond  even  what  the 
most  intelligent  reader  can  imagine — it  is  not  alone  to  industry  and  perse- 
verance that  Dr  Watt  has  a  claim  upon  our  notice.  He  was  ingenious  and 
original-minded  in  all  his  schemes ;  and  while  his  great  ambition  was  that  his 
labours  might  be  useful,  he  was  careful  that  they  should  not  interfere  with  those 
of  others.  His  various  works,  both  published  and  unpublished,  bear  this  dis- 
tinction. The  whole  plan  of  the  "Bibliotheca"  is  7iew;  and  few  conipilations, 
of  similar  magnitude  and  variety,  ever  presented,  in  a  first  edition,  a  more  com- 
plete design  and  execution.  It  is  divided  into  two  parts;  the  first  part  con- 
taining an  alphabetical  list  o£  authors,  to  the  amount  of  above  forty  thousand, 
and  under  each  a  chronological  list  of  liis  works,  their  various  editions,  sizes, 
price,  &c.,  and  also  of  the  papers  he  may  have  contributed  to  the  more  cele- 
brated journals  of  art  and  science.  This  division  differs  little  in  its  construc- 
tion from  that  of  a  common  catalogue,  only  that  it  is  universal  in  its  character, 
and  in  many  instances  gives  short  biographical  notices  of  the  author,  and  criti- 
cal opinions  of  his  worlu.  It  also  gives  mo&t  ample  lists  of  the  various  editions 
of  the  Greek  and  Roman  classics,  &c.,  and,  under  the  names  of  the  early  printers, 
lists  of  the  various  books  which  they  printed.  In  the  second  part,  all  the  titles 
of  works  recorded  in  the  first  part,  and  also  anonymous  works,  are  arranged 
alphabetically  under  their  principal  subjects.      This  part  forms  a  minute  index 

«  Among  those  so  engag''d  wers  the  late  Mr  William  Slotherwfll,  who  distinguished 
himself  by  his  beautiful  ballads;  atul  tlie  late  Mr  Alexander  Whitelaw,  editor  of  '  Tho 
Casquet,"  '■  Republic  o:'  Letters,"  c-  c. 


DR.  ALEXANDER  WAUGH.  439 


to  tlie  first,  and  upon  it  the  chief  claim  of  the  "  Bibliotheca"  to  novelty  and 
value  rests;  foi-  it  lays  before  the  reader  at  a  glance,  a  chronological  list  of  all 
tlie  works  that  have  been  published  on  any  particular  subject  that  he  may  wish 
to  consult,  with  references  to  their  respective  authors,  or  with  the  publisher's 
name,  if  anonymous.  While,  in  short,  the  first  part  forms  a  full  and  compre- 
hensive catalogue  of  authors  and  their  works,  the  second  forms  an  equally  com- 
plete  and  extensive  encyclopedia  of  all  manner  of  subjects  on  which  books 
have  been  written.  The  utility  of  such  a  work,  to  the  student  and  author  in 
particular,  must  be  obvious  ;  for,  with  the  facility  with  which  he  can  ascerUin 
in  a  dictionary  the  meaning  of  a  word,  can  he  here  ascertain  all  that  Ims  been 
written  on  any  branch  of  human  knowledge.  Whatever  may  be  its  omissions 
and  inaccuracies,  (and  these  were  unavoidable  in  a  compilcUion  so  extensive,) 
the  plan  of  the  work,  we  apprehend,  cannot  be  improved ;  and,  amid  the 
numerous  and  laborious  methods  that  have  been  offered  to  the  public,  for  ar- 
ranging libraries  and  catalogues,  we  are  ignorant  of  any  system  ihat  coidd  be 
adopted,  with  greater  advantage,  both  as  to  convcniency  and  completeness  of 
reference,  without  at  the  same  time  affecting  the  elegant  disposal  of  the  books 
upon  the  shelves,  than  the  one  upon  which  the  "  Bibliotheca  Britiinniui "  is 
founded. 

Dr  Watt  married,  while  in  Paisley,  Miss  Burns,  the  dauglitcr  of  a  farmer  in 
bis  father's  neighbourhood,  by  whom  he  had  nine  children.  At  his  death,  the 
publication  of  the  "  Bibliotheca  "  devolved  upon  his  two  eldest  sons,  who  de- 
voted themselves  to  its  completion  with  filial  enthusiasm.  Tiiey  were  both 
young  men  of  the  most  pronusing  abilities ;  and  it  is  to  be  feared  that  their 
lives  were  shortened  by  the  assiduity  with  which  they  applied  themselves  to  the 
important  charge  that  was  so  prematurely  laid  upon  them.  John,  the  elder  of 
the  two,  died  in  1821,  at  the  early  age  of  twenty  ;  James,  his  brother,  lived  to 
see  the  work  completed,  but  died  in  1829,  leaving  behind  him  the  deep  re- 
grets of  all  who  knew  and  could  appreciate  his  high  character  and  brilliant 
talents. 

The  printing  of  the  "  Bibliotheca"  was  completed  in  1S24,  in  four  large 
quarto  volumes.  The  first  division  or  portion  of  it  was  printed  in  Glasgow, 
and  the  second  in  Edinbuigh.  Messrs  Archibald  Constable  and  Company, 
of  Edinburgh,  purchased  the  whole  for  about  £2,000,  giving  bills  to  that 
amount,  but  before  any  of  the  bills  were  honoured,  the  house  failed,  and  thus 
the  family  of  Dr  Watt  was  prevented  from  receiving  any  benefit  from  a  work 
to  which  so  many  sacrifices  had  been  made,  and  upon  which  all  tlieir  liopes 
depended.^ 

WAUGH,  (Dr)  Alexander,  an  eminent  divine  of  the  United  Secession 
church,  was  born  on  the  16th  August,  1754,  at  East  Gordon,  in  the  parish 
of  Gordon,  Berwiclishire,  where  his  father  followed  the  occupation  of  a 
farmer. 

The  subject  of  this  memoir,  who  was  devoted  by  his  parents  from  his 
infancy  to  the  church,  was  put  to  the  parish  school  of  Gordon,  at  ^vhich  he 

^  In  connexion  with  the  misfortunes  attendant  upon  the  work,  we  may  mention  here,  in 
a  note,  one,  fortunately  in  this  country,  of  singular  occurrence.  Not  long  after  Dr  Watt's 
death,  his  country-house  was  broken  into,  in  the  middle  of  the  night,  by  a  band  of  ruffian?, 
disguised  with  blackened  faces,  and  armed  with  guns,  swords,  Sk.  While  one  party  held 
their  fire-arms  over  the  unhappy  inmates,  another  ransacked  the  house,  and  packed  up 
everything  valuable  of  a  portable  nature,  which  they  carried  off,  and  which  were  never  re- 
covered. They  even  took  the  rings  from  Mrs  Watt's  fingers.  Among  their  ravages,  thcv 
unfortunately  laid  their  hands  on  a  portion  of  the  unprinted  MS.  of  the  "  Bibliotiiecn,  ' 
which  they  thrust  into  the  fire,  with  the  purpose  of  lighting  the  apartmenU  It  took  nearly 
a  year's  labour  to  remedy  the  destruction  of  this  MS.  Four  of  the  robbei-s  were  afterwards 
taken,  and  executed  for  the  crime  at  Glasgow,  in  1-20. 


440  DR.  ALEXANDER  -WAUGII. 

remained  till  he  had  attained  his  twelfth  year,  when  he  Mas  removed  to  that  of 
the  neighbouring  parish  of  Earlston,  uhere  the  schoolmaster  was  celebrated  as  a 
teacher  of  Latin  and  Greek.  Here  he  remained  till  1770,  uhen  he  entered 
the  university  of  Edinburgh,  leaving  behind  him  at  Earlston  a  reputation  for 
talents  and  piety  which,  young  as  he  then  was,  made  a  deep  impression  on  all 
who  knew  him,  and  led  them  to  anticipate  for  him  the  celebrity  he  afterwards 
attained  as  a  preacher. 

Mr  Waugh  continued  at  the  university  throughout  four  sessions  prior  to  his 
entering  on  his  theological  studies,  during  which  he  attended  the  Latin,  Greek, 
and  Natural  and  Moral  philosophy  classes.  He  subsequently  studied  and  ac- 
quired a  competent  knowledge  of  Hebrew.  At  tlie  end  of  this  period,  he 
was  examined  by  the  presbytery  regarding  his  proficiency  in  philosopliy  and 
the  learned  languages,  and,  having  been  found  qualified,  was  admitted  to  the 
study  of  divinity,  which  he  commenced  in  August,  1774,  under  the  tuition  of 
the  Rev.  John  Brown  of  Haddington.  Three  years  afterwards,  he  repaired 
to  the  university  of  Aberdeen,  and  attended  for  one  session  the  lectures  of 
Dr  Beattie,  professor  of  moral  philosophy,  and  of  Dr  Campbell,  professor  of 
divinity  in  the  Marischal  college.  In  the  following  year,  having  been  found 
amply  qualified  by  prior  attainments,  he  received  his  degree  of  M.  A.  On  the 
completion  of  his  studies,  Mr  Waugh  was  licensed  to  preach  the  gospel  by 
the  presbytery  of  Edinburgh  at  Dunse,  June  28,  1779,  and  in  two  months 
afterwards  was  appointed  by  the  presbytery  to  supply  the  Secession  congrega- 
tion of  Wells-street,  London,  left  vacant  by  the  death  of  the  Rev,  Archibald 
Hall.  On  this  occasion  he  remained  in  London  for  about  ten  weeks,  when  he 
returned  to  Scotland,  and  soon  after  received  a  unanimous  call  from  the  con- 
gregation of  Newton,  which  was  sustained  by  the  presbytery  at  their  meeting 
on  December  21,  1779,  and  on  the  30th  of  August,  1780,  he  was  formally  in- 
ducted to  this  charge. 

The  efiecls  of  the  favourable  impression,  however,  which  he  had  made  upon 
his  hearers  in  London  reached  him,  even  in  the  retired  and  obscure  situation 
in  which  he  was  now  placed.  A  call  to  him  from  the  Wells-street  congrega- 
tion was  brought  before  the  Synod  which  met  at  Edinburgh  in  May,  1781,  but 
he  was  continued  in  Newton  by  a  large  majority.  He  himself  had  declined  this 
call  previously  to  its  being  brought  before  the  Synod,  and  that  for  reasons  which 
strikingly  exhibit  the  benevolence  of  his  disposition  and  the  uprightness  of  his 
character.  Amongst  these  were  the  unsettled  slate  ef  his  congregation,  which 
was  yet  but  in  its  infancy,  the  strong  attachment  which  they  had  manifested  to 
him,  and  the  struggles  which  they  had  made  for  the  settlement  of  a  minister 
among  them.  But  so  desirous  were  the  Wells-street  congregation  to  secure 
his  services,  that,  undeterred  by  the  result  of  their  first  application,  they  for- 
warded  another  call  to  him,  which  was  brought  before  the  Synod  on  the  27tli 
November,  1781,  when"  it  was  again  decided  that  he  should  continue  at  Newton 
The  second  ciill,  however,  was  followed  by  a  third  from  the  same  congregation, 
and  on  this  occasion  the  call  was  sustained  by  the  presbytery  on  the  19tli 
March,  1782.  Mr  Waugh  received  at  the  same  time  a  call  from  the  Bristo- 
street  congregation  of  Edinburgh,  but,  owing  to  some  informality,  it  did  not 
come  into  direct  competition  with  the  former,  and  therefore  was  not  discussed. 

The  presbytery  of  Edinburgh  having  been  appointed  to  admit  him  to  his  new 
charge,  this  ceremony  took  place  at  Dalkeith  on  the  30th  May,  1782;  and 
in  June  following  he  set  out  for  London,  where  he  arrived  on  the  14th  of  that 
month,  and  immediately  commenced  his  ministry  in  the  Secession  church.  Wells- 
street.  He  soon  extended  the  reputation,  which  he  had  already  acquired, 
amongst  the  body  of  Christians  in  London  to  which  he  belonged,  and  became 


DR.  ALEXANDER  WAUGII.  441 

exceedingly  popular,  at  once  by  his  singularly  amiable  character,  his  unwearied 
activity  and  unremitting  zeal  in  the  discharge  of  his  ministerial  duties,  and  by 
his  fervid  and  impressive  eloquence  in  the  pulpiL  He  also  took  an  active  part 
in  promoting  the  interests  of  the  London  .Missionary  and  Bible  societies;  and 
even  extended  his  benevolent  exertions  to  many  other  religious  and  cliaritable 
institutions  in  the  metropolis. 

In  IS  1 5,  he  received  the  degree  of  doctor  of  Divinity  from  the  3Iarischal 
college  of  Aberdeen,  and  was  much  gratified  by  this  mark  of  distinction  from 
that  learned  body,  which  he  did  not  deem  the  less  flattering,  that,  although  he 
had  studied  there  in  his  youtli,  he  \vas,  when  it  was  conferred,  almost  an  entire 
stranger,  personally,  to  all  of  them.  Previously  to  this,  Dr  Waugh  had  been 
seized  with  a  serious  illness,  which  had  compelled  him  to  revisit  his  native 
country,  with  the  view  of  benefiting  by  the  change  of  air.  From  this  illness, 
he  finally  I'ecovered  ;  but,  in  3Iay,  1823,  he  received  an  injury  by  the  fall  of 
some  scaffolding,  at  the  laying  the  foundation  stone  of  the  Orphan  asylum  at 
Clapton,  from  the  effects  of  which  he  never  entirely  recovered.  He,  however, 
continued  to  preach  Avilh  unremitting  zeal,  till  tha  beginning  of  1827,  when 
increasing  infirmities,  particularly  an  inability  to  make  himself  audible  in  the 
pulpit,  rendered  it  necessary  to  procure  an  assistant  to  aid  him  in  his  labours, 
as  well  on  his  own  account,  as  on  account  of  the  spiritual  interests  of  his  con- 
gregation. In  this  year,  therefore,  he  was  relieved  from  a  large  portion  of  the 
laborious  duties  which  had  before  devolved  upon  him.  But  this  excellent  man 
was  rot  destined  long  to  enjoy  the  ease  which  his  affectionate  congregation 
had  kindly  secured  for  him.  In  the  last  week  of  November,  he  caught  a  severe 
cold,  which  finally  terminated  his  useful  and  active  life,  on  the  14lh  of  Decem- 
ber, 1827,  in  the  seventy-fourth  year  of  his  age,  and  the  forty-fifih  of  his 
ministry  in  London. 

The  remains  of  Dr  Waugh  were  attended  to  the  grave  by  an  immense  con- 
course of  people,  drawn  together  on  that  melancholy  occasion,  by  the  celebrity 
and  popularity  of  his  character ;  and  his  congregation,  as  a  testimony  of  their 
afl^ection  for  his  memory,  erected  an  elegant  tablet  of  marble,  with  a  suitable 
inscription,  in  their  chapel  in  Wells-street.  They  also  claimed  it  as  a  privilege 
to  defray  the  funeral  expenses.  But  they  did  much  more  than  all  this :  they 
secured  an  annuity  for  his  widow,  and  expressed  their  sympathy  in  her  bereave- 
iiient,  by  many  other  acts  of  generosity  and  kindness. 

Dr  Waugh,  in  all  the  relations  of  life,  was,  perhaps,  one  of  the  most  amiable 
men  that  ever  existed.  His  character  was  pure  and  spotless ;  his  benevolence 
unbounded  ;  his  philanthropy  unqualified.  His  manners  were  mild,  gentle, 
and  highly  prepossessing,  and  his  piety  sincere  and  ardent,  and  wholly  without 
any  portion  of  that  gloominess  which  has  been  erroneously  believed  to  belong 
to  heart-felt  religious  feeling.  So  far  from  this,  he  was  lively,  cheerful,  and 
humorous,  and  delighted  in  innocent  mirth  and  raillery.  To  those  of  his  coun- 
trymen, who  came  to  London,  his  house  and  table  were  ever  open  ;  and  his 
advice,  counsel,  and  assistance  in  furthering  their  views,  always  at  their  service. 
His  kindness  in  this  way,  indeed,  he  carried  to  an  almost  blameable  extent. 
•  His  talents,  too,  generally,  and  particularly  as  a  preacher  of  the  gospel.  Mere 
of  a  very  high  order ;  and  of  this  the  London  3Iissionary  society,  in  common 
with  others,  was  so  sensible,  that  he  was  employed  in  frequent  missions  by  that 
body,  and  always  with  eminent  success.  His  whole  life  in  London  was  one  of 
continued  and  unremitting  activity.  He  laboured  early  and  late  in  the  dis- 
charge  of  the  important  duties  intrusted  to  him,  and  willingly  undertook,  at  ail 
times,  in  addition  to  these,  any  othera  «hich  had  from  their  nature  a  claim  upon 
his  exertions. 

IV.  3  ^ 


442  DR.  AIJIXANDER  ^VEBSTER. 

WEBSTER,  (Db)  Alexander,  an  eminent  divine  and  statistical  inquirer,  was 
born  in  Edinburgh  about  the  year  1707,  being  the  sou  of  a  clergyman  of  the 
same  name,  who,  after  suffering  persecution  under  the  reigus  of  the  latter 
Stuarts,  had  become  minister  of  the  Tolbootb  parish  in  tliat  city,  iu  which 
charge  ho  acquired  considerable  celebrity  as  a  preacher  of  the  orthodox  school. 
The  subje(;t  of  this  memoir  studied  for  the  church,  and,  after  being  duly 
licensed,  uas  ordained  minister  of  Culross,  uhere  lie  soon  became  noted  for 
his  eloquence  in  the  pulpit,  and  the  Liborious  zeal  with  which  he  discharged 
every  duty  of  his  office.  The  congregation  of  the  Tolbooth  church,  who  liad 
lost  liis  fatlier  in  the  year  1720,  formed  the  wish  to  Iiave  the  son  set  over  them, 
and  accordingly,  in  1737,  he  received  an  unaniuious  call  from  tliem,  and  thus 
was  restored  to  the  society  of  his  native  city.  Previously  to  this  event,  he  had 
obtained  the  affections  of  Oliss  3Tary  Ersliine,  a  young  lady  of  fortune,  and 
nearly  related  to  tlie  family  of  Dundonald.  He  had  been  employed  to  bespeak 
the  favour  of  JMiss  Erskine  for  a  friend,  and  for  this  purpose  paid  frequent 
visits  to  Valleyfield,  a  house  within  the  parish  of  Culross,  where  slie  resided. 
The  suit  of  his  friend  he  is  said  to  have  urged  with  equal  eloquence  and  sincerity, 
but,  whether  his  own  figure  and  accomplishments,  which  were  higlily  elegant, 
had  prepossessed  the  young  lady,  or  she  despised  a  suitor  wlio  could  not  make  love 
on  his  own  account,  his  effort;;  were  attended  with  no  success.  At  length  31iss 
Ersliine  naively  remarked  to  him  that,  had  he  spoken  as  well  for  himself,  ho 
•  miglit  have  succeeded  better.  Tiie  liint  was  too  obvious  to  be  overlooked,  and 
its  promise  too  agreeable  to  be  neglected.  Webster  spoke  for  himself,  and  was 
readily  accepted.  They  Avere  married  a  few  days  after  his  accession  to  tlic 
pulpit  of  tlie  Tolbootli  church.  Though  the  reverend  gentleman  was  thus 
prompted  by  the  lady,  it  does  not  appear  that  ho  was  in  the  least  degree 
deficient  in  that  affection  which  ought  always  to  be  the  motive  of  the  nuptial 
connexion.  On  the  contrary,  he  seems,  from  some  verses  composed  by  himself 
upon  the  occasion,  to  have  been  one  of  the  most  ardent  of  lovers,  and  also  one 
of  the  most  eloquent  of  amatory  poets ;  witness  the  following  adniii-able 
stanza : — 

When  I  see  thcp,  I  love  thoe,  but  hearing  ador", 
1  wonder,  and  think  you  a  wonuin  no  mori' ; 
Till,  mad  >Tith  admiring,  I  cannot  contain, 
And,  ki:^ing  U>ose  hps,  find  you  woman  again. 

With  the  lire  of  a  profane  poet,  and  the  manners  and  accomplishments  of  a 
man  of  the  world,  Webster  possessed  the  unction  and  fervour  of  a  purely  evan- 
gelical divine.  The  awakenings  whicli  occun-ed  at  Cambuslang,  in  consequence 
of  the  preaching  of  Whitefield,  lie  attributed  in  a  pamphlet,  to  tlie  direct  in- 
fluence of  the  Holy  Spirit;  A\hilethe  Secedei-s  imputed  the  whole  to  sorcery 
and  the  direct  influence  of  the  devil.  In  the  pulpit,  both  his  matter  and  his 
manner  gave  tlie  highest  satisfaction.  His  voice  was  harmonious,  his 
figure  noble;  the  dignity  of  his  look,  the  rapture  of  his  eye,  conveyed 
an  elccti'ic  impression  of  the  fervent  devotion  which  engrossed  his  soul. 
In  prayer  and  in  sacramental  addresses,  his  manner  was  particularly  noble  and 
august  The  diction  of  his  sermons  was  strong  and  animated,  rather  than 
polished,  and  somewhat  lowered  to  the  capacity  of  his  hearers,  to  whose 
situation  in  life  he  was  always  attentive.  To  the  best  qualities  of  a  clergyman, 
he  added  an  ardent,  but  enlightened  zeal  for  the  external  Interests  of  the 
church,  a  jealousy  of  conniption,   a   hatred   of  fiJse   politics   and  tyi-annic;il 

»  Webster's  Lines,  Scottish  Songs,  ii.  S37.  This  fine  1)  ric  soeins  to  have  been  fu-«t  pub- 
lished in  tJie  Scots  Magazine,  1747. 


DB.  ALEXANDER  "WEBSTER. 


443 


measures,  wliicli  soraetinies  exposed  hhn  to  calumny  from  tha  giiilty,  but 
secured  him  unbounded  esteem  from  all  who  could  value  independence 
of  soul  and  integrity  of  heart.  His  sentiments  respecting  the  affairs  of 
both  church  and  slate  were  those  of  what  may  now  be  called  an  old  wliiff  ;  he 
stood  upon  the  Revolution  establishment,  alike  anxious  to  realize  the  advantages 
of  that  transaction,  and  to  prevent  further  and  needless  or  dangerous  changes. 
"  Nature,"  says  an  anonymous  biographer,  "  had  endowed  him  wilh  strong 
£iculties,  which  a  very  considerable  share  of  learning  had  matured  and  im- 
proved. For  extent  of  comprehension,  depth  of  thinking,  and  accuracy  in  the 
profoundest  researches,  he  stood  unrivalled.  In  the  knowledge  of  the  world, 
and  of  human  nature,  he  was  a  master.  It  is  not  wonderful  that  the  best 
societies  in  the  kingdom  were  perpetually  anxious  to  possess  a  man,  who  knew 
how  to  soften  the  rancour  of  public  theological  contest  with  the  liberality  and 
manners  of  a  gentleman.  His  address  was  engaging ;  his  wit  strong  as 
his  mind  ;  his  convivial  powers,  as  they  ai-e  called,  enchanting.  He  had  a 
constitutional  strength  against  intoxication,  which  made  it  dangerous  in  most 
men  to  attempt  bringing  him  to  such  a  state  :  often,  -when  they  were  unfit  for 
sitting  at  table,  he  remained  clear,  regular,  and  unafTccted." 

Among  the  gifts  of  Dr  \\'ebster,  was  an  extraordinary  power  of  arithmetical 
calculation.  This  he  began  soon  after  his  settlement  in  Edinburgh,  to  turn  to 
account,  in  the  formation,  in  company  with  Dr  Robert  Wallace,  of  the  scheme 
for  annuities  to  the  widows  of  the  Scottish  clergy.*  From  an  accurate  list  of 
the  ministers  of  the  church,  and  the  members  of  the  three  southern  universities, 
compared  with  the  ordinary  ratio  of  birtiis,  marriages,  and  deaths,  in  this  and 
other  kingdoms,  he  was  enabled  to  fix  on  a  series  of  rates  to  be  paid  annually 
by  the  members  of  these  two  departments,  the  amount  of  which  rates  was  to 
supply  a  specific  annuity  to  every  widow,  whose  husband  should  be  a 
contributor,  and  a  proportional  sum  for  the  children  of  the  same.  To  forward 
this  scheme,  he  opened  a  correspondence  with  the  different  presbj  teries  in  the 
kingdom  ;  and,  in  the  year  1742,  received  for  it  the  sanction  of  the  General 
Assembly  of  the  church,  which,  after  suitable  examination,  approved  of  the 
whole  plan,  with  the  exception  of  a  few  immaterial  particulars.  Accord- 
ingly, the  several  presbyteries  and  universities  concurred  with  the  Assembly,  in 
peUtioning  parliament  for  an  act,  enabling  them  to  raise  and  establish  a  fund, 
and  obliging  the  ministers  of  the  church,  with  the  heads,  principals,  and  mas- 
ters of  St  Andrews,  Glasgow,  and  Edinburgh,  to  pay  annually,  each  according 
to  his  option,  one  of  the  following  rates,  viz.,  eitiier  £2.  12s.  Gd.  £3.  18s.  »d. 
£o.  5s.,  or £6.  Us.  3d,,  to  be  repaid  in  proportional  annuities  of  £10,^15,  £20, 
or  £25,  to  their  widows,  or  insimilar  provisions  of  £  1 00,  £1 50,  £200,  or  £250, 
to  their  children.  The  act  was  obtained  in  terms  of  the  petition,  (I  7  Geo.  11.,) 
with  liberty  to  employ  the  surplus  of  the  annual  paymenU  and  expenses 
in  loans  of  £30  a-piece  among  the  contributors,  and  to  put  out  the  re- 
mainder at  interest,  on  proper  security.  A  second  act,  amending  the  former, 
was  procured  in  the  22nd  vear  of  the  same  reign,  (1748,)  regulating  the 
several  parts  of  the  management,  and  granting  liberty  to  raise  the  capital  to 
£S0,000,  including  the  sums  lent  to  contributors.^  The  commencement  of 
the  fund  is  reckoned  from  the  25ih  of  March,  1741,  the  whole  trouble 
of.  planning,  arranging,  and  collecting  the  revenues,  and  applying  them 
to  their  immediate  purposes,  devolving  on  the  original  proposer,  who,  will,  a 

2  The  ensuing  ac-ount  of  the  Clcrg>'s  AVi.'ows'  .Sclieme  is  lake,.  f'°"V.»  »'^^^  Ij^^ 
WebsTer.Tn  t^^e  Scots  Magazine  for  1S02.  bom.  fui  iher  pari.cul.rs  are  given  m  the  arucl. 
Da  KoBKRT  Wallace.  .    .    ,  j       ..  „„~* 

3  B\  this  act,  the  university  of  Abcrdetn  was  iiic.uc.«-d  on  nqucst. 


444  DR.  ALEXANDER  WEBSTER. 


patience  and  perseverance  nearly  equal  to  the  extreme  accuracy  of  his  calcula- 
tions, at  List  completed  tlie  scheme.  In  the  year  1770,  a  new  act  of  parlia- 
niLMit,  procured  by  advice  of  Dr  Webster,  prescribed  tlie  full  form  in  wliich  the 
fund  is  at  present  conducted.  The  loans  granted  to  contributors  were  discon< 
tinued,  as  prejudicial  to  tlie  parties  concerned  ;  liberty  was  granted  to  extend 
the  capital  to  ^6100,000  ;  the  methods  of  recovering  payments;  llie  nomination 
and  duties  of  trustees  ;  the  salaries  of  the  collector  and  clerk  ;  in  short,  tlie 
whole  economy  of  the  institution,  were  fixed  and  determined.  A  tax  on 
the  inan-iage  of  each  contributor,  amounting  to  one  year's  annual  rate  of  his 
particular  option ;  and,  if  lie  were  forty  years  of  age  at  his  accession  to 
his  benefice,  and  had  children,  the  sum  of  two  years  and  a  half  of  his  rate,  be- 
sides his  ordinary  dues  and  marriage,  were  added  to  tiie  revenue.  Further,  a 
sum  of  half  his  usual  rate  was  declared  due.  to  the  fund,  out  of  the  ann. ; 
or,  in  case  of  its  not  falling,  out  of  his  real  or  personal  estate,  on  the 
death  of  a  minister;  and  patrons  were  assessed  in  the  sum  of  ^C3.  2s.  for 
every  half  year's  vacancy. 

A  report  of  the  state  of  the  fund  was  ordered  to  be  made  annually  to 
the  General  Assembly  by  the  trustees,  and  this  afterwards  to  be  printed. 
Dr  Webster,  in  the  year  1748,  had  finished  a  series  of  calculations,  in  whicli 
he  not  only  ascerLiined  the  probable  number  of  ministei'S  tliat  Avould  die  an- 
nually, of  widows  and  children  that  would  be  left,  of  annuitants  drawing  whole 
or  half  annuities,  and  the  medium  of  the  annuities,  and  annual  rates,  but  also 
the  different  annual  states  of  the  fund,  in  its  progress  to  completing  tlie  capital 
stock.  These  calculations  have  approached  the  fact  with  astonishing  precision. 
It  would  exceed  our  limits  to  insert  the  comparison  between  the  calculations 
and  the  facts  stated  in  the  reports  for  the  years  1703,  1765,  and  1779,  and 
printed  again  in  those  for  1790,  &c.  ;  but  we  shall  only  mention,  that  in  the 
second  of  these  statements,  the  comparison  ran  as  follows  :  thirty  ministers  were 
calculated  to  die  annually  ;  inde  for  twenty-one  years,  from  1741  to  1765,  the 
number  by  calculation  is  630;  the  fact  was  615,  being  only  15  of  total  dif- 
ference. Twenty  widows  were  calculated  to  be  left  annually  in  tlie  foremen- 
tioned  period  ;  tliere  were  left  41 1  :  the  calculation  was  420,  and  the  diflerence 
9.  It  was  calculated,  that  six  families  of  children,  without  a  widow,  would  be 
left  annually  ;  the  calculated  amount  for  the  above  period,  wns  126,  the  fact  1 24, 
the  diflerence  2.  Four  ministers  or  professors  were  calculated  to  die  annually, 
without  either  widows  or  children;  the  calculated  number  for  the  first  twenty- 
one  years  was  84,  the  fr.ct  was  82.  The  difierences  for  that  period,  between 
the  calculated  mediums  of  the  whole  number  of  annuities,  and  of  annual  rates, 
compared  each  with  its  respective  fact,  was,  for  the  number  of  annuities,  li. 
2d.  6-12th8,  and  for  the  rates  3s.  Od.  6-12ths.  On  the  22nd  of  November, 
1799,  in  the  fifty-sixth  year  of  the  fund,  and  the  year  which  completed  tlitj 
capital  stock  fixed  by  act  of  parliament,  Dr  Webster's  calculations,  after  having 
approached  the  truth  for  a  long  series  of  years  with  surprising  accuracy,  stood 
in  the  following  manner:  the  stock  and  surplus  for  that  year  were  .£105,50], 
2s.  lid.  3-12ths,  and  the  calculated  stock  was  i;8i),44S,  12s.  1  Od.  8-l2tiis; 
consequently  the  difference  was  iC  19,035,  10s.  Od.  7-12ths. 

In  the  year  1745,  wiien  tiie  Highland  army  under  prince  Charles  Stuaft, 
took  possession  of  Edinburgh,  Dr  Webster  manifested  the  sincerity  and  firm- 
ness of  his  principles,  as  well  as  his  general  vigour  of  character,  by  remaining 
ill  the  city,  and  exerting  his  eloquence  to  suj)port  the  people  in  their  attach- 
ment to  the  house  of  Hanover.  On  the  day  afierwards  appointed  by  the 
General  Assembly  for  a  thanksgiving  for  the  victory  of  CuUoden,  (June  23, 
1740,)  he  preached  a  sermon,  afterwards  printed,  in  which  he  made  a  masterly 


DR.  ALEXANDER  WEBSTER.  445 

exposure  of  the  new-born  affection  then  manifested  by  the  Tory  pirly  for  the 
cxistino-  dynasty.  Tliis  composition,  liowever,  is  degraded  by  a  panegyric  on 
tlse  infamous  Cumberland,  and  a  number  of  other  allusions  to  secular  penons 
and  affairs,  more  consistent  perhaps  with  the  manners  of  the  times,  than  with 
the  immutable  principles  of  taste  in  pulpit  oratory.  It  has  only  the  negativo 
merit  of  being  less  fulsome  in  its  respect  for  the  hero  of  the  day,  than  a  similar 
composition  by  Dr  Hugh  Blair,  which  contained  the  following  passage : 
*'  When  the  proper  season  Mas  come  for  God  to  assert  his  own  cause,  then  he 
raised  up  an  illustrious  deliverer,  whom,  for  a  blessing  to  his  country,  he  had 
prepared  against  this  time  of  need.  Him  he  crowned  with  the  graces  of  his 
right  hand  ;  to  the  conspicuous  bravery  of  early  youth,  he  added  the  conduct 
and  wisdom  which  in  others  is  the  fruit  only  of  long  experience:  and  distin- 
guished him  wilii  those  qualities  which  render  tlie  man  amiable,  as  well  as  the 
Hero  great.  He  sent  him  fortii  to  be  the  terror  to  his  foes,  and  in  the  day  of 
deatli,  commanded  the  shields  of  angels  to  be  spread  around  him."  At  iho 
time  when  this  and  similar  eulogia  were  in  the  course  of  being  pronounced,  the 
subject  of  them  Avas  wreaking  upon  a  defeated  party  the  vengeance  of  a  mean 
and  brutal  mind.  He  whom  the  shields  of  angels  had  protected  on  a  day  when 
superior  strength  rend'^red  danger  impossible,  w.i8  now  battening,  with  savage 
relish,  on  the  fruits  of  an  easy  conquest.  Cottages  were  smoking  in  every 
direction  for  a  hundred  miles  around  him,  a  prey  to  conflagration  ;  their 
tenants,  either  murdered  by  cold  steel,  or  starved  to  death  ;  while  the  dictates 
of  law,  of  humanity,  of  religion,  were  all  alike  unheard.  Nor  could  these  cir. 
cumstances  be  unknown  to  the  courtly  preachers. 

Dr  Webster  had  now  become  a  conspicuous  public  character,  and  the  utility 
of  his  talents  and  dignity  of  his  character  were  universally  acknowledged. 
The  comprehensiveness  of  his  mind,  and  the  accuracy  of  his  calculating  powers, 
rendered  him  a  desirable  and  most  useful  ally  in  almost  all  kinds  of  schemes  of 
public  improvement,  of  which,  at  that  period  of  nascent  prosperity,  a  great 
number  were  set  in  motion.  As  the  friend  of  provost  Drummond,  he  aided  much 
in  the  plan  of  the  new  town  of  Edinburgh,  not  scrupling  even  to  devise  plans 
for  those  public  places  of  amusement  wliich,  as  a  piinister  of  the  church 
of  Scotland,  he   was  forbidden  by  public  opinion  to  enter.     He  was  a  most 


1755,  he  drew  up,  at  the  desire  of  lord  president  Dundas,  for  the  information 
and  service  of  government,  an  account  of  the  number  of  people  in  Scotland  ; 
being  the  first  attempt  at  a  census  ever  made  in  the  kingdom.  His  rese.-irches 
on  this  occasion  were  greatly  facilitated  by  a  general  correspondence  which  ho 
had  opened  in  1743,  both  with  the  clergy  and  laity,  for  the  purposes  of  the 
Clergy's  Widows'  Fund.  "  Dr  Webster's  well-known  character  for  accuracy,' 
says  Sir  John  Sinclair,  "  and  the  success  with  which  his  calculations  h.ave  been 
uniformly  attended,  ought  to  satisfy  every  one  that  the  report  he  drew  up  may 
be  safely  relied  on."  Yet,  as  the  means  employed  on  the  occasion  w-ere  only 
calculated  to  produce  an  approximation  to  correctness,  it  nmst  not  be  disguised 
that  the  census  of  1755,  as  it  is  sometimes  called,  was  in  no  respect  coinp.ira- 
ble  to  those  which  actual  survey  has  since  effected. 

Our  limits  will  not  allow  ns,  nor  our  information  suffice,  to  enumerate  all 
the  charitable  institutions,  or  projects  of  public  welfare,  temporary  or  lasting 
in   which  Dr  Webster  was  engaged.     As  he  lived  to  an  advanced  age    he  h.ad 
the  pleasure  of  seeing  many  of  them  arrive  at  their  maturity  "^  j'-^"'     ^  '       ! 
best  reward,  perhaps,  which  merit  ever  enjoys.     He  preserved,  to  the  latcs. 


446  ALEXANDER  WEDDERBURN. 


period  of  his  cota*se,  tliat  activity  both  of  mind  and  body,  which  distin- 
guished him  in  the  prime  of  life ;  and,  ripe  like  a  sheaf  in  autumn,  obtained 
his  frequent  wish  and  prayer,  an  easy  and  peaceful  death,  after  a  very  short 
indisposition,  on  Sunday,  the  25lh  of  January,  1784.  By  his  Jady,  who  died 
November  28,  1766,  he  had  six  sons  and  a  daughter:  one  of  the  former, 
colonel  Webster,  fell  in  tlie  American  contest.  The  person  of  Dr  Webster  was, 
as  already  mentioned,  diguilied  and  commanding.  In  latter  life,  it  berame 
somewhat  attenuated  and  bent.  His  countenance,  of  whidi  a  good  memorial, 
by  David  Martin,  is  in  the  office  of  the  Ministers'  Widows'  Fund,  was  of  an 
elevated  and  striking  cast,  and  iiighly  characteristic  of  his  mind.  It  is  related 
to  his  honour,  that  the  superior  income  wliich  his  wife's  fortune  placed  at  his 
command,  was  employed  with  unusual  bountifulness  in  behalf  of  the  poor,  to 
whom  he  tlins  proved  liimself  a  practical  as  well  as  theoretic  friend. 

WEDDERBUIIN,  Alkxaxdkr,  first  earl  of  Rosslyn,  was  born,  February  13, 
1733,  at  Chesterhall  in  East  Lothian.  His  father  was  Peter  Wedderburn, 
of  Chestei-hali,  Esquire,  an  eminent  advocate,  who  became  in  1755,  a  judge  of 
the  court  of  session,  with  the  designation  of  lord  Chesterhall.  The  grandfather 
of  the  latter  was  Sir  Peter  Wedderburn  of  Gosford,  an  eminent  lawyer,  and 
subsequently  a  judge,  during  the  reign  of  Charles  II. ;  of  whom  Sir  George 
Mackenzie  speaks  in  terms  of  the  highest  panegyric,  in  his  Cliarncters  of  Scot- 
tish Lawyers.'  Sir  Peter  was  descended  from  an  old  landed  family  in  Forfar- 
shire, which  had  produced  several  learned  persons  of  considerable  eminence. 

The  subject  of  this  memoir  was  bred  to  the  profession  in  whicli  his  father 
and  great-grandfather  had  so  highly  distinguished  themselves  ;  and  so  soon 
wevQ  his  natural  and  acquired  powers  brought  into  exercise,  that  he  was 
admitted  to  the  bar  at  the  unusually  early  ago  of  nineteen.  He  was  rapidly 
gaining  gi-ound  as  a  junior  counsel,  when  an  accident  put  a  sudden  stop  to  his 
practice  in  his  native  courts.  He  had  gained  the  cause  of  a  client  in  opposi- 
tion to  the  celebrated  Lockhnrt,  when  the  defeated  veteran,  unable  to  conceal 
his  chagrin,  took  occasion  from  something  in  the  manner  of  IMr  Wedderburn, 
to  call  Iiim  "  a  presumptuous  boy."  Tho  sarcastic  severity  of  the  young 
barrister's  reply  drew  upon  him  so  illiberal  a  rebuke  from  one  of  the  judges, 
that  he  immediately  unrobed,  and,  bowing  to  the  court,  declared  that  he  would 
never  more  plead  where  he  was  subjected  to  insult,  but  would  seek  a  wider 
field  for  his  professional  exertions.  Ho  accordingly  removed  to  London,  in 
May,  1753,  and  enrolled  himself  a  member  of  the  Inner  Temple.  A  love  of 
letters  which  distinguished  him  at  this  early  period  of  life,  placed  Iiim,  (1754,) 
in  the  chair  at  the  first  meeting  of  a  literary  society,  of  wliich  Hume,  Snn"th, 
and  other  eminent  men,  greatly  his  seniors,  were  membei-s.  Professional 
pursuits,  however,  left  him  little  leisure  for  the  exercise  of  his  pen  ;  which  is 
to  be  the  more  regretted,  as  the  few  specimens  of  his  composition  wliich  have 
reached  us,  display  a  distinctness  of  conception,  and  a  nervous  precision 
of  language,  such  as  might  have  secured  the  public  approbation  for  much  more 
elaborate  eflbrts.  It.  is  related,  to  his  honour,  that  he  retained  to  the  close  of 
his  life,  amidst  the  dignities  and  cares  of  his  elevated  station,  a  most  affection- 
ate attachment  to  all  the  literary  friends  of  his  youth. 

Mr  Wedderburn  was  called  to  the  English  bar  in  1757,  and  became  a 
bencher  of  Lincoln's  Inn  in  1763.     He  early  acquired  considerable  reputation 

1  "  Wedderburnns  momm  probitate  judices,  jndices  clienti  conciliabat,  diceadique 
Buavitate  eos  corrumpero  potuisset  si  voluisset;  nihil  autem  ills  in  facto  nisi  quod  verum 
nee  injure  nisi  quod  justum,  pathetice,  urgebat;  Ciceronis  leetioni  semper  incumbebat; 
unde  illi  dicendi  genus  uniforme  et  flexanimum :  ex  junioribus  tamen  nullum  ilium  eloquium 
decorabat,  famaque  fugientem  prosequebatur." 


A.LEXANDER  ^^■EDDERBUKN, 


447 


and  practice,  which  he  greatly  increased  by  becoming  tlie  advocate  of  lord 
Clive,  ill  uliose  cause  he  was  tiiuinphantly  successful.  He  pleaded  on  the  great 
Douglas  cause  in  17G8-9,  when  his  acute  reasoning,  his  deep  reading,  and  his 
irresistible  eloquence,  attracted  the  favourable  notice  of  lord  Camden,  and  se- 
cured him  ever  after  the  protection  and  friendship  of  lords  Bute  and  Mansfield. 
If  the  squibs  of  his  political  opponents  in  after  life  are  to  be  trusted,  his  en- 
deavours at  the  commencement  of  his  career  to  forget  his  national  accent  were 
not  verj'  successful ;  while  his  friends  asserted,  perhaps  truly,  that  he  only  re- 
tained enough  of  it  to  give  increased  effect  to  his  oratory. 

After  having  been  called  to  the  degree  of  sergeant-at-law,  with  the  rank  of 
king's  counsel,  he  was  promoted  in  January  1771,  to  the  office  of  solicitor- 
general,  and  in  June,  1773,  to  that  of  attorney-general:  the  duties  of  theso 
posts  he  is  said  to  have  disc'iarged  with  a  mildness  and  moderation  which  pro- 
cured him  universal  approbation  ;  though  his  inveterate  hostility  to  Franklin, 
and  the  overwhelming  bitterness  of  his  language  before  the  privy  council  in 
1774,  are  justly  held  to  detract  considerably  from  his  merit.  Mr  Wedderburn 
first  sat  in  parliament  for  the  Inverary  district  of  burghs,  and  in  1774,  being 
chosen  simultaneously  for  Castle  Rising  and  Oakhampton,  made  his  election  for 
tlie  latter  ;  in  1778,  he  was  elected  for  Bishop's  Castle.  Throughout  his  career 
in  the  house  of  commons,  he  was  a  powerful  support  to  the  ministry  of  lord 
North,  not  only  by  his  eloquence,  but  by  the  great  extent  of  his  legal,  juris- 
prudential, and  parliamentary  knowledge.  His  merits  as  a  statesman  are  of 
course  estimated  very  differently  by  contemporary  party  writers.  Churchill 
lias  embalmed  him  in  the  well-known  qujitrain  : — 

"  .Mute  at  the  bar,  and  in  the  senate  loud. 
Dull  'mongst  the  dullest,  proudest  of  the  prou  ', 
A  pert,  prim  prater,  of  the  northern  race, 
Guilt  in  liis  heart,  and  famiae  in  his  face." 

Yet  even  Junius  has  allowed  that  his  character  was  respected,  and  that  he  pos- 
sessed the  esteem  of  society.  Sir  Egerton  Bridges  says  :  "  Lord  Rosslyn  ap- 
peared to  be  a  man  of  subtle  and  plausible,  rather  than  solid  talents.  His 
ambition  was  great,  and  his  desire  of  office  unlimited.  He  could  argue  witli 
great  in-enuity  on  either  side,  so  that  it  was  difficult  to  anticipate  his  future 
by  his  past  opinions.  These  qualities  made  him  a  valuable  partizan,  and  an 
useful  and  efficient  member  of  any  administration."  One  public  service  of  high 
value  is  always  allowed  to  Mr  Wedderburn.  During  the  celebrated  metropoli- 
tan  riots  in  1780,  when  the  municipal  power  had  proved  so  inadequate  to  the 
occasion,  and  the  conflagration  of  the  whole  capital  seemed  to  be  threatened, 
a  privy  council  was  held  by  the  king,  who  asked  Mr  Wedderburn  for  his  of- 
ficial opinion.  Mr  Wedderburn  stated  in  the  most  precise  terms,  that  any 
such  assemblage  of  depredators  might  be  dispersed  by  military  force,  without 
waiting  for  forms  or  reading  the  riot  act.  "  Is  that  your  declaration  of  the 
law  as' attorney-general?"  asked  the  king;  BIr  Weddex-burn  ^"r""^,^'"^ 
ly  in  the  affirmative,  "  Then  let  it  so  be  done,"  replied  his  majesty;  and  the 
auorney-general  immediately  drew  up  the  order  by  which  the  rioters  were  m  a 
few  hours  dispersed,  and  the  metropolis  saved.  , 

In  June  of  the  year  last  mentioned,  Mr  \N  edderbum  was  called  to  the 
privy  rouitci?  raised  to  the  bench  as  lord  chief  justice  of  the  court  of  Common 
K  and  to  the  peerage  as  lord  Loughborough,  baron  of  Loughborough  in  he 
To  ty  of  Leicester.  He  had  occasion  in  his  judicial  '^^'^^-^"^V hTowed 
iurv  sittinn-  under  the  commission  for  the  trial  of  the  rioter  ;  and  it  '«  J^»«  «^ 
That  tte  address  was  one  of  the  finest  specimens  of  reasoned  eloquence  that  had 


L 


4.iS  JAMES  \\EDDERBUEX. 


ever  been  delivered  in  that  situation ;  though  some  haro  objected  t1i.it,  both  on 
this  and  on  other  occasions,  his  Scottish  education  inclined  liiin  too  much  to^ 
\rards  the  principles  and  modes  of  tlie  civil  law,  inculcating  greater  latitude 
than  by  the  precision  of  the  English  law  was  warranted. 

In  April,  1783,  lord  Loughborough  united  with  his  friend  lord  North  in 
forming  tlie  celebrated  Coalition  ministry,  in  which  he  held  the  appointment 
of  first  commissioner  for  keeping  llie  great  seal  ;  but  the  reflections  so  justly 
levelled  at  many  of  the  coalesced  leaders  did  not  apply  to  the  '*  wary  Wedder- 
burn,"  for  he  had  never  uttered  any  opinion. depreciatory  of  the  talents  or 
character  of  3Ir  Fox.  From  the  breaking  up  of  tins  ministry,  his  lordship  re- 
mained out  of  office  till  the  alarm  of  the  French  revolution  separated  the 
lieterogeneous  opposition  which  its  remnants  h.id  formed  for  nearly  ten  years 
against  Mr  Pitt,  under  whom  he  accepted  oflice,  January  27,  171)3,  as  lord 
high  chancellor.  He  filled  that  important  station  for  eight  years,  "  not  per- 
haps, says  Brydges,  "  in  a  manner  perfectly  satisfactory  to  the  suitors  of  his 
court,  nor  always  with  the  highest  degree  of  dignity  as  speaker  of  the  upper 
house,  but  always  with  that  pliancy,  readiness,  ingenuity,  and  knowledge,  of 
tvhich  political  leaders  must  have  felt  the  convenience,  and  the  public  duly  ap- 
preciated the  talent.  Yet  his  slender  and  flexible  eloquence,"  continues  this 
elegant  writer,  "  his  minuter  person,  and  the  comparative  feebleness  of  liis  bodily 
organs,  were  by  no  means  a  match  for  the  direct,  sonorous,  and  energetic 
oratory,  tiie  powerful  voice,  dignified  figure,  and  bold  manner  of  Thurlow  ;  of 
whom  he  always  seemed  to  stand  in  awe,  and  to  whose  superior  judgment  ho 
often  bowed  against  his  will." 

Lord  Loughborough  having  been  twice  married  without  issue,  and  his  first 
patent  having  been  limited  to  heirs-male,  a  new  patent  was  granted  to  him  in 
1795,  by  which  his  nephew  Sir  James  Sinclair  Erskine  of  Alva,  was  entitled  to 
succeed  him.  On  resigning  the  chancellorship  in  April,  1301,  his  lordship 
was  created  earl  of  Rosslyn,  in  the  county  of  3Iid  Lothian,  with  the  same  re- 
mainders. He  now  retired  from  public  life,  but  continued  to  be  a  frequent 
guest  of  his  sovereign,  who  never  ceased  to  regard  him  Avith  tlie  highest  esteem. 
During  the  brief  interval  allowed  to  him  between  the  theatre  of  public  business 
and  the  grave,  he  paid  a  visit  to  Edinburgh,  from  which  he  had  been  habitual- 
ly absent  for  nearly  fil'ty  years.  With  a  feeling  quite  natural,  perhaps,  but  yet 
hardly  to  be  expected  in  one  who  had  passed  through  so  many  of  the  more  ele- 
vated of  the  artificial  scenes  of  life,  he  caused  himself  to  be  carried  in  a  chair 
to  an  obscure  part  of  the  Old  Town,  where  he  had  resided  during  the  most  of 
his  early  years.  He  expressed  a  particular  anxiety  to  know  if  a  set  of  holes 
in  the  paved  court  before  his  father's  house,  whicli  he  had  used  for  some  youth- 
ful sport,  continued  in  existence,  and,  on  finding  them  still  there,  it  is  said 
tliat  the  aged  statesman  was  moved  ahr.nst  to  tears."  The  earl  of  Rosslyn  died 
at  Bayles  in  Berkshire,  January  3,  1805,  and  was  interred  in  St  Pauls 
cathedral.  A  portrait  of  his  lordship,  painted  by  Reynolds,  was  engraved  by 
Bartolozzi.  He  wrote,  in  early  life,  critiques  on  Barclay's  Greek  grammar, 
the  Decisions  of  the  Supreme  Court,  and  the  Abridgment  of  the  Public  Statutes, 
Mhich  appeared  in  the  Edinburgh  Review,  1755.  In  1793,  he  published  a 
treatise  on  the  management  of  prisons,  and  subsequently  a  treatise  on  the 
English  poor  laws,  addressed  to  a  clergyman  in  Yorkshire. 

WEDDERBURN,  Ja.mes,  a  poet  of  the  sixteenth  century,  was  bom  in  Dundee 

about  the  year  1500,  and  is  supposed  to  have  belonged  to  the  family  which 

afterwards  produced  the  earl  of  Rosslyn.     He  wrote  three  poems,  beginning 

respectively  with  the  following  lines :  "  My  love  was  falss  and  full  of  flatteric," 

*  The  house  was  situated  in  Gmj's  close,  opposite  to  the  ancient  Alint. 


JAMES  WEDDERBUBN.  4i9 


"  I  think  thir  men  are  verie  fals  and  vain,"  "  O  man,  transfonuit  and  un- 
naturall,"  which  are  to  be  found  with  his  name  in  the  Bannatyne  manuscrip!;. 
Wedderburn  appears  to  have  early  espoused  the  cause  of  the  Keforraation. 
In  two  dramatic  compositions,  a  tragedy  on  tiie  beheading  of  John  the  Baptist, 
and  a  comedy  called  "  Dionysius  tiie  Tyrant,"  which  were  represented  at  Dun- 
dee about  the  year  1510,  he  exposed  to  ridicule  and  execration  the  corruptions 
of  the  cliurch  of  Rome  :  both  compositions,  however,  are  now  lost.  It  seems 
to  have  been  before  1549,  that  he  composed  his  celebrated  "  Buike  of  Godlie 
and  Spiritual  Sangs,  collected  out  of  sundrie  pnrts  of  Scripture,  wylh  sundrie 
of  uther  Ballates,  changed  out  of  Profane  Sangs  for  avoyding  of  Sinne  and  Har- 
lotrie,"  as,  though  no  edition  of  it  before  that  of  Sraytli,  in  1501),  is  in  the 
hands  of  modern  antiquaries,  it  seems  to  be  denounced  in  a  canon  of  the  pro- 
vincial council  of  the  clergy  held  in  1549,  and  foi-  cerUiin  is  alluded  to  in  a 
manuscript "  Historic  of  the  Kirk,"  dated  in  1 5G0.  The  "  Buike  of  Godlie  and 
Spiritual  Sangs,"  though  allowed  to  have  been  a  most  effectual  instrument  in 
expelling  the  old  and  planting  the  new  religion,  appears  to  modern  taste  as 
only  a  tissue  of  blaspliemy  and  absurdity  ;  the  "  sangs  "  being  chiefly  parodies 
of  the  coarse  and  indecent  ballads  of  the  common  people,  retaining  the  general 
structure  and  music,  with  much  of  the  very  language  of  the  originals,  and  thus 
associating  the  most  sacred  and  the  most  profane  images. 

That  extraordinary  book,  the  "Complaynt  of  Scotland,"  which  appeared  at 
St  Andrews  in  1548,  without  the  name  of  either  author  or  printer,  has 
been  ascribed  to  Wedderburn  in  the  Harleian  Catalogue  ;  nor  does  it  appear 
that  the  claims  of  Mackenzie  for  Sir  James  Inglis,  or  those  of  Leyden  for  Sir 
David  Lindsay,  can  stand  for  a  moment  against  the  probabilities  of  this  sup- 
position. Inglis,  it  is  hardly  possible  to  deny,  was  murdered  in  1530,  eighteen 
years  before  the  composition  and  publication  of  the  Complaynt ;  and  so  little 
confidence  had  Leyden  himself  in  the  theory  which  he  employed  nearly  three 
Imndred  pages  to  support,  that  he  candidly  confesses,  at  the  close  of  his  disser- 
tation, "  he  scarcely  expects  his  remarks  to  produce  conviction." 

Previously  to  the  introduction  of  the  version  of  Sternhold  and  Hopkins  into 
Scotland,  in  1564,  the  reformed  congregations  sang  versions  of  twenty-one 
psalms,  and  paraphrases  of  the  Lord's  prayer,  creed,  and  commandments,  which 
had  been  executed  for  that  purpose  by  the  subject  of  this  memoir.  Two  vei-scs 
of  his  translation  of  the  i37ih  psalm  may  be  given  as  a  specimen  of  hU 
uKinner : — 

At  the  rivirs  of  Babylon, 

Quhair  we  dwelt  in  captivitle, 

Quhen  we  rememberit  on  Syon, 

We  weipil  a)  full  sorrowfullie. 

On  the  sauch  tries  our  herpes  we  hang, 

Quhen  thay  requirit  us  an  sang. 

They  hald  us  into  sic  thraldome, 

They  bad  us  sing  sum  psalme  or  hymmo, 

That  we  in  Syon  sang  sum  tyme ; 

To  quhome  we  answerit  full  sune  : 


Nonht  may  we  oulher  play  or  sing, 
Ihe  psalmis  of  our  Lord  sa  s\vcit, 
Intil  ane  uncouth  land  or  ring.^ 
My  richt  hand  first  sail  that  forlcit, 
Or  Jerusiilcm  forjeltin  be  ; 


1  Kingdom. 
3  L 


450  DAVID  WEDDERBURN. 


Fast  to  my  cliafiis  my  lung  sail  be 
Cll'pit,  or  that  1  it  forget. 
In  my  m:ibt  gladnus  and  my  g.i:iie, 
I  sail  remember  Jerusulcm, 
Aud  all  my  hart  upon  it  s'.-t. 

Wedderburn  is  said  to  liave  ultimately  gone  to  England,  where  Iio  died  in 
156i-5. 

WEDDERBURN,  Dattd,  a  poet  of  considerable  eminence,  was  born  proba- 
bly about  the  year  1570.  Neither  the  place  of  his  birth  nor  his  parentage  has 
been  ascertained.  Of  the  latter  all  that  is  Itnomi  is  that  his  mother  was  buried 
in  St  Nicholas  church  at  Aberdeen  in  1635.'  It  is  highly  probable  from 
Tarious  circumstances  that  Wedderburn  was  educated  in  tlie  city  just  named,  and 
that  he  studied  either  in  King's,  or  in  the  newer  institution,  jMarischal  col- 
lege. In  1602,  a  vacancy  occurred  in  the  grammar-school  of  Aberdeen,  by 
the  death  of  Thomas  Cargill,  a  grammarian  of  great  reputation,  and  author  of  a 
treatise  on  the  Gowrie  conspiracy,  now  apparently  lost.  After  an  examination 
which  lasted  four  days  and  extended  to  "  oratorie,  poesie,  and  compositioun  in 
prois  and  versa,"  Wedderburn  and  Mr  Thomas  Reid,  afterwards  the  well-known 
Latin  secretary  to  James  VI.,  were  appointed  "  co-equall  and  conjunct  mastei-s  " 
of  the  institution,  with  salaries  of  ^40  yearly,  and  the  quarterly  fees  of  the 
scholars  limited  to  ten  shillings.  They  were  inducted  into  this  cfRce  by  "  d&. 
livery  to  thame  of  ane  grammar  buke."-  Early  in  1603,  Wedderburn  ap- 
peared before  the  town  council,  and  stated,  that  being  "  urgit  and  burdenit  bo 
the  lait  provinciall  assemblie  of  ministers,  hauldin  at  this  burghe,  to  accept  upon 
him  the  function  of  ane  minister  of  Goddis  word,  he  wes  resolvit  to  enter  in 
the  said  function  and  obey  God,  calling  him  thairto  be  the  said  assemblie,  and  to 
leave  and  desert  the  said  school),"  and  concluded  by  craving  leave  to  demit  his 
office.  This  the  council  granted,  and  accompanied  it  with  a  testimonial  of 
his  faithful  discharge  of  his  duty ;  but,  from  what  cause  is  now  unknown,  Wed- 
derburn in  the  same  year  resumed  his  office.  Before  he  had  retained  it  twelve 
months,  a  complaint  was  lodged  against  him  for  making  exorbit^tnt  claims  on 
the  scholars  for  fees,  charity  on  Sundays,  "  candle  and  bent  siller."  These 
exactions  were  repressed  by  the  magistrates,  and  in  1619,  the  quarterly  fees 
were  advanced  from  ten  shillTngs  to  thirteen  shillings  and  fourpence.  Several 
years  before  this,  in  1612,  his  scholars  distinguished  themselves  by  an  act  of 
mutiny  of  the  boldest  nature.  In  conjunction  with  the  other  scholars  of  the 
town,  they  took  possession  of  the  Song  or  3Iu8in  school,  and  fortified  them- 
selves within  it.  Being  armed  with  guns,  hagbuts,  and  pistols,  they  boldly 
sallied  forth  as  occasion  required,  and,  attacking  the  houses  of  the  citizens, 
broke  open  the  doors  and  windows,  "  and  maisterfullie  away  took  their  foullis, 
pultrie,  breid,  and  vivaris."  They  also  intercepted  the  supplies  of  fuel  and 
provisions  intended  for  the  city  markets,  and  continued  in  this  state  of  open 
insurrection  for  two  days,  when  they  submitted  to  the  authority  of  the  magis- 
trates, »ho  punished  the  ringleaders  by  imprisonment,  and  banished  twenty- 
one  of  their  associates  from  all  the  city  schools.^ 

In  1614,  on  the  death  of  Gilbert  Gray,  principal  of  Marischal  college,  Wed- 
derburn was  appointed  to  teach  "  the  high  class"  of  the  university,  probably 
meaning  the  class  then  usually  taught  by  the  principal.  In  1617,  ap- 
peared tlie  first  of  his  publications,  two  poems  on  the  king's  visit  to  Scot- 
laud   in  that   year,   the    one   entitled,    "  Syneuphranterion    in    reditu  Regis 

1  Kirk  find  Bridge  Work  Accounts  of  Aberdeen,  IC34-1625. 
*  Council  Hegister  of  Aberdeen,  xl.  4r9,  410. 
»  Council  Register  of  Aberdeen,  xlv.  866. 


DAVID  WEDDERBUIiN.  451 


in  Scotiam,  1617,"  and  the  otiier  "  Propempticon  Caritatuin  Abredonensium." 
lioth  these  poems  (along  with  five  others  by  the  author,)  were  reprinted  in  the 
"  Delitiae  Poetarum  Scotorum,"  and  the  last  of  these,  composed  at  the  request 
of  the  magistrates,  procured  him  a  donation  of  fifty  merks.  In  1G19,  he  was 
appointed  to  teach  a  lesson  in  humanity  once  a- week  to  the  students  of 
Marischal  college,  from  such  authors  as  the  magistrates  might  select,  and  also 
to  compose  in  Latin,  both  in  prose  and  verse,  an  essay  on  the  common  affairs  of 
the  city.  For  tliis  he  was  to  receive  a  salary  of  eighty  merks  per  annum.  In 
1625,  he  wrote  a  poem  on  the  death  of  James  VI.,  which  was  printed  at  Aber- 
deen by  Edward  Raban,  under  the  title  of  "  Abredonia  Atrata  sub  Obitura 
Serenissiuii  et  Potentissimi  Monarchse  Jacob!  VI.,  Abredoniee,  1625,"  4to,  pp. 
1 2.  This  was  dedicated  "  Ad  Amplissimos  Curias  Abredonensis  Primatus,"  and 
is  now  so  rare  as  to  be  priced  at  two  guineas.  In  1630,  he  completed 
the  writing  of  a  new  grammar  for  the  use  of  his  pupils,  and  received  from  the 
magistrates  a  reward  of  ^  1 00  Scots.  It  was  found,  however,  that  this  work  could 
"  neither  be  prentit  nor  publisht  for  the  use  of  young  schollaris,  whome  the 
same  concernis,  unto  the  tyme  the  same  resaive  approbatioune  frome  the  lordis  of 
counsall."  In  consequence  of  this,  the  magistrates  "  thocht  meit  and  expede, 
that  the  said  Mr  David  address  himself  with  the  said  wark  to  Edinburgh,  in  all 
convenient  diligence,  for  procuring  the  saidis  lordis  thair  approbatioun  thairto, 
and  ordanis  the  soume  of  ane  hundreth  pundis  race  to  be  debui-sit  to  him  be  the 
tounis  thesaurar  for  making  of  his  expenss  in  the  sudeward."  *  It  is  unknown 
whether  Wedderburn  succeeded  in  procuring  the  license  of  the  privy  council ; 
but  if  published  no  copy  of  this  "  gramer  newly  reformed "  seems  to  have 
been  preserved.  In  1635,  Wedderburn  lost  a  friend  and  patron  in  the  learned 
Patrick  Forbes  of  Corse,  bishop  of  Aberdeen  ;  and  among  the  many  distin. 
guished  contributors  to  tliat  prelate's  "  Funerals"  we  find  the  name  of  "David 
Wedderburnus  Latinas  Scholae  in  Urbe  Nova  AbredonicB  Prjefectus."  In 
1640,  he  was  so  borne  down  by  bodily  infirmity  that  he  was  allowed  to  retire 
from  the  rectorship  of  the  grammar-school  on  a  pension  of  two  hundred  merks 
annually.  The  succeeding  year  he  was  called  on  to  mourn  the  death  of  the 
celebrated  Arthur  Johnston,  with  whom  he  had  lived  in  tlie  closest  friendship. 
One  of  the  most  beautiful  of  JoKaston's  minor  poems  was  addressed  "  Ad  Davi- 
dem  Wedderburnum,  araicum  veterem,"  and  drew  forth  a  reply  frtoB  Wedder- 
burn of  equal  elegance.     He  thus  speaks  of  their  friendship  : 

'■'  Noster  talis  amor ;  quem  non  (pia  numina  tester) 
Ulla  procelloso  turbine  vincit  hiems. 
Absit!  ut  ^ncides  palmam  vel  fidus  Achates 
Hanc  libi  prceripiat,  prseripiatve  mihi." 

AndJolinston  dwells  with  much  feeling  on  their  early  intimacy: — 

"  Aptius  at  vestTffi,  tu  Wedderburne,  senectae 

Consulis,  et,  quae  fert  dura  senecta  malis. 
Bum  mihi  te  sisto,  dum,  quos  simul  egimus  amios, 

Mente  puto,  mutor,  nee  mihi  sum  quod  eram. 
iEsona  carmiriibus  mutavit  Colcliis  et  herbis; 

Hac  juvenem  tremulo  de  sene  fecit  ope. 
Cokhidis  in  morem,  veteri  lu  rediies  amiCC, 

Qui  pede  veloci  prseteriere  dies, 
Tempora  dum  ve  colo  tecum  simul  acta  juventae 

Me  mihi  vestituens,  ipsa  juventa  redit. 
Colchida  tu  vincis  :  loiigo  molimine  Colchis 

tjuod  semel  aura  fuit,  tu  mihi  socpe  facis." 


*  Cjuncil  Register,  vol.  52.  p.  8. 


452  JOHN  WELCH. 


On  the  death  of  this  valued  friend,  Wedderburn  published  six  elegies,  under  tho 
title  of  "  Sub  obituni  viii  clarissimi  et  caiissimi  D.  Aioturi  Jonstoni,  Medici 
Hegii,  Davidis  Wedderburni  Susi)iiia — Abredonife,  1 G4 1."  This  tract  has  since 
been  reprinted  by  Lauder  in  his  "  Poetarum  Scotoruni  Musjb  Sacra*,"  Edinburgh, 
1731.  Two  years  after  the  publication  of  his  "  Suspiria  "  he  published,  at 
Aberdeen,  "  31editationura  Canipestrium,  seu  Epigrannnatum  Moraliuni,  Cen- 
turiae  duae,"  and  in  the  following  year,  1644,  appeared  "  Centuria  tertia." 
Both  these  works  are  from  the  press  of  Edward  Raban,  and  are  of  great  rarity. 
It  is  probable  that  they  were  the  last  compositions  of  their  author  wliich  uere 
printed  in  his  lifetime,  if  we  except  some  commendatory  verses  to  a  treatise 
"De  Arte  conservando  sanitatem,"  published  at  Aberdeen  in  1G51.  Though 
the  precise  year  of  Wedderburn's  death  has  escaped  our  researches,  it  may  be 
fixed  within  a  few  years  from  this  last  date.  In  16G4,  his  brother,  Alexander, 
n-ave  to  the  world  "  Persius  Enucleatus,  sive  Gonnnentarius  exactissimus  et 
maxime  pei-spicuus  in  Persium,  Poetarum  omnium  difficillimum,  studio  Davidis 
Wedderburni,  Scoti  Abredonensis — opus  Pcsthumum  ;  Amstelodami,"  12mo. 
Besides  tho  works  now  enumerated,  Wedderburn  was  the  author  of  a  great 
number  of  commendatory  poems  and  elegiac  verses.  His  learning  has  been 
celebrated  by  Vossius,  who  styles  him  "  liomo  eruditissimus  beneque  promovers 
de  studiis  jiiventutis."  His  repuUition  is  attested  by  the  terms  on  which  he 
lived  with  many  of  the  most  eminent  persons  of  his  time.  His  intimacy  witli 
Arthur  Johnston  and  bi£hop  Patrick  Forbes,  has  been  already  mentioned  ;  the 
well  known  secretary  iieid  was  his  coadjutor ;  and  he  counted  among  his 
friends  Jameson  the  painter,  William  Forbes,  bishop  of  Edinburgh,  Gilbertus 
Jacobaeus,  Duncan  Liddel,  baron  Dun,  Ramsay,  Ross,  and  many  other  illus- 
trious individuals.  His  poems  show  in  every  line  an  intimate  acquaintance  with 
the  classic  writers,  and  are  filled  with  happy  allusions  to  ancient  history  and 
fable.  His  verees,  indeed,  are  more  to  be  admired  for  their  learning  than  for 
their  feeling ;  he  has  nowhere  succeeded  in  reaching  the  highest  flights  of 
poetry,  and  has  frequently  sunk  into  connuon-place  and  bathos.  But  it  is  im- 
possible to  withhold  admiration  from  the  case  and  elegance  of  his  latinily,  the 
epigrammatic  vivacity  of  his  style,  or  the  riches  of  classical  lore  w  ith  which  he  has 
adorned  his  pages. 

WELCH,  JoiLv,  a  celebrated  divine  of  the  seventeenth  century,  was 
born  about  the  year  1570.  His  father  was  a  gentleman  of  considerable  note 
in  Nithsdale,  where  he  possessed  a  pretty  extensive  and  valuable  estate  called 
Collieston.  The  outset  of  Mr  Welch's  career  was  an  extraordinary  one, 
and  presents  one  of  the  most  striking  and  singular  contrasts  of  conduct  and 
disposition  in  one  and  the  same  pe«-son  at  different  periods  of  life  which  can 
perhaps  be  found  in  the  annals  of  biography. 

This  faithful  and  exemplary  minister  of  the  church  (for  he  became  both  in 
an  eminent  degree)  began  the  world  by  associating  himself  with  a  band 
of  border  thieves.  While  at  school,  he  was  remarkable  for  the  unsteadiness  of 
his  habits,  and  for  an  utter  disregard  for  the  benefits  of  instruction  and  for  the 
admonitions  of  his  friends  and  preceptors.  He  was  also  in  the  practice  of  ab- 
senting himself,  frequently  and  for  long  periods,  frouj  school,  a  habit  in  which 
he  indulged  until  it  finally  terminated  in  his  not  only  abandoning  the  latter 
entirely,  but  also  his  father's  house,  and  betaking  himself  to  the  borders,  where, 
as  already  noticed,  he  joined  one  of  those  numerous  bands  of  freebooters  with 
which  those  districts  were  then  infested.  Whether,  however,  it  was  that  a  bet- 
ter spirit  cinie  over  the  young  prodigal,  or  that  he  found  the  life  of  a  border 
marauder  cither  not  such  as  he  had  pictured  it,  or  in  itself  not  agreeable  to 
him,  he  soon  repented  of  the  desperate  step  he  had  taken,  and  resolved  on  re- 
turning to  his  father's  house. 


JOHN  TVELCII.  453 


In  pursuance  or  this  resolution  he  called,  on  his  nay  homewards,  on  one  of 
his  aunts,  uho  lired  in  Dumfries,  with  the  view  of  making  her  a  mediator 
between  himself  and  his  offended  father,  an  office  which  she  undertook  and  ac- 
complished in  the  course  of  an  accidental  visit  which  young  Welch's  father  paid 
her  whilst  his  son  was  still  under  her  roof.  The  former,  however,  had  antici- 
pated  a  very  different  issue  to  his  son's  profligate  courses,  for,  on  a  sort  of  trial 
question  being  put  to  him  by  the  young  man's  aunt,  previously  to  her  producing 
him,  whether  lie  liad  heard  anything  lately  of  John,  he  replied,  "  The  fii-st 
news  I  expect  to  hear  of  him  is,  that  he  is  hanged  for  a  thief."  On  the  recon- 
ciliation Mith  his  father  being  effected,  young  Welch  entreated  him,  with  many 
protestations  of  future  amendment,  all  of  which  lie  afterwards  faithfully  imple- 
mented, to  send  him  to  college.  With  this  request  his  father  complied,  and 
the  young  convert  gave  him  no  reason  to  repent  of  his  indulgence.  He 
became  a  diligent  student,  and  made  such  rapid  progress  in  the  learning  of  the 
times  that  he  obtained  a  ministerial  settlement  at  Selkirk  before  he  had 
attained  his  twentieth  year.  His  stay  here,  however,  was  but  short,  as,  for  some 
reason  or  another  which  has  not  been  recorded,  he  seems  to  have  been  an  ob- 
ject of  dislike  and  jealousy  both  to  the  clergy  and  lay  gentlemen  of  the  district 
in  which  he  resided.  It  is  not  improbable  that  his  former  life  was  recollected 
to  his  disadvantage,  and  that  this  was,  at  least  in  some  measure,  the  cause  of 
the  enmity  with  which  he  was  persecuted.  But,  whatever  the  cause  was,  it  is 
certain  that  it  is  not  to  be  found  in  his  conduct,  which  was  now  exemplary, 
both  in  a  moral  and  religious  point  of  view.*  'Ihe  latter,  indeed,  was  of  an  ex- 
traordinary character.  It  was  marked  by  an  intensity  and  fervour,  an  unre- 
mitting and  indefatigable  zeal,  which  has  been  but  rarely  equalled  in  any  other 
person,  and  never  surpassed.  He  preached  publicly  once  every  day,  prayed, 
besides,  for  seven  or  eight  hours  during  the  same  period,  and  did  not  allow 
even  the  depth  of  the  night  to  pass  without  witnessing  the  ardency  and  en- 
thusiasm of  his  devotions.  Every  night,  before  going  to  bed,  he  threw  a  Scotch 
plaid  above  his  bed-clothes,  that,  when  he  awoke  to  his  midnight  prayers, 
it  might  be  in  readiness  to  wTap  around  his  shoulders.  These  devotional  habits 
he  commenced  with  his  ministry  at  Selkirk,  and  continued  to  the  end  of  his 
life.  Finding  his  situation  a  very  unpleasant  one,  Mr  Welch  readily  obeyed  a 
call  which  had  been  made  to  him  from  Kirkcudbright,  and  lost  no  time  in  re- 
moving thither.  On  this  occasion  a  remarkable  instance  occurred  of  that  unac- 
countable dislike  with  which  lie  was  viewed,  and  which  neither  his  exemplary 
piety  nor  upright  conduct  seems  to  have  been  capable  of  diminishing.  He 
could  not  find  any  one  pei-son  in  the  whole  town  excepting  one  poor  young 
man  of  the  name  of  Ewart,  who  would  lend  him  any  assistance  in  transporting 
his  furniture  to  his  new  destination.  Shortly  after  his  settlement  at  Kirkcud- 
bright Mr  Welch  received  a  call  from  Ayr.  Ihis  invitation  he  thought 
proper  also  to  accept,  and  proceeded  thither  in  1590. 

Some  of  the  details  of  this  period  of  IMr  Welch's  life  afford  a  remarkably 
striking  evidence  of  the  then  rude  and  barbarous  state  of  the  country.  On  his 
arrival  at  Ayr,  so  great  was  the  aversion  of  the  inhabitants  to  the  ministerial 
character,  and  to  the  wholesome  restraints  which  it  ought  always  to  impose,  that 
he  could  find  no  one  in  the  town  who  would  let  him  have  a  house  to  live  in, 
and  he  was  thus  compelled  to  avail  himself  of  the  hospitality  of  a  merchant  of 
the  name  of  Stewart,  who  offered  him  the  slielter  of  his  roof.  At  this  period, 
too,  it  appears  that  the  streets  of  Ayr  were  constantly  converted  into  scenes 
of  the  most  sanguinary  combats  between  factious  parties,  and  so  frequent 
and  to  such  an  extent  was  this  murderous  turbulence  carried  lliat  no  man  could 
walk  throusrh  the  town  witli  safety. 


454:  JOHN  WELCH. 


Among  the  first  duties  which  3Ir  Welch  imposed  upon  himself  after  his 
EOttleraent  at  Ayr,  was  to  correct  this  ruthless  and  ferocious  spirit,  and  the 
method  he  took  to  accomplish  his  good  work  was  a  singular  but,  as  it  proved, 
effectual  one.  Regardless  of  the  consequences  to  himself,  he  rushed  in  between 
the  infuriated  combatants,  wholly  unarmed,  and  no  otherwise  protected  from 
any  accidental  stroke  of"  their  weapons  than  by  a  steel  cap  which  he  previously 
placed  on  his  head  on  such  occasions.  When  he  had,  by  this  fearless  and  de- 
termined proceeding,  succeeded  in  staying  the  strife,  he  ordered  a  table  to  be 
covered  in  the  street,  and  prevailed  upon  the  hostile  parties  to  sit  down  and 
eat  and  drink  together,  and  to  profess  themselves  friends.  This  ceremony  he 
concluded  with  prayer  and  a  psahn,  in  which  all  joined.  The  novelty  of  this 
proceeding,  the  intrepidity  of  its  originator,  and  above  all  tlie  kind  and 
christian-like  spirit  which  it  breathed,  soon  had  the  most  beneficial  effects. 
The  evil  which  Mr  Welch  thus  aimed  at  correcting-  gradually  disappeared,  and 
he  himself  was  received  into  high  favour  by  the  inhabitants  of  the  tOAvn, 
who  now  began  to  reverence  his  piety  and  respect  his  worth.  While  in  Ayr 
Mr  Welch  not  only  adhered  to  the  arduous  course  of  devotional  exercise  which 
he  had  laid  down  for  himself  at  Selkirk,  but  increased  its  severity,  by  adopting 
a  practice  of  spending  whole  nights  in  prayer  in  the  church  of  Ayr,  which  was 
situated  at  some  distance  from  the  town,  and  to  Avhich  he  was  in  the  habit  of 
repairing  alone  for  this  pious  purpose.  Among  the  other  objects  of  pns- 
toral  solicitude  which  particularly  engaged  Mr  Welch's  attention  during  his 
niinisti'y  at  Ayr,  was  the  profanation  of  the  Sabbath,  one  of  the  most  prominent 
sins  of  the  place.  This  he  also  succeeded  in  remedying  to  a  great  extent  by  a 
similarly  judicious  conduct  with  that  he  observed  in  the  case  of  feuds  and 
quarrels.  This  career  of  usefulness  Mr  Welch  pursued  with  unwearied  dili- 
gence and  unabated  zeal  till  the  year  1G05,  Avhen  on  an  attempt  on  the  part  of 
the  king  (James  VI.,)  to  suppress  General  Assemblies,  and  on  that  of  tlie  clergy 
to  maintain  them,  he,  with  several  more  of  his  brethren,  was  thrown  into 
prison  for  holding  a  diet,  in  opposition  to  the  wishes  of  the  court  of  delegates 
of  synods,  of  which  Mr  Welch  was  one,  at  Aberdeen.  For  this  oflence  they 
were  summoned  before  the  privy  council,  but,  declining  the  jurisdiction  of  tiiat 
court  in  their  particular  case,  they  were  indicted  to  stand  trial  for  high  treason 
at  Linlithgow.  By  a  series  of  the  most  unjust,  illegal,  and  arbitrary  proceed- 
ings on  the  part  of  the  officers  of  the  crown,  a  verdict  of  guilty  was  obtained 
against  them,  and  they  were  sentenced  to  suffer  the  death  of  traitors.  The 
conduct  of  the  wives  of  the  condenmed  clergymen,  and  amongst  those  of  Mrs 
Welch  in  particular,  on  this  melancholy  occasion,  was  worthy  of  the  brightest 
page  in  Spartan  story.  Ihey  left  their  families  and  hastened  to  Linlithgow  to 
be  present  at  the  trial  of  their  husbands,  that  they  might  share  in  their  joy  if 
the  result  was  favourable,  and  that  they  might  inspire  them  with  courage  if  it 
were  otherwise.  On  being  informed  of  the  sentence  of  the  court,  "  these 
heroines,"  says  Dr  3I*Crie,  "  instead  of  lamenting  their  fate,  praised  God  who 
had  given  their  husbands  courage  to  stand  to  the  cause  of  their  Master,  adding, 
that,  like  Him,  tltey  hnd  been  judged  and  condemned  under  the  covert  of 
night."  If  spirit  be  hereditary,  this  magnanimous  conduct,  on  the  part  of  Mrs 
Welch  at  any  rate,  may  be  considered  accounted  for  by  the  circumstance  of  her 
having  been  the  daughter  of  John  Knox.  She  was  the  third  daughter  of  that 
celebrated  pereon.  Either  deterred  by  the  popularity  of  the  prisoners,  and 
the  cause  for  which  they  suffered,  or  satisfied  with  Uie  power  which  the  sen- 
tence of  the  court  had  given  him  over  their  persons,  James,  instead  of  bringing 
that  sentence  to  a  fatal  issue,  contented  himself  with  commuting  it  into  banish- 
ment;   and  on   the  7th  November,  IGOG,  Mr  Welch,  accompanied  by  his  wife, 


JOHN  WELCH.  455 


and  bis  associates  in  misfortune,  sailed  from  Leith  for  France,  after  an  im- 
prisonment of  many  montlis'  duration  in  the  castles  of  Edinburgh  and  Black- 
ness. So  great  was  the  public  sympathy  for  these  persecuted  men,  that, 
though  the  hour  of  their  embarkation  was  as  early  as  two  o'clock  of  the 
morning,  and  that  in  the  depth  of  winter,  they  were  attended  by  a  great 
number  of  persons  who  came  to  bid  them  an  afiectionate  farewell.  Tlie  part- 
ing of  the  expatriated  men  and  their  friends  was  solemn  and  characteristic, 
prayers  were  said,  and  a  psalm,  (the  23rd,)  in  which  all  who  were  present 
joined,  was  sung. 

On  his  arrival  in  France,  Mr  Welch  immediately  commenced  the  study  of 
the  language  of  the  country,  and  such  was  his  extraordinary  diligence,  and  his 
anxiety  to  make  himself  again  useful,  that  he  acquired,  in  the  short  space  of 
fourteen  weeks,  such  a  knowledge  of  French  as  enabled  him  to  preach  in  it. 
This  attainment  was  soon  after  followed  by  a  call  to  the  ministry  from  a 
protestant  congregation  at  Xeraa  Here,  however,  he  remained  but  for  a 
short,  period,  being  translated  to  St  Jean  D'Angely,  a  fortified  town  in  Lower 
Charente,  where  he  continued  to  reside  during  the  remainder  of  his  slay  in 
France,  which  was  upwards  of  fourteen  years. 

While  living  at  St  Jean  D'Angely,  Mr  Welch  evinced,  on  an  occasion  whi<;h 
called  for  it,  a  degree  of  courage  in  the  field  not  less  remarkable  than  that 
which  distinguished  him  in  the  pulpit.  A  war  having  broken  out  between 
Louis  XIII.  and  his  protestant  subjects,  the  former  besieged  the  town  in  person. 
Durino-  the  siege  Mr  Welch  not  only  exhorted  the  inhabitants  to  make  a  de- 
termined and  vigorous  resistance,  but  took  his  place  upon  the  walls  of  the  city, 
and  assisted  in  serving  the  guns.  When  the  town  capitulated,  which  it  finally 
did,  in  terms  of  a  treaty  entered  into  with  the  besiegers,  the  French  monarch 
ordered  that  3Ir  Welch,  who,  with  characteristic  intrepidity,  continued  to  preach, 
to  be  brought  before  him.  The  messenger  whom  he  despatched  for  this  pur- 
pose was  the  duke  D'Espernon,  who  entered  the  church  in  which  3Ir  Welch 
was  at  the  moment  preaching,  with  a  party  of  soldiers  to  take  him  from  the 
pulpit.  On  perceiving  the  duke  enter,  Mr  Welch  called  out  to  him  in  a  loud 
and  authoritative  tone  to  sft  down  and  hear  the  word  of  God.  The  duke  instinc- 
tively or  unconsciously  obeyed,  and  not  only  quietly  awaited  the  conclusion 
of  the  sermon,  but  listened  to  it  throughout  with  the  greatest  attention,  and  af- 
terwards declared  himself  to  have  been  much  edified  by  it.  On  being  brought 
into  the  presence  of  the  king,  the  latter  angrily  demanded  of  Mr  Welch  how 
he  had  dared  to  preach,  since  it  was  contrary  to  the  laws  of  the  kingdom  for 
such  as  he  to  officiate  in  places  where  the  court  resided.  Mr  Welch's  reply 
was  bold  and  characteristia  "  Sir,"  he  said,  "  if  your  majesty  knew  what  I 
preached,  you  would  not  only  come  and  hear  it  yourself,  but  make  all  France 
hear  it ;  for  I  preach  net  as  those  men  you  used  to  hear.  First,  I  preach  that 
you  must  be  saved  by  the  merits  of  Jesus  Christ,  and  not  your  own,  (and  I  am 
sure  your  conscience'  tells  you  that  your  good  works  will  never  merit  heaven  :) 
next,  I  preach,  that,  as  you  are  king  of  France,  there  is  no  man  on  earth 
above  you ;  but  these  men  whom  you  hear,  subject  you  to  the  pcoe  of  Rome, 
Avhich  I  will  never  do."  This  last  remark  was  so  exceedingly  gratifying  to  the 
king,  that  it  had  the  effect  not  only  of  disarming  him  of  his  wTath,  but  induced 
him" to  receive  the  speaker  instantly  into  his  royal  favour.  "  Very  well,  re- 
plied  Louis,  "  you  shall  be  my  minister,"  and  to  these  expressions  of  good- 
Avill  he  added  an  assurance  of  his  protection,  a  pledge  which  he  afterwards 
amply  redeemed.  AVhen  St  Jean  D'Angely  was  again  besieged  by  the  french 
monarch  in  1021,  he  ordered  the  captain  of  his  guard  to  protect  the  house  and 
property  of  "  his  minister,"  and  afterwards  supplied  him  with  horses  and  wagons 


4:5G  SIR  HENRY  MONCRIEFP  WELLWOOD,  BART.,  D.D. 

to  transport  his  family  to  Rochelle,  whither  he  removed  on  tlie  cajiture  of  the 
town. 

Mr  Welch  was  at  this  period  seized  with  an  illness  which  his  physicians  de- 
clared could  be  removed  only  by  his  returning  to  breathe  the  air  of  his  native 
country.  Under  these  circumstances  he  ventured,  in  1G22,  to  come  to  London 
hoping  that  when  there  he  should  be  able  to  obtain  the  king's  permission  tc 
proceed  to  Scotland.  This  request,  however,  James,  dreading  Welch's  in- 
lluence,  absolutely  refused.  Among  those,  and  they  were  many,  who  inter* 
ceded  Avith  the  king  in  hehalf  of  the  dying  divine,  was  his  wife.  Ou 
obtaining  access  to  James,  the  following  extraordinary,  but  highly  characteris- 
tic conversation,  as  recorded  by  Dr  31*Crie,  in  his  Life  of  Knox,  took  place  be- 
tween the  intrepid  daughter  of  the  stern  veformer  and  the  eccentric  monarch 
of  England  :  His  majesty  asked  her,  who  was  her  fiither.  She  replied  "  iVIr 
Knox."  "  Knox  and  Welch,"  exclaimed  he,  "  the  devil  never  made  such  a 
match  as  that."  "  Its  right  like,  sir,"  said  she,  "  for  we  never  speired  his  ad- 
vice." He  asked  her,  how  many  children  her  father  had  left,  and  if  they  were 
lads  or  lasses.  She  said  three,  and  they  were  all  lasses.  "  God  be  thanked!" 
cried  the  king,  lifting  up  both  his  hands,  *'  for  an  they  had  been  three  lads,  I 
had  never  bruicked  my  three  kingdoms  in  peace."  Siie  again  urged  her  re- 
quest that  he  would  give  her  husband  his  native  air.  "  Give  him  his  native 
air!''  replied  the  king.  "  Give  him  the  devil!"  a  morsel  which  James  had 
often  in  his  mouth.  "  Give  that  to  your  hungry  courtiers,"  said  siie,  offended 
at  his  profaneness.  He  told  her  at  last,  that  if  she  would  persuade  her  hus- 
band to  submit  to  the  bishops,  he  would  allow  him  to  return  to  Scotland.  Mrs 
Welch,  lifting  up  her  apron,  and  holding  it  towards  the  king,  replied,  in  the 
true  spirit  of  her  father,  '*  Please  your  majesty,  I'd  rather  kep  his  head 
there." 

Although  .Tames  Avould  not  permit  3Ir  Welch  to  return  to  Scotland,  he  was 
prevailed  upon  by  the  friends  of  the  latter,  though  not  without  nnich  impor^ 
tunity,  to  allow  him  to  preach  in  London.  They  had  entreated  this  as  an 
alternative  in  the  event  of  his  refusing  him  permission  to  return  to  his  native 
country,  and  they  eventually  succeeded  in  obtaining  from  James  a  reluctant 
consent.  On  learning  that  this  indulgence  had  been  granted  him,  the  dying- 
preacher,  for  his  complaint  was  rapidly  gaining  ground  upon  him,  hastened  to 
avail  himself  of  it.  He  appeared  once  more  in  the  pulpit,  preached  a  long  and 
pathetic  sermon  ;  but  it  was  his  last.  When  he  had  concluded  his  discourse  he 
returned  to  his  lodging,  and  in  two  hours  afteruards  expired,  in  the  53d  year 
of  his  age.  It  is  said  that  3Ir  Welch's  death  was  occasioned  by  an  ossification 
of  the  limbs,  brought  on  by  much  kneeling  in  his  frequent,  and  long  protracted 
devotional  exercises.  Like  many  of  the  eminently  pious  and  well-meaning 
men  of  the  times  in  which  lie  lived,  3Ir  Welch  laid  claim  to  the  gift  of  pre- 
science, and  his  Life,  as  it  appeai-s  in  the  "  Scots  Worthies,"  compiled  by 
Howie  of  Lochgoin,  presents  a  number  of  instances  of  the  successful  exercise  of 
this  gift,  but  no  one  now  who  has  any  sincere  respect  for  the  memory  of  such 
truly  worthy  persons  and  sincere  Cinistians  as  Jlr  Welch,  can  feel  much  grati- 
fied by  seeing  iiim  invested,  by  a  mistaken  veneration,  with  an  attribute  whicli 
does  not  belong  to  humanity. 

WELLWOOL),  SiE  Henkv  Mokckiefp,  Baronei",  D.D.,  an  eminent  divine, 
was  bom  at  Blackford,  near  Stirling,  in  February,  1750.  He  was  the  eldest 
son  of  Sir  William  IMoncrieff,  BarL,  minister  of  the  parish  just  name«l  ;  a  mati 
of  singular  merits  and  virtues,  and  who  possessed  an  induence  over  his  parish- 
ioners, and  in  the  surrounding  country,  which  these  alone  could  bestow. 

The  subject  of  this  memoir  was  destined  from  an  early  age,  as  well  by  Lis 


>^  j^'         f^ 


S.  £c««BlSIl.. 


% 


PROM  thb;  original  m  the  posshssion  or  thu  KAWn.v 


Mj.ACKiB  *  pan,. etABOow;  raaHBURGit  *  jjCimxiu  . 


SIR  HENRY  MONCRIEFF  WETXTVOOD,  BART.,  D.D.  457 

own  choice,  as  the  desire  of  his  father,  to  the  clerical  profession ;  and, 
with  tills  view,  lie  repaired  to  the  university  of  Glasgow,  after  completing 
an  initiatory  course  of  education  at  the  parochial  school  of  Blackford.  Having 
given  a  due  attendance  on  the  literary  and  philosophical  classes  in  the  uni- 
vereity,  Sir  Henry  entered  on  the  study  of  theology,  in  whi«-.h  he  made  a  pro- 
gress that  raised  the  highest  hopes  of  his  future  eminence  ;  and  these  hopes  were 
not  disappointed.  About  this  period,  he  had  the  misfortune  to  lose  his  vener- 
nble  father,  who  sank  into  a  premature  grave  :  but  the  esteem  in  which  that 
good  man  was  held  did  not  die  with  him.  All  those  who  had  any  influence  in 
the  appointment  of  a  successor  to  his  charge,  unanimously  resolved  tliat  his  son 
should  be  that  person  ;  and,  further,  that,  as  he  had  not  yet  attained  the  age  at 
which  he  could,  according  to  the  rules  of  the  church,  be  licensed  and  ordained, 
the  vacancy  should  be  supplied  by  an  assistant,  until  tiiat  period  arrived. 
On  the  completion  of  this  arrangement,  which  took  place  in  1768,  Sir  Henry 
removed  to  Edinburgh,  where  he  prosecuted  his  studies  to  their  close,  distin- 
guishing himself  among  his  fellow  students  by  the  superiority  of  his  talents, 
and  continuing  to  inspire  his  friends  with  the  most  sanguine  hopes  of  the  suc- 
cess of  his  future  ministry. 

Having  attained  the  prescribed  age,  he  was  licensed  to  preach  the  gospel, 
although  he  had  not  yet  completed  the  required  term  of  attendance  at  the 
divinity  hall  ;  and  immediately  after,  was  ordained,  1 5th  August,  1771,  to  the 
church  of  his  native  parish.  The  singular  talents  of  the  young  preacher,  how- 
ever, did  not  permit  of  his  remaining  long  in  so  obscure  a  charge  as  that  of 
Blackford.  On  the  occurrence  of  a  vacancy  in  the  extensive  and  populous 
parish  of  St  Cuthberl's,  Edinburgh,  Sir  Henry  IMoncrieft*,  whose  personal  worth 
and  extraordinary  abilities  were  already  known  and  appreciated  in  the  capital, 
was  called  upon  to  supply  it.  Into  this  charge  he  was  inducted  in  October, 
1775,  about  four  years  after  his  ordination  and  settlement  at  Blackford.  The 
Bubsequent  life  of  Sir  Henry  iMoncrieff,  though  remarkable  for  an  exemplary 
and  unwearied  diligence  in  the  discharge  of  the  laborious  duties  of  his  office, 
and  for  a  continued  display,  on  his  part,  of  every  excellence  and  virtue  which 
can  adorn  the  human  character,  presents  little  of  which  the  biographer  can 
avail  himself.  Holding  on  the  "  even  tenor  of  his  way,"  and  neither  turning 
to  the  right  nor  to  the  left,  but  still  anxiously  promoting  the  interests  of  reli- 
gion by  his  eloquence,  and  of  morality  by  his  example.  Sir  Henry  3Ioncrieff 
"ivas  one  of  those  great  and  good  men,  who  are  content  to  confine  the  exercise 
of  their  talents — of  talents  which,  if  they  had  been  directed  by  ambition,  might 
have  procured  them  a  more  dazzling  fame — to  the  immediate  duties  of  their 
calling  ;  and  who  think  that  the  high  intellectual  powers  with  which  they  have 
been  gifted,  cannot  be  more  usefully,  or  more  appropriately  employed,  than  in 
extending  the  knowledge  and  promoting  the  happiness  of  those  wiliiin  the  im- 
mediate sphere  of  their  personal  influence.  Tiie  talents  of  Sir  Henry  Mon- 
crieft"  could  easily  have  procured  him,  had  he  chosen  it,  a  wider  and  a  more 
brilliant  reputation  than  is  now  attached  to  his  name  ;  but  he  conceived,  and 
he  did  so  justly  and  wisely,  that  the  end  for  which  these  talents  were  bestowed 
on  him,  was  fully  and  amply  attained,  by  devoting  them  to  the  task  of  instruct- 
ing those  over  whose  spiritual  welfare  Providence  had  called  him  to  preside ; 
and  who,  as  he  well  knew,  must  have  lost  in  proportion  to  what  others  might 
have  gained  by  a  dissi2>ation  of  his  exertions. 

It  was  not  inconsistent,  however,  with  his  duties  as  a  minister  of  the  estab- 
lishment, that  he  should  take  an  active  interest  in  the  business  of  the  church 
courts.  At  the  period  when  he  entered  public  life,  the  moderate  party,  headed 
by  Drs  Robertson  and  Drysdale,  had  attaioed  a  complete  and  hardly  resisted 


458  SIR  HENRY  MONCRIEFF  ^¥ELLWOOD,   BAUT.,   D.D. 

eupreinacy  ia  tlie  Scotlisli  church.  Sir  Henry,  however,  instead  of  joining 
with  a  party  witli  wliich  his  seculnr  rank  might  have  hcen  expected  to  inspire 
Itiin  with  luany  sympathies,  took  a  decided  part  on  ttie  opposite  course  ;  and 
soon  rose,  by  the  force  of  talent  and  cliaracter,  assisted,  but  in  no  great  de- 
gree,  by  his  rank,  to  the  situation  of  a  leader  in  the  more  zealous  party,  over 
whom  he  ultimately  acquired  a  control,  not  more  useful  to  their  interests  than, 
as  the  result  of  a  tacit  acknowledgment  of  his  deserts,  it  was  honourable  to 
himself.  In  1780,  he  was  proposed  as  moderator  of  the  General  Assembly,  in 
opposition  to  Dr  Spens,  of  Wemyss  ;  the  competition  was  keen,  Dr  Spens  being 
elected  by  a  majority  of  only  six  votes  ;  but  in  1785,  Sir  Henry,  being  again 
a  member  of  the  General  Assembly,  was  unanimously  cliosen  moderator.  Dr 
Andrew  Tiiomson,  to  wliom  in  latter  life  he  yielded  much  of  his  influence  in 
the  church,  has  thus  spoken,  in  his  funeral  sermcn,  of  tlie  public  cliaracter  of 
Sir  Henry  : — 

*'  It  was  in  early  life  that  he  began  to  take  an  active  part  in  tlie  government 
of  our  national  church.  The  principles  of  ecclesiastical  polity,  which  he 
adopted  as  soon  as  he  entered  on  his  public  career,  he  adopted  from  full  and 
firm  conviction  ;  and  he  maintained,  and  cherished,  and  avowed  tliem  to  the 
very  last.  They  were  the  very  same  principles  for  which  our  forefathers  had  con- 
tended 60  nobly,  which  they  at  length  succeeded  in  establisliing,  and  \thich 
they  bequeathed  as  a  sacred  and  blood-bought  legacy  to  their  descendants. 
But  tliough  that  circumstance  gave  a  deep  and  solemn  interest  to  them  in  his 
regard,  he  was  attached  to  them  on  more  rational  and  enliglitened  grounds. 
He  viewed  them  as  founded  on  tlio  word  of  God,  as  essential  to  tlic  rights  and 
liberties  of  the  Christian  people,  as  identified  with  the  prosperity  of  genuine 
religion,  and  with  the  real  welfare  and  efhcicncy  of  the  establishment.  And, 
therefore,  he  enibraced  every  opportunity  of  inculcating  and  upholding  them ; 
resisted  all  the  attempts  that  were  made  to  discredit  them  in  theory,  or  to  vio- 
late them  in  practice  ;  rejoiced  when  they  obtained  even  a  partial  triumph  over 
the  opposition  they  had  to  encounter ;  and  clung  to  tliem,  and  struggled  for 
them,  long  after  they  Avere  borne  down  by  a  system  of  force  and  oppression  ; 
and  when,  instead  of  the  numerous  and  determined  host  that  fought  by  his  side 
in  happier  times,  few  and  feeble,  comparatively,  were  those  who  seconded  his 
manly  efTorts,  and  held  fast  their  own  confidence :  but  he  lived  to  see  a  better 
spirit  returning.  This  revival  cheered  and  consoled  him.  Fervently  did  he 
long  and  pray  for  its  continuance  and  its  spread.  Nor  did  he  neglect  to  em- 
ploy his  influence,  in  order  to  introduce  pastors  who  would  give  themselves  con- 
scientiously to  their  Master's  work,  preaching  to  their  flocks  the  truth  as  it  is 
in  Jesus,  watching  for  souls,  as  those  that  nmst  give  an  account;  and  faithfully 
and  fearlessly  performing  all  the  duties  incumbent  on  them,  both  as  minister?, 
and  as  rulers  in  tlic  church." 

Sir  Henry  made  a  more  successful  opposition,  especially  towards  the  end  of 
his  life,  to  the  doujinant  faction  in  the  church,  than  had  been  made  for  up- 
wards of  lialf  a  century  before  ;  and,  in  more  instances  than  one,  ho  left 
their  leader,  principal  Hill,  in  a  minority :  but  it  was,  in  the  latter  re- 
spect, adverted  to  by  Dr  A.  Thomson,  that  his  efl'orts  were  most  eminently 
useful,  and  were  followed  with  the  most  beneficial  effect.  To  his  efforts, 
indeed,  are  to  be  ascribed,  in  a  great  measure,  tlio  introduction  of  cvcon- 
gclical  doctrines  into  parts  of  the  country  from  which  they  had  for  many 
years  been  excluded,  tlio  preponderance  of  evangelical  ministers  and  elders 
In  the  church  court?,  and  the  consequent  ascendency  of  the  popular  parly. 
Young  men  of  piety  and  pvomiso  were  always  sure  of  his  assistance  and  en- 
couragement.    Ia  this  respect  many  had  reason  to  bless  him ;  while  the  church  at 


SIR  HENRY  MONCRIEFP  WELLAYOOD,   BART.,  D.D. 


459 


large  has  Iiad  reason  to  rejoice  in  his  fidelity  and  wisdom.  In  the  raanageinent 
of  the  Widows'  Fund,  established  by  act  of  parliament  in  the  year  1744,  Sir 
Henry  took  a  deep  interest,  and  acted  as  its  collector  for  upwards  of  forty 
yeai-8.  He  was  also  one  of  the  original  members  of  the  society  of  the  Sons  of 
the  Clergy,  and,  by  his  influence  and  his  exertions,  contributed  largely  to  its 
success.  He  was,  besides,  n  warm  friend  to  erery  reasonably  adjusted  scheme, 
that  had  for  its  object  the  amelioration  of  the  moral  and  physical  condition  of 
mankind.  In  the  year  1826,  he  was  bereaved  of  his  wife,  (Susan,  daughter 
to  Mr  James  Robertson  Barclay,  of  Keavll,  W.  S.,  to  whom  he  had  been  mar- 
ried in  1773,  and  who  was  his  cousin  ;)  while  his  own  health,  which  had  been 
generally  good,  was  also  undergoing  a  decline.  In  the  month  of  August  of  the 
following  year,  1827,  Sir  Henry  himself  died,  after  an  illness  of  considerable 
duration.  At  the  time  of  his  death,  he  was  in  the  sevenly-eigiith  year  of  his 
age,  and  the  fifty-sixth  of  his  ministry. 

The  personal  character  of  Sir  Henry  Moncrieff  was,  in  the  highest  degree, 
respectable,  and  his  conduct,  in  every  relation  of  life,  most  exemplary.  He  had 
thoroughly  studied  the  whole  scheme  of  the  gospel;  and,  from  full  and  delibe- 
rate conviction,  as  well  as  from  its  experimental  application  to  his  own  personal 
need,  he  threw  himself,  without  pretension  and  without  reserve,  upon  the  pecu- 
liar doctrines  of  tlie  church  to  which  he  belonged,  as  those  which  could  alone 
insure  his  eternal  interests. 

In  his  ministerial  capacity,  he  but  rarely  indulged  in  what  is  termed  the 
pathetic;  yet  there  was  often,  particularly  towards  the  close  of  iiis  life,  a  tender- 
ness in  his  modes  of  expression,  as  well  as  in  the  accents  of  his  voice,  which  came 
home  to  the  heart,  with  the  energy  of  pathos  itself.  As  an  author.  Sir  Henry 
was  well  known,  and  higlily  esteemed.  The  works  which  give  him  a  claim  to 
this  title,  are,  "  A  Life  of  Dr  John  Erskine  ;"  three  volumes  of  sennons,  and  a 
small  work  on  the  constitution  of  the  church  of  Scotland,  which,  as  well  as 
one  of  the  volumes  of  sermons,  was  published  posthumously.  The  first  is  an 
interesting  record  of  the  life  of  a  most  excellent  and  public-spirited  minister, 
and  contains  much  valuable  information  respecting  ecclesiastical  affairs  in  Scot- 
land, The  sermons  abound  with  luminous  expositions  and  practical  applica- 
tions of  divine  truth.  All  of  these  publications  were  well  received  by  the  public. 
Tliat  Sir  Henry  was  admitted  by  all  parlies  to  be  no  ordinary  man,  is  sufficiently 
CTinced  by  the  following  character  of  him,  drawn  up  at  the  unanimous  request 
of  the  General  Assembly  of  the  church  of  Scotland,  by  the  llev.  Dr  3Iacgill, 
professor  of  divinity  in  tlie  college  of  Glasgow,  their  utoderator  at  the  time, 
and  inserted  in  the  records  of  court ;  an  honour  whicli  has  been  bestowed  on 
but  few  individuals  in  the  Scottish  church.  Having  enjoyed  the  friendship  and 
the  confidence  of  Sir  Henry  from  his  earliest  years,  as  well  as  from  kindred 
habits  of  thought  and  feeling,  no  man  could  be  better  qualified  than  the  reve- 
rend doctor  to  do  justice  to  the  subject. 

**  The  Rev.  Sir  Henry  JIoncriefT  Wellwood,  whose  death  and  character 
have  been  brought  before  tlie  Assembly,  was  elected  to  Le  the  general  collector 
of  the  fund  for  tlie  widows  and  children  of  this  church,  in  1784,  and  continued 
to  discharge,  till  his  death,  the  duties  of  that  important  office.  During  the 
long  period  of  forty-three  years,  he  received  annually  the  thanks  of  the  Ge- 
neral Assembly,  for  the  able,  faithful,  and  affectionate  manner  in  whicli  he  ful- 
filled the  trust  reposed  in  him  ;  and  never  were  thanks  bestowed  more  de- 
servedly, and  with  more  full  or  heartfelt  approbation.  In  the  discharge  of  the 
difficult,  and  often  delicate  duties  of  his  office,  he  united  tlie  highest  honour  and 
fidelity,  witli  the  most  consummate  prudence,  and  the  greatest  tenderness  and 
forbearance  ;  so  that  it  is  stated  of  him,  by  those  who  were  connected  with  liini 


400  SIR  HENRY  MONCRIEFF  WELL^YOOD,  BART.,  D.D. 


in  the  trust,  and  who  long  and  intimately  knew  him,  that  his  vigour  of  mind, 
and  the  caution  with  which  he  deliberated,  enabled  him  to  form  such  decided 
opinions,  as  saved  them  in  many  cases  from  much  perplexity;  llint  even  tlio 
minutest  details  of  the  management  were  never  regarded  by  him  as  unworthy 
the  attention  of  his  powerful  mind ;  that  for  the  period  during  which  he  ad- 
ministered the  concerns  of  tlie  fund,  not  a  single  instance  occurred  of  any  em- 
barrassment being  occasioned  to  them,  by  any  mistake  or  inadvertency  on  his 
part,  and  on  the  otlier  liand,  so  great  was  the  confidence  reposed  in  him,  that 
they  never  heard  of  a  single  complaint  of  severity  in  the  exercise  of  the  powers 
with  which  he  was  intrusted. 

"  But  while  the  General  Assembly  thus  gratefully  record  their  sense  of  the 
public  services  of  Sir  Henry  Moncrieff  Wellwood  in  that  office  to  which  their 
attention  has  been  specially  directed,  it  is  impossible  not  also  to  remember 
what  he  was  in  a  iiigher  character,  and  in  the  discharge  of  higher  duties.  En- 
dowed with  great  talents  for  the  business  of  life,  he  was  fitted  for  rising  to  high 
distinction  in  the  secular  departments  of  society ;  but  with  a  strong  attach- 
ment, which  increased  with  his  years,  he  devoted  himself  to  the  ministry  of 
Christ  in  the  church  of  Scotland.  The  church  of  Scotland  was  dear  to  him 
from  his  earliest  predilections,  and  these  were  confirmed  by  his  maturest  judg- 
ments and  long  expei'ience  and  observation  of  human  life.  The  character  of 
a  minister  of  the  gospel  he  valued  above  all  others,  and  though  of  too  just  an 
understanding  not  to  estimate  the  advantages  of  his  hereditary  rank,  he  never 
forgot,  or  allowed  others  to  forget,  that  he  held  a  sacred  cliaracter,  by  which  it 
was  of  chief  importance  that  he  should  be  known  and  considered.  Tiie  doc- 
trines of  Christ  were  the  objects  of  Ids  firmest  faith  and  warmest  attachment, 
and  to  preach  them  to  his  people  he  considered  to  be  his  first  duty,  and  highest 
honour.  With  a  peculiar  energy  and  power  he  presented  them  to  the  minds  of 
his  hearers,  and  made  them  the  principles  from  which  he  enforced  all  the  vir- 
tues and  graces  of  a  holy  life  ;  while  with  fearlessness  and  freedom,  and  great 
discernment  of  human  character,  he  unfolded  and  exposed  the  besetting  sins  of 
men  of  every  condition.  As  a  member  of  the  General  Assembly  he  will  long 
be  remembered.  His  knowledge  of  business,  his  strong  and  masculine  elo- 
quence, the  distinctness  and  vigour  with  which  he  went  forward  to  his  subject,^ 
and  the  simplicity  and  fire  with  which  he  stated  his  sentiments,  secured  to  him 
at  all  times  the  respectful  attention  of  men  of  every  description.  Equally  dis- 
tant from  flattery  and  piersoiial  invective,  lie  spoke  with  the  freedom  of  an  in- 
dependent but  well  regulated  mind ;  nor  amidst  the  collision  of  sentiment  and 
warmth  of  discussion  did  he  ever  forget  the  spirit  which  should  be  maintained 
in  an  assembly  met  in  the  name  of  Christ  and  to  promote  his  kingdom.  His 
life  was  devoted  to  active  and  general  usefulness.  He  had  no  taste  for 
frivolous  pursuits,  and  while  his  judgment  led  him  to  devote  Iiimself  chiefly  to 
those  peculiar  departments  of  duty  in  which  he  believed  he  would  be  most 
useful,  he  entered  with  deep  interest  into  every  scheme  of  public  utility,  and 
rejoiced  in  the  success  of  every  well  directed  plan  for  promoting  the  cause  of 
religion  and  humanity.  The  young  and  the  friendless  he  delighted  to  take  un- 
der ids  protection ;  and  as  his  influence  in  society  was  great,  so  many  were  the 
individuals  in  every  department  of  life,  besides  those  who  were  within  the 
reach  of  his  private  friends,  whom  he  benefited  by  his  active  services  and  by 
the  wisdom  of  his  counsels." 

To  this  eulogium  may  be  added  the  following  estimate  of  Sir  H.  MoncricfTa 
public  character,  by  the  late  lord  Coclcburn,  in  the  Life  of  Francis  Jeffrey  :^ 
"This  eminent  person  was  not  merely  distinguished  among  his  brethren  of  the 
church  of  Scotlaud,  all  of  whom  leant  upon  him,  but  was  in  other  respects  one  of 


WILLIAM  WILKIE,  D.D.  4G1 


ilio  most  remarlv.ible  and  admrrable  men  of  his  ago.  Small  gray  eyes,  an  aqui- 
line nose,  vigorous  lips,  a  noble  head,  and  the  air  of  a  plain  hereditary  gentle- 
man, marked  the  outward  man.  The  prominent  qualities  of  his  mind  were,  strong 
integrity  and  nervous  sense.  There  never  was  a  sounder  understanding.  Many 
men  were  more  learned,  many  more  cultivated,  and  some  more  able.  But  who 
could  match  him  in  sagacity  and  mental  force?  Tlie  opinions  of  Sir  Harry 
MoncriefF might  at  any  time  have  been  adopted  with  perfect  safety,  without  know- 
ing more  about  them  than  that  they  were  his.  And  he  was  so  experienced  in 
the  conduct  of  affairs,  that  he  had  acquired  a  power  of  forming  his  views  with 
what  seemed  to  be  instinctive  acuteness,  and  with  a  decbiveness  wliich  raised 
them  above  being  slightly  questioned.  Nov  was  it  the  unerring  judgment  alono 
that  the  public  admired.  It  venerated  the  honourable  heart  still  more.  A 
thorough  gentleman  in  his  feelings,  and  immoveably  honest  in  his  principles,  his 
whole  character  was  elevated  into  moral  majesty.  He  was  sometimes  described 
as  overbearing.  And  in  one  sense,  to  the  amusement  of  bis  friends,  perhaps,  ho 
was  so.  Consulted  by  every  body,  and  of  course  provoked  by  many,  and  witli 
very  undisciplined  followers  to  lead,  his  superiority  gave  him  the  usual  confidence 
of  au  oracle ;  and  this  operating  on  a  little  natural  dogmatism,  made  him  some- 
times seem  positive,  and  even  hard:  an  impression  strengthened  by  his  manner. 
With  a  peremptory  conclusiveness,  a  shrill  defying  voice,  and  a  firm  concentrated 
air,  he  appeared  far  more  absolute  than  he  really  was,  for  he  was  ever  candid 
and  reasonable.  But  his  real  gentleness  was  often  not  seen  ;  for  if  h's  first  clear 
exposition  did  not  convince,  he  was  not  unapt  to  take  up  a  short  disdainful  refu- 
tation; which,  however  entertaining  to  the  spectator,  was  not  always  comfortable 
to  the  adversai'y.  But  all  this  was  mere  manner.  His  opinions  were  uniformly 
liberal  and  charitable,  and,  when  not  under  the  actual  excitement  of  indignation 
at  wickedness  or  dangerous  folly,  his  feelings  were  mild  and  benignant;  and  ho 
liberalized  his  mind  by  that  respectable  intercourse  with  society  which  improves 
tlie  good  clergyman,  and  the  rational  man  of  the  world.  I  was  once  walking 
with  him  in  Queen  Street,  within  the  last  three  years  of  his  life.  A  person  ap- 
proached who  liad  long  been  an  illiberal  opponent  of  his,  and  for  whom  I  under- 
stood that  he  had  no  great  regard.  I  expected  them  to  pass  without  recognition 
on  either  side.  But  instead  of  this,  Sir  Harry,  apparently  to  the  man's  own  sur- 
prise, stopped,  and  took  him  by  the  hand,  and  spoke  kindly  to  him.  When  they 
separated,  I  said  to  Sir  Harry  that  I  thought  he  had  not  liked  that  person.  *  Oh! 
no;  he's  a  foolish,  intemperate  creature.  Bat  to  tell  you  the  truth,  I  dislike  a 
man  fewer  every  day  that  I  live  now,'  "  Lord  Cockburn  adds  that  Sir  Harry's 
"great  instrument  of  usefulness  was  his  public  speaking;"  that  he  often  rose  in 
the  pulpit  into  "great  views  and  powerful  declamation;"  was  "the  noblest  de- 
liverer of  prayers  at  striking  funerals;"  and  in  debate  "a  fearful  man  to  grapple 
Tvith  ;"i  that  "  his  writing,  though  respectable,  was  feeble;"  and  that  "  had  he  not 
preferred  his  church  to  every  other  object,  there  was  no  public  honour  to  which 
lie  might  not  have  fought  his  way,"  as  counsel,  judge,  head  of  public  depai-tment, 
or  parliamentary  leader. 

WILKIE,  William,  D.D.,  the  '•'  Scottish  Homer,"  as  he  has  been  called,  from 
the  circumstance  of  his  having  been  the  author  of  a  poem  in  the  style  of  the 
Iliad,  entitled  the  "  Epigoniad,"  was  born  at  Echlin,  in  the  parish  of  Dalmeny, 
county  of  Linlithgow,  on  the  5th  of  October,  1721.     His  father  was  a  former, 

J  Th^re  was  really  great  justica  (observes  Lord  Cockbur.i)  in  the  remark  of  a  little 
old  north  country  minister,  who,  proud  both  of  himself  as  a  member,  and  of  the  reverend 
baronet  who  was  predominating  in  the  Assembly,  said  to  his  neighbour,  "  Preserve  m>, 
Sir !  hoo  that  man  Sir  Uarry  does  go  on !  He  puts  me  in  mind  o  Jupiter  among  the 
lesser  yods." 


463  WILLIAM  WILKIE,  D.D. 


8ik1  possessed  a  smalT  property  to  which  he  succeeded  by  inheritnnco.  Ho  wna 
an  upright  and  intelligent  man,  but  through  a  series  of  misfortunes  becamo 
greatly  reduced  in  circumstances  in  the  latter  part  of  his  life. 

The  subject  of  this  memoir  received  the  earlier  part  of  his  education  at  tho 
parish  school  of  Dalraeny,  then  kept  by  a  31r  Kiddel,  a  respectable  and  suc- 
cessful teacher.  At  this  seminary  young  Wilkie  gave  many  proofs  of  a  lively 
and  vigorous  fancy,  and  of  that  genius  for  poetry  uhich  afterwards  distin- 
guished him.  Before  he  had  passed  his  tenth  year,  he  had  written  some  little 
poetical  sketches  of  considerable  promise. 

At  the  age  of  thirteen,  he  was  sent  to  the  university  of  Edinburgh.  Here 
he  also  distinguished  himself  by  the  superiority  of  his  talents,  and  in  particular 
by  the  progress  he  made  in  classical  acquirements,  and  in  the  study  of  theology. 
He  had  the  good  fortune,  likewise,  while  attending  college,  to  form  intimacies 
with  some  of  the  most  celebrated  men  of  the  last  century.  Amongst  these  were 
Dr  Robertson,  Uavid  Hume,  Adam  Smith,  and  John  Home.  Mr  Mackenzie,  in 
his  life  of  the  last  mentioned  individual,  says  that  Wilkie's  friends  all  spoke  of 
him  as  *'  superior  in  genit^  to  any  man  of  his  time,  but  rough  and  unpolished 
in  his  manners,  and  still  less  accommodating  to  the  decorum  of  society  in  the 
ordinary  habits  of  his  life.  Charles  Townsend,  a  very  competent  judge  of 
men,"  continues  the  biographer,  *'  and  who,  both  as  a  politician  and  a  man  of 
the  world,  was  fond  of  judging  them,  said,  after  being  introduced  to  Wilkie, 
and  spending  a  day  with  him  at  Dr  Carlyle's,  that  he  had  never  met  with  a 
man  who  approached  so  near  to  the  two  extremes  of  a  god  and  a  brute  as  Dr 
Wilkie." 

While  prosecuting  his  studies  at  Edinburgh,  Wilkie  lost  his  father,  who  died 
in  straitened  circumstances,  but  left  his  son  the  stock  and  unexpired  lease  of 
a  farm  at  Fishers'  Tryste,  a  few  miles  south  of  the  city,  burdened,  however, 
with  the  charge  of  maintaining  his  three  sisters,  who  were  otherwise  wholly 
unprovided  for  ;  Wilkie,  in  consequence  of  this  event,  became  a  farmer ;  but, 
unwilling  to  trust  entirely  to  that  profession  for  his  future  subsistence,  he  con- 
tinued, while  conducting  the  business  of  his  farm,  to  prosecute  his  studies  in 
divinity,  and  eventually  was  licensed  as  a  preacher  of  the  gospel,  although  some 
years  elapsed  before  he  obtained  a  church.  Previously  to  his  assumption  of  tho 
gown,  he  had  made  himself  an  expert  farmer,  and  so  remarkable  was  he,  in 
particular,  for  his  successful  culture  of  the  potatoe,  then  but  indifferently  under- 
stood, that  he  obtained  the  facetious  by-name  of  the  potatoe  minister.  But, 
while  he  claimed  and  really  possessed  the  merit  of  being  a  superior  agricul- 
turist to  any  of  his  neighbours,  he  always  acknowledged  that  he  was  their  in- 
ferior in  the  art  of  trafficking;  and  the  manner  in  which  he  made  this  boast 
and  acknowledged  this  inferiority  was  characteristic  of  the  man  ;  "  I  can  raise 
crops,"  he  would  say,  "  better  than  any  of  my  neighbours,  but  I  am  always 
cheated  in  the  market." 

While  pursuing  his  farming  occupations  at  Fishers*  Tryste,  which  he  did  with 
the  most  laudable  industry  and  perseverance,  labouring  much  and  frequently 
with  his  own  hands,  he  did  not  neglect  those  studies  which  his  classical  educa- 
tion had  placed  within  his  reach.  It  was  here,  and  while  labouring  with 
scythe  and  sickle,  ploughing  and  harrowing,  that  he  conceived,  and,  at 
intervals  of  leisure,  in  part  wrote,  his  poem  of  "  The  Epigoniad  ;"  the  work  which 
acquired  him  what  celebrity  he  possesses. 

Through  the  influence  of  Mr  Lind,  sheriff-substitute  of  BTid  Lothian,  who 
resided  in  his  neighbourhood,  and  who  knew  of  and  apprecLited  his  abilities, 
Mr  Wilkie  obtained  the  appointment  of  assistant  and  successor  to  3Ir  Guthrie, 
minister  of  Ratlio.      To  this  office  he  was  ordained  by  the  presbytery  on  the 


WILLIAM  WILKIE,  D.D.  463 


17th  May,  17c3.  Three  years  afterwards,  during  aU  which  time  he  continued 
to  reside  on  and  cultivate  liis  farm,  he  succeeded  to  the  entire  living  by  the 
death  of  the  incumbent. 

In  1757,  Mr  Wilkie  published  at  Edinburgh  «  The  Epigoniad,  a  Poem  in 
Nine  Books,"  12rao,  and  in  1753,  a  second  edition,  corrected  and  improved 
with  the  addition  of  "  A  Dream,  in  the  manner  of  Spenser."  Tlie  Epigoniad' 
obLnined  a  temporary  and  local  celebrity  of  no  unenviable  kind.  It  was  read 
and  admired  by  the  learned  of  Scotland,  and  has  been  so  frequently  alluded  to 
in  contemporary  literature,  that  even  yet,  when  perhaps  there  is  liardly  a  living 
man  who  has  read  it,  nothing  like  oblivion  can  be  said  to  have  overtaken  it. 
^lackenzie,  in  his  life  of  Home,  speaks  of  it  as  "  a  poem  of  great  merit,  not  only 
as  possessing  much  of  tlia  spirit  and  manner  of  Homer,  but  also  a  manly  and 
vigorous  style  of  poetry,  rarely  found  in  modern  compositions  of  the  kind." 
The  same  critic,  after  remarking  the  want  of  feeling  wliicli  characterized 
Wilkie,  goes  on  to  say,  "  Perhaps  it  is  to  a  want  of  Uiis  poetical  sensibility 
that  we  may  chiefly  impute  the  inferior  degree  of  interest  excited  by  Wiikie's 
Epigoniad,  to  that  which  iU  meriU  in  other  respects  might  excite.  Perhaps  it 
suffers  also  from  its  author  having  the  Homeric  imitation  constantly  in  view   in 

uhich,  however,  he  must  be  allowed,  I  think,  to  have  been  very  successful, so 

successful  that  a  pei-son  ignorant  of  Greek,  will,  I  believe,  better  conceive  what 
Homer  is  in  the  original  by  perusing  the  Epigoniad,  than  by  reading  even  the 
excellent  translation  of  Pope." 

After  his  establishment  at  Ratho,  Mr  Wilkie  became  a  fre^juent  and  welcome 
visitor  at  Hatton,  tlie  residence  of  the  earl  of  Lauderdale,  the  patron  of  the 
parish,  who  highly  esteemed  him  for  his  worth  and  talents,  and  was  particularly 
fond  of  his  society. 

In  1759,  he  became  a  candidate  for  the  chair  of  natural  philosophy 
in  the  university  of  St  Andrews,  then  vacant  by  the  death  of  JVIi-  David  Young, 
and  was  successfuL  After  settling  in  St  Andiews,  the  poet  purchased  some 
acres  of  land,  and  resumed  his  farming  occupations,  in  \vhich  he  succeeded  so 
Avell  as  to  leave  at  his  death  property  to  the  amount  of  ^£3000.  Sometime  af- 
ter his  appointment  to  the  professorship,  the  university  conferred  on  him,  as  a 
mark  of  its  sense  of  his  merits,  the  degree  of  doctor  in  divinity. 

In  1768,  Dr  Wilkie  published  a  series  of  sixteen  *'  Moral  Fables,  in  Verse," 
8vo;  but  these,  though  sufficiently  ingenious  productions,  did  not  advance  him 
much  farther  in  public  favour  as  a  poet.  With  this  circumstance  the  remark- 
able occurrences  of  his  life  terminate.  After  a  lingering  indisposition,  he  died 
at  St  Andrews,  on  the  lOlh  October,  1772,  in  the  fifty-iirst  year  of  his  age. 

Of  Dr  Wiikie's  personal  peculiarities  some  curious  anecdotes ,  have  been  pre- 
served. Amongst  the  most  amusing  and  extraordinary  of  his  eccentricities  was 
n  practice  of  sleeping  wilh  an  immoderate  quantity  of  bed-clothes,  and  a  detes- 
tation which  he  entertained  of  clean  sheets.  He  lias  been  known  to  sleep  wilh 
no  less  than  four  and  twenty  pair  of  blankets  on  him  ;  and  his  abhorrence  of 
clean  sheets  was  so  great,  that,  whenever  be  met  with  them  in  any  bed  in  nhicli 
lie  was  to  lie,  he  immediately  pulled  them  ofl^  crumpled  them  together,  and 
threw  them  aside.  On  one  occasion,  being  pressed  by  lady  Lauderdale  to  stay 
all  night  at  Hatton,  he  agreed,  though  with  reluctance,  and  only  on  condition 
that  her  ladyship  would  indulge  him  in  the  luxury  of  a  pair  of  foul  sheets ! 

He  was  of  extremely  parsimonious  habits,  although  in  the  latter  years  of  his 
life  he  was  in  the  habit  of  giving  away  £20  annually  in  charity.  His  parsi- 
mony, however,  did  not  proceed  so  much  from  a  love  of  wealth  as  of  inde- 
pendence. On  this  subject  he  was  wont  to  say,  "  I  have  shaken  bands  with 
poverty  up  to  the  very  elbow,  and  I  wish  never  to  see  her  face  again.       He  was 


484  WILLIAM  THE  LION. 


absent  to  a  degree  that  placed  him  frequently  in  the  most  awkward  and  ludi- 
crous  predicaments.  He  used  tobacco  to  an  immoderate  excess,  and  was 
extremely  slovenly  in  his  dress. 

WILLIAM,  surnamed  Thb  Lion,  one  of  the  most  distinguished  of  our  early 
raonarchs,  was  born  in  the  year  1143.  He  was  the  second  son  of  Henry, 
prince  of  Scotland,  the  son  and  heir-apparent  of  David  I.,  but  who  predeceased 
his  father  in  1152.  On  the  death  of  his  son,  David  proclaimed  his  eldest 
grandson  3Ialcolm  as  the  heir  of  his  Scottish  dominions,  and,  destining  William 
for  a  separate  principality  in  Northumberland,  caused  the  barons  of  that  district 
to  give  him  tlieir  promise  of  obedience,  and  took  hostages  for  its  performance. 
Malcolm  accordingly  succeeded  David  in  1 153,  as  king  of  Scots,  while  William, 
then  only  ten  years  of  age,  became  supei*ior  of  the  territory  now  constituting 
the  northern  counties  of  Engbind. 

In  1 157,  an  agreement  took  place  between  Malcolm  and  Henry  II.  of  Eng- 
land, by  which  Northumberland  was  ceded  to  the  latter,  who  gave  in  return  the 
earldom  of  Huntingdon  ;  an  exchange  which  produced  great  dissatisfaction  in 
Scotland,  and  the  utmost  displeasure  in  the  subject  of  this  memoir.  From  this 
time  Malcolm  became  unpopular  in  Scotland,  and  it  is  not  improbable  that  Wil- 
liam took  advantage  of  the  national  prejudices  to  advance  iiis  own  ambitious 
views.  It  is  represented  by  the  Scottish  historians  that,  in  1 1G4,  the  people  ob- 
liged him  to  undertake  the  regency  of  the  kingdom,  while  the  king  his  brother 
gave  himself  up  to  religious  meditation  ;  a  very  decent  description  of  what 
must  have  been  little  else  than  a  usurpation.  On  the  2 Sth  December,  IIG5, 
Malcolm  died,  and  William  succeeded  to  the  crown. 

William,  having  repeatedly  but  vainly  solicited  the  restitiition  of  Northumber- 
land from  Henry  II.,  at  length  joined  in  a  confederacy  with  his  son,  the  cele- 
brated Coeur  de  Lion,  for  the  purpose  of  dethroning  that  monarch ;  Richard 
not  only  assuring  him  of  the  territory  he  desired,  but  also  granting  the  earl- 
dom of  Cambridge  to  his  younger  brother  David.  In  1174,  William  served 
the  purjioses  of  this  confederacy  by  an  invasion  of  Northumberland,  which  he 
spoiled  without  mercy.  He  was  prosecuting  the  siege  of  Alnwick  with  a  small 
party,  when  a  large  body  of  Yorkshire  horsemen  came  upon  him  unexpectedly. 
Though  he  had  only  sixty  horse  to  present  against  four  hundred,  he  gallantly 
charged  the  enemy,  crying  out,  "  Now  we  shall  sec  who  are  true  knights." 
He  was  unhorsed,  disarmed,  and  made  prisoner,  while  his  companions,  and 
some  others  who  were  not  then  present,  submitted  to  the  same  fate,  from  a  sen- 
timent of  duty.  Henry  did  not  make  a  generous  use  of  this  triumph.  He 
caused  the  captive  monarch  to  be  brought  into  the  presence  of  his  court  at 
Northampton,  with  his  feet  tied  together  under  the  belly  of  a  horse,  as  if  he 
had  been  a  felon  ;  and  afterwards  placed  him  in  strict  confinement  in  the  cas- 
tle of  Falaise  in  Normandy.  The  Scots,  towards  the  close  of  the  year, 
recovered  their  monarch  from  captivity,  but  at  the  expense  of  a  temporary  sur- 
render of  their  national  independence.  In  terms  of  the  treaty  formed  on  this 
o«xasion,  William  was  to  do  homage  to  the  English  king  for  the  whole  of  Ids 
dominions ;  an  object  at  which  the  latter  had  long  unjustly  aimed  :  and  the 
castles  of  Roxburgh,  Berwick,  Jedburgh,  Edinburgh,  and  Stirling,  were  sur- 
rendered as  pledges  on  the  part  of  the  king  of  Scots,  for  the  performance  of 
his  promise.  The  independence  of  the  Scottish  chiircij  was  nt  the  same  time 
impignorated,  but  with  certain  cautious  ambiguities  of  phrase  that  reflect  great 
credit  on  the  ingenuity  of  its  dignitcaries,  who  managed  tiiis  part  of  the  treaty. 
Tlie  claims  of  the  English  church  over  Scotland,  however,  disturbed  several  of 
the  ensuing  year*  of  the  reign  of  William,  who,  in  resisting  them,  backed  .as 


JOHN  WILLOCK.  4G5 


they  were  by  the  pope  and  all  his  terrors,  showed  surprising  fortitude  and  per- 
eeverance.  »        o  f 

In  1189,  Richard  Cwur  de  Lion,  having  acceded  to  the  throne,  and  con- 
sidenng  that  William  of  Scotland  had  forfeited  his  independence  in  conse- 
quence of  an  attachment  to  his  own  interest,  restored  it  to  him,  along  uith  the 
castles  of  Berwick  and  Roxburgh.  Perhaps  it  was  not  altogether  from  a 
generous  or  conscientious  motive  that  the  king  performed  this  act  of  justice. 
He  was  about  to  commence  liis  celebrated  crusade,  and  it  migl  t  be  apparent 
to  him  that  the  king  of  Scots  was  not  a  neighbour  to  be  left  dissatisfied  : 
lie  also  stipulated  for  ten  thousand  merks  as^  the  price  of  the  favour  he  was 
granting  to  his  brother  monarch.  The  treaty,  however,  which  these  mingled 
notions  had  dictated,  was  tiie  blessed  means  of  preserving  peace  between  the 
two  countries  for  upwards  of  a  century.  When  Richard  was  afterwards  so 
unfortunate  as  to  become  a  captive  in  a  foreign  land,  William  contributed  two 
thousand  merks  towards  his  ransom.  Such  transactions  afford  a  pleasing  relief 
to  the  general  strain  of  our  early  history. 

After  a  long  reign,  of  which  the  last  thirty  years  appear  to  have  been  spent 
in  tranquillity,  and  without  the  occurrence  of  any  remarkable  event,  William 
died  at  Stirling,  December  4,  1214,  in  the  seventy-second  year  of  his  age, 
and  the  forty-ninth  of  his  reign,  leaving,  by  his  wife,  Ermingarde  de  Beau- 
mont, one  son,  who  succeeded  him  under  the  title  of  Alexander  II.  William 
also  had  six  illegitimate  children.  He  is  allowed  by  historians  to  have  been 
a  vigorous  and  judicious  prince,  not  exempt  of  course  from  the  vices  of  his 
age,  among  which  must  be  reckoned  a  rash  valour,  but  adorned  also  by  some 
of  its  virtues.  William  was  the  first  Scottish  sovereign  who  bore  a  coat 
armorial.  He  assumed  the  lion  rampant  upon  his  shield,  and  from  this  cause, 
it  is  supposed,  he  obtained  the  designation  of  William  the  Lion.  A  curious  por- 
trait of  William  has  been  preserved  from  time  .immemorial  in  the  Trinity  hos- 
pital at  Aberdeen,  and  was  lately  engraved  and  published  in  the  Transactions 
of  the  Antiquarian  society  of  Scotland. 

WILLOCK,  John,  one  of  the  earliest  Scottish  reformers,  is  supposed  to  have 
been  a  native  of  Ayrshire,  and  to  have  been  educated  at  the  university  of  Glas- 
gow. He  entered  one  of  the  monastic  orders  (that  of  the  Franciscans,  accord- 
ing to  Spotswood,  and  of  the  Dominicans,  according  to  Lesley)  in  the  town  of 
Ayr,  and  remained  in  it  probably  for  several  years;  but  the  history  of  this  period 
of  his  life  is  almost  entirely  unknown.  Previously  to  1541,  he  had  become  a 
convert  to  the  protestant  faith,  and  retired  from  his  native  country  into  Eng- 
land. There,  however,  he  did  not  receive  tiie  protection  which  he  seems  to 
have  expected  ;  for,  during  the  persecution  for  the  Six  Articles,  he  Mas  thrown 
into  the  Fleet  prison.  After  his  liberation,  he  became  one  of  the  chaplains  to 
the  duke  of  Suffolk,  the  father  of  the  lady  Jane  Grey ;  and  during  the  reign  of 
king  Edward,  appears  to  have  lived  in  tranquillity.  But  the  hopes  of  the 
protestants  were  soon  blasted  by  the  early  death  of  that  monarch;  and  Willock, 
•with  many  others,  was  obliged  once  more  to  flee,  on  the  accession  of  Mary  to 
the  throne.  The  town  of  Embden,  in  Friesland,  was  selected  as  the  place  of 
his  retirement.  Here  he  was  enabled  to  turn  his  knowledge  to  account  in  the 
practice  of  medicine,  which  brought  him  into  contact  with  persons  of  distinc- 
tion, and,  among  others,  with  Anne,  duchess  of  Friesland.  The  acquaintance, 
which  was  thus  formed,  was  strengthened  by  subsequent  intercourse,  and  Willock 
was  sent  by  the  duchess  on  several  missions  into  Scotland.  His  visits  to  his 
native  country,  where  he  preached,  whether  in  health  or  sickness,  to  all  that 
came  to  his  house,  must  have  had  a  powerful  effect  in  hastening  the  establish- 

IT  3N 


460  JOHN  WILLOCK. 


mentof  the  Reformation.  He  seems  to  have  ultimately  determined  U}iOD  resid- 
ing in  Scotland;  and,  uith  this  view,  returned  in  1558,  or  early  in  1559. 
The  town  of  Ayr,  in  which  he  had  formerly  lived  in  monastic  seclusion,  was 
now  destined  to  be  the  place  of  his  public  ministrations  ;  and  he  mentions  St 
John's  churcli  as  the  place  uhere  he  taught  his  doctrine  "  oppinlye  befoir 
the  pepil."  Nor  did  he  decline  controversy  with  the  popish  ecclesiastics  :  for, 
in  1559,  he  became  the  opponent  of  Quentin  Kennedy,  the  well  known  abbot 
of  Crosi-aguel  ;^  and  at  a  later  period  he  had  public  disputes  with  Black,  a 
Dominican  friar,  and  with  Robert  Maxwell,  a  schoolmaster  in  Glasgow ;  but  of 
neither  of  tliese  has  any  account,  so  far  as  we  are  aware,  been  preserved. 
Early  in  1559,  Hamilton,  archbishop  of  St  Andrews,  had  summoned  Willock, 
and  some  of  the  other  protestant  preachers,  to  appear  before  him ;  but  their 
trial  was  prorogued  by  the  queen  regent's  orders,  and  they  were  summoned  to 
appear  before  the  Justiciary  court  at  Stirling.  In  the  mean  time,  the  gentle- 
men of  the  counties  of  Angus  and  Mearns,  where  the  protestant  doctrines  pre- 
vailed, assembled  with  their  followers,  with  the  avowed  intention  of  accom- 
panying the  ministers  to  Stirling.  Tlie  queen  regent  became  alarmed,  and 
promised  to  Erskine  of  Dun,  "  to  take  some  better  order."  Upon  the  faith  of 
this  promise,  they  retired,  and  the  ministers  did  not,  of  course,  consider  them- 
selves as  still  bound  to  appear.  But  when  the  day  of  trial  came,  the  regent 
ordered  the  summons  to  be  called,  the  nunisters  outlawed,  and  their  cautioners 
amerciated. 

It  is  fortunate  when  such  instances  of  duplicity  meet  with  "  the  skaith  and 
the  scorn"  which  they  deserve.  This  was  certainly  the  case  in  the  present  in- 
stance. While  the  breach  of  faith  alienated  the  ailections  of  some  of  her  best 
supporters,  it  had  not  even  the  temporary  effect  of  retarding  the  progress  of 
the  new  doctrines.  In  the  following  July,  Willock  preached  in  St  Giles's, 
Edinburgh,  to  large  audiences ;  and  in  harvest,  the  sacrament  of  the  Lord's 
supper  was  publicly  administered.  The  regent  requested  that  mass  might  still 
be  said,  the  church  leaving  it  to  the  option  of  the  people  to  attend  the  popish 
or  the  protestant  service  j  but  Willock  and  his  party  were  sufficiently  powerful 
to  resist  the  proposal,  and  she  had  the  mortification  of  seeing  her  wishes  frus- 
trated by  tlie  very  men  whom  she  had  proclaimed  rebels  not  two  months  before. 
She  was  to  receive  a  yet  more  decided  blow  from  them.  In  October,  the  nobi- 
lity, barons,  and  burgesses,  assembled  at  Edinburgh,  to  discuss  the  question, 
whether  a  regent  who  had  contemptuously  refused  the  advice  of  her  bom 
councillors,— who  had  infringed  the  laws,  both  of  the  realm  and  of  common 
good  faith, — and  who  had  carried  on  a  civil  wax  in  the  kingdom, — should  be 
suffered  any  longer  to  rule  tyrannically  over  them.  After  a  statement  of  theii 
opinions  by  Willock  and  Knox,  she  was  solemnly  deposed,  and  a  council,  as- 
sisted by  four  ministers,  of  whom  Willock  was  one,  was  appointed  to  carry  on 
the  government,  till  the  first  meeting  of  a  parliament. 

The  arrangements  which  followed  the  establishment  of  the  Reformation,  and 
the  appointment  of  superintendents  over  provinces,  have  been  noticed  in  several 
of  the  lives  in  this  work.  In  September,  15G1,  Willock  was  ordained  superin- 
tendent of  the  west,  at  Glasgow,  in  presence  of  some  of  the  most  powerful  of 
the  nobility.-     From  this  period  ceases  everything  in  his  history,  that  may  be 

*  See  an  account  of  their  controTersy,  so  far  as  it  proceeded,  in  Keith's  History,  Appoidbb 
193—9.  *^ 

»  Although  the  form  of  admission  did  not  take  place  till  (hat  date,  there  is  evidence  tlmt 
Willock  WIS  settled  in  the  west,  and  had  an  allowance  from  the  revenues  of  the  arch- 
bishopric of  Glasgow,  as  early  as  Octoher,  1660,  before  the  meeting  of  the  first  General 
Assembly.     In  the  following  January,  his  wife,  who  appears  to  iiuve  rebidcd  in  England 


JOHN  -WILLISON.  467 


supposed  to  interest  a  general  reader.  He  was  now  occupied,  apparently,  in 
ilie  routine  of  his  duties,  and  in  the  business  of  the  General  Assembly,  of  whicli 
he  uas  several  times  (in  15G3,  1565,  and  1568)  chosen  moderator.  In  or 
before  1567,  he  seems  to  have  gone  to  P^ngland;  and  the  General  Assembly,  in 
testimony  of  their  esteem,  and  of  the  value  of  his  services,  ordered  John  Knox 
to  request  him  to  return.  This  he  did  in  a  most  affectionate  letter,  and  it  had 
its  effect  Willoclc  did  return,  and  was  appointed  moderator  of  the  next  As- 
sembly. For  re.osons  Avhich  it  is  now  in  vain  to  conjecture, he  is  supposed  to  have 
returned  to  England,  almost  immediately  afterwards.  With  this  period  closes 
every  authentic  trace  of  this  excellent  man,  of  whose  history  throughout,  we  unfor- 
tunately only  know  enough  to  excite,  but  not  to  gratify,  our  interest.  A  charge, 
apparently  of  a  very  absurd  nature,  has  been  brought  against  him  by  Mr  George 
Ciialmers.  In  a  MS.  in  the  State  Paper  office,  that  author  discovered,  that  in 
April,  1590,  "  twa  men,  the  ane  namyt  Johnne  Gibsonne,  Scottishman, 
preacher,  and  Johne  Willokes,  were  convicted  by  a  jury  of  robbery  ;"  and  lie 
immediately  concluded  that  this  could  be  no  one  else,  but  **  the  reforming  co- 
adjutor of  Knox :"  a  conclusion  which  could  not  fail  to  gratify  his  prejudices. 
Without  troubling  the  reader  with  any  lengthened  defence  of  the  supposition 
that  there  may  have  been  more  than  (me  John  Willock  in  broad  England,  we 
shall  merely  state,  that  as  our  Willock  was  a  preacher  in  1540,  if  not  earlier, 
he  must  now  have  been  at  an  age  when  robbers  (when  the  gallows  spares  them) 
generally  think  of  retiring  from  tlieir  profession. 

Respecting  the  works  of  John  Willock,  we  have  not  been  able  to  learn  any- 
thing. Dempster,  in  his  account  of  him, —  one  of  the  most  bitter  articles  in  hi? 
"HistoriaEcclesiastica," — ascribes  to  him,  "  Impia  Quasdam;"  which,  however, 
he  had  not  seen  when  he  pronounced  this  opinion  of  them.* 

WILLISON,  John,  an  eminent  divine,  and  author  of  several  well  known  re- 
ligious works,  was  born  in  the  year  1680.  The  singularly  gentle  and  pious 
disposition  which  he  evinced,  even  in  his  boyhood,  together  Avith  the  extraoi-di- 
nary  aptness  which  he  discovered  for  learning,  determined  his  parents  to  devote 
him,  from  a  very  early  period  of  his  life,  to  the  service  of  the  church,  and  in 
this  determination  young  Willison  cordially  acquiesced.  It  was  the  profession  of 
all  others  which  he  himself  preferred. 

On  completing  a  regular  course  of  academical  education,  he  entered  on  the 
study  of  divinity,  and  prosecuted  it  with  remarkable  assiduity  and  success. 
Having  duly  qualified  himself  for  the  sacred  calling  of  the  ministry,  he  was  al- 
most immediately  thereafter  invited,  1703,  by  an  unanimous  call,  to  the  pas- 
toral office  at  Brechin.  Here  he  acquired  so  great  a  degree  of  popularity  by 
his  abilities  as  a  preacher,  and  by  the  simplicity  and  purity  of  his  manners  and 
conduct,  and  the  benevolence  of  his  disposition,  that  he  was  earnestly  and 
unanimously  called  upon  by  the  people  of  Dundee  to  fill  a  vacancy  which  shortly 
after  occurred  in  that  town.  He  accordingly  removed  thither,  and  remained 
there  till  his  death. 

Mr  Willison's  abilities  procured  him  a  remarkable  prominency  in  all  public 
discussions  regarding  church  matters  in  the  period  in  which  he  lived,  especially 
in  the  question  of  patronage,  to  whicli  he  was  decidedly  hostile.  He  was,  in- 
deed, considered  the  leader  of  the  party  who  advocated  the  right  of  the  people 
to  choose  their  own  pastors  agreeably  to  the  settlement  of  the  church  at  t!ie  rev(v 
luUon,  in  168a,  and  was  indefatigable  in  his  exertions  to  restore  the  exercise 

duri))g  the  struggles  which  preceded  the  Rtformation,  joined  him.    ( Wodrow's  Biographical 
Collections,  primed  by  the  Maillaiid  Club,  i.  450.)  ,,r^jc     <ro 

»  Abridged  fiom  Wodiow's  Biographical  Collecuons  i.,  99—110,  4*6— 4>jJ. 


463  ALEXANDER  WILSOK 


of  this  popular  right,  which  had  been  overturned  by  an  act  of  parliament  passed 
in  1712.  In  these  exertions,  however,  both  Mr  Willison  and  his  party  •were 
unsuccessful  till  the  year  1734,  when  they  were  fortunate  enough  to  procure 
the  co-operation  of  the  General  Assembly  in  their  views.  That  body  had 
hitherto  strenuously  seconded  the  enforcement  of  the  system  of  exclusive 
patronage,  but  in  the  year  just  named  it  happened  to  be  composed  of  men  who 
entertained  directly  opposite  sentiments  on  that  subject  to  those  avowed  and 
acted  upon  by  their  predecessors; — so  opposite,  indeed,  that  tl>ey  determined, 
in  the  following  year,  1735,  to  apply  to  parliament  for  a  repeal  of  the 
patronage  act.  The  known  abilities,  zeal,  and  activity  of  Mr  Willison  sug- 
gested him  as  one  of  the  fittest  persons  to  proceed  to  London  on  this  important 
mission,  and  he  was  accordingly  appointed,  with  two  other  clergymen,  Messrs 
Gordon  and  Mackintosh,  to  perform  that  duty  ;  but  the  application  was  unsuc- 
cessful. 

Mr  Willison  also  distinguished  himself  by  the  strenuous  effurU  he  made  to 
keep  the  peace  of  the  church,  by  endeavouring  to  prevent  those  schisms,  and  to 
reconcile  those  differences,  which  led  to  the  separation  of  large  bodies 
of  Christians  from  the  established  church,  and  which  first  began  to  manifest 
themselves  about  this  period.  His  efforts  were  unsuccessful,  but  not  the  less 
meritorious  on  that  account. 

Besides  being  a  popular  preacher,  Mr  Willison  was  also  a  popular  author, 
and  in  the  religious  world  his  name,  in  the  latter  capacity,  still  stands,  and  will 
long  stand,  deservedly  high.  His  principal  works  are,  "  The  Afflicted  Man's 
Companion,"  written,  as  he  himself  says,  with  the  benevolent  intention  "  that 
the  afflicted  may  have  a  book  in  their  houses,  and  at  their  bed  sides,  as 
a  monitor  to  preach  to  them  in  private,  when  they  are  restrained  from  hearing 
sermons  in  public ;"  and  the  work  is  admirably  calculated  to  have  the  soothing 
effect  intended  by  its  able  and  amiable  author ;  "  The  Church's  Danger  and 
JMinisters'  Duty  ;"  "  A  Sacramental  Directory  ;"  '*  A  Sacramental  Cate- 
chism;"  "An  Example  of  Plain  Catechising;"  "The  Balm  of  Gilead ;" 
"Sacramental  Meditations;"  "Appendix  to  Sacramental  Meditations;"  "A 
Fair  and  Impartial  Testimony;"  "  Gospel  Hymns;"  "  Popery  another  Gos- 
pel ;"  and  "  The  Voung  Communicant's  Catechism."  An  edition  of  these  very 
useful  and  pious  works,  in  one  volume,  4to,  was  published  at  Aberdeen 
in  1817. 

Mr  Willison  is  described  as  having  been  most  exemplary  in  all  the  relations 
of  life,  and  singularly  faithful  and  laborious  in  the  discharge  of  the  important 
duties  of  his  sacred  offlce,  especially  in  visiting  and  comforting  the  sick.  In 
this  benevolent  work  he  made  no  distinction  between  the  rich  and  the  poor, 
or,  if  he  did,  it  was  in  favour  of  the  latter.  Neither  did  he  confine  his  exer- 
tions in  such  cases  to  those  of  his  own  persuasion,  but  with  a  truly  christian 
liberality  of  sentiment,  readily  obeyed  the  calls  of  all  in  affliction,  whatever 
their  religious  creed  might  be,  who  sought  his  aid. 

Mr  Willison  died  at  Dundee,  on  the  3rd  of  May,  1750,  in  the  seventieth 
year  of  his  age,  and  the  forty-seventh  of  his  ministry. 

WILSON,  Alkzanoer,  the  celebrated  Ornithologist,  was  born  in  Paisley,  on 
the  6th  July,  1766.  His  father  was  at  that  time  a  distiller  in  a  limited  way  ; 
poor  in  circumstances,  but  sober,  religious,  and  industrious,  and  possessed 
of  sagacity  and  intelligence  much  beyond  most  men  in  his  sphere  of  life. 
From  the  period  of  his  son's  birth,  he  entertained  the  project  so  fondly 
cherished  by  almost  every  parent  among  our  Scottish  peasantry,  of  rearing  hinj 
up  to  be  a  minister  of  the  gospel.  There  is  no  evidence  to  show  that  young 
Wilson  displayed  any  unusual  precocity  of  intellect  or  bias  of  disposition  to  ju^ 


ALEXANDER  "WILSON.  469 


tify  so  high  a  destination  ;  but  even  if  he  had,  he  would  have  been  compelled 
to  relinquish  his  views  by  the  death  of  his  mother,  which  left  his  father  em- 
barrassed with  the  charge  of  a  young  family.  Alexander  was  at  this  time  ten 
years  of  age,  and  although  his  education  had  necessarily  been  restricted  to  the 
ordinary  branches  of  writing,  reading,  and  accounts,  the  judicious  and  careful 
superintendence  of  his  father  had  even  then  imbued  his  mind  with  a  passion 
for  reading,  and  a  predilection  for  the  beauties  of  nature,  which  continued  to 
influence  his  character  ever  afterwards.  In  his  correspondence  at  a  later  period 
of  his  life,  Wilson  often  recurs,  with  expressions  of  warm-filial  gratitude,  to  the 
paternal  anxiety  with  which  his  early  studies  Avere  directed,  to  which  he  attri- 
buted all  the  eminence  and  honours  he  subsequently  attained.  In  a  letter, 
dated  February,  ISll,  he  says: — "The  publication  of  my  Ornithology, 
though  it  has  s^Yallowed  up  all  the  little  I  had  saved,  has  procured  tne  the 
honour  of  many  friends,  eminent  in  this  country,  and  the  esteem  of  the  public 
at  large  ;  for  which  I  have  to  thank  the  goodness  of  a  kind  father,  whose 
attention  to  my  education  in  early  life,  as  well  as  the  books  then  put  into  my 
hands,  first  gave  my  mind  a  bias  towards  relishing  the  paths  of  literature,  and 
the  charms  and  magnificence  of  nature.  These,  it  is  true,  particularly  the 
latter,  have  made  me  a  wanderer  in  life ;  but  they  have  also  enabled  me  to 
support  an  honest  and  respectable  situation  in  the  world,  and  have  been  the 
sources  of  almost  all  my  enjoyments." 

Wilson's  father  soon  married  .ngain  ;  a  d  three  years  passed  away,  during 
which  time  Alexander  seems  to  have  had  no  other  occupation,  but  reading  and 
roaming  about,  feeding  in  solitude  habits  of  reflection,  and  an  ardent  poetic 
temperament,  which  led  him  to  shun  the  society  of  his  frolicksome  compeers. 
An  American  biographer  erroneously  attributed  this  disposition  for  solitary 
rambling,  and  his  ultimate  departure  from  the  paternal  dwelling,  to  the  harsh 
treatment  of  his  stepmother  ;  but  it  has  been  clearly  proved  by  subsequent 
Avriters,  that  she  discharged  her  duty  towards  him  with  great  tenderness  and 
afl^ection  ;  and  Wilson  himself  uniformly  speaks  of  her  with  great  respect. 

At  the  age  of  thirteen, — that  is  in  July,  1779, — Wilson  was  apprenticed 
for  three  years  to  William  Duncan,  a  Aveaver,  who  had  married  his  eldest 
Eister.  This  occupation  was  quite  at  variance  with  his  disposition  and  pre- 
vious habits ;  yet  he,  nevertheless,  not  only  completed  his  indenture,  but 
afterwards  wrought  for  four  years  as  a  journeyman,  residing  sometimes  at 
Paisley,  at  other  times  in  his  father's  house,  (who  had  then  removed  to 
Lochwinnoch,)  and  latterly  with  his  brother-in-law,  Duncan,  who  had  shifted 
his  quarters  to  Queensferry.  Having  much  of  his  time  at  his  own  disposal 
during  the  last  four  years,  Wilson  gave  a  loose  to  his  poetical  disposition  ; 
his  relish  for  the  quiet  and  sequestered  beauties  of  nature,  which  began  to 
assume  almost  the  character  of  a  passion,  he  indulged  more  and  more,  giving 
utterance  to  his  feelings  in  veraes — chiefly  descriptive — which,  if  exhibiting  no 
great  power  of  diction,  certainly  display  an  expansion  of  thought,  a  purity  of 
taste,  and  a  refinement  of  sentiment,  that  are  very  remarkable  in  one  so 
young,  and  so  unfavourably  circumstanced  for  the  cultivation  of  literary  pursuits. 
The  only  explanation  which  can  be  given  of  the  fact,  is,  lliat  he  possessed  an 
insatiable  thirst  for  reading  ;  and  with  that  and  solitary  musings,  passed  the 
leisure  hours  which  others  generally  devote  to  social  amusements.  An  almost 
necessary  consequent  on  this  gradual  refinement  and  elevation  of  mind,  was,  a 
disgust  with  the  slavish  and  monotonous  occupation  of  the  loom;  and  the  incon- 
gruity between  his  worldly  circumstances  and  the  secret  aspirations  of  his  soul, 
frequently  occasioned  fits  of  the  deepest  melancholy.  Unlike,  however,  but 
too  many  of  the  like  sensitive  character,  similarly  situated,  he  never  sought  relief 


470  ALEXANDER   WILSON. 


from  his  morbid  despondency  in  the  deceitful  stimulant  of  the  bottle.  He 
yielded  to  its  influence,  only  in  ns  far  as  he  manifested  an  increasing  aversion 
to  his  occupation  ;  or,  as  more  uorldly-niinded  people  would  term  it,  .1  ten- 
dency to  idleness.  Nor  did  the  circumstance  of  teveral  of  his  juvenile  pieces 
appearing  about  this  time  in  the  Glasgow  Advertiser,  (now  the  Glasgow 
Herald,)  and  which  attracted  no  small  attention  amongst  his  townsmen,  tend 
anything  to  reconcile  him  to  the  shuttle.  This  was  immediately  before  his 
migration  to  Queensfen'y ;  on  his  removal  to  which  place,  a  circumstance 
occurred,  which  had  a  strong  influence  upon  his  future  fortunes  and  character. 
His  brother-in-law,  Duncan,  finding  the  trade  of  weaving  inadequate  to  the 
support  of  his  family,  resolved  to  attempt  tliat  of  a  peddler  or  travelling  mer- 
chant, for  a  while,  and  invited  Wilson  to  join  in  the  expedition.  No  propos.il 
could  have  been  more  congenial  to  the  young  poet's  mind,  promising,  as  it  did, 
the  gratification  of  the  two  most  powerful  passions  which  he  cherished, — a 
desire  for  increasing  his  knowledge  of  men  and  manners;  and  a  thirst  for  con- 
templating the  varied  scenery  of  nature.  From  a  journal  which  he  kept,  in- 
deed, (he  was  in  his  twentieth  year  when  he  set  out,)  during  this  expedition,  it 
is  evident  that  liis  sensations  almost  amounted  to  rapture;  and  he  speaks  with 
the  most  profound  contempt  of  the  "  grovelling  sons  of  interest,  and  the  grubs 
of  this  world,  who  know  as  little  of,  and  are  as  incapable  of  enjoying,  the 
pleasures  arising  from  tiie  study  of  nature,  as  those  miserable  spirits  who  are 
doomed  to  perpetual  darkness,  can  the  glorious  i*egions  and  eternal  delights  of 
paradise!"'  For  nearly  three  years  did  AVjIson  lead  this  wandering  life,  during 
which  time  it  appears  that  he  paid  less  attention  to  the  sale  of  his  wares,  than 
to  gratifying  his  predilection  for  reading  and  composition,  and  indulging  in 
a  sort  of  dreamy  meditation,  little  compatible  with  the  interests  of  his  pack. 
In  fact,  of  all  occupations,  the  sneaking,  cajoling,  and  half-mendicant  profession 
of  a  peddler,  was  perhaps  the  most  unsuitable  to  the  manly  and  zealously  inde- 
pendent tone  of  Wilson's  mind  ;  but  he  was  consoled  for  his  Avant  of  success, 
by  the  opportunities  he  enjoyed  of  visiting  those  spots  rendered  classical,  or 
hallowed  by  the  "  tales  of  the  days  of  old."  He  used  to  speak,  for  instance,  with 
rapt  enthusiasm,  of  the  exultation  he  experienced  in  visiting  the  village  of  Athel- 
staneford,  successively  the  residence  of  Blnir  and  Home.  During  this  happy 
period — the  only  truly  happy  one,  perhaps,  of  his  whole  life — liis  muse  was  so 
busy,  that,  in  1789,  he  began  to  think  of  publishing.  Ashe  could  get  no  book- 
seller, however,  to  risk  the  necessary  outlay,  he  was  compelled  to  advance  wliat 
little  gains  he  had  stored  up,  and  getting  a  bundle  of  pi-ospectuses  thrown  olT, 
he  set  out  on  a  second  journey  with  his  pack,  for  the  double  purpose  of  selling 
muslins  and  procuring  subscribers  for  his  poems.  In  the  latter  object,  lie 
was  grievously  disappointed;  but  Wilson  was  not  a  man  to  travel  from  Dan  to 
Beersheba,  and  say  all  is  barren,  even  although  foiled  in  the  inmiediate  pur* 
pose  of  his  heart.  His  journal,  during  this  second  journey,  indicates  the  strong 
and  rapid  growth  of  liis  understanding,  and  exhibits  powers  of  observation  and 
philosophic  reflection,  remarkable  in  a  young  man  of  the  immature  age  of 
twenty-three.  Upon  his  return  home,  he  obtained  the  publication  of  his 
poems  by  IMr  John  Neilson,  printer  in  Paisley,  when  he  again  set  out  on  his 
former  route,  carrying  with  iiiin  a  plentiful  supply  of  copies,  for  the  benefit  of 
those  who  might  prefer  poetry  to  packware.  A  less  sanguine  individual  than 
Wilson,  might  have  anticipated  the  prejudice  with  which  attempts  at  literary 
eminence,  emanating  from  such  a  quarter,  were  likely  to  be  viewed  by  the  world. 
But  our  author  was  one  to  whose  mind  nothing  but  the  test  of  experience 
could  ever  carry  conviction — a  characteristic,  wliidi,  in  his  subsequent  career, 
proved  one  of  the  most  valuable  attributes  of  his  mind.     His  expectations  were 


ALEXANDER  WILSON.  471 


soon  resolved,  iu  the  present  instance.  The  amount  of  his  success  may  "be 
gathered  from  a  passage  in  one  of  his  letters  from  Edinburgh,  wherein  he  says, 
"  I  have  this  day  measured  the  height  of  a  hundred  stairs,  and  explored  the 
recesses  of  twice  that  number  of  miserable  habitations  ;  and  what  have  I  gained 
by  it?  only  two  shillings  of  worldly  pelf!"  In  short,  poetry  and  peddlery 
proved  equally  unsuccessful  in  his  hands ;  he  had  neither  impudence,  flattery, 
nor  importunity  enough,  to  pass  off  either  the  one  or  the  other  upon  the  public; 
and  he  returned,  mortified  and  disappointed,  to  his  father's  house  at  Loch- 
winnoch,  where  necessity  compelled  him  to  resume  the  shuttle.  Cut  his  was 
not  a  heart  to  sink  into  despair  under  the  frowns  of  fortune ;  and  accident 
soon  furnished  occasion  J'or  a  display  of  the  latent  vigour  of  his  mind.  A  few 
of  the  rising  Edinburgh  literati,  having  formed  themselves  into  a  debating 
society  called  the  Forum,  were  in  the  habit  of  propounding  questions  for  dis- 
cussion, in  which  the  public  were  admitted  to  take  a  share.  It  happened  about 
tiie  time  we  are  speaking  of,  tliat  one  of  the  questions  fur  debate  was, 
"  Whether  the  exertions  of  Allan  Ramsay  or  Robert  Fergusson  liad  done  most 
honour  to  Scottish  poetry  ?"  Wilson  having  accidentally  got  notice  of  this, 
became  fired  with  the  idea  of  making  a  public  appearance  upon  a  subject,  on 
which  he  felt  confident  he  was  capable  of  acquitting  himself  creditably,  even 
although  he  had  not  then  read  the  poems  of  Fergusson,  and  had  only  a  fort- 
night to  prepare  himself.  He  accordingly  borrowed  a  copy,  read,  and  formed 
his  opinion,  composed  a  poem  of  considerable  length  for  tlie  occasion,  labouring 
all  the  while  double  the  usual  time  at  the  locm,  in  order  to  raise  funds  for  his 
iourney  ;  and  arrived  in  Edinburgh  in  time  to  take  a  share  in  the  debate,  and 
recite  his  poem,  called  the  "  Laurel  Disputed ;"  in  which,  contrary  to  the 
opinion  of  the  audience,  he  assigned  the  precedence  to  Fergusson.  Wilson 
remained  some  weeks  in  Edinburgh,  during  which  time  he  composed  and  recited 
in  public  other  two  poetical  essays,  and  published  his  "  Laurel  Disputed  ;"  a 
poem  slovenly,  or  we  should  rather  say  hastily  written,  but  marked  by  much 
routrh  vigour  of  thought.  Some  of  his  pieces  about  the  same  lime  appeared  in 
Dr  Anderson's  Bee  ;  a  fact  sufficiently  proving  that  his  poetical  talents  were 
appreciated  by  those  who  constituted  the  high  court  of  criticism  in  Edinburgh 
nt  the  time ;  but  from  some  cause  or  other — probably  the  poverty  of  his  circum- 
stances, together  with  his  unobtrusive  disposition — he  met  with  no  efiicient 
patronage  or  encouragement  to  induce  him  to  try  his  fortune  in  the  metropolitan 
world  of  letters ;  and  he  returned  home  to  the  loom,  with  nothing  else  than 
some  increase  of  reputation. 

About  this  time,  an  interesting  incident  took  place  in  Wilson's  career.  The 
poems  of  Burns  had  then  (1791)  drawn  tlieir  immortal  author  from  his  obscuro 
situation,  into  the  full  blaze  of  fame  and  popularity.  Wilson,  having  obtained 
a  copy  of  them,  wrote  to  Burns,  strongly  objecting  to  the  immoral  tendency  of 
several  of  the  pieces.  The  latter  replied,  that  he  was  now  so  nmch  accustomed 
to  such  charges,  that  he  seldom  paid  any  aUention  to  ihem;  but  that,  as  Wilson 
was  no  common  man,  he  would  endeavour  to  vindicate  his  writings  from  the 
imputation  laid  against  them;  which  he  accordingly  did.  Wilson  shortly 
afterwards  made  a  peregrination  into  Ayrshire  to  visit  Burns,  and  an  intimacy 
commence'd,  which  probably  would  only  have  been  terminated  by  deatii,  but  for 
the  causes  which  shortly  afterwards  doomed  Wilson  to  expatriation.  Tlje  two 
poets,  indeed,  had  many  striking  points  of  resemblance  in  their  character, 
especially  in  the  manly  and  dauntless  independence  of  tlieir  minds,  tlieir  love 
of  nature,  and  their  admiration  of  everything  generous  and  noble,  and  intol- 
eiance  of  everything  low  and  mean.  Yet  it  is  singular  what  a  contrast  their 
respective  writings  exhibit.     While  the  passion  of  love  was  the  main  source  of 


472  ALEXANDER  WILSON. 


Burns's  inspirations,  even  to  the  last,  Wilson,  even  in  the  heyday  of  ardent 
youth,  seldom  alludes  to  such  a  feeling';  and  when  he  does,  it  is  in  the  cool 
tone  with  which  an  unconcerned  individual  would  speak  of  any  othei*  curioi:s 
natural  phenomenon. 

In  the  following  year  (1792)  appeared  Wilson's  admirable  narrative  poem, 
"  Watty  and  Meg."  Being  published  anonymously,  it  was  universally  attri- 
buted to  Burns;  a  mistake,  which,  of  course,  the  author  felt  as  the  highest 
acknowledgment  of  its  merits.  But  this  was  the  last  gleam  of  sunshine  he 
enjoyed  in  his  native  land,  A  violent  dispute  broke  out  between  tlie  journey- 
men and  master  weavers  of  Paisley,  and  Wilson  joined  the  ranks  of  the  former 
with  all  the  determined  energy  which  so  peculiarly  characterized  him.  Fierce 
and  bitter  anonymous  satires  oppeared,  the  paternity  of  which  was  rightly 
assigned  to  Wilson;  and  one  individual,  especially,  a  most  respectable  and 
benevolent  man,  but  who  was  represented  to  the  poet  as  a  monster  of  avarice 
and  oppression,  was  libelled  by  liira  in  a  manner  too  gross  to  be  patiently 
borne.  Wilson  was  prosecuted,  convicted,  imprisoned,  and  compelled  to  buia 
the  libel  with  his  own  hands  at  the  public  cross  of  Paisley.  In  a  badiy 
regulated  mind,  such  an  infliction  would  only  Iiave  excited  thoughts  of  retalia- 
tion, and  the  desire  of  revenge  ;  but,  although  Wilson  must  have  smarted 
severely  under  the  disgrace,  he  was  a  man  of  too  correct  and  candid  judgment, 
to  persist  wilfully  in  an  evil  course.  He  deeply  repented  afterwards  thesu 
wrathful  effusions  of  his  pen.  Before  setting  out  to  America,  he  called  upon 
all  those  whom  he  had  been  instigated  to  satirize,  and  asked  their  forgiveness 
for  any  uneasiness  his  writings  had  occasioned  ;  and  many  years  afterwards, 
when  his  brother  David,  who  went  out  to  join  him  in  the  west,  carried  out  a 
collection  of  these  youthful  satires,  thinking  they  would  be  an  acceptable 
present  to  him,  after  the  lapse  of' so  long  a  period,  Wilson,  without  once 
looking  at  them,  threw  the  packet  into  the  fire,  exclaiming,  "  These  were  the 
sins  of  my  youth ;  and  had  I  taken  my  good  old  father's  advice,  they  never 
would  have  seen  the  light."  Such  an  anecdote  is  equally  creditable  to  the 
father's  good  sense,  and  the  son's  moral  feeling.  But  other  public  events 
accelerated  the  most  important  crisis  in  Wilson's  life.  The  French  Revolution, 
with  all  its  delusive  promises  of  a  harvest  of  liberty,  broke  out ;  its  influence 
spread  over  the  surrounding  nations,  and  Wilson  was  one  of  those  ardent  men, 
who,  in  our  own  country,  conceived  a  favourable  opportunity  to  have  occurred 
for  reforming  the  national  institutions.  His  well  known  zeal  and  determination 
of  mind  made  him,  of  course,  be  looked  upon  as  a  man  of  most  dangerous 
character ;  and,  his  previous  attacks  upon  the  authorities  of  Paisley  being  yet 
fresh  in  their  recollection,  he  was  watched  with  a  suspicion  proportioned  to  the 
dislike  with  which  he  was  regarded.  From  these  causes,  Wilson's  situation 
soon  became  intolerably  unpleasant  to  him  ;  and  ho  then,  for  the  first  time, 
resolved  upon  emigrating  to  America.  By  what  means  he  purposed  to  support 
himself  there,  it  is  not  very  easy  to  conjecture  ;  butjiaving  once  resolved,  he 
proceeded  immediately  to  put  his  plan  into  execution.  His  chief,  if  not  his 
only,  obstacle,  was  the  want  of  funds;  and,  to  raise  them,  he  applied  himself  so 
indefaligably  to  the  loom,  that  in  four  months  he  realized  the  amount  of  his 
passage  money.  He  has  himself  recorded  that,  during  this  period,  his  expenses 
for  lyfing  did  not  exceed  one  shilling  per  loeek ;  so  little  does  man  actually 
require  for  the  bare  sustenance  of  life. 

Having  bidden  adieu  to  his  friends  and  relatives,  he  walked  on  foot  to  Port- 
patrick,  whence  he  passed  over  to  Belfast,  and  there  embarked  on  board  a 
vessel  bound  for  Newcastle  in  the  Delaware  Slate,  being  necessitated  to  sleep  on 
deck  during  the  voyage.     He  landed  in  America  on  the   14lh  July,   179't, 


ALEXANDER  WILSON.  473 


witli  his  fowling  piece  in  his  hand,  and  only  a  few  shillings  in  his  pocket,  wiUi- 
out  .1  friend  or  letter  of  introduction,  or  any  definite  idea  in  nhat  manner 
he  was  to  earn  his  future  livelihood.  He,  nevertheless,  set  out  cheerily  on 
foot  towards  I'hiladelpliia — a  distance  of  thirty-three  miles — delighted  with 
everything  he  saw ;  and  it  was  curious  enough,  that  almost  his  very  first  action 
was  shooting  a  red-headed  woodpecker,  as  if  indicative  of  the  nature  of  his 
future  studies.  It  ought  here  to  be  remarked,  that,  previously  to  this  time,  Wil- 
son had  never  manifested  the  slightest  disposition  to  the  study  of  ornithology. 
On  arriving  at  Philadelphia,  an  emigrant  countryman,  a  copper-plate  printer, 
(from  motives  of  charity,  we  presume,)  employed  him  for  some  weeks  at  this 
new  profession  ;  but  it  is  probable  that  both  soon  grew  mutually  tired  of  the 
agreement.  Wilson,  at  least,  speedily  relinquished  the  occupation,  and  betook 
himself  to  his  old  trade  of  weaving,  at  which  lie  persevered  for  about  a  twelve- 
month. Having  amassed  some  little  savings,  he  resumed  his  old  profession  of 
peddler,  chiefly  with  the  view  of  exploring  the  scenery  and  society  of  the 
country,  and  traversed  the  greater  part  of  the  State  of  New  Jersey,  experiencing 
considerable  success  with  his  pack.  Upon  his  return,  he  finally  abandoned  the 
professions  of  weaver  and  peddler,  and  betook  himself  to  an  occupation,  which 
of  all  others  it  might  be  supposed  he  was  the  least  fitted  by  education  and  dis- 
position to  undertake,  that  of  a  schoolmaster.  But  it  is  evident  that  Wilson 
adopted  this  profession,  as  much  as  a  means  of  self-improvement,  as  of  a  live- 
lihood. His  fii-st  school  was  at  Frankford,  in  Pennsylvania  :  thence  he  re- 
moved to  Milestown,  where  he  continued  for  several  years,  assiduously  culti- 
vating many  branches  of  learning,  particularly  mathematics  and  the  modern 
languages  :  thence  to  Bloomfield,  New  Jersey  ;  where  he  had  scarcely  settled 
himself,  when  (in  1802)  he  was  offered  and  accepted  an  engagement  with  the 
trustee?  of  a  seminary  in  Kingsessing,  on  the  river  Schuylkill,  about  four  miles 
from  Philadelphia  ;  and  this  was  the  last  and  most  fortunate  of  all  his  migra- 
tions. During  all  these  eight  years  of  shiftings  and  wanderings,  Wilson's 
career  was  almost  one  continued  struggle  with  poverty,  the  principal  part  of 
Iiis  income  being  acquired  by  occasional  employment  in  surveying  land  for  the 
farmers  ;  yet  his  mind  did  not,  as  is  usual  with  most  men,  become  soured  or 
selfish  under  the  incessant  pressure  of  difficulties.  On  the  contrary,  he  con- 
tinued to  write  home  such  flattering  accounts  of  his  adopted  country,  as  to 
induce  his  nephew,  William  Duncan,  (whose  father  was  then  dead,)  to  follow 
him  across  the  Atlantic,  with  his  mother  and  a  large  family  of  brothers  and  sisters. 
Wilson  was  at  this  time  at  IMilestown;  but  when  he  heard  of  their  arrival,  he  set 
out  on  foot  for  New  York,  a  distance  of  four  hundred  miles,  for  the  sole  pur- 
pose of  assisting  in  getting  them  comfortably  settled.  An  American  biographer 
says,  that,  by  the  kindness  of  a  IMr  Sullivan,  Wilson  was  enabled,  in  conjunc- 
tion with  his' nephew,  to  purchase  and  stock  a  small  farm,  for  the  accommoda- 
tion and  support  of  his  relatives  ;  after  which  he  returned  again  on  foot  to  the 
ungi-acious  labours  of  the  school-room,  accomplishing  a  journey  of  eight  hundred 
mifes  in  twenty-eight  days.  To  this  family  he  continued  ever  afterwards  to 
pay  the  most  unremitting  and  benevolent  attention  ;  keeping  up  a  constant 
correspondence  with  his  nephew,  advising  and  encouraging  him  amid  his  difli- 
r.ilties,  and  even  redoubling  his  own  exertions,  by  keeping  a  night-school,  and 


of  wheat,  to  be  sure,  is  no  great  marketing;  but  has  it  not  been  expended  in 
the  support  of  a  mother,  and  infant  brothers  and  sisters,  thrown  upon  your 


474  ALEXANDER   WILSON. 


bounty  in  a  foreign  country  ?  Robert  Burns,  when  the  mice  nibbled  away  his 
com,  snid 

•  I'll  get  a  blessing  wi'  the  la\c, 
And  never  miss  't.' 

Where  he  expected  one,  you  may  expect  a  thousand.  Robin,  by  his  own  con- 
fession, ploughed  up  his  mice  out  of '  ha'  and  hanie.'  You  have  built  for  your 
wanderers  a  cozie  bield,  where  none  dare  molest  them.  There  is  more  true 
greatness  in  the  a.lectionate  exertions  which  you  have  made  for  their  subsistence 
and  support,  than  the  bloody  catalogue  of  heroes  can  boast  of.  Your  own 
heart  will  speak  peace  and  satisfaction  to  you,  to  the  last  moment  of  your  life, 
for  every  anxiety  you  have  felt  on  their  account."  Nor  did  Wilson  forget  the 
ties  of  relationship  that  still  united  him  to  the  land  of  his  birth.  To  his  father 
he  wrote  fully  and  regiilarly  ;  and  his  letters,  both  to  him  and  his  brother 
David,  are  no  less  replete  with  sound  sense,  than  ardent  aiTection  and  excellent 
moral  feeling. 

Wilson's  removal  to  Kingsessing  was  the  fii-st  lucky  step  towards  the  attain- 
ment  of  that  fame  which  hallows  his  memory.  His  salary  was  extremely  in- 
adequate to  his  labour,  and  almost  to  his  subsistence ;  but  this  situation 
introduced  him  to  the  patronage  of  many  kind  and  influential  friends,  and 
afforded  him  opportunities  of  improving  himself  which  he  had  never  before  en- 
joyed. Amongst  the  former  was  William  Bartram,  the  American  Linnaeus  of 
the  period,  in  whose  extensive  gardens  and  well-stocked  library  Wilson  found 
new  and  delightful  sources  of  instruction  and  enjoyment ;  and  Mr  Law- 
son,  the  engraver,  who  initiated  him  into  the  mysteries  of  drawing,  colouring, 
and  etching,  which  afterwards  proved  of  such  incalculable  use  to  him  when 
bringing  out  his  Ornithology.  About  this  time  Wilson  tasked  his  powers  to 
their  very  utmost  in  the  duties  of  his  school  and  his  efforts  at  self-improvement. 
This  severe  exertion  and  confinement  naturally  preyed  upon  his  health  and  de- 
pressed his  spirits ;  but  Messrs  Bartram  and  LaAVSon,  who  seem  to  have  known 
little,  personally,  of  the  exhausting  process  of  "  o'er-informing  the  tenement 
of  clay,"  mistook  the  despondency  and  lassitude  of  body  and  mind  thereby  oc- 
casioned in  their  friend,  for  the  symptom  of  incipient  madness.  This 
melancholy  fact  they  attributed  to  his  "  being  addicted  to  writing  verses  and 
playing  on  the  flute ;"  and  it  would  appear,  that,  in  their  efforts  to  wean  him 
frOm  such  perilous  habits,  they  were  at  little  pains  to  conceal  their  opinion  even 
from  himself.  While  rambling  in  the  woods  one  day  Wilson  narrowly  escaped 
destruction  from  his  gun  accidentally  falling  against  his  breast  when  cocked  ; 
and  in  his  diary  (which  he  uniformly  kept),  he  blesses  God  for  his  escape,  as, 
had  he  perished,  his  two  worthy  friends  would  undoubtedly  have  loaded 
his  memory  with  the  imputation  of  suicide.  He  complied,  however,  with  their 
request  so  far  as  to  substitute  drawing  for  poetry  and  music ;  but  he  attained 
not  the  slightest  success  until  he  attempted  the  delineation  of  birds.  This  de- 
partment of  the  art,  to  use  our  old  Scottish  expression, "  came  as  readily  to  liis 
hand  as  the  bowl  of  a  pint  stoup,"  and  he  soon  attained  such  perfection  as 
wholly  to  outstrip  his  instructoi-s.  His  success  in  this  new  employment  seems 
to  have  first  suggested  the  idea  of  his  ornithological  work,  as  we  see  from  let- 
tere  to  his  friends  in  1803,  that  he  first  mentions  his  purpose  of  "  making  a 
collection  of  all  our  finest  birds."  Upon  submitting  his  intentions  to  Rlessrs 
Bartram  and  Lawson,  these  gentlemen  readily  admitted  the  excellence  of  his 
plan,  but  started  so  many  difficulties  to  its  accomplishment,  that,  had  Wilson 
been  a  man  of  less  nerve,  or  confidence  in  his  own  powers,  he  would  have 
abandoned    the  idea   in   despair.     But  he    treated  their   remonstrances   with 


ALEXANDER  WILSON.  475 


indifference,  or  something  more  like  scorn :  he  resolved  to  proceed  at  all  risks 
and    hazards,  and,   for    some    time   afterwards,    busily    employed    himself  in 
collecting  all   the  rarer  specimens  of  birds  in   his  own    neighbourhood.     lu 
October,  1804,  he  set  out,  accompanied  by  his  nephew  Duncan,  and  another 
individual,  upon  an  expedition  to  the  Falls  of  Niagara,  which  wondrous  scene, 
according  to   his   own    account,   he   gazed    upon   with   an   admiration    almost 
amounting  to  distraction.     On  their  return,  the  three  friends  were  overtaken 
by  the  storms  of  winter.     AVilson's  companions  successively  gave  in,  and  left 
him  at  different  parts  of  their  route ;   but  he  himself  toiled  on  through  the  mud 
and  snow,  encumbered  with  his  gun  and  fowling  bag,  the  latter  of  which  was  of 
course  always  increasing  in  bulk,  and  arrived  gnfely  at  home,  after  an  absence 
of  fifty-nine  days,  during  which  he  had  walked  nearly  12G0  miles,  47  of  which 
were  performed  the  last  day.     Instead  of  being  daunted  by  the  fatigues  and 
hardships  of  tlie  journey,  we  find  him  writing  an  account  of  it  to  his  friends 
with  something  like  exultation,  and  delightedly  contemplating  future  expedi- 
tions of  the  like  nature ;  and  this  when  his  whole  stock  of  money  amounted  to 
three-fourths  of  a  dollar!     For  some  time  after  his  return,  he  amused  himself 
with  penning  a  poetical  narrative  of  his  journey,  called  "  The  Foresters,"  (af- 
terwards published ;)  a  piece  much  superior  to  any  of  his  former  descriptive 
poems,    and    containing    many   even    sublime    aposti-ophes.      From    this   time 
forward,    AA'ilson    applied    his    whole    energies    to    his    ornithological    work, 
drawing,  etching,  and   colouring  all  the  plates   himself,  for  he  had  in  vain 
endeavoured  to  induce  his  cautious  friend  3Ir  Lawson,  to  take  any  share  in 
the  undertaking.      In  the  spring  of  1806,  a  favourable  opportunity  seemed  to 
present  itself  for  prosecuting  his  researches,  by  a  public  intimation  being  given 
of  the  intention  of  pi-esident  Jefferson  to  despatch  parties  of  scientific  men  to 
explore  the  district  of  Louisiana.     At  Wilson's  request,  IMr  Bartram,  who  was 
intimate    with    the    president,    wrote    to    him,    mentioning    Wilson's    desire, 
character,  and  acquirements,  and  strongly  recommending  his  being  employed 
in  the  proposed  survey.     Wilson  also  wrote  a  respectful  and  urgent  letter  to 
Jefferson,  detailing  the  extensive  plans  of  his  work,  and  explaining  all  his  pro- 
ceedings and  views.     To  these  applications  the  president  vouchsafed  not  one 
word  in  reply  ;  a  circumstance  which  convinced  Wilson  more  and  more — nor 
did  he  shrink  from  the  conviction — that  he  must  stand  self-sustained  in  the  exe- 
cuting of  his  great  national  undertaking.     But  his  intrinsic  and  sterling  merits 
soon  procured  him  a   patronage  Avhich  to  his  independent  mind  i\as,  perhaps, 
infinitely  more    gratifying    than  the  condescending  favours  of  a  great  man. 
He  received  a  liberal  offer  from  Mr  Bradford,  a  bookseller  of  Philadelphia,  to 
act  as  assistant  editor  in  bringing  out  a  new  edition  of  Rees's  Cjclopasdia,  and 
he  gladly  relinquished  the  toilsome  and  ill-rewarded  duties  of  a  schoolmaster  to 
betake  himself  to  his  new  employment.     Soon  after  this  engagement,  he  laid 
before  Mr  Bradford  the  plan  of  his  Ornilhology ,  with  the  specimens  of  com- 
position and  delineation  which  he  had  already  executed  ;   and  that  gentleman 
was  so  satisfied  of  Wilson's  ability  to  complete  it,  that  he  at  once  agreed  to 
run  all  the  risk  of  publication.      All  obstacles  to  the  fulfilment  of  his  great  de- 
sign being  now  removed,  Wilson  applied  himself  night  and  day  to  his  double 
task  of  author  and  editor,   occasionally  making  a  pedestrian  excursion  into 
various  districts  for  the  benefit  at  once  of  his  health  (which  was  beginning  to 
decay)   and   of  his   great   work.     At   length,   in    1808,   the    first   volume   of 
the  American  Ornithology  made  its  appearance,  and,  much  as  the  public  had 
been  taught  to  expect  from  the  advertisements  and  prospectuses  previously  is- 
sued, the  work  far  exceeded  in  splendour  anything  that  had  ever  been  seea  in 
the  country  before.     Inmiediately  on  its  publication,  the  author  set  out  on  an  ex- 


47G  ALEXANDER   WILSON. 


peditiun  throagh  the  eastern  states,  with  the  design  of  exhibiting  liis  book  and 
solicitino-  subscribers.  It  is  not  our  purpose  to  trace  his  course  in  this  journey, 
wherein  lie  encountered  hardships,  vexations,  and  disappointments  innumera- 
ble but  insufficient  to  check  his  ardour.  The  extent  of  his  journey  may  bo 
guessed  at  from  the  following  extract  from  one  of  his  letters  when  about  to  re- 
turn: "Having   now   visited   all  the  towns   within    one   hundred   miles    of 

the  Atlantic,  from  Maine  to  Georgia,  and  done  as  much  for  this  bantling  book 
of  mine,  as  ever  author  did  for  any  progeny  of  his  brain,  I  now  turn  my  wish- 
ful eyes  towards  Iiome."  Upon  the  whole  the  result  of  his  expedition 
was  unsuccessful,  for  although  he  received  most  flattering  marks  of  respect 
wherever  he  went,  the  sacrilice  of  120  dollars  (for  the  ten  volumes)  proved  a 
sad  check  upon  tiie  enthusiasm  of  his  admirers.  His  letters  to  his  friends,  in 
which  a  full  account  of  every  part  of  this,  as  well  as  his  subsequent  journeys  is 
given,  are  in  the  highest  degree  intei-esting.  In  1810,  the  second  volume  was 
published,  and  Wilson  innnediately  set  out  for  Pittsburg,  on  his  way  to  New 
Orleans  for  the  same  purpose  as  before.  On  reaching  Pittsburg,  he  was  puz- 
zled to  think  by  what  means  he  should  descend  the  Ohio ;  but  at  last 
determined,  in  spite  of  the  remonstrances  of  his  friends,  to  voyage  it  in  a  small 
boat  alone.  He  accordingly  bought  a  batteau,  which  he  named  the  Ornitlio- 
loght,  put  in  a  small  stock  of  provisions  and  water,  (he  never  carried  spirits 
with  him,)  with  his  never-failing  fowling  piece  and  ammunition,  and  pushed  off 
into  the  stream  for  a  solitary  voyage  of  between  500  and  600  miles.  This  was 
exactly  such  a  situation  as  was  calculated  to  arouse  all  the  romantic  feelings  of 
Wilson's  soul :  the  true  lover  of  nature  experiences  a  delight  approaching  to 
ecstasy  when  alone  in  the  uninhabited  desert.  But  the  whole  tract  of  his 
journey  was  rich  with  the  objects  most  attractive  to  the  lonely  voyager ;  he 
collected  an  immense  stock  of  ornithological  riches  for  his  future  volumes,  and 
amused  his  mind  at  his  hours  of  repose  with  the  composition  of  a  descriptive 
poem  entitled  "  The  Pilgrim."  He  reached  New  Orleans  on  the  6ih  of  June, 
and  arrived  at  Philadelphia  on  the  2nd  of  August,  having  been  travelling  since 
the  beginning  of  January  ;  during  which  time  his  whole  expenses  did  not 
amount  to  500  dollars.  This  was  the  most  extensive  of  all  Wilson's  excursions, 
and  although  he  took  several  others  to  various  districts,  as  the  volumes  of  the 
Ornithology  successively  appeared,  we  do  not  think  it  necessary  here  to  advert 
to  them  particularly.  Writing  to  his  brother  David,  a  year  or  two  afterwards, 
in  reference  to  these  exertions  to  further  the  sale  of  his  works,  he  says  : 
**  By  the  fii-st  opportunity  I  will  transmit  a  trifle  to  our  old  father,  whose 
existence,  so  far  from  being  forgotten,  is  as  dear  to  me  as  my  own.  But 
David,  an  ambition  of  being  distinguished  in  the  literary  world,  has  re- 
quired sacrifices  and  exertions  from  me  with  which  you  are  unacquainted ; 
and  a  wish  to  reach  the  glorious  rock  of  independence,  that  I  niigbt  from 
thence  assist  my  relations,  who  are  struggling  with  and  buffeting  tlie  billows  of 
advei-sity,has  engaged  me  in  an  undertaking  more  laborious  and  extensive  than 
you  are  awai-e  of,  and  has  occupied  every  moment  of  my  time  for  several  years. 
Since  February  1810,  I  have  slept  for  several  weeks  in  the  wilderness  alone, 
in  an  Indian  country,  with  my  gun  and  my  pistols  in  my  bosom  ;  and  have 
found  myself  so  reduced  by  sickness  as  to  be  scarcely  able  to  stand,  when  not 
within  300  miles  of  a  white -settlement,  and  under  the  burning  latitude  of  25 
degrees.  I  have,  by  resolution,  surmounted  all  these  and  other  obstacles,  in 
my  way  to  my  object,  and  now  begin  to  see  the  blue  sky  of  independence  open 
around  me." 

Wilson's  reputation,  indeed,  and  the  merits  of  his  great  undertaking,  had 
now  forced   themselves    into   notice,   not    only   in    Anerica,  but    throughout 


ALEXANDER  WILSON.  477 


Ell  Europe,  and  one  of  his  biographers  says,  that  there  was  not  a  crowned  head 
in  the  latter  quarter  of  the  globe  but  had  then  become  a  subscriber  to  the 
American  OrnUhology.     Honoui-s  as  well  as  profit  began   to  pour  in   upon 
liini.     In   1812,  he  was  elected    a    member    of  the   American   Philosophical 
Society,  and  subsequently  of  other  learned  bodies.      In    1813,   the   literary 
materials  for  the  eighth  volume  of  the  Ornithology  were  ready  at  the  same 
time  that  the  seventh  was  published.     But  its  progress  was  greatly  retarded  (pr 
want  of  proper  assistants  to  colour  the  plates,  those  whom  he  could  procure 
aiming  rather  at  a  caricature  than  a  copy  of  nature.      He  was  at  last  obliged 
to    undertake    the    whole    of    this    department    himself    in   addition    to    his 
other  duties,  and  these  multifarious  labours,  by  drawing  largely  upon  his  hours 
of  rest,   began   rapidly   to   exhaust   his   constitution.      When   his  friends   re- 
monstrated with  him  upon  the  danger  of  his  severe  application,  he  answered, 
"  Life  is  short,  and   without  exertion   nothing  can  be  performed."     A  fatal 
dysentery  at  last  seized  him,  which,  after  a  few  days'  illness,  carried  him  ofl*, 
upon  the  23rd  of  August,  1813,  being  then  only  in  his  forty-eighth  year.     Ac- 
cording to  the  authority  of  an  American  gentleman  who  was  intimate  with 
him,   his  death    was  accelerated   by   an    incident   in    singular   keeping    with 
the  scientific  enthusiasm  of  his  life.      While  sitting  in  the  house  of  one  of  his 
friends,  he  happened  to  see  a  bird  of  a  rare  species,  and  which  he  had  been  long 
seeking  for  in   vain,  fly  past  the  window.     He  immediately  rushed  out  of  the 
house,    pursued    the  bird   across   a  river,   over   which   he   was   compelled   to 
swim,  shot  and  returned  with  the  bird,  but  caught  an  accession  of  cold  which 
carried  him  off.     He  was  buried  next  day  in  the  cemetery  of  the  Swedish  church 
in  the  district  of  Southwark,  Philadelphia,  with  all  the   honours  which  the  in- 
habitants could  bestow  on  his  remains.     The  clergy  and    all  the  public  bodies 
walked  in  procession,  and  wore  crape  on  their  arms  for  thirty  days.     A  simple 
marble    monument    was    placed    over    him,    stating    shortly    the    place    and 
year  of  his  birth,  the  period  of  his  emigration  to  America,  and  the  day  and 
cause  of  his  death. 

The  whole  plates  for  the  remainder  of  the  Ornithology  having  been  com- 
pleted under  Wilson's  own  eye,  the  letter-press  of  the  ninth  volume  was 
supplied  by  his  friend  3Ir  George  Ord,  who  had  been  his  companion  in  several 
of  his  expeditions,  as  also  a  memoir  of  the  deceased  naturalist.  There  have 
been  few  instances,  indeed,  where  the  glowing  fire  of  genius  was  combined 
with  so  much  strong  and  healthy  judgment,  warmth  of  social  affection,  and  cor- 
rect and  pure  moral  feeling,  as  in  the  case  of  Alexander  Wilson.  The  bene- 
volence and  kindness  of  his  heart  sparkle  through  all  his  writings,  and  it  is 
cheering  to  the  true  Christian  to  observe,  that  his  religious  principles  became 
purified  and  strengthened  in  proportion  to  the  depth  of  his  researches  into  the 
organization  of  nature.  He  is  said  to  have  been  strikingly  handsome  in  per- 
son, although  rather  slim  than  robust,  with  a  countenance  beaming  with  intelli- 
gence, and  an  eye  full  of  animation  and  fire.  His  career  furnishes  a 
remarkable  example  of  the  success  which,  sooner  or  later,  is  the  reward  of 
perseverance.  It  is  (rae  he  did  not  attain  riches,  but  upon  the  possession  of  these 
his  happiness  was  not  placed.  Ho  wished,  to  use  his  own  woi-ds,  "  to  raise  some 
beacon  to  show  that  such  a  man  had  lived,"  and  few  have  so  completely  achieved 
the  object  of  their  ambition.     Wilson's  father  survived  him  three  years. 

Three  supplementary  volumes  of  the  Ornithology,  containing  delineations  ot 
American  birds  not  described  by  Wilson,  have  been  published  by  Cliarlea  Lucien 
Bonaparte.  In  1832,  an  edition  of  the  American  Ornithology.,  with  illustrative 
notes,  and  a  Life  of  Wilson,  by  Sir  William  Jardine,  was  published  in  London,  in 
three  volumes. 


478  FLORENCE  WILSON.— JOHxV  WINRAM. 

WILSON,  Florence,  an  author  of  eome  note,  was  born  on  the  banks  of  the 
Lossio,  near  Elgin,  about  the  year  1500.  He  is  commonly  known  by  his  Latin- 
ized name  of  Florentius  Volusenus,  which  has  been  usually  translated  Wilson, 
though  it  is  doubted  whether  his  name  was  not  Wolsey,  Willison,  AVilliamson,  or 
Voluzene.  He  studied  at  Aberdeen,  and  afterwards  repaired  to  England,  where 
cardinal  Wolsey  appointed  him  preceptor  to  his  nephew.  Accompanied  by  the 
latter  he  went  to  Paris,  where,  after  the  death  of  Wolsey  and  the  consequent 
losSi  of  hia  pupil,  he  found  another  patron  in  cardinal  du  Bellai,  archbishop  of 
Paris.  Along  with  this  prelate  he  intended  to  visit  Rome,  but  was  prevented 
by  illness,  and  was  left  behind  at  Avignon.  Here  he  recommended  himself  by 
liis  scholarship  to  cardinal  Sadolet,  who  procured  for  him  the  appointment  of 
teacher  of  Latin  and  Greek  in  the  public  school  of  Carpcntras.  He  is  best 
known  by  his  dialogue  "De  Auimi  Tranquillitate,"  which  was  published  at  Lyons 
in  1543,  and  reprinted  at  Edinburgh  in  1571,  1707,  and  1751.  Wilson  died  at 
Vienne,  in  Dauphiny,  in  1547,  when  returning  to  his  native  land.  Several  other 
works  have  been  ascribed  to  him  besides  the  well  known  dialogue,  but  the  works 
themselves  are  not  extant.  His  death  was  celebrated  by  Buchanan  in  the 
following  epigram: — 

"Uic  Mnsis,  Volusene,  jaces  cnrissime,  ripnm 
Ad  Rhodani,  terra  quam  procul  a  patrlal 
Hoc  meruit  virtus  tua,  tellus  quae  foret  altrix 
Virtutuni,  iit  cineres  conderet  ilia  tuos." 

WINRABI,  John,  superintendent  of  Fife  and  Stratheme,  was  descended  of 
the  Fifeshire  family  of  the  Winrams  of  Batho.  He  is  supposed  to  have 
entered  the  university  of  St  Andrews  (St  Leonard's  college)  in  1513,  and  in 
1515  he  took  the  degree  of  B.  A.,  on  which  occasion  lie  is  designated  a 
pauper  ;  that  is,  one  who  paid  the  lowest  rate  of  fees.  From  that  period  till 
1532,  no  trace  h.is  been  discovered  of  him,  but  at  the  last  mentioned  date  he 
is  noticed  under  the  title  of  "  Canonicum  ac  baccalarium  in  Theologia  "  as  one 
of  the  rector's  assessors,  and  in  a  deed  dated  the  same  year  ho  is  called  a  canou 
regular  of  the  monastery  of  St  Andrews.  Two  years  afterwards  he  is  men- 
tioned as  third  prior,  and  in  1536,  as  subprior,  in  which  situation  he  continued 
till  the  Reformation. 

The  first  occasion  on  which  we  have  found  Mr  John  Winram  making  a  pub- 
lic appearance  was  the  trial  of  George  Wishart,  the  martyr.  On  that  occasion 
he  was  appointed  to  open  the  proceedings  by  a  sermon,  and  he  accordingly 
preached  on  the  parable  of  the  wheat  and  tares :  he  mentioned  that  the  word 
of  God  is  **  the  only  and  undoubted  foundation  of  trying  heresy  without  any 
superadded  traditions,"  but  held  that  heretics  should  be  put  down, — a  position 
strangely  inconsistent  with  the  command  to  let  the  tares  and  wheat  grow  to- 
gether till  harvest.  About  the  same  period,  archbishop  Hamilton  ordered  the 
subprior  to  call  a  convention  of  Black  and  Grey  friars  for  the  discussion  of 
certain  articles  of  heretical  doctrine.  At  this  meeting,  John  Knox  demanded 
from  Winram  a  public  acknowledgment  of  his  opinion,  whether  these  heretical 
articles  were  consistent  or  inconsistent  Avilh  God's  word  ;  but  this  the  wary  subprior 
avoided.  "  I  came  not  here  as  a  judge,"  he  replied,  "  but  familiarly  to  talk, 
and  therefore  I  will  neither  allow  nor  disallow,  but  if  ye  list,  I  will  reason ;" 
and  accordingly  he  did  reason,  till  Knox  drove  him  from  all  his  positions,  and 
he  then  laid  the  burden  upon  Arbuckle,  one  of  the  friars.  Winram  attended 
the  provincial  councils  of  the  Scottish  clergy,  held  in  1549  and  1559,  and,  on 
the  first  of  these  occasions  at  least,  took  an  active  part  in  the  proceedings. 
Thus,  up  to  the   very  period  of  the  establishment  of  the  Reformation,   he 


JOHN  WIN  RAM.  479 


continued  to  act  a  decided  part  with  the  cntliolic  clergy.  "  There  have  been, 
and  are,"  says  Wodrow,  "  some  of  God's  children,  and  hidden  ones,  in 
Babylon,  *  *  *  *  and  no  doubt  Mr  Winrain  was  useful  even  in  this  period." 
May  it  not  be  asked,  whether  he  did  not,  by  a  bad  example,  and  a  pertinacious 
adherence  to  a  system  which  he  knew  to  be  erroneous,  greatly  more  weaken 
the  hands  of  his  brethren,  than  he  could  possibly  strengthen  them  by  his 
private  exertions? 

Winram,  as  prior  of  Portmoak,  attended  the  parliament  of  August,  1560, 
which  ratified  the  protestant  Confession  of  Faith.  The  first  General  Assembly 
held  in  December  following,  declared  him  fit  for  and  apt  to  minister  the  word 
and  sacraments;  and  on  Sunday,  April  13,  1561,  he  was  elected  superinten- 
dent of  Fife,  Fothrick,  and  Stratherne,  "be  the  common  consent  of  lordis, 
baronis,  ministeris,  elderis,  of  the  saidis  bowndis,  and  otheris  common  pepill,'' 
&c.  The  transactions  in  which  he  was  engaged  in  this  capacity  present  so  lit- 
tle variety  that  we  shall  merely  take  a  short  general  view  of  them- 

One  of  Winram's  earliest  acts  as  superintendent  was  the  reversal  of  a  sen- 
tence of  condemnation  which  had  been  passed  on  Sir  John  Borthwick,  in  1540, 
for  heresy.  This  gentleman  had  saved  himself  by  flight,  but  appears  to  liave 
returned  to  Scotland  in  or  before  1560,  for,  at  the  first  General  Assembly,  we 
find  one  of  the  members  "  presented  by  Sir  John  Borthwick  to  the  kirks 
of  Aberdour  and  Torrie."  It  is  sufficiently  singular  that  Winram  was 
one  of  "  those  plain  enemies  to  the  truth  "  described  in  the  reversal  of  the  sen- 
tence, who  had  assisted  at  the  trial  and  condemnation  of  the  man  whom 
he  even  then  must  have  considered  as  a  friend,  although  he  had  not  the  courage 
or  the  honesty  to  avow  it.  The  notices  of  Winram  in  the  records  of  the 
General  Assembly  consist,  almost  Avithout  exception,  of  complaints  against  him 
for  negligence  in  visiting  the  district  or  diocese  committed  to  his  charge.' 
This  is  a  charge  which  was  brought  more  or  lesa  frequently  against  all 
the  superintendents :  the  people  on  the  one  hand  seem  to  have  been  un- 
reasonable in  their  expectations,  and  the  government,  beyond  all  question,  gave 
the  clerey  but  little  encouragement  by  a  liberal  or  even  moderate  provision  for 
their  wants.  In  Winram's  case,  however,  the  frequency  of  these  complaints 
leaves  on  the  mind  a  suspicion  that  he  was  to  a  considerable  extent  in  fault, 
and,  on  one  occasion  at  least,  the  complaint  was  accompanied  with  a  charge  of 
a  covetous,  worldly-minded  disposition, — a  charge  Avhich  circumstances  we 
shall  mention  in  our  general  remarks  on  his  character  lead  us  to  conclude 
were  not  unfounded.  He  was  several  times  employed  in  reconciling  party  and 
private  disputes.  In  1571,  he  was  ordered  by  the  General  Assembly  to 
inhibit  Mr  John  Douglas,  who  was  appointed  archbishop  of  St  Andrews,  to  vote 
in  parliament  in  name  of  the  church.  In  January,  1572,  he  attended  the  con- 
vention at  Leith,  at  which  Tulchan  bishops  w«re  authorized,  and  in  the  following 
month  he  was  employed  as  superintendent  of  the  bounds  to  inaugurate  the  arch- 
bishop of  St  Andrews.  There  are  no  subsequent  notices  of  him  of  the 
slightest  interest  or  importance.  He  died  on  the  18th  or  28th  of  September, 
1582,  (the  date  seems  uncertain,)  leaving  by  his  will  James  Winram  and  John 
Winram  of  Craigton,  sons  of  Mr  Robert  Winram  of  Ratho  liis  brother, 
his  principal  heirs. 

The  character  of  Winram  is  by  no  means  free  from  suspicion.  He  was  an 
early  convert  to  the  protestant  doctrines,  but  he  neither  abandoned  his  situation 
nor  emoluments  in  the  catholic  church  ;  he  did  not,  like  almost  all  his  brother 
superintendents,  expose  himself  to  danger  or  to  suffering  by  a  public  profes- 

1  These  charges  were  lirought  forward  in  December,  1562  ;  December,  1564 ;  Decem- 
ber, 1563;  Decembei-,  1367;  July,  1569;  July,  1570;  March,  1572. 


4S0  GEORGE   WISHART. 


sion  of  his  scntimenls,  .and  when  Knox,  at  the  meeting  of  the  Black  and  Grey 
friars,  demanded  wiiether  he  conscientiously  considered  the  doctrines  then 
called  heretical  contrary  to  God's  word,  lie  not  only  evaded  the  question,  but 
argued  on  the  popish  side :  he  assisted  at  the  trials  of  at  least  two  of  the 
reformers,  of  whom  one  suffered,  and  the  other  only  saved  himself  by  flight. 
It  may  perhaps  be  said  that  Winram  expected  to  be  thus  able  to  advance  the 
reformation  more  effectually  than  by  an  open  abandonment  or  opposition  of  the 
popish  church,  but  this  is  an  argument  which  would  in  any  case  be  liable  to 
strong  suspicion,  and  which  in  Winram's  is  rendered  everytiiing  but  inadmis- 
sible by  the  other  facts  which  are  known  respecting  him.  Tiie  truth  seems  to 
be,  and  candour  requires  that  it  should  be  stated,  that  he  generally  displayed 
a  covetous,  interested  disposition.  On  this  account  he  was  sometimes  treated 
with  no  great  respect,  even  by  persons  of  inferior  rank:  one  person,  indeed, 
was  charged  in  15G1,  before  the  kirk  session  of  St  Andrews,  with  saying  that  he 
was  a  "  fals,  dissaitful,  greedy,  and  dissemblit  smaik,  for  he  wes  ane  oftliam  thai 
maist  oppressed,  smored,  and  held  doun  the  word  [kirk  ?J  of  God,  aiid  now  he  is 
cum  into  it  and  professes  the  same  for  grediness  of  geir,  lurkand  and  watchand 
quhill  he  may  se  ane  other  ti/m.''*  Nor  does  he  seem  to  have  possessed  in  any 
considerable  degree  the  confidence  of  his  clerical  brethren.  It  has  been 
remarked  that,  in  the  records  of  the  proceedings  of  the  first  (ieneral  Assembly, 
his  name  appears  but  seventeenth  on  the  list  of  persons  considered  fit  to 
minister,  and  is  placed  after  those  of  men  greatly  his  juniors.  This  is  a  cir- 
cumstance which  mei'e  accident  may  have  occasioned,  and  is  not  of  itsellt 
entitled  to  much  consideration  ;  but  of  one  fact  there  can  be  no  doubt,  that  in 
the  whole  course  of  thirty-six  Assemblies,  which,  according  to  Wodrow,  he  at- 
tended, he  was  never  appointed  moderator,  nor  intrusted  even  with  a  shai-e  in 
the  management  of  their  more  important  transactions. 

Winram  married  Margaret  Stewart,  widow  of  ...  .  Ayton  of  Kin- 
naldy,  but  she  predeceased  him  without  having  any  family  except  by  her  first 
husband.  3Iany  passages  in  the  books  of  the  commissariot  of  St  Andrews  show 
that  the  superintendent  and  his  wife's  sons  were  on  indifferent  terms,  and  leave 
one  not  without  suspicion  that  he  made  some  attempt  to  deprive  them  of  their 
just  rights  or  property.  In  the  remarks  which  we  have  made  on  this  and  other 
parts  of  his  conduct  we  have  been  actuated  by  no  other  motive  but  a  desire  to 
draw  a  fair  and  impartial  conclusion  from  the  facts  which  time  has  spared  to 
us.  At  the  same  time,  we  are  sensible,  and  we  mention  it  in  justice  to  the 
memory  of  Winram  and  many  others,  that,  did  the  history  of  the  period  admit 
a  fuller  investigation,  considerations  might  arise  which  would  probably  place 
many  transactions  in  a  different  point  of  view."  The  only  work  known 
to  have  been  written  by  W'inram  is  a  catechism,  which  has  long  disappeared, 
and  of  which  not  even  a  description  is  now  known  to  exist. 

WISH  ART,  Georqe,  a  distinguished  protestant  martyr,  was  probably  the 
son  of  James  Wishart,  of  Pitarro,  justice-clerk  to  James  V.  He  is  supposed 
to  have  studied  at  3Iontrose,  where  he  himself  gave  instructions  for  some  time 
in  the  Greek  language  ;  a  circumstance  which,  considering  the  state  of  Greek 
learning  in  Scotland  at  the  time  reflects  distinguished  honour  on  his  literary 
character.  But  there  were  men  in  power  by  whom  it  was  reckoned  heresy  to 
give  instructions  in  the  original  language  of  the  New  Testament.  Owing 
to  the  persecution  he  received  from  the  bishop  of  Brechin  and  cardinal 
Beaton,  lie  left  the  country  in  1538.  His  history  during  the  three  following 
years  is  little  known.  It  appears  that,  having  preached  at  Bristol  against  the 
worship  and  mediation  of  the  Virgin,  he  was  condemned  for  that  alleged 
-  Abridged  from  Wodrow 's  BiogiaphiL-al  Collections,  piiiited  by  the  Maillaiid  Club,  i. 


GEORGE  "WISH ART.  481 

heresy,  recanted  his  opinions,  and  burnt  his  fagot  in  the  church  of  St  Nicholas 
in  that  city.      Probably  he  afterwards  travelled  on  the  continent.     In  1543, 
he   was  at   Cambridge,   as   wo  learn   from  the    following  description  quoted 
by  the  biographer  of  Knox,^  fronva  letter  of  Emery  Tylney.     "About  the  yeare 
of  our  Lord  a  thousand,  five  hundreth,  forty  and  three,  there  was,  in  the  uni- 
versity of  Cambridge,  one  Maister  George  Wishart,  commonly  called  Maister 
George  of  Bennet's  colledge,  who  was  a  tall  man,  polde  headed,  and  on 
the  same  a  round  French  cap  of  the  best     Judged  of  melancholye  complexion 
by  his  physiognomic,  black  haired,  long  bearded,  comely  of  personage,  well 
spoken  after  his  country  of  Scotland,  courteous,  lowly,  lonely,  glad  to  teacii, 
desirous  to  learne,  and  was  well  ^travailed.     Having  on  him  for  his  habit  or 
clothing  never  but  a  mantill  frieze  gowne  to  the  shoes,  a  black  milliard  fustian 
dublet,  and  plain  black  hosen,  coarse  new  canvasse  for  his  shirtes,  and  white 
falling  bandes  and  cuffes  at  the  hands.     All  the  whicli  apparell  he  gave  to  the 
poore,  some  weekly,  some  monthly,  some  quarterly,  as  he  liked  ;  saving  his 
French  cappe,  which  he  kept  the  whole  year  of  my  being  with  him.     He  was 
a  man,  modest,  temperate,  fearing  God,  hating  covetousnesse  ;   for  his  charitie 
had  never  ende,  night,  noone,  nor  daye.     He  forbare  one  meale,  one  day  in 
four  for  the  most  part,  except  something  to  comfort  nature.     Hee  lay  hard  upon 
a  pouffe  of  straw,  coarse  new  canvasse  sheetes,  which,  when  he  changed,  he  gave 
away.     He  had  commonly  by  his  bedside  a  tubbe  of  water,  in  the  which  (liis 
people  being  in  bed,  the  candle  put  out,  and  all  quiet)  hee  used  to  bathe  him- 
self.    He  taught  with  great  modestie  and  gravitie,  so  that  some  of  his  people 
thought  him  severe,  and  would  have  slaine  him  ;  but  the  Lord  was  his  defence. 
And  hee,  after  due  correction  for  their  malice,  by  good  exhortation,  amended 
them,  and  he  went  his  way.     O  that  the  Lord  had  left  him  to  me  his  poore 
boy,  that  he  might  have  finished  that  he  had  begunne!     His  learning,  no  less 
sufficient  than  his  desire,  always  prest  and   readie   to  do  good  in  that   he 
was  able,  both  in  the  house  privately,  and  in  the  school  publikely,  profusing 
and  reading  diveree  authors." 

Wishart  returned  to  Scotland  in  July,  1543,  in  company  with  the  commis- 
sioners  who  had  been  despatched  for  the  negotiation  of  the  marriage  treaty  with 
Henry  VHI.^  From  these  individuals,  many  of  whom  were  attached  to  the  re- 
formed doctrines,  he  had  probably  received  assurances  of  safety  for  his  person  : 
it  is  at  least  certain  that,  from  the  time  of  his  entering  the  country  till 
his  death,  he  was  under  their  protection,  and  usually  in  the  presence  of  one  or 
more  of  them.  The  chief  laymen  of  the  protestant  party  at  this  period  were 
the  earls  Cassillis,  Glencairn,  and  Marischal,  Sir  George  Douglas,  and  the 
lairds  of  Brunstaiu,  Ormiston,  and  Calder.  They  were  in  secret  alliance  with 
the  king  of  England,  and,  at  his  instigation,  several  of  them  formed  designs  for 
assassinating  cardinal  Beaton,  whose  powerful  genius  was  the  chief  obstacle  to 

their  views.  ,  .     -.r     ^  a 

Thus  countenanced,  Wishart  preached  to  large  audiences  in  Montrose  and 
Dundee,  causing,  at  the  latter  of  these  places,  the  destruction  of  the  houses  of 
the  Black  and  Grey  friars.  The  authorities  having  interfered  to  preserve  the 
peace,  Wishart  left  the  town,  but  not  till  he  had  given  a  public  testimony  to 
the  friendly  nature  of  his  intentions,  and  the  danger  that  would  be  incurred  by 
those  who  refused  to  hear  the  truth  which  he  proclaimed.     He  then  proceeded 

I  Slox  Tn^Ws^nLori^ome  Reformadon.  says  1544 ;  but  it  is  «ilisfactorily  proved  that 
thP  o^misTione  "returned  in  1543:  and  hence  as  it  is  more  likely  that  a  mistake  would 
frLTt^rdrUmn  inX  circumstance,  we  assume  the  latter  year,  as  a  correction  upon 
Knox's  statement. 

SP 


482  GEORGE   WISHART. 


to  the  west  of  Scotland,  and  for  some  time  preached  successfully.  But  in  tho 
town  of  Ayr,  he  found  the  church  preoccupied  by  the  bishop  of  Glasgow ;  in 
consequence  of  which  he  proceeded  to  the  market-cross,  "  where,"  says  Knox, 
"  he  made  so  notable  a  sermon,  that  the  ve%  enemies  themselves  were  con- 
founded." He  also  preached  frequently  at  Galston  and  Bar.  At  Mauchline 
he  was  prevented  from  officiating',  by  the  sheriff  of  Ayr  "  causing  to  man 
the  church,  for  preservation  of  a  tabernacle  that  was  there  beautiful  to  the  eye." 
Wishart,  refusing  to  yield  to  the  solicitations  of  some  who  urged  liim  to  enter 
forcibly,  exclaimed,  "  Christ  Jesus  is  as  mighty  upon  the  fields  as  in  the 
church  ;  and  I  find  that  he  himself,  after  he  preached  in  the  desert,  at  the 
sea-side,  and  other  places  judged  profane  then,  he  did  so  in  the  temple  of 
Jerusalem.  It  is  the  word  of  peace  that  God  sends  by  me — the  blood  of  no 
man  shall  be  shed  this  day  for  the  preaching  of  it."  Thereafter  he  preached 
in  the  neighbourhood,  so  as  to  produce  a  wonderful  reformation  on  a  gentle- 
man of  abandoned  character.  But  while  engaged  in  this  part  of  Scotland,  he 
heard  that  the  plague  was  raging  in  Dundee.  Tho  devoted  preacher  hastened 
thither.  In  the  midst  of  the  disease  and  misery  of  the  people,  he  preached  so 
as  to  be  heard  both  within  and  without  the  town,  many  of  the  sick  being  be- 
yond the  gate,  on  these  appropriate  words,  "He  sent  his  sword  and  healed 
them ;"  adding,  "  It  is  neither  herb  nor  plaster,  O  Lord,  but  thy  word  healeth 
all."  This  discourse  produced  a  very  general  and  powerful  impression.  He 
continued  to  preach  and  visit  the  sick  with  singular  benevolence ;  and,  besides 
the  infection  of  the  disease,  to  which  he  was  constantly  exposed,  he  was,  on  one 
occasion,  liable  to  danger  from  a  priest,  who  had  been  commissioned  to  assassinate 
him.  The  people,  on  discovering  the  dagger  which  he  held  in  his  hand  at  the 
conclusion  of  one  of  Wishart's  sermons,  were  inflamed  with  passion,  but 
the  latter  embraced  him,  with  these  friendly  words,  *'  whosoever  troubles  him 
shall  trouble  me,  for  he  hath  hurt  me  in  nothing ;  but  he  hath  done  great  com- 
fort to  you  and  me,  to  wit,  he  hath  let  us  to  understand  what  we  may  fear :  in 
times  to  come  we  will  watch  better,"  The  truth  appears  to  be,  that  Beaton,  being 
fully  apprized  of  the  designs  of  Wishart's  friends  against  his  own  life,  had  thought 
proper  to  form  similar  designs  against  that  of  a  preacher  who  was  perpetually  in 
the  company,  and  in  all  probability  in  the  confidence  of  his  own  enemies,  and 
whose  eloquence  was  threatening  his  church  with  destruction.  Whether  this 
was  the  case  or  not,  there  can  be  no  doubt  that  the  cardinal  now  made  all  pos- 
sible efforts  to  apprehend  Wishart.  The  preacher,  therefore,  never  moved  in 
any  direction  without  a  tried  adherent,  who  bore  a  two-handed  sword  before 
him ;  nor  did  he  ever  preach  except  under  a  strong  guard  of  friendly 
barons  and  their  retainers.  Knox  at  one  time  ofiiciated  in  the  character  of 
sword-bearer  to  his  friend. 

From  Dundee  he  returned  to  Montrose,  where  he  spent  some  time,  occupied 
partly  in  preaching,  "  but  most  part  in  secret  meditation."  At  Dundee, 
wliich  he  now  revisited,  he  uttered  a  memorable  prediction  of  future  glory  to 
the  reformed  church  in  Scotland.  "  This  realm,"  said  he,  "  shall  be  illuminated 
with  tho  light  of  Christ's  gospel  as  clearly  as  ever  any  realm  since  the  days  of 
the  apostles.  The  house  of  God  shall  be  builded  in  it ;  yet  it  shall  not  lack, 
whatsoever  the  enemy  may  imagine  in  the  contrary,  the  very  kepstone."  For 
this  and  other  anticipations  of  the  future,  Wishart  received  the  credit  of 
a  prophet  among  his  followers  ;  nor  have  writers  been  wanting  in  the  present 
age  to  maintain  that  he  really  possessed  this  ideal  accomplishment.  It  is  im- 
possible, however,  for  a  reasonable  mind  to  see  anything  in  tlie  above  predic- 
tion, beside  the  sanguine  expectations  of  a  partisan  respecting  his  own  favourite 
objects.      As  for  the  rest  of  Wishart's  predictions,  which  generally  consisted  in 


GEORGE  "WISHART.  483 


the  announcement  of  coming  vengeance,  air  Tytler,  wlio  enjoyed  the  adrautage 
of  a  closer  inspection  of  the  secret  history  of  the  period,  than  any  preceding 
writer,  presents  the  following  theory ,3  to  which  we  can  see  little  chance  of  any 
valid  objection  being  started  : — "  He  enjoyed,  it  is  to  be  remembered,  tlie  con- 
fidential  intimacy,  nay,  we  have  reason  to  believe  that  his  councils  influenced 
the  conduct,  of  Cassillis,  Glencairn,  Brunstain,  and  the  party  which  were  now 
the  advisers  of  Henry's  intended  hostilities ;  a  circumstance  which  will 
sufficiently  account  for  the  obscure  warnings  of  the  preacher,  without  endowing 
him  with  inspiration."  It  is  to  be  remarked  that  in  calling  upon  the  people 
to  embrace  the  reformed  doctrines,  and  threatening  them  with  temporal 
destruction  if  they  refused,  he  was  speculating  only  upon  the  natural  course  of 
events  :  he  must  have  known  that  to  continue  attached  to  the  ancient  faith, 
which  was  equivalent  to  a  resistance  against  the  English  match,  was  sure  to 
bring  the  vengeance  of  Henry  upon  the  country,  while  an  opposite  conduct 
was  calculated  to  avert  his  wrath. 

While  at  Dundee,  Wishart  received  a  message  from  the  earl  of  Cassillis  and 
the  gentlemen  of  Kyle  and  Cunningham,  requesting  him  to  meet  them  in 
Edinburgh,  where  they  intended  to  make  interest  that  he  should  have  a  public 
disputation  with  the  bishops.  On  arriving  at  Leith,  he  did  not,  as  expected^ 
immediately  find  his  friends,  so  that,  "  beginning  to  wax  sorrowful  in  spirit,'' 
from  the  inactive  life  to  which  he  was  submitting,  he  preached  in  Leith,  from 
Avhich,  as  the  governor  and  cardinal  were  expected  in  Edinburgh,  he  went  to 
the  country,  residing  successively  in  Brunstain,  Longniddry,  and  Ormiston,  the 
proprietors  of  which,  as  well  as  many  other  gentlemen  of  Lothian,  were  zealous 
in  the  cause  of  reformation.  At  this  time  he  preached,  with  much  effect  in  In- 
veresk  and  Tranent,  and,  during  tlie  holidays  of  Christmas,  1545,  he  proceeded 
to  Haddington.  Here  he  preached  several  sermons.  Before  delivering 
the  last  of  them,  he  received  information  that  the  conference  to  which  he  had 
been  invited  in  Edinburgh  could  not  be  fulfilled.  This  greatly  distressed  him, 
and  the  smallness  of  his  audience  on  the  present  occasion  added  to  his  depre»< 
sion.  Having,  for  more  than  half  an  hour  walked  about  in  front  of  the  high 
altar,  he  proceeded  to  the  pulpit,  where  his  sermon  commenced  with  the  fol- 
loAving  words  :  "  O  Lord,  how  long  shall  it  be  that  thy  holy  word  shall 
be  despised,  and  men  shall  not  regard  their  own  salvation  ?  I  have  heard 
of  thee,  Haddington,  that  in  thee  would  have  been,  at  any  vain  clerk  play, 
two  or  three  thousand  people  ;  and  now  to  hear  the  messenger  of  the  Eternal 
God,  of  all  the  town  or  parish,  cannot  be  numbered  one  hundred  persons. 
Sore  and  fearful  shall  the  plagues  be  that  shall  ensue  upon  this  thy  contempt; 
with  tire  and  sword  shalt  thou  be  plagued."  He  then  proceeded  to  particularize 
the  kind  of  troubles  which  should  fall  on  Haddington,  and  which  actually  did 
befall  it  shortly  afterwards.  Farting  with  several  of  his  friends,  and  even  with 
John  Knox,  to  whom,  on  his  wishing  to  accompany  him,  he  said,  "  Nay,  re- 
turn to  your  children,  and  God  bless  you;  one  is  sufficient  for  one  sacrifice," 
he  went,  with  the  proprietor,  to  Ormiston.  At  night,  the  earl  of  Bothwell 
came  to  the  house,  and,  intimating  the  approach  of  the  governor  and  the 
cardinal,  advised  Ormiston  to  deliver  Wishart  to  him,  promising  that  he  should 
be  safe.  Wishart  was  willing  to  accede  to  these  terms.  "  Open  the  gates," 
said  he,  "  the  blessed  will  of  my  God  be  done."  BothweU's  promises  were  re- 
newed, and  his  attendants  joined  him  in  his  protestations.  But  they  proceeded 
with  Wishart  to  Elphinston,  where  Beaton  was;  and  the  preacher,  having 
been  sent  to  the  capital,  and  thence  brought  back  to  Hailes,  lord  BothweU's 
seat,  was  at  last  committed  to  ward  in  the  castle  of  Edinburgh.  He  was  soon 
3  History  of  Scotland,  v.  414. 


4S4  GEORGE  WISHART,  or  WISEHEAKT. 

after  sent  to  St  Andrews,  by  the  cardinal,  who,  assisted  by  Dunbar,  archbishop 
of  Glasgow,  prepared  for  the  trial  of  the  reformer. 

On  the  1st  of  Blarch,  1545-6,  the  dignitaries  of  the  church  assembled  at  Sf 
Andrews,  when  Beaton,  being  refused  the  presence  of  a  civil  judge  by  the 
governor,  determined  to  proceed  on  his  own  authority.  The  alleged  heretic, 
being  arraigned  on  a  series  of  charges,  defended  himself  meekly  but  firmly, 
and  with  a  profound  knowledge  of  scripture.  The  result,  as  was  to  be  expected, 
W.18  his  condemnation  to  the  stake.  On  tiie  2Sth,  he  wns  led  from  the  prison, 
with  a  rope  about  his  neck,  and  a  large  chain  round  his  middle,  to  the  place 
of  execution,  in  front  of  the  castle,  which  was  the  archi-episcopal  palace  of  the 
cardinal.  "  Here  a  scaffold  had  been  raised,*  with  a  high  stake  firmly  fixed  in 
the  midst  of  it.  Around  it  were  piled  bundles  of  dry  faggots ;  beside  them 
stood  an  iron  grate  containing  the  fire ;  and  near  it  the  solitary  figure  of  the 
executioner.  Nor  did  it  escape  the  observation  of  the  dense  and  melancholy 
crowd  which  had  assembled,  that  the  cannon  of  the  fortress  were  brought  to 
bear  directly  on  the  platform,  whilst  the  gunners  stood  with  their  matches  be- 
side them  ;  a  jealous  precaution,  suggested  perhaps  by  the  attempt  of  Duncan 
to  deliver  the  martyr  Hamilton,  and  which  rendered  all  idea  of  rescue  in  this 
case  perfectly  hopeless.  On  arriving  at  the  place,  Wishart  beheld  these  horrid 
preparations,  which  brought  before  him  the  agony  he  was  to  suffer,  ^\ith  an  un- 
moved countenance  ;  mounted  the  scaffold  firmly,  and  addressed  a  short  speech 
to  the  people,  in  which  he  exhorted  them  not  to  be  oflended  at  the  word  of 
God,  by  the  sight  of  the  torments  which  it  seemed  to  have  brought  upon  its 
preacher,  but  to  love  it,  and  to  sufter  patiently  for  it  any  persecution  which  the 
sin  of  unbelieving  men  might  suggest.  He  declared  that  he  freely  forgave  all 
his  enemies,  not  excepting  the  judges  who  had  unjustly  condemned  him." 
Having  signified  his  forgiveness  to  the  executioner,  he  was  tied  to  the  stake, 
and  the  flame  began  to  encompass  the  holy  maityr.  "  It  torments  my  body," 
said  he  to  his  friend,  the  captain  of  the  castle,  "  but  no  way  abates  my  spirit;" 
then,  looking  up  to  a  window,  from  which  the  cardinal  was  contemplating  the 
scene,  he  said,  "  He  who,  in  such  state,  from  that  high  place,  feedeth  his  eyes 
with  my  torments,  within  a  few  days  shall  be  hanged  out  at  the  same  window, 
to  be  seen  with  as  much  ignominy,  as  he  now  leaneth  there  in  pride."  Ou 
this,  the  executioner  drew  a  cord  which  had  been  fastened  round  the  neck  of  ' 
the  sufferer,  who  shortly  afterwards  expired  amidst  the  flames.  The  prediction 
of  the  dying  martyr  was  literally  fulfilled  witbiu  thi'ee  months  after,  by  the  vio- 
lent and  ignominious  death  of  his  persecutor.  The  admirable  biographer  of  Knox 
and  Melville  has  recorded  this  just  and  comprehensive  eulogium  on  the  character 
of  the  martyr: — "Excelling,"  says  Dr  M'Crie,  "the  rest  of  his  countrymen  at  that 
period  in  learning;  of  the  most  persuasive  eloquence;  ix'reproachable  in  life, 
courteoos  and  affable  in  mauners;  hia  fervent  piety,  zeal,  and  courage  in  the 
cause  of  truth,  were  tempered  with  uncommon  meekness,  modesty,  patience,  pru- 
dence, and  charity." 

WISHART,  or  WISEHEART,  Gbobqe,  a  learned  divine,  and  admired 
writer  of  the  seventeenth  century,  was  of  the  family  of  Logy  in  Forfarshire. 
He  is  said  to  have  been  born  in  liast  Lothian  in  1G09,  and  to  have  studied  at 
the  university  of  Edinburgh.  I'reviously  to  the  breaking  out  of  the  religious 
troubles  in  the  reign  of  Charles  T.  he  was  one  of  the  ministers  of  St  Andrews.' 
Being  prepossessed,  like  the  most  of  the  men  of  family  connected  with  the  east 
coast  of  Scotland,  in  favour  of  episcopacy,  he  refused  to  take  the  covenant,  and 

'^  We  here  quote  the  animated  dcstription  of  Mr  Tjtier. 

•  Keith  in  his  Catalogue  of  tJie  Scottish  I^Lshops,  sajs  North  Leilh;  but  il.is  appears  to 
be  a  mistake. 


^nSc(Cf^cS\T^  S.-0?cflnigTi 


PROM  T.HK    OKIGIKAI.  m  TOE    tJNlVEK-SI-nr  OF    GJoASGO-W 


BLACKIE  A  30If,  ObASOOH;  KDIHBTTRXIB.  iliOESDOII. 


GEORGE  WISHART,  ou  WISEHEART.  485 

•was  accordingly  deposed  by  the  Assembly  of  1639,  in  company  with  his 
colleague  Dr  Gladstanes,  the  celebrated  Samuel  Eutherford  and  Mr  Robert 
Blair  coming  in  their  places.  Having  been  subsequently  detected  in  a  corre- 
spondence with  the  royalists,  Wishart  was  plundered  of  all  his  worldly  goods, 
and  thrown  into  a  dungeon  called  the  Thieves'  Hole,  said  to  have  been 
the  most  nauseous  part  of  one  of  the  most  nauseous  prisons  in  the  world, 
the  old  tolbooth  of  Edinburgh.  Wishart  himself  tells  us  that,  for  his  attach- 
ment to  royalty  and  episcopacy,  he  thrice  suffered  spoliation,  imprisonment, 
and  exile,  before  the  year  1647.  In  October,  1644,  he  was  taken  by 
the  Scottish  army  at  the  surrender  of  Newcastle,  in  which  town  he  had  officiated 
professionally.  On  this  occasion,  he  suffei'ed  what  appears  to  have  been  his 
third  captivity.  In  January,  1643,  he  is  found  petitioning  the  estates  from 
the  tolbooth,  for  maintenance  to  himself,  his  wife,  and  five  children,  who 
otherwise,  he  says,  must  starve :-  the  petition  was  remitted  to  the  Committee  of 
Monies,  with  what  result  does  not  appear.  A  few  months  afterwards,  when 
Montrose  had  swept  away  the  whole  military  force  of  the  covenanters,  and  was 
approaching  the  capital  in  triumph,  Wishart  was  one  of  a  deputation  of  cavalier 
prisoners,  whom  the  terrified  citizens  sent  to  him  to  implore  his  clemency. 
He  seems  to  have  remained  with  the  marquis  as  his  chaplain,  during  the 
remainder:  of  the  campaign,  and  to  have  afterwards  accompanied  him  abroad  in 
the  same  capacity.  This  connexion  suggested  to  him  the  composition  of  an  ac- 
count of  the  extraordinary  adventures  of  3Iontrose,  which  was  published  in  the 
original  Latin  at  Paris  in  1647.  His  chief  object  in  this  work,  as  he  informs  us 
in  a  modest  preface,  was  to  vindicate  his  patron  from  the  aspersions  which  had 
been  thrown  upon  him  by  his  enemies  ;  to  clear  him  from  the  charges  of  cruelty 
and  irreligion,  which  had  been  brought  against  him  by  the  covenanters,  and 
show  him  as  the  real. hero  which  he  was.  Whatever  might  be  the  reputation  of 
Montrose  in  Scotland,  this  work  is  said  to  have  given  it  a  very  enviable 
character  on  the  continent.  "  To  the  memoir,"  says  the  publisher  of  the  English 
translation  of  1756,  "may  be  in  a  great  measure  ascribed  that  regard  and 
notice  which  was  had  of  Montrose,  not  only  in  France,  where  the  proscribed 
queen  then  held  her  thin-att.ended  court,  and  where  it  was  first  published,  but 
likewise  in  Germany,  and  most  of  the  northern  courts  of  Europe,  which  he  soon 
after  visited.  That  peculiar  elegance  of  expression,  and  animated  description, 
with  which  it  abounds,  soon  attracted  the  regard  of  the  world,  and  in  a  few 
years  carried  it  through  several  impressions  both  in  France  and  Holland." 

Proportioned  to  the  estimation  in  which  the  work  was  held  by  the  perse- 
cuting party,  was  the  detestation  with  which  it  was  regarded  by  the  Scottish 
covenanters.  Those  daring  and  brilliant  exploits  which  formed  the  subject 
of  its  panegyric  could  never  be  contemplated  by  the  sufferers  in  any  other  light 
than  as  inhuman  massacres  of  the  Lord's  people;  and  he  whom  cardinal  de 
Retz  likened  to  the  heroes  of  Plutarch,  was  spoken  of  in  his  own  countiy  in 
no  other  terms  than  as  "  that  bloody  and  excommunicate  traitor."  An  appro- 
priate opportunity  of  showing  their  abhorrence  of  the  book  was  presented  within 
a  very  few  years  after  its  publication,  when  Montrose,  having  fallen  into  their 
bands,  was  ordered  to  be  executed  with  all  possible  marks  of  odium  and 
degradation.  Over  the  gay  dress  he  assumed  on  that  occasion,  they  hung  from 
his  neck  the  obnoxious  volume,  together  with  the  declaration  he  had  published 
on  commencing  his  last  and  fatal  expedition ;  the  one  hanging  at  the  right 
shoulder,  and  the  other  at  the  left,  while  a  cincture,  crossing  the  back  and 
breast,  kept  them  at  their  proper  places.  As  this  ceremonial  was  made  matter  for 
a  parliamentary  decree,  there  can  be  little  doubt  that  the  Scottish  presbyterians 
a  Balfour's  Annals,  iil.  261. 


486  GEORGE  WISUART,  obWISEHEART. 

i 
conceived  it  to  be  a  not  unbecoming  mode  of  expressing  contempt  for  the' 
eulogies  of  the  biographer.  Upon  Montrose,  however,  it  produced  no  such  ef- 
fect as  they  had  calculated  on.  His  remark,  long  since  become  a  part  of  his- 
tory, is  thus  given  by  Wishart  in  the  sequel  to  his  memoir:  "  That  though  it 
had  pleased  his  majesty  to  create  him  a  knight  of  the  garter,  yet  he  did 
not  reckon  himself  more  honoured  thereby  than  by  the  cord  and  the  books 
which  were  now  hung  about  his  neck,  and  which  he  embraced  with  greater  joy 
and  pleasure  than  he  did  the  golden  chain  and  the  garter  itself  when  he  first 
received  them." 

While  his  work  was  receiving  this  memorable  honour,  the  author  remained 
at  the  Hague,  where  a  body  of  commissioners  from  Scotland  were  endeavouring 
to  induce  the  young  and  exiled  king  (Charles  II.,)  to  assume  the  government 
of  that  kingdom  upon  the  terms  of  the  covenant.  To  these  personages, 
Wishart,  as  might  be  supposed,  was  by  no  means  an  agreeable  object,  particu- 
larly as  he  happened  to  enjoy  the  royal  favour.  Clarendon,  who  Avas  there  at 
the  time,  relates  the  following  anecdote  : — "  A  learned  and  worthy  Scotch 
divine,  Dr  Wishart,  being  appointed  to  preach  before  the  king,  they  [the. com- 
missioners] formally  besought  the  king,  '  that  he  would  not  sutler  him  to  preach 
before  him,  nor  to  come  into  his  presence,  because  he  stood  excommunicated 
by  the  kirk  of  Scotland  for  having  refused  to  take  the  covenant,'  thoygh  it  was 
known  that  the  true  cause  of  the  displeasure  they  had  against  that  divine,  was, 
that  they  knew  he  was  author  of  that  excellent  relation  of  the  lord  Montrose's 
actions  in  Scotland,  which  made  those  of  his  majesty's  council  full  of  indigna- 
tion at  their  insolence  ;  and  his  majesty  himself  declared  his  being  offended, 
by  hearing  the  doctor  preach  with  the  more  attention." 

Dr  Wishart  subsequently  wrote  a  continuation  of  the  memoirs  of  Montrose, 
bringing  down  his  history  till  his  death  :  this,  however,  Avas  never  published  in 
its  original  form.  The  original  book  was  printed  oftener  than  once,  and  in 
various  places,  on  the  continent.  A  coarso  translation  appeared  in  London  in 
1652,  under  the  title  of  "  Montrose  Redivivus,"  &c,,  and  was  reprinted  in  1720, 
with  a  translation  of  the  second  part,  then  for  the  first  time  given  to  the 
world.  A  superior  translation  of  the  whole,  with  a  strong  Jacobite  preface, 
was  published  at  Edinburgh  by  the  Ruddimans  in  1756,  and  once  more,  in  the 
same  place,  by  Archibald  Constable  and  Company  in  1819. 

After  the  fall  of  3Iontrose,  Br  Wishart  became  chaplain  to  Elizabeth,  the 
electress-palatine,  sister  of  Charles  I. ;  he  accompanied  that  princess  to  England 
in  1660,  and  being  recognized  as  one  who  had  both  done  and  suffered  much 
in  the  cause  of  royalty,  was  selected  as  one  of  the  new  bishops  for  the  kingdom 
of  Scotland,  being  appointed  to  the  see  of  Edinburgh.  He  had  now,  therefore, 
the  satisfaction  of  returning  to  the  scene  of  his  former  sufferings,  in  the  mo^t 
enviable  character  of  which  his  profession  rendered  him  capable.  He  was  con- 
secrated bisliop  of  Edinburgh,  June,  1,  1662.  It  is  recorded  of  Wishart,  that, 
after  the  suppression  of  the  ill  concerted  rising  at  Pentland,  he  interested  him- 
self to  obtain  mercy  for  the  captive  insurgents ;  and,  remembering  Lis  owu  dis- 
tresses in  the  prison  which  they  now  occupied,  never  sat  down  to  a  meal  till  he 
bad  sent  off  the  first  dish  to  these  unfortunate  men.  From  these  anecdotes  it 
may  be  inferred  tliat  whatever  were  the  faults  of  his  character,  he  possessed 
a  humane  disposition.  Bishop  Wishart  died  in  1G71,  when  his  remains  were 
interred  in  the  abbey  church  of  Holyrood,  where  a  handsome  monument,  bearing 
an  elaborate  panegyrical  inscription  in  Latin  to  his  memory,  may  yet  be  seen. 

Bishop  Keith  saj-s  of  Wishart  that  he  was  "a  person  of  great  religion." 
Wodrow  speaks  of  him  as  a  man  who  could  not  refrain  from  profane  swearing, 
even  on  the  public  street,  and  as  a  known  drunkard.     "  He  published  somewhat 


JOHN  WITHERSPOON,  D.D.,  LL.D.  '     487 

in  divinity,"  says  the  historian,  "  but  then  I  find  it  remarked  by  a  very  good 
hand,  his  lascivious  poems,  compared  with  •which  the  most  luscious  parts  of 
Ovid  de  Arte  Amandt  are  modest,  gave  scandal  to  all  the  world."  It  is  not 
unlikely  that  Dr  Wishart  had  contracted  some  rather  loose  habits  among  the 
cavaliers  with  whom  he  associated  abroad;  for  both  Burnet  and  Kirliton  bear 
testimony  to  the  licentious  manners  by  which  the  royalists  were  too  often 
characterised,  more  especially  during  tho  reckless  administration  of  the  earl 
of  Middleton. 

AVITHERSPOON,  John,  D.  D.,  LL.  D.,  an  eminent  divine  and  theological 
writer,  was  born,  February  5,  1723,  in  the  parish  of  Yester.  His  father,  who 
was  minister  of  that  parish,  was  a  man  of  singular  worth,  and  of  much  more 
than  ordinary  abilities.  Young  Witherspoon  received  the  earlier  part  of  his 
education  at  the  public  school  of  Haddington,  where  he  distinguished  himself 
by  his  diligence,  and  by  the  rapid  proficiency  he  made  in  classical  attainments. 
He  was,  also,  even  at  this  early  period  of  his  life,  remarkable  for  that  sound- 
ness of  judgment,  and  readiness  of  conception,  which  aided  so  much  in  procur- 
ing him  the  favour  he  afterwards  enjoyed.  On  completing  the  usual  initiatory 
learning  observed  at  the  school  of  Haddington,  he  was  removed  to  the  university 
of  Edinburgh,  where  he  continued  to  attend  the  various  classes  necessary  to 
qualify  him  for  the  sacred  profession  for  which  lie  was  intended,  until  he  had 
attained  his  twenty-first  year,  when  he  was  licensed  to  preach  the  gospel.  He 
»Yas  soon  after  this  invited  to  become  assistant  and  successor  to  his  father ;  but 
held  this  appointment  for  a  very  short  time  only,  having  received  a  presentation, 
in  1744,  from  the  earl  of  Eglinton,  to  the  parish  of  Beith,  of  which  he  was 
ordained  minister,  with  the  unanimous  consent  of  the  people,  in  the  following 
year. 

An  incident  in  the  life  of  Mr  Witherspoon,  too  curious  to  be  passed  over, 
occurred  soon  after  this.  On  learning  that  a  battle  was  likely  to  take  place  at 
Falkirk,  between  the  Highlanders  and  royal  troops,  during  the  rebellion  of 
1745-6,  the  minister  of  Beith  hastened  to  the  anticipated  scene  of  conflict,  to 
witness  the  combat.  This  he  saw ;  but  in  a  general  sweep  Avhich  the  victorious 
rebels  made  around  the  skirts  of  the  field  after  the  battle,  Mr  Witherspoon, 
with  several  others,  whom  a  similar  curiosity  had  brought  to  the  neighbourhood 
of  the  field,  was  made  a  prisoner,  and  tlirown  into  the  castle  of  Doune,  where 
he  was  confined,  until  he  effected  his  escape,  which  he  did  with  considerable 
difficulty,  and  not  without  great  peril. 

Mr  Witherspoon  first  assumed  the  character  of  an  author  in  1753,  by  bring- 
ing out  an  anonymous  publication,  entitled  "  Ecclesiastical  Characteristics,  or 
the  Arcana  of  Church  Policy."  This  work,  which  discovers  a  rich  vein  of 
delicate  satire,  Avas  directed  against  certain  flaws  in  the  principles  and  practice 
of  some  of  the  ministers  of  the  church  of  Scotland  of  the  period.  It  excited  a 
great  sensation,  and  became  so  popular  as  to  reach  a  fifth  edition,  in  less  than 
ten  years  after  its  publication.  This  successful  debut  was  followed  soon  after 
by  another  able  performance,  entitled  a  "  Serious  Apology"  for  the  Charac- 
teristics, in  which  Dr  W^itherspoon  acknowledged  the  authorship  of  the  latter. 
Three  years  afterwards,  in  1756,  he  published,  at  Glasgow,  his  admirable  essay 
on  the  "  Connexion  between  the  Doctrine  of  Justification  by  the  imputed 
righteousness  of  Christ,  and  holiness  of  life." 

The  diligence,  industry,  and  regular  habits  of  Dr  Witherspoon,  enabled  him 
to  reconcile  the  character  of  a  prolific  author,  with  that  of  an  attentive  and 
faithful  pastor ;  and  while  discharging  the  duties  of  the  Litter  with  an  exem- 
plary fidelity,  he  continued  to  instruct  and  enlighten  the  public  mind  by  his 
literary  labours.     His  industry  enabled  him  to  give-  to  the  world,  in  the  year 


48S  JOHN  WITIIERSPOON,  D.D..   LL.B. 

following  that  in  which  his  essay  on  tlie  Connexion,  appeared,  liis 
still  more  celebrated  work,  entitled  "  A  serious  Inquiry  into  the  Nature  and 
Eflects  of  the  Stage."  On  this  subject,  there  is  much  difference  of  opinion  ; 
but  tliere  can  be  none  regarding  the  ability  which  Dr  Wiiherspoon's  work 
evinces.  The  reputation  which  he  had  now  acquired  as  a  zealous  minister  and 
profound  theologian,  procured  him  one  of  those  spontaneous  calls,  which  so 
strikingly  mark  tlie  public  sense  of  a  clergyman's  usefulness  and  merits.  In 
the  year  1757,  he  was  solicited  by  the  people  of  Paisley  to  accept  the  pastoral 
charge  of  the  Low  Church  of  that  town.  Here,  as  at  Keith,  he  diligently 
prosecuted  his  literary  labours,  and  still  continued  to  associate  them  with 
a  faithful  discharge  of  his  pastoral  duties.  During  a  portion  of  the  time  of 
nis  ministry  in  Paisley,  he  employed  himself  in  preparing  sermons  for  the 
press;  several  of  which  were  published  in  1758  and  175'J,  and  were  received 
with  marked  approbation.  His  next  publication,  unfortunately,  though  written 
with  the  best  intentions,  and  well  calculated  to  attain  the  ends  proposed  by  its 
author,  involved  him  in  difhcultics,  which  pressed  hard  upon  him  for  several 
years  afterwards.  The  publication  alluded  to  was  a  discourse,  entitled  a  "Sea- 
sonable Advice  to  Young  Persons,"  published  in  17C2.  The  subject  of  this 
discourse  was  suggested,  at  the  particular  moment  it  appeared,  by  an  account 
which  had  reached  Dr  Witherspoon,  of  a  riotous  and  extremely  disorderly  meet- 
ing which  had  taken  place  in  Paisley,  on  the  night  before  the  celebration  of 
the  Lord's  Supper.  To  this  discourse,  the  author  had  prefixed  a  prefatory 
address,  in  which  he  incautiously  set  forth,  at  full  length,  the  names  of  the  per- 
sons said  to  have  been  concerned  in  the  indecorous  meeting  alluded  to;  and  tlie 
consequence  of  tliis  unguarded  proceeding,  on  the  part  of  Dr  Witherspoon,  was 
an  action  of  damages,  in  which,  being  unable  to  adduce  sufficient  proof  of  the 
accuracy  of  his  information,  he  was  defeated,  and  involved  in  serious  expenses. 
In  17G4,  he  received  a  degree  from  one  of  the  Scottish  universities, 
and  in  the  same  year  went  to  London,  to  superintend  the  publication  of  his 
"  Essays  on  Important  Subjects,"  in  three  volumes.  Tliis  work,  with  the  ex- 
ception of  his  admirable  treatise  on  Regeneration,  which  was  included  in  these 
volumes,  was  merely  a  reprint,  in  a  collected  form,  of  the  detached  essays  which 
he  had,  from  time  to  time,  published  in  Scotland.  Their  republication,  however, 
had  the  effect  of  greatly  extending  Dr  Witherspoon's  fame  as  an  able  theolo- 
gian, and  useful  minister :  and  its  appearance  was  soon  after  followed  by  three 
different  calls  to  as  many  different  new  charges.  The  first  of  these  was  from  a 
largo  congregation  in  Dublin  ;  the  second,  to  the  Scottish  church  at  Rotter- 
dam; and  the  third,  from  the  town  of  Dundee.  Dr  Witherspoon's  attachment* 
in  Paisley,  however,  were  too  numerous,  and  too  strong,  to  permit  of  his  ac- 
cepting of  either  of  these  invitations.  But  one  of  a  more  remarkable  descrip- 
tion, soon  after  prevailed  ivith  him  to  leave  not  only  Paisley,  but  his  country- 
This  was  an  invitation  from  the  trustees  of  the  college  of  Princeton,  New 
Jersey,  in  America,  to  become  president  of  that  institution.  He,  {it  first,  de- 
clined this  appointment,  but,  on  a  second  application  being  made  to  him, 
thought  fit  to  comply.  A  sufficient  proof  that  this  compliance  did  not  proceed 
fi'om  interested  motives,  is  found  in  tlie  circumstance  of  his  having  been  pro- 
mised, by  a  gentleman,  a  relation  of  his  own,  who  possessed  considerable  pro- 
perty, that  he  should  be  made  his  heir,  if  he  would  remain  at  Iiome.  'l'hi» 
promise  weighed  notiiing,  however,  with  Dr  Witherspoon,  when  put  in  opposi- 
tion to  the  sense  of  duty  which  called  him  to  an  extensive,  and  peculiarly 
interesting  field  for  ministerial  exertion.  Having  come  to  the  resolution  of 
crossing  the  Atlantic,  he  preached  a  farewell  sermon  to  his  affectionate  people 
in  Paisley,  on  the  16th  of  April,  1768.     This  sennon  was  immediately  after 


JOHN   \\ITHERSP0ON,   D.D.,   LL.D.  489 


published,  under  the  title  of  "  Ministerial  Fidelity,  in  declaring  tne  whole 
Counsel  of  God."  Before  leaving  his  native  shores,  he  also  published,  at  Glas- 
gow, "  Discourses  on  Practical  Subjects  ;"  and,  at  Edinburgh,  "  Practical 
Discourses  on  the  Leading  Truths  of  the  Gospel." 

Dr  Witherspoon  now  prepared  for  his  departure  for  'America,  and  at  lenotli 
sailed  for  that  country  in  the  month  of  July,  17G8,  and  arrived  there  in  safety 
with  his  family,  in  tlie  following  month.     Immediately  after  his  arrival,  he 
entered  upon  his  new  appointment,  and  began  to  discharge  the  important  duties 
with  which  it  Avas  associated.     The  reputation  of  Dr  Witherspoon  bad  gone 
before  him  ;  and  the  result  to  the  college,  over  which  he  presided,  was  a  great 
and  rapid  increase  of  its  prosperity.      Previously  to  his  arrival,  the  institution, 
which  was  chiefly  supported  by  private  liberality,  was  in  a  vei-y  indifferent 
situation  Avith  regard  to  finances ;   these,  however,  were  quickly  placed  in  a 
flourishing  condition  by  the  spirit  of  liberality,  which   the   new  president's 
abilities  and  zeal  excited.     Nor  were  either  these,  or  the  value  of  his  services, 
overrated.     The  latter  were  singularly  important  and  beneficial,  not  only  to 
the  college  over  which  he  presided,  but  to  the  general  interests  of  education 
throughout  America.     At  Princeton,  he  effected  ar  total  revolution  in  the  system 
of  instruction   practised  there  previously  to  his  arrival.     He  greatly  extended 
the  study  of  mathematical  science,  and   introduced  important  improvements 
into  the  course  of  instruction   in   natural  philosophy.     In  a  few  yeara  after- 
wards, his  career  of  usefulness  was  not  only  interrupted,  but,  for  a  time,  alto- 
gether terminated,  by  the  occurrence  of  the  American  war  of  independence.    In 
this  struggle,  he  took  a  decided  part  in  favour  of  the  insurgents;  and  on  the  17th 
3Iay,  1776,  preached  a  sermon  at  Princeton,  on  the  occasion  of  a  general  fast, 
appointed  by  the  Congress,  in  which  he  expressed  his  sentiments  fully  on  the 
subject  of  the  great  political  questions,  then  agitated  between  the  mother  coun- 
try and  the  revolted  colonies.     This  discourse  was  afterwards  published,  under 
the  title  of  **  The  Dominion  of  Providence  over  the  Passions  of  Men."     Dr 
Witherspoon's  conduct,  on  this  occasion,  greatly  displeased  his  friends  at  home; 
and  an  edition  of  the  sermon  above  alluded  to,  was  published  at  Glasgow,  Avith 
severe  and    abusive  notes  and  remarks,  by  its  editor,  in  some  of  which  the 
author  was  stigmatized  as  a  rebel,  and  a  traitor  to  his  country.     In  America, 
however,  it  produced  a  very  different  feeling  towards  Dr  Witherspoon;  and  the 
nature  of  this  feeling  is  sufficiently  evinced,  by  the  circumstance  of  his  having 
been,  soon  aftei-,  elected  by  the  citizens  of  New  Jersey  as  their  delegate  to 
the   convention,  in   which   the   republican   constitution   was  formed.      In  this 
capacity  he  acquired,  by  the  vereatility  of  his  talents,  and  the  soundness  of  his 
judgment,  a  political  reputation,  not  inferior  to  that  which  he  enjoyed  as  a  man 
of  letters.     In  the  early  part  of  this  year,  1776,  he  was  sent,  as  a  representa- 
tive  of  the  people  of  New  Jersey,  to  the  Congress  of  the  United  States,  and 
continued  for  seven  years  an'active  and  zealous  member  of  that  body.     He  was 
consulted  on  all  momentous  occasions ;  and  it  is  knoAvn  that  he  was  the  writer 
of  many  of  the  most  important  state  papers  of  the  period. 

On  the  final  settlement  of  the  question  of  American  independence,  in  the 
early  part  of  the  year  1783,  Dr  Witherspoon  resumed  his  college  duties;  and 
two  years  afterwards,  paid  a  short  visit  to  his  native  country.  The  object  of 
this  visit  was  to  obtain  benefactions  for  the  college  over  which  he  presided,  and 
which  had  nearly  been  exterminated  by  the  war ;  but  party  feeling  still  ran 
too  hi^h  in  the  mother  country,  to  allow  of  such  a  mission  being  very  successful : 
and  although  the  doctor  made  every  exertion  in  London,  and  in  several  other 
I>arts  of  the  kingdom,  to  excite  an  interest  in,  and  sympathy  with  his  views,  the 
result  on  the  whole,  was  by  no  means  favourable.     After  a  short  stay  in  Paisley, 

IV. 


490  ROBERT  "WODROW. 


daring  which  he  preached  repeatedly  in  the  Low  and  Middle  churches,  he  took 
a  final  farewell  of  his  friends,  and  returned  to  America,  where  he  continued  for 
several  years  more  to  maintain,  and  eren  increase,  the  reputation  he  had  already 
acquired.  The  infirmities  of  age,  however,  began  at  length  to  steal  upon  hiui. 
Two  years  previous  to  his  death,  he  was  totally  deprived  of  sight ;  yet  such  was 
the  activity  of  his  mind,  and  the  greatness  of  his  anxiety  to  be  useful,  that,  even 
under  this  grievous  affliction,  he  did  not  desist  either  from  the  exercise  of 
his  ministry,  or  from  his  duties  in  the  college,  although  he  had  on  all  occasions 
to  be  led  to  the  pulpit  and  rostrum.  This  affecting  condition  was  but  of  short 
duration.  He  was  released  from  it,  and  from  all  other  afflictions,  on  the  15th 
of  November,  1794,  in  the  seventy-third  year  of  his  age. 

Dr  Witherspoon's  merits  as  an  author,  preacher,  and  philosopher,  have  been 
the  theme  of  much  and  frequent  eulogium  by  men,  themselves  eminent  for  the 
attainments  they  so  much  admired  in  him ;  and  we  cannot  conclude  this  brief 
memoir  better,  than  by  quoting  the  language  of  one  of  those  eulogists  alluded 
to.  "  Of  Dr  Witherspoon's  character  as  an  author,"  says  Dr  Rogers,  senior 
minister  of  the  United  Presbyterian  churches  in  the  city  of  New  York,  "  it  is 
not  necessary  to  say  much.  His  writings  are  before  the  public  ;  and  to  every 
serious  and  intelligent  reader,  they  discover  an  uncommon  knowledge  of  human 
nature,  and  a  deep  and  intimate  acquaintance  with  the  holy  scriptures.  They 
generally  strike  us,  as  being  at  once  elegant  and  convincing,  grave  and  attrac- 
tive, profound  and  plain,  energetic  and  simple.  They  evidently  show  that  the 
author's  learning  was  very  extensive ;  that  God  had  given  him  a  great  and 
understanding  mind,  a  quick  apprehension ^^.and  a  solid  judgment.  And,  as  a 
preacher,  he  was,  in  many  respects,  one  of  the  best  models  on  which  a  young 
orator  could  form  himself." 

WODROW,  Robert,  the  faithful  and  laborious  author  of  the  "  History  of  the 
Sufferings  of  the  Church  of  Scotland,'*  Avas  born  in  Glasgow,  in  the  year  1679. 
He  was  the  second  son  of  Mr  James  Wodrow,  professor  of  divinity  in  the  col- 
lege of  that  city,  a  man  of  singular  piety  and  learning.  His  mother,  Margaret 
Hair,  was  the  daughter  of  William  Hair,  the  proprietor  of  a  small  estate  in  the 
parish  of  Kilbarchan,  Renfrewshire.  In  this  parent,  he  was  equally  fortunate 
as  in  the  other.  To  all  the  piety  of  her  husband,  she  added  a  degiee  of 
strength  of  mind,  not  often  associated  with  her  sex. 

In  1691,  young  Wodrow  was  entered  a  student  in  the  university  of  his  native 
city,  and  went  through  the  usual  course  of  academical  education  then  adopted 
there,  and  which  included  several  of  the  learned  languages,  and  various  branches 
of  philosophy.  'ITieology  he  studied  under  his  father,  and,  while  engaged  in 
this  pursuit,  Avas  appointed  librarian  to  the  college  ;  a  situation  to  which  the 
peculiar  talent  which  he  already  displayed  for  historical  and  bibliographical  in- 
quiry, had  recommended  him.  This  office  he  held  for  four  years ;  and  it  was 
during  this  time  that  he  acquired  the  greater  part  of  that  knowledge  of  the 
ecclesiastical  and  literary  history  of  his  country,  which  he  applied,  during  the 
course  of  his  after  life,  to  such  good  purpose,  as  to  have  the  effect  of  associating 
his  name,  at  once  honourably  and  indissolubly,  with  those  interesting  subjects. 
At  this  period  he  imbibed,  also,  a  taste  for  antiquarian  research,  and  the  study 
of  natural  history,  which  introduced  him  to  the  notice,  and  procured  him  the 
friendship,  of  several  of  the  most  eminent  men  of  the  day.  But  all  these  pur- 
suits were  carefully  kept  subordinate  to  what  he  had  determined  to  make  the 
great  and  sole  business  of  his  life,  the  study  of  theology,  and  the  practical  ap- 
plication of  its  principles.  To  the  former,  he  devoted  only  his  leisure  hours; 
to  the  latter,  all  the  others  that  were  not  appropriated  to  necessary  repose. 

On  completing  his  theological  studies  at  the  university,  Mr  Wodrow  went  to 


ROBERT  WODROW.  491 


reside  with  a  distant  relation  of  the  family,  Sir  John  Maxwell,  of  Netlier  Pol- 
lode;  and,  while  here,  offered  himself  for  trials  to  the  presbytery  of  Paisley, 
by  whom  he  was  licensed  to  preach  the  gospel,  in  March,  1703.  On  the  2Sih 
of  October  following,  he  Avas  ordained  minister  of  the  parish  of  Eastwood,  near 
Glasgow,  through  the  influence  of  the  family  with  which  he  resided.  East- 
wood was,  at  that  period,  one  of  the  smallest  parishes  in  Scotland ;  but  it  was 
just  such  a  one  as  suited  Mr  Wodrow :  for  its  clerical  duties  being  comparatively 
light,  he  was  enabled  to  derote  a  portion  of  his  time  to  his  favourite  studies  in 
history  and  antiquities,  without  neglecting  the  obligations  which  his  sacred 
office  imposed  upon  hira ;  and  of  this  circumstance  he  appreciated  the  value  so 
highly,  that  he  could  never  be  induced,  though  frequently  invited,  to  accept 
any  other  charge.  Glasgow,  in  1712,  made  the  attempt,  in  vain,  to  withdraw 
him  from  his  obscure,  but  beloved  retreat,  and  to  secure  his  pastoral  services  for 
the  city  ;  and  Stirling,  in  1717,  and  again  in  1726,  made  similar  attempts,  but 
with  similar  success.  The  sacrifices  which  he  made,  however,  by  rejecting 
these  overtures,  were  amply  compensated  by  the  affectionate  attachment  of  his 
little  flock,  who  rejoiced  in  his  ministry,  and  were  made  happy  by  the  amia- 
bleness  of  his  manners,  and  the  kindliness  of  his  disposition.  Althouo-h  the 
charge  in  which  he  was  placed  was  an  obscure  one,  Mr  Wodrow's  talents  soon 
made  it  sufiiciently  conspicuous.  The  eloquence  of  his  sermons,  the  energy 
and  felicity  of  the  language  in  which  they  were  composed,  and  the  solemn  and 
impressive  manner  in  which  they  were  delivered,  quickly  spread  his  fame  as  a 
preacher,  and  placed  him  at  the  head  of  his  brethren  in  the  west  of  Scotland. 

The  popularity  and  reputation  of  Mr  Wodrow,  naturally  procured  for  him  a 
prominent  place  in  the  ecclesiastical  courts  which  he  attended  ;  and  in  this  at- 
tendance, whether  on  presbyteries,  synods,  or  the  General  Assembly,  he  was 
remarkable  for  his  punctuality.  Of  the  latter,  he  was  frequently  chosen  a 
member ;  and  on  occasions  of  public  interest,  Avas  often  still  more  intimately 
associated  with  the  proceedings  of  the  church,  by  being  nominated  to  commit- 
tees. In  all  these  instances  he  took  a  lively  interest  in  the  matters  under  dis- 
cussion, and  was  in  the  habit  of  keeping  regular  notes  of  all  that  passed ;  a 
practice  which  enabled  him  to  leave  a  mass  of  manuscript  records  behind  him, 
containing,  with  other  curious  matter,  the  most  authentic  and  interesting  de- 
tails of  the  proceedings  of  the  Scottish  ecclesiastical  courts  of  his  time,  now  in 
existence. 

In  1707,  Mr  Wodrow  Avas  appointed  a  member  of  a  committee  of  presby- 
tery to  consult  Avith  the  brethren  of  the  commission  in  Edinburgh  as  to  the 
best  means  of  averting  the  evils  Avith  A\hich  it  Avas  supposed  the  Union  Avould 
visit  tlie  church  and  people  of  Scotland ;  and,  on  the  accession  of  George  I.,  he 
Avas  the  principal  adviser  of  the  five  clergymen  deputed  by  the  Assembly 
to  proceed  to  London  to  plead  the  rights  of  the  former,  and  to  solicit 
the  abolition  of  the  law  of  patronage,  of  Avhich  he  Avas  a  decided  enemy.  In 
this  the  deputation  did  not  succeed.  The  laAV  Avas  continued  in  force,  and  3Ir 
Wodrow,  Avith  that  sense  of  propriety  Avhich  pervaded  all  his  sentiments  and  ac- 
tions, inculcated  a  submission  to  its  decisions.  He  did  not  deem  it  becoming 
the  character  of  a  Christian  minister  to  be  in  any  Avay  accessary  to  acts  of  in- 
subordination or  of  resistince  to  the  laAVS  of  his  country  by  irregular  and  un- 
constitutional means.  The  same  feeling  of  propriety  induced  him  to  continue 
on  friendly  terras  with  those  clergymen  Avhose  consciences  permitted  them  to 
take  the  abjuration  oath,  although  he,  in  his  OAvn  case,  resisted  its  imposition. 
But  so  far  from  taking  offence  at  those  Avho  did,  he  exerted  all  his  influence  to 
reconcile  the  people  to  them,  and  to  induce  them  to  believe  that  compliance  Avas 
110  proof  of  apostasy. 


492  ROBERT  WODROW. 


Mr  Wodrow's  life  presents  us  with  little  more  of  particular  interest  than 
what  is  contained  in  the  circumstances  just  narrated,  until  it  becoines  associated 
wiih  that  work  which  has  made  his  name  so  memorable,  namely,  '•  The  History 
of  the  Sufferings  of  the  Church  of  Scotland  from  the  Restoration  to  the  Revolu- 
tion." This  work,  for  which  his  integrity,  candour,  liberality  of  sentiment,  and 
talents,  eminently  qualified  him,  he  contemplated  from  an  early  period  of  his 
life;  but  it  was  only  in  the  year  1707,  that  he  began  seriously  to  labour  on  it. 
From  this  time,  however,  till  its  publication  in  1721  and  1722,  a  period  of 
between  fourteen  and  fifteen  years,  he  devoted  all  his  leisure  hours  to  its  com- 
position. 

On  the  appearance  of  Mr  Wodrow's  Histoiy,  which  was  published  in  three 
large  folio  volumes  at  separate  times,  in  the  years  above  named,  its  author  was 
attacked  by  those  whom  his  fidelity  as  an  historian  had  offended,  with  the  vilest 
scurrility  aud  abuse.  Anonymous  and  thx*eatening  letters  were  sent  to  him,  and 
every  desoription  of  indignity  was  attempted  to  be  thrown  oa  both  his  person  and 
his  work.  The  faithful,  liberal,  and  impartial  character  of  the  history,  never- 
theless, procured  its  author  many  and  powerful  friends.  Its  merits  were,  by  a 
large  party,  appreciated  and  acknowledged,  and  every  man  whose  love  of  truth 
was  stronger  than  his  prejudices,  awarded  it  the  meed  of  his  applause.  Copies 
of  the  work  were  presented  by  Dr  Fraser  to  their  majesties,  and  the  prince  and 
princess  of  Wales,  and  were  received  so  graciously,  and  so  much  approved  of, 
that  the  presentation  was  almost  inunediately  followed  by  a  royal  order  on  tlie 
Scottish  exchequer  for  one  hundred  guineas  to  be  paid  to  the  author,  as  a 
testimony  of  his  majesty's  favourable  opinion  of  his  merits.  The  warrant  for 
the  payment  of  this  sum  is  dated  the  2Gth  April,  1725.  In  1830,  a  second 
edition  of  the  History  Avas  published,  in  4  volumes  8vo,  by  Messrs  Blackie  and 
Fullarton  of  Glasgow,  under  the  editorial  cai'e  of  the  Rev.  Dr  Burns  of 
Paisley,  now  of  Toronto,  Canada. 

Mr  Wodrow's  literary  labours  did  not  end  with  the  publication  of  his  His- 
tory. He  afterwards  planned  and  executed  the  scheme  of  a  complete  history 
of  the  church  of  Scotland,  in  a  series  of  lives  of  all  the  eminent  men  who 
appeared  from  the  beginning  of  the  Reformation  down  to  the  period  at  whicli 
his  preceding  work  commenced.  Tliis  valuable  production,  which  contains  an 
accurate  and  comprehensive  view  of  some  of  the  most  important  and  interesting 
events  in  the  history  of  the  kingdom,  has  never  yet  been  entirely  published. 
It  lies  still  in  manuscript  in  the  library  of  the  university  of  Glasgow. 

Besides  these  works,  Mr  Wodrow  has  left  behind  him  six  small  but  closely 
written  volumes  of  traditionary  and  other  memoranda  regarding  the  lives  and 
labours  of  remarkable  ministers,  and  comprising  all  the  occurrences  of  the 
period  whicli  he  thought  worth  recording.  These  volumes  are  designated 
by  the  general  name  of  Analecta,  and  the  entries  extend  over  a  space  of 
twenty-seven  years,  viz.,  from  1705  to  1732.  The  Analecta  contains  much 
curious  information  regarding  the  times  of  its  author,  and  is  full  of  anecdote, 
and  anmsing  and  interesting  notices  of  the  remarkable  persons  of  the  day.  It 
is  preserved  in  the  original  manuscript  in  the  Advocates'  library  at  Edinburgh, 
where  it  is  often  consulted  by  the  curious  inquirer  into  the  times  to  which  it  re- 
lates ;  so  often  indeed,  that  the  greater  part  of  it  has  found  its  way  to  the  pub- 
lic, though  in  a  disguised  and  unacknowledged  shape,  through  the  medium  of 
various  publications  in  which  its  matter  has  been  wrought  up  with  other 
materials. 

A  large  portion  of  Mr  Wodrow's  time,  all  of  which  was  laboriously  and  use- 
fully  employed  in  the  discharge  of  his  various  duties,  was  occupied  in  an  ex- 
tensive epistolary  correspondence  with  acquaintances  and  friends  in  different 


ROBERT  WODROW. 


493 


parts  of  the  world,  but  this  was  no  idle  correspondence.  He  made  it  in  all 
cases  subservient  to  the  purposes  of  improving  his  general  knowledge,  and  of 
adding  to  his  stores  of  information  ;  and  with  this  view  he  was  in  the  habit  of 
transmitting  to  his  correspondents  lists  of  queries,  on  subjects  of  general  and 
public  interest,  and  particularly  on  matters  connected  with  religion,  as  they 
stood  in  their  several  localities.  With  all  this  labour,  he  regularly  devoted  two 
days  in  every  week  to  his  preparation  for  the  pulpit,  and  bestowed  besides  the 
most  assiduous  attention  on  all  the  other  duties  of  his  parish. 

In  tlie  case  of  professor  Simpson  of  Glasgow,  the  successor  of  Mr  Wodrow's 
father,  who  was  suspended  from  his  office  by  the  General  Assembly  for  his 
Arian  sentiments,  Mr  Wodrow  felt  himself  called  upon  as  a  minister  of  the 
gospel,  and  a  friend  to  evangelical  truth,  to  take  an  active  part  with  his 
brethren  against  the  professor.  The  latter,  as  already  said,  was  suspended,  but 
through  a  feeling  of  compassion  the  emoluments  of  his  office  were  reserved  to 
him  ;  a  kindness  for  which,  it  is  not  improbable,  he  may  have  been  indebted, 
at  least  in  some  measure,  to  the  benevolent  and  amiable  disposition  of  the  sub- 
ject of  this  memoir.  Soon  after  this  occurrence  Mr  Wodrow  took  occasion, 
when  preaching  on  tlie  days  of  the  lOth  and  11th  June,  1727,  in  the  Baron> 
church  of  Glasgow,  to  illustrate  the  divinity  of  the  Saviour  in  opposition  to  the 
sentiments  of  the  Arians  and  Socinians,  These  sermons  had  the  effect  of 
rousing  the  religious  zeal  of  one  of  the  former  sect,  8  Mr  W^illiam  Paul,  a 
student  of  theology,  to  such  a  pitch  as  to  induce  him,  on  the  day  following,  to 
challenge  Mr  Wodrow  to  a  public  or  private  disputation  or  to  a  written  contro- 
versy. This  challenge,  however,  the  latter  did  not  think  it  prudent  to 
accept. 

In  the  affair  of  the  celebrated  Marrow  C<yntroversy,  which  opened  the  way 
to  the  Secession  in  173^,  Mr  Wodrow  decided  and  acted  with  his  usual  pru- 
dence, propriety,  and  liberality'.  lie  thought  that  those  who  approved  of  the 
sentiments  and  doctrines  contained  in  the  work  from  which  the  controversy  took 
its  name,  viz.,  the  "  Marrow  of  Modern  Divinity,"  weut  too  far  in  their  at- 
tempts to  vindicate  them,  and  that  the  Assembly,  on  the  other  baud,  had  been 
too  active  and  too  forward  in  their  condemnation.  On  the  great  question  about 
subscription  to  articles  of  faith,  he  took  a  more  decided  part,  and  ever  looked 
upon  the  nonsuUscribers  as  enemies  to  the  cause  of  evangelical  Christianity. 

On  this  subject  he  corresponded  largely  with  various  intelligent  and  some 
eminent  men  in  different  parts  of  the  three  kingdoms,  especially  in  Ireland, 
from  whom  he  collected  a  mass  of  opinion  and  information  regarding  prcs- 
byterianisra  in  that  country,  which  for  interest  and  importance  cannot  bo 
equalled. 

The  valuable  and  laborious  life  of  the  author  of  the  History  of  the  Suffernigs 
of  the  Church  of  Scotland,  was  now,  however,  drawing  to  a  close.  His  con- 
stitution had  been  naturally  good,  and  during  the  earlier  part  of  his  life  he  had 
enjoyed  uninterrupted  health ;  but  the  severity  of  his  studious  habits  at  length 
began  to  bear  him  down.  He  was  first  seriously  affected  in  1726,  and  from  this 
period  continued  gradually  to  decline  till  1734,  an  interval  of  pain  and  suffering 
of  no  less  than  eight  years,  when  he  expired,  on  the  21st  March,  in  the  55ih  year 
of  his  age;  dying,  as  he  had  lived,  in  the  faith  of  the  gospel,  and  love  to ^l 
mankind.  His  remains  were  interred  in  the  church-yard  of  Eastwood,  where  his 
memory  has  lately  been  commemorated  by  the  erection  of  a  monument. 

Mr  W^odrow  was  married  in  the  end  of  the  year  1708,  to  Margaret  Warner, 
grand -daughter  of  William  Guthrie  of  Fenwick,  author  of  the  "Trial  of  a 
Saving  Interest  in  Christ,"  and  daughter  of  the  reverend  Patrick  Warner  of 
Ardeer,  Ayrsliii-e,  and  minister  of  Irvine.    He  left  at  his  death  four  sons,  and 


five  daughters.     The  eldest  of  the  former  succeeded  his  father  in  the  parish  of 
Eastwood,  but  was  compelled  to  retire  from  it  by  an  infirm  state  of  health. 

WYNTOWN,  Andrew,  ov  Andrew  of  Wyntown,  the  venerable  rhyming 
chronicler  of  Scotland,  lived  towards  the  end  of  the  fourteenth  century;  but 
the  dates  of  his  birth  and  death  are  unknown.  He  was  a  canon  regular  of  the 
prioi-y  of  St  Andrews,  the  most  flourishing  and  important  religious  establish- 
ment in  the  kingdom;  and  in  or  before  the  year  1395,  he  was  elected  prior 
of  St  Serf's  inch,  in  Lochleven.^  Of  this  hehitnself  gives  an  account  in  his 
"  Cronykil." 

Of  my  defautte  it  is  my  name 
Be  baptisme,  Andrew  of  Wynlowno, 
Of  Sanct  Andrews,  a  chanoune 
Regulare :  but,  noucht  fortlii 
Of  thaim  al  the  lest  worth j-. 
Bot  of  thair  grace  and  thair  favoure 
I  wes,  but'  meryt,  made  prioure 
Of  the  ynch  within  Lochlevjne. 

Innes  mentions  **  several  authentic  acts  or  public  instruments  of  Wyntown, 
as  prior,  from  1395  till  1413,  in  '  Extracts  from  the  Register  of  the  Priory  of 
St  Andrews,'  "  which  points  out  part  of  the  period  of  his  priorship  ;  and  as  the 
death  of  Robert,  duke  of  Albany,  is  noticed  in  the  **  Cronykil,"  Wyntown  must 
have  survived  till  beyond  1420,  the  year  in  wliich  the  duke  died.  Supposing,  as 
is  probable,  that  he  brought  down  his  narrative  of  events  to  the  latest  period  of 
his  life,  we  may  conjecture  his  death  to  have  occurred  not  long  after  the  above 
date. 

It  was  at  the  request  of  "  Schyr  Jhone  of  the  Wemys,"  ancestor  of  the  earls 
of  Wemyss,'  that  Wyntown  undertook  his  Chronicle  ;*  which,  although  the  first 
historical  record  of  Scotland  in  our  own  language,  was  suffered  to  lie  ne- 
glected for  several  centuries.  In  1795,  Mr  David  Macpherson  laid  before  the 
public  an  admirable  edition  of  that  part  of  it,  which  more  particularly  relates  to 
Scotland,  accompanied  with  a  series  of  valuable  annotations.  Like  most  other 
old  chroniclers,  Wyntown,  in  his  history,  goes  as  far  back  as  flie  creation,  and 
takes  a  general  view  of  the  world,  before  entering  upon  the  proper  business  of 
his  undertaking.  He  treats  of  angels,  of  the  generations  of  Cain  and  Seth,  of 
the  primeval  race  of  giants,  of  the  confusion  of  tongues,  of  the  situation  of 
India,  Egypt,  Africa,  and  Europe,  and  of  other  equally  recondite  subjects,  be- 
fore he  adventures  upon  the  history  of  Scotland ;  so  that  five  of  tlie  nine  books 
into  which  his  Chronicle  is  divided,  are  taken  up  with  matter,  which,  however 
edifying  and  instructive  at  the  time,  is  of  no  service  to  the  modern  historical 
inquirer.  3Ir  Macpherson,  therefore,  in  his  edition,  has  suppressed  all  the  ex- 
traneous and  foreign  appendages,  only  preserving  the  metiical  contents  of  the 
chapters,  by  which  the  reader  may  know  the  nature  of  what  is  williheld  ;  and 
taking  care  that  nothing  which  relates  to  the  British  islands,  whether  true  or 
fabulous,  is  overlooked.  It  is  not  likely  tliat  any  future  editor  of  Wyntown 
will  adopt  a  different  plan  ;   so  that  those  parts  which  Mr  Macpherson  has 

'  St  Serf  is  Uie  name  of  a  small  island  in  tluxt  beautiful  locli,  not  far  from  tlie  island  which 
contains  the  castle  of  Loclilevcn,  celebrated  as  the  prison-house  of  the  queen  of  Scots 

■  But,  without. 

»  A  younger  son  of  this  family  settled  in  tlie  Venetian  territories,  about  1600;  and  a  copy 
of  Wyntown's  work  is  in  the  possession  of  his  descendants. 

*  Book  i.  Prologue,  1.  54. 


ANDREW  WYNTOWN.  496 


omittedf  may  be  considered  as  faaring  commenced  the  undisturbed  sleep  of 
oblivion. 

Though  Wyntown  was  contemporary  with  Fordun,  and  even  survived  him,  it 
is  certain  that  he  never  saw  Fordun's  work ;  so  that  he  has  an  equal  claim  with 
that  writer  to  the  title  of  an  original  historian  of  Scdland ;  and  his 
"  Cronykil"  has  the  advantage  over  Fordun's  history,  both  in  that  it  is 
brought  down  to  a  later  period,  and^  is  written  in  the  language  of  the 
country — 

"  Tyl  like  mannys  vraderstandjng." 

*'  In  Wyntown's  Chronicle,"  says  BIr  [Macpherson,  "  the  historian  may  find, 
Avhat,  for  ^vant  of  more  ancient  records,  which  have  long  ago  perished,  we  must 
now  consider  as  the  original  accounts  of  many  transactions,  and  also  many 
events  related  from  his  own  knowledge  or  the  reports  of  eye-witnesses.  His 
faithful  adherence  to  his  authorities  appears  from  comparing  his  accounts  with 
unquestionable  vouchers,  such  as  the  Federa  Angliae,  and  the  existing  remains 
of  the  *  Register  of  the  Priory  of  St  Andrews,'  that  venerable  monument  of  an- 
cient Scottish  history  and  antiquities,  generally  coeval  with  the  facts  recorded 
in  it,  whence  he  has  given  large  extracts  almost  literally  translated."  His 
character  as  an  historian  is  in  a  great  measure  common  to  the  other  historical 
writers  of  his  age,  who  generally  admitted  into  their  works  the  absurdity  of 
tradition  along  with  authentic  narrative,  and  often  without  any  mark  of 
discrimination,  esteeming  it  a  sufficient  standard  of  historic  fidelity  to  narrate 
aothing  but  Avhat  they  found  written  by  others  before  them.  Indeed,  it  may 
be  considered  fortunate  that  they  adopted  this  method  of  compilation, 
for  through  it  we  are  presented  with  many  genuine  transcripts  from  ancient 
authorities,  of  which  their  extracts  are  the  only  existing  remains.  In  Wynto>vn's 
work,  for  example,  we  have  nearly  three  hundred  lines  of  Barbour,  in  a  more 
genuine  state  than  in  any  manuscript  of  Barbour's  own  work,  and  we  have  also 
preserved  a  little  elegiac  song  on  the  death  of  Alexander  III.,  which  must  be 
nearly  ninety  years  older  than  Barbour's  work.  Of  Barbour  and  other  writers, 
Wyntown  speaks  in  a  generous  and  respectful  manner,'  and  the  same  liberality 
of  sentiment  is  displayed  by  him  regarding  the  enemies  of  his  country,  whose 
gallantry  he  takes  frequent  occasion  to  praise.  Considering  the  paucity 
of  books  in  Scotland  at  the  time,  Wyntown's  learning  and  resources  were  by  no 
means  contemptible.  He  quotes,  among  the  ancient  authors,  Aristotle,  Galen, 
Palaephatus,  Josephus,  Cicero,  Livy,  Justin,  Solinus,  and  Valerius  IMaximus, 
and  also  mentions  Homer,  Virgil,  Horace,  Ovid,  Stafius,  Boethius,  Dionysius, 
Cato,  Dares  Phrygius,  Origen,  Augustiu,  Jerome,  &c. 

Wyntown's  Chronicle  being  in  rhyme,  he  ranks  among  the  poets  of  Scotland 
and  he  is  in  point  of  time  the  third  of  the  few  early  ones  whose  works  we  pos- 
sess, Thomas  the  Rhymer  and  Barbour  being  his  only  extant  predecessors. 
His  work  is  entirely  composed  of  couplets,  and  these  generally  of  eight  sylla- 
bles, though  lines  even  of  ten  and  others  of  six  syllables  frequently  occur. 
"  Perhaps,"  says  Mr  Ellis,  "  the  noblest  modern  versifier  who  should  undertake 
to  enumerate  in  metre  the  years  of  our  Lord  in  only  one  century,  would  feel 

6  He  even  avoAvs  his  incompetency  to  write  equal  to  Barbour,  as  in  the  following 
lines  :— 

The  Stewartis  originale 
The  Archedekjne  has  trctyd  Lai 
In  metre  fayre  mare  n-erlwsli/ 
Than  I  can  Ihynk  be  my  study y  &c. 

CronykU,  B.  viii.  c.  7.  v.  143. 


496  PATRICK  YOUNG. 


some  respect  for  the  ingenuity  with  which  Wyiitown  has  contrived  to  vary  his  rhymes 
throughout  such  a  formidable  chronological  series  as  he  ventured  to  encounter. 
His  genius  is  certainly  inferior  to  that  of  his  predecessor  Barbour ;  but  at  least 
his  versification  is  easy,  his  language  pure,  and  his  style  often  animated." 

There  are  various  manuscripts  of  Wyntown's  work,  more  or  less  perfect,  still 
extant.  The  one  in  the  British  Museum  is  the  oldest  and  the  best;  and  after  it 
rank,  in  antiquity  and  correctness,  the  manuscripts  belonging  to  the  Cotton 
Library  and  to  the  Advocates'  Library  at  Edinburgh. 


YOUNG,  Patrick,  known  also  by  his  Latinized  name  of  Patrlclus  Junius,  a 
distinguished  scholar  of  the  seventeenth  century,  was  the  son  of  Sir  Peter  Young, 
CO -preceptor  with  Buchanan  of  king  James  VI.,  and  was  born  at  Seaton,  in 
Haddingtonshire,  in  1584.  He  was  educated  at  the  university  of  St  Andrews — 
accompanied  his  father  in  the  train  of  James  VI.  to  England,  in  1603,  and  was  for 
some  time  domesticated  with  Dr  Lloyd,  bishop  of  Chester,  as  his  librarian  or 
secretary.  In  1605,  he  was  incorporated  at  Oxford  in  the  degree  of  M.A.,  which 
he  had  taken  at  St  Andrews;  and,  entering  into  deacon's  orders,  was  made 
one  of  the  chaplains  of  All-Souls'  college.  There  he  acquired  considerable  pro- 
ficiency in  ecclesiastical  history  and  antiquities,  and  became  profoundly  skilled 
in  the  Greek  language,  in  which  he  made  a  practice  of  corresponding  with  liis 
father  and  other  learned  men.  He  afterwards  repaired  to  Loudon,  and,  by  the 
interest  of  Dr  Montagu,  bishop  of  Bath  and  Wells,  obtained  a  pension  of  £50  a-year, 
and  was  occasionally  employed  by  the  king,  and  some  persons  connected  with  the 
government,  in  writing  Latin  letters.  The  same  interest  obtained  for  him  the 
oflBce  of  i-oyal  librarian.  In  1617,  Young  went  to  Paris,  with  recommendatory^ 
letters  from  Camden,  which  introduced  him  to  the  learned  of  that  capital.  After 
his  return,  he  was  engaged  in  the  translation  of  the  works  of  king  James  into 
Latin,  In  1620,  having  recently  been  married,  he  was  presented  with  two  rectories 
in  Denbighshire;  soon  after,  he  became  a  prebend  of  St  Paul's,  and  the  treasurer 
of  that  cathedral ;  and,  in  1624,  he  attained,  by  the  influence  of  bishop  Williams, 
the  office  of  Latin  secretary.  Young,  whose  reputation  was  now  widely  extended, 
was  one  of  the  learned  persons  chosen  by  Selden  to  aid  in  the  examination  of  the 
Arundelian  marbles.  He  made  a  careful  examination  of  the  Alexandrian  manu- 
script of  the  Bible,  and  comifiunicated  some  various  readings  to  Grotius,  Ushei*, 
and  other  learned  men.  Ho  also  published  a  specimen  of  an  edition  of  that 
manuscript,  which  he  intended  to  execute,  but  was  ultimately  obliged  to  abandon ; 
however,  in  1033,  he  edited,  from  the  same  manuscript,  "Tlio  Epistles  of  Clemens 
Romanus;"  and  afterwards  published,  with  a  Latin  version,  "Catena  Graecorum 
Patrum  in  Jobum,  coUectore  Niceta,  Heracliae  Metropolita."  In  1638,  he  pub- 
lished, "Expositio  in  Canticum  Canticorum  Folioti  Episcopi  Londinensis,  una  cum 
Alcuini  in  idem  Canticum  Compendio."  Young  also  made  preparations  for  editing 
various  other  manuscripts,  to  which  his  office  in  the  king's  library  gave  him  access, 
when  the  confusions  occasioned  by  the  civil  war,  and  the  seizure  of  the  library  by 
the  parliament,  put  an  end  to  his  designs.  lie  retired  during  this  period  to  tho 
house  of  his  son-in-law,  at  Broomfield,  in  Essex,  where  he  died  in  1652, 


GLASGOW :  W.  O.  BLACKIK  AND  CO.,   PKINTERS,  VILIAFIELD. 


J^-*-  JP^"" 


UC  SOUTHERN  REGIONAL  : 


A     000  624  975     9 


i 


/ 


M'.